summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes3
-rw-r--r--37906-8.txt16445
-rw-r--r--37906-8.zipbin0 -> 323063 bytes
-rw-r--r--37906-h.zipbin0 -> 376378 bytes
-rw-r--r--37906-h/37906-h.htm19646
-rw-r--r--37906-h/images/illus-emb.jpgbin0 -> 2818 bytes
-rw-r--r--37906-h/images/illus-fpc.jpgbin0 -> 39393 bytes
-rw-r--r--37906.txt16445
-rw-r--r--37906.zipbin0 -> 322959 bytes
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
11 files changed, 52552 insertions, 0 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6833f05
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,3 @@
+* text=auto
+*.txt text
+*.md text
diff --git a/37906-8.txt b/37906-8.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..414b9da
--- /dev/null
+++ b/37906-8.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,16445 @@
+Project Gutenberg's The Whirligig of Time, by Wayland Wells Williams
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Title: The Whirligig of Time
+
+Author: Wayland Wells Williams
+
+Illustrator: J. Henry
+
+Release Date: November 2, 2011 [EBook #37906]
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1
+
+*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE WHIRLIGIG OF TIME ***
+
+
+
+
+Produced by Roger Frank, Matthew Wheaton and the Online
+Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+THE WHIRLIGIG OF TIME [Illustration: "'JAMES DID IT! JAMES HAS MADE A
+TOUCHDOWN'"]
+
+
+
+
+ THE WHIRLIGIG OF TIME
+
+ BY
+
+ WAYLAND WELLS WILLIAMS
+
+
+ _WITH A FRONTISPIECE BY J. HENRY_
+
+ "_And thus the whirligig of Time brings in his
+ revenges._"--Twelfth Night.
+
+
+ NEW YORK
+
+ FREDERICK A. STOKES COMPANY
+
+ PUBLISHERS
+
+
+_Copyright, 1916, by_
+FREDERICK A. STOKES COMPANY
+
+_All rights reserved, including that of translation
+into foreign languages._
+
+
+
+
+ CONTENTS
+
+
+ PART I
+
+ CHAPTER
+
+ I UNWRITTEN PAPERS
+ II AUNTS
+ III NOT COLONIAL; GEORGIAN
+ IV PUPPY DOGS, AND A PSYCHOLOGICAL FACT
+ V BABES IN THE WOOD
+ VI ARCADIA AND YANKEEDOM
+ VII OMNE IGNOTUM
+ VIII LIVY AND VICTOR HUGO
+ IX A LONG CHEER FOR WIMBOURNE
+ X RUMBLINGS
+ XI AUNT SELINA'S BEAUX YEUX
+ XII AN ACT OF GOD
+ XIII SARDOU
+ XIV UN-ANGLO-SAXON
+ XV CHIEFLY CARDIAC
+ XVI THE SADDEST TALE
+
+ PART II
+
+ I CAN LOVE BE CONTROLLED BY ADVICE?
+ II CONGREVE
+ III NOT TRIASSIC, CERTAINLY, BUT NEARLY AS OLD
+ IV WILD HORSES AND CHAMPAGNE
+ V A SCHÖNE SEELE ON PISGAH
+ VI A LONG CHAPTER. BUT THEN, LOVE IS LONG
+ VII A VERY SHORT CHAPTER, IN ONE SENSE
+ VIII ONE THING AND ANOTHER
+ IX LABYRINTHS
+ X MR. AND MRS. ALFRED LAMMLE
+ XI HESITANCIES AND TEARS
+ XII A ROD OF IRON
+ XIII RED FLAME
+ XIV A POTTER'S VESSEL
+ XV THE TIDE TURNS
+ XVI REINSTATEMENT OF A SCHÖNE SEELE
+
+
+
+
+THE WHIRLIGIG OF TIME
+
+
+
+
+PART I
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER I
+
+UNWRITTEN PAPERS
+
+
+Two o'clock struck by the tall clock on the stairs, and young Harry
+Wimbourne, lying wide awake in his darkened bedroom, reflected that he
+had never heard that clock strike two before, except in the afternoon.
+To his ears the two strokes had a curious and unfamiliar sound; he
+waited expectantly for more to follow, but none did, and the tones of
+the second stroke died slowly away in a rather uncanny fashion through
+the silent house. For the house was silent now; the strange and
+terrifying series of sounds, issuing from the direction of his mother's
+room, that had first awakened him, had ceased some time ago. There had
+been much scurrying to and fro, much opening and shutting of doors,
+mingled not infrequently with the sound of voices; voices subdued and
+yet strained, talking so low and so hurriedly that no complete sentences
+could be caught, though Harry was occasionally able to distinguish the
+tones of his father, or the nurse, or the doctor. Once he detected the
+phrase "hot water"; and even that seemed to give a slight tinge of
+familiarity and sanity to the other noises. But then had come those
+other sounds that froze the very blood in his veins, and made him lie
+stiff and stark in his bed, perspiring in every pore, in an agony of
+ignorance and terror. It was all so inexplicable; his mother--! A
+strange voice would not have affected him so.
+
+But all that had stopped after a while, and everything had quieted down
+to the stillness that had prevailed for an hour or more when the clock
+struck two. The stillness was in its way even more wearing than the
+noises had been, for it gave one the impression that more was to
+follow. "Wait, wait, wait," it seemed to Harry to say; "the worst is
+not nearly over yet; more will happen before the night is out; Wait,
+wait!" and the slow tick of the clock on the stairs, faintly heard
+through the closed door, took up the burden "Wait! Wait!" And Harry
+waited. The passage of time seemed to him both cruelly slow and cruelly
+fast; each minute dragged along like an hour, and yet when the hour
+struck it seemed to him to have passed off in the space of a minute.
+
+Sleep was impossible. For the fiftieth time he turned over in his bed,
+trying to find a position that would prove so comfortable as to ensure
+drowsiness; yet as he did so he felt convinced that he could not sleep
+until something definite, something final, even if unpleasant, should
+end the suspense of the silence. He looked across the short space of
+darkness that separated his bed from that of his elder brother James,
+and envied him his power of sleeping through anything. But a short
+sudden change in the dim outline of the other bed told him that his
+brother was not asleep. Harry felt the other's gaze trying to pierce the
+darkness, even as his own. He half turned, with a sharp and nervous
+motion, to show that he was awake, and for some minutes both boys lay
+silently gazing toward each other, each wondering how much the other had
+heard.
+
+At length James broke the silence. "It's come," he said.
+
+"Yes, it has," answered Harry. "How long have you been awake?" he added,
+feeling he must ascertain how much James knew before committing himself
+any further.
+
+"Oh, hours," said James.
+
+"Since before--"
+
+"Yes."
+
+So James had heard all, thought Harry. It was just like him to be awake
+all that time and never give a sign. It scarcely occurred to him that
+James might be as shy as himself in reference to the events of the
+night.
+
+It must not for a moment be supposed that either of these boys was
+ignorant of the nature of what was taking place in their mother's room.
+Harry was ten at the time, and James was within hinting distance of his
+twelfth birthday. So that when their father, a few days before, had
+solemnly informed them that they might expect the arrival of a little
+brother or sister before long, and that they must be most careful not
+to disturb their mother in any way, etc., etc., no childish superstition
+picturing the newcomer flying through the window or floating down a
+stream on a cabbage leaf or, more prosaically, being introduced in the
+doctor's black bag, ever entered their heads. When the trained nurse
+appeared, a day or two later, they did not need to be told why she was
+there. They accepted the situation, tried to make as little noise as
+possible, and struck up a great friendship with Miss Garver, who at
+first had ample leisure to regale them with tales of her hospital
+experiences; among which, she was sorry to observe, accounts of advanced
+cases of delirium tremens were easily the favorites.
+
+For a long time the two boys lay awake without exchanging any more
+conversation worth mentioning. They heard the clock strike three, and
+after that they may have slept. At any rate, the first thing they were
+aware of was the door of their room being opened by a softly rustling
+figure which they at once recognized as that of the trained nurse. She
+crossed the room and methodically lit the gas; then she turned and stood
+at the foot of Harry's bed, resting her hands lightly on the footboard.
+Both the boys noticed immediately how white her face was and how grave
+its expression.
+
+"Are you both awake, boys?" she asked.
+
+They both said they were, and Miss Garver, after pausing a moment, as if
+to choose her words, said:
+
+"Then get up and put on something, and come into your mother's room with
+me."
+
+Without a word they rose and stumbled into their dressing gowns and
+slippers. When they were ready Miss Garver led the way to the door, and
+there turned toward them, with her hand on the knob.
+
+"Your mother is very ill, boys. We are afraid--this may be the last time
+you will see her."
+
+Dazed and silent they followed her into the hall.
+
+The bedroom into which they then went was a large room at the front of
+the house, high of ceiling, generous of window space, and furnished for
+the most part with old mahogany furniture. It was a beautiful old room
+when the sun was pouring in through the great windows, and it was quite
+as beautiful, in a solemn sort of way, now, when it was dimly
+illuminated by one low-burning gas jet and one or two shaded candles. A
+low fire was burning in the grate, and its dying flames fitfully shone
+on soft-colored chintz coverings and glowing mahogany surfaces, giving
+to the room an air of drowsy and delicious peace. And in the middle of
+it all, on a great mahogany four-poster bed, curtained, after the
+fashion of a hundred years ago, Edith Wimbourne lay dying. She, poor
+lady, white and unconscious on her great bed, cared as little for the
+setting of the scene in which she was playing the chief part as dying
+people generally do; but we, who look on the scene with detached and
+appreciative eyes, may perhaps venture the opinion that, if a choice of
+deaths be vouchsafed us, we would as lief as not die in a four-poster
+bed, surrounded by those we love best, and with a flickering fire
+casting changing and fantastic shadows on the familiar walls and
+ceiling.
+
+Beside the dying lady on the bed, there were three other people in the
+bedroom when Miss Garver led Harry and James into it. The doctor, whom
+they both knew and liked well, sat at the head of the bed. In a large
+armchair near the fire sat the boys' father, and somewhere in the
+background hovered another trained nurse, sprung out of nowhere. The
+presence of these figures seemed, in some intangible way, to make death
+an actual fact, instead of a mere possibility; if they had not been
+there, the boys might merely have been going to pay their mother a visit
+when she was ill. Now they both realized, with horribly sinking hearts,
+that they were going to see her for the last time.
+
+The doctor looked up inquiringly as Miss Garver brought the two boys
+into the room and led them over toward the bed. The father did not even
+turn his head as they came in. They stood by the bedside and gazed in
+silence at the pale sleeping face on the pillow. A faint odor of
+chloroform hung about the bed. The doctor stood up and leaned over to
+listen to the action of the dying woman's heart. After he had finished
+he drew back a little from the bedside.
+
+"You may kiss her, if you like," he said softly.
+
+The boys leaned down in turn and silently touched the calm lips. It was
+almost more than Harry could stand.
+
+"Oh, must this be the last time?" he heard himself shrieking. But no one
+paid any attention to him, and he suddenly realized that he had not
+spoken the words aloud. He looked at James' face, calm though drawn, and
+the sight reassured him. He wondered if James was suffering as much as
+himself, and thought he probably was. He wondered if his face showed as
+little as James'.
+
+The doctor and Miss Garver were whispering together.
+
+"Shall I take them away now?" she asked.
+
+"Not yet," was the answer; "there is just a chance that--"
+
+He did not finish, but Miss Garver must have understood, for she nodded
+and quietly drew the boys away. They walked off toward the fireplace,
+and their father, without moving his head, stretched out a hand in their
+direction. Silently they sat down by him, one on each arm of his chair,
+and he slipped an arm about the waist of each.
+
+So they started on the last period of waiting for what they all knew
+must come; what they prayed might come soon and at the same time longed
+to postpone as long as possible. The doctor had resumed his seat at the
+bedside, and now kept his fingers almost constantly on the patient's
+wrist. The two nurses sat down a little way off, to be ready in
+case--The emergency was not formulated. These three people were all
+present for professional reasons, so we may assume that most of their
+meditations were of a professional nature. But even so, they felt
+beneath their professional calm the mingled sadness and sweetness and
+solemnity that accompanies the sight of death, be it never so familiar.
+And we may easily guess the feelings of the two boys as they awaited the
+departure of the person they loved most on earth; nothing but the
+feeling of suspense kept them from giving away completely. The person in
+the room whom the scene might have been expected to affect most was, in
+point of fact, the one who felt it least, and that was the shortly to be
+bereaved husband, Hilary Wimbourne.
+
+"Poor Edith," he mused, "poor Edith. What a wife she has been to me, to
+be sure! I was fond of her, too. Not as fond as I might have been, of
+course ... Still, when I think that I shall never again see her face
+behind the coffee things at the breakfast table it gives me a pang, a
+distinct pang ... By the bye, I don't suppose she remembered, before all
+this came on, to send that Sheffield urn to be replated ... But it's
+all so beautiful--the fire, the draped bed, the waiting figures, the
+whole atmosphere! Just what she would have chosen to die in; all peace
+and naturalness. Everything seems to say 'Good-by, Edith;
+congratulations, Edith; well out of it all,' only much more beautifully.
+There is a dirge--how does it go?--
+
+ Oh, no more, no more; too late
+ Sighs are spent; the burning tapers
+ Of a life as chaste as fate,
+ Pure as are unwritten papers,
+ Are burnt out--
+
+"That comes somewhere near it; 'a life as chaste as fate'--not a bad
+description of Edith ... 'Pure as are unwritten papers'--who but an
+Elizabethan would have dared to cast that line just like that? Let's
+see; Ford, was it, or Shirley?... If only some one were singing that
+now, behind the scenes, out by the bathroom door, say, everything would
+be quite perfect. 'Unwritten papers'--ah, well, people have no business
+to be as pure as Edith was--and live. But what is to become of my home
+without her? What will become of the boys? Good Heavens, what am I going
+to do with the boys? Good little souls--how quiet they are! It all hits
+them a great deal harder than it does me, I know. It won't be so bad
+when they're old enough to go off to school, but till then ... I must
+ask Cecilia's advice; she'll have some ideas, and by the way, I wonder
+if Cecilia thought to see about that Sheraton sideboard for me?"
+
+And so on, and so on. Hilary Wimbourne's meditations never went very far
+without rounding up at a Sheraton sideboard or an old Sheffield urn or a
+nice bit of Chienlung or a new idea for a pleached alley. Let us not
+judge him. He was that sort of person.
+
+These reflections, and the complete outward silence in which they took
+place, were at last interrupted by a slight stirring of the sick woman
+on the bed. For the last time in her mortal life--and for very nearly
+the first, for the matter of that--Edith Wimbourne was to assume the
+center of her family stage. Her husband and sons heard her sigh and stir
+slightly as she lay, and then the doctor and Miss Garver appeared to be
+busy over her for a few moments. Probably they made shift to force a
+stimulant between her teeth, for in a moment or two she opened her eyes
+to the extent of seeing what was about her. Almost the first sight that
+greeted them was that of her two sons sitting on the arms of their
+father's chair, and as she saw them she smiled faintly.
+
+The nurse glanced inquiringly toward the doctor, who nodded, and she
+went over and touched Harry lightly on the shoulder.
+
+"Come over and speak to your mother," she whispered, and Harry walked to
+her side. Very gently he took the hand that lay motionless on the bed
+and held it in his. He could not have uttered a word for the life of
+him.
+
+Either the reviving action of the stimulant or the feeling of the warm
+blood pulsing through his young hand, or perhaps both, lent a little
+strength to the dying woman. She smiled again, and ever so slight a
+flush appeared on her wasted cheeks. "Harry, dear Harry," she whispered
+gently, and the boy leaned down to catch the words. "I am going to leave
+you, dear, and I am sorry. I know I should be very proud of you, if I
+could live ... Be a good boy, Harry, and don't forget your mother."
+
+She closed her eyes again, exhausted with the effort of speaking. Dazed
+and motionless Harry remained where he stood until the nurse led him
+gently away to make room for James.
+
+James stood for some moments as his brother had done, with his hand
+clasped in that of his mother. Presently she opened her eyes once more,
+and gazed gravely for a moment or two at the face of her first-born, as
+though gathering her little remaining strength for what she had to say
+to him.
+
+"Listen, dear," she said at last, and James bent down. "I'm going to
+die, James. Try not to be too sorry about it. It is all for the best ...
+Dearest, there is something I want you to do for me; you know how I have
+always trusted you, and depended on you--well, perhaps you don't know,
+but I have ... James, I want you to look out for Harry. He needs it now,
+and he will need it a great deal more later. You will see what I mean,
+as you grow up. He is not made like you; he will need some one to look
+after him. Can you promise me that you will do this?"
+
+"Yes," whispered James.
+
+His mother sighed gently, as though with relief. "Now kiss me, dear,"
+she said, and then, almost inaudibly, "It is good to leave some one I
+can trust." Then she closed her eyes, for the last time.
+
+James never repeated those words of his mother to any human being, as
+long as he lived, not even to Harry. It would be too much to say that
+they were never absent from his thoughts, for in truth he thought but
+seldom of them, after the first few days. But in some compelling though
+intangible way he realized, as he stood there by his mother's death-bed,
+that he had accepted a trust from which nothing but death would release
+him.
+
+The doctor returned to the side of the dying woman. Swiftly and quietly
+Miss Garver placed a hand on the shoulder of each of the two boys and
+led them from the room. Edith Wimbourne slept, and her sleep slowly
+passed into death.
+
+The man in the chair never moved.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER II
+
+AUNTS
+
+
+Till Miss Garver had seen Harry and James tucked away in their beds
+again and had put out the light and left their room, both the boys
+maintained the same outward composure that they had shown throughout the
+experiences of the night. But once left alone in the quiet of their
+darkened bedroom, no further ordeal ahead of them to inspire
+restraint--for they knew perfectly well by this time that their mother
+must be dead--they gave way entirely to their natural grief and spent
+what they both remembered afterward as the wretchedest night of their
+lives.
+
+It was scarcely better when Miss Garver woke them in the morning, though
+sleep had so completely erased all recollection of the night before that
+Harry, lazily sitting up and rubbing his eyes, asked what time it was in
+the most natural voice in the world.
+
+"About ten o'clock," was the reply.
+
+"Ten o'clock! Why, we're an hour late for school already."
+
+"You are not going to school to-day," answered Miss Garver, gently, and
+she hated to say it, knowing that the remark would immediately set them
+remembering. When she turned toward them again she saw that it had,
+indeed.
+
+"Listen," she told them, as gently as she could, "I want you both to get
+dressed now as quickly as possible and then go down and eat your
+breakfast. After that I am going to take you both down town. There is a
+good deal to be done. So hurry up."
+
+"Why are you going to take us down town?" asked James.
+
+"To get some clothes."
+
+"But I don't understand," he began again, and then he did. He started
+dressing, mechanically, and had half completed his toilet before he
+noticed his brother, who was kneeling despairingly by his bed, with his
+face buried in the pillow.
+
+"Come on, Harry," he said gently; "I'm nearly ready."
+
+"No," moaned Harry.
+
+"Yes. It's got to be done, you know."
+
+"Oh, go away and leave me alone."
+
+James bent his head down close to that of his brother. "You feel better
+when you're doing something," he said softly.
+
+Harry, at length persuaded, arose and began to dress, and before long he
+began to feel that James was right. Doing something did not remove the
+pain, or even ease it, but it made you notice it less. It was even
+better during breakfast. Both the boys ate steadily and fairly
+copiously, though their enjoyment, if there was any, of what was
+customarily their pleasantest meal, was wholly subconscious. There was
+honey on the table, and Harry, without realizing what he was doing,
+helped himself to it for a second time. He mechanically pushed the pot
+back toward James, who also partook. Almost simultaneously their teeth
+closed on honey and muffin, and at the same time their eyes met. For two
+or three seconds they gazed shamefacedly at each other, and then stopped
+eating. Harry left the table and stood in front of the window, looking
+out over the wide lawn.
+
+"Oh, Mother, Mother," he cried within himself; "to think I should be
+eating honey and muffin, now, so soon, and enjoying it! Oh, forgive me,
+forgive me!"
+
+When the first shock of self-contempt had passed off, the boys wandered
+into the library, in search of their father. They discovered him, seated
+at his desk as they had expected, but it was with a sharp shock of
+surprise that they perceived that he was interviewing the cook. Both
+were more or less disgusted at the discovery, but they felt
+nevertheless, in a vague but reassuring way, that this partly justified
+the honey episode.
+
+The interview closed almost as soon as they entered, and their father
+called them over to him.
+
+"You have both been very good," he said, taking a hand of each of them;
+"this has all been very hard for you, I know." He paused, and then,
+seeing signs of tears on their faces, he went on somewhat hurriedly:
+"You must go down town with Miss Garver now; she has very kindly offered
+to get you what you will need for the funeral. Aunt Cecilia will take
+you to New York after that, I expect, and will fit you out more fully.
+The funeral will be to-morrow at three o'clock, and you will be on hand
+for that. I don't know whether any one told you; the baby died--the one
+that was born last night. It was a little girl; she only lived a few
+minutes. She will be buried with your mother. There will be a lot of
+people coming up to-day and to-morrow for the funeral; Uncle James and
+Aunt Cecilia and various others, and as there is a good deal to arrange
+you must try to be a help and not a hindrance, and make yourselves
+useful if you can. Now run along with Miss Garver and--oh, one more
+thing. I should advise you not to ask to see your mother again. You can,
+of course, if you want to, but I rather think you will not be sorry if
+you don't. You see, you probably have a good many years in which you
+will have to live on her memory, and I think it will be better if your
+last recollection of her is as she was when she was alive, not when she
+was dead ... and if you want to drive down to the station after lunch to
+meet Uncle James and Aunt Cecilia on the two-fifty, you can. You'd
+better do that; it's a good thing to give yourself plenty of occupation.
+That's all--good-by."
+
+Then they went off in search of black clothes, and somewhat to their
+surprise they noticed that Miss Garver had returned to her companionable
+self of the preceding days; it was almost as if their mother had not
+died, except that she was gravely cheerful now, instead of cheerfully
+cheerful, as before.
+
+Before long the boys noticed that almost every one they had to do with
+adopted the attitude taken by Miss Garver. Lunch, to be sure, was a
+rather terrible meal, for then they were alone with their father, and
+he, though he refrained from further allusion to the loss that hung over
+them all, was silent and preoccupied. But Uncle James and Aunt Cecilia,
+when met at the station by their nephews, spoke and acted much as usual,
+and neither of them noticed that Aunt Cecilia's gentle eyes filled with
+tears as she kissed them. They had always loved Aunt Cecilia best of all
+their aunts, though she was not their real aunt, being the wife of their
+father's younger brother. Of their Uncle James the boys were both a
+little afraid, and never felt they understood him. He was much like
+their father, both in behavior and appearance--though he was
+clean-shaven and their father wore a beard and mustache--but he was much
+more unapproachable. He had an uncomfortable way of suddenly joining in
+a conversation with an apparently irrelevant remark, at which everybody
+would generally remain silent for a moment and then laugh, while he sat
+with grave and unchanged countenance. The boys had once spoken to their
+father of their uncle's apparent lack of sympathy; Harry had complained
+that Uncle James never seemed to "have any feelings." "Well," replied
+their father, "he is a better lawyer than I am," and the boys never saw
+any sense in that reply till they remembered it years afterward, and
+even then they never could decide whether it was meant as an explanation
+or a corollary.
+
+Later in the afternoon Aunt Selina arrived. There was always something
+magnificent and aloof about Aunt Selina; she had the air of having been
+transplanted out of a glorious past into a frivolous and inferior
+present, and being far too well-bred to comment on its inferiority,
+however keenly she was aware of it. She was the half-sister of Hilary
+Wimbourne, and much older than he, being the child of a first marriage
+of his father. Harry and James were on the front steps to greet her as
+she drove up in state. Her very manner of stepping out of the carriage
+and ascending the steps where she gravely bent and kissed each of her
+nephews with the same greeting--"How do you do, my dear James," "How do
+you do, my dear Harry,"--was not so much a tribute to the gravity of
+this particular occasion as a typical instance of Aunt Selina's way of
+doing things. Though only of average height, she generally gave the
+impression of being tall by the erect way in which she habitually
+carried her head, and by the straightness and spareness of her whole
+figure. Her skirts always nobly swept the floor beside and behind her,
+in a day when other women's skirts hung limply about their ankles. Both
+Harry and James looked upon her with an awe which was only slightly
+modified by affection.
+
+But both boys' views of Aunt Selina underwent expansion within the next
+twenty-four hours, and they were to learn the interesting lesson that a
+warm and impulsive heart may be hidden within a forbidding exterior.
+Aunt Selina entered the home of the Wimbournes with her customary quiet
+ceremony, and gravely greeted such of her relatives as were present,
+after which every one else in the room instinctively "stood around,"
+waiting for her to make the first move. Kind and gentle Aunt Cecilia,
+who was a daughter of one of New York's oldest and proudest and richest
+families, was no one in particular while Aunt Selina was in the room.
+Miss Wimbourne immediately proceeded to her bedroom, to repair the
+ravages of travel, and when she came down again she found the
+drawing-room deserted except for James, who was standing in front of a
+window and gazing out into the twilight. She went over and stood by him,
+also looking over the darkening lawn.
+
+"I am very glad to get this chance to see you, James," she said
+presently, in her subdued, measured tones, "even though the occasion for
+my being here is such a sad one. It is not often I get a chance to see
+any of my nephews and nieces."
+
+James mumbled an inarticulate monosyllable or two in reply, without
+turning his head. Aunt Selina had interrupted what was a bad half-hour
+for James. She turned and looked at him, and the look of dumb suffering
+on his face struck into the very roots of her heart. She stooped
+suddenly and put her arms about him, kissing his cheek with a warmth
+that was entirely new to James.
+
+"I know how it feels," she whispered; "I've been through it all, not
+once, but again and again, and I know just how bad it is. Dear boy, how
+I wish I could bear it for you."
+
+She sat down on a little settee that stood in front of the window, still
+holding one of James' hands in hers, and the boy, after the first shock
+of astonishment had passed, sank down on his knees in front of her and
+buried his head in her lap. So he remained for some minutes, sobbing
+almost contentedly; it was sweet to find consolation in this unexpected
+quarter.
+
+Presently he raised his miserable eyes to hers. "It's Harry,
+too--partly--" he said, and could go no further.
+
+"Yes, I know that too," said his aunt. "You mean that you have to bear
+up on Harry's account--"
+
+"Yes!"
+
+"Because you are older and stronger than he, and you know he would
+suffer more if you let him see how much you suffer. So you go about with
+the pain burning your very heart out, because all the time something in
+his face makes it impossible for you to breathe a word more of it than
+you can help. And so every one gets the idea you are more hard-hearted
+than he," she went on passionately, letting her voice sink to a whisper,
+"and are not capable of as much feeling as he. But you don't care what
+people think; you don't know or care about anything except oh! if you
+only might go somewhere and shriek it all out to somebody, anybody! And
+after a lifetime of that sort of thing self-repression becomes second
+nature to you, so that you can't say a thing you think or feel, and you
+become the sort of living mummy that I am, with your soul dead and
+embalmed years ago, while your body, your worthless, useless body, goes
+on living and living. You have begun it early, my poor James!"
+
+She stopped, quite as much astounded at her own outburst as James. The
+boy no longer cried, for astonishment had driven away his tears, but
+stared thoughtfully out of the window. He had not caught the full
+meaning of all that his aunt had said, but he knew that he was receiving
+a most important confidence from the most unexpected possible quarter,
+which was exactly in tune with his own mood. The good lady herself was
+for a few moments literally too bewildered to utter a word.
+
+"Good Heavens!" ran her astonished thoughts, "do you know what you have
+done, Selina Wimbourne? You have made more of a fool of yourself in the
+last five minutes than you have done in all the years since you were a
+girl! God grant it may do him no harm."
+
+To James she said aloud, as soon as she could control her voice:
+
+"I am a foolish and indiscreet old woman, James--"
+
+"No, you're not," interrupts the boy with sudden spirit.
+
+"Well, I've said a great deal more than I ought, at any rate. I don't
+want you to get any false impression from what I have told you. I want
+to explain to you that all the suffering I have undergone from--in the
+way I have told you--has not hurt me, but has rather benefited me. You
+see, there are two kinds of human suffering. One is forced upon you from
+the outside. You can't prevent that kind, you just have to go through
+with it. It never is as bad as you think it is going to be, I find. The
+other kind you make for yourself, by doing the wrong thing when you know
+you ought to be doing the right thing. That is the really bad kind of
+suffering, and you can always prevent it by doing the thing you know is
+right."
+
+"You mean," said James thoughtfully, "that it would have been even worse
+for you if you had squealed, when you knew--when you knew you ought not
+to!"
+
+"Exactly. It's simply a question of the lesser of two evils. Doing the
+pleasant but wrong thing hurts more in the end than doing the
+disagreeable but right thing."
+
+"I see. But suppose you can't tell which is the right thing and which
+the wrong one?"
+
+"Ah, there you've put your finger on a real difficulty. You just have to
+think it all over and decide as best you can, and then, if it turns out
+wrong, you're not so much to blame. Then, your suffering is of the kind
+that you can't help. No one can do any better than what he thinks is
+right at the time.... Now get up, dear, I hear people coming."
+
+"Well, thank you, Aunt Selina. What you have told me helps, an awful
+lot. Really!"
+
+"I am glad, my dear," replied Miss Wimbourne, and when people entered
+the room a second or two later no one suspected the sudden bond of
+sympathy that had sprung up between the specimens of crabbed age and
+youth they found there.
+
+"Cecilia, what's going to become of those two boys?" inquired Miss
+Wimbourne later in the evening, finding herself for the moment alone
+with her sister-in-law.
+
+"I've been asking myself that question pretty steadily for the last
+twelve hours," answered Mrs. James. "I wish _I_ could take them," she
+added, impulsively.
+
+"Hardly, I suppose." If any of the remarks made in this conversation
+seem abrupt or inconsequent, it must be remembered that these two ladies
+understood each other pretty thoroughly without having to polish off or
+even finish their sentences, or even to make them consecutive.
+
+"Unfortunately," went on Mrs. James, after a brief pause, "the whole
+thing depends entirely upon Hilary."
+
+"The very last person--"
+
+"Exactly. Yet what can one do?"
+
+"It seems quite clear to me," said Aunt Selina, choosing her words
+carefully and slowly, "that Hilary will inevitably choose the one course
+which is most to be avoided. Hilary will want them to go on living here
+alone with him; preserve the _status quo_ as far as possible. What do
+you think?"
+
+"I am almost sure of it. But...."
+
+"But if any of us have the slightest feeling for those boys ... Until
+they are both safely away at school, at any rate, and he won't send them
+away for a year or two yet, at any rate."
+
+"Harry not for three, I should say.... That is, _I_ shouldn't."
+
+Silence for a moment, then Aunt Selina:
+
+"Well, can you think of any one that could be got to come here?"
+
+Mrs. James fluttered for a moment, as though preparing for a delicate
+and difficult advance.
+
+"I wonder," she said, "that is, the thought struck me to-day--if you--if
+_you_ could ever--"
+
+"Hilary and I," observed Aunt Selina in calm, clear impersonal tones
+that once for all disposed of the suggestion; "Hilary and I Do Not Get
+On. That way, I mean. At a distance--"
+
+The sentence was completed by a gesture that somehow managed to convey
+an impression of understanding and amity at a distance. Mrs. James'
+subdued "Oh!" of comprehension, or rather of resignation, bid fair for a
+while to close the interview. But presently Aunt Selina, with the air of
+one accepting a sword offered with hilt toward her, asked, or rather
+observed, as though it was not a question at all, but a statement:
+
+"What do you think of Agatha Fraile?"
+
+"Well," replied Mrs. James with something of a burnt-child air; "I like
+her. Though I hardly know her, of course. I should say she would be
+willing, too. Though of course one can't tell.... They are not well off,
+I believe.... She is very good, no doubt...."
+
+"Hm," said Aunt Selina serenely, aware that there was a conversational
+ditch to be taken, and determined to make her interlocutrix give her a
+lead. This Aunt Cecilia bravely did with:
+
+"You mean--how much does she know about--?"
+
+"About Hilary, yes."
+
+"I rather think, myself, she must have found out through Edith.... I
+don't see how she could have failed to know. Do you?"
+
+"I can't say, I'm sure. Edith had rather curious ideas, though she was
+one of the best women that ever lived. However, that is not the main
+point for consideration now. What I want to know is, can you think of
+anything better?"
+
+"N-no," replied Mrs. James slowly. "I even think it would be the best
+possible arrangement, if--Oh dear, to think it should come to
+this--those poor boys!"
+
+"Yes, I know," said Aunt Selina, briskly. "Now, that being decided, some
+one has got to put it to Hilary. Hilary will do nothing alone. She comes
+to-morrow morning, does she not? I think it should be settled, one way
+or the other, before she goes. Now who is to approach Hilary?"
+
+"I don't know," faltered Mrs. James, rather bewildered by the other's
+swiftness of reasoning.
+
+"Well, I do. James is the only human being I know who has, or ever had,
+any influence on Hilary. Now one of us has got to talk to James, and I
+rather think, Cecilia, that I could do it more successfully than you.
+For the first time, that is.... Of course, afterward, you...."
+
+"Yes, of course," murmurs Mrs. James.
+
+"Very well, then; I will see James the first thing in the morning. I
+don't say it will come to anything, but there is a great deal to be gone
+through before she is even approached. We must do _something_. Living
+here alone, with their father...."
+
+"Out of the question, of course." The conversation having, as it were,
+completed one lap of its course and arrived again at its starting point,
+might have perambulated gently along till bedtime, had it not been
+abruptly interrupted by the entrance of James, junior, come to say
+good-night.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+A few days after the funeral, after they had gone to bed of an evening,
+Harry through the darkness apostrophized his brother thus:
+
+"I tell you, James, Aunt Selina is all right; did you know it?"
+
+"Oh," was the reply, "she gave you five dollars, too, did she?"
+
+"Yes, but that's not what I mean. She's given me five dollars plenty of
+times before this."
+
+"Well, what do you mean, then?"
+
+"Well, she found me in the garden one morning.... Tuesday, I guess--"
+Tuesday had been the day of the funeral--"and I had been crying a good
+deal, and I suppose she knew it. At any rate, she took me by the hand
+and talked to me for a while...."
+
+"What did she say to you?" This question was not prompted by vulgar
+curiosity; James knew that his brother wished to be pumped.
+
+"Oh, she didn't _say_ much. She was just awfully nice, that's all....
+She told me--well, she said, for one thing, that I cried too much. Only
+she didn't say it like that. She said that going about and crying wasn't
+much of a way of showing you were sorry. She said that if--well, if you
+really _missed_ a person, the least you could do was not to go about
+making a pest of yourself, even if you couldn't really do anything to
+help."
+
+"Oh."
+
+"She said that the last thing that would please Mama herself was to
+think that all she had taught me came to no more than ... well, than
+crying. Then she said.... I don't think I'll tell you that, though."
+
+"Well, don't, if you don't want to."
+
+"She told me that, in a way, she realized I must feel it--about
+Mama--more than any one else, because I had been more with her lately
+than any one else--more dependent on her, she said, ..."
+
+"Yes, I see."
+
+"And that while it was harder on me, it put a greater responsibility on
+me, because, you see--oh, I can't explain it all! But she was about
+right, I guess."
+
+"She told me something of the same kind ... not exactly like that, I
+mean, but--well, the same sort of thing. It helped, too. It's funny, to
+think of her understanding better than any one else--Aunt Selina!"
+
+"Yes, isn't it? Well, you really never can tell about people." With
+which mature reflection Harry turned over and went to sleep. But his
+brother lay awake for some time thinking over what he had just heard,
+and as he thought, his respect for his aunt grew. Not only could she
+sound the depths of his own woe and give him comfort for it, but she
+could light on the one thing that would be likely to help Harry in his
+own peculiar need, and show it to him with ready and fearless tact. And
+what she had told Harry was practically the very opposite of what she
+had told him.
+
+"I wish I could be like Aunt Selina," he thought.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER III
+
+NOT COLONIAL; GEORGIAN
+
+
+Harry and James lived in the city of New Haven in a big house surrounded
+by spacious grounds. The house itself was an old and stately one; the
+local papers, when they had occasion to mention it, usually referred to
+it as the Wimbourne "mansion." The boys' dislike of this word dated from
+an early age, when their father informed them that it was a loathsome
+expression, which people who "really knew" never used under any
+circumstances. He himself, if he had had occasion to describe it, would
+have spoken of it as a "place."
+
+The house was built in the first decade of the nineteenth century. It
+was put up by Hilary Wimbourne's great-grandfather James, first of the
+name, the founder of the family fortunes. He came to New Haven as a
+penniless apprentice to a carriage-maker after the conclusion of the
+Revolutionary wars left him without other occupation, and within ten
+years after his arrival he became one of the two or three most prominent
+lawyers in the place. His understanding of his early trade he turned to
+good account by investing a large portion of his earnings as a lawyer in
+the carriage factory in which he originally served, and which with the
+benefit of his money and business acumen, became the most profitable of
+its kind in the town. He bought a farm in what were then the extreme
+outskirts of the city and built the spacious, foursquare,
+comfortable-looking house in which the Wimbournes with whom we have to
+deal still lived, nearly one hundred years later.
+
+The house stood in a commanding position above an up-town avenue. It was
+painted white with green trimmings, and had a front portico of tall
+Doric columns reaching up to the top of the house. People habitually
+referred to its style of architecture as "Colonial." "Post-Colonial," or
+"late American Georgian" would have come much nearer the mark, but these
+distinctions are as naught to the great and glorious body of New
+England's inhabitants, to whom everything with pillars is and always
+will be "Colonial." The house was in truth a fine example of its style,
+and had been surprisingly little spoiled by the generations of
+Wimbournes that had lived and died in it, but the unity of its general
+effect was marred by the addition of two wings reaching out from its
+sides, erected by Hilary Wimbourne's father in the fifties and showing
+all the peculiarities of that glorious but architecturally weak period.
+Friends of the family often expressed sympathy and sorrow at the
+anachronism the house was thus made to offer, but Hilary soon became
+somewhat impatient of these. In fact, he never listened to an expression
+of regret on the subject without breathing a silent prayer of
+thanksgiving that the wings had been built when they were, and not ten
+or twenty or thirty years later, when architectural indiscretion ran to
+extremes only vaguely hinted at in the forties and fifties.
+
+"Besides," he would explain to those who showed interest in the matter,
+"those wings are not always going to look as badly as they do now. Our
+eyes will always look on them as unpleasantly different from the old
+house, but the eyes of a hundred years hence will see in them nothing
+more than a quaint and agreeable variety. After all, the two styles are
+but two different aspects of neo-classicism, one a little more remote
+from its original model than the other. History has proved what I say;
+think how the sensitive must have shuddered in the fifteenth century
+when they saw a lot of Perpendicular Gothic slammed down by the side of
+pure Early English! It must have looked like the very devil to them."
+Only very few people heard this theory carried back to its logical
+conclusion, however. Hilary would see and recognize the drowning
+expression that came over their faces, and as soon as he knew that he
+was beyond their depth he stopped, for he made it a rule never to talk
+above people's heads. Consequently he seldom got beyond the
+"neo-classicism" point.
+
+As far as the interior was concerned, the atmosphere of the old days had
+been almost perfectly preserved. Every wall-paper, every decoration had,
+by some lucky succession of chances, been as nearly as possible
+duplicated when it became necessary to replace or restore, and the hand
+of the seventies and eighties left almost no trace of its equally
+ruthless destructive and constructive powers. So that at the time of
+which we write the house was furnished almost completely in the style of
+the late Georgian period, for what his ancestors omitted to leave him
+the faultless taste of Hilary supplied.
+
+The house faced westward and toward the principal street of the
+neighborhood; the ground fell gently away from it on all sides, but most
+steeply toward the west. Carriage drives led up to the house from the
+two corners formed by the main thoroughfare and the two intersecting
+streets which bounded the property. A tar footpath followed the curve of
+each driveway, so that between the street and the front door of the
+house there stretched an unbroken expanse of green lawn. In their early
+youth Harry and James both wondered why no footpath ran directly up the
+middle of the front lawn, as was the case with most of the other front
+lawns of their acquaintance, and they considered it monstrously
+inconvenient that they were obliged to "go way round by the corners"
+when they wished to reach the house from without. At length, however,
+the brilliant thought occurred to them that as they always approached
+the house either from the north or the south, and never from the
+unbroken block to the west, they could not well have used a central walk
+if they had had it.
+
+Such was the setting in which the early lives of these two boys took
+place, and, taking one thing with another, their lot could probably not
+have been bettered. The first ten years of their lives had the divine
+monotony of perfect happiness and harmony, in which no more momentous
+events than the measles, a change of school, or summer trips to the
+coast of Maine or, more rarely, to Europe, ever occurred. They were
+brought up, from their earliest years, under the direct but never too
+obtrusive eye of their mother, and as we have already heard Aunt Selina
+describe her as "one of the best women that ever lived," we should be
+guilty of something akin to painting the rose if we ventured on any
+further encomiums of her character on our own account. Their relation
+with their father was hardly less ideal, though they saw much less of
+him and were, at bottom, less deeply attached to him than to their
+mother. Hilary was fond of his boys, and was capable of entering into
+their youthful moods with a sort of intimate aloofness that the boys
+found very winning. Not infrequently he would suddenly swoop down on
+them in their happy but humdrum occupations and carry them off to a
+baseball game or perhaps to New York for the day to spend a few hours of
+bliss in the Aquarium or the Zoo, in less time than it frequently took
+their mother to decide what overcoats they should wear to school. This
+dashing _insouciance_ secretly captivated their mother as much as it did
+them, and though by this time she had given up showing the delight it
+caused her, she was never more pleased than when Hilary would so take
+them off.
+
+Hilary also read to them occasionally, and his reading was another
+source of secret admiration to their mother. He never read them anything
+but what his wife would have described, and rightly, too, as "far beyond
+them"; such things as Spenser, Shakespeare, Sheridan, or Milton, even;
+and he always read with such a mock-serious air as Sir Henry Irving used
+in the scene where Charles I recites poetry to his children. His wife on
+such occasions, though perfectly content with her rôle of Henrietta
+Maria, would reflect that if _she_ tried to read such things to them
+they would be fidgeting and walking about the room and longing for her
+to stop, instead of sitting spellbound, as they did when he read, on the
+arms of his chair and breathlessly following each word of the text.
+
+With another parent and with other children such reading would have
+proved utterly sterile, but from it the boys managed to absorb a good
+deal of pleasure and the germs of literary appreciation as well, and the
+words of many a great passage in many a great author became dear to them
+long before they were able to grasp their full meaning. Results of their
+literary sessions would crop out in the family intercourse in sundry
+curious ways. One instance may serve to illustrate this. The family were
+sitting about together one day after lunch; Edith Wimbourne had a pile
+of household mending before her.
+
+"I declare," she said, "these tablecloths have simply rotted away from
+lying in that dark closet; they would have lasted much better if they
+had been used a little."
+
+"She let concealment," said Hilary from behind a magazine, "like a worm
+i' the bud, feed--what did concealment feed on, James?"
+
+"Feed on her damask--"
+
+"Tablecloth!" shouts Harry, brilliantly but indiscreetly.
+
+"Oh, shut up," retorts his brother, peevishly, as who would not, at
+having the words snatched from his mouth? "You needn't be so smart, I
+was going to say that anyway."
+
+"The heck you were!"
+
+"Yes, I was."
+
+"You were not! You were going to say 'cheek'; I saw you start to say
+it."
+
+"Oh, shut up! Can't any one be bright but you?"
+
+"That's all right; you were going to say it. Wasn't he, Father?" asks
+Harry, with the air of one appealing to the supreme authority.
+
+"What?" Hilary had long since returned to his magazine.
+
+"Say 'cheek.' Wasn't he going to?"
+
+"Who?"
+
+"James, of course."
+
+"I trust not. It seems to me that it is one of the slang words your
+mother has requested you not to use."
+
+"Wha--what is?"
+
+"Cheek." Not much of a joke, certainly, but Hilary, looking with
+impenetrable gravity over his glasses at his son, when he really knows
+perfectly well what Harry is talking about, is funny. At any rate Harry
+stops to laugh, and the quarrel is a failure. Edith could have stopped
+the quarrel by simply enjoining peace, but she could not have done it
+without resort to parental authority.
+
+One day James, ordinarily phlegmatic and self-controlled, ran through
+the house in a great state of dishevelment and distress in search of his
+mother, holding aloft a bloody finger and weeping hot tears of woe.
+
+"Where's Mama?" he inquired breathlessly, ending up in the library and
+finding his father alone there.
+
+"Out, I think. What's the matter?"
+
+"Oh, nothing.... A kid licked me.... I wanted something for this
+finger."
+
+"Well, go upstairs and get that large brown bottle on my wash-stand, and
+we'll see what we can do about it." Hilary, taking a page out of his own
+boyhood, guessed that no mere cut finger could have reduced James to
+such an abject pass. He suspected that his son, who, unlike Harry, was
+almost morbidly sensitive to appearances and almost never gave way to
+demonstrations of grief, had augmented the disgrace of being thrashed by
+allowing himself to be reduced to a state of tears in the presence of
+his fellows. Some such occurrence only could account for this
+precipitate rout. One or two further inquiries confirmed this
+conjecture, and he then prepared to apply, if possible, a balm to his
+son's mental wound as well as the physical one.
+
+"There," said he, giving a final pull to an unprofessional-looking
+bandage, composed of an entirely un-antiseptic handkerchief, "that will
+stay till your mother comes in. Now go and get me that green book on the
+third shelf and I'll read to you for a while, if you want."
+
+The green book happened to be no less notable a work than "Paradise
+Lost," and Hilary, turning to the last pages of the twelfth book, read
+of the expulsion of our sinning forbears from Eden. He read Milton
+rather well, almost as well, in fact, as he secretly thought he did, and
+James, though incapable at first of listening attentively or
+understanding much of anything, was gradually soothed by the solemn
+music of the lines; by the time his father reached the closing passage
+he was listening with wide open ears.
+
+ They, looking back, all the eastern side beheld
+ Of Paradise, so late their happy seat,
+ Waved over by that flaming brand; the gate
+ With dreadful faces thronged and fiery arms.
+ Some natural tears they dropped, but wiped them soon;
+ The world was all before them, where to choose
+ Their place of rest, and Providence their guide.
+ They, hand in hand, with wandering steps and slow,
+ Through Eden took their solitary way.
+
+Hilary kept the book open on his knee for a moment after he had
+finished, and he noticed with interest that James leaned forward with
+aroused attention to read over the passage again. "Some natural
+tears--wiped them soon--the world was all before them--" the words sank
+in on James' mind as his father knew they would, and suggested the
+thought that the world need not be irrevocably lost through one
+indiscretion.
+
+Let no one gain from these somewhat extended accounts of Hilary's
+dealings with his sons an impression to the effect that the boys found a
+more sympathetic friend in their father than in their mother. As a
+matter of fact, the exact contrary was true. Like all perfect art,
+Hilary's successful passages with them bore no trace of the means by
+which they were brought about, and consequently they did not feel that
+their father's attitude toward them was inspired by anything like the
+warm and undisguised affection which pervaded their mother's. Nor,
+indeed, was it.
+
+James, even in these early days, showed signs of having inherited a fair
+share of his father's inborn tact in his dealings with his brother. The
+fraternal relation is always an interesting one to observe, because of
+its extreme elasticity, combining, as it does, apparently unlimited
+possibilities for love, hate and indifference. Who ever saw two pairs of
+brothers that seemed to regard each other with exactly the same
+feelings? Harry and James certainly did not hate each other, but on the
+other hand they did not love each other with that passionate devotion
+that is supposed to characterize the ideal brothers of fancy. Nor could
+they truthfully be called wholly indifferent to each other; their
+mutual attitude lay somewhere between indifference and the
+Castor-and-Pollux-like devotion that the older and less attractive of
+their relatives constantly tried to instil in their youthful bosoms.
+They were never bored by each other. James always felt for Harry's
+superior quickness in all intellectual matters an admiration which he
+would have died sooner than give full expression to, and Harry, though
+he frequently scouted his brother's opinions in all matters, had a
+profound respect for James' clearness and maturity of judgment. But
+what, more than anything else, kept them on good terms with each other
+and always, at the last moment, prevented serious ructions, was a way
+that James had at times of viewing their relation in a detached and
+impersonal light, and acting accordingly. On such occasions he appeared
+to be two people; first, the James that was Harry's brother and
+contemporary, less than two years older than he and subject to the same
+desires and weakness, and, secondly, the James who stood as judge over
+their differences and distributed justice to them both with a fair and
+impartial hand.
+
+For instance, there was the episode of the neckties. A distant relative,
+a cousin of their mother's, who does not really come into the story at
+all, took occasion of expressing her approval of their existence by
+sending them two neckties, one purple and one green, with the direction
+that they should decide between them which was to have which. James, by
+the right of primogeniture that prevails among most families of
+children, was given the first choice, and picked out the purple one.
+Harry quietly took the other, but though there was no open
+dissatisfaction expressed, it soon became evident to James that his
+brother was tremendously disappointed. During the rest of the day, as he
+went about his business and pleasure, vague but disturbing recollections
+flitted through James' mind of Harry's being particularly anxious to
+possess a purple tie, of having been half promised one, indeed, by the
+very relative from whom these blessings came; circumstances which, from
+the wording of the letter which accompanied the gift, obviously
+constituted no legal claim on the tie, but were nevertheless enough to
+appeal to James' sense of moral, or "ultimate" justice.
+
+The next morning James, according to custom, approaching the completion
+of his dressing some time before Harry, remarked in a casual tone:
+
+"Oh, you can have that purple tie, if you want. I'd just as lief take
+the green one."
+
+Harry, who had taken the attitude of being willing to suffer to the
+point of death before making a complaint in the matter, would not allow
+this. In the brief conversational intervals that the spirited wielding
+of a sponge, and subsequently of a towel, allowed, he disclaimed any
+predilection for ties of any particular color, or of any particular kind
+of tie, or for any particular color in general. Clothes were a matter of
+complete indifference for him; he had never been able to understand why
+people spent their time in raving inanely over this or that particular
+manner of robing themselves. As for colors, he could scarcely bother to
+tell one from the other; the prism presented to him a field in which it
+was impossible to make any choice. If, however, in his weaker moments,
+he had ever felt a passing fancy for one color over and above another,
+that color was undoubtedly green. And so on, and so forth. James made no
+further observation on the subject, but when he reached the necktie
+stage in his dressing, he quietly put on the green tie, and Harry, like
+the Roman senators of old, subsequently flashed in the purple.
+
+James preferred the purple tie, but he let Harry have it because Harry
+felt more keenly on the subject than he. "If"--so ran the substance of
+his reasoning--"if I give way in this matter, about which I do not
+particularly care, one way or the other, there will be a better chance
+of my getting what I want some other time, when the issue is a really
+vital one. By sacrificing a penny now, I gain a pound in the future."
+Such clearness of sight was beyond James' years, and, but for the real
+sense of justice that accompanied it might have made him an opportunist.
+James would never in the last resort, have used his reasoning powers to
+cheat Harry, who, though his brother, was, when all was said and done,
+his best friend.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IV
+
+PUPPY DOGS, AND A PSYCHOLOGICAL FACT
+
+
+The story of the life of any person begins with the moment of his birth
+and ends with the last breath that leaves his body. The complete account
+of the inward and outward experiences that go to make up any one
+individual life would, if properly told, be the most fascinating story
+in the world, for there never lived a person who did not carry about
+within himself the materials for a great and complete novel. Such
+stories have never yet been written, and probably never will be, partly
+because they would be too long and partly because the thing would be so
+confoundedly hard to do. So as to make it interesting, that is. We have
+chosen to begin this account of the lives, or rather, a section of the
+lives, of Harry and James at the death of their mother because that was
+their first great outward experience. It influenced their inward lives
+even more fundamentally. It lifted their thoughts, their whole outlook
+on life, from what, for want of a better expression, might be called the
+level of youthful development and sent them branching and soaring into
+new and strange regions.
+
+One of the most important outward changes that Edith Wimbourne's death
+caused in the life of her household was the substitution, as far as such
+a thing could be, of her younger sister, Agatha Fraile, in her place.
+Such was, in a word, the ultimate fruit of the conversation between Aunt
+Selina and Aunt Cecilia that occurred a chapter or two ago. James
+Wimbourne was approached and convinced, and in his turn approached and
+convinced his brother Hilary, who, in his turn, came back to his
+half-sister Selina and persuaded her to approach and convince that lady
+in question on his behalf. Aunt Selina was perfectly willing to do this,
+though she had not counted on it.
+
+"Miss Fraile," she said, on the first occasion for speech that
+presented itself; "my brother Hilary has asked me to put a proposition
+to you on his behalf. What would you say to coming here and living with
+him as his housekeeper and having an eye on those two boys, until--well,
+say till it is time for them to go off to a boarding-school?"
+
+This direct manner of approach was perhaps the one best calculated to
+win Miss Fraile, who after a very little parley, assented to the
+proposition. She was a very young and fragile-looking woman, having but
+lately passed her thirtieth birthday, but she was in reality quite as
+able to take care of herself as the next person, if not, indeed, a great
+deal more so. She was the very antithesis, as the boys presently
+discovered, of Aunt Selina, being all smiles and cordiality on the
+outside and about as hard as tempered steel when you got a little below
+the surface, in spite of her smiles, and in spite, moreover, of her
+really unusual and perfectly sincere piety.
+
+"I think," went on Aunt Selina rather magnificently, after the main
+point had been gained, "that in the matter of the stipend there will be
+no difficulty at all. You will find my brother entirely liberal in such
+matters." Here she named a sum, Miss Fraile instantly decided that it
+would not do, and proceeded after her own fashion to the work of raising
+her opponent's bid.
+
+"How very good of him," she murmured, letting her eyes fall to the
+carpet. "All of our family have unfortunately been obliged to devote so
+much thought and attention to money matters since our dear father's
+death left us so badly off. Let me see.... I suppose my duties here
+would take up very nearly all my time, would they not?"
+
+"I do not know.... I daresay...."
+
+"Exactly; one has to look so far ahead in all these matters, does one
+not? I mean, that looking after this great house and those two dear boys
+and Hilary himself would not leave me much time for anything like music
+lessons, would it? Perhaps you did not know that I gave music lessons at
+home?... Money is such a bother--! I suppose I should scarcely have time
+to practise here myself, with one thing and another--household affairs
+do pile up so, do they not?--without thinking of lessons or anything of
+that sort; yet I daresay I should somehow be able to ... to make it up,
+that is, if--"
+
+"How much more would you need?" asked Aunt Selina bluntly.
+
+Miss Fraile named a sum half as large again as the one previously
+mentioned, but Aunt Selina, stifling a gasp, clinched the matter there.
+
+After the funeral Miss Fraile returned to her home in semi-rural
+Pennsylvania "to collect my traps" as she brightly put it, and a week
+or so later came back to New Haven and settled down in her new position.
+The boys on the whole liked their Aunt Agatha, though even their
+exuberant boyish natures occasionally found her cheerfulness a little
+oppressive, and she certainly did very well for them and for their
+father. She ordered the meals, saw to the housework, arranged the
+flowers, dusted the bric-à-brac with her own hands, did most of the
+mending and presided at the head of the table at meals, fairly radiating
+peace and cheer.
+
+Hilary was a little appalled, to be sure, when she would burst on him on
+his returning to the house of an evening with a pair of warmed slippers
+in her hand and a musical little peal of laughter on her lips, but he
+did not have to see much of her, and besides, he so thoroughly approved
+of her.
+
+"It is like living with Mary and Martha rolled into one," he told his
+brother a month or two after her arrival; "with a little of Job and the
+archangel Gabriel thrown in, flavored with a spice of St. Elizabeth of
+Hungary--that bread woman, you know--and just a dash of St. Francis of
+Assisi. She has covered the lawn knee-deep with bread crumbs for the
+sparrows, and when she is not busy with her church work, which she
+almost always is, she goes about kissing strange children on the head
+and asking them if they say their prayers regularly. They all seem to
+like her, too; that's the funny part of it. The boys are entirely happy
+with her, and she is splendid for them. In short, I am entertaining an
+angel, though not unawares--oh, no, certainly not unawares."
+
+The two boys were thrown on each other's society much more constantly
+than formerly, especially as, during the first weeks, at any rate, they
+had small heart for the games of their schoolmates. James especially,
+during these days of retirement, observed his brother with a
+newly-awakened interest, and in the light, of course, of his mother's
+last words to him. He had always thought of Harry as more irresponsible
+and light-headed than himself, but it had never occurred to him that he
+could give him any help against his impulsiveness beyond the customary
+fraternal criticism and banter. Now he began to see that his position of
+elder brother, combined with his superior balance and poise of
+character, gave him a considerable influence over Harry, and he began to
+feel at times an actual sense of responsibility very different from the
+attitude of tolerant and half-amused superiority with which he had
+previously regarded Harry's vagaries. At such times he would drop his
+ridicule or blame, whichever it happened to be, and would become silent
+and embarrassed, feeling that he should be helping Harry instead of
+merely laying stress on his shortcomings, and yet not having the first
+idea of how to go to work about it.
+
+One day they were returning to the house after a walk through a somewhat
+slummy and hoodlum-infested neighborhood and came upon a group of boys
+tormenting a small, dirty, yellow mongrel puppy after the humorous
+manner of their kind. They were not actually cruel to the dog, but they
+were certainly not giving it a good time, and Harry's tender heart was
+stirred to its core. Without a word or a second thought he rushed into
+the middle of the gang, extracted the puppy and ran off with it to a
+place of safety. The thing was done in the modern rather than in the
+romantic style; he did not strike out at boys twice as big as
+himself--there were none there, in the first place, and in any case he
+had no desire for a fight--nor did he indulge in a lengthy tirade
+against cruelty to animals; he simply grabbed the dog and ran. The
+"micks" followed him at first, but he could run faster than they and
+none of them cared much about a puppy, one way or the other.
+
+James, meanwhile, had run off a different way, and when presently he
+came upon his brother again he was walking leisurely along clasping the
+puppy in a close embrace.
+
+"You certainly are a young fool," said James, half amused and half
+irritated; "what did you want to get mixed up in a street row like that
+for? Darned lucky you didn't get your head smashed."
+
+Harry thought it needless to reply to this, as the facts spoke for
+themselves, and merely walked on, hugging and kissing his prize.
+
+Then suddenly the situation dawned on James in its new light, and he
+walked on, silent as Harry himself and far more perplexed. Harry's
+fundamental motive was a good one, no doubt, but he realized what
+disproportionate trouble the reckless following up of Harry's good
+motives might bring him into. This time he had luckily escaped scot
+free, but the next time he would very likely get mixed up in a street
+fight, and would be lucky if he were able to walk home. And all about so
+little--the dog was not really suffering; being a slum dog it had
+probably thrived on teasing and mistreatment since before its eyes were
+open. And the worst part of the situation was that he was so helpless in
+making Harry see the thing in its true light.
+
+At any rate, he reflected, his first attitude was of no avail. Calling
+Harry a fool, he knew, would not convince him of his foolishness; it
+would more likely have the effect of making him think he was more right
+than ever. As he walked silently on, beside his brother, Harry's
+shortcomings seemed to dwindle and his own to increase.
+
+"Let's have a look at the beast," he said presently in an altered tone,
+stopping and taking the puppy from Harry's arms. "He's not such a bad
+puppy, after all. Wonder how old he is." He sat down on a nearby
+curbstone and balancing the puppy on his knee apostrophized him further:
+"Well, it was poor pupsy-wupsy; did the naughty boys throw stones at it?
+That was a dirty shame, it was!"
+
+James put the puppy down in the gutter and encouraged playfulness. For a
+few minutes the two boys watched its somewhat reluctant antics; then
+James asked:
+
+"What are you going to do with it, anyway?"
+
+"Take it home, I suppose."
+
+"What'll you do with it there? Keep him in the house?"
+
+"No. That is, I suppose Father wouldn't hear of it."
+
+"I suppose not A puppy...! There are three dogs in the house anyway."
+
+"What about the stable, then?"
+
+"I don't know. There's Thomas." Thomas was the coachman, who made no
+secret of his dislike for dogs "under the horses' hoofs."
+
+"Yes," said Harry, "and Spark, too. Spark would try to bite him, I'm
+afraid."
+
+"What are you going to do with him, then?"
+
+"I don't know; what shall we?"
+
+"It's for you to say--he's your dog."
+
+"Do you think," said Harry, lowering his voice and gazing furtively
+around, "do you think it would be all right just to leave him here?"
+
+James laughed, inwardly. Then a bright idea struck him. Grasping the
+puppy in one hand he walked across the street to a small and dirty front
+yard in which a small and dirty child of four or five was sitting
+playing.
+
+"Hullo, kid," said James breezily, "do you want a puppy dog? Here you
+are, then. He's a very valuable dog, so be careful of him. Mind you
+don't pull his tail now, or he'll bite."
+
+James walked off well pleased with the turn of events, which left Harry
+relieved and satisfied and the dog honorably disposed of. As for Harry,
+he was profoundly grateful. He would have liked to give some expression
+to his gratitude, but the words would not come, and he walked on for
+some time without speaking. But he was determined to give some sign of
+what he felt.
+
+"Thank you, James," he said at length in a low voice, and blushed to the
+roots of his hair.
+
+"What? Oh, that's all right." James' surprise was no affectation; the
+matter had really passed from his mind. But he gave to Harry's words the
+full meaning that the speaker placed in them. They made him feel
+suddenly ashamed of himself; what had Harry done that was wrong? What
+had he done but what was right and praiseworthy, when you came to look
+at it? Should he not be ashamed himself of not having run in and rescued
+the dog before Harry?
+
+And yet, most of the things that Harry did worked out wrong, somehow,
+even when they were prompted by the best of motives.
+
+"Poor Harry," thought James, "he's always getting into scrapes, and yet
+I suppose, if everything were known, people would see that he was twice
+as good as I am, at bottom. I would never have thought of saving that
+dog; Harry thinks out such funny things to do.... I can generally do the
+right thing, if it's put directly up to me, but Harry goes out and
+searches for the right thing to do; I guess that's what it amounts to.
+Only, I wish he didn't have to search in such strange places."
+
+As James settled down into his position of mentor to his brother he
+found out a curious thing; he was fonder of Harry than formerly. The old
+sense of unconscious, taking-it-for-granted companionship gradually
+became infused with positive affection which, for the reason that it
+found little if any outward expression in the daily round of work and
+play, escaped the notice of everybody except James himself.
+
+"Do you think that doing something for a person would ever make you
+fonder of that person?" he once asked of his father when they were alone
+together. "I mean--I should think, that is, that it would work out the
+other way, so that the person you did the thing for would be fonder of
+you."
+
+"It's a well known psychological fact," replied his father; "I've often
+noticed it. If you merely stop a person in the street and ask him the
+way, or what time it is, you can see his expression change from one of
+indifference, or even dislike, to interest and cordiality. And if you
+ever feel that a man, an acquaintance, doesn't like you, ask him to do
+you some slight service, and he'll admire you intensely from that moment
+on. And conversely, if you want to make a man your enemy, the best way
+of going about it is to do something for him.--Why, what made you think
+of it?"
+
+"Thomas," replied James promptly, being prepared for the question. "He
+was cross as two sticks the other day when we wanted to build forts in
+the haymow, but after I asked him to help me put the chain on my
+bicycle," etc., etc. But James was disturbed by his father's development
+of the theory. What if his "helping out" Harry should have the effect of
+making him hate him, James, the very effect of all others he desired to
+avoid? He resolved to keep his new-found feeling to himself, and give
+his brother's resentment no foothold; but he could not entirely live it
+down, for all that. Unconsciously he found fault less with him,
+unconsciously he would take his part in squabbles with the servants or
+with his father; and as he noticed no change in Harry's conduct toward
+him he congratulated himself on his powers of concealment.
+
+But he need have had no worries on the score of Harry's resenting his
+protection. To Harry, James had always appeared to partake somewhat of
+the nature of a divinity; if not Apollo or Jupiter, out and out, he was
+at least Hercules, say, or Theseus. And though, in the very nature of
+things in general and the fraternal relation in particular, he was
+obliged outwardly to deny James' superiority in everything and more
+especially the right to boss younger brothers, he was acutely, almost
+pathetically, sensitive to James' demeanor toward him and was entirely
+ready to respond to any increase in good feeling, if James would lead
+the way.
+
+James, with all his insight and quickness of perception, failed to count
+upon the fact that Harry would be as slow in making a parade of his
+feelings as he himself, and was a little surprised that Harry made so
+slight a demonstration of sorrow when, about a year after their mother's
+death, James was sent off to school. Harry, indeed, sought to cover his
+secret conviction that he would really miss his brother very much by
+repeated harpings upon the blessings that James' presence had ever kept
+from him, and now, the obstacle being removed, would shower copiously on
+his deserving, but hitherto officially unrecognized, head. Now he would
+get the first go at all dishes at table, now he would always sit on the
+box beside Thomas and drive, now people would see whether he could not
+be on time for breakfast without his brother's assistance, and so forth.
+James smiled tolerantly at all such talk; he knew that it did not amount
+to much, though even he failed to realize quite how little.
+
+When the fatal morning came the brothers parted with complete cordiality
+and every outward expression of mutual contempt.
+
+"Be very careful about putting on your clothes in the morning, kid,"
+said James as the train that was to take him off rolled into the
+station. "You put on your undershirt first, remember, then your shirt
+and coat. Don't go putting your undershirt over your coat; people might
+laugh."
+
+"All right, you dear thoughtful boy, I'll try to remember, but I shall
+be pretty busy hoping that those other kids'll lick the tar out of you,
+for the first time in your innocent life. You're a good boy at heart,
+James; all you need is to have the nonsense knocked out of you!"
+
+James' first letter to his brother from school, written some ten days
+after his departure, is still extant, and may be quoted in full as a
+document in the story.
+
+ St. Barnabas' School.
+ October 5.
+
+ Dear Harry:
+
+ I meant to have written you before, but I have been so busy
+ that there was no time. This certainly is a fine place, and I
+ like it a lot already. There are 21 new boys this term, which
+ is fewer than usual, but they say we are an unusually good
+ crowd. We say so, at any rate! There was a big rough-house in
+ our corridor Saturday night. A lot of the old boys came down
+ and turned the new fellows after lights were out, and also made
+ them run the gauntlet down the hall, standing at the sides and
+ swatting them with belts and things as they went by. That was
+ much worse than the turning, which did not amount to much. I
+ got turned five times, and Brush, the fellow that rooms with
+ me, six times. That was not much. There was one chap that got
+ turned 22 times that one night. That was Hawley. They call him
+ 'Stink' Hawley already, because he is so dirty looking. They
+ say he has not washed his face since he came. Gosh, I wonder
+ what you will be called when you get here!
+
+"What a filthy lie!" shrieked Harry when he reached this, making up in
+vehemence what he lacked in coherence. His alleged aversion to the
+wash-basin was a standing joke in the family, and any reference to it
+invariably brought a rise.
+
+"Gracious, dear," murmured Aunt Agatha, and smiled.
+
+"Let's hear," said his father, suspending judgment. (The scene took
+place at the breakfast table.) Harry read the letter aloud up to the
+point in question, and was relieved to observe an exculpatory smile on
+his father's lips when he stopped.
+
+"I admit there is an implication in that last remark," said Hilary,
+"that might prove irritating. However, that's no excuse for making a
+menagerie of yourself. What else does James say?" Harry read on:
+
+ There always is a big rough-house the first two or three
+ Saturday nights every year, and after that they keep pretty
+ quiet. They say the masters let them do what they like, almost,
+ those first nights, because they behave better afterwards and
+ it keeps the new boys from being too fresh. That's what I'll be
+ doing to you, you see, next year!
+
+ I have been playing football every day, and am trying for the
+ fourth team. Do you remember Roswell Banks, that boy we saw up
+ at Northeast? He is going to make the first team this year,
+ probably. They say he tackles better than any one else here.
+ Kid Leffingwell also plays a peach of a game, but he won't make
+ the first this year. He is too light, but he has got lots of
+ nerve.
+
+ I must stop now, so good-night.
+
+ Your affectionate brother,
+ JAMES.
+
+The present writer has no quarrel with any one who is unable to detect
+in this letter symptoms of any particularly keen brotherly affection. It
+is his private opinion, however, that such exist there. He thinks,
+_imprimis_, that James, strange as it may appear, laid himself out to be
+more agreeable in that letter than he would if he had written it, say, a
+year previously. It is longer and fuller than James' letters usually
+were. And--though this may be drawing the point too fine--he thinks that
+the exclamation point after "that's what I'll be doing to you next year"
+would not have been put in under the old régime. An exclamation point
+does so much toward toning down and softening a disagreeable remark! And
+for the manner of signature, of course James might have signed himself
+like that to Harry at any time of his life. Yet the writer, even at the
+risk of being called super-sensitive, will not ignore the fact that most
+of James' letters to his brother previous to this date are signed, more
+casually, "Yours affect'ly," or "Ever yours," or simply
+"Good-by,--James," and though he realizes that at best the point is not
+an all-important one, he feels he can do no better than give the reader
+all the information he has at his command, be it never so trifling, and
+let him draw conclusions for himself.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER V
+
+BABES IN THE WOOD
+
+
+One Saturday morning about a year after James went away to school Harry
+bounded downstairs for breakfast to find his father just leaving the
+dining room.
+
+"Hello, Father," he said, jumping up and kissing him as usual. "You
+don't stay in the office this afternoon, do you, Father? Why don't you
+take Bugs and me to the game? Or you can take us for a ride in the car,
+if you like; we'll meet you downtown for lunch, so as to save time."
+(Bugs was for the moment Harry's _fidus Achates_; a sort of vice-James.)
+
+"You will not, I fear," returned Hilary briefly. "I'm going out of town
+for the day."
+
+"What, not in the car?"
+
+"In the car."
+
+"_All_ day?"
+
+"All day. Leaving now, as soon as ever the car comes round, and not
+getting back till late--perhaps not to-night."
+
+"Dash," remarked Harry. "I wish you'd go by train; Graves told me he'd
+give me a lesson in running the machine the next free Saturday."
+
+"Sorry. Next week, perhaps."
+
+"Where are you going, anyway, Father?"
+
+"My business."
+
+"Going to take Graves?"
+
+"No."
+
+"What, all alone? You'll be lonely. Why don't you take Aunt Agatha?"
+
+"No, I shan't be lonely and I'm not going to take Aunt Agatha. I'll tell
+you what I am going to do, however; I'm going to send you away to
+school, and that next term. You have a pretty glib tongue in your head,
+Harry my boy, and I think perhaps young gentlemen of your own age will
+be even better able to appreciate it than I am."
+
+But Harry was far too elated by the news to pay much heed to the rebuke.
+He became inarticulate with delight, and his father went calmly on with
+his preparations for departure.
+
+"Yes, I'll have a talk with Hodgman about the exams.... There's the car,
+at last--I must run. Where did I put those water rights, anyway? Oh....
+Yes, I think you'll probably have to do extra work in algebra this
+term.... Take care of yourself; we'll have a spree next week if I can
+arrange it," and so forth, enough to cover sorting a morning's mail,
+progress into the front hall, donning a hat and overcoat--no, the dark
+one, and where are the gray gloves, dash it?--and a triumphal exit in a
+motor car. Harry watched the retreating vehicle with mingled regret and
+admiration. Hilary made a striking and debonair picture as he whirled
+along in his scarlet chariot--they ran a great deal to bright red paint
+in those early days, if you'll remember--and people would run to catch a
+glimpse of him as he dashed by and talk about it at length at the next
+meal. But it occurred to Harry that he would complete the picture very
+nicely, sitting there at his father's side. He wished fervently that he
+could ever make his father remember that Saturday was Saturday.
+
+This parting conversation was redeemed from the oblivion of trivial
+things and inscribed indelibly on Harry's memory by the fact that it was
+the last he ever had with his father.
+
+The day passed like any other day and at its close the household went to
+bed as usual, boding no ill. Toward midnight the telephone rang and Aunt
+Agatha arose and answered it. The voice at the other end introduced
+itself as Police Headquarters and inquired, as an afterthought, if this
+was Mr. Wimbourne's house. Yet, it was. Headquarters then expressed a
+desire to know if any of the family was there and, without waiting for a
+reply, asked with perceptible animation if this was one of the girls
+speaking? Aunt Agatha answered, in a tone which in another person would
+have been called frigid, that this was Miss Fraile.
+
+Headquarters appeared duly impressed; at least he seemed to have
+difficulty in finding words in which to continue. Aunt Agatha's crisp
+inquiry of what was it, please? at last moved him to admit there had
+been an accident. Yes, to Mr. Wimbourne. The automobile did it; ran into
+a telegraph pole down near Port Chester. Pretty bad smash-up; couldn't
+say just how bad.... Was Mr. Wimbourne badly hurt? Well, yes, pretty
+badly; the machine--Was Mr. Wimbourne killed? Well, yes, he was, if you
+put it that way. His body would arrive sometime next morning....
+
+This was the sort of occasion on which Aunt Agatha shone as a perfect
+model of efficiency. She spent an hour or more telegraphing and
+telephoning, prayed extensively, returned to her bed and slept soundly
+till seven. Then she arose and gave directions to the servants. It was
+breakfast time before she remembered that she had yet to tell Harry.
+
+Then, as he appeared so cheerfully and ignorantly at the breakfast
+table, Aunt Agatha's heart failed her. Her presence of mind also left
+her; she blurted out a few words to the effect that his father had had a
+bad accident, wished she had let him eat his breakfast in ignorance,
+hoped despairingly that he would guess the truth from her perturbation.
+But even this was denied her; he asked a great many questions and
+refused to eat till she made him, but gave no sign of suspecting
+anything beyond what she told him.
+
+She saw that the suspense of waiting for his father's return would tell
+on him more than the worst certainty, but still she could not bring
+herself to break the truth to him. When at last she nerved herself to do
+it, it was too late.
+
+"Come here and sit down by me, Harry," she said gently, but Harry, who
+was standing at one of the front windows, listlessly replied:
+
+"Wait, there's something coming up the street."
+
+"Just a minute, dear, I want to talk to you," said Aunt Agatha, going
+over and trying to push him gently away from the window. But Harry's
+attention was caught and he refused to move.
+
+"I thought it might be Father. Do you think it's Father, Aunt Agatha? It
+moves so slowly I can't see.... Yes, it's turning in at the gate. What
+sort of a thing is it, anyway?..."
+
+The next moment his own eyes answered the question, and with a little
+cry he toppled backward into her arms.
+
+James' reception of the news was characteristically different. His
+behavior was generally referred to by the family as "wonderful." He
+certainly was very calm throughout. He was informed of his father's
+death on the Sunday morning by the headmaster of his school, to whom
+Aunt Agatha had telegraphed the night before.
+
+"I suppose I'd better go home," was his first comment.
+
+"I suppose you had," replied the schoolmaster, and he was rather at a
+loss for what to say next. He had certainly expected more of a
+demonstration than this. "Somebody had better go with you. Whom would
+you like to have go?"
+
+James hesitated and blushed. "Do you suppose Marston would come?" he
+said at last, in a low voice. Marston, a long-legged sixth former, was
+James' idol at present; to ask him to do something for one was like
+calling the very gods down from Olympus.
+
+"I am sure he would," said the headmaster, who understood, perfectly. "I
+will send for him now and ask him."
+
+So Marston accompanied James on his dreary homeward journey, though his
+presence was not in the least necessary, and James sat covertly gazing
+at him in mute adoration all the way. His thoughts were actually less on
+his father's death during this journey than on the wonderful, incredible
+fact that anything like a mere family death could throw him into
+intimate intercourse with Marston for a whole day.
+
+But of course he gave no sign of this, and Marston, like a real god,
+seemed entirely unconscious of the immensity of the blessing he was
+conferring. He spent the night at the Wimbournes', behaving himself in
+his really rather trying position with the greatest ease and seemliness,
+and even submitted with a becoming grace to the kiss which Aunt Cecilia
+impulsively placed on his brow when she bade him farewell next morning.
+
+"You're a dear good boy," she said softly, as she did it; "thank you,
+again and again, for what you've done."
+
+James, who was a witness to this episode, nearly sank through the floor
+with shame. That a relative of his should kiss--actually, _kiss_
+Marston--! He felt like throwing himself on the ground and imploring
+Marston's pardon, dedicating himself to his service for life as an
+expiation.
+
+Yet Marston only blushed and laughed a little and said he had done
+nothing, and bade good-by to James with unimpaired cordiality.
+
+Aunt Cecilia had been the first of the relatives to arrive on the spot
+after Hilary's death, and she remained commander-in-chief of the relief
+forces throughout. But her command was not a complete or unquestioned
+one. Among the relatives that assembled at the Wimbourne house on that
+Sunday and Monday for Hilary's funeral was one with whom the story has
+hitherto had no dealings, but who was a very important force in the
+family, for all that. This was Lady Fletcher, Hilary's younger sister,
+by all odds the handsomest and most naturally gifted of her generation.
+She was the wife of an English army officer, Sir Giles Fletcher, who,
+having won his major-generalship and a K.C.B. by distinguished service
+with Kitchener in the Soudan, and being physically incapacitated by that
+campaign for further service in the tropics, was now, with the able
+assistance of his wife, devoting his declining years to politics. Lady
+Fletcher, by the discreet exercise of her social qualities, had
+succeeded in making herself in the five years since her husband had
+entered Parliament, one of the most important political hostesses in
+London. At the time of Hilary's death she was paying one of her flying
+autumn visits to the country of her birth, in which her headquarters was
+always her brother James' house in New York.
+
+She and James had gone up to New Haven on the Sunday afternoon in a
+leisurely fashion several hours in the wake of Aunt Cecilia, who had
+rushed off, without so much as packing a bag, the moment she received
+Miss Fraile's telegram that morning. Miriam--that was her Christian
+name--always felt that she and her brother James understood one another
+better than any other members of the family, and it was her private
+opinion that they between them possessed more of the rare gift of common
+sense than all the other Wimbournes put together, with their wives and
+husbands thrown in. During the short two-hour journey from New York to
+New Haven neither she nor her brother appeared so overcome by sorrow
+over their recent loss that they were not able to discuss the newly
+created situation pretty satisfactorily, or, to "be practical" as Lady
+Fletcher was fond of putting it.
+
+"You aren't going to smoke, James?" she asked, as her brother, shortly
+after the train had started, exhibited preparatory signs of a
+restlessness which she knew would culminate in an apologetic exit to the
+smoking car. "Please don't; I can't, on the train, and the thought of
+your doing it would make me miserable." She stopped for a moment,
+reflecting that there was perhaps that in the air which ought to make
+her miserable anyway; then went on, with a significantly lowered voice.
+"Beside, I want to talk to you; we may not get another chance...."
+
+"Well?" said James at length.
+
+"Don't be irritating, James; you know what I mean, perfectly. Can't you
+turn your chair around a little nearer? I don't want to shout.... Tell
+me, first, who are to be the guardians? Now don't say you don't know,
+because you do."
+
+"I do, as a matter of fact. You and I, jointly. That's the one thing I
+do know, for sure."
+
+"I felt sure it would be that, somehow.... Why me, I wonder? and if me
+at all, why you? However, it might have been worse, of course."
+
+"Yes, I think he was right, on the whole." So perfect was the unspoken
+understanding between these two that, if a third person had interrupted
+at this moment and asked, point blank, what they were talking about,
+both would have replied, without a moment's hesitation, "Selina," though
+her name had not passed their lips.
+
+"Well, what's to be done?" Lady Fletcher exhibited, to James' trained
+eye, preliminary symptoms of a "practical" seizure.
+
+"Can't tell anything for certain, till we see the will. I shall see
+Raynham in the morning."
+
+"Yes, but haven't you any idea ..."
+
+"Oh, none! You were not a witness, were you?... if that's any comfort to
+you."
+
+"Thanks, I have no expectations." This was uttered in Lady Fletcher's
+best snubbing tone, impossible to describe. "Please be practical, James.
+What is going to become of those two boys?"
+
+"Well, there are several possibilities. First, there's their aunt...."
+
+"Oh, the Fraile woman? I've never met her. Isn't she ... well, a
+trifle...."
+
+"Oh, quite. She's a leading candidate for the position of first American
+saint. But there'd be no point in keeping on with her, with James away
+at school and Harry ready to go."
+
+"Oh, really? I didn't realize."
+
+"No," continued James, raising his eyes to his sister's and smiling
+slightly, "what it will come to will be that I shall have six children
+instead of four. Or rather, seven instead of five."
+
+"Oh, really?" This in a changed tone from the lady.
+
+"Yes, hasn't she told you? April."
+
+"No." The practical mood seemed to have undergone a setback; there was
+something new in that monosyllable, irritation, a twinge of pain,
+perhaps. An outside observer might have thought this was due to Miriam's
+having been left out of her sister-in-law's confidence, but James knew
+better. He felt sorry for his sister; he knew that her childlessness was
+the one blight on her career.
+
+"I don't see why you should do it, James." This after a long interval of
+silent thought on the part of Miriam, and passive observation of the
+rushing autumn landscape on the part of James. "I don't see why, when
+I'm equally responsible. It isn't a question of money, so much--I
+suppose that will be left all right?"
+
+"Oh, undoubtedly. Though I don't know just how."
+
+"It's more than that; it's the responsibility, the bother. There's no
+use in saying that one more, or two more, don't matter, for they do; and
+there's no use in saying that they would both be away at school, for,
+though that would make a difference, of course, you never can tell what
+is going to turn up. No matter what did happen, it would always fall on
+you--and Cecilia."
+
+"That's all very true, perhaps, but--"
+
+"And remember this; it's not as if you didn't have four--five already,
+and I none."
+
+"What _are_ you driving at, Miriam?"
+
+"Don't you see? I want to take one, or both of them, myself."
+
+"Whee-ew." This was not, strictly speaking, an observation, but rather a
+sort of vocalized whistle, the larynx helping out the lips. "You do rush
+things so, Miriam! Aside from the consideration of whether it would be
+advisable or not, do you realize what opposition there'd be?"
+
+"Why? What, I mean, that could not be properly overcome? You are one
+guardian, I the other; I take one boy, you the other. What is there
+strange about such a course? Or I could take both together."
+
+"I should be against James leaving the country, myself. He is safely
+started in his school; doing well there; striking his _milieu_. Why
+disturb him?"
+
+"Well, Harry, then. What sort of a child is he, James? I haven't seen
+either of them for three years, but as I remember it, I liked James
+best. Rather the manly type, isn't he? Not but what the other seemed a
+nice enough child...."
+
+"Harry? Oh, he'll have the brains of his generation, without doubt. Yes,
+I'm not surprised at your liking James best. There are plenty of people
+who find Harry the more attractive, however. He's got winning ways.
+But--are you serious about this, Miriam?"
+
+"Serious? Certainly!"
+
+"Well, what's the point? Do we want to make an Englishman out of the
+boy? And do you want to separate them? Wouldn't that smack a little
+of--well, of Babes in the Wood? Cruel uncles and things, you know?"
+
+"I don't think so. We wouldn't want to do that, of course. It wouldn't
+be for always, anyway. But even if he went to an English public school,
+which I should prefer to an American one, particularly for that type ...
+they would always have vacations. You are here, and I am there, and we
+would keep running across pretty frequently. Besides," here Lady
+Fletcher again changed her tone, and generally gave the impression of
+preparing to start another maneuver; "besides, there's another element
+in it--Giles. He's devoted to children. He would come as near being a
+father to the boy, if he liked him, as any one could. And--do you
+realize what that might mean for him--for Harry?" Miriam stopped,
+significantly, and looked her brother straight in the eye for a moment.
+"The Rumbold property is very large, and Giles will certainly come into
+it before long...."
+
+"I see," said James, slowly nodding his head; "I see. Though I wouldn't
+sacrifice anything definite to that chance. Beside, what about the
+Carson family?"
+
+"Oh, yes, I'm not saying there's any certainty; it's just one of the
+things to be counted on.... Leaving Harry out of consideration for the
+moment, it would be a wonderful thing for Giles. I can't think of
+anything Giles would rather have; it would be like giving him a son. And
+if you knew how wild English people of a certain class and type are
+about children--! Giles has never got on well with the Carson children,
+for some reason."
+
+"That's all very fine, Miriam, but we mustn't leave Harry out of
+consideration, since it's him we're the guardians of, and not Giles--at
+least, I am.... I'm inclined to think there is something in what you
+say, though I should be definitely against making an Englishman of
+him--you understand that?" Lady Fletcher nodded, and her brother
+continued: "It would certainly have an admirably broadening influence,
+if all went right. And I'm not sure but what you're right about English
+public schools. Even for American boys. But--" here he smiled
+quizzically at his sister--"did you ever hear of a person called Selina
+Wimbourne?"
+
+Lady Fletcher laughed. "You've hit it this time, I fancy! Honestly,
+James--" the practical mood was now in complete abeyance--"though I've
+knocked around a good deal with swells and terrifying people and all
+that, I have never been so cowed by the mere presence of any individual
+as I have been by my sister Selina. Did it ever occur to you, James,
+that Selina runs this family--well, as the engineer runs this train?"
+
+"Something very like it--yes."
+
+"At any rate, I have a premonition in the present instance that as
+Selina jumps the tree will fall ... fancy Selina jumping out of a tree!
+It will have to be most carefully put to her--if it is put."
+
+"If it is put--exactly. We must see how things lie before doing
+anything.--What, already?" This to a negro porter, who was exhibiting
+willingness to be of service. "We must look alive--the next stop's New
+Haven. Mind you don't say anything too soon, now; easy does it."
+
+"Yes, of course.--No, Bridgeport, isn't it?--What, don't we, any
+more?... But you are on my side, in the main, aren't you?"
+
+"Conditionally, yes--that is, if all parties seem agreeable. The one
+thing I won't stand for is--well, Babes in the Wood business."
+
+"James, what do you think of my taking Harry off to England with me?"
+said Aunt Miriam to her elder nephew a day or two later.
+
+"I think it would be fine," was his reply, and then after a pause: "For
+how long, though?"
+
+This was going nearer to the heart of the matter than the lady cared to
+penetrate, so she merely answered:
+
+"Oh, one can't tell; a few months; perhaps more, if he wants to stay."
+Seeing that he swallowed this without apparent effort, she went on:
+"What should you say to his going to school in England, when he is able,
+for a time?"
+
+James' expression underwent no change, but he only answered stiffly, "I
+think he had better come to St. Barnabas, when he is able," and his aunt
+let the matter drop there.
+
+It was in Aunt Cecilia, and not Aunt Selina, that Lady Fletcher found
+the most formidable opposition. Miss Wimbourne, indeed, quite took to
+the idea when her half-sister, very carefully and with not a little
+concealed trepidation, suggested it to her. She took it, as Miriam more
+vividly put it to her brother, "like milk."
+
+"That is not a bad plan, Miriam, not a bad plan at all," she said in the
+quiet voice that could be so firm when it wanted. "I can see why there
+are good reasons why neither of the boys should live in New Haven. For
+the present, you know. James will be at school, and will spend his
+vacations with James' family, and Harry will be with you until he is
+ready to do the same. I do not see but what it is a very good
+arrangement. I am perfectly willing to do my part in taking care of
+them, but I am not nearly so useful in that way as either you or James."
+
+But not so with Mrs. James. Her husband first spoke to her of the scheme
+before breakfast on the Monday morning, and she took immediate and
+articulate exception to it. The plan was forced, dangerous, artificial,
+cruel, unnecessary, short-sighted; in fact, it wouldn't do at all. There
+was no telling what Miriam would do with him, once he was over there,
+and no telling when she would let him come back to what had been, what
+ought to be, and what, if she (Mrs. James) had any say in the matter,
+was going to be his Home. It would make her extremely unhappy to think
+of that child spending his vacations--or his whole time for that
+matter--with any one but his uncle and natural guardian ("Miriam is his
+guardian, too," James attempted to say, but no attention was paid to
+him), his aunt and his young cousins. As for all that business about
+Giles Fletcher, it was Perfect Nonsense. Before she would give an
+instant's consideration to such--to such an absurdity, she (Mrs. James)
+would give the boy every scrap of money she had, or was ever going to
+have, outright, and would end the matter then and there. (This would
+have been a really appalling threat, if it was meant seriously, for
+Cecilia was due to inherit millions.) As for sending him to an English
+public school, she thought it would be the cruelest, most unfeeling,
+most ridiculous thing possible, seeing Harry was what he was. If it had
+been James, now--!
+
+But the gods fought on Miriam's side. Cecilia went into the library
+during the latter part of the morning and discovered young James alone
+there. She found him uncommunicative and solemn, which, in the nature of
+things, was only to be expected; and he took her completely by surprise
+by asking after a few moments, in the most ordinary tone:
+
+"Who is Marcelline Lefèbre, Aunt Cecilia?"
+
+Mrs. James stifled a gasp, and waited before replying till she was sure
+of her voice.
+
+"Why? How did you ever hear of her?" she said.
+
+"Oh, in this. There's a lot more about it to-day. She was badly hurt,
+wasn't she?"
+
+Mrs. James looked up and saw the newspaper lying open on the desk in
+front of which James was sitting.
+
+"Oh, yes.... An actress, I think."
+
+"Yes," said James, "it says that here." The words and tone clearly
+implied that James expected her to tell him something he did not know
+already, but she parried.
+
+"Had you ever heard of her before?"
+
+"No, never. That's just the funny part of it. Why should we never have
+heard of a person Father knew well enough to take out to ride? Did you
+ever know her?"
+
+"No; merely heard of her. Oh, it's not to be wondered at; he had lots of
+acquaintances, of course." This was definite enough to indicate that she
+had told him all she intended to, and both were silent for a while. But
+presently a new thought occurred to her and she began again:
+
+"Tell me, James, does Harry know anything about Mme. Lefèbre?"
+
+"Not that I know of; not unless he heard of her ... before."
+
+"Well, I think it would be a good plan if you didn't mention her name to
+him, or talk about her in his presence."
+
+"All right. Why, though--particularly?"
+
+"Never mind about that. At least," she caught herself up, realizing,
+perhaps, that this was treating him too much _en enfant_; "at least, I
+think it would be just as well for him not to know anything about her.
+It might worry him. Particularly in his present state. There is no
+reason why he should see the papers, or hear anything."
+
+"I see," said James, quietly, staring out of the window. He saw far too
+well, poor boy, was Aunt Cecilia's thought.
+
+But the conversation started her off on a new line of thought in regard
+to Harry. Harry was so different from James; if he once smelled a rat he
+would go nosing about till he found him, even if he undermined the
+foundations of his own happiness in so doing. And Harry was the kind
+that smelled rats.... Inevitably her thoughts wandered around to Lady
+Fletcher's scheme, and beheld it in a new light. There was a certain
+amount of common sense in the plan, so viewed; there would certainly be
+fewer rats in London than anywhere in this country. And after all, what
+was the danger in his going to England? Miriam would not eat him,
+neither would Giles; Miriam must really be fond of him if she wanted to
+take him--Miriam would hardly do anything against her own inclination,
+she reflected, a little bitterly.
+
+She presented her changed front to her husband that evening, and the
+upshot of it all was that Harry was to go to England. The whole family
+adjourned to New York after the funeral, and steamship plans and
+sailings were in the air. James went with them; it was decided that he
+was not to return to school till Harry sailed with his aunt.
+
+Harry himself took most kindly to the scheme; seemed, indeed, to prefer
+it to St. Barnabas. He flaunted his superior fortune in the face of his
+brother, making comparisons between the British Isles and St. Barnabas,
+greatly to the detriment of the latter.
+
+"Oh, yes, I'll write to you," he said airily during one of these
+conversations; "that is, if I can find a minute to do it in. Of course I
+shall be pretty busy, with pantomimes, and theaters, and parties,
+and--and the Zoo, and all that."
+
+"Fudge," said James calmly; "you'll be homesick as a cat before you've
+been there a week."
+
+"Then when I get tired of that I may go to school--if I feel like it.
+Aunt Miriam says she knows of one that would just do. Not Eton or Rugby,
+or anything like that; a school for younger boys. This one is in a
+beautiful big house, Aunt Miriam says, with lots of grounds and things
+about. Park, you know, like Windsor. And deer in it. And the house was
+built in the reign of Charles the First."
+
+"Bet you don't even know when that was. What's the use in having that
+kind of place for a school, anyway?"
+
+"St. Barnabas," replied Harry with hauteur, "was built in the reign of
+Queen Victoria."
+
+"Queen nothing! Gosh, if you talk rot like this now, what'll you be when
+you've been over there a while?"
+
+"Then I may go to Eton, or one of those places, later." This was merely
+to bring a rise; Harry had no idea of completing his education anywhere
+but at St. Barnabas'.
+
+"Yes, a fine time you'd have there! A fine time you'd have with those
+kids. Lords, Dukes, and things. Gosh, wouldn't you be sick of them, and
+oh, but they'd be sick of you!"
+
+"Oh, I don't know," said Harry; "good fellows, lords. Some of them, that
+is. I might be made one myself, in time, who knows?"
+
+"Yes, you might, mightn't you?" James was laughing now. "Nothing more
+likely, I should think. Lord Harry, Earl Harry!"
+
+Harry replied in kind, and hostilities ensued.
+
+This was all more or less as it should be, and the mutual attitude was
+maintained up to the actual moment of sailing--after it, indeed, for
+when Harry last saw his brother he was standing on the very end of the
+dock and shouting "Give my love to the earls!" and similar pleasantries
+to the small head that protruded itself out of the great black moving
+wall above him; above him now, and now not so much above, but some
+distance off, and presently not a great black wall at all, but the side
+of a perfectly articulate ship, way out in the river.
+
+Uncle James and his wife, also their eldest child, Ruth, a girl of nine
+or thereabouts, all came down to the dock with James to see the
+travelers off, and as they arrived hours and hours, as Miriam put it,
+before there was any question of sailing, there was a good deal of
+standing about in saloons and on decks and talking about nothing in
+particular, pending the moment when gongs would be rung and people begin
+to talk jocularly about getting left and having to climb down with the
+pilot. They all went down to see the staterooms, which adjoined each
+other and were pronounced satisfactory. Aunt Cecilia said she was glad
+Harry could have his window open at night without a draught blowing on
+him, and Aunt Miriam remarked that it was nice to have the ship all to
+one's self, practically, which was so different from Coming Over, and
+Uncle James added that when he crossed on the _Persia_ in '69 as a mere
+kid, there were only fifteen people in the first cabin and none of them
+ever appeared in the dining room after the first day except himself and
+the captain. After this, conversation rather lagged and there was a
+general adjournment to the deck. A few passengers, accompanied by their
+stay-at-home friends and relations, wandered about the halls and
+stairways, saying that autumn voyages were not always so bad and that
+you never could tell about the ocean, at any season; which amounted to
+admitting that they probably would be seasick, though they hoped not.
+Our friends, the Wimbournes, had little to say on even this
+all-absorbing topic, for Harry, who had crossed once before, had proved
+himself a qualmless sailor, and Aunt Miriam had crossed so often that
+she had got all over that sort of thing, years ago.
+
+Uncle James was presently despatched to see what mischief those boys
+were getting that child into, and the two ladies wandered into the main
+lounge and sat down.
+
+"Anything more different than the appearance of a steamship saloon while
+the ship is in dock from what it looks like when she is careering round
+at sea can hardly be imagined," murmured Lady Fletcher, pleasantly, with
+no intention of being comprehended or replied to. Mrs. James' polite and
+conscientious rejoinder of "What was that, Miriam?"--she had not, of
+course, been listening--piqued the other lady ever so slightly. It was
+not real annoyance, merely the rather tired feeling that comes over one
+when a companion sounds a note out of one's own mood.
+
+"Oh, nothing; merely what a difference it makes, being out on the open
+sea."
+
+"Yes, doesn't it?... Harry will--"
+
+"Harry will what?"
+
+"Nothing." Mrs. James blushed a little. She was going to say, "Harry
+will have to be looked out for, or he will go climbing over places where
+he shouldn't and fall overboard," or something to that effect, but she
+decided not to, fearing that her sister-in-law would think her fussy.
+Lady Fletcher accepted the omission, and went on to talk of the next
+thing that came into her mind, which was Business. There were some
+Lackawanna shares, it appeared, part of Harry's property, the dividends
+on which James was going to pay regularly to the London banker for
+defraying Harry's expenses, and James might have forgotten to do
+something, or else not to do something, in connection with these. Lady
+Fletcher wandered on to American railroad stock, making several remarks
+which, in the absence of brothers, with their satirical smiles, remained
+unchallenged. Poor Aunt Cecilia, who could neither keep on nor off her
+sister-in-law's line of thought, unluckily broke in on the Union Pacific
+with the malapropos remark:
+
+"Miriam, Harry has got to be made to wear woolen stockings in the
+winter, no matter what he says ..."
+
+Lady Fletcher was amused. "I declare, Cecilia," she said, "you think I
+am no more capable of taking care of that boy than of ruling a state!"
+
+But Mrs. James did not smile in reply; the remark came too near to
+describing her actual state of mind.
+
+"Well, Miriam, with four children of one's own, one may be expected to
+learn a thing or two; it isn't all as easy as it seems. Beside, I am
+fond of the boy; I suppose I may be excused for that ..."
+
+"I can certainly excuse it; I am fond of him myself." Lady Fletcher was
+trying to conceal her irritation. Perhaps the suavity of her tone was a
+little overdone; at any rate, it only served to make Mrs. James' face a
+little rosier and her voice a little harder as she replied:
+
+"I suppose you think, Miriam, that because I have four children of my
+own to fuss over, I might be expected to let the others alone, and I
+daresay you're right; but all that I know is, my heart isn't made that
+way. I have noticed you during these last weeks, and I am sure that you
+have felt as I say. But if you think that because I have four of my own
+to love, and therefore have less to give to those two motherless boys,
+you are mistaken. The more you have to love, the more you love each one
+of them, separately--not the less, as you might know if you had children
+of your own ..."
+
+She stopped, unable to say any more. Her words were much more cruel than
+she intended them to be; that is, they fell much more cruelly than she
+meant them to on Lady Fletcher's ears. She had no idea, of course, of
+the deep though vain yearning for offspring of her own that filled her
+sister-in-law's bosom; Miriam could not possibly have expressed this,
+the deepest and most tragic thing in her life, to Cecilia. She was made
+that way. The more poignantly she felt what she had missed, the more
+determinedly she concealed every trace of her feeling from the outside
+world.
+
+So it was now. Every ounce of feeling in her flared for a moment into
+hate; the hate of the childless woman for the mother. The flame fell
+after a second or two, of course, and she was able to reply, unsmilingly
+and coldly:
+
+"I think that Harry will be as well treated by me as you could wish,
+Cecilia."
+
+Mother love, nothing else, was responsible for all the hardness and
+bitterness in her tone. But Mrs. James knew nothing of this; she only
+felt the hardness and bitterness and judged the speaker accordingly.
+
+That was all. The quarrel, if such it could be called, died down as
+quickly as it had flared up, for it was impossible for these two
+well-bred ladies to fall out and fight like fishwives. Lady Fletcher's
+last remark made further discussion of the subject, or any other
+subject, for the time being, impossible, and after a minute the two rose
+by tacit consent and went out to find the others.
+
+By the time they found them they were both as calm and self-possessed as
+usual. When, after a little more standing around, the gongs were rung
+and the time for farewell actually arrived, Lady Fletcher kissed her
+nephew and niece with neither more nor less than her usual cordiality,
+and Mrs. James was exactly as affectionate in her farewells to Harry as
+might have been expected. The two ladies also embraced each other with
+no sign of ill-feeling. Lady Fletcher's good-humor was unabated in
+quantity, if just a little strained in quality.
+
+"Now comes the most amusing part of sailing," she said, "which is,
+watching other people cry. Don't tell me people don't love to cry better
+than anything else in the world; if not, why do they come down here? You
+might think that every one of them was being torn away from his home and
+country for life!"
+
+"The time when I always want to cry most," contributed Uncle James, "is
+on landing. Everything is so disagreeable then, after the ease and
+comfort of the voyage."
+
+That was the general tone of the parting. Even Aunt Cecilia smiled
+appreciatively and gave no sign of underlying emotion. But as she
+watched the great steamer glide slowly out of her slip her thoughts ran
+in such channels as these:
+
+"Miriam is a brilliant woman; she has made a great lady of herself, and
+is going to be a still greater one. She has money, position, wit, beauty
+and youth. The greatest people come gladly to her house; small people
+scheme and plot to get invitations there. Yet what is it all worth, when
+the greatest blessing of all, the blessing of children, is denied her?
+And the terrible part of it is, she is so utterly unconscious of what
+she has missed; her whole heart is eaten up with those worldly and
+unsatisfactory things. Poor Miriam, I pity her as it is, but how I could
+pity her if it were all a little different!"
+
+And the thoughts of Lady Fletcher, as she stood on the deck and watched
+the shores slip away from her, were somewhat as follows:
+
+"I always thought Cecilia was one of the best of women, until this hour.
+I don't mind her being a great heiress, I don't mind her never being
+able to forget that she was a Van Lorn, I don't mind her subconscious
+attitude of having married beneath her when she married James--whose
+ancestors were governing colonies when hers were keeping a grocery store
+on lower Manhattan Island--! But when it comes to her boasting about
+having children, and flaunting them in my face because I haven't got
+any, I think I am about justified in saying that she shows a mean and
+ignoble nature. I have seen all I want to of Cecilia, for some time to
+come!"
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VI
+
+ARCADIA AND YANKEEDOM
+
+
+We have given a more or less detailed account of the misunderstanding
+just described because of the fact that the mental relation it
+inaugurated was responsible, more than any one other thing, for the
+separation of Harry and James Wimbourne for a period of nearly seven
+years.
+
+No one, not even Lady Fletcher herself, had any idea that this would
+come to pass at the time Harry left the country. One thing led on to
+another; Harry was put in a preparatory school for two or three terms
+soon after his arrival in England; he was so happy there and the climate
+and the school life agreed with him so well that it seemed the most
+natural thing, a year or so later, to send him up to Harrow with some of
+his youthful contemporaries, with whom he had formed some close
+friendships. This was done, be it understood, in accordance with Harry's
+own wish. There was an atmosphere, a quality, a historical feeling about
+the English schools that after a short time exerted a strong influence
+on Harry's adolescent imagination, and made St. Barnabas seem flat and
+unprofitable in comparison. It would not have been so with many boys,
+but it was with Harry.
+
+Of course James was a strong magnet in the other direction, but not
+quite strong enough to pull him against all the forces contending on the
+English side. There was a distinct heart-interest there; within a year
+after Harry's arrival in the country, the majority of his friends were
+English boys. How many vice-Jameses were needed to offset the pull of
+one James we don't know, but we do know that there were enough. James at
+first objected strenuously to the change in plans, but Harry countered
+the objection with the proposal that James should leave St. Barnabas and
+go up to Harrow with his brother. This was considered on the American
+side as such an inexplicable attitude that further argument was
+abandoned and the matter of Harry's schooling given up as a bad job.
+
+The one valid objection to Harrow was that if Harry was to become an
+American citizen, the place to educate him was in America. Sir Giles saw
+this, and gave the objection its full value.
+
+"If I were to consult my own inclination alone," he said to Harry when
+they were talking the matter over, "I should undoubtedly want to make an
+Englishman out of you. I think you would make a pretty good Englishman,
+Harry. You could go to Oxford, and then make your career here.
+Parliament, you know, or the diplomatic. But there seems to be some
+feeling against such a course. They want you to be an American. They
+seem to think that your having been born and bred an American makes some
+difference. Fancy!"
+
+"Fancy!" echoed Harry, as capable as any one of falling in
+with the spirit of what Lady Fletcher called Sir Giles'
+"arising-out-of-that-reply" manner.
+
+"And I won't say they are wholly wrong. The question is, can we make a
+good American of you over here in England? By the time you have gone
+through Harrow, won't you be an Englishman of the most confirmed type?
+Won't you disappoint everybody and slip from there into Oxford, as it
+were, automatically?"
+
+"I am of the opinion," replied Harry judicially, "that the honorable
+member's fears on that score are ungrounded. You see, Uncle G.," he went
+on, dropping his parliamentary manner, "I shall go back to America to go
+to college, anyway. I couldn't possibly go anywhere except to Yale.
+We've gone to Yale, you see, for three generations already."
+
+"I thought, when you came over here, that you couldn't possibly go to
+school anywhere except at St. Barnabas. It seems to me I remember
+something of that kind."
+
+"This is quite different," said Harry firmly, "quite different. I was
+brought up in Yale, practically. I'm sure I could never be happy
+anywhere but there. Besides, I don't want to become an Englishman.
+That's all rot."
+
+"Well," said his uncle, "if that's the case, we'll risk it. And--" he
+unconsciously quoted his wife on a former occasion--"there are always
+the vacations."
+
+But that is just where the honorable member proved himself mistaken. The
+vacations weren't there, after all. And that was where the mutual
+misunderstanding between the two ladies came in.
+
+We don't mean to say that this was wholly responsible for the
+uninterrupted separation. Other things came into it; coincidence, mere
+fortuitous circumstances. Plans were made, on both sides of the
+Atlantic, but they were always interrupted, for some reason or another.
+James and Cecilia would write cheerfully about coming over next summer
+and bringing young James and one or two of their own children with them.
+That would be from about October to January. Then, along in the winter,
+it would appear that their plans for the summer were not settled, after
+all. Ruth was not well enough to travel this year, or James could not
+leave his work and Cecilia could not leave him. Or, on the other hand,
+Aunt Miriam would talk breezily at times of taking Giles over and
+showing him the country--Giles had never been to America except to marry
+his wife--and taking Harry too, of course; or she would casually
+suggest running over with him for a fortnight at Christmas. But Harry's
+summer vacation was so short, only eight weeks, and there were Visits to
+be made in September; the kind of visits that implied enormous shooting
+parties and full particulars in the _Morning Post_. And when Christmas
+drew near either Giles or Miriam would develop a bad bronchial cough and
+have to be packed off to Sicily. It is odd how things like that will
+crop up when two women are fully determined to have nothing to do with
+each other.
+
+And the boys themselves, could they not go over alone and stay with
+their relations, at least as soon as they were old enough to make the
+voyage unaccompanied? James wanted to do something of that kind very
+much at times; wanted to far more than Harry, who thought that he would
+have enough of America later on and was meanwhile anxious to get as much
+out of the continent of Europe as possible. One reason why James never
+did anything of the sort was that he was afraid; actually a little
+afraid to go over, unsupported, and find out what they had made of
+Harry. James' thoughts were apt to run in fixed channels; after he had
+been a year or two at St. Barnabas, the idea that there was another
+school in the country, fit for Harry to attend, or in any other country,
+never entered his head. Harry's decision in favor of Harrow, and
+particularly Harry's lighthearted suggestion that he should come over
+and go to Harrow with him, filled his soul with consternation. He,
+James, leave St. Barnabas for Harrow!...
+
+And to the receptive mind the mere fact that Aunt Cecilia was at this
+time his closest friend and confidante will explain much. She never made
+derogatory remarks to him about his Aunt Miriam, nor did she reveal to
+him, any more than to any one else, the antagonism of feeling that
+existed between them; but in some subtle, unfelt way she imparted her
+own attitude to him, which was, in a word, Keep Away. She herself would
+have said, if any one asked her point blank, that she had Given Harry
+Up. She never approved of his staying over to be educated; she would
+have had him back, away from Miriam and Europe (Aunt Cecilia wasted no
+love on that Continent) inside two months, if she could have had her own
+way. But her opinion was worth nothing; she was not the boy's guardian!
+
+There was a time, two or three years after his arrival in England, when
+Harry was consumed by a desire to see his brother again, if only for a
+few weeks. He told his Uncle Giles about it--he soon fell into the habit
+of confiding in him sooner than in his aunt--and Uncle Giles sympathized
+readily with his wish, and promised to run over to America with him the
+next summer. But when, a few days before the date of their sailing,
+Harry came home from school, his uncle met him in the library with a
+grave face and told him that he had been called upon to stand for his
+party in a by-election early in September, and could not possibly leave
+the country before that. Afterward there would be no time.
+
+"It is quite a compliment to me," explained Sir Giles; "they want me to
+go in for them at West Bolton because it is a doubtful and important
+borough, and they think I can win it over to the Conservatives if any
+one can. Whereas Blackmoor is sure, no matter who runs. It pleases me in
+a way, of course, but I hate it for breaking up our trip."
+
+"Oh, dear, I did want to see James," said Harry, leaning his elbows on
+the mantelpiece, and burying his face in his hands to hide his tears of
+disappointment.
+
+"Poor boy, it is hard on you," said Sir Giles, and impulsively drew
+Harry to him and clasped him against his broad bosom. "Do you remember
+the man in the play, that always voted at his party's call and never
+thought of thinking for himself at all? That's me, and it makes me feel
+foolish at times, I can tell you. But if you want so much to see James,
+why can't he be brought over here?"
+
+"I don't know," said Harry, "I wish he would come, but I'm sure he
+won't. I don't know what's the matter, but I'm certain that if I am to
+see him, it will have to be I that makes the journey. I've felt that for
+some time."
+
+"Well, what about your going over alone? I could see you off at
+Liverpool, and they would meet you at New York."
+
+But that would not do, either. Harry had counted so much on having his
+uncle with him and showing him all the interesting things in America
+that his uncle's defalcation took all the zest out of the trip for him.
+So he remained in England and helped Sir Giles win the by-election,
+which interested him very much.
+
+Lady Fletcher was right when she prophesied that Sir Giles would become
+fond of Harry. He was just such a boy as Sir Giles would have given his
+Parliamentary career, his K. C. B., and his whole fortune to have for
+his own son. The two got on famously together. Sir Giles liked to have
+Harry with him during all his vacations, and visits during summer
+holidays--visits, that is, on which Harry could not be included--were
+almost completely given up, as far as Sir Giles was concerned. They
+spent blissful days with each other on the golf links, or fishing in a
+Scotch stream, or exploring the filthiest and most fascinating corners
+of some Continental town, while Aunt Miriam, gently satirical, though
+secretly delighted, went her own smart and fashionable way, joining them
+at intervals.
+
+No one was prouder or more pleased than Harry when--a year or two after
+he came into the Rumbold property, curiously enough--Sir Giles was given
+a G. C. B. and a baronetcy by his grateful party; or when, in the
+Conservative landslide that followed the Boer War, he rose to real live
+ministerial rank, and had to go through a second election by his borough
+and became a "Right Honorable." The fly in the ointment was that he saw
+less of his uncle than formerly. The Fletchers moved from their smart
+but restricted quarters in Mayfair to an enormous place in Belgrave
+Square, "so as to be near the House," as Aunt Miriam plausibly but
+rather unconvincingly put it, and Sir Giles seemed to be always either
+at the House or the Colonial office--have we said that he became
+Secretary for the Colonies? However, Harry was treated as though he were
+a son of the house, and was given _carte blanche_ in the matter of
+asking school friends to stay with him when he came home. This
+permission also applied to Rumbold Abbey, the estate in Herefordshire
+that formed the chief part of the aforementioned property. There was no
+abbey, but there was a late Stuart house of huge proportions; also parks
+and woods and streams that offered unlimited opportunities for the
+destruction of innocent fauna, of which Harry and a number of his
+contemporary Harrovians soon learned to take advantage.
+
+On the whole, Harry led an extremely joyous and entertaining life during
+the days of his exile. At school he fared no less well than at home; he
+was never a leader among his fellows, but he was good enough at sports
+to win their respect and attractive enough in his personality to make
+many friends. The natural flexibility of his temperament enabled him to
+fit in fairly easily with the hard-and-fast ways of English school life.
+He accepted all its conventions and convictions, and never realized, as
+long as he remained in England, that they were in any way different from
+those of the schools of his own country. He soon got to dress and to
+talk like an Englishman, though he never went to extremes in what he
+loved to irritate his schoolfellows by calling the "English accent."
+While not exactly handsome, he became, as he reached man's estate,
+extremely agreeable to look upon. He had a clear pink complexion and
+dark hair, always a striking and pleasing combination, and he was tall
+and slim and moved with the stiff gracefulness that is the special
+characteristic of the British male aristocracy. In general, people liked
+him, and he liked other people.
+
+His vacations, as has been said, were usually spent with Sir Giles
+either in the British Isles or on the Continent, but there was one
+Easter holiday--the second he spent in England--when he was, to quote a
+phrase of Aunt Miriam's, thrown on the parish. The Fletchers were booked
+to spend the holiday in a Mediterranean cruise on the yacht of a
+nautical duke, who was so nautical and so much of a duke that to be
+asked to cruise with him was not merely an Engagement; it was an
+Experience. In any case, there could be no question of taking Harry, and
+Lady Fletcher was in perplexity about what to do with him till Sir Giles
+suggested, "Why don't we send him to Mildred?" So to Mildred Harry went,
+and spent an important, if not a wildly exciting, month.
+
+Mildred was Sir Giles' only sister, Lady Archibald Carson. She lived in
+a little house in the Surrey hills, and though the land that went with
+it was restricted, it was fertile and its mistress went in as heavily as
+her means would allow for herbaceous borders and rock gardens and
+Japanese effects. Her two children, both girls, lived there with her.
+Her husband, Lord Archibald, was also, in a sense, living with her, but
+the verdant domesticity of the Surrey hills had no charm for him and he
+spent practically all of his time in London and other busy haunts of
+men, or even more busy haunts of women. He was a younger son of a long
+line of marquises who for their combination of breeding and profligacy
+probably had no match in the British peerage. Within five years of his
+marriage he had with the greatest casualness in the world run through
+his own patrimony and all he could lay his hands on of his wife's.
+Having bullied and wheedled all that he could out of her he now
+consistently let her alone and depended for his income on what he could
+bully and wheedle out of his brother, the eleventh marquis, who was
+known as a greater rake than Lord Archibald merely because he had
+greater facilities for rakishness at his command.
+
+Lady Archibald was a tall, light-haired, pale-eyed woman with a tired
+face and a gentle manner. She had no interests in life beyond her
+children and her garden, but she had a kind heart and welcomed Harry
+cordially on his arrival at the little house in Surrey. He had seen her
+once before at the Fletchers' in London, but he had never seen her
+children. It was, therefore, with a rather keen sense of curiosity that
+he walked through the house into the garden, where he was told that
+Beatrice and Jane were to be found. He saw them across the croquet lawn
+immediately, and he underwent a mild shock of disappointment on seeing,
+as he could, at a glance, that they were just as long of limb, just as
+straight of hair and just as angular in build as most English girls of
+their age.
+
+The elder girl rose from her seat and sauntered slowly across the lawn,
+followed by her sister. She stared coolly at Harry as she walked toward
+him, but said nothing, even when she was quite near. He met her gaze
+with perfect self-possession, and suddenly realized that she was waiting
+to see if he would make the first move. He instantly determined not to
+do so, it being her place, after all, to speak first; so he stood still
+and stared calmly back at her for a few seconds, till finally the girl,
+with a sudden fleeting smile, held out her hand and greeted him.
+
+"You're Harry Wimbourne, aren't you?" she said, cordially enough. "This
+is my sister Jane. We are very glad to see you; we've heard such a lot
+about you. Come over here and tell us about America."
+
+In that meeting, in her rather rude little aggression and Harry's
+reception of it, was started a friendship. She deliberately tested Harry
+and found that he came up to the mark. He did not fidget, he did not
+blush, he did not stammer; he simply returned her stare, waiting for her
+to find her manners. Nothing he could have done would have pleased her
+better; she decided she would like him, then and there.
+
+Harry on his side found her conversation, even in the first hour of
+their acquaintance, stimulating and agreeable, and like nothing that he
+had experienced before in any young girl of thirteen, English or
+American.
+
+"You needn't be afraid that we shall ask foolish questions about
+America," Beatrice went on. "We know the Indians don't run wild in the
+streets of New York, and all that sort of thing. We even know what part
+of the country New Haven is in; we looked it up on the map. It's quite
+near New York, isn't it?"
+
+"Yes," said Harry, "you're quite right; it is. But how do you pronounce
+the name of the state it is in? Can you tell me that?"
+
+"Connecticut," replied the girl, readily enough; but she sounded the
+second _c_, after the manner of most English people. Harry explained her
+mistake to her, and she took the correction smiling, quite without pique
+or resentment.
+
+"Now go on and tell us something about the country. Something really
+important, you know; something we don't know already."
+
+"Well," said Harry, "there seems to be more room there; that's about the
+most important difference. Except in the largest cities, and there there
+seems to be less, and that's why they make the buildings so high. And
+nearly all the houses, except in the middle of the towns, are made of
+wood."
+
+He went on at some length, the two girls listening attentively.
+
+At last Beatrice interrupted with the question:
+
+"Which do you think you like best, on the whole, England or America?"
+
+"Oh, America of course; but only because it's my own country. I can
+imagine liking England best, if one happened to be born here. Some
+things are nicer here, and some are nicer there."
+
+"What do you like best in England?"
+
+"Well, the old things. Cathedrals and castles. Also afternoon tea, which
+we don't bother about much over there. And the gardens."
+
+"And what do you like best about America?"
+
+"Trolley cars, and soda water fountains, and such things. And the
+climate. And the way people act. There's so much less--less formality
+over there; less bothering about little things, you know."
+
+"Yes, yes, I know exactly. Silly little things, that don't matter one
+way or the other. I know I should like that about America."
+
+"I think you would like America, anyway," said Harry, looking judicially
+at his interlocutrix. "You seem to be a free and easy sort of person."
+
+"Well, I wouldn't like trolley cars," interrupted Jane with firmness,
+"They go too fast. I don't like to go fast. It musses my hair, and the
+dust gets into my eyes."
+
+"Shut up, silly," said her sister; "you've never ridden in one."
+
+"No, but I know what it is to go fast, and I don't like it. I don't
+think I should care much for America."
+
+"Well," said Harry, laughing, "we won't make you go there. Or if you do
+go there, we won't make you ride on the trolley cars. You can ride in
+hacks all the time; they go slow enough for any one."
+
+Beatrice's first impression of Harry underwent no disillusionment as the
+days went on. She seemed to find in him a companion after her own heart.
+He had plenty of ideas of his own, and he was entirely willing to act on
+hers; he never affected to despise them as a girl's notions, nor did he
+ever object to her sharing in his amusements because of her misfortune
+of sex. They climbed trees and crawled through the underbrush on their
+stomachs together with as much zest and _abandon_ as if there were no
+such things as frocks and stockings in the world. Harry had never known
+this kind of companionship with a girl before, and was delighted with
+her.
+
+"Oh, dash, there goes my garter," she exclaimed one day as they were
+walking through a country lane together. She had got rather to make a
+point of such matters, to over-emphasize their possible embarrassment,
+simply in order to see how beautifully he acted.
+
+"Well, tie it up or something," said he, sauntering on a few steps.
+
+Beatrice did what was necessary and ran on and caught up with him.
+
+"I never could see why a garter shouldn't be as freely talked about as
+any other article of clothing," said she. "All that sort of modesty is
+such rot; people have legs, and legs have to have stockings to cover
+them, and stockings have to have garters to keep them up. And women have
+legs, just as much as men; there's not a doubt of that. Perhaps that's
+news to you, though?"
+
+"No, I knew that."
+
+"You really, honestly aren't shocked at what I'm saying?" asked the
+girl, scanning his face intently.
+
+"Not in the least; why should I be? You're not telling me anything
+shocking."
+
+Beatrice drew a long breath of pure enjoyment.
+
+"It _is_ a comfort to meet a person like you once in a while," she said.
+"Tell me, are women such fools about their legs in America as they are
+here?"
+
+"Yes, quite," said Harry fervently; "if not actually worse. That's one
+thing that we don't seem to have learned any better about. It always
+makes me tired."
+
+The two saw each other, infrequently but fairly regularly, throughout
+Harry's stay in England. They never corresponded, both admitting that
+they were bad letter writers, but when they met they were always able to
+pick up their friendship exactly where they had left it.
+
+When Sir Giles came into the Rumbold property there was naturally a
+corresponding change in the circumstances of Lady Archibald and her
+daughters. Every penny of the property, which came to Sir Giles through
+the death of a maternal uncle, was entailed and inalienable from his
+possession; but he was able to alleviate her condition by giving her a
+large yearly allowance out of his income; and it was pointed out that
+such an arrangement would have the advantage of keeping the money safe
+from her husband. Lady Archibald took a small house in South Street and
+spent the winter and spring months there, and in the due course of time
+Beatrice was brought out into society.
+
+Her undoubted beauty, which was of the dark and haughty type, and her
+excellent dancing were enough to make her a social success. This was a
+tremendous comfort to her mother, who was never obliged to worry about
+her at dances or scheme for invitations at desirable houses, and could
+confine her maternal anxiety to merely hoping that Beatrice would make a
+better match than she herself had. But Beatrice hated the whole
+proceeding, heartily and unaffectedly.
+
+"The dancing men all bore me," she once said to Harry; "and I bore all
+the others. Almost all men are dull; at any rate, they appear at their
+dullest and worst in society, and the few interesting ones don't want to
+be bored by a chit like me, and I can't say that I blame them. As for
+the women--when they get into London society they cease to be women at
+all; they become fiends incarnate."
+
+"I hope that success is not embittering your youthful heart," said
+Harry, smiling.
+
+"Not success, but just being in what they are pleased to call society;
+that will make me bitter if I have much more of it. I don't know why it
+is; people are nice naturally--most of them, that is. Of course some
+people are born brutes, like--well, like my father; but most of them are
+nice at bottom. But somehow London makes beasts of them all. If I am
+ever Prime Minister--"
+
+"Which, after all, is improbable."
+
+"Well, if I am, the first thing I shall do will be simply to abolish
+London. We shall have just the same population, but it will be all
+rural. We shall all live in Arcadian simplicity, and while we may not be
+perfect, at least we shan't all be the scheming, selfish, merciless
+brutes that London makes of us."
+
+"And pending the passage of that bill you want to live in Arcadian
+simplicity alone. I see. I quite like the idea myself. I should love to
+found Arcadia with you somewhere in rural England, when I have time.
+Where shall we have it? I should say Devonshire, shouldn't you? Clotted
+cream, you know, and country lanes. It will be like Marie Antoinette's
+hamlet at Versailles, only not nearly so silly. We will pay other people
+to milk the cows and make the butter, and do all the dirty work, and
+just sit around ourselves and be perfectly charming. No one will be
+admitted without passing a rigid examination in character, and that will
+be the only necessary qualification. Arcadia, Limited, we'll call it; it
+sounds like a Gilbert and Sullivan opera, doesn't it?"
+
+"Whom shall we have in it? Uncle Giles--he could pass all right,
+couldn't he?"
+
+"Oh, Heavens, yes, _Magna cum_. And Aunt Miriam--perhaps. She would need
+some cramming before she went up. What about your mother?"
+
+"I'm afraid Mama could never get in," answered Beatrice, smiling rather
+sadly. "I've talked to her before about such things and she never
+answers, but just looks at me with that sad tolerant smile of hers that
+seems to say 'Arcadian simplicity is all very well, but you'll find the
+best way to get it is through a husband with ten thousand a year or so.'
+And the dreadful part of it is that she's right, to a certain extent."
+
+Although in matter of years Beatrice was a few weeks Harry's junior, she
+was at this time twice as old as he, for all practical purposes. She was
+an honored guest at Lady Fletcher's big dinners--almost the only ones
+that did not bore her to death--into which Harry would be smuggled at
+the last minute to fill up a vacant place, or else calmly omitted from
+altogether. Nevertheless, he was her greatest comfort all through her
+first season; nothing but his jovial optimism, which saw the worst but
+found it no more than amusing, kept the iron from entering into her
+soul. Such an occasional conversation as the above-quoted would put
+sanity into her world and fortify her for days against the commonplaces
+of dancing men and the jealous looks of less attractive maidens. And how
+she would pine for him during the intervals! How she would long for the
+arrival of the next vacation or mid-term exeat that would bring him up
+to town! There was a freshness, a wholesomeness about his way of looking
+at things that was soothing to her as a breath of country air.
+
+It is not surprising, then, that Beatrice began to dread the nearing
+date of Harry's departure for America and college more than any one
+else, even Sir Giles himself, to whom Harry had become by this time
+almost as dear as a son. Poor Uncle Giles, though he wanted Harry to
+stay in the country more than any other earthly thing, made it a point
+of honor never to dissuade the boy from his original project of
+returning to his own country when he was ready to go to college and
+becoming an American again. Beatrice, however, was bound by no such
+restriction and complained bitterly of his desertion.
+
+"What is the point of your going back to some silly American college?"
+she would ask. "It isn't as if you didn't have the best universities in
+the world right here, under your very nose. Why aren't Oxford and
+Cambridge good enough for you, I should like to know? They were good
+enough for Milton and Thackeray and Isaac Newton and a few other more or
+less prominent people."
+
+"Very true," replied Harry with perfect good-humor. "The only thing is,
+those people didn't happen to be Yankees. I am, you know. It's been a
+habit in our family for two hundred years or more, and it doesn't do to
+break up old family traditions. Must be a Yankee, whatever happens."
+
+"But that doesn't mean that you have to go to a Yankee college,
+necessarily," argued Beatrice. "You won't learn nearly as much there as
+you would at Oxford. You are as far along in your studies now as the
+second year men at Yale; I heard Uncle Giles say so himself."
+
+"Yes, I know, that's very true. I can't argue about it; you've got all
+the arguments on your side. I just know that there's only one possible
+place on earth where I can go to college, and that is Yale. Better not
+talk about it any more, if it makes you peevish."
+
+"Well, we won't. I'll tell you one thing, though; we have got to start a
+correspondence. You can spare a few ideas from your Yankees, I hope. I
+shall simply die on the wooden pavements if I can't at least hear from
+you occasionally."
+
+"Certainly; I should like nothing better. I'll even go so far as to be
+the first to write, if you like, and that's a perfectly tremendous
+concession, as I'm the worst letter writer that ever lived."
+
+So there the matter was left. Harry left Harrow for good at Easter, and
+spent one last golden month in London, seeing Beatrice almost every day
+and being an unalloyed joy and comfort to his uncle and aunt. In May he
+took a short trip through Spain with Sir Giles; it was a country
+neither of them had visited before, and they had planned a trip there
+for years. Uncle Giles worked double time for a fortnight in order to be
+able to leave with a clear conscience, but he found the reward well
+worth the labor.
+
+They parted at Madrid, the plan being for Harry to sail for New York
+from Gibraltar, arriving in time to take his final examinations in New
+Haven in June.
+
+There were tears in Sir Giles' kind blue eyes as he bade Harry good-by,
+and Harry saw them and knew why they were there. Suddenly he felt his
+own fill.
+
+"I don't want to go very much, Uncle Giles," he said in a low voice.
+"Now that it comes to the point, I don't like it much. You've all been
+so wonderful to me.... It's not a question of what I want to do, though.
+It's just what's got to be done."
+
+"Yes," said his uncle; "I know. You're quite right about it. It's the
+only thing to do. But perhaps you won't mind my saying I'm glad, in a
+way, that you find it hard?"
+
+"Thank you; that helps, too. There's more that comes into it, though;
+more than what we have talked over together so often.... I mean--"
+
+"James?"
+
+"Yes," said Harry, "that's it."
+
+They clasped hands again and went their separate ways; Sir Giles to the
+train that was to take him north to Paris and home, and Harry to the
+train that was to take him south to Gibraltar and home.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VII
+
+OMNE IGNOTUM
+
+
+"Bless us, how the boy has grown!" cried Aunt Cecilia, and kissed him
+all over again.
+
+"You'll find your aunt very much changed, I expect," said Uncle James,
+clasping his hand and smiling, quite in his old style.
+
+"Not a particle, thank Heaven," said Harry, understanding perfectly;
+"nor you either. Nor the U. S. Customs service, either. Can't I just
+make them a present of all my luggage and run along? Except that I have
+some Toledo work and stuff for you and Aunt C."
+
+"Hush, don't say that out loud; they'll charge you extra duty for it,"
+replied Uncle James.
+
+"Oh, was there e'er a Yankee breast which did not feel the moral beauty
+of making worldly interest subordinate to sense of duty?" misquoted
+Harry. "Bother the duty. Tell me how you all are. How are Ruth and
+Oswald and Lucy and Jack and Timothy and the baby? All about eight feet
+high, I suppose? And James, where is he?"
+
+"James is in New Haven," said Aunt Cecilia; "he has an examination early
+to-morrow morning and could not get away till after that. He'll be here
+to-morrow in time for lunch."
+
+It was all very easy and cordial. Harry was in high spirits over
+returning to his native land, and was genuinely pleased that both his
+uncle and aunt should take the trouble to come down to the dock to meet
+his steamer. They, on their side, were most agreeably impressed by him;
+agreeably disappointed with him, we almost said. It was a relief, as
+well as a pleasure, to find him, so unchanged and unaffected at heart,
+though he looked and talked like an Englishman. Mrs. James sat on a
+packing case and watched him with unadulterated pleasure as he tended to
+the examination of his luggage. The art of his Bond Street tailor served
+to accentuate rather than hide the slim, sinewy, businesslike beauty of
+his limbs, brought into play as he bent down to lift a trunk tray or tug
+at a strap. Though all that was nothing, of course, to the joy of the
+discovery that he was unspoiled in character.
+
+"It's turned out all right," she thought and smiled to herself. "I don't
+know whether it's chiefly to his credit or theirs, but it has come out
+all right, anyway. I wish the boat had not arrived in the evening, so
+that I could have brought the children to see him, the first thing.
+They'll have plenty of time, though; and how they'll love him! And how
+pleased James will be!"
+
+She meant young James, who was now putting the finishing touches on his
+sophomore year at Yale. James was never very far from her mind when her
+thoughts ran to her own children--which was most of the time. She always
+thought of him now more as her own eldest child than as her husband's
+nephew.
+
+And Harry's thoughts, beneath all his chatter to his uncle and aunt and
+his transactions with the Customs officials, were also on James. All the
+way across the Atlantic, on the long dull voyage from Gibraltar--there
+are not many passengers traveling westward in June--they continually ran
+on that one subject--James, James, James. What would he be like now?
+would he be the old James, or changed, somehow--strangely,
+disappointingly, unacceptably? Harry hoped not; hoped it with his whole
+heart, in which there was nothing but humility and affection when he
+thought of what his brother had been to him in the old days. He was so
+little able to speak what he felt about James that he was embarrassed
+and over-silent about him. That was why he was so debonair with the
+Customs officials; that was why he asked after each of his young cousins
+by name before he mentioned his brother.
+
+"Every single article of clothing I own was bought abroad," he was
+telling the Customs inspector; "so you can just go ahead and do your
+worst--That suit cost eight guineas--yes, I know it's too much; I told
+them so at the time, but they wouldn't listen.... No, that thing with
+the feathers is not a woman's hat; it's a Tyrolean hat, that the men
+climb mountains in. I'm going to give it to my Uncle James--that man
+there sitting on the woman's trunk that she wants to get into--to wear
+to his office, which is on the thirty-fifth floor.... Yes, I have worn
+it myself, but don't tell him.... That gold cigarette case is for my
+brother, who smokes when he's not playing football, and it cost six
+pound fifteen, which is dirt cheap, I say. I'd keep it myself, except
+that it's so cheap that I can't afford not to give it away...."
+
+And James, what was he feeling, if he was feeling anything, in regard to
+his brother at this time, and why have we said nothing about him during
+these seven years? The truth is, his life had been chiefly distinguished
+by the blessed uneventfulness that comes of outward happiness and a good
+understanding with the world. If you can draw a mental picture for
+yourself of a boy of perfect physique and untarnished mind, gradually
+attaining the physical and mental development of manhood in comradeship
+with a hundred or more others in a like position, dedicating the use of
+each gift as it came to him not to his own aggrandizement but to the
+glory of God and the service of other men, recognizing his superiority
+in certain fields with the same humility with which he beheld his
+inferiority in others, equally willing to give help where he was strong
+and take help where he was weak, and possessed by the fundamental
+conviction that other people were just as good as he if not a little bit
+better, you may get some idea of James during the years of his brother's
+absence. He was not brilliant, he was not handsome, but there was a
+splendid normality about him, both in appearance and in character, that
+inspired confidence and affection among his teachers, his relatives, and
+friends of his own age.
+
+"He has a good mind and body, and there is no nonsense about him," was
+the substance of the opinion of the first-named group. "He is a good boy
+and a nice boy, and I'm glad he is one of the family," said the second.
+"He is captain of the football team," said the third group, and to one
+who knows anything about American boarding schools this last will tell
+everything.
+
+If any one is inclined to blame James for his allowing the Atlantic
+Ocean to separate him and brother so completely for those seven years it
+may interest him to know that James was quite of the same opinion. As he
+sat in the train that took him from New Haven to New York on the morning
+after Harry's landing, he wondered how the long separation could have
+come about. On the whole, after a careful review of the business, he was
+inclined to blame himself; not over-severely, but definitely,
+nevertheless. He had been timid, indifferent and, above all, lazy.
+Looking back over his attitude of the last seven years, he was inclined
+to be scornful and a little amused. What had he to fear about Harry?
+Weren't Uncle Giles and Aunt Miriam good people, who could be trusted to
+bring him up right? What was there to fear, even, in his becoming an
+Englishman? And anyway, even if he had feared the worst, ought he not to
+have taken the trouble to go over and see with his own eyes? It had
+probably turned out all right, for Harry had returned at last with every
+intention of living in America for the rest of his life; but if he had
+been spoiled or altered for the worse in any way, he, James, must take
+his share of the blame for it. There could be no doubt of that.
+
+The root of the matter was, we suspect, that James had been somewhat
+lacking in initiative. Thoroughly normal people customarily are; it is
+at once their strength and their weakness. A splendid normality, such as
+we have described James as enjoying, is a serviceable thing in life, but
+it is apt to degenerate, if not sufficiently stimulated by misfortune
+and opposition, into commonplaceness and sterile conservatism. But let
+us do James justice; he at least saw his fault and blamed himself for
+it.
+
+He was devoured with curiosity to see what Harry was like; almost as
+much so as Harry in regard to him. James had plenty of friends, but only
+one brother, when all was said and done. As the train rushed nearer the
+consummation of his curiosity, he felt the old feeling of timidity and
+suspicion sweep over him; but that, as he shook it off, only increased
+his curiosity; gave it edge. _Omne ignotum pro magnifico est_; every one
+knows that, even if he never heard of Virgil, and it is especially true
+of such natures as James'. Each little wave of fear and suspicion that
+swept over him made him a little more restless and unhappy, though he
+smiled at himself for feeling so. It was a relief when the train pulled
+into the Grand Central Station and he could grip his bag and start on
+the short walk to the house of his uncle, which was situated in the
+refined and expensive confines of Murray Hill.
+
+Any one who knows anything about the world will be able to guess pretty
+closely the nature of the brothers' meeting. Harry was sitting in the
+front room upstairs when his cousin Ruth, who was at the window,
+announced: "Here he comes, Harry." In a perfect frenzy of pleasure,
+embarrassment, affection and curiosity, the boy made a dash for the
+stairs and greeted his brother at the front door with the demonstrative
+words:
+
+"Hello, James!"
+
+To which James, who for the last few minutes had been obliged to
+restrain himself from throwing his bag into the gutter and breaking into
+a run, replied:
+
+"Well, Harry, how's the boy?"
+
+Then they walked upstairs together and began talking rather fast about
+the voyage, examinations, Aunt Miriam, Spain, the Yale baseball
+team,--anything but what was in their hearts.
+
+"Well, you came back without being made an earl, after all, it seems,"
+said James a little later at lunch.
+
+"No, but I came back a sub-freshman, which is the next best thing.
+There's no telling what I might have been if I'd stayed, though.
+Everybody was so frightfully keen on my staying over there and going to
+Oxford, especially Beatrice--Beatrice Carson, you know; I've written you
+about her? She would have made me an earl in a minute, if she could, to
+make me stay. None of it did any good, though. I would be a Yankee."
+
+"How do you think you'll like being a Yankee again?" asked James. "You
+certainly don't look much like one at present."
+
+"No? That'll come, I dare say. My heart's in the right place. Though
+that doesn't prevent the Americans from seeming strange, at first. Did
+you notice that woman in the chemist's shop this morning, Aunt C.? She
+was chewing gum all the time she waited on you, and she never said
+'Thank you' or 'Ma'am' once."
+
+"They all are that way," said Aunt Cecilia with a gentle sigh. "I don't
+expect anything else."
+
+"Oh, the bloated aristocrat!" said James. "It is an earl, after all.
+Only don't blame the poor girl for not calling you 'My lord.' She
+couldn't be expected to know; they don't have many of them over here."
+
+"I don't mean that she was rude," said Harry; "she didn't give that
+impression, somehow. It was just the way she did things; a sort of
+casualness. The Americans are a funny people!"
+
+"Oh, Lord!" groaned James; "hear the prominent foreigner talk. What do
+you think of America, my lord? How do you like New York? What do you
+think of our climate? To think that that's the thing I used to spank
+when he was naughty!"
+
+"That's all very well," retorted Harry, with warmth; "wait till you get
+out of this blessed country for a while yourself, and see how other
+people act, and then perhaps you'll see that there are differences. You
+may even be able to see that they are not all in our favor. And as for
+smacking--spanking, if you feel inclined to renew that quaint old custom
+now, I'm ready for you. Any time you want!"
+
+"Oh, very well," growled James; "after lunch."
+
+"Yes, and in Central Park, please," observed Uncle James; "not in the
+house; I can't afford it. You are right, though, Harry, about the
+Americans being a funny people. If you enter the legal profession, or if
+you go into public life, you'll be more and more struck by the fact as
+time goes on. But there's one thing to remember; it doesn't do to tell
+them so. They can't bear to hear it. We have proof of that immediately
+before us; you announce your opinion here, _coram familia_, as it were,
+and what is the result? Contempt and loathing on the part of the great
+American public, represented by James, and a duel to follow--in Central
+Park, remember; in Central Park."
+
+"I wonder if that milk of magnesia has come yet," murmured Aunt Cecilia,
+who had not gone beyond the beginning of the conversation; and further
+hostilities--friendly ones, even--were forgotten in the general laugh
+that followed.
+
+Of course James, who conformed to the American type of college boy as
+closely as any one could and retain his individuality, was greatly
+struck during the first few days by his brother's Anglicisms, which
+showed themselves at that time rather in his appearance and speech than
+in his point of view. For example, James was indulging one day in a
+lengthy plaint against the hardness of one of his instructors, as the
+result of which he would probably, to use his own expression, "drop an
+hour"; that is, lose an hour's work for the year and be put back
+one-sixtieth of his work for his degree. Harry listened attentively
+enough to the narrative, but his sole comment when James finished was
+the single word "Tiresome." The word was ill chosen for James' peace of
+mind. If such expressions were the result of English training he could
+not but think the less of English training.
+
+The summer passed off pleasantly enough, the boys living with their
+uncle and aunt at Bar Harbor. Harry saw much less of James than he had
+expected, for he was away much of the time, visiting classmates and
+school friends whom Harry did not know. He was obliged, too, to return
+to Yale soon after the first of September for football practise. Harry
+spent most of his time playing fairly happily about with his young
+cousins and other people of his own age. The most interesting feature of
+the summer to him was a visit to Aunt Selina at her summer place in
+Vermont. This was the ancestral, ante-Revolution farm of the Wimbournes,
+much rebuilt and enlarged and presented to Miss Wimbourne for her life
+on the death of her late father. Here Aunt Selina was wont to gather
+during the summer months a heterogeneous crowd of friends, and it was a
+source of wonder and admiration to the other members of the family that
+she was able to attract such a large number of what she referred to as
+"amusing people." With these Harry was quite at ease, his English
+training having accustomed him to associating with older and cleverer
+people than himself, and it gave Aunt Selina quite a thrill of pleasure
+to see a boy of eighteen partaking in the staid amusements of his elders
+and meeting them on their own ground, and to think that the boy was her
+own nephew. She became at length so much taken with him that a bright
+idea occurred to her.
+
+"Harry," said she one day; "what do you think of my going to live in New
+Haven?"
+
+"I think it's a fine idea," said Harry. "But where?"
+
+"Why, in the old house, of course. That is, if you and James, or your
+guardians, are willing to rent it to me. It has stood empty ever since
+you left it, and I presume there is no immediate prospect of your
+occupying it yourselves for some time."
+
+"As half owner of the establishment," said Harry courteously, "I offer
+you the full use of it for as long a time as you wish, free of charge."
+
+"That's sweet of you, but it's not business. I should insist on paying
+rent."
+
+"Well, Aunt Selina, you're used to having your own way, so I presume
+you will. But what makes you want to come and live in New Haven, all of
+a sudden? I thought you could never bear the place."
+
+"I had a great many friends there in the old days, and should like to
+see something of them again. Besides, it will be nice to be in the same
+town with you and James."
+
+Like most people, she put the real reason last. If Harry failed to
+realize from its position that it was the real reason, he learned it
+unmistakably enough from what followed. The conversation wandered to a
+discussion of changes in the town since Aunt Selina had lived there. She
+supposed that everybody had dinner at night there now, though she
+remembered the time when it was impossible to reconcile servants to the
+custom. She herself would have it late, except on Sundays. Sunday never
+did seem like Sunday to her without dinner in the middle of the day and
+supper in the evening.
+
+"Well," said Harry, "I hope you'll ask James and me to a Sunday dinner
+occasionally."
+
+"Good gracious, yes! Every Sunday, and supper too. That will be a
+regular custom; and I want you both to feel at liberty to come up for a
+meal at any time. Any time, without even telephoning beforehand. And
+bring your friends; there will always be enough to eat. How stupid of me
+to forget that. Of course I want you, as often as you'll come."
+
+"We accept," said Harry, "unconditionally. We shall be glad enough to
+have a decent meal once in a while, after the food we shall get in
+college. James says he even gets tired of the training table, which is a
+great admission, for he loves everything connected with football. Even
+when we were kids, I remember, he used to love to drink barley water
+with his meals; nasty stuff--they used to make me drink it in England."
+
+Harry rattled on purposely about the first thing that came into his
+head, for he noticed his aunt seemed slightly embarrassed. She was going
+to New Haven to take care of James and himself, and naturally she did
+not care to divulge the real reason to him. Well, she was a dear old
+thing, certainly; he remembered how she had acted on his mother's death.
+He was suddenly sorry that he had seen nothing of her for the last seven
+years, and sorry that he had written her so irregularly during his
+absence. It was pleasant to think that he would have a chance to make up
+for it in the future.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VIII
+
+LIVY AND VICTOR HUGO
+
+
+On a certain Wednesday evening late in September Harry stood on a
+certain street-corner in the city of New Haven. Surging about him were a
+thousand or so youths of his own age or a little older, most of them
+engaged in making noises expressive of the pleasures of reunion. It was
+a merry and turbulent scene. Tall, important-looking seniors, wearing
+white sweaters with large blue Y's on their chests, moved through the
+crowd with a worried air, apparently trying to organize something that
+had no idea whatever of being organized. They were ineffectual, but oh,
+so splendid! Harry, who had almost no friends of his own there to talk
+to, watched them with undisguised admiration. He reflected that James
+would be one of their number a year hence, and wondered if by any chance
+he himself would be one three years from now.
+
+Just as he dismissed the probability as negligible, a sort of order
+became felt among those who stood immediately about him. Men stopped
+talking and appeared to be listening to something which Harry could not
+hear. Then they all began shouting a strange, unmeaning succession of
+syllables in concert; Harry recognized this as a cheer and lustily
+joined in with it. At the end came a number; repeated three times; a
+number which no one present had ever before heard bellowed forth from
+three or four hundred brazen young throats; a number that had a strange
+and unfamiliar sound, even to those who shouted it, and caused the
+upperclassmen to break into a derisive jeer.
+
+A new class had officially started its career, and Harry was part of it.
+No one flushed more hotly than he at the jeer of the upperclassmen; no
+one jeered back with greater spirit when the sophomores cheered for
+their own class. No one took part more joyfully in the long and varied
+program of events that filled out the rest of the evening. The parade
+through the streets of the town was to him a joyous bacchanal, and the
+wrestling matches on the Campus a splendid orgy. After these were over
+even more enjoyable things happened, for James, with two or three
+fellow-juniors--magnificent, Olympian beings!--took him in tow and
+escorted him safe and unmolested through the turbulent region of York
+Street, where freshmen, who had nothing save honor to fight for, were
+pressed into organized hostility against sophomores, who didn't even
+have that.
+
+"Well, what did you think of it all?" asked James later.
+
+"Oh, ripping," said Harry, "I never thought it would be anything like
+this. We never really saw anything of the real life of the college when
+we lived in town here, did we?"
+
+"Not much. It all seems pretty strange to you now, I suppose, but you'll
+soon get onto the ropes and feel at home. What sort of a schedule did
+you get?"
+
+"Oh, fairly rotten. They all seem to be eight-thirties. Here, you can
+see," producing a paper.
+
+"That's not so bad," pronounced James, approvingly. "Nothing on
+Wednesday or Saturday afternoons, so that you can get to ball games and
+things, and nothing any afternoon till five, so that you'll have plenty
+of time for track work."
+
+"Oh, yes, track work; I'd forgotten that."
+
+"Well, you don't want to forget it; you want to go right out and hire a
+locker and get to work, to-morrow, if possible. If track's the best
+thing for you to go out for, that is, and I guess it is, all right.
+You're too light for football, and you don't know anything about
+baseball, and you haven't got a crew build."
+
+"What is a crew build?" asked Harry.
+
+"Well, if you put it that way, I don't know that I can tell you. It's a
+mysterious thing; I've been trying to find out myself for several years.
+I don't see why I haven't got a fairly good crew build myself, but they
+always tell me I haven't, when I suggest going out for it. However, you
+haven't got one, that's easy. So you'll just have to stick to track."
+
+"Yes," said Harry soberly, "I suppose I shall."
+
+Harry was what is commonly known as a good mixer, and made acquaintances
+among his classmates rapidly enough to suit even the nice taste of
+James. In general, however, they remained acquaintances and never became
+friends. It was not that they were not nice, most of them; "ripping
+fellows, all of them," Harry described them to his brother. They were,
+in fact, too nice; those who lived near him were all of the best
+preparatory school type, the kind that invariably leads the class during
+freshman year. Harry found them conventional, quite as much so as the
+English type, though in a different way. Intercourse with them failed to
+give him stimulus; he found himself always more or less talking down to
+them, and intellectual stimulus was what Harry needed above all things
+among his friends.
+
+There were exceptions, however. The most brilliant was that of Jack
+Trotwood, probably the last man with whom Harry might have been expected
+to strike up a friendship. Harry first saw him in a Latin class, one of
+the first of the term. Trotwood sat in the same row as Harry, two or
+three seats away from him--the acquaintance was not even of the type
+that alphabetical propinquity is responsible for. On the day in question
+he dropped a fountain pen, and spent some moments in burrowing
+ineffectually under seats in search of it. The fugitive chattel at
+length turned up directly under Harry's chair, and as he leaned over to
+restore it to its owner he noticed something about his face that
+appealed to him at once. He never could tell what it was; the flush that
+bending over had brought to it, the embarrassment, the dismay at having
+made a fuss in public, the smile, containing just the right mixture of
+cordiality and formality, yet undeniably sweet withal, with which he
+thanked him; perhaps it was any or all of these things. At any rate
+after class, on his way back toward York Street, Harry found himself
+hurrying to catch up with Trotwood, who was walking a few paces ahead of
+him. Trotwood turned as he came up, and smiled again.
+
+"That was sort of a stinking lesson, wasn't it?" he asked.
+
+"Yes," said Harry, "wasn't it, though?"
+
+"I should say! Boned for two hours on it last night before I could make
+anything out of it. Gee, but this Livy's dull, isn't he?"
+
+"Yes, awfully dull. Do you use a trot?"
+
+"No, I haven't yet, but I'm going to, after last night. I can't put so
+much time on one lesson. Do you?"
+
+"Well, yes. That is, I shall. Do you like Latin?"
+
+"Lord, no, not when it's like this stuff. I only took it because it
+comes easier to me than most other things. Do you like it?"
+
+"Not much. Not much good at it, either.... Well, I live here--"
+
+"Oh, do you? so do I. Where are you?"
+
+"Fourth floor, back. Come up, some time."
+
+"Thanks, I will. So long."
+
+"So long."
+
+So started a friendship, one of the sincerest and firmest that either
+ever enjoyed. And yet, as Harry pointed out afterward, it was founded on
+insincerity and falsehood. Harry's whole part in this first conversation
+was no more than a tissue of lies. He was extremely fond of Latin, and
+was so good at it that his entire preparation for his recitations
+consisted in looking up a few unfamiliar words beforehand; he could
+always fit the sentences together when he was called upon to construe.
+It had never occurred to him to use a translation. He was rather fond of
+Livy, whose flowing and complicated style appealed to him. He gave a
+false answer to every question merely for the pleasure of agreeing with
+Trotwood, whom he liked already without knowing why.
+
+The two got into the habit of doing their Latin lesson together
+regularly, three times a week. Trotwood did not buy a trot, after all;
+he found Harry quite as good.
+
+"My, but you're a shark," he said in undisguised admiration one evening,
+as Harry brought order and clarity into a difficult passage. "You
+certainly didn't learn to do that in this country. You're English,
+anyway, aren't you?"
+
+"Lord, no; Yankee. Born in New Haven. I have lived over there for some
+years, though."
+
+"Go to school there?"
+
+"Yes; Harrow."
+
+"Gosh." Trotwood stared at him for a few moments in dazed silence. He
+stood on the brink of a world that he knew no more of than Balboa did of
+the Pacific. "What sort of a place is it?"
+
+"Oh, wonderful."
+
+"You played cricket, I suppose, and--and those things?"
+
+"Rugby football, yes," said Harry, smiling.
+
+"And you liked it, didn't you?"
+
+"Oh, rather! Only--"
+
+"Only what?"
+
+"Oh, nothing. I did like it. It's a wonderful place."
+
+"Only it's different from what you're doing now?" said Trotwood, with a
+burst of insight. "Is that what you mean?"
+
+"Yes."
+
+"I see; I see," said Trotwood, and then he kept still. There was
+something so comforting, so sympathetic and understanding about his
+silence that Harry was inspired to confide in him.
+
+"The truth is, I'm beginning to doubt whether I ought to have gone to an
+English school. I'm not sure but what it would have been better for me
+to go to school and college in the same country, whatever it was. You
+see, after spending five or six years in learning to value certain
+things, it's rather a wrench to come here and find the values all
+distorted."
+
+"I see," said Trotwood again. He wasn't sure that he did see at all, but
+he felt that unquestioning sympathy was his cue.
+
+"It's not merely the different kinds of games," went on Harry; "it's not
+that they make so much more of athletics, or rather of the public side
+of athletics, than they do over there, though that comes into it a lot.
+It's what people do and think about and talk about and--and are, in
+short. Last year, I remember, the men I went with, the sixth formers,
+used to read the papers a lot and follow the debates in Parliament and
+talk about such things a lot, even among themselves. Some of them used
+to write Greek and Latin verse just for fun--wonderfully good, too, some
+of it. And here--well, how many men in our class, how many men in the
+whole college do you suppose could write ten lines of Greek or Latin
+verse without making a mess of it?"
+
+"Not too many, I'm afraid."
+
+"Then there's debating. We used to have pretty good house debates
+ourselves at school. I used to look forward to them, I remember, from
+month to month, as one of the most interesting things that happened. But
+of course they were nothing to a thing like the Oxford Union. You've
+heard of that, I suppose? Lord, I wish some of these people here could
+see one of those meetings! It would be an eye-opener."
+
+"But we have debating here," said Trotwood, doubtfully.
+
+"Yes, but what kind of debating? A few grinds getting up and talking
+about the Interstate Commerce Commission, or some rotten, technical, dry
+subject, because they think it will give them good practise in public
+speaking. Everybody hates it like poison, and they're right, too, for
+it's all dull, dead; started on the wrong idea. The best men in the
+class won't go out for it. I wouldn't myself, now that I know what it's
+like; but I thought of doing it in the summer, and spoke to my brother
+about it. He didn't say anything against it, because he didn't dare;
+people are always writing to the _News_ and saying what a fine thing
+debating is. But he let me see pretty clearly that he didn't think much
+of debating and didn't want me to go out for it, because it didn't get
+you anywhere in college; _simply wasn't done_. He'd rather see me take a
+third place in one track meet and never do another thing in college than
+to be the captain of the debating team."
+
+"Did he tell you that?"
+
+"Lord, no; he wouldn't dare. No one would; technically, debating is
+supposed to be a fine thing. But it doesn't get you anywhere near a
+senior society, so there's an end to it.... But perhaps I'd better not
+get started on that."
+
+"No, I should think not! Heavens, a junior fraternity is about the
+height of my ambition!"
+
+Harry smiled at his friend and went on: "You see it's this way, Trotty;
+you are a sensible person, and look at them in the right way. You play
+about with your mandolin clubs and various other little things because
+you like them, like a good dutiful boy. When the time comes, you'll be
+very glad to take a senior society, if it's offered you. If it isn't,
+you won't care."
+
+"But I will, though. I don't believe I have much chance, but I know I
+shall be disappointed if I don't make one, just the same."
+
+"For about twenty-four hours, yes. Don't interrupt me, Trotty; this
+isn't flattery, it's argument. You are a sensible person, as I have
+said; and don't let such considerations worry you. There are lots of
+other sensible persons in the class, too. Josh Traill, for one, and
+Manxome, and John Fisher and Shep McGee; they're all sensible people,
+and don't worry or think much about senior societies, though I suppose
+they all have a good chance to make one eventually, if any one has. But
+that isn't true of all the class. There is a large and important
+section of it that now, in the first term of freshman year, is thinking
+and talking nothing except about who will go to a junior fraternity next
+year, or a senior society two years hence. It's the one subject of
+conversation that seriously competes with professional baseball and
+college football, which is all you hear otherwise."
+
+"Oh, no, Harry, you're hard on us. There's automobiles. And guns. And
+theaters. But why should you mind if a lot of geesers do talk about
+societies?"
+
+"Well, it makes me sick, that's all. And when I say sick, I use the word
+in its British, or most vivid sense. It makes me sick, after England and
+after Harrow, to see a lot of what ought to be the best fellows in the
+class spending their waking hours in wondering about such rubbishy
+things.--Do you happen to be aware of an ornament of our class called
+Junius Neville LeGrand?"
+
+"Golden locks and blue eyes? Yes, I know him. Acts rather well, they
+say."
+
+"Yes; he's the kind I mean. At any rate, I seem to be in his good graces
+just at present. All sweetness and light; can't be too particular about
+telling me how good I am at French, and that sort of thing. In fact, he
+went so far to-day as to suggest that we might go over the French lesson
+together, and he's coming here presently to do it."
+
+"But what's the matter with poor Junius? I thought he was as decent as
+such a painfully good-looking person could be."
+
+"I'm not denying he's attractive. But if you'll stay for the French
+lesson I think I can show you what I'm talking about."
+
+"But I don't take French."
+
+"No, dear boy; you won't have to know French to see what I'm going to
+show you. Your rôle will consist of lying on the window-seat and being
+occupied with day before yesterday's _News_. Now listen; I have an idea
+that the beautiful Junius has recently made the discovery that I am the
+brother of James Wimbourne, of the junior class, pillar of the Yale
+football team and more than likely to go Bones, or anything he wants,
+next May. Hence this access of cordiality to poor little me, the obscure
+Freshman. I'm going to find out that, first."
+
+"But there's no need of finding out that," said Trotwood naïvely. "I
+told him so myself, the other day."
+
+"A week ago Tuesday, to be exact," said Harry reflectively. "I remember
+he slobbered all over me at the French class Wednesday, though he didn't
+have anything to say to me on Monday. Wasn't that about it?"
+
+"Yes," admitted Trotwood.
+
+"Well, it proves what I was saying, but I'm sorry you did it, for it
+spoils my little game with the beautiful Junius. The French lesson will
+be a dull one, I fear. I rather think I shall have to end by being rude
+to Junius, to keep him from making an infernal little pest of himself."
+
+But the French lesson was not as dull as Harry feared, for the
+ingratiating Junius played into Harry's hands and incidentally proved
+himself not so good an actor off the stage as on. His behavior for the
+first ten or fifteen minutes was all that could be desired; he sat in
+Harry's Morris chair and waved a cigarette and put his host and Trotwood
+at their ease with the grace and charm of a George IV. At length he and
+Harry settled down to their "Notre Dame de Paris," and for a while all
+went well. Then of a sudden Junius became strangely silent and
+preoccupied.
+
+"'Then they made him sit down on--' oh, Lord, what's a _brancard
+bariolé_?" said Harry. "You look up _brancard_, Junius, and I'll look up
+the other.... Oh, yes; speckled. No; motley--that's probably nearer; it
+depends on what _brancard_ means. What does it mean, anyway? Come on,
+Junius, do you mean to say you haven't found it yet? What's the matter?"
+
+"I was looking up _asseoir_," said Junius, who had been staring straight
+in front of him.
+
+"Sit, of course; you knew that. I translated that, anyway. I'll look up
+_brancard_." Harry's glance, as he turned again to his dictionary, fell
+upon a letter lying on his desk, waiting to be mailed. It was addressed
+in Harry's own legible hand to
+
+ Lieut.-Gen. Sir Giles Fletcher, M. P. etc.,
+ 204 Belgrave Square,
+ London, S. W.,
+ England.
+
+It immediately occurred to him that this was the probable cause of his
+classmate's preoccupation, and the joy of the chase burned anew in his
+breast.
+
+"What _are_ you staring at, Junius?" he asked a minute later, with, well
+simulated unconsciousness.
+
+"Nothing," replied Junius, returning to his book and blushing. That was
+bad already, as Harry pointed out later; it would have been so easy, for
+a person who really knew, to pass it off with some such remark as "I was
+overcome by the address on that letter. My, but what swells you do
+correspond with," etc. But the unfortunate Junius could not even be
+consistent to the rôle of affected ignorance that he had assumed.
+
+"I see you know Sir Giles Fletcher," he said after a while. "I saw that
+envelope on the table; I couldn't help seeing the address. Is he a
+friend of yours?"
+
+"Yes," said Harry; "my uncle."
+
+"Oh. Well, I heard a good deal about him last summer from some relations
+of his ... connections, anyway; the Marquis of Moville ... and his
+family. We had a shooting-lodge in Scotland, and he had a moor near
+ours. He came over and shot with us once, and said ours was the best
+moor in Perthshire. His brother came too; Lord Archibald Carson. He's
+the one that's connected with your uncle, isn't he?"
+
+"Yes. Married his sister."
+
+"The Marquis is rather a decent fellow," continued Junius languidly. "Do
+you know him?"
+
+"No," said Harry calmly; "no decent person does. Nor Lord Archibald,
+either. They're the worst pair of rounders in England. My uncle doesn't
+even speak to them in the street."
+
+"Oh." Junius' face was a study, but Harry was sitting so that he could
+not see it, and had to be contented with Trotwood's subsequent account
+of it. There was silence for a few moments, during which Harry waited
+with perfect certainty for Junius' next remark.
+
+"Well, of course we didn't know them _well_, at all. They just came and
+shot with us once. That's nothing, in Scotland."
+
+Victor Hugo was resumed after this and the translation finished without
+further incident. The beautiful Junius, however, needed no urging to
+"stick around" afterward, and sat for an hour or more smoking cigarettes
+and chatting pleasantly about his acquaintance, carefully culled from
+the New York social register and the British peerage.
+
+"Well, Trotty," said Harry after the incubus had departed, dropping a
+perfect shower of invitations to New York, Newport, Palm Beach, the
+Adirondacks and the Scottish moors; "what about it? Is the beautiful
+Junius, friend of dukes and scion of Crusaders, an obnoxious, unhealthy
+little vermin, or isn't he?"
+
+"I suppose he is. My, but he was fun, though! But he's going to make the
+Dramatic Association after Christmas, for all that."
+
+"Oh, yes. He'll make whatever he sets out to make, straight through.
+Nobody here will ever see through him. He doesn't often give himself
+away as he did to-night, of course. He talks up to each person on what
+he thinks they'll like; to Josh Traill, for instance, he'll talk about
+football, and to an æsthetic type, like Morton Miniver, on Japanese
+prints and Maeterlinck's plays; and to you on the Glee and Mandolin
+Clubs.... He has already, hasn't he? Don't attempt to deny it; your
+blush betrays you! That's the way his type gets on here; talk to the
+right people, and don't talk to any one else, and in addition do a
+little acting or whatever you can, and it'll go hard if you don't make a
+senior society before you're through.... He's clever, too; he'll make
+it, all right. You see, he only gave himself away to me because he
+talked on a subject where breeding counts, as well as knowledge.... It
+was rash of him to try the duke and duchess stuff; he'd much better have
+stuck to track, or something safe."
+
+"See here, Harry," said Trotwood, rising to go, "I grant you that Junius
+has given himself away and that he's a repulsive little beast, and all
+the rest of it, but don't you think that you are taking the incident
+just a little too seriously? It's an obnoxious type, all right, but it's
+a common one. There are bound to be a few Juniuses in every bunch of
+three or four hundred fellows wherever you take them; Oxford, or
+anywhere else. Why bother about them? Let them blather on; they won't
+hurt you, as long as you know them for what they are. And if Junius, or
+one of his kind, gets too aggressive and unpleasant, all you have to do
+is reach out your foot and stamp on him. But don't let him worry you!"
+
+"How wise, how uplifting, how Browningesque!" breathed Harry in
+satirical admiration. Trotty winced slightly and made for the door.
+"Don't be a fool," Harry added, running after his retreating friend and
+grabbing him. "You're dead right about all that, of course, as you
+always are when you take the trouble to use your bean. There's just one
+thing, though, when all is said and done, that irritates me. Junius at
+Yale ends by making his senior society, in spite of all. Junius at
+Oxford doesn't! Do you know why? Because there aren't any senior
+societies there!"
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IX
+
+A LONG CHEER FOR WIMBOURNE
+
+
+Harry did eventually bestir himself to the extent of hiring a locker in
+the track house and going out and "exercising," as he called it, three
+or four afternoons a week. He enjoyed it, but he obviously did not take
+it very seriously. He was neither good enough nor enthusiastic enough to
+attract the attention of the coach and captain, and it was something of
+a surprise to all concerned when he took a first place in the low
+hurdles in the fall meet and became entitled to wear his class numerals.
+
+"Fine work," said the captain, a small and insignificant-looking senior,
+who could pole vault to incredible heights without apparent effort.
+"Macgrath tells me you haven't come within two seconds of your time
+to-day in practise."
+
+"No," said Harry; "I've been working more at the jumps."
+
+"Well, you'd better stick to the hurdles from now on. We're weakest
+there. You practise and train regularly this year and next year you'll
+probably be the best man on the hurdles we have. Except Popham, of
+course. But we never can depend on Popham for a meet; he's always on
+pro, or something."
+
+That evening after dinner Harry strolled into Trotwood's room.
+
+"Say, you're the hell of a fine hurdler, you are," growled the latter,
+from the depths of a Morris chair. Harry was somewhat taken aback till
+his friend suddenly clutched at his hand and began swinging it up and
+down like a pump handle. Then he realized that objurgation was merely
+Trotwood's gentle method of expressing pleasure and affection. Delight
+shone in his face; not delight in his triumph but in the thought that it
+meant something to Trotwood and that he understood Trotwood's peculiar
+way of showing it.
+
+"That's all right, Trotty dear," he said. "Never mind about giving me
+back my hand; I shall have no further use for it."
+
+"I suppose you think you're quite a man now, don't you?" continued
+Trotwood in the same vein. "Just because you won a damned race against
+people that can't run anyway."
+
+"Sweet as the evening dew upon the fields of Enna fall thy words, O
+sage," said Harry. "You're really quite a wonderful person at bottom,
+aren't you, Trotty? How did you know that the last thing I'd want was to
+be slathered over with congratulations by you? Good Lord, you ought to
+have heard Junius LeGrand on the subject!"
+
+"Never mind about LeGrand. Speaking seriously, it's a great thing for
+you, Harry. I don't suppose you realize that, bar that unspeakable
+rounder Popham, you're the coming man in the hurdles from now on? Why,
+you've got your Y absolutely cinched for next year, with him going on
+the way he does!"
+
+"So it seems," said Harry dryly. "I seem to have heard the name of
+Popham before. Suppose we talk about something else.... Look, Trotty;
+will you room with me next year?"
+
+"Yes," answered Trotwood, blushing deeply, and continued, after a pause:
+"I've wanted to arrange that for some time, but I thought you'd better
+be the one to mention the subject first."
+
+"Why?"
+
+"Oh, I don't know; I thought if I asked you, you'd accept out of plain
+good nature, for fear of throwing me down, and I didn't want that."
+
+"Well, as it happened, I was determined to let the first advances come
+from you, for very much the same reason. Until just now, when I was so
+afraid you'd room with some one else that I couldn't wait another
+minute. I've lost all sense of maidenliness, you see."
+
+"Maidenliness be hanged. You don't have to be maidenly when you've won
+your numerals at track."
+
+That was on a Saturday. James had been out of town with the football
+team and did not return till late that evening. The next day he and
+Harry walked out to their old home together for their regular Sunday
+dinner with Aunt Selina. On the way they discussed at length the fine
+points of the game of the day before, in which James had played right
+half with great distinction. Presently he inquired:
+
+"By the way, how about the fall meet yesterday? How did you come out?"
+
+"Oh, fairly well. I only entered in the low hurdles, but I came out all
+right."
+
+"All right?"
+
+"Yes--first."
+
+"What? Do you mean to say that you got first place in the hurdles?"
+
+"Substantially that, yes."
+
+"Good Lord. I hadn't heard a thing. Went straight to bed when I got home
+last night and only got up this morning in time for Chapel. Why, it's
+the best ever, Harry! You get your numerals. You must be about the first
+man in your class to do that. What was your time?"
+
+"Pretty rotten. Twenty-five two."
+
+"Not so bad. Gee, but that's fine for you, child!"
+
+"I'm glad you're pleased, James."
+
+"It isn't merely the getting of your numerals in the fall meet, either.
+It means that you'll be one of the main gazabes in the track world from
+now on, if you work. There's no one here that can make better time than
+you in the hurdles, bar Popham, who makes such a fool of himself they
+can't use him, mostly."
+
+"Oh, damn," said Harry softly and slowly.
+
+"What's the matter? Forgotten something?"
+
+"No. I can't forget something, that's the trouble."
+
+"Well, what _is_ biting you?"
+
+"Only that if I hear the name of Popham much more, I believe I shall go
+mad on the spot."
+
+"Oh, don't take it so hard as that. Most likely you'll be able to beat
+him out anyway, if you make progress, and he's likely to drink himself
+out of college anyway before--"
+
+"Shut up, James, for Heaven's sake!" There was real anger in Harry's
+tone, and James turned and looked at him with surprise. "You're as bad
+as every one else--worse! Don't _you_ know me better than to suppose
+that all my chances of happiness in college, in this world, in the next,
+depend on Popham's drinking himself to death? Do you think it's pleasant
+for me to know that every one considers my--my success, I suppose you'd
+call it, dependent on whether that rounder stays off probation or not?
+You make me sick, James."
+
+James remained silent a moment. "No offense meant," he said gently. "I'm
+sure I'm sorry if--"
+
+"Oh, rot!" Harry disclaimed offense by slipping his hand through his
+brother's arm. "Only you don't seem to _see_, James. That's what bothers
+me."
+
+"Well, no; I'm afraid I don't. It will be a great thing for you if you
+get your Y next year. Do you think it's low of me to wish that Popham,
+who is no good anyway, should get out of your way?"
+
+"No; the wish is kindly meant, of course.... But this idea that my whole
+worldly happiness is tied up with Popham takes the pleasure out of it
+all, somehow. I don't give a continental whether I get my Y or not,
+now."
+
+"Oh, come on. Don't be morbid."
+
+"No. I've a good mind not to go out for track any more."
+
+James made no answer to this, and the two walked on in silence till they
+had reached the house. As they walked up the front steps James said:
+
+"You must tell Aunt Selina all about this. She'll be awfully glad to
+hear about it."
+
+"Including Popham," said Harry in a low voice. James made no reply to
+this, for it scarcely called for a reply, but his lips were ever so
+slightly compressed as he walked through the front door.
+
+During the idle months that followed Harry used his spare time for
+efforts in another and wholly different direction--a literary one. He
+became what is known in the parlance of the college as a "_Lit._
+heeler"; that is, he contributed regularly to the _Yale Literary
+Magazine_. For the most part his contributions were accepted, and in the
+course of a few months his literary reputation in his class equaled his
+athletic fame. His verses, written chiefly in the Calverly vein, were
+equally sought for by both the _Lit._ and the _Record_, the humorous
+publication, and his prose, which generally took the form of short
+stories with a great deal of very pithy, rapid-fire dialogue in them,
+was looked upon favorably even by the reverend dons whose duty it was to
+review the undergraduates' monthly offerings to the muses.
+
+"Has a cinder track been laid to the top of Parnassus?" wrote one who
+rather prided himself on his quaint and whimsical fancy. "Do poets
+hurdle and sprint where once they painfully climbed? Do the joyous Nine
+now stand at the top holding a measuring tape and wet sponges, instead
+of laurel wreaths, as of old? Assuredly we shall have to answer in the
+affirmative after reading the story 'Quest and Question' which appeared
+in the last issue of the _Lit._, for not only is the writer of this, the
+best and brightest offering of the month, a mere freshman, but a
+freshman who, it seems, has distinguished himself so far for physical
+rather than mental agility. The 'question' about Mr. Wimbourne appears,
+indeed, to be whether the fleetness of his metrical feet can equal that
+of his material ones," etc.
+
+All this amused Harry, who, it is to be feared, sometimes laughed at
+rather than with his reviewers; and it gave him something to think about
+outside of his studies and his classmates, both of which palled upon him
+heavily at times. But he was irritated from time to time by the way in
+which even literary recreation was looked upon, by the undergraduate
+body. A casual and kindly remark of a classmate, "Hullo, I see you're
+ahead in the _Lit._ competition," would often throw him into a state of
+restless depression from which only the soothing presence of Trotwood
+could reclaim him.
+
+"Isn't it awful, Trotty," he once complained; "Euterpe (she's the lyric
+muse, you know), has deserted me. I haven't been able to write a line
+for a month. Of course the loss to the world of letters is almost
+irreparable, but that's not the worst of it. You see, if I can't write,
+I shan't do well in the _Lit._ competition, and if I don't do well I
+shan't make the chairmanship, and if I don't make the chairmanship in
+the competition, I shan't make a senior society, and wouldn't that be
+terrible, Trotty?"
+
+"Cheer up, old cow; you probably won't make one anyway," suggested
+Trotty reassuringly, and Harry laughed.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+The football game with Harvard was played in New Haven that year, and
+Harry took Aunt Selina to it. Aunt Selina had never seen James play, and
+was anxious to go on that account, though she had not been to a game for
+many years, and even the last one she had seen was baseball.
+
+"You must explain the fine points of the game to me, my dear," she told
+him as they drove grandly out to the field in her victoria. "You see, I
+have not been to a game since the seventies, and I daresay the rules
+have changed somewhat since then. I used to take a great interest in it,
+but I've forgotten all about it, now."
+
+They were obliged to abandon the victoria at some distance from the
+stands, rather to Aunt Selina's consternation, for she had secretly
+supposed that they would watch the play from the carriage, as of old.
+She was consequently somewhat bewildered when, after fifteen or twenty
+minutes of such shoving and shouldering as she had never experienced,
+she found herself in a vast amphitheater which forty thousand people
+were trying to convert into pandemonium, with very fair success. As they
+wormed their way along the sidelines toward their seats, a deafening
+roar suddenly burst from the stands on the other side of the field,
+which caused Aunt Selina to clutch her nephew's arm in affright.
+
+"Harry, what _is_ it?" she asked. "_What_ are they making that frightful
+noise about?"
+
+"That's the Harvard cheer," replied Harry calmly. "You'll hear the Yale
+people answering with theirs in just a minute."
+
+The Yale people did answer, but it would be too much to say that Aunt
+Selina heard. She was vaguely conscious of going up some steps and being
+propelled past a line of people to what Harry told her were their seats,
+though she could see nothing but a narrow bit of board. Nevertheless she
+sat down, and tried to accustom her ears and eyes to chaos; just such a
+chaos, she thought, as Satan fell into, only larger and noisier.
+
+"Here we are," Harry was saying cheerfully, "just in time, too. The
+teams will be coming on in a minute or two. What splendid seats James
+has got us, bang on the forty yard line. Why, we're practically in the
+cheering section! Do you know the Yale cheer, Aunt Selina? You must
+cheer too, you know; it's expected of you.... Here comes the Yale
+team...."
+
+Aunt Selina lost the rest, as chaos broke forth with redoubled vigor.
+She saw a group of blue-sweatered figures run diagonally across the
+field, and thought the game had begun.
+
+"Which is James?" she asked feverishly, feeling chaos work its way into
+her own bosom. "Do you think he'll win, Harry? Oh, I do hope he'll
+win!"
+
+When the team lined up for its short preliminary practise Harry pointed
+James out to her in his place at right halfback.
+
+"I see," she said, gazing intently through her field glasses, "he's one
+of those three little ones at the back. Does that mean that he'll be the
+one to kick the ball? I'd rather he kicked it than be in the middle of
+all that tearing about. Poor boy, how pale he looks!"
+
+"He won't look pale long," said Harry grimly.
+
+Aunt Selina by this time felt every drop of sporting blood in her course
+through her veins. "Which is the pitcher, Harry?" she inquired
+knowingly, and was not in the least abashed when her nephew informed her
+that there was no pitcher in football.
+
+"Well, well," said she indulgently, "isn't there really? Things do
+change so; I can't pretend to keep up with them. I remember there used
+to be a pitcher in my time, and Loring Ainsworth used to be it."
+
+Just then the teams set to in deadly earnest, and conversation died. In
+bewildered silence Aunt Selina watched the twenty-two players as they
+ran madly and inexplicably up and down the field, pursued by the
+fiendish yells of the spectators, and wondered if in truth, she were
+dead and this--well, purgatory.
+
+She made no attempt to understand anything that was going on down on the
+field, or even to watch it. She turned her attention to Harry; he seemed
+to be the most familiar and explicable object in sight, though she
+wondered why he should leap to his feet from time to time shouting such
+nonsense as "Block it, you ass!" or "Nail him, Sammy, nail him!" or
+"First down! Yay-y-y!" Presently she became aware of a growing intensity
+in the excitement. The players seemed to be moving gradually down toward
+one end of the field, and short periods of breathless silence in the
+audience punctuated the shouts. She heard cries of "Touchdown!
+Touchdown!" emanate from all directions, but they meant nothing to her.
+The players moved further and further away, till they were all huddled
+into one little corner of the field. Every time they tumbled over
+together in that awful human scrap-heap she shut her eyes, and did not
+open them again till she was sure it was all right. Finally, after one
+of those painful moments, there was a relapse of chaos, fifty times more
+severe than any of the previous attacks. Women, as well as men,
+shrieked like maniacs, and threw things into the air. Trumpets bellowed
+and rattles rattled; somewhere in the background was a sound of a brass
+band, of an organized cheer. Hats and straw mats flew through the air in
+swarms.
+
+"What is it?" shrieked Aunt Selina. "Who won? Who won?"
+
+"It's a touchdown!" Harry shouted in her ear. "For Yale! It counts
+five!" (It did, then.) "And James did it! James has made a touchdown!"
+And in a moment Aunt Selina had the unusual pleasure of hearing her own
+name shouted in concert by ten or fifteen thousand people at the top of
+their voices.
+
+"--rah rah rah Wimbourne! Wimbourne! Wimbourne!" shouted the crowd, at
+the end of the long Yale cheer, and they went on shouting it, nine
+times; then another long cheer, and nine more Wimbournes, and so on.
+
+It was a great moment. Is it to be wondered that Aunt Selina, who did
+not know a touchdown from a nose-guard, shrieked with the others and
+wept like a baby? Is it strange that Harry, to whom the event meant more
+than to any other person among the forty thousand, should have forgotten
+himself in the expression of his natural joy; should have forgotten
+where and what and who he was, everything but the one absorbing fact
+that James had made a touchdown? We think not, and we have reason to
+believe that every man jack out of the forty thousand would have agreed
+with us. One did, we know. She thought it was the most natural thing in
+the world, though it did set her coughing and disarranged her hat and
+veil beyond all hope of recovery without the assistance of a mirror, not
+to mention a comb and hairbrush. And Harry needn't apologize any more,
+for she wouldn't hear of it; and the way she had behaved herself, in the
+first excruciating moment, was a Perfect Disgrace. So they were quits on
+that matter, and might she introduce Mr. Carruthers? Mr. Wimbourne. Was
+Harry surprised that she knew who he was? Well, she would explain, and
+also tell him who she was herself, if she could ever get the hair out of
+her mouth and eyes.
+
+For it must be explained that Harry, in his transports of exultation,
+had behaved in a very unseemly manner toward his next-door neighbor on
+the right hand. Aunt Selina, who sat on his left, had sunk, exhausted
+with joy and excitement, to her seat as soon as she was told that James
+had made a touchdown, and Harry, whose feelings were of a nature that
+demanded immediate physical expression, had unconsciously relieved them
+on the person of his other neighbor, who still remained standing; never
+noticing who or what she was, even that she happened to be a young and
+attractive woman. Harry never could remember what he had done in those
+hectic seconds that immediately preceded his awareness of her existence;
+according to her own subsequent account he had slapped her violently
+several times on the back, put his arm around her, shaken her by the
+scruff of her neck and shouted inarticulate and impossible things in her
+ear.
+
+The interval of hair-recovery was tactfully designed to give Harry a
+moment's grace in which to recall, if possible, his neighbor's identity;
+she was perfectly able to tell who she was with the hair in her mouth
+and eyes, proof of which was that she had been talking in that condition
+for the past few minutes. Harry was grateful for the intermission.
+
+"Why of course I know you!" he exclaimed, as soon as the dying away of
+the last nine Wimbournes made conversation feasible. "It was stupid of
+me not to remember before. Do you remember; dancing school?.... It must
+have been ten years ago, though; and you _have_ changed!"
+
+"Yes, I suppose I have changed--thank Heaven!" The exclamation given
+with a smile through a now unimpeachably neat veil, seemed in some
+subtle, curious way to vindicate Harry, to emphasize his innocence in
+failing to recognize her. "I know what I looked like then, all long
+black legs and stringy yellow hair--"
+
+"Not stringy," said Harry, recognizing his cue; "silky. I remember the
+long black--the stockings, too. And lots of white fluffy stuff in
+between; lace, and all that.... And we used to dance a good deal
+together, because we were the two youngest there, and you were so nice
+about it, too, when you wanted to dance with the older boys. But how did
+you know me? Haven't I changed, too?"
+
+"Oh, yes; but not so much. Boys don't. Beside, I knew your aunt by
+sight...."
+
+"I'm sorry, I forgot," said Harry. "Aunt Selina, do you know Miss
+Elliston? And Mr. Carruthers, my aunt."
+
+"Madge Elliston," corrected the girl, smiling, "you know my mother, I
+think, Miss Wimbourne."
+
+"Indeed I do, my dear; I am delighted to meet her daughter," said Aunt
+Selina, who had had time to recover her customary _grande dame_ air, "I
+knew her when she was Margaret Seymour; we used to be great friends."
+
+And so forth, through the brief but blessed respite that follows a
+touchdown. There is no need to quote the conversation in full, for it
+degenerated immediately into the polite and commonplace. If we could
+give you a picture of Madge Elliston during it, if we could do justice
+to the sweetness and deference of her manner toward Aunt Selina, her
+occasional smile, and the easy way she managed to bring both Harry and
+Mr. Carruthers into the conversation, that would be a different thing.
+
+The next kick-off brought it to an end, and all parties concerned turned
+their attention once more to the field. Harry attempted to explain some
+of the rudiments of the game to Aunt Selina, who confessed that her
+recollections of the rules of the seventies were not of material
+assistance to her enjoyment. And so passed the first half.
+
+"Do you know, I believe I know exactly what you're thinking of?" was the
+next thing Harry heard from his right. It was between the halves; Miss
+Elliston was in an intermission of Mr. Carruthers, and Harry was
+listening in silence to "Fair Harvard," which was being rendered across
+the field.
+
+"Do you?" he replied. "Well, I'll tell you if you're right."
+
+"You were thinking of 'Forty Years On.'"
+
+The smile died from Harry's face, and he paused a moment before
+replying, almost gruffly:
+
+"Yes, I was, as a matter of fact. How did you guess it?"
+
+"Oh, I know all about you, you see." She stopped, and her silence seemed
+to Harry to mean "I'm sorry if I've hurt you; but I wish you'd go on and
+talk to me, and not be absurd." So he threw off his pique and went on:
+
+"I don't know how you know about my going to Harrow, nor how you know
+anything about 'Forty Years On,' and I don't care much; but I put it to
+you, as man to man, isn't it a song that's worth thinking about?"
+
+"It is! There never was such a song."
+
+"Not even 'Fair Harvard'?"
+
+"No."
+
+"Not even 'Bright College Years,' to which you will shortly be treated?"
+
+"Not even that." They exchanged smiles, and Harry continued, with
+pleasure in his voice:
+
+"Well, it is a relief to hear some one say that, in a place where 'For
+God, for country, and for Yale' is considered the greatest line in the
+whole range of English poetry. But of course I'm a heretic."
+
+"You like being a heretic?" The question took him by surprise; it was
+out of keeping, both in substance and in the way it was asked, with Miss
+Elliston's behavior up to this point. He gathered his wits and replied:
+
+"Oh, yes; who doesn't? Is there any satisfaction like that of knowing
+that every one else is wrong and you alone are right?"
+
+"I suppose not! That's the main danger of heresy, don't you think?
+Subjective, not objective. Being burned at the stake doesn't matter,
+much; it's good for one rather than otherwise. But thinking differently
+from other people merely for the pleasure of being different, and above
+them--there's danger in that, isn't there?"
+
+"Then there is no such thing as honest heresy?"
+
+"That was not what I said." This remark, spoken gently and with a
+quizzical little smile, had none of the sharpness that cold type seems
+to give it. Adopting something of her manner, Harry pursued:
+
+"But I am not an honest heretic?"
+
+"I didn't say that, either." Again the smile, which seemed to be
+directed as much toward herself as toward him, softened the words. "And
+aren't you rather trespassing on female methods of argument?"
+
+"I don't understand."
+
+"Applying abstract remarks to one's own case; that's what women are
+conventionally supposed to do. But don't let's get metaphysical. What I
+want to say is that, though I think 'Forty Years On' is incomparably
+finer, as a song, than 'Bright College Years,' I wouldn't have it
+changed if I could. The 'For God, for country, and for Yale' part, I
+mean; and 'the earth is green or white with snow,'--a woefully
+under-appreciated line.... There is something priceless, to me, in the
+thought of a great crowd of men, young and old, getting up and bellowing
+things like that together, never doubting but that it's the greatest
+poetry ever written. That's worth a great deal more, to me, than good
+poetry.... They're all such dears, too; the absurdity never hurts them a
+bit!"
+
+"By George," said Harry slowly, "you're right. I never thought of that
+before. It is rather a priceless thought."
+
+"Yes, isn't it? It's the full seriousness of it that makes it so good.
+'For God, for country, and for Yale'--it's no anti-climax to them; it's
+the way they really feel. It's absurd, it's ridiculous. But I love it,
+for some reason."
+
+"That's it. You make me see it all differently.... You mean, I suppose,
+that if we could start from the beginning with a clean slate, we would
+choose 'Forty Years On,' or something like it, every time. But now that
+we've got the other, and they sing it like that, it seems just as good,
+in its way ... so that we wouldn't like to change it...."
+
+He wanted to add something like "What an extraordinary young person you
+must be, to talk of such things to me, a stranger, under such
+conventional circumstances," but a simultaneous recurrence of Mr.
+Carruthers and the game prevented him. It is doubtful if he would have
+dared, anyway.
+
+He spoke no more to her that day, except to say good-by and ask if he
+might call. Nor did he think much more of her. We would not give a false
+impression on this point; he was really much more interested in the game
+than in Miss Elliston, and after the second half was fairly started
+scarcely gave her another thought. But in the moment that intervened
+between the end of their conversation and the absorbing scurry of the
+kick-off it did occur to him that Madge Elliston had grown up into an
+unusual girl, a girl whom he would like to know better. Their short
+conversation had been as different from the ordinary run of football
+game civilities between young men and maidens as champagne from water.
+Harry liked girls well enough, and got on well with them, but in general
+they bored him. He had never met one, except Beatrice Carson, with whom
+he was able to conduct anything approaching an intellectual
+give-and-take, and even Beatrice was no more than an able follower in
+his lead. Madge Elliston was a bird of a very different feather; she had
+undeniably led him during every moment of their conversation. It was a
+new sensation; he wondered if it would always be like that, in future
+conversations.
+
+But football was uppermost in his mind for the remainder of that day, at
+least. He was proud and pleased beyond all expression about James, and
+longed to grasp his hand in congratulation. But he had to go all the way
+home with Aunt Selina after the game was over, and when at last he
+reached Berkeley Oval he met James hurrying away somewhere and could
+give him only the briefest and vaguest expressions of pleasure. On
+returning to York Street he learned that the team was to have a banquet
+that evening, in the course of which they would elect their captain for
+the next year. It occurred to him that it would be nice if James were
+elected, and it gave him pleasure to hear Trotwood and others say that
+his chance was as good as any one's.
+
+He stayed up to hear the result of the election, which when it came was
+disappointing. James had missed the honor, less, apparently, because he
+was not good enough, than because some one else was considered even
+better. Harry was sorry, though he lost no sleep over it. When he saw
+James next morning, he spoke first of what was uppermost in his heart.
+
+"James," he said impulsively, seizing his brother's hand and hanging on
+to it as he spoke; "I want to say a whole lot more about yesterday. I
+don't mind saying you're the greatest thing that ever came down the
+pike, and I'm proud to own you!" and more in the same vein, which James
+received with smiling protests and remarks of a self-depreciatory
+nature. But when Harry ended up "And I'm sorry as heck about the
+captaincy," his manner changed.
+
+"Oh, that's all right," he said. His face became grave, his whole
+attitude seemed to add: "And we won't talk any more about that, please;
+it's a sore subject."
+
+Harry's easy flow of talk stopped short, and a new feeling filled his
+mind. "Good Heavens, James cares, actually cares about the confounded
+thing," he thought, and dropped his brother's hand.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER X
+
+RUMBLINGS
+
+
+"Please, sir, could you give me any dope for the _News_ about your
+coming back to coach the football team?" asked a timid voice from the
+doorway.
+
+"No, heeler, no; I've already said I wouldn't give anything about that
+till I made up my mind, and I haven't yet." Thus James, more petulantly
+than was his wont, from his chair below the green-shaded lamp. The
+heeler, obviously a freshman, blinked disappointedly through the
+half-gloom for a few seconds and then moved to go.
+
+"Wait a bit," said James, his good-humor restored; "I'm sorry, heeler.
+But when I tell you that you're the thirteenth person that has come in
+at that door since seven o'clock, and that I've got a hundred pages of
+economics to read for to-morrow, perhaps you'll understand why I'm a
+little snappy about being interrupted."
+
+"That's all right," murmured the heeler vaguely. He was used to being
+snapped at by prominent seniors, but he was not used to being apologized
+to by them, and was not sure how he liked it.
+
+"I tell you what I'll do, though," went on James. "I'll give you a
+locker notice that ought to have been put in long ago. Here." He reached
+for the heeler's notebook and wrote in it: "All senior members of the
+football squad are requested to remove their clothes from their lockers
+as the space will be wanted for spring practice." "There, that'll put
+you fifty words to the good, anyway," he said brightly, and the heeler
+went his way in peace.
+
+James had conducted himself most creditably during his college course,
+and in the course of a few months would graduate if not exactly in a
+blaze of glory, at least in a very comfortable radiance. His standard of
+values had been a simple but satisfactory one; first, Football; second,
+Curriculum; third, Other Things. Any number of the steadier and worthier
+portion of the college world make this their creed, and find it works
+out extremely well. In the case of James, at least, such a standard
+gave a sane and well-balanced view of life. He took football with the
+most deathly seriousness, it is true, but only in its season, and its
+season, owing to the rigors of the New England climate, lasts hardly
+more than two months out of the twelve. During that time James
+practically hibernated when not actually on the football field, lived
+mainly on boiled rice and barley water, indulged in no amusements or
+vices, went about thoughtful and preoccupied, scarcely spoke even to his
+most intimate friends, studied only just enough to keep his stand above
+the danger mark and slept, as Harry rather vividly put it, "anywhere
+from thirty to forty hours out of the twenty-four." Out of the football
+season he was cheerful, cordial, loved the society of his fellows,
+smoked, drank in moderation, went to the theater, played cards, ate
+every kind of food he could lay his hands on and studied with a very
+faithful and intelligent interest. His classmates admired him during the
+football season, and loved him the rest of the year. Generally speaking,
+he conformed closely to his type; but his type was one of the best the
+college evolved.
+
+After the _News_ heeler left him on the evening in question he read
+economics uninterruptedly for about half an hour; then he took a
+cigarette from his case and lit it. The case was the gold one that Harry
+had brought him from Europe. He thought of Harry as he lay back in his
+chair after lighting the cigarette, and it is not too much to say that
+the thought of him impaired the pleasure of the first few puffs. Harry
+was, indeed, the chief, the only cloud on the horizon. It was too bad;
+he had begun so well. No one could have desired a more brilliant
+freshman year for him, what with his track work and his literary success
+and the excellent stand he maintained in his studies. And yet now, at
+about the middle of his sophomore year, he seemed to be going in any
+direction but that of fulfilling the promise of his first year. James
+could see for himself, and he had heard things.... Perhaps, after all,
+though, it was merely that he had begun too well; that his promise was
+fulfilled before it was fairly given. Many men graduated from college
+high in the esteem of their classmates without having distinguished
+themselves as much as Harry had in one year. Perhaps he was really going
+on exactly as well as before, only people were just beginning to find
+out that he was only an American boy of nineteen, not Apollo and Hermes
+rolled into one. That was what James hoped; but it occurred to him that
+if such had been the case the idea would have come to him as a
+certainty, not as a hope.
+
+Harry himself sauntered into the room before the cigarette was smoked
+out. Well, his outward appearance had not suffered, at any rate, was
+James' first thought. The slimness of his figure was unimpaired; his
+features retained their clear-cut lines of youth and innocence; his
+complexion shone with the glow of health, nothing else.
+
+"Give me a cigarette, and hurry up about it, too," were his first words.
+"I've just been under a severe mental strain.... It will probably be the
+last one for many moons, too, if I start in training to-morrow, like a
+good little boy."
+
+"Oh, of course; you've been to the call for track candidates," replied
+his brother, handing over the desired commodities. "Well, was it a good
+meeting?"
+
+"Inspiring. Don't you see what a glow of enthusiasm I'm in? First
+Dimmock got up and opened his mouth. 'Fellows,' he said, 'I'm darned
+glad to see you all here to-night, but I wish there were more of you. I
+see fewer men out than usual, and we need more than ever this year, and
+I'll tell you why. We want to do better in the intercollegiates. We
+think we are strong enough for the dual meets, but we want to make a
+better show in the intercollegiates. But we've got plenty of good
+material here, and with that we ought to get together and work hard and
+show lots of the old Yale spirit, for we'll need it all in the
+intercollegiates.'
+
+"Well, Dimmock is a good soul, if he has got a face like a boiled cod,
+and we cheered and clapped and patted him on the back. Then Macgrath
+took the floor. He said he thought we were going to have a good year,
+for there was plenty of material in sight, though he was sorry to see so
+few there to-night. He hoped we weren't forgetting what the Yale spirit
+was, because we particularly wanted to do well in the intercollegiates.
+He spoke of the new cinder track and the lengthening of the two-twenty
+yard straight-away, and ended with a hope that we would all get together
+and do Yale credit in the intercollegiates.
+
+"Then McCullen, who as perhaps you know, is manager, got up. As he is a
+particular friend of yours I won't try to give an exact account of what
+he said. His main points, however, were the fewness of the candidates
+present, the probable wealth of good material in hand, the new cinder
+track and the desirability of doing well in the intercollegiates.
+Lastly, a man called Hodgman, or Hodgson, or something, who was captain
+back in the eighties somewhere, was introduced. He spoke first of the
+new cinder track and straight-away, from which he lightly and gracefully
+went on to congratulating the team on having so much good material this
+year--though he saw fewer there to-night than he had expected. He closed
+with a touching peroration in which he intimated that the track team had
+in general come off well in regard to Harvard and Princeton, and what
+was wanted now was a little better showing against the other
+universities in the intercollegiates.... Oh, it was a glorious meeting!"
+
+James fully appreciated the humor of this narrative, as the sympathetic
+twinkle in his eye betrayed, but he merely observed after Harry had
+finished:
+
+"Well, that's true; they ought to do better in the intercollegiates.
+There's a good deal of feeling about it among the graduates, too, I
+believe."
+
+"Oh, it's _true_ enough." Harry, who felt the heat of the room, opened
+the window and lay down at full length on the window-seat, directly in
+the draught. "I'd take the word of those four noble, strapping,
+true-hearted men for it any day in the year. Only--only--oh, heck! Why
+should I have to sit up and listen to those boobs spend an hour in
+telling me that one thing? And what the devil do I care about it anyway,
+if it's the truest thing that ever happened?"
+
+"Well, I care about it, though I'm no good at track and not a member of
+the team," commented James.
+
+"Perhaps if you were on it you wouldn't care quite so much.--Well, I'll
+train and I'll practise regularly, not because I want Yale to win the
+intercollegiates, but because I think it's good for me. It is good for
+the figure, and I'd rather have my muscles hard than soft."
+
+"Well, it comes to the same thing, if you keep to it, and don't go
+gassing to the track people about your reasons."
+
+"I shall go gassing to every human being I've a mind to.--And I'll tell
+you one thing there's going to be trouble about, if they try to use
+coercion, or the Yale spirit gag. That's about the Easter vacation;
+there's some talk of making the track people stay here and train. I have
+other plans for Easter."
+
+"What are they?--For Heaven's sake, shut that window! What a fool you
+are, lying in a draught like that, with the track season beginning."
+
+"James, you are every bit as bad as any of them, at heart," said Harry,
+shutting the window. "You wouldn't give a continental if I caught
+pneumonia and died in frightful agony, except for its cutting the
+university of a possible place in the intercollegiates.--Why, I'm going
+down to the Trotwoods' place in North Carolina. Trotty's going to have a
+large and brilliant house-party. Beatrice is going; he met her in New
+York not long ago and took a great shine to her." For Beatrice, in the
+company of Aunt Miriam, was paying a visit to the country of her dreams.
+
+"What?" said James, pricking up his ears. "Beatrice going? Why hasn't
+Trotty asked me?"
+
+"Didn't dare, I suppose," said Harry indifferently. "I'll make him,
+though, if you like. That's the way the King's visits are arranged; he
+says he'd like to visit some distinguished subject, and a third party
+tells the distinguished subject, who asks the King, who accepts. It's
+complicated, but it gets there in the end."
+
+James did not seem particularly interested in points of etiquette in
+royal households.
+
+"What do you make out of this business of the Carsons?" he asked.
+
+"What business?"
+
+"Hadn't you heard? Aunt C. told me about it when I was there last
+Sunday. Beatrice's mother has made up her mind to sue for a divorce, and
+Beatrice has quarreled with her about it."
+
+"Good Lord! No, I hadn't heard a thing. I knew what the father was, of
+course.... Has anything in particular happened?"
+
+"Apparently, yes. Aunt C. can tell you more exactly than I. Beatrice has
+confided the whole thing to her--they're thick as thieves already; she
+gets on better with her than with Aunt Miriam, even. It seems that the
+husband, Lord Archibald, is on to the fact that his wife has had a good
+deal of money to spend lately; Uncle Giles having given her a lot since
+he got that--"
+
+"Yes, I know. Go on."
+
+"Well, that's about the whole thing. He's been bullying her, making her
+give it up to him ... and one thing and another, till she got desperate,
+and decided to try for a complete divorce. There's plenty of ground,
+even for English law ... but Beatrice's idea is that there's no need. Of
+course, it will mean a lot of scandal. She says that if she had been
+there to deal with him there would have been no talk about it, and that,
+at worst, a separation would have been all that was necessary."
+
+"Poor Lady Archie! She has had a tough time; I shall be glad to see her
+well out of it. A divorce--! Well, she has more sense than I gave her
+credit for."
+
+"It seems to me that Beatrice is quite right," said James, a trifle
+stiffly. "I should have thought that a divorce was the thing most to be
+avoided. It's not like an American divorce.... I understand her point
+very well."
+
+Harry did not reply to this; he simply growled--made a curious sound in
+the bottom of his throat. It amounted to a polite way of saying
+"Nonsense!" Apparently James accepted the implied rebuke, for he said no
+more on the subject. His brother also was silent for some time and gazed
+thoughtfully out on the lights of the Campus. "I've got troubles of my
+own, James," he said presently. "Have you heard anything about last
+night yet?"
+
+"Last night? No; what?"
+
+"Well, you've heard of Junius LeGrand, in our class?"
+
+"The actress? Yes."
+
+"Well, he's become rather a power in the class; not only he is making
+straight for the Dramat. presidency, but he's more or less the center of
+a certain clique; the social register, monogrammed cigarettes,
+champagne-every-night and abroad-every-summer type; the worst of it,
+that is. Well, I had a dreadful scene with him last night. I got a
+thrill and called him names, and he didn't like it."
+
+"What happened?"
+
+"There was a whole bunch of us sitting round at Mory's, and I was
+talking partly in French, as I usually do when--when mildly excited, and
+referred to him as a 'petite ordure.' Of course that isn't a pretty
+thing to call a person, even in French, and I probably shouldn't have
+said it if I hadn't been drinking. I meant it all, though, and was
+willing to stand by it, so when he got mad I called him other and worse
+things, in English. He wasn't tight, but he was pretty furious by that
+time, and there'd have been a free fight if people hadn't held us
+apart."
+
+"That's pretty poor, Harry," said James gravely, after a moment's
+consideration. "I don't mean your hating LeGrand--though you needn't
+have actually come to quarreling with him. But your being tight and he
+not puts you in the wrong right off.--What's all this about your
+drinking, anyway?"
+
+"I don't, so you could notice it.... That was the first time I ever got
+carried beyond myself, except about once--or twice. I'm not fond of the
+stuff; I only drink when I want to be cheered up."
+
+"That's bad, too; it's much worse to drink when you're in bad spirits
+than when you're in good," said James, with a wisdom beyond his
+experience.
+
+"After I've drunk, the good spirits are in me," retorted Harry, with
+rather savage humor.
+
+"It's no joking matter. Harry, will you cut it out entirely, if I ask
+you to?"
+
+"You'll have to do some tall asking, I'm afraid.--I don't like you much
+when you preach, James. I came here for sympathy, not sermons."
+
+"You won't get me to sympathize with your making a beast of yourself."
+
+"James, you know perfectly well you were tight as a tick at the football
+banquet in Boston last fall."
+
+"I'm no paragon, I admit."
+
+"You say that as if you thought you were, and expected me to say so. No,
+you're right--you're not. There!"
+
+James' humor suddenly changed. His grave face relaxed into a smile, he
+rose from his chair and wandered to the end of the room and back to the
+window-seat.
+
+"All right, we'll leave it at that; I'm not." He stood for a moment
+hands in pockets, smiling down at his brother. "It's nice to find one
+point we can agree on, anyway.... I won't bother you. After all, I
+suppose there's not much danger."
+
+"No ... I don't think I should ever really get to like the stuff." But
+Harry did not smile and fall in with his brother's mood; he had too much
+on his mind still. "I haven't told you the most disagreeable part of
+it," he went on. "Something happened to-day that made me sorry I had
+made a fool of myself. Shep McGee came to me to-day and said that he'd
+heard about our little _coup de théâtre_, and that he was sorry, but
+being one of Junius' particular friends he couldn't be friendly with me
+any more unless I apologized. I was sorry, because I've always liked
+Shep and got on very well with him."
+
+"What did you say?"
+
+"Oh, of course I was pretty peeved, and I messed it up still further. I
+told him I was glad he'd spoken, because henceforth my acquaintance
+would not be recruited conspicuously from Junius' special friends. I
+said that, strange as it might seem, I felt myself able to hand him,
+Shep, over to Junius' complete possession without a tear. I added that I
+thought he would find it safer in the future to choose his friends
+exclusively from the cause of Christ, and suggested that he might try to
+convert Junius to the same august organization...."
+
+Some explanation may be necessary to show why this remark outraged
+James' feelings to the extent it did. The organization to which Harry
+referred was Dwight Hall, the college home of the Y. M. C. A., Bible
+study classes, city and foreign mission work, in all of which branches
+of religious and semi-religious activity many of the worthiest
+undergraduates interest themselves. James particularly admired the
+organization and those who worked in it; he would have gone in for some
+department of its work himself had he possessed the qualities of a
+religious leader. Most of his best friends were Dwight Hall workers; the
+senior society to which he belonged was notorious for taking many of
+them into its fold yearly--so much so, indeed, that it has become a
+popular myth that an underground passage exists between Dwight Hall and
+the society hall.
+
+Consequently, Harry's contemptuous epithet, together with the tone in
+which he uttered it was quite enough to shock and pain James very much.
+But what put him out even more was the thought that Harry had said this
+to Shep McGee. The latter was one of the most respected men in Harry's
+class, and James had happened to take a particular fancy to him. He
+rather wondered at McGee's making a friend of such a person as LeGrand,
+but he did not stop to think about that now.
+
+"Harry," said he in a sharp, dry voice, "I think that's the rottenest
+remark I ever heard you or any one else make--if you used that
+expression to McGee."
+
+"I did."
+
+"I never thought you were capable of saying such a rotten thing, and I
+don't mind your knowing what I think of it. Are you going to apologize
+to McGee?"
+
+"No."
+
+"Well, I shall. If I can't apologize on your behalf, at least I can
+apologize for being your brother! What the devil do you mean by saying
+such a thing, in cold blood, to such a man? If you don't believe in the
+work yourself, can't you let other people believe in it? What do you
+believe in, anyway? Do you call yourself a Christian? Do you call
+yourself a gentleman? Do you flatter yourself that McGee isn't a hundred
+times a better man than you are?"
+
+"Rumblings from the underground passage." This remark, given with a
+cold, hard little smile, in which there was no geniality, no humor, even
+of a mistaken nature, amounted to a direct insult. Any reference made to
+a Yale man about his senior society by an outsider, be it a brother or
+any one else, is looked upon as a breach of etiquette--was at that time,
+at any rate. Harry's remark was worse than that; it was a rather
+cowardly thrust, for he was insulting a thing that James, by reason of
+the secrecy to which he was bound, could not defend.
+
+James did not reply; he simply grabbed up a hat and flung himself out of
+the room. Harry listened to his footsteps retreating down the stairs
+with a sinking heart; all his anger, all his resentment ebbed with them,
+and by the time they had died away there was nothing left but hopeless,
+repentant wretchedness. In the last twenty-four hours he had made a
+public disgrace of himself, he had fallen out with one of his best
+friends, and he had wounded the feelings of the last person on earth he
+wanted to hurt. And all because of his asinine convictions, because he
+thought his ideals were a little higher than other men's, his honesty a
+little more impeccable than theirs.
+
+He got up and left the room, cursing himself for a fool, cursing the
+fate that had brought him to this pass, cursing Dwight Hall, the senior
+societies, the university that harbored them, the school, the country
+that had put ideas into his head. But chiefest of all he cursed Junius
+LeGrand....
+
+But that did not do any good.
+
+The next morning he wrote and posted a note of apology to James:--
+
+ Dear James--I am sorry about last night--really, I am. I will
+ try not to make such an ass of myself again.
+
+ HARRY.
+
+The same evening he received an answer, also through the mail. It was
+simply a post-card bearing the words:
+
+ All right. JAMES.
+
+Its curt, businesslike goodwill and the promptness of its arrival
+comforted him somewhat. He wisely determined to keep away from his
+brother for the present and let time exert what healing effect it could.
+When they did meet again, after some ten days' interval, no reference
+was made to the episode. James was cordial, very cordial. Far, far too
+cordial....
+
+"Trotty," said Harry mournfully that evening; "I don't think you'd
+better room with me again next year. You can't afford to, Trotty. I'm a
+pariah, an outcast. Half the decent people in the class don't speak to
+me any more. You simply can't afford to know me. It'll ruin your
+chances."
+
+"I wish you'd shut up," said Trotwood. "I'm trying to study."
+
+"I mean it, Trotty. Don't pretend you don't hear, or understand. I'm
+giving you warning."
+
+"Rot," said Trotty, beginning to blush. "Damned, infernal rot."
+
+Harry sighed. "You're a good soul, Trotty. But it's true. You'll be
+known as the only man in the class that speaks to me, if you keep it
+up."
+
+"Will you shut up, you infernal idiot?"
+
+"No. I tell you, I'm going straight to the devil."
+
+Trotty rose from his chair and went to where Harry stood. He gently
+pushed him back to the wall, and pinning him to it looked him straight
+in the eyes. Harry was surprised to see that his face was set and
+serious.
+
+"Now," said Trotwood, "I'm going to talk about this business this once,
+and if you ever mention the subject again I'll break your damned head
+open. I'm going to room with you next year. I'm going to room with you
+the year after that, if you'll have me. If we ever split up, it'll have
+to be because you're tired of me--not afraid I'm tired of you, but
+actually tired of me. You're not going to the devil. If you do, I don't
+give a damn. What does friendship mean, anyway? Answer me that, damn
+you!--damn you!--damn you--" His voice failed, but his eyes still spoke.
+
+"All right, Trotty, we won't say any more about it, if you feel like
+that." Harry smiled as he spoke the words, but he felt more like
+crying.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XI
+
+AUNT SELINA'S BEAUX YEUX
+
+
+As Harry had anticipated, an issue arose between himself and the powers
+in the track world concerning the Easter vacation. The edict went forth
+that members of the 'varsity squad were to remain in New Haven, in
+strict training, through the holidays, and it was assumed that he was to
+be of their number. None of the powers asked him what he was going to
+do, and he did not think it worth while to inform them of his plans.
+
+One day, about a week before the vacation began, he did mention the
+subject casually to Judy Dimmock, the captain, as they walked in from
+practice together. Dimmock's consternation, as Harry said afterward, was
+pitiful to see.
+
+"But do you think you can get Macgrath's permission?" he asked,
+stupefied.
+
+"Why in the world should I bother about asking Macgrath's permission?"
+answered Harry. "Of course he wouldn't give it to me."
+
+"Do you mean to say that you're going without it?"
+
+"Of course I'm going without it."
+
+Dimmock was bewildered rather than irritated, though Harry's course of
+action defied his authority quite as much as the coach's. "You'll have
+to be dropped from the squad, then, I'm afraid."
+
+"So I supposed."
+
+"Harry, do you mean to say this work means no more to you than that?"
+stammered Dimmock, all his convictions seething in his brain. "Haven't
+you got any more respect for your college and traditions than that?
+Don't you see what good discipline it is to buckle down to work and keep
+at it, whether you like it or not?"
+
+Harry waited a moment before replying, wondering how he could silence
+Dimmock without angering him.
+
+"That would all sound very well, if it were the dean and not the track
+captain that said it," he ventured.
+
+"I'm afraid I don't understand you, Harry." There was such a complete
+absence of anger in the other's tone that Harry felt a momentary
+outburst of sympathy for this honest, good-tempered creature.
+
+"I'm sorry, Judy," he said. "The fact is, you take track deadly
+seriously, and I don't. That's all there is to it. So we're bound to
+disagree."
+
+So Harry went to the North Carolina mountains and shot quail and rode
+horseback and played bridge and carried on generally with James and
+Beatrice and Trotty and eight or ten others of his age. When he returned
+to New Haven he went out to the track field and jumped and ran about as
+before, but nobody paid any attention to him. Nor was he asked to rejoin
+the training table.
+
+"It'll do him good to let his heels cool for a while," observed Dimmock
+to Macgrath.
+
+"That's all very well, but you'd better not let them cool too long, if
+you want to get a place in the hurdles with Harvard," granted the coach.
+
+"I was afraid all along we'd have to take him on again," said the other.
+"He gets better and better on the track all the time, and queerer and
+queerer every other way. I don't trust him."
+
+"He's a second Popham," said Macgrath.
+
+About a week before the Harvard meet Dimmock approached the second
+Popham and with very commendable absence of anything like false pride
+asked him if he would please put himself under Macgrath's orders for the
+next few days and run in the meet. Harry graciously consented. He
+hurdled abominably badly for a week, showing neither form nor speed;
+then he hurdled against Harvard and beat their best men by a safe
+margin. He won a first place, and his Y.
+
+But that did not make him any more popular in the track world.
+
+Later in the spring Beatrice came on for a visit, anxious to see the
+university that Harry had preferred to Oxford. She and Lady Fletcher
+stayed with Aunt Selina; presently Aunt Miriam went on and left Beatrice
+alone there. She and Aunt Selina struck up one of those unaccountable
+intimacies that occasionally arise between people of widely different
+ages.
+
+"I do like your relations," she once told Harry; "I like your country
+and your university and your friends well enough, but I like your people
+even better. I like your Uncle James, though I'm scared to death of him,
+and Aunt Cecilia of course is a dear; but I like Aunt Selina best. I
+never saw such a person! I didn't know you had her type in America. She
+makes Aunt Miriam look like a vulgar, blatant little upstart!"
+
+"I know," said Harry, laughing. "Did you tell Aunt Miriam that?"
+
+"Something to that effect, yes. She laughed, and said that she had
+always felt that way in her presence, too.--There's more about Aunt
+Selina than that, though; there's something wonderfully human about her,
+at bottom. I have an idea she could get nearer to me, if she wanted to,
+than almost any one else, just because her true self is so rare and
+remote."
+
+Both Harry and James saw a good deal of Beatrice during her visit. Harry
+was supposed to be in training again, and it was his interesting custom
+to dine discreetly at the training table at six o'clock and then dash
+out to his aunt's and eat another and much more sumptuous meal at seven.
+James was scandalized when he heard of this proceeding, but he carefully
+refrained from saying anything to Harry about it; he merely smiled
+non-committally when Harry, with a desire of drawing him out, rather
+flauntingly referred to it.
+
+"A few weeks ago he would have cursed me out," he thought; "lectured me
+up and down about it. Now he won't say anything because he's afraid it
+would bring on another scrap." The thought made him feel lonely and
+miserable.
+
+James was greatly taken with Beatrice; that was quite clear from the
+first. He was attracted by her beauty, and still more by her apparent
+indifference to it. He found her more frank and sensible than American
+girls, whose débutante conventionalities and mannerisms bored and
+irritated him. He could not conceive of Beatrice "guying" or "kidding
+him along" on slight acquaintance, as most of his American friends did,
+or of Beatrice openly dazzling him with her beauty, or using her
+prerogative of sex by making him "stand around" before other people.
+
+One evening after dinner Beatrice, accompanied by both the brothers, was
+walking down one drive and up the other, as the family were in the
+habit of doing on warm spring evenings.
+
+"Are you both prepared to hear something funny?" she asked.
+
+"Fire away," they answered, and she continued:
+
+"Well, I'm probably going to come back here next winter and live with
+Aunt Selina!"
+
+Harry gave a long whistle.
+
+"This from you! Are you actually going to turn Yankee, too?"
+
+"I'm going to give the Yankees a chance, at any rate! You see, there are
+reasons why life for me wouldn't be particularly pleasant at home next
+year.... I'm going back with Aunt Miriam after Commencement, as we had
+planned, to try to patch it up with Mama, and then, if all parties are
+agreeable, as I'm pretty sure they will be, I shall come back in the
+autumn. The idea is for me to keep house for Aunt Selina and be her
+companion generally. I shall receive a stipend for my valuable services,
+so that I shall have the comfortable feeling of earning something. Aunt
+Miriam thinks it's a fine plan. What do you think about it?"
+
+"I think it's simply top-hole, to use the expression of your native
+land. But won't you find New Haven a trifle dull, after London, and all
+that?"
+
+"I rather think I shall, but in a different way. I shall be quite busy,
+and I thought I'd go to some lectures and things in the university and
+learn something.--Why don't you say something, James?"
+
+"I think it's a wonderful idea." James had been thinking so hard he had
+forgotten to speak. Did he perhaps regret his lately-made decision not
+to come back and coach the football team, but to take advantage of a
+business opening in the Middle West? At any rate, he was startled to
+observe what a leap his heart gave when Beatrice said she was coming
+back. Was it possible, he asked himself, that he was really going to
+care for this girl, with her dark brown eyes and her aloof,
+aristocratic, unchallenging ways?...
+
+But he was undeniably glad she was coming back, and found occasion to
+tell her so more fully another time, when they were alone.
+
+"I'm particularly glad," he added, "on Harry's account. He needs some
+one to keep an eye on him; do you think you can do it?"
+
+"I've done that for some years," said Beatrice, smiling. "I've been more
+of a brother to him than you have, really. Why on earth did you never
+come over and see him all that time, James?"
+
+"Heaven knows.... I was lazy; I got in a rut. I wish I had, now."
+
+"Why, nothing's going wrong, I hope?"
+
+"Oh, damnably!--I beg your pardon. When he first came back he did
+certain things that used to get on my nerves, and I, like a fool, let it
+go on that way, thinking that he was all wrong and I was all right. It's
+only lately that I've come to see better ... and now, when he
+particularly needs some steadying influence, I can't give it to him. You
+see, he gets on other people's nerves, too; he and his ideas--"
+
+"Ideas?"
+
+"Yes; fool notions he got about the way things are done in England--"
+
+"Isn't that a trifle hard?"
+
+"Oh, the ideas may be all right, but not the way he applies them.... At
+any rate, they, or something else, are playing the deuce with his
+college course. He's getting in Dutch, all around--"
+
+"In Dutch," murmured Beatrice. "Oh, I do like that!" But James did not
+notice the interruption.
+
+"And while I see all this going on I have to stand aside and let it go
+on, because when I say anything it doesn't do any good, but only
+irritates him and makes him worse."
+
+"I see. Well, I'm always willing to do what I can for Harry, but I'm
+afraid I haven't any real influence over him, either."
+
+"Oh, yes, you have. He has the greatest respect for you."
+
+"Not nearly as much as you think." Her usually calm expression was
+clouded; she seemed disturbed about something. Why did James feel a
+momentary sinking of the heart when he noticed the seriousness of her
+face and manner? It was nothing, though; gone again in a second.
+Beatrice continued, in a more optimistic tone:
+
+"But I honestly don't think, James, that there's much to worry about. I
+don't mean that he mayn't get into scrapes, but I don't think that
+there's anything seriously wrong.... I have always had the greatest
+faith in him--not only in his intellect, but in his character. So has
+Uncle G.; he expects great things of him, says he has just that
+combination of intellect and balance that results in statues in public
+places."
+
+"The genius in the family is all confined to him; I'm glad you realize
+that!" James could not help being a little rasped by her harping on the
+good qualities of his brother, nor could he help showing it a little. He
+immediately felt rather ashamed of himself, however, for Beatrice
+replied, in a gently startled tone:
+
+"Why, James, how bitter! You don't expect me to fling bouquets at your
+very face, surely! I throw them at you when I'm talking to Harry!"
+
+"You must throw a good lot of them, then, for you see him alone often
+enough," was the somewhat gruff reply. Beatrice must have considered it
+rather a foolish remark, for she paid no attention to it.
+
+Harry's attitude toward her decision, as expressed in his next
+_tête-à-tête_ with her, was rather different from that of his brother.
+
+"Beatrice," said he, "of course I'm pleased as Punch about your coming
+here next year, both on my own account and on Aunt Selina's, and all
+that sort of thing; but I hope you won't think it rude of me if I ask
+why on earth you're doing it. Of course, I know there are family
+unpleasantnesses, and that you aren't particularly interested in London
+balls, but that doesn't explain to me why, when you really do occupy an
+enviable position over there, get asked everywhere worth going, in
+season and out, and all that, you should choose to be the paid companion
+of an old woman in a small New England town. And I don't believe it's
+Aunt Selina's _beaux yeux_!"
+
+"No!" said Beatrice, laughing; "I don't believe it's quite all that,
+either!"
+
+"What will people think about it over there?" went on Harry. "What'll
+your mother say?"
+
+"I'm afraid Mama will be perfectly delighted, even if she doesn't say
+so," replied Beatrice, serious again. "The truth is, Harry, poor Mama
+and I don't gee very well, somehow.... Jane is a great comfort to her--a
+perfect daughter--she came out this year, you know."
+
+"Is she as much of a social success as you?" asked Harry with that
+frankness that was characteristic of their relation.
+
+"Much more so--in a way. She uses her gifts to much more effect."
+
+"She's not nearly as good-looking as you," persisted Harry.
+
+It was a remark thoroughly in keeping with the spirit of their
+comradeship, the kind of remark, expressive of a plain truth, nothing
+more, that they prided themselves on making and taking between
+themselves without the least affectation or self-consciousness. Yet
+Beatrice simply could not keep pleasure from sounding in her voice as
+she replied:
+
+"Well, no; I suppose not. It's the only thing in which I have the better
+of her, though. I'm very--"
+
+She began her reply in the old spirit, but could not keep it up. She had
+started to say, "I'm very glad you think that," then stopped herself,
+then wished she had gone on. It would have been perfectly consistent
+with their old "man-to-man" attitude, if she could have said it in the
+right way!
+
+Harry noticed her halting, and looked up at her quickly. He saw that she
+was blushing. "Good Heavens!" he thought; "I hope Beatrice doesn't think
+I'm paying her compliments!" The incident was slight, but it brought a
+new and disturbing element into their relation. Indeed, in that one
+little moment they ceased to remain boy and girl in their attitude
+toward one another, and became man and woman. They met often enough on
+the old terms of frankness and intimacy, but sex interest and suspicion
+always lurked in the background, ready to burst out and break up things
+at any moment.
+
+The spring wore on; Commencement arrived; James was graduated. Aunt
+Miriam, the James Wimbournes and numerous youthful James Wimbournes came
+to stay with Aunt Selina and see him graduate. Beatrice was also there
+and Harry was of course on hand. He took little part in the graduation
+festivities and amused himself chiefly by showing his two eldest male
+cousins, Oswald and Jack, the sights of the university and incidentally
+making them look forward with a healthy dread to the day when as
+freshmen first they would come to Yale.
+
+"This is the swimming-pool," he would tell them; "it doesn't look very
+big now, does it? Perhaps not! But it _seems_ pretty big, I can tell
+you, when the sophomores dump you in there, in the pitch dark, and tell
+you it's half a mile to shore and you've got to swim! And you have to
+scramble out as best you can. _They_ won't help you!"
+
+"They don't do that to _every_ freshman, though, do they?" hopefully
+inquired Oswald, a nice, plump, yellow-haired, wide-eyed youth of
+fourteen or so, the image of his mother.
+
+"Yes, Muffins, indeed they do, every one, whether they can swim or not,"
+replied Harry seriously. (Oswald was called Muffins because he was
+considered by his playmates to look like one. This reason usually did
+not satisfy older people, but after all, they did not know him as well
+as those of his own age, and had no kick coming, at all.)
+
+"I say, Harry, it's awfully decent of you to tell us all these things
+beforehand, so that we shall be warned when the time comes!" This from
+Jack, who was twelve and dark and looked like his father.
+
+"Harold Wimbourne, what on earth have you been telling those children
+about Yale College?" was Aunt Cecilia's indignant comment on his powers
+of fiction. "Neither of them slept a wink last night, for thinking about
+what the sophomores would do to them; and Jack asked me quite seriously
+if he thought his father would mind much if he went to Harvard instead,
+because he didn't think he could ever swim well enough to live through
+his freshman year! You ought to be ashamed of yourself!"
+
+Harry laughed unfeelingly, and refused to abate one jot of the horrors
+of hazing. He even wished it were all true, that these innocent and
+happy boys might have to go through with it all, that some one would
+ever be miserable in college beside himself. He scarcely spoke to James
+during the last few days, though James remained cordial and cheery
+enough toward him. But he was unnaturally cordial and forbearing, and
+that drove Harry into despair, especially as there was copious reason
+why James, under normal conditions, should be neither cordial nor
+forbearing. Harry had, a fortnight or so before Commencement, just after
+training was broken up, taken part in one of those engagements with the
+forces of law and order with which undergraduates are wont to relieve
+the monotony of their humdrum existence. First there had been strong
+drink, and plenty of it, after which came a period of vague but
+delightful irresponsibility, culminating in much broken glass, a clash
+with policemen and two or three arrests.
+
+Harry had escaped this latter ignominy, but as his name enjoyed equal
+publicity with those of the more unfortunate revelers, it did him little
+good. Nothing could possibly be less to the liking of such a person as
+James, as Harry realized perfectly at the time. He participated in the
+affair neither because he liked strong drink nor because he disliked
+policemen, but chiefly with a sort of desperate desire to force James'
+hand, to make his brother take him severely to task and end their mutual
+coolness in one rousing scene of recrimination and forgiveness.
+
+But no such thing happened; James did not make the slightest reference
+to the business! Harry also remained silent on the subject, at first
+because of his amazement, then out of obstinacy, and finally because he
+was genuinely hurt. If James preferred that they should be strangers to
+each other, strangers they should be. Meanwhile James remained silent,
+of course, not because he did not take enough interest in his brother,
+but because he took too much. He refrained from mentioning the row
+because he was afraid that a discussion of it would merely bring on
+another quarrel, which he wished of all things to avoid.
+
+So the two brothers bade good-by to each other for the summer in
+misunderstanding and mistrust, though their outward behavior was cordial
+and brotherly enough. James, who was starting almost immediately for the
+West, smiled as he shook the hand of his brother, who was going abroad
+for the holidays and said, "Well, so long; look out for yourself and
+don't take any wooden money." Harry, also smiling, replied in the same
+vein; but the smile died on his lips and the words turned to gall in his
+mouth as he thought what a bitter travesty this was of former partings,
+when their gaiety was either natural or intended to hide the sorrow of
+parting, and not, as now, wholly forced and affected to conceal the
+relief that each could not but feel in being far from the other.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XII
+
+AN ACT OF GOD
+
+
+It was five o'clock in the afternoon and five degrees above zero. It was
+also very windy, which made it seem colder to everybody except the
+thermometer; and as the thermometer alone exhibited signs of being able
+to stand a temperature of twenty or thirty or even forty degrees colder
+without suffering disagreeable consequences, that seemed rather unfair.
+For the wind, which was blowing not in hysterical gusts but in the calm,
+relentless, all-day-and-all-night, forty-to sixty-mile gale that you
+only get west of the Great Lakes, _did_ make it colder; there was no
+doubt about that. Else why did every one keep out of it as much as
+possible; walk on the protected side of the street, seek shelter in
+doorways while waiting for trolley cars, and so forth? Of course the
+wind made you colder; so much colder that when you were sheltered from
+it, if only for a moment, you felt comparatively warm, though it was
+still five degrees above zero. Unless, that is, you happened to be
+standing over one of those grated openings in the sidewalk that belched
+forth their welcome though inexplicable gusts of warm air into the outer
+world; if you could get a place over one of those--gee, but you were the
+lucky guy!
+
+That was the way you phrased it, at any rate, if you happened to be
+twelve years old and a newsboy with an income of--well, say thirty
+dollars a year, if that sounds sufficiently insufficient to provide
+anything approaching decent clothes, decent food and a decent place to
+live. If not, make it as little as you like. The point is that the
+annual income of a certain ten-year-old newsboy, by name of Stodger
+McClintock, was preeminently, magnificently insufficient to provide any
+of those commodities. As a consequence of which, Stodger was cold. As
+another consequence of which Stodger, the gay, the debonair, the
+unemotional, the anything but tearfully inclined, was very nearly in
+tears. People do actually suffer from the cold occasionally, even in
+this effete and over-protected age, and Stodger was suffering. The
+volcanic opening was all very well, but he could not stay there long.
+And the prospects for the night were bad, and bad even for supper....
+
+There were tears in James' eyes also as he hurried along from work, but
+they were entirely due to the wind. As soon as he perceived Stodger,
+however, who dashed out at him with the customary "Here's yer paper,
+mister!" at an unexpected place in the side street instead of at the
+corner as per custom, he realized that his (Stodger's) tears were not
+entirely due to the wind.
+
+"Well, Stodger! What are you doing down here?" he cried cheerfully.
+
+"Trine t' git woim." Stodger's diction at best was imperfect and it was
+now further impeded by a certain nasal fluency, the joint result of the
+cold and contemplation of domestic imperfections. But James understood,
+perfectly well.
+
+"Well, Stodger, it is cold, I'll have to grant you that!" he rejoined,
+and instituted fumbling operations into the pocket where he kept his
+loose silver. "Give me a _Star_ and a _Sun_ and a _Mercury_, too, will
+you? This is no time for economy; the announcement of the all-American
+football team is out to-night. Give me one of every paper you have!"
+
+Pecuniary transaction ensued, parallel with conversation.
+
+"And how do _you_ like this weather, Stodger?"
+
+"Me? Oh, _I_ don't mind."
+
+"Don't you? Well, I do, I'm afraid. This is just a little too cold for
+my pleasure. But then I'm not a husk, like you."
+
+"Well--" there was concession in Stodger's voice--"it's loike this. Some
+guys minds it, 'n' then they don't like t' unbutton their coats 'n' fork
+out a penny fer a paper. 'N' that makes bum bizniss. See?" Print is
+miserably inadequate to give an idea of Stodger's consonants.
+
+"I see. Stodger, did you ever hear of an act of God?"
+
+"Huh?"
+
+"Well, never mind. A cold snap like this is an act of God. Some natural
+cataclysm, something that can't be prevented or even foreseen. Well,
+sir, opposed as I am to indiscriminate giving, I'm going to break a rule
+this time. All bets are off when an act of God comes along. Here's half
+a dollar. Can you get something to eat and keep yourself warm over night
+with that?"
+
+"Sure I kin." Stodger grinned broadly for a second or two; then his face
+clouded. "Aw, naw. Not off you. I couldn't take that off you." He meant
+that only fools gave away money, and he did not want to put James in
+that category.
+
+"Why not?" James' smile, his unruffled good-humor, had their effect.
+Surely a god that smiled and looked like that could not be quite a fool,
+even if he gave away money. "Now stop your guff; take the cash and cut
+along. So long!... That was my trolley, dash it; you and your confounded
+scruples have made me miss my car, Stodger!... Well, let's take a look
+at the all-American football team. Stoddard of Harvard, Brown of the
+Army, Steele of Michigan...." He ran his eye down the list till
+interrupted by a sharp exclamation from his friend.
+
+"Gee, but he's a bum choice!"
+
+"Who?"
+
+"Steele."
+
+"Steele? Oh, I'm not so sure. He's death on running back punts...."
+
+"Aw, he _is_ not! I tell yer, he couldn't hang onto a punt if 'twas
+handed to him on flypaper by a dago in a dress suit, let alone run with
+it! My ole gran'mudder c'n run better'n him, any day!" Domestic troubles
+being for the nonce in abeyance Stodger was in a mood to let his tongue
+run free on a favorite topic.
+
+"Well, we'll have to put your grandmother in at all-America left half
+next year." Stodger knew as well as anybody when he was being laughed
+at, and held his peace. "I didn't know you were such a football fan,
+Stodger."
+
+"Aw, yes. I'm some fan." This without enthusiasm, in the bored tone in
+which one agrees to the statement of a self-evident fact.
+
+"Well, I wonder. Stodger, do you think you could recognize any
+all-America player if you saw him on the street, in ordinary togs?"
+
+"Sure I could."
+
+"How many years back?"
+
+"T'ree years ... oh, more; four, five years, mebbe!"
+
+"Well, I'm afraid you lose, Stodger!"
+
+"Aw, gwawn! Try me an' see!"
+
+"You've lost already, I tell you. You've been talking to an all-America
+player for the last ten minutes and never knew it!"
+
+"Aw, wotcha trine t' hand me! Run along 'n' tell it to the cop on the
+corner! Tell it to me gran'mudder, if you like; _she_'ll believe yer!
+You can't slip one like that on _me_, I tell yer!" Stodger's contempt
+was magnificent, but he rather marred the effect of it by adding
+suspiciously "Wotcheer?" which amounted to a confession that he might be
+wrong, after all.
+
+"Two years ago. Take a good look now, Stodger; see if you can't
+recognize me." James turned so that the sunset glow fell more strongly
+on his face. Stodger looked with all his eyes, but remained unconvinced.
+
+"Line, er back?" he inquired.
+
+"Back."
+
+"I gotcha now! Wimboine! Wimboine! Right half! Yale!" But experience had
+taught him that such dreams usually fade, and he went on, disappointed:
+"Aw, naw. Can't slip _that_ on me. You're not that Wimboine. You look a
+little bit like him, but you're not _that_ Wimboine. Brudder, p'raps.
+_You're_ no football player."
+
+"Why not?"
+
+"Too thin. _You_ c'd never tear through the line th' way _that_ feller
+did."
+
+"Oh, rot; we'll end this, here and now." James fumbled at length beneath
+his fur coat and produced the end of a watch-chain on which dangled a
+little gold football with his name, that of his college and the date of
+his achievement on it. Stodger, convinced, simply stared. It was as
+though Jupiter had stepped right down from Olympus. James, with a smile
+at his consternation, resumed his paper for the last minute or two
+before his car arrived.
+
+"Say, mister! Mister Wimboine! You got my tail twisted that time, all
+right! I'm a goat, I'm a simp, I'm a boob! You got my number! Call me
+wotch like!"
+
+"All right, Stodger, I will." James spoke and smiled through his
+reading. He had almost ceased to think of Stodger, who was more
+entertaining when incredulous, and was reading merely to kill time till
+his car arrived. Stodger's tongue was still wagging:--
+
+"Say, dey was a guy useter live down Chicago called Schmidt--Slugger
+Schmidt, that was a cracker jack--middle-weight--ever hear of him? I
+knew him, oncet ... he had a little practise bout wid Riley th' other
+night--you know, Hurrican Riley?--and laid him out in t'ree roun's....
+Say, mister, there goes yer car! That's the Poik Street car went!"
+
+"What? Oh, did it? Never mind; I'm going to walk." James was off; off
+almost before the words were out of his mouth, and Stodger, struck by
+the sudden curtness of his tone was afraid he had outraged the feelings
+of the god. Mister Wimboine had clearly been deeply displeased about
+something, and Stodger was sure it must have been something more than
+the all-America football team.
+
+Of course Stodger was not really responsible for James' displeasure and
+his sudden determination to walk the three miles that lay between him
+and his club and dinner, any more than was the composition of the
+all-America football team. It was something much more serious; something
+that made bodily exercise imperative lest cerebration around and around
+one little particular point should make him dizzy. For it was a very
+small thing that cerebration was busy on, even if it did represent a
+great deal to James; only a tiny paragraph at the bottom of the first
+page of one of the evening papers. The single headline had first caught
+his eye:--"Rates Heartache at $40,000," and then with unbelieving eyes
+he read on: "New Haven, Conn., Dec. 8. Myrtle Mowbray, a manicure living
+in this city, has filed a suit of breach of promise of marriage for
+$40,000 in the Superior Court here against Harold Wimbourne, a student
+in Yale University. Mr. Wimbourne is a member of an old and prominent
+New Haven family. He is a senior in the academic department."
+
+A sort of mental and emotional nausea overcame James as the meaning of
+those lines sank into his brain. The vulgar, degrading cynicism of the
+headline! Breach of promise, scandal, newspaper publicity--that was the
+sort of thing that happened to other people, not to one's self. Such
+things simply did not occur in families one knew, much less in families
+by the name of Wimbourne. James had always thought of that name as
+apart, aloof from such things, exempt from all undesirable publicity.
+His family pride was none the less strong for being so unconscious, so
+dormant; now that it was outraged it flamed forth in a scorching blaze.
+
+So loathing gave way to anger, and anger lasted a full mile and a half.
+It would have lasted longer if it had been concentrated on one person or
+thing, instead of directed against several persons, several things,
+several sets of circumstances, the order of things in general. For James
+was not angry at Harry alone; even he realized that before the mile and
+a half were up. He was angry at him at first, but that soon passed off
+somewhat; his anger seemed even to be seeking other objects,
+unconsciously--the Mowbray woman, Uncle James, himself, Yale University,
+the whole nature of man.
+
+But cerebration had a chance to get in a good deal of its fell work
+during those three miles. As he swung open the front door of the club
+and passed into the main lobby, with its teeming confusion of electric
+lights and bellboys, he was conscious of nothing but a quiet, deep,
+corroding disgust that seemed to be as old as all time. It seemed as if
+he had known of this disgrace for years; had almost had time to outlive
+it, in fact. His first impulse was to go into the bar and annex himself
+to one of the cheerful groups that would be congregating there at this
+hour, and turn his mind to something else. But almost immediately he
+remembered that practically every one there would also have read the
+evening paper, and he shuddered at the thought of their pitying glances.
+
+Automatically following his daily custom he cheeked his coat and hat at
+the cloak room and collected his mail from his post-box. Then he went
+straight to the one room in the club where he thought he was likely to
+be alone; a small reading-room usually popular in the afternoon but
+deserted by early evening. He found it empty, as he had expected. With a
+sigh of relief he turned out all the electric lights and threw himself
+on a couch in front of the open wood fire--a graceful though unnecessary
+compliment on the part of the club management to meteorological
+conditions.
+
+But unluckily his glance fell on the unopened letters he still held in
+his hand, and immediately his trouble was on him again. One of them he
+recognized as coming from his Uncle James and the other, bearing the
+post-mark of New Haven, was from Beatrice. With a slight groan of
+combined resignation and disgust he tore open his uncle's letter and
+read it by the flickering light of the fire.
+
+ Dear James:
+
+ Your young brother has made more of a mess of it than we hoped
+ would be the case. The Mowbray woman has brought suit for
+ $40,000, and is likely to get it, or a good part of it,
+ according to Raynham, whom I saw about the business yesterday.
+ She has letters and a spoken promise in the presence of
+ witnesses. We have nothing except the knowledge that Harry was
+ drunk when he wrote the letters and drunk when he spoke the
+ words, which is not much comfort. Still, Raynham thinks she can
+ be made to settle out of court, especially if we take our time.
+ We have got to show her first that the world will not come to
+ an end because a Wimbourne has been mixed up with a
+ woman--which it won't. It will be a matter, Raynham thinks, of
+ $15,000 at least; probably more.
+
+ What is going to become of the boy? Have you any influence
+ over him? If not, who has? It is about time somebody exerted
+ some on him, other than bad. He has much to fight against.
+ "Your aunt sends her love. Your affect. uncle,
+
+ JAMES WIMBOURNE.
+
+In spite of his fatigue and his disgust, James smiled as he finished the
+letter. It was so characteristic of Uncle James; the most conventional
+sentences, the ones that seemed to mean least, really meant the most.
+"Your aunt sends her love"; only a person who knew Uncle James could
+appreciate the consciously suppressed humor of that phrase. As if Aunt
+Cecilia were not in such a vortex of conflicting emotions over the
+affair that such a conventional message would not be as far from her as
+Bagdad! "He has much to fight against"; Harry had much to fight against;
+Uncle James knew what, and he knew that James also knew. Connotative
+meanings like these more than atoned for the unflinching frankness of
+certain other phrases.
+
+On the whole, James felt better for having read the letter, and opened
+Beatrice's with a lighter heart.
+
+ Dear James; (he read)
+
+ Jack Trotwood has just been here and told me that that
+ unspeakable woman is actually going to sue Harry for breach of
+ promise. I tried to get him to tell more, but he said that
+ that was all he had been able to get out of Harry. It's too
+ awful! You can imagine what a time I've been through, seeing
+ him at least once a week and not being able to say a word about
+ the whole business. I've had to depend on Jack Trotwood for all
+ my information, and naturally he hasn't wanted to say much. Do
+ you mean to say Harry hasn't written you all this term? I
+ cannot understand it at all.
+
+ Aunt Selina seems quite cut up about it, and wishes you were
+ here. 'Tell James to come,' she said when I told her I would
+ write you. I must confess, though, that I don't see what good
+ you could do--now. Of course, terrible as this suit is, it does
+ relieve things in one way, at least. Once we're quite sure it's
+ merely money she's after, it doesn't seem quite so bad. I even
+ think it is better now than it was early in the autumn, when we
+ thought he was actually fond of her.
+
+ There is no other news to give you; as you can imagine, we
+ have not been thinking of much else. Poor Harry, how sorry I am
+ for him! How much I wish I could help him, and how little I can
+ do!
+
+ As ever yours,
+
+ BEATRICE.
+
+This letter was less comforting than the other. Beatrice's words seemed
+to James to carry a veiled reproach with them; to implicate him much
+more closely in Harry's disgrace than he had as yet thought of
+implicating himself. "I don't see what good you could do--now;" "better
+now than it was in the early autumn--" such sentences could not but have
+their sting for the sensitive mind, and James was sensitive when Harry
+was concerned, and even more so when Beatrice was.
+
+Had he been negligent in regard to Harry? Oh, yes, he was perfectly
+willing to admit that he had, now that he came to think it over, though
+he would rather have had anybody other than Beatrice point out the fact
+to him--and that, doubtless, was because a comment from Beatrice would
+have twice the force of the same comment uttered by any one else. He had
+never really put himself out for Harry in any way, since the days when
+England seemed too far for him to venture to discover what the years
+were making of him. In the critical period of his senior and Harry's
+sophomore year he had shown himself entirely incapable of giving the
+friendship and sympathy and guidance that were needed. Jack Trotwood,
+and not he himself, had been Harry's best friend, in every sense of the
+phrase, for three years and more. And after graduation, he had come to
+Minneapolis.
+
+Then this degrading affair with the manicure. James had heard of that
+first through Beatrice, for Harry's letters, which had arrived at
+regular, though rather long, intervals, had ceased abruptly in
+September, at the beginning of the college year. That had been almost a
+relief to James. Harry's letters had been calculated to widen rather
+than bridge the gulf between them. They had been amusing and always
+cleverly written. A letter written on the previous Tap Day, dated
+conspicuously "Thursday, May 18, 7 P.M." (two hours after Harry had
+failed to receive an election to any senior society) had been a perfect
+masterpiece of omission. It ran pleasantly along on the weather, the
+outward appearance of the university, sundry little incidents
+of no importance or interest, the economic condition of the
+country--everything except Tap Day, himself, anything that would
+interest James. This letter had irritated James beyond all expression,
+yet at the same time he admired it for what it was worth, and hated
+himself for admiring it.
+
+And so, as he was obliged to learn from other sources of Harry's missing
+a senior society, so he was dependent on others for all his information
+_in re_ Myrtle Mowbray. In October Beatrice had written him that Harry
+had been seen much in the society of the woman, who conducted her
+business in connection with a barber shop situated conveniently for the
+patronage of the student body. Jack Trotwood had also written, somewhat
+timidly, to the same effect, evidently much perplexed about where his
+truest duty to Harry lay. Apparently there had been motor parties to
+neighboring country inns, more or less conspicuous carryings-on in
+restaurants about town, and so forth. Such tidings became more and more
+acute for a month, and then ceased. There was reason for hoping that the
+nonsense was all over. Then the thunderbolt of to-day.
+
+James had not really been much worried, before to-day. He had caught a
+glimpse of "the Mowbray woman," as he always thought of her, one day in
+the previous June, while in New Haven for Commencement. He had been
+strolling along Chapel Street with a group of classmates, and one of
+them called his attention to a female form emerging from a shop door,
+giving in a discreet undertone a brief explanation of her celebrity,
+ending with a vivid word of commendation--"Some fluff." James looked,
+and saw a pretty face. It had been but a fraction of a second, and the
+face was turned away from him; but it was enough to leave quite a
+lasting impression on his mind--an impression that had not been without
+its effect on his reception of the news of Harry's infatuation. A pretty
+face! Well, when all was said and done, Harry had not been the first man
+of his acquaintance to become enamored of a pretty face--and get over
+it. He did not approve of the alleged infatuation; the thought of it
+gave him considerable uneasiness. But, helped out by the impression, his
+optimistic temperament had battled with the uneasiness and in the end
+overcome it; prevented it, certainly, from growing into anything like
+anxiety, anything that would necessitate drastic and disturbing
+measures, such as pulling up stakes, for instance, and hurrying New
+Haven-ward.... Oh, how loathsomely lazy and indifferent he had been, now
+that he looked back on it all!
+
+A pretty face! The memory of it was still sharply out-lined on the back
+of James' brain and drove introspection and self-recrimination into
+momentary abeyance. A clear, slightly olive complexion, rising to a
+faint pink on the cheeks--artificial? Not as he remembered it; there was
+no suggestion of the chorus-girl--sharply-drawn eyebrows and dark hair.
+Above, a hat of some sort; below, a suit, preferably of dark blue serge.
+The impression had been recurrent in James' mind during these past
+months; not soon after it was received, in the summer; since then. There
+was something irritating and tantalizing about this circumstance; it was
+as though the impression had been strengthened by a second view. Where
+had he seen that face again, if at all? Yes, he had seen it, somewhere;
+he was almost certain of it. He was absolutely certain of it; he could
+remember everything--except the time and place. Which after all were
+important adjuncts to definite recollection--! No, he would not laugh
+himself out of it; he was sure. He would remember all about it some time
+when he least expected it.
+
+He left it at that, and listlessly lay at full length watching the fire
+and allowing his thoughts to wander from the all-absorbing topic and its
+octopus-like ramifications. The fire was fascinating to watch; he loved
+open fires and wished they would have one in this room every evening. It
+would be almost like a home to come back to, after work. It was
+particularly pleasant to watch, like this, in an otherwise dark room, as
+it cast its intermittent flare on the walls and furniture. It brought
+out the rich warm tones in the brown leather of the chairs and the oak
+of the wainscot, and picked out small particles of gilt here and there
+in the ceiling decoration, and set them twinkling back in a cheerful,
+drowsy way. From the dim outside world beyond the open door came
+occasional sounds of club life; the distant clatter of crockery, the
+swish of a passing elevator, a voice finding fault with a club servant.
+James listened to them at first, in a half-amused, idle sort of way;
+then gradually they faded from his consciousness and he was aware of
+nothing but the fire and its flickering yellow light.
+
+He watched the fire intently, absorbedly, with the lazy concentration
+with which a tired brain often fastens itself on some physical object,
+as though to crowd out other thoughts clamoring for admittance. The fire
+was beginning to burn low now, with flames that never rose more than a
+few inches above the logs. Every few moments a small quantity of
+half-burnt wood dropped off and fell to the glowing bed of coals
+beneath, and the flames broke out afresh in the place it fell from.
+James watched this process with a growing sense of expectancy; he seemed
+to be always waiting, waiting for the next fall; yet when the next fall
+came he was still waiting.... Was it only the fall of the coals that he
+was waiting for? It must be something else, something that had nothing
+to do with the fire at all; something much more important; something
+that he longed not to have come, yet, and at the same time wished were
+over.... He seemed now not to be lying at full length, but sitting on
+the broad arm of a chair. The fire-light's glow fell no longer on
+leather and oak, but on old flowered chintz and mahogany.... Now he was
+sitting no longer; he was bending over--bending low over something
+white; turning his ear so as to catch certain words that some one was
+uttering in a whisper; words that were indelibly burnt on his brain;
+words that were as inseparable from his being as life....
+
+Then in an instant the room, the fire, everything vanished; and in their
+place, filling his whole consciousness--that face! He knew it perfectly
+now, exactly when, where, all about it; no room for mistake or doubt any
+more! He started upright on the couch; his whole world seemed suddenly
+illumined by a blinding flash of light. In another instant he was aware
+that somebody had turned on the electric light, and of a face staring
+quizzically into his. He heard a voice.
+
+"Hello, you all alone in here, Wimbourne? You must be fond of the
+dark!--What are you looking so all-fired pleased about, I wonder?"
+
+"Oh--Laffan! How are you?... Nothing much; I just thought of something,
+that's all."
+
+"Congratulations on your thoughts. I'm looking for some one to dine
+with; I suppose you've eaten? It's late--"
+
+"Whew--nearly eight! No, I've not eaten; shall we go up together?"
+
+They started to leave the room, but James stopped abruptly in the
+doorway, suddenly practical, master of himself, of the whole situation.
+
+"I say, Laffan, you're a lawyer, aren't you?"
+
+"I attempt to be."
+
+"Well, I want to consult you, professionally, if you'll let me. Consider
+me a client! Now, what I want to know is this; suppose a--"
+
+"Oh, rot, man--not on an empty stomach! Come along upstairs; you can
+tell me all about it while you eat!"
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIII
+
+SARDOU
+
+
+About a week later James went to the head of his firm, the classmate's
+father who had offered him his position, and asked for a few days' leave
+of absence.
+
+"Why didn't you go to Smith?" said his employer, naming the head of the
+department in which James was working.
+
+"I didn't think he'd let me off without your leave, sir."
+
+"Hm.... You must go, must you?"
+
+"I'm afraid I must. Indeed, I'm bound to say, sir, that I shall go,
+leave or no leave."
+
+"Hm. Well, you can go; but if you take more than half a week it'll have
+to come off your annual vacation."
+
+"Thank you, sir, I shan't need more than that," said James and the
+interview was closed. No word was spoken of the reason for James'
+departure. Jonathan McClellan, founder and owner of the McClellan
+Automobile Company, knew a thing or two beside how to run an automobile
+business. He also read the papers.
+
+That was on a Thursday. In the course of the evening James conducted an
+interview with his friend Laffan and at midnight or thereabouts he took
+train for Chicago. He proceeded next day to New York, and thence, on
+Saturday, to New Haven, arriving there early in the afternoon.
+
+He went straight from the station to the law offices of Messrs. Raynham
+and Rummidge and remained there upwards of half an hour. Every sign of
+satisfaction was visible on his face as he emerged, but Raynham, who
+escorted him to the outer door, seemed not nearly so well pleased.
+
+"I wish you'd change your mind, even now, and leave it to us," he said,
+just loud enough for the stenographer in the outer office not to hear.
+
+"Plain enough sailing, now," replied James, smiling encouragingly. "I
+don't think you need to worry."
+
+"Well, if you get into trouble, don't lose your head or your temper, or
+try to bluff. Just say you'll leave the rest to your lawyers, and get
+out!"
+
+James proceeded up Chapel Street in excellent spirits. A light snow was
+falling, melting on the pavements but covering the grassy expanse of the
+Green with a soft white blanket, and bringing each gaunt black branch of
+the elm trees into strong relief. James walked on the Green side of the
+street, so as to avoid the greetings of possible acquaintances, and kept
+his eyes on the broad square. He noticed that some elm trees had been
+clipped and others felled since he had last been in town; he was sorry
+to see them go and wished the authorities could find some way of
+preserving them better....
+
+He walked unhesitatingly into the shop and, disregarding the obsequious
+gestures of the line of barbers, went straight to the very end, where he
+knew he would find her, with her glass-topped table and her instruments
+and her disgusting little basin.... She was there, but a broad black
+back obtruded itself in front of her.
+
+"One moment," she said, looking up and smiling.
+
+James retreated a few steps to a row of chairs placed there for the use
+of the expectant. He sat down, and cursed himself for a fool. What
+business had he here? Why hadn't he left it all to Raynham, like a
+sensible person? He knew he would mess it all now, in spite of
+everything; he remembered stories of commanders who had been ousted out
+of impregnable positions by the mere confident attitude of their
+opponents. It was her appearance, her manner, her faultless smile, that
+unnerved him. It was, as he mentally phrased it to himself, because she
+looked "so damned refined." Never had he dreamed it would be as bad as
+this.
+
+The black back shuffled inchoately out of his vision; his moment had
+come. He walked forward.
+
+"You are Miss Mowbray, are you not?" he asked, speaking slowly and
+steadying his voice with difficulty.
+
+"Yes?"
+
+"My name is Wimbourne. I think you know my brother.... I would like to
+talk to you, if I might. When will you be at liberty?"
+
+"Why shouldn't we talk right here?" she said cheerfully. "If you'll sit
+down there.... You had better let me tend to your nails--they need it."
+
+"Very well." James sat down. He felt his courage returning; her
+self-possession stimulated him. Not one shadow of a change of expression
+had passed over her face when he told her he was Harry's brother; her
+manner remained the perfection of professional cordiality. Well, if she
+could show nerve, he could, too.
+
+She filled her bowl with warm water and arranged her instruments with
+perfect composure. When she was ready James surrendered his right hand.
+
+"Miss Mowbray," he began at length, "as I understand the matter, you are
+suing my brother for breach of promise. Is that right?"
+
+"It is."
+
+"Well, I'm sorry. It's a bad business. Bad for you as well as for him,
+because you can't possibly win. Now, Miss Mowbray, I will be frank with
+you. You are not going to get that forty thousand dollars--your suit
+will not even get into court. I know that, but I don't want to have to
+go into the reasons why. I don't want scenes, I hate them; I want to
+make this interview as easy and as short as possible, so I will open it
+with an offer. I will give you five hundred dollars if you will agree to
+withdraw your suit and clear out of town, within a week. Do you accept?"
+
+"I do not." Her smile was more than cordial now, there was pity in it.
+"Why do you suppose I took the trouble to sue for forty thousand
+dollars, if I would be content with five hundred, Mr. Wimbourne?"
+
+"Oh, must we go into arguments? Why can't you simply take my word for it
+that your suit is impossible, and close with me? Five hundred
+dollars--think what it means! It would pay all your costs and leave you
+enough to start in with somewhere else."
+
+"The sum is just eighty times too small."
+
+"You won't, then? Think it over a little! I'll leave the offer open for
+five minutes; you needn't answer definitely till then."
+
+James was thoroughly sure of himself and at ease now; he smiled to
+himself with a certain grim pleasure at his little touch of melodrama,
+reminiscent of--what? Sardou? A common trick, of course, but never
+without its effect. He ceased thinking about it, and watched the clock.
+Presently he was aware that his companion, always busy with her scraping
+and cleaning and rubbing, was speaking in a low, calm voice.
+
+"No, Mr. Wimbourne, I am not quite the fool you take me for, I'm afraid.
+You may not know it, but your brother has treated me very badly. He
+deserves to be punished. A man cannot make a fool of a woman, as he has
+of me, and get off scot free. There is such a thing as law and justice
+for those that are abused, and I have been abused. I should be very
+silly now if I did not go on and take all that is coming to me. I shall
+only be taking my right, Mr. Wimbourne; remember that. Fun is all very
+well if it is innocent fun; but when it hurts other people it has to be
+paid for."
+
+"The five minutes are up," said James; "but I will willingly extend the
+time if there is any chance of your reconsidering. What do you think?"
+
+No answer. James watched her calm face, with its pleasing and
+well-chiseled features, enlivened now by only the merest suggestion of a
+smile that was not really there, but still seemed latent, ready for
+instant use if called upon. About the mouth hung a shade of impatience,
+of obstinacy; anything else? No, assuredly no, search as he would. She
+was extraordinary!
+
+"Oh, dear," he said with a gentle sigh, "you will go in for all the
+unpleasantness, I'm afraid.... Miss Mowbray, you have no right to sue my
+brother for breach of promise. You have been acting under false
+pretenses to him from the first. You were married to a man called Edward
+Jennings, in the city of Minneapolis, on the 3rd of last September."
+
+"You have proofs, no doubt?" The tone was sharp and defiant, the smile
+scornful and satirical, but she did blench--no doubt of it. James' heart
+leaped within him.
+
+"Oh, yes--lots, right here in my breast pocket. Tiresome things, but
+lawyers love them. If you will release my right hand for a moment--" He
+chose to smile ingratiatingly at her, and it gave him a little thrill of
+revenge to observe how obviously forced her answering smile was. She was
+not proof against her own weapons. But his triumph faded almost
+immediately, and pity took its place. Poor thing, what a ridiculous game
+she had been playing! How could it possibly succeed? Could she not have
+known that some one who knew of her marriage would be sure to turn up at
+the wrong moment and spoil the whole affair? She looked so small, so
+defenseless, so crumpled as she sat there, waiting for him to produce
+his proofs; surely she was never made for this sort of a career! Then
+her smiles of a little while ago came back to him, and he reflected that
+perhaps she was, after all.
+
+"First, here is a little history of your career. You were born in
+Minneapolis, June 16, 188-. At the age of sixteen you went to New York
+City, where you entered the theatrical profession. For some years you
+were on the vaudeville stage, playing occasionally in New York, but
+mostly on the road. Your stage name was Rosa Montagu. You left the
+profession about three years ago, and have been engaged in this place as
+manicure for a little less than two years. You resumed the name of
+Myrtle Mowbray, which as far as I can make out is your own, on leaving
+the stage, but you were married, last September, under your stage name.
+Here is a copy of your marriage lines, sworn to by the Minneapolis
+License Bureau. Here is a photograph of you as Rosa Montagu...."
+"Suppose you let me finish manicuring your hands, Mr. Wimbourne." James
+replaced the papers in his pocket and his hand on the glass-topped
+table, and professional duties were resumed. They continued in silence
+for some time; neither party really had much to say now. It occurred to
+James that even now she might be trying to take him in by her
+indifference, to "bluff" him; but a careful study of her face dispelled
+the idea. He admired her nerve now no less than before.
+
+"Are you satisfied, Miss Mowbray?" he asked at length.
+
+"No. I'm beaten, though." James liked the reply immensely; liked, also,
+the manner in which it was given--hardly betraying anything more than
+good-humored disgust.
+
+"When can I see you again to-day or to-morrow?" he asked again after a
+short pause. "There will be papers to sign, and that sort of thing."
+
+"Is it possible that Mr. Raynham sent you out without a written
+statement for me to sign in your pocket?" she rejoined, looking
+fearlessly up at him.
+
+"No--that is--yes, he did." Of course he had not, but James was already
+planning a little _coup_ of his own not included in Mr. Raynham's
+arrangements.
+
+"Well, could you come back here this evening? Toward ten? We close then,
+on Saturdays."
+
+"Very well."
+
+Both were silent for some time. At last, when the manicuring was almost
+completed, James said with a sudden burst of friendly curiosity:
+
+"Honestly, Miss Mowbray, why did you do it? Get married to him first, I
+mean."
+
+She looked coldly up at him. "I really don't see why I should answer
+that question, Mr. Wimbourne."
+
+"Of course not. There's not the slightest reason why you should answer
+it, if you don't want to."
+
+She was not proof against his candor or his smile. She smiled back, in
+spite of herself, without rancor or affectation.
+
+"I have an idea that you are quite an unusual young man, Mr. Wimbourne.
+You are, without doubt, the worst enemy I have in the world, and yet you
+give me the impression of being a friend. I think I like you better than
+your brother."
+
+James made no reply to this, but only reddened slightly, and she went
+on:
+
+"I married him because I lacked the courage not to. I was afraid to burn
+my bridges behind me. He had been wanting me to for a long time, and at
+the last he became very impatient.... It was the only way I could keep
+him, and I dared not let him go. Things had not been going well here....
+So I went back and married him, on condition that it was to be kept an
+absolute secret. I was determined to come out here and try my luck for
+one more year.... Of course I was very sorry that I did it, this fall.
+But I determined to go through with ... the business, for there was a
+big prize at stake."
+
+"And you never knew he had a brother in Minneapolis?"
+
+"No--he simply told me he had an elder brother in the West. I had no
+suspicion of anything; it seemed perfectly safe. How did you find out,
+anyway, if I may ask?"
+
+"I happened to see you--perhaps a minute after you were married, coming
+out of the marriage license office, with a man. Compromising! You had
+been pointed out to me before, here, so I knew what you looked like. But
+what made you so keen to go through with--with the business? You don't
+look like that kind, somehow...."
+
+She gave the last finishing touch to his hand and started to gather up
+her belongings before replying. "You don't know what it is not to have
+plenty of money, Mr. Wimbourne, or you would not ask that question. You
+don't know what it is to watch other people sailing by in sixty
+horsepower limousines and realize that you would look every bit as well
+there as any of them, and better than most, and to realize, above all,
+that you could make so much more out of your wealth than most of them. I
+am under no delusions about myself; I know perfectly well that I'm not a
+manicure type. I have brains, I have good looks, I have social
+possibilities. Only, I happened to be born without money or social
+position, and the handicap is too great.... Well, it's all up now.
+There's no hope for anything better now."
+
+The tone in which she spoke these words was so perfectly quiet and
+resigned, so utterly lacking in vulgar desire to advertise her woes,
+that James felt deeply moved. He could not think of anything to say to
+reassure or encourage her. Presently he blurted out, desperately:
+
+"You've got a good husband in Edward Jennings, anyway. He's a good chap,
+according to all accounts...."
+
+She smiled, deprecatorily. "He's a nice boy. But he'll never make any
+money."
+
+James made up an excuse to consult Mr. Raynham again, and after that
+walked the snow-covered streets till dinner time. His first impulse was
+to look up Harry, but he discarded the idea; he would not see him, Aunt
+Selina, any one, till his task was done, every detail completed. He
+dined alone in an obscure restaurant and with some difficulty succeeded
+in frittering away the time till ten o'clock, at which hour he returned
+to the barber shop on Chapel Street.
+
+He proceeded at once to business, taking out two papers which he gave to
+Miss Mowbray to sign. She read and signed without comment. When she had
+finished he said: "Would you mind delivering this for me?" and handed
+her an unsealed envelope bearing the simple superscription "Mr. Edward
+Jennings."
+
+Miss Mowbray fingered the envelope indecisively a moment; then she
+opened it and took out the contents.
+
+She rose from her seat and glanced apprehensively at James. "I
+can't--we--thank you, but I simply can't accept this," she whispered.
+
+"Nobody asked you to do anything, except deliver the letter," replied
+James cheerfully. "I'd like to know what business you have opening
+other people's letters, anyway. It isn't nice.--Wedding present, you
+know," he went on, with a change of voice; "I'm rather hoping to have
+the honor of giving you your first. Please try to make him accept it
+from me, won't you? Good-by!"
+
+He shook her hand quickly and was actually off before she had time to
+offer another word of objection.
+
+He made his way straight across the snowy street to Harry's rooms in
+Vanderbilt Hall. There was no answer to his knock, but the door yielded
+to a turn of the knob--how like Harry to leave it unlocked! The room was
+dark and empty, but he went in and found the embers of a fire dying on
+the hearth. He threw off his hat and overcoat, struck a light and looked
+about for materials with which to rebuild the fire.
+
+In a few minutes the logs were blazing merrily before him. He turned out
+the gas, drew up an armchair and sat down in front of the fire to wait
+for Harry.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIV
+
+UN-ANGLO-SAXON
+
+
+He came in before long, stamping the snow from his boots. In the second
+or two that passed before he spoke, James saw that though he looked
+haggard and depressed, there was no trace of weakness of dissipation
+about his eyes or mouth. Nor did he slink; he blundered in with the
+impetuosity of a schoolboy for whom the world has no terrors. For which,
+though he was shocked to see how badly he looked, James was profoundly
+thankful.
+
+He was aware of Harry's eyes trying to pierce the half-gloom; there was
+a touch of pathos, to James, in his momentary bewilderment.
+
+"Hullo, Harry," he said gently.
+
+"James!" The immediate, unconscious look of delight that came over
+Harry's face--even though it faded to something else within the
+second--pleased James more than anything had pleased him yet. Harry was
+glad to see him; that mattered much more than his almost instant
+recovery of his self-possession, his continuing, in the manner of the
+Harry of two years ago, the Harry of the previous Commencement:
+"Whatever are you doing here now, James?"
+
+"I've got good news for you, Harry," he replied, rising and taking hold
+of the other's hand. "The Mowbray woman has withdrawn her suit. It's all
+right; she's signed things, and you have no more to fear from her." He
+dropped Harry's hand and moved off a step, as though to give him a
+chance to take in the news.
+
+There was something rather fine in the simplicity, the humility, even of
+his manner as he did this, that did not escape Harry. He was deeply
+moved; self-possession and all it implied fell from him again.
+
+"James, have you done this? What has happened? Tell me all about it! You
+haven't paid her all that money, James--don't tell me you've done that!"
+
+"No, of course I haven't--there was no need for it. She was married out
+in Minneapolis last September, and I happened to get onto the
+fact--that's all. She had no business to be suing at all."
+
+"And you--"
+
+"I came here and told her so, to-day."
+
+James sat down again where he had been sitting, as though to close the
+incident. Harry stood and gasped; he tried to speak but could not; his
+eyes filled with tears. Then he dropped at James' feet, clasping his
+knees in the manner of a suppliant of old. He buried his face in James'
+lap and gave a few deep sobs of joy and relief.
+
+The Anglo-Saxon race being what it is, a good deal of courage is needed
+to go on with the relation of what occurred next. However, there is no
+help for it; history is history, and we can only tell it as it actually
+occurred, regardless of whether the undemonstrative are outraged or not.
+After Harry had thrown himself at his feet James took his brother's head
+gently between his hands, and then, with the greatest simplicity and
+naturalness in the world, bent forward and kissed it.
+
+"Poor old thing," he said softly; "you have been having sort of a hard
+time of it, haven't you?"
+
+ * * * * *
+
+"I wish you would tell me, James," said Harry somewhat later, as they
+sat gazing into the fire, James in the armchair and Harry on the floor,
+leaning back against James' legs, "I wish you would tell me just how you
+found out about her being married, and all about it. It seems so
+incredible--both that she should have been married and that you, of all
+people, should have been on the spot to discover it."
+
+"Well, I just saw her, coming out of the marriage office with a man;
+that was all there was to it. I thought she probably wouldn't have been
+there unless she had just been married to him, so I had the register
+looked up, and there she was. She was under the name of Rosa
+Montagu--that gave us some trouble at first, because of course I didn't
+know that was her stage name. I put a fellow called Laffan, a young
+lawyer, onto the business, and he messed about with the register and the
+detective bureau and communicated with Raynham till he wormed it all
+out. Finally he got hold of a photograph of Rosa Montagu and showed it
+to me, and after that it was easy enough--Of course, it was a most
+God-given chance that I stumbled on her just at that compromising
+moment. She really wasn't as foolish as she sounds; she hadn't lived in
+Minneapolis for years and knew almost nobody there except her young man.
+It was a long chance, what with using her stage name and all, that any
+one would ever find her out."
+
+"Yes. But I don't quite see--You say she was married in September?"
+
+"Yes--the third."
+
+"Well, if you knew she was married then, I don't quite see why you
+didn't make use of your knowledge before. When I was playing round with
+her, I mean--of course I, like the brazen idiot I was, didn't write you,
+but you must have heard--"
+
+"Oh, yes. Well, it was a very funny thing. I didn't remember about
+having seen her in that place till months afterward; not till the night
+I heard about the breach of promise business. You see, it was only the
+barest, vaguest glimpse, there in the City Hall; she didn't even see me
+and I didn't even remember where I had seen her face before, then. I
+scarcely thought about it at all, at the time; I was in a great hurry to
+get to a hearing before some commission or other, and the thing went
+bang out of my mind. Then, when I read of the breach of promise, it all
+came back, in one flash! Funny!"
+
+"Yes. It's the kind of humor that appeals to me, I can tell you."
+
+"The man, Jennings, curiously enough, happened to be in McClellan's for
+a while, once, in the counting department. He left there to become a
+clerk in some bank. We worked up his end too, a little....
+
+"Harry, I wish you'd tell me one thing," went on James, after a pause.
+
+"Anything I can, James."
+
+"Why on earth, when you found you were getting in deep with that woman,
+didn't you call on me to do something? You couldn't be so far gone as to
+think that I wouldn't--"
+
+"Oh, couldn't I? You have no idea of what depths of idiocy I can descend
+to, if I want.--I don't know--at the time, the more I wanted help the
+less I could talk of it to any one, and you least of all. The person
+that gave me the most comfort was Trotty, and he never once mentioned
+the subject to me, except when I introduced it myself! Yet even so, all
+through that time, it was you that I really wanted.--Look here, James,
+if you don't believe me, see what I've been carrying around with me all
+this time, as a sort of talisman!"
+
+He took his wallet from his pocket and after a short search produced an
+old and dirty postal card bearing on its face the blurred but still
+readable legend "All right. James." He handed it to his brother.
+
+"Gosh," said James, when he had read it, "do you mean to say you've kept
+that old thing ever since?"
+
+"Ever since the day I got it. There was something about it that was
+comforting and optimistic and--well, like you; and I used to take it out
+and look at it occasionally when I got particularly down in the mouth.
+And I used to persuade myself, after a while, that it all would come out
+right, in the end; that somehow James would make it all right--you see
+how the prophecy has come true!... And the extraordinary part of it is
+that even while I thought that way about you, I simply couldn't break
+the ice and tell you about it all. I don't know why--I just couldn't!"
+
+"I know," said James; "I know the feeling."
+
+"Isn't it incredible, James, that what seemed perfectly natural and
+reasonable--inevitable, even--a few weeks, or days, or even an hour ago,
+should appear so utterly asinine now!... Pride, vainglory and
+hypocrisy--all of them, and a lot more! Sometimes I can't believe it
+possible for one person to assemble in himself all the vices that I do."
+
+"Well, you don't, either," said James seriously. "That's one thing I
+want to clear up. Harry, don't you see that the blame for all this lies
+with me just as much as with you--more than with you--entirely with
+me?--"
+
+"No, I don't," began Harry stoutly, but James continued:
+
+"And that the real reason you didn't call on me was because I had
+steadily shut myself away from you? Oh, Harry, I've behaved like the
+devil during the last three years! It's just as you say; a course of
+action you never even question at one time, a little later seems so
+silly, so criminally silly, that you can't believe you seriously thought
+of following it!... I know perfectly well that a lot of the things I
+thought were horribly important a few years ago really aren't worth the
+paper they're printed on. The perspective changes so, even with these
+two years--less than two years--out of college! Good Lord, if a man is
+really the right sort, if he has a good, warm-hearted nature at the
+bottom of him, thinks good thoughts, does nice things, uses to the best
+of his judgment what gifts and talents Providence is pleased to give
+him, what in Heaven's name does it matter whether he manages the crew or
+goes Bones, in the end?... I've been a fool, Harry. I've set the
+greatest value on the most worthless things; I've worshiped stone gods;
+I've let things irritate me that no sane man has any business to be
+irritated by. Worst of all, I've let these silly, worthless things come
+between you and me and spoil--well, one of the best things that ever
+came into my life!... All this estrangement business has been mainly my
+fault. I'm older, and have had more experience, and, I always thought,
+more common sense--though I haven't really--and I was the one that ought
+to have kept things straight. Harry, I'm sorry for it all!"
+
+Harry was more moved than he would have liked to show by this
+confession. He was still enough of an undergraduate to be much impressed
+by his brother's casual mention of his senior society--the first time
+since he had been tapped the name had ever passed James' lips in his
+presence.
+
+"It's a pleasure to hear you talk, James," he said, "but I hope you
+won't misunderstand me when I say that there's not one word of truth in
+all you've said--the last part of it, I mean. It's only convinced me
+more thoroughly of my own fault. Before, there might have been a shadow
+of doubt in my mind about my being entirely to blame. Now there is
+absolutely none.--Funny, that a person you like blaming himself should
+really be blaming you! It always seems that way, somehow...."
+
+"James," he went on, a little later; "it makes you feel as if you were
+getting on, doesn't it?"
+
+"How? In years?"
+
+"Yes! I don't know about you, but I feel as old as Methusaleh to-night,
+and a whole lot wiser! And I must say I rather enjoy it!"
+
+"Yes," said James reflectively, "it does seem a good deal that way."
+
+"There are lots of questions you haven't asked me yet, James," continued
+Harry, after another interval.
+
+"Are there? Well, tell me what they are and I'll ask them, if you're so
+crazy to answer them."
+
+"The first is, What on earth could you ever have seen in That Woman?"
+
+"There was no need to ask that question," replied James, laughing; "not
+after I saw her to-day, at any rate."
+
+"She was so damned refined," sighed Harry. James laughed again at the
+coincidence of Harry's hitting on the very words of his own mental
+description of her. "I was most horribly depressed, and she looked so
+kind and sympathetic, and was, too, when I got to telling her my
+woes.... And she never used a particle of rouge, or anything of that
+kind.... Once I kissed her, and after that she managed, in that
+diabolical refined manner of hers, to convince me that she wouldn't have
+any more of that sort of thing without marriage. That made me respect
+her all the more, of course, as she knew it would. At one time, for a
+whole week, I should say, I was perfectly willing to marry her, whenever
+she wanted, and I didn't care whom I said it to, either.... Do you know,
+James, she would have been in for the devil of a time if I had gone on
+and pressed her to? I wonder what little plans she had for making me
+cease to care for her and back out at the right time.... There was no
+need for that, though; one day she called me 'kid,' and things like that
+before people, and I began to see."
+
+"That was part of her little plan, of course," said James.
+
+"Well, well--I shouldn't wonder if it was! You always were a clever
+child, James!..."
+
+"What are some more of the things I've got to ask?" inquired the clever
+child after a brief silence.
+
+"What? Oh--yes! Why don't you ask me to cut out the lick?" (He meant,
+abstain from alcoholic beverages.)
+
+"Well, do you want me to?"
+
+"Well, yes, I think I do, rather!"
+
+"Well, will you?"
+
+"Well--yes!"
+
+Both laughed, and then Harry went on: "It strikes me that we are both
+talking a prodigious lot of nonsense, James. We've been making a regular
+scene, in fact--"
+
+"I rather like scenes, myself," interrupted James, just for the pleasure
+of their being how he had expressed exactly the opposite opinion to some
+one else a few hours before.
+
+"And no doubt we shall be heartily ashamed when we look back on it all
+in the cold gray light of to-morrow morning. One always is."
+
+"I don't know," objected James, serious again, "I don't think that I
+shall be sorry for anything I've said or done."
+
+"Well, as a matter of strict truth, I don't know that I shall either. I
+suppose one needn't necessarily be making a fool of oneself just because
+it's twelve o'clock at night; that is--oh, you know what I mean--!"
+
+So they sat and talked on far into the night, loath to break up the
+enjoyment of the rediscovery of each other. They both seemed to bask in
+a sort of wonderful clarity and peace--do you know these rare times when
+life loses its complexity and uncertainty and becomes for the moment
+wholly sane and enjoyable and inspiring? When a person is actually able
+to live, if only for a little time, entirely in his better self, without
+being troubled by even a recollection of his worser? That was,
+substantially, the condition of those two boys as they sat there, at
+first talking, then thinking, and at last, as drowsiness slowly asserted
+itself over them, simply sitting.
+
+"Well," said James at last; "unless you intend taking permanent
+possession of my legs, I suppose we'd better go to bed. Am I sleeping
+here, somewhere?"
+
+"Yes," said Harry; "in my bed; I shall sleep on the sofa," and he
+forthwith embarked on a search for extra sheets and blankets.
+
+They both slept uninterruptedly till nearly ten, at which hour they
+sallied forth in search of breakfast. During the night the snow had
+changed to rain, which still fell out of a leaden sky, turning the
+earth's white covering to dirty gray and clogging the gutters with
+slush. Everything looked sordid, prosaic, ugly, especially Chapel
+Street, which they crossed on their way to the nearest "dog"; especially
+the "dog" itself as they approached it, with its yellow electric lights
+still shining out of its windows. It was an unattractive world.
+
+"Well, how does it look this morning?" James asked, studying his
+brother's face.
+
+Harry shuffled along several steps through the slush before he answered:
+
+"Just the same, James, and I for one, don't mind saying so." Then they
+looked at each other and smiled slightly.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XV
+
+CHIEFLY CARDIAC
+
+
+Life appeared, nevertheless, to have recovered all its normal complexity
+and variety. Things change with the return of daylight, even if they do
+not deteriorate, and though the two boys were still, in a manner of
+speaking, happy in each other's proximity, the thoughts of each were
+already busy on matters in which the other had no direct share. Harry
+was already foreseeing unpleasantnesses in the way of the restoration of
+cordial relations with the world. Exile has its palliations; he had
+taken a sort of grim pleasure in the state of semi-warfare in which he
+had lived. But that sort of thing was now over; he wanted to be right
+with the whole world--he even looked forward to astonishing people with
+the thoroughness of his conservatism. And he would have to make all the
+first advances. Thoughts of apologies, unreciprocated nods, suppressed
+sneers, incredulous glances and all the rest did not dismay him, but
+they might be said to bother him. At least, they were there.
+
+As for James, he had thought so much about Harry during the last ten
+days that it is easy to understand why, the affair Harry having been
+satisfactorily cleared up, his mind should be busy with other things.
+James' control over his mind was singularly perfect and methodical; its
+ease of concentration suggested that of an experienced lawyer examining
+the contents of several scraps of papers and returning each one again to
+its proper pigeon-hole, neatly docketed. The papers bearing the label of
+"Harry," neatly tied up in red tape, were again reposing comfortably in
+their pigeon-hole; the bundle that now absorbed his attention was marked
+"Beatrice."
+
+Outside of his work, to which he had conscientiously devoted the best of
+his mental powers, Beatrice had occupied the most prominent place in his
+thoughts for over a year and a half. For six days in the week, between
+the hours of nine and five, she had not been conspicuous in his mind;
+but how often, outside that time, had his attention wandered from a
+book, a conversation, a play, and fastened itself on the recollection of
+that softly aquiline profile of hers, the poise of her head on her
+beautifully modeled shoulders, her unsmiling yet cordial manner of
+greeting, and which she somehow managed to convey the impression of
+being unaffectedly glad to see him! It would probably be too much to say
+that James had been in love with her during that time, but James was not
+the sort of person who would easily be carried off his feet in an affair
+of the heart. Often, as the memory of her face obtruded itself on his
+day-dreams--or still oftener, his night-dreams--he had calmly put to
+himself, for open mental debate, the question "Am I really in love with
+her?" and had never been able to answer it entirely satisfactorily.
+
+On the whole, in view of the fact that the memory of her showed no
+tendency to fade in proportion to the time he was absent from her
+presence, he had become rather inclined to the opinion that the answer
+must be in the affirmative. Yet even now he could not be sure. He might
+be only cherishing an agreeable memory. He had not seen her since the
+previous June, and could not be absolutely certain, he knew, till he saw
+her again. He was anxious to see her!--Not that mere friendship would
+not account for that, of course.
+
+Harry had to attend Sunday Chapel, and it was arranged that James should
+not go with him, but should proceed directly to the house. Harry himself
+would turn up at dinner-time--Aunt Selina, it will be remembered, had
+dinner in the middle of the day on Sundays. Harry was naturally anxious
+to have all news-breaking over before he came, and James--well, on the
+whole James was entirely willing to take the burden of news-breaking on
+himself.
+
+He found Aunt Selina at home; a slight cold in the head and the
+inclemency of the weather had been sufficient to make her forego church
+for this Sunday. Beatrice had proved herself of stauncher religious
+metal--"Though I am sure she would not have gone, if she had known you
+were in town," as Aunt Selina told James.
+
+Aunt Selina took the good news much as a duchess of the old régime might
+have learned that the Committee of Public Safety had decided not to chop
+off her husband's head. It was agreeable news, but it was nothing to
+make one forget oneself. Her manner of saying "This is splendid news,
+James; I am proud of you" indicated a profound belief in the sanctity of
+the Wimbourne destiny and an unshakable faith in the ultimate triumph of
+the Wimbourne character rather than unbecoming thankfulness for
+something she ought not to have had to be thankful about. James advised
+her that Harry would talk much more freely and relations in general
+would be much more agreeable if she refrained from mention of the
+subject till he introduced it himself. Aunt Selina calmly agreed. She
+had great faith in James' judgment.
+
+After an hour's chat with his aunt James exhibited visible signs of
+restlessness. Half-past twelve; it was time Beatrice returned. He rose
+from his chair and stood watching in front of the window. Soon he saw
+her; she alighted from a trolley car and started to walk up the path.
+There was something rather fine, something high-bred and gently proud
+about the way she grasped her umbrella and embarked on the long slushy
+ascent to the house. Her manner rather suggested a daughter of the
+Crusaders; it was as though she hated the wind and rain and slush, but
+disdained to give other recognition of their existence than a silent
+contempt.
+
+As he beheld her distant figure turn in at the gate and plod
+unflinchingly up the walk a curious sensation came over James. He
+suddenly found himself wanting to wreak an immediate and violent
+vengeance on the elements that dared to make things so unpleasant for
+her, and that almost immediately passed into an intense desire to seize
+upon that small figure and clasp it to him, sheltering her from the
+rain, the wind, the slush, every evil in this world that could ever
+befall her.... In that moment he felt all the beauty of man's first
+love. All the worries of doubt and introspection fell from him; he felt
+the full glow of love shining in his heart like a star, giving
+significance, sanctity, even, to those moments of wondering, fearing,
+hoping, doubting that had filled so many months. He was in love with
+her!... He came into the realization of the fact in a spirit of humility
+and prayer, like a worshiper entering a temple.
+
+Of course he gave no outward sign of all this. He merely said, as soon
+as he could trust himself to be articulate, in a perfectly ordinary tone
+of voice:
+
+"There's Beatrice, now. She's walking."
+
+"Yes," answered his aunt; "I tried to make her stay at home, but she
+would go." Then after a moment she gently added, as though in answer to
+James' unspoken reproach: "I would have let her take the carriage, but
+of course I could not ask Thomas to go out in such weather."
+
+James entirely failed to see why not. He would willingly have condemned
+Thomas and the horses to perpetual driving through something much more
+disagreeable than rain and slush if it could have saved Beatrice one
+particle of her present discomfort.
+
+But being, in fact as well as in appearance, a daughter of Crusaders,
+and consequently well used to climatic rigors in the country from which
+her ancestors had marched to meet the Paynim foe, Beatrice was really
+not suffering nearly as much as James' lover-like anxiety supposed her
+to be. She had thick boots, a mackintosh, an umbrella and a thick tweed
+skirt to protect her from the weather, and could have walked miles
+without so much as wetting her feet. If she had got wet, she certainly
+would have changed her garments immediately on reaching home, and even
+if she had not changed then she probably would not have caught cold,
+having a strong constitution. Nevertheless James stood at the window and
+silently worried about her, and his first words as he met her at the
+front door were expressive of this mood.
+
+"Beatrice!" he cried eagerly, as he threw the door open, "I do hope
+you're not wet through!"
+
+She had not seen him standing at the window, so his appearance at the
+door was consequently a complete surprise to her, and the expression
+that came over her face as she saw him was one of pure pleasure. James'
+heart leaped within him at her unaccustomed smile, and then fell again
+as he saw it change to an expression of ever so slight and
+well-restrained surprise, not at his being there, but at the manner and
+words of his greeting. He realized in a second that he had allowed his
+tongue to betray his heart.
+
+Beatrice paid no immediate attention to the remark, and her welcoming
+words "James, of all people in the world!" gave no sign of anything more
+than a friendly pleasure. She was entirely at her ease. James found
+himself running on, quite easily:
+
+"Yes--just got a day or two off and came on to say Howdy-do to you all.
+Got to start back this afternoon, worse luck. How well you're looking!"
+
+By this time they were practically in the library, in the restraining
+presence of Aunt Selina, and Beatrice had no more chance to introduce
+the topic clamoring for discussion in the minds of both than the
+question "You've seen Harry?" uttered in an undertone as they went
+through the door, allowed her. Church, the weather and the unexpected
+pleasure of James' arrival were politely discussed for a few moments,
+and then Aunt Selina withdrew to prepare for dinner.
+
+"James," Beatrice burst out, "tell me about Harry. I know you've come on
+about that; tell me all about it! Has anything been done? Can anything
+be done?"
+
+"It can," said James, smiling at her impetuosity. "Like-wise, it has. In
+fact, it's all over!"
+
+"What do you mean?... Have you paid her off?"
+
+"No; she withdrew of her own accord."
+
+"James, don't be irritating! Tell me about it. You've done something, I
+know you have!"
+
+"Well--possibly!" He smiled tantalizingly at her--so like a man!
+
+"What?"
+
+"Well, I'll tell you--on one condition."
+
+"What's that?"
+
+"That you'll promise not to thank me when you've found out!" James
+considered this rather a masterly piece of deceptive strategy, more than
+making up for his indiscretion at the front door.
+
+Beatrice dropped her eyes and drew down the corners of her mouth, with
+an expression half humorous, half contemptuous. "Go ahead," said she.
+
+James went ahead and told her the whole affair at some length. His
+position during this narrative was a not unenviable one; it is not often
+that one gets a chance to recount to one's lady-love a story in which
+one is so obviously the hero. Nor did he lose anything by being the
+narrator of his own prowess; his omissions spoke louder in his favor
+than the most laudatory comments of a third person could have.
+
+"So, he is free!" she said at last, when she had cross-questioned the
+whole thing out of him. "He is free again!..."
+
+What was there about these words that seemed to blast James' feeling of
+triumph, to chill the very marrow in his bones? Was it only the words;
+was it not rather the extraordinary intensity of the pleasure on her
+face; a pleasure which did not fade with her smile, but lived on in the
+dreamy expression of the eyes, gazing sightlessly out of the window?...
+She spoke again in a moment or two, asking a question about some detail
+in the case, and the feeling left him again. He answered her question
+with perfect composure. Such hysterical vapors must be incidental to
+love, he supposed. He was not troubled about it at all, unless, very
+vaguely, by the fleeting memory of a similar experience, occurring--oh,
+a long time ago. Nothing to worry about.
+
+He did not say much after he had completed his narrative. He was content
+simply to sit and look at her, drinking in her smiles, her comments, her
+little ejaculations of pleasure and answering her stray questions about
+the great affair. The joy of discovery was not yet even tinged with the
+thirst for possession. It was enough to watch her as she talked and
+laughed and moved about; to watch her, the living original, and think
+how much more glorious she was than the most vivid of his recollections
+of her. Oh, how wonderful she was!
+
+Presently he was aware of her making remarks laudatory of himself, and
+primed his ears to listen.
+
+"But how clever it was of you, James," she was saying, "to work out the
+whole thing, just from that one little glimpse--and so quickly, too! Of
+course it was just a Heaven-sent chance, your seeing her at that moment,
+but I can see how much more there was to it than that. What a
+frightfully clever person you are, James--a regular detective! You
+really must give up making motor cars and be another Sherlock Holmes!"
+
+All this fell very pleasantly on his ears, though he could have wished,
+if he had taken the time to, that she could have employed some other
+adjective than "clever." But there was no time for such minor
+considerations. Just at that moment they heard the rattle of the front
+door latch, and Beatrice, knowing that none but Harry ever entered the
+house without first ringing, jumped from her chair and started towards
+the hall, the words "There he is now!" glowing on her lips....
+
+And then the universe crumbled about James' ears. Had his father's early
+readings extended into the minor Elizabethan Drama, he might have
+remembered the words of Beaumont--
+
+ This earth of mine doth tremble, and I feel
+ A stark affrighted motion in my blood
+
+and applied them quite aptly to his present state. For a moment the
+earth literally seemed to reel; he staggered slightly, unnoticed, and
+caught hold of the back of a chair. Then, while Beatrice went out to
+meet Harry, he stood there and wished he had never been born to live
+through such a moment.
+
+Beatrice was in love with Harry--that was the long and the short of it.
+There was no mistaking the import of the look of utter glorification
+that came over her face as she heard his hand on the doorknob; such an
+expression on the face of a human being could mean but one thing.... He
+wondered, despairingly, if his face had borne such a look a little while
+ago, when he caught sight of Beatrice....
+
+Whether or not Harry was on similar terms with Beatrice he could not
+say. He rather thought that he was, or if not, it was only a question of
+time till he would be. He was not a witness of the actual moment of
+meeting; that occurred in the hall, and all he got of it was Harry's
+initial remark: "Well, Beatrice, have you heard the good news? James has
+made a respectable woman of me!" drowned in a sort of flutter from
+Beatrice, in which he could distinguish nothing articulate--nor needed
+to. The character of the remark--flippant to the verge of good
+taste!--might at another time have excited his disgust; but now it made
+as little impression on him as it did on Beatrice.
+
+Harry himself might not have made it at another time; it was the result
+of his embarrassment. So, also, was the expression which he wore when he
+came into the room with Beatrice a moment later--a very unusual look,
+due to a very unusual cause. Beatrice had, in fact, all but given
+herself away to him. He followed her into the room embarrassed and
+flustered. It was incomparably the worst of the series of strained
+moments in his intercourse with Beatrice, and it gave point and
+coherency to the others in a way he hated to think of.... Once in the
+library he found himself leading conversation, or what passed for
+conversation among the three for the next few moments. The others
+appeared conversationally extinct; Beatrice--he hardly dared look toward
+her--trying to recover her composure; James preternaturally grave and
+silent, for some unknown reason. The atmosphere seemed surcharged with
+an unexpected and, to him, inappropriate gravity. He felt like a
+schoolboy among grown-ups.
+
+Presently Aunt Selina returned and dinner was announced.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Poor James--he had won Paradise only to lose it the next instant! No one
+could have guessed anything from his behavior--he was not the sort of
+person to make an exhibition of his emotional crises; but he really
+lived very hard during the meal that followed. His state of mind was at
+first nothing but a ghastly chaos, from which but one thing emerged into
+certainty--he must not betray himself or Beatrice; he must go on exactly
+as if nothing unusual had occurred. It never paid to make a fool of
+oneself, and--this was the next thought, the next plank that floated to
+him from the wreck of his happiness--he had not, that he knew of, given
+himself away. That was a tremendous thing to be thankful for; what a
+blessing that he had got wind of Beatrice's true feelings before he had
+the chance to blunder into making love to her and so precipitate a
+series of horrors which he could not even bear to contemplate! Now, he
+told himself reassuringly, as he tried desperately to contribute his
+fourth to the none too spontaneous conversation, he had only to keep
+himself in check, keep his mouth shut, keep from making of himself the
+most unthinkable ass that ever walked God's earth--and it would all come
+out right!
+
+By the time the roast beef made its appearance he saw there was only one
+thing to do and without a moment's hesitation he embarked on the doing
+of it. Beatrice sat on his right; he raised his eyes to her and passed
+them over each enthralling feature of her, her soft dark hair; her eyes,
+brown almost to black, gentle yet fearless in their gaze, and at the
+same time, quite calmly and unemotionally, told himself that she could
+never be his. She was Harry's. These two were intended for each other
+all along, made for each other. Could he not have seen that in the
+beginning, if he had kept his eyes open? Could he not have seen that
+their childish companionship, dating from Harry's English days, their
+being placed again, as though by a divine sort of accident, in the same
+town, and above all their obvious fitness for each other, was going to
+lead to love?
+
+Well--thus he found himself to his one substantial comfortable
+support--he had hurt no one but himself. He had only to put Beatrice
+resolutely out of his mind and all would be well. She was Harry's; was
+that not the next best thing to her being his?--better, even? No longer
+ago than last night he had convinced himself that Harry was, when all
+was said and done, a better man than he was. Was it not perfectly just
+that the prize should go to him?
+
+The thought helped him through the meal astonishingly. Unselfishness is
+a great stimulus. Once he saw that he could do something definite toward
+the happiness of those he loved best, he seemed, rather to his own
+surprise, perfectly willing and able to do it, at no matter what
+sacrifice to himself. His righteousness supported him not only through
+the meal, but well through that part of the afternoon that he spent in
+the house--up, indeed, to the very moment of parting.
+
+James' plan was to take a five-o'clock train to New York, whence he
+would take a night train to Chicago and arrive in Minneapolis early
+Tuesday morning, having missed only three working days at the office. It
+was still raining at four o'clock and a cab was telephoned for. As it
+was plodding up the slushy drive, James, overcoated and hatted, stood on
+the porch ready to get into it. Harry, who was to go to the station with
+him, was "having a word" with Aunt Selina--or, more exactly, being had a
+word with by her--in the hall. Beatrice, by some fiendish chance,
+determined to do the same by James.
+
+"James," she said, "I want you to know how perfectly splendid I think it
+was of you--all this about Harry, I mean. You may say it was no more
+than your duty, and all that; but it was fine of you, nevertheless.
+Thank you, James, and good-by."
+
+It really was rather awful. It amounted to his being rewarded and
+dismissed like a faithful servant. And her tacit, unconscious assumption
+of her right to thank people for favors conferred upon Harry--that was
+turning the knife in the wound. Of course she could have no idea of the
+pain she was giving, and James shook her hand and said good-by trying to
+give no sign of the pain he felt. All the comfortable stability of his
+logic faded from him as she spoke those words. All the way to the
+station, sitting by Harry's side in the smelly cab, he found himself
+crying inwardly, like a child, for what he could not have; wondering if,
+by the exercise of tact and patience, Beatrice could possibly be brought
+to love him; overcome at moments by an insane desire to throw himself on
+Harry's neck and beg him to let him have her--for surely, surely Harry
+could not be as fond of her as he! Oh, was it going to be as hard as
+this right along?...
+
+"James," said Harry suddenly as the two paced the dreary platform in
+silence, waiting for the train to pull in; "it's sometimes awfully hard
+to say what you want without talking mawkish rot, but there's something
+I've simply got to say, rot or no rot, or drop dead on the asphalt.--I'm
+pretty young, of course, and haven't seen much of anything of life; but
+a person doesn't have to live long to get the general idea that it's
+rather a chaotic mess. Well, occasionally out of it there emerges a
+thing that appears to bring out all that's best in your nature and gives
+a certain coherence to the other things...."
+
+"Yes?" said James, wondering what was to follow.
+
+"Well, it seems to me that one of those things is--you and me. Since
+last night, I mean ... James, I don't know how you feel about it, but
+since then I've had a sense of nearness to you, such as I've never begun
+to have with any other human being--such as doesn't occur often in one
+lifetime, I imagine ... I really think very highly of you, James!" He
+broke off here with a smile, half embarrassed at his brother's slowness
+of response, ready to retreat into the everyday and the trivial if the
+response did not come.
+
+But he need not have worried; James was merely choosing his words; every
+nerve in him was thrilling in answer to Harry's advance. He returned the
+smile, but replied, in full seriousness: "You've hit it exactly; I
+should even say it couldn't be duplicated in one lifetime.... You're
+unique, Harry!"
+
+"That's it--unique," said Harry, joining in with his mood. "You've
+mastered the art of uniquity, James."
+
+"And what's more," went on the other, "it always has been that
+way--really. Even during these last few years. With me, I mean."
+
+"With me, too. James"--he stood still and looked his brother full in the
+face--"do you know, such a relation as ours is one of the few positive
+good things that makes life worth while? If we were both struck dead as
+we stand here, life would have been well worth living--just for this!"
+
+"Yes, that's true," said James slowly; "that's perfectly true."
+
+"And one thing more--for Heaven's sake, James, don't let's either of us
+mess up this thing in the future, if we can help it! It may be broken up
+by outside causes--well and good; we can't prevent that; but can't we
+have the sense not to let silly, conventional things come between us?
+Let's not be afraid, above all, of plain talk--at any rate, you need
+never be afraid to say anything to me. I may be narrow and obstinate to
+other people, but I don't think I could ever be so to you again. I'd
+take anything from you, James, anything!--" He smiled at the
+unintentional double meaning of his words, adding, "And there's nothing
+I wouldn't give you, either."
+
+It would not be too much to say that James was literally inspired by
+Harry's words. They seemed to bring out every vestige of what was good
+and noble and unselfish in his nature, lifting him high above his
+everyday, weak, commonplace self--such as he had shown it in the cab,
+for instance--making life as clear, as sensible, as inspiring as it had
+seemed last night. His "sacrifice" now appeared nothing; he scarcely
+thought of it at all, but its nature, when it did appear in the back of
+his brain, was that of an obvious, pleasant, easy duty; a service that
+was a joy, a denial that was a self-gratification.
+
+"All right, I'll remember. And if I telegraph you to dye your face
+pea-green, I shall expect you to do it!" He spoke with a lightness of
+spirit wholly unfeigned. Then he continued, somewhat more seriously:
+"I'll tell you what it is; each of us has got to behave so well that
+it'll be the fault of the other if we do fall out. There's a poem Father
+used to read that says something of the kind; something about there
+being none but you--'there is none, oh, none but you--'"
+
+"'That from me estrange your sight,'" finished Harry. "I
+remember--Campion, I think."
+
+"That's it--that from me estrange your sight. It's funny how those
+things come back sometimes...." The train pulled noisily in at that
+moment and made further discussion impossible, but enough had been said
+to start the same thoughts running in the minds of both and give them
+both the feeling, as they clasped hands in parting, that the future had
+the blessing of the past.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVI
+
+THE SADDEST TALE
+
+
+With the beginning of the next term Harry embarked on the task of
+setting himself right with the world. He found it on the whole easier
+than he had expected. He had only to make a few formal apologies, as in
+the cases of Shep McGee and Junius LeGrand, and let it become generally
+known that he had definitely given up drinking, et cetera, to make the
+cohorts of the commonplace glad to receive him in their ranks once more.
+
+Reinstatement in the social life of New Haven followed quite
+easily--almost as a matter of course, for he had not actively offended
+any members of what might be described as the entertaining classes. The
+female element, practically all of whom knew him, or at least of him,
+through his family connection, had evolved a mythical but interesting
+conception of him as "rather a fast young man"; and that, alas! served
+to endear him to their hearts rather than otherwise.
+
+So the last months of his college course passed in a sort of sunset haze
+of enjoyment, marred only by one thing, indecision as to his subsequent
+career. His friends were inclined to look rather askance at this; one or
+two, in a tactful way, pointed out to him the danger of "drifting." In
+reality there was small danger of this; although his inherited income
+would make him independent of his own efforts for livelihood during the
+rest of his natural life, Harry would never "drift" very far. His brain
+was too active, his ambition too lively, his sense of the seriousness of
+life too deep to allow that. He could never be content doing nothing. He
+wanted, in turn, to do very nearly everything; the professions of
+lawyer, doctor, "business man," engineer, clergyman, soldier,
+sailor--tinker and tailor, even were considered and rejected in turn.
+
+"It's not that I don't want to do all these things," he explained to
+Trotty, who sometimes showed impatience at his vagueness; "the trouble
+is that I can't do any of them. I'm not fitted for them--I'm not worthy
+of them, if you like to put it that way. If I were a conscienceless
+wretch, now, it would be different!"
+
+One Sunday afternoon in June, rather saddened by the feeling of his
+apparent uselessness in the world, he went to call on Madge Elliston.
+
+"Well, what are you going to do this summer?" she began. "That seems to
+be the one topic of conversation at this time of year."
+
+"This summer? Oh, I'm going to walk, with the rest of my class, in the
+more mountainous portions of Europe. At present I am under engagement to
+walk through the hilly parts of England, Scotland and Wales, the Black
+Forest, the Alps, the Tyrol, the Dolomites and some of the cooler
+portions of the Apennines; but the Cévennes and the Caucasus are still
+open, if you care to engage them.... In between times I expect to
+roister, shamelessly, in some of the livelier resorts of the Continent.
+That's all quite simple; what I'm worrying about is what I'm going to do
+next winter."
+
+"Why don't you write, if I may be pardoned for asking so obvious a
+question?" asked Madge.
+
+"One simple but sufficient reason--I haven't got anything to write
+about," answered Harry, smiling. "That's what everybody asks, and the
+answer is always the same. This prevalent belief in my literary ability
+is flattering, but unfortunately it's wholly unfounded."
+
+"I shouldn't say so. I've read most of what you've written in college,
+and it seems to me extremely clever."
+
+"Clever--that's just it! Nothing more! The awful truth is, there's
+nothing more in me. I have rather a high regard for literature, you see,
+and on that very account I'm less willing to inflict myself on it. I
+wouldn't care, though, if there was anything else I appeared to be cut
+out for. If I felt that I could sweep crossings better than other
+people, I assure you I would go into the profession with the greatest
+cheerfulness!"
+
+Madge laughed. "I know very much how you feel--I've been going through
+much the same thing myself, though you might not have guessed it. Only
+as it happens I have received a call for something very like the
+profession you speak of."
+
+"Crossing-sweeping?"
+
+"The next thing to it--teaching in a dame's school in town--Miss
+Snellgrove's. I think it's rather a pretty idea, don't you? Society
+flower, withered and faint with gaiety, seeking refreshment in the
+cloistral, the academic!--You don't approve?"
+
+"Woman's sphere is the home," said Harry doubtfully.
+
+"Not when the home is a two-by-four box; you couldn't call that a
+sphere, could you? Of course," she went on, more seriously, "of course
+the real, immediate reason why I'm doing it is financial. These are
+times of--well, stringency.... Not but what we could scrape along; but
+it seems rather absurd to be earning nothing when one could just as well
+be earning something, doesn't it? And the only alternative is playing
+about eternally with college boys younger than myself."
+
+"Yes, I think you're very sensible, if that's the case. Not that it is,
+of course; you'll find plenty of people coming back to the graduate and
+professional schools to console you. Also my brother James at week-ends,
+if that's any comfort to you!"
+
+"James? Is he in this part of the country?"
+
+"Yes, in New York. He's going to be in McClellan's branch there next
+winter--assistant manager, or something of the sort--something important
+and successful sounding. We are all very much set up over it. And it's
+so near that he can come up for Sunday quite regularly, if he wants.--It
+does give me quite a solemn and humble feeling, though, to think that
+you have found a profession before me."
+
+"Oh, yes; teaching at Miss Snellgrove's is more than a profession--it's
+a career!--I refuse to believe, though," she continued with a change of
+manner, "that you have not found your profession already, even though
+you may not care to adopt it yet. For after all, you know, you have the
+creative ability. Every one says that. All that's wanting in you, as you
+say, is having something to write about, and nothing but time and
+development will bring that. Meanwhile I think it's very nice and
+high-minded of you not to go ahead and write nothing, with great ease
+and fluency! That's what most people in your position do."
+
+"Thank you; that's very encouraging," said Harry. He looked
+thoughtfully at her for a moment and continued: "Has it ever occurred to
+you, Madge, that you are quite a remarkable young woman?"
+
+"Heavens yes, hundreds of times!"
+
+"That's a denial, I suppose. However, it's true. Look at the way you've
+just been talking to me!... You have what I've come to admire very much
+during the past few months--perfect balance of viewpoint. You have what
+one might call a sense of ultimacy--is there such a word? It's like a
+number of children, each playing about in his own little backyard,
+surrounded by a high fence that he can't see over, suspecting the
+existence of a lot of other backyards, with children in them wondering
+what lay beyond in just the same way. Then occasionally there is born a
+happy being to whom is given the privilege of looking down on the whole
+lot of them from the church steeple, and being able to see each backyard
+in its exact relation to all the other backyards. That's you.... It's a
+rare gift!"
+
+Madge was at first amused by this elaborate compliment, but she ended by
+being rather touched by it.
+
+"It's very nice of you to say that," she replied after a moment, "no
+matter how little foundation there may be for it. It proves one thing,
+at any rate--I have no monopoly of the quality of ultimacy! You wouldn't
+be able to think I was ultimate, would you, unless you were a wee bit
+ultimate yourself? And that goes to prove what I said about your
+attitude toward your profession."
+
+"I'm afraid you can't make me believe in my own ultimacy, no matter how
+hard you try," said Harry. "In fact I pursue the rival study of
+propinquity--the art of never seeing beyond one's own nose!"
+
+"Well, you must at least let me believe in the ultimacy of your finding
+your profession," insisted Madge. But Harry only shook his head.
+
+Commencement arrived at last, and Aunt Cecilia, attended by a
+representative delegation of her progeny, flopped down upon Aunt Selina,
+prepared to do as much by Harry as she had by his brother two years
+earlier. Aunt Cecilia belonged to the important class of American women
+who regard a graduation as a family event second in importance only to a
+wedding or a funeral, ranking slightly higher than a "coming out." The
+occasion was a particularly joyous one to her because of Harry's being
+able to celebrate it in a full blaze of righteousness and truth, and
+because of the consequent opportunities for motherly fluttering.
+
+"Dear Harry," she said, as she kissed, him on his arrival; "I am so glad
+to be here to see you graduate, and so glad that--that everything has
+gone so splendidly. It is so much, much nicer--that is, it is _so_ nice
+to think that--"
+
+"Yes, dear; you mean, isn't it nice that I'm respectable again," said
+Harry, with a flippancy made gentle by the sight of her kind blue eyes.
+"I am respectable now, you know, so you needn't be afraid to talk about
+it. We can all be respectable together; you're respectable, and I'm
+respectable, and Ruth is respectable and Lucy is respectable, and Aunt
+Selina is respectable--we hope; how about that, Aunt Selina?--and
+altogether we're an eminently respectable family. All except Beatrice,
+that is, who is far, far too nobly born, being related, in fact, to a
+marquis. No one in the peerage, Aunt C. dear, likes to be called
+respectable--it's considered insulting. No one, that is, above the rank
+of baron; the barons are now all reformed brewers, who get their
+peerages by being so respectable that people forget all about the
+brewing, and that is English democracy, and isn't it a splendid thing,
+dear? When you marry Ruth to an English peer, you must be sure to have
+him a baron, because none of the others are respectable."
+
+"Harry, what nonsense you do talk!" said his aunt. "Before these
+girls--!"
+
+"I imagine these girls know Harry by this time," remarked Aunt Selina.
+"If they don't, it's time they did. You're a hundred times more innocent
+than they, Cecilia, and always will be."
+
+"Exactly always what I tell Mama," put in Ruth, the eldest of Aunt
+Cecilia's brood. "Besides, what Harry said is all quite true, I'm sure.
+Except about me; I shan't marry a foreigner at all, but if I do, I
+certainly shan't marry a brewer. Mama is far too rich for me to take
+anything less than a duke."
+
+This was literally, almost painfully true. A succession of deaths in
+Aunt Cecilia's family, accompanied by a scarcity of male heirs, had
+placed her in possession of almost untold wealth--"more than I bargained
+for when I took you," as Uncle James jocularly put it, for the pleasure
+of seeing her bridle and blush. Aunt C. was one of the richest women in
+the country, but it never changed her a particle. Not all her wealth,
+not all her social prominence, not all the refining influences that
+several generations' enjoyment of these brings, could ever make her even
+appear to be anything but the simple, warm-hearted, motherly creature
+she was.
+
+Harry, realizing all this as well as any one, exerted himself to make
+Aunt C. glad she had made the effort to come to see him graduate, and he
+manfully escorted her and the girls to the play, the baccalaureate
+service, his class-day exercises, the baseball game and various other
+entertainments, where, as Ruth rather aptly put it, "we can sit around
+and watch somebody else do something." He also did his full duty by his
+cousin, and danced away a long and perspiring evening with her at the
+senior promenade. He found Ruth very good company, in spite of her
+active tongue, or rather, perhaps, because of it.
+
+The final Wednesday, pregnant with fate, arrived at length, and after an
+immense deal of watching other people receive degrees, some earned and
+some accorded by the pure generosity of the University, Harry became
+entitled to write the magic initials "B.A." after his name. Being one of
+the leaders of his class in point of scholarship, he was one of the
+twenty or so who mounted the platform and received the diplomas for the
+rest. This was too much for Aunt Cecilia, who occupied a prominent place
+in the front row of the balcony.
+
+"Oh, dear," she sighed, wiping away a furtive tear, "there he goes, and
+no mother to see him do it! No one to be proud of him! And the brightest
+of all the family--I shall never live to see a son of mine do as well,
+never, never!"
+
+"I'm not so sure," said her eldest daughter, comfortingly; "the doctrine
+of chances is in your favor. You have four boys--four chances to
+Aunt--what was her name?--Aunt Edith's two. Harry's not so fearfully
+bright, anyway--only sixteenth out of three hundred."
+
+"My dear, how can you talk so? you ought to be ashamed, after his being
+so nice to you all this week!"
+
+"Yes, he's been very sweet, indeed," replied the maiden, magnanimously.
+"Though I don't know, on looking back at it, that he's been any nicer to
+me than I've been to him!"
+
+Harry himself was rather impressed by the long ceremony in which he
+found the qualities of dignity and simplicity nicely blended. He was
+impressed particularly by the giving of the honorary degrees; it seemed
+to him a very fine thing that these ten or fifteen people, all of them
+leaders in widely different spheres of activity, should make so much of
+receiving a bit of parchment from a university which most of them had
+not even attended, and equally fine of the university to do them honor;
+the whole giving proof of the triumph of the academic ideal in an age of
+materialism.
+
+The same thought occurred to him even more vividly at the great alumni
+luncheon that followed; the last and in some ways the most impressive of
+all the Commencement ceremonies. The great Renaissance dining hall
+filled from end to end with graduates, upwards of a thousand strong,
+ranging between the hoary-headed veteran and the hour-old Bachelor, all
+of them gathered for the single purpose of doing honor to their alma
+mater, all of them thrilled by the same feeling of affection for
+her--all this awakened a responsive note in the mind of Harry, always
+ready to render honor where honor was due, or to show love when he felt
+it. It was pleasant to sit and eat among one's classmates and in the
+presence of those other, older, more exalted beings stretching away to
+the other end of the hall and think that they were all, in a way, on
+terms of equal footing--all graduates together.
+
+At one end of the hall, on a great raised dais, sat the highest officers
+of the University, in company with the guests of honor of the day, the
+recipients of the honorary degrees. After the meal was over, certain of
+these were called upon to speak. Harry thought he had never heard such
+speeches. The men who made them were big men, foremost in the country's
+service and in the work of the world; one was a Cabinet minister,
+another a great explorer, another a scientist, another a missionary. The
+ultimate message of each one of them was the high mission of Yale, given
+in no spirit of boastful, flag-waving "almamatriotism," but with strong
+emphasis on the theme of service. One got from them the idea that Yale
+men, like all men of their station and responsibility the world over,
+were born to serve humanity. The mission of Yale in this scheme was one
+of preparation; she acted as a recruiting-station and clearing-house,
+developing the special powers of each of her sons, equipping them with
+knowledge of books, other men and themselves, and at last sending them
+into the field where they were calculated to make the best use of
+themselves. One revered and loved Yale, of course, for what she had
+given one; to her every man owed a full measure of gratitude and
+affection for what he had become. But one was never to forget where Yale
+stood in the scheme of things; one must always bear in mind that she was
+not an end in herself, but a means--one of many other means--to an
+infinitely greater end. Only by considering her in her place in the vast
+order of world-service could one do justice to her true power, her true
+greatness.
+
+The impression ultimately conveyed was not that of a smaller Yale but of
+a larger world. Harry had never considered the relation between universe
+and university in this illuminating light. He suddenly realized that his
+idea of his college had been that of a particularly reputable and
+agreeable finishing-school for young men; a treasury of social knowledge
+and the home of sport. He had mistaken the side-shows for the main
+exhibition; he had admired and criticized them without regard to the
+whole of which they were but small parts. In a flash he looked back and
+realized the vanity and recklessness of his earlier revolt against
+college institutions and traditions. Who was he that he should criticize
+them? What had he to offer as substitute for them except an attitude of
+idle receptivity and irresponsible dalliance? He had recovered from that
+first foolishness, to be sure, and thank Heaven for that slight evidence
+of sanity; but what had he done since his recovery except sit back and
+watch the days slide by? Had he ever made the slightest attempt toward
+serious thinking, toward placing himself, his college and the world in
+their proper relations to each other? Had he succeeded in learning a
+single important lesson from the many that had been offered to him? Was
+it possible that he had completely wasted these four precious years of
+golden youth?
+
+Suddenly he felt tears of humiliation and self-contempt burn behind his
+eyes. It would be absurd to shed them. He shifted his position and lit a
+cigarette. He inhaled the comforting smoke deeply and listened with
+meticulous attention to the speech from which his mind had wandered
+into introspection, trying not to think any more of himself. Gradually,
+however, there penetrated into his inner consciousness the comforting
+thought that he had been hysterical, had judged himself too harshly in
+his anxiety to be sufficiently hard on himself. Those years were not
+wholly wasted--he had learned something in them. He was ahead of where
+he was when he entered college, if only a little. The thought of James
+occurred to him; James would be an inspiration in the future as he had
+been a help in the past. No, there was yet hope for him, though he must
+be very careful how he acted in the future. He had been a fool, but he
+hoped now that he had been merely a young fool, and that his mistakes
+could be at least partly rectified by age and effort. He would try hard,
+at least; he would be receptive, industrious, thorough, tolerant,
+unbiased and humble--above all, humble. He glanced up at the speaker's
+table and reflected that the men who had the most reason to be proud
+were in fact the humblest.
+
+The last speaker sat down amid a round of applause. The men on the floor
+of the hall stood up to sing before departing. Harry, looking at his
+watch, was surprised at the lateness of the hour; he had promised to see
+Aunt Cecilia and her daughters off at the station and must hurry away at
+once if he were to catch them.
+
+He laboriously made his way through the ranks of singing graduates
+toward the door, listening to the familiar words of the song as he had
+never before listened.
+
+ Mother of men, grown strong in giving
+ Honor to them thy lights have led,
+
+sang the men. Yes, thought Harry, there was plenty of honor to give.
+Would that he might ever be one of those to whom such honor was due, but
+that was not to be thought of. It was enough for him to be one of those
+who were led by those lights. Yes, that was the first step, steadfastly
+to follow the light that the grave Mother held above and before him; to
+keep his eyes constantly on it, never looking down or behind.
+
+ Rich in the toil of thousands living,
+ Proud of the deeds of thousands dead,
+
+Deeds, deeds! That was what counted; any one could see visions and dream
+dreams; the veriest fool could mean well. Oh, might a merciful Heaven
+help him to convert into deeds the lofty ideals that now surged within
+his brain!--What a ripping song that was, and how well it sounded to
+hear a thousand men singing it together! He forgot Aunt Cecilia for a
+moment, and checked his pace near the door to hear the last verse.
+
+ Spirit of youth, alive, unchanging,
+ Under whose feet the years are cast,
+ Heir to an ageless empire, ranging
+ Over the future and the past--
+
+Half blinded with tears he staggered out into the empty vestibule and
+steadied himself for a second against a pillar. He never had realized
+before how much it all meant to him, how he loved what he was leaving.
+And yet--"Spirit of youth, alive, unchanging"--he had never quite caught
+the full meaning of those words. They now seemed, in a way, to soften
+the pain of parting, to give him comfort and strength with which to face
+the years. Surely growing old would not be so bad if one could think of
+the spirit of youth as still there, alive, unchanging, spreading joy and
+hope through the world!
+
+And then, sweet and sudden as a breeze at sundown came the thought to
+him that here lay his life's work, his own little mission in the world:
+in using his intelligence and his power of interpretation, the only
+gifts he could discover himself as possessing, to guide and assist those
+who happened to come a little after him in the long procession of human
+life--in becoming, in short, a teacher. A sudden feeling of calmness and
+surety took possession of him; he was able to consider himself and his
+place in the world with a more complete detachment than he had ever
+before attained. He found himself able, for the moment, to rate his
+powers and limitations exactly as an unprejudiced observer might have
+done. Within him he suddenly, unmistakably felt those qualities of
+priest and prophet which, combined with that of the scholar, make up the
+ideal teacher.
+
+"Spirit of youth," he whispered, "to you I dedicate myself, such as I
+am, and my life, such as it may be."
+
+He stood still for a moment and listened as the great chorus behind the
+closed door brought the song to a finish, ending on a note both solemn
+and exalted. For a second or two there was silence, and then there
+burst forth the sound of the Yale cheer. The contrast between the last
+notes of the song and the brazen bellow of that cheer, hallowed by the
+memories of a hundred close-fought fields, struck Harry as both dramatic
+and comic, and caused a corresponding change in his own mood.
+
+"Spirit of youth, alive, unchanging!" he quoted again, laughing. Then he
+hurried off to say good-by to his aunt.
+
+
+
+
+PART II
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER I
+
+CAN LOVE BE CONTROLLED BY ADVICE?
+
+
+Madge Elliston lived alone with her mother in a small house on an
+unpretentious but socially unimpeachable side street, just off one of
+the main avenues. Their means, as Madge has already intimated, were
+modest--"modest," as the young lady sprightly put it, "to the point of
+prudishness." Joseph Elliston, her father, had been a brilliant and
+promising young professor when her mother married him, with, as people
+said, a career before him. If by career they meant affluence, they were
+wholly right in saying it was all before him. But though the two married
+on his prospects, they could not fairly have been said to have made an
+unwise venture. Nothing but death had kept Joseph Elliston from becoming
+a popular and respected teacher, a foremost authority on economics, the
+author of standard works on that subject, and the possessor of a
+comfortable income. But he had died when Madge, his only child, was five
+years old, leaving his small and sorrowing family barely enough to live
+on.
+
+The straitened circumstances in which the sad event threw Mrs. Elliston
+and her daughter were somewhat relieved by the generosity of the only
+sister of the widow, Eliza Scharndorst, herself a widow and the
+possessor of a large fortune. She was extremely fond of Madge, who
+always got on beautifully with her "Aunt Tizzy"--an infantile corruption
+allowed to survive into maturity--having more in common with her, if the
+truth must be known, than with her mother. She was a festive soul, much
+given to entertaining, and she was not long in discovering that the
+assistance of her niece was a distinct asset in making her home
+attractive to guests. It is not to be wondered at that Madge's
+occasional services in the way of decorating a dinner table or
+brightening up an otherwise stodgy reception would redound to her
+material benefit as well as to her spiritual welfare. Such good things
+as trips to Bermuda, occasional new frocks and instruction under the
+best music masters, came her way so frequently that by the time we next
+meet her, nearly five years after our last sight of her, Madge was a far
+better dowered young woman, socially speaking, than the penniless
+orphaned daughter of a college professor could normally hope to be.
+
+For when we next see her Miss Elliston is--and in no mere figurative
+sense--holding the center of the stage. A real stage in a real theater,
+under the full blaze of real footlights, and if no real audience sits on
+the other side of those footlights, it is no great matter, for a very
+real audience will sit there soon enough. On Friday night, to be exact,
+and this is Tuesday. To be even more exact, it is the first formal,
+dress rehearsal of an amateur performance of "The Beggar's Opera"
+(immortal work!) organized primarily for charitable purposes by a number
+of prominent citizens, among them Mrs. Rudolph Scharndorst, and
+secondarily, if we are to give any weight to the opinion of those
+present at the rehearsal, for the purpose of giving scope to the talents
+of Mrs. Rudolph Scharndorst's niece.
+
+For Madge is cast for the part of Polly Peachum, heroine of the piece.
+And if there was originally the slightest doubt as to the wisdom of such
+an assignment, it has vanished into thin air before now. For Madge is
+lovely--! It is not merely a matter of voice; there never was any doubt
+but that she had the best voice available for the part. What the
+scattered few in the dark auditorium are busy admiring now is the
+extraordinary charm, grace, actual beauty, even, of the girl performing
+before them. The more so because it is all so unattended; no one thought
+that she would give that effect on the stage. Of a type usually
+described as "attractive," slight and rather short, with hair sandy
+rather than golden, and a face distinguished only by a nice pair of blue
+eyes and a particularly ingratiating smile, Madge could not fairly be
+expected to turn herself into a vision of commanding beauty and charm
+with the slight external aids of paint and powder and a position behind
+a row of strong lights.
+
+The only unimpressed and indifferent person in the theater was the
+coach. That was quite as it should be, of course; coaches must not
+exhibit bursts of enthusiasm, like common people. Yet it is perhaps
+worth mentioning that the coach in question made none of his frequent
+interruptions during the first few moments of Polly's presence on the
+stage, but sat silently biting his pencil and frowning in the back row
+of the theater till after she had finished her second song.
+
+"One moment!" he cried, running down the aisle. "I'm going to change
+that song." He exchanged a few whispered remarks with the leader of the
+orchestra, who had charge of the musical side of the production. "All
+right--never mind now--go on with the act ... No, don't cross there,
+Mrs. Peachum; stay where you are, and Miss Elliston! what are the last
+words of the second line of that song?"
+
+"'Mothers obey.'"
+
+"All right--let's have 'em. I didn't get them that time. Go on, please."
+
+The act continued, and admiration grew apace. When at length the act
+reached its close there was a faint but spontaneous outburst of applause
+from the almost empty theater.
+
+"Well, what do you think of Madge?" asked Mrs. Scharndorst, waylaying
+the coach on his progress down the aisle.
+
+"Oh, she'll do! There's a lot there to improve, though.--Strike for the
+second act--drinking scene!" This last uttered in a shout as he rushed
+on down to the stage. Not very fulsome praise, to be sure, but Mrs.
+Scharndorst knows her man, and is satisfied. Indeed, she respects him
+the more for not being fulsome.
+
+So do the other members of the cast and chorus; at least, if they do
+respect him, it cannot be for the enthusiasm of his approval. His
+demeanor, as he stands there on a chair in the orchestra pit, shouting
+directions to his minions, is not indicative of very profound
+satisfaction with the progress of the rehearsal.
+
+"Thompson! If you're going to use your spot on Polly's entrance, for
+Heaven's sake keep it on her face and not on her feet! I didn't see a
+thing but her shoes then ... No, you there, that table way down
+front--so, and oh, Mrs. Smith! is that Tilman's idea of a costume for an
+old woman, middle class?... I thought so ... no, I'm afraid not! That
+train might be quite suitable for a duchess, but it won't do for a
+robber's wife. You see Miss Banks about it, will you please?... Mr.
+Barnaby! I want to get you and Miss Elliston to go through the business
+of that Pretty Polly song once again--you're both as stiff as pokers
+still.... No, just the motions. No, stand on both feet and keep your
+chest out while you're singing your part, and when she comes in,
+'Fondly, fondly,' you half turn round, so--so that when she falls back
+on your arm she'll have a chance to show more than her chin to the
+audience.... No, I think I'll have you wait till the encore before you
+kiss her--it looks flat if you do it too often, and by the bye, Mr.
+Barnaby, will you make an appointment with Mrs. Adams for to-morrow to
+get up a dance for that prison scene--'How happy could I be with
+either'.... Four o'clock--all right.... What song?"
+
+This last is in answer to an inquiry from Miss Elliston.
+
+"Oh, of course--'Can love be controlled by advice'.... Come down here
+and we'll talk it over. Careful, step in the middle of that chair and
+you'll be all right ... there!" And Miss Elliston and the great man sit
+down companionably in the places belonging respectively to the oboe and
+the trombone, just as though they had been friends from earliest youth.
+
+If there is one thing we despise, it is transparent roguishness on the
+part of an author. Let us hasten to admit, then, that the coach is none
+other than our friend Harry; a Harry not changed a particle, really,
+from his undergraduate days, though a Harry, to be sure, in whom the
+passage of five years has effected certain important developments. Such,
+for instance, as having become able to coach an amateur production of a
+musical show. These will be described and accounted for, all in good
+time. The story cannot be everywhere at once.
+
+"About that song ... I know nothing about music, of course, but it
+struck me to-night that that was rather a good tune--one of the best in
+the show.... It may have been the singing, of course."
+
+"Not a bit of it--it's a ripping tune!--Let's see what the trombone part
+for it looks like.... There isn't any--just those little thingumbobs.
+Oh, the accompaniment is all on the strings, of course; I forgot."
+
+"Well, what I want to get at is, do you think Gay's words are up to
+it?"
+
+"Nowhere near. I'd much rather sing some of yours, if that's what you're
+getting at.... They're not quite _jeune fille_, either; I just
+discovered that to-day."
+
+"There's a great deal in this show that isn't. We've cut most of it, but
+there's a good bit left, only no one who hasn't studied the period can
+spot it.... You needn't tell any one that.--Well, let's see about some
+words. 'Can love be controlled by advice, will Cupid our mothers
+obey'--we'll keep that, I think ..."
+
+He produced a scrap of paper from his pocket and scribbled rapidly on
+it. In a minute or two he had evolved the following stanzas, retaining
+the first four lines of Gay's original song:
+
+ Can love be controlled by advice?
+ Will Cupid our mothers obey?
+ Though my heart were as frozen as ice
+ At his flame 'twould have melted away.
+ Now love is enthroned in my heart
+ All your threats and entreaties are in vain;
+ His power defies all your art,
+ And chiding but adds to my pain.
+
+ Ah, mother! if ever in youth
+ Your heart by love's anguish was wrung;
+ If ever you thrilled with its truth
+ Too sweet to be spoken or sung;
+ If ever you've longed for life's best,
+ Nor reckoned the issue thereof;
+ If heart ever beat in your breast
+ Have pity on me--for I love!
+
+"There!" said he, handing it to the prima donna; "see what you think of
+that."
+
+"Oh ... much better! There'll be much more fun in singing it."
+
+"It isn't much in the way of poetry," explained Harry, "but it gives a
+certain dramatic interest to the song, which is the main thing. You can
+change anything you want in it, of course; I daresay some of those words
+are quite unsingable on the notes of the song."
+
+"No--I think they'll be all right. Thank you very much; it was hard to
+make anything out of the other words. Also, I shall be able to tell Mama
+that you've cut out some of Gay's naughty words and put in some innocent
+ones of your own instead. She's been just a little worried lately, I
+think; she seems to have an idea that 'The Beggar's Opera' isn't quite a
+nice play for a young lady to act in!"
+
+"Well, one can hardly blame her...." This sentence trailed off into
+inaudibility as Harry turned to give his attention to some one else
+coming up with a question at the moment. Perhaps Miss Elliston did not
+even hear the beginning of the sentence; it is easier to believe that
+she did not, in view of what followed. Certainly every extenuating
+circumstance is needed, on both sides, to help account for the fact that
+so trivial conversation as that which just took place should have led
+directly to unpleasantness and indirectly to consequences of a
+far-reaching kind. It is easier to comprehend, also, if one remembers
+that Miss Elliston's thoughts when she was left alone by Harry occupying
+the position of the trombone, remained on, or at any rate quite near,
+the point at which the conversation broke off, whereas Harry's had flown
+far from it. So that when, after an interval of a few minutes, Harry's
+voice again became articulate to her in the single isolated sentence
+"given her something to say to her old frump of a mother," addressed to
+the leader of the orchestra, she at first misconstrued his meaning,
+interpreting his remark not as he meant it, as referring to her stage
+mother, Mrs. Peachum, but as referring to quieting the puritanical
+scruples of her own mother, Mrs. Elliston.
+
+The whole affair hung on an incredibly slender thread of coincidence. If
+Harry had not unconsciously raised his voice somewhat on that one
+phrase, if he had not happened to use the word "frump," which might
+conceivably be twisted into applying to either mother, Miss Elliston
+would never, even for a moment, have been tempted to attribute the baser
+meaning to his words. As it was the thought did not remain in her head
+above five seconds, at the outside; she knew Harry better than to
+believe seriously that he would say such a thing. But by another
+unfortunate chance Harry happened to be looking her way during those few
+seconds, and marked her angry flush and the instantaneous glance of
+indignation and contempt that she shot toward him. He saw her flush die
+down and her expression soften again, but the natural quickness that had
+made him realize her state of mind was not long in giving him an
+explanation of it.
+
+All might yet have been well had not Harry's sense of humor played him
+false. As usually happened at these evening rehearsals he escorted Miss
+Elliston home, her house lying on the way to his. In the course of the
+walk an unhappy impulse made him refer to the little incident, which had
+struck him as merely humorous.
+
+"By the way," said he "your sense of filial duty almost led you astray
+to-night, didn't it?"
+
+"Filial duty?"
+
+"Yes--you thought I was making remarks about your mother to-night when I
+was talking to Cosgrove about Mrs. Peachum and that song...."
+
+"Oh, that--!" Any one who knew her might have expected Miss Elliston to
+laugh and continue with something like "Yes, I know; wasn't it
+ridiculous of me?" since she really knew perfectly well that Harry was
+talking about Mrs. Peachum. That she did not is due partly to the
+fatigue incident to rehearsing a leading part in an opera in addition to
+teaching school from nine till one every day, and partly to the
+eternally inexplicable depths of the feminine nature. She had been very
+much ashamed of herself for having even for a moment done that injustice
+to Harry, and she wished intensely that the affair might be buried in
+the deepest oblivion. Harry's opening of the subject, consequently,
+seemed to her tactless and a trifle brutal. She had done penance all the
+evening for her after all very trifling mistake; why should he insist
+upon humiliating her this way?... Obviously she was very tired!
+
+"Yes," went on Harry, "don't expect me to believe that you were angry on
+behalf of Mrs. Peachum!"
+
+"No. I suppose I had a right to be angry on behalf of my own mother, if
+I wanted to, though."
+
+"But I wasn't talking about your mother--you know that!"
+
+"Oh, weren't you?"
+
+"Well, do you think so?"
+
+"How should I know? I was only eavesdropping, of course, I have no right
+to think anything about it."
+
+"Madge, don't be silly."
+
+"Well?"
+
+"Do you really, honestly think that I am guilty of having spoken
+slightingly of your mother? Just answer me that, yes or no."
+
+"As I say, I have no right to any opinion on the subject. I only heard
+something not intended--"
+
+"Oh, the--" The remainder of this exclamation was fortunately lost in
+the collar of Harry's greatcoat. "You had better give me back that
+song--I presume you won't want to sing it now."
+
+"Why not? Art is above all personal feelings." It was mere wilfulness
+that led her to utter this cynical remark. What she really wanted to say
+was "Of course I want to sing it, and I know you meant Mrs. Peachum,"
+but somehow the other answer was given before she knew it.
+
+"Madge, you may not know it, but you are positively insulting."
+
+"Oh, Harry--! Who began being insulting? Not that I mind your insulting
+me...."
+
+"Oh. That's the way it is, is it? I see." They were now standing talking
+at the foot of Madge's front steps. Harry continued, very quietly: "Now
+perhaps you'd better give me back that song."
+
+"I don't see the necessity."
+
+"I'll be damned if you shall sing it now!" His voice remained low, but
+passion sounded in it as unmistakably as if he had shouted. The remark
+was, in fact, made in an uncontrollable burst of anger, necessitating
+the severing of all diplomatic relations.
+
+"Just as you like, of course." Madge's tone, cold, expressionless,
+hopelessly polite, is equivalent to the granting of a demanded passport.
+"Here it is. Good-night."
+
+"Good-night."
+
+So they parted, in a white heat of anger. But being both fairly sensible
+people, in the main, beside being the kind of people whose anger however
+violently it may burn at first, does not last long, they realized before
+sleep closed their eyes that night that the quarrel would not last over
+another day.
+
+Morning brought to Harry, at any rate, a complete return of sanity, and
+before breakfast he sat down and wrote the following note:
+
+ Dear Madge:
+
+ I send back the song merely as a token of the abjectness of my
+ submission--I don't suppose you will want to sing it now. I
+ can't tell you how sorry I am about my behavior last night; I
+ can only ask you to attribute as much, of it as possible to
+ the fatigue of business and forgive the rest!
+
+ HARRY.
+
+which he enclosed in an envelope with the words of the song and sent to
+Madge by a messenger boy.
+
+Madge received it while she was at breakfast. She went out and told the
+boy to wait for an answer, and went back and finished her breakfast
+before writing a reply. Her face was noticeably grave as she ate, and it
+became even graver when at last she sat down at her desk and started to
+put pen to paper. She wrote three pages of note-paper, read them, and
+tore them up. She then wrote a page and a half, taking more time over
+them than over the three. This she also tore up. Then she sat inactive
+at her desk for several minutes, and at last, seeing that she was due at
+her school in a few minutes, she took up another sheet of paper and
+wrote: "All right--my fault entirely. M. E.," and sent it off by the
+boy.
+
+When Harry saw her at the rehearsal that evening she greeted him exactly
+as if nothing had happened. She had rather less to say to him than was
+customary during rehearsals, but Harry was so busy and preoccupied he
+did not notice that. He did notice that she sang the original words to
+the disputed song, which, as he told himself, was just what he expected.
+
+For the next two days he was fairly buried in responsibility and detail
+and hardly conscious of any feeling whatever beyond an intense desire to
+have the performance over. It was not until this desire was partially
+fulfilled, the curtain actually risen on the Friday night and the
+performance well under way, that he was able to sit back and draw a free
+breath. The moment came when, having seen that all was well behind the
+scenes, he dropped into the back of the box occupied by Aunt Selina and
+one or two chosen friends to watch the progress of the play from the
+front.
+
+Then, for the first time, he was able to look at it more from the point
+of view of a spectator than that of a creator. Now that his work was
+completed and must stand or fall on its own merit, he could watch from a
+wholly detached position. On the whole, he rather enjoyed the sensation.
+It occurred to him, for instance, as quite a new thought, that the
+excellent make-up of the stolid Mr. Dawson in the part of Peachum very
+largely counteracted his vocal "dulness"; and that Mrs. Smith as Mrs.
+Peachum, in spite of the innumerable sillinesses and bad tricks that had
+been his despair for weeks, was making an extremely good impression upon
+the audience.
+
+Then Madge made her entrance, and he saw at a glance, as he had never
+seen it before, just how good Madge was. She had a certain way of
+carrying her head, a certain sureness in adjusting her movements to her
+speech, a certain judgment in projecting her voice that went straight to
+the spot. Madge was a born actress, that was all there was to it; she
+ought to have made the stage her profession. He smiled inwardly as he
+thought how many people would make that remark after this performance.
+Then his amusement gave place to a sudden and strange resentment against
+the very idea of Madge's going on the stage; a resentment he made no
+effort either to understand or account for....
+
+The strings in the orchestra quavered a few languorous notes and Madge
+started her song "Can love be controlled by advice." Her voice was a
+singularly sweet one, of no great volume and yet possessed of a certain
+carrying quality. The excellence of her instruction, combined with her
+own good taste, had brought it to a state of what, for that voice, might
+be called perfection. She also had the good sense never to sing anything
+too big for her. But though her voice might not be suited to Wagner or
+Strauss it was far better suited to certain simpler things than a larger
+voice might have been, and the song she was singing now was one of
+these. Probably no more happy combination could be effected between
+singer and song than that of Madge and the slow, plaintive,
+seventeenth-century melody of "Grim king of the ghosts," which Gay had
+the good sense to incorporate into his masterpiece.
+
+To say that the audience was spellbound by her rendering of the song
+would be to stretch a point. It sat, for the most part, silently
+attentive, enjoying it very much and thinking that it would give her a
+good round of applause and an encore at the end. Harry, standing in the
+obscurity of the back part of Aunt Selina's box, was of very much the
+same mind. For about half of the song, that is. For near the end of the
+first verse he suddenly realized that Madge was singing not Gay's
+words, but his own.
+
+It was absurd, of course, but at that realization the whole world seemed
+suddenly to change. The floor beneath his feet became clouds, the
+theater a corner of paradise, the people in it choirs of marvelous
+ethereal beings, Mrs. Peachum (alias Smith) a ministrant seraph, Madge's
+voice the music of the spheres, and Madge herself, from being an
+unusually nice girl of his acquaintance, became....
+
+What nonsense! he told himself; the idea of getting so worked up at
+hearing his own words sung on a stage!--You fool, replied another voice
+within him, you know perfectly well that that's not it at all.--Don't
+tell me, replied the other Harry, the sensible one; such things don't
+happen, except in books; they don't happen to real people--ME, for
+instance.--Why not? obstinately inquired the other; why not you, as well
+as any one else?--Well, I can't stop to argue about it now, the
+practical Harry answered; I've got to go out and see that people are
+ready for their cues.
+
+He went out, and found everything running perfectly smoothly. People
+were standing waiting for their entrances minutes ahead of time, the
+electricians were at their posts, the make-up people had finished their
+work, the scene-shifters and property men had put everything in
+readiness for setting the next scene; no one even asked him a question.
+He flitted about for a few moments on imaginary errands, asking various
+people if all was going well; but the real question that he kept asking
+himself all the time was Is this IT? Is this IT?
+
+"I don't know!" he said at last, loudly and petulantly, and several
+people turned to see whom he was reproving now.
+
+When he got back to the box he found Madge still singing the last verse
+of her song. He wondered how many times she had had to repeat it, and
+hoped Cosgrove was living up to his agreement not to give more than one
+encore to each song. In reality this was her first encore; his hectic
+trip behind the scenes had occupied a much shorter time than he
+supposed. Madge was making a most exquisite piece of work of her little
+appeal to maternal sympathy; she was actually taking the second verse
+sitting down, leaning forward with her arms on a table in an attitude of
+conversational pleading. He had not told her to do that; it was so hard
+to make effective that he would not have dared to suggest it. When she
+reached the line, "If heart ever beat in your breast" she suddenly rose,
+slightly threw back her arms and head, and sang the words on a wholly
+new note of restrained passion, beautifully dramatic and suggestive. The
+house burst into applause, but Harry was seized with a fit of unholy
+mirth at the irony of the situation--Madge, perfectly indifferent,
+singing those words, while he, their author, consumed with an
+all-devouring flame, stood stifling his passion in a dark corner. An
+insane desire seized him to run out to the middle of the stage and shout
+at the top of his voice "Have pity on me, for I love!" It would be true
+then. He supposed, however, that people might think it peculiar.
+
+From then on, as long as Madge held the stage, he stood rooted to the
+spot, unable to lift his eyes from her. Presently her lover came in, and
+they started the lovely duet, "Pretty Polly, say." At the end of the
+encore, according to Harry's instructions, Barnaby leaned over and
+kissed his Polly on the mouth. A sudden and intense dislike for Mr.
+Barnaby at that moment overcame Harry....
+
+The act ended; the house went wild again; the curtain flopped up and
+down with no apparent intention of ever stopping; ushers rushed down the
+aisles with great beribboned bunches of flowers. This gave Harry an
+idea; as soon as the second act was safely under way he rushed out to
+the nearest florist's shop and commandeered all the American Beauty
+roses in the place, to be delivered to Miss Elliston with his card at
+the end of the next act.
+
+As he was going out of the shop he stopped to look at some peculiar
+little pink and white flowers in a vase near the door.
+
+"What are those?" he asked.
+
+"Bleeding hearts," said the florist's clerk. "Just up from Florida; very
+hard to get at this time of year."
+
+Harry stood still, thinking. If he sent those--would she Know--Of course
+she would, answered the practical Harry immediately; she would not only
+Know but would call him a fool for his pains.--Oh, shut up! retorted the
+other.
+
+"I'll have these then, instead of the roses, please," he said aloud.
+"All of them, and don't forget the card."
+
+They did not meet till after the performance was over. He caught sight
+of her making a sort of triumphal progress through the back of the
+stage, on her way to the dressing rooms, and deliberately placed himself
+in her path. She was looking rather surprisingly solemn, he noticed. Her
+face lighted up, however, when she saw him. She smiled, at least.
+
+"Well, what did _you_ think of it?" she asked.
+
+"I think the performance was very creditable," he answered. "To say what
+I think of you would be compromising."
+
+She laughed and went on without making any reply. He could not see her
+face, but something gave him the impression that her smile did not last
+very long after she had turned away from him.
+
+He walked home alone through the crisp March night, breathing deeply and
+trying to reduce his teeming brain to a state of order and clarity. The
+walk from the theater home was not sufficient for this; he walked far
+beyond his house and all the way back again before he could think
+clearly enough. At last he raised his eyes to the comfortable stars and
+spoke a few words aloud in a low, calm voice.
+
+"I really think," he said, "that this is IT. I really do think so ...
+But I must be very careful," he added, to himself; "_very_ careful. I
+must take no chances--this time. Both on Madge's account and on mine."
+
+"No," he added after a moment; "not on my account. On Madge's."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER II
+
+CONGREVE
+
+
+Little had happened to mark the greater part of the time that had
+elapsed since Harry's graduation. For three years he had studied hard
+for his doctor's degree, and during the fourth year he had been set to
+teaching English literature to freshmen, which task, on the whole, he
+accomplished with marked success. But during the fifth year, the year in
+which we next see him, he was not teaching freshmen, though he was still
+living in New Haven, and working, according to his own accounts, like a
+galley slave. The events which led up to this state of things form a
+matter of some moment in his career.
+
+These began with the production, during his fourth year out of college,
+of a play of his by the college dramatic association. Or, to be more
+exact, it really began some months before that, when Harry, leaving a
+theater one evening after witnessing a poor play, had remarked to his
+companion of the moment: "I actually believe that I could write a better
+play than that." To which the friend made the obvious answer, "Why don't
+you, then?" "I will," replied Harry, and he did.
+
+It was his first venture in that field of composition. In all his
+literary activities he had never before, to borrow his own phrase,
+committed dramaturgy. To the very fact that his maiden effort came so
+late Harry was wont, in later years, to attribute a large measure of his
+success. His idea was that if he had begun earlier his first results
+would have been so excruciatingly bad as to discourage him from
+sustained effort in that direction.
+
+However this may be, the play was judged the best of those submitted in
+a competition organized by the dramatic association, and was produced by
+it during the following winter with a very fair amount of success.
+Nobody could fairly have called it a remarkable play, but neither could
+any one have been justified in calling it a bad one. Its theme was,
+apart from its setting, singularly characteristic of the subsequent
+style of its author and may be said to have struck the tragi-comic note
+that sounded through all his later work. It concerned the experiences of
+a struggling young English author, poor, but of gentle birth, who is
+first seen inveighing against the snobbery, coldness and indifference
+shown toward him by people of wealth and position, and later, after
+coming unexpectedly into a peerage and a large fortune, is horrified to
+find himself forced into displaying the very qualities which he had so
+fiercely condemned in others. The machinery of the play was somewhat
+artificial, but the characterization and dramatic interest were
+skilfully worked out. The dialogue was everywhere delightful and the
+contrast afforded between the conscientious, introspective sincerity of
+the young author and the gaily unscrupulous casuistry of his wife was a
+forecast, if not actually an early example, of his best work.
+
+Harry was never blind to the faults of the play, but he remained
+convinced that it was good in the main, and, what was more important,
+retained his interest in dramatic composition. He worked hard during the
+following spring and summer and at length evolved another play, which he
+called "Chances" and believed was a great improvement upon his first
+work. Early in August he sent the play to a New York manager to whom he
+had obtained an introduction and after a week or two made an appointment
+with him.
+
+The secret trepidation with which he first entered the office of the
+great, the redoubtable Leo Bachmann was largely allayed by the
+appearance of the manager. He was a large flabby man, with scant stringy
+hair and a not unpleasant smile. He sat heavily back in an office chair
+and puffed continually at a much-chewed cigar, the ashes of which fell
+unnoticed and collected in the furrows of his waistcoat. He spoke in a
+soft thick voice, with a strong German accent. Harry did not see
+anything particularly terrifying about him.
+
+"Ah, yes, Mr. Vimbourne," said the manager when Harry had made himself
+known. "You have sent me a play, yes? Ah, here it is.... Unfortunately I
+have not had time to read it; I am very, very busy just now, but my man
+Jennings has read it and tells me it is very nice. Very nice, indeed
+..." he puffed in ruminative silence for a few seconds. "Could you come
+back next week, say Friday, Mr. Vimbourne? and we will talk it over. I
+am sorry to trouble you, but you see I am so very, very busy...."
+
+Harry made another appointment and left, not wholly dissatisfied. He
+returned, ten days afterward, to his second interview, which was an
+almost exact replica of the first. He allowed himself to be put off
+another ten days, but when he returned for the third time and was
+greeted by precisely the same soft words he was irritated and hardly
+able to conceal the fact.
+
+"Ah, yes, your play," said the manager, as though he had just heard of
+it for the first time. "Jennings was speaking to me of it only the other
+night. I am sorry to say I have not read it yet." He took the manuscript
+from a pile on his desk and turned over the leaves. "I am sorry--very
+sorry--I have so little time...."
+
+"I don't believe you, Mr. Bachmann," said Harry.
+
+"Ah?" said the manager, without the slightest apparent interest. "Why
+not, Mr. Vimbourne?"
+
+"Well, you turned straight to the best scene in it just now, for one
+thing.... Beside, you wouldn't keep me hanging on this way if you didn't
+see something in it, and if you see anything in it of course you've read
+it. And I don't mind telling you, Mr. Bachmann, that isn't my idea of
+business."
+
+Mr. Bachmann's next remark was so unexpected that Harry nearly swooned
+in his chair. "I read it the day after it came," he said softly.
+
+"Then why on earth didn't you say so in the first place?" stammered
+Harry.
+
+The manager made no reply for some moments, but sat silently puffing and
+turning over the pages of Harry's manuscript.
+
+"I like to know people," he murmured at last, very gently and with
+apparent irrelevance. Harry, however, saw the bearing of the remark and
+suddenly felt extraordinarily small. He had been rather proud of his
+little burst of spirit and independence; he now saw that Leo Bachmann
+had drawn it from him with the ease and certainty of touch with which a
+musician produces a note from a flute. He wondered, abjectly, how many
+other self-satisfied young authors had sat where he sat and been played
+upon by that great puffing mass of pulp.
+
+Bachmann was the next to speak. "I like your play very much, Mr.
+Vimbourne," he said. "It is very nice--some things in it not so good,
+but on the whole, it is very nice. I think I vill try to produce it, Mr.
+Vimbourne, but not yet--not till I see how my September plays go. I
+shall keep yours in reserve, and then, later, we may try it. About the
+first of November, when the Fifth Avenue crowd comes back to town...."
+He smiled slightly. "They are the people that vill vant to see it. Not
+Harlem. Not Brooklyn. The four hundred. Even so," he continued,
+ruminatively, "even so, I shall not make on it."
+
+This seemed to Harry a good opening for a proposition he had been
+longing to make since the very first but had never quite dared. "If you
+want me to put anything up on it, Mr. Bachmann, why--I...."
+
+"No," said Mr. Bachmann gently; "I never do that, I produce my own
+plays, for my own reasons. I vill pay you a sum, down. And a small
+royalty, perhaps--after the hundredth performance."
+
+Harry looked up and smiled, and the manager smiled back at him. His
+smile grew quite broad, almost a laugh, in fact. Then he rose from his
+chair--the first time Harry had seen him out of it--and clasped Harry's
+hand between his two large plump ones.
+
+"I think we shall get on very well, Mr. Vimbourne," he said. "Very well,
+indeed. I vill let you know when rehearsals begin. And you must write
+more--a great deal more. But--vait till after the rehearsals!"
+
+"Yes, I think I understand you," said Harry, laughing. "I'll wait. And
+I'll come to the rehearsals, too!"
+
+In October the rehearsals actually started, and Harry began to see what
+he told Mr. Bachmann he thought he understood. Day after day he sat in
+the dark draughty theater and watched the people on the stage slash and
+cut and change his carefully constructed dialogue without offering a
+word of remonstrance. At first the pleasure of seeing his own work take
+tangible form, on a real professional stage and by the agency of real
+professional actors more than made up for the loss. Then as the
+rehearsals went on, he perceived that there was a very real reason for
+every cut and change, and that the play benefited tremendously thereby.
+He began to see how acting accomplishes a great deal of what he had
+always considered the office of dialogue. A dialogue of five speeches,
+to take a concrete example, on the probable reasons why a certain person
+did not arrive when he was expected was made unnecessary by one of the
+characters crossing the stage and looking out of a window at just the
+right moment and with just the right facial expression.
+
+Harry made no secret of his conviction that his play improved immensely
+under the care of Bachmann and his people. His attitude was that they
+knew everything about play-producing and he knew nothing, and that the
+extraordinary thing was that he had been able to provide them with any
+dramatic material whatever. He joked about it with the actors and
+managers, when occasion offered, as callously as if he had been a third
+person, and rather surprised himself by the light-heartedness he
+displayed. Whether this was entirely genuine, whether it did not contain
+elements of a pose, a desire to appear as a man of the theatrical world,
+a fear of falling into all the usual errors of youthful playwrights, he
+did not at first ask himself.
+
+One day, about a week before the opening night, he received a jolt that
+made him look upon himself and his calling in rather a new light. This
+came through an unexpected agent--none other, indeed, than a woman of
+the cast, and not the player of the principal female part at that, but a
+lesser light, Bertha Bensel by name, a plain but pleasant little person
+of uncertain age. Harry was lunching alone with her and carrying on in
+what had become his customary style when talking of his play.
+
+"You know," he was saying, "I thought at one time I had written a play,
+but I haven't, I've written a moving picture show. Everybody is writing
+movies these days, even those that try to write anything else, which
+just shows. I'm going regularly into the movie business, after this.
+Seriously. And I intend to write the real kind of movies, the kind that
+don't bother about the characters at all, but just dramatize scenery. I
+shall call things by their proper names, too. Let's see--a Devonshire
+parsonage is beloved and wooed by a Scotch moor, but turns him down for
+a Louis Onze château with a Le Nôtre garden. She discovers, just in
+time, that his intentions are not honorable, and is rescued by a Montana
+prairie, who happens along just at the right moment. The situation is
+still awkward, however, because the parsonage finds that her prairie has
+a wife living, a New York gambling hell, whom he hates but who won't
+release him. So the parsonage refuses his disinterested offers and
+starts life for herself. After various adventures with a South Carolina
+plantation, an Indian Ocean trawler, an Argentine pampas and the Scala
+theater at Milan, the poor parsonage ends up in a London sweat shop, to
+which she is at last discovered by the Scotch moor, who had been looking
+for her all these years. Embrace. Passed by the national board of
+censors."
+
+Miss Bensel smiled, but did not seem to see much humor in this foolery.
+That was due, thought Harry, to the fatigue of her long morning's work,
+and he determined not to bother her with any more nonsense. The silence
+which he allowed to ensue, however, was broken by an unexpected remark
+from his _vis-à-vis_, who said with a dispassionate air:
+
+"I think, Mr. Wimbourne, you stand in a great danger."
+
+"Danger?"
+
+"Yes, that is, I hope you do. If not, I'm very much disappointed in
+you."
+
+"Thank you so much, but just how?"
+
+"You're in danger of getting to take your art as lightly as you talk
+about it. Then you'll be lost, for good. It's a real danger. I've seen
+the thing happen before, to people of as much talent as you, or nearly
+so."
+
+Harry looked at her in blank astonishment, and she went on:
+
+"If you go on talking that way about your profession, you'll get to
+think that way and finally _be_ that way. All roses and
+champagne--nothing worth while. You may go on writing plays, but they'll
+get sillier and sillier, even if they get more and more popular. So your
+life will pass away in frivolity and popularity.... That's not your
+place in the world, Mr. Wimbourne. You've got talent--perhaps more. You
+know that? This play, now. I say nothing about the dialogue, because
+good dialogue is not so rare--though yours is the best I've seen for
+some time--but how about the rest of it, the story, the ideas? It's good
+stuff--you know it is."
+
+Harry leaned back in his chair and tapped the table meditatively with a
+spoon. He had the lack of self-consciousness that enables a person to
+take blame exactly in the spirit in which it is given, with no alloying
+mixture of embarrassment or resentment.
+
+"Yes," he said after a while, "I suppose you're right about it. I have a
+certain responsibility.... I suppose the stuff is good, when all is said
+and done--though I don't dare to think it can be."
+
+Miss Bensel leaned forward with her elbows on the table and allowed her
+face to relax into a smile, a curious little smile that did not part her
+lips but drew down the corners of her mouth.
+
+"That's it--I thought that probably was it! You're so modest you're
+afraid to take yourself seriously. Well, that's a pretty good fault; I
+think on the whole it's better than taking yourself too seriously. But
+don't do it, even so. Take it from me, my dear boy, you can't accomplish
+anything worth while in this world, _anything_, whatever it is, unless
+you take your work seriously--at bottom."
+
+Harry did a good deal of serious thinking on the subject during the rest
+of the day, and the more he thought about it the more convinced he
+became that Miss Bensel was right. He thought of Dickens' famous
+utterance on the subject of being flippant about one's life's work; he
+thought of the example of Congreve. Congreve, there was an appropriate
+warning! Congreve, whose life was a duel between the painstaking artist
+and the polished man-about-town, who never would speak other than
+lightly of his best work, whose boast and whose shame it was
+deliberately to stifle the fires of his own genius. Was he, Harry,
+guilty of something like the pose of Congreve? He thought of his
+attitude of exaggerated _camaraderie_ with the actors and managers, of
+his attitude toward his own work; he realized that frivolity had become
+not merely a pose, but a habit. Was he not, in such doings, following in
+the steps of Congreve--the man who insisted that the work that made him
+famous had been written for the sole purpose of whiling away the tedium
+of convalescence after an illness?
+
+As he watched his own play being enacted before his eyes that afternoon
+he realized that his work was, in the main, good, and that he had known
+it all along. He had felt it while he was writing it; Bachmann's
+astonishingly prompt (as he had since learned it to be) acceptance of it
+had given conclusive proof of it. If anything further was needed, he had
+it in the enthusiasm with which the actors played it and spoke of it.
+Somehow, by some incredible chance, the divine gift had fallen upon him.
+To belittle that gift, to fail to devote his best efforts to making the
+most of it, would be to shirk his life's duty.
+
+The third act, upon which most of the work of the afternoon was done,
+drew to its close. It had been immensely shortened by cuts; Harry was
+not sorry, though he missed some of what he had thought the best lines
+in the play. Then the heroine made her final exit, and Harry suddenly
+realized she had done so without her and the hero's having delivered two
+little speeches that ought to have come just before; speeches on which
+he had spent much care and labor. Those two lines had, in fact,
+contained the whole gist of the play, or at any rate driven home its
+thesis in a particularly striking way. The point of the play was that
+living was simply a system of chances, and these speeches made clear the
+distinction between the wrong kind of chancing, the careless,
+risking-all kind, whose final result was always ruin, and the sober,
+intelligent, prayerful kind, as shown in the lives of those who, after
+careful consideration of all the chances that may affect them, do what
+they decide is best and await the result with the calmness of a
+Mohammedan fatalist.
+
+Harry suddenly became imbued with the profound conviction that those two
+speeches were absolutely necessary to the understanding of his play. He
+hastily read over the last half of the act in his typewritten copy, and
+failed to see how any spectator could catch the true meaning of the work
+without them. Well, here was a chance to show how seriously he could
+take his art! The whole affair took on a new and strange momentousness;
+he stood at this instant, he told himself, at the very turning-point of
+his artistic career. He would not take the wrong road, cost him what it
+might; he would not be found wanting.
+
+Bachmann was in the theater, sitting in the back row of the orchestra,
+as was his custom. Harry determined to go straight to him and ask him to
+put those lines in again. As he walked up the aisle he thought
+feverishly of the tremendous import of this interview. Bachmann would
+refuse at first, he knew that well enough. Bachmann would not easily be
+convinced by the opinion of an inexperienced scribbler. But Harry was
+determined not to be beaten; he was prepared to fight, prepared to make
+a scene, if necessary; prepared to sacrifice the production of his play,
+if it came to that. He could see Bachmann's slow smile as he reminded
+him of practical considerations. "Your contract?" "Damn the contract,"
+Harry would reply. "Ha, ha! I've got the whip hand of you there, Mr.
+Bachmann! I can afford to break all the contracts I want!" "And your
+career?" retorted Bachmann, with a sneer, but turning ever so slightly
+pale. "Ho! my career! What the devil do I care for my career! I choose
+to write for all time, not for my own! I...."
+
+"Vell, Mr. Vimbourne," Bachmann, the live, fleshly Bachmann, was saying
+in a startlingly mild and everyday tone of voice, "what can I do for
+you?"
+
+"Oh ... I just wanted to speak to you about this last scene," said
+Harry, trying hard to keep his voice steady. "They've cut out two lines
+just before Miss Cleves' exit that I think ought to be kept."
+
+"Let's see."
+
+Harry handed him the manuscript and anxiously watched him as he glanced
+rapidly over the pages. "They're pretty important lines, really. They
+explain a lot; I'm afraid people won't understand...." He could feel his
+voice weakening and his knees trembling, but his determination remained.
+
+"Burchard!" Bachmann bellowed, in the general direction of the stage.
+
+"Yes!"
+
+"What about those two speeches before Miss Cleves' exit?"
+
+There was a short and rather flurried silence from the stage, after
+which the voice of Burchard again emerged:
+
+"Miss Cleves said she couldn't make her exit on that line."
+
+"Where is she? Tell her to come back and try it."
+
+The battle was won without a shot being fired. Harry, almost literally
+knocked flat by the surprise and relief of the moment, sank into the
+nearest seat. Bachmann got up and lumbered off toward the stage; Harry
+leaned his head against the back of his chair and gave himself over to
+an outburst of internal mirth, at his own expense.
+
+He raised his eyes again to the stage. Curiously enough, the first
+person his glance fell on was Miss Bensel, with her trim little figure
+and humorously plain face. It seemed to him she was smiling out at him,
+with a mocking little smile that drew down the corners of her mouth.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Everybody knows what happened to the play "Chances"; its history is a
+page of the American stage. Much has been said and written about it; it
+has been called a landmark, a stepping-stone, a first ditch, a guiding
+light, a moral victory, a glorious failure, a promising defeat and
+various similar things so often that people are tired of the very name
+of it. What actually happened to it can be told in a few words; it was
+well received, but not largely attended. It was withdrawn near the end
+of its fourth week.
+
+The critics were unanimous in praising it. Its dialogue was hailed as
+the ideal dialogue of contemporary comedy. The characterization, the
+humor of the lines, the universality of the theme, its wonderfully
+logical and convincing development all received their due meed of
+praise. It was compared to the comedies of Clyde Fitch, of Oscar Wilde,
+of Sheridan, and of Congreve--yes, actually Congreve! Harry smiled when
+he read that, and renewed his resolution never to let the comparison
+apply in a personal way. But to be seriously compared to Congreve, not
+Congreve the man but Congreve the author--! The thought made him fairly
+dizzy.
+
+But what took the eye of the critics, the best and soberest of them,
+that is, more than anything else was the mixture of the humorous and
+serious shown in the choice of the theme and its development. "To treat
+the element of humor," wrote one critic, "not as a colored glass through
+which to look at all life, as in farce, nor as a refreshing contrast to
+its serious side, as in the 'comic relief' of a host of plays from the
+Elizabethans down to the present day, but as part and parcel of the very
+essence of life itself, co-existent with its solemnity, inseparable from
+its difficulty, companion and friend to its unsolvable mystery; to put
+people in such a mood that they can laugh at the greatest things in
+their own lives, neither bitterly nor to give themselves Dutch courage,
+but for the pure, life giving, illuminating exaltation of
+laughing--this, we take it, is the whole essence and mission of comedy.
+And this--we say it boldly and in no spirit of empty flattery--is the
+type of comedy shown in Mr. Wimbourne's play."
+
+It is not hard to see how such words should bring joy to the heart of
+Harry and smiles of admiration and respect to the faces of his friends,
+from Leo Bachmann right up to Aunt Selina. But they did not bring people
+to the theater. For the first three performances the attendance was
+satisfactory; then it began steadily to fall off and by the end of the
+first week it became merely a question of how long it could survive.
+
+Leo Bachmann was, curiously enough, the least affected of all the
+theater crowd by the poor success of the work. He viewed the
+discouraging box office reports with an untroubled smile, and cheerfully
+began rehearsals for a new play. "Never you mind, my boy," he told
+Harry, "I knew I should not make money off your play. I told you so in
+the beginning. Never you mind! That is not your fault. It's just the way
+things go. I have only one word to say to you, and that is--write!" Even
+in his discouragement Harry could not help feeling that Mr. Bachmann was
+strangely calm and cheerful.
+
+Within a week from the end of the play's run a curious thing happened. A
+visiting English dramatist and critic, a confirmed self-advertiser, but
+a writer and thinker of unquestioned brilliancy, and a wit, withal, of
+international reputation, was greatly struck by the play and wrote an
+unsolicited letter about it which appeared in the pages of a leading
+daily.
+
+"No more striking proof," wrote this self-appointed defender of Harry,
+"could be offered of the consanguinal intellectual stupidity of the
+Anglo-Saxon race than I received at a performance of Mr. Harold
+Wimbourne's play 'Chances' at the ---- Theater last night. For the first
+time during my stay in this country as I looked over the almost empty
+stalls and realized that this, incomparably the best play running in New
+York, was also the worst attended, I could have fancied myself actually
+in my own country.
+
+"What are the lessons or qualities in Mr. Wimbourne's play which the
+American people cannot stomach? I suppose, when all is said and done, he
+has committed the unpardonable offense of giving them a little of their
+own medicine. He has rammed down their throats some few corollaries of
+the Calvinistic doctrines for which the ancestors of the very people who
+stay away from his play sailed an uncharted sea, conquered a wilderness,
+and spilt their blood to champion against a usurping power. The Pilgrim
+fathers founded the United States of America in order to publish the
+greatness of God and the littleness of man. Their descendants either
+ignore or condemn one of their number because he does not extol the
+greatness of man and the littleness of God. Because Mr. Wimbourne
+ventures to show, in a very mild--if very artistic and compelling
+way--how slight a hold man has on the moving force of life, God, the
+universe, a group of atoms--whatever you choose to call the world--he
+becomes a pariah. He has escaped easily after his first offense, but it
+will go hard with the Anglo-Saxon character if he is not stoned in the
+streets after the next one. America is a great and rich country; what
+does it care about religion or philosophy or art or any of that
+poppycock? Serious and devout thinking simply _are not done_; it has
+become as great a solecism to mention the name of the Deity in
+society--except as the hero of a humorous story--as to talk about Kant
+or Hegel. Americans have lost interest in that sort of stuff; they do
+not need it. Why, now that they have become physically strong, should
+they bother about the unsubstantial kind of strength known as moral to
+which they were forced to resort when they were physically weak? Why,
+having become mountain lions, should they continue to practise what
+upheld them when they were fieldmice?
+
+"Of course I should not have made such a point in favor of a play if it
+were not, technically and artistically speaking, a very good play. The
+truth when it is badly spoken hardly merits more attention than if it
+were not spoken at all. But 'Chances' is as beautifully constructed as
+it was conceived; it is a play that I should be proud to have written
+myself. Its technical perfections have already been praised, even by
+that class of people least calculated to appreciate them; I mean the
+critics. I will, therefore, mention but one small example, which I
+believe, in the presence of so many greater beauties, has been
+overlooked; namely, the short dialogue near the end of the first act in
+which Frances, in perhaps half a page of conversation with the man to
+whom she is then engaged, realizes that her engagement is empty, that
+she has no heart for the man, that a new way of looking at love has
+transcended her life;--realizes all this, and betrays it to the audience
+without in the smallest degree giving herself away to the man with whom
+she is talking or saying a word in violation of the probability of their
+conversation. Such a feat in dramaturgy is, perhaps, appreciable only to
+those who have tried to write plays themselves. Still, whom does that
+not include?
+
+"But I do not expect Americans to appreciate artistic perfection any
+more than I expect Englishmen to. The shame, the disgrace to Americans
+in not appreciating this play lies in the fact that it is fundamentally
+American; American in its characters, in its setting, and above all in
+its motive principles, which are the principles to which America owes
+its very existence."
+
+Such opinions, appearing over a famous signature, could not but revive
+interest and talk about its subject, and the play experienced a slight
+boom during the last few days of its existence. Its run, indeed, would
+have been extended but for the fact that Bachmann had made all the
+arrangements for its successor and advertised the date of its
+appearance. Altogether the incident tended to show that if the play was
+a failure it was at least a dynamic failure, indicative of future
+success.
+
+Harry was as little elated by the praise of the foreigner as he was cast
+down by the condemnation of his countrymen. His demeanor all along, ever
+since the day of his interview with Miss Bensel, had been characterized
+by an observant calmness. He dissuaded as many of his relations and
+friends as he could from being present at the first performance of the
+play and ignored those who insisted on being there. He himself occupied
+an obscure seat in the gallery and listened with the greatest attention
+to the comments of those about him. He thereby began to form an idea of
+what the general public thought of his work; knowledge which, as he
+himself realized, would be of inestimable value if he could put it to
+use in his next play.
+
+A letter Harry wrote to his Uncle Giles just after the play was taken
+off expresses his state of mind at this time. "'Chances' has gone by the
+board," he wrote; "that splendid American institution, the Tired
+Business Man, would have none of it, and it has ceased to be Drama and
+has become merely Literature. But I have learned a lot during its brief
+existence, and this knowledge I shall, please God, make use of if I ever
+write another play. Which is a mere figure of speech, as I have started
+one already.
+
+"I have learned the point of view of the Tired Business Man. That was
+what I wanted to know from the very first--not what the critics thought.
+They could do no more than say it was good, and I knew that already. And
+what the T. B. M. said was substantially, that my play was nice enough,
+but that it had no _punch_. I don't know whether you recognize that
+expression or not; it is one of those vivid American slang words that
+English people are so fascinated by. People thought the play wasn't
+interesting enough, and that is the simple truth about it. Therefore it
+wasn't a good play. For my idea is that to be really good a play must
+hold the stage, at least at the time it is written. And if we are ever
+going to build up such a thing as the 'American drama' our critics are
+continually bellowing about, we've got to begin with our foundations. We
+can't create a full-fledged literary drama and then go to work and make
+the people like it; we've got to begin with what the people like and
+build up our drama on that. That's the way all the great 'dramas' of
+history have grown up--the Greek, the French, the Spanish and the
+Elizabethan; and it is interesting to notice that the drama that came
+nearest to being the product of a mere literary class, the French, is
+the weakest of the lot and is standing the test of time worst of them
+all.
+
+"I may never write a more successful play than 'Chances'; I may never
+get another play on the stage at all. But one thing I am sure of; I
+shall never offer another play to the public without being convinced
+that it is a better stage play than 'Chances.'"
+
+Of course that a mere boy, fresh from college, with no practical
+experience of the stage whatever, should get a play produced at all was
+an unusual and highly gratifying thing. Harry became quite a lion that
+autumn, in a small way. He remained in New York till after the play was
+taken off, living with the James Wimbournes, and was the guest of honor
+at one or two of Aunt Cecilia's rather dull but eminently important
+dinners. He became the object of the attention of reporters, and also of
+that section of metropolitan _literati_ who live in duplex apartments
+and wear strings of pearls in their hair and can always tell Schubert
+from Schumann. He was especially delighted with these, and determined
+some day to write a play or a novel portraying the inner side of their
+painstaking spirituality.
+
+He saw a good deal of James during those weeks; more than he had seen of
+him since their college days. James had been rather sparing of his
+week-end visits to New Haven since moving to New York; Harry noticed
+that. He was sorry, for he now found James a great help and stimulus. He
+discovered that a walk or a motor ride with James between the hours of
+five and seven would obliterate the effects of the caviar-est of
+luncheons and the pinkest of teas and give him strength with which to
+face evenings in the company of people who appeared unable even to
+perspire anything less exalted than pure Pierian fluid.
+
+"Well, it's nice to meet some one who doesn't smell of Russian
+cigarettes," he observed one day as he took his place in the long, low,
+slightly wicked-looking machine in which James whiled away most of his
+leisure moments. "Do you know, sometimes I actually rush into the
+nursery at Aunt Cecilia's and kiss the youngest and bread-and-butteryest
+child there, just to get the Parnassian odors out of my lungs. Next to a
+rather slobby child, though, I prefer the society of an ex-All-American
+quarter-back."
+
+"Half," said James.
+
+"Oh, were you? Well, you don't smell of anything æsthetic-er than the
+camphor balls you put that coat away for the summer in.... James, if you
+go round another corner at eighty miles an hour I shall leap out and
+telephone for a policeman!"
+
+"Oh, that's all right. They all know me, anyway. They know I don't take
+risks."
+
+"Hm.... Well, it's all over for me next week, thank Heaven. I'm going
+back to Aunt Selina and Sunday night suppers, and I _shall_ be glad!"
+
+"Well, I will say," said James slowly and carefully, with the air of one
+determined to do the most meticulous justice, "that you have kept your
+head through it all pretty well."
+
+"Oh, it's not hard, when you come right to it," said Harry, laughing.
+"Of course there are moments when I wonder if I'm not really greater
+than Shakespeare. And it does seem funny to realize that the rising
+genius, the person people are all talking about, and poor little Me are
+the same. But then I remember what a failure my play was, and shrivel
+into the poor graduate student.... After I've written a successful play,
+though, I won't answer for myself. And after I've written 'Hamlet,' as I
+mean to some day, I shall be simply unbearable. You won't own me then."
+
+"Watch-chain round your neck?" suggested James.
+
+"Oh, worse than that--diamond bracelets! And corsets--if necessary. I
+saw a man wearing both the other day, I really did."
+
+"A man?"
+
+"Well, an actor. That's the sort of thing they run to now-a-days. Long
+hair and general sloppiness are quite out of date--among the really
+ultra ones, that is."
+
+"Well," said James, "I give you permission to be as ultra as you like,
+after you've written 'Hamlet.'"
+
+"That helps, of course. I daresay I'm lacking in proper seriousness, but
+it seems to me that if the choice were offered me, right now, between
+being the author of 'Hamlet' and being also an ultra, and not writing
+'Hamlet' and staying as I am, I would choose the latter. I don't know
+what my point of view may be at some future time, but that's what it is
+now, or at least I think it is. And after all, nobody can get nearer the
+truth than saying what he thinks his point of view at any given moment
+is, can he, James?"
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER III
+
+NOT TRIASSIC, CERTAINLY, BUT NEARLY AS OLD
+
+
+To return again to the events attendant on the "Beggar's Opera." Harry
+slept late the morning after the performance, and when he awoke it was
+with a mind rested and vacant except for an intangible conviction that
+something pleasant had happened. He yawned and stretched delectably, and
+in a leisurely sort of way set about discovering just what it was.
+
+"Let's see, now, what can it be?" he argued pleasantly. "Oh, yes, the
+'Beggar's Opera.' It's all over, thank Heaven, and it went off
+creditably well. The wigs arrived in time and the prison set didn't fall
+over, and nobody lost a cue--so you could notice it." He lay back for a
+moment to give full rein to the enjoyment of these reflections. "There
+was something else, though." His mind languidly returned to the pursuit,
+as a dog crosses a room stretching at every step. "I'm sure there was
+something else...."
+
+"Oh, yes, of course," he said at last; "I remember now. Madge Elliston."
+
+If, say, ten seconds sufficed for enjoyment of the recollection of the
+"Beggar's Opera," how long should you say would be necessary for the
+absorption of the truth contained in those two words? A lifetime? An
+honest answer; we won't undertake to say it's not the right one. Harry,
+at least, seemed to be of that opinion.
+
+"After all, though, it would be rather absurd to spend a whole lifetime
+in bed," he observed, after devoting twenty minutes to the subject. Then
+he jumped out of bed and pulled up the shade.
+
+Vague flittings of poetry and song buzzed through his brain. One little
+phrase in particular kept humming behind his ears; a scrap from a song
+he had heard Madge herself sing often enough:--"What shall I do to show
+how much I love her?" The thing rather annoyed him by its insistence. He
+stood by the open window and inhaled a few deep breaths of the
+quickening March air. "What shall I do to show how much I love her!"
+sang the air as it rushed up his nose and became breath and out again
+and became carbon dioxide. "I really don't know, I'm sure," he answered,
+impatiently breaking off and starting on some exercises he performed on
+mornings when he felt particularly energetic and there was time. Their
+rhythm was fascinating; he found he could do them in two different
+ways:--What shall--I do--to show--how much--I love her, or, What shall
+I--do to show--how much I--? "Oh, hang it!" He suddenly lost all
+interest in them. With one impatient, dramatic movement he tore off the
+upper half of his pajamas, ripping off three buttons as he did so. With
+another slightly more complicated but even more dramatic, he extricated
+himself from the lower half, breaking the string in the process.
+
+"Ts! ts! More work for somebody!" he said, making the sound in the roof
+of his mouth indicative of reproof. He kicked the damaged garments
+lightly onto the bed and sauntered into the adjoining bathroom.
+
+He turned on the water in the bathtub and stood watching
+it a moment as it gushed out in its noisy enthusiasm.
+"WhatshallIdotoshowhowmuchIloveher?" it inquired uncouthly. "Oh, do stop
+bothering me," said Harry, turning disgustedly away; "I've got to
+shave."
+
+He lathered his face and took the razor in his right hand, while with
+his left he delicately lifted the end of his nose, so as to make a taut
+surface of his upper lip. It was a trick he had much admired in barbers.
+"Somehow it's not so effective when you do it to yourself," he said
+regretfully, watching the effect in the mirror. It helped his shaving,
+however, and shaving helped his thinking. He was able to think quite
+clearly and seriously, in fact, in spite of the roaring of the water
+nearby.
+
+"I suppose I might keep away from her for a while," he said presently.
+
+That really seemed a good idea; the more he thought of it the better he
+liked it. "I'll go down and stay with Trotty," he said as he scraped the
+last strip of lather off his face, remembering how fervently Trotty,
+recovering from a severe illness on the Trotwood estate in North
+Carolina, had begged him to come down and cheer his solitude. "And I
+won't come back until I know," he continued. "One must be sure.
+Absolutely."
+
+He plunged into his bath and the stimulus of the cold water set his
+brain working faster. "I'll start this very morning. Let's see; I've
+missed the ten-thirty, but I can catch the twelve-three, if I look
+alive, and get the three-fifty from New York.... No, on second thoughts,
+I'd better have lunch and pack comfortably and start this afternoon.
+That'll be better; it never does to be in too much of a hurry!"
+
+It never did; he became even more convinced of that when he remembered
+at breakfast the many post-mortem arrangements to be made in connection
+with the "Beggar's Opera." However, he spent an active afternoon in
+completing what he could of these and delegating the remainder to
+subordinates, with the calm explanation that he was called away on
+business, and started for southern climes the next morning.
+
+As soon as he had telegraphed Trotty and was actually on his way he
+became inclined to fear he had not done the right thing. It was so
+confoundedly quiet down there; he would have nothing to do but think
+about her. He should have plunged himself into some all-absorbing
+activity; he should have traveled or taken a nine-till-five clerkship or
+gone to New York for a while. This suspicion continued through his
+journey and even survived, though in a mangled form, Trotty's
+enthusiastic welcome of him. But after he had passed a few days among
+those pine-clad solitudes he began to see that he had done the wisest
+possible thing. Trotty was required to be out-of-doors practically the
+whole time, and the two drove endless miles in a dogcart through the
+quickening oaks and pines, or lay on fragrant carpets of needles,
+content with mere sensuous enjoyment of the wind and sun, sky and
+landscape.
+
+Somehow these things brought calm and conviction to the heart of Harry.
+They seemed to rest and purge his soul from the fatigues of the past
+months; the anxiety and effort of the autumn before, the pangs of
+composition that had marked the winter, the hurry and worry to which
+these had given place during the last few weeks, and to give coherence
+and sanctity to the tremendous discovery of that Friday night. He could
+not tell why it was that the sight of a flock of feathery clouds
+scurrying across a blue sky or the sound of warm wind among pine needles
+should work this change in him, but it was so. "You're quite right,"
+they seemed to say; "perfectly right. The thing has come, and it's not
+distracting or disturbing or frightening, as you feared it might be;
+it's just simple and great and unspeakably sweet. And you were quite
+right to come to us to find out about it; you can learn among us a great
+deal better than in all that hectic scrambling up north. So lay aside
+every thought and worry and ambition and open your whole heart and soul
+to us while we tell you how to take this, the greatest thing that ever
+was, is, or shall be!"
+
+Trotty was also a source of comfort to him; Trotty had lost nothing of
+his former singular faculty of always rubbing him the right way. Not
+that either of them made any open or covert allusion to Harry's state of
+mind, for they did not, but there was something particularly reassuring,
+something strangely in tune with the great natural forces about them in
+his silent presence. For they would drive or read or simply lie about
+together for hours without speaking, after the manner of certain types
+of people who become very intimate with each other.
+
+Whether these silences were to Trotty merely the intimate silences of
+yore or whether they had taken on for him also something of the
+character that colored them for Harry is not particularly clear; it is
+probable that he guessed something, but no more. As much might be
+gathered, at least, from the one occasion upon which their conversation
+even touched on anything vital.
+
+This occurred on the eve of Harry's departure. For of course he had to
+leave some time. The birds and trees and sky were all very well for a
+while, but after three weeks the thought forced itself into his mind
+that any more time spent among them would smack of laziness if not of
+cowardice.
+
+"Trotty," said he, "I'm going north on the twelve-fifty to-morrow."
+
+"Oh," replied Trotty. "Bad news?"
+
+"No."
+
+"In love?"
+
+"Yep."
+
+"Oh." A silence of some length ensued.
+
+"Carson?" asked Trotty at last.
+
+"No, no--Elliston."
+
+"Oh.... Well, here's luck."
+
+"Thanks. I need it."
+
+In this matter-of-fact, almost coarse form was cast the most intimate
+conversation the two ever had together.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Harry determined to "have it out," as he mentally expressed it, with
+Madge as soon as possible, and went to call on her the very first
+evening after his return. As he walked in the front door he caught sight
+of her ahead of him crossing the hall with a sheaf of papers under her
+arm, and immediately his heart began thumping in a way that fairly
+shocked him. Her appearance was so wonderfully everyday, so utterly at
+variance with the way his silly heart had been going on about her these
+weeks! He felt as if he had been intending to propose to an archangel
+who happened to be also a duchess.
+
+"Hello! This is an unexpected pleasure! I thought you were away shooting
+things." Her manner was friendly enough; she was obviously glad, as well
+as surprised, to see him. He murmured something explanatory, which
+apparently satisfied her, for she went on: "I'm glad you're back,
+anyway, because you're just in time to help me with my arithmetic
+papers. Come along in."
+
+He sat down almost in despair, with the idea of merely making an evening
+call and postponing more important matters to a time when he should be
+better inured to the effects of her presence. But as he sat and watched
+her as she talked to him and looked over her arithmetic papers he felt
+his courage gradually return. Her physical presence was simply
+irresistible, distant and difficult of approach as she seemed.
+
+"Do tell all about North Carolina," said Madge; "it's a delightful
+state, isn't it?"
+
+"Oh, delightful."
+
+"So I understand. My idea of it is a fashionable place where people go
+to recover from something, but I suppose there's more to it than that.
+The only other thing I know about it is geological; a remnant of
+physical geography, ages ago. I seem to remember something about
+triassic.... What is your North Carolina like, fashionable or triassic?"
+
+"Not triassic, certainly."
+
+"No, I suppose not. It's very nice triassic, though; coal, and all sorts
+of lovely things, as I remember it. You must have been fashionable.
+Asheville, and that sort of thing."
+
+"Not at all. I was helping Trotty to recover from something."
+
+"Oh, really? What?"
+
+"Pneumonia. Also pleurisy."
+
+"Indeed! I didn't know anything about that; I thought you went simply to
+shoot things. So Jack Trotwood has had pleural pneumonia, has he? That's
+a horrid combination; poor Uncle Rudolph Scharndorst died of it. You
+often do if you have it hard enough and are old enough, or drink
+enough...."
+
+"Well, Trotty doesn't," said Harry; "so he didn't."
+
+"My dear man, neither did Uncle Rudolph," rejoined Miss Elliston. "That
+wasn't what I meant; he just had it so hard he died of it--that was
+all.--How is he getting on?"
+
+"Couldn't say, I'm sure."
+
+"I mean Trotty, of course! Poor Uncle Rudolph!"
+
+"Very well, indeed.--Madge!" he went on, gathering courage for a break,
+"I didn't come here to-night to talk about Uncle Rudolph!"
+
+Miss Elliston raised her eyebrows ever so little and went on, with
+unabated cheerfulness: "We were talking about Jack Trotwood, I thought.
+However, here's this arithmetic; you can help me with that. Do you know
+anything about percentage? It's not so hard, when you really put your
+mind to it. Given the principal and interest, to find the rate--that's
+easy enough. Useful, too; if you know how much a person has a year all
+you have to do is to find what it's invested in and look it up on the
+financial page, and you can tell just what their capital is! It's quite
+simple!"
+
+"Oh, yes, perfectly simple."
+
+"Let's see--Florrie Vicars; did you ever hear of any one whose name was
+really Florrie before?... Florrie gets a C--she generally does. That
+isn't on a scale of A B C, it stands for 'correct.' Did you ever hear of
+anything so delightfully Victorian? That's the way we do things at Miss
+Snellgrove's.... Sadie Jones--wouldn't you know that a girl called
+Sadie Jones who wrote like that--look at those sevens--would have frizzy
+yellow hair and sticky-out front teeth?"
+
+"Yes, indeed, without any doubt."
+
+"Well, as a matter of fact she has straight black hair and a pure
+Grecian profile and is altogether the most beautiful creature you ever
+saw!... Marjorie Hamlin--she never could add two and two straight....
+Jennie Fairbanks...."
+
+Harry realized more sharply than before that ordinary conversational
+paths would not lead where he wanted to go; he must break through the
+hedge and he must break with courage and determination.
+
+"Madge!" he burst out again, "I didn't come here to talk about little
+girls' arithmetic papers, either! I am here to-night to declare a state
+of--" He stopped, unable, when the moment came, to treat the matter with
+even that amount of lightness. He had been over-confident!
+
+"Of what?" asked Madge, looking up from her arithmetic and smiling
+brightly yet distantly at him. There was just a chance that she might
+shame him back into mere conversation, even at this late moment.
+
+"You know, perfectly well!" He sprang from his chair and took a step or
+two toward her. The thing was done now. A minute ago they had been
+occupied in trivial chatter; now they were launched on the momentous
+topic.
+
+"Madge, don't pretend not to understand, at any rate!" He was by her
+side on the sofa now. "I used to think that when I was--when I was in
+love I should be able to joke and laugh about it as I have about every
+earthly thing in life. I thought that if love couldn't be turned into a
+joke it wasn't worth having. But it isn't that way, at all!... Oh,
+Madge, Madge, don't you see how it is with me?"
+
+"Dear Harry, indeed I do!" said Madge impulsively, feeling a great wave
+of pity and unhappiness swell in her bosom. "Indeed I do!"
+
+"Then don't you think that you could ever ... Madge, until you tell me
+you could possibly--feel that way--toward me, it's Hell, that's what it
+is, Hell!"
+
+"Indeed it is, Harry; that's just what it is!"
+
+"Then you think you can't--love me?"
+
+"No--God forgive me, I can't!"
+
+He sat still for a moment, looking quietly at her from his sad brown
+eyes in a way she thought would break her heart. "I was afraid so," he
+said at last; "I suppose I really knew it, all along. It's been my
+fault."
+
+"Oh, Harry," she burst out, "if you only knew how much I wanted to! If
+you only knew how terrible it is to see you sit there and say that, and
+not be able to say yes! I like you so much, and you are such a dear
+altogether, and you're so wonderful about this--oh, why, why, in
+Heaven's name, can't I love you?"
+
+"But Madge, surely you must be mistaken! How can you talk that way and
+not have--the real feeling? Madge, you must be in love with me, only you
+don't know it!"
+
+"That's just what I've said to myself, time after time--I've lain awake
+whole nights telling myself that. But it isn't so, it isn't! I can't
+deceive myself into thinking so and I won't deceive you.... I
+just--can't--love you, because I'm not good enough! Oh, it is so
+terrible!..." Her voice suddenly failed; she sank to her knees on the
+floor and buried her head among the cushions of the sofa in an
+uncontrollable fit of weeping.
+
+For a moment Harry was overcome by a desire to seize that grief-stricken
+little figure in his arms and kiss away her ridiculous tears. A second
+thought, however, showed the fruitlessness of that; small comfort to his
+arms if their souls could not embrace! Instead he quietly arose from his
+seat and shut the door, which seemed the most sensible thing to do under
+the circumstances. He then walked over to the piano and stood leaning on
+it, head on hands, thoughtfully and silently watching the diminishing
+sobs of Madge.
+
+When these at last reached the vanishing point their author turned
+suddenly. Harry continued to stare quietly back at her for a second or
+two and then slowly and solemnly winked his right eye. Madge emitted a
+strange sound between a laugh and a sob, turned her face away again and
+plied her handkerchief briskly.
+
+"Here I am, of course," she said presently, "thinking of nothing but
+indulging my own silly feelings, as usual. And you, poor Harry, who
+really are capable of feeling, just stand there like Patience on a
+monument.... Harry, why don't you swear at me, kick me? do something to
+make it easier for me?..." She picked herself up, walked over toward
+the piano and laid her hands on its smooth black surface in a caressing
+sort of way. The piano had been given to her by her Aunt Tizzy and she
+loved it very much, but she did not think of it at all now. "Harry," she
+began again, "Harry, dear, I'll tell you what we'll do--I'll marry you,
+if you like, anyway.... I'll make you a lovely wife; I'll do anything in
+the wide world to be a comfort to you, just to show you how much I would
+love to love you if I could...."
+
+Harry, still looking gravely at her, shook his head slowly. "It would
+never do, Madge," he said; "never in the world. We must wait until we
+can start fair. You see that?"
+
+She nodded. "I suppose I do--from your point of view."
+
+"No--from _our_ point of view."
+
+"Well, yes.... It is just a little bit hard, though, that the first
+offer of marriage I ever made should be turned down."
+
+Harry laughed, loudly and suddenly. "That's right!" he said; "that's
+_you_! Not that self-denunciatory thing of a minute ago. Don't ever be
+self-denunciatory again, please. Just remember there's nothing in the
+world that can possibly be your fault, and _then_ you'll be all
+right!... Now then, we can talk. I suppose," he went on, with a change
+of tone, "you like me quite well, just as much as ever, and all that;
+only when it comes to the question of whether you could ever be happy
+for one instant without me you are forced to admit that you could. Is
+that it?"
+
+Madge nodded her head. "That's just about it. For a long time--oh, but
+what's the use in _that_...?"
+
+"No, go ahead."
+
+"Well, one or two people have been in love with me before--or thought
+they were, and though that disturbed me at times, it never amounted to
+much. In fact I thought the whole thing rather fun, as I remember
+it--Heaven forgive me for it! But then you came along and after a
+while--several months ago--it became borne in on me that you were going
+to--to act the same way, and I immediately realized that it was going to
+be much, _much_ more serious than the others. And I--well, I had a
+cobblestone for a heart, and knew it. So I tried my best to keep you off
+the scent, in every way I could, knowing what a crash there would be if
+it came to _that_.... But I never knew what I missed till to-night, when
+you showed me what a magnificent creature a person really in love is,
+and what a loathsome, detestable, contemptible creature--"
+
+"Come, come, remember my instructions," interpolated Harry.
+
+"--a person incapable of love is. And it just knocked me flat for the
+moment."
+
+"I see," said Harry thoughtfully; "I see."
+
+"I suppose," continued Madge, "it would have been easier all around if I
+didn't like you so much. I could conceive of marriage without love, if
+the person was thoroughly nice and I was quite sure there was no chance
+of my loving any one else, just because it's nicer to be rich than poor,
+but with you--no!... And on the other hand, I daresay I _might_ have
+come nearer falling in love with you if you hadn't been--such a
+notoriously good match ... you never realized that, perhaps?... I just
+couldn't bear the thought of giving _you_ anything but the real thing,
+if I gave you anything--that's what it comes to!"
+
+"Madge, what I don't see is how you can go on talking that way and
+feeling that way and not be in love with me! Not much, of course, but
+just a teeny bit!... Don't you really think your conscience is
+making--well, making a fool of you?"
+
+"No, no, Harry--please! I can't explain it, but I really am quite,
+_quite_ sure! No one could be gladder than I if it were otherwise!"
+
+"One person could, I fancy. Well, the thing to do now is to decide
+what's to be done to make you love me.... For that is the next thing,
+you know," he went on, in reply to an inarticulate expression of dissent
+from Madge. "You don't suppose I'm going to leave this house to-night
+and never think of you again, do you? You don't suppose I'm ever going
+to give up loving you and trying to make you love me, as long as we two
+shall live and after?"
+
+"I thought," murmured Madge, apparently to her handkerchief. The rest
+was almost inaudible, but Harry succeeded in catching the phrase "some
+nice girl."
+
+"Oh, rot!!" he exclaimed vociferously. Then he sank down on the piano
+bench, rested his elbows on the keyboard cover and burst into paroxysms
+of laughter. The idea of his leaving Madge and going out in search of
+"some nice girl"! Madge, still leaning on the edge of the piano,
+watched him with some apprehension, occasionally smothering a reluctant
+smile in her handkerchief.
+
+"Excuse me, Madge," he said at last, wiping his eyes, "but that's
+probably the funniest remark ever made!... A large, shapeless person,
+with yellow hair and a knitted shawl ... a sort of German type, who'd
+take the most wonderful care of my socks ... with a large, soft kiss,
+like ... like a hot cross bun!..." He was off again.
+
+"Hush, Harry, don't be absurd! Hush, you'll wake Mama! Harry, you're
+impossible!" Madge herself was laughing at the portrait, for all that.
+It was some minutes before either of them could return to the subject in
+hand.
+
+"Oh, you'll love me all right, in time!" That laugh had cleared the
+atmosphere tremendously; it seemed much easier to talk freely and
+sensibly now. "Of course you don't think so now, and that's quite as it
+should be; but time makes one look at things differently."
+
+"No, no, you mustn't count on that. If I don't now, I can't ever
+possibly! Really--"
+
+"What, not love me? Impossible! Look at me!" He became serious and went
+on: "Madge, granting that you don't care a hang for me now, can you look
+into your inmost heart and say you're perfectly sure you never, never
+could get to care for me, some time in the dim future of years?"
+
+"I--don't know," replied Madge inconclusively.
+
+"There you are--you know perfectly well you can't! However, I don't
+intend to bother you about that now. What I want to suggest now is that
+we had better be apart for a while, now that we know how things stand
+between us--not see anything of each other for a long time. That's the
+best way. That's how I fell in love with you--how I became sure about
+it, at any rate. That was why I went to North Carolina, of course."
+
+Madge thought seriously for a moment or two. What he said seemed
+reasonable. If he did go entirely out of her head after a few months'
+absence, he would be out of it for good and all, and there was the end
+of it. Whereas, in the unlikely event of his _not_ going out of her
+head, but going into her heart, she would be much surer of herself than
+if under the continual stimulus and charm of his presence.
+
+"Well," she said at length. "But how will you arrange it?"
+
+"I shall simply go away--to-morrow. Abroad. You'll be here?"
+
+"Yes."
+
+"What do you do this summer?"
+
+"I'm not sure--that is, I had thought of going to Bar Harbor, with the
+Gilsons--as governess. They have a dear little girl."
+
+Harry made a gesture of impatience. "I suppose that's as good as
+anything. If you'll be happy?"
+
+"Oh, perfectly. I should enjoy that, actually, more than anything else.
+Mama'll be with Aunt Tizzy. I think I'll do it, now. I'd rather be doing
+something."
+
+"Well, we'll meet here, then, at the end of the summer, in September. I
+suppose we'd better not write. Unless, that is, you see light before the
+time is up. Then you're to let me know--that's part of the bargain. Just
+wire to my bankers the single word, 'Elliston.' I'll know."
+
+"On one condition--that you do the same if you change your mind the
+other way!"
+
+"Madge, what idiocy!"
+
+"No, no; you must agree. Why shouldn't you be given a chance of changing
+your mind, as well as I?"
+
+"Very well; it's probably the easiest bargain any one ever made....
+Well, that's all, I think." They both paused, wondering what was to come
+next. The matter did seem to be fairly well covered. He made as if to
+go.
+
+"Oh, one thing--your work!" Madge apparently was suffering a slight
+relapse of self-denunciation. "How absolutely like me, I never thought
+of that!"
+
+"I can work abroad as well as here. I can work anywhere better than
+here--you must see that."
+
+"I suppose so." She fixed her eyes on the carpet. A hundred thousand
+things were teeming in her brain, clamoring to be said, but she turned
+them all down as "absurd" and contented herself at last with: "You sail
+immediately, then?"
+
+"Saturday, I expect. To the Mediterranean. I shall leave town to-morrow,
+though; you won't be bothered by me again!"
+
+"You must give yourself plenty of time to pack. Be sure--" she checked
+herself, apparently embarrassed.
+
+"Be sure what?"
+
+"Nothing--none of my business."
+
+"Yes, please! My dying request!"
+
+"Well, I was going to tell you to be sure to take plenty of warm things
+for the voyage. Men are so silly about such things!"
+
+As with Madge a minute ago, all sorts of things shouted to be done and
+said in his brain, but he shut the door firmly on all of them and
+replied quietly, "All right, I will," and started toward the door.
+
+She could not let it go at that, after all. Before the door had swung to
+behind him she had rushed up and caught it.
+
+"Oh, Harry!" she exclaimed; "if it does--if it should come off, wouldn't
+it be simply--Nirvana, and that sort of thing?"
+
+"Madge," replied Harry solemnly from the doorstep, "it will make Nirvana
+look like the Black Hole of Calcutta!"
+
+If there rose in her mind one pang of remorse for her behavior that
+evening, one suggestion of a desire to rush out on the doorstep and
+fling herself into his arms and tell him what a fool she was, it was
+reduced to subjection before she had closed the door and entirely
+smothered by the time she reached the parlor again.
+
+"No," she told herself quite firmly as she rearranged the tumbled sofa
+cushions, "that would never do--that was part of the Bargain." Just what
+was part of the bargain or exactly what the bargain was she did not
+bother to specify. "No, I must wait," she continued, trying the locks of
+the windows; "I must wait, a long time, a long, _long_ time. Till next
+September, in fact. One always has to wait to find out; nothing but time
+can show. And of course one must be _sure_"--she turned out the
+gas--"first. _Perfectly_ sure--beyond all manner of doubt and question.
+Both on my own account"--she reached up with considerable effort and
+turned out the hall light--"and Harry's."
+
+"No," she amended as she felt with her foot for the first step of the
+dark staircase; "not on my account. On Harry's."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IV
+
+WILD HORSES AND CHAMPAGNE
+
+
+James Wimbourne always had the reputation of being an exceptionally
+strong-willed person. None of his friends would have been in the least
+surprised to see him come so triumphantly through the first real test
+that life offered him, if they had known anything about it. Not one of
+them did know anything about it; no human being ever vaguely surmised
+that he renounced--the word is a big one but the act was worthy of
+it--Beatrice in favor of his brother. Beatrice may have suspected it at
+first, but her suspicion, if it existed at all, died an easy and natural
+death. Harry suspected it least of all, which was just what James
+wanted. The one reason why the renunciation did not turn out entirely as
+James intended was one over which he had no control, namely, the simple
+fact that Harry was never in love with Beatrice.
+
+But as a matter of fact one must look deeper into James' character to
+discover how it was that, long before the completion of the four years
+that the story has recently skipped, James was able to think of Beatrice
+without even a flutter of the heart. Deeply imbedded in his nature there
+lay a motive force to which his will power, as other people knew it, was
+merely the servant. This may perhaps be most safely described as James'
+attitude toward Harry. It is not easy to describe it. It does not do to
+lay stress upon the elements of brotherly affection, desire to protect,
+unselfishness and so forth, which made it up; those things all appear to
+smack of priggishness and cant and are at variance with the spontaneity
+of the thing we are talking about. One might perhaps refer to it as an
+ineradicable conviction in the soul of James that Harry was always to be
+thought of first.
+
+Very few people are capable of entertaining such a feeling. Very few are
+worthy of it. James had just the sort of nature in which it is most
+likely to occur. The Germans have an apt phrase for this type of
+nature--_schöne Seele_. James had a _schöne Seele_. He had his tastes
+and feelings, of course, like any one else, but the good always came
+naturally to him; the bad was abnormal. And this was why he found it
+possible and even--after a certain time--easy to erase from his brain
+the image of Beatrice, and set up in its place a vision of Harry and
+Beatrice coming into a mutual realization of each other.
+
+Well, it couldn't have been much of a love in the first place if it
+wasn't stronger than brotherly affection, does some one suggest? some
+one, we fancy, who is thoroughly familiar with the poems of the late
+Robert Browning and entertains a _penchant_ for the Paolo and Francesca
+brand of love. Well, possibly. We confess to our own moments of
+Paolomania; every healthy person has them. But we would call the
+attention of the aforesaid some one to the stern fact that love in the
+United States of America in the twentieth century is of necessity a
+different thing from love in--Rimini, we were going to say, but Rimini
+is a real place, with a railroad station and hotel omnibusses, so let us
+change it to Paolo-and-Francescadom. Also that he may have fostered his
+cult of Paoloism rather at the expense of his study of the _schöne
+Seele_. And we would also suggest, meeting him on his own ground, that
+there is no evidence of Paolo ever having got along very well with
+Giovanni. For if he had, of course, that whole beautiful story might
+have been spoilt.
+
+Then, of course, James' remoteness from Beatrice made it easier for him.
+Love is primarily a matter of geography, anyway. With the result that
+finally, when the month of June arrived and with it the offer of the New
+York position, the danger implied in New York's proximity to New Haven
+and Beatrice was not enough to deter James from closing with it. He
+accepted the offer, as we know, and took up his duties in New York in
+September.
+
+He took Stodger McClintock with him. Stodger by this time simply
+belonged to James, as far as the Emancipation Proclamation and other
+legal technicalities permit of one person belonging to another. He had
+already obtained for him a job as office boy in McClellan's and now
+proposed to take him east and educate him, with the eventual idea of
+turning him into a chauffeur. Stodger seemed delighted with the
+prospect.
+
+"Only," he objected, "please, I'll have to ask me grand-mudder!"
+
+"Oh, of course," said James gravely. "You couldn't go without her
+consent. I'll have a talk with her myself, if you like."
+
+Stodger seemed to think that would not be necessary. It ended by James
+taking a small apartment and installing Stodger as chore boy under the
+command of an eagle-eyed Swedish woman, where he could divide his time
+between cleaning shoes and attending high school.
+
+October arrived; it was ten months since James had seen Beatrice and he
+decided it was now time to see her again, to make the sight of her and
+Harry together chase the last shreds of regret from his mind. So he
+wrote to Aunt Selina announcing that he would spend his next free
+Saturday night in New Haven.
+
+It happened that Aunt Selina had fixed upon that night to have some
+people to dinner. When she learned that James would be one of the number
+that idea vanished in smoke and from its ashes, phoenix-like, arose the
+conception of making it a real occasion; not dinner, nor
+people-to-dinner, but frankly, out-and-out, A Dinner, like that. She
+arranged to have eighteen, and sent out invitations accordingly.
+
+James did not see Beatrice until nearly dinner-time on the Saturday
+night. He came downstairs at five minutes or so before the hour and
+discovered Harry standing before the drawing-room fireplace with Aunt
+Selina placidly sitting on a sofa and Beatrice flying about giving a
+finishing touch here and there. There was no strain or uneasiness about
+the meeting; his "Hello, Beatrice," received by her almost on the wing
+as she passed on some slight preprandial mission, was a model of cordial
+familiarity. And if she had not been too preoccupied to let the meeting
+be in the least awkward, Harry, gaily chattering from the chimney-piece,
+would have been enough to prevent it anyway.
+
+"Well, here we all are," Harry was saying, "and nobody here to
+entertain. Of course if we had all happened to be a minute or two late
+there would have been a crowd of people waiting for us. We won't
+complain, though; being too early is the one great social sin. Yes, Aunt
+Selina dear, I know people didn't think so in the Hayes administration
+... Beatrice, do stop pecking at those roses; they look very well
+indeed. You make me feel as if my hair wasn't properly brushed, or my
+shirt-front spotted. This suspense is telling on me; why doesn't
+somebody come?"
+
+Somebody did come almost immediately. Aunt Selina arose and stood in
+state in front of the fireplace to receive, and she made James stand
+with her, as though as a reward for returning to the eastern half of the
+country. He looked extremely well standing there. There was not one of
+the guests that came up and shook his hand that did not mentally
+congratulate the house of Wimbourne upon its present head.
+
+In some ways, indeed, one might say that those few minutes formed the
+very apex of James' life, the point toward which his whole past appeared
+to rise and his future to descend from. There are such moments in men's
+careers; moments to which one can point and say, Would that chance and
+my own nature had permitted me to stay there for the rest of my natural
+days! Surely there can be no harm in a soul remaining static if the
+level at which it remains is sufficiently high. Here was James, for
+example, not merely rich, good-looking, clever rather than otherwise,
+beloved of his fellow men, but with a very palpable balance on the side
+of good in his character. Why could not fate leave him stranded on that
+high point for the rest of his life, radiating goodness and happiness to
+every one who came near him? _Schöne Seelen_ are rare enough in this
+world anyway; what a pity it is that they should not always be allowed
+to shine to the greatest possible advantage! What a pity it is that so
+many of them are overwhelmed with shadows too deep for their struggling
+rays to pierce; shadows so thick that the poor little flames are
+accounted lucky if they can manage to burn on invisibly in the darkness,
+illuminating nothing but their own frail substance, content merely to
+live! The thought, indeed, would be intolerable were it not for certain
+other considerations; as for example, that the purest flames burn
+clearest in the darkness, or that a candle at midnight is worth more
+than an arc-light at noonday.
+
+Having successfully survived the first meeting, James found himself
+performing the duties of the evening with astonishing ease. He devoted
+himself chiefly to his right-hand neighbor, who for some reason was
+always referred to as "little" Mrs. Farnsworth. He was not conscious of
+the slightest feeling of strain in his conversation; he got on so well
+and so easily that he perhaps failed to realize that his was a real
+effort, made with the undoubted though unconscious purpose of keeping
+his mind off other things. If he had not succeeded so well, it might
+have been better. Certainly he would have been spared the let-down that
+he subsequently realized was inevitable. It came about halfway through
+dinner, in a general conversation which started with an account by James
+of Stodger's grandmother.
+
+He had made rather a good thing of this. "Of course I never force his
+hand," he was explaining; "I never ask him out and out what her name is
+and where she lives; I try to give the impression of believing in her as
+profoundly as himself. But it's most amusing to see how cleverly he
+dodges the questions I do ask. When we were about to come east, for
+instance, I asked him how his grandmother dared to trust him so far away
+without seeing me or knowing anything about me. He replied that she was
+satisfied with the description he gave her of me. 'But Stodger,' I said,
+'doesn't she want to see with her own eyes?' 'She's my _grand_mother,
+not my mother,' he answered, which really covered the matter pretty
+well."
+
+"But he's never shown you either her or a letter from her?" asked Mrs.
+Farnsworth.
+
+"Of course not--how could he? Oh, I must say I admire him for it! You
+see, I found him living practically in the gutter, sleeping Heaven knows
+where and eating Heaven knows what; but through it all he hung onto this
+grandmother business as his one last tie with the world of
+respectability and good clothes and enough to eat. I think I never saw a
+person get so much out of a mere idea."
+
+"It shows imagination, certainly," murmured Mrs. Farnsworth
+appreciatively, but her remark was drowned in the question of her
+right-hand neighbor, who had been listening to James' narrative and
+joined in with:
+
+"Have you ever succeeded in getting any idea of what the old lady is
+like? I should think the boy's mental picture of a grandmother might
+form a key to his whole character."
+
+"No," replied James; "I've never asked him anything very definite. I
+must find out something more about her some time."
+
+"What would the ideal grandmother be like, I wonder?" queried Mrs.
+Farnsworth. "Yours or mine, for example? Mine would be a dear old soul
+with a white cap and curls, whom I should always go to visit over
+Thanksgiving and eat too much pumpkin pie."
+
+"Yes, I think that comes pretty near my ideal, too," said James;
+"provided she didn't want to kiss me too often and had no other bad
+habits."
+
+"How idyllic!" said Mrs. Farnsworth's other neighbor. "Arcadians, both
+of you. I confess to something much more sophisticated; something living
+in town, say, with a box at the opera. Mrs. Harriman, it's your turn."
+
+"Oh, leave me out!" answered Mrs. Harriman, a woman who still, at forty,
+gave the impression of being too young for her husband. "You see, I have
+a grandmother still living."
+
+"So have I," irrepressibly retorted her neighbor, whose name was
+Nesmith; "two of them, in fact, and neither is anything like my ideal!
+You can feel quite at your ease."
+
+"Well, if I had to choose, I think I would have one more like yours, Mr.
+Nesmith; only very old and dignified, something of the dowager type, who
+would tell delightful stories of Paris under Louis Philippe and Rome
+under the Popes, and possibly write some rather indiscreet memoirs.
+Something definitely connecting my own time with hers, you know."
+
+"Oh, I say, no fair!" interrupted James in unthoughtful high spirits.
+"No fair stealing somebody else's grandmother! You've described Miss
+Carson's grandmother, Mrs. Harriman, unless I'm greatly mistaken.
+Beatrice, isn't Mrs. Harriman's ideal grandmother suspiciously like old
+Lady Moville?"
+
+Beatrice, who was sitting two places down the table from Mrs. Harriman,
+had heard the description; the grandmother conversation had, in fact,
+absorbed the attention of very nearly half the table.
+
+"Very like, I admit; but Mrs. Harriman is quite welcome to her.... She
+is not exactly my ideal of a grandmother...!" She turned directly toward
+James and made the last remark straight at him with a sort of
+deprecating smile of comprehension. It was as though she said: "I say
+that to _you_ because I know you'll understand!" It did not amount to
+much; it was one of the fleeting signs of mutual comprehension that
+friends will frequently exchange in the presence of acquaintances. But
+unfortunately the remark and the way it was given were extremely
+ill-timed as far as James was concerned. The effect they caused in him
+may perhaps be best likened to one of those sudden fits of faintness
+that overcome people convalescing from a long illness; the sort of thing
+where you are all right one minute and gasping and calling for brandy
+the next, and the stronger you feel beforehand the harder the faintness
+seizes you when it comes. If James had been on the watch for such
+occurrences, the incident would not have had half the effect on him that
+it did. As it was, however, Beatrice's little speech and glance stirred
+into momentary activity much of the feeling that he had been striving
+all these months to keep down.
+
+It was not really much; it did not actually undo the work of those ten
+months. James was really convalescent. But the suddenness of the thing
+overcame him for the moment and gave him a feeling approaching that of
+actual physical faintness. He saw a glass of champagne standing at his
+side and involuntarily reached toward it.
+
+No one noticed him much. Mrs. Farnsworth was chattering easily with Mr.
+Nesmith; conversation had resumed its normal course. Possibly the
+knowledge that James had touched on a rather doubtful topic, Beatrice's
+father's family, gave conversation a slight added impetus; certainly if
+anybody noticed James' embarrassment they assumed that his slight
+indiscretion amply accounted for it. At any rate, when his embarrassment
+led him so far as not only to reach for his left-hand neighbor's glass
+of champagne instead of his own but to tip it over in the process, the
+said left-hand neighbor, who happened to be Madge Elliston, attributed
+his action to that reason and acted accordingly.
+
+With a tact that would have seemed overdone if it had not been so prompt
+and sufficient, she immediately assumed that it had been she who had
+knocked the glass over.
+
+"Oh, I am so sorry!" she exclaimed. "I _am_ such an awkward idiot; I
+hope it didn't go all over you, James?... No, my dress is all right;
+apparently nothing but the tablecloth has suffered," and so forth, and
+so forth, to an accompaniment of gentle swabbings and shifting of table
+utensils.
+
+"Oh, Madge?" said James vaguely. "That's all right--I mean, it's my
+fault, entirely...." He joined in the rescue work with grateful fervor,
+and in a moment a servant came up and did something efficient with a
+napkin. Madge chattered on.
+
+"I never do get through a party without doing something silly! I'm glad
+it's nothing worse than this; I generally count that dinner as lost when
+I don't drop a hairpin into my food. I used to be quite embarrassed
+about it, but I've got so now that I eat shamelessly on, right down to
+the hairpin. I wonder if your aunt saw? No--or rather, she did, and is
+far too polite to show it. She just won't ask me again, that's all!"
+
+"She will if I have any influence with her," said James; "and I don't
+mind saying, between you and me and the gatepost, that I have a good
+deal! Only you must sing to us after dinner. You will, won't you?"
+
+"My dear James, I don't suppose wild horses--"
+
+"Oh, come now, you must!"
+
+"I was going to say, wild horses couldn't stop me from singing, if I'm
+asked! Did you ever know me to refrain from singing, loudly and clearly,
+whenever I received the slightest encouragement?"
+
+"I can't say--I haven't been here enough. I'm pretty sure, though, that
+there are no wild horses here to-night."
+
+"I'm not so sure...." She took a rapid glance around the table. "Yes,
+there are at least two wild horses right here in this room. See if you
+can guess who they are."
+
+"Oh, this is getting beyond me!"
+
+"Guess!" said Madge, inexorably.
+
+"Well ... Professor Dodd?"
+
+"Right. Now the other."
+
+"Oh--old George Harriman."
+
+"No. You're on the wrong track; it isn't the unmusical people that keep
+me from singing; it's those who make me feel silly and _de trop_,
+somehow, when I'm doing it."
+
+"I can't guess," said James after a pause.
+
+"Well, it's Beatrice Carson!"
+
+"No, not Beatrice! Why, she's very fond of music!"
+
+"It's not that, as I tried to explain. She is such a wonderful, Olympian
+sort of person, so beautiful, so well-bred, so good, and tremendously
+wise and capable--you've heard about the work she's doing here in the
+Working Girls' League?"
+
+"Something, yes."
+
+"Well, it's perfectly extraordinary; they say she's been able to reach
+people no one else has ever been able to do anything with. Altogether,
+the thought of her listening to me makes me feel like a first-class fool
+when I stand up and warble, and even more so when I think of the time
+and money I waste on learning to do a little bit better something that
+isn't worth doing at all!"
+
+"But you teach school," objected James. "That's sound constructive
+work."
+
+"That," replied Miss Elliston, "is not for eleemosynary reasons."
+
+"But you do it very well."
+
+"No, you're mistaken there, and beside, I hate teaching school; I simply
+_loathe_ it! Whereas ... let me tell you a secret. This singing
+business, this getting up in a drawing-room and opening my mouth and
+compelling people's attention, even for a moment--seeing people
+gradually stop talking and thinking about something else and wishing I'd
+stop, and at last just listening, listening with all their ears and
+minds to me, plain, stupid, vapid little ME--well, I just love it! It's
+meat and drink to me. Whenever I receive an invitation to dinner I want
+to write back, Yes, if you'll let me sing afterward!"
+
+"Really," said James thoughtfully, "that's the way it is with you, is
+it?"
+
+"I'm afraid so! You won't give me away though, will you, James?"
+
+"Oh, no danger! And I'll promise you another thing--wild horses shan't
+have a chance when I'm around! Not one chance! Ever!"
+
+He was flattered by her confidence, of course, as well as grateful for
+her tact. She had not only dragged him out of the water where he was
+floundering on to the dry land, but had gone so far as to haul him up an
+agreeable eminence before leaving him.
+
+Conversation shifted again at that point and James turned again to Mrs.
+Farnsworth. He got on very well with her from his eminence; so well that
+they remained conversationally united for the rest of dinner. In the
+course of their talk he thought of another thing that made him even
+happier; something he had not had a chance to realize before. Madge
+thought his momentary embarrassment had been due to having broached the
+doubtful topic of the Carson family. She had no inkling of his feeling
+for Beatrice; the freedom of her references to Beatrice was proof
+positive of that. And if she did not suspect, probably no one else did!
+His secret was as safe as it had ever been.
+
+The full joy of this realization began to spread itself through him
+about the time when fingerbowls came into use and Aunt Selina was
+gathering eyes preparatory to starting an exodus. Just as they all rose
+he chanced to catch Madge's eye and, unable to withhold some expression
+of his relief, smiled and said softly: "Thank you, Madge!"
+
+"What?" she asked, not understanding.
+
+"Champagne," said James.
+
+"Oh, nonsense!" As she started to walk doorward she turned her face
+directly toward his and gave him a deprecatory little smile of
+understanding, exactly like the one Beatrice had thrown him a short time
+ago.
+
+The coincidence at first rather took him aback. He was conscious, as the
+men rearranged themselves for coffee and cigars, of a feeling of loss,
+almost of desecration; the sort of feeling one might experience on
+seeing somebody else wear one's mother's wedding gown. Nobody but
+Beatrice had any real business to smile like that--to him, at least.
+Then it occurred to him that that was all nonsense; either it was all on
+or all off between him and Beatrice. After all, Madge's smile was just
+about as good to look at as Beatrice's, if one made allowance against
+the latter's unusual beauty. Madge was not unattractive in her way,
+either....
+
+Madge sang, of course. James enjoyed her singing very much, the more so
+for what she had told him at dinner. During her performance an
+inspiration came to him which he presently made an opportunity to impart
+to her.
+
+"Look here," he asked; "have you ever sung for Beatrice's working
+girls?"
+
+"No," answered she in some surprise. "Why?"
+
+"Why not?"
+
+"I've never been asked, for one thing!"
+
+"Would you, if you were? I'd like to suggest it to Beatrice, at any
+rate."
+
+"That's all very well for me, but what about the poor working girls?"
+
+"I should say that any working girl that didn't want to hear you sing
+didn't deserve to be helped. I may suggest it to her, then?"
+
+"Certainly, if you like. I don't really imagine that she'll have any use
+for it, though."
+
+"We'll see." He dismissed the subject with a smile. It pleased him to be
+quite brief and businesslike. As the party broke up and the guests
+dispersed he was busy, in a half-conscious sort of way, constructing a
+vision of him and his whole future life on this scheme; irretrievably
+blighted in his own career he would devote himself to doing helpful
+little services for people he liked, without thought of other reward
+than the satisfaction of performing them.
+
+Sustained by this vision he embarked quite fearlessly and efficiently on
+a _tête-à-tête_ with Beatrice before going to bed that night. He made
+the suggestion to her that he had told Madge he would make, and was
+pleased to find that Beatrice welcomed it warmly.
+
+Once in bed, with the light turned out and absolute quiet reigning
+throughout the house, of course disturbing things did force their way
+into his brain. It was bound to be that way, of course; had it not been
+that way for the past ten months? Fears, pains, doubts, memories,
+regrets--all passed in their accustomed procession before his mind's
+eye, gradually growing dimmer and fewer as drowsiness came on and at
+last dwindling to occasional mental pictures, as of a characteristic
+gesture, a look, a smile. A humorous little smile, for instance,
+suggestive of mutual understanding....
+
+Jove, that was a funny thing! He sat up in bed, shaking off his
+sleepiness and subjecting his mental vision to the test of conscious
+reason. That was Madge's smile that he had just seen, not Beatrice's; it
+was all there, the different position, the eyes, the hair and
+everything; all complete and unmistakable. Well, it was strange what a
+heavy dinner could do to a man--that, and a glass of champagne!
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER V
+
+A SCHÖNE SEELE ON PISGAH
+
+
+More than four years have elapsed before we see James Wimbourne again.
+
+Time has dealt easily with him, as far as appearances are concerned. No
+periods of searching care have imprinted their lines upon his face; no
+rending sorrow has dimmed the sweetness of its expression. No one could
+even be tempted to say that he had begun to grow stout. And if his face
+is a trifle thinner and more firmly molded than of old, if he has a more
+settled manner of sinking back in to a club chair, if he takes rather
+more time to get through the evening newspaper, or if, after the manner
+of many ex-athletes, he is inclined to become fidgety and bilious unless
+he has exactly the proper amount of physical exercise--well, who ever
+reaches his late twenties without showing similar preliminary symptoms
+of age; not so much the first stages of the process of ageing as
+indications of what the process will be like when it begins in earnest?
+
+The process in which we now find James engaged is mental rather than
+senescent, but you would hardly guess it to look at him. He is sitting
+on a rock on the top of a hill at sunset, smoking a cigarette and
+patently enjoying it. One leg is thrown easily over the other, his body
+is bent slightly forward; one hand rests on the rock by his side and the
+other, when not employed in propelling the cigarette to and from his
+mouth, lies quietly on his lap. He is very quiet; James is not the sort
+of person to make many unnecessary motions; he picks out a comfortable
+position and usually remains in it until it is time to do something
+else. He would do this even if he were not gazing at an absorbingly
+lovely view over the roofs of Bar Harbor, Frenchman's Bay and the
+tumbled hills of the Maine Coast, and even if the mental process were
+not such an absorbing one as a review of his relation with Madge
+Elliston,--a sort of indexing of the steps by which it had developed
+from the vaguest of acquaintanceships into its present state.
+
+It had really begun, he reflected, on the evening of that dinner. Before
+that Madge had been merely one of the group of chattery young women that
+he had danced with and was polite to and secretly rather afraid of; one
+of the genus débutante. After that she merged from her genus and, almost
+without going through the intermediate stages of species and variety,
+became an individual.
+
+At first he had deliberately fostered and encouraged the thought of
+Madge, for obvious reasons. It was clearly profitable to do anything
+that would help weed out the thought of Beatrice. It would be fruitless
+even to try to enumerate the stages by which from that point on Beatrice
+faded from his heart and that of Madge took her place; to a far larger
+place, as he now realized, than Beatrice had ever occupied there.
+
+It appeared to him now, as he looked back on the whole process, that
+Beatrice herself was responsible for a large part of it, Beatrice and
+her Working Girls' League. That had all grown quite logically out of
+that first evening and his inspiration about having Madge sing to the
+working girls. Beatrice adopted the suggestion, and the result was so
+successful that on the Saturday a month or two afterward, when James
+made his next visit to New Haven, Madge was engaged to sing to them for
+a second time. He accompanied Beatrice to that meeting and from that
+evening dated his acquaintance with the Working Girls' League and social
+work in general.
+
+Madge sang for the most part old English songs, things the girls could
+understand, and they followed them all with the most unaffected interest
+and pleasure. James was surprised to see several of them actually wipe
+tears from their eyes when she sang the plaintive ditty "A young country
+maid up to London had strayed," and during one intermission he was
+conscious of certain inarticulate sounds coming from the audience, of
+which the only intelligible part was the word "husband" uttered in
+beseeching accents again and again.
+
+"They want her to sing 'Oh, for a husband,'" explained Beatrice to
+James. "She sang that the last time and they all went crazy about it."
+Madge complied with a really very spirited rendering of the old song,
+and the girls applauded with an enthusiasm that rather touched James.
+There was something appealing to him in the unaffected way in which
+these poor shop and factory drudges, physically half-starved and
+mentally wholly starved, responded to the slightest efforts to give them
+pleasure. He felt himself suddenly warming toward the movement.
+
+"Tell me something about this place," he found a chance to say to Madge
+later on, when the gathering had broken up, and even before she replied
+he reflected that he had had ample opportunity to ask Beatrice that.
+
+"Oh, _I'm_ not the person to ask--I've only just come into it.... It was
+started simply as a working girls' club, I believe; a place more
+especially for the homeless ones to come to after work hours and meet
+each other and spend a little time in cheerful surroundings before going
+back to their hall bedrooms.... Now it's become more than that; they
+have entertainments and dances and classes of various kinds, and we're
+trying to raise money enough to build them a lodging house."
+
+"You've become one of them then, have you?"
+
+"Oh, yes, I'm one of those that have been drawn in. The thing has
+flourished amazingly lately, both among the helpers and the helped. The
+purpose of the League is entirely secular--I suppose that's what made it
+go so well. The churches don't seem--they don't get a chance at many
+people, do they?... This is aimed to help the very lowest class of
+workers; all unmarried wage-earners are eligible, regardless of age or
+race or religion.... Poor things, they are so glad to have their bodies
+and minds cared for and their souls left alone! The souls follow easily
+enough, we find, just as Shaw says--you've read 'Major Barbara'?"
+
+"I don't think I have," replied James.
+
+"Well, that shows what the League is trying to do better than I can....
+It's had its results, too. The thing has been running about a year, and
+already the number of arrests for certain kinds of offenses has fallen
+off over fifty per cent. Keeping them off the streets alone is enough to
+make us feel proud and satisfied...."
+
+"I should think so," said James, blushing hotly. He had never heard a
+young woman make such a remark before, and was at a loss how to take it.
+But there was something at once fearless and modest in the way Madge
+made it that not only put him at his ease but set him thinking. "Good
+Lord, why can't we live in a world where every one talks like that?" he
+suddenly asked himself.
+
+Madge went on to give him a fuller account of the purposes and methods
+of the League, outlining some of its difficulties and indicating, as far
+as she knew it, the path of its future development. She paid him the
+compliment of asking him several questions, and he was displeased to
+find that he had either to bluff answers for them or confess ignorance.
+
+"I wish I could do something of this sort," he said presently, in a
+musing sort of way.
+
+"Why don't you? There's plenty of chance in New York, I should say."
+
+"Oh, New York, yes. I hadn't thought of that. I don't know what use I
+could be, though."
+
+"No difficulty about that, I should think. What about athletics? You'd
+work among boys, I presume?"
+
+"Yes, I suppose so." Somehow the prospect did not attract him
+particularly. Then he thought of Stodger; of what Stodger's evenings
+would have been but for him. What did he do to illuminate Stodger's
+evenings under actual conditions, now that he come to think of it?
+
+"You'll find there are plenty of things you can do for them. Practically
+every one who knows anything at all can conduct an evening class. Even
+I--I have a class in hat trimming! One of the few subjects I can
+truthfully say I have practical knowledge in."
+
+Thus the germ of the desire for social service was sowed in him. It
+thrived pretty steadily during the winter that followed. He got himself
+introduced to the proper people and almost before he knew it he found
+himself volunteering in gymnasium work and pledged to give occasional
+evening talks on athletic subjects. The organization in which he worked
+was, he found to his satisfaction, like Madge's--Madge's, you observe,
+not Beatrice's--Working Girls' League, designed to help the very lowest
+classes of wage-earners. It had its clubrooms on the lower East Side and
+set itself up as a rival attraction to the saloon-haunting gangs of that
+interesting neighborhood, and since it dealt with the roughest section
+of the population it did not hesitate to employ means that other
+organizations would have hesitated to sanction. Beer and tobacco were
+sold on the place; billiards and card games were freely encouraged,
+though there was a rule against playing anything for money; but the
+chief interest of the place was athletic. Herein lay a problem, for it
+was found that in the hands of the descendants of Nihilists and pillars
+of the Mano Negra such respectable sports as boxing and wrestling were
+prone to degenerate into bloody duels.
+
+It was in this matter that James first made himself felt. Happening into
+the building at an unaccustomed hour one afternoon, he became aware of
+strange noises issuing from an upper floor, and dashing up to the
+gymnasium discovered two brawny young Italians apparently trying to
+brain each other with Indian clubs. In a storm of righteous and
+unaffected wrath he rushed into the fray, separated the combatants and
+treated them to such a torrent of obloquy as they had never heard even
+among their own associates. Too astonished and fascinated to reply, they
+allowed themselves to be hustled from the room by James and literally
+kicked down the stairs and out of the building without so much as
+getting into their clothes, running several blocks in their gymnasium
+costumes. They aroused no particular attention, for at that time even
+the East Side was becoming accustomed to the sight of scantily clad
+youths using the streets as a cinder track, but it was more than an hour
+before, timid and peaceful, the offenders ventured to slip back into the
+clubhouse and their trousers.
+
+From that day on James practically ran the Delancy Street Club. It never
+became a very large or famous organization, partly for the reason that
+it was purposely kept rather small, but it did much good in its own
+quiet way. It soon became the chief extra-business interest in James'
+life; it effectually drove the last vestiges of what he learned to refer
+to mentally as "that foolishness" from his head; his nights became full
+of sleep and empty of visions. And by the spring of the next year he
+found himself slipping into an intermittent but perfectly easy
+friendship with Madge Elliston, founded, naturally enough, on their
+common interest in social matters. He fell into the habit of running up
+to New Haven for week-ends, and into the habit of seeing Madge on those
+Saturday evenings. He liked talking to her about social problems; he
+soon caught up with her in the matter of knowledge and experience, and
+it was from a comfortingly similar viewpoint that they were able to
+discuss such matters as methods of handling evening classes, the moral
+effects of workmen's compensation and the great and growing problem of
+dance halls and all that it involves. They both found much to help and
+instruct them in each other's views; the mere dissimilarities of the
+state laws under which they worked furnished ample material for
+discussion, and their friendship was always tightened by the fact that
+they were, so to speak, marching abreast, running up against successive
+phases of their work at about the same time.
+
+It need cause no surprise that such a relation should have remained
+practically static for a period of three years or more. Each of them had
+much to think of beside social work. James had eight or nine hours' work
+per day and all the absorbing interests of metropolitan life to keep him
+from spending overmuch time over it. And Madge, as we know, was already
+an extremely busy young woman. For a long time their common interest
+hardly amounted to more than an absorbing topic of conversation during
+their meetings. The stages by which it became the agent of something
+greater were quite imperceptible.
+
+There was just one exterior fact that served as a landmark in the
+progress of his feeling. Some months before--shortly after Harry had so
+unexpectedly gone abroad--Madge had started a series of Saturday night
+dances for her working girls--that was at the time when the dance craze
+was spreading among all classes of society--and she asked James to help
+her give some exhibitions of new dances, to get the thing well launched.
+James rather hesitated in accepting this invitation.
+
+"I'll do it, of course, if you really want me to," he said; "but I don't
+see why you want to drag me all the way up here for that. Why don't you
+ask somebody in town?"
+
+"That's just the point," replied Madge; "I shall want you to give a
+little individual instruction to the girls, if you will, and I think it
+would be just as well if the person who did that had no chance of
+meeting the girls about town, in other capacities...! Beside, you happen
+to dance rather better than any one I know up here."
+
+"Oh, nonsense!" said James. "I'll come," he added in the next breath.
+
+It was from just about the time of those dances, James thought, that the
+personal element in his relation to Madge began to overbalance the
+intellectual. He had had his moments of being rather attracted by her,
+of course--the episode of Aunt Selina's dinner was a fair example--but
+such moments had been mere sparks, soulless little heralds of the flame
+that now began to burn brightly and warmly. Hitherto he had primarily
+been interested in her; now he began definitely to like her. And then,
+before long, something more.
+
+It is interesting to compare the processes by which the two brothers
+fell in love with the same woman. Harry's experience might be likened to
+a blinding but illuminating flash of lightning; James' to the gentle but
+permeating effect of sunrise. Both were held at first by the purely
+intellectual side of Madge's character, but by different aspects of it.
+Harry was primarily attracted to her by her active wit; this had at
+first repelled James, made him somewhat afraid of her, until he
+discovered the more solid qualities of her mind. Both at last fell in
+love with her as a person, not as a member of the female sex nor as a
+thinking machine. Both passions were founded upon solid rock; neither
+could be uprooted without violent and far-reaching results.
+
+How beautifully it had all worked out in the end, James reflected; how
+wisely the progress of things was ordained! How fortunate it was that
+his first futile passion for Beatrice had not been allowed to develop
+and bear ill-conceived fruit! Now that he almost went so far as to
+despise himself for that passion as unworthy both of himself and of her.
+What had he fallen in love with there? A lip, a cheek, a pair of eyes, a
+noble poise of a head, a thing to win and kiss and at last squeeze in
+his arms--nothing more! He had set her up as the image of a false,
+fleshly ideal, an empty Victorian husk of an ideal, a sentimental,
+boyish, calfish vision of womanhood. How paltry that image looked when
+compared to that newer one combining the attributes of friend, comrade,
+fellow-worker, kin of his mind and spirit! His first image had done
+injustice to its material counterpart, to be sure; Beatrice had turned
+out to be far different from the alluring but empty creature he had
+pictured her. She was a being with a will, ideas, powers, purposes of
+her own. Well, all the better--for Harry! How admirably suited she was
+to Harry! What a pair they would make, with their two keen minds, their
+active ambitions, their fine, dynamic personalities! The thought
+furnished almost as pleasing a mental picture as that of his union with
+a small blue-eyed person at this very moment covered by the sloping gray
+roof he had already taken pains to pick out from the ranks of its
+fellows....
+
+The contemplation of material things brought a slight diminution of
+pleasure. When one came down to solid facts, things were not going quite
+so well as could be desired. Harry was at this moment kiting
+unconcernedly about the continent of Europe and his match with Beatrice
+seemed, as far as James could make out, as much in the air as ever.
+Also, his own actual relation with Madge was not entirely satisfactory.
+That was due chiefly to sordid facts, no doubt; he could not expect to
+have the freedom of meeting and speech he naturally desired with a
+governess in a friend's house. Still, in the two or three conversations
+he had been able to arrange with her during the past three weeks he had
+been conscious of an unfamiliar spirit of elusiveness. Once, he
+remembered, she had gone so far as to bring the subject of conversation
+round to impersonal things with something little short of rudeness, just
+as he was getting started on something that particularly interested him,
+too....
+
+Plenty of time for that, though; it would never do to hurry things. He
+arose from his rock and stretched himself, lifting his arms high above
+his head in the cool evening air with a sense of strength and ease.
+There was nothing to worry about; things were fundamentally all right;
+ends would meet and issues right themselves, all in due time.
+
+It was time, or very nearly time, for Aunt Selina's evening meal, so he
+started off at a brisk pace down the hill, whistling softly and
+cheerfully to himself. He thought of Aunt Selina, how pleased she would
+be with it all, when she knew. Good old soul! He remembered how
+pointedly she had asked him to spend his month's vacation with her when
+she told him she had taken a house at Bar Harbor for the summer; could
+it be that she suspected anything? Perhaps she had, perhaps not; it had
+all worked in very conveniently with Madge being at Gilsons', at any
+rate. Let her and every one else suspect what they wished; it did not
+matter much. Nothing did matter much, when you came to that, except
+that small person in white linen and lawn who had flouted him when he
+had last seen her and whom he would show what was what, he promised
+himself, on the next favorable opportunity....
+
+"Thank God for Madge," he breathed softly to himself as he walked on and
+the peace of the evening descended more deeply around him; "oh, thank
+God for Madge!"
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VI
+
+A LONG CHAPTER. BUT THEN, LOVE IS LONG
+
+
+Aunt Selina was almost the only person with whom Harry spoke during the
+interval between his last interview with Madge and his departure for
+foreign parts. He was living in the old house now, so he could not very
+well avoid seeing her. At the last moment, with his overcoat on and his
+hat in his hand, he sought out his aunt, and found her in a small room
+on the ground floor known as the morning-room, going over her accounts.
+
+"Good-by, Aunt Selina," he said. "I'm going to sail for Europe on the
+first steamer I can get, so I shan't see you for some time."
+
+Aunt Selina calmly took off her glasses, laid them beside her pen on the
+desk and paused before replying.
+
+"Good-by, my dear," she said at length; "I'm sure I hope you'll enjoy
+yourself. Brown Shipley, I suppose?"
+
+"Yes," said Harry. He was a little disconcerted; Aunt Selina played the
+game almost too well. Then as he stood unconsequently before her, he was
+seized by a sudden desire to confide in her. "Do you know why I'm going,
+Aunt Selina?" he asked.
+
+"No, my dear."
+
+"Well, why do you _think_?"
+
+"I prefer not to guess, if that is what you mean. You may tell me, if
+you wish."
+
+"Madge Elliston," mumbled Harry.
+
+Aunt Selina stared immovably at her bank book for a moment; then she got
+up and faced her nephew.
+
+"There is a streak of horse sense in the Wimbourne blood that has been
+the saving of all of us," she said. "I'm glad to see it come out in you.
+Good-by, my dear." She kissed him on the cheek.
+
+"How do--how would you like it?" he asked, still hesitating, uncertain
+as to her meaning.
+
+"Nothing better. I wish you the best of luck. And I think you're doing
+the wisest possible thing."
+
+"I'm glad you do." He looked at her gratefully. "Did you suspect
+anything?"
+
+"Not a thing."
+
+"Then I don't believe any one does.... Good-by, Aunt Selina."
+
+"You've done me a great honor. Good-by, dear."
+
+They kissed again and he went out, feeling greatly strengthened and
+encouraged. As he drove down to the station he determined to go to a
+hotel in New York and keep out of the way of the James Wimbournes and
+all other possible confidants. The interview with Aunt Selina had been
+so perfect that he could not bear the thought of risking anti-climaxes
+to it. Suddenly he remembered that certain Cunard and White Star boats
+sailed to the Mediterranean from Boston. He could go directly there and
+wait for a steamer in perfect security.
+
+So he took the next train to Boston and that very afternoon engaged
+passage to Gibraltar on a steamer sailing two days later. The interval
+he spent chiefly in laying up a great store of books on Spain and
+Portugal, which countries he planned to visit _in extenso_.
+
+The dull, wet voyage he found enchanting when brightened up by the
+glowing pages of Lope de Vega, Calderon, "Don Quixote," "The Lusiads,"
+"The Bible in Spain," and Lea's "History of the Inquisition," a galaxy
+further enhanced by the businesslike promises of guide books and
+numerous works on Hispanic architecture and painting. He landed at
+Gibraltar with something almost approaching regret at the thought that
+land traveling would allow him less time for reading.
+
+In leisurely fashion he strolled through southern Spain and Portugal,
+presently reaching Santiago de Compostela. It had been his intention,
+when this part of the trip was finished, to go to Biarritz and from
+there work on through the towns of southern France, but a traveling
+Englishman told him that he ought on no account to miss seeing the
+cathedral of Gerona. So he changed his plans and proceeded eastward.
+When he reached Gerona he called himself a fool for having so nearly
+missed it, but after a week or ten days among the huge dark churches of
+Catalonia he suddenly sickened of sight-seeing and that very night
+caught a through express from Barcelona to Paris.
+
+Harry had never known Paris well enough to care for it particularly,
+but just now there was something rather attractive to him in its late
+June gaiety. He arrived there just at the time of the Grand Prix, and as
+he strolled, lonely and unnoticed, through the brilliant Longchamps
+crowd he felt his heart unaccountably warming to these well-groomed
+children of the world. He had been outside the realm of social
+intercourse so long that he felt a sudden desire for converse with
+smart, cheerful, people of their type.
+
+His desire was not difficult of fulfilment, as nothing but seven hours'
+traveling lay between him and a welcoming Belgrave Square. The next day
+he crossed the Channel and took his uncle and aunt completely by
+surprise. They were delighted to see him and were unaffectedly
+disappointed at having to leave him almost immediately for a dinner in
+Downing Street.
+
+"But we're going to see a lot of you while you're here, dear boy," said
+Aunt Miriam, "if we have to break every engagement on our list. It isn't
+every day that I have a nephew turn into a successful playwright! What
+about a dinner, now? Giles, have you anything on for a week from
+Monday?"
+
+"The truth is," observed Sir Giles to his nephew, "you've become a lion,
+and a lion is a lion even if he is in the family. Poor Harry, I feel for
+you!"
+
+"That'll do, G. It's good for the boy."
+
+"There's small danger of my being a lion in London, anyway," said Harry.
+
+"Oh, I don't know," ruminated Uncle Giles: "adoration of success is the
+great British vice, you know."
+
+"Monday the fourth, then, Giles," said his wife.
+
+"Hooray, the national holiday!" retorted the irrepressible baronet. "I
+say, we'll have the room decorated with American flags and set off
+fireworks in the square afterward. We might make a real day of it, if
+you like, and go to tea at the American Embassy!"
+
+"No, I don't think we'll do that," answered Aunt Miriam, closing her
+lips rather firmly.
+
+Harry had a short talk alone with his aunt that night after she came
+back from the evening's business.
+
+"Come in and help me take off my tiara," she said, leading the way into
+her bedroom. "I rather want to talk to you. Do you know, dear boy, I
+fancy something's come over you lately, you're changed, somehow. Is it
+only your success? What brought you over here, in the first place?"
+
+"Spanish churches," answered Harry promptly. He had at one time half
+decided to confide in Aunt Miriam, but he definitely gave up the idea
+now. She was too sympathetic, by half. "Do you know Barcelona and
+Batalha? There's nothing like them."
+
+"No, I've never been to Spain. They say there are fleas, and the beds
+are not reliable. I also understand that other arrangements are somewhat
+primitive."
+
+"Oh, not always," replied Harry, smiling. "Still, I don't think I do
+quite see you in Spain, Aunt Miriam." Then he kissed her good night
+quite affectionately. He could be very fond of her, from a short
+distance.
+
+As he strolled down Bond Street next morning Harry sighted an old school
+acquaintance; a man whom he had known as plain Tommy Erskine, but whom a
+succession of timely deaths, as he now vaguely remembered, had brought
+into the direct line of an earldom. Harry wondered if he would remember
+him; they had not met since their Harrow days. The other's somewhat
+glassy stare relaxed quickly enough, however, when he saw who it was.
+
+"Well, Harry! Jolly old Harry!" he said in a tone of easy cordiality, as
+though he had not seen Harry perhaps for a week. "I say, turn around and
+toddle down to Truefitt's again with me, will you? Fellah puts stinking
+stuff on my hair three times a week; never do to miss a time, wot? Well,
+jolly old Harry; wherever have you been all these yahs? Didn't go up to
+Oxford, did you?"
+
+"No," said Harry, "I went home, to America, and I've stayed there ever
+since. I'm a thorough Yankee again now; you won't know me. But Tommy,
+what's all this rot about you being a viscount or something?"
+
+"Oh, bilge! Such a bilgy name, too--Clairloch--like a fellah with phlegm
+in his throat, wot? Never call me that, though; call me Tommy, and I'll
+call you Wiggers, just like jolly old times, wot?"
+
+Harry felt himself warming to this over-mannered, over-dressed,
+over-exercised dandy who was such a simple and affectionate creature
+beneath his immaculate cutaway, and rather hoped he might see something
+of him during his stay in London.
+
+"Do you ever ride these days, Tommy?" he asked presently. "That is,
+would you ride with me some day, if I can scratch up an animal?"
+
+"Oh, rather. Every morning, before brekker. Only I'll mount you. Lots of
+bosses, all eating their silly heads off. Oh, rot!" he went on, as Harry
+demurred; "rot, Wiggers, of course I shall mount you. No trouble 't all.
+Pleasure. You come to England, I mount you. I go to America, you mount
+me. Turn about, you know."
+
+"I'm afraid not, as we haven't got any saddle horses at present,"
+answered Harry. "You can drive with Aunt Selina in the victoria, though,
+if you like," he added, smiling at the thought.
+
+"Wot? Wot's that? Delighted, I'm shaw," said Tommy, vaguely scenting an
+invitation. "Oh, I say, Wiggers, speaking of aunts, wotever became of
+that jolly cousin of yaws? Carson gell--oldest--sister married Ned
+Twombly--you know." (For Jane had fulfilled her mission in life by
+marrying the heir to a thoroughly satisfactory peerage.)
+
+"She's not my cousin," said Harry, "but she's still living in America,
+keeping house for my aunt--the one I mentioned just now--and doing lots
+of other things. Settlement work, and such. She and my aunt are thick as
+thieves."
+
+"I say, how rum. Fancy, gell like that--good looks, and all
+that--trotting off to do slum work in a foreign country. Wot's the
+matter with London? Lots of slums here. Can't und'stand it, 't all.
+Never could und'stand it. Rum."
+
+"Oh, no one ever understands Beatrice," said Harry. "Her friends have
+given up trying. Well, Tommy, I think I won't go into Truefitt's with
+you. See you to-morrow morning?"
+
+"Righto--Achilles statue--seven-thirty sharp."
+
+"Righto," answered Harry, and laughed to think how well he said it.
+
+That was the beginning of a long month of gaiety for Harry, a month of
+theaters and operas, of morning rides in the Row, of endless chains of
+introductions, of showering invitations, of balls, dinners, parties of
+all kinds, of lazy week-ends in the Surrey hills or beside the Thames,
+of sitting, on one occasion at least, enthroned at Aunt Miriam's right
+hand and gazing down a long table of people who were not only all asked
+there to meet him but had actually jumped at the invitation; of tasting,
+in short, the first fruits of success among the most congenial possible
+surroundings.
+
+And as his relish outlasted the season he saw no reason for not
+accepting an invitation to a yachting party over Cowes week and another
+to one of Tommy's ancestral seats in Rosshire over the twelfth; the more
+so as Uncle Giles and Aunt Miriam decamped for Marienbad early in
+August. So he became in turn one of the white-flanneled army of
+pleasure-seekers of the south and one of the brown-tweeded cohorts of
+the north. His month in Tommydom ran into five, into six, into seven
+weeks almost before he knew it; it threatened shortly to become two
+months. And then, instantaneously, the revulsion seized him, even as it
+had seized him in June at Manresa.
+
+It happened one morning when the whole party were in the butts. Harry
+was ordinarily a tolerable shot, but to-day he shot execrably. After he
+had missed every bird in the first drive he cursed softly and broke his
+shooting-stick; after he had missed every bird in the second he silently
+handed his gun to his loader and walked down to his host, who had the
+next butt to his.
+
+"Good-by, Tommy," he said, holding out his hand. "I'm going."
+
+"Oh, don't do that," said Tommy. "Birds flying rotten high to-day."
+
+"It's not that. I'm going home."
+
+"Righto. See you at tea time, then."
+
+"No, you won't see me again. I'm going to catch the three-eighteen for
+Glasgow, if I can make it. Sail from Liverpool Saturday."
+
+Tommy's face, like his mind, became a blank, but he lived up to the
+traditions of his race and class. "Well, so long, old thing," he said,
+shaking Harry's hand. "Call on me if I can ever be any use. You'll find
+the motor down at the crossroads, and do look alive and get off before
+the next drive, there's a dear, or birds won't fly within a mile of the
+first butt."
+
+Harry reached Liverpool next day and succeeded in getting a berth on a
+steamer sailing the day after. He landed in New York late one afternoon
+and took a night train for Bar Harbor, arriving there next morning. He
+telegraphed ahead the hour of his arrival, and James and Beatrice met
+him at the dock. They both seemed glad to see him, and he supposed he
+was glad to see them, but he found it strangely difficult to carry on
+conversation with them as they all drove up to the house together.
+
+Aunt Selina kissed Harry affectionately and wholly refrained, he could
+not help noticing, from anything like knowing smiles or sly little
+asides. Aunt Selina could always be depended on.
+
+The Gilsons were New Haven people whom Harry had always known, though
+never very well. He rather liked Mrs. Gilson, who was a plump, chirpy,
+festive little person, but as he drove over the two miles that lay
+between her house and Aunt Selina's he prayed with all his might that
+both she and her husband might be from home that afternoon. Half his
+prayer was granted, but not the most important half. Mr. Gilson was
+away, but Mrs. Gilson, not content with being merely in, came bounding
+to the door to meet him and was whirling him down a broad green lawn to
+the tennis court before he knew which end he was standing on.
+
+"I do so want you to meet my cousin Dorothy Fitzgerald," she said. "Such
+a sweet girl, and it's so hard to get hold of men in Bar Harbor--you've
+no idea! She plays such a good game of tennis. I'm so glad to see you've
+got tennis shoes on--we were just trying to get up a four when you came.
+And how was your trip--do tell me all about it! Spain? Oh, I've always
+longed so to go to Spain! Young Mrs. Dimmock is here too--you know her?
+And a Mr. McLean--I'll introduce you. Portugal, too? Oh, how delightful;
+I do so want to hear all about Portugal. We've just got a new tennis
+net--I do hope it will work properly...."
+
+She buzzed pleasantly along by his side, neither asking nor requiring
+attention. Harry's glance wandered back to the house; he caught a
+glimpse of two little figures bent over a table on a verandah; Madge and
+that confounded child, of course.
+
+"Where is your little girl?" he asked.
+
+"Oh, Lily--she's having her French lesson, I suppose. We find it works
+better that way, to leave the morning free for golf and bathing and use
+this first stupid part of the afternoon for lessons. She's doing so
+well, too, with dear Madge Elliston...."
+
+"I want to see Lily before I go," said Harry firmly; "I don't think I
+have ever made her acquaintance. Madge Elliston, too," he added, trying
+to make this seem like a polite afterthought.
+
+"Oh, yes, indeed; I'll tell them both to come down to the court after
+the lesson," replied his hostess.
+
+By this time they were at the tennis court and introductions flew fast.
+Tennis ensued immediately and continued, quietly but absorbingly,
+through set after set till the afternoon was well-nigh gone. Presently
+they stopped playing and sat about sipping soft drinks, it seemed, for
+hours, and still Madge did not show up. At length he found himself being
+dragged into a single with Miss Fitzgerald. He played violently and
+nobly for a time, but when at last Madge with her small charge joined
+the group at the side of the court it was more than flesh or blood could
+stand. He left Miss Fitzgerald to serve into the backstop and walked
+across the court to where Madge stood.
+
+"How do you do?" he said, holding out his perspiring hand.
+
+"How do you do?" she answered, politely shaking it. It was the flattest
+meeting imaginable; nothing could have been more unlike the vision he
+had formed of it.
+
+Lily was introduced and he stood making commonplace remarks to both of
+them until he became aware that he had been rude to Miss Fitzgerald. He
+went off to make his apologies to her, and found her willing to receive
+them and also to discontinue their game. But if he hoped that general
+conversation would give him a chance for a private word with Madge he
+was bound to be disappointed. Mrs. Gilson had other plans.
+
+"Oh, Mr. Wimbourne, we're all going off on a picnic and we do so want
+you to join us! You will, won't you? Mrs. Dimmock knows such a sweet
+place on the Somesville road, and we're going to start right away. I'm
+not at all sure there's enough to eat, but that doesn't matter on a
+picnic, does it? Especially an evening picnic, when no one can see just
+how little there is! I do think it's so nice to get up things just on
+the spur of the moment like this, don't you? So much nicer than planning
+it all out ahead and then having it rain. Let's see, two, four, six--we
+shall all be able to pile in somehow...."
+
+"But I'm afraid I shall have to change," objected Harry. "I don't quite
+see how I can manage."
+
+"We shall see the moon rise over McFarland," observed young Mrs. Dimmock
+in a rapt manner, as though that immediately solved the problem.
+
+Harry was at first determined not to go on any account; then he gathered
+that Madge was to be included in the expedition, and straightway became
+amenable. A picnic, an evening picnic, would surely give him the best
+possible opportunity....
+
+The plan as at last perfected was that Harry should be driven home where
+he would change and pick up James and Beatrice, if possible, and with
+them drive out in the Wimbournes' buckboard to the hallowed spot on the
+Somesville road in plenty of time to see the moon rise over McFarland.
+This was substantially what occurred, except that Beatrice elected to
+remain at home with Aunt Selina. James and Harry took the buckboard and
+drove alone to the meeting place. They found the others already there
+and busy preparing supper. A fire crackled pleasantly; the smell of
+frying bacon was in the air. Harry, refreshed by a bath and the prospect
+of presently taking Madge off into some shadowy thicket, was in higher
+spirits than he had been all day. He bustled and chattered about with
+Mrs. Gilson and Mrs. Dimmock and joined heartily with them in lamenting
+that the clouds were going to cheat them of the much-advertised
+moonrise. He engaged in spirited toasting races with Miss Fitzgerald and
+sardine-opening contests with members of the strong-wristed sex. He vied
+with Mrs. Gilson herself in imparting a festive air to the occasion.
+
+Then suddenly he realized that Madge was not there. He had been vaguely
+aware of something lacking even before he overheard something about
+"headache" and "poor little Lily," from which it became clear to him
+that Madge's professional duties had again dealt him a felling blow. He
+made some excuse about gathering firewood and darted off in a bee-line
+to the place where the horses were tethered.
+
+He caught sight of James on the way and dragged him out of the others'
+hearing.
+
+"James!" he whispered hoarsely, "you'll have to get home as you can. I'm
+going to take the buckboard--now--right off! Something very
+pressing--tell you about it later. Say I've got a stomach ache or
+something."
+
+He jumped into the buckboard and started off at a fast clip. The night
+air rushing by him fanned his fevered senses and before the village was
+reached he was calm and deliberate. He drove straight to the Gilsons'
+house, tied his horse at the hitching-post, rang the front doorbell and
+asked for Miss Elliston.
+
+He allowed her to come all the way down the stairs before he said
+anything. Half curious, half amused she watched him as he stood waiting
+for her.
+
+"Nothing the matter with that kid?" he inquired at last.
+
+She shook her head.
+
+"Come with me then."
+
+Without a word he turned and walked off through a French window which he
+held open for her. As she passed him she glanced at his set face and
+gave a slight choking sound. He supposed he was rather amusing. No
+matter, though; let her laugh if she wanted. He led her across the lawn
+to the tennis court where they had met this afternoon and beyond it,
+until at last they reached a small boathouse with a dock beside it. To
+this was moored a canoe. He had seen that canoe this afternoon and it
+had recurred to him on his drive. He stooped and unfastened the painter
+and then held out his hand.
+
+"Get in there," he commanded.
+
+She hesitated. "It's not safe, really--"
+
+"Get in," he repeated almost roughly.
+
+She settled herself in the bow and he took his place at the other end.
+With a few vigorous strokes of the paddle he sent the canoe skimming out
+over the dark, mysterious water. The night was close and heavy and gave
+the impression of being warm; it was in fact as warm as a Bar Harbor
+night at the end of August can respectably be. The sky was thickly
+overcast, but the moon which had so shamelessly failed to keep the
+evening's engagements shed a dim radiance through the clouds, as though
+generously lending them credit for having shut in a little daylight
+after the normal time for its departure. Not a breeze stirred; the
+surface of the water was still, though not with the glassy stillness of
+an inland lake. Low, oily swells moved shudderingly about; when they
+reached the shore they broke, not with the splashy cheerfulness of fair
+weather ripples, but gurgling and sighing among the rocks, obviously
+yearning for the days when they would have a chance to show what they
+really could do in the breaking business. The whole effect was at once
+infinitely calm and infinitely suggestive.
+
+Neither of the occupants of the canoe spoke. Harry paddled firmly along
+and Madge watched him with a sort of fascination. At length her eyes
+became accustomed to the light and she was able to distinguish the grim,
+unchanging expression of his features and his eyes gazing neither at her
+nor away from her but simply through her. His face, together with the
+deathly calm of the night, worked a strange influence over her; it
+became more and more acute; she felt she must either scream or die of
+laughing....
+
+"Well, Harry?"
+
+"Well, Madge?"
+
+His answer seemed less barren as she thought it over; there had been
+just enough emphasis on the last word to put the next step up to her.
+The moment had come. She drew a deep breath.
+
+"The answer," she said, "is in the affirmative."
+
+The next thing Madge was aware of was Harry paddling with all his might
+for the shore.
+
+"What are you doing?" she asked.
+
+"Going to get out of this confounded thing," he replied.
+
+When they reached the dock he got out, helped her out and tied the canoe
+with great care. Then he gathered her to him and kissed her several
+times with great firmness and precision.
+
+"You really are quite a nice young woman," he remarked; "even if you did
+propose to me."
+
+"Harold Wimbourne! I never!"
+
+"You said, 'Well, Harry.' I should like to know what that is if it isn't
+a proposal."
+
+They turned and started up the steps toward the house. Madge seemed to
+require a good deal of helping up those steps. When they reached the top
+she swung toward him with a laugh.
+
+"What is it now?" he asked.
+
+"Nothing ... only that it should have happened in a canoe. You, of all
+people!"
+
+They walked slowly across the tennis court and sat down in one of the
+chairs scattered along its western side. Here they remained for a long
+time in conversation typical of people in their position, punctuated by
+long and interesting silences.
+
+"Suppose you tell me all about it," suggested Harry.
+
+"Well, now that it's all done with, I suppose I was merely trying to be
+on the safe side, all along. I know, at least, that I had rather a
+miserable time after you left. All the spring. Then I came up here and
+it seemed to get worse, somehow. It was early in June, and everything
+was very strange and desolate and cold, and I cried through the entire
+first night, without stopping a moment!"
+
+"Yes," said Harry thoughtfully, "I should think you might have gathered
+from that that all was not quite as it should be."
+
+"Yes. Well, next morning I decided I couldn't let that sort of thing go
+on. So I took hold of myself and determined never to discuss the subject
+with myself, at all. And I really succeeded pretty well, considering.
+Whenever the idea of you occurred to me in spite of myself, I
+immediately went and did something else very hard. I've been a perfect
+angel in the house ever since then, and I don't mind saying it was
+rather brave of me!"
+
+"You really knew then, months ago? Beyond all doubt or question?"
+
+"I shouldn't wonder."
+
+"Then why in the world didn't you telegraph me?"
+
+"As if I would!" exclaimed Miss Elliston with an indignant sniff.
+
+"That was the arrangement, you know."
+
+"Oh, good gracious, hear the man! What a coarse, masculine mind you
+have, my ownest! You call yourself an interpreter of human character,
+but what do you really know of the maiden of bashful twenty-six?
+Nothing!"
+
+"Well, well, my dear," said Harry easily, "have it your own way. I
+daresay it all turned out much better so. I was able to do up the
+Spanish churches thoroughly, and I had a lovely time in England. Just
+fancy, of all the hundreds of people I met there I can't think of a
+single one, from beginning to end, who said I had a coarse masculine
+mind."
+
+"Brute," murmured Miss Elliston, apparently to Harry's back collar
+button.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+"I suppose," she observed, jumping up a little later, "that you were
+really right in the beginning. That first evening, you know."
+
+"Oh, I'm quite sure of it. How?"
+
+"When you said I couldn't talk that way to you without being in love
+with you. I expect I really was, though the time hadn't come for
+admitting it, even to myself. In fact, I was so passionately in love
+with you that I couldn't bear to talk about it or even think about it,
+for fear of some mistake. If I kept it all to myself, you see, no harm
+could ever have been done."
+
+"How sane," murmured Harry. "How incontrovertibly logical."
+
+"Yes. You see," explained Miss Elliston primly, "no girl--no really nice
+girl, that is, can ever bring herself to face the question of whether
+she is in love with a man until he has declared himself."
+
+"Consequently, it's every girl's--every nice girl's--business to bring
+him to the point as soon as possible. Any one could see that."
+
+"And for that very reason she must keep him off the business just as
+long as she can. When you realize that, you see exactly why I acted as I
+did that night and why I worked like a Trojan to keep you from
+proposing. I failed, of course, at last--I hadn't had much experience.
+I've improved since...." She wriggled uncomfortably. "You acted rather
+beautifully that night, I will say for you. You made it almost easy."
+
+"Hm. You seemed perfectly sure that night, though, that you were very
+far from being in love with me. You even offered to marry me, as I
+remember it, as an act of pure friendship. I don't see quite why you
+couldn't respectably admit that you were in love with me then, since in
+spite of your best efforts I had broken through to the point. How about
+that?"
+
+"It was all too sudden, silly. I couldn't bring myself round to that
+point of view in a minute. I had to have time. Oh, my dear young man,"
+she continued, resuming her primmest manner, "how little, how
+singularly little do you know of that beautiful mystery, a woman's
+heart."
+
+"A woman's what?"
+
+"Heart."
+
+"Oh, yes, to be sure. As I understand it, the only mystery is whether it
+exists or not."
+
+"How can you say that?" cried Madge with sudden passion, grasping at him
+almost roughly.
+
+"I didn't," replied Harry.
+
+"No, dear, excuse me, of course you didn't. Only I have to make a fool
+of myself every now and then...."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+"But, oh, my dearest," she whispered presently with another change of
+mood, "if you knew what a time I've been through, really, since you've
+been gone! If you knew how I've lain awake at night fearing that it
+wouldn't turn out all right, that something would happen, that I'd lose
+you after all! I've scanned the lists of arrivals and departures in the
+papers; I've listened till I thought my ears would crack when other
+people talked about you. The very sound of your name was enough to make
+me weep with delight, like that frump of a girl in the poem, when you
+gave her a smile.... You see, I haven't been brave _all_ the time. There
+were moments.... Do you know that backbone feeling?"
+
+"I think so," said Harry. "You mean the one that starts very suddenly at
+the back of your neck and shoots all the way down?"
+
+"Yes, and at the same time you feel as if your stomach and lungs had
+changed places, though that's not so important. I don't see why people
+talk about loving with their hearts; the real feeling is always in the
+spine. Well, no amount of bravery could keep that from taking me by
+surprise sometimes, and even when I was brave it would often leave me
+with a suspicion that I had been very silly and weak to trust to luck to
+bring everything to a happy ending. But I never could bring myself to
+send word to you. I was determined to give you every chance of changing
+your mind; I knew you would come back at last, if you cared enough....
+And if anything had happened, or if you had decided not to come
+back--well, I always had something to fall back on. The memory of that
+one evening, and the thought that I had been given the chance of loving
+you and had lived up to my love to the best of my ability...."
+
+"That doesn't seem very much now, does it?" suggested Harry.
+
+"No. Oh, to think how it's come out--beyond all my wildest dreams!... I
+never thought it would be quite as nice as this, did you?"
+
+"Never. The truth has really done itself proud, for once."
+
+"The truth--fancy, this is the truth! This!... Oh, nonsense, it can't
+be! We aren't _really_ here, you know. This is simply an unusually vivid
+subconscious affair--you know--the kind that generally follows one of
+the backbone attacks. It will pass off presently. It will, you know,
+even if it is what we call reality.... For the life of me, I don't
+really know whether it is or not!--Harry, did it ever occur to you that
+people are always marveling that dreams are so like life without ever
+considering the converse--that life is really very much like a dream?"
+
+"A few have--a very few. A great play has been written round that very
+thing--_La Vida Es Sueño_--life is a dream. We'll read it together
+sometime.--Heavens, I never realized what it really meant till now! Do
+you know what this seems like to me? It seems like the kind of scene I
+have always wanted to write but never quite dared--simply letting myself
+go, without bothering about action or probability or motivation but just
+laying it on with a trowel, as thick as I could. All that, transmuted
+into terms of reality--or what we call reality! Heavens, it makes me
+dizzy!"
+
+ * * * * *
+
+"See here, Harold Wimbourne," said Madge, suddenly jumping up again; "it
+seems to me you've been talking a great deal about love and very little
+about marriage. What I want to know is, when are you going to marry me?"
+
+"Oh, the tiresome woman! Well, when should you say?"
+
+"To-morrow morning, preferably. If that won't do, about next Tuesday.
+No, of course I've got heaps of things to do first. How about the middle
+of October?"
+
+"I was just thinking," said Harry seriously. "You see, my dear, I'm at
+present working on a play. Technically speaking. Only, owing to the
+vaporous scruples of a certain young person I haven't been able to put
+in any work on it for several months. Bachmann has been very decent. He
+has practically promised to put it on in January, if it's any good at
+all. That means having it ready before Christmas, and I shall have to
+work like the very devil to do that. I work so confoundedly slowly, you
+see. Then there'll be all the bother of rehearsals, lasting up to the
+first night, which I suppose would be about the end of January. I should
+like to have up till then clear, but I should think by about the middle
+of February--say the fifteenth...."
+
+"Oh, indeed," replied Miss Elliston, "you should say about the
+fifteenth, should you? I'm sorry, very sorry indeed, but as it happens I
+have another engagement for the fifteenth--several of them. Possibly I
+could arrange something for next June, though, or a year from next
+January; possibly not. Better let the matter drop, perhaps; sorry to
+have disturbed--"
+
+"When will you marry me?" interrupted Harry, doing something that
+entirely destroyed the dignity of Miss Elliston's pose. "Next
+week--to-morrow--to-night? I daresay we could wake up a parson...."
+
+"Sorry, dear, but I've arranged to be married on the fifteenth of
+February, and no other date will do. You're hurting my left
+shoulder-blade cruelly, but I suppose it's all right. That's better....
+Oh, Harry, I do want you to work like the very devil on this play! Don't
+think about marriage, or me, or anything that will hinder you. Because,
+dearest, I have a feeling that it's going to be rather a good one. A
+perfect rip-snorter, to descend to the vulgar parlance."
+
+"Yes," said Harry, "I have a feeling that it is, too."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+The sound of carriage wheels crunching along the gravel drive floated
+down and brought them back with a start to the consideration of
+actualities. They both sat silently wondering for a moment.
+
+"What about Mrs. Gilson?" suggested Madge.
+
+"Might as well," replied Harry.
+
+"All right. You'll have to do it, though."
+
+"Very well, then. Come along."
+
+They rose and stood for a moment among the scattered chairs, both
+thinking of their absurd meeting on that spot this very afternoon, and
+then turned and started slowly up toward the house. When they had nearly
+reached the verandah steps Harry stopped and turned toward Madge.
+
+"Well, the whole world is changed for us two, isn't it?"
+
+"It is."
+
+"Nothing will ever be quite the same again, but always better, somehow.
+Even indifferent things. And nothing can ever spoil this one evening?"
+
+"Nothing?"
+
+"Not all the powers of heaven or earth or hell? We have a sort of
+blanket insurance against the whole universe?"
+
+"Exactly," said Madge. "We're future-proof."
+
+"That's it, future-proof. I'll wait here on the porch. No Fitzgerald,
+mind."
+
+He did not have to wait long. Madge found Mrs. Gilson in the hall, as it
+happened, with Miss Fitzgerald receding bedward up the stairs and far
+too tired to pay any attention to Madge's gentle "Mr. Wimbourne is here
+and would like to see you, Mrs. Gilson." So the good lady was led out
+into the dark porch and as she stood blinking in the shaft of light
+falling out through the doorway Harry appeared in the blackness and
+began speaking.
+
+"I do hope you'll excuse my being so rude and leaving your party, Mrs.
+Gilson. There was a real reason for it. You see Madge and I"--taking her
+hand--"have come to an understanding. We're engaged."
+
+Mrs. Gilson stood blinking harder than ever for one bewildered moment,
+and then the floodgates of speech were opened.
+
+"Oh, my _dear_, how _wonderful_! Madge, my dearest Madge, let me kiss
+you! Whoever could have _dreamed_--Harry--you don't mind my calling you
+Harry, do you?--you must let me kiss you too! It's all so wonderful, and
+so unexpected, and I can't help thinking that if your dear mother--oh,
+Madge, you double-dyed creature, how long has this been going on and I
+never knew a thing? We all thought--your brother was so tactful and gave
+us to understand that you had acute indigestion or something, left over
+from the voyage, and we all quite understood, though I did think there
+might be something afoot when I saw your buckboard at the door. And I
+haven't heard a thing about Spain and Portugal, not a _thing_, though
+goodness knows there's no time to think of that now and you must let me
+give a dinner for you both at the earliest possible moment. When is it
+to be announced? I do hope before Labor Day because there's never a man
+to be had on the island after that...."
+
+And so on. At last Harry made the lateness of the hour an excuse for
+breaking away and went round to the front door to get his buckboard.
+Madge had to go with him, though she had no particular interest in the
+buckboard.
+
+"She's a good woman," said Harry as he fumbled with the halter.
+"Though--whoa there, you silly beast; you're liable to choke to death if
+you do that."
+
+"The rein's caught over the shaft," explained Madge. "It makes her
+uncomfortable. Though what, dear?"
+
+"That's the trace, and it's him, anyway. Oh, nothing. Only I never was
+so awfully keen on slobbering."
+
+"She's a dear, really. If you knew what an angel she's been to me all
+summer! What makes her look round in that wild-eyed way?"
+
+From Harry's answer, "He's tired, that's all," we may assume that this
+question referred to the horse, though her next remark went on without
+intermission: "I don't want you to go away to-night thinking--"
+
+"I like slobbering," asserted Harry. "Always did.... Now if that's all,
+dear, perhaps I'd better make tracks." The last ceremonies of parting
+had been performed and he was in the buckboard.
+
+"Just a moment, while I kiss your horse's nose. It doesn't do to neglect
+these little formalities.... I'm glad you like slobbering, dear, because
+your horse has done it all over my shoulder ... no, don't get out. It
+had to go in the wash anyway. He's a sweet horse; what is his name?"
+
+"Dick, I think. Oh, no--Kruger. Yes, he's that old."
+
+"Because, dear," went on Madge, with her hand on the front wheel;
+"there's one thing one mustn't forget. There was--Mr. Gilson, you know."
+
+"Good Lord," said Harry, struck by the thought.
+
+"Yes, and what's more, there still is!"
+
+"A true model for us?"
+
+"Yes. After all, we have no monopoly, you know."
+
+"Good Lord, think of it! Millions of others!"
+
+"It gives one a certain faith in the human race, doesn't it?"
+
+"For Heaven's sake, Madge, don't be ultimate any more to-night! You make
+me dizzy--how do you suppose I'm going to drive between those white
+stones? Do you want me to be in love with the whole world?" And Madge's
+reply "Yes, dear, just that," was drowned in the clatter of his wheels.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VII
+
+A VERY SHORT CHAPTER, IN ONE SENSE
+
+
+The next day it rained. Harry shut himself up in his room and wrote
+violently all the morning, less in the hope of accomplishing valuable
+work than in the desire to keep his mind off the one absorbing topic. It
+proved to be of little use. At lunch time he threw all that he had
+written into the fireplace and resolved to tell the immediate members of
+his family.
+
+It worked out very well. After lunch he arranged with James to take a
+walk in the rain. Beatrice, it appeared, would be occupied at a bridge
+party all the afternoon. There remained Aunt Selina--the easiest, by all
+odds. Just before starting out with James he walked into the living
+room, rustling in his raincoat, and found her alone by the fire.
+
+"It's all right, Aunt Selina." He felt himself grinning like a monkey,
+but couldn't seem to stop himself.
+
+But Aunt Selina herself could do nothing but laugh. Presently she rose
+from her seat and embraced her nephew.
+
+"That top button has come off," she said. "I'm afraid you'll get your
+neck wet." Then they looked at each other and laughed again. There was
+really nothing more to be said.
+
+James' feet sounded on the stairs above.
+
+"I shan't be home for dinner," said Harry, starting toward the door.
+"And you might tell Beatrice," he added.
+
+He walked with James for three hours or more. It may have been the
+calming influence of exercise or it may have been the comforting effect
+that James' society generally had on him; at any rate, when the time
+came he found himself able to say what he had to without any of the
+embarrassment he had expected.
+
+He chose the moment when they had all but reached the crossroad that
+would take him off to the Gilsons'.
+
+"James," he said, breaking a long silence, "I've got something rather
+important to tell you. I'm engaged."
+
+"To whom?"
+
+"Madge Elliston."
+
+"When?"
+
+"Last night. That was it." They now stood facing each other, at the
+crossroads. James did not speak for a moment, and Harry scanned his face
+through the dusk. Its expression was one of bewilderment, Harry thought.
+Strange, that James should be more embarrassed than he! But that was the
+way it went.
+
+"Harry! See here, Harry--"
+
+"Yes, James!"
+
+"I ..." He stopped and then slowly raised his hand. "I congratulate
+you."
+
+"Thanks, awfully. It does sort of take one's breath away, doesn't it?...
+I'm going there now. Why don't you come too? No? Well, I may be rather
+late, so leave the door on the latch. I'll walk home." And he walked off
+down the crossroad.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+James knew, perfectly well, the moment Harry said he had something to
+tell him. His subsequent questions were prompted more by a desire to
+make the situation between them legally clear, as it were, than by real
+need of information. His first dominant impulse was to explain the
+situation to Harry and show him, frankly and convincingly, the utter
+impossibility of his engagement. The very words formed themselves in his
+mind:--"See here, Harry, you can't possibly marry Madge Elliston,
+because I'm in love with her myself--have been for years, before you
+ever thought of her!" He drew a long breath and actually started in on
+his speech. But the words would not come. As he looked at his brother
+standing happy and ignorant before him he realized in an instant that,
+come what might, he would never be able to utter those words.
+
+There was nothing left to do but mumble his congratulations. As he
+lifted his hand to that of his brother the thought occurred to him that
+he might easily raise it higher and put Harry out of his way, once and
+for all. He knew that he could, with his bare hands, do him to death on
+the spot; knee on chest, fingers on throat--he knew the place. That was
+perhaps preferable to the other; kinder, certainly, but equally
+impossible. It was not even a temptation.
+
+As he walked off he reflected that he had just come through one of the
+great crises of his whole life, and yet how commonplace, how utterly
+flat had been its outward guise! He had always vaguely wondered how
+people acted at such times; now the chance had come to him and he had
+shown less feeling than he would have at missing a trolley car. In him,
+at this present moment, were surging some of the most terrific passions
+that ever swayed human beings--love, jealousy, disappointment, hate of
+the order of things--and he could not find a physical vent for one of
+them! Not only that, but he never would be able to; he saw that clearly
+enough; people of his time and class and type never could. This was what
+civilization had brought men to! What was the use? What was the meaning
+of all civilization, all progress, all human development? Here he was,
+as perfect a physical specimen as his age produced, unable to do more
+than grit his teeth in the face of the most intolerable emotions known
+to mankind, under pain of suffering a debasement even more intolerable.
+Some people did give way to their passions, but that was only because
+they were less able to think clearly than he. They always regretted it
+in the end; they always suffered more that way; his knowledge of the
+world had taught him nothing if it had not taught him that.
+
+Just in order to prove to himself how ineffectual physical expression of
+his mental state was he tore a rail off the top of a nearby fence--he
+had wandered far out into the country again--and, raising it above his
+shoulders, brought it down with all his strength upon a rock. The rail
+happened to be a strong one and did not break, and the force of the blow
+made his hands smart. He took a certain fierce joy in the pain and
+repeated the blow two or three times, but long before his body tired
+with the exertion his soul sickened of the business. He threw the rail
+lightly over the fence and wandered hopelessly on into the hills.
+
+After the first shock of surprise and disappointment had passed his
+feelings boiled down to a slow scorching hate of destiny. The thought of
+God occurred to him, among other things, and he laughed. Why did people
+ever take it into their heads to deny the existence of God? Of course
+there was a God; nothing but a divine will could possibly have arranged
+that he should be thwarted in an honest love--not merely once, mind you,
+but twice--by the one person in the world whom he could not oppose. Such
+things were beyond the realm of chance or reason. During one part of his
+wanderings he laughed aloud, several separate times, at the monumental
+humor of it all. A man such as he was, in the full pride of his youth
+and strength, strong in body, strong in mind, strong in will and
+character, twitched hither and yon by the lightest whimsical breath of
+an all-powerful divinity--it was supremely funny, in its coarse,
+horrible way.
+
+"Oh, yes, it's a good joke, God," he said aloud once or twice; "it's a
+damned good joke."
+
+It is significant that he thought very little of Madge now. He
+experienced none of the sudden sharp twinges of memory that he had known
+on a former occasion. At that time, as he now realized, only one side of
+his nature had been stirred, and that a rather silly, unimportant side.
+Now his whole being, or at least all that was best and strongest in his
+being, was affected. He had loved Beatrice only with his eyes and his
+imagination. He loved Madge with the full strength of his heart and soul
+and mind. And heart, soul and mind being cheated of their right, united
+in an alliance of hate and revenge against the fate that had cheated
+them.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+He did not return to the house for dinner, and Aunt Selina supposed he
+had gone with Harry to the Gilsons'. He walked most of the night and
+when at last he reached home he found the door locked. Harry, of course,
+not finding him downstairs, had thought he had gone to bed and had
+locked everything. So he lay down in a cot hammock to await the coming
+of a hopeless day.
+
+He got some sleep; he did not see that dawn, after all. Awakened shortly
+after seven by a housemaid opening doors and windows, he slipped
+unobserved up to his room, undressed and took a cold bath. He supposed
+nothing would ever keep him from taking a cold bath before breakfast;
+nothing, that is, except lack of cold water. Strange, that cold water
+could effect what love, jealousy and company could not. He glanced out
+of the window. The weather had changed during the night and the day was
+clear and windy and snapping, a true forerunner of autumn. The sun and
+wind between them were whipping the sea into all sorts of shades of blue
+and purple, rimming it with a line of white along the blue coast of
+Maine over to the left. There was cold water enough for any one, enough
+to drown all the wretched souls ever born into a world of pain. How
+strange it was to think of how many unwilling souls that sea drowned
+every year, and yet had not taken him, who was so eminently willing! He
+could not deliberately seek death for himself, but he would be delighted
+to die by accident. No such luck, though; the fate, God, destiny,
+whatever you chose to call it, that had brought him twice into the same
+corner of terrestrial hell would see to that....
+
+As he was rubbing himself dry his eye fell on his reflection in a
+full-length mirror and almost involuntarily stopped there. He still had
+the pure Greek build of his college days, he noticed; the legs, the
+loins, the chest, the arms, the shoulders all showed the perfect
+combination of strength and freedom. He had not even the faults of
+over-development; his neck was not thick like a prize-fighter's nor did
+his calves bulge like those of many great athletes. And his head matched
+the rest of him, within and without. And all this perfection was brought
+to naught by the vagrant whim of a cynical power! A new wave of hate and
+rebellion, stronger than any he had yet felt, swept over him. Moved by a
+sudden impulse he threw aside his towel and advanced a step or two
+toward the mirror, raising his hands after the manner of a
+libation-pourer of old.
+
+"I swear to you," he muttered between clenched teeth to the reflection
+that faced him; "I swear to you that nothing in me shall ever rest until
+I have got even with the Thing, god, devil or blind chance, that has
+brought me to this pass. It may come early or it may come late, but
+somehow, some day! I swear it."
+
+There was something eminently satisfying in the juxtaposition of his
+nakedness of body to the stark intensity of his passion and the
+elemental fervor of his agnosticism. For James was now a thorough
+agnostic; turned into one overnight from a "good" Episcopalian--he had
+been confirmed way back in his school days--he realized his position
+and fairly reveled in the hopelessness and magnificence and bravery of
+it all. For it takes considerable bravery to become an agnostic,
+especially when you have a simple religious nature. James was in a state
+where the thought of being eternally damned gave him nothing but a
+savage joy. It was all very wicked, of course, but strong natures have a
+way of turning wicked when it becomes impossible for them to be good.
+There are some things that not even a _schöne Seele_ can put up with.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Having thus taken pact with himself he experienced a sense of relief and
+became almost cheerful. He had breakfast alone with Harry--both ladies
+customarily preferring to take that intimate meal in their own
+rooms--and talked with him quite normally about various matters, chiefly
+golf. He became almost garrulous in explaining his theories concerning
+the proper use of the niblick. Harry was going to play golf that morning
+with Madge. He looked extremely fresh and attractive in his suit of
+tweed knickers; James did not blame Madge in the least for falling in
+love with his brother rather than him. Nor was he in the least inclined
+to find fault with Harry for falling in love with Madge. Only ... but
+what was the use in going over all that again?
+
+He walked briskly down to the town after breakfast and engaged a berth
+on the New York express for that night. Living in immediate propinquity
+to the happy lovers would of course be intolerable. Then he walked back
+to the house. It was rather a long walk; the house stood on a height at
+some distance back of the town. A feeling of lassitude overcame him
+before he reached home; the exertions of last night were beginning to
+tell on him. Oh, the horror of last night! The memory of it was almost
+more oppressive than the dreadful thing itself.
+
+He supposed he ought to go up and begin to pack, but he did not feel
+like it. Instead he wandered out on the verandah to lie in the sun and
+watch the sea for a while. He came at last to a hexagonal tower-like
+extension of the verandah built over an abutment of rock falling sharply
+away on all sides except that toward the house. There was a drop of
+perhaps twenty-five feet from the broad railing of this extension to the
+ground below. Harry, who knew the house from his early days, had dubbed
+its peak-roofed excrescence the chamber up a tower to the east that
+Elaine guarded the sacred shield of Lancelot in; it was sometimes more
+briefly referred to as Elaine. It was a pleasant place to sit, but very
+windy on a day like this, and James was rather surprised to discover
+Beatrice sitting in one angle of the railing gazing silently out over
+the sea.
+
+"Hullo," he said, listlessly sinking into a chair. "You've heard, I
+suppose?"
+
+"Yes, I've heard."
+
+"Fine, isn't it?"
+
+"Oh, splendid."
+
+"I'm going to New York to-night," said James after a moment.
+
+"I'm going home next month," said Beatrice.
+
+Neither spoke for a while and then it began to dawn on them both that
+those two carelessly spoken sentences had much more to them than their
+face-value. They both had the uneasy sensation of being forced into a
+"situation."
+
+"What for?" asked James at last.
+
+"For good."
+
+"But why?" he persisted, knowing perfectly well why, at bottom.
+
+"You ought not to have to ask that," she replied. "You, of all
+people.--Why are you going away to-night?" she added, turning toward him
+with sudden passion.
+
+James' first impulse was to make a sharp reply, his second was to get up
+and walk away, and then his glance fell upon her face.... Oh, was there
+no end to mortal misery?
+
+"I'm sorry, Beatrice," he said wretchedly; "I'm sorry--I didn't mean to
+hurt you."
+
+"Oh, it's all right," she answered in his own tone of voice. Then for a
+long time neither of them moved nor spoke.
+
+The situation was on them now in full force, and it was a sufficiently
+terrific one, for actual life; one which under other circumstances they
+would both have made every effort to break up. Yet neither of them
+thought of struggling against it now--there was so much else to struggle
+against. Great misfortunes inoculate people to small embarrassments; no
+one in the throes of angina pectoris has much time to bother about a
+cold in the head. Then, as their silence wore on, they began to be
+conscious of a certain sense of companionship.
+
+"I suppose it's pretty bad?" ventured James at last, on a note of
+tentative understanding.
+
+"I suppose it is...."
+
+An idea occurred to James. "At least you're better off than I am,
+though. You can try to do something about it. You see how my hands are
+tied. You can fight against it, if you want. That's something."
+
+Beatrice gazed immovably out over the sea. "You can't fight against
+destiny," she said at last.
+
+James pricked up his ears; his whole being became suddenly alert.
+Couldn't one? Had he not dedicated his whole future to that very thing?
+"I'm not so sure of that," he answered slowly. "Have you ever tried?"
+
+"I've tried for seven years."
+
+Well, that was something. He became curious; seven years' experience in
+the art of destiny-fighting would surely contain knowledge that would be
+valuable to a novice like himself. And in the manner of getting this he
+became almost diabolically clever. Guessing that all direct inquiries in
+the matter would merely flatten themselves against the stone wall of her
+reticence he determined to approach her through the avenue of her pride.
+
+"I find it hard to believe that," he remarked; "I haven't seen the
+slightest indication of such a thing."
+
+"No, of course not. How should you? I haven't advertised it, like a
+prize fight!"
+
+"I don't mean that; I mean that I haven't ever discovered anything in
+your character to make me believe you were--that sort of person. That
+sort of thing takes more than strength of character and intellect; it
+takes passion, capacity for feeling. And I shouldn't have said there was
+much of that in you. You have always seemed to me--well, rather aloof
+from such things. Cold, almost--I don't mean in the sense of being
+ill-natured, but...."
+
+James was perfectly right; it is a curious trait of human character,
+that sensitiveness on the point of capacity for feeling. People who will
+sincerely disclaim any pretensions to strength of mind, body or
+character will flare into indignant protest when their strength of heart
+is assailed. It was so with Beatrice now.
+
+"Cold?" she interrupted with a slight laugh. "Me--cold?... Yes, I
+suppose I might seem so. I daresay I appear to be a perfect human
+icicle...." She laughed again, and then turned directly toward James.
+"See here, James, it's more than likely that we shall never see each
+other again after to-day, isn't it?"
+
+"I suppose not, if you intend to go--"
+
+"The first moment I can. Consequently it doesn't matter particularly
+what I say to you now or what you think of me afterward. I should just
+like to give you an idea of what these years have been to me. It may
+amuse you to know that the pursuit of your brother has been the one
+guiding passion of my life since I was eighteen. I was in love with him
+before he left England and I've wanted him from that time on--wanted him
+with all the strength of my soul and body! Wanted him every living
+moment of the day and night!... Can you conceive of what that means for
+a woman? A woman, who can't speak, can't act, can't make the slightest
+advance, can't give the least glimmering of her feeling?--not only
+because the world doesn't approve but because her game's all up if the
+man gets a suspicion that she's after him.... I suppose I knew it was
+hopeless from the start, though I couldn't bring myself to admit it. At
+any rate, as soon as the chance came I made up my mind to come over here
+and just sit around in his way and wait--the only thing a woman can do
+under the circumstances...."
+
+"I never--I didn't realize quite all that," stammered James. "Though I
+knew--I guessed about the other.... You mean you deliberately came to
+America--"
+
+"With that sole purpose."
+
+"And you--you...." He fairly gasped.
+
+"I wormed my way into a place in your family with that one end in view,
+if that's what you mean. And I've remained here with that one end in
+view ever since."
+
+"And all your work--the League--"
+
+"I had to do something, in the meanwhile--No, that's not true either;
+that was another means to the same end. Intended to be." She smiled with
+the same quiet intensity of bitterness that had struck James before.
+
+"But what about you and Aunt Selina? I always thought--"
+
+The smile faded. "Aunt Selina might lie dead at my feet, for all I
+should care," she answered with another sudden burst of passion. "Oh,
+no, not quite that. I suppose I like her as well as I can _like_ any
+one. But that's the way it is, comparatively."
+
+"Yes. I know that feeling," said James meditatively.
+
+"So you see how it is with me. I'm glad, in a way, that it's all up now.
+Any end--even the worst--is better than waiting--that hopeless,
+desperate waiting. Yet I never could bring myself to give up till I
+heard--what I heard yesterday. I've expected it, really, for some time;
+I've watched, I've seen. Oh, that horrible watching--waiting--listening!
+That's all over, at least...."
+
+She had sunk into a chair near the edge of the verandah and sat with her
+elbows on the broad rail, gazing with sightless eyes over the variegated
+expanse of the sea. The midday sun fell full upon her unprotected face
+and even James at that moment could not help thinking how few
+complexions could bear that fierce light as hers did. She was, indeed,
+perhaps more beautiful at that moment than he had ever seen her before.
+Her expression of quiet hopeless grief was admirably suited to the
+high-bred cast of her features; she would have made a beautiful model
+for a Zenobia or a classisized type of _pietà_. Beauty is never more
+willing to come to us than when we want it least.
+
+It had its effect on James, though he did not realize it. He came over
+and sat down on the rail, where he could look directly down at her.
+
+"Beatrice," he said, "I don't mind saying I think it was rather
+magnificent of you."
+
+She looked up at him a moment and then out to sea again. "Well, I must
+say I don't. I'm not proud of it. If I had been man enough to go my own
+way and not let it interfere with my life in the very least, that might
+have been magnificent. But this.... It was simply weak. I always knew
+there was no hope, you know."
+
+"No, that's not the way to look at it. You devoted your whole life to
+that single purpose.... After all, you did as much as it was possible to
+do, you know. You went about it in the very best way--you were right
+when you said the worst thing you could do was to let him see."
+
+"I'm not so sure. No, I don't know about that. Sometimes I think that if
+I had been brave enough simply to go to him and say, 'I love you; here I
+am, take me; I'll devote my life to making a good wife for you,' it
+would have been much better. But I wasn't brave enough for that."
+
+"No," insisted James; "that wasn't why you didn't do it. You knew Harry.
+It might have worked with some men, but not with him. Can't you see him
+screwing himself to be polite and saying, 'Thank you very much,
+Beatrice, but I don't think I could make you a good enough husband, so
+I'm afraid it won't do'?... No, you picked out the best way to get at
+him and made that your one purpose in life, and I admire you for it. It
+wasn't your fault it didn't succeed; it was just--just the damned,
+relentless way of things...."
+
+"What are you going to do now?" he asked after a pause. "After you get
+home, I mean?"
+
+"I don't know. Work, I suppose, at something."
+
+"What--slums?"
+
+"Oh, I suppose so.--No, I'd rather do something harder, like
+stenography--something with a lot of dull, grinding routine. That's the
+best way."
+
+"A stenographer!"
+
+"Or a matron in a home.--Why not? I must do something. I won't live with
+Mama, that's flat."
+
+"You think you must go home, do you?"
+
+"You wouldn't expect me to stay here and--?"
+
+"No, but couldn't you find something to do here as well as there?"
+
+"Yes, but why? I suppose I want to go home, things being as they are. If
+I've got to live somewhere, I'd rather live among my own people. I
+didn't come here because I liked America best...."
+
+"But are you sure you don't like America best now? You can't have lived
+here all these years without letting the place have its effect on you,
+however little you may have thought about it. Why, your very speech
+shows it! And what about your friends--haven't you got as many on this
+side as the other? You've practically admitted it.... And do you realize
+what construction is sure to be put on your leaving just now...?"
+
+"What are you driving at?" She looked quickly up at him, curious in
+spite of herself to discover the trend of his arguments, in themselves
+scarcely worth answering. He did not reply for a moment, but stared
+gravely back at her, and when he spoke again it was from a different
+angle.
+
+"Beatrice, why have you been telling me all these things...?"
+
+He knew what he was going to do now, what he was striving toward with
+the whole strength of his newly-forged determination. And if at the back
+of his brain there struggled a crowd of lost images--ghosts of ideals
+which at this time yesterday had been the unquestioned rulers of his
+life--stretching out their tenuous arms to him, giving their last faint
+calls for help before taking their last backward plunge into oblivion,
+he only went on the faster so as to drown their voices in his own.
+
+"Beatrice, why did you think of confiding in me? Why did you pick out
+this particular time? You never have before; you're not the sort of
+person that makes confidences. It wasn't because you were going away;
+that was no real reason at all.... Beatrice, don't you see? Don't you
+see the bond that lies between us two? Don't you see what's going to
+happen to us both?"
+
+"No--I don't know what you're talking about. James, don't be absurd!"
+She rose to her feet as if to break away, but she stood looking at his
+face, fascinated and possibly a little frightened by the onward rush of
+his words. James rose too and stood over her.
+
+"Beatrice, we've both had a damned dirty trick played on us, the same
+trick at the same time. Are you going to take it lying down--spread
+yourself out to receive another blow, or are you going to stand up and
+make a fight--assert your independence--prove the existence of your own
+soul? I'm not, whatever happens! I'm going to make a fight, and I want
+you to make it with me. Beatrice, marry me! Now--to-day--this instant!
+Don't you see that's the only thing to do?..."
+
+"No! James, stop! You don't know what you're saying!" She broke away
+from him, asserting her strength for the moment against even his
+impetuous onrush. "James, you're mad, stark mad! Haven't you lived long
+enough to know that you always regret words spoken like that? Try to act
+like a sensible human being, if you can't be one!"
+
+That was all very well, but why did she weaken it by adding "I won't
+listen to any more such talk," which admitted the possibility that
+there might be more such talk very soon? And if she was determined not
+to listen, why did she not simply walk away and into the house? James
+did not put these questions to himself in this form, but the substance
+of their meaning worked its way through his excitement and lent him
+courage for an attack from a new quarter. He dropped his impetuosity and
+became very quiet and keen.
+
+"You ask me to act like a sensible person; very well, I will. Let's look
+at things from a practical point of view. There's no love's young dream
+stuff about this thing, at all. We've lost that; it's been cut out of
+both our lives, forever. All there is left for us to do is to pick up
+the pieces and try to make something of ourselves, as we are. How can we
+possibly do that better than by marrying? Don't you see the value of a
+comradeship founded on the sympathy there must be between us?"
+
+He stopped for a moment and stood calmly watching her. No need now to
+use violence against those despairing voices in the background of his
+thoughts; they had been hushed by the strength of a determination no
+longer hot with the joy of self-discovery but taking on already
+something of the chill irrevocability of age. He watched Beatrice almost
+with amusement; he knew so well what futile struggles were going on
+within her. He had no more doubt of the outcome now than he had of his
+own determination.
+
+"It all sounds very well, James," she answered at last, "but it won't
+do. I couldn't do it. Marriage...."
+
+"Well?"
+
+"Marriage is an ideal, you know, as well as--as a contract. I can't--I
+won't have one without the other."
+
+"You are very particular. People as unpopular with chance as we are
+can't afford to be particular."
+
+"It would be false to--to--oh, I don't know how to put it! To the best
+in life."
+
+"Has the best in life been true to you?"
+
+"You are so bitter!"
+
+"Hasn't one the right to be, sometimes? God--fate--what you call
+ideals--have their responsibilities, even to us. What claim have all
+those things got on us now?"
+
+"I choose to follow them still!"
+
+"Then you are weak--simply weak!--You act as if I were proposing
+something actually wicked. It's not wicked at all; it's simply a
+practical benefit. Marriage without love might be wicked if there were
+any chance left of combining it with love; but now--! It's simply
+picking up pieces, making the best of things--straight commonsense...."
+
+She might still have had her way against him, as long as he continued to
+base his appeal on commonsense. But he changed his tactics again, this
+time as a matter of impulse. He had been slowly walking toward her in
+the course of his argument and now stood close by her, talking straight
+down into her eyes, till suddenly her mere physical nearness put an end
+to speech and thought alike. Something of her old physical attraction
+for him, which had been much stronger than in the case of Madge,
+returned to him with a force for the moment irresistible. There was
+something about her wide eyes, her parted lips, her bosom slightly
+heaving with the effort of argument.... He put his hand on her shoulder
+and slowly yet irresistibly drew her to him. He bent his head till their
+lips touched.
+
+So they stood for neither knew how long. Seconds flew by like years, or
+was it years like seconds? Sense of time was as completely lost as in
+sleep; indeed, their condition was very much like that of sleep. They
+had both become suddenly, acutely tired of life and had found at least
+temporary rest and refreshment. Neither of them was bothered by worries
+over the inevitable awakening; neither of them even thought of it, yet.
+
+As for Beatrice, she was for the moment bowled over by the discovery
+that some one cared for her enough to clasp her to his bosom and kiss
+her. What had she wanted all these years, except to be loved? A wave of
+mingled self-pity and self-contempt swept over her. She felt suddenly
+weak; her knees trembled; what did that matter, though, when James was
+there to hold her up? She needed strength above all things, and James
+was strong above all things. Tears smarted in her eyes and streamed
+unheeded down her cheeks.
+
+"I was so lonely," she whispered at last, raising her welling eyes to
+him. "I have been alone so long ... so long...."
+
+"James," she began again after a while, "life is so horrible, isn't
+it?"
+
+"It is. Ghastly."
+
+"Oh, it _is_ good to find some one else who thinks so!"
+
+"Yes, I know."
+
+"Anything is good--_anything_--that makes it easier to forget, isn't
+it?"
+
+"Yes. And we're going to try to forget together."
+
+Presently the moment came when they had to break apart, and they did it
+a little awkwardly, not caring to look at each other very closely. They
+sat down on the rail, side by side but not touching, and for some time
+remained silently busy regaining old levels and making new adjustments.
+There was considerable to adjust, certainly. At last James looked at his
+watch and announced that it was nearly lunch time.
+
+"When shall we get married?" he inquired, brusk and businesslike. It may
+have been only his tone that Beatrice involuntarily shuddered at. She
+told herself it was, and then reviled herself for shuddering. It was
+better to be prosaic and practical.
+
+"Oh, as soon as possible.... Now--any time you say."
+
+"Yes, but when? When shall we tell people?"
+
+"Oh, not just yet...." she objected, almost automatically.
+
+"Why not? Why not right now--before the other?"
+
+"You think...?"
+
+"Yes--every moment counts." He meant that the sooner the thing came out
+the better were their chances of concealment, and she understood him.
+Yes, that was the way to look at things, she reflected; might as well do
+it well, if it was to be done at all. She warmed up to his point of view
+so quickly that when his next question came she was able to go him one
+better.
+
+"And the other--the wedding? In about a fortnight, should you say?"
+
+"Oh, no, not for a month, at least. At the very least. It must be in
+England, you see."
+
+"In England?"
+
+"Yes, that's the way it would be...." If we were really in love with
+each other, of course she meant. He looked at her with new admiration.
+
+They made a few more arrangements. Their talk was pervaded now with a
+sense of efficiency and despatch. If they could not call reasons by
+their real names they could call steamships and railroads by theirs,
+and did. In a few minutes they had everything planned out.
+
+A maid appeared and announced lunch. They nodded her away and sat silent
+for a moment longer. It seemed as if something more ought to be said;
+the interview was too momentous to be allowed to end with an
+announcement of a meal. The sun beat down on them from the zenith with
+the full unsubtle light of noonday, prosaically enough, but the wind,
+blowing as hard as ever, whistled unceasingly around their exposed tower
+and provided a sort of counter-dose of eerieness and suggestiveness; it
+gave them the sense of being rather magnificently aloof from the rest of
+the world. The sun showed them plainly enough that they were on a
+summer-cottage verandah, but the wind somehow managed to suggest that
+they were really in a much more romantic place. Probably this dual
+atmosphere had its effect on them; it would need something of the sort,
+at any rate, to make James stand up and say aloud, in broad daylight:
+
+"Beatrice, don't you feel a sort of inspiration in fighting against
+something you can't see?"
+
+"Yes, James," she answered slowly; "I believe I do--now."
+
+"Something we can neither see nor understand, but know is wrong and can
+only protest against with the whole strength of our souls? Blindly,
+unflinchingly?"
+
+"Yes."
+
+"Inevitably?"
+
+"Yes."
+
+"Even if uselessly?"
+
+"Yes." Her eyes met his squarely enough; there was no sign of flinching
+in them.
+
+"I'm glad you understand. For that's going to be our life, you know."
+
+"Yes, James; that shall be our life." They got up and took each other's
+hands for a moment, as though to seal their compact, looking each other
+steadfastly in the eyes meanwhile. They did not kiss again.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VIII
+
+ONE THING AND ANOTHER
+
+
+Seldom have we longed for anything so much as for the pen of a Fielding
+or a Thackeray to come to our aid at the present moment and, by means of
+just such a delightful detached essay as occurs from time to time in
+"Tom Jones" or "The Virginians," impart a feeling of the intermission
+that at this point appears in our story. There is nothing like a
+digression on human frailty or the condition of footmen in the reign of
+King George the Second to lift the mind of a reader off any particular
+moment of a story and, by throwing a few useful hints into the
+discourse, prepare him ever so gently to be set down at last at the
+exact point where he is to take it up again. That is making an art of
+skipping, indeed. We admire it intensely, but realize how impossible it
+is in this case. Not only is such a thing frankly outside our power, but
+the prejudice of the times is set against it, so our only course is to
+confess our weakness and plod along as best we may.
+
+Why on earth every human being who ever knew him should not have known
+of his engagement as soon as it occurred--or long before, for that
+matter--Harry could never discover. That they did not, in most cases,
+was due partly to reasons which could have been best explained by James
+and partly to the fact that the person who is most careless of
+concealment in such matters is very often the one who is least
+suspected. And then so many men had been after Madge! So that when the
+great news burst upon the world at the dinner that Mrs. Gilson could not
+decently be prevented from giving, the surprise, in the words of
+ninety-nine per cent. of their well-meaning friends, was as great as the
+pleasure.
+
+That occurred about a week after James' sudden departure from Bar
+Harbor, a phenomenon amply accounted for by business. Trouble in the
+Balkans--there always was trouble in the Balkans--had resulted, it
+appeared, in Orders; and Orders demanded James' presence at his post.
+This from Beatrice, with impregnable casualness. Beatrice was really
+rather magnificent, these days. When she received her invitation to Mrs.
+Gilson's dinner she vowed that nothing should take her there, but the
+next moment she knew she would go; that nothing should keep her from
+going. Obviously the first guiding principle of destiny-fighting was to
+go on exactly as if nothing had happened.
+
+About a week after the dinner Harry received a note from his brother in
+New York saying that he was engaged to Beatrice; that the wedding was to
+take place in London in October and that he hoped Harry would go over
+with him and act as his best man. "I refrained from mentioning it
+before," added James, "because I did not want to take the wind out of
+your sails. We are also enabled by waiting to reap the benefit of your
+experience; I refer to the Gilsons. We are taking no risks; it will
+appear in the papers on Wednesday the sixteenth, with Beatrice in Bar
+Harbor and me in New York. Beatrice sails the following Saturday."
+
+That was all very well, if a little hard. James and Beatrice were both
+undemonstrative, businesslike souls; the arrangement was quite
+characteristic.
+
+Beatrice in due time sailed for home, and James followed her some three
+weeks afterward. Harry went with him, returning immediately after the
+wedding by the fastest ship he could get; he was out of the country just
+eighteen days, all told. The voyage over was an uneventful one; the ship
+was nearly empty and Harry worked hard at his new play. He had rather
+looked forward to enjoying this last week of unmarried companionship
+with his brother, but somehow they did not seem to have more than usual
+to say to each other when they were together. Rather less, in fact.
+
+"You're looking low, seems to me," said Harry after they had paced the
+wet deck in silence for nearly half of a certain evening.
+
+"I've been rather low, lately."
+
+"What--too much work?"
+
+"Oh, I don't know. It's nothing."
+
+"Not seasick, are you?"
+
+"I hope not." Both gave a slight snort expressive of amusement. This was
+occasioned by the fact that Aunt Cecilia had offered James the use of
+her yacht--or rather the largest and most sumptuous of her yachts--for
+his wedding trip, and he and Beatrice were going to cruise for two
+months in the Mediterranean. As for the time--well, he was simply taking
+it, defying McClellan's to fire him if they dared.
+
+"It's funny, isn't it, our getting engaged at the same time," Harry went
+on after a moment. It was the first reference he had made to the
+coincidence.
+
+"Oh, yes," said James, "it's one of the funniest things I can remember."
+
+"And the funniest part of it is that neither of us seems to have
+suspected about the other. At least I didn't."
+
+"Oh, neither did I; not a thing."
+
+"And practically nobody else did either, apparently."
+
+"No. It might have been just the other way round, for all anybody
+knew--you and Beatrice, and Madge and me."
+
+Harry could not but take away from that conversation and from the whole
+voyage a vague feeling of disappointment. Since he heard of James'
+engagement he had entertained an elusive conviction that love coming
+into their lives at so nearly the same time should somehow make a
+difference for the better between them. When he tried to put this idea
+into words, however, he found his mind mechanically running to such
+phrases as "deeper sympathy" and "fuller understanding," all of which he
+dismissed as sentimental cant. It was easy to reassure himself on all
+grounds of reason and commonsense; James and he were in no need of
+fuller understandings. And yet, especially after the above conversation,
+he could not but be struck by a certain inapproachability in his
+brother which for some reason he could not construe as natural
+undemonstrativeness.
+
+The wedding took place in an atmosphere of unconstrained formality.
+Harry was not able to get a boat until two days after it, and he could
+not resist the temptation of writing Madge all about it that very night,
+though he knew the letter could hardly reach her before he did:--
+
+"It was quite a small wedding, chiefly because, as far as I can make
+out, there are only some thirty-odd dukes in the kingdom. It occurred at
+the odd hour of 2:30, but that didn't seem to prevent any one from
+enjoying the food, and more especially the drink, that was handed
+around afterward at Lady Archie's. Lord Moville, Beatrice's uncle, was
+there and seemed greatly taken with James. After he had got outside
+about a quart of champagne he amused himself by feeling James' biceps
+and thumping him on the chest and saying that with a fortnight's
+training he'd back him for anything he wanted against the Somerset
+Cockerel, or some one of the sort, most of which left James rather cold,
+though he bore it smiling. His youngest daughter (Lord M.'s), a child of
+about eighteen, apparently the only living person who has any control
+over him, was quite frank about it. 'Fido's drunk again,' she announced
+pleasantly to all who might hear. 'Oh, so's Ned,' said Jane Twombly,
+Beatrice's sister; 'there's no use trying to help it at weddings, I
+find!' Just then Lady Archie came running up in despair. 'Oh, Sibyl,'
+she said, 'do try to do something with your father. He's been
+threatening to take off his coat because he says the room's too hot, and
+now he wants old Lady Mulford to kiss him!' And off darts Sibyl into the
+dining-room where her father and Ned Twombly stand arm in arm waving
+glasses of champagne and shouting 'John Peel' at the top of their lungs.
+'Fido!' she shouted, running straight up to him, 'put down that glass
+directly and come home! Instantly! Do you hear? You're disgracing us!
+The next time I take you out to a wedding you'll know it!' 'Oh, Sib,'
+pleaded the noble Marquis, 'don't be too hard on us! Only drinkin'
+bride's health--must drink bride's health--not good manners not to. Sib
+shall drink with us; here's a glass, Sib--for his view, view HALLO!
+would awaken the dead--' 'Fido, do you know what you're doing? You're
+ruining your season's hunting! Gout-stool and Seidlitz powders all the
+winter for you, if you don't go easy!' But still Fido refused to obey
+till at last the dauntless child went up and whispered something in his
+ear, after which he calmed down and presently followed her out of the
+house, gently as a lamb. 'She threatened to tell her mother about the
+woman in Wimbledon,' explained Jane to me. 'Of course every one knows
+all there is to know about her, including Aunt Susan, but he hasn't
+found that out yet, and it gives Sib rather a strangle-hold on him. Good
+idea, isn't it? Marjorie--Ned's sister, you know--has promised to work
+the same trick for me with Ned, when the time comes.' I hope I am not
+more straight-laced than my neighbors, but do you know, the whole
+atmosphere struck me as just a teeny-weeny bit decadent...."
+
+After he reached home Harry saw that it would be quite useless, what
+with Madge and other diverting influences, to try to finish his play in
+New Haven, so he repaired to the solitudes of the Berkshires for the
+remainder of the autumn. He occupied two rooms in an almost empty inn in
+Stockbridge, working and living for two months on a strict régime. It
+was his habit to work from nine till half-past one. He spent most of the
+afternoon in exercise and the evening in more writing; not the calm,
+well-balanced writing of the morning, but in feverish and untrammeled
+scribbling. Each morning he had to write over all that he had done the
+night before, but he found it well worth while, discovering that reason
+and inspiration kept separate office hours.
+
+Meanwhile Madge, though freed from the trammels of Miss Snellgrove, was
+very busy at home with her trousseau and other matters. She was
+supremely happy these days; happy even in Harry's absence, because she
+could feel that he was doing better work than he could with her near,
+and that provided just the element of self-sacrifice that every
+woman--every woman that is worth anything--yearns to infuse into her
+love. She had ample opportunity of trying her hand at writing love
+letters, but, to tell the truth, she was never very good at it. Neither
+was Harry, for that matter; possibly because he was now putting every
+ounce of creative power in him into something the result of which
+justified the effort much better.... But suppose we allow some of the
+letters to speak for themselves.
+
+ Dear Inamorato: (wrote Madge one day in November) "I'm not at
+ all sure that that word exists; it looks so odd in the
+ masculine and just shows how the male sex more or less spoils
+ everything it touches. However! I've been hemming towels all
+ day and am ready to drop, but after I finish with them there
+ will be only the pillow cases to attend to before I am done. By
+ the bye, what do you suppose arrived to-day? _Four_ (heavily
+ underscored) most _exquisite_ (same business) linen sheets,
+ beautifully hemstitched and marked and from who ("Good
+ Heavens, and the woman taught school!" exclaimed Harry) do you
+ think? Miss Snellgrove! Wasn't it sweet of her? That makes ten
+ in all. Everybody has been lovely and we shall do very well for
+ linen, but clothes are much more difficult. In them, you see, I
+ have to please not only myself but Mama and Aunt Tizzy as well.
+ I went shopping with both of them yesterday, and they were
+ possessed to make me order an evening gown of black satin with
+ yellow trimmings which was something like a gown Aunt Tizzy had
+ fascinated people in during the early eighties. It wasn't such
+ a bad idea, but unfortunately it would have made me resemble a
+ rather undersized wasp. We compromised at last on a blue silk
+ that's going to have a Watteau pleat and will fall in nice
+ little straight folds and make me look about seven feet high.
+ Aunt Tizzy is too perfectly dear and keeps telling me not to
+ scrimp, but her idea of not scrimping is to spend simply
+ _millions_ and always go ahead and get the very best in the
+ _extravagantest_ way, and my conscience rebels. I hope to pick
+ up some things at the January sales in New York; if you are
+ there seeing about your play at that time we can be together,
+ can't we? I still have to get a suit and an afternoon gown and
+ various other things the nature of which I do not care to
+ specify!
+
+ I run over and look in on Aunt Selina every time I get a
+ chance. She is _so_ dear and uncomplaining about being left
+ alone and keeps saying that having me in the house will be as
+ good as having Beatrice, which is absurd, though sweet.
+ Heavens, how I tremble when I think of trying to fill her
+ shoes!
+
+ I must stop now, dearest, so good-night. Ever your own,
+
+ MADGE.
+
+ O O O O O O
+
+ Those O's stand for osculations. Do you know how hard it is to
+ kiss in a small space? Like tying a bow-knot with too short a
+ piece of ribbon."
+
+ For Heaven's sake, my good woman (wrote Harry in reply),
+ don't write me another letter like that! How do you think I
+ feel when, fairly thirsting for fire and inspiration and that
+ sort of thing, I tear open an envelope from you and find it
+ contains an unusually chatty Woman's Column? How do you
+ suppose poor old D. Alghieri would have written his Paradiso if
+ Beatrice had held forth on the subject of linen sheets, and do
+ you or do you not suppose it would have improved Petrarch's
+ sonnets if Laura had treated him to a disquisition on the ins
+ and outs of the prices of evening gowns?
+
+ Remember your responsibility! If you continue to deny me
+ inspiration my play will fail and you will live in disgrace and
+ misery in the basement of a Harlem tenement in an eternal smell
+ of cabbages and a well-justified fear of cockroaches, with one
+ cracked looking-glass to see your face in and dinner served up
+ in a pudding basin!
+
+ The c. of my b. (that was his somewhat flippant abbreviation
+ of child of my brain) "is coming along well enough,
+ considering. The woman is shaping quite well. What was the name
+ you suggested for her the last time I saw you? If it was
+ Hermione, I'm afraid it won't do, because every one in the
+ theater, from Bachmann down to the call-boy, will call it
+ Hermy-one, and I shall have to correct them all, which will be
+ a bad start. I call her Mamie for the present, because I know I
+ can't keep it. What would be the worst possible name, do you
+ think? Hannah? Florrie? Mae? Keren-happuch and Glwadwys also
+ have their points.
+
+ Please forgive me for being (a) short-tempered; (b) tedious. I
+ was going to tear up what I have written, only I decided it
+ would not be quite fair, as you have a right to know just how
+ dreadful I can be, in case you want to change your mind about
+ February.--What a discreetly euphemistic phrase!--It has grown
+ fearfully cold here, and we had the first skating of the winter
+ to-day. I got hold of some skates and went out and, fired by
+ the example of two or three people here who skate rather well,
+ I swore I would do a 3-turn or die in the attempt. The latter
+ alternative occurred. I am writing this on the mantelpiece.
+
+ Farewell. Write early and write often, and write Altman
+ catalogues if you must, but not if you are interested in the
+ uplift of drahmah. Give my best to Grandmama, and consider
+ yourself embraced.
+
+ IO EL REY.
+
+Madge's reply to this missive was telegraphic in form and brief in
+substance. It read simply "Sorry. Laura." "I would have signed it
+Beatrice," she explained in her next letter, "only I was afraid you
+might think it was from your sister-in-law Beatrice, and there's nothing
+for _her_ to be sorry about."
+
+Another letter of Harry's, written a few weeks later, shows him in a
+different mood:
+
+ Querida de mis ojos--You don't know Spanish but you ought to
+ gather what that means without great effort--I have weighty
+ news for you. I dashed down to New York on the spur of the
+ moment day before yesterday and showed the first draught of my
+ completed MS to Leo. My dear, he said IT WOULD DO! You don't
+ know what that means, of course; no one could. You all think I
+ have simply to write and say 'Here, play this,' and it is
+ played. You know nothing of how it hurts to put ideas on paper,
+ nothing of the dead weight of responsibility, the loneliness,
+ the self-distrust, the hate of one's own work that the creative
+ brain has to struggle against. Consequently, my dearest, you
+ will just have to take it on trust from me that an interview
+ such as I had yesterday with Bachmann is nothing less than a
+ rebirth. He even advised me not to try to change or improve it
+ much, saying that what changes were needed could best be put in
+ at rehearsals, and I think he's dead right. So I shall do no
+ more than put the third act in shape before I hand the thing
+ over to him and dash home for the holidays. Atmosphere of Yule
+ logs, holly berry and mistletoe!
+
+ I really am absurdly happy. You see, it isn't merely success,
+ or a premonition of success (for the first night is still to
+ come); it's in a way a justification of my whole life. If this
+ thing is as good as I think it is, it will amount to a sort of
+ written permit from headquarters to love you, to go on thinking
+ as I do think about certain things and to regard myself--well,
+ it's hard to put into words, but as a dynamic force, rather
+ than as a lucky fool that stumbled across one rather good
+ thing. Not that I shouldn't do all three anyway, to be
+ sure!--And every kind friend will say he knew I would 'make
+ good'; that there never was any doubt my 'coming into my own,'
+ and all the rest. Oh, Lord, if people only knew! But thank
+ Heaven they don't!
+
+ I am becoming obscure and rhapsodic. I seem to 'see' things
+ to-night, like Tilburina in the play. I see strange and
+ distorted conceptions of myself, for one thing; endless and
+ bewildering publicity. Oh, what a comfort it is to think that
+ no matter what I may be to other people, to you I shall always
+ be simply the same stupid, bungling, untidy
+
+ HARRY!
+
+ I love you with an intensity that beggars the power of human
+ expression.
+
+ I did a bracket this afternoon.
+
+Madge never received a letter from him that pleased her more. She was
+fully alive to its chaotic immaturity, and she smiled at the way he
+unconsciously appeared to shove his love for her into second place. But
+there was that about it that convinced her of his greatness as nothing
+had yet done. It seemed to her that when he spoke of the loneliness of
+genius and in his prophetic touch at the end about the different ways in
+which people would regard him he spoke with the true voice of a seer. It
+all made her feel very humble and solemn. To think that Harry, her
+Harry, that tall thin thing with the pink cheeks and dark brown hair and
+the restless black eyes, should be one of the great men of his day,
+perhaps one of the great ones of all time! Keats--Harry was already
+older than Keats when he died, but she thought he had much the same
+temperament; Congreve--she knew how he loved Congreve; Marlowe--she had
+often compared his golden idealism to that of Marlowe; Shakespeare...?
+No, no--of course not! She knew perfectly well he was no Shakespeare....
+Still, why not, in time?... And anyway, Marlowe, Congreve,
+Keats--Wimbourne!
+
+So she dreamed on, till the future, which hitherto she had seen as
+merely smiling toward her, seemed to rise and with solemn face beckon
+her to a new height, a place hard to reach and difficult to hold, but
+one whose very base seemed more exalted than anything she had yet
+known....
+
+Now Madge was, on the whole, a very fairly modern type of young woman.
+Her outlook on the world was based on Darwin, and she held firmly to
+such eugenic principles as seemed to flow directly from the doctrine of
+evolution. She had long since declared war to the death on disease,
+filth and vice, to which she added a lesser foe generally known as
+"suppression of facts," and she had done a certain amount of real work
+in helping those less fortunate than herself to the acquisition of
+health, cleanliness, virtue and "knowledge." She thought that women
+would get the vote some day, though they weren't ready for it yet, and
+hadn't joined the Antis because there was no use in being a drag on the
+wheels of progress, even if you didn't feel like helping. She believed
+in the "social regeneration" of woman. It was quite clear to her that in
+the early years of the twentieth century women were beginning--and only
+just beginning--to take their place beside men in the active work of
+saving the race; "why, you had only to look at Jane Addams and Florence
+Nightingale to see--" et cetera.
+
+And yet, and yet....
+
+It was at least as fine a thing to become Mrs. Harold Wimbourne and
+devote a lifetime to ministering to one of the great creative geniuses
+of the time as to be a heavy gun on her own account, was what she meant,
+of course. But that wasn't quite enough. Suppose, for the sake of
+argument, that Harry were not one of the great creative geniuses of the
+age; suppose there were no question of Congreve, Keats, Wimbourne and so
+forth; suppose being his wife meant being plain Mrs. Harold Wimbourne
+and nothing more--what then?
+
+"Well, I suppose I'd still rather be plain Mrs. H. W., if you will have
+it!" she retorted petulantly to her relentless self. But she soon became
+glad she had brought herself to the point of admitting it, for, the
+issue definitely settled, her mind became unaccountably peaceful....
+
+ * * * * *
+
+New Year's was scarcely over when rehearsals began, and Harry was in for
+another period of lounging in shrouded orchestra chairs and watching
+other people air their ideas, or lack of ideas, on the child of his
+brain. His lounging was now, however, quite freely punctuated by
+interruptions and not infrequently by scramblings over the footlights to
+illustrate a fine point. This rather bored the actors; Harry had become
+almost uncomfortably acute in matter of stage technique. But they had to
+admit that his suggestions were never foolish or unnecessary.
+
+In due time came the first night. It is no part of our purpose to
+describe "Pastures New" or its success in this place. If--which is
+improbable--you have to refresh your mind on it, you have only to ask
+one of your journalistic friends--don't pretend that you haven't at
+least one friend on a newspaper--to show you the files of his sheet.
+There you will see it all, in what scholars call primary sources:--"New
+Yorkers Roar With Delight at Feminist Satire," and all the rest of it,
+like as not on the front page. Harry hated its being called a satire;
+that was such a cheap and easy way of getting out of it. For when all
+was over, when people had cried with laughing at its whimsical humor,
+poked each other with delight at its satirical touches--oh yes, there
+were plenty of them--quoted its really brilliant dialogue, sat
+enthralled by its swift and compelling action--for Harry had made good
+his promise that this play should have "punch"--when they had done all
+these things to their heart's content, still not a person saw the play
+who did not come away from it more fully convinced than ever he had been
+of--well, of what you had only to look at Jane Addams and Florence
+Nightingale to see. For there were really great moments in the play;
+moments when no one even thought of laughing, though one was almost
+always made to laugh the moment after. That was Harry's way, that was
+his power, to "hit 'em hard and then make 'em laugh just as they begin
+to feel smarty in the eyes," as Burchard the stage manager not unaptly
+put it.
+
+"Pastures New" ran for six months in New York alone, and no one laughed
+harder or less rancorously at it than the "feminists" themselves--or all
+of them that were worth anything.
+
+Of course both Harry and Madge were tired to death by the time the
+wedding became imminent, and the final preparations were made in what
+might be called broad impressionistic strokes.
+
+Madge had at first intended to have a small informal reception in her
+own house, but Aunt Tizzy had been so disappointed that she had at last
+consented to let it be at her aunt's and attain the dimensions of a
+perfect tomasha--the phrase is her own--if it wanted to. Why not? Aunt
+Tizzy's house could hold it.
+
+"Besides, my dear," argued Harry, "it's only once in a lifetime, after
+all. If you marry again as a widow you'll only have a silly little
+wedding, without a veil and no bridesmaids, and if we're divorced you
+won't have any wedding at all, worth mentioning. Much better do it up
+brown when you have the chance."
+
+"What about music?" asked Harry as the two stood in final consultation
+with the organist on the night of the rehearsal. "I've always wondered
+why people had such perfectly rotten music at weddings, but I begin to
+see now. Still, if we _could_ have something other than Lohengrin and
+Mendelssohn I think I could face marriage with a little better heart.
+What about it, dear?"
+
+Madge groaned. "Oh, anything! The Star-Spangled Banner, if you want!"
+
+"I think I can arrange it," said the organist smiling, and he played the
+march from "Tannhäuser" and the march from "Athalie," which he always
+played when people asked for something unusual, and the effect was
+considered very pleasing and original. Altogether it was the prettiest
+wedding any one had seen in years, according to the testimony of those
+who attended the reception--which did become a perfect tomasha. But as
+tomasha-goers are notoriously biased their testimony probably wasn't
+legal and no respectable judge would have accepted it as evidence. The
+only legal thing about the whole affair was the ceremony, which was
+fully as much so as if it had been before a magistrate, which Madge
+swore it should be if she ever had to go through it again and regretted
+bitterly it hadn't been this time.... Well, perhaps, when she looked
+about her and saw how unaffectedly happy her mother and Aunt Tizzy and
+the bridesmaids and all the other good people were, she didn't regret it
+quite so much.
+
+"Though it is rather absurd, getting married to please other people,
+isn't it?" she remarked as they drove off at last, leaving the
+tomasha-goers to carouse as long as Aunt Tizzy could make them.
+
+"I think I'd do almost anything to please Aunt Tizzy," said Harry. "Now
+that it's all over, that is. Get married again, even.... After all," he
+added suddenly, shamelessly going back on all his professions of the
+last few days; "after all, you know, it _was_ rather a good wedding!"
+
+Which shows that he was just as biased as any one, at bottom!
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IX
+
+LABYRINTHS
+
+
+How many people should you say could be packed into a three-hundred foot
+barkantine-rigged steam yacht, capable of fourteen knots under steam
+alone, for a night in late June, presumably hot, anchored in a noisy
+estuary off Long Island Sound without making them all wish they had
+never been born? We ourselves should hate to have to answer the question
+offhand. So did Aunt Cecilia, whom it concerned more closely than any
+one else, and she did not have to answer it offhand at all, having all
+the available statistics within reach. In fact, she had spent the best
+part of one hot New York June morning over it already, sitting in her
+darkened front drawing-room because it was the coolest room in the
+house, amid ghost-like furniture whose drab slip-covers concealed
+nothing less than real Louis Quinze. On her lap--or what Uncle James
+said if she didn't look out wouldn't be her lap very long--she held a
+magazine and over the magazine an expensive piece of letter-paper, on
+one leaf of which was a list of names and on the other a plan drawn in
+wobbly and unarchitectural lines--obviously a memory sketch of the
+sleeping accommodations of the _Halcyone_. Near what even in the sketch
+was undoubtedly the largest and most comfortable of the _Halcyone's_
+cabins she had written in firm unmistakable letters the word "Me," and
+opposite two other rooms she had inscribed in only slightly less bold
+characters the initials "H. and M." and "J. and B." So far so good; why
+not go on thus as long as the list or the cabins held and consider the
+problem solved? It wasn't as simple as that, it seemed. Some of the
+people hadn't been asked, or might be asked only if there was room
+enough, and the boys might bring in people at the last moment; it was
+very confusing. And not even the extent of the sleeping accommodations
+was as constant as might have been desired. It was ridiculous, of
+course, but even after all these years she could not be quite sure
+whether there were two little single rooms down by the galley skylight
+or only one. She was practically sure there were two, but suppose she
+were mistaken? And then, if it came to that, the boys and almost as many
+friends as they cared to bring might sleep on the smoking-room sofas....
+
+"No ... no, I'm not sure how wise that would be," she mused, certain
+things she had seen and been told of boat-race celebrations straying
+into her mind. "The smoking-room cushions have only just been
+covered...."
+
+A ring at the doorbell. She glanced up at a pierglass (also Louis
+Quinze) opposite her and strained her eyes at its mosquito-netting
+covered surface. Her hair was far from what she could have wished; she
+hoped it would be no one she would have to see. Oh, Beatrice.
+
+"Howdy do, dear," said Aunt Cecilia, relieved. "I was just thinking of
+you. I'm trying to plan out about the boat-race; it's less than a week
+off now."
+
+Beatrice sank languidly down on the other end of Aunt Cecilia's sofa.
+She was much hotter and more fatigued than Aunt Cecilia, but no one
+would have guessed it to look at her. Her clothes lay coolly and
+caressingly on her; not a hair seemed out of place.
+
+"You see," went on the other, "it's rather difficult to arrange, on
+account of there being so many unmarried people--just the Lyles and the
+MacGraths and George Grainger for us older ones and the rest all
+Muffins' and Jack's friends. I think we shall work out all right,
+though, with two rooms at the Griswold and the smoking-room to overflow
+into. I'm tired of bothering about it. Tell me about yourself."
+
+"Nothing much," answered Beatrice. "I much prefer hearing about you. By
+the way--about the races. I just dropped in to tell you about Tommy
+Clairloch. He's coming. You did tell me to ask him, didn't you?"
+
+"Yes ... oh, yes, of course. I had forgotten about Lord Clairloch for
+the moment. I thought he was going west the middle of the month."
+
+"He was, but he didn't. Tommy's rather a fool." Tommy, it may be
+mentioned, was in the process of improving himself by making a trip
+around the world, going westward. He had left home in April and so far
+Upper Montclair was his farthest point west. As Beatrice said, Tommy was
+rather a fool.
+
+"Oh, not a bit ... only.... By the bye, dear, do you happen to remember
+whether there are one or two rooms down that little hall by the galley?"
+
+"Two, as I remember it. But don't bother about Tommy. Really, Aunt
+Cecilia, don't. He needn't come at all--I'll tell him he can't."
+
+"Of course he must come.... That's it--I'll put him in the other little
+single room and tell the boys that they and any one else they ask from
+now on must go to the Griswold or sleep in the smoking-room. I'm glad to
+have it settled."
+
+Aunt Cecilia beamed as one does when a difficult problem is solved. It
+occurred to her that Beatrice might beam back at her just a tiny bit, if
+only in mock sympathy. Especially as it was her guest.... But Beatrice
+remained just as casual as before, sitting easily but immovably in her
+corner of the sofa with her parasol lying lightly in her slim gloved
+hands. Aunt Cecilia noticed those hands rather especially; it seemed
+scarcely human to keep one's gloves on in the house on a day like this!
+Characteristically, she gave her thought outlet in words.
+
+"Do take off your gloves and things, dear, and make yourself
+comfortable! Such a day! New York in June is frightful--eighty-eight
+yesterday, and Heaven knows what it will be to-day. You'll stay to
+lunch, won't you?"
+
+"Thanks, perhaps I will," replied Beatrice listlessly.
+
+"I never have stayed in town so late in June," ran on Aunt Cecilia, "but
+I thought I wouldn't open the Tarrytown house this spring--it's only for
+six weeks and it is so much extra trouble.... I shall take the yacht and
+the boys directly on up to Bar Harbor afterward; we should love to have
+you come with us, if you feel like leaving James--you're looking so
+fagged. You must both come and pay us a long visit later on, though I
+suppose with Harry and Madge in the Berkshires you'll be running up
+there quite often for week-ends...."
+
+Beatrice stirred a little. "Thanks, Aunt Cecilia, but I don't mind the
+heat especially. If James can bear it, I can, I suppose. I expect to
+stay here most of the summer."
+
+She was perfectly courteous, and yet it suddenly occurred to Aunt
+Cecilia that perhaps she wouldn't be quite so free in showering
+invitations on Beatrice and James for a while. There was that about her,
+as she sat there.... Languid, that was the word; there had been a
+certain languor, not due to hot weather, in Beatrice's reception of most
+of her favors, now that she came to think of it. There had been that
+wedding trip in the _Halcyone_, to begin with. Both she and James had
+shown a due amount of gratitude, but neither, when you came right down
+to it, had given any particular evidence of having enjoyed it.
+Everything was as it should be, no doubt, but--one didn't lend yachts
+without expecting to have them enjoyed!
+
+"That trip cost me over five thousand dollars," she had remarked to her
+husband shortly after the return of the bridal pair. "Of course I don't
+grudge it, but five thousand dollars is a good deal of money, and I'd
+rather have subscribed it to the Organized Charities than feel I was
+spending it to give those two something they didn't want!"
+
+Aunt Cecilia gazed anxiously at Beatrice for a moment, memories of this
+sort floating vaguely through her mind. She scented trouble, somewhere.
+The next minute she thought she had diagnosed it.
+
+"You're bored, dear, that's the long and the short of it, and I think I
+know what's the matter. I'm not sure that I didn't feel a little that
+way myself, at the very first. But I soon got over it. My dear, there's
+nothing in the world like a baby to drive away boredom...."
+
+Beatrice tapped with the end of her parasol on what in winter would have
+been a pink and gray texture from Aubusson's storied looms but was now
+simply a parquet flooring. But she did not blush, not in the slightest
+degree.
+
+"Yes," she answered, a trifle wearily, "I daresay you're right.
+Sometimes I think I would like to have a baby. It doesn't seem to come,
+though.... After all, it's rather early to bother, isn't it?"
+
+"Oh, I don't want you to _bother_--! Only--" She was just a little taken
+aback. This barren agreement, this lack of natural shyness, of blushes!
+It was unprecedented in her experience.
+
+"Only what, Aunt Cecilia?"
+
+"Only--it's a sure cure for being bored. But Beatrice, there must be
+others, while you're waiting. What about your studies, your work? You
+haven't done much of that since you came home from abroad, have you?
+It's too late to begin anything this summer, of course, but next autumn
+I should think you'd like to take it up again, especially as you don't
+care so much for society, and I'm sure I don't blame you for that...."
+She beamed momentarily on her niece, who this time smiled back ever so
+slightly in return. "After all, it's nice to be of some use in the
+world, isn't it?"
+
+Why not have left it there, on that secure impregnable pinnacle? Why
+weaken her position by giving voice to that silly unprovoked fancy that
+had hung about the back of her mind since the beginning of the
+interview, or very near it? We can't explain, unless the sudden
+suspicion that Beatrice had smiled less with than at her, and the sight
+of her sitting there so beautiful and aloof, so well-bredly acquiescent
+and so emotionally intangible, exercised an ignoble influence over her.
+There is a sort of silent acquiescence that is very irritating.... And
+after all, was the impulse so ignoble? A word of warning of the most
+affectionate kind, prompted by the keenest sympathy--surely it was
+wholly Beatrice's fault if anything went wrong!
+
+"More than that, my dear, there's a certain danger in being too idle--a
+danger I'm sure you're as free from as any one could be, but you know
+what the psalm says!" (Or was it original with Isaac Watts? However!)
+"Of course marriage isn't so easy, especially in the first year, and
+especially if there are no children--what with the husband away at work
+all day and tired to death and like as not cross as a bear when he comes
+home in the evening--I know!--a young wife can't be blamed for feeling a
+little out of sorts sometimes. And then along comes another man...."
+
+Here Beatrice, to use a sporting expression, froze. From that moment it
+ceased to be question of two women talking together and became a matter
+of Aunt Cecilia apostrophizing a statue; a modern conception, say, of
+Artemis. Marble itself could not be more unresponsive than Beatrice when
+people tried to "get at her." It was not rudeness, it was not coldness,
+it was not even primarily self-consciousness; it was the natural
+inability to speak of matters deeply concerning oneself which people of
+Aunt Cecilia's temperament can never fully understand.
+
+"Of course other men have things to offer that husbands have not,
+especially if they are free in the daytime and are nice and good-natured
+and sympathetic, and often a young wife may be deceived into valuing
+these things more than the love of her husband. They are all at their
+best on the surface, while her husband's best is all below it. And that,
+I think, is the way most married unhappinesses begin; not in
+unfaithfulness or in jealousy or in loss of love, but merely in
+idleness. I've seen it happen so often, dear, that you must be able to
+understand why I never like to see a young wife with too little to
+do...."
+
+For Aunt Cecilia was personal, you see, to a degree. Did she imagine she
+was making things any easier, Beatrice asked herself with a little burst
+of humorous contempt, by her generalities and her third persons and her
+"young wives"? If she had been perfectly frank, if she had come out and
+said, "Beatrice, if you don't look out you'll be falling in love with
+Tommy Clairloch," there was a possibility that Beatrice could have
+answered her, even confided in her; at least put things on a
+conversational footing. But as for talking about her own case in this
+degrading disguise, dramatizing herself as a "young wife"--!
+
+She remained silent long enough to make it obvious that her silence was
+her real reply. Then she said "Yes, indeed, perfectly," and Aunt Cecilia
+rather tardily became aware of her niece's metamorphosis into the modern
+Artemis. She made a flurried attempt to give her own remarks,
+retrospectively, something of the Artemis quality; to place a pedestal,
+as it were, on which to take her own stand as a modern conception of
+Pallas Athene.
+
+"I hope, my dear, you don't think I mean anything...."
+
+"Not at all," said Beatrice kindly but firmly. "And now if you don't
+mind, Aunt Cecilia, I think I'll go up and get ready for luncheon."
+
+But Aunt Cecilia was afraid she had gone too far.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+A week later came the gathering of the clans at New London for the
+Yale-Harvard boat-race. Aunt Cecilia had not been to a race in years.
+Races, you see, were not in a class with graduations; they were
+optional, works of supererogation. But this year, in addition to one of
+the largest yachts extant and money that fairly groaned to be put into
+circulation, she had two boys in college, and altogether it seemed worth
+while "making an effort." And the effort once made there was a certain
+pleasure in doing the thing really well, in taking one's place as one of
+the great Yale families of the country. So on the afternoon before the
+race the _Halcyone_ was anchored in a conspicuous place in the harbor,
+where she loomed large and majestic among the smaller craft, and a
+tremendous blue flag with a white Y on it was hoisted between two of the
+masts. People from the shore looked for her name with field glasses and
+pointed her out to each other as "the Wimbourne yacht" with a note of
+awe in their voices.
+
+"It's like being on the _Victory_ at Trafalgar, as far as
+conspicuousness goes," said Harry on his arrival. "Or rather," he added
+magnificently, "like being on Cleopatra's galley at Actium."
+
+"Absit omen," remarked Uncle James, and the others laughed, but his wife
+paid no attention to him. She was not above a little thrill of pride and
+pleasure herself.
+
+Muffins and Jack and their friends were much in evidence; the party was
+primarily for the "young people." They kept mostly to themselves,
+dancing and singing and making personal remarks together, always
+detaching themselves with a polite attentive quirk of the head when an
+older person addressed them. Nice children, all of them. Muffins and
+Jack were of the right sort, emphatically, and their friends were
+obviously--not too obviously, but just obviously enough--chosen with
+nice discriminating taste. Jack especially gave one the impression of
+having a fine appreciation of people and things; that of Muffins was
+based on rather broad athletic lines. Muffins played football. Ruth, the
+brains of the family, was not present; we forget whether she was running
+a summer camp for cash girls or exploring the headwaters of the Yukon;
+it was something modern and expensive. Ruth was not extensively missed
+by her brothers.
+
+They all dined hilariously together on the yacht and repaired to the
+Griswold afterward to dance and revel through the evening. All, that is,
+except Beatrice and James; they did not arrive till well on in the
+evening, James having been unable to leave town till his day's work was
+over. The launch with Uncle James in it went to the station to meet them
+and brought them directly back to the yacht to get settled and tidied
+up; they could go on over to the Griswold for a bit, if they weren't too
+tired.
+
+"How about it?" inquired James as he stood peering at his watch in the
+dim light on deck.
+
+"Oh, just as you like," said Beatrice.
+
+"Well, I don't care. Say something."
+
+Beatrice was rather tired.... Well, perhaps it was better that way; they
+would have another chance to see all they wanted to-morrow night. This
+from Uncle James, who thought he would drop over there and relieve Aunt
+Cecilia, who had been chaperoning since dinner.
+
+His head disappeared over the ship's side. James walked silently off to
+unpack. Beatrice sank into a wicker armchair and dropped her head on her
+hands....
+
+It seemed as if scarcely a moment had passed when she became aware of
+the launch again coming up alongside and voices floating up from
+it--Aunt Cecilia and Lord Clairloch. Salutations ensued, avuncular and
+friendly. Aunt Cecilia was tired, but very cheerful. She buzzed off
+presently to see about something and Lord Clairloch dropped down by
+Beatrice.
+
+Tommy was very cheerful also, apparently much impressed by what he had
+seen at the Griswold. "I say, a jolly bean-feast, that! Never saw such
+dancin' or drinkin' in my life, and I've lived a bit! They keep 'em
+apart, too--that's the best of it; no trouble about takin' a gell,
+provided she don't go to the bar, which ain't likely.... Jove, we've got
+nothing like it in England! Rippin' looking lot of gells, rippin'
+fellahs, rippin' good songs, too. All seem to enjoy 'emselves so
+much!--I say, these Yankees can teach us a thing or two about havin' a
+good time--wot?"
+
+Beatrice listened with a growing sense of amusement. Tommy always
+refreshed her when he was in a mood like this; he kept his youth so
+wonderfully, in spite of all his super-sophistication; he was such a boy
+still. Tommy never seemed to mind being hot or tired; Tommy was always
+ready for anything; Tommy was not the sort that came home at six o'clock
+and sank into the evening paper without a word--She stopped that line of
+thought and asked a question.
+
+"Why did you leave it all, Tommy, if it amused you so?"
+
+"Oh, had enough of it--been there since dinner. Beside, I heard you'd
+come. Thought I'd buzz over and see how you were gettin' on. Have a
+horrid journey?"
+
+Beatrice nodded.
+
+"Hot?"
+
+"No, not especially." They were silent a moment. Tommy opened his mouth
+to ask a question and shut it again. And then, walking like a ghost
+across their silence, appeared the figure of James, stalking aimlessly
+down the deck. He nodded briefly to Tommy and walked off again.
+
+The effect, in view of the turn of their conversation, of Tommy's
+unasked question, was almost that of a spectral apparition. The
+half-light of the deck, James' silence and the noiseless tread of his
+rubber-soled shoes had in themselves an uncanny quality. Presently Tommy
+whistled softly, as though to break the spell.
+
+"Whew! I say, is he often like that?"
+
+Beatrice laughed. Tommy _was_ refreshing! "Lately, yes. Do you know,"
+she added, "he only spoke twice on the way up here--once to ask me if I
+was ready to have dinner, and once what I wanted for dinner?" Her tone
+was one of suppressed amusement, caught from Tommy; but before her
+remark was fairly finished something rather like a note of alarm rang
+through her. Why had she said that? It wasn't so frightfully amusing,
+come to think of it. Her pleasure, she saw in a flash, came not from the
+remark itself but from her anticipation of seeing Tommy respond to
+it....
+
+That was rather serious, wasn't it? Just how serious, she wondered? Joy
+in seeing another man respond to a disparaging remark about her
+husband--that was what it came to! For the first time in her life she
+had the sensation of reveling in a stolen joy. For of course Tommy did
+respond, beautifully--too beautifully. "Oh, I say! Really, now! That
+_is_ a trifle strong, wot?" and so on. He was doing exactly what she had
+meant him to, and there was a separate pleasure in that--a zest of
+power!
+
+Heavens!
+
+For the first time she began to feel a trifle nervous about Tommy. Was
+Aunt Cecilia right? Had all her careful euphemisms about young wives
+some basis of justification as applied to her own case? She and
+Tommy.... Well, she and Tommy?... Half an hour ago she could have placed
+them perfectly; now her sight was a trifle blurred. There was not time
+to think it all out now, anyway; another boatload of people from the
+shore was even now crowding up the gangway; to-morrow she would go into
+the matter thoroughly with herself and put things, whatever they might
+be, on a definite business footing. To-night, even, if she did not
+sleep....
+
+Everybody was back, it appeared, and things shortly became festive.
+There were drinks and sandwiches and entertaining reminiscences of the
+evening from the young people, lasting till bedtime. Thought was out of
+the question.
+
+Once undressed and in bed, to be sure, there was better opportunity. She
+slipped comfortably down between the sheets; what a blessing that the
+night was not too hot, after all! Aunt Cecilia had said ... what was it
+that Aunt Cecilia had said? Something about a young wife--a young wife
+ought to have something to do. Of course. These were linen sheets, by
+the way, and the very finest linen, at that. Aunt Cecilia did know how
+to do things.... What was it? Something more, she fancied, about valuing
+something more than something else. Tommy Clairloch was the first thing,
+she was sure of that. Aunt Cecilia had not said it, but she had meant
+it.... She was going to sleep, after all; what a blessing!... What was
+that other thing? It was hard to think when one was so comfortable. Oh,
+yes, she had it now--the love of a husband!
+
+Whose husband? The young wife's, to be sure. And who was the young wife?
+She herself, obviously. But--the thought flared up like a strong lamp
+through the thickening fog of her brain--_her_ husband did not love her!
+She and James were not like ordinary young wives and husbands.... How
+silly of her not to have seen that before! That changed everything, of
+course. Aunt Cecilia was on a wrong track altogether; her--what was the
+word?--her premises were false. That threw out her whole
+argument--everything--including that about Tommy.
+
+Gradually the sudden illumination of that thought faded in the
+evergrowing shadow of sleep. Now only vague wisps of ideas floated
+through her mind; even those were but pale reflections of that one
+truth; Aunt Cecilia was mistaken.... Aunt Cecilia was wrong.... It was
+all right about Tommy.... Tommy was all right.... Aunt Cecilia ... was
+wrong....
+
+Psychologists tell us that ideas make most impression on the mind when
+they are introduced into it during that indefinite period between
+sleeping and waking; they then become incorporated directly with our
+subconscious selves without having to pass through the usual tortuous
+channels of consciousness and reason. And the sub-consciousness, as
+every one knows, is a most intimate and important place; once an idea is
+firmly grounded there it has become substantially a part of our being,
+so far as we can tell from our incomplete knowledge of our own ideal
+existence. We are not sure that a single introduction of this sort can
+give an idea a good social standing in the realm of sub-consciousness;
+probably not. But it can help; it can give it at least a nodding
+acquaintance there. Certain it is, at any rate, that when Beatrice awoke
+next morning it was with a mind at least somewhat more willing than
+previously to take for granted, as part of the natural order of things,
+the fact of the inherent wrongness of Aunt Cecilia and its corollary,
+the innate rightness of Tommy. (Possibly this corollary would not have
+appeared so inevitable if the matter had all been threshed out in
+reason; they are rather lax about logic and such things in
+sub-consciousness, making a good introduction the one criterion of
+acceptance.) With the net material result that Beatrice was less
+inclined than ever to be nervous about Aunt Cecilia and also less
+inclined than ever to be nervous about Tommy.
+
+The day began in an atmosphere of not unpleasant indolence. Breakfast
+was late and was followed by the best cigarette of the day on
+deck--Beatrice's smoking was the secret admiration and envy of all the
+female half of the younger section. A cool breeze ruffled the harbor and
+gathered in a flock of clouds from the Sound that left only just enough
+sunlight to bring out the brilliant colors of the little flags all the
+yachts had strung up between their mastheads and down again to bowsprit
+and stern. It was rather pleasant to sit and watch these and other
+things; the continual small traffic of the harbor, the occasional
+arrivals of more slim white yachts.
+
+Presently Harry and Madge and Beatrice and Tommy and one or two others
+made a short excursion to the shore, for no other apparent reason than
+to join the procession of smartly dressed people that for one day in the
+year convert the quiet town of New London into one of the gayest-looking
+places on earth. Tommy was much in evidence here, fairly crowing with
+delight over each new thing that pleased him. It was all Harry could do
+to keep him from swathing himself in blue; Tommy had become an
+enthusiastic Yalensian. He had spent a week-end with Harry in New Haven
+during the spring; he had driven with Aunt Selina in the victoria, he
+had been shown the university and had met a number of pretty gells and
+rippin' fellahs; what business was it of Wiggers if he wanted to wave a
+blue flag? Wiggers ought to feel jolly complimented, instead of makin' a
+row!
+
+"You'd say just the same about Harvard, if you went there--the people
+are just as nice," said Harry. "Besides, Harvard will probably win. You
+may buy us each a blue feather, if you like, and call it square at
+that."
+
+Beatrice smiled, but she thought Harry a little hard.
+
+"Never mind, Tommy," said she; "you can sit by me at the race this
+afternoon and we'll both scream our lungs out, if we want."
+
+That was substantially what happened. Luncheon on the yacht--an enormous
+"standing" affair, with lots of extra people--was followed by a general
+exodus to the observation trains. Tommy had never seen an observation
+train before and was full of curiosity. They didn't have them at Henley.
+It was all jolly different from Henley, wasn't it, though? As they
+walked through the railroad yards to their car he was inclined to think
+it wasn't as good fun as Henley. One missed the punts, and all that.
+Once seated in the car, however, with an unobstructed view of the river,
+it was a little better, and by the time the crews had rowed up to the
+starting-point he had almost come round to the American point of view.
+It might not be so jolly as Henley, quite, but Jove! one could see!
+
+Tommy sat on Beatrice's left; on her right was Mr. MacGrath and beyond
+him again was Aunt Cecilia. The others were scattered through the train
+in similar mixed groups. Beatrice thought it a good idea to split up
+that way.... She began to have an idea she was going to enjoy this race.
+
+So she did, too, more than she had enjoyed anything in--oh, months! She
+couldn't remember much about it afterward, though she did remember who
+won, which is more than we do. She had a recollection, to begin with, of
+Tommy joining in lustily in every Yale cheer and of Mr. MacGrath trying
+not to thump Aunt Cecilia on the back at an important moment and
+thumping herself instead. He apologized very nicely. Presently Tommy
+committed the same offense against her and neglected to apologize
+entirely, but she didn't mind in the least. (That was the sort of race
+it was.) Perhaps there lurked in the back of her brain a certain sense
+of joy in the omission.... She herself became infected with Tommy-mania
+before long.
+
+And the spectacle was an exhilarating one, under any circumstances. The
+noble sweep of the river, the keen blue of the water and sky, the green
+of the hills, the brilliant double row of yachts and the general
+atmosphere of hilarity were enough to make one glad to be alive. And
+then the excitement of the race itself, the sense of participation the
+motion of the train gave one, the almost painful fascination of watching
+those two little sets of automatons, the involuntary, electric response
+from the crowd when one or the other of them pulled a little into the
+lead, the thrill of bursting out from behind some temporary obstruction
+and seeing them down there, quite near now, entering the last half-mile
+with one's own crew just a little, ever so little, ahead! From which
+moment it seemed both a second and an age to the finish, that terrific,
+heart-raising finish, with its riot of waving colors and its pandemonium
+of toots from the water and cries from the land....
+
+On the whole, we suppose Yale must have won that race. For after all, it
+isn't quite so pleasant when the other crew wins, no matter how close
+the race was and no matter how good a loser one happens to be. Tommy was
+as good a loser as you could easily find, but not even he could have
+been as cheerful as all that on the ride back if his crew had lost.
+Indeed, cheerful was rather a weak word with which to describe Tommy by
+this time. Beatrice, doing her best to calm him down, became aware, from
+glances shot at him from various--mostly feminine--directions, that some
+people would have characterized his condition by a much sharper and
+shorter word. Involuntarily, almost against her will, Beatrice
+indignantly repelled their accusation. What nonsense! They didn't know
+Tommy; he was naturally like this. Though there had been champagne at
+lunch, of course....
+
+Rather an interesting experience, that ride back to town. The enforced
+inactivity gave one a chance to think, in the intervals of tugging at
+Tommy's coat tails. Why should she be enjoying herself so ridiculously?
+Whole-souled enjoyment was not a thing she had been accustomed to
+during the last few years, at any rate since.... Yes, she had enjoyed
+herself more this afternoon than at any time since she had been married;
+but what of it? She attached no blame to James; it was not James' fault;
+nothing was anybody's fault. She was taking a little, a very little fun
+where she found it, that was all.
+
+The train pulled up in the yards and thought was discontinued. It was
+resumed a few minutes later, however, as they sat in the launch, waiting
+for the rest of their party to join them. She happened to be sitting
+just opposite to Aunt Cecilia, on whom her eyes idly rested. Aunt
+Cecilia! What about Aunt Cecilia? She was wrong, of course! She did not
+understand; she was wrong! Tommy was all right....
+
+So sub-consciousness got in its little work, till conscious reason
+sallied forth and routed it. Oh, why, Beatrice asked herself, with a
+mental motion as of throwing off an entangling substance, why all this
+nonsensical worrying about a danger that did not exist? What danger was
+there of her--making a fool of herself over Tommy when.... She did not
+follow that thought out; it was better to leave those "when" clauses
+hanging in the air, when possible.
+
+But Tommy! Poor, good-natured, simple, ineffective Tommy!
+
+She resolved to think no longer, but to give herself entirely over to
+what slight pleasure the moment had to offer She dressed and dined in
+good spirits, with a sense of anticipation almost childlike in its
+innocence.
+
+After dinner there was a general exodus to the Griswold. From the moment
+she stepped on to the hotel dock, surrounded by its crowd of cheerfully
+bobbing launches, she became infected with the prevailing spirit of
+gaiety. Tommy was right; Americans did know how to enjoy themselves!
+
+They made their way up the lawn toward the big brilliant hotel. They
+reached the door of the ballroom and stopped a moment. In this interval
+Beatrice became aware of James at her elbow.
+
+"You'd better dance with me first," he said.
+
+They danced two or three times around the room in complete silence.
+Beatrice did not in the least mind dancing with James, indeed she rather
+enjoyed it, he danced so well. But why address her in that sepulchral
+tone; why make his invitation sound like a threat; why not at least put
+up a pretense of making duty a pleasure? She was conscious of a slight
+rise of irritation; if James was going to be a skeleton at this
+feast.... She was relieved when he handed her over to one of the other
+men.
+
+But James had no intention of being a skeleton. He went back to bed
+before any of the others, alleging a headache. Beatrice learned this
+indirectly, through Harry, and felt rather disappointed. She would have
+preferred to have him remain and enjoy himself; she did not bother to
+explain why. But he was apparently determined that nothing should make
+him enjoy himself. James was rather irritating, sometimes. She said as
+much, to Harry, who assented, frowning slightly. She saw a chance to get
+in some of the small work of destiny-fighting.
+
+"He's not been at all natural lately," she said; "I've been quite
+worried about him. I wish you'd watch him and tell me what to do about
+it. I feel rather to blame for it, naturally."
+
+"Oh, I wouldn't worry," said Harry. "Working in the city in summer is
+hard on any one, of course."
+
+"I'm afraid it's more than that, and I want your help. You understand
+James better than I do, I think."
+
+"No, you're wrong there. I don't understand James at all. No one really
+understands any one else, as a matter of fact. We think we do, but we
+don't. The very simplest nature is a regular Cretan labyrinth."
+
+"But a wife ought to be the Theseus of her husband's labyrinth, that's
+the point."
+
+"Perhaps you're right. Here's hoping you don't find a minotaur in the
+middle!"
+
+She didn't worry much about it, however. Tommy cut in soon afterward,
+and they didn't talk about James or labyrinths either. Tommy had not
+danced with her before that evening. She was going to say something
+about that, but decided not to. It was too jolly dancing to talk,
+really. Tommy danced very well--quite as well as James. They danced the
+contemporary American dances for some time and then they broke into an
+old-fashioned whirling English waltz; the dance they had both been
+brought up on. It brought memories to the minds of both; they felt old
+times and places creeping back on them.
+
+"Do you remember the last time we did this?" asked Tommy presently.
+
+"At the Dimchurches', the winter before I came here."
+
+"Didn't last long, though. You were the prettiest gell there."
+
+"I suppose I was.--And you were just Tommy Erskine then, and awfully
+ineligible!"
+
+What an absurd remark to make! If she was going to let her tongue run
+away with her like that, she had better keep her mouth shut.
+
+They danced on in silence for some time, rested in the cool of a
+verandah and then danced again. The room was already beginning to empty
+somewhat, making dancing more of a pleasure than ever. They danced on
+till they were tired and then sat out again.
+
+"We might take a stroll about," suggested Tommy presently.
+
+They walked down the steps and out on the lawn. Presently they came near
+the windows of the bar, which was on the ground floor of the hotel, and
+stopped to look in for a moment. It was a lively scene. The room--a
+great white bare place--was filled with men laughing and shouting and
+slapping each other on the shoulder and bellowing college songs, all in
+a thick blue haze of tobacco smoke. They were also drinking, and
+Beatrice noticed that when they had drained their glasses they
+invariably threw them carelessly on the floor, adding a new sound to the
+din and fairly paving the room with broken glass. Many of them were
+mildly intoxicated, but none were actually drunk; the whole sounded the
+note of celebration in the ballroom strengthened and masculinized. It
+had its effect on Beatrice; it was a pleasure to think that one lived in
+a world where people could enjoy themselves thoroughly and uproariously
+and without becoming bestial about it.
+
+"It's really very jolly, isn't it?" she said at last.
+
+"Oh, rippin'," assented Tommy.
+
+"Perhaps you'd rather go in there now?"
+
+"No, no. Don't know the fellahs--I should feel out of it. Wiggers was
+right.--Besides, I'd rather stay with you."
+
+Beatrice wondered if she had intended to make Tommy say that.
+
+They wandered off through the hotel grounds and saw other couples doing
+the same. Doing rather more, in fact. After some search they found an
+empty bench and sat down.
+
+Tommy's education had been in many ways a narrow one, but it had
+equipped him perfectly for making use of such situations as the present.
+He turned about on the bench, leaning one arm on its back and facing
+Beatrice's profile squarely.
+
+"Jove!" he said reminiscently. "Haven't done that since Oxford."
+
+"What?"
+
+"That." He waved his head in the direction of the well populated
+shadows.
+
+"Oh," answered Beatrice carelessly. The profound lack of interest in her
+tone had its effect.
+
+"I did it to you once, by Jove! Remember?"
+
+"No. You never did, Tommy; you know that perfectly well."
+
+"Well, I will now, then!"
+
+He did.
+
+The next moment he rather wished he had not, Beatrice's slow smile of
+contemptuous tolerance made him feel like such a child.
+
+"Tommy, it's only you, of course, so it really doesn't matter, but if
+you try to do that again I shall punish you."
+
+Her power over him was as comforting to her as it was disconcerting to
+him. For a moment; after that she felt a pang of irritation. The idea of
+a married woman being kissed by a man not her husband was in itself
+rather revolting, and the thought that she was that married woman stung.
+As if that was not enough, the thought came to her that she could have
+stopped Tommy at any moment and had not. Had she not, in fact,
+secretly--even to herself--intended that he should do that very thing
+when they first sat down? She had used her power for contemptible ends.
+The thought that after all it was only poor ineffectual Tommy only
+increased her sense of degradation. All her pleasure had fled.
+
+"Come along, Tommy," she said, rising; "it's time to go home."
+
+It was indeed late--long after twelve. The launch, as she remembered it,
+was to make its last trip back to the yacht at half-past; they would be
+just in time. Tommy walked the length of the dock two or three times
+calling "Halcyone! Halcyone!" but there was no response from the already
+dwindling throng of launches. They sat down to wait, both moody and
+silent.
+
+From the very first Beatrice suspected that they had been left. It was
+the natural sequence of the preceding episode; that was the way things
+happened. Her sense of disillusionment and irritation increased. The
+dancing had stopped, but the drinking continued; people were wandering
+or lying about the lawn in disgusting states of intoxication. What had
+been a joyous bacchanal had degenerated into a horrid saturnalia. Once,
+as they walked down to see if the launch had arrived, a man stumbled by
+them with a lewd remark. Beatrice remained on the verandah and made
+Tommy go down alone after that. His mournful "Halcyone!" floated up like
+the cry of a soul from Acheron.
+
+By one o'clock or so it became obvious to everybody that they had been
+forgotten, and Beatrice instructed Tommy to hire any boat he could get
+to take them to the yacht. He had a long interview with the chief
+nautical employee of the hotel, who promised to see what he could do.
+That appeared to be singularly little. At last, with altered views of
+the American way of running things, Beatrice went down herself and
+talked to him. He would do what he could, but.... It was two o'clock;
+the dock was deserted.
+
+Beatrice knew he would do nothing and bethought herself of the two rooms
+in the hotel that Aunt Cecilia had engaged. Her impression was that they
+were not being used to-night; their party was smaller than it had been
+the night before. She went to the hotel office and asked if there were
+some rooms engaged for Mrs. James Wimbourne and if they were already
+occupied. After some research it appeared that there were and they
+weren't. Well, Beatrice and Tommy would take them. The night clerk was
+interested. He understood the situation perfectly and refrained from
+commenting upon their lack of baggage.
+
+So Beatrice was shown into one room and Tommy into the other, the two
+parting with a brief good night in the corridor.
+
+The first thing Beatrice noticed about the room was that there was a
+communicating door between it and Tommy's room. She saw that there was a
+bolt on her side, however, and made sure that it was shut.
+
+Then she rang for a chambermaid and asked for a nightgown and
+toothbrush.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER X
+
+MR. AND MRS. ALFRED LAMMLE
+
+
+It was generally looked upon as rather a good joke. Aunt Cecilia, of
+course, was prolific of apologies; the launch had made so many trips,
+and every one thought Beatrice and Lord Clairloch had gone at another
+time; there had been no general gathering afterward, they had all gone
+to bed as soon as they reached the yacht, and James, as Beatrice knew,
+had gone to bed early with a headache; how clever it was of Beatrice to
+have thought of those two rooms and wasn't it lucky they had been
+engaged, after all, and so forth. But most of the others were inclined
+to be facetious. Breakfast, thanks to their efforts, was quite a merry
+meal.
+
+For the two most nearly concerned the situation was almost devoid of
+embarrassment. They arrived at the yacht shortly after eight in a launch
+they had ordered the night before at the hotel, and repaired to their
+respective rooms without even being seen in their evening clothes. By
+the time breakfast was over Beatrice had quite recovered from her
+irritation at Tommy and had even almost ceased to blame herself for the
+events of the previous night.
+
+The party broke up after lunch, the yacht proceeding to Bar Harbor and
+the guests going their various ways. Beatrice and James went directly
+back to New York. James was very silent in the train, as silent as he
+had been on the way up, but Beatrice was less inclined to find fault
+with him for that than before. As she looked at him quietly reading in
+the chair opposite her it even occurred to her that his silence was
+preferable to Tommy's companionable chirpings, even at their best. And
+with Tommy at his worst, as he had been last night, there was no
+comparison. Oh, yes, she was thoroughly tired of Tommy!
+
+Dinner in their apartment passed off almost as quietly as the journey,
+yet quite pleasantly, in Beatrice's opinion. The night was cool, and a
+refreshing breeze blew in from the harbor. After the maid had left the
+room and they sat over their coffee and cigarettes, James spoke.
+
+"About last night," he began, and stopped.
+
+"Yes?" said Beatrice encouragingly.
+
+"I thought at first I wouldn't mention it, and then I decided it would
+be rather cowardly not to ... I want to say that--"
+
+"That what?"
+
+"That I have no objections."
+
+"To what?" Her bewilderment was not feigned.
+
+"To last night! I don't want you to think I'm jealous, or unsympathetic,
+or anything like that.... You are at liberty to do what you please--to
+get pleasure where you can find it. I understand."
+
+"You don't understand at all!" Her manner was still one of bewilderment,
+though possibly other feelings were beginning to enter.
+
+"I understand, and shall understand in the future. I shan't mention the
+matter again. Only one thing more--whenever our--our bargain interferes
+too much, you can end it. I shan't offer any opposition."
+
+She sat frozen in her chair, making no sign that she had understood, so
+he explained in an almost gentle tone of voice: "I mean you can divorce
+me, you know."
+
+"Divorce!"
+
+"Oh, very well, just as you like. Of course our marriage ceases to be
+such from now on...."
+
+So unprepared, so at peace with herself and the world had she been that
+it was only now that she fully comprehended his meaning. James was
+accusing her, making the great accusation ... James thought that she....
+Of course, not being the kind of a woman who dissolves in tears at that
+accusation, her first dominant emotion was one of anger; an anger
+sharper than any she had ever felt; an anger she would have thought to
+be impossible to her, after all these months of lassitude, all these
+years of chastening. She rose from her chair and made a step toward the
+door; her impulse being to walk out of the room, out of the house, out
+of James' life, without a word. Not a word of self-defense; some charges
+are too vile to merit reply!
+
+Then commonsense flared up, conquering anger and pride. No, she must not
+give way to her pride; she must act like a sensible being. After all,
+James was her husband, he had some right to accuse if he thought proper;
+the falseness of his accusation did not take away his right of
+explanation; he should be made to see.
+
+Slowly she turned and went back to her place. She sat down squarely
+facing James with both hands on the table in front of her, and prepared
+to talk like a lawyer presenting a case. James was watching her quietly,
+interested, perhaps ever so slightly amused, but not in the least moved.
+
+"James, as I understand it, you think that I--that Tommy and I...."
+
+"Yes?"
+
+"Well, you've made a great mistake, that's all. You've condemned me
+without a hearing. You've assumed that I was guilty--"
+
+"Oh, for heaven's sake, let's not talk about being guilty or innocent or
+wronging each other or being faithful to each other! Those things have
+no meaning for us. I'm not blaming you--I've tried to explain that to
+the best of my ability!"
+
+"Very well, then, let us say you have made a mistake in facts."
+
+"What do you mean by that?"
+
+"I mean--what should I mean? That Tommy and I are not lovers."
+
+"Well, what then?"
+
+"What then--?"
+
+"Yes, what of it? I never said you were, did I? Suppose you're not,
+then; if you're glad, I'm glad, if you're sorry, I'm sorry. It doesn't
+alter our position."
+
+"James, you don't understand!"
+
+"What?"
+
+"When you spoke before you thought that I was--that I had sinned.--I do
+consider it a sin; perhaps you'll allow me to call it so if it pleases
+me."
+
+"Certainly." He smiled.
+
+"Well, you were wrong. I haven't."
+
+"All right; I was wrong. You haven't."
+
+"Very well, then!"
+
+"Very well WHAT?"
+
+"James!"
+
+"I'm sorry.--But what are you driving at? I wasn't accusing you, you
+know; I was simply telling you you were free, which you knew before,
+and offering you more freedom if you wanted it. Why this outburst of
+virtue?"
+
+"James, you are rather brutal!"
+
+"I'm sorry if I seem so; I don't mean to be." He shifted his position
+slightly and went on quite gently with another smile: "Beatrice, if you
+have successfully met a temptation--or what you look upon as a
+temptation--I'm sure I'm very glad. After all, we are friends, and what
+pleases my friend pleases me, other things being equal. But does that
+pleasing fact in itself alter things between us when, from my own
+selfish point of view, I don't care in the least whether you overcame
+the temptation or not? And does it, I ask you, alter facts? Does it make
+you any less fond of Tommy than you are; does it make you as fond of me
+as you are of him?"
+
+"Oh, James! You understand so little--"
+
+"Whatever I may understand or not understand I know that you spent all
+of last evening and practically all yesterday and a great part of the
+evening before with Tommy, and that you gave no particular evidence of
+being bored ... Beatrice, you were happy with him, happy as a child, the
+happiest person in the whole crowd, and you showed it, too! Do you mean
+to say that you've ever, at any time in your life, been as happy in my
+society as all that! No! Deny it if you can!"
+
+"James, you are jealous!" The discovery came to her like an inspiration,
+sending a thrill through her. She did not stop to analyze it now, but
+when she came to think it over later she realized that there was
+something in that thrill quite distinct from the satisfaction of finding
+a good reply to James' really rather searching (though of course quite
+unfounded) charges.
+
+"There's a good deal of the cave-man left in you, James, argue as you
+may. Do you think any one but a jealous man could talk as you are
+talking now? 'Deny it if you can'--what do you care whether I deny it or
+not, according to what you just said? Oh, James, how are you living up
+to your part of the bargain?"
+
+Her tone was free from rancor or spite, and her words had their effect.
+James was not beyond appreciating the justice in what she said. He left
+his chair and raised his hand to his forehead with a gesture of
+bewilderment.
+
+"Oh, Lord, I suppose you're right," he muttered, and began pacing the
+room.
+
+So they remained in silence for some time, she sitting quietly in her
+chair as before and he walking aimlessly up and down, desperately trying
+to adjust himself to this new fact. It is strange how people will give
+themselves away when they begin talking; he had been so sure of himself
+in his thoughts; he had gone over such matters so satisfactorily in his
+own head! Beatrice understood his plight and respected it; it was not
+for her, after these last few days, to minimize the trials of
+self-discovery....
+
+The maid popped in at the pantry door and popped out again.
+
+"All right, Mary, you can take the things," said Beatrice, and led the
+way into the living room.
+
+There was no air of finality in this move, but the slight domestic
+incident at least had the effect of putting a check on introspection and
+restoring things to a more normal footing. Once in the living room--it
+was a large high room, built as a studio and reaching up two
+stories--they were both much more at ease; they began to feel capable of
+resuming negotiations, when the time arrived, like two normal sensible
+beings. James threw himself on a couch; Beatrice moved about the room,
+opening a window here, turning up a light there, arranging a vase of
+flowers somewhere else. At last, deeming the time ripe, she stopped in
+one of her noiseless trips and spoke down at her husband.
+
+"James, do you realize that you alone, of all the people on the yacht,
+had the remotest suspicion? You remember how they all joked about it?"
+
+Oh, the danger of putting things into words! Beatrice's voice was as
+gentle as she could make it; there was even a note of casual amusement
+in it, but in some intangible way, merely by reopening the subject
+vocally, Beatrice laid herself open to attack. James' lip curled; he
+could no more keep it from doing so than keep his hair from curling.
+
+"You must remember, however, that they were not fully acquainted with
+the circumstances...."
+
+Beatrice turned away in despair, not angry at James, but realizing the
+inevitability of his reply as well as he himself. She sat down in an
+armchair and leaned her head against the back of it; she wished it
+might not be necessary ever to rise from that chair again. The blind
+hopelessness of their situation lay heavy on them both.
+
+James spoke next.
+
+"Beatrice, will you tell me what it's all about? Why are we squabbling
+this way? How can we find out--what on earth are we going to do about it
+all?"
+
+"I've no more idea than you, James."
+
+"Every time we get talking we always fall back on our bargain, as if
+that was the one reliable thing in the whole universe. Always our
+bargain, our bargain! Beatrice, what in Heaven's name is our bargain?"
+
+"Marriage, I take it."
+
+"You know it's more than that--less than that--not that, anyway! At
+first it was all quite clear to me; we were two people whose lives had
+been broken and we were going to try to mend them as best we might. And
+as it seemed we could do that better together than alone we determined
+to marry. Our marriage was to be a perfectly loose, free arrangement,
+and we were to stick to its terms only as long as we could profit by
+doing so. We were to part without ill feeling and with perfect
+understanding. And now, at the first shred of evidence--no, not even
+evidence, suspicion--that you want to break away we start quarreling
+like a pair of cats, and I become a monster of jealousy, like any comic
+husband in a play...."
+
+Beatrice's heart sank again at those words; there was no mistaking the
+bitterness in them. That heightened a fear she had felt when James had
+answered her about the people on the yacht; James was still smarting
+with the discovery of his jealousy, and the trouble was that the smart
+was so sharp that he might not forgive her for having made him feel it.
+She felt the taste of her little triumph turn to ashes in her mouth.
+
+"No, James, no!" she interrupted hurriedly. "You weren't, really. That
+was all nonsense--we both saw that...."
+
+"No, it's true--I was jealous. Jealous! and for what? And what's more, I
+still am. I can't help it. When I think of Tommy, and the boat-race, and
+all that. Oh, Lord, the idiocy of it!"
+
+"I don't particularly mind your being jealous, James, if that's any
+comfort to you."
+
+"No! Why on earth should you? You're living up to your part of the
+bargain, and I'm not--that's what it comes to. Oh, it's all my fault,
+every bit of it--no doubt of that!"
+
+His words gave Beatrice a new sensation, not so much a sinking as a
+steeling of the heart. His self-accusation was all very well, but if it
+also involved trampling on her--! And she did begin to feel trampled
+upon; much more so now than when he had directly accused her.... That
+was odd! Was it possible that she would rather be vilified than ignored,
+even by James?
+
+Meanwhile James was ranting on--it had not occurred to her that it was
+ranting before, but it did now:--"There's something about the mere
+institution of marriage, I suppose, that makes me feel this way; the old
+idea of possession or something.... You were right about the cave-man!
+It's something stronger than me--I can't help it; but if it's going on
+like this every time you--every time you speak to another man, it'll
+make a delightful thing out of our married life, won't it? This free and
+easy bargain of ours, this sensible arrangement! Why, it's a thousand
+times harder than an ordinary marriage, just because I have nothing to
+hold you with!...
+
+"Beatrice, we're caught in something. Trapped! Don't you feel it?
+Something you can't see, can't understand, only feel gradually pressing
+in on you, paralyzing you, smothering you! There's no use blaming each
+other for it; we're both wound up in it equally; it's something far
+stronger than either of us. A pair of blind mice in a trap!..."
+
+He flung himself across the room to an open window and stood there,
+resting his elbows on the sill and gazing out over the twinkling lights
+of the city. Beatrice sat immovable in her chair, but her bosom was
+heaving with the memory of certain things he had said. Another revulsion
+of feeling mastered her; she no longer thought of him as ranting; she
+felt his words too strongly for that. A pair of blind mice in a
+trap--yes, yes, she felt all that, but that was not what had stirred her
+so. What was that he had said about having nothing to hold her with?...
+
+She watched him as he stood there trying to cool his tortured mind in
+the evening air. He was tremendously worked up; she wondered if he could
+stand this sort of thing physically; she remembered how ill he had been
+looking lately.... She watched him with a new anxiety, half expecting to
+see him topple over backward at any moment, overcome by the strain. Then
+she could help him; her mind conjured up a vision of herself running
+into the dining room for some whisky and back to him with the glass in
+her hand; "Here, drink this," and her hand under his head.... It was
+wicked of her to wish anything of the kind, of course; but if she could
+only be of some use to him! If he would but think of turning to her for
+help in getting out of his trap! He would not find his fellow-mouse cold
+or unsympathetic.
+
+She could not overcome her desire to find out if any such idea was in
+his mind. She went over to him and touched him gently on the shoulder.
+
+"James--"
+
+"No, not now, please; I want to think."
+
+And his shoulder remained a piece of tweed under her hand; he did not
+even bother to shake her off.
+
+She sat down again to wait.
+
+When at last he left the window it was to sit down by a lamp and take up
+a book. That was not a bad sign, in itself, as long as he made his
+reading an interlude and not an ending. But as she sat watching him it
+became more and more evident that he regarded their interview as closed.
+And so they sat stolidly for some time, James determined that nothing
+should lead him into another humiliating exhibition of feeling and
+Beatrice determined that whatever happened she would make him stop
+ignoring her. And though she was at first merely hurt by his
+indifference she presently began to feel her determination strengthened
+by something else, something which, starting as hardly more than natural
+feminine pique shortly grew into irritation, then into anger of a
+slow-burning type and lastly, as her eyes tired of seeing him sit there
+so unaffectedly absorbed in his reading, into something for the moment
+approaching active dislike. We all know what hell hath no fury like, and
+Beatrice, as she fed her mind on the thought of how often he had
+insulted and repelled and above all ignored her that evening, began to
+consider herself very much in the light of a woman scorned.
+
+"Is that all, James?" she ventured at length.
+
+He put down his book and looked up with the manner of one making a great
+effort to be reasonable.
+
+"What do you want, Beatrice?"
+
+Beatrice would have given a good deal to be able to say that what she
+really wanted was that he should take her to him as he had that day at
+Bar Harbor and never once since, but as she could not she made a
+substitute answer.
+
+"We can't leave things as they are, can we?"
+
+"Why not? Haven't we said too much already?"
+
+"Too much for peace, but not enough for satisfaction. We can't leave
+things hanging in the air this way."
+
+"Very well, then, if you insist. How shall we begin?"
+
+"Well, suppose we begin with our bargain--see what its terms are and
+whether we can live up to them and whether it's for our benefit to do
+so."
+
+"All right. What do you consider the terms of our bargain to be?"
+
+They were both talking in the measured tones of people determined to
+keep control over themselves at all costs. They looked at each other
+warily, as though guarding against being maneuvered into a betrayal of
+temper or feeling.
+
+"Well, in the first place, I assume that we want to present a good front
+to the world. Bold and united. We want to prevent people from
+knowing...."
+
+"Certainly."
+
+"And if we give the impression of being happy together we've gone a good
+way toward that end."
+
+"Yes, that's logical."
+
+"Well--?"
+
+"What?"
+
+"It's your turn now, isn't it?"
+
+"Oh, no; you've begun so well you'd better go on."
+
+"Well, I've only got one more idea on the subject, and that is just
+tentative--a sort of suggestion." She sat down on the sofa by him and
+strove to make her manner a little more intimate without becoming
+mawkish or intrusive. "It has occurred to me that we haven't given that
+impression very much in the past, and I think the reason for that may be
+that we--well, that we don't work together enough. Does it ever occur to
+you, James, that we don't understand each other very well? Not nearly as
+much as we might, I sometimes think, without--without having to pretend
+anything. We know each other so slightly! Sometimes it gives me the
+oddest feeling, to think I am married to you, who are stranger to me
+than almost any of my friends...."
+
+She feared the phrasing of that thought was a little unfortunate, and
+broke off suddenly with: "But perhaps I'm boring you?"
+
+"No, no--I'm very much interested. How do you think we ought to go about
+it?"
+
+"It's difficult to say, of course. How do you think? I should suggest,
+for one thing, that we should be less shy with each other--less afraid
+of each other. Especially about things that concern us. Even if it is
+hard to talk about such things, I think we ought to. We should be more
+frank with each other, James."
+
+"As we have been this evening, for example?"
+
+The cynical note rang in his voice, the note she most dreaded.
+
+"No, I didn't mean that, necessarily. I don't mind saying, though, that
+I think even our talking to-night has been a good thing. It has cleared
+the air, you know. See where we are now!"
+
+"Yes, and it's cleared you too. But what about me?"
+
+"I don't understand."
+
+"Oh, you've come out of it all right! You've behaved yourself,
+vindicated yourself, done nothing you didn't expect to, nothing you have
+reason to be ashamed of afterward. I have! I haven't been able to open
+my mouth without making a fool of myself in one way or another...."
+
+"Only because you're overtired, James...."
+
+"I've said things I never thought myself capable of saying, and I've
+found I thought things that no decent man should think. It was an
+interesting experience."
+
+"James, my dear, don't be so bitter! I'm not blaming you. I can forget
+all that!"
+
+She laid her hand on his knee and the action, together with the quality
+of her voice, had a visible effect on him. He paused a moment and looked
+at her curiously. When he spoke again it was without bitterness.
+
+"That's awfully decent of you, Beatrice, but the trouble is I can't
+forget. Those things stay in the memory, and they're not desirable
+companions. And as talking, the kind of frank talking you suggest, seems
+to bring them out in spite of me, I think perhaps we'd better not have
+much of that kind of talk. It seems to me that the less we talk the
+better we shall get on."
+
+Beatrice was silent a moment in her turn. She had not brought him quite
+to where she wanted him, but she had brought him nearer than he had been
+before. She resolved to let things stay as they were.
+
+"Very well, James," she said, leaning back by his side; "we won't talk
+if you don't want to. About those things, that is. There are plenty of
+other things we can talk about. And let's go to places more together and
+do things more together. I see no reason why we shouldn't get on very
+well together. After all, I do enjoy being with you, when you're in a
+good mood, more than with any one else I know--that I could be with--"
+
+"Then why--Oh, Lord!" He stopped himself and sank forward in despair
+with his head on his hands.
+
+"Well, go on and say it."
+
+"No, no."
+
+"Yes. It's better that way."
+
+"I was going to say, why did you appear to enjoy yourself with Tommy so
+much more than--Oh, it's no use, Beatrice! I can't help it--it's beyond
+me!"
+
+"Oh, James!"
+
+"Yes, that's just it! It's the devil in me!"
+
+"When that was all over, James!"
+
+"All over! Then there was something!... Oh, good _Lord_! We can't go
+through it all over again!"
+
+"James, I meant that you were all over feeling that--"
+
+"Yes, yes, I know you did, and I thought you meant the other and said
+that, and of course I had no right to because of what we are, and so
+forth, over and over again! Round and round and round, like a mouse in a
+trap! Caught again!..."
+
+He got up and walked across the room once or twice, steadying himself
+with one last great effort. In a moment he stopped dead in front of her.
+
+"See here, Beatrice!"
+
+"Yes?"
+
+"It can't happen again, do you see? It's got to stop right here and now!
+I can't stand it--call it weak of me if you like, but I can't. It'll
+drive me stark mad. We are not going to talk about these things again,
+do you see?"
+
+"What sort of things?"
+
+"Anything! Anything that can possibly bring these things into my head
+and make a human fiend of me. And you're not to tempt me to talk of
+them, either. Do you promise?"
+
+"I promise anything that's reasonable--anything that will help you. But
+do you intend to let this--this weakness end everything--spoil our whole
+life?"
+
+"Spoil! What on earth is there to spoil? We've got on well enough up to
+now, haven't we? Well, we'll go back to where we were, where we were
+this morning! And we'll stay there, please God, as long as we two shall
+live! You're free, absolutely free, from now on! I shan't question
+anything you may care to do from this moment, I promise you!"
+
+She remained silent a moment, awed in spite of herself by the fervency
+of his words. She was cruelly disappointed in him. She had made so many
+attempts, she had humbled herself so often, she had suffered his rebuffs
+so many times and she had brought him at one time in spite of himself so
+near to a happier state of things that his one-minded insistence on his
+own humiliation seemed to her indescribably petty and selfish. His
+jealousy, his vile, rudimentary dog-in-the-manger jealousy; that was
+what he couldn't get over; that was what he could not forgive her for!
+What a small thing that was to resent, in view of what she herself had
+so steadfastly refrained from resenting!... However, since he wished it,
+there was nothing more to be done. She could be as cold and unemotional
+as he, if it came to the test.
+
+"Then you definitely give up every effort toward a better
+understanding?"
+
+"Yes!"
+
+"And you prefer, once for all, to be strangers rather than friends?"
+
+"Strangers don't squabble!"
+
+"Very well, then, James," she said with a quiet smile, "strangers let it
+be. I daresay it's better so, after all. I shouldn't wonder if you found
+me quite as good and thorough a stranger, from now on, as you could
+desire. It was foolish of me to talk to you as I did."
+
+"No, no--don't get blaming yourself. It's such a cheap form of
+satisfaction."
+
+She stood looking at him a moment with coldly glittering eyes.
+
+"It's quite true," she repeated; "I was a fool. I was a fool to imagine
+that you and I could have anything in common. Ever. Well, nothing can
+very well put us farther apart than we are now. There's a certain
+comfort in that, perhaps."
+
+"There is."
+
+"At last we agree. Husbands and wives should always agree. Good-night,
+James."
+
+"Good-night,"
+
+He watched her as she glided from the room, so slim and beautiful and
+disdainful. Perhaps a shadow of regret for her passed across his mind, a
+thought of what a woman, what a wife, even, she might have been under
+other circumstances; but it did not go far into him. Things were as they
+were; he had long since given up bothering about them, trying only to
+think and feel as little as possible. He took up his book again and read
+far into the night.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XI
+
+HESITANCIES AND TEARS
+
+
+Thomas Mackintosh Drummond Erskine, by courtesy known as Viscount
+Clairloch, was not a remarkably complicated person. His life was
+governed by a few broad and well-tried principles which he found, as
+many had found before him, covered practically all the contingencies he
+was called upon to deal with. One wanted things, and if possible, one
+got them. That was the first and great commandment of nature, and the
+second was akin to it; one did nothing contrary to a thing generally
+known as decency. This was a little more complicated, for though decency
+was a natural thing--one always wanted to be decent, other things being
+equal--it had a rather difficult technique which had to be mastered by a
+long slow process. If any one had asked Tommy how this technique was
+best obtained he would undoubtedly have answered, by a course of six
+years at either Eton, Harrow or Winchester, followed by three years at
+one of half a dozen colleges he could name at Oxford or Cambridge.
+
+Occasionally, of course--though not often--the paths of desire and
+decency diverged, and this divergence was sometimes provocative of
+unpleasantness. Treated sensibly, however, the problem could always be
+brought to an easy and simple solution. Tommy found that in such a case
+it was always possible to do one of two things; persuade oneself either
+that the desire was compatible with decency or that it did not exist at
+all. Either of those simple feats of dialectic accomplished, everything
+worked out quite beautifully. It is a splendid thing to have been
+educated at Harrow and Christchurch.
+
+Ever since he arrived in America it had been evident to Tommy that he
+wanted Beatrice. He did not want her with quite the absorbing intensity
+that would make him one of the great lovers of history--Harrow and
+Christchurch decreed that one should go fairly easy on wanting a
+married woman--but still he wanted her, for him, very much indeed. Up
+to the night of the boat-race everything had gone swimmingly. Then,
+indeed, he had received a setback; a setback which came very near making
+him abandon further pursuit and proceed forthwith to those portions of
+America which lie to the west of Upper Montclair. If Aunt Cecilia had
+not casually invited him to accompany the yacht on its trip round Cape
+Cod he might have started the very next morning. But he went to Bar
+Harbor, and before he left there it had become plain to him that he
+could probably have what he had so long desired.
+
+Everything had favored him. Aunt Cecilia had made it pleasant for him
+for a while, and when the time came when Aunt Cecilia might be expected
+to become tired of making it pleasant for him others came forward who
+were more than willing to do as much. Tommy was a desirable as well as
+an agreeable guest; he looked well in the papers. With the result that
+he was still playing about Bar Harbor at the end of July, at which time
+Beatrice, looking quite lovely and wan and heat-fagged, came, unattended
+by her husband, to be the chief ornament of Aunt Cecilia's spacious
+halls.
+
+And how Beatrice had changed since he last saw her! She was as little
+the cold-eyed, contemptuous Artemis of that night in New London as she
+was the fresh-cheeked débutante of his early knowledge; and she was
+infinitely more attractive, he thought, than either of them. She had a
+new way of looking up at him when he came to greet her; she was willing
+to pass long hours in his sole company; she depended on him for
+amusement, she relied on him in various little ways; and more important,
+she soon succeeded in making him forget his fear of her. For the first
+time in his knowledge of her he had the feeling of being fully as strong
+as she, fully as self-controlled, as firm-willed. This was in reality
+but another symptom of her power over him, but he never recognized it as
+such.
+
+Appetite, as we know, increases with eating, and every sign of favor
+that came his way fanned the almost extinguished flame of Tommy's desire
+into renewed warmth and vigor. Before many weeks it had grown into
+something warmer and more vigorous than anything he had ever
+experienced, till at last his gentle bosom became the battlefield of the
+dreaded Armageddon between desire and decency. It wasn't really
+dreaded, in his case, because he was not the sort of person who is
+capable of living very far ahead of the present moment, and perhaps, in
+view of the strength of both the contending forces, the term Armageddon
+may be an exaggeration; but it was the most serious internal conflict
+that the good-natured viscount (by courtesy) ever knew.
+
+But the struggle, though painful, was short-lived. After going to bed
+for five evenings in succession fearing that care would drive sleep from
+his pillow that night, and sleeping soundly from midnight till
+eight-thirty, the illuminating thought came to him that, owing to the
+truly Heaven-made laws of the country in which he then was, the conflict
+practically did not exist. In America people divorced; no foolish stigma
+was attached to the process, as at home; it was easy, it was
+respectable, it was done! He blessed his stars; what a marvelous stroke
+of luck that Beatrice had married an American and not an Englishman! He
+thought of the years of carking secrecy through which such things are
+dragged in England, and contrasted it with the neat despatch of the
+Yankee system. A few weeks of legal formalities, tiresome, of course,
+but trivial in view of the object, and then--a triumphant return to
+native shores, closing in a long vista of years with Beatrice at his
+side as Lady Clairloch and eventually as Lady Strathalmond! Sweet
+ultimate union of desire and decency! He gave thanks to Heaven in his
+fervent, simple-souled way.
+
+Nothing remained save to persuade Beatrice to take the crucial step.
+Well, there would be little trouble about that, judging by the way
+things were going....
+
+As for Beatrice, she was at first much too exhausted, both physically
+and mentally, to think much about Tommy one way or the other. That last
+month in New York had been a horribly enervating one, both
+meteorologically and domestically speaking. Scarcely had she been able
+to bring herself to face the impossibility of winning her husband's
+affection when the hot weather came on, the crushing heat of July, that
+burned every ounce of a desire to live out of one and made the whole
+world as great a desert as one's own home.... It was James who had
+suggested her going to Aunt Cecilia's--"because he didn't want me to die
+on his hands," Beatrice idly reflected, as she lay at last in a hammock
+on the broad verandah, luxuriating in the sea breeze that made a light
+wrap necessary.
+
+Then Tommy came back to the Wimbournes' to stay, and a regular daily
+routine was begun. Beatrice remained in her room all the morning, while
+Tommy played golf. They met at lunch and strolled or drove or watched
+people play tennis together in the afternoon. After dinner Beatrice
+generally ensconced herself with rugs on the verandah while Tommy buzzed
+about fetching footstools or cushions or talked to her or simply sat by
+her side. After a while she found that Tommy was quite good company, if
+you didn't take him seriously. Tommy--she supposed this was the real
+foundation of her liking for him--was her countryman. He knew things, he
+understood things, he looked at things as she had been brought up to
+look at them. Tommy, to take a small instance, never stifled a smile
+when she used such words as caliber or schedule, pronouncing them in the
+English way--the proper way, when all was said and done, for was not
+England the home and source of the English language?
+
+A few days later, as returning health quickened her perceptions, she
+realized that another thing that made Tommy agreeable was the fact that
+he strove honestly to please her. A pleasant change, at least!... She
+was well enough to be bitter again, it seemed. Not only was Tommy
+attentive in such matters as rugs and cushions, but he made definite
+efforts to fit his speech and his moods to her. He found that she liked
+to talk about England and he was at some pains to read up information
+about current events there, a thing he had not bothered much about since
+his departure from home. She had only to ask a leading question about a
+friend at home and he would gossip for a whole evening about their
+mutual acquaintance.
+
+Presently she began to discover--or fancy she discovered--hitherto
+unsounded depths--or what were, comparatively speaking, depths--in
+Tommy's character.
+
+"I say, how jolly the stars are to-night," he observed as he took his
+place by her one evening. "Never see the stars, somehow, but I think of
+tigers. Ever since I went to India. Went off on a tiger hunt, you know,
+out in the wilds somewhere, and we had to sleep out on a sort of grassy
+place with a fire in the middle of us, you know, to keep the beasties
+off. Well, I'd never seen a tiger, outside of the zoo, and I had 'em on
+the brain. I had a dream about meeting one, and it got so bad that I
+woke up at last with a shout, thinkin' a tiger was standin' just over me
+with his two dev'lish old eyes staring down into mine! Then I saw it was
+only two bright stars, rather close together. But I never can see stars
+now without thinkin' of tiger's eyes, though I met a tiger quite close
+on soon after that and his eyes weren't like that, at all....
+
+"Rather sad, isn't it?" he added after a moment.
+
+"Sad? Why?"
+
+"Well, other people have something better than an old beast's blinkers
+to compare stars to. Women's eyes, you know, and all that."
+
+There was something in the way he said this that made Beatrice reply
+"Oh, rot, Tommy!" even as she laughed. But his mood entertained her.
+
+"Tommy," she went on, "I believe you'd try, even so, to say something
+about my eyes and stars if I let you! Though anything less like stars
+couldn't well be imagined.... Honestly now, Tommy, do my eyes look more
+like stars or tiger's eyes?"
+
+"Well," answered Tommy with laborious truthfulness, "I suppose they
+really _look_ more like tiger's eyes. But they make me _think_ of
+stars," he added, with a perfect burst of romance and poetry.
+
+"And stars make you think of tiger's eyes! Oh, my poor Tommy!"
+
+"Well, they're dev'lish good-lookin'--you ought to feel jolly
+complimented!" He wanted to go on and say something about her acting
+like a tiger, but did not feel quite up to it, at such short notice. But
+they laughed companionably together.
+
+Yes, Tommy really amused her. There was much to like in the simplicity
+and kindliness of his nature; Harry had not been proof against it. And
+there was no harm in him. Beatrice could imagine no more innocuous
+pleasure than talking with Tommy, even if the conversation ran to
+eyes--her eyes. She was not bothered this time by any nervous
+reflections on what fields of amusement were suited to the innocent
+ramblings of a young wife. And if she was inclined to emphasize the
+pleasant part of her intercourse and minimize its danger--if indeed
+there was any--the reason was not far to seek. Even if things went to
+the last resort, what of it? What had she to lose--now?
+
+Nothing. Not one earthly thing. She was free to glean where she could.
+
+James would be glad--as glad as any one.
+
+Though of course it had not come to that yet....
+
+It was at about this time, however, that Tommy determined it should come
+to that. Just that. And though he was not one to rush matters, he
+decided that the sooner it came the better. He learned that James was to
+come up for a fortnight at the end of August--James' vacation had for
+some reason dwindled to that length of time--and he desired, in some
+obscure way, to have it decided before James was actually in the house.
+But the way had to be paved for the great suggestion and Tommy was not
+perceptibly quicker at paving than at other intellectual pursuits.
+
+One evening, however, he resolved to be a man of action and at least
+give an indication of the state of his own heart. With almost devilish
+craft he decided beforehand on the exact way he would bring the
+conversation round to the desired point.
+
+"I say, Beatrice," he began when they were settled in their customary
+place.
+
+"Yes, Tommy?"
+
+"How long do you suppose your aunt wants me kickin' my heels about
+here?"
+
+"Oh, as long as you want, I suppose. She hasn't told me she was tired of
+you."
+
+"Yes, but ..."
+
+"But what?"
+
+"I've been here a goodish while, you know. First the boat-race, then the
+cruise up here, then most of July and now most of August.... Stiffish,
+wot?... Don't want to wear out my welcome, you know...."
+
+Oh, but it was hard! Why on earth couldn't she do the obvious thing and
+say, "Why do you want to leave, Tommy?" or something like that? She
+seemed determined not to give him the least help, so he plunged
+desperately on.
+
+"Not that I _want_ to go, you know. Jolly pleasant here, and all
+that--rippin' golf, rippin' people, rippin' time altogether...."
+
+He felt himself perspiring profusely.
+
+"Beatrice, do you know _why_ I don't want to go?" he burst forth.
+
+Beatrice remained silent, lightly tapping the stone balustrade with her
+foot. When she spoke it was with perfect self-possession.
+
+"You're not going to be tiresome again, are you, Tommy?"
+
+"Yes!" said Tommy fervently.
+
+Again she paused. "Are you really fond of me, Tommy?" she asked
+unexpectedly.
+
+"Oh, Lord, yes!"
+
+"How fond?"
+
+"Oh ... frightf'ly!... What do you mean, how fond? You know! Do you want
+me to throw myself into the sea?... I would," he added in a low voice.
+
+"I didn't mean how much, exactly, but in what way? What do you mean by
+it all?"
+
+"What's the use of asking me? You know!"
+
+"No, I don't think I do.... Are you fond enough of me to desire
+everything for my good?"
+
+"Yes!"
+
+"Even at the sacrifice of yourself?"
+
+"Yes!"
+
+"Well, don't you think it's for my ultimate good as a married woman that
+you shouldn't try to make love to me?"
+
+"What the--Beatrice, don't torment me!"
+
+"I don't want to, but you must see how impossible it is, Tommy. You
+can't go on talking this way to me."
+
+"Why not?"
+
+"Why, because I'm _married_, obviously! Such things are--well, they
+simply aren't done!"
+
+Tommy waited a moment. "Do you mean to say, Beatrice...."
+
+"What?"
+
+"Can you truthfully tell me that you--that you aren't fond of me too?
+Just a little?"
+
+"Certainly!"
+
+"Rot! Utter, senseless rot! You know it isn't so!--"
+
+"Hush, Tommy! People will hear."
+
+"Let 'em hear, then. Beatrice!" he went on more quietly; "there's no use
+trying to take me in by that 'never knew' rot. Of course you knew, of
+course you cared. Why've you sat talking with me here, night after
+night, why've you been so uncommon jolly nice--nicer 'n you ever were
+before? Why did you ever let me get to this point?--Don't pretend you
+couldn't help it, either!" He paused a moment. "Why did you let me kiss
+you that night?"
+
+That shaft hit. She lost her head a little, and fell back on an old
+feminine ruse.
+
+"Oh, Tommy, you've no right to bring that up against me!" she said, with
+a little flurried break in her voice.
+
+Tommy's obvious answer was a quiet "Why not?" but he was not the kind
+who can give the proper answer at such moments. He was much more
+affected by Beatrice's evident perturbation than Beatrice was by his
+home truth, and was much slower in recovering.
+
+"I'm sorry, Beatrice," he went on again after a short silence, "but
+I--well, dash it all, I _care_, you know!"
+
+"You mustn't, Tommy."
+
+"But what if I jolly well can't help myself? After all, you know, you
+must give a fellah a chance. Of course, I want you to be happy, and I'd
+do anything I could to make you so, but--well, there it is! I'm _fond_
+of you, Beatrice!"
+
+She could smile quite calmly at him now, and did so. "Very well, Tommy,
+you're fond of me. Suppose we leave it there for the present.--And now I
+think I shall go in. It's getting chilly out here."
+
+Evidently it had not quite come to _that_ with her.
+
+Nor did it, for all Tommy could do, before James' arrival a few days
+later. Aunt Selina came with him; she had elected to spend the summer at
+her Vermont house, and found it, as she explained to her hostess, "too
+warm. The interior, you know." With which she closed her lips and gave
+the impression of charitably refraining from, richly deserved censure of
+the interior's shortcomings. Aunt Cecilia nodded with the most perfect
+understanding, and said she supposed it must have been warm in New York
+also.
+
+James allowed that it had.
+
+Aunt Selina said she had read in the paper that August was likely to be
+as hot as July there.
+
+Beatrice, just in order to be on the safe side, said that she felt like
+Rather a Brute.
+
+Tommy, with a vague idea of vindicating her, remarked that some days
+had been jolly warm in Bar Harbor, too.
+
+Aunt Cecilia, politely reproachful, said that he had no idea what an
+American summer could be, and that anyway, the nights had been cool.
+
+Tommy said oh yes, rather.
+
+Inwardly he was chafing. He felt his case lamentably weakened by the
+presence of James. He had not bargained for an abduction from under the
+husband's very nose. The thought of what he would have to go through now
+made him feel quite uncomfortable and even a little, just a little,
+suspicious that the case of decency had not been decisively settled.
+Still, there was nothing to do but stay and go through with it.
+
+But James, if he had but known it, was in reality his most powerful
+ally. Continued residence in sweltering New York had not tended to
+soften James, either in his attitude to the world in general or in his
+feeling toward his wife in particular. He now adopted a policy of
+outward affection. "When others were present he lost no opportunity of
+elaborately fetching and carrying for Beatrice, of making plans for her
+benefit, of rejoicing in her returning health. As she evinced a fondness
+for the evening air he made it a rule to sit with her on the verandah
+every night after dinner. Tommy could not very well oust him from this
+pleasant duty, and writhed beneath his calm exterior every time he
+watched them go out together."
+
+He need not have worried, however. The contrast of James' warmth in
+public to his wholly genuine coldness in private, together with the
+change from Tommy's sympathetic chatter to James' deathly silence on
+these evening sojourns had a much more potent effect on Beatrice than
+anything Tommy could have accomplished actively. James literally seemed
+to freeze the blood in Beatrice's veins. She became subject to fits of
+shivering, she required twice as many wraps as before; she began going
+to bed much earlier than previously. Ten o'clock now invariably found
+her in her room.
+
+One evening James was suddenly called upon to go out to dinner with Aunt
+Cecilia and fill an empty place at a friend's table, and Tommy took his
+place on the verandah. Tommy knew that this would be his best chance,
+possibly his last. The stars burned brightly in a clear warm sky, but
+there was no talk of tiger's eyes now. There was no talk at all for a
+long time; the pleasure of sheer propinquity was too great. Beatrice
+fairly luxuriated. She wondered why Tommy's silence affected her so
+differently from that of James....
+
+"Beatrice," began Tommy, but she switched him off.
+
+"No, please don't try to talk now, Tommy, there's a dear."
+
+They were silent again. The night stretched hugely before and above
+them; it was very still. A little night-breeze arose and touched their
+cheeks, but its message was only peace. Land and sea alike slept; not a
+sound reached them save the occasional clatter of distant wheels. Only
+the sky was awake, with its hundreds of winking eyes. Oh, these stars!
+Beatrice knew them so well. Antares, glowing like a dying coal, sank and
+fell below the hills, leaving the bright clusters of Sagittarius in
+dominion over the southern heavens. Fomalhaut rose in the southeast,
+shining with a dull chaotic luster, now green, now red. Fomalhaut, she
+remembered, was the southernmost of all the great stars visible in
+northern lands; its reign was the shortest of them all. And yet who
+could tell what might happen before that star finally fell from sight in
+the autumn?...
+
+"Beatrice!" at length began Tommy again, and this time she could not
+stop him. "Beatrice, we can't go on like this. We can't do it, I say, we
+can't! Don't you feel it?... That husband of yours.... Oh, Beatrice, I
+_can't_ stand by and watch it any longer!"
+
+He caught hold of her hand and clasped it between his. It remained limp
+there, press it as he would.... Then he saw that she was crying.
+
+He flung himself on his knees beside her, covering her hand with kisses.
+There was no conflict in him now, only a raging thirst for consummation.
+Harrow and Christchurch were thrown to the winds.
+
+"Beatrice," he whispered, "come away with me out of this damned
+place--away from the whole damned lot of them--frozen, church-going
+rotters! Let _me_ take care of you! I understand, Beatrice, I know how
+it is! Only come with me! Leave it all to me--no trouble, no worry,
+everything all right! _He'll_ be glad enough to free you--trust him! Oh,
+dear Beatrice...."
+
+He bent close over her, uttering all sort of impassioned foolishnesses.
+He kissed her, too, not once, but again and again, and with things he
+scarcely knew for kisses, so unlike were they to the lightly given and
+taken pledges of other days.
+
+And Beatrice was limp in his arms, as little able to stop him as to stop
+her tears.
+
+"Beatrice, we must go on _always_ like this! We _can't_ go back now, we
+can't let things go on as they were! Come away with me, Beatrice,
+to-night, now...."
+
+Beatrice thought how, only a year ago, not far from this very place,
+some one had used almost those very words to her, and the thought made
+her weep afresh. But her tears were not all tears of misery.
+
+At last she dried her eyes and pushed him gently away.
+
+"No, no more, Tommy--dear Tommy, you must stop. Really, Tommy! I don't
+know how I could let you go on this way--I seem to be so weak and silly
+these days.... I must take hold of myself...."
+
+"But, Beatrice--"
+
+"No, Tommy--not any more now. I know, I know, dear, but it can't go on
+any more. Now," she added with a momentary relapse of weakness. Then she
+pulled herself together again. "You must be perfectly quiet and good,
+now, Tommy, if you stay here. I've got to have a chance to get over this
+before we go in. It's very important--there's a lot at stake. Just sit
+there and don't speak a word. You can help me that way."
+
+They sat quietly together for some time. At last Beatrice rose.
+
+"I think I'll go," she said. "I shall be all right now."
+
+"But we can't leave it like this!" protested Tommy. "Beatrice, you can't
+go up there now...."
+
+"Can't I? I'm going, though."
+
+"No, you've got to give me an answer, Beatrice!"
+
+She turned to him for a moment before walking off. "I can't tell you
+anything now, Tommy. I don't know. Do you see? I honestly don't know.
+You'll have to wait."
+
+The hall seemed rather dark as they came into it; the others must have
+gone to bed. They locked doors and turned out lights and walked upstairs
+in the dark. They parted at the top with a whispered good-night, almost
+conspiratorial in effect, Beatrice found James still dressed and
+sitting under a droplight, reading. He put down his book as she entered
+and looked at his watch, which lay on the table by him.
+
+"After half-past twelve," he said. "Quite a pleasant evening."
+
+Beatrice made no observation.
+
+"The air has done you good," he went on. "We shall soon see the roses in
+your cheeks again."
+
+"If you have anything to say, James, perhaps you'd better go ahead and
+say it."
+
+"I? Oh, dear no! Any words of mine would be quite superfluous. The
+situation is complete as it is."
+
+Beatrice merely waited. She knew she would not wait in vain, nor did
+she.
+
+"Only, after this perhaps you'll save yourself the trouble of making up
+elaborate denials. You and your Tommy!..."
+
+He got up and started walking up and down the room with slow, measured
+steps. To Beatrice, still sitting quietly on the edge of her bed, the
+fall of his feet on the carpeted floor sounded like the inexorable tick
+of fate for once made audible to human ears. The greatest things hung in
+the balance at this moment; his next words would decide both their
+destinies for the rest of their mortal life. She thought she knew what
+they would be, but if there were to sound in them the faintest echo of a
+regret for older and better times she was ready, even at this last
+moment, to throw her whole being into an effort to help restore them.
+Tommy's passionate whisper still echoed in her ears, Tommy's kisses were
+scarcely cold upon her cheeks, but Tommy was not in her heart.
+
+At last James spoke. At the first sound of his voice Beatrice knew.
+
+"I shall receive a telegram calling me back to town to-morrow, in time
+for me to catch the evening train...."
+
+She was so occupied with the ultimate meaning of his words that their
+immediate meaning escaped her. She raised her eyes in question.
+
+"You're going away to-morrow? Why?"
+
+"Yes. I prefer not to remain here and watch it going on under my very
+eyes. It's a silly prejudice, no doubt, but you must pardon it...."
+
+He continued his pacing, keeping his eyes fixed on the floor in front of
+him. Occasionally he uttered a few sentences in the same cold, lifeless
+tone.
+
+"It's all over now, at any rate. I had hoped we might be able to tide
+these things over through these first years, till we got old enough to
+stop caring about them, but I was wrong. You can't govern things like
+that.... I always had a theory that any two sensible people could get
+along together in marriage, even though they didn't care much about each
+other, if they made up their minds to take a reasonable point of view;
+but I was wrong there too. Marriage is a bigger thing than I thought. I
+was wrong all around....
+
+"Just a year--not even that. I should have said it could go longer than
+that, even at the worst....
+
+"It's all in the blood, I suppose--rotten, decadent blood, in both of
+you. I don't blame you, especially. Your father's daughter--I might have
+known. I suppose I oughtn't to blame your father much more--it's the
+curse of your whole civilization. Only it's hard to confine one's anger
+to civilizations in such cases....
+
+"The strange part about you is that you gave no sign of it whatever
+beforehand. I had no suspicion, at all. I don't think any one could have
+told....
+
+"There's just one thing I should like to suggest. I don't know whether
+it will be comprehensible to you, but I have a certain respect for my
+family name and a sort of desire to spare the members of the family as
+much as possible. So that, although you're perfectly free to act exactly
+as you wish, I should appreciate it if you--if you could suspend
+operations as long as you remain under my uncle's roof. Though it's just
+as you like, of course.
+
+"I shall be in New York. You can let me know your plans there when you
+are ready. I suppose you'll want to sue, in which case it can't be done
+in New York state; you'll have to establish a residence somewhere else.
+Or if you prefer to have me sue, all right. That would save time, of
+course.... Let me know what you decide.
+
+"Well, we might as well go to bed, I suppose. It will be the last
+time...."
+
+Beatrice watched him as he took off his coat and waistcoat and threw
+them over a chair and then attacked his collar and tie. Then she arose
+from where she sat and addressed him.
+
+"I don't suppose there's any use in my saying anything. We might get
+quarreling again, and naturally you wouldn't believe me, anyway. I agree
+with you that it's impossible for us to live together any longer. But I
+can't forbear from telling you, James, that you've done me a great
+wrong. You've said things ... oh, you've said things so wrong to-night
+that it seems as if God himself--if there is a God--would speak from
+heaven and show you how wrong you are! But there's no use in mere human
+beings saying anything at a time like this....
+
+"You've been a very wicked man to-night, James. May God forgive you for
+it."
+
+She turned away with an air of finality and started to prepare for bed.
+She hung up her evening wrap in the closet and walked over to her
+bureau. She took off what jewelry she wore and put it carefully away,
+and then she seemed to hesitate. She stood looking at her reflection in
+the mirror a moment, but found no inspiration there. She walked
+inconclusively across the room and then back. Finally she stopped near
+James, with her back toward him.
+
+"It seems an absurd thing to ask," she said, "but would you mind? As you
+say, it's the last time...."
+
+"Certainly," said James.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XII
+
+A ROD OF IRON
+
+
+It is all very well to be suddenly called back to town by telegram on
+important business, but suppose the business is wholly fictitious--what
+are you going to do with yourself when you get there? Especially if you
+have your own reasons for not wanting Business to know that you have
+returned before the appointed time, and consequently are shy about
+appearing in clubs and places where it would be likely to get wind of
+your presence? And if, moreover, your apartment has been closed and all
+the servants sent off on a holiday?
+
+That is a fair example of the mean way sordid detail has of encroaching
+on the big things of life and destroying what little pleasure we might
+take in their dramatic value. When he arrived in New York James had the
+chastened, exalted feeling of one who has just passed a great and
+disagreeable crisis and got through with it, on the whole, very
+tolerably well. What he wanted most was to return to the routine of his
+old life and, so far as was possible, drown the nightmare recollection
+in a flood of work. Instead of which he found idleness and domestic
+inconvenience staring him in the face. He also saw that he was going to
+be lonely. He walked through the dark and empty rooms of his apartment
+and reflected what a difference even the mute presence of a servant
+would make. He longed whole-heartedly for Stodger--for Stodger since we
+last saw him has been promoted into manhood by nature and into
+full-fledged chauffeurhood--with the official appellation of McClintock,
+if you please--by James. With Stodger, who still retained jurisdiction
+over his suits and shoes, James was accustomed, when they were alone
+together, to throw off his role of employer and embark on technical
+heart-to-heart talks on differential gears and multiple-disc clutches
+and kindred intimate subjects. But Stodger was tasting the joys of leave
+of absence on full pay, James knew not where.
+
+He sought at first to beguile the hours with reading. He selected a
+number of works he had always meant to read but never quite got around
+to: a novel or two of Dickens, one of Thackeray, one of Meredith, "The
+Origin of Species," Carlyle's "French Revolution," "The Principles of
+Political Economy" and "Tristram Shandy." Steadily his eyes sickened of
+print; by the time he came to Mill his brain refused to absorb and
+visions of the very things he wished most to be free from hovered
+obstinately over the pages. "Tristram Shandy" was even more unbearable;
+he conceived an insane dislike for those interminable, ineffectual old
+people and their terrestrial-minded creator. At last he flung the book
+into the fireplace and strode despairingly out into the streets.
+
+Oh, Beatrice--would she never send him word, put things definitely in
+motion, in no matter what direction? Oh, this confounded brain of his;
+would it never stop trying to re-picture old scenes, revive dead
+feelings, animate unborn regrets? What had he done but what he should
+have done, what he could not help doing, what it had been written that
+he should do since the first moment when thoughts above those of a beast
+were put into man's brain? Oh, the curse of a brain that would not live
+up to its own laws, but continually kept flashing those visions of
+outworn things across his eyes--not his two innocent physical eyes,
+which saw nothing but what was put before them, but that redoubtable,
+inescapable, ungovernable inward sight which, as he remembered some poet
+had said, was "the bliss of solitude." The bliss of solitude--how like a
+driveling ass of a poet!...
+
+The next day he gave up and went back to his office as usual, saying
+that he had returned from his vacation a few days ahead of time in order
+to transact some business that had come up unexpectedly. Just what the
+business was he did not explain; he was now the head of McClellan's New
+York branch and did not have to explain things.
+
+So the hours between nine and five ceased to be an intolerable burden,
+and the hours from five till bedtime could be whiled away at the club in
+discussing the baseball returns. He could always find some one who was
+willing to talk about professional baseball. He remembered how he had
+once similarly talked golf with Harry....
+
+That left only the night hours to be accounted for, and sleep accounted
+for most of them, of course. Sometimes. At other times sleep refused to
+come and nothing stood between him and the inmost thoughts of his brain,
+or worse, the thoughts that he did not think, never would think, as long
+as a brain and a will remained to him.... Such times he would always end
+by turning on the light and reading. They gave him a feeling like that
+of which he had spoken to Beatrice about being caught in a trap,
+deepened and intensified; a feeling to be avoided at any price.
+
+At last he heard, not indeed from Beatrice, but from Aunt Selina.
+"Beatrice arrives New York noon Thursday; for Heaven's sake do
+something," she telegraphed. James knew what that meant, and thanked
+Aunt Selina from the bottom of his heart. No scandal--nothing that would
+reflect on the family name! So Beatrice had determined not to accede to
+his last request; she was bent on rushing madly into her Tommy's arms,
+perhaps at the very station itself? Oh, no, nothing of _that_ sort, if
+you please; he would be at the station himself to see to it.
+
+It was extraordinary how much getting back to work had benefited him. He
+was no longer subject to the dreadful fits of depression that had made
+his idleness a torment. Only keep going, only have something to occupy
+hands and mind during every waking hour, and all would yet be well.
+Beatrice and all that she implied had only to be kept out of his mind to
+be rendered innocuous; all that was needed to keep her out was a little
+will power, and he had plenty of that. As for the sleeping hours--well,
+he had come to have rather a dread of the night time. No doubt some
+simple medical remedy, however, would put that all right--sulphonal, or
+something of the sort. He would consult a doctor. No unprescribed drugs
+for him--no careless overdose, or anything of that sort, no indeed! The
+time had yet to come when James Wimbourne could not keep pace with the
+strong ones of the earth and walk with head erect under all the burdens
+that a malicious fate might heap upon him.
+
+In such a vein as this ran his thoughts as he walked from his apartment
+to the station that Thursday morning. It was a cool day in early
+September; a fresh easterly breeze blew in from the Sound bringing with
+it the first hint of autumn and seeming to infuse fresh blood into his
+veins. As he walked down Madison Avenue even the familiar sounds of the
+city, the clanging of the trolley cars, the tooting of motor horns, the
+rumbling of drays, even the clatter of steam drills or rivet machines
+seemed like outward manifestations of the life he felt surging anew
+within him. Was it not indeed something very like a new life that was to
+begin for him to-day, this very morning? Not the kind of new life of
+which the poets babbled, no youthful dream, but something far solider
+and nobler, a mature reconstruction, a courageous gathering together, or
+rather regathering--that made it all the finer--of the fragments of an
+outworn existence. That was what human life was, a succession of
+repatchings and rebuildings. He who rebuilt with the greatest promptness
+and courage and ingenuity was the best liver.
+
+Viewed in this broad and health-bringing light the last months of his
+life appeared less of a failure than he had been wont to think. He
+became able to look back on this year of destiny-fighting as, if not
+actually successful, better than successful, since it led on to better
+things and gave him a chance to show his mettle, his power of
+reconstruction. He had made a mistake, no doubt; but he was willing to
+recognize it as such and do his best to rectify it. Beatrice and he were
+not cut out for team-mates in the business of destiny-fighting; it had
+become evident that they could both get on better alone. Well, at last
+they had come to the point of parting; to the point, he hoped, of being
+able to part like fellow-soldiers whose company is disbanded, in
+friendship and good humor, without recrimination or any of that
+detestable God-forgive-you business....
+
+He wished the newsboys would not shout so loud; their shrill uncanny
+shrieks interrupted his line of thought, in spite of himself. It didn't
+matter if they were calling extras; he never bought extras. Or was it
+only a regular edition? They might be announcing the trump of doom for
+all one could understand.
+
+It was too bad that Beatrice had not arrived at anything like his own
+state of sanity and calmness. This business of eloping--oh, it was so
+ludicrous, so amateurish! That was not the way to live. He hoped he
+might be able to make her see this. It would be easier, of course, if
+Tommy were not at the station; one could not tell what arrangements a
+woman in her condition might make. But he did not fear Tommy; there
+would be no scene. A few firm words from him and they would see things
+in their proper light. He pictured himself and Beatrice repairing sanely
+and amicably to a lawyer's office together;--"Please tell us the
+quickest and easiest way to be divorced...."
+
+As he approached Forty-second Street the traffic grew heavier and
+noisier. He could not think properly now; watching for a chance to
+traverse the frequent cross streets took most of his attention. And
+those newsboys--! Why on earth should those newspaper fellows send out
+papers marked "Late Afternoon Edition" at half-past eleven in the
+morning? Oh, it was an extra, was it? A fire on the East Side, no doubt,
+two people injured--he knew the sort of thing. If those newspaper
+fellows would have the sense only to get out an extra when something
+_really_ important had happened somebody might occasionally buy them.
+
+Seeing that he had plenty of time he walked slowly round to the
+Forty-second Street entrance instead of going in the side way. He
+observed the great piles of building and rebuilding that were going on
+in the neighborhood, and compared the reconstruction of the quarter to
+his own case. He wondered why they delayed in making the Park Avenue
+connecting bridge--such an integral part of the scheme. If _he_ had
+shilly-shallied like that, a nice mess he would have made of his life!
+He gazed up at the great new front of the station and bumped into a
+stentorian newsboy. Everywhere those confounded newsboys--!
+
+He was actually in the station before he had any suspicion. There was
+about the usual number of people in the great waiting-room, but there
+seemed to be more hurrying than usual. He saw one or two people dart
+across the space, and observed that they did not disappear into the
+train gates.... Had he or had he not caught the word "wreck" on one of
+those flaunting headlines in the street? He turned off suddenly to a
+news stand and bought a paper.
+
+There it all was, in black and white--or rather red and white. Red
+letters, five inches high.
+
+Train 64, the Maine Special, had run through an open switch and turned
+turtle somewhere near Stamford. Fifteen reported killed, others injured.
+No names given.
+
+The Maine Special. Beatrice's train.
+
+He knew that he must devote all his efforts at this juncture to keep
+himself from thinking. Until he knew, that was. He did not even allow
+himself to name the thoughts he was afraid of giving birth to. Anxiety,
+hope, fear, premonition, horror, satisfaction, pity--he must put them
+all away from him. There was no telling what future horrors he might be
+led into if he gave way ever so little to any one of them. The one thing
+to do now was to _find out_.
+
+This was not so easy. He went first to the bulletin board where the
+arrivals of trains were announced, and found a small and anxious-eyed
+crowd gazing at the few uninforming statements marked in white chalk.
+There was nothing to be learned from them. He spoke to an official, who
+was equally reticent, and spoke vaguely of a relief train.
+
+"Do you mean to say there's no way of finding out the names of those
+killed before the relief train comes in?" he asked.
+
+"We can't tell you what we don't know!" replied the man, already too
+inured to such questions to show feeling of any sort. He then directed
+James to the office of the railroad press agent, on the eighth floor.
+
+James started to ask another question, but was interrupted by a young
+woman who hurried up to the official. She held a little girl of seven or
+eight by the hand, and the eyes of both were streaming with tears. The
+sight struck James as odd in that cold, impersonal, schedule-run place,
+and he swerved as he walked off to look at them. He turned again
+abruptly and went his way, stifling an involuntary rise of a feeling
+which might have been very like envy, if he had allowed himself to think
+about it....
+
+And no one else had even noticed the two.
+
+He found no one in the press office except a few newspaper reporters who
+sat about on tables with their hats balanced on the backs of their
+heads. They eyed him suspiciously but said nothing. An inner door opened
+and a young man in his shirtsleeves, a stenographer, entered the room
+bearing a number of typewritten flimsies. The reporters pounced upon
+these and rushed away in search of telephones.
+
+James asked the young man if he could see Mr. Barker, the agent.
+
+The young man said Mr. Barker was busy, and asked James what paper he
+represented.
+
+James said none.
+
+On what business, then, did James want to see Mr. Barker?
+
+To learn the fate of some one on the Maine Special.
+
+A friend?
+
+A wife.
+
+The stenographer dropped his lower jaw, but said nothing. He immediately
+opened the inner door and led James up to an older man who sat dictating
+to a young woman at a typewriter. He was plump and clean-shaven and very
+neat about the collar and tie; James did not realize that this was the
+agent until the younger man told him so.
+
+"My dear sir," replied Mr. Barker to James' question, "I know absolutely
+no more about it than you do. If I did, I'd tell you. The boys have been
+hammering away at me for the past hour, and I've given 'em every word
+that's come in. These two names are all I've got so far." He handed
+James a flimsy.
+
+James' eye fell upon the names of two men, both described as traveling
+salesmen. He went back to the outer office and sat down to think. It
+was, of course, extremely improbable that Beatrice had been killed.
+There had been, say, two hundred people on the train, of whom fifteen
+were known to have died--something like seven and a half per cent. Two
+of these were accounted for; that left thirteen. He wondered how long it
+would be before those thirteen names came in.
+
+The room began to fill up again; the reporters returned and new recruits
+constantly swelled their number. From their talk James gathered why
+there was such a dearth of detailed news. The wreck occurring during the
+waking hours of the day had been learned, as far as the mere fact of its
+occurrence was concerned, and published within half an hour after it had
+happened. It naturally took longer than this to do even the first work
+of clearing the wreckage and the compiling of the lists of dead and
+injured would require even more time. With the results that interested
+friends and relations, learning of the wreck but none of its
+particulars, were rushing pell-mell to headquarters to get the first
+news. One young man described in vivid terms certain things he had just
+witnessed down in the concourse.
+
+"Best sob stuff in months," was his one comment.
+
+Just then one of their number, a slightly older man and evidently a
+leader among them, emerged from the inner office.
+
+"What about it, Wilkins?" they greeted him in chorus. "Slip it, Wilkins,
+slip it over! Give us the dope! Any more stiffs yet? Come on, out with
+it--no beats on this story, you know...."
+
+Harpies!
+
+The outer door opened and two women burst into the room. The first of
+them, a tall, stout, good-featured Jewess, clothed in deep mourning, was
+wildly gasping and beating her hands on her breast.
+
+"Can any of you tell me about a young man called Lindenbaum?" she asked
+between her sobs. "Lindenbaum--a young man--on Car fifty-six he was! Has
+anything been heard of him--anything?"
+
+The reporters promptly told her that nothing had. She sank into a chair,
+covered her face with her hands and burst into an uncontrollable fit of
+weeping. The younger woman, evidently her daughter, stood by trying to
+comfort her. At length the other raised her veil and wearily wiped her
+eyes. James studied her face; her sunken eyes no less than her black
+clothes gave evidence of an older sorrow. Moved by a sudden impulse he
+went over and spoke to her, telling her that her son was in all
+probability safe and basing his assurance on the calm mathematical
+grounds of his own reasoning. The woman did not understand much of what
+he said, but the quiet tones of his voice seemed to comfort her. She
+rose and started to go.
+
+"Thank you," she said to James, "you're a nice boy.--Oh, I do hope God
+will spare him to me--only nineteen, he is, and the only man I have
+left, all I have left...."
+
+Sob stuff!
+
+Scarcely had the door closed behind her when a business man of about
+forty-five, prosperous, well-dressed and unemotional-looking, came in
+and asked if the name of his daughter was on the list of the dead. Some
+one said it was not.
+
+"Thank God," said the man in a weak voice. He raised his hand to his
+forehead, closed his eyes and fell over backward in a dead faint. When
+he came to he had to be told that the names of only three of the dead
+were as yet known.
+
+These were the first of a long series of scenes such as James would not
+have thought possible off the stage. He had never seen people mastered
+by an overwhelming anxiety before; it was interesting to learn that they
+acted in such cases much as they were generally supposed to. Anxiety, he
+reflected, was perhaps the most intolerable emotion known to man. Yet as
+he sat there calmly waiting for the arrival of the relief train he could
+have wished that he might have tasted the full horror of it.... No, that
+was mere hysteria, of course. But there was something holy about such a
+feeling; it was like a sort of cleansing, a purifying by fire.... Was it
+that his soul was not worthy of such a purifying? Oh, hysterics again!
+
+But the purifying of others went on before his eyes as he sat trying not
+to think or feel and reading the bulletins as they came out from the
+inner office. Grotesquely unimportant, those bulletins, or so they must
+seem to those concerned for the fate of friends!
+
+"General Traffic Manager Albert S. Holden learned by telegram of the
+accident to Train 64 near Stamford this morning and immediately hurried
+to Stamford by special train. Mr. Holden will conduct an investigation
+into the causes of the accident in conjunction with Coroner Francis X.
+Willis of Stamford."
+
+"One young woman among the injured was identified as Miss Fannie Schmidt
+of Brooklyn. She was taken to the Stamford hospital suffering from
+contusions."
+
+"Patrick F. McGuire, the engineer of Train 64 which ran through an open
+switch near Stamford this morning, has been in the employ of the Company
+for many years. He was severely cut about the face and head. He has been
+engineer of the Maine Special since the 23rd of last May, prior to which
+he had worked as engineer on Train 102. He began his service in the
+Company in 1898 as fireman on the Naugatuck Division...."
+
+"Vice-President Henry T. Blomberg gave out in New Haven this morning the
+following statement concerning the accident at Stamford...."
+
+"Whew!" exclaimed a reporter, issuing suddenly from a telephone booth
+near James, "this is _some_ story, believe me!" He took off his hat and
+wiped his forehead. He was a young man and looked somewhat more like a
+human being than the others.
+
+"Oh, you'd call this harrowing, would you?" said James.
+
+"Well," said the other apologetically, "I've only been on the job a few
+months and this human interest stuff sort of gets me. This is the first
+big one of the kind I've been on. I guess there's enough human interest
+here to-day for any one, though!"
+
+"There doesn't seem to be enough to inconvenience you," observed James.
+"Not you, so much, but--" with a wave toward the reporters'
+table--"those--the others."
+
+The young man laughed slightly. "Oh, you can stand pretty near anything
+after you've been on the job for a while! You see, when you're on the
+news end of a thing like this you don't have time to get worked up. When
+you're hot foot after every bit of stuff you can get, and have to hustle
+to the telephone to send it in the same minute, so's not to get beaten
+on it, you don't bother about whether people have hysterics or not. You
+simply can't--you haven't got time! That's why these fellows all seem so
+calm--it's _business_ to them, you see. They're not really hard-hearted,
+or anything like that. Gosh, it's lucky for me, though, that I'm here on
+business, if I have to be here at all!"
+
+"You mean you're glad you don't know any one on the train?"
+
+"Oh, Lord yes, that--but I'm glad I have something to keep me busy, as
+long as I'm here. If I were just standing round, watching, say--gosh, I
+wouldn't answer for what I'd do! I'd probably have hysterics myself,
+just from seeing the others!"
+
+This gave James something more to think about.
+
+He saw now that he had misjudged the reporters; even these harpies gave
+him something to envy. If one was going to feel indifferent at a time
+like this it would be well to feel at least an honest professional
+indifference.... But that was not all. Had not this young man admitted
+that the mere sight of such suffering would have stirred him to the
+depths if he did not have his business to think of, and that without
+being personally concerned in the accident? While he himself, with every
+reason to suffer every anxiety in this crucial moment, was quite the
+calmest person in the room, able to lecture a hysterical mother on the
+doctrine of chances! Was he dead to all human feeling?
+
+There was a moment of calm in the room, which was broken by the
+entrance of a tall blonde young man--a college undergraduate, to all
+appearances.
+
+"Can any of you tell me if Car 1058 was on the Maine Special?" he asked
+the reporters.
+
+No one had heard of Car 1058. Research among the bulletins failed to
+reveal any mention of it.
+
+"What's the name of the person you're interested in?" asked some one.
+"We might be able to tell you something."
+
+"Oh, it wasn't any _person_," the young man explained; "it was my dog I
+was looking for. I've found he was shipped on Car 1058. A water spaniel,
+he was. I don't suppose you've heard anything?"
+
+A moment of silence followed this announcement, and then one of the
+reporters began to laugh. There was nothing funny about it, of course,
+except the contrast. They all knew it was by the merest accident that
+Fannie Schmidt's contusions had been flashed over the wires rather than
+the fate of the water spaniel.
+
+The youth flushed to the roots of his yellow hair.
+
+"Oh, yes, it's very funny, of course," he said, and stalked out of the
+room. But there shone another light in his eyes than the gleam of anger.
+
+"Say, there's copy in that," observed one reporter, and straightway they
+were all busy writing.
+
+James had smiled with the others, but his merriment was short-lived.
+This indeed was the finishing stroke. That young fellow actually was
+more concerned about his dog....
+
+The relief train was due to arrive at 1:30, and shortly before that hour
+there was a general adjournment to the concourse. A crowd had already
+gathered before the gate through which the survivors would presently
+file. James looked at the waiting people and shuddered slightly. He
+preferred not to wait there.
+
+Passing by a news stand he bought the latest extra. It was curious to
+see the contents of those press agent flimsies transcribed on the
+flaring columns as the livest news obtainable. Well, all that would be
+changed shortly.... His own name caught his eye; a paragraph was devoted
+to telling how he had waited in the station, and why. "Mr. Wimbourne was
+entirely calm and self-contained," the item ended. Calm and
+self-contained. And those people took it for a virtue!...
+
+The gates were opened to allow the friends of passengers on the
+ill-fated train to pass through to the platform. The reporters were
+unusually silent as James walked by. James knew what their silence
+meant, and writhed under it.
+
+The platform was dark and chilly. Like a tomb, almost.... The idea was
+suggestive, but his heart was stone against it. The thought of seeing
+Beatrice walking up the platform in a moment was enough to check any
+possible indulgence of feeling. That was the way such things always had
+been rewarded, with him. He could not remember having entertained one
+such emotional impulse in the past that had not led him into fresh
+misery.
+
+He had waited nearly two hours and there was absolutely no indication as
+to whether Beatrice had suffered or not. He had telephoned several times
+to his flat, to which the servants had lately returned, and to his
+office and had learned that no word had been received at either place.
+That meant nothing. Five names of people killed had been received when
+he left the press office, and hers was not among them. But the number of
+dead was said to be larger than was at first expected; it would probably
+reach into the twenties. Part of one Pullman, it appeared, had been
+entirely destroyed by fire, and several people were believed to have
+perished in it. There was no telling, of course, till the train came in.
+The chances were still overwhelmingly in favor of Beatrice's safety, of
+course....
+
+One torment had been spared him: Tommy had not turned up. There would be
+no scene; he would not have to look on while his wife and her lover,
+maddened by the pangs of separation and suspense, rushed into each
+other's arms.... Ah, no; he would not deceive himself. His relief at
+Tommy's absence was really due to the fact that he had been spared the
+sight of some one genuinely and whole-heartedly anxious about Beatrice's
+fate.
+
+The train crawled noiselessly into the station. James posted himself
+near the inner end of the platform, so as to be sure not to miss her.
+Soon groups began to file by of people laughing and crying and embracing
+each other, as unconscious to appearances as children. How many happy
+reunions, how many quarrels and misunderstandings mended forever by an
+hour or two of intense suffering!... No, that was a foolish thought, of
+course.
+
+Presently he saw her, or rather a hat which he recognized as hers,
+moving up the platform. He braced himself and walked forward with
+lowered eyes, trying to think of something felicitous to say. He dared
+not look up till she was quite near. At last he raised a hand toward
+her, opened his mouth to speak, and found himself staring into the face
+of a perfectly strange woman.
+
+The mischance unnerved him. He lost control of himself and darted
+aimlessly to and fro through the crowd for a few moments, like a rabbit.
+Then he rushed back to the gate and stood there watching till the last
+passenger had left the platform and white shrouded things on wheels
+began to appear.
+
+He saw a uniformed official and addressed him, asking where he could
+find a complete list of the dead and injured. The man silently handed
+him a paper. James ran his eyes feverishly down the list of names. There
+it was--Wim--no, no, Wilson. Her name was not there. He raised his eyes
+questioningly to the official.
+
+"No, that list is not complete," said the man.
+
+He led James away to one or two other uniformed officials, and then to a
+man who was not in uniform. At length it was arranged; James was to take
+the first train for Stamford. Some one gave him a pass.
+
+But before he went he telegraphed to Bar Harbor. It was necessary to
+have conclusive proof that Beatrice was on the train. As he recrossed
+the concourse, now converted into a happy hunting ground for the
+reporters, he caught sight of Mrs. Lindenbaum, the anxious mother. She
+was alone, but the expression on her face left no doubt as to how the
+day had turned out for her. He stopped and spoke to her:
+
+"Your son is all right, is he?"
+
+"Yes!" She turned toward him a face fairly transfigured with joy. "He
+wasn't hurt at all--just scratched a little by broken glass. He and my
+daughter have just gone to telephone to some people.... What do you
+think--he was the first one in his car to break open a window and let
+the smoke out! He reached up with his umbrella and smashed it open--that
+was how he got out. And he dragged out three people who were
+unconscious...." She stopped and laughed. "You must excuse me--I'm
+foolish!"
+
+"Not at all," replied James. "I'm so glad--" He started to move on, but
+the woman stopped him, suddenly remembering.
+
+"But what about--I do hope--" she began.
+
+"No," said James quietly. "I'm sorry to say my news is bad." He had
+little doubt now as to the verdict, but bad--! Was it? Oh, was it?
+
+ * * * * *
+
+It was early evening before he returned. His expedition had been painful
+in the extreme, but wholly without definite results. There had been one
+or two charred fragments of clothing that might or might not have
+been.... It was too horrible to think much about.
+
+He knew for certain no more than when he started out, but conviction was
+only increased, for all that. What was there left to imagine but what
+that heap of cinders suggested? There was just one other chance, one
+bare possibility; Beatrice might not have left Bar Harbor, at any rate
+not on that train. The answer to his telegram would settle that.
+
+He found the yellow envelope awaiting him on the hall table. He lifted
+it slowly and paused a moment before opening it, wondering if he could
+trust himself to hope or feel anything in this final instant of
+uncertainty. Anything! Any human feeling to break this shell of
+indifference....
+
+No use. Something in his brain refused to work.
+
+He tore open the envelope. "Beatrice left last night on the seven
+o'clock ferry; nothing more known. Please wire latest news," he read.
+
+Well, that settled it, at any rate. He knew what the facts were; now he
+had only to bring himself face to face with them. Yet still he found
+himself dodging the issue, letting his thoughts wander into obscure
+by-paths. His brain was strangely lethargic, his heart more so, if
+possible, than in the station this morning. It was not that he felt
+bitter or cruel; he explained the situation to the maid, as she served
+him his dinner, with great tact and consideration, and afterward
+arranged certain matters of detail with all his usual care and
+foresight. It was only when he looked into himself that he met darkness.
+
+Uncle James, who was in town on business, dropped in during the evening.
+James told him the results of his labors and watched the first
+hopefulness of his uncle's face freeze gradually into conviction.
+
+"I see, I see," said Uncle James at last. "There's nothing more to be
+done, then? Any use I can be, in any way--"
+
+"Thank you," replied James gravely, "there's nothing more to be done."
+
+Uncle James rose to go and then hesitated. "Well, there it is," he said;
+"it's just got to be faced, I suppose. A major sorrow--the great blow of
+a lifetime. Not many of us are called upon to bear such great things,
+James. I never have been, and never shall, now. We feel less sharply as
+we grow older.... It's a great sorrow, a great trial--but I can't help
+feeling, somehow, that it's also a great chance.... But I'm only
+harrowing you--I'm sorry." He turned and went out without another word.
+
+Presently James wandered into the bedroom that had once been hers. He
+turned on all the lights as if in the hope that illuminating the places
+she had been familiar with would bring the memory of her more sharply to
+his mind. Yes, it all seemed very natural; he would not say but what it
+made death less terrible. The fact that her chair was in its accustomed
+place before her dressing table did somehow make it easier to remember
+the events of that afternoon. He sat down before the dressing table.
+There was little on it to bring an intimate recollection of her to his
+mind; most of her small possessions she had naturally taken away with
+her to Bar Harbor. He opened a drawer and discovered nothing but a small
+box of hairpins.
+
+He took them out and handled them gently for a moment. Hairpins! Even
+so, they brought her back more vividly than anything had yet done--the
+soft dark hair sweeping back from the forehead, the lovely arch of her
+nose, and all the rest of it.... He supposed she ought to seem aloof and
+unapproachable, now that she was dead, but it was not so at all. He
+remembered her only as feminine and appealing. She certainly had been
+very beautiful. And of all that beauty there remained only--hairpins.
+The fact of human mortality pressed suddenly down on him. Some time, a
+few days or a few decades hence, he would cease to exist, even as
+Beatrice, and nothing would remain of him but--Not hairpins, indeed, but
+hardly anything more substantial. A society pin, a little gold
+football, a few papers bearing his signatures in McClellan's files....
+
+Poor Beatrice!
+
+A feeling touched his heart at last; one of pity. Poor Beatrice! Fate
+had treated her harshly, far beneath her deserts. She had sinned.... Had
+she? It was not for him to settle that; she had been human, even as he.
+She had been frail; leave it at that. The strongest of us are weak at
+times. Only most of us are given a chance to regain our strength, pull
+ourselves together after a fall, make something out of ourselves at
+last. This opportunity had been denied Beatrice. Surely it was hard that
+she should be cut off thus in the depth of her frailty, at the lowest
+ebb of all that was good in her. The weakest deserved better than that.
+
+So he sat meditating on the tragedy of her life as he might, in an idle
+mood, have brooded over the story of a lovely and unhappy queen of long
+ago, some appealing, wistful figure of the past with whom he had nothing
+in common but mortality. The sense of his own detachment from the story
+of his wife's life struck him at last and roused him to fresh pity. He
+went into his dressing room and fetched the photograph of her that he
+had thought it advisable to keep on his bureau. He stood it up on her
+dressing table and sat down again to study it. Poor Beatrice! It was
+pathetic that she, so young, so beautiful, so lonely, should be
+unmourned, since his feeling could not properly be described as
+mourning....
+
+"Poor Beatrice," he murmured, "is pity all I can feel for you?"
+
+A bell sounded somewhere, the front door bell. He scarcely noticed it.
+
+No, there was one person to mourn her, of course--Tommy. The thought of
+him sent a sudden shudder through him. Tommy! He wondered if he could
+bring himself to be decent to Tommy in case he should turn up.... Just
+like him, the nauseous little brute!
+
+No, that thought was unworthy of him. What particular grudge had he
+against Tommy? Hitherto he had not even taken the trouble to despise
+Tommy, and surely there was no point in beginning now. No, he must be
+decent to Tommy, if the occasion should arise.
+
+But that Tommy should be chief mourner! Poor Beatrice!...
+
+Presently he roused himself with a slight start. He did not wish to
+grudge his wife what slight homage he could pay her, but he felt that he
+had perhaps gone far enough. One felt what one could; harping over
+things was merely morbid. He rose and quietly left the room.
+
+The lights in the hall seemed dim and low. A gentle glow shone through
+the living room door. That was odd; he thought he remembered turning out
+the light in the room before he left it. Then he became aware of a
+sentence or two being spoken in a low voice in that room, and the next
+moment one of the servants walked out of the door and into the hall.
+
+He brushed past her, wondering who could have arrived at this time of
+night. At the door he stopped, strained his eyes to pierce the
+half-gloom and became aware of a figure standing before him, a silent,
+black-robed figure, full of a strange portent....
+
+Aunt Selina.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIII
+
+RED FLAME
+
+
+"James, is it true--what she just told me?" Her voice was full of
+anxiety and horror, but in some curious way she still managed to be the
+self-possessed Aunt Selina of old. Even in that moment James found time
+to admire her.
+
+"Yes, Aunt Selina, I'm afraid it's true."
+
+"Is there no hope, no chance--"
+
+"None, that I can see."
+
+"Then ... oh!" She gave way at that, seeming to crumple where she stood.
+James helped her to a sofa and silently went into the dining room and
+mixed some whisky and water. Aunt Selina stared when he offered it to
+her, and then took it without a word. How like Aunt Selina again! A fool
+would have raised objections. James almost smiled.
+
+"How do you happen to be here, Aunt Selina?" he asked after a few
+moments, less in the desire of knowing than in the hope of diverting
+her. "You didn't come from Bar Harbor to-day?"
+
+"From Boston."
+
+"Boston?"
+
+"I took the boat to Boston last night. I learned of the accident there.
+I supposed she was safe--the papers said nothing."
+
+"Yes, I know. But--but how did you happen to leave Bar Harbor at all?"
+
+"I was going to meet her here."
+
+"Her?"
+
+"Beatrice."
+
+"I don't understand."
+
+"No, and oh, my poor boy, I've got to make you!" She said this quietly,
+almost prayerfully, with the air of a person laboring under a weighty
+mission. James had no reply to offer and walked off feeling curiously
+uncomfortable. There was a long silence.
+
+"Come over here and sit down, James; I want to talk to you," said Aunt
+Selina at last. She spoke in her natural tone of voice; there was no
+more of the priestess about her. There was that about her, however, that
+made him obey.
+
+"James, I've got to tell you a few things about Beatrice. Some things I
+don't believe you know. Do you mind?"
+
+"No," said James slowly, "I don't know that I do."
+
+"Well, in the first place, I suppose you thought she was in love with
+that Englishman?"
+
+James nodded.
+
+"Well, she wasn't--not one particle. Whatever else may or may not be
+true, that is. She despised him."
+
+James froze, paused as though deciding whether or not to discuss the
+matter and then said gently: "I have my own ideas about that, Aunt
+Selina."
+
+She nodded briefly, almost briskly. It was the most effective reply she
+could have made. The more businesslike the words the greater the
+impression on James, always, in any matter. Aunt Selina understood
+perfectly. She let her effect sink in and waited calmly for him to
+demand proof. This he did at last, going to the very heart of the
+subject.
+
+"Then perhaps, Aunt Selina, you can account for certain things...."
+
+"No, I shall only tell you what I know. You must do your own
+accounting." She paused a moment and then went on: "You've heard nothing
+since you left Bar Harbor, I suppose?"
+
+"Nothing."
+
+"Beatrice was quite ill for a time after you left. For days she lay in
+bed unable to move, but there seemed to be nothing specific the matter
+with her. We called in the doctor and he said the same old thing--rest
+and fresh air. He knew considerably less what was the matter with her
+than any one else in the house, which is saying a good deal.
+
+"Lord Clairloch left the day after you did. Beatrice saw him once, that
+evening, and sent him away. The next day he went, saying vaguely that he
+had to go back to New York.
+
+"James, of course I knew. I couldn't live in the house with the two
+people I cared most for in the world and not see things, not _feel_
+things. The only wonder is that nobody else guessed. It seemed
+incredible to me, who was so keenly alive to the whole business. Time
+and time again when Cecilia opened her mouth to speak to me I thought
+she was going to talk about that, and then she would speak about some
+unimportant subject, and I blessed her for her denseness. And how I
+thanked Heaven that that sharp-nosed little minx Ruth wasn't there!
+She'd have smelt the whole thing out in no time.
+
+"Gradually Beatrice mended. Her color came back and she seemed stronger.
+At last one evening--only Tuesday it was; think of it!--she came down to
+dinner with a peculiar sort of glitter in her eyes. She told us that she
+felt able to travel and was going to New York the next day. She had
+engaged her accommodations and everything. Of course I knew what that
+meant....
+
+"Knowledge can be a terrible thing, James. For days it had preyed on me,
+and now when the moment for action came I was almost too weak to
+respond. Oh, how I was tempted to sit back and say nothing and let
+things take their course!... But I simply couldn't fall back in the end,
+I simply couldn't. After bedtime that evening I went to the door of her
+room and knocked.
+
+"I found her in the midst of packing. I told her I had something to say
+to her and would wait till she was ready. She said she was listening.
+
+"'Beatrice,' said I, 'I've always tried to mind my own business above
+all things, but I'm going to break my rule now. I'm fond of you,
+Beatrice; if I offend you remember that. I simply can't watch you throw
+your life away without raising a finger to stop you.'
+
+"She didn't flare up, she didn't even ask me how I knew; she only gave a
+sort of groan and said: 'Oh, but Aunt Selina, I haven't any life to
+throw away! It's all been burned and frozen out of me; there's nothing
+left but a shell, and that won't last long! Can't you let me pass the
+little that remains in peace? That's all I ask for--I gave up happiness
+long ago. It won't last long! It can hurt no one!'
+
+"'You have an immortal soul,' said I; 'you can hurt that.'
+
+"She sat looking at the floor for a while and then said imploringly:
+'Don't ask me to go back to James, Aunt Selina, for that's the one thing
+I can't do.' 'I shan't ask you to do anything,' I told her, but I knew
+perfectly well that I was prepared to go down on my knees before her,
+when the time came....
+
+"But it hadn't come yet--there was a great deal to be done first. What I
+did was to tell her something about my own life, in the hope that it
+might throw a new light on her situation. I told her things that I've
+never told to a human being and never expected to tell another....
+
+"James, I think I ought to tell you the whole thing, as I told it to
+her. It may help you to understand ... certain things you must
+understand. Do you mind?"
+
+She paused, less for the purpose of obtaining his consent than in order
+to gain a perfect control over her voice and manner. Taking James'
+silence as acquiescence she folded her hands in her lap and went on in a
+low quiet voice:
+
+"I haven't had much of a life, according to most ways of thinking. All I
+ever knew of life, as I suppose you know it, was concentrated into a few
+months. Not that I didn't have a good time during my girlhood and youth.
+My mother died when I was a baby, but my stepmother took as good care of
+me as if I had been her own child, and I loved her almost like my own
+mother. I've often thought, though, that if my mother had lived things
+might have turned out differently. Stepmothers are never quite the same
+thing.
+
+"Well, I grew up and flew about with the college boys in the usual way.
+I never cared a rap for any of them, beyond the bedtime raptures that
+girls go through. I was able to manage them all pretty easily; I see now
+that I was too attractive to them. I had a great deal of what in those
+days was referred to as 'animation,' which is another way of saying that
+I was an active, strong-willed, selfish little savage. I was willing to
+play with the college men, but I always said that when I fell in love it
+would be with a _real_ man. I laughed when I said it, but I meant it.
+
+"Presently there came a change. Father died, and when I came out of
+mourning the college men I knew best had graduated and the others seemed
+too young and silly for me even to play with. It was at about this time,
+when I was adjusting myself to new conditions and casting about for
+something to occupy my mind that I came to know Milton Leffert."
+
+James stirred slightly. Aunt Selina smiled.
+
+"Yes, you've heard of him, of course. It gives one a curious feeling,
+doesn't it, to learn that dead people, or people who are as good as
+dead, have had their lives? I know, I know ... I think you'd have liked
+Milton Leffert. He was very quiet and not at all striking in appearance,
+but he was strong and there was no nonsense about him. He was more than
+ten years older than I. I had known him only slightly before that time.
+Then after Father's death he began coming to see me a good deal and we
+fell into the habit of walking and driving together. I always liked him.
+I loved talking with him; he was the first man I ever talked much with
+on serious subjects. He stimulated me, and I enjoyed being with him.
+Only, it never occurred to me that he could be the Real Man.
+
+"You've often heard of women refusing men because of their poverty.
+Well, the chief thing that prejudiced me against Milton Leffert was his
+wealth. He happened to possess a large fortune made and left to him by
+his father, and he didn't do much except take care of it, together with
+that of his sister Jane. He was president of the one concern his father
+had not sold out before he died, but that was the sort of thing that ran
+itself; he didn't spend an hour a day at it. That wasn't much of a
+career, according to the way I thought at that time, and when he first
+began asking me to marry him I laughed outright.
+
+"'You can't know me very well, Milton,' I said, 'if you suppose I could
+be content with a ready-made man. I like you very much, but you're not
+the husband for me.'
+
+"'What do you mean by a ready-made man?' he asked, looking at me out of
+his quiet gray eyes.
+
+"'I should say it was sufficiently obvious,' I said. 'There's nothing
+the matter with you, and I hate to hurt you, but--well, you're not
+dynamic.'
+
+"I stopped to see how he would take that. He was silent for a while,
+then at last he said: 'I don't think that's a very good reason for
+refusing a man.'
+
+"I laughed; the grave way he said it was so characteristic of him. 'Oh,
+Milton,' I said, 'I really think that's the only reason in the world to
+make me refuse a man. I don't much believe I shall ever marry, but if I
+do it will be to a man that I can help win his fight in the world;
+somebody with whom I can march side by side through life, whom I alone
+can help and encourage and inspire! He's got to be the kind that will
+start at the bottom and work his way up to the top, and who couldn't do
+it without me! That's not you, Milton. You have no fight to make--your
+father made it for you. You start in at the top, the wrong end. Of
+course there are still higher summits you could aim for, but you never
+will, Milton. You're not that kind; you'll hold on to what you have, and
+no more. I'm not blaming you; you were made that way. And there must be
+a great many people like you in the world. And I _like_ you none the
+less. Only I can't marry you.'
+
+"'But I don't see what difference all this would make,' he said, 'if you
+only loved me.'
+
+"'My dear man,' said I, 'don't you see that it's only that sort of a man
+who could make me love him? If you had it in you, I suppose I should
+love you. You don't suppose I could love you without that, do you? I'm
+afraid you don't understand me very well, Milton!'
+
+"'I'm learning all the time,' he answered, and that was the nearest
+thing to a witty or humorous remark that I ever heard him make.
+
+"'Then again,' I went on, 'our ages are too far apart. Even if you were
+the sort I mean, we shouldn't be starting even. The fight would be half
+won when I came in, and that would never do. I shouldn't feel as if I
+were part of your life. A marriage like that wouldn't be a marriage, it
+would be a sweet little middle-aged idyll!'
+
+"He flushed at that. 'A man can't change his age, Selina; you have no
+right to taunt me with that.'
+
+"'I didn't mean to taunt you--I only wanted to explain,' said I. 'And
+the last thing in the world I want to do is to hurt you.'
+
+"'But that's the only thing a man can't change,' he went on after a
+moment, paying no attention to my apology. After another pause he added:
+'I shan't give you up, mind,' and when we talked again it was of other
+things.
+
+"I went on seeing him as before, though not quite so often. Then
+presently I went away on some long visits and did not see him for
+several months. When I came back I noticed that his manner was more
+animated than before, and that somehow he looked younger. I remember
+being quite pleased.--He was thirty-four at the time, and I not quite
+twenty-three.
+
+"It was perfectly evident, even to me, that he was working to win me. I
+saw it, but I did not pay any attention to it; when I thought about it
+at all it was with a sort of amusement. One day he came to me apparently
+very much pleased about something.
+
+"'Congratulate me, Selina,' he said; 'I've just got my appointment.'
+
+"'Appointment?' said I. I truthfully had no idea what he was talking
+about.
+
+"'Yes,' he went on, 'I begin work on the board next week.'
+
+"'What board?'
+
+"'Why, the tax board--the city tax board. Surely you knew?'
+
+"Then I laughed--I remember it so distinctly. 'Good gracious, Milton,' I
+said, 'I thought it must be the Cabinet of the United States, at the
+very least!' Then I saw his face, and knew that I had hurt him.
+
+"'It's splendid, of course,' I added. 'I do congratulate you, indeed,
+most heartily. Only--only Milton, you were so serious!'
+
+"I laughed again. He stared at me and after a moment laughed himself, a
+little. I suppose that laugh was the greatest effort he had made yet. I
+know I liked him better at that moment than ever before. If he had let
+it go at that who knows what might have happened?
+
+"But he changed again after a few seconds; he scowled and became more
+serious than ever. 'No!' he said angrily, 'why should I laugh with you
+over the most serious thing in my life? Why should you want to make me?
+First you blame me for not making anything of myself, and now, when I am
+trying my best to do it, you laugh at me for being serious! Of course
+I'm serious about my work--I shan't pretend to be anything else.'
+
+"Of course that was all wrong, too. Every one admires a man who can
+laugh a little about his work. But I felt a sort of hopelessness in
+trying to explain it to him; I was afraid he would never really
+understand. So instead I drew him out on the new work he had taken up
+and tried to make him talk about the plans he had in mind, of which the
+tax board was only the first step. He seemed rather shy about talking of
+the future.
+
+"'It's a case for actions, not words,' he said. 'I don't want to give
+you the impression that I'm only a talker. You'll see, in time, what
+you've made of me,' and he smiled at me in a way that rather went to my
+heart.
+
+"'Milton,' I said, 'I'm more than glad if I can be of help to you, in
+any way, but I should be deceiving you if I let you think there's any
+hope--any more hope, even, than there was.'
+
+"But that was the kind of talk he understood best. 'Selina,' he said,
+'don't you bother about caring for me. The time hasn't come for that
+yet. I'm not even ready for it myself--there's a lot to be done first.
+The time will come, at last; I'm sure of it. A woman can't have such a
+power over a man as you have over me without coming to have some feeling
+for him in the end, if it's only pride in her own handiwork. But even if
+it never should come, do you think I could regret what I've done, what
+I'm going to do? You've made a man of me, Selina. That stands, no matter
+what happens!'
+
+"Of course that sort of thing can't help but make an impression on a
+woman, and it had its effect on me. It made me a little nervous; it was
+like raising a Frankenstein. I began to wonder if I should come to be
+swallowed up in this new life I had unwillingly created. Once or twice I
+caught myself wondering how it would feel to be the wife of Milton
+Leffert....
+
+"But about that time my stepmother began talking to me about it and
+trying to persuade me to marry him, and that had the effect of making me
+like the thought less. Somehow she made it seem almost like a duty, and
+if there was one thing I couldn't abide it was the idea of marrying from
+a sense of duty. Then other things came into my life and for a time I
+ceased to think of him almost entirely.
+
+"We went abroad for several months, my stepmother and the two boys and
+I. Hilary had been seriously ill, and we thought the change would do him
+good. And as he had a good deal of study to make up--he was fourteen at
+the time--my stepmother engaged a young man to go with us and tutor him
+and be a companion to the boys generally.
+
+"You might almost guess the rest. I saw my stepmother wince when he met
+us at the steamer--we had engaged him by letter and had no idea what he
+looked like. I suppose it had never occurred to her before that there
+might be danger in placing me in daily companionship with a man of
+about my own age. It certainly occurred to her then.
+
+"James, I know I can't make it sound plausible to you, but even now I
+don't wonder I fell in love with him. I don't suppose a more attractive
+man was ever born. He was thin and brown and had a pure aquiline
+profile--but it's no use describing him. Think of the most attractive
+person you ever knew and make him ten times more so and perhaps you'll
+get some idea.
+
+"He was quite poor--that also took my fancy. He was trying to earn money
+enough to put himself through law school. Those who knew him said he was
+a brilliant student and that a great career lay before him, and I
+believed it. He certainly was as bright and keen as they make 'em, and
+very witty and amusing. Occasionally Harry reminds me of him, and that
+makes me worry about Harry.... Of course I was tremendously taken with
+his mental qualities, and I had all sorts of romantic notions about
+helping him to make a great place for himself in the world, and all the
+rest of it. But as a matter of fact what drew me to him chiefly was
+simple animal attraction. It wasn't wrong and it wasn't unnatural,
+but--well, it was unfortunate.
+
+"Even my stepmother felt it. I don't know how long it was before she
+knew what was going on, but she never made any effort to stop it. Like a
+sensible woman she kept her mouth shut and determined to let things take
+their course. But she never talked to me any more about Milton Leffert,
+and as a matter of fact I know she would have been perfectly willing
+that I should marry Adrian. Yes, that was his first name. I shan't tell
+you his last, because he's still alive.
+
+"I remember telling myself when I first saw him that such an absurdly
+handsome person could not have much to him, but he appeared better and
+better as time went on. He was thoughtful and tactful and knew how to
+efface himself. He was splendid with the boys; Hilary in particular took
+a tremendous fancy to him and would do anything he said. He was the
+greatest influence in Hilary's life up to that time, and I really think
+the best. He was an extraordinary person. By the end of the first month
+I suspected he was the Real Man. By the end of the second I was
+convinced of it, and by the end of the third I would willingly have
+placed my head under his foot any time he gave the word. By the end of
+the sixth month I wouldn't have touched him with my foot--I'm sure of
+it. But there never was any sixth month.
+
+"In the month of June we were on the Lake of Como. There happened to be
+a full moon. Como in the moonlight is not the safest place in the world
+for young people, under any circumstances. In our case it was sure to
+lead to something.
+
+"We had strolled up to a terrace high above the lake and stood for a
+long time leaning over the balustrade drinking in the beauty of the
+scene. For a long time we said nothing, and apparently the same thought
+struck us both--that it was all too beautiful to be true. At any rate
+after a time Adrian sighed and said: 'Oh, this damnable moonlight!'
+
+"'Why?'I asked.
+
+"'Because it makes everything seem so unreal--the lake, the mountains,
+the nightingales, everything. It's like a poem by Lamartine. But I don't
+mind that--I like Lamartine. The trouble is it makes you seem unreal
+too. Oh, I know that you're where you are and are flesh and blood and
+that if I pinched you you'd probably scream and all that--'
+
+"'No, I shouldn't,' said I. 'I wouldn't be real if I did.'
+
+"He sighed. 'That shows it,' he said; 'that proves exactly what I say.
+You're not really living this; your soul isn't really here. I'm not
+really in your life. I'm just a pretty little episode, a stage property,
+a part of the lake and the moonlight, a part of every summer vacation!'
+
+"'If you're not really in my life,' said I, 'doesn't it occur to you
+that it's because of your unreality, not mine?'
+
+"'You admit that I'm not real to you, then?'
+
+"'No,' said I, 'but it would be your own fault if you weren't.'
+
+"'What about that man in New Haven, is he real?' he asked suddenly. I
+only flushed, and he went on: 'That's it--he's the real man in your
+life. You're willing to play about with me in the summertime, but when
+the winter comes you'll go straight back and marry him. I'm all right
+for the moonlight, but you want him in the cold gray light of the dawn!
+He's the Old and New Testaments to you, and I'm only--a poem by
+Lamartine! And with me--oh, Lord!' He buried his face in his hands.
+
+"I don't know whether it was pure accident or whether he somehow
+guessed part of the truth. At any rate it roused me. I was very sure
+that what he said was not true, or at least I was very anxious that it
+should not be true, which often comes to the same thing. I argued with
+him for some time, and when words failed there were other things. But he
+did not seem entirely convinced.
+
+"After a while, as we sat there, Hilary appeared with a telegram that
+had just arrived for me. I saw that it was a cable message and thought
+it was probably from Milton Leffert, as he had said that he might
+possibly come abroad on business during the summer and would look me up
+if he did. And somehow the thought of Milton Leffert at that moment
+filled me with the most intense disgust....
+
+"'Now,' I said when Hilary had gone, 'I'm tired of arguing; here may be
+a chance to prove myself by actions. Open this telegram, and tell me if
+it's from Milton Leffert!'
+
+"He looked at me in a dazed sort of way. 'Open it!' I repeated, stamping
+my foot. I was drunk with love and moonlight and I imagine I must have
+acted like a fury. I know I felt like one.
+
+"He opened the telegram and read it, gravely and silently.
+
+"'Is it or is it not from Milton Leffert?'
+
+"'Yes. He--'
+
+"'That's all I want to know--don't say another word! Do you hear? Never
+tell me another word about that telegram as long as you live! And now
+destroy it--here--before my eyes! I'm going to put Milton Leffert out of
+my life forever, here and now! Go on, destroy it!'
+
+"Adrian hesitated. He seemed almost frightened. 'But--' he began.
+
+"'Adrian!' I turned toward him with the moonlight beating full down on
+me. I was not so bad-looking in those days; I daresay I was not
+bad-looking at all as I stood there in the moonlight. At least I know
+that woman never used her beauty more consciously than I did in that
+moment.
+
+"'Adrian, look at me! Do you love me?'
+
+"He allowed that he did.
+
+"'Then do what I say. Destroy that telegram and never mention it or that
+man's name to me again!'
+
+"A change came over him. He hesitated no longer; he became forceful and
+determined.
+
+"'Very well,' he cried, 'if you're not mine now you will be! Here's
+good-by to Milton Leffert!'
+
+"He took some matches from his pocket and lit the end of the paper. When
+it was burning brightly he dropped it over the edge of the terrace and
+it floated out into the space beneath. We stood together and watched it
+as it fell, burning red in the moonlight....
+
+"Then for some weeks we were happy. Adrian seemed particularly so; he
+had had his gloomy moods before that but now they passed away entirely.
+And if there was a cloud of suspicion that I had done wrong in my own
+mind I was so happy in seeing Adrian's joy that I paid no attention to
+it.
+
+"Only one thing struck me as odd; he would not let me tell my
+stepmother. He gave a number of reasons for it; it would make his
+position with us uncomfortable; he could not be a tutor and a lover at
+the same time; he was writing to his relatives and wanted to wait till
+they knew; we must wait till we were absolutely sure of ourselves, and
+so forth. One of these reasons might have convinced me, but his giving
+so many of them made me suspect, even as I obeyed him, that none of them
+was the real one. I wondered what it could be. I found out, soon enough.
+
+"We left Italy and worked slowly northward. Several weeks after the
+scene on the terrace we reached Paris. There we met a number of our
+American friends, some of whom had just arrived from home. One day my
+stepmother and I were sitting talking with one of these--Elizabeth
+Haldane it was--and in the course of the conversation she happened to
+say: 'Very sad, isn't it, about poor Milton Leffert?'
+
+"'What is sad?' asked my stepmother.
+
+"'Why, haven't you heard?' said Elizabeth. 'He died a short time before
+we left. Brain fever or something of the sort--from overwork, they said.
+He was planning to run for the State Legislature this fall.' I saw her
+glancing round; she couldn't keep her eyes off me. But I sat still as a
+stone....
+
+"As soon as I could I took Adrian off alone.
+
+"'Adrian,' I said, 'the time has come when you've got to tell me what
+was in that telegram.'
+
+"'Never,' said he, smiling. 'I promised, you know,'
+
+"'I release you from your promise.'
+
+"'Even so, I can't tell you.'
+
+"'Adrian,' said I, looking him full in the face, 'Milton Leffert is
+dead.'
+
+"'I'm sorry to hear it,' said he.
+
+"I blazed up at that. 'Stop lying to me,' I cried, 'and tell me what was
+in that telegram!'
+
+"He confessed at last that it was from Jane Leffert saying that her
+brother was dangerously ill and asking me to come to him if possible or
+at least send some message. I knew well enough what it must have been,
+but I wanted to wring it from his lips....
+
+"'Well, have you nothing to say to me?' he asked.
+
+"I didn't answer for some time--I couldn't. To tell the truth I hadn't
+been thinking of him. At last I turned on him. 'You contemptible
+creature,' I managed to say.
+
+"'Why?' he whined. 'You've no right to call me names. You made me do it.
+If you're sorry now it's your own fault.'
+
+"'I was to blame,' I answered. 'Heaven forbid that I should try to
+excuse my own fault. But do you think that lets you out? Suppose the
+positions had been reversed; suppose you had been ill and Milton with
+me. Do you imagine he would have let me remain in ignorance while you
+lay dying and in need of me, no matter what I told him to do or not to
+do? Are you so weak and mean that you can't conceive of any one being
+strong and good?'
+
+"'It was because I loved you so much that I did it,' he said.
+
+"'Oh, Adrian,' I told him, 'if you really loved me, why did you let me
+do a thing you knew I'd live to regret? If you really loved me, what had
+you to fear but that?'
+
+"'You might have saved his life,' he answered.
+
+"Oh, James, the anguish of hearing those words from his lips! The man I
+did not love telling me I might have saved the life of the man I did!
+For now that it was too late I knew well enough who it was that I loved.
+In one flash I saw the two men as they were, one strong, quiet,
+unselfish, the other selfish, cowardly, mean-spirited. Now I saw why he
+had not wanted me to tell my stepmother of our engagement. He wanted to
+cover up his own part in the affair in case anything unpleasant happened
+when I heard of Milton's death.
+
+"I told my stepmother everything as soon as I could and she behaved
+splendidly. She sent Adrian away and I never saw him again. And as I
+announced my intention of going home on the next steamer she decided it
+was best to give up the rest of her trip and take the boys along back
+with me. So we all went, that same week.
+
+"People wondered, when we arrived so long ahead of time, and came pretty
+near to guessing the whole truth. But I didn't care. The one thing I
+wanted in the world was to see Milton's sister, his one surviving
+relative.
+
+"'Jane Leffert,' I wrote her, 'if you can bear to look on the woman who
+killed your brother, let her come and tell you she's sorry.' She was a
+good woman and understood. The next day I went to her house. She took me
+upstairs and showed me his room, the bed where he had died. I never said
+a word all the time. Then, as she was really a very remarkable woman,
+she handed me an old brooch of her mother's containing a miniature of
+him painted when he was four years old, and told me it was mine to keep.
+Then for the first time I broke down and cried....
+
+"If it hadn't been for Jane Leffert I think I should have gone mad. She
+never tried to hide the truth from me. She admitted, when I asked her,
+that Milton had, to all intents and purposes, worked himself to death
+for me, and that the doctor had said the one hope for him lay in his
+seeing me or hearing I was coming to him. But never a word of blame or
+reproach did she give me, never a hint of a feeling of it. She knew how
+easy it is to make mistakes in life, she knew how hard it is to atone
+for them. She it was who gave me the blessed thought that it was worth
+while to go on living as part of my atonement, and that if I put into my
+life the things I had learned from him I might even, to a certain
+extent, make Milton live on in me.
+
+"So instead of taking poison or becoming a Carmelite nun I went on
+living at home as before, stimulated and inspired by that idea. It was
+hard at first, but somehow the harder things were the greater the
+satisfaction I took in life. By the time I had lightened the remaining
+years of my stepmother's life and nursed Jane Leffert through her last
+illness I became content with my lot and, in a way, happy. I never asked
+for happiness nor wanted it again on earth, but it came, at last. There
+is something purifying about loving a dead person very much. The chief
+danger is in its making one morbid, but as I was always a thoroughly
+practical person with a strong natural taste for life it did me nothing
+but good. But I don't prescribe it for any one who can get anything
+better....
+
+"One thing in particular helped me to keep my mind on earth and remind
+me of the far-reaching effects of wrong-doing. I have said that Hilary,
+your father, was extremely fond of Adrian. Well, somehow he got the idea
+into his head that I had thrown him over because of his poverty, and he
+never forgave me for it. Till his dying day he believed that I really
+loved Adrian most but was afraid to marry him. Over and over again I
+told him the truth, taking a sort of fierce pleasure in being able to
+tell any one that I had never loved any one but Milton Leffert.
+
+"'Then why did you let Adrian make love to you?' Hilary would answer,
+'and why did you make him burn that telegram? I know, I heard you as I
+walked down the path.' Nothing I could say ever made him understand. And
+the hardest part of it was that I couldn't exactly blame him for not
+being convinced.
+
+"Taking him at that impressionable time of life the thing had a
+tremendous effect on him. The idea grew into him that no human feeling
+could stand the test of hard facts; that that was the way love worked
+out in real life. From that time on his mind steadily developed and his
+soul steadily dwindled. He became practical, brilliant, worldly wise,
+heartless. We grew gradually more and more estranged; you seldom heard
+him mention my name, I suppose? That's why you never heard before what
+I've been telling you, or at least the whole truth of it.... And so, as
+he consciously modeled certain of his mannerisms after those of Adrian
+he unconsciously grew more and more like him in character; and I had the
+satisfaction of watching the change and realizing that it was due, in
+part at least, to me. And the thought of how I unwillingly hurt him has
+made me all the more anxious to make reparation by being of service to
+his two boys. Perhaps you can imagine some of the things I've feared for
+them...."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Here Aunt Selina broke off, choked by a sudden gust of emotion. James
+said nothing, but sat staring straight in front of him. Presently his
+aunt, steadying her voice to its accustomed pitch, went on:
+
+"Well, James, I told this to Beatrice, much as I've told it to you,
+though not at so great length, and I could see it made an impression on
+her. She came over and sat down by me and took my hand without speaking.
+
+"'You lived through all that?' she said at last, 'and you never told any
+one?'
+
+"'Why should I have told?' I answered. 'There was no one to tell. I've
+only told you because I thought it might have some bearing on your own
+case.'
+
+"She caught her breath, gave a sort of little sigh. And that sigh said,
+as plainly as words, 'Dear me, I was so interested in your story I
+almost forgot I must get ready to go to New York to-morrow.' It was a
+setback; I saw I had overestimated the effect I had made. But I set my
+teeth and went on, determined not to give her up yet.
+
+"'Beatrice,' I said, 'I haven't told you all this for the pleasure of
+telling it nor to amuse you. I've told it to you because I wanted to
+show you how such a course of action as you're about to take works out
+in real life. There is a strange madness that comes over women
+sometimes, especially over strong women; a sort of obsession that makes
+them think they are too good for the men they love. I know it, I've felt
+it--I've suffered under it, if ever woman did! It may seem irresistible
+while it lasts, but oh, the remorse that comes afterward! Beatrice, how
+many times do you suppose I've lived over each snubbing speech I made to
+Milton Leffert? How often do you suppose my laugh at him when he told me
+about the tax board has rung through my ears? Those are the memories
+that stab the soul, Beatrice; don't let there be any such in your life!'
+
+"She didn't answer, but sat staring at the floor.
+
+"'Beatrice,' I went on, 'there's no mortal suffering like discovering
+you've done wrong when it's too late. It's the curse of strong-willed
+people. It all seems so simple to us at first; it's so easy for us to
+force our wills on other people, to rule others and be free ourselves.
+Then something happens, the true vision comes, and it's too late!
+Beatrice, I've caught you in time--it's not too late for you yet. Do you
+know where you stand now, Beatrice? You're at the point where I was when
+I told Adrian to burn that telegram!'
+
+"Still she said nothing, and the sight of her sitting there so beautiful
+and cold drove me almost wild. 'Oh, Beatrice,' I burst out, losing the
+last bit of my self-control, 'don't tell me I've got to live through it
+all again with you! Don't go and repeat my mistake before my very eyes,
+with my example before yours! It was hard enough to live through it once
+myself, but what will it be when I sit helplessly by and watch the
+people I love best go through it all! I can't bear it, I can't, I can't!
+It takes all the meaning out of my own life!...'
+
+"She was moved by my display of feeling, but not by my words. She said
+nothing for a time, but took my hand again and began stroking it gently,
+as if to quiet me. I said nothing more--I couldn't speak. At last she
+said, in a calm, gentle tone of voice, as if she were explaining
+something to a child:--
+
+"'Aunt Selina, I don't think you quite understand about my marriage with
+James. It isn't like other marriages, exactly.'
+
+"'It seems to me enough that it is a marriage,' I answered. 'Though I
+haven't spoken of that side of it, of course.'
+
+"'Oh, you won't understand!' she said.
+
+"'Beatrice,' said I, 'I couldn't understand if you kept telling me about
+it till to-morrow morning. No one ever will understand you, except your
+Creator--you might as well make up your mind to it. I don't doubt you've
+had many wrong things done to you. The point is, you're about to do one.
+Don't do it.'
+
+"Always back to the same old point, and nothing gained! I had the
+feeling of having fired my last shot and missed. I shut my eyes and
+leaned my head back and tried to think of some new way of putting it to
+her, but as a matter of fact I knew I had said all I had to say. And
+then, just as I was giving her up for lost, I heard her speaking again.
+
+"'Aunt Selina,' she said, 'you have made me think of one thing.'
+
+"'What's that, my dear?' I asked.
+
+"'Well, I don't doubt but what I have done wrong things already, without
+suspecting it. Oh, yes, I've been too sure of myself!'
+
+"'It's possible, my dear,' said I, 'but you haven't done anything that
+you can't still make up for, if you want.'
+
+"'I think I know what you mean,' she said slowly; 'you mean I could go
+and tell him so. Tell him I had done wrong and was sorry--for I did sin,
+not in deed, but still in thought.... I never told him that, of
+course....' Then she shivered. 'Oh, but Aunt Selina, I can't do it, I
+can't! If you only knew how I've tried already, how I've humiliated
+myself!'
+
+"'That never did any one any harm,' I told her.
+
+"'And then,' she went on, 'even if I did do it, he'd never take me
+back--not on any terms! He'd only cast me away again--that's what would
+happen, you know! What would there be for me then but--Tommy?'
+
+"Well, I knew I'd won a great point in making her even consider it.
+
+"'Several things,' I answered, taking no pains to conceal my delight.
+'In the first place, it's by no means certain that he will refuse you.
+But if he does--well, you'll never lack a home or a friend while I'm
+alive, my dear! And don't you go and pretend that I'm not more to you
+than that brainless, chinless, sniveling, driveling little fool of an
+Englishman, for I won't believe it!'
+
+"She laughed at that and for a moment we both laughed together. Then it
+suddenly occurred to me that I couldn't do better than leave it at that,
+let that laugh end our talk.
+
+"'Good night, my dear,' I said, kissing her. 'The time has come now when
+you've got to make up your mind for yourself. I've done all I can for
+you.' And with that I left her.
+
+"But, oh, James, it wasn't as simple as all that! It was all very well
+to tell her that and go to bed, but if you knew what agonies of doubt
+and suspense I went through during the night, fearing, hoping,
+wondering, praying! Those things are so much more complicated in real
+life than they are when you read them or see them acted. What should
+have happened was that I should have one grand scene with her and make
+her promise at the end to do as I wanted. And I did my best, I went as
+far as it was in me to go, and knew no more of the result than before I
+began! And we parted laughing--laughing, from that talk!
+
+"But almost the worst part of it was next morning when we met downstairs
+after breakfast, with the family about. I could scarcely say good
+morning to her, and I never dared catch her eye. And all the time that
+one great subject was burning in our minds. And we couldn't talk of it
+again, either; we couldn't have if we'd been alone together in a desert!
+You can't go on having scenes with people.
+
+"At last, after lunch, I was alone on the verandah with her, and managed
+to screw myself up to asking her whether she was going to New York or
+not.
+
+"'Yes, I'm going,' she answered.
+
+"'What do you mean by that?' I asked.
+
+"'Oh, I don't know what I mean!' she said desperately. I knew she was as
+badly off as I was, or worse, and after that I simply couldn't say
+another word to her.
+
+"But I saw her alone once again, just before she started. She kissed me
+good-by and smiled and whispered: 'Don't worry, Aunt Selina--it's all
+right,' and then the others came. Just that--nothing more!
+
+"I didn't know what to think--what I dared to think. One moment I rushed
+and telegraphed you, because I was afraid she was going to the
+Englishman, after all. The next minute I was hurrying to catch the night
+boat to Boston, because I thought she was going to you and that I might
+have to deal with you. I wanted to be with her in any case. Oh, I was so
+mad with the uncertainty and suspense I didn't know what I did or what I
+thought! But the impression I took away finally from her last words to
+me were that she was going to you.... But I never knew, James, _I never
+knew_! And now I never shall!..."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIV
+
+A POTTER'S VESSEL
+
+
+By a great effort Aunt Selina had kept a firm control over herself
+throughout her narrative, but now, the immediate need of composure being
+removed, she gave way completely to her natural grief. James, whose
+attitude toward her had been somewhat as toward a divine visitation, an
+emissary of Nemesis, suddenly found he had to deal with an old woman
+suffering under an overwhelming sorrow. This put an end for the present
+to the possibility of expanding on the Nemesis suggestion. He fetched
+her some more whisky, reflecting that it must be not unpleasant to have
+reached the age where grief wore itself out even partially in physical
+symptoms, to which physical alleviations could be applied. For the first
+time he found himself considering Aunt Selina as an old woman.
+
+He could not help remarking, however, that even in age and even in grief
+Aunt Selina was rather magnificent. There was about her tears a
+Sophoclean, almost a Niobesque quality. It struck him that she must have
+been extremely good-looking in her youth.
+
+Of course Aunt Selina, even in that extremity, knew enough to refrain
+from pointing a moral already sufficiently obvious. She said little
+after finishing her account, and that little was expressive only of her
+immediate sense of loss.
+
+"Oh, James," she moaned, "I had always thought my life went out in a
+little puff of red flame forty years ago and more, but it seemed to me
+that if I could use my experience to mend her life I should be well
+repaid for everything. And now...."
+
+They sat silent for the most part, both laboring under the terrific
+hopelessness of the situation, which certainty and uncertainty, together
+with the impossibility of action, combined to make intolerable. For a
+while each found a certain comfort in the other's mute presence, but at
+last even that wore off.
+
+"Well, my dear, you don't want to be bothered by a hysterical old woman
+at this time," said Aunt Selina finally, and James obediently
+telephoned, for a taxi. Nemesis must be met, sooner or later....
+
+Only once, as they sat side by side in the dark cab, did Aunt Selina
+give utterance to the one idea that animated her thoughts of the future.
+
+"Well, I've lost my own life and I've lost her, and now you're the only
+thing I have left. Oh, James, for Heaven's sake don't let me lose you!"
+
+"No, Aunt Selina, no," he replied, laying his hand on hers and speaking
+with a promptness and a fervor that surprised himself.
+
+"One thing," she began just before they drew up at the hotel.
+
+"Yes?"
+
+"One thing I've learned in all these years is that there's nothing so
+bad that it isn't better to face it than dodge it. Nothing!"
+
+"Yes," said James. "Thank you, Aunt Selina."
+
+He walked back to his apartment with a feeling as of straightening his
+shoulders. His aunt's words rang in his brain. There was need of
+courage, he saw that. Well, he had never lacked that and would not be
+found wanting in it now. Not even--the thought flashed on him as he
+opened his front door--not even if the kind of courage that was now
+needed implied humiliation. He entered his home with the consciousness
+of having made a good start.
+
+He walked straight into the bedroom.
+
+"Well, I've done you an injustice," he said aloud. "I misjudged you. I'm
+sorry."
+
+"Oh, you didn't give her credit for being capable of loving YOU, did
+you?" rang a mocking voice in his brain. A palpable hit for Nemesis.
+
+"Oh, you know what I _mean_," he answered petulantly. He thought it was
+unworthy of her to quibble thus, particularly when he was voluntarily
+assuming that Beatrice had started from Bar Harbor--well, with the right
+idea. He had a right to doubt there, which he was willing to waive.
+
+"I'm sorry," he repeated, "truly sorry. Isn't that enough?" His eyes
+fell on the photograph of Beatrice which still stood on the dressing
+table. He turned quickly away again.
+
+"Not by a long shot," said Nemesis, or words to that effect.
+
+No, somehow it wasn't. He realized it himself; even feeling that didn't
+give him the sense of repletion and calm that he sought. He paced the
+room for some time in silent anxiety.
+
+"I really don't know what to do," he admitted at last. "Suppose"--he was
+appealing to Beatrice now--"suppose you tell me what."
+
+He glanced involuntarily at the photograph. Its unchanging half-smile
+informed him that all help must now come from himself. A sudden access
+of rage at that photograph seized him.
+
+"Don't you laugh at me, when I'm trying my best!" he cried.
+
+The picture smiled on. In a burst of fury James picked up the frame and
+hurled it with all his strength into the mirror. There was a crash and a
+shower of broken glass, amid which the picture bounded lazily back and
+fell to the floor, face downward.
+
+James stood and stared at it, and as he stared a curious revulsion came
+over him. He stooped slowly down, unaccountably hoping with all his soul
+that the photograph was not hurt. He scarcely dared to turn it over....
+
+The glass was smashed to atoms, but the picture itself was unhurt. No,
+there was a cut across the face.
+
+"Oh, I've hurt her, I've hurt Beatrice!" he whispered.
+
+Nemesis said something that made him sink into a chair and gaze before
+him with horror. Cinders, ashes, black coals, some of them still
+glowing--oh, the mere sight of them then had been unbearable! And now,
+in view of what he had learned.... He could not face the thought.
+
+Yet it was true: if it had not been for him Beatrice would still be
+alive. Whether she took that train intending to go to him or to Tommy it
+did not matter; she would not have taken it at all if he had behaved as
+he should.
+
+He turned his attention back to the picture, gently and carefully
+smoothing out the cut, as though in the hope that reparation to her
+effigy would make it easier to face the thought of having compassed her
+destruction.
+
+Somehow it did no such thing....
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Of course what Nemesis wanted was a confession that he loved the woman
+whose death he was morally responsible for. James realized that himself,
+almost from the first, but it was not in his nature to admit easily that
+such an unreasonable change of feeling was possible to him. Long hours
+of struggle followed, hours of endless pacing, of fruitless internal
+argument, of blind resistance to the one hope, as he in the bottom of
+his soul knew it was, of his salvation. Resistance, brave, exhilarating,
+hopeless, futile, ignoble resistance to whatever happened to him
+contrary to the dictates of his own will--it was as inevitable to him as
+feeling itself.
+
+From time to time he thought of Tommy, and this, if he did but know it,
+was the best symptom he could have shown. For though at first he thought
+of him with little more than his usual contempt, envy soon began to
+creep in, then frank jealousy and at last a blind hatred that made him
+clench his hands and wish, as he had seldom wished anything, that
+Tommy's throat was between them. In fact he ended by hating Tommy quite
+as though he were his equal. He never stopped to consider that this
+change was no less revolutionary than the one he was fighting.
+
+The hopeless hours dragged on. A sense of physical fatigue grew on him;
+every muscle in him ached. His brain also staggered under the long
+strain; it hammered and rang. Certain scraps of sentences he had heard
+during the day buzzed through it with a curious insistence, taking
+advantage of his weakened state to torment him. A great chance, a great
+chance--Uncle James' parting words to him. Sorrow was a great
+chance--for some. For Aunt Selina, yes; for Beatrice, yes; or Uncle
+James, frozen and unresponsive as he appeared, yes. But not for him. Oh,
+no, he must admit it, he was not even worthy to suffer greatly. He was
+not really suffering now, he supposed; he was merely very tired.
+Otherwise those words, a great chance, a great chance, would not keep
+pounding through his head like the sound of loud wheels....
+
+Railroad wheels.
+
+Then what was it that Aunt Selina had said about finding out something
+too late? Oh, yes, people found out they loved other people when it was
+too late. Especially strong people. He was strong.... Could it be that
+_he_ was going to discover something too late--_that_? It was too late
+for something already, but surely not for that! Just think--Aunt Selina
+had found out too late, and Beatrice had found out too late, and now....
+
+Yes, if it was horrible it must be true. It was he who was too late. He
+understood about Aunt Selina, all she must have felt. And Beatrice too;
+he saw now how strong and noble and warm-hearted she had been, and how
+she must have suffered. Especially that. And now he had found out it was
+too late to tell her so!
+
+"We can't tell you what we don't know," the man in the station had said
+that morning. Words spoken mechanically and without thought, but
+containing the very essence of human tragedy. While there was yet time
+he had had no knowledge, not the slightest glimmering....
+
+"Oh, Beatrice!" he groaned, "if I had only been able to hope! Just a
+little hope, even at that last minute on the platform! That would be
+something to be thankful for!"
+
+And then in the anguish of his remorse all his fatigue and uncertainty
+suddenly fell from him. Nothing remained but the thought of her, strong,
+generous, brave, humble, all that he had professed to admire--dead! And
+he, false, mean, cowardly, cold-hearted, alive. And the idea of never
+being able to tell her that at last he understood became so intolerable,
+so cruel, so contrary to all that was good in life, so blindly
+unthinkable, that....
+
+Well, in a word, it simply ceased to be. Such a life as had been hers
+could not fade into nothingness, such a heart as hers could not fail to
+understand, be she dead or alive.
+
+"God," he whispered, clutching with all his strength at the hope the
+word now contained, "God, make her understand! I recant, I repent, I
+believe--anything! Forgive me if you can or punish me as you will, only
+let her live, let her know...."
+
+Then, as the crowning torment, came hope. After all, he knew nothing; he
+only supposed. Nothing was certain; only probable. Something might have
+happened; he dared not think what or how, but it was possible,
+conceivable, at least, that Beatrice was not on that train when it was
+wrecked. Beatrice might still be alive!... The anguish of the fall back
+into probability was sharper than anything he had yet known, but every
+time he found himself struggling painfully up again toward that small
+spark of light.
+
+He fell on his knees beside the bed--her bed--and tried to pray.
+Nothing came to his lips but the words he had so long disdained to say,
+uttered now with a fierce sweet jubilation:
+
+"Beatrice, I love you. I never did before, but I do now--at least I
+think I do! I never knew, I never understood, but I do now! Beatrice, I
+do love you, I do, I do! Beatrice...."
+
+But apparently they satisfied the power that has charge of such matters,
+for even as he stammered the words that saved him a blessed drowsiness
+stole over him and before long he slept as he knelt. It was morning when
+he awoke.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XV
+
+THE TIDE TURNS
+
+
+A gray morning, wet and close, whose very atmosphere was death to hope.
+James did hope, nevertheless, with all the refreshed energy of his
+being. Hope came as soon as he started to wake up, before he began to
+feel the cramps in his limbs, before he had time to rub his eyes and
+wonder what had happened.
+
+A hot bath, and then breakfast. Physical alleviations; he was humiliated
+to realize they did make a difference, even to him. He shuddered at the
+thought of how he had patronizingly envied Aunt Selina for being helped
+by them last night, much as he shuddered at the remembrance of having
+once dared to pity Beatrice....
+
+But the present was also with him, and the present was even harder to
+face than the past. Hope sprang eternal, but so did certainty. One might
+have thought that they would have neutralized each other's effects and
+left a blank, but as a matter of fact they only doubled each other's
+torments. The moment breakfast was over James started off for the
+station to set one or the other at rest.
+
+He went straight to the press room, which was only just open; he had to
+wait for the agent to arrive. When he came he was able to tell James
+nothing new, but he conducted him to a departmental manager. He was no
+more satisfactory, but he undertook to make every possible inquiry.
+Leaving James in an outer office he called various people to him, got
+into telephonic communication with others and ended by calling up
+Stamford and then Boston. But James could guess the result from his face
+the moment he reentered the room.
+
+"Nothing?" he asked.
+
+"Nothing. But don't give up yet."
+
+James walked slowly down the corridor toward the elevator. It was a long
+corridor, dark and empty; James could not see the end of it when he
+started. The sound of his feet echoed hollowly along the dim walls.
+Altogether it was rather an eerie place, not at all suggestive of a
+modern office building. Much more, it seemed to James as he walked on,
+like life.... A blind alley, the end of which was in shadow, where one
+must walk alone and in almost total darkness. A place where one's
+footsteps echo with painful exactness--one must walk carefully lest the
+sound of their irregularity should ring evilly in one's ears and pierce
+unharmoniously into those mysterious chambers alongside, perhaps even
+into other corridors, other people's corridors....
+
+He roused himself from his reverie with a jerk, but his mood remained on
+him, translated into a larger meaning. He was alive; no matter what had
+happened to Beatrice, he was still alive, with a living person's duties
+and responsibilities--and chances. Beatrice, even though cut off in the
+bloom of her youth, had succeeded in making a person of herself,
+justifying her existence, supplying a guiding light to some of those who
+walked in greater darkness than herself. He had not as yet done that.
+Well, he must. He would. Beatrice's gift to him should not be wasted. In
+a flash he felt his strength and his manhood return to him. He looked
+into the future with a humble yet unflinching gaze; hope and certainty
+had lost their terrors for him. If Beatrice had died, he would thank God
+that it had been given him to know her and do his best to translate her
+spirit into earthly terms. If by any impossible chance she still
+lived--well, he could do nothing to make himself worthy of such
+happiness, but he would do his best.
+
+He walked out of the elevator into the concourse, the huge unchanging
+concourse where so much had happened yesterday. It was comparatively
+empty at this moment, only a few figures waiting patiently before train
+gates. One of these caught his eye; it took on a bafflingly familiar
+appearance. He moved curiously nearer to it....
+
+Tommy!
+
+At last, at last, at last he was going to feel that throat between his
+fingers, get a chance to exterminate that--that--He sprang forward like
+a wildcat.
+
+He stopped before he had taken two steps, with a feeling of impotence,
+hopelessness. Who was he, who under the sun was he to teach Tommy
+anything? Tommy--why, Tommy had loved Beatrice, not after it was too
+late, but before! Beatrice had preferred Tommy to him. Tommy was a
+better man than he was; he took a morbid joy in thinking how much
+better.
+
+It was conceivable that Tommy might know something. Perhaps he had even
+come to this very spot to meet Beatrice.... Well, he would not blame her
+or offer objections, if it were so. He would accept such a judgment
+gladly, as a small price for knowing she was alive. He hurried across
+the concourse.
+
+"Tommy, can you tell me anything about Beatrice?" James' voice was so
+matter-of-fact, so strikingly unfitted to a Situation, that Tommy was
+rather irritated. He flushed.
+
+"No, of course not. Why should I?"
+
+"I only thought--seeing you here--"
+
+"No." The tone was abrupt to the point of rudeness, wholly un-Tommylike.
+There was an odd moment of silence, which Tommy ended by breaking out:
+"Why the devil do you have to come here and crow over me? Why can't you
+let me clear out in peace?"
+
+James was so penitent for having hurt Tommy that he did not at first
+notice the implication in his words.
+
+"I'm sorry--I meant nothing! I've been out of my head with anxiety.... I
+only thought she might have gone somewhere else to meet you--it was my
+last hope...."
+
+"_What?_" Tommy cocked his eyebrows incredulously, with a sort of
+fierceness. "Hope of what?"
+
+"Why, that Beatrice was still alive."
+
+"Still alive? What on earth--! What makes you think she isn't?"
+
+"Do you mean to say--"
+
+Again the two stared at each other in a strained silence. Then Tommy
+produced a crumpled yellow envelope from his pocket and handed it to
+James.
+
+"I got this yesterday morning--that's all I know. I haven't been able to
+destroy the damned thing...."
+
+James took it and opened it. A telegram:--
+
+ It's all off, Tommy. Please go away and forgive me if you can.
+ Beatrice.
+
+He looked at the date at the top. Boston, 8:37 A. M. Boston! The Maine
+Special did not go into Boston; Beatrice had left it before--before....
+
+"Tommy," he said faintly, "Tommy, I--" His head swam; he felt himself
+reeling.
+
+"All right, old top, all right; easy does it." He felt Tommy's arm about
+him and heard Tommy's voice in his ears, the voice of the good-hearted
+Tommy of old. Suddenly the idea of a disappointed lover calling his
+fainting though successful rival old top and telling him that easy did
+it struck him as wildly and irresistibly humorous. He laughed, and the
+sound of his laugh acted like a stimulant. He bit his lip hard.
+
+"All right now--I'll go up and get into a taxi. You see," he began
+explanatorily to Tommy as he walked beside him, "I thought--I thought--"
+
+"I see," supplied Tommy companionably, "you thought she was in the
+accident, of course. Beastly thing, that accident; no wonder it knocked
+you up. Knocked me up a bit myself when I heard of it, although I knew
+she couldn't be in it. Easy up the steps--righto! Everything turned out
+all right in the end, though, didn't it? Pretty hefty steps, wot? Pretty
+hefty place altogether--nothing like it in London...."
+
+A cab puffed up beside them. James turned with his hand on the door. An
+unaccountable wave of affection, respect, even, for Tommy surged through
+him. "Tommy, you're going away now, I take it?"
+
+"Yes--Chicago." (He pronounced it _Shickago_. That was nothing; when he
+arrived in the country he had pronounced it with the ch sound. In a few
+more weeks he would get it correctly; you couldn't expect too much at a
+time from Tommy.)
+
+"Well, Tommy, see here--"
+
+"Yes?"
+
+"It may sound silly to you, but--come and see us some time!"
+
+"Righto. Not now, though--got to see the country--train leaves in two
+minutes. See America first, wot? Good-by!" and he was off.
+
+James sank back into the cab, admiring the other's tact. A thoughtless,
+brutal proposal; of course he ought never to have made it. It was not in
+him, though, to deny Tommy any sign of the overwhelming love for the
+whole world that filled him.
+
+When he reached his apartment his physical strength was restored, but
+mentally he seemed paralyzed. There was much to be done, but he had no
+idea how to go about it. A bright thought struck him; he called up Aunt
+Selina. He laughed foolishly into the transmitter; Heaven knows how he
+made her understand at last. The two babbled incoherently at one another
+for a moment and abruptly rang off, without saying good-by.... Another
+bright idea--Uncle James. He was more definite, but James had little
+idea of what he said. He caught something about a Comparatively Simple
+Matter.... Uncle J. undertook to do everything, whatever it was. A
+satisfactory person.
+
+After that James sat down in an armchair and for a long time remained
+there, reduced to an inarticulate pulp of joy.
+
+An hour or two later Beatrice's telegram arrived. It was dated from an
+obscure place in the White Mountains. "Quite safe and well; only just
+heard of the accident," it read. Just ten words. But quite enough! To
+think of her telegraphing _him_!...
+
+Immediately he became strong and efficient again. He rushed back to the
+station, dashed off a telegram and caught up a time table. Confound the
+trains--nothing till eight-fifteen!
+
+ * * * * *
+
+When she left Bar Harbor, Beatrice had no very clear idea of what she
+was going to do. Of one thing she was fairly sure; she was not going to
+Tommy. Where Aunt Cecilia's tentative suggestions concerning the dangers
+besetting a young wife had failed, Aunt Selina's uncompromising realism
+had gone straight to the point. Her eyes were opened; she saw what
+pitfalls infatuation and pique and obstinacy might lead her into. She
+was willing to admit that the thing she had planned to do would be
+equivalent to throwing away her last hold on life--all she read into the
+word life. No, she would not go to Tommy. Not directly, anyway....
+
+Ah, there was the rub. Suppose her imagined scene of confession and
+appeal turned into one of mutual recrimination and resentment--the old
+sort. What was more likely, in view of her past experience? Were things
+so radically changed now that either she or James would be able to
+understand the other better than before? With the best intentions in the
+world she could not help rubbing him the wrong way, and she feared the
+anger and hopelessness that it was his power to inspire in her. With
+Tommy at hand, in the same town, could she trust herself to resist the
+temptation of throwing herself into his ready arms? It was all very well
+for Aunt Selina to say that she was worth more to Beatrice than Tommy;
+Beatrice was quite convinced of it, in the calm light of reason. But in
+the hour of failure, with her pride and her woman's desire for
+protection and love worked up to white heat, would she still be
+convinced of it? Could she dare entrust her whole chance of future
+happiness to the strength of her reason in the moment of its greatest
+trial?
+
+Thoughts like these mingled with the rattle of the train in a sleepless
+night. In the morning one thing emerged into clarity; she must wait till
+Tommy was out of the way. If her determination to try to regain James
+was worth anything, she must give it every possible chance for success.
+Her hopes for a happy issue out of her dreadful labyrinth were not so
+good that she could afford to take one unnecessary risk.
+
+Well, if she wasn't going to New York she would have to get off the
+train, obviously. So she alighted outside Boston early in the morning,
+took a local into town and telegraphed Tommy. Then, as she wandered
+aimlessly through the station her eye fell on a framed time-table in
+which occurred the name of a small White Mountain resort of which she
+had lately heard; a place described to her as remote and quiet and
+possessed of one fairly good hotel. She noticed that a train was due to
+leave for there in an hour's time. In a moment her decision was made;
+she would go up there and wait for Tommy to get safely out of the way,
+carefully plan out her course of action and--she scarcely dared express
+the thought, even mentally--give herself a little time to enjoy her
+newly-awakened love before putting it to the final test.
+
+She arrived in the evening, took a room in the hotel and went to bed
+almost immediately, sleeping soundly for the first time in weeks. About
+the middle of the next morning the Boston papers arrived. Until then she
+had no notion that the train she had traveled by had been wrecked.
+
+She telegraphed immediately to Aunt Cecilia and then, after some
+thought, to James. It seemed the thing to do, everything being
+considered. She wondered if he knew she was safe, how he would take the
+news, if he had been much disturbed by uncertainty. She was inclined to
+fear that her escape had not done her cause any particular good....
+
+His reply arrived surprisingly soon: "Stay where you are, am coming."
+She was touched. Apparently the turn of events had had a favorable
+effect on him; if he cared enough now to come up and see her the
+opportunity for putting her plea to him must be fairly propitious. There
+was a fair chance that if she acted wisely all would turn out well. But
+oh, she must be careful!
+
+She knew he must arrive by the morning train and arose betimes so as to
+be on hand. She was in some doubt about breakfast, whether to get it
+early or wait for him. Either way might be better or worse; it all
+depended on the outcome of their meeting. She ended by deciding to wait;
+she would let him breakfast alone if--if. Small interest she would have
+in breakfast in that event.
+
+She was downstairs long before the train was due to arrive. The weather
+had cleared during the night and the morning was sunny and cool, a true
+autumn day. She tried waiting on the verandah, but the wind was so sharp
+that she soon returned to the warm lobby. She could watch the road
+equally well from the front windows; there was a long open ascent from
+the station. At last she saw the hotel wagon appear round a curve. There
+was only one passenger in it. He, of course. She could recognize the set
+of his head and shoulders even at that distance. She hoped he had a warm
+enough overcoat.
+
+The wagon reached the steepest part of the incline, and he was out,
+walking briskly along beside it. Before it, very soon; he went so much
+faster. How like James, and how unnecessary! He the only passenger, and
+what were horses made for, anyway? Still perhaps it was better, if he
+were not warmly dressed....
+
+The ascent grew steeper before him and his pace visibly decreased. But
+the wagon merely crawled, far behind him! He was a furious walker. That
+hill was enough to phase any one....
+
+Presently the sight of him plodding painfully up toward her while she
+waited calmly at the top grew perfectly intolerable. She could bear it
+no longer; hatless and coatless she rushed out of the hotel and down
+the road toward him. After a while he raised his face and their eyes
+met. Nearer and nearer they came, gazing fixedly into each other's eyes
+and discovering new things there, new lives, new worlds....
+
+They did not even kiss. She, looking beyond him, saw the driver of the
+station wagon peering up at them, and he caught sight over her shoulder
+of the staring windows of the hotel. They stopped with some
+embarrassment and immediately began walking up together.
+
+"It's nice to see you, James; did you have a good journey?"
+
+"Yes, very, thanks. You comfortable here?"
+
+On they walked, in silence. Gradually their embarrassment left them and
+gave place to a sort of awe. Something was going to happen, something
+great and wonderful; they no longer doubted it nor felt any fear.
+But--all in good time!
+
+It must be coming soon, though, to judge by the way it kept pressing
+down on them. Good time? Heavens, there never was any time but the
+present moment, never would be any....
+
+"Beatrice," said James, staring hard at the ground in front of him, "I
+know now how wicked I've been. Do you think you can ever forgive me?"
+
+"Why, James," said Beatrice gently, "dear James, there's nothing to
+forgive."
+
+Then he looked up and saw there were tears on her cheeks....
+
+Yes, right there in the open road!
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVI
+
+REINSTATEMENT OF A SCHÖNE SEELE
+
+
+The sunlight of a golden October afternoon poured down on a little brick
+terrace running along one side of the farmhouse in the Berkshires Harry
+had bought and reformed into a summer house. It was not the principal
+open-air extension of the place; the official verandah was on the other
+side, commanding a wide view to the east and south. This was just a
+little private terrace, designed especially for use on afternoons like
+the present, when for the moment autumn went back on all its promises
+and in a moment of carelessness poured over a dying landscape the breath
+of May. The only view to be had from it was up a grassy slope to the
+west, on the summit of which, according to all standards except those of
+the New England farmer of one hundred years ago, the house ought to have
+been built. Not that either Madge or Harry cared particularly. They were
+fond of pointing out that Tom Ball, or West Stockbridge Mountain, or
+whatever it was, shut out the view to the west anyway, and that they
+were lucky enough to find a farmhouse with any view from it at all.
+
+On the terrace sat James and Beatrice, who were spending a week-end with
+their relatives. Madge was with them. Presumably there was current in
+her mind a polite fiction that she was entertaining her guests, but she
+did not take her duties of hostess-ship too seriously. It was not even
+necessary to keep up a conversation; they all got along far too well
+together for that. They simply sat and enjoyed the fleeting sunshine,
+making pleasant and unnecessary remarks whenever they felt moved to do
+so. Probably they also thought, from time to time. Of the general
+extraordinariness of things, and so forth. If they all spent a little
+time in admiring the adroitness with which the hands of fate had
+shuffled them, with the absent member of the pack, into their present
+satisfactory positions, we should not be at all surprised. But of course
+none of them made any allusion to it.
+
+Harry suddenly burst through the glass door leading from the house and
+flopped into a chair. His appearance was informal. The others turned
+toward him with curious nostrils.
+
+"I know, I know," he sighed. "The only thing is for us all to smoke. You
+too, Beatrice. Because if you don't you'll smell me, and if you smell me
+I'll have to go up and wash, and if I go up and wash now I shall miss
+this last hour of sunshine and that will make you all very, very
+unhappy."
+
+"I am smoking," said Beatrice calmly, "because I want to, and for no
+other reason."
+
+"And I," observed Madge, "because Harry doesn't want me to."
+
+"If you want to know what I've been doing since lunch," said Harry,
+disregarding the insult, "I don't mind telling you that I've mended a
+wire fence, covered the asparagus bed, conducted several successful
+bonfires and filled all the grease-cups on the Ford. I have also
+turned--"
+
+"Yes," said James, "we've guessed that."
+
+"And now only a few trifles such as feeding fowls and swine--or as Madge
+prefers to put it, chickabiddies and piggywigs--stand between me and a
+well-deserved repose. Heavens! I don't see how farmers can keep such
+late hours. Harker, I believe, frequently stays up till nearly nine. I
+feel as if it ought to be midnight now; nothing but the thought of the
+piggywigs keeps me out of bed."
+
+"Can't Harker feed the piggywigs?" inquired Beatrice.
+
+"Oh, yes," said Madge, "just as he can do all the other things Harry
+does a great deal better than he. But it keeps him busy and happy, so we
+let him go on."
+
+"Just as if you didn't cry every night to feed your old pigs!" retorted
+her husband.
+
+Madge laughed. "Yes, I am rather a fool about the poor things, even if
+they aren't so attractive as they were in June. You should have seen
+them, so pink and tiny and sweet, standing up on their hind legs and
+wiggling their noses at you! No one could help wanting to feed them,
+they were so helpless and confident of receiving a shower of manna from
+above. I know just how the Almighty felt when he fed the Israelites."
+
+"Better manna than manners," murmured Harry, and for a while there was a
+profound silence.
+
+"What about a stroll before tea?" presently suggested the happy farmer.
+
+"I should like to," said James. "We'll have to make it short, though."
+
+"Very well. What about the others--the fair swine-herd?"
+
+"I think not," answered the person referred to, smiling up at him. "I
+took quite a long walk before lunch, you know."
+
+"Oh, yes," said Harry, blushing for no apparent reason. "Beatrice?"
+
+Beatrice preferred to stay with Madge.
+
+"You see," said Harry when the two had gone a little way; "you see, the
+fact is, Madge--hm. Madge--"
+
+"You mean," said James, smiling, "there is hope of a new generation of
+our illustrious house?"
+
+"Yes! I only learned this morning. If it's a boy we're going to call it
+James, and if it's a girl we're going to call it Jaqueline."
+
+"I wonder," mused James, "how many times you have named it since you
+first heard."
+
+"There have been several suggestions," admitted Harry, laughing. "I
+really think it will end by that, though."
+
+"Jaqueline--quite a pretty name. Much prettier than James--I rather hope
+it will be a girl."
+
+"Yes, I do too," said Harry. And both knew that they would not have
+troubled to express that wish if they had not really hoped the direct
+opposite....
+
+They walked slowly up the hill and presently turned and stopped to
+admire the view that the foolish prudence of a dead farmer had prevented
+them from enjoying from the house. It was a very lovely view, with its
+tumbled stretches of hills and fields and occasional sheets of blue
+water bathed in the mellow light of the sun that hung low over the dark
+mountain wall to the west. Possibly it was its sheer beauty, or the
+impression it gave of distance from human strife and sordidness, or
+perhaps the subject last mentioned imparted to their thoughts and
+impulse away from the trivial and familiar; at any rate when Harry next
+spoke his words fell neither on James' ears nor his own with the sound
+of fatuity that they might have held at another time.
+
+"James," he said, "we're getting on, aren't we? I don't mean in years,
+though that's a most extraordinary feeling in itself, but in--in life,
+in the business of living. If you ask me what I mean by that
+high-sounding phrase I can only say it's something like coming out of
+every experience a little better qualified to meet whatever new
+experience lies in store for you. Of course we've heard about life being
+a game and all that facile rot ever since we were old enough to speak,
+but it's quite different when you come to _feel_ it. It's a sensation
+all by itself, isn't it?"
+
+James drew a deep breath. "Yes, it is quite by itself," he agreed. "And
+I'm glad to be able to say that at last I have some idea of what the
+actual feeling is like. It was atrophied long enough in me, Heaven
+knows! It's still very slight, very timid and tentative; just a sort of
+glimmering at times--"
+
+"That's all it ever is," said Harry. "Just an occasional glimmering. The
+true feeling, that is. If it's anything more, it isn't really that at
+all, but just a sort of stuckupness, an idea that I am equal to the
+worst life can do to Me! I know people that seem to have that
+attitude--insufferable! Only life is pretty apt to punish them by giving
+them a great deal more than they bargained for."
+
+James was silent a moment, as with a sort of confessional silence. But
+he knew Harry would not understand its confessional quality, so he said
+quietly: "That's exactly what happened to me, of course."
+
+"Oh, rot! Did you think I meant you?"
+
+"No, but it's true, for all that. Thank Heaven I have been permitted to
+live through it!... The truth is, I suppose, I was too successful early
+in life. In school, in college and afterward it was always the same--I
+found myself able to do certain things with an ease that surprised and
+delighted people--no one more than myself. For they weren't things that
+mattered especially, you see; they were showy, spectacular things that
+appealed to the public eye, like playing football. I was a good physical
+specimen, not through any effort or merit of my own, but simply through
+a natural gift, and a very poor and hollow gift it is, as I've found
+out. I don't think people quite realize the problem that a man of the
+athletic type has to face if he's going to make anything out of himself
+but an athlete. From early boyhood he's conscious of physical
+superiority; he knows perfectly well that in the last resort he can
+knock the other fellow down and stamp on him, and that gives him a
+certain feeling of repose and self-sufficiency that's very pernicious.
+It usually passes for strength of character, but it's nothing in the
+world but faith in bone and muscle. And people do worship physical
+strength so! It's small wonder a man gets his head turned.... Good Lord,
+the ideas I used to have about myself! Why, in college, if any one had
+made me say what, in the bottom of my heart, I thought was the greatest
+possible thing for a man of my years to be, I should have said being a
+great football player in a great university. That is, I wouldn't have
+said it, because that would have been like bragging, and it isn't done
+to brag: but that would have been my secret thought.
+
+"And then, if the man has any brains or any capacity for feeling, he
+runs up against some of the big forces of life, and he finds his
+physical strength no more use to him than a broken reed. It's quite a
+shock! I've been more severely tried than most people are, I imagine,
+but Heaven knows I needed it! Everything had gone my way before that; I
+literally never knew what it was to have to put up a fight against
+something I recognized as stronger than I and likely to beat me in the
+end. Well, I'm grateful enough for it now. Thank Heaven for it! Thank
+Heaven for letting me fight and find out my weakness and come through it
+somehow, instead of remaining a mere mountain of beef all my days!"
+
+Both stood silent for a moment after James had ended this confession,
+less because they felt embarrassment in the presence of the feeling that
+lay behind it than because for a short time the past lay on them too
+heavily for words. After a few seconds they moved as though by a common
+impulse and walked slowly along the grassy crest of the ridge, and Harry
+began again.
+
+"What you say sounds very well coming from you, James, but I have reason
+to believe that very little, if any of it, is true. It was my privilege
+to know you during the years you speak of, and I seem to remember you as
+something more than a mountain of beef. Don't be absurd, James!"
+
+He paused a moment and then went on more seriously: "No, James; if there
+was ever any danger of any of us suffering from cock-sureness it's I, at
+this moment. Do you realize how ridiculously happy I've been for the
+last year or so? This success of mine--oh, I've worked, but it's been
+absurdly easy, for all that--and Madge, and everything--it seems
+sometimes as if there was something strange and sinister about it. It
+simply can't be good for any one to be so happy! It worries me."
+
+"Well, as long as it does, you needn't," said James.
+
+"Oh, I see! That makes it quite simple, of course!"
+
+"What I mean," elucidated James, "is that, if you feel that way about
+it, it's probable that you really deserve what happiness you have. After
+all, you know, you have paid for some. You have had your times; I don't
+mind admitting that there have been moments when you weren't quite the
+archangel which of course you are at present!"
+
+Harry laughed. "The prophet Jeremiah once said something about its being
+good for a man that he should bear the yoke in his youth. If that is
+equivalent to saying that the earlier a man has his bad times the
+better, it may be that I got off more easily by having them in college
+than if they'd held off till later. One does learn certain things easier
+if one learns them early. But that doesn't mean that your youth has
+passed without your feeling the yoke, or that your youth has passed yet.
+You're still in the Jeremiah class! One would hardly say that at
+thirty--you're not much over thirty, are you?"
+
+"A few weeks under, I believe."
+
+"I'm sorry!--Well, at thirty there are surely years of youth ahead of
+you, which you, having borne your yoke, may look forward to without fear
+and with every prospect of enjoying to the fullest extent. Whereas
+I--well, there's even more time for me to bear yokes in, if necessary. I
+don't much believe that Jeremiah has done with me yet, somehow!"
+
+"You're not afraid of the future, though, are you?" asked James after a
+pause.
+
+"Oh, no--that would never do. I feel about it as.... One can't say these
+things without sounding cocksure and insufferable!"
+
+"You mean you'll do your best under the circumstances?"
+
+"Yes, or make a good try at it! And then.... Of course I can't be as
+happy as I am without having a good deal at stake; I've given hostages
+to fortune--that's Francis Bacon, not me. And if fortune should look
+upon those hostages with a covetous eye--if anything, for instance,
+should happen to Madge in what's coming, why, there are still plenty of
+things that the worst fortune can't spoil!... Well, you know."
+
+"Yes," said James; "I know."
+
+"In fact, there are certain things in the past so dear to me that
+perhaps, if it came to the point, it would be almost a joy to pay
+heavily for them. But that's only the way I feel about it now, of
+course. It's easy enough to be brave when there's no danger."
+
+"Yes," said James, "but I think you're right in the main. After all, the
+past is one's own--inalienably, forever! While the future is any
+man's....
+
+"Of course you know," he went on after a pause, "that my past would have
+been nothing at all to me without you. It sounds funny, but it's true."
+
+"Funny is the word," said Harry.
+
+"But perfectly true. I should never have come through--all this business
+if it hadn't been for you."
+
+"Look here, James, you're not going to thank me for saving your soul,
+are you? That would be a little forced!"
+
+"My dear man, I'm not thanking you, I'm telling you! You were the one
+good thing I held on to; I was false and wicked in about every way I
+could be, but I did always try, in a sort of blind and blundering way,
+to be true to you. You've been--unconsciously if you will have it
+so--the best influence of my life, and I thought it might be well to
+tell you, that's all."
+
+"Well, I won't pretend I'm not glad to hear it," said Harry soberly. "It
+is rather remarkable when you come to think of it," he went on after a
+moment, "how our lives have been bound up together. It's rather unusual
+with brothers, I imagine. Generally they see a good deal too much of
+each other during their early years and when they grow up they settle
+down into an acquaintanceship of a more or less cordial nature. But with
+us it's been different. Being apart during those early years, I suppose,
+made it necessary for us to rediscover each other when we grew up...."
+
+"Yes," said James, "and the process of rediscovering had some rather
+lively passages in it, if I remember right."
+
+"It did! But it was a good thing; it gave us a new interest in each
+other. One reason why people are commonly so much more enthusiastic
+about their friends than about their relations is because their
+relations are an accident, but their friends are a credit to them. It
+just shows what a selfish thing human nature is, I suppose."
+
+"I see; a new way of being a credit to ourselves. Well, most of it's on
+my side, I imagine."
+
+Harry turned gravely toward his brother. "It seems to me, James, you
+suffer under a tendency to overestimate my virtues. You mustn't, you
+know; it's extremely bad for me. I should say, if questioned closely,
+that that was your one fault--if one expects a kindred tendency to
+shield me from things I ought not to be shielded from."
+
+"Oh, rot, man!"
+
+"You needn't talk--you do. I've felt it, all along, though you've done
+your job so well that for the most part I never knew what you'd saved me
+from."
+
+"Well.... I might go so far as to say that when I've put you before
+myself I generally find I'm all right, and when I put myself first I
+generally find I'm all wrong. But as I've been all wrong most of the
+time, it doesn't signify much!"
+
+"Hm. You put it so that I can't insist very hard. It's there, though,
+for all that. Funny thing. I don't believe it's a bit usual between
+friends, really, especially between brothers. Whatever started you on
+it? It must have been more or less conscious."
+
+For a moment James thought of telling him. They had lived so long since
+then; it would be amusing for them to trace together the effects of that
+one little guiding idea. But he thought of the years ahead, and they
+seemed to call out to him with warning voices, voices full of a tale of
+tasks unfinished and the need of a vigilance sharper than before. So he
+only laughed a little and said:
+
+"Oh, it's you that are exaggerating now! You mustn't get ideas about it;
+it's no more than you'd do for me, or any one for any one else he cares
+about. But little as it is, don't grudge it to me, for though it may not
+have done you much good, it's been the saving of me...."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+So they walked and talked as the sun sank low and the night fell gently
+from a cloudless sky. To Madge and Beatrice, seeing them silhouetted
+against that final blaze of glory in the west, they seemed almost as one
+figure.
+
+
+
+
+
+End of Project Gutenberg's The Whirligig of Time, by Wayland Wells Williams
+
+*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE WHIRLIGIG OF TIME ***
+
+***** This file should be named 37906-8.txt or 37906-8.zip *****
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+ http://www.gutenberg.org/3/7/9/0/37906/
+
+Produced by Roger Frank, Matthew Wheaton and the Online
+Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
+will be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
+one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
+(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
+permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
+set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
+copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
+protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
+Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
+charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
+do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
+rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
+such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
+research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
+practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
+subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
+redistribution.
+
+
+
+*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
+http://gutenberg.org/license).
+
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
+all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
+If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
+terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
+entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
+
+1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
+and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
+or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
+collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
+individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
+located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
+copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
+works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
+are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
+Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
+freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
+this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
+the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
+keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
+a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
+the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
+before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
+creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
+Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
+the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
+States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
+access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
+whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
+phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
+copied or distributed:
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
+from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
+posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
+and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
+or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
+with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
+work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
+through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
+Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
+1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
+terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
+to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
+permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
+word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
+distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
+"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
+posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
+you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
+copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
+request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
+form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
+that
+
+- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
+ owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
+ has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
+ Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
+ must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
+ prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
+ returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
+ sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
+ address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
+ the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or
+ destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
+ and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
+ Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
+ money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
+ of receipt of the work.
+
+- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
+forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
+both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
+Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
+Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
+collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
+"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
+property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
+computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
+your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
+of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
+your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
+the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
+refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
+providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
+receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
+is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
+opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
+WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
+If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
+law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
+interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
+the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
+provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
+with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
+promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
+harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
+that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
+or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
+work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
+Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
+
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
+including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
+because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
+people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need, are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
+To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
+and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
+
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
+Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
+http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
+permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
+
+The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
+Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
+throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
+809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
+business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
+information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
+page at http://pglaf.org
+
+For additional contact information:
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
+SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
+particular state visit http://pglaf.org
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
+To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
+
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
+with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
+Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
+
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
+
+ http://www.gutenberg.org
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/37906-8.zip b/37906-8.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..f50b8af
--- /dev/null
+++ b/37906-8.zip
Binary files differ
diff --git a/37906-h.zip b/37906-h.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..1f81157
--- /dev/null
+++ b/37906-h.zip
Binary files differ
diff --git a/37906-h/37906-h.htm b/37906-h/37906-h.htm
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..5efc03e
--- /dev/null
+++ b/37906-h/37906-h.htm
@@ -0,0 +1,19646 @@
+<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.1//EN" "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml11/DTD/xhtml11.dtd">
+
+<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml">
+
+<head>
+
+ <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=iso-8859-1" />
+ <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
+
+ <title>
+ The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Whirligig Of Time, by Wayland Wells Williams.
+ </title>
+
+ <style type="text/css">
+
+ blockquote {
+ text-align:justify;
+ }
+
+ body {
+ margin-left:10%;
+ margin-right:10%;
+ }
+
+ .booktitle {
+ letter-spacing:3px;
+ }
+
+ .centered {
+ text-align:center;
+ font-weight:bold;
+ }
+
+ div.centered {
+ text-align:center;
+ }
+
+ div.centered table {
+ margin-left:auto;
+ margin-right:auto;
+ text-align:left;
+ }
+
+ div.inset12, div.inset14 {
+ margin-top:1em;
+ margin-bottom:1em;
+ margin-left:auto;
+ margin-right:auto;
+ }
+
+ div.inset12 {
+ width:12em
+ }
+
+ div.inset14 {
+ width:14em
+ }
+
+ div.inset12 p, div.inset14 p {
+ text-indent:0;
+ }
+
+ .figcenter {
+ padding:1em;
+ text-align:center;
+ font-size:0.8em;
+ border:none;
+ margin:auto;
+ text-indent:1em;
+ width:400px;
+ }
+
+ .h1 {
+ font-size:2em;
+ margin:.67em 0;
+ }
+
+ .h1, .h2, .h3, .h4, .h5 {
+ font-weight:bolder;
+ text-align:center;
+ text-indent:0;
+ }
+
+ h1, h2, h3, h4, h5 {
+ text-align:center;
+ }
+
+ .h2 {
+ font-size:1.5em;
+ margin:.75em 0;
+ }
+
+ .h3 {
+ font-size:1.17em;
+ margin:.83em 0;
+ }
+
+ .h4 {
+ margin:1.12em 0 ;
+ }
+
+ .h5 {
+ font-size:.83em;
+ margin:1.5em 0 ;
+ }
+
+ h5 {
+ margin-bottom:1%;
+ margin-top:1%;
+ }
+
+ hr.chapter {
+ margin-top:6em;
+ margin-bottom:4em;
+ }
+
+ hr.tb {
+ margin:2em 25%;
+ width:50%;
+ }
+
+ hr.thin {
+ margin-right:47%;
+ margin-left:47%;
+ margin-top:0%;
+ margin-bottom:0%;
+ width:6%;
+ }
+
+ p {
+ text-align:justify;
+ margin-top:.75em;
+ margin-bottom:.75em;
+ text-indent:0;
+ }
+
+ p.author {
+ text-align:right;
+ margin-right:5%;
+ }
+
+ p.author1 {
+ text-align:right;
+ margin-right:10%;
+ }
+
+ p.caption {
+ text-indent:0;
+ text-align:center;
+ font-weight:bold;
+ margin-bottom:2em;
+ }
+
+ p.spacer {
+ margin-top:2em;
+ margin-bottom:3em;
+ }
+
+ .pagenum {
+/* visibility:hidden; remove comment out to hide page numbers */
+ position:absolute;
+ right:2%;
+ font-size:75%;
+ color:gray;
+ background-color:inherit;
+ text-align:right;
+ text-indent:0;
+ font-style:normal;
+ font-weight:normal;
+ font-variant:normal;
+ }
+
+ .poem {
+ margin-left:10%;
+ margin-right:10%;
+ margin-bottom:1em;
+ text-align:left;
+ }
+
+ .poem .stanza {
+ margin:1em 0em 1em 0em;
+ }
+
+ .poem p {
+ margin:0;
+ padding-left:3em;
+ text-indent:-3em;
+ }
+
+ .poem span.i0 {
+ display:block;
+ margin-left:0em;
+ padding-left:3em;
+ text-indent:-3em;
+ }
+
+ .smcap {
+ font-variant:small-caps;
+ }
+
+ .tdc {
+ text-align:center;
+ }
+
+ .tdlsc {
+ text-align:left;
+ font-variant:small-caps;
+ }
+
+ .tdr {
+ text-align:right;
+ padding-right:1em;
+ }
+
+ .tdrfirst {
+ text-align:right;
+ padding-right:1em;
+ font-size:80%;
+ }
+
+ .border2 {
+ border-width:2px;
+ border-style:solid;
+ border-color:black;
+ }
+
+ </style>
+
+</head>
+
+<body>
+
+
+<pre>
+
+Project Gutenberg's The Whirligig of Time, by Wayland Wells Williams
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Title: The Whirligig of Time
+
+Author: Wayland Wells Williams
+
+Illustrator: J. Henry
+
+Release Date: November 2, 2011 [EBook #37906]
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1
+
+*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE WHIRLIGIG OF TIME ***
+
+
+
+
+Produced by Roger Frank, Matthew Wheaton and the Online
+Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+
+
+
+
+</pre>
+
+<div>
+
+<p class="spacer">&nbsp;</p>
+
+<p class="h1">THE WHIRLIGIG OF TIME</p>
+
+<div class="figcenter">
+<img class="border2" src="images/illus-fpc.jpg" width="400" height="576" alt="" />
+
+<p class="caption">&quot;&#39;JAMES DID IT! JAMES HAS MADE A TOUCHDOWN&#39;&quot;<br />
+<a href="#P95">Page 95</a></p>
+</div>
+
+<p class="spacer">&nbsp;</p>
+
+<h1 class="booktitle">THE WHIRLIGIG OF TIME</h1>
+
+<p class="h3">BY</p>
+
+<p class="h3">WAYLAND WELLS WILLIAMS</p>
+
+<p class="h4"><i>WITH A FRONTISPIECE BY<br />
+J. HENRY</i></p>
+
+<p class="spacer">&nbsp;</p>
+
+<p class="h5">"<i>And thus the whirligig of Time brings in his
+revenges.</i>"&mdash;Twelfth Night.</p>
+
+<div class="figcenter">
+<img src="images/illus-emb.jpg" width="100" height="127" alt="" />
+</div>
+
+<p class="h4">NEW YORK<br />
+<br />
+FREDERICK A. STOKES COMPANY<br />
+<br />
+PUBLISHERS</p>
+
+<p class="spacer">&nbsp;</p>
+
+<p class="h4"><i>Copyright, 1916, by</i><br />
+<span class="smcap">Frederick A. Stokes Company</span></p>
+
+<hr class="thin" />
+
+<p class="h4"><i>All rights reserved, including that of translation
+into foreign languages.</i></p>
+
+<p class="spacer">&nbsp;</p>
+
+<p class="h3">CONTENTS</p>
+
+<div class="centered">
+<table border="0" cellpadding="4" cellspacing="0" summary="">
+ <tr>
+ <td>&nbsp;</td>
+ <td class="tdc">PART I</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdrfirst">CHAPTER</td>
+ <td>&nbsp;</td>
+ <td class="tdrfirst">PAGE</td></tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_I">I</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">Unwritten Papers</td>
+ <td class="tdr">1</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_II">II</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">Aunts</td>
+ <td class="tdr">9</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_III">III</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">Not Colonial; Georgian</td>
+ <td class="tdr">19</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_IV">IV</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">Puppy Dogs, and a Psychological Fact</td>
+ <td class="tdr">28</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_V">V</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">Babes in the Wood</td>
+ <td class="tdr">38</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_VI">VI</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">Arcadia and Yankeedom</td>
+ <td class="tdr">55</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_VII">VII</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">Omne Ignotum</td>
+ <td class="tdr">69</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_VIII">VIII</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">Livy and Victor Hugo</td>
+ <td class="tdr">77</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_IX">IX</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">A Long Cheer for Wimbourne</td>
+ <td class="tdr">88</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_X">X</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">Rumblings</td>
+ <td class="tdr">101</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XI">XI</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">Aunt Selina's Beaux Yeux</td>
+ <td class="tdr">112</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XII">XII</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">An Act of God</td>
+ <td class="tdr">121</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIII">XIII</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">Sardou</td>
+ <td class="tdr">133</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIV">XIV</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">Un-Anglo-Saxon</td>
+ <td class="tdr">141</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XV">XV</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">Chiefly Cardiac</td>
+ <td class="tdr">148</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVI">XVI</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">The Saddest Tale</td>
+ <td class="tdr">160</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td>&nbsp;</td>
+ <td class="tdc">PART II</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_I2">I</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">Can Love Be Controlled by Advice?</td>
+ <td class="tdr">171</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_II2">II</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">Congreve</td>
+ <td class="tdr">184</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_III2">III</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">Not Triassic, Certainly, but Nearly as Old</td>
+ <td class="tdr">200</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_IV2">IV</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">Wild Horses and Champagne</td>
+ <td class="tdr">213</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_V2">V</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">A Sch&ouml;ne Seele on Pisgah</td>
+ <td class="tdr">224</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_VI2">VI</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">A Long Chapter. But Then, Love Is Long</td>
+ <td class="tdr">233</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_VII2">VII</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">A Very Short Chapter, in One Sense</td>
+ <td class="tdr">252</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_VIII2">VIII</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">One Thing and Another</td>
+ <td class="tdr">268</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_IX2">IX</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">Labyrinths</td>
+ <td class="tdr">280</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_X2">X</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">Mr. and Mrs. Alfred Lammle</td>
+ <td class="tdr">299</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XI2">XI</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">Hesitancies and Tears</td>
+ <td class="tdr">312</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XII2">XII</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">A Rod of Iron</td>
+ <td class="tdr">326</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIII2">XIII</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">Red Flame</td>
+ <td class="tdr">343</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIV2">XIV</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">A Potter's Vessel</td>
+ <td class="tdr">362</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XV2">XV</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">The Tide Turns</td>
+ <td class="tdr">368</td>
+ </tr>
+ <tr>
+ <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVI2">XVI</a></td>
+ <td class="tdlsc">Reinstatement of a Sch&ouml;ne Seele</td>
+ <td class="tdr">376</td>
+ </tr>
+</table>
+</div>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<p><span class="pagenum">[1]</span></p>
+
+<h2>THE WHIRLIGIG OF TIME</h2>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<h2>PART I</h2>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_I">CHAPTER I</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">UNWRITTEN PAPERS</p>
+
+<p>Two o'clock struck by the tall clock on the stairs, and
+young Harry Wimbourne, lying wide awake in his
+darkened bedroom, reflected that he had never heard that
+clock strike two before, except in the afternoon. To his
+ears the two strokes had a curious and unfamiliar sound;
+he waited expectantly for more to follow, but none did,
+and the tones of the second stroke died slowly away in a
+rather uncanny fashion through the silent house. For
+the house was silent now; the strange and terrifying series
+of sounds, issuing from the direction of his mother's room,
+that had first awakened him, had ceased some time ago.
+There had been much scurrying to and fro, much opening
+and shutting of doors, mingled not infrequently with the
+sound of voices; voices subdued and yet strained, talking
+so low and so hurriedly that no complete sentences could
+be caught, though Harry was occasionally able to distinguish
+the tones of his father, or the nurse, or the doctor.
+Once he detected the phrase "hot water"; and even
+that seemed to give a slight tinge of familiarity and sanity
+to the other noises. But then had come those other sounds
+that froze the very blood in his veins, and made him lie
+stiff and stark in his bed, perspiring in every pore, in an
+agony of ignorance and terror. It was all so inexplicable;
+his mother&mdash;! A strange voice would not have affected
+him so.</p>
+
+<p>But all that had stopped after a while, and everything
+had quieted down to the stillness that had prevailed for
+an hour or more when the clock struck two. The stillness
+was in its way even more wearing than the noises had
+been, for it gave one the impression that more was to follow.<span class="pagenum">[2]</span>
+"Wait, wait, wait," it seemed to Harry to say;
+"the worst is not nearly over yet; more will happen before
+the night is out; Wait, wait!" and the slow tick of
+the clock on the stairs, faintly heard through the closed
+door, took up the burden "Wait! Wait!" And Harry
+waited. The passage of time seemed to him both cruelly
+slow and cruelly fast; each minute dragged along like an
+hour, and yet when the hour struck it seemed to him to have
+passed off in the space of a minute.</p>
+
+<p>Sleep was impossible. For the fiftieth time he turned
+over in his bed, trying to find a position that would prove
+so comfortable as to ensure drowsiness; yet as he did so
+he felt convinced that he could not sleep until something
+definite, something final, even if unpleasant, should
+end the suspense of the silence. He looked across the short
+space of darkness that separated his bed from that of his
+elder brother James, and envied him his power of sleeping
+through anything. But a short sudden change in the dim
+outline of the other bed told him that his brother was not
+asleep. Harry felt the other's gaze trying to pierce the
+darkness, even as his own. He half turned, with a sharp
+and nervous motion, to show that he was awake, and for
+some minutes both boys lay silently gazing toward each
+other, each wondering how much the other had heard.</p>
+
+<p>At length James broke the silence. "It's come," he
+said.</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, it has," answered Harry. "How long have you
+been awake?" he added, feeling he must ascertain how
+much James knew before committing himself any further.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, hours," said James.</p>
+
+<p>"Since before&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes."</p>
+
+<p>So James had heard all, thought Harry. It was just
+like him to be awake all that time and never give a sign.
+It scarcely occurred to him that James might be as shy
+as himself in reference to the events of the night.</p>
+
+<p>It must not for a moment be supposed that either of
+these boys was ignorant of the nature of what was taking
+place in their mother's room. Harry was ten at the time,
+and James was within hinting distance of his twelfth birthday.
+So that when their father, a few days before, had
+solemnly informed them that they might expect the arrival
+of a little brother or sister before long, and that they must<span class="pagenum">[3]</span>
+be most careful not to disturb their mother in any way,
+etc., etc., no childish superstition picturing the newcomer
+flying through the window or floating down a stream on a
+cabbage leaf or, more prosaically, being introduced in the
+doctor's black bag, ever entered their heads. When the
+trained nurse appeared, a day or two later, they did not
+need to be told why she was there. They accepted the
+situation, tried to make as little noise as possible, and
+struck up a great friendship with Miss Garver, who at
+first had ample leisure to regale them with tales of her
+hospital experiences; among which, she was sorry to
+observe, accounts of advanced cases of delirium tremens
+were easily the favorites.</p>
+
+<p>For a long time the two boys lay awake without exchanging
+any more conversation worth mentioning. They heard
+the clock strike three, and after that they may have slept.
+At any rate, the first thing they were aware of was the
+door of their room being opened by a softly rustling figure
+which they at once recognized as that of the trained nurse.
+She crossed the room and methodically lit the gas; then she
+turned and stood at the foot of Harry's bed, resting her
+hands lightly on the footboard. Both the boys noticed
+immediately how white her face was and how grave its
+expression.</p>
+
+<p>"Are you both awake, boys?" she asked.</p>
+
+<p>They both said they were, and Miss Garver, after pausing
+a moment, as if to choose her words, said:</p>
+
+<p>"Then get up and put on something, and come into
+your mother's room with me."</p>
+
+<p>Without a word they rose and stumbled into their dressing
+gowns and slippers. When they were ready Miss
+Garver led the way to the door, and there turned toward
+them, with her hand on the knob.</p>
+
+<p>"Your mother is very ill, boys. We are afraid&mdash;this
+may be the last time you will see her."</p>
+
+<p>Dazed and silent they followed her into the hall.</p>
+
+<p>The bedroom into which they then went was a large
+room at the front of the house, high of ceiling, generous
+of window space, and furnished for the most part with old
+mahogany furniture. It was a beautiful old room when
+the sun was pouring in through the great windows, and it
+was quite as beautiful, in a solemn sort of way, now, when
+it was dimly illuminated by one low-burning gas jet and<span class="pagenum">[4]</span>
+one or two shaded candles. A low fire was burning in
+the grate, and its dying flames fitfully shone on soft-colored
+chintz coverings and glowing mahogany surfaces,
+giving to the room an air of drowsy and delicious peace.
+And in the middle of it all, on a great mahogany four-poster
+bed, curtained, after the fashion of a hundred years
+ago, Edith Wimbourne lay dying. She, poor lady, white
+and unconscious on her great bed, cared as little for the
+setting of the scene in which she was playing the chief part
+as dying people generally do; but we, who look on the scene
+with detached and appreciative eyes, may perhaps venture
+the opinion that, if a choice of deaths be vouchsafed us, we
+would as lief as not die in a four-poster bed, surrounded by
+those we love best, and with a flickering fire casting changing
+and fantastic shadows on the familiar walls and ceiling.</p>
+
+<p>Beside the dying lady on the bed, there were three other
+people in the bedroom when Miss Garver led Harry and
+James into it. The doctor, whom they both knew and
+liked well, sat at the head of the bed. In a large armchair
+near the fire sat the boys' father, and somewhere in
+the background hovered another trained nurse, sprung
+out of nowhere. The presence of these figures seemed, in
+some intangible way, to make death an actual fact, instead
+of a mere possibility; if they had not been there, the boys
+might merely have been going to pay their mother a visit
+when she was ill. Now they both realized, with horribly
+sinking hearts, that they were going to see her for the last
+time.</p>
+
+<p>The doctor looked up inquiringly as Miss Garver brought
+the two boys into the room and led them over toward the
+bed. The father did not even turn his head as they came
+in. They stood by the bedside and gazed in silence at the
+pale sleeping face on the pillow. A faint odor of chloroform
+hung about the bed. The doctor stood up and
+leaned over to listen to the action of the dying woman's
+heart. After he had finished he drew back a little from
+the bedside.</p>
+
+<p>"You may kiss her, if you like," he said softly.</p>
+
+<p>The boys leaned down in turn and silently touched the
+calm lips. It was almost more than Harry could stand.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, must this be the last time?" he heard himself
+shrieking. But no one paid any attention to him, and<span class="pagenum">[5]</span>
+he suddenly realized that he had not spoken the words
+aloud. He looked at James' face, calm though drawn, and
+the sight reassured him. He wondered if James was suffering
+as much as himself, and thought he probably was.
+He wondered if his face showed as little as James'.</p>
+
+<p>The doctor and Miss Garver were whispering together.</p>
+
+<p>"Shall I take them away now?" she asked.</p>
+
+<p>"Not yet," was the answer; "there is just a chance
+that&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>He did not finish, but Miss Garver must have understood,
+for she nodded and quietly drew the boys away.
+They walked off toward the fireplace, and their father,
+without moving his head, stretched out a hand in their
+direction. Silently they sat down by him, one on each
+arm of his chair, and he slipped an arm about the waist of
+each.</p>
+
+<p>So they started on the last period of waiting for what
+they all knew must come; what they prayed might come
+soon and at the same time longed to postpone as long as
+possible. The doctor had resumed his seat at the bedside,
+and now kept his fingers almost constantly on the patient's
+wrist. The two nurses sat down a little way off, to be
+ready in case&mdash;The emergency was not formulated.
+These three people were all present for professional
+reasons, so we may assume that most of their meditations
+were of a professional nature. But even so, they felt
+beneath their professional calm the mingled sadness and
+sweetness and solemnity that accompanies the sight of
+death, be it never so familiar. And we may easily guess
+the feelings of the two boys as they awaited the departure
+of the person they loved most on earth; nothing but the
+feeling of suspense kept them from giving away completely.
+The person in the room whom the scene might
+have been expected to affect most was, in point of fact, the
+one who felt it least, and that was the shortly to be
+bereaved husband, Hilary Wimbourne.</p>
+
+<p>"Poor Edith," he mused, "poor Edith. What a wife
+she has been to me, to be sure! I was fond of her, too.
+Not as fond as I might have been, of course ... Still,
+when I think that I shall never again see her face behind
+the coffee things at the breakfast table it gives me a pang,
+a distinct pang ... By the bye, I don't suppose she
+remembered, before all this came on, to send that Sheffield<span class="pagenum">[6]</span>
+urn to be replated ... But it's all so beautiful&mdash;the fire,
+the draped bed, the waiting figures, the whole atmosphere!
+Just what she would have chosen to die in; all peace and
+naturalness. Everything seems to say 'Good-by, Edith;
+congratulations, Edith; well out of it all,' only much more
+beautifully. There is a dirge&mdash;how does it go?&mdash;</p>
+
+<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
+<span class="i0">Oh, no more, no more; too late<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Sighs are spent; the burning tapers<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Of a life as chaste as fate,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Pure as are unwritten papers,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Are burnt out&mdash;<br /></span>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>"That comes somewhere near it; 'a life as chaste as fate'&mdash;not
+a bad description of Edith ... 'Pure as are unwritten
+papers'&mdash;who but an Elizabethan would have
+dared to cast that line just like that? Let's see; Ford,
+was it, or Shirley?... If only some one were singing
+that now, behind the scenes, out by the bathroom door, say,
+everything would be quite perfect. 'Unwritten papers'&mdash;ah,
+well, people have no business to be as pure as Edith was&mdash;and
+live. But what is to become of my home without
+her? What will become of the boys? Good Heavens,
+what am I going to do with the boys? Good little souls&mdash;how
+quiet they are! It all hits them a great deal harder
+than it does me, I know. It won't be so bad when they're
+old enough to go off to school, but till then ... I must
+ask Cecilia's advice; she'll have some ideas, and by the
+way, I wonder if Cecilia thought to see about that Sheraton
+sideboard for me?"</p>
+
+<p>And so on, and so on. Hilary Wimbourne's meditations
+never went very far without rounding up at a Sheraton
+sideboard or an old Sheffield urn or a nice bit of Chienlung
+or a new idea for a pleached alley. Let us not judge
+him. He was that sort of person.</p>
+
+<p>These reflections, and the complete outward silence in
+which they took place, were at last interrupted by a slight
+stirring of the sick woman on the bed. For the last time
+in her mortal life&mdash;and for very nearly the first, for the
+matter of that&mdash;Edith Wimbourne was to assume the
+center of her family stage. Her husband and sons heard
+her sigh and stir slightly as she lay, and then the doctor
+and Miss Garver appeared to be busy over her for a few
+moments. Probably they made shift to force a stimulant
+between her teeth, for in a moment or two she opened her<span class="pagenum">[7]</span>
+eyes to the extent of seeing what was about her. Almost
+the first sight that greeted them was that of her two sons
+sitting on the arms of their father's chair, and as she saw
+them she smiled faintly.</p>
+
+<p>The nurse glanced inquiringly toward the doctor, who
+nodded, and she went over and touched Harry lightly on
+the shoulder.</p>
+
+<p>"Come over and speak to your mother," she whispered,
+and Harry walked to her side. Very gently he took the
+hand that lay motionless on the bed and held it in his.
+He could not have uttered a word for the life of him.</p>
+
+<p>Either the reviving action of the stimulant or the feeling
+of the warm blood pulsing through his young hand, or
+perhaps both, lent a little strength to the dying woman.
+She smiled again, and ever so slight a flush appeared on
+her wasted cheeks. "Harry, dear Harry," she whispered
+gently, and the boy leaned down to catch the words. "I
+am going to leave you, dear, and I am sorry. I know I
+should be very proud of you, if I could live ... Be a
+good boy, Harry, and don't forget your mother."</p>
+
+<p>She closed her eyes again, exhausted with the effort of
+speaking. Dazed and motionless Harry remained where
+he stood until the nurse led him gently away to make
+room for James.</p>
+
+<p>James stood for some moments as his brother had done,
+with his hand clasped in that of his mother. Presently
+she opened her eyes once more, and gazed gravely for a
+moment or two at the face of her first-born, as though
+gathering her little remaining strength for what she had
+to say to him.</p>
+
+<p>"Listen, dear," she said at last, and James bent
+down. "I'm going to die, James. Try not to be too sorry
+about it. It is all for the best ... Dearest, there is something
+I want you to do for me; you know how I have
+always trusted you, and depended on you&mdash;well, perhaps
+you don't know, but I have ... James, I want you to
+look out for Harry. He needs it now, and he will need
+it a great deal more later. You will see what I mean,
+as you grow up. He is not made like you; he will need
+some one to look after him. Can you promise me that you
+will do this?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," whispered James.</p>
+
+<p>His mother sighed gently, as though with relief. "Now<span class="pagenum">[8]</span>
+kiss me, dear," she said, and then, almost inaudibly, "It
+is good to leave some one I can trust." Then she closed
+her eyes, for the last time.</p>
+
+<p>James never repeated those words of his mother to any
+human being, as long as he lived, not even to Harry. It
+would be too much to say that they were never absent from
+his thoughts, for in truth he thought but seldom of them,
+after the first few days. But in some compelling though
+intangible way he realized, as he stood there by his mother's
+death-bed, that he had accepted a trust from which nothing
+but death would release him.</p>
+
+<p>The doctor returned to the side of the dying woman.
+Swiftly and quietly Miss Garver placed a hand on the
+shoulder of each of the two boys and led them from the
+room. Edith Wimbourne slept, and her sleep slowly
+passed into death.</p>
+
+<p>The man in the chair never moved.</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[9]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_II">CHAPTER II</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">AUNTS</p>
+
+<p>Till Miss Garver had seen Harry and James tucked
+away in their beds again and had put out the light
+and left their room, both the boys maintained the same
+outward composure that they had shown throughout the
+experiences of the night. But once left alone in the quiet
+of their darkened bedroom, no further ordeal ahead of
+them to inspire restraint&mdash;for they knew perfectly well by
+this time that their mother must be dead&mdash;they gave way
+entirely to their natural grief and spent what they both
+remembered afterward as the wretchedest night of their
+lives.</p>
+
+<p>It was scarcely better when Miss Garver woke them in
+the morning, though sleep had so completely erased all
+recollection of the night before that Harry, lazily sitting
+up and rubbing his eyes, asked what time it was in the
+most natural voice in the world.</p>
+
+<p>"About ten o'clock," was the reply.</p>
+
+<p>"Ten o'clock! Why, we're an hour late for school
+already."</p>
+
+<p>"You are not going to school to-day," answered Miss
+Garver, gently, and she hated to say it, knowing that the
+remark would immediately set them remembering. When
+she turned toward them again she saw that it had, indeed.</p>
+
+<p>"Listen," she told them, as gently as she could, "I want
+you both to get dressed now as quickly as possible and then
+go down and eat your breakfast. After that I am going
+to take you both down town. There is a good deal to be
+done. So hurry up."</p>
+
+<p>"Why are you going to take us down town?" asked
+James.</p>
+
+<p>"To get some clothes."</p>
+
+<p>"But I don't understand," he began again, and then
+he did. He started dressing, mechanically, and had half
+completed his toilet before he noticed his brother, who was
+kneeling despairingly by his bed, with his face buried in
+the pillow.</p>
+
+<p>"Come on, Harry," he said gently; "I'm nearly ready."</p>
+
+<p>"No," moaned Harry.<span class="pagenum">[10]</span></p>
+
+<p>"Yes. It's got to be done, you know."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, go away and leave me alone."</p>
+
+<p>James bent his head down close to that of his brother.
+"You feel better when you're doing something," he said
+softly.</p>
+
+<p>Harry, at length persuaded, arose and began to dress,
+and before long he began to feel that James was right.
+Doing something did not remove the pain, or even ease it,
+but it made you notice it less. It was even better during
+breakfast. Both the boys ate steadily and fairly copiously,
+though their enjoyment, if there was any, of what was customarily
+their pleasantest meal, was wholly subconscious.
+There was honey on the table, and Harry, without realizing
+what he was doing, helped himself to it for a second
+time. He mechanically pushed the pot back toward James,
+who also partook. Almost simultaneously their teeth
+closed on honey and muffin, and at the same time their
+eyes met. For two or three seconds they gazed shamefacedly
+at each other, and then stopped eating. Harry
+left the table and stood in front of the window, looking
+out over the wide lawn.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Mother, Mother," he cried within himself; "to
+think I should be eating honey and muffin, now, so soon,
+and enjoying it! Oh, forgive me, forgive me!"</p>
+
+<p>When the first shock of self-contempt had passed off, the
+boys wandered into the library, in search of their father.
+They discovered him, seated at his desk as they had expected,
+but it was with a sharp shock of surprise that they
+perceived that he was interviewing the cook. Both were
+more or less disgusted at the discovery, but they felt nevertheless,
+in a vague but reassuring way, that this partly
+justified the honey episode.</p>
+
+<p>The interview closed almost as soon as they entered, and
+their father called them over to him.</p>
+
+<p>"You have both been very good," he said, taking a hand
+of each of them; "this has all been very hard for you, I
+know." He paused, and then, seeing signs of tears on
+their faces, he went on somewhat hurriedly: "You must
+go down town with Miss Garver now; she has very kindly
+offered to get you what you will need for the funeral.
+Aunt Cecilia will take you to New York after that, I expect,
+and will fit you out more fully. The funeral will be
+to-morrow at three o'clock, and you will be on hand for<span class="pagenum">[11]</span>
+that. I don't know whether any one told you; the baby
+died&mdash;the one that was born last night. It was a little
+girl; she only lived a few minutes. She will be buried
+with your mother. There will be a lot of people coming
+up to-day and to-morrow for the funeral; Uncle James and
+Aunt Cecilia and various others, and as there is a good
+deal to arrange you must try to be a help and not a
+hindrance, and make yourselves useful if you can. Now
+run along with Miss Garver and&mdash;oh, one more thing. I
+should advise you not to ask to see your mother again.
+You can, of course, if you want to, but I rather think you
+will not be sorry if you don't. You see, you probably have
+a good many years in which you will have to live on her
+memory, and I think it will be better if your last recollection
+of her is as she was when she was alive, not when she
+was dead ... and if you want to drive down to the station
+after lunch to meet Uncle James and Aunt Cecilia on the
+two-fifty, you can. You'd better do that; it's a good thing
+to give yourself plenty of occupation. That's all&mdash;good-by."</p>
+
+<p>Then they went off in search of black clothes, and somewhat
+to their surprise they noticed that Miss Garver had
+returned to her companionable self of the preceding days;
+it was almost as if their mother had not died, except that
+she was gravely cheerful now, instead of cheerfully cheerful,
+as before.</p>
+
+<p>Before long the boys noticed that almost every one they
+had to do with adopted the attitude taken by Miss Garver.
+Lunch, to be sure, was a rather terrible meal, for then they
+were alone with their father, and he, though he refrained
+from further allusion to the loss that hung over them all,
+was silent and preoccupied. But Uncle James and Aunt
+Cecilia, when met at the station by their nephews, spoke
+and acted much as usual, and neither of them noticed that
+Aunt Cecilia's gentle eyes filled with tears as she kissed
+them. They had always loved Aunt Cecilia best of all
+their aunts, though she was not their real aunt, being the
+wife of their father's younger brother. Of their Uncle
+James the boys were both a little afraid, and never felt
+they understood him. He was much like their father, both
+in behavior and appearance&mdash;though he was clean-shaven
+and their father wore a beard and mustache&mdash;but he was
+much more unapproachable. He had an uncomfortable<span class="pagenum">[12]</span>
+way of suddenly joining in a conversation with an apparently
+irrelevant remark, at which everybody would
+generally remain silent for a moment and then laugh, while
+he sat with grave and unchanged countenance. The boys
+had once spoken to their father of their uncle's apparent
+lack of sympathy; Harry had complained that Uncle James
+never seemed to "have any feelings." "Well," replied
+their father, "he is a better lawyer than I am," and the
+boys never saw any sense in that reply till they remembered
+it years afterward, and even then they never could
+decide whether it was meant as an explanation or a corollary.</p>
+
+<p>Later in the afternoon Aunt Selina arrived. There was
+always something magnificent and aloof about Aunt Selina;
+she had the air of having been transplanted out of a glorious
+past into a frivolous and inferior present, and being
+far too well-bred to comment on its inferiority, however
+keenly she was aware of it. She was the half-sister of
+Hilary Wimbourne, and much older than he, being the
+child of a first marriage of his father. Harry and James
+were on the front steps to greet her as she drove up in state.
+Her very manner of stepping out of the carriage and ascending
+the steps where she gravely bent and kissed each of her
+nephews with the same greeting&mdash;"How do you do, my
+dear James," "How do you do, my dear Harry,"&mdash;was
+not so much a tribute to the gravity of this particular
+occasion as a typical instance of Aunt Selina's way of
+doing things. Though only of average height, she generally
+gave the impression of being tall by the erect way in
+which she habitually carried her head, and by the straightness
+and spareness of her whole figure. Her skirts always
+nobly swept the floor beside and behind her, in a day when
+other women's skirts hung limply about their ankles. Both
+Harry and James looked upon her with an awe which was
+only slightly modified by affection.</p>
+
+<p>But both boys' views of Aunt Selina underwent expansion
+within the next twenty-four hours, and they were
+to learn the interesting lesson that a warm and impulsive
+heart may be hidden within a forbidding exterior. Aunt
+Selina entered the home of the Wimbournes with her customary
+quiet ceremony, and gravely greeted such of her
+relatives as were present, after which every one else in the
+room instinctively "stood around," waiting for her to make<span class="pagenum">[13]</span>
+the first move. Kind and gentle Aunt Cecilia, who was a
+daughter of one of New York's oldest and proudest and
+richest families, was no one in particular while Aunt Selina
+was in the room. Miss Wimbourne immediately proceeded
+to her bedroom, to repair the ravages of travel, and when
+she came down again she found the drawing-room deserted
+except for James, who was standing in front of a window
+and gazing out into the twilight. She went over and stood
+by him, also looking over the darkening lawn.</p>
+
+<p>"I am very glad to get this chance to see you, James,"
+she said presently, in her subdued, measured tones, "even
+though the occasion for my being here is such a sad one.
+It is not often I get a chance to see any of my nephews and
+nieces."</p>
+
+<p>James mumbled an inarticulate monosyllable or two in
+reply, without turning his head. Aunt Selina had interrupted
+what was a bad half-hour for James. She
+turned and looked at him, and the look of dumb suffering
+on his face struck into the very roots of her heart. She
+stooped suddenly and put her arms about him, kissing his
+cheek with a warmth that was entirely new to James.</p>
+
+<p>"I know how it feels," she whispered; "I've been
+through it all, not once, but again and again, and I know
+just how bad it is. Dear boy, how I wish I could bear it
+for you."</p>
+
+<p>She sat down on a little settee that stood in front of the
+window, still holding one of James' hands in hers, and
+the boy, after the first shock of astonishment had passed,
+sank down on his knees in front of her and buried his head
+in her lap. So he remained for some minutes, sobbing
+almost contentedly; it was sweet to find consolation in this
+unexpected quarter.</p>
+
+<p>Presently he raised his miserable eyes to hers. "It's
+Harry, too&mdash;partly&mdash;" he said, and could go no further.</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, I know that too," said his aunt. "You mean that
+you have to bear up on Harry's account&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes!"</p>
+
+<p>"Because you are older and stronger than he, and you
+know he would suffer more if you let him see how much you
+suffer. So you go about with the pain burning your very
+heart out, because all the time something in his face makes
+it impossible for you to breathe a word more of it than you
+can help. And so every one gets the idea you are more<span class="pagenum">[14]</span>
+hard-hearted than he," she went on passionately, letting
+her voice sink to a whisper, "and are not capable of as
+much feeling as he. But you don't care what people
+think; you don't know or care about anything except oh!
+if you only might go somewhere and shriek it all out to
+somebody, anybody! And after a lifetime of that sort
+of thing self-repression becomes second nature to you, so
+that you can't say a thing you think or feel, and you become
+the sort of living mummy that I am, with your soul
+dead and embalmed years ago, while your body, your
+worthless, useless body, goes on living and living. You
+have begun it early, my poor James!"</p>
+
+<p>She stopped, quite as much astounded at her own outburst
+as James. The boy no longer cried, for astonishment
+had driven away his tears, but stared thoughtfully
+out of the window. He had not caught the full meaning
+of all that his aunt had said, but he knew that he was receiving
+a most important confidence from the most unexpected
+possible quarter, which was exactly in tune with his
+own mood. The good lady herself was for a few moments
+literally too bewildered to utter a word.</p>
+
+<p>"Good Heavens!" ran her astonished thoughts, "do you
+know what you have done, Selina Wimbourne? You have
+made more of a fool of yourself in the last five minutes
+than you have done in all the years since you were a girl!
+God grant it may do him no harm."</p>
+
+<p>To James she said aloud, as soon as she could control her
+voice:</p>
+
+<p>"I am a foolish and indiscreet old woman, James&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"No, you're not," interrupts the boy with sudden spirit.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, I've said a great deal more than I ought, at any
+rate. I don't want you to get any false impression from
+what I have told you. I want to explain to you that all
+the suffering I have undergone from&mdash;in the way I have
+told you&mdash;has not hurt me, but has rather benefited me.
+You see, there are two kinds of human suffering. One is
+forced upon you from the outside. You can't prevent that
+kind, you just have to go through with it. It never is as
+bad as you think it is going to be, I find. The other kind
+you make for yourself, by doing the wrong thing when you
+know you ought to be doing the right thing. That is the
+really bad kind of suffering, and you can always prevent
+it by doing the thing you know is right."<span class="pagenum">[15]</span></p>
+
+<p>"You mean," said James thoughtfully, "that it would
+have been even worse for you if you had squealed, when
+you knew&mdash;when you knew you ought not to!"</p>
+
+<p>"Exactly. It's simply a question of the lesser of two
+evils. Doing the pleasant but wrong thing hurts more
+in the end than doing the disagreeable but right thing."</p>
+
+<p>"I see. But suppose you can't tell which is the right
+thing and which the wrong one?"</p>
+
+<p>"Ah, there you've put your finger on a real difficulty.
+You just have to think it all over and decide as best you
+can, and then, if it turns out wrong, you're not so much
+to blame. Then, your suffering is of the kind that you
+can't help. No one can do any better than what he thinks
+is right at the time.... Now get up, dear, I hear people
+coming."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, thank you, Aunt Selina. What you have told
+me helps, an awful lot. Really!"</p>
+
+<p>"I am glad, my dear," replied Miss Wimbourne, and
+when people entered the room a second or two later no
+one suspected the sudden bond of sympathy that had
+sprung up between the specimens of crabbed age and youth
+they found there.</p>
+
+<p>"Cecilia, what's going to become of those two boys?" inquired
+Miss Wimbourne later in the evening, finding herself
+for the moment alone with her sister-in-law.</p>
+
+<p>"I've been asking myself that question pretty steadily
+for the last twelve hours," answered Mrs. James. "I wish
+<i>I</i> could take them," she added, impulsively.</p>
+
+<p>"Hardly, I suppose." If any of the remarks made in
+this conversation seem abrupt or inconsequent, it must be
+remembered that these two ladies understood each other
+pretty thoroughly without having to polish off or even finish
+their sentences, or even to make them consecutive.</p>
+
+<p>"Unfortunately," went on Mrs. James, after a brief
+pause, "the whole thing depends entirely upon Hilary."</p>
+
+<p>"The very last person&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Exactly. Yet what can one do?"</p>
+
+<p>"It seems quite clear to me," said Aunt Selina, choosing
+her words carefully and slowly, "that Hilary will
+inevitably choose the one course which is most to be avoided.
+Hilary will want them to go on living here alone with him;
+preserve the <i>status quo</i> as far as possible. What do you
+think?"<span class="pagenum">[16]</span></p>
+
+<p>"I am almost sure of it. But...."</p>
+
+<p>"But if any of us have the slightest feeling for those
+boys ... Until they are both safely away at school, at
+any rate, and he won't send them away for a year or two
+yet, at any rate."</p>
+
+<p>"Harry not for three, I should say.... That is, <i>I</i>
+shouldn't."</p>
+
+<p>Silence for a moment, then Aunt Selina:</p>
+
+<p>"Well, can you think of any one that could be got to
+come here?"</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. James fluttered for a moment, as though preparing
+for a delicate and difficult advance.</p>
+
+<p>"I wonder," she said, "that is, the thought struck me
+to-day&mdash;if you&mdash;if <i>you</i> could ever&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Hilary and I," observed Aunt Selina in calm, clear
+impersonal tones that once for all disposed of the suggestion;
+"Hilary and I Do Not Get On. That way, I mean.
+At a distance&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>The sentence was completed by a gesture that somehow
+managed to convey an impression of understanding and
+amity at a distance. Mrs. James' subdued "Oh!" of comprehension,
+or rather of resignation, bid fair for a while to
+close the interview. But presently Aunt Selina, with the
+air of one accepting a sword offered with hilt toward her,
+asked, or rather observed, as though it was not a question
+at all, but a statement:</p>
+
+<p>"What do you think of Agatha Fraile?"</p>
+
+<p>"Well," replied Mrs. James with something of a burnt-child
+air; "I like her. Though I hardly know her, of
+course. I should say she would be willing, too. Though
+of course one can't tell.... They are not well off, I believe....
+She is very good, no doubt...."</p>
+
+<p>"Hm," said Aunt Selina serenely, aware that there was
+a conversational ditch to be taken, and determined to make
+her interlocutrix give her a lead. This Aunt Cecilia
+bravely did with:</p>
+
+<p>"You mean&mdash;how much does she know about&mdash;?"</p>
+
+<p>"About Hilary, yes."</p>
+
+<p>"I rather think, myself, she must have found out through
+Edith.... I don't see how she could have failed to know.
+Do you?"</p>
+
+<p>"I can't say, I'm sure. Edith had rather curious
+ideas, though she was one of the best women that ever<span class="pagenum">[17]</span>
+lived. However, that is not the main point for consideration
+now. What I want to know is, can you think of anything
+better?"</p>
+
+<p>"N-no," replied Mrs. James slowly. "I even think it
+would be the best possible arrangement, if&mdash;Oh dear, to
+think it should come to this&mdash;those poor boys!"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, I know," said Aunt Selina, briskly. "Now, that
+being decided, some one has got to put it to Hilary. Hilary
+will do nothing alone. She comes to-morrow morning,
+does she not? I think it should be settled, one way or the
+other, before she goes. Now who is to approach Hilary?"</p>
+
+<p>"I don't know," faltered Mrs. James, rather bewildered
+by the other's swiftness of reasoning.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, I do. James is the only human being I know
+who has, or ever had, any influence on Hilary. Now one
+of us has got to talk to James, and I rather think, Cecilia,
+that I could do it more successfully than you. For the
+first time, that is.... Of course, afterward, you...."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, of course," murmurs Mrs. James.</p>
+
+<p>"Very well, then; I will see James the first thing in the
+morning. I don't say it will come to anything, but there
+is a great deal to be gone through before she is even
+approached. We must do <i>something</i>. Living here alone,
+with their father...."</p>
+
+<p>"Out of the question, of course." The conversation
+having, as it were, completed one lap of its course and
+arrived again at its starting point, might have perambulated
+gently along till bedtime, had it not been abruptly
+interrupted by the entrance of James, junior, come to say
+good-night.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>A few days after the funeral, after they had gone to bed
+of an evening, Harry through the darkness apostrophized
+his brother thus:</p>
+
+<p>"I tell you, James, Aunt Selina is all right; did you
+know it?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh," was the reply, "she gave you five dollars, too, did
+she?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, but that's not what I mean. She's given me five
+dollars plenty of times before this."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, what do you mean, then?"</p>
+
+<p>"Well, she found me in the garden one morning.... Tuesday,
+I guess&mdash;" Tuesday had been the day of the<span class="pagenum">[18]</span>
+funeral&mdash;"and I had been crying a good deal, and I suppose
+she knew it. At any rate, she took me by the hand
+and talked to me for a while...."</p>
+
+<p>"What did she say to you?" This question was not
+prompted by vulgar curiosity; James knew that his brother
+wished to be pumped.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, she didn't <i>say</i> much. She was just awfully nice,
+that's all.... She told me&mdash;well, she said, for one thing,
+that I cried too much. Only she didn't say it like that.
+She said that going about and crying wasn't much of a way
+of showing you were sorry. She said that if&mdash;well, if you
+really <i>missed</i> a person, the least you could do was not to go
+about making a pest of yourself, even if you couldn't really
+do anything to help."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh."</p>
+
+<p>"She said that the last thing that would please Mama herself
+was to think that all she had taught me came to no
+more than ... well, than crying. Then she said.... I
+don't think I'll tell you that, though."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, don't, if you don't want to."</p>
+
+<p>"She told me that, in a way, she realized I must feel it&mdash;about
+Mama&mdash;more than any one else, because I had been
+more with her lately than any one else&mdash;more dependent on
+her, she said, ..."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, I see."</p>
+
+<p>"And that while it was harder on me, it put a greater
+responsibility on me, because, you see&mdash;oh, I can't explain
+it all! But she was about right, I guess."</p>
+
+<p>"She told me something of the same kind ... not exactly
+like that, I mean, but&mdash;well, the same sort of thing.
+It helped, too. It's funny, to think of her understanding
+better than any one else&mdash;Aunt Selina!"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, isn't it? Well, you really never can tell about
+people." With which mature reflection Harry turned
+over and went to sleep. But his brother lay awake for
+some time thinking over what he had just heard, and as
+he thought, his respect for his aunt grew. Not only could
+she sound the depths of his own woe and give him comfort
+for it, but she could light on the one thing that would be
+likely to help Harry in his own peculiar need, and show
+it to him with ready and fearless tact. And what she had
+told Harry was practically the very opposite of what she
+had told him.</p>
+
+<p>"I wish I could be like Aunt Selina," he thought.</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[19]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_III">CHAPTER III</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">NOT COLONIAL; GEORGIAN</p>
+
+<p>Harry and James lived in the city of New Haven in
+a big house surrounded by spacious grounds. The
+house itself was an old and stately one; the local papers,
+when they had occasion to mention it, usually referred to it
+as the Wimbourne "mansion." The boys' dislike of this
+word dated from an early age, when their father informed
+them that it was a loathsome expression, which people who
+"really knew" never used under any circumstances. He
+himself, if he had had occasion to describe it, would have
+spoken of it as a "place."</p>
+
+<p>The house was built in the first decade of the nineteenth
+century. It was put up by Hilary Wimbourne's great-grandfather
+James, first of the name, the founder of the
+family fortunes. He came to New Haven as a penniless
+apprentice to a carriage-maker after the conclusion of the
+Revolutionary wars left him without other occupation, and
+within ten years after his arrival he became one of the two
+or three most prominent lawyers in the place. His understanding
+of his early trade he turned to good account by
+investing a large portion of his earnings as a lawyer in the
+carriage factory in which he originally served, and which
+with the benefit of his money and business acumen, became
+the most profitable of its kind in the town. He bought a
+farm in what were then the extreme outskirts of the city
+and built the spacious, foursquare, comfortable-looking
+house in which the Wimbournes with whom we have to deal
+still lived, nearly one hundred years later.</p>
+
+<p>The house stood in a commanding position above an up-town
+avenue. It was painted white with green trimmings,
+and had a front portico of tall Doric columns reaching up
+to the top of the house. People habitually referred to its
+style of architecture as "Colonial." "Post-Colonial," or
+"late American Georgian" would have come much nearer
+the mark, but these distinctions are as naught to the great
+and glorious body of New England's inhabitants, to whom<span class="pagenum">[20]</span>
+everything with pillars is and always will be "Colonial."
+The house was in truth a fine example of its style, and had
+been surprisingly little spoiled by the generations of Wimbournes
+that had lived and died in it, but the unity of its
+general effect was marred by the addition of two wings
+reaching out from its sides, erected by Hilary Wimbourne's
+father in the fifties and showing all the peculiarities of
+that glorious but architecturally weak period. Friends of
+the family often expressed sympathy and sorrow at the
+anachronism the house was thus made to offer, but Hilary
+soon became somewhat impatient of these. In fact, he
+never listened to an expression of regret on the subject
+without breathing a silent prayer of thanksgiving that the
+wings had been built when they were, and not ten or
+twenty or thirty years later, when architectural indiscretion
+ran to extremes only vaguely hinted at in the forties and
+fifties.</p>
+
+<p>"Besides," he would explain to those who showed interest
+in the matter, "those wings are not always going to
+look as badly as they do now. Our eyes will always look
+on them as unpleasantly different from the old house, but
+the eyes of a hundred years hence will see in them nothing
+more than a quaint and agreeable variety. After all, the
+two styles are but two different aspects of neo-classicism,
+one a little more remote from its original model than the
+other. History has proved what I say; think how the
+sensitive must have shuddered in the fifteenth century when
+they saw a lot of Perpendicular Gothic slammed down by
+the side of pure Early English! It must have looked like
+the very devil to them." Only very few people heard this
+theory carried back to its logical conclusion, however.
+Hilary would see and recognize the drowning expression
+that came over their faces, and as soon as he knew that he
+was beyond their depth he stopped, for he made it a rule
+never to talk above people's heads. Consequently he
+seldom got beyond the "neo-classicism" point.</p>
+
+<p>As far as the interior was concerned, the atmosphere of
+the old days had been almost perfectly preserved. Every
+wall-paper, every decoration had, by some lucky succession
+of chances, been as nearly as possible duplicated when it
+became necessary to replace or restore, and the hand of the
+seventies and eighties left almost no trace of its equally
+ruthless destructive and constructive powers. So that at<span class="pagenum">[21]</span>
+the time of which we write the house was furnished almost
+completely in the style of the late Georgian period, for
+what his ancestors omitted to leave him the faultless taste
+of Hilary supplied.</p>
+
+<p>The house faced westward and toward the principal
+street of the neighborhood; the ground fell gently away
+from it on all sides, but most steeply toward the west. Carriage
+drives led up to the house from the two corners formed
+by the main thoroughfare and the two intersecting streets
+which bounded the property. A tar footpath followed the
+curve of each driveway, so that between the street and
+the front door of the house there stretched an unbroken
+expanse of green lawn. In their early youth Harry and
+James both wondered why no footpath ran directly up the
+middle of the front lawn, as was the case with most of the
+other front lawns of their acquaintance, and they considered
+it monstrously inconvenient that they were obliged
+to "go way round by the corners" when they wished to
+reach the house from without. At length, however, the
+brilliant thought occurred to them that as they always
+approached the house either from the north or the south,
+and never from the unbroken block to the west, they could
+not well have used a central walk if they had had it.</p>
+
+<p>Such was the setting in which the early lives of these
+two boys took place, and, taking one thing with another,
+their lot could probably not have been bettered. The first
+ten years of their lives had the divine monotony of perfect
+happiness and harmony, in which no more momentous events
+than the measles, a change of school, or summer trips to
+the coast of Maine or, more rarely, to Europe, ever
+occurred. They were brought up, from their earliest years,
+under the direct but never too obtrusive eye of their
+mother, and as we have already heard Aunt Selina describe
+her as "one of the best women that ever lived," we should
+be guilty of something akin to painting the rose if we
+ventured on any further encomiums of her character on
+our own account. Their relation with their father was
+hardly less ideal, though they saw much less of him and
+were, at bottom, less deeply attached to him than to their
+mother. Hilary was fond of his boys, and was capable of
+entering into their youthful moods with a sort of intimate
+aloofness that the boys found very winning. Not infrequently
+he would suddenly swoop down on them in their<span class="pagenum">[22]</span>
+happy but humdrum occupations and carry them off to a
+baseball game or perhaps to New York for the day to spend
+a few hours of bliss in the Aquarium or the Zoo, in less
+time than it frequently took their mother to decide what
+overcoats they should wear to school. This dashing
+<i>insouciance</i> secretly captivated their mother as much as it
+did them, and though by this time she had given up showing
+the delight it caused her, she was never more pleased
+than when Hilary would so take them off.</p>
+
+<p>Hilary also read to them occasionally, and his reading
+was another source of secret admiration to their mother.
+He never read them anything but what his wife would
+have described, and rightly, too, as "far beyond them";
+such things as Spenser, Shakespeare, Sheridan, or Milton,
+even; and he always read with such a mock-serious air as
+Sir Henry Irving used in the scene where Charles I recites
+poetry to his children. His wife on such occasions, though
+perfectly content with her r&ocirc;le of Henrietta Maria, would reflect
+that if <i>she</i> tried to read such things to them they
+would be fidgeting and walking about the room and longing
+for her to stop, instead of sitting spellbound, as they
+did when he read, on the arms of his chair and breathlessly
+following each word of the text.</p>
+
+<p>With another parent and with other children such reading
+would have proved utterly sterile, but from it the
+boys managed to absorb a good deal of pleasure and the
+germs of literary appreciation as well, and the words of
+many a great passage in many a great author became dear
+to them long before they were able to grasp their full
+meaning. Results of their literary sessions would crop out
+in the family intercourse in sundry curious ways. One instance
+may serve to illustrate this. The family were
+sitting about together one day after lunch; Edith Wimbourne
+had a pile of household mending before her.</p>
+
+<p>"I declare," she said, "these tablecloths have simply
+rotted away from lying in that dark closet; they would
+have lasted much better if they had been used a little."</p>
+
+<p>"She let concealment," said Hilary from behind a magazine,
+"like a worm i' the bud, feed&mdash;what did concealment
+feed on, James?"</p>
+
+<p>"Feed on her damask&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Tablecloth!" shouts Harry, brilliantly but indiscreetly.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, shut up," retorts his brother, peevishly, as who<span class="pagenum">[23]</span>
+would not, at having the words snatched from his mouth?
+"You needn't be so smart, I was going to say that anyway."</p>
+
+<p>"The heck you were!"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, I was."</p>
+
+<p>"You were not! You were going to say 'cheek'; I saw
+you start to say it."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, shut up! Can't any one be bright but you?"</p>
+
+<p>"That's all right; you were going to say it. Wasn't
+he, Father?" asks Harry, with the air of one appealing to
+the supreme authority.</p>
+
+<p>"What?" Hilary had long since returned to his magazine.</p>
+
+<p>"Say 'cheek.' Wasn't he going to?"</p>
+
+<p>"Who?"</p>
+
+<p>"James, of course."</p>
+
+<p>"I trust not. It seems to me that it is one of the slang
+words your mother has requested you not to use."</p>
+
+<p>"Wha&mdash;what is?"</p>
+
+<p>"Cheek." Not much of a joke, certainly, but Hilary,
+looking with impenetrable gravity over his glasses at his
+son, when he really knows perfectly well what Harry is
+talking about, is funny. At any rate Harry stops to laugh,
+and the quarrel is a failure. Edith could have stopped
+the quarrel by simply enjoining peace, but she could not
+have done it without resort to parental authority.</p>
+
+<p>One day James, ordinarily phlegmatic and self-controlled,
+ran through the house in a great state of dishevelment
+and distress in search of his mother, holding aloft a
+bloody finger and weeping hot tears of woe.</p>
+
+<p>"Where's Mama?" he inquired breathlessly, ending
+up in the library and finding his father alone there.</p>
+
+<p>"Out, I think. What's the matter?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, nothing.... A kid licked me.... I wanted something
+for this finger."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, go upstairs and get that large brown bottle on
+my wash-stand, and we'll see what we can do about it."
+Hilary, taking a page out of his own boyhood, guessed that
+no mere cut finger could have reduced James to such an
+abject pass. He suspected that his son, who, unlike Harry,
+was almost morbidly sensitive to appearances and almost
+never gave way to demonstrations of grief, had augmented
+the disgrace of being thrashed by allowing himself to be<span class="pagenum">[24]</span>
+reduced to a state of tears in the presence of his fellows.
+Some such occurrence only could account for this precipitate
+rout. One or two further inquiries confirmed this
+conjecture, and he then prepared to apply, if possible, a
+balm to his son's mental wound as well as the physical
+one.</p>
+
+<p>"There," said he, giving a final pull to an unprofessional-looking
+bandage, composed of an entirely un-antiseptic
+handkerchief, "that will stay till your mother comes
+in. Now go and get me that green book on the third shelf
+and I'll read to you for a while, if you want."</p>
+
+<p>The green book happened to be no less notable a work
+than "Paradise Lost," and Hilary, turning to the last
+pages of the twelfth book, read of the expulsion of our
+sinning forbears from Eden. He read Milton rather well,
+almost as well, in fact, as he secretly thought he did, and
+James, though incapable at first of listening attentively or
+understanding much of anything, was gradually soothed
+by the solemn music of the lines; by the time his father
+reached the closing passage he was listening with wide open
+ears.</p>
+
+<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
+<span class="i0">They, looking back, all the eastern side beheld<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Of Paradise, so late their happy seat,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Waved over by that flaming brand; the gate<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">With dreadful faces thronged and fiery arms.<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Some natural tears they dropped, but wiped them soon;<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">The world was all before them, where to choose<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Their place of rest, and Providence their guide.<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">They, hand in hand, with wandering steps and slow,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Through Eden took their solitary way.<br /></span>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>Hilary kept the book open on his knee for a moment after
+he had finished, and he noticed with interest that James
+leaned forward with aroused attention to read over the
+passage again. "Some natural tears&mdash;wiped them soon&mdash;the
+world was all before them&mdash;" the words sank in on
+James' mind as his father knew they would, and suggested
+the thought that the world need not be irrevocably lost
+through one indiscretion.</p>
+
+<p>Let no one gain from these somewhat extended accounts
+of Hilary's dealings with his sons an impression to the
+effect that the boys found a more sympathetic friend in
+their father than in their mother. As a matter of fact,
+the exact contrary was true. Like all perfect art, Hilary's<span class="pagenum">[25]</span>
+successful passages with them bore no trace of the means
+by which they were brought about, and consequently they
+did not feel that their father's attitude toward them was
+inspired by anything like the warm and undisguised affection
+which pervaded their mother's. Nor, indeed, was it.</p>
+
+<p>James, even in these early days, showed signs of having
+inherited a fair share of his father's inborn tact in his
+dealings with his brother. The fraternal relation is always
+an interesting one to observe, because of its extreme elasticity,
+combining, as it does, apparently unlimited possibilities
+for love, hate and indifference. Who ever saw two
+pairs of brothers that seemed to regard each other with exactly
+the same feelings? Harry and James certainly did
+not hate each other, but on the other hand they did not
+love each other with that passionate devotion that is supposed
+to characterize the ideal brothers of fancy. Nor
+could they truthfully be called wholly indifferent to each
+other; their mutual attitude lay somewhere between indifference
+and the Castor-and-Pollux-like devotion that
+the older and less attractive of their relatives constantly
+tried to instil in their youthful bosoms. They were never
+bored by each other. James always felt for Harry's
+superior quickness in all intellectual matters an admiration
+which he would have died sooner than give full expression
+to, and Harry, though he frequently scouted his brother's
+opinions in all matters, had a profound respect for James'
+clearness and maturity of judgment. But what, more than
+anything else, kept them on good terms with each other and
+always, at the last moment, prevented serious ructions,
+was a way that James had at times of viewing their relation
+in a detached and impersonal light, and acting accordingly.
+On such occasions he appeared to be two people; first, the
+James that was Harry's brother and contemporary, less
+than two years older than he and subject to the same desires
+and weakness, and, secondly, the James who stood
+as judge over their differences and distributed justice to
+them both with a fair and impartial hand.</p>
+
+<p>For instance, there was the episode of the neckties. A
+distant relative, a cousin of their mother's, who does not
+really come into the story at all, took occasion of expressing
+her approval of their existence by sending them two neckties,
+one purple and one green, with the direction that
+they should decide between them which was to have which.<span class="pagenum">[26]</span>
+James, by the right of primogeniture that prevails among
+most families of children, was given the first choice, and
+picked out the purple one. Harry quietly took the other,
+but though there was no open dissatisfaction expressed, it
+soon became evident to James that his brother was tremendously
+disappointed. During the rest of the day, as
+he went about his business and pleasure, vague but disturbing
+recollections flitted through James' mind of
+Harry's being particularly anxious to possess a purple tie,
+of having been half promised one, indeed, by the very
+relative from whom these blessings came; circumstances
+which, from the wording of the letter which accompanied
+the gift, obviously constituted no legal claim on the tie, but
+were nevertheless enough to appeal to James' sense of
+moral, or "ultimate" justice.</p>
+
+<p>The next morning James, according to custom, approaching
+the completion of his dressing some time before Harry,
+remarked in a casual tone:</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, you can have that purple tie, if you want. I'd
+just as lief take the green one."</p>
+
+<p>Harry, who had taken the attitude of being willing to
+suffer to the point of death before making a complaint in
+the matter, would not allow this. In the brief conversational
+intervals that the spirited wielding of a sponge,
+and subsequently of a towel, allowed, he disclaimed any
+predilection for ties of any particular color, or of any particular
+kind of tie, or for any particular color in general.
+Clothes were a matter of complete indifference for him; he
+had never been able to understand why people spent their
+time in raving inanely over this or that particular manner
+of robing themselves. As for colors, he could scarcely
+bother to tell one from the other; the prism presented to
+him a field in which it was impossible to make any choice.
+If, however, in his weaker moments, he had ever felt a
+passing fancy for one color over and above another, that
+color was undoubtedly green. And so on, and so forth.
+James made no further observation on the subject, but
+when he reached the necktie stage in his dressing, he
+quietly put on the green tie, and Harry, like the Roman
+senators of old, subsequently flashed in the purple.</p>
+
+<p>James preferred the purple tie, but he let Harry have it
+because Harry felt more keenly on the subject than he.
+"If"&mdash;so ran the substance of his reasoning&mdash;"if I give<span class="pagenum">[27]</span>
+way in this matter, about which I do not particularly care,
+one way or the other, there will be a better chance of my
+getting what I want some other time, when the issue is a
+really vital one. By sacrificing a penny now, I gain a
+pound in the future." Such clearness of sight was beyond
+James' years, and, but for the real sense of justice
+that accompanied it might have made him an opportunist.
+James would never in the last resort, have used his reasoning
+powers to cheat Harry, who, though his brother, was,
+when all was said and done, his best friend.</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[28]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_IV">CHAPTER IV</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">PUPPY DOGS, AND A PSYCHOLOGICAL FACT</p>
+
+<p>The story of the life of any person begins with the
+moment of his birth and ends with the last breath
+that leaves his body. The complete account of the inward
+and outward experiences that go to make up any one individual
+life would, if properly told, be the most fascinating
+story in the world, for there never lived a person who
+did not carry about within himself the materials for a
+great and complete novel. Such stories have never yet
+been written, and probably never will be, partly because
+they would be too long and partly because the thing would
+be so confoundedly hard to do. So as to make it interesting,
+that is. We have chosen to begin this account of the
+lives, or rather, a section of the lives, of Harry and James
+at the death of their mother because that was their first
+great outward experience. It influenced their inward
+lives even more fundamentally. It lifted their thoughts,
+their whole outlook on life, from what, for want of a better
+expression, might be called the level of youthful development
+and sent them branching and soaring into new and
+strange regions.</p>
+
+<p>One of the most important outward changes that Edith
+Wimbourne's death caused in the life of her household was
+the substitution, as far as such a thing could be, of her
+younger sister, Agatha Fraile, in her place. Such was, in
+a word, the ultimate fruit of the conversation between
+Aunt Selina and Aunt Cecilia that occurred a chapter or
+two ago. James Wimbourne was approached and convinced,
+and in his turn approached and convinced his
+brother Hilary, who, in his turn, came back to his half-sister
+Selina and persuaded her to approach and convince
+that lady in question on his behalf. Aunt Selina was
+perfectly willing to do this, though she had not counted on
+it.</p>
+
+<p>"Miss Fraile," she said, on the first occasion for speech<span class="pagenum">[29]</span>
+that presented itself; "my brother Hilary has asked me to
+put a proposition to you on his behalf. What would you
+say to coming here and living with him as his housekeeper
+and having an eye on those two boys, until&mdash;well, say till
+it is time for them to go off to a boarding-school?"</p>
+
+<p>This direct manner of approach was perhaps the one
+best calculated to win Miss Fraile, who after a very little
+parley, assented to the proposition. She was a very young
+and fragile-looking woman, having but lately passed her
+thirtieth birthday, but she was in reality quite as able to take
+care of herself as the next person, if not, indeed, a great
+deal more so. She was the very antithesis, as the boys
+presently discovered, of Aunt Selina, being all smiles and
+cordiality on the outside and about as hard as tempered
+steel when you got a little below the surface, in spite of her
+smiles, and in spite, moreover, of her really unusual and
+perfectly sincere piety.</p>
+
+<p>"I think," went on Aunt Selina rather magnificently,
+after the main point had been gained, "that in the matter
+of the stipend there will be no difficulty at all. You will
+find my brother entirely liberal in such matters." Here
+she named a sum, Miss Fraile instantly decided that it
+would not do, and proceeded after her own fashion to the
+work of raising her opponent's bid.</p>
+
+<p>"How very good of him," she murmured, letting her
+eyes fall to the carpet. "All of our family have unfortunately
+been obliged to devote so much thought and attention
+to money matters since our dear father's death
+left us so badly off. Let me see.... I suppose my duties
+here would take up very nearly all my time, would they
+not?"</p>
+
+<p>"I do not know.... I daresay...."</p>
+
+<p>"Exactly; one has to look so far ahead in all these matters,
+does one not? I mean, that looking after this great
+house and those two dear boys and Hilary himself would
+not leave me much time for anything like music lessons,
+would it? Perhaps you did not know that I gave music
+lessons at home?... Money is such a bother&mdash;! I suppose
+I should scarcely have time to practise here myself,
+with one thing and another&mdash;household affairs do pile up
+so, do they not?&mdash;without thinking of lessons or anything
+of that sort; yet I daresay I should somehow be able to ... to
+make it up, that is, if&mdash;"<span class="pagenum">[30]</span></p>
+
+<p>"How much more would you need?" asked Aunt Selina
+bluntly.</p>
+
+<p>Miss Fraile named a sum half as large again as the one
+previously mentioned, but Aunt Selina, stifling a gasp,
+clinched the matter there.</p>
+
+<p>After the funeral Miss Fraile returned to her home in
+semi-rural Pennsylvania "to collect my traps" as she
+brightly put it, and a week or so later came back to New
+Haven and settled down in her new position. The boys on
+the whole liked their Aunt Agatha, though even their exuberant
+boyish natures occasionally found her cheerfulness
+a little oppressive, and she certainly did very well for
+them and for their father. She ordered the meals, saw to
+the housework, arranged the flowers, dusted the bric-&agrave;-brac
+with her own hands, did most of the mending and
+presided at the head of the table at meals, fairly radiating
+peace and cheer.</p>
+
+<p>Hilary was a little appalled, to be sure, when she would
+burst on him on his returning to the house of an evening
+with a pair of warmed slippers in her hand and a musical
+little peal of laughter on her lips, but he did not have to
+see much of her, and besides, he so thoroughly approved of
+her.</p>
+
+<p>"It is like living with Mary and Martha rolled into
+one," he told his brother a month or two after her arrival;
+"with a little of Job and the archangel Gabriel
+thrown in, flavored with a spice of St. Elizabeth of Hungary&mdash;that
+bread woman, you know&mdash;and just a dash of
+St. Francis of Assisi. She has covered the lawn knee-deep
+with bread crumbs for the sparrows, and when she
+is not busy with her church work, which she almost always
+is, she goes about kissing strange children on the
+head and asking them if they say their prayers regularly.
+They all seem to like her, too; that's the funny part of it.
+The boys are entirely happy with her, and she is splendid
+for them. In short, I am entertaining an angel, though
+not unawares&mdash;oh, no, certainly not unawares."</p>
+
+<p>The two boys were thrown on each other's society much
+more constantly than formerly, especially as, during the
+first weeks, at any rate, they had small heart for the games
+of their schoolmates. James especially, during these days
+of retirement, observed his brother with a newly-awakened<span class="pagenum">[31]</span>
+interest, and in the light, of course, of his mother's last
+words to him. He had always thought of Harry as more
+irresponsible and light-headed than himself, but it had
+never occurred to him that he could give him any help
+against his impulsiveness beyond the customary fraternal
+criticism and banter. Now he began to see that his position
+of elder brother, combined with his superior balance
+and poise of character, gave him a considerable influence
+over Harry, and he began to feel at times an actual sense
+of responsibility very different from the attitude of tolerant
+and half-amused superiority with which he had previously
+regarded Harry's vagaries. At such times he would drop
+his ridicule or blame, whichever it happened to be, and
+would become silent and embarrassed, feeling that he should
+be helping Harry instead of merely laying stress on his
+shortcomings, and yet not having the first idea of how to
+go to work about it.</p>
+
+<p>One day they were returning to the house after a walk
+through a somewhat slummy and hoodlum-infested neighborhood
+and came upon a group of boys tormenting a small,
+dirty, yellow mongrel puppy after the humorous manner
+of their kind. They were not actually cruel to the dog, but
+they were certainly not giving it a good time, and Harry's
+tender heart was stirred to its core. Without a word or a
+second thought he rushed into the middle of the gang, extracted
+the puppy and ran off with it to a place of safety.
+The thing was done in the modern rather than in the romantic
+style; he did not strike out at boys twice as big as
+himself&mdash;there were none there, in the first place, and in
+any case he had no desire for a fight&mdash;nor did he indulge
+in a lengthy tirade against cruelty to animals; he simply
+grabbed the dog and ran. The "micks" followed him at
+first, but he could run faster than they and none of them
+cared much about a puppy, one way or the other.</p>
+
+<p>James, meanwhile, had run off a different way, and
+when presently he came upon his brother again he was
+walking leisurely along clasping the puppy in a close embrace.</p>
+
+<p>"You certainly are a young fool," said James, half
+amused and half irritated; "what did you want to get
+mixed up in a street row like that for? Darned lucky you
+didn't get your head smashed."<span class="pagenum">[32]</span></p>
+
+<p>Harry thought it needless to reply to this, as the facts
+spoke for themselves, and merely walked on, hugging and
+kissing his prize.</p>
+
+<p>Then suddenly the situation dawned on James in its
+new light, and he walked on, silent as Harry himself and
+far more perplexed. Harry's fundamental motive was a
+good one, no doubt, but he realized what disproportionate
+trouble the reckless following up of Harry's good motives
+might bring him into. This time he had luckily escaped
+scot free, but the next time he would very likely get mixed
+up in a street fight, and would be lucky if he were able to
+walk home. And all about so little&mdash;the dog was not really
+suffering; being a slum dog it had probably thrived on
+teasing and mistreatment since before its eyes were open.
+And the worst part of the situation was that he was so
+helpless in making Harry see the thing in its true light.</p>
+
+<p>At any rate, he reflected, his first attitude was of no
+avail. Calling Harry a fool, he knew, would not convince
+him of his foolishness; it would more likely have the effect
+of making him think he was more right than ever. As he
+walked silently on, beside his brother, Harry's shortcomings
+seemed to dwindle and his own to increase.</p>
+
+<p>"Let's have a look at the beast," he said presently in
+an altered tone, stopping and taking the puppy from
+Harry's arms. "He's not such a bad puppy, after all.
+Wonder how old he is." He sat down on a nearby curbstone
+and balancing the puppy on his knee apostrophized
+him further: "Well, it was poor pupsy-wupsy; did the
+naughty boys throw stones at it? That was a dirty shame,
+it was!"</p>
+
+<p>James put the puppy down in the gutter and encouraged
+playfulness. For a few minutes the two boys watched its
+somewhat reluctant antics; then James asked:</p>
+
+<p>"What are you going to do with it, anyway?"</p>
+
+<p>"Take it home, I suppose."</p>
+
+<p>"What'll you do with it there? Keep him in the house?"</p>
+
+<p>"No. That is, I suppose Father wouldn't hear of it."</p>
+
+<p>"I suppose not A puppy...! There are three dogs
+in the house anyway."</p>
+
+<p>"What about the stable, then?"</p>
+
+<p>"I don't know. There's Thomas." Thomas was the
+coachman, who made no secret of his dislike for dogs "under
+the horses' hoofs."<span class="pagenum">[33]</span></p>
+
+<p>"Yes," said Harry, "and Spark, too. Spark would
+try to bite him, I'm afraid."</p>
+
+<p>"What are you going to do with him, then?"</p>
+
+<p>"I don't know; what shall we?"</p>
+
+<p>"It's for you to say&mdash;he's your dog."</p>
+
+<p>"Do you think," said Harry, lowering his voice and
+gazing furtively around, "do you think it would be all
+right just to leave him here?"</p>
+
+<p>James laughed, inwardly. Then a bright idea struck
+him. Grasping the puppy in one hand he walked across
+the street to a small and dirty front yard in which a small
+and dirty child of four or five was sitting playing.</p>
+
+<p>"Hullo, kid," said James breezily, "do you want a puppy
+dog? Here you are, then. He's a very valuable dog, so
+be careful of him. Mind you don't pull his tail now, or
+he'll bite."</p>
+
+<p>James walked off well pleased with the turn of events,
+which left Harry relieved and satisfied and the dog honorably
+disposed of. As for Harry, he was profoundly grateful.
+He would have liked to give some expression to his
+gratitude, but the words would not come, and he walked
+on for some time without speaking. But he was determined
+to give some sign of what he felt.</p>
+
+<p>"Thank you, James," he said at length in a low voice,
+and blushed to the roots of his hair.</p>
+
+<p>"What? Oh, that's all right." James' surprise was
+no affectation; the matter had really passed from his mind.
+But he gave to Harry's words the full meaning that the
+speaker placed in them. They made him feel suddenly
+ashamed of himself; what had Harry done that was wrong?
+What had he done but what was right and praiseworthy,
+when you came to look at it? Should he not be ashamed
+himself of not having run in and rescued the dog before
+Harry?</p>
+
+<p>And yet, most of the things that Harry did worked out
+wrong, somehow, even when they were prompted by the
+best of motives.</p>
+
+<p>"Poor Harry," thought James, "he's always getting into
+scrapes, and yet I suppose, if everything were known,
+people would see that he was twice as good as I am, at
+bottom. I would never have thought of saving that dog;
+Harry thinks out such funny things to do.... I can generally
+do the right thing, if it's put directly up to me, but<span class="pagenum">[34]</span>
+Harry goes out and searches for the right thing to do;
+I guess that's what it amounts to. Only, I wish he didn't
+have to search in such strange places."</p>
+
+<p>As James settled down into his position of mentor to his
+brother he found out a curious thing; he was fonder of
+Harry than formerly. The old sense of unconscious, taking-it-for-granted
+companionship gradually became infused
+with positive affection which, for the reason that it found
+little if any outward expression in the daily round of work
+and play, escaped the notice of everybody except James
+himself.</p>
+
+<p>"Do you think that doing something for a person would
+ever make you fonder of that person?" he once asked of
+his father when they were alone together. "I mean&mdash;I
+should think, that is, that it would work out the other way,
+so that the person you did the thing for would be fonder
+of you."</p>
+
+<p>"It's a well known psychological fact," replied his
+father; "I've often noticed it. If you merely stop a
+person in the street and ask him the way, or what time it
+is, you can see his expression change from one of indifference,
+or even dislike, to interest and cordiality. And if
+you ever feel that a man, an acquaintance, doesn't like
+you, ask him to do you some slight service, and he'll admire
+you intensely from that moment on. And conversely,
+if you want to make a man your enemy, the best way of
+going about it is to do something for him.&mdash;Why, what
+made you think of it?"</p>
+
+<p>"Thomas," replied James promptly, being prepared for
+the question. "He was cross as two sticks the other day
+when we wanted to build forts in the haymow, but after
+I asked him to help me put the chain on my bicycle," etc.,
+etc. But James was disturbed by his father's development
+of the theory. What if his "helping out" Harry should
+have the effect of making him hate him, James, the very effect
+of all others he desired to avoid? He resolved to keep
+his new-found feeling to himself, and give his brother's
+resentment no foothold; but he could not entirely live it
+down, for all that. Unconsciously he found fault less with
+him, unconsciously he would take his part in squabbles with
+the servants or with his father; and as he noticed no change
+in Harry's conduct toward him he congratulated himself
+on his powers of concealment.<span class="pagenum">[35]</span></p>
+
+<p>But he need have had no worries on the score of Harry's
+resenting his protection. To Harry, James had always
+appeared to partake somewhat of the nature of a divinity;
+if not Apollo or Jupiter, out and out, he was at least
+Hercules, say, or Theseus. And though, in the very nature
+of things in general and the fraternal relation in
+particular, he was obliged outwardly to deny James' superiority
+in everything and more especially the right to boss
+younger brothers, he was acutely, almost pathetically, sensitive
+to James' demeanor toward him and was entirely
+ready to respond to any increase in good feeling, if James
+would lead the way.</p>
+
+<p>James, with all his insight and quickness of perception,
+failed to count upon the fact that Harry would be as slow
+in making a parade of his feelings as he himself, and was
+a little surprised that Harry made so slight a demonstration
+of sorrow when, about a year after their mother's death,
+James was sent off to school. Harry, indeed, sought to
+cover his secret conviction that he would really miss his
+brother very much by repeated harpings upon the blessings
+that James' presence had ever kept from him, and
+now, the obstacle being removed, would shower copiously
+on his deserving, but hitherto officially unrecognized, head.
+Now he would get the first go at all dishes at table, now
+he would always sit on the box beside Thomas and drive,
+now people would see whether he could not be on time
+for breakfast without his brother's assistance, and so forth.
+James smiled tolerantly at all such talk; he knew that it
+did not amount to much, though even he failed to realize
+quite how little.</p>
+
+<p>When the fatal morning came the brothers parted with
+complete cordiality and every outward expression of mutual
+contempt.</p>
+
+<p>"Be very careful about putting on your clothes in the
+morning, kid," said James as the train that was to take him
+off rolled into the station. "You put on your undershirt
+first, remember, then your shirt and coat. Don't go putting
+your undershirt over your coat; people might laugh."</p>
+
+<p>"All right, you dear thoughtful boy, I'll try to remember,
+but I shall be pretty busy hoping that those other
+kids'll lick the tar out of you, for the first time in your
+innocent life. You're a good boy at heart, James; all
+you need is to have the nonsense knocked out of you!"<span class="pagenum">[36]</span></p>
+
+<p>James' first letter to his brother from school, written
+some ten days after his departure, is still extant, and may
+be quoted in full as a document in the story.</p>
+
+<blockquote>
+<p class="author1">St. Barnabas' School.</p>
+<p class="author">October 5.</p>
+
+<p>Dear Harry:</p>
+
+<p>I meant to have written you before, but I have been
+so busy that there was no time. This certainly is a fine
+place, and I like it a lot already. There are 21 new boys
+this term, which is fewer than usual, but they say we are
+an unusually good crowd. We say so, at any rate! There
+was a big rough-house in our corridor Saturday night. A
+lot of the old boys came down and turned the new fellows
+after lights were out, and also made them run the gauntlet
+down the hall, standing at the sides and swatting them
+with belts and things as they went by. That was much
+worse than the turning, which did not amount to much.
+I got turned five times, and Brush, the fellow that rooms
+with me, six times. That was not much. There was one
+chap that got turned 22 times that one night. That was
+Hawley. They call him 'Stink' Hawley already, because
+he is so dirty looking. They say he has not washed his
+face since he came. Gosh, I wonder what you will be
+called when you get here!"</p></blockquote>
+
+<p>"What a filthy lie!" shrieked Harry when he reached
+this, making up in vehemence what he lacked in coherence.
+His alleged aversion to the wash-basin was a standing
+joke in the family, and any reference to it invariably
+brought a rise.</p>
+
+<p>"Gracious, dear," murmured Aunt Agatha, and smiled.</p>
+
+<p>"Let's hear," said his father, suspending judgment.
+(The scene took place at the breakfast table.) Harry read
+the letter aloud up to the point in question, and was relieved
+to observe an exculpatory smile on his father's lips
+when he stopped.</p>
+
+<p>"I admit there is an implication in that last remark,"
+said Hilary, "that might prove irritating. However, that's
+no excuse for making a menagerie of yourself. What else
+does James say?" Harry read on:</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum">[37]</span></p><blockquote><p>There always is a big rough-house the first two or three
+Saturday nights every year, and after that they keep
+pretty quiet. They say the masters let them do what they
+like, almost, those first nights, because they behave better
+afterwards and it keeps the new boys from being too fresh.
+That's what I'll be doing to you, you see, next year!</p>
+
+<p>I have been playing football every day, and am trying
+for the fourth team. Do you remember Roswell Banks,
+that boy we saw up at Northeast? He is going to make
+the first team this year, probably. They say he tackles
+better than any one else here. Kid Leffingwell also plays
+a peach of a game, but he won't make the first this year.
+He is too light, but he has got lots of nerve.</p>
+
+<p>I must stop now, so good-night.</p>
+
+<p class="author1">Your affectionate brother,</p>
+
+<p class="author smcap">James.</p>
+</blockquote>
+
+<p>The present writer has no quarrel with any one who is
+unable to detect in this letter symptoms of any particularly
+keen brotherly affection. It is his private opinion, however,
+that such exist there. He thinks, <i>imprimis</i>, that
+James, strange as it may appear, laid himself out to be
+more agreeable in that letter than he would if he had
+written it, say, a year previously. It is longer and fuller
+than James' letters usually were. And&mdash;though this may
+be drawing the point too fine&mdash;he thinks that the exclamation
+point after "that's what I'll be doing to you next
+year" would not have been put in under the old r&eacute;gime.
+An exclamation point does so much toward toning down
+and softening a disagreeable remark! And for the manner
+of signature, of course James might have signed himself
+like that to Harry at any time of his life. Yet the
+writer, even at the risk of being called super-sensitive, will
+not ignore the fact that most of James' letters to his brother
+previous to this date are signed, more casually, "Yours
+affect'ly," or "Ever yours," or simply "Good-by,&mdash;James,"
+and though he realizes that at best the point is
+not an all-important one, he feels he can do no better than
+give the reader all the information he has at his command,
+be it never so trifling, and let him draw conclusions for himself.</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[38]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_V">CHAPTER V</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">BABES IN THE WOOD</p>
+
+<p>One Saturday morning about a year after James went
+away to school Harry bounded downstairs for breakfast
+to find his father just leaving the dining room.</p>
+
+<p>"Hello, Father," he said, jumping up and kissing him
+as usual. "You don't stay in the office this afternoon, do
+you, Father? Why don't you take Bugs and me to the
+game? Or you can take us for a ride in the car, if you
+like; we'll meet you downtown for lunch, so as to save
+time." (Bugs was for the moment Harry's <i>fidus Achates</i>;
+a sort of vice-James.)</p>
+
+<p>"You will not, I fear," returned Hilary briefly. "I'm
+going out of town for the day."</p>
+
+<p>"What, not in the car?"</p>
+
+<p>"In the car."</p>
+
+<p>"<i>All</i> day?"</p>
+
+<p>"All day. Leaving now, as soon as ever the car comes
+round, and not getting back till late&mdash;perhaps not to-night."</p>
+
+<p>"Dash," remarked Harry. "I wish you'd go by train;
+Graves told me he'd give me a lesson in running the
+machine the next free Saturday."</p>
+
+<p>"Sorry. Next week, perhaps."</p>
+
+<p>"Where are you going, anyway, Father?"</p>
+
+<p>"My business."</p>
+
+<p>"Going to take Graves?"</p>
+
+<p>"No."</p>
+
+<p>"What, all alone? You'll be lonely. Why don't you
+take Aunt Agatha?"</p>
+
+<p>"No, I shan't be lonely and I'm not going to take Aunt
+Agatha. I'll tell you what I am going to do, however; I'm
+going to send you away to school, and that next term. You
+have a pretty glib tongue in your head, Harry my boy, and
+I think perhaps young gentlemen of your own age will be
+even better able to appreciate it than I am."</p>
+
+<p>But Harry was far too elated by the news to pay much
+heed to the rebuke. He became inarticulate with delight,<span class="pagenum">[39]</span>
+and his father went calmly on with his preparations for departure.</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, I'll have a talk with Hodgman about the exams.... There's
+the car, at last&mdash;I must run. Where did I
+put those water rights, anyway? Oh.... Yes, I think
+you'll probably have to do extra work in algebra this
+term.... Take care of yourself; we'll have a spree next
+week if I can arrange it," and so forth, enough to cover
+sorting a morning's mail, progress into the front hall,
+donning a hat and overcoat&mdash;no, the dark one, and where
+are the gray gloves, dash it?&mdash;and a triumphal exit in a
+motor car. Harry watched the retreating vehicle with
+mingled regret and admiration. Hilary made a striking
+and debonair picture as he whirled along in his scarlet
+chariot&mdash;they ran a great deal to bright red paint in those
+early days, if you'll remember&mdash;and people would run to
+catch a glimpse of him as he dashed by and talk about it
+at length at the next meal. But it occurred to Harry that
+he would complete the picture very nicely, sitting there
+at his father's side. He wished fervently that he could
+ever make his father remember that Saturday was Saturday.</p>
+
+<p>This parting conversation was redeemed from the oblivion
+of trivial things and inscribed indelibly on Harry's memory
+by the fact that it was the last he ever had with his father.</p>
+
+<p>The day passed like any other day and at its close the
+household went to bed as usual, boding no ill. Toward
+midnight the telephone rang and Aunt Agatha arose and
+answered it. The voice at the other end introduced itself
+as Police Headquarters and inquired, as an afterthought,
+if this was Mr. Wimbourne's house. Yet, it was. Headquarters
+then expressed a desire to know if any of the
+family was there and, without waiting for a reply, asked
+with perceptible animation if this was one of the girls
+speaking? Aunt Agatha answered, in a tone which in another
+person would have been called frigid, that this was
+Miss Fraile.</p>
+
+<p>Headquarters appeared duly impressed; at least he
+seemed to have difficulty in finding words in which to continue.
+Aunt Agatha's crisp inquiry of what was it, please?
+at last moved him to admit there had been an accident.
+Yes, to Mr. Wimbourne. The automobile did it; ran into
+a telegraph pole down near Port Chester. Pretty bad<span class="pagenum">[40]</span>
+smash-up; couldn't say just how bad.... Was Mr. Wimbourne
+badly hurt? Well, yes, pretty badly; the machine&mdash;Was
+Mr. Wimbourne killed? Well, yes, he was, if you
+put it that way. His body would arrive sometime next
+morning....</p>
+
+<p>This was the sort of occasion on which Aunt Agatha shone
+as a perfect model of efficiency. She spent an hour or more
+telegraphing and telephoning, prayed extensively, returned
+to her bed and slept soundly till seven. Then she arose
+and gave directions to the servants. It was breakfast time
+before she remembered that she had yet to tell Harry.</p>
+
+<p>Then, as he appeared so cheerfully and ignorantly at the
+breakfast table, Aunt Agatha's heart failed her. Her presence
+of mind also left her; she blurted out a few words to
+the effect that his father had had a bad accident, wished she
+had let him eat his breakfast in ignorance, hoped despairingly
+that he would guess the truth from her perturbation.
+But even this was denied her; he asked a great many
+questions and refused to eat till she made him, but gave
+no sign of suspecting anything beyond what she told him.</p>
+
+<p>She saw that the suspense of waiting for his father's return
+would tell on him more than the worst certainty, but
+still she could not bring herself to break the truth to him.
+When at last she nerved herself to do it, it was too late.</p>
+
+<p>"Come here and sit down by me, Harry," she said gently,
+but Harry, who was standing at one of the front windows,
+listlessly replied:</p>
+
+<p>"Wait, there's something coming up the street."</p>
+
+<p>"Just a minute, dear, I want to talk to you," said Aunt
+Agatha, going over and trying to push him gently away from
+the window. But Harry's attention was caught and he
+refused to move.</p>
+
+<p>"I thought it might be Father. Do you think it's
+Father, Aunt Agatha? It moves so slowly I can't see.... Yes,
+it's turning in at the gate. What sort of a
+thing is it, anyway?..."</p>
+
+<p>The next moment his own eyes answered the question,
+and with a little cry he toppled backward into her arms.</p>
+
+<p>James' reception of the news was characteristically different.
+His behavior was generally referred to by the
+family as "wonderful." He certainly was very calm
+throughout. He was informed of his father's death on
+the Sunday morning by the headmaster of his school,<span class="pagenum">[41]</span>
+to whom Aunt Agatha had telegraphed the night before.</p>
+
+<p>"I suppose I'd better go home," was his first comment.</p>
+
+<p>"I suppose you had," replied the schoolmaster, and he
+was rather at a loss for what to say next. He had certainly
+expected more of a demonstration than this. "Somebody
+had better go with you. Whom would you like to have
+go?"</p>
+
+<p>James hesitated and blushed. "Do you suppose Marston
+would come?" he said at last, in a low voice. Marston,
+a long-legged sixth former, was James' idol at present;
+to ask him to do something for one was like calling the very
+gods down from Olympus.</p>
+
+<p>"I am sure he would," said the headmaster, who understood,
+perfectly. "I will send for him now and ask him."</p>
+
+<p>So Marston accompanied James on his dreary homeward
+journey, though his presence was not in the least necessary,
+and James sat covertly gazing at him in mute adoration all
+the way. His thoughts were actually less on his father's
+death during this journey than on the wonderful, incredible
+fact that anything like a mere family death could throw
+him into intimate intercourse with Marston for a whole day.</p>
+
+<p>But of course he gave no sign of this, and Marston, like
+a real god, seemed entirely unconscious of the immensity
+of the blessing he was conferring. He spent the night at
+the Wimbournes', behaving himself in his really rather trying
+position with the greatest ease and seemliness, and
+even submitted with a becoming grace to the kiss which
+Aunt Cecilia impulsively placed on his brow when she bade
+him farewell next morning.</p>
+
+<p>"You're a dear good boy," she said softly, as she did
+it; "thank you, again and again, for what you've done."</p>
+
+<p>James, who was a witness to this episode, nearly sank
+through the floor with shame. That a relative of his should
+kiss&mdash;actually, <i>kiss</i> Marston&mdash;! He felt like throwing himself
+on the ground and imploring Marston's pardon, dedicating
+himself to his service for life as an expiation.</p>
+
+<p>Yet Marston only blushed and laughed a little and said
+he had done nothing, and bade good-by to James with unimpaired
+cordiality.</p>
+
+<p>Aunt Cecilia had been the first of the relatives to arrive
+on the spot after Hilary's death, and she remained commander-in-chief
+of the relief forces throughout. But her
+command was not a complete or unquestioned one. Among<span class="pagenum">[42]</span>
+the relatives that assembled at the Wimbourne house on
+that Sunday and Monday for Hilary's funeral was one with
+whom the story has hitherto had no dealings, but who was a
+very important force in the family, for all that. This was
+Lady Fletcher, Hilary's younger sister, by all odds the
+handsomest and most naturally gifted of her generation.
+She was the wife of an English army officer, Sir Giles
+Fletcher, who, having won his major-generalship and a
+K.C.B. by distinguished service with Kitchener in the
+Soudan, and being physically incapacitated by that campaign
+for further service in the tropics, was now, with the
+able assistance of his wife, devoting his declining years
+to politics. Lady Fletcher, by the discreet exercise of
+her social qualities, had succeeded in making herself in the
+five years since her husband had entered Parliament, one
+of the most important political hostesses in London. At
+the time of Hilary's death she was paying one of her flying
+autumn visits to the country of her birth, in which her
+headquarters was always her brother James' house in New
+York.</p>
+
+<p>She and James had gone up to New Haven on the Sunday
+afternoon in a leisurely fashion several hours in the wake
+of Aunt Cecilia, who had rushed off, without so much as
+packing a bag, the moment she received Miss Fraile's telegram
+that morning. Miriam&mdash;that was her Christian
+name&mdash;always felt that she and her brother James understood
+one another better than any other members of the
+family, and it was her private opinion that they between
+them possessed more of the rare gift of common sense than
+all the other Wimbournes put together, with their wives
+and husbands thrown in. During the short two-hour
+journey from New York to New Haven neither she nor her
+brother appeared so overcome by sorrow over their recent
+loss that they were not able to discuss the newly created situation
+pretty satisfactorily, or, to "be practical" as Lady
+Fletcher was fond of putting it.</p>
+
+<p>"You aren't going to smoke, James?" she asked, as her
+brother, shortly after the train had started, exhibited preparatory
+signs of a restlessness which she knew would
+culminate in an apologetic exit to the smoking car. "Please
+don't; I can't, on the train, and the thought of your doing
+it would make me miserable." She stopped for a moment,
+reflecting that there was perhaps that in the air<span class="pagenum">[43]</span>
+which ought to make her miserable anyway; then went on,
+with a significantly lowered voice. "Beside, I want to
+talk to you; we may not get another chance...."</p>
+
+<p>"Well?" said James at length.</p>
+
+<p>"Don't be irritating, James; you know what I mean,
+perfectly. Can't you turn your chair around a little
+nearer? I don't want to shout.... Tell me, first, who are
+to be the guardians? Now don't say you don't know, because
+you do."</p>
+
+<p>"I do, as a matter of fact. You and I, jointly. That's
+the one thing I do know, for sure."</p>
+
+<p>"I felt sure it would be that, somehow.... Why me, I
+wonder? and if me at all, why you? However, it might
+have been worse, of course."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, I think he was right, on the whole." So perfect
+was the unspoken understanding between these two that,
+if a third person had interrupted at this moment and
+asked, point blank, what they were talking about, both
+would have replied, without a moment's hesitation,
+"Selina," though her name had not passed their lips.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, what's to be done?" Lady Fletcher exhibited, to
+James' trained eye, preliminary symptoms of a "practical"
+seizure.</p>
+
+<p>"Can't tell anything for certain, till we see the will. I
+shall see Raynham in the morning."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, but haven't you any idea ..."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, none! You were not a witness, were you?... if
+that's any comfort to you."</p>
+
+<p>"Thanks, I have no expectations." This was uttered
+in Lady Fletcher's best snubbing tone, impossible to describe.
+"Please be practical, James. What is going to
+become of those two boys?"</p>
+
+<p>"Well, there are several possibilities. First, there's their
+aunt...."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, the Fraile woman? I've never met her. Isn't
+she ... well, a trifle...."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, quite. She's a leading candidate for the position
+of first American saint. But there'd be no point in keeping
+on with her, with James away at school and Harry
+ready to go."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, really? I didn't realize."</p>
+
+<p>"No," continued James, raising his eyes to his sister's
+and smiling slightly, "what it will come to will be that I<span class="pagenum">[44]</span>
+shall have six children instead of four. Or rather, seven
+instead of five."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, really?" This in a changed tone from the lady.</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, hasn't she told you? April."</p>
+
+<p>"No." The practical mood seemed to have undergone
+a setback; there was something new in that monosyllable,
+irritation, a twinge of pain, perhaps. An outside observer
+might have thought this was due to Miriam's having been
+left out of her sister-in-law's confidence, but James knew
+better. He felt sorry for his sister; he knew that her childlessness
+was the one blight on her career.</p>
+
+<p>"I don't see why you should do it, James." This after
+a long interval of silent thought on the part of Miriam, and
+passive observation of the rushing autumn landscape on
+the part of James. "I don't see why, when I'm equally responsible.
+It isn't a question of money, so much&mdash;I suppose
+that will be left all right?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, undoubtedly. Though I don't know just how."</p>
+
+<p>"It's more than that; it's the responsibility, the bother.
+There's no use in saying that one more, or two more, don't
+matter, for they do; and there's no use in saying that they
+would both be away at school, for, though that would
+make a difference, of course, you never can tell what is
+going to turn up. No matter what did happen, it would
+always fall on you&mdash;and Cecilia."</p>
+
+<p>"That's all very true, perhaps, but&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"And remember this; it's not as if you didn't have four&mdash;five
+already, and I none."</p>
+
+<p>"What <i>are</i> you driving at, Miriam?"</p>
+
+<p>"Don't you see? I want to take one, or both of them,
+myself."</p>
+
+<p>"Whee-ew." This was not, strictly speaking, an observation,
+but rather a sort of vocalized whistle, the larynx
+helping out the lips. "You do rush things so, Miriam!
+Aside from the consideration of whether it would be advisable
+or not, do you realize what opposition there'd be?"</p>
+
+<p>"Why? What, I mean, that could not be properly overcome?
+You are one guardian, I the other; I take one boy,
+you the other. What is there strange about such a course?
+Or I could take both together."</p>
+
+<p>"I should be against James leaving the country, myself.
+He is safely started in his school; doing well there; striking
+his <i>milieu</i>. Why disturb him?"<span class="pagenum">[45]</span></p>
+
+<p>"Well, Harry, then. What sort of a child is he, James?
+I haven't seen either of them for three years, but as I remember
+it, I liked James best. Rather the manly type,
+isn't he? Not but what the other seemed a nice enough
+child...."</p>
+
+<p>"Harry? Oh, he'll have the brains of his generation,
+without doubt. Yes, I'm not surprised at your liking
+James best. There are plenty of people who find Harry
+the more attractive, however. He's got winning ways.
+But&mdash;are you serious about this, Miriam?"</p>
+
+<p>"Serious? Certainly!"</p>
+
+<p>"Well, what's the point? Do we want to make an Englishman
+out of the boy? And do you want to separate
+them? Wouldn't that smack a little of&mdash;well, of Babes
+in the Wood? Cruel uncles and things, you know?"</p>
+
+<p>"I don't think so. We wouldn't want to do that, of
+course. It wouldn't be for always, anyway. But even if
+he went to an English public school, which I should prefer
+to an American one, particularly for that type ... they
+would always have vacations. You are here, and I am
+there, and we would keep running across pretty frequently.
+Besides," here Lady Fletcher again changed her tone, and
+generally gave the impression of preparing to start another
+maneuver; "besides, there's another element in it&mdash;Giles.
+He's devoted to children. He would come as near being a
+father to the boy, if he liked him, as any one could. And&mdash;do
+you realize what that might mean for him&mdash;for
+Harry?" Miriam stopped, significantly, and looked her
+brother straight in the eye for a moment. "The Rumbold
+property is very large, and Giles will certainly come into
+it before long...."</p>
+
+<p>"I see," said James, slowly nodding his head; "I see.
+Though I wouldn't sacrifice anything definite to that
+chance. Beside, what about the Carson family?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes, I'm not saying there's any certainty; it's just
+one of the things to be counted on.... Leaving Harry out
+of consideration for the moment, it would be a wonderful
+thing for Giles. I can't think of anything Giles would
+rather have; it would be like giving him a son. And if
+you knew how wild English people of a certain class and
+type are about children&mdash;! Giles has never got on well
+with the Carson children, for some reason."</p>
+
+<p>"That's all very fine, Miriam, but we mustn't leave Harry<span class="pagenum">[46]</span>
+out of consideration, since it's him we're the guardians of,
+and not Giles&mdash;at least, I am.... I'm inclined to think
+there is something in what you say, though I should be
+definitely against making an Englishman of him&mdash;you understand
+that?" Lady Fletcher nodded, and her brother
+continued: "It would certainly have an admirably broadening
+influence, if all went right. And I'm not sure but
+what you're right about English public schools. Even for
+American boys. But&mdash;" here he smiled quizzically at his
+sister&mdash;"did you ever hear of a person called Selina Wimbourne?"</p>
+
+<p>Lady Fletcher laughed. "You've hit it this time, I
+fancy! Honestly, James&mdash;" the practical mood was now in
+complete abeyance&mdash;"though I've knocked around a good
+deal with swells and terrifying people and all that, I have
+never been so cowed by the mere presence of any individual
+as I have been by my sister Selina. Did it ever occur to
+you, James, that Selina runs this family&mdash;well, as the
+engineer runs this train?"</p>
+
+<p>"Something very like it&mdash;yes."</p>
+
+<p>"At any rate, I have a premonition in the present instance
+that as Selina jumps the tree will fall ... fancy
+Selina jumping out of a tree! It will have to be most carefully
+put to her&mdash;if it is put."</p>
+
+<p>"If it is put&mdash;exactly. We must see how things lie before
+doing anything.&mdash;What, already?" This to a negro
+porter, who was exhibiting willingness to be of service.
+"We must look alive&mdash;the next stop's New Haven. Mind
+you don't say anything too soon, now; easy does it."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, of course.&mdash;No, Bridgeport, isn't it?&mdash;What,
+don't we, any more?... But you are on my side, in the
+main, aren't you?"</p>
+
+<p>"Conditionally, yes&mdash;that is, if all parties seem agreeable.
+The one thing I won't stand for is&mdash;well, Babes in the
+Wood business."</p>
+
+<p>"James, what do you think of my taking Harry off to
+England with me?" said Aunt Miriam to her elder nephew
+a day or two later.</p>
+
+<p>"I think it would be fine," was his reply, and then after
+a pause: "For how long, though?"</p>
+
+<p>This was going nearer to the heart of the matter than
+the lady cared to penetrate, so she merely answered:</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, one can't tell; a few months; perhaps more, if he<span class="pagenum">[47]</span>
+wants to stay." Seeing that he swallowed this without apparent
+effort, she went on: "What should you say to his
+going to school in England, when he is able, for a time?"</p>
+
+<p>James' expression underwent no change, but he only
+answered stiffly, "I think he had better come to St. Barnabas,
+when he is able," and his aunt let the matter drop
+there.</p>
+
+<p>It was in Aunt Cecilia, and not Aunt Selina, that Lady
+Fletcher found the most formidable opposition. Miss Wimbourne,
+indeed, quite took to the idea when her half-sister,
+very carefully and with not a little concealed trepidation,
+suggested it to her. She took it, as Miriam more vividly
+put it to her brother, "like milk."</p>
+
+<p>"That is not a bad plan, Miriam, not a bad plan at all,"
+she said in the quiet voice that could be so firm when it
+wanted. "I can see why there are good reasons why neither
+of the boys should live in New Haven. For the present,
+you know. James will be at school, and will spend his
+vacations with James' family, and Harry will be with
+you until he is ready to do the same. I do not see but what
+it is a very good arrangement. I am perfectly willing to
+do my part in taking care of them, but I am not nearly so
+useful in that way as either you or James."</p>
+
+<p>But not so with Mrs. James. Her husband first spoke
+to her of the scheme before breakfast on the Monday morning,
+and she took immediate and articulate exception to it.
+The plan was forced, dangerous, artificial, cruel, unnecessary,
+short-sighted; in fact, it wouldn't do at all. There
+was no telling what Miriam would do with him, once he
+was over there, and no telling when she would let him come
+back to what had been, what ought to be, and what, if she
+(Mrs. James) had any say in the matter, was going to be
+his Home. It would make her extremely unhappy to
+think of that child spending his vacations&mdash;or his whole
+time for that matter&mdash;with any one but his uncle and
+natural guardian ("Miriam is his guardian, too," James
+attempted to say, but no attention was paid to him), his
+aunt and his young cousins. As for all that business about
+Giles Fletcher, it was Perfect Nonsense. Before she would
+give an instant's consideration to such&mdash;to such an absurdity,
+she (Mrs. James) would give the boy every scrap
+of money she had, or was ever going to have, outright, and
+would end the matter then and there. (This would have<span class="pagenum">[48]</span>
+been a really appalling threat, if it was meant seriously,
+for Cecilia was due to inherit millions.) As for sending
+him to an English public school, she thought it would be
+the cruelest, most unfeeling, most ridiculous thing possible,
+seeing Harry was what he was. If it had been James,
+now&mdash;!</p>
+
+<p>But the gods fought on Miriam's side. Cecilia went into
+the library during the latter part of the morning and discovered
+young James alone there. She found him uncommunicative
+and solemn, which, in the nature of things,
+was only to be expected; and he took her completely by surprise
+by asking after a few moments, in the most ordinary
+tone:</p>
+
+<p>"Who is Marcelline Lef&egrave;bre, Aunt Cecilia?"</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. James stifled a gasp, and waited before replying
+till she was sure of her voice.</p>
+
+<p>"Why? How did you ever hear of her?" she said.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, in this. There's a lot more about it to-day. She
+was badly hurt, wasn't she?"</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. James looked up and saw the newspaper lying open
+on the desk in front of which James was sitting.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes.... An actress, I think."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," said James, "it says that here." The words and
+tone clearly implied that James expected her to tell him
+something he did not know already, but she parried.</p>
+
+<p>"Had you ever heard of her before?"</p>
+
+<p>"No, never. That's just the funny part of it. Why
+should we never have heard of a person Father knew well
+enough to take out to ride? Did you ever know her?"</p>
+
+<p>"No; merely heard of her. Oh, it's not to be wondered
+at; he had lots of acquaintances, of course." This was
+definite enough to indicate that she had told him all she
+intended to, and both were silent for a while. But presently
+a new thought occurred to her and she began again:</p>
+
+<p>"Tell me, James, does Harry know anything about Mme.
+Lef&egrave;bre?"</p>
+
+<p>"Not that I know of; not unless he heard of her ...
+before."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, I think it would be a good plan if you didn't
+mention her name to him, or talk about her in his presence."</p>
+
+<p>"All right. Why, though&mdash;particularly?"</p>
+
+<p>"Never mind about that. At least," she caught herself<span class="pagenum">[49]</span>
+up, realizing, perhaps, that this was treating him too much
+<i>en enfant</i>; "at least, I think it would be just as well for
+him not to know anything about her. It might worry him.
+Particularly in his present state. There is no reason why
+he should see the papers, or hear anything."</p>
+
+<p>"I see," said James, quietly, staring out of the window.
+He saw far too well, poor boy, was Aunt Cecilia's thought.</p>
+
+<p>But the conversation started her off on a new line of
+thought in regard to Harry. Harry was so different from
+James; if he once smelled a rat he would go nosing about
+till he found him, even if he undermined the foundations
+of his own happiness in so doing. And Harry was the
+kind that smelled rats.... Inevitably her thoughts wandered
+around to Lady Fletcher's scheme, and beheld it in
+a new light. There was a certain amount of common sense
+in the plan, so viewed; there would certainly be fewer
+rats in London than anywhere in this country. And after
+all, what was the danger in his going to England? Miriam
+would not eat him, neither would Giles; Miriam must really
+be fond of him if she wanted to take him&mdash;Miriam would
+hardly do anything against her own inclination, she reflected,
+a little bitterly.</p>
+
+<p>She presented her changed front to her husband that
+evening, and the upshot of it all was that Harry was to go
+to England. The whole family adjourned to New York
+after the funeral, and steamship plans and sailings were
+in the air. James went with them; it was decided that he
+was not to return to school till Harry sailed with his aunt.</p>
+
+<p>Harry himself took most kindly to the scheme; seemed,
+indeed, to prefer it to St. Barnabas. He flaunted his
+superior fortune in the face of his brother, making comparisons
+between the British Isles and St. Barnabas, greatly
+to the detriment of the latter.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes, I'll write to you," he said airily during one of
+these conversations; "that is, if I can find a minute to do
+it in. Of course I shall be pretty busy, with pantomimes,
+and theaters, and parties, and&mdash;and the Zoo, and all that."</p>
+
+<p>"Fudge," said James calmly; "you'll be homesick as a
+cat before you've been there a week."</p>
+
+<p>"Then when I get tired of that I may go to school&mdash;if
+I feel like it. Aunt Miriam says she knows of one that
+would just do. Not Eton or Rugby, or anything like that;
+a school for younger boys. This one is in a beautiful big<span class="pagenum">[50]</span>
+house, Aunt Miriam says, with lots of grounds and things
+about. Park, you know, like Windsor. And deer in it.
+And the house was built in the reign of Charles the First."</p>
+
+<p>"Bet you don't even know when that was. What's the
+use in having that kind of place for a school, anyway?"</p>
+
+<p>"St. Barnabas," replied Harry with hauteur, "was built
+in the reign of Queen Victoria."</p>
+
+<p>"Queen nothing! Gosh, if you talk rot like this now,
+what'll you be when you've been over there a while?"</p>
+
+<p>"Then I may go to Eton, or one of those places, later."
+This was merely to bring a rise; Harry had no idea of
+completing his education anywhere but at St. Barnabas'.</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, a fine time you'd have there! A fine time you'd
+have with those kids. Lords, Dukes, and things. Gosh,
+wouldn't you be sick of them, and oh, but they'd be sick
+of you!"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, I don't know," said Harry; "good fellows, lords.
+Some of them, that is. I might be made one myself, in
+time, who knows?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, you might, mightn't you?" James was laughing
+now. "Nothing more likely, I should think. Lord Harry,
+Earl Harry!"</p>
+
+<p>Harry replied in kind, and hostilities ensued.</p>
+
+<p>This was all more or less as it should be, and the mutual
+attitude was maintained up to the actual moment of sailing&mdash;after
+it, indeed, for when Harry last saw his brother he
+was standing on the very end of the dock and shouting
+"Give my love to the earls!" and similar pleasantries to
+the small head that protruded itself out of the great black
+moving wall above him; above him now, and now not so
+much above, but some distance off, and presently not a
+great black wall at all, but the side of a perfectly articulate
+ship, way out in the river.</p>
+
+<p>Uncle James and his wife, also their eldest child, Ruth,
+a girl of nine or thereabouts, all came down to the dock
+with James to see the travelers off, and as they arrived
+hours and hours, as Miriam put it, before there was any
+question of sailing, there was a good deal of standing about
+in saloons and on decks and talking about nothing in particular,
+pending the moment when gongs would be rung and
+people begin to talk jocularly about getting left and having
+to climb down with the pilot. They all went down to see
+the staterooms, which adjoined each other and were pronounced<span class="pagenum">[51]</span>
+satisfactory. Aunt Cecilia said she was glad Harry
+could have his window open at night without a draught
+blowing on him, and Aunt Miriam remarked that it was nice
+to have the ship all to one's self, practically, which was
+so different from Coming Over, and Uncle James added
+that when he crossed on the <i>Persia</i> in '69 as a mere kid,
+there were only fifteen people in the first cabin and none
+of them ever appeared in the dining room after the first
+day except himself and the captain. After this, conversation
+rather lagged and there was a general adjournment
+to the deck. A few passengers, accompanied by their stay-at-home
+friends and relations, wandered about the halls
+and stairways, saying that autumn voyages were not always
+so bad and that you never could tell about the ocean,
+at any season; which amounted to admitting that they
+probably would be seasick, though they hoped not. Our
+friends, the Wimbournes, had little to say on even this all-absorbing
+topic, for Harry, who had crossed once before,
+had proved himself a qualmless sailor, and Aunt Miriam
+had crossed so often that she had got all over that sort of
+thing, years ago.</p>
+
+<p>Uncle James was presently despatched to see what mischief
+those boys were getting that child into, and the two
+ladies wandered into the main lounge and sat down.</p>
+
+<p>"Anything more different than the appearance of a
+steamship saloon while the ship is in dock from what it
+looks like when she is careering round at sea can hardly
+be imagined," murmured Lady Fletcher, pleasantly, with
+no intention of being comprehended or replied to. Mrs.
+James' polite and conscientious rejoinder of "What was
+that, Miriam?"&mdash;she had not, of course, been listening&mdash;piqued
+the other lady ever so slightly. It was not real annoyance,
+merely the rather tired feeling that comes over
+one when a companion sounds a note out of one's own
+mood.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, nothing; merely what a difference it makes, being
+out on the open sea."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, doesn't it?... Harry will&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Harry will what?"</p>
+
+<p>"Nothing." Mrs. James blushed a little. She was going
+to say, "Harry will have to be looked out for, or he will
+go climbing over places where he shouldn't and fall overboard,"
+or something to that effect, but she decided not to,<span class="pagenum">[52]</span>
+fearing that her sister-in-law would think her fussy. Lady
+Fletcher accepted the omission, and went on to talk of the
+next thing that came into her mind, which was Business.
+There were some Lackawanna shares, it appeared, part of
+Harry's property, the dividends on which James was going
+to pay regularly to the London banker for defraying
+Harry's expenses, and James might have forgotten to do
+something, or else not to do something, in connection with
+these. Lady Fletcher wandered on to American railroad
+stock, making several remarks which, in the absence of
+brothers, with their satirical smiles, remained unchallenged.
+Poor Aunt Cecilia, who could neither keep on nor off her
+sister-in-law's line of thought, unluckily broke in on the
+Union Pacific with the malapropos remark:</p>
+
+<p>"Miriam, Harry has got to be made to wear woolen stockings
+in the winter, no matter what he says ..."</p>
+
+<p>Lady Fletcher was amused. "I declare, Cecilia," she
+said, "you think I am no more capable of taking care of
+that boy than of ruling a state!"</p>
+
+<p>But Mrs. James did not smile in reply; the remark came
+too near to describing her actual state of mind.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, Miriam, with four children of one's own, one
+may be expected to learn a thing or two; it isn't all as easy
+as it seems. Beside, I am fond of the boy; I suppose I
+may be excused for that ..."</p>
+
+<p>"I can certainly excuse it; I am fond of him myself."
+Lady Fletcher was trying to conceal her irritation. Perhaps
+the suavity of her tone was a little overdone; at any
+rate, it only served to make Mrs. James' face a little rosier
+and her voice a little harder as she replied:</p>
+
+<p>"I suppose you think, Miriam, that because I have four
+children of my own to fuss over, I might be expected to
+let the others alone, and I daresay you're right; but all
+that I know is, my heart isn't made that way. I have
+noticed you during these last weeks, and I am sure that
+you have felt as I say. But if you think that because I
+have four of my own to love, and therefore have less to
+give to those two motherless boys, you are mistaken. The
+more you have to love, the more you love each one of them,
+separately&mdash;not the less, as you might know if you had
+children of your own ..."</p>
+
+<p>She stopped, unable to say any more. Her words were
+much more cruel than she intended them to be; that is,<span class="pagenum">[53]</span>
+they fell much more cruelly than she meant them to on
+Lady Fletcher's ears. She had no idea, of course, of the
+deep though vain yearning for offspring of her own that
+filled her sister-in-law's bosom; Miriam could not possibly
+have expressed this, the deepest and most tragic thing in
+her life, to Cecilia. She was made that way. The more
+poignantly she felt what she had missed, the more determinedly
+she concealed every trace of her feeling from
+the outside world.</p>
+
+<p>So it was now. Every ounce of feeling in her flared for
+a moment into hate; the hate of the childless woman for
+the mother. The flame fell after a second or two, of
+course, and she was able to reply, unsmilingly and coldly:</p>
+
+<p>"I think that Harry will be as well treated by me as
+you could wish, Cecilia."</p>
+
+<p>Mother love, nothing else, was responsible for all the
+hardness and bitterness in her tone. But Mrs. James knew
+nothing of this; she only felt the hardness and bitterness
+and judged the speaker accordingly.</p>
+
+<p>That was all. The quarrel, if such it could be called,
+died down as quickly as it had flared up, for it was impossible
+for these two well-bred ladies to fall out and fight like
+fishwives. Lady Fletcher's last remark made further discussion
+of the subject, or any other subject, for the time
+being, impossible, and after a minute the two rose by tacit
+consent and went out to find the others.</p>
+
+<p>By the time they found them they were both as calm and
+self-possessed as usual. When, after a little more standing
+around, the gongs were rung and the time for farewell
+actually arrived, Lady Fletcher kissed her nephew and
+niece with neither more nor less than her usual cordiality,
+and Mrs. James was exactly as affectionate in her farewells
+to Harry as might have been expected. The two
+ladies also embraced each other with no sign of ill-feeling.
+Lady Fletcher's good-humor was unabated in quantity, if
+just a little strained in quality.</p>
+
+<p>"Now comes the most amusing part of sailing," she
+said, "which is, watching other people cry. Don't tell
+me people don't love to cry better than anything else in the
+world; if not, why do they come down here? You might
+think that every one of them was being torn away from his
+home and country for life!"</p>
+
+<p>"The time when I always want to cry most," contributed<span class="pagenum">[54]</span>
+Uncle James, "is on landing. Everything is so disagreeable
+then, after the ease and comfort of the voyage."</p>
+
+<p>That was the general tone of the parting. Even Aunt
+Cecilia smiled appreciatively and gave no sign of underlying
+emotion. But as she watched the great steamer glide
+slowly out of her slip her thoughts ran in such channels as
+these:</p>
+
+<p>"Miriam is a brilliant woman; she has made a great
+lady of herself, and is going to be a still greater one. She
+has money, position, wit, beauty and youth. The greatest
+people come gladly to her house; small people scheme and
+plot to get invitations there. Yet what is it all worth,
+when the greatest blessing of all, the blessing of children,
+is denied her? And the terrible part of it is, she is so utterly
+unconscious of what she has missed; her whole heart
+is eaten up with those worldly and unsatisfactory things.
+Poor Miriam, I pity her as it is, but how I could pity her if
+it were all a little different!"</p>
+
+<p>And the thoughts of Lady Fletcher, as she stood on the
+deck and watched the shores slip away from her, were
+somewhat as follows:</p>
+
+<p>"I always thought Cecilia was one of the best of women,
+until this hour. I don't mind her being a great heiress,
+I don't mind her never being able to forget that she was
+a Van Lorn, I don't mind her subconscious attitude of
+having married beneath her when she married James&mdash;whose
+ancestors were governing colonies when hers were
+keeping a grocery store on lower Manhattan Island&mdash;!
+But when it comes to her boasting about having children,
+and flaunting them in my face because I haven't got any,
+I think I am about justified in saying that she shows a
+mean and ignoble nature. I have seen all I want to of
+Cecilia, for some time to come!"</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[55]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_VI">CHAPTER VI</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">ARCADIA AND YANKEEDOM</p>
+
+<p>We have given a more or less detailed account of the
+misunderstanding just described because of the fact
+that the mental relation it inaugurated was responsible,
+more than any one other thing, for the separation of Harry
+and James Wimbourne for a period of nearly seven years.</p>
+
+<p>No one, not even Lady Fletcher herself, had any idea
+that this would come to pass at the time Harry left the
+country. One thing led on to another; Harry was put in
+a preparatory school for two or three terms soon after his
+arrival in England; he was so happy there and the climate
+and the school life agreed with him so well that it seemed
+the most natural thing, a year or so later, to send him up to
+Harrow with some of his youthful contemporaries, with
+whom he had formed some close friendships. This was
+done, be it understood, in accordance with Harry's own
+wish. There was an atmosphere, a quality, a historical
+feeling about the English schools that after a short time
+exerted a strong influence on Harry's adolescent imagination,
+and made St. Barnabas seem flat and unprofitable in
+comparison. It would not have been so with many boys,
+but it was with Harry.</p>
+
+<p>Of course James was a strong magnet in the other direction,
+but not quite strong enough to pull him against all
+the forces contending on the English side. There was a
+distinct heart-interest there; within a year after Harry's
+arrival in the country, the majority of his friends were
+English boys. How many vice-Jameses were needed to
+offset the pull of one James we don't know, but we do know
+that there were enough. James at first objected strenuously
+to the change in plans, but Harry countered the objection
+with the proposal that James should leave St. Barnabas
+and go up to Harrow with his brother. This was
+considered on the American side as such an inexplicable
+attitude that further argument was abandoned and the
+matter of Harry's schooling given up as a bad job.</p>
+
+<p>The one valid objection to Harrow was that if Harry was<span class="pagenum">[56]</span>
+to become an American citizen, the place to educate him
+was in America. Sir Giles saw this, and gave the objection
+its full value.</p>
+
+<p>"If I were to consult my own inclination alone," he
+said to Harry when they were talking the matter over, "I
+should undoubtedly want to make an Englishman out of
+you. I think you would make a pretty good Englishman,
+Harry. You could go to Oxford, and then make your
+career here. Parliament, you know, or the diplomatic.
+But there seems to be some feeling against such a course.
+They want you to be an American. They seem to think
+that your having been born and bred an American makes
+some difference. Fancy!"</p>
+
+<p>"Fancy!" echoed Harry, as capable as any one of falling
+in with the spirit of what Lady Fletcher called Sir
+Giles' "arising-out-of-that-reply" manner.</p>
+
+<p>"And I won't say they are wholly wrong. The question
+is, can we make a good American of you over here in
+England? By the time you have gone through Harrow,
+won't you be an Englishman of the most confirmed type?
+Won't you disappoint everybody and slip from there into
+Oxford, as it were, automatically?"</p>
+
+<p>"I am of the opinion," replied Harry judicially, "that
+the honorable member's fears on that score are ungrounded.
+You see, Uncle G.," he went on, dropping his parliamentary
+manner, "I shall go back to America to go to college, anyway.
+I couldn't possibly go anywhere except to Yale.
+We've gone to Yale, you see, for three generations already."</p>
+
+<p>"I thought, when you came over here, that you couldn't
+possibly go to school anywhere except at St. Barnabas.
+It seems to me I remember something of that kind."</p>
+
+<p>"This is quite different," said Harry firmly, "quite different.
+I was brought up in Yale, practically. I'm sure I
+could never be happy anywhere but there. Besides, I
+don't want to become an Englishman. That's all rot."</p>
+
+<p>"Well," said his uncle, "if that's the case, we'll risk it.
+And&mdash;" he unconsciously quoted his wife on a former occasion&mdash;"there
+are always the vacations."</p>
+
+<p>But that is just where the honorable member proved
+himself mistaken. The vacations weren't there, after all.
+And that was where the mutual misunderstanding between
+the two ladies came in.<span class="pagenum">[57]</span></p>
+
+<p>We don't mean to say that this was wholly responsible
+for the uninterrupted separation. Other things came into
+it; coincidence, mere fortuitous circumstances. Plans were
+made, on both sides of the Atlantic, but they were always
+interrupted, for some reason or another. James and Cecilia
+would write cheerfully about coming over next summer
+and bringing young James and one or two of their own
+children with them. That would be from about October to
+January. Then, along in the winter, it would appear
+that their plans for the summer were not settled, after all.
+Ruth was not well enough to travel this year, or James
+could not leave his work and Cecilia could not leave him.
+Or, on the other hand, Aunt Miriam would talk breezily at
+times of taking Giles over and showing him the country&mdash;Giles
+had never been to America except to marry his wife&mdash;and
+taking Harry too, of course; or she would casually
+suggest running over with him for a fortnight at Christmas.
+But Harry's summer vacation was so short, only eight
+weeks, and there were Visits to be made in September; the
+kind of visits that implied enormous shooting parties and
+full particulars in the <i>Morning Post</i>. And when Christmas
+drew near either Giles or Miriam would develop a bad
+bronchial cough and have to be packed off to Sicily. It
+is odd how things like that will crop up when two women
+are fully determined to have nothing to do with each other.</p>
+
+<p>And the boys themselves, could they not go over alone and
+stay with their relations, at least as soon as they were old
+enough to make the voyage unaccompanied? James wanted
+to do something of that kind very much at times; wanted to
+far more than Harry, who thought that he would have
+enough of America later on and was meanwhile anxious to
+get as much out of the continent of Europe as possible. One
+reason why James never did anything of the sort was that
+he was afraid; actually a little afraid to go over, unsupported,
+and find out what they had made of Harry. James'
+thoughts were apt to run in fixed channels; after he had
+been a year or two at St. Barnabas, the idea that there was
+another school in the country, fit for Harry to attend, or in
+any other country, never entered his head. Harry's decision
+in favor of Harrow, and particularly Harry's lighthearted
+suggestion that he should come over and go to Harrow
+with him, filled his soul with consternation. He,
+James, leave St. Barnabas for Harrow!...<span class="pagenum">[58]</span></p>
+
+<p>And to the receptive mind the mere fact that Aunt Cecilia
+was at this time his closest friend and confidante will explain
+much. She never made derogatory remarks to him about
+his Aunt Miriam, nor did she reveal to him, any more than
+to any one else, the antagonism of feeling that existed between
+them; but in some subtle, unfelt way she imparted
+her own attitude to him, which was, in a word, Keep Away.
+She herself would have said, if any one asked her point
+blank, that she had Given Harry Up. She never approved
+of his staying over to be educated; she would have had him
+back, away from Miriam and Europe (Aunt Cecilia wasted
+no love on that Continent) inside two months, if she could
+have had her own way. But her opinion was worth nothing;
+she was not the boy's guardian!</p>
+
+<p>There was a time, two or three years after his arrival in
+England, when Harry was consumed by a desire to see his
+brother again, if only for a few weeks. He told his Uncle
+Giles about it&mdash;he soon fell into the habit of confiding in him
+sooner than in his aunt&mdash;and Uncle Giles sympathized
+readily with his wish, and promised to run over to America
+with him the next summer. But when, a few days before
+the date of their sailing, Harry came home from school, his
+uncle met him in the library with a grave face and told him
+that he had been called upon to stand for his party in a
+by-election early in September, and could not possibly leave
+the country before that. Afterward there would be no time.</p>
+
+<p>"It is quite a compliment to me," explained Sir Giles;
+"they want me to go in for them at West Bolton because it
+is a doubtful and important borough, and they think I can
+win it over to the Conservatives if any one can. Whereas
+Blackmoor is sure, no matter who runs. It pleases me in a
+way, of course, but I hate it for breaking up our trip."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, dear, I did want to see James," said Harry, leaning
+his elbows on the mantelpiece, and burying his face in his
+hands to hide his tears of disappointment.</p>
+
+<p>"Poor boy, it is hard on you," said Sir Giles, and impulsively
+drew Harry to him and clasped him against his
+broad bosom. "Do you remember the man in the play, that
+always voted at his party's call and never thought of thinking
+for himself at all? That's me, and it makes me feel
+foolish at times, I can tell you. But if you want so much to
+see James, why can't he be brought over here?"</p>
+
+<p>"I don't know," said Harry, "I wish he would come, but<span class="pagenum">[59]</span>
+I'm sure he won't. I don't know what's the matter, but
+I'm certain that if I am to see him, it will have to be I that
+makes the journey. I've felt that for some time."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, what about your going over alone? I could see
+you off at Liverpool, and they would meet you at New
+York."</p>
+
+<p>But that would not do, either. Harry had counted so
+much on having his uncle with him and showing him all the
+interesting things in America that his uncle's defalcation
+took all the zest out of the trip for him. So he remained in
+England and helped Sir Giles win the by-election, which
+interested him very much.</p>
+
+<p>Lady Fletcher was right when she prophesied that Sir
+Giles would become fond of Harry. He was just such a boy
+as Sir Giles would have given his Parliamentary career, his
+K. C. B., and his whole fortune to have for his own son.
+The two got on famously together. Sir Giles liked to have
+Harry with him during all his vacations, and visits during
+summer holidays&mdash;visits, that is, on which Harry could not
+be included&mdash;were almost completely given up, as far as Sir
+Giles was concerned. They spent blissful days with each
+other on the golf links, or fishing in a Scotch stream, or
+exploring the filthiest and most fascinating corners of some
+Continental town, while Aunt Miriam, gently satirical,
+though secretly delighted, went her own smart and fashionable
+way, joining them at intervals.</p>
+
+<p>No one was prouder or more pleased than Harry when&mdash;a
+year or two after he came into the Rumbold property,
+curiously enough&mdash;Sir Giles was given a G. C. B. and a
+baronetcy by his grateful party; or when, in the Conservative
+landslide that followed the Boer War, he rose to real
+live ministerial rank, and had to go through a second election
+by his borough and became a "Right Honorable." The
+fly in the ointment was that he saw less of his uncle than
+formerly. The Fletchers moved from their smart but restricted
+quarters in Mayfair to an enormous place in Belgrave
+Square, "so as to be near the House," as Aunt Miriam
+plausibly but rather unconvincingly put it, and Sir Giles
+seemed to be always either at the House or the Colonial
+office&mdash;have we said that he became Secretary for the Colonies?
+However, Harry was treated as though he were a son
+of the house, and was given <i>carte blanche</i> in the matter of
+asking school friends to stay with him when he came home.<span class="pagenum">[60]</span>
+This permission also applied to Rumbold Abbey, the estate
+in Herefordshire that formed the chief part of the aforementioned
+property. There was no abbey, but there was a
+late Stuart house of huge proportions; also parks and woods
+and streams that offered unlimited opportunities for the
+destruction of innocent fauna, of which Harry and a number
+of his contemporary Harrovians soon learned to take
+advantage.</p>
+
+<p>On the whole, Harry led an extremely joyous and entertaining
+life during the days of his exile. At school he fared
+no less well than at home; he was never a leader among his
+fellows, but he was good enough at sports to win their
+respect and attractive enough in his personality to make
+many friends. The natural flexibility of his temperament
+enabled him to fit in fairly easily with the hard-and-fast
+ways of English school life. He accepted all its conventions
+and convictions, and never realized, as long as he remained
+in England, that they were in any way different from those
+of the schools of his own country. He soon got to dress and
+to talk like an Englishman, though he never went to extremes
+in what he loved to irritate his schoolfellows by calling
+the "English accent." While not exactly handsome, he
+became, as he reached man's estate, extremely agreeable to
+look upon. He had a clear pink complexion and dark hair,
+always a striking and pleasing combination, and he was tall
+and slim and moved with the stiff gracefulness that is the
+special characteristic of the British male aristocracy. In
+general, people liked him, and he liked other people.</p>
+
+<p>His vacations, as has been said, were usually spent with
+Sir Giles either in the British Isles or on the Continent, but
+there was one Easter holiday&mdash;the second he spent in England&mdash;when
+he was, to quote a phrase of Aunt Miriam's,
+thrown on the parish. The Fletchers were booked to spend
+the holiday in a Mediterranean cruise on the yacht of a
+nautical duke, who was so nautical and so much of a duke
+that to be asked to cruise with him was not merely an Engagement;
+it was an Experience. In any case, there could
+be no question of taking Harry, and Lady Fletcher was in
+perplexity about what to do with him till Sir Giles suggested,
+"Why don't we send him to Mildred?" So to
+Mildred Harry went, and spent an important, if not a
+wildly exciting, month.</p>
+
+<p>Mildred was Sir Giles' only sister, Lady Archibald Carson.
+She lived in a little house in the Surrey hills, and<span class="pagenum">[61]</span>
+though the land that went with it was restricted, it was fertile
+and its mistress went in as heavily as her means would
+allow for herbaceous borders and rock gardens and Japanese
+effects. Her two children, both girls, lived there with her.
+Her husband, Lord Archibald, was also, in a sense, living
+with her, but the verdant domesticity of the Surrey hills
+had no charm for him and he spent practically all of his
+time in London and other busy haunts of men, or even more
+busy haunts of women. He was a younger son of a long
+line of marquises who for their combination of breeding and
+profligacy probably had no match in the British peerage.
+Within five years of his marriage he had with the greatest
+casualness in the world run through his own patrimony and
+all he could lay his hands on of his wife's. Having bullied
+and wheedled all that he could out of her he now consistently
+let her alone and depended for his income on what
+he could bully and wheedle out of his brother, the eleventh
+marquis, who was known as a greater rake than Lord Archibald
+merely because he had greater facilities for rakishness
+at his command.</p>
+
+<p>Lady Archibald was a tall, light-haired, pale-eyed woman
+with a tired face and a gentle manner. She had no interests
+in life beyond her children and her garden, but she had a
+kind heart and welcomed Harry cordially on his arrival at
+the little house in Surrey. He had seen her once before at
+the Fletchers' in London, but he had never seen her children.
+It was, therefore, with a rather keen sense of curiosity
+that he walked through the house into the garden, where
+he was told that Beatrice and Jane were to be found. He
+saw them across the croquet lawn immediately, and he
+underwent a mild shock of disappointment on seeing, as
+he could, at a glance, that they were just as long of limb,
+just as straight of hair and just as angular in build as most
+English girls of their age.</p>
+
+<p>The elder girl rose from her seat and sauntered slowly
+across the lawn, followed by her sister. She stared coolly at
+Harry as she walked toward him, but said nothing, even
+when she was quite near. He met her gaze with perfect
+self-possession, and suddenly realized that she was waiting
+to see if he would make the first move. He instantly determined
+not to do so, it being her place, after all, to speak
+first; so he stood still and stared calmly back at her for a
+few seconds, till finally the girl, with a sudden fleeting smile,
+held out her hand and greeted him.<span class="pagenum">[62]</span></p>
+
+<p>"You're Harry Wimbourne, aren't you?" she said, cordially
+enough. "This is my sister Jane. We are very glad
+to see you; we've heard such a lot about you. Come over
+here and tell us about America."</p>
+
+<p>In that meeting, in her rather rude little aggression and
+Harry's reception of it, was started a friendship. She deliberately
+tested Harry and found that he came up to the
+mark. He did not fidget, he did not blush, he did not
+stammer; he simply returned her stare, waiting for her to
+find her manners. Nothing he could have done would have
+pleased her better; she decided she would like him, then and
+there.</p>
+
+<p>Harry on his side found her conversation, even in the first
+hour of their acquaintance, stimulating and agreeable, and
+like nothing that he had experienced before in any young
+girl of thirteen, English or American.</p>
+
+<p>"You needn't be afraid that we shall ask foolish questions
+about America," Beatrice went on. "We know the Indians
+don't run wild in the streets of New York, and all that sort
+of thing. We even know what part of the country New
+Haven is in; we looked it up on the map. It's quite near
+New York, isn't it?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," said Harry, "you're quite right; it is. But how
+do you pronounce the name of the state it is in? Can you
+tell me that?"</p>
+
+<p>"Connecticut," replied the girl, readily enough; but she
+sounded the second <i>c</i>, after the manner of most English
+people. Harry explained her mistake to her, and she took
+the correction smiling, quite without pique or resentment.</p>
+
+<p>"Now go on and tell us something about the country.
+Something really important, you know; something we don't
+know already."</p>
+
+<p>"Well," said Harry, "there seems to be more room there;
+that's about the most important difference. Except in the
+largest cities, and there there seems to be less, and that's
+why they make the buildings so high. And nearly all the
+houses, except in the middle of the towns, are made of
+wood."</p>
+
+<p>He went on at some length, the two girls listening attentively.</p>
+
+<p>At last Beatrice interrupted with the question:</p>
+
+<p>"Which do you think you like best, on the whole, England
+or America?"<span class="pagenum">[63]</span></p>
+
+<p>"Oh, America of course; but only because it's my own
+country. I can imagine liking England best, if one happened
+to be born here. Some things are nicer here, and
+some are nicer there."</p>
+
+<p>"What do you like best in England?"</p>
+
+<p>"Well, the old things. Cathedrals and castles. Also
+afternoon tea, which we don't bother about much over there.
+And the gardens."</p>
+
+<p>"And what do you like best about America?"</p>
+
+<p>"Trolley cars, and soda water fountains, and such things.
+And the climate. And the way people act. There's so
+much less&mdash;less formality over there; less bothering about
+little things, you know."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, yes, I know exactly. Silly little things, that don't
+matter one way or the other. I know I should like that
+about America."</p>
+
+<p>"I think you would like America, anyway," said Harry,
+looking judicially at his interlocutrix. "You seem to be
+a free and easy sort of person."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, I wouldn't like trolley cars," interrupted Jane
+with firmness, "They go too fast. I don't like to go fast.
+It musses my hair, and the dust gets into my eyes."</p>
+
+<p>"Shut up, silly," said her sister; "you've never ridden
+in one."</p>
+
+<p>"No, but I know what it is to go fast, and I don't like it.
+I don't think I should care much for America."</p>
+
+<p>"Well," said Harry, laughing, "we won't make you go
+there. Or if you do go there, we won't make you ride on
+the trolley cars. You can ride in hacks all the time; they
+go slow enough for any one."</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice's first impression of Harry underwent no disillusionment
+as the days went on. She seemed to find in him a
+companion after her own heart. He had plenty of ideas of
+his own, and he was entirely willing to act on hers; he never
+affected to despise them as a girl's notions, nor did he ever
+object to her sharing in his amusements because of her misfortune
+of sex. They climbed trees and crawled through
+the underbrush on their stomachs together with as much zest
+and <i>abandon</i> as if there were no such things as frocks and
+stockings in the world. Harry had never known this kind
+of companionship with a girl before, and was delighted with
+her.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, dash, there goes my garter," she exclaimed one<span class="pagenum">[64]</span>
+day as they were walking through a country lane together.
+She had got rather to make a point of such matters, to over-emphasize
+their possible embarrassment, simply in order
+to see how beautifully he acted.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, tie it up or something," said he, sauntering on a
+few steps.</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice did what was necessary and ran on and caught
+up with him.</p>
+
+<p>"I never could see why a garter shouldn't be as freely
+talked about as any other article of clothing," said she.
+"All that sort of modesty is such rot; people have legs, and
+legs have to have stockings to cover them, and stockings
+have to have garters to keep them up. And women have
+legs, just as much as men; there's not a doubt of that.
+Perhaps that's news to you, though?"</p>
+
+<p>"No, I knew that."</p>
+
+<p>"You really, honestly aren't shocked at what I'm saying?"
+asked the girl, scanning his face intently.</p>
+
+<p>"Not in the least; why should I be? You're not telling
+me anything shocking."</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice drew a long breath of pure enjoyment.</p>
+
+<p>"It <i>is</i> a comfort to meet a person like you once in a
+while," she said. "Tell me, are women such fools about
+their legs in America as they are here?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, quite," said Harry fervently; "if not actually
+worse. That's one thing that we don't seem to have learned
+any better about. It always makes me tired."</p>
+
+<p>The two saw each other, infrequently but fairly regularly,
+throughout Harry's stay in England. They never
+corresponded, both admitting that they were bad letter
+writers, but when they met they were always able to pick
+up their friendship exactly where they had left it.</p>
+
+<p>When Sir Giles came into the Rumbold property there
+was naturally a corresponding change in the circumstances
+of Lady Archibald and her daughters. Every penny of the
+property, which came to Sir Giles through the death of a
+maternal uncle, was entailed and inalienable from his possession;
+but he was able to alleviate her condition by giving
+her a large yearly allowance out of his income; and it was
+pointed out that such an arrangement would have the advantage
+of keeping the money safe from her husband.
+Lady Archibald took a small house in South Street and<span class="pagenum">[65]</span>
+spent the winter and spring months there, and in the due
+course of time Beatrice was brought out into society.</p>
+
+<p>Her undoubted beauty, which was of the dark and
+haughty type, and her excellent dancing were enough to
+make her a social success. This was a tremendous comfort
+to her mother, who was never obliged to worry about her at
+dances or scheme for invitations at desirable houses, and
+could confine her maternal anxiety to merely hoping that
+Beatrice would make a better match than she herself had.
+But Beatrice hated the whole proceeding, heartily and unaffectedly.</p>
+
+<p>"The dancing men all bore me," she once said to Harry;
+"and I bore all the others. Almost all men are dull; at
+any rate, they appear at their dullest and worst in society,
+and the few interesting ones don't want to be bored by a
+chit like me, and I can't say that I blame them. As for
+the women&mdash;when they get into London society they cease
+to be women at all; they become fiends incarnate."</p>
+
+<p>"I hope that success is not embittering your youthful
+heart," said Harry, smiling.</p>
+
+<p>"Not success, but just being in what they are pleased to
+call society; that will make me bitter if I have much more
+of it. I don't know why it is; people are nice naturally&mdash;most
+of them, that is. Of course some people are born
+brutes, like&mdash;well, like my father; but most of them are nice
+at bottom. But somehow London makes beasts of them all.
+If I am ever Prime Minister&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Which, after all, is improbable."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, if I am, the first thing I shall do will be simply to
+abolish London. We shall have just the same population,
+but it will be all rural. We shall all live in Arcadian simplicity,
+and while we may not be perfect, at least we shan't
+all be the scheming, selfish, merciless brutes that London
+makes of us."</p>
+
+<p>"And pending the passage of that bill you want to live
+in Arcadian simplicity alone. I see. I quite like the idea
+myself. I should love to found Arcadia with you somewhere
+in rural England, when I have time. Where shall
+we have it? I should say Devonshire, shouldn't you?
+Clotted cream, you know, and country lanes. It will be
+like Marie Antoinette's hamlet at Versailles, only not nearly
+so silly. We will pay other people to milk the cows and<span class="pagenum">[66]</span>
+make the butter, and do all the dirty work, and just sit
+around ourselves and be perfectly charming. No one will
+be admitted without passing a rigid examination in character,
+and that will be the only necessary qualification.
+Arcadia, Limited, we'll call it; it sounds like a Gilbert and
+Sullivan opera, doesn't it?"</p>
+
+<p>"Whom shall we have in it? Uncle Giles&mdash;he could pass
+all right, couldn't he?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Heavens, yes, <i>Magna cum</i>. And Aunt Miriam&mdash;perhaps.
+She would need some cramming before she went
+up. What about your mother?"</p>
+
+<p>"I'm afraid Mama could never get in," answered
+Beatrice, smiling rather sadly. "I've talked to her before
+about such things and she never answers, but just looks at
+me with that sad tolerant smile of hers that seems to say
+'Arcadian simplicity is all very well, but you'll find the best
+way to get it is through a husband with ten thousand a year
+or so.' And the dreadful part of it is that she's right, to
+a certain extent."</p>
+
+<p>Although in matter of years Beatrice was a few weeks
+Harry's junior, she was at this time twice as old as he, for
+all practical purposes. She was an honored guest at Lady
+Fletcher's big dinners&mdash;almost the only ones that did not
+bore her to death&mdash;into which Harry would be smuggled at
+the last minute to fill up a vacant place, or else calmly
+omitted from altogether. Nevertheless, he was her greatest
+comfort all through her first season; nothing but his jovial
+optimism, which saw the worst but found it no more than
+amusing, kept the iron from entering into her soul. Such
+an occasional conversation as the above-quoted would put
+sanity into her world and fortify her for days against the
+commonplaces of dancing men and the jealous looks of less
+attractive maidens. And how she would pine for him during
+the intervals! How she would long for the arrival of
+the next vacation or mid-term exeat that would bring him
+up to town! There was a freshness, a wholesomeness about
+his way of looking at things that was soothing to her as
+a breath of country air.</p>
+
+<p>It is not surprising, then, that Beatrice began to dread
+the nearing date of Harry's departure for America and college
+more than any one else, even Sir Giles himself, to whom
+Harry had become by this time almost as dear as a son.
+Poor Uncle Giles, though he wanted Harry to stay in the<span class="pagenum">[67]</span>
+country more than any other earthly thing, made it a point
+of honor never to dissuade the boy from his original project
+of returning to his own country when he was ready to
+go to college and becoming an American again. Beatrice,
+however, was bound by no such restriction and complained
+bitterly of his desertion.</p>
+
+<p>"What is the point of your going back to some silly
+American college?" she would ask. "It isn't as if you
+didn't have the best universities in the world right here,
+under your very nose. Why aren't Oxford and Cambridge
+good enough for you, I should like to know? They were
+good enough for Milton and Thackeray and Isaac Newton
+and a few other more or less prominent people."</p>
+
+<p>"Very true," replied Harry with perfect good-humor.
+"The only thing is, those people didn't happen to be
+Yankees. I am, you know. It's been a habit in our family
+for two hundred years or more, and it doesn't do to break
+up old family traditions. Must be a Yankee, whatever
+happens."</p>
+
+<p>"But that doesn't mean that you have to go to a Yankee
+college, necessarily," argued Beatrice. "You won't learn
+nearly as much there as you would at Oxford. You are as
+far along in your studies now as the second year men at
+Yale; I heard Uncle Giles say so himself."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, I know, that's very true. I can't argue about it;
+you've got all the arguments on your side. I just know that
+there's only one possible place on earth where I can go to
+college, and that is Yale. Better not talk about it any more,
+if it makes you peevish."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, we won't. I'll tell you one thing, though; we
+have got to start a correspondence. You can spare a few
+ideas from your Yankees, I hope. I shall simply die on
+the wooden pavements if I can't at least hear from you occasionally."</p>
+
+<p>"Certainly; I should like nothing better. I'll even go
+so far as to be the first to write, if you like, and that's a
+perfectly tremendous concession, as I'm the worst letter
+writer that ever lived."</p>
+
+<p>So there the matter was left. Harry left Harrow for
+good at Easter, and spent one last golden month in London,
+seeing Beatrice almost every day and being an unalloyed
+joy and comfort to his uncle and aunt. In May he took a
+short trip through Spain with Sir Giles; it was a country<span class="pagenum">[68]</span>
+neither of them had visited before, and they had planned
+a trip there for years. Uncle Giles worked double time for
+a fortnight in order to be able to leave with a clear conscience,
+but he found the reward well worth the labor.</p>
+
+<p>They parted at Madrid, the plan being for Harry to sail
+for New York from Gibraltar, arriving in time to take his
+final examinations in New Haven in June.</p>
+
+<p>There were tears in Sir Giles' kind blue eyes as he bade
+Harry good-by, and Harry saw them and knew why they
+were there. Suddenly he felt his own fill.</p>
+
+<p>"I don't want to go very much, Uncle Giles," he said in
+a low voice. "Now that it comes to the point, I don't like
+it much. You've all been so wonderful to me.... It's not
+a question of what I want to do, though. It's just what's
+got to be done."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," said his uncle; "I know. You're quite right
+about it. It's the only thing to do. But perhaps you won't
+mind my saying I'm glad, in a way, that you find it hard?"</p>
+
+<p>"Thank you; that helps, too. There's more that comes
+into it, though; more than what we have talked over together
+so often.... I mean&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"James?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," said Harry, "that's it."</p>
+
+<p>They clasped hands again and went their separate ways;
+Sir Giles to the train that was to take him north to Paris
+and home, and Harry to the train that was to take him
+south to Gibraltar and home.</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[69]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_VII">CHAPTER VII</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">OMNE IGNOTUM</p>
+
+<p>"Bless us, how the boy has grown!" cried Aunt
+Cecilia, and kissed him all over again.</p>
+
+<p>"You'll find your aunt very much changed, I expect,"
+said Uncle James, clasping his hand and smiling, quite in
+his old style.</p>
+
+<p>"Not a particle, thank Heaven," said Harry, understanding
+perfectly; "nor you either. Nor the U. S. Customs
+service, either. Can't I just make them a present of
+all my luggage and run along? Except that I have some
+Toledo work and stuff for you and Aunt C."</p>
+
+<p>"Hush, don't say that out loud; they'll charge you extra
+duty for it," replied Uncle James.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, was there e'er a Yankee breast which did not feel the
+moral beauty of making worldly interest subordinate to
+sense of duty?" misquoted Harry. "Bother the duty.
+Tell me how you all are. How are Ruth and Oswald and
+Lucy and Jack and Timothy and the baby? All about eight
+feet high, I suppose? And James, where is he?"</p>
+
+<p>"James is in New Haven," said Aunt Cecilia; "he has
+an examination early to-morrow morning and could not get
+away till after that. He'll be here to-morrow in time for
+lunch."</p>
+
+<p>It was all very easy and cordial. Harry was in high
+spirits over returning to his native land, and was genuinely
+pleased that both his uncle and aunt should take the trouble
+to come down to the dock to meet his steamer. They, on
+their side, were most agreeably impressed by him; agreeably
+disappointed with him, we almost said. It was a relief, as
+well as a pleasure, to find him, so unchanged and unaffected
+at heart, though he looked and talked like an Englishman.
+Mrs. James sat on a packing case and watched him with
+unadulterated pleasure as he tended to the examination of
+his luggage. The art of his Bond Street tailor served to
+accentuate rather than hide the slim, sinewy, businesslike
+beauty of his limbs, brought into play as he bent down to
+lift a trunk tray or tug at a strap. Though all that was<span class="pagenum">[70]</span>
+nothing, of course, to the joy of the discovery that he was
+unspoiled in character.</p>
+
+<p>"It's turned out all right," she thought and smiled to
+herself. "I don't know whether it's chiefly to his credit
+or theirs, but it has come out all right, anyway. I wish
+the boat had not arrived in the evening, so that I could have
+brought the children to see him, the first thing. They'll
+have plenty of time, though; and how they'll love him!
+And how pleased James will be!"</p>
+
+<p>She meant young James, who was now putting the finishing
+touches on his sophomore year at Yale. James was
+never very far from her mind when her thoughts ran to her
+own children&mdash;which was most of the time. She always
+thought of him now more as her own eldest child than as her
+husband's nephew.</p>
+
+<p>And Harry's thoughts, beneath all his chatter to his
+uncle and aunt and his transactions with the Customs officials,
+were also on James. All the way across the Atlantic,
+on the long dull voyage from Gibraltar&mdash;there are not many
+passengers traveling westward in June&mdash;they continually
+ran on that one subject&mdash;James, James, James. What
+would he be like now? would he be the old James, or
+changed, somehow&mdash;strangely, disappointingly, unacceptably?
+Harry hoped not; hoped it with his whole heart, in
+which there was nothing but humility and affection when
+he thought of what his brother had been to him in the old
+days. He was so little able to speak what he felt about
+James that he was embarrassed and over-silent about him.
+That was why he was so debonair with the Customs officials;
+that was why he asked after each of his young cousins
+by name before he mentioned his brother.</p>
+
+<p>"Every single article of clothing I own was bought
+abroad," he was telling the Customs inspector; "so you
+can just go ahead and do your worst&mdash;That suit cost eight
+guineas&mdash;yes, I know it's too much; I told them so at the
+time, but they wouldn't listen.... No, that thing with
+the feathers is not a woman's hat; it's a Tyrolean hat, that
+the men climb mountains in. I'm going to give it to my
+Uncle James&mdash;that man there sitting on the woman's trunk
+that she wants to get into&mdash;to wear to his office, which is on
+the thirty-fifth floor.... Yes, I have worn it myself, but
+don't tell him.... That gold cigarette case is for my
+brother, who smokes when he's not playing football, and it<span class="pagenum">[71]</span>
+cost six pound fifteen, which is dirt cheap, I say. I'd keep
+it myself, except that it's so cheap that I can't afford not
+to give it away...."</p>
+
+<p>And James, what was he feeling, if he was feeling anything,
+in regard to his brother at this time, and why have we
+said nothing about him during these seven years? The
+truth is, his life had been chiefly distinguished by the blessed
+uneventfulness that comes of outward happiness and a good
+understanding with the world. If you can draw a mental
+picture for yourself of a boy of perfect physique and untarnished
+mind, gradually attaining the physical and mental
+development of manhood in comradeship with a hundred or
+more others in a like position, dedicating the use of each
+gift as it came to him not to his own aggrandizement but to
+the glory of God and the service of other men, recognizing
+his superiority in certain fields with the same humility with
+which he beheld his inferiority in others, equally willing to
+give help where he was strong and take help where he was
+weak, and possessed by the fundamental conviction that
+other people were just as good as he if not a little bit better,
+you may get some idea of James during the years of his
+brother's absence. He was not brilliant, he was not handsome,
+but there was a splendid normality about him, both
+in appearance and in character, that inspired confidence and
+affection among his teachers, his relatives, and friends of his
+own age.</p>
+
+<p>"He has a good mind and body, and there is no nonsense
+about him," was the substance of the opinion of the first-named
+group. "He is a good boy and a nice boy, and I'm
+glad he is one of the family," said the second. "He is
+captain of the football team," said the third group, and to
+one who knows anything about American boarding schools
+this last will tell everything.</p>
+
+<p>If any one is inclined to blame James for his allowing the
+Atlantic Ocean to separate him and brother so completely
+for those seven years it may interest him to know that James
+was quite of the same opinion. As he sat in the train that
+took him from New Haven to New York on the morning
+after Harry's landing, he wondered how the long separation
+could have come about. On the whole, after a careful review
+of the business, he was inclined to blame himself; not
+over-severely, but definitely, nevertheless. He had been
+timid, indifferent and, above all, lazy. Looking back over<span class="pagenum">[72]</span>
+his attitude of the last seven years, he was inclined to be
+scornful and a little amused. What had he to fear about
+Harry? Weren't Uncle Giles and Aunt Miriam good
+people, who could be trusted to bring him up right? What
+was there to fear, even, in his becoming an Englishman?
+And anyway, even if he had feared the worst, ought he not
+to have taken the trouble to go over and see with his own
+eyes? It had probably turned out all right, for Harry
+had returned at last with every intention of living in
+America for the rest of his life; but if he had been spoiled
+or altered for the worse in any way, he, James, must take
+his share of the blame for it. There could be no doubt of
+that.</p>
+
+<p>The root of the matter was, we suspect, that James had
+been somewhat lacking in initiative. Thoroughly normal
+people customarily are; it is at once their strength and their
+weakness. A splendid normality, such as we have described
+James as enjoying, is a serviceable thing in life, but it is apt
+to degenerate, if not sufficiently stimulated by misfortune
+and opposition, into commonplaceness and sterile conservatism.
+But let us do James justice; he at least saw his
+fault and blamed himself for it.</p>
+
+<p>He was devoured with curiosity to see what Harry was
+like; almost as much so as Harry in regard to him. James
+had plenty of friends, but only one brother, when all was
+said and done. As the train rushed nearer the consummation
+of his curiosity, he felt the old feeling of timidity and
+suspicion sweep over him; but that, as he shook it off, only
+increased his curiosity; gave it edge. <i>Omne ignotum pro
+magnifico est</i>; every one knows that, even if he never heard
+of Virgil, and it is especially true of such natures as James'.
+Each little wave of fear and suspicion that swept over him
+made him a little more restless and unhappy, though he
+smiled at himself for feeling so. It was a relief when the
+train pulled into the Grand Central Station and he could
+grip his bag and start on the short walk to the house of his
+uncle, which was situated in the refined and expensive confines
+of Murray Hill.</p>
+
+<p>Any one who knows anything about the world will be able
+to guess pretty closely the nature of the brothers' meeting.
+Harry was sitting in the front room upstairs when his cousin
+Ruth, who was at the window, announced: "Here he
+comes, Harry." In a perfect frenzy of pleasure, embarrassment,<span class="pagenum">[73]</span>
+affection and curiosity, the boy made a dash for
+the stairs and greeted his brother at the front door with
+the demonstrative words:</p>
+
+<p>"Hello, James!"</p>
+
+<p>To which James, who for the last few minutes had been
+obliged to restrain himself from throwing his bag into the
+gutter and breaking into a run, replied:</p>
+
+<p>"Well, Harry, how's the boy?"</p>
+
+<p>Then they walked upstairs together and began talking
+rather fast about the voyage, examinations, Aunt Miriam,
+Spain, the Yale baseball team,&mdash;anything but what was in
+their hearts.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, you came back without being made an earl, after
+all, it seems," said James a little later at lunch.</p>
+
+<p>"No, but I came back a sub-freshman, which is the next
+best thing. There's no telling what I might have been if
+I'd stayed, though. Everybody was so frightfully keen on
+my staying over there and going to Oxford, especially
+Beatrice&mdash;Beatrice Carson, you know; I've written you
+about her? She would have made me an earl in a minute,
+if she could, to make me stay. None of it did any good,
+though. I would be a Yankee."</p>
+
+<p>"How do you think you'll like being a Yankee again?"
+asked James. "You certainly don't look much like one at
+present."</p>
+
+<p>"No? That'll come, I dare say. My heart's in the right
+place. Though that doesn't prevent the Americans from
+seeming strange, at first. Did you notice that woman in
+the chemist's shop this morning, Aunt C.? She was chewing
+gum all the time she waited on you, and she never said
+'Thank you' or 'Ma'am' once."</p>
+
+<p>"They all are that way," said Aunt Cecilia with a gentle
+sigh. "I don't expect anything else."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, the bloated aristocrat!" said James. "It is an
+earl, after all. Only don't blame the poor girl for not calling
+you 'My lord.' She couldn't be expected to know; they
+don't have many of them over here."</p>
+
+<p>"I don't mean that she was rude," said Harry; "she
+didn't give that impression, somehow. It was just the way
+she did things; a sort of casualness. The Americans are a
+funny people!"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Lord!" groaned James; "hear the prominent foreigner
+talk. What do you think of America, my lord?<span class="pagenum">[74]</span>
+How do you like New York? What do you think of our
+climate? To think that that's the thing I used to spank
+when he was naughty!"</p>
+
+<p>"That's all very well," retorted Harry, with warmth;
+"wait till you get out of this blessed country for a while
+yourself, and see how other people act, and then perhaps
+you'll see that there are differences. You may even be able
+to see that they are not all in our favor. And as for smacking&mdash;spanking,
+if you feel inclined to renew that quaint old
+custom now, I'm ready for you. Any time you want!"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, very well," growled James; "after lunch."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, and in Central Park, please," observed Uncle
+James; "not in the house; I can't afford it. You are right,
+though, Harry, about the Americans being a funny people.
+If you enter the legal profession, or if you go into public
+life, you'll be more and more struck by the fact as time goes
+on. But there's one thing to remember; it doesn't do to
+tell them so. They can't bear to hear it. We have proof
+of that immediately before us; you announce your opinion
+here, <i>coram familia</i>, as it were, and what is the result? Contempt
+and loathing on the part of the great American public,
+represented by James, and a duel to follow&mdash;in Central
+Park, remember; in Central Park."</p>
+
+<p>"I wonder if that milk of magnesia has come yet," murmured
+Aunt Cecilia, who had not gone beyond the beginning
+of the conversation; and further hostilities&mdash;friendly ones,
+even&mdash;were forgotten in the general laugh that followed.</p>
+
+<p>Of course James, who conformed to the American type of
+college boy as closely as any one could and retain his individuality,
+was greatly struck during the first few days by
+his brother's Anglicisms, which showed themselves at that
+time rather in his appearance and speech than in his point
+of view. For example, James was indulging one day in a
+lengthy plaint against the hardness of one of his instructors,
+as the result of which he would probably, to use his own
+expression, "drop an hour"; that is, lose an hour's work
+for the year and be put back one-sixtieth of his work for his
+degree. Harry listened attentively enough to the narrative,
+but his sole comment when James finished was the single
+word "Tiresome." The word was ill chosen for James'
+peace of mind. If such expressions were the result of
+English training he could not but think the less of English
+training.<span class="pagenum">[75]</span></p>
+
+<p>The summer passed off pleasantly enough, the boys living
+with their uncle and aunt at Bar Harbor. Harry saw much
+less of James than he had expected, for he was away much
+of the time, visiting classmates and school friends whom
+Harry did not know. He was obliged, too, to return to Yale
+soon after the first of September for football practise.
+Harry spent most of his time playing fairly happily about
+with his young cousins and other people of his own age.
+The most interesting feature of the summer to him was a
+visit to Aunt Selina at her summer place in Vermont. This
+was the ancestral, ante-Revolution farm of the Wimbournes,
+much rebuilt and enlarged and presented to Miss Wimbourne
+for her life on the death of her late father. Here
+Aunt Selina was wont to gather during the summer months
+a heterogeneous crowd of friends, and it was a source of
+wonder and admiration to the other members of the family
+that she was able to attract such a large number of what she
+referred to as "amusing people." With these Harry was
+quite at ease, his English training having accustomed him
+to associating with older and cleverer people than himself,
+and it gave Aunt Selina quite a thrill of pleasure to see a
+boy of eighteen partaking in the staid amusements of his
+elders and meeting them on their own ground, and to think
+that the boy was her own nephew. She became at length so
+much taken with him that a bright idea occurred to her.</p>
+
+<p>"Harry," said she one day; "what do you think of my
+going to live in New Haven?"</p>
+
+<p>"I think it's a fine idea," said Harry. "But where?"</p>
+
+<p>"Why, in the old house, of course. That is, if you and
+James, or your guardians, are willing to rent it to me. It
+has stood empty ever since you left it, and I presume there
+is no immediate prospect of your occupying it yourselves
+for some time."</p>
+
+<p>"As half owner of the establishment," said Harry courteously,
+"I offer you the full use of it for as long a time as
+you wish, free of charge."</p>
+
+<p>"That's sweet of you, but it's not business. I should insist
+on paying rent."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, Aunt Selina, you're used to having your own way,
+so I presume you will. But what makes you want to come
+and live in New Haven, all of a sudden? I thought you
+could never bear the place."</p>
+
+<p>"I had a great many friends there in the old days, and<span class="pagenum">[76]</span>
+should like to see something of them again. Besides, it will
+be nice to be in the same town with you and James."</p>
+
+<p>Like most people, she put the real reason last. If Harry
+failed to realize from its position that it was the real reason,
+he learned it unmistakably enough from what followed.
+The conversation wandered to a discussion of changes in
+the town since Aunt Selina had lived there. She supposed
+that everybody had dinner at night there now, though she
+remembered the time when it was impossible to reconcile
+servants to the custom. She herself would have it late, except
+on Sundays. Sunday never did seem like Sunday to
+her without dinner in the middle of the day and supper in
+the evening.</p>
+
+<p>"Well," said Harry, "I hope you'll ask James and me
+to a Sunday dinner occasionally."</p>
+
+<p>"Good gracious, yes! Every Sunday, and supper too.
+That will be a regular custom; and I want you both to feel
+at liberty to come up for a meal at any time. Any time,
+without even telephoning beforehand. And bring your
+friends; there will always be enough to eat. How stupid of
+me to forget that. Of course I want you, as often as you'll
+come."</p>
+
+<p>"We accept," said Harry, "unconditionally. We shall
+be glad enough to have a decent meal once in a while, after
+the food we shall get in college. James says he even gets
+tired of the training table, which is a great admission, for
+he loves everything connected with football. Even when we
+were kids, I remember, he used to love to drink barley
+water with his meals; nasty stuff&mdash;they used to make me
+drink it in England."</p>
+
+<p>Harry rattled on purposely about the first thing that
+came into his head, for he noticed his aunt seemed slightly
+embarrassed. She was going to New Haven to take care
+of James and himself, and naturally she did not care to
+divulge the real reason to him. Well, she was a dear old
+thing, certainly; he remembered how she had acted on his
+mother's death. He was suddenly sorry that he had seen
+nothing of her for the last seven years, and sorry that he
+had written her so irregularly during his absence. It was
+pleasant to think that he would have a chance to make up for
+it in the future.</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[77]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_VIII">CHAPTER VIII</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">LIVY AND VICTOR HUGO</p>
+
+<p>On a certain Wednesday evening late in September
+Harry stood on a certain street-corner in the city
+of New Haven. Surging about him were a thousand or
+so youths of his own age or a little older, most of them
+engaged in making noises expressive of the pleasures of
+reunion. It was a merry and turbulent scene. Tall, important-looking
+seniors, wearing white sweaters with large
+blue Y's on their chests, moved through the crowd with a
+worried air, apparently trying to organize something that
+had no idea whatever of being organized. They were ineffectual,
+but oh, so splendid! Harry, who had almost no
+friends of his own there to talk to, watched them with
+undisguised admiration. He reflected that James would
+be one of their number a year hence, and wondered if
+by any chance he himself would be one three years from
+now.</p>
+
+<p>Just as he dismissed the probability as negligible, a sort of
+order became felt among those who stood immediately about
+him. Men stopped talking and appeared to be listening to
+something which Harry could not hear. Then they all began
+shouting a strange, unmeaning succession of syllables
+in concert; Harry recognized this as a cheer and lustily
+joined in with it. At the end came a number; repeated
+three times; a number which no one present had ever before
+heard bellowed forth from three or four hundred brazen
+young throats; a number that had a strange and unfamiliar
+sound, even to those who shouted it, and caused the upperclassmen
+to break into a derisive jeer.</p>
+
+<p>A new class had officially started its career, and Harry
+was part of it. No one flushed more hotly than he at the
+jeer of the upperclassmen; no one jeered back with greater
+spirit when the sophomores cheered for their own class. No
+one took part more joyfully in the long and varied program
+of events that filled out the rest of the evening.
+The parade through the streets of the town was to him a
+joyous bacchanal, and the wrestling matches on the Campus<span class="pagenum">[78]</span>
+a splendid orgy. After these were over even more enjoyable
+things happened, for James, with two or three fellow-juniors&mdash;magnificent,
+Olympian beings!&mdash;took him in tow
+and escorted him safe and unmolested through the turbulent
+region of York Street, where freshmen, who had nothing
+save honor to fight for, were pressed into organized hostility
+against sophomores, who didn't even have that.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, what did you think of it all?" asked James
+later.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, ripping," said Harry, "I never thought it would be
+anything like this. We never really saw anything of the
+real life of the college when we lived in town here, did we?"</p>
+
+<p>"Not much. It all seems pretty strange to you now, I
+suppose, but you'll soon get onto the ropes and feel at home.
+What sort of a schedule did you get?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, fairly rotten. They all seem to be eight-thirties.
+Here, you can see," producing a paper.</p>
+
+<p>"That's not so bad," pronounced James, approvingly.
+"Nothing on Wednesday or Saturday afternoons, so that
+you can get to ball games and things, and nothing any afternoon
+till five, so that you'll have plenty of time for track
+work."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes, track work; I'd forgotten that."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, you don't want to forget it; you want to go right
+out and hire a locker and get to work, to-morrow, if possible.
+If track's the best thing for you to go out for, that
+is, and I guess it is, all right. You're too light for football,
+and you don't know anything about baseball, and you
+haven't got a crew build."</p>
+
+<p>"What is a crew build?" asked Harry.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, if you put it that way, I don't know that I can
+tell you. It's a mysterious thing; I've been trying to find
+out myself for several years. I don't see why I haven't
+got a fairly good crew build myself, but they always tell
+me I haven't, when I suggest going out for it. However,
+you haven't got one, that's easy. So you'll just have to
+stick to track."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," said Harry soberly, "I suppose I shall."</p>
+
+<p>Harry was what is commonly known as a good mixer, and
+made acquaintances among his classmates rapidly enough to
+suit even the nice taste of James. In general, however, they
+remained acquaintances and never became friends. It was
+not that they were not nice, most of them; "ripping fellows,<span class="pagenum">[79]</span>
+all of them," Harry described them to his brother.
+They were, in fact, too nice; those who lived near him were
+all of the best preparatory school type, the kind that invariably
+leads the class during freshman year. Harry
+found them conventional, quite as much so as the English
+type, though in a different way. Intercourse with them
+failed to give him stimulus; he found himself always more
+or less talking down to them, and intellectual stimulus was
+what Harry needed above all things among his friends.</p>
+
+<p>There were exceptions, however. The most brilliant was
+that of Jack Trotwood, probably the last man with whom
+Harry might have been expected to strike up a friendship.
+Harry first saw him in a Latin class, one of the first of the
+term. Trotwood sat in the same row as Harry, two or three
+seats away from him&mdash;the acquaintance was not even of the
+type that alphabetical propinquity is responsible for. On
+the day in question he dropped a fountain pen, and spent
+some moments in burrowing ineffectually under seats in
+search of it. The fugitive chattel at length turned up
+directly under Harry's chair, and as he leaned over to restore
+it to its owner he noticed something about his face that
+appealed to him at once. He never could tell what it was;
+the flush that bending over had brought to it, the embarrassment,
+the dismay at having made a fuss in public, the
+smile, containing just the right mixture of cordiality and
+formality, yet undeniably sweet withal, with which he
+thanked him; perhaps it was any or all of these things. At
+any rate after class, on his way back toward York Street,
+Harry found himself hurrying to catch up with Trotwood,
+who was walking a few paces ahead of him. Trotwood
+turned as he came up, and smiled again.</p>
+
+<p>"That was sort of a stinking lesson, wasn't it?" he asked.</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," said Harry, "wasn't it, though?"</p>
+
+<p>"I should say! Boned for two hours on it last night
+before I could make anything out of it. Gee, but this
+Livy's dull, isn't he?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, awfully dull. Do you use a trot?"</p>
+
+<p>"No, I haven't yet, but I'm going to, after last night.
+I can't put so much time on one lesson. Do you?"</p>
+
+<p>"Well, yes. That is, I shall. Do you like Latin?"</p>
+
+<p>"Lord, no, not when it's like this stuff. I only took it
+because it comes easier to me than most other things. Do
+you like it?"<span class="pagenum">[80]</span></p>
+
+<p>"Not much. Not much good at it, either.... Well, I
+live here&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, do you? so do I. Where are you?"</p>
+
+<p>"Fourth floor, back. Come up, some time."</p>
+
+<p>"Thanks, I will. So long."</p>
+
+<p>"So long."</p>
+
+<p>So started a friendship, one of the sincerest and firmest
+that either ever enjoyed. And yet, as Harry pointed out
+afterward, it was founded on insincerity and falsehood.
+Harry's whole part in this first conversation was no more
+than a tissue of lies. He was extremely fond of Latin, and
+was so good at it that his entire preparation for his recitations
+consisted in looking up a few unfamiliar words beforehand;
+he could always fit the sentences together when
+he was called upon to construe. It had never occurred to
+him to use a translation. He was rather fond of Livy,
+whose flowing and complicated style appealed to him. He
+gave a false answer to every question merely for the pleasure
+of agreeing with Trotwood, whom he liked already
+without knowing why.</p>
+
+<p>The two got into the habit of doing their Latin lesson
+together regularly, three times a week. Trotwood did not
+buy a trot, after all; he found Harry quite as good.</p>
+
+<p>"My, but you're a shark," he said in undisguised admiration
+one evening, as Harry brought order and clarity into
+a difficult passage. "You certainly didn't learn to do
+that in this country. You're English, anyway, aren't
+you?"</p>
+
+<p>"Lord, no; Yankee. Born in New Haven. I have lived
+over there for some years, though."</p>
+
+<p>"Go to school there?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes; Harrow."</p>
+
+<p>"Gosh." Trotwood stared at him for a few moments
+in dazed silence. He stood on the brink of a world that
+he knew no more of than Balboa did of the Pacific.
+"What sort of a place is it?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, wonderful."</p>
+
+<p>"You played cricket, I suppose, and&mdash;and those things?"</p>
+
+<p>"Rugby football, yes," said Harry, smiling.</p>
+
+<p>"And you liked it, didn't you?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, rather! Only&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Only what?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, nothing. I did like it. It's a wonderful place."<span class="pagenum">[81]</span></p>
+
+<p>"Only it's different from what you're doing now?" said
+Trotwood, with a burst of insight. "Is that what you
+mean?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes."</p>
+
+<p>"I see; I see," said Trotwood, and then he kept still.
+There was something so comforting, so sympathetic and
+understanding about his silence that Harry was inspired
+to confide in him.</p>
+
+<p>"The truth is, I'm beginning to doubt whether I ought
+to have gone to an English school. I'm not sure but what
+it would have been better for me to go to school and college
+in the same country, whatever it was. You see, after
+spending five or six years in learning to value certain
+things, it's rather a wrench to come here and find the
+values all distorted."</p>
+
+<p>"I see," said Trotwood again. He wasn't sure that he
+did see at all, but he felt that unquestioning sympathy was
+his cue.</p>
+
+<p>"It's not merely the different kinds of games," went on
+Harry; "it's not that they make so much more of athletics,
+or rather of the public side of athletics, than they do over
+there, though that comes into it a lot. It's what people
+do and think about and talk about and&mdash;and are, in short.
+Last year, I remember, the men I went with, the sixth
+formers, used to read the papers a lot and follow the debates
+in Parliament and talk about such things a lot, even
+among themselves. Some of them used to write Greek and
+Latin verse just for fun&mdash;wonderfully good, too, some of
+it. And here&mdash;well, how many men in our class, how
+many men in the whole college do you suppose could write
+ten lines of Greek or Latin verse without making a mess
+of it?"</p>
+
+<p>"Not too many, I'm afraid."</p>
+
+<p>"Then there's debating. We used to have pretty good
+house debates ourselves at school. I used to look forward
+to them, I remember, from month to month, as one of the
+most interesting things that happened. But of course they
+were nothing to a thing like the Oxford Union. You've
+heard of that, I suppose? Lord, I wish some of these people
+here could see one of those meetings! It would be an
+eye-opener."</p>
+
+<p>"But we have debating here," said Trotwood, doubtfully.</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, but what kind of debating? A few grinds getting<span class="pagenum">[82]</span>
+up and talking about the Interstate Commerce Commission,
+or some rotten, technical, dry subject, because they think
+it will give them good practise in public speaking. Everybody
+hates it like poison, and they're right, too, for it's
+all dull, dead; started on the wrong idea. The best men
+in the class won't go out for it. I wouldn't myself, now
+that I know what it's like; but I thought of doing it in
+the summer, and spoke to my brother about it. He didn't
+say anything against it, because he didn't dare; people are
+always writing to the <i>News</i> and saying what a fine thing
+debating is. But he let me see pretty clearly that he didn't
+think much of debating and didn't want me to go out for
+it, because it didn't get you anywhere in college; <i>simply
+wasn't done</i>. He'd rather see me take a third place in
+one track meet and never do another thing in college than
+to be the captain of the debating team."</p>
+
+<p>"Did he tell you that?"</p>
+
+<p>"Lord, no; he wouldn't dare. No one would; technically,
+debating is supposed to be a fine thing. But it doesn't
+get you anywhere near a senior society, so there's an end
+to it.... But perhaps I'd better not get started on that."</p>
+
+<p>"No, I should think not! Heavens, a junior fraternity
+is about the height of my ambition!"</p>
+
+<p>Harry smiled at his friend and went on:
+"You see it's this way, Trotty; you are a sensible person,
+and look at them in the right way. You play about
+with your mandolin clubs and various other little things
+because you like them, like a good dutiful boy. When the
+time comes, you'll be very glad to take a senior society, if
+it's offered you. If it isn't, you won't care."</p>
+
+<p>"But I will, though. I don't believe I have much
+chance, but I know I shall be disappointed if I don't make
+one, just the same."</p>
+
+<p>"For about twenty-four hours, yes. Don't interrupt
+me, Trotty; this isn't flattery, it's argument. You are a
+sensible person, as I have said; and don't let such considerations
+worry you. There are lots of other sensible
+persons in the class, too. Josh Traill, for one, and
+Manxome, and John Fisher and Shep McGee; they're all
+sensible people, and don't worry or think much about
+senior societies, though I suppose they all have a good
+chance to make one eventually, if any one has. But that
+isn't true of all the class. There is a large and important<span class="pagenum">[83]</span>
+section of it that now, in the first term of freshman year,
+is thinking and talking nothing except about who will go
+to a junior fraternity next year, or a senior society two
+years hence. It's the one subject of conversation that
+seriously competes with professional baseball and college
+football, which is all you hear otherwise."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, no, Harry, you're hard on us. There's automobiles.
+And guns. And theaters. But why should you mind if a
+lot of geesers do talk about societies?"</p>
+
+<p>"Well, it makes me sick, that's all. And when I say
+sick, I use the word in its British, or most vivid sense. It
+makes me sick, after England and after Harrow, to see a
+lot of what ought to be the best fellows in the class spending
+their waking hours in wondering about such rubbishy
+things.&mdash;Do you happen to be aware of an ornament of
+our class called Junius Neville LeGrand?"</p>
+
+<p>"Golden locks and blue eyes? Yes, I know him. Acts
+rather well, they say."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes; he's the kind I mean. At any rate, I seem to
+be in his good graces just at present. All sweetness and
+light; can't be too particular about telling me how good
+I am at French, and that sort of thing. In fact, he went
+so far to-day as to suggest that we might go over the French
+lesson together, and he's coming here presently to do it."</p>
+
+<p>"But what's the matter with poor Junius? I thought
+he was as decent as such a painfully good-looking person
+could be."</p>
+
+<p>"I'm not denying he's attractive. But if you'll stay
+for the French lesson I think I can show you what I'm
+talking about."</p>
+
+<p>"But I don't take French."</p>
+
+<p>"No, dear boy; you won't have to know French to see
+what I'm going to show you. Your r&ocirc;le will consist of
+lying on the window-seat and being occupied with day before
+yesterday's <i>News</i>. Now listen; I have an idea that
+the beautiful Junius has recently made the discovery that
+I am the brother of James Wimbourne, of the junior class,
+pillar of the Yale football team and more than likely to
+go Bones, or anything he wants, next May. Hence this
+access of cordiality to poor little me, the obscure Freshman.
+I'm going to find out that, first."</p>
+
+<p>"But there's no need of finding out that," said Trotwood
+na&iuml;vely. "I told him so myself, the other day."<span class="pagenum">[84]</span></p>
+
+<p>"A week ago Tuesday, to be exact," said Harry reflectively.
+"I remember he slobbered all over me at the
+French class Wednesday, though he didn't have anything
+to say to me on Monday. Wasn't that about it?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," admitted Trotwood.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, it proves what I was saying, but I'm sorry you
+did it, for it spoils my little game with the beautiful Junius.
+The French lesson will be a dull one, I fear. I rather think
+I shall have to end by being rude to Junius, to keep him.
+from making an infernal little pest of himself."</p>
+
+<p>But the French lesson was not as dull as Harry feared,
+for the ingratiating Junius played into Harry's hands
+and incidentally proved himself not so good an actor off
+the stage as on. His behavior for the first ten or fifteen
+minutes was all that could be desired; he sat in Harry's
+Morris chair and waved a cigarette and put his host and
+Trotwood at their ease with the grace and charm of a
+George IV. At length he and Harry settled down to
+their "Notre Dame de Paris," and for a while all went
+well. Then of a sudden Junius became strangely silent
+and preoccupied.</p>
+
+<p>"'Then they made him sit down on&mdash;' oh, Lord, what's
+a <i>brancard bariol&eacute;</i>?" said Harry. "You look up <i>brancard</i>,
+Junius, and I'll look up the other.... Oh, yes;
+speckled. No; motley&mdash;that's probably nearer; it depends
+on what <i>brancard</i> means. What does it mean, anyway?
+Come on, Junius, do you mean to say you haven't found
+it yet? What's the matter?"</p>
+
+<p>"I was looking up <i>asseoir</i>," said Junius, who had been
+staring straight in front of him.</p>
+
+<p>"Sit, of course; you knew that. I translated that, anyway.
+I'll look up <i>brancard</i>." Harry's glance, as he
+turned again to his dictionary, fell upon a letter lying on
+his desk, waiting to be mailed. It was addressed in Harry's
+own legible hand to</p>
+
+<p>
+Lieut.-Gen. Sir Giles Fletcher, M. P. etc.,<br />
+204 Belgrave Square,<br />
+London, S. W.,<br />
+England.<br />
+</p>
+
+<p>It immediately occurred to him that this was the probable
+cause of his classmate's preoccupation, and the joy of the
+chase burned anew in his breast.<span class="pagenum">[85]</span></p>
+
+<p>"What <i>are</i> you staring at, Junius?" he asked a minute
+later, with, well simulated unconsciousness.</p>
+
+<p>"Nothing," replied Junius, returning to his book and
+blushing. That was bad already, as Harry pointed out
+later; it would have been so easy, for a person who really
+knew, to pass it off with some such remark as "I was overcome
+by the address on that letter. My, but what swells
+you do correspond with," etc. But the unfortunate Junius
+could not even be consistent to the r&ocirc;le of affected
+ignorance that he had assumed.</p>
+
+<p>"I see you know Sir Giles Fletcher," he said after a
+while. "I saw that envelope on the table; I couldn't help
+seeing the address. Is he a friend of yours?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," said Harry; "my uncle."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh. Well, I heard a good deal about him last summer
+from some relations of his ... connections, anyway; the
+Marquis of Moville ... and his family. We had a shooting-lodge
+in Scotland, and he had a moor near ours. He
+came over and shot with us once, and said ours was the
+best moor in Perthshire. His brother came too; Lord
+Archibald Carson. He's the one that's connected with
+your uncle, isn't he?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes. Married his sister."</p>
+
+<p>"The Marquis is rather a decent fellow," continued
+Junius languidly. "Do you know him?"</p>
+
+<p>"No," said Harry calmly; "no decent person does.
+Nor Lord Archibald, either. They're the worst pair of
+rounders in England. My uncle doesn't even speak to
+them in the street."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh." Junius' face was a study, but Harry was sitting
+so that he could not see it, and had to be contented with
+Trotwood's subsequent account of it. There was silence
+for a few moments, during which Harry waited with perfect
+certainty for Junius' next remark.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, of course we didn't know them <i>well</i>, at all.
+They just came and shot with us once. That's nothing, in
+Scotland."</p>
+
+<p>Victor Hugo was resumed after this and the translation
+finished without further incident. The beautiful Junius,
+however, needed no urging to "stick around" afterward,
+and sat for an hour or more smoking cigarettes and chatting
+pleasantly about his acquaintance, carefully culled
+from the New York social register and the British peerage.<span class="pagenum">[86]</span></p>
+
+<p>"Well, Trotty," said Harry after the incubus had departed,
+dropping a perfect shower of invitations to New
+York, Newport, Palm Beach, the Adirondacks and the
+Scottish moors; "what about it? Is the beautiful Junius,
+friend of dukes and scion of Crusaders, an obnoxious, unhealthy
+little vermin, or isn't he?"</p>
+
+<p>"I suppose he is. My, but he was fun, though! But
+he's going to make the Dramatic Association after Christmas,
+for all that."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes. He'll make whatever he sets out to make,
+straight through. Nobody here will ever see through him.
+He doesn't often give himself away as he did to-night, of
+course. He talks up to each person on what he thinks
+they'll like; to Josh Traill, for instance, he'll talk about
+football, and to an &aelig;sthetic type, like Morton Miniver, on
+Japanese prints and Maeterlinck's plays; and to you on
+the Glee and Mandolin Clubs.... He has already, hasn't
+he? Don't attempt to deny it; your blush betrays you!
+That's the way his type gets on here; talk to the right people,
+and don't talk to any one else, and in addition do a
+little acting or whatever you can, and it'll go hard if you
+don't make a senior society before you're through.... He's
+clever, too; he'll make it, all right. You see, he only
+gave himself away to me because he talked on a subject
+where breeding counts, as well as knowledge.... It was
+rash of him to try the duke and duchess stuff; he'd much
+better have stuck to track, or something safe."</p>
+
+<p>"See here, Harry," said Trotwood, rising to go, "I
+grant you that Junius has given himself away and that
+he's a repulsive little beast, and all the rest of it, but
+don't you think that you are taking the incident just a little
+too seriously? It's an obnoxious type, all right, but it's
+a common one. There are bound to be a few Juniuses in
+every bunch of three or four hundred fellows wherever
+you take them; Oxford, or anywhere else. Why bother
+about them? Let them blather on; they won't hurt you, as
+long as you know them for what they are. And if Junius,
+or one of his kind, gets too aggressive and unpleasant, all
+you have to do is reach out your foot and stamp on him.
+But don't let him worry you!"</p>
+
+<p>"How wise, how uplifting, how Browningesque!"
+breathed Harry in satirical admiration. Trotty winced
+slightly and made for the door. "Don't be a fool," Harry<span class="pagenum">[87]</span>
+added, running after his retreating friend and grabbing
+him. "You're dead right about all that, of course, as you
+always are when you take the trouble to use your bean.
+There's just one thing, though, when all is said and done,
+that irritates me. Junius at Yale ends by making his
+senior society, in spite of all. Junius at Oxford doesn't!
+Do you know why? Because there aren't any senior societies
+there!"</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[88]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_IX">CHAPTER IX</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">A LONG CHEER FOR WIMBOURNE</p>
+
+<p>Harry did eventually bestir himself to the extent of
+hiring a locker in the track house and going out and
+"exercising," as he called it, three or four afternoons a
+week. He enjoyed it, but he obviously did not take it
+very seriously. He was neither good enough nor enthusiastic
+enough to attract the attention of the coach and captain,
+and it was something of a surprise to all concerned
+when he took a first place in the low hurdles in the fall
+meet and became entitled to wear his class numerals.</p>
+
+<p>"Fine work," said the captain, a small and insignificant-looking
+senior, who could pole vault to incredible
+heights without apparent effort. "Macgrath tells me you
+haven't come within two seconds of your time to-day in
+practise."</p>
+
+<p>"No," said Harry; "I've been working more at the
+jumps."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, you'd better stick to the hurdles from now on.
+We're weakest there. You practise and train regularly
+this year and next year you'll probably be the best man
+on the hurdles we have. Except Popham, of course. But
+we never can depend on Popham for a meet; he's always on
+pro, or something."</p>
+
+<p>That evening after dinner Harry strolled into Trotwood's
+room.</p>
+
+<p>"Say, you're the hell of a fine hurdler, you are,"
+growled the latter, from the depths of a Morris chair.
+Harry was somewhat taken aback till his friend suddenly
+clutched at his hand and began swinging it up and down
+like a pump handle. Then he realized that objurgation
+was merely Trotwood's gentle method of expressing pleasure
+and affection. Delight shone in his face; not delight
+in his triumph but in the thought that it meant something
+to Trotwood and that he understood Trotwood's peculiar
+way of showing it.</p>
+
+<p>"That's all right, Trotty dear," he said. "Never mind<span class="pagenum">[89]</span>
+about giving me back my hand; I shall have no further use
+for it."</p>
+
+<p>"I suppose you think you're quite a man now, don't
+you?" continued Trotwood in the same vein. "Just because
+you won a damned race against people that can't
+run anyway."</p>
+
+<p>"Sweet as the evening dew upon the fields of Enna fall
+thy words, O sage," said Harry. "You're really quite
+a wonderful person at bottom, aren't you, Trotty? How
+did you know that the last thing I'd want was to be slathered
+over with congratulations by you? Good Lord, you
+ought to have heard Junius LeGrand on the subject!"</p>
+
+<p>"Never mind about LeGrand. Speaking seriously, it's
+a great thing for you, Harry. I don't suppose you realize
+that, bar that unspeakable rounder Popham, you're the
+coming man in the hurdles from now on? Why, you've
+got your Y absolutely cinched for next year, with him going
+on the way he does!"</p>
+
+<p>"So it seems," said Harry dryly. "I seem to have heard
+the name of Popham before. Suppose we talk about something
+else.... Look, Trotty; will you room with me next
+year?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," answered Trotwood, blushing deeply, and continued,
+after a pause: "I've wanted to arrange that for
+some time, but I thought you'd better be the one to mention
+the subject first."</p>
+
+<p>"Why?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, I don't know; I thought if I asked you, you'd
+accept out of plain good nature, for fear of throwing me
+down, and I didn't want that."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, as it happened, I was determined to let the first
+advances come from you, for very much the same reason.
+Until just now, when I was so afraid you'd room with
+some one else that I couldn't wait another minute. I've
+lost all sense of maidenliness, you see."</p>
+
+<p>"Maidenliness be hanged. You don't have to be maidenly
+when you've won your numerals at track."</p>
+
+<p>That was on a Saturday. James had been out of town
+with the football team and did not return till late that
+evening. The next day he and Harry walked out to their
+old home together for their regular Sunday dinner with
+Aunt Selina. On the way they discussed at length the
+fine points of the game of the day before, in which James<span class="pagenum">[90]</span>
+had played right half with great distinction. Presently
+he inquired:</p>
+
+<p>"By the way, how about the fall meet yesterday? How
+did you come out?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, fairly well. I only entered in the low hurdles,
+but I came out all right."</p>
+
+<p>"All right?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes&mdash;first."</p>
+
+<p>"What? Do you mean to say that you got first place
+in the hurdles?"</p>
+
+<p>"Substantially that, yes."</p>
+
+<p>"Good Lord. I hadn't heard a thing. Went straight
+to bed when I got home last night and only got up this
+morning in time for Chapel. Why, it's the best ever,
+Harry! You get your numerals. You must be about the
+first man in your class to do that. What was your time?"</p>
+
+<p>"Pretty rotten. Twenty-five two."</p>
+
+<p>"Not so bad. Gee, but that's fine for you, child!"</p>
+
+<p>"I'm glad you're pleased, James."</p>
+
+<p>"It isn't merely the getting of your numerals in the
+fall meet, either. It means that you'll be one of the main
+gazabes in the track world from now on, if you work.
+There's no one here that can make better time than you
+in the hurdles, bar Popham, who makes such a fool of
+himself they can't use him, mostly."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, damn," said Harry softly and slowly.</p>
+
+<p>"What's the matter? Forgotten something?"</p>
+
+<p>"No. I can't forget something, that's the trouble."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, what <i>is</i> biting you?"</p>
+
+<p>"Only that if I hear the name of Popham much more,
+I believe I shall go mad on the spot."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, don't take it so hard as that. Most likely you'll
+be able to beat him out anyway, if you make progress, and
+he's likely to drink himself out of college anyway before&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Shut up, James, for Heaven's sake!" There was real
+anger in Harry's tone, and James turned and looked at him
+with surprise. "You're as bad as every one else&mdash;worse!
+Don't <i>you</i> know me better than to suppose that all my
+chances of happiness in college, in this world, in the next,
+depend on Popham's drinking himself to death? Do you
+think it's pleasant for me to know that every one considers
+my&mdash;my success, I suppose you'd call it, dependent
+on whether that rounder stays off probation or not? You
+make me sick, James."<span class="pagenum">[91]</span></p>
+
+<p>James remained silent a moment. "No offense meant,"
+he said gently. "I'm sure I'm sorry if&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, rot!" Harry disclaimed offense by slipping his
+hand through his brother's arm. "Only you don't seem
+to <i>see</i>, James. That's what bothers me."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, no; I'm afraid I don't. It will be a great thing
+for you if you get your Y next year. Do you think it's
+low of me to wish that Popham, who is no good anyway,
+should get out of your way?"</p>
+
+<p>"No; the wish is kindly meant, of course.... But this
+idea that my whole worldly happiness is tied up with
+Popham takes the pleasure out of it all, somehow. I don't
+give a continental whether I get my Y or not, now."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, come on. Don't be morbid."</p>
+
+<p>"No. I've a good mind not to go out for track any
+more."</p>
+
+<p>James made no answer to this, and the two walked on
+in silence till they had reached the house. As they walked
+up the front steps James said:</p>
+
+<p>"You must tell Aunt Selina all about this. She'll be
+awfully glad to hear about it."</p>
+
+<p>"Including Popham," said Harry in a low voice. James
+made no reply to this, for it scarcely called for a reply, but
+his lips were ever so slightly compressed as he walked
+through the front door.</p>
+
+<p>During the idle months that followed Harry used his
+spare time for efforts in another and wholly different direction&mdash;a
+literary one. He became what is known in the
+parlance of the college as a "<i>Lit.</i> heeler"; that is, he contributed
+regularly to the <i>Yale Literary Magazine</i>. For
+the most part his contributions were accepted, and in the
+course of a few months his literary reputation in his class
+equaled his athletic fame. His verses, written chiefly in
+the Calverly vein, were equally sought for by both the <i>Lit.</i>
+and the <i>Record</i>, the humorous publication, and his prose,
+which generally took the form of short stories with a great
+deal of very pithy, rapid-fire dialogue in them, was looked
+upon favorably even by the reverend dons whose duty it
+was to review the undergraduates' monthly offerings to the
+muses.</p>
+
+<p>"Has a cinder track been laid to the top of Parnassus?"
+wrote one who rather prided himself on his quaint and
+whimsical fancy. "Do poets hurdle and sprint where once
+they painfully climbed? Do the joyous Nine now stand<span class="pagenum">[92]</span>
+at the top holding a measuring tape and wet sponges, instead
+of laurel wreaths, as of old? Assuredly we shall
+have to answer in the affirmative after reading the story
+'Quest and Question' which appeared in the last issue of
+the <i>Lit.</i>, for not only is the writer of this, the best and
+brightest offering of the month, a mere freshman, but a
+freshman who, it seems, has distinguished himself so far
+for physical rather than mental agility. The 'question'
+about Mr. Wimbourne appears, indeed, to be whether the
+fleetness of his metrical feet can equal that of his material
+ones," etc.</p>
+
+<p>All this amused Harry, who, it is to be feared, sometimes
+laughed at rather than with his reviewers; and it
+gave him something to think about outside of his studies and
+his classmates, both of which palled upon him heavily at
+times. But he was irritated from time to time by the
+way in which even literary recreation was looked upon,
+by the undergraduate body. A casual and kindly remark
+of a classmate, "Hullo, I see you're ahead in the <i>Lit.</i>
+competition," would often throw him into a state of restless
+depression from which only the soothing presence of
+Trotwood could reclaim him.</p>
+
+<p>"Isn't it awful, Trotty," he once complained; "Euterpe
+(she's the lyric muse, you know), has deserted me. I
+haven't been able to write a line for a month. Of course
+the loss to the world of letters is almost irreparable, but
+that's not the worst of it. You see, if I can't write, I
+shan't do well in the <i>Lit.</i> competition, and if I don't do
+well I shan't make the chairmanship, and if I don't make
+the chairmanship in the competition, I shan't make a senior
+society, and wouldn't that be terrible, Trotty?"</p>
+
+<p>"Cheer up, old cow; you probably won't make one anyway,"
+suggested Trotty reassuringly, and Harry laughed.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>The football game with Harvard was played in New
+Haven that year, and Harry took Aunt Selina to it. Aunt
+Selina had never seen James play, and was anxious to go
+on that account, though she had not been to a game for
+many years, and even the last one she had seen was baseball.</p>
+
+<p>"You must explain the fine points of the game to me,
+my dear," she told him as they drove grandly out to the
+field in her victoria. "You see, I have not been to a game<span class="pagenum">[93]</span>
+since the seventies, and I daresay the rules have changed
+somewhat since then. I used to take a great interest in it,
+but I've forgotten all about it, now."</p>
+
+<p>They were obliged to abandon the victoria at some distance
+from the stands, rather to Aunt Selina's consternation,
+for she had secretly supposed that they would watch
+the play from the carriage, as of old. She was consequently
+somewhat bewildered when, after fifteen or twenty
+minutes of such shoving and shouldering as she had never
+experienced, she found herself in a vast amphitheater
+which forty thousand people were trying to convert into
+pandemonium, with very fair success. As they wormed
+their way along the sidelines toward their seats, a deafening
+roar suddenly burst from the stands on the other side
+of the field, which caused Aunt Selina to clutch her
+nephew's arm in affright.</p>
+
+<p>"Harry, what <i>is</i> it?" she asked. "<i>What</i> are they making
+that frightful noise about?"</p>
+
+<p>"That's the Harvard cheer," replied Harry calmly.
+"You'll hear the Yale people answering with theirs in just
+a minute."</p>
+
+<p>The Yale people did answer, but it would be too much
+to say that Aunt Selina heard. She was vaguely conscious
+of going up some steps and being propelled past a line of
+people to what Harry told her were their seats, though
+she could see nothing but a narrow bit of board. Nevertheless
+she sat down, and tried to accustom her ears and
+eyes to chaos; just such a chaos, she thought, as Satan fell
+into, only larger and noisier.</p>
+
+<p>"Here we are," Harry was saying cheerfully, "just in
+time, too. The teams will be coming on in a minute or two.
+What splendid seats James has got us, bang on the forty
+yard line. Why, we're practically in the cheering section!
+Do you know the Yale cheer, Aunt Selina? You must
+cheer too, you know; it's expected of you.... Here comes
+the Yale team...."</p>
+
+<p>Aunt Selina lost the rest, as chaos broke forth with redoubled
+vigor. She saw a group of blue-sweatered figures
+run diagonally across the field, and thought the game had
+begun.</p>
+
+<p>"Which is James?" she asked feverishly, feeling chaos
+work its way into her own bosom. "Do you think he'll
+win, Harry? Oh, I do hope he'll win!"<span class="pagenum">[94]</span></p>
+
+<p>When the team lined up for its short preliminary practise
+Harry pointed James out to her in his place at right
+halfback.</p>
+
+<p>"I see," she said, gazing intently through her field
+glasses, "he's one of those three little ones at the back.
+Does that mean that he'll be the one to kick the ball? I'd
+rather he kicked it than be in the middle of all that tearing
+about. Poor boy, how pale he looks!"</p>
+
+<p>"He won't look pale long," said Harry grimly.</p>
+
+<p>Aunt Selina by this time felt every drop of sporting
+blood in her course through her veins. "Which is the
+pitcher, Harry?" she inquired knowingly, and was not in
+the least abashed when her nephew informed her that
+there was no pitcher in football.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, well," said she indulgently, "isn't there really?
+Things do change so; I can't pretend to keep up with them.
+I remember there used to be a pitcher in my time, and
+Loring Ainsworth used to be it."</p>
+
+<p>Just then the teams set to in deadly earnest, and conversation
+died. In bewildered silence Aunt Selina watched
+the twenty-two players as they ran madly and inexplicably
+up and down the field, pursued by the fiendish yells of the
+spectators, and wondered if in truth, she were dead and
+this&mdash;well, purgatory.</p>
+
+<p>She made no attempt to understand anything that was
+going on down on the field, or even to watch it. She turned
+her attention to Harry; he seemed to be the most familiar
+and explicable object in sight, though she wondered why
+he should leap to his feet from time to time shouting such
+nonsense as "Block it, you ass!" or "Nail him, Sammy,
+nail him!" or "First down! Yay-y-y!" Presently she
+became aware of a growing intensity in the excitement.
+The players seemed to be moving gradually down toward
+one end of the field, and short periods of breathless silence
+in the audience punctuated the shouts. She heard cries of
+"Touchdown! Touchdown!" emanate from all directions,
+but they meant nothing to her. The players moved further
+and further away, till they were all huddled into one little
+corner of the field. Every time they tumbled over together
+in that awful human scrap-heap she shut her eyes,
+and did not open them again till she was sure it was all
+right. Finally, after one of those painful moments, there
+was a relapse of chaos, fifty times more severe than any
+<span class="pagenum">[95]</span>
+<a id="P95"></a>
+of the previous attacks. Women, as well as men, shrieked
+like maniacs, and threw things into the air. Trumpets
+bellowed and rattles rattled; somewhere in the background
+was a sound of a brass band, of an organized cheer. Hats
+and straw mats flew through the air in swarms.</p>
+
+<p>"What is it?" shrieked Aunt Selina. "Who won?
+Who won?"</p>
+
+<p>"It's a touchdown!" Harry shouted in her ear. "For
+Yale! It counts five!" (It did, then.) "And James did
+it! James has made a touchdown!" And in a moment
+Aunt Selina had the unusual pleasure of hearing her own
+name shouted in concert by ten or fifteen thousand people
+at the top of their voices.</p>
+
+<p>"&mdash;rah rah rah Wimbourne! Wimbourne! Wimbourne!"
+shouted the crowd, at the end of the long Yale
+cheer, and they went on shouting it, nine times; then another
+long cheer, and nine more Wimbournes, and so on.</p>
+
+<p>It was a great moment. Is it to be wondered that Aunt
+Selina, who did not know a touchdown from a nose-guard,
+shrieked with the others and wept like a baby? Is it
+strange that Harry, to whom the event meant more than
+to any other person among the forty thousand, should have
+forgotten himself in the expression of his natural joy;
+should have forgotten where and what and who he was,
+everything but the one absorbing fact that James had made
+a touchdown? We think not, and we have reason to believe
+that every man jack out of the forty thousand would
+have agreed with us. One did, we know. She thought it
+was the most natural thing in the world, though it did set
+her coughing and disarranged her hat and veil beyond all
+hope of recovery without the assistance of a mirror, not
+to mention a comb and hairbrush. And Harry needn't
+apologize any more, for she wouldn't hear of it; and the
+way she had behaved herself, in the first excruciating moment,
+was a Perfect Disgrace. So they were quits on that
+matter, and might she introduce Mr. Carruthers? Mr.
+Wimbourne. Was Harry surprised that she knew who
+he was? Well, she would explain, and also tell him who
+she was herself, if she could ever get the hair out of her
+mouth and eyes.</p>
+
+<p>For it must be explained that Harry, in his transports
+of exultation, had behaved in a very unseemly manner
+toward his next-door neighbor on the right hand. Aunt<span class="pagenum">[96]</span>
+Selina, who sat on his left, had sunk, exhausted with joy
+and excitement, to her seat as soon as she was told that
+James had made a touchdown, and Harry, whose feelings
+were of a nature that demanded immediate physical expression,
+had unconsciously relieved them on the person of
+his other neighbor, who still remained standing; never noticing
+who or what she was, even that she happened to be
+a young and attractive woman. Harry never could remember
+what he had done in those hectic seconds that
+immediately preceded his awareness of her existence; according
+to her own subsequent account he had slapped
+her violently several times on the back, put his arm around
+her, shaken her by the scruff of her neck and shouted inarticulate
+and impossible things in her ear.</p>
+
+<p>The interval of hair-recovery was tactfully designed to
+give Harry a moment's grace in which to recall, if possible,
+his neighbor's identity; she was perfectly able to tell who
+she was with the hair in her mouth and eyes, proof of
+which was that she had been talking in that condition for
+the past few minutes. Harry was grateful for the intermission.</p>
+
+<p>"Why of course I know you!" he exclaimed, as soon as
+the dying away of the last nine Wimbournes made conversation
+feasible. "It was stupid of me not to remember
+before. Do you remember; dancing school?.... It
+must have been ten years ago, though; and you <i>have</i>
+changed!"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, I suppose I have changed&mdash;thank Heaven!" The
+exclamation given with a smile through a now unimpeachably
+neat veil, seemed in some subtle, curious way to vindicate
+Harry, to emphasize his innocence in failing to
+recognize her. "I know what I looked like then, all long
+black legs and stringy yellow hair&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Not stringy," said Harry, recognizing his cue; "silky.
+I remember the long black&mdash;the stockings, too. And lots
+of white fluffy stuff in between; lace, and all that.... And
+we used to dance a good deal together, because we
+were the two youngest there, and you were so nice about it,
+too, when you wanted to dance with the older boys. But
+how did you know me? Haven't I changed, too?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes; but not so much. Boys don't. Beside, I
+knew your aunt by sight...."</p>
+
+<p>"I'm sorry, I forgot," said Harry. "Aunt Selina, do<span class="pagenum">[97]</span>
+you know Miss Elliston? And Mr. Carruthers, my aunt."</p>
+
+<p>"Madge Elliston," corrected the girl, smiling, "you know
+my mother, I think, Miss Wimbourne."</p>
+
+<p>"Indeed I do, my dear; I am delighted to meet her
+daughter," said Aunt Selina, who had had time to recover
+her customary <i>grande dame</i> air, "I knew her when
+she was Margaret Seymour; we used to be great friends."</p>
+
+<p>And so forth, through the brief but blessed respite that
+follows a touchdown. There is no need to quote the conversation
+in full, for it degenerated immediately into the
+polite and commonplace. If we could give you a picture
+of Madge Elliston during it, if we could do justice to the
+sweetness and deference of her manner toward Aunt Selina,
+her occasional smile, and the easy way she managed to
+bring both Harry and Mr. Carruthers into the conversation,
+that would be a different thing.</p>
+
+<p>The next kick-off brought it to an end, and all parties
+concerned turned their attention once more to the field.
+Harry attempted to explain some of the rudiments of the
+game to Aunt Selina, who confessed that her recollections
+of the rules of the seventies were not of material assistance
+to her enjoyment. And so passed the first half.</p>
+
+<p>"Do you know, I believe I know exactly what you're
+thinking of?" was the next thing Harry heard from his
+right. It was between the halves; Miss Elliston was in
+an intermission of Mr. Carruthers, and Harry was listening
+in silence to "Fair Harvard," which was being rendered
+across the field.</p>
+
+<p>"Do you?" he replied. "Well, I'll tell you if you're
+right."</p>
+
+<p>"You were thinking of 'Forty Years On.'"</p>
+
+<p>The smile died from Harry's face, and he paused a moment
+before replying, almost gruffly:</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, I was, as a matter of fact. How did you guess
+it?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, I know all about you, you see." She stopped, and
+her silence seemed to Harry to mean "I'm sorry if I've
+hurt you; but I wish you'd go on and talk to me, and not
+be absurd." So he threw off his pique and went on:</p>
+
+<p>"I don't know how you know about my going to Harrow,
+nor how you know anything about 'Forty Years On,'
+and I don't care much; but I put it to you, as man to man,
+isn't it a song that's worth thinking about?"<span class="pagenum">[98]</span></p>
+
+<p>"It is! There never was such a song."</p>
+
+<p>"Not even 'Fair Harvard'?"</p>
+
+<p>"No."</p>
+
+<p>"Not even 'Bright College Years,' to which you will
+shortly be treated?"</p>
+
+<p>"Not even that." They exchanged smiles, and Harry
+continued, with pleasure in his voice:</p>
+
+<p>"Well, it is a relief to hear some one say that, in a place
+where 'For God, for country, and for Yale' is considered
+the greatest line in the whole range of English poetry.
+But of course I'm a heretic."</p>
+
+<p>"You like being a heretic?" The question took him by
+surprise; it was out of keeping, both in substance and in
+the way it was asked, with Miss Elliston's behavior up to
+this point. He gathered his wits and replied:</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes; who doesn't? Is there any satisfaction like
+that of knowing that every one else is wrong and you alone
+are right?"</p>
+
+<p>"I suppose not! That's the main danger of heresy,
+don't you think? Subjective, not objective. Being burned
+at the stake doesn't matter, much; it's good for one rather
+than otherwise. But thinking differently from other people
+merely for the pleasure of being different, and above
+them&mdash;there's danger in that, isn't there?"</p>
+
+<p>"Then there is no such thing as honest heresy?"</p>
+
+<p>"That was not what I said." This remark, spoken
+gently and with a quizzical little smile, had none of the
+sharpness that cold type seems to give it. Adopting something
+of her manner, Harry pursued:</p>
+
+<p>"But I am not an honest heretic?"</p>
+
+<p>"I didn't say that, either." Again the smile, which
+seemed to be directed as much toward herself as toward
+him, softened the words. "And aren't you rather trespassing
+on female methods of argument?"</p>
+
+<p>"I don't understand."</p>
+
+<p>"Applying abstract remarks to one's own case; that's
+what women are conventionally supposed to do. But don't
+let's get metaphysical. What I want to say is that, though
+I think 'Forty Years On' is incomparably finer, as a song,
+than 'Bright College Years,' I wouldn't have it changed if
+I could. The 'For God, for country, and for Yale' part, I
+mean; and 'the earth is green or white with snow,'&mdash;a
+woefully under-appreciated line.... There is something<span class="pagenum">[99]</span>
+priceless, to me, in the thought of a great crowd of men,
+young and old, getting up and bellowing things like that
+together, never doubting but that it's the greatest poetry
+ever written. That's worth a great deal more, to me, than
+good poetry.... They're all such dears, too; the absurdity
+never hurts them a bit!"</p>
+
+<p>"By George," said Harry slowly, "you're right. I
+never thought of that before. It is rather a priceless
+thought."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, isn't it? It's the full seriousness of it that makes
+it so good. 'For God, for country, and for Yale'&mdash;it's no
+anti-climax to them; it's the way they really feel. It's
+absurd, it's ridiculous. But I love it, for some reason."</p>
+
+<p>"That's it. You make me see it all differently.... You
+mean, I suppose, that if we could start from the beginning
+with a clean slate, we would choose 'Forty Years
+On,' or something like it, every time. But now that we've
+got the other, and they sing it like that, it seems just as
+good, in its way ... so that we wouldn't like to change
+it...."</p>
+
+<p>He wanted to add something like "What an extraordinary
+young person you must be, to talk of such things to
+me, a stranger, under such conventional circumstances,"
+but a simultaneous recurrence of Mr. Carruthers and the
+game prevented him. It is doubtful if he would have
+dared, anyway.</p>
+
+<p>He spoke no more to her that day, except to say good-by
+and ask if he might call. Nor did he think much more of
+her. We would not give a false impression on this point;
+he was really much more interested in the game than in
+Miss Elliston, and after the second half was fairly started
+scarcely gave her another thought. But in the moment
+that intervened between the end of their conversation and
+the absorbing scurry of the kick-off it did occur to him
+that Madge Elliston had grown up into an unusual girl,
+a girl whom he would like to know better. Their short
+conversation had been as different from the ordinary run
+of football game civilities between young men and maidens
+as champagne from water. Harry liked girls well enough,
+and got on well with them, but in general they bored him.
+He had never met one, except Beatrice Carson, with whom
+he was able to conduct anything approaching an intellectual
+give-and-take, and even Beatrice was no more than<span class="pagenum">[100]</span>
+an able follower in his lead. Madge Elliston was a bird
+of a very different feather; she had undeniably led him
+during every moment of their conversation. It was a new
+sensation; he wondered if it would always be like that,
+in future conversations.</p>
+
+<p>But football was uppermost in his mind for the remainder
+of that day, at least. He was proud and pleased beyond
+all expression about James, and longed to grasp his
+hand in congratulation. But he had to go all the way home
+with Aunt Selina after the game was over, and when at
+last he reached Berkeley Oval he met James hurrying away
+somewhere and could give him only the briefest and vaguest
+expressions of pleasure. On returning to York Street he
+learned that the team was to have a banquet that evening,
+in the course of which they would elect their captain for
+the next year. It occurred to him that it would be nice
+if James were elected, and it gave him pleasure to hear
+Trotwood and others say that his chance was as good as
+any one's.</p>
+
+<p>He stayed up to hear the result of the election, which
+when it came was disappointing. James had missed the
+honor, less, apparently, because he was not good enough,
+than because some one else was considered even better.
+Harry was sorry, though he lost no sleep over it. When he
+saw James next morning, he spoke first of what was uppermost
+in his heart.</p>
+
+<p>"James," he said impulsively, seizing his brother's
+hand and hanging on to it as he spoke; "I want to say a
+whole lot more about yesterday. I don't mind saying
+you're the greatest thing that ever came down the pike, and
+I'm proud to own you!" and more in the same vein, which
+James received with smiling protests and remarks of a
+self-depreciatory nature. But when Harry ended up
+"And I'm sorry as heck about the captaincy," his manner
+changed.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, that's all right," he said. His face became grave,
+his whole attitude seemed to add: "And we won't talk
+any more about that, please; it's a sore subject."</p>
+
+<p>Harry's easy flow of talk stopped short, and a new feeling
+filled his mind. "Good Heavens, James cares, actually
+cares about the confounded thing," he thought, and
+dropped his brother's hand.</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[101]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_X">CHAPTER X</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">RUMBLINGS</p>
+
+<p>"Please, sir, could you give me any dope for the
+<i>News</i> about your coming back to coach the football
+team?" asked a timid voice from the doorway.</p>
+
+<p>"No, heeler, no; I've already said I wouldn't give anything
+about that till I made up my mind, and I haven't
+yet." Thus James, more petulantly than was his wont,
+from his chair below the green-shaded lamp. The heeler,
+obviously a freshman, blinked disappointedly through the
+half-gloom for a few seconds and then moved to go.</p>
+
+<p>"Wait a bit," said James, his good-humor restored;
+"I'm sorry, heeler. But when I tell you that you're the
+thirteenth person that has come in at that door since seven
+o'clock, and that I've got a hundred pages of economics
+to read for to-morrow, perhaps you'll understand why I'm
+a little snappy about being interrupted."</p>
+
+<p>"That's all right," murmured the heeler vaguely. He
+was used to being snapped at by prominent seniors, but he
+was not used to being apologized to by them, and was not
+sure how he liked it.</p>
+
+<p>"I tell you what I'll do, though," went on James. "I'll
+give you a locker notice that ought to have been put in
+long ago. Here." He reached for the heeler's notebook
+and wrote in it: "All senior members of the football
+squad are requested to remove their clothes from their
+lockers as the space will be wanted for spring practice."
+"There, that'll put you fifty words to the good, anyway,"
+he said brightly, and the heeler went his way in peace.</p>
+
+<p>James had conducted himself most creditably during his
+college course, and in the course of a few months would
+graduate if not exactly in a blaze of glory, at least in a
+very comfortable radiance. His standard of values had
+been a simple but satisfactory one; first, Football; second,
+Curriculum; third, Other Things. Any number of the
+steadier and worthier portion of the college world make
+this their creed, and find it works out extremely well. In<span class="pagenum">[102]</span>
+the case of James, at least, such a standard gave a sane
+and well-balanced view of life. He took football with the
+most deathly seriousness, it is true, but only in its season,
+and its season, owing to the rigors of the New England
+climate, lasts hardly more than two months out of the
+twelve. During that time James practically hibernated
+when not actually on the football field, lived mainly on
+boiled rice and barley water, indulged in no amusements
+or vices, went about thoughtful and preoccupied, scarcely
+spoke even to his most intimate friends, studied only just
+enough to keep his stand above the danger mark and slept,
+as Harry rather vividly put it, "anywhere from thirty
+to forty hours out of the twenty-four." Out of the football
+season he was cheerful, cordial, loved the society of
+his fellows, smoked, drank in moderation, went to the
+theater, played cards, ate every kind of food he could lay
+his hands on and studied with a very faithful and intelligent
+interest. His classmates admired him during the
+football season, and loved him the rest of the year. Generally
+speaking, he conformed closely to his type; but his
+type was one of the best the college evolved.</p>
+
+<p>After the <i>News</i> heeler left him on the evening in question
+he read economics uninterruptedly for about half an
+hour; then he took a cigarette from his case and lit it.
+The case was the gold one that Harry had brought him
+from Europe. He thought of Harry as he lay back in his
+chair after lighting the cigarette, and it is not too much
+to say that the thought of him impaired the pleasure of the
+first few puffs. Harry was, indeed, the chief, the only
+cloud on the horizon. It was too bad; he had begun so
+well. No one could have desired a more brilliant freshman
+year for him, what with his track work and his literary
+success and the excellent stand he maintained in his
+studies. And yet now, at about the middle of his sophomore
+year, he seemed to be going in any direction but
+that of fulfilling the promise of his first year. James
+could see for himself, and he had heard things.... Perhaps,
+after all, though, it was merely that he had begun
+too well; that his promise was fulfilled before it was fairly
+given. Many men graduated from college high in the
+esteem of their classmates without having distinguished
+themselves as much as Harry had in one year. Perhaps
+he was really going on exactly as well as before, only<span class="pagenum">[103]</span>
+people were just beginning to find out that he was only
+an American boy of nineteen, not Apollo and Hermes
+rolled into one. That was what James hoped; but it
+occurred to him that if such had been the case the idea
+would have come to him as a certainty, not as a hope.</p>
+
+<p>Harry himself sauntered into the room before the cigarette
+was smoked out. Well, his outward appearance had
+not suffered, at any rate, was James' first thought. The
+slimness of his figure was unimpaired; his features retained
+their clear-cut lines of youth and innocence; his complexion
+shone with the glow of health, nothing else.</p>
+
+<p>"Give me a cigarette, and hurry up about it, too," were
+his first words. "I've just been under a severe mental
+strain.... It will probably be the last one for many
+moons, too, if I start in training to-morrow, like a good
+little boy."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, of course; you've been to the call for track candidates,"
+replied his brother, handing over the desired
+commodities. "Well, was it a good meeting?"</p>
+
+<p>"Inspiring. Don't you see what a glow of enthusiasm
+I'm in? First Dimmock got up and opened his mouth.
+'Fellows,' he said, 'I'm darned glad to see you all here
+to-night, but I wish there were more of you. I see fewer
+men out than usual, and we need more than ever this year,
+and I'll tell you why. We want to do better in the intercollegiates.
+We think we are strong enough for the dual
+meets, but we want to make a better show in the intercollegiates.
+But we've got plenty of good material here,
+and with that we ought to get together and work hard and
+show lots of the old Yale spirit, for we'll need it all in the
+intercollegiates.'</p>
+
+<p>"Well, Dimmock is a good soul, if he has got a face like
+a boiled cod, and we cheered and clapped and patted him
+on the back. Then Macgrath took the floor. He said he
+thought we were going to have a good year, for there was
+plenty of material in sight, though he was sorry to see so few
+there to-night. He hoped we weren't forgetting what the
+Yale spirit was, because we particularly wanted to do well
+in the intercollegiates. He spoke of the new cinder track
+and the lengthening of the two-twenty yard straight-away,
+and ended with a hope that we would all get together and
+do Yale credit in the intercollegiates.</p>
+
+<p>"Then McCullen, who as perhaps you know, is manager,<span class="pagenum">[104]</span>
+got up. As he is a particular friend of yours I won't try
+to give an exact account of what he said. His main points,
+however, were the fewness of the candidates present, the
+probable wealth of good material in hand, the new cinder
+track and the desirability of doing well in the intercollegiates.
+Lastly, a man called Hodgman, or Hodgson, or
+something, who was captain back in the eighties somewhere,
+was introduced. He spoke first of the new cinder track
+and straight-away, from which he lightly and gracefully
+went on to congratulating the team on having so much
+good material this year&mdash;though he saw fewer there to-night
+than he had expected. He closed with a touching
+peroration in which he intimated that the track team had
+in general come off well in regard to Harvard and Princeton,
+and what was wanted now was a little better showing
+against the other universities in the intercollegiates.... Oh,
+it was a glorious meeting!"</p>
+
+<p>James fully appreciated the humor of this narrative, as
+the sympathetic twinkle in his eye betrayed, but he merely
+observed after Harry had finished:</p>
+
+<p>"Well, that's true; they ought to do better in the intercollegiates.
+There's a good deal of feeling about it among
+the graduates, too, I believe."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, it's <i>true</i> enough." Harry, who felt the heat of
+the room, opened the window and lay down at full length
+on the window-seat, directly in the draught. "I'd take
+the word of those four noble, strapping, true-hearted men
+for it any day in the year. Only&mdash;only&mdash;oh, heck! Why
+should I have to sit up and listen to those boobs spend an
+hour in telling me that one thing? And what the devil
+do I care about it anyway, if it's the truest thing that ever
+happened?"</p>
+
+<p>"Well, I care about it, though I'm no good at track and
+not a member of the team," commented James.</p>
+
+<p>"Perhaps if you were on it you wouldn't care quite so
+much.&mdash;Well, I'll train and I'll practise regularly, not because
+I want Yale to win the intercollegiates, but because
+I think it's good for me. It is good for the figure, and I'd
+rather have my muscles hard than soft."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, it comes to the same thing, if you keep to it, and
+don't go gassing to the track people about your reasons."</p>
+
+<p>"I shall go gassing to every human being I've a mind
+to.&mdash;And I'll tell you one thing there's going to be trouble<span class="pagenum">[105]</span>
+about, if they try to use coercion, or the Yale spirit gag.
+That's about the Easter vacation; there's some talk of
+making the track people stay here and train. I have other
+plans for Easter."</p>
+
+<p>"What are they?&mdash;For Heaven's sake, shut that window!
+What a fool you are, lying in a draught like that,
+with the track season beginning."</p>
+
+<p>"James, you are every bit as bad as any of them, at
+heart," said Harry, shutting the window. "You wouldn't
+give a continental if I caught pneumonia and died in
+frightful agony, except for its cutting the university of a
+possible place in the intercollegiates.&mdash;Why, I'm going
+down to the Trotwoods' place in North Carolina. Trotty's
+going to have a large and brilliant house-party. Beatrice
+is going; he met her in New York not long ago and took a
+great shine to her." For Beatrice, in the company of
+Aunt Miriam, was paying a visit to the country of her
+dreams.</p>
+
+<p>"What?" said James, pricking up his ears. "Beatrice
+going? Why hasn't Trotty asked me?"</p>
+
+<p>"Didn't dare, I suppose," said Harry indifferently.
+"I'll make him, though, if you like. That's the way the
+King's visits are arranged; he says he'd like to visit some
+distinguished subject, and a third party tells the distinguished
+subject, who asks the King, who accepts. It's
+complicated, but it gets there in the end."</p>
+
+<p>James did not seem particularly interested in points of
+etiquette in royal households.</p>
+
+<p>"What do you make out of this business of the Carsons?"
+he asked.</p>
+
+<p>"What business?"</p>
+
+<p>"Hadn't you heard? Aunt C. told me about it when
+I was there last Sunday. Beatrice's mother has made up
+her mind to sue for a divorce, and Beatrice has quarreled
+with her about it."</p>
+
+<p>"Good Lord! No, I hadn't heard a thing. I knew
+what the father was, of course.... Has anything in particular
+happened?"</p>
+
+<p>"Apparently, yes. Aunt C. can tell you more exactly
+than I. Beatrice has confided the whole thing to her&mdash;they're
+thick as thieves already; she gets on better with
+her than with Aunt Miriam, even. It seems that the husband,
+Lord Archibald, is on to the fact that his wife has<span class="pagenum">[106]</span>
+had a good deal of money to spend lately; Uncle Giles having
+given her a lot since he got that&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, I know. Go on."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, that's about the whole thing. He's been bullying
+her, making her give it up to him ... and one thing
+and another, till she got desperate, and decided to try for
+a complete divorce. There's plenty of ground, even for
+English law ... but Beatrice's idea is that there's no
+need. Of course, it will mean a lot of scandal. She says
+that if she had been there to deal with him there would
+have been no talk about it, and that, at worst, a separation
+would have been all that was necessary."</p>
+
+<p>"Poor Lady Archie! She has had a tough time; I
+shall be glad to see her well out of it. A divorce&mdash;! Well,
+she has more sense than I gave her credit for."</p>
+
+<p>"It seems to me that Beatrice is quite right," said
+James, a trifle stiffly. "I should have thought that a
+divorce was the thing most to be avoided. It's not like an
+American divorce.... I understand her point very well."</p>
+
+<p>Harry did not reply to this; he simply growled&mdash;made a
+curious sound in the bottom of his throat. It amounted to
+a polite way of saying "Nonsense!" Apparently James
+accepted the implied rebuke, for he said no more on the
+subject. His brother also was silent for some time and
+gazed thoughtfully out on the lights of the Campus. "I've
+got troubles of my own, James," he said presently.
+"Have you heard anything about last night yet?"</p>
+
+<p>"Last night? No; what?"</p>
+
+<p>"Well, you've heard of Junius LeGrand, in our class?"</p>
+
+<p>"The actress? Yes."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, he's become rather a power in the class; not only
+he is making straight for the Dramat. presidency, but he's
+more or less the center of a certain clique; the social
+register, monogrammed cigarettes, champagne-every-night
+and abroad-every-summer type; the worst of it, that is.
+Well, I had a dreadful scene with him last night. I got a
+thrill and called him names, and he didn't like it."</p>
+
+<p>"What happened?"</p>
+
+<p>"There was a whole bunch of us sitting round at Mory's,
+and I was talking partly in French, as I usually do when&mdash;when
+mildly excited, and referred to him as a 'petite
+ordure.' Of course that isn't a pretty thing to call a person,
+even in French, and I probably shouldn't have said<span class="pagenum">[107]</span>
+it if I hadn't been drinking. I meant it all, though, and
+was willing to stand by it, so when he got mad I called
+him other and worse things, in English. He wasn't tight,
+but he was pretty furious by that time, and there'd have
+been a free fight if people hadn't held us apart."</p>
+
+<p>"That's pretty poor, Harry," said James gravely, after
+a moment's consideration. "I don't mean your hating
+LeGrand&mdash;though you needn't have actually come to quarreling
+with him. But your being tight and he not puts
+you in the wrong right off.&mdash;What's all this about your
+drinking, anyway?"</p>
+
+<p>"I don't, so you could notice it.... That was the first
+time I ever got carried beyond myself, except about once&mdash;or
+twice. I'm not fond of the stuff; I only drink when
+I want to be cheered up."</p>
+
+<p>"That's bad, too; it's much worse to drink when you're
+in bad spirits than when you're in good," said James, with
+a wisdom beyond his experience.</p>
+
+<p>"After I've drunk, the good spirits are in me," retorted
+Harry, with rather savage humor.</p>
+
+<p>"It's no joking matter. Harry, will you cut it out entirely,
+if I ask you to?"</p>
+
+<p>"You'll have to do some tall asking, I'm afraid.&mdash;I
+don't like you much when you preach, James. I came
+here for sympathy, not sermons."</p>
+
+<p>"You won't get me to sympathize with your making a
+beast of yourself."</p>
+
+<p>"James, you know perfectly well you were tight as a
+tick at the football banquet in Boston last fall."</p>
+
+<p>"I'm no paragon, I admit."</p>
+
+<p>"You say that as if you thought you were, and expected
+me to say so. No, you're right&mdash;you're not. There!"</p>
+
+<p>James' humor suddenly changed. His grave face relaxed
+into a smile, he rose from his chair and wandered
+to the end of the room and back to the window-seat.</p>
+
+<p>"All right, we'll leave it at that; I'm not." He stood
+for a moment hands in pockets, smiling down at his
+brother. "It's nice to find one point we can agree on,
+anyway.... I won't bother you. After all, I suppose
+there's not much danger."</p>
+
+<p>"No ... I don't think I should ever really get to like
+the stuff." But Harry did not smile and fall in with his
+brother's mood; he had too much on his mind still. "I<span class="pagenum">[108]</span>
+haven't told you the most disagreeable part of it," he went
+on. "Something happened to-day that made me sorry I
+had made a fool of myself. Shep McGee came to me to-day
+and said that he'd heard about our little <i>coup de
+th&eacute;&acirc;tre</i>, and that he was sorry, but being one of Junius'
+particular friends he couldn't be friendly with me any
+more unless I apologized. I was sorry, because I've always
+liked Shep and got on very well with him."</p>
+
+<p>"What did you say?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, of course I was pretty peeved, and I messed it up
+still further. I told him I was glad he'd spoken, because
+henceforth my acquaintance would not be recruited conspicuously
+from Junius' special friends. I said that,
+strange as it might seem, I felt myself able to hand him,
+Shep, over to Junius' complete possession without a tear.
+I added that I thought he would find it safer in the future
+to choose his friends exclusively from the cause of Christ,
+and suggested that he might try to convert Junius to the
+same august organization...."</p>
+
+<p>Some explanation may be necessary to show why this
+remark outraged James' feelings to the extent it did. The
+organization to which Harry referred was Dwight Hall,
+the college home of the Y. M. C. A., Bible study classes,
+city and foreign mission work, in all of which branches of
+religious and semi-religious activity many of the worthiest
+undergraduates interest themselves. James particularly
+admired the organization and those who worked in it; he
+would have gone in for some department of its work himself
+had he possessed the qualities of a religious leader.
+Most of his best friends were Dwight Hall workers; the
+senior society to which he belonged was notorious for taking
+many of them into its fold yearly&mdash;so much so, indeed,
+that it has become a popular myth that an underground
+passage exists between Dwight Hall and the society hall.</p>
+
+<p>Consequently, Harry's contemptuous epithet, together
+with the tone in which he uttered it was quite enough to
+shock and pain James very much. But what put him out
+even more was the thought that Harry had said this to
+Shep McGee. The latter was one of the most respected
+men in Harry's class, and James had happened to take a
+particular fancy to him. He rather wondered at McGee's
+making a friend of such a person as LeGrand, but he
+did not stop to think about that now.<span class="pagenum">[109]</span></p>
+
+<p>"Harry," said he in a sharp, dry voice, "I think that's
+the rottenest remark I ever heard you or any one else make&mdash;if
+you used that expression to McGee."</p>
+
+<p>"I did."</p>
+
+<p>"I never thought you were capable of saying such a
+rotten thing, and I don't mind your knowing what I think
+of it. Are you going to apologize to McGee?"</p>
+
+<p>"No."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, I shall. If I can't apologize on your behalf, at
+least I can apologize for being your brother! What the
+devil do you mean by saying such a thing, in cold blood,
+to such a man? If you don't believe in the work yourself,
+can't you let other people believe in it? What do you
+believe in, anyway? Do you call yourself a Christian?
+Do you call yourself a gentleman? Do you flatter yourself
+that McGee isn't a hundred times a better man than
+you are?"</p>
+
+<p>"Rumblings from the underground passage." This remark,
+given with a cold, hard little smile, in which
+there was no geniality, no humor, even of a mistaken
+nature, amounted to a direct insult. Any reference made
+to a Yale man about his senior society by an outsider, be
+it a brother or any one else, is looked upon as a breach of
+etiquette&mdash;was at that time, at any rate. Harry's remark
+was worse than that; it was a rather cowardly thrust,
+for he was insulting a thing that James, by reason of the
+secrecy to which he was bound, could not defend.</p>
+
+<p>James did not reply; he simply grabbed up a hat and
+flung himself out of the room. Harry listened to his footsteps
+retreating down the stairs with a sinking heart; all
+his anger, all his resentment ebbed with them, and by the
+time they had died away there was nothing left but hopeless,
+repentant wretchedness. In the last twenty-four
+hours he had made a public disgrace of himself, he had
+fallen out with one of his best friends, and he had wounded
+the feelings of the last person on earth he wanted to hurt.
+And all because of his asinine convictions, because he
+thought his ideals were a little higher than other men's,
+his honesty a little more impeccable than theirs.</p>
+
+<p>He got up and left the room, cursing himself for a fool,
+cursing the fate that had brought him to this pass, cursing
+Dwight Hall, the senior societies, the university that harbored
+them, the school, the country that had put ideas<span class="pagenum">[110]</span>
+into his head. But chiefest of all he cursed Junius LeGrand....</p>
+
+<p>But that did not do any good.</p>
+
+<p>The next morning he wrote and posted a note of apology
+to James:&mdash;</p>
+
+<blockquote><p>Dear James&mdash;I am sorry about last night&mdash;really, I
+am. I will try not to make such an ass of myself again.</p>
+
+<p class="author">
+"<span class="smcap">Harry.</span>"</p>
+</blockquote>
+
+<p>The same evening he received an answer, also through
+the mail. It was simply a post-card bearing the words:</p>
+
+<div class="inset14">
+<p>All right. <span class="smcap">James.</span></p>
+</div>
+
+<p>Its curt, businesslike goodwill and the promptness of its
+arrival comforted him somewhat. He wisely determined
+to keep away from his brother for the present and let time
+exert what healing effect it could. When they did meet
+again, after some ten days' interval, no reference was
+made to the episode. James was cordial, very cordial.
+Far, far too cordial....</p>
+
+<p>"Trotty," said Harry mournfully that evening; "I
+don't think you'd better room with me again next year.
+You can't afford to, Trotty. I'm a pariah, an outcast.
+Half the decent people in the class don't speak to me any
+more. You simply can't afford to know me. It'll ruin
+your chances."</p>
+
+<p>"I wish you'd shut up," said Trotwood. "I'm trying
+to study."</p>
+
+<p>"I mean it, Trotty. Don't pretend you don't hear, or
+understand. I'm giving you warning."</p>
+
+<p>"Rot," said Trotty, beginning to blush. "Damned, infernal
+rot."</p>
+
+<p>Harry sighed. "You're a good soul, Trotty. But it's
+true. You'll be known as the only man in the class that
+speaks to me, if you keep it up."</p>
+
+<p>"Will you shut up, you infernal idiot?"</p>
+
+<p>"No. I tell you, I'm going straight to the devil."</p>
+
+<p>Trotty rose from his chair and went to where Harry
+stood. He gently pushed him back to the wall, and
+pinning him to it looked him straight in the eyes. Harry
+was surprised to see that his face was set and serious.</p>
+
+<p>"Now," said Trotwood, "I'm going to talk about this<span class="pagenum">[111]</span>
+business this once, and if you ever mention the subject
+again I'll break your damned head open. I'm going to
+room with you next year. I'm going to room with you
+the year after that, if you'll have me. If we ever split
+up, it'll have to be because you're tired of me&mdash;not afraid
+I'm tired of you, but actually tired of me. You're not
+going to the devil. If you do, I don't give a damn. What
+does friendship mean, anyway? Answer me that, damn
+you!&mdash;damn you!&mdash;damn you&mdash;" His voice failed, but
+his eyes still spoke.</p>
+
+<p>"All right, Trotty, we won't say any more about it, if
+you feel like that." Harry smiled as he spoke the words,
+but he felt more like crying.</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[112]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_XI">CHAPTER XI</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">AUNT SELINA'S BEAUX YEUX</p>
+
+<p>As Harry had anticipated, an issue arose between himself
+and the powers in the track world concerning
+the Easter vacation. The edict went forth that members
+of the 'varsity squad were to remain in New Haven, in
+strict training, through the holidays, and it was assumed
+that he was to be of their number. None of the powers
+asked him what he was going to do, and he did not think
+it worth while to inform them of his plans.</p>
+
+<p>One day, about a week before the vacation began, he did
+mention the subject casually to Judy Dimmock, the captain,
+as they walked in from practice together. Dimmock's
+consternation, as Harry said afterward, was pitiful to see.</p>
+
+<p>"But do you think you can get Macgrath's permission?"
+he asked, stupefied.</p>
+
+<p>"Why in the world should I bother about asking Macgrath's
+permission?" answered Harry. "Of course he
+wouldn't give it to me."</p>
+
+<p>"Do you mean to say that you're going without it?"</p>
+
+<p>"Of course I'm going without it."</p>
+
+<p>Dimmock was bewildered rather than irritated, though
+Harry's course of action defied his authority quite as much
+as the coach's. "You'll have to be dropped from the
+squad, then, I'm afraid."</p>
+
+<p>"So I supposed."</p>
+
+<p>"Harry, do you mean to say this work means no more
+to you than that?" stammered Dimmock, all his convictions
+seething in his brain. "Haven't you got any more respect
+for your college and traditions than that? Don't you see
+what good discipline it is to buckle down to work and keep
+at it, whether you like it or not?"</p>
+
+<p>Harry waited a moment before replying, wondering
+how he could silence Dimmock without angering him.</p>
+
+<p>"That would all sound very well, if it were the dean and
+not the track captain that said it," he ventured.<span class="pagenum">[113]</span></p>
+
+<p>"I'm afraid I don't understand you, Harry." There
+was such a complete absence of anger in the other's tone
+that Harry felt a momentary outburst of sympathy for
+this honest, good-tempered creature.</p>
+
+<p>"I'm sorry, Judy," he said. "The fact is, you take
+track deadly seriously, and I don't. That's all there is to
+it. So we're bound to disagree."</p>
+
+<p>So Harry went to the North Carolina mountains and
+shot quail and rode horseback and played bridge and carried
+on generally with James and Beatrice and Trotty and
+eight or ten others of his age. When he returned to New
+Haven he went out to the track field and jumped and ran
+about as before, but nobody paid any attention to him.
+Nor was he asked to rejoin the training table.</p>
+
+<p>"It'll do him good to let his heels cool for a while,"
+observed Dimmock to Macgrath.</p>
+
+<p>"That's all very well, but you'd better not let them
+cool too long, if you want to get a place in the hurdles with
+Harvard," granted the coach.</p>
+
+<p>"I was afraid all along we'd have to take him on
+again," said the other. "He gets better and better on the
+track all the time, and queerer and queerer every other
+way. I don't trust him."</p>
+
+<p>"He's a second Popham," said Macgrath.</p>
+
+<p>About a week before the Harvard meet Dimmock approached
+the second Popham and with very commendable
+absence of anything like false pride asked him if he would
+please put himself under Macgrath's orders for the next few
+days and run in the meet. Harry graciously consented.
+He hurdled abominably badly for a week, showing neither
+form nor speed; then he hurdled against Harvard and
+beat their best men by a safe margin. He won a first
+place, and his Y.</p>
+
+<p>But that did not make him any more popular in the
+track world.</p>
+
+<p>Later in the spring Beatrice came on for a visit, anxious
+to see the university that Harry had preferred to Oxford.
+She and Lady Fletcher stayed with Aunt Selina; presently
+Aunt Miriam went on and left Beatrice alone there. She
+and Aunt Selina struck up one of those unaccountable intimacies
+that occasionally arise between people of widely
+different ages.</p>
+
+<p>"I do like your relations," she once told Harry; "I<span class="pagenum">[114]</span>
+like your country and your university and your friends
+well enough, but I like your people even better. I like
+your Uncle James, though I'm scared to death of him, and
+Aunt Cecilia of course is a dear; but I like Aunt Selina
+best. I never saw such a person! I didn't know you had
+her type in America. She makes Aunt Miriam look like
+a vulgar, blatant little upstart!"</p>
+
+<p>"I know," said Harry, laughing. "Did you tell Aunt
+Miriam that?"</p>
+
+<p>"Something to that effect, yes. She laughed, and said
+that she had always felt that way in her presence, too.&mdash;There's
+more about Aunt Selina than that, though; there's
+something wonderfully human about her, at bottom. I
+have an idea she could get nearer to me, if she wanted to,
+than almost any one else, just because her true self is so
+rare and remote."</p>
+
+<p>Both Harry and James saw a good deal of Beatrice during
+her visit. Harry was supposed to be in training again,
+and it was his interesting custom to dine discreetly at the
+training table at six o'clock and then dash out to his aunt's
+and eat another and much more sumptuous meal at seven.
+James was scandalized when he heard of this proceeding,
+but he carefully refrained from saying anything to Harry
+about it; he merely smiled non-committally when Harry,
+with a desire of drawing him out, rather flauntingly referred
+to it.</p>
+
+<p>"A few weeks ago he would have cursed me out," he
+thought; "lectured me up and down about it. Now he
+won't say anything because he's afraid it would bring on
+another scrap." The thought made him feel lonely and
+miserable.</p>
+
+<p>James was greatly taken with Beatrice; that was quite
+clear from the first. He was attracted by her beauty, and
+still more by her apparent indifference to it. He found
+her more frank and sensible than American girls, whose
+d&eacute;butante conventionalities and mannerisms bored and
+irritated him. He could not conceive of Beatrice "guying"
+or "kidding him along" on slight acquaintance, as
+most of his American friends did, or of Beatrice openly
+dazzling him with her beauty, or using her prerogative of
+sex by making him "stand around" before other people.</p>
+
+<p>One evening after dinner Beatrice, accompanied by both
+the brothers, was walking down one drive and up the other,<span class="pagenum">[115]</span>
+as the family were in the habit of doing on warm spring
+evenings.</p>
+
+<p>"Are you both prepared to hear something funny?"
+she asked.</p>
+
+<p>"Fire away," they answered, and she continued:</p>
+
+<p>"Well, I'm probably going to come back here next
+winter and live with Aunt Selina!"</p>
+
+<p>Harry gave a long whistle.</p>
+
+<p>"This from you! Are you actually going to turn Yankee,
+too?"</p>
+
+<p>"I'm going to give the Yankees a chance, at any rate!
+You see, there are reasons why life for me wouldn't be
+particularly pleasant at home next year.... I'm going
+back with Aunt Miriam after Commencement, as we had
+planned, to try to patch it up with Mama, and then, if
+all parties are agreeable, as I'm pretty sure they will be,
+I shall come back in the autumn. The idea is for me to
+keep house for Aunt Selina and be her companion generally.
+I shall receive a stipend for my valuable services,
+so that I shall have the comfortable feeling of earning something.
+Aunt Miriam thinks it's a fine plan. What do you
+think about it?"</p>
+
+<p>"I think it's simply top-hole, to use the expression of
+your native land. But won't you find New Haven a trifle
+dull, after London, and all that?"</p>
+
+<p>"I rather think I shall, but in a different way. I shall
+be quite busy, and I thought I'd go to some lectures and
+things in the university and learn something.&mdash;Why don't
+you say something, James?"</p>
+
+<p>"I think it's a wonderful idea." James had been thinking
+so hard he had forgotten to speak. Did he perhaps
+regret his lately-made decision not to come back and coach
+the football team, but to take advantage of a business opening
+in the Middle West? At any rate, he was startled
+to observe what a leap his heart gave when Beatrice said
+she was coming back. Was it possible, he asked himself,
+that he was really going to care for this girl, with her dark
+brown eyes and her aloof, aristocratic, unchallenging
+ways?...</p>
+
+<p>But he was undeniably glad she was coming back, and
+found occasion to tell her so more fully another time, when
+they were alone.</p>
+
+<p>"I'm particularly glad," he added, "on Harry's account.<span class="pagenum">[116]</span>
+He needs some one to keep an eye on him; do you
+think you can do it?"</p>
+
+<p>"I've done that for some years," said Beatrice, smiling.
+"I've been more of a brother to him than you have, really.
+Why on earth did you never come over and see him all
+that time, James?"</p>
+
+<p>"Heaven knows.... I was lazy; I got in a rut. I wish
+I had, now."</p>
+
+<p>"Why, nothing's going wrong, I hope?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, damnably!&mdash;I beg your pardon. When he first
+came back he did certain things that used to get on my
+nerves, and I, like a fool, let it go on that way, thinking
+that he was all wrong and I was all right. It's only lately
+that I've come to see better ... and now, when he particularly
+needs some steadying influence, I can't give it to
+him. You see, he gets on other people's nerves, too; he
+and his ideas&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Ideas?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes; fool notions he got about the way things are
+done in England&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Isn't that a trifle hard?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, the ideas may be all right, but not the way he applies
+them.... At any rate, they, or something else, are
+playing the deuce with his college course. He's getting in
+Dutch, all around&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"In Dutch," murmured Beatrice. "Oh, I do like that!"
+But James did not notice the interruption.</p>
+
+<p>"And while I see all this going on I have to stand aside
+and let it go on, because when I say anything it doesn't
+do any good, but only irritates him and makes him worse."</p>
+
+<p>"I see. Well, I'm always willing to do what I can for
+Harry, but I'm afraid I haven't any real influence over
+him, either."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes, you have. He has the greatest respect for
+you."</p>
+
+<p>"Not nearly as much as you think." Her usually calm
+expression was clouded; she seemed disturbed about something.
+Why did James feel a momentary sinking of the
+heart when he noticed the seriousness of her face and
+manner? It was nothing, though; gone again in a second.
+Beatrice continued, in a more optimistic tone:</p>
+
+<p>"But I honestly don't think, James, that there's much
+to worry about. I don't mean that he mayn't get into<span class="pagenum">[117]</span>
+scrapes, but I don't think that there's anything seriously
+wrong.... I have always had the greatest faith in him&mdash;not
+only in his intellect, but in his character. So has
+Uncle G.; he expects great things of him, says he has just
+that combination of intellect and balance that results in
+statues in public places."</p>
+
+<p>"The genius in the family is all confined to him; I'm
+glad you realize that!" James could not help being a little
+rasped by her harping on the good qualities of his brother,
+nor could he help showing it a little. He immediately
+felt rather ashamed of himself, however, for Beatrice replied,
+in a gently startled tone:</p>
+
+<p>"Why, James, how bitter! You don't expect me to fling
+bouquets at your very face, surely! I throw them at you
+when I'm talking to Harry!"</p>
+
+<p>"You must throw a good lot of them, then, for you see
+him alone often enough," was the somewhat gruff reply.
+Beatrice must have considered it rather a foolish remark,
+for she paid no attention to it.</p>
+
+<p>Harry's attitude toward her decision, as expressed in
+his next <i>t&ecirc;te-&agrave;-t&ecirc;te</i> with her, was rather different from
+that of his brother.</p>
+
+<p>"Beatrice," said he, "of course I'm pleased as Punch
+about your coming here next year, both on my own account
+and on Aunt Selina's, and all that sort of thing; but I hope
+you won't think it rude of me if I ask why on earth you're
+doing it. Of course, I know there are family unpleasantnesses,
+and that you aren't particularly interested in London
+balls, but that doesn't explain to me why, when you
+really do occupy an enviable position over there, get asked
+everywhere worth going, in season and out, and all that,
+you should choose to be the paid companion of an old
+woman in a small New England town. And I don't believe
+it's Aunt Selina's <i>beaux yeux</i>!"</p>
+
+<p>"No!" said Beatrice, laughing; "I don't believe it's
+quite all that, either!"</p>
+
+<p>"What will people think about it over there?" went on
+Harry. "What'll your mother say?"</p>
+
+<p>"I'm afraid Mama will be perfectly delighted, even if
+she doesn't say so," replied Beatrice, serious again. "The
+truth is, Harry, poor Mama and I don't gee very well,
+somehow.... Jane is a great comfort to her&mdash;a perfect
+daughter&mdash;she came out this year, you know."</p>
+
+<p>"Is she as much of a social success as you?" asked Harry<span class="pagenum">[118]</span>
+with that frankness that was characteristic of their relation.</p>
+
+<p>"Much more so&mdash;in a way. She uses her gifts to much
+more effect."</p>
+
+<p>"She's not nearly as good-looking as you," persisted
+Harry.</p>
+
+<p>It was a remark thoroughly in keeping with the spirit of
+their comradeship, the kind of remark, expressive of a
+plain truth, nothing more, that they prided themselves on
+making and taking between themselves without the least
+affectation or self-consciousness. Yet Beatrice simply
+could not keep pleasure from sounding in her voice as she
+replied:</p>
+
+<p>"Well, no; I suppose not. It's the only thing in which
+I have the better of her, though. I'm very&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>She began her reply in the old spirit, but could not keep
+it up. She had started to say, "I'm very glad you think
+that," then stopped herself, then wished she had gone
+on. It would have been perfectly consistent with their old
+"man-to-man" attitude, if she could have said it in the
+right way!</p>
+
+<p>Harry noticed her halting, and looked up at her quickly.
+He saw that she was blushing. "Good Heavens!" he
+thought; "I hope Beatrice doesn't think I'm paying her
+compliments!" The incident was slight, but it brought a
+new and disturbing element into their relation. Indeed,
+in that one little moment they ceased to remain boy and
+girl in their attitude toward one another, and became man
+and woman. They met often enough on the old terms of
+frankness and intimacy, but sex interest and suspicion
+always lurked in the background, ready to burst out and
+break up things at any moment.</p>
+
+<p>The spring wore on; Commencement arrived; James
+was graduated. Aunt Miriam, the James Wimbournes
+and numerous youthful James Wimbournes came to stay
+with Aunt Selina and see him graduate. Beatrice was also
+there and Harry was of course on hand. He took little
+part in the graduation festivities and amused himself
+chiefly by showing his two eldest male cousins, Oswald and
+Jack, the sights of the university and incidentally making
+them look forward with a healthy dread to the day when
+as freshmen first they would come to Yale.</p>
+
+<p>"This is the swimming-pool," he would tell them; "it<span class="pagenum">[119]</span>
+doesn't look very big now, does it? Perhaps not! But it
+<i>seems</i> pretty big, I can tell you, when the sophomores
+dump you in there, in the pitch dark, and tell you it's
+half a mile to shore and you've got to swim! And you
+have to scramble out as best you can. <i>They</i> won't help
+you!"</p>
+
+<p>"They don't do that to <i>every</i> freshman, though, do
+they?" hopefully inquired Oswald, a nice, plump, yellow-haired,
+wide-eyed youth of fourteen or so, the image of his
+mother.</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, Muffins, indeed they do, every one, whether they
+can swim or not," replied Harry seriously. (Oswald was
+called Muffins because he was considered by his playmates
+to look like one. This reason usually did not satisfy older
+people, but after all, they did not know him as well as
+those of his own age, and had no kick coming, at all.)</p>
+
+<p>"I say, Harry, it's awfully decent of you to tell us all
+these things beforehand, so that we shall be warned when
+the time comes!" This from Jack, who was twelve and
+dark and looked like his father.</p>
+
+<p>"Harold Wimbourne, what on earth have you been telling
+those children about Yale College?" was Aunt Cecilia's
+indignant comment on his powers of fiction. "Neither of
+them slept a wink last night, for thinking about what the
+sophomores would do to them; and Jack asked me quite
+seriously if he thought his father would mind much if he
+went to Harvard instead, because he didn't think he could
+ever swim well enough to live through his freshman year!
+You ought to be ashamed of yourself!"</p>
+
+<p>Harry laughed unfeelingly, and refused to abate one jot
+of the horrors of hazing. He even wished it were all true,
+that these innocent and happy boys might have to go through
+with it all, that some one would ever be miserable in college
+beside himself. He scarcely spoke to James during the last
+few days, though James remained cordial and cheery
+enough toward him. But he was unnaturally cordial and
+forbearing, and that drove Harry into despair, especially
+as there was copious reason why James, under normal conditions,
+should be neither cordial nor forbearing. Harry
+had, a fortnight or so before Commencement, just after
+training was broken up, taken part in one of those engagements
+with the forces of law and order with which undergraduates
+are wont to relieve the monotony of their humdrum<span class="pagenum">[120]</span>
+existence. First there had been strong drink, and
+plenty of it, after which came a period of vague but delightful
+irresponsibility, culminating in much broken glass,
+a clash with policemen and two or three arrests.</p>
+
+<p>Harry had escaped this latter ignominy, but as his name
+enjoyed equal publicity with those of the more unfortunate
+revelers, it did him little good. Nothing could possibly
+be less to the liking of such a person as James, as
+Harry realized perfectly at the time. He participated in
+the affair neither because he liked strong drink nor because
+he disliked policemen, but chiefly with a sort of desperate
+desire to force James' hand, to make his brother take him
+severely to task and end their mutual coolness in one rousing
+scene of recrimination and forgiveness.</p>
+
+<p>But no such thing happened; James did not make the
+slightest reference to the business! Harry also remained
+silent on the subject, at first because of his amazement,
+then out of obstinacy, and finally because he was genuinely
+hurt. If James preferred that they should be strangers
+to each other, strangers they should be. Meanwhile James
+remained silent, of course, not because he did not take
+enough interest in his brother, but because he took too
+much. He refrained from mentioning the row because he
+was afraid that a discussion of it would merely bring on
+another quarrel, which he wished of all things to avoid.</p>
+
+<p>So the two brothers bade good-by to each other for the
+summer in misunderstanding and mistrust, though their
+outward behavior was cordial and brotherly enough.
+James, who was starting almost immediately for the West,
+smiled as he shook the hand of his brother, who was going
+abroad for the holidays and said, "Well, so long; look out
+for yourself and don't take any wooden money." Harry,
+also smiling, replied in the same vein; but the smile died
+on his lips and the words turned to gall in his mouth as
+he thought what a bitter travesty this was of former partings,
+when their gaiety was either natural or intended to
+hide the sorrow of parting, and not, as now, wholly forced
+and affected to conceal the relief that each could not but
+feel in being far from the other.</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[121]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_XII">CHAPTER XII</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">AN ACT OF GOD</p>
+
+<p>It was five o'clock in the afternoon and five degrees
+above zero. It was also very windy, which made it
+seem colder to everybody except the thermometer; and as
+the thermometer alone exhibited signs of being able to
+stand a temperature of twenty or thirty or even forty degrees
+colder without suffering disagreeable consequences,
+that seemed rather unfair. For the wind, which was
+blowing not in hysterical gusts but in the calm, relentless,
+all-day-and-all-night, forty-to sixty-mile gale that you only
+get west of the Great Lakes, <i>did</i> make it colder; there was
+no doubt about that. Else why did every one keep out of
+it as much as possible; walk on the protected side of the
+street, seek shelter in doorways while waiting for trolley
+cars, and so forth? Of course the wind made you colder;
+so much colder that when you were sheltered from it, if
+only for a moment, you felt comparatively warm, though
+it was still five degrees above zero. Unless, that is, you
+happened to be standing over one of those grated openings
+in the sidewalk that belched forth their welcome though
+inexplicable gusts of warm air into the outer world; if you
+could get a place over one of those&mdash;gee, but you were the
+lucky guy!</p>
+
+<p>That was the way you phrased it, at any rate, if you happened
+to be twelve years old and a newsboy with an income
+of&mdash;well, say thirty dollars a year, if that sounds sufficiently
+insufficient to provide anything approaching decent
+clothes, decent food and a decent place to live. If not,
+make it as little as you like. The point is that the annual
+income of a certain ten-year-old newsboy, by name of
+Stodger McClintock, was preeminently, magnificently insufficient
+to provide any of those commodities. As a consequence
+of which, Stodger was cold. As another consequence
+of which Stodger, the gay, the debonair, the unemotional,
+the anything but tearfully inclined, was very
+nearly in tears. People do actually suffer from the cold
+occasionally, even in this effete and over-protected age,<span class="pagenum">[122]</span>
+and Stodger was suffering. The volcanic opening was all
+very well, but he could not stay there long. And the prospects
+for the night were bad, and bad even for supper....</p>
+
+<p>There were tears in James' eyes also as he hurried along
+from work, but they were entirely due to the wind. As
+soon as he perceived Stodger, however, who dashed out at
+him with the customary "Here's yer paper, mister!" at
+an unexpected place in the side street instead of at the
+corner as per custom, he realized that his (Stodger's) tears
+were not entirely due to the wind.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, Stodger! What are you doing down here?" he
+cried cheerfully.</p>
+
+<p>"Trine t' git woim." Stodger's diction at best was imperfect
+and it was now further impeded by a certain nasal
+fluency, the joint result of the cold and contemplation of
+domestic imperfections. But James understood, perfectly
+well.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, Stodger, it is cold, I'll have to grant you that!"
+he rejoined, and instituted fumbling operations into the
+pocket where he kept his loose silver. "Give me a <i>Star</i>
+and a <i>Sun</i> and a <i>Mercury</i>, too, will you? This is no time
+for economy; the announcement of the all-American football
+team is out to-night. Give me one of every paper you
+have!"</p>
+
+<p>Pecuniary transaction ensued, parallel with conversation.</p>
+
+<p>"And how do <i>you</i> like this weather, Stodger?"</p>
+
+<p>"Me? Oh, <i>I</i> don't mind."</p>
+
+<p>"Don't you? Well, I do, I'm afraid. This is just a
+little too cold for my pleasure. But then I'm not a husk,
+like you."</p>
+
+<p>"Well&mdash;" there was concession in Stodger's voice&mdash;"it's
+loike this. Some guys minds it, 'n' then they don't like t'
+unbutton their coats 'n' fork out a penny fer a paper. 'N'
+that makes bum bizniss. See?" Print is miserably inadequate
+to give an idea of Stodger's consonants.</p>
+
+<p>"I see. Stodger, did you ever hear of an act of God?"</p>
+
+<p>"Huh?"</p>
+
+<p>"Well, never mind. A cold snap like this is an act of
+God. Some natural cataclysm, something that can't be
+prevented or even foreseen. Well, sir, opposed as I am to
+indiscriminate giving, I'm going to break a rule this time.
+All bets are off when an act of God comes along. Here's<span class="pagenum">[123]</span>
+half a dollar. Can you get something to eat and keep
+yourself warm over night with that?"</p>
+
+<p>"Sure I kin." Stodger grinned broadly for a second or
+two; then his face clouded. "Aw, naw. Not off you. I
+couldn't take that off you." He meant that only fools
+gave away money, and he did not want to put James in
+that category.</p>
+
+<p>"Why not?" James' smile, his unruffled good-humor,
+had their effect. Surely a god that smiled and looked like
+that could not be quite a fool, even if he gave away money.
+"Now stop your guff; take the cash and cut along. So
+long!... That was my trolley, dash it; you and your
+confounded scruples have made me miss my car, Stodger!... Well,
+let's take a look at the all-American football
+team. Stoddard of Harvard, Brown of the Army, Steele
+of Michigan...." He ran his eye down the list till interrupted
+by a sharp exclamation from his friend.</p>
+
+<p>"Gee, but he's a bum choice!"</p>
+
+<p>"Who?"</p>
+
+<p>"Steele."</p>
+
+<p>"Steele? Oh, I'm not so sure. He's death on running
+back punts...."</p>
+
+<p>"Aw, he <i>is</i> not! I tell yer, he couldn't hang onto a punt
+if 'twas handed to him on flypaper by a dago in a dress
+suit, let alone run with it! My ole gran'mudder c'n run
+better'n him, any day!" Domestic troubles being for the
+nonce in abeyance Stodger was in a mood to let his tongue
+run free on a favorite topic.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, we'll have to put your grandmother in at all-America
+left half next year." Stodger knew as well as
+anybody when he was being laughed at, and held his peace.
+"I didn't know you were such a football fan, Stodger."</p>
+
+<p>"Aw, yes. I'm some fan." This without enthusiasm,
+in the bored tone in which one agrees to the statement of
+a self-evident fact.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, I wonder. Stodger, do you think you could
+recognize any all-America player if you saw him on the
+street, in ordinary togs?"</p>
+
+<p>"Sure I could."</p>
+
+<p>"How many years back?"</p>
+
+<p>"T'ree years ... oh, more; four, five years, mebbe!"</p>
+
+<p>"Well, I'm afraid you lose, Stodger!"</p>
+
+<p>"Aw, gwawn! Try me an' see!"<span class="pagenum">[124]</span></p>
+
+<p>"You've lost already, I tell you. You've been talking
+to an all-America player for the last ten minutes and never
+knew it!"</p>
+
+<p>"Aw, wotcha trine t' hand me! Run along 'n' tell it to
+the cop on the corner! Tell it to me gran'mudder, if you
+like; <i>she</i>'ll believe yer! You can't slip one like that on
+<i>me</i>, I tell yer!" Stodger's contempt was magnificent, but
+he rather marred the effect of it by adding suspiciously
+"Wotcheer?" which amounted to a confession that he
+might be wrong, after all.</p>
+
+<p>"Two years ago. Take a good look now, Stodger; see if
+you can't recognize me." James turned so that the sunset
+glow fell more strongly on his face. Stodger looked
+with all his eyes, but remained unconvinced.</p>
+
+<p>"Line, er back?" he inquired.</p>
+
+<p>"Back."</p>
+
+<p>"I gotcha now! Wimboine! Wimboine! Right half!
+Yale!" But experience had taught him that such dreams
+usually fade, and he went on, disappointed: "Aw, naw.
+Can't slip <i>that</i> on me. You're not that Wimboine. You
+look a little bit like him, but you're not <i>that</i> Wimboine.
+Brudder, p'raps. <i>You're</i> no football player."</p>
+
+<p>"Why not?"</p>
+
+<p>"Too thin. <i>You</i> c'd never tear through the line th' way
+<i>that</i> feller did."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, rot; we'll end this, here and now." James
+fumbled at length beneath his fur coat and produced the
+end of a watch-chain on which dangled a little gold football
+with his name, that of his college and the date of his
+achievement on it. Stodger, convinced, simply stared. It
+was as though Jupiter had stepped right down from
+Olympus. James, with a smile at his consternation, resumed
+his paper for the last minute or two before his car
+arrived.</p>
+
+<p>"Say, mister! Mister Wimboine! You got my tail
+twisted that time, all right! I'm a goat, I'm a simp, I'm
+a boob! You got my number! Call me wotch like!"</p>
+
+<p>"All right, Stodger, I will." James spoke and smiled
+through his reading. He had almost ceased to think of
+Stodger, who was more entertaining when incredulous, and
+was reading merely to kill time till his car arrived.
+Stodger's tongue was still wagging:&mdash;</p>
+
+<p>"Say, dey was a guy useter live down Chicago called<span class="pagenum">[125]</span>
+Schmidt&mdash;Slugger Schmidt, that was a cracker jack&mdash;middle-weight&mdash;ever
+hear of him? I knew him, oncet ...
+he had a little practise bout wid Riley th' other night&mdash;you
+know, Hurrican Riley?&mdash;and laid him out in t'ree
+roun's.... Say, mister, there goes yer car! That's the
+Poik Street car went!"</p>
+
+<p>"What? Oh, did it? Never mind; I'm going to walk."
+James was off; off almost before the words were out of his
+mouth, and Stodger, struck by the sudden curtness of his
+tone was afraid he had outraged the feelings of the god.
+Mister Wimboine had clearly been deeply displeased about
+something, and Stodger was sure it must have been something
+more than the all-America football team.</p>
+
+<p>Of course Stodger was not really responsible for James'
+displeasure and his sudden determination to walk the
+three miles that lay between him and his club and dinner,
+any more than was the composition of the all-America football
+team. It was something much more serious; something
+that made bodily exercise imperative lest cerebration
+around and around one little particular point should make
+him dizzy. For it was a very small thing that cerebration
+was busy on, even if it did represent a great deal to James;
+only a tiny paragraph at the bottom of the first page of
+one of the evening papers. The single headline had first
+caught his eye:&mdash;"Rates Heartache at $40,000," and then
+with unbelieving eyes he read on: "New Haven, Conn.,
+Dec. 8. Myrtle Mowbray, a manicure living in this city,
+has filed a suit of breach of promise of marriage for
+$40,000 in the Superior Court here against Harold Wimbourne,
+a student in Yale University. Mr. Wimbourne is
+a member of an old and prominent New Haven family.
+He is a senior in the academic department."</p>
+
+<p>A sort of mental and emotional nausea overcame James as
+the meaning of those lines sank into his brain. The vulgar,
+degrading cynicism of the headline! Breach of promise,
+scandal, newspaper publicity&mdash;that was the sort of thing
+that happened to other people, not to one's self. Such
+things simply did not occur in families one knew, much less
+in families by the name of Wimbourne. James had always
+thought of that name as apart, aloof from such things, exempt
+from all undesirable publicity. His family pride
+was none the less strong for being so unconscious, so dormant;
+now that it was outraged it flamed forth in a scorching
+blaze.<span class="pagenum">[126]</span></p>
+
+<p>So loathing gave way to anger, and anger lasted a full
+mile and a half. It would have lasted longer if it had
+been concentrated on one person or thing, instead of
+directed against several persons, several things, several
+sets of circumstances, the order of things in general. For
+James was not angry at Harry alone; even he realized that
+before the mile and a half were up. He was angry at him
+at first, but that soon passed off somewhat; his anger
+seemed even to be seeking other objects, unconsciously&mdash;the
+Mowbray woman, Uncle James, himself, Yale University,
+the whole nature of man.</p>
+
+<p>But cerebration had a chance to get in a good deal of its
+fell work during those three miles. As he swung open the
+front door of the club and passed into the main lobby, with
+its teeming confusion of electric lights and bellboys, he
+was conscious of nothing but a quiet, deep, corroding disgust
+that seemed to be as old as all time. It seemed as if
+he had known of this disgrace for years; had almost had
+time to outlive it, in fact. His first impulse was to go into
+the bar and annex himself to one of the cheerful groups
+that would be congregating there at this hour, and turn his
+mind to something else. But almost immediately he remembered
+that practically every one there would also have
+read the evening paper, and he shuddered at the thought
+of their pitying glances.</p>
+
+<p>Automatically following his daily custom he cheeked his
+coat and hat at the cloak room and collected his mail from
+his post-box. Then he went straight to the one room in the
+club where he thought he was likely to be alone; a small
+reading-room usually popular in the afternoon but deserted
+by early evening. He found it empty, as he had expected.
+With a sigh of relief he turned out all the electric
+lights and threw himself on a couch in front of the open
+wood fire&mdash;a graceful though unnecessary compliment on
+the part of the club management to meteorological conditions.</p>
+
+<p>But unluckily his glance fell on the unopened letters
+he still held in his hand, and immediately his trouble was
+on him again. One of them he recognized as coming from
+his Uncle James and the other, bearing the post-mark of
+New Haven, was from Beatrice. With a slight groan of
+combined resignation and disgust he tore open his uncle's
+letter and read it by the flickering light of the fire.<span class="pagenum">[127]</span></p>
+
+<blockquote><p>Dear James:<br />
+Your young brother has made more of a mess of it
+than we hoped would be the case. The Mowbray woman
+has brought suit for $40,000, and is likely to get it, or a
+good part of it, according to Raynham, whom I saw about
+the business yesterday. She has letters and a spoken promise
+in the presence of witnesses. We have nothing except
+the knowledge that Harry was drunk when he wrote the
+letters and drunk when he spoke the words, which is not
+much comfort. Still, Raynham thinks she can be made
+to settle out of court, especially if we take our time. We
+have got to show her first that the world will not come to
+an end because a Wimbourne has been mixed up with a
+woman&mdash;which it won't. It will be a matter, Raynham
+thinks, of $15,000 at least; probably more.</p>
+
+<p>"What is going to become of the boy? Have you any
+influence over him? If not, who has? It is about time
+somebody exerted some on him, other than bad. He has
+much to fight against.</p>
+
+<p>Your aunt sends her love. Your affect. uncle,</p>
+
+<p class="author"><span class="smcap">James Wimbourne</span>.</p>
+</blockquote>
+
+<p>In spite of his fatigue and his disgust, James smiled as
+he finished the letter. It was so characteristic of Uncle
+James; the most conventional sentences, the ones that
+seemed to mean least, really meant the most. "Your aunt
+sends her love"; only a person who knew Uncle James
+could appreciate the consciously suppressed humor of that
+phrase. As if Aunt Cecilia were not in such a vortex of
+conflicting emotions over the affair that such a conventional
+message would not be as far from her as Bagdad! "He
+has much to fight against"; Harry had much to fight
+against; Uncle James knew what, and he knew that James
+also knew. Connotative meanings like these more than
+atoned for the unflinching frankness of certain other
+phrases.</p>
+
+<p>On the whole, James felt better for having read the
+letter, and opened Beatrice's with a lighter heart.</p>
+
+<blockquote><p>Dear James; (he read)</p>
+
+<p>Jack Trotwood has just been here and told me that
+that unspeakable woman is actually going to sue Harry for
+breach of promise. I tried to get him to tell more, but he<span class="pagenum">[128]</span>
+said that that was all he had been able to get out of Harry.
+It's too awful! You can imagine what a time I've been
+through, seeing him at least once a week and not being
+able to say a word about the whole business. I've had to
+depend on Jack Trotwood for all my information, and
+naturally he hasn't wanted to say much. Do you mean to
+say Harry hasn't written you all this term? I cannot understand
+it at all.</p>
+
+<p>Aunt Selina seems quite cut up about it, and wishes
+you were here. 'Tell James to come,' she said when I told
+her I would write you. I must confess, though, that I
+don't see what good you could do&mdash;now. Of course, terrible
+as this suit is, it does relieve things in one way, at
+least. Once we're quite sure it's merely money she's after,
+it doesn't seem quite so bad. I even think it is better now
+than it was early in the autumn, when we thought he was
+actually fond of her.</p>
+
+<p>There is no other news to give you; as you can imagine,
+we have not been thinking of much else. Poor Harry, how
+sorry I am for him! How much I wish I could help him,
+and how little I can do!</p>
+
+<p class="author1">
+As ever yours,</p>
+
+<p class="author smcap">Beatrice.</p>
+</blockquote>
+
+<p>This letter was less comforting than the other. Beatrice's
+words seemed to James to carry a veiled reproach
+with them; to implicate him much more closely in Harry's
+disgrace than he had as yet thought of implicating himself.
+"I don't see what good you could do&mdash;now;" "better
+now than it was in the early autumn&mdash;" such sentences
+could not but have their sting for the sensitive mind, and
+James was sensitive when Harry was concerned, and even
+more so when Beatrice was.</p>
+
+<p>Had he been negligent in regard to Harry? Oh, yes,
+he was perfectly willing to admit that he had, now that he
+came to think it over, though he would rather have had
+anybody other than Beatrice point out the fact to him&mdash;and
+that, doubtless, was because a comment from Beatrice
+would have twice the force of the same comment uttered
+by any one else. He had never really put himself out for
+Harry in any way, since the days when England seemed
+too far for him to venture to discover what the years were<span class="pagenum">[129]</span>
+making of him. In the critical period of his senior and
+Harry's sophomore year he had shown himself entirely incapable
+of giving the friendship and sympathy and guidance
+that were needed. Jack Trotwood, and not he himself,
+had been Harry's best friend, in every sense of the
+phrase, for three years and more. And after graduation,
+he had come to Minneapolis.</p>
+
+<p>Then this degrading affair with the manicure. James
+had heard of that first through Beatrice, for Harry's letters,
+which had arrived at regular, though rather long, intervals,
+had ceased abruptly in September, at the beginning
+of the college year. That had been almost a relief
+to James. Harry's letters had been calculated to widen
+rather than bridge the gulf between them. They had been
+amusing and always cleverly written. A letter written on
+the previous Tap Day, dated conspicuously "Thursday,
+May 18, 7 <span class="smcap">P.M.</span>" (two hours after Harry had failed to
+receive an election to any senior society) had been a perfect
+masterpiece of omission. It ran pleasantly along on
+the weather, the outward appearance of the university,
+sundry little incidents of no importance or interest, the
+economic condition of the country&mdash;everything except Tap
+Day, himself, anything that would interest James. This
+letter had irritated James beyond all expression, yet at
+the same time he admired it for what it was worth, and
+hated himself for admiring it.</p>
+
+<p>And so, as he was obliged to learn from other sources of
+Harry's missing a senior society, so he was dependent on
+others for all his information <i>in re</i> Myrtle Mowbray. In
+October Beatrice had written him that Harry had been
+seen much in the society of the woman, who conducted her
+business in connection with a barber shop situated conveniently
+for the patronage of the student body. Jack
+Trotwood had also written, somewhat timidly, to the same
+effect, evidently much perplexed about where his truest
+duty to Harry lay. Apparently there had been motor
+parties to neighboring country inns, more or less conspicuous
+carryings-on in restaurants about town, and so
+forth. Such tidings became more and more acute for a
+month, and then ceased. There was reason for hoping that
+the nonsense was all over. Then the thunderbolt of to-day.<span class="pagenum">[130]</span></p>
+
+<p>James had not really been much worried, before to-day.
+He had caught a glimpse of "the Mowbray woman," as he
+always thought of her, one day in the previous June, while
+in New Haven for Commencement. He had been strolling
+along Chapel Street with a group of classmates, and one
+of them called his attention to a female form emerging
+from a shop door, giving in a discreet undertone a brief
+explanation of her celebrity, ending with a vivid word of
+commendation&mdash;"Some fluff." James looked, and saw a
+pretty face. It had been but a fraction of a second, and
+the face was turned away from him; but it was enough
+to leave quite a lasting impression on his mind&mdash;an impression
+that had not been without its effect on his reception
+of the news of Harry's infatuation. A pretty face!
+Well, when all was said and done, Harry had not been the
+first man of his acquaintance to become enamored of a
+pretty face&mdash;and get over it. He did not approve of the
+alleged infatuation; the thought of it gave him considerable
+uneasiness. But, helped out by the impression, his
+optimistic temperament had battled with the uneasiness
+and in the end overcome it; prevented it, certainly, from
+growing into anything like anxiety, anything that would
+necessitate drastic and disturbing measures, such as pulling
+up stakes, for instance, and hurrying New Haven-ward.... Oh,
+how loathsomely lazy and indifferent he
+had been, now that he looked back on it all!</p>
+
+<p>A pretty face! The memory of it was still sharply out-lined
+on the back of James' brain and drove introspection
+and self-recrimination into momentary abeyance. A clear,
+slightly olive complexion, rising to a faint pink on the
+cheeks&mdash;artificial? Not as he remembered it; there was no
+suggestion of the chorus-girl&mdash;sharply-drawn eyebrows and
+dark hair. Above, a hat of some sort; below, a suit, preferably
+of dark blue serge. The impression had been recurrent
+in James' mind during these past months; not
+soon after it was received, in the summer; since then.
+There was something irritating and tantalizing about this
+circumstance; it was as though the impression had been
+strengthened by a second view. Where had he seen that
+face again, if at all? Yes, he had seen it, somewhere; he
+was almost certain of it. He was absolutely certain of it;
+he could remember everything&mdash;except the time and place.
+Which after all were important adjuncts to definite recollection&mdash;!<span class="pagenum">[131]</span>
+No, he would not laugh himself out of it;
+he was sure. He would remember all about it some time
+when he least expected it.</p>
+
+<p>He left it at that, and listlessly lay at full length watching
+the fire and allowing his thoughts to wander from the
+all-absorbing topic and its octopus-like ramifications. The
+fire was fascinating to watch; he loved open fires and
+wished they would have one in this room every evening.
+It would be almost like a home to come back to, after work.
+It was particularly pleasant to watch, like this, in an
+otherwise dark room, as it cast its intermittent flare on
+the walls and furniture. It brought out the rich warm
+tones in the brown leather of the chairs and the oak of the
+wainscot, and picked out small particles of gilt here and
+there in the ceiling decoration, and set them twinkling back
+in a cheerful, drowsy way. From the dim outside world
+beyond the open door came occasional sounds of club life;
+the distant clatter of crockery, the swish of a passing
+elevator, a voice finding fault with a club servant. James
+listened to them at first, in a half-amused, idle sort of
+way; then gradually they faded from his consciousness
+and he was aware of nothing but the fire and its flickering
+yellow light.</p>
+
+<p>He watched the fire intently, absorbedly, with the lazy
+concentration with which a tired brain often fastens itself
+on some physical object, as though to crowd out other
+thoughts clamoring for admittance. The fire was beginning
+to burn low now, with flames that never rose more
+than a few inches above the logs. Every few moments
+a small quantity of half-burnt wood dropped off and fell
+to the glowing bed of coals beneath, and the flames broke
+out afresh in the place it fell from. James watched this
+process with a growing sense of expectancy; he seemed to
+be always waiting, waiting for the next fall; yet when the
+next fall came he was still waiting.... Was it only the
+fall of the coals that he was waiting for? It must be
+something else, something that had nothing to do with
+the fire at all; something much more important; something
+that he longed not to have come, yet, and at the same
+time wished were over.... He seemed now not to be lying
+at full length, but sitting on the broad arm of a chair.
+The fire-light's glow fell no longer on leather and oak,
+but on old flowered chintz and mahogany.... Now he was<span class="pagenum">[132]</span>
+sitting no longer; he was bending over&mdash;bending low over
+something white; turning his ear so as to catch certain
+words that some one was uttering in a whisper; words that
+were indelibly burnt on his brain; words that were as inseparable
+from his being as life....</p>
+
+<p>Then in an instant the room, the fire, everything vanished;
+and in their place, filling his whole consciousness&mdash;that
+face! He knew it perfectly now, exactly when,
+where, all about it; no room for mistake or doubt any
+more! He started upright on the couch; his whole world
+seemed suddenly illumined by a blinding flash of light.
+In another instant he was aware that somebody had turned
+on the electric light, and of a face staring quizzically into
+his. He heard a voice.</p>
+
+<p>"Hello, you all alone in here, Wimbourne? You must
+be fond of the dark!&mdash;What are you looking so all-fired
+pleased about, I wonder?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh&mdash;Laffan! How are you?... Nothing much; I
+just thought of something, that's all."</p>
+
+<p>"Congratulations on your thoughts. I'm looking for
+some one to dine with; I suppose you've eaten? It's
+late&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Whew&mdash;nearly eight! No, I've not eaten; shall we
+go up together?"</p>
+
+<p>They started to leave the room, but James stopped abruptly
+in the doorway, suddenly practical, master of himself,
+of the whole situation.</p>
+
+<p>"I say, Laffan, you're a lawyer, aren't you?"</p>
+
+<p>"I attempt to be."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, I want to consult you, professionally, if you'll
+let me. Consider me a client! Now, what I want to know
+is this; suppose a&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, rot, man&mdash;not on an empty stomach! Come along
+upstairs; you can tell me all about it while you eat!"</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[133]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_XIII">CHAPTER XIII</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">SARDOU</p>
+
+<p>About a week later James went to the head of his
+firm, the classmate's father who had offered him his
+position, and asked for a few days' leave of absence.</p>
+
+<p>"Why didn't you go to Smith?" said his employer,
+naming the head of the department in which James was
+working.</p>
+
+<p>"I didn't think he'd let me off without your leave, sir."</p>
+
+<p>"Hm.... You must go, must you?"</p>
+
+<p>"I'm afraid I must. Indeed, I'm bound to say, sir,
+that I shall go, leave or no leave."</p>
+
+<p>"Hm. Well, you can go; but if you take more than
+half a week it'll have to come off your annual vacation."</p>
+
+<p>"Thank you, sir, I shan't need more than that," said
+James and the interview was closed. No word was spoken
+of the reason for James' departure. Jonathan McClellan,
+founder and owner of the McClellan Automobile Company,
+knew a thing or two beside how to run an automobile business.
+He also read the papers.</p>
+
+<p>That was on a Thursday. In the course of the evening
+James conducted an interview with his friend Laffan and
+at midnight or thereabouts he took train for Chicago. He
+proceeded next day to New York, and thence, on Saturday,
+to New Haven, arriving there early in the afternoon.</p>
+
+<p>He went straight from the station to the law offices of
+Messrs. Raynham and Rummidge and remained there upwards
+of half an hour. Every sign of satisfaction was
+visible on his face as he emerged, but Raynham, who escorted
+him to the outer door, seemed not nearly so well
+pleased.</p>
+
+<p>"I wish you'd change your mind, even now, and leave
+it to us," he said, just loud enough for the stenographer in
+the outer office not to hear.</p>
+
+<p>"Plain enough sailing, now," replied James, smiling encouragingly.
+"I don't think you need to worry."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, if you get into trouble, don't lose your head or<span class="pagenum">[134]</span>
+your temper, or try to bluff. Just say you'll leave the rest
+to your lawyers, and get out!"</p>
+
+<p>James proceeded up Chapel Street in excellent spirits.
+A light snow was falling, melting on the pavements but
+covering the grassy expanse of the Green with a soft white
+blanket, and bringing each gaunt black branch of the elm
+trees into strong relief. James walked on the Green side
+of the street, so as to avoid the greetings of possible acquaintances,
+and kept his eyes on the broad square. He
+noticed that some elm trees had been clipped and others
+felled since he had last been in town; he was sorry to see
+them go and wished the authorities could find some way of
+preserving them better....</p>
+
+<p>He walked unhesitatingly into the shop and, disregarding
+the obsequious gestures of the line of barbers, went straight
+to the very end, where he knew he would find her, with
+her glass-topped table and her instruments and her disgusting
+little basin.... She was there, but a broad black
+back obtruded itself in front of her.</p>
+
+<p>"One moment," she said, looking up and smiling.</p>
+
+<p>James retreated a few steps to a row of chairs placed
+there for the use of the expectant. He sat down, and cursed
+himself for a fool. What business had he here? Why
+hadn't he left it all to Raynham, like a sensible person?
+He knew he would mess it all now, in spite of everything;
+he remembered stories of commanders who had been ousted
+out of impregnable positions by the mere confident attitude
+of their opponents. It was her appearance, her manner,
+her faultless smile, that unnerved him. It was, as he mentally
+phrased it to himself, because she looked "so damned
+refined." Never had he dreamed it would be as bad as
+this.</p>
+
+<p>The black back shuffled inchoately out of his vision; his
+moment had come. He walked forward.</p>
+
+<p>"You are Miss Mowbray, are you not?" he asked, speaking
+slowly and steadying his voice with difficulty.</p>
+
+<p>"Yes?"</p>
+
+<p>"My name is Wimbourne. I think you know my brother.... I
+would like to talk to you, if I might. When will
+you be at liberty?"</p>
+
+<p>"Why shouldn't we talk right here?" she said cheerfully.
+"If you'll sit down there.... You had better let
+me tend to your nails&mdash;they need it."</p>
+
+<p>"Very well." James sat down. He felt his courage returning;<span class="pagenum">[135]</span>
+her self-possession stimulated him. Not one
+shadow of a change of expression had passed over her face
+when he told her he was Harry's brother; her manner remained
+the perfection of professional cordiality. Well, if
+she could show nerve, he could, too.</p>
+
+<p>She filled her bowl with warm water and arranged her
+instruments with perfect composure. When she was ready
+James surrendered his right hand.</p>
+
+<p>"Miss Mowbray," he began at length, "as I understand
+the matter, you are suing my brother for breach of promise.
+Is that right?"</p>
+
+<p>"It is."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, I'm sorry. It's a bad business. Bad for you as
+well as for him, because you can't possibly win. Now,
+Miss Mowbray, I will be frank with you. You are not going
+to get that forty thousand dollars&mdash;your suit will not
+even get into court. I know that, but I don't want to
+have to go into the reasons why. I don't want scenes, I
+hate them; I want to make this interview as easy and as
+short as possible, so I will open it with an offer. I will
+give you five hundred dollars if you will agree to withdraw
+your suit and clear out of town, within a week. Do
+you accept?"</p>
+
+<p>"I do not." Her smile was more than cordial now, there
+was pity in it. "Why do you suppose I took the trouble to
+sue for forty thousand dollars, if I would be content with
+five hundred, Mr. Wimbourne?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, must we go into arguments? Why can't you
+simply take my word for it that your suit is impossible,
+and close with me? Five hundred dollars&mdash;think what it
+means! It would pay all your costs and leave you enough
+to start in with somewhere else."</p>
+
+<p>"The sum is just eighty times too small."</p>
+
+<p>"You won't, then? Think it over a little! I'll leave
+the offer open for five minutes; you needn't answer definitely
+till then."</p>
+
+<p>James was thoroughly sure of himself and at ease now;
+he smiled to himself with a certain grim pleasure at his
+little touch of melodrama, reminiscent of&mdash;what? Sardou?
+A common trick, of course, but never without
+its effect. He ceased thinking about it, and watched the
+clock. Presently he was aware that his companion, always
+busy with her scraping and cleaning and rubbing, was
+speaking in a low, calm voice.<span class="pagenum">[136]</span></p>
+
+<p>"No, Mr. Wimbourne, I am not quite the fool you take
+me for, I'm afraid. You may not know it, but your brother
+has treated me very badly. He deserves to be punished.
+A man cannot make a fool of a woman, as he has of me,
+and get off scot free. There is such a thing as law and
+justice for those that are abused, and I have been abused.
+I should be very silly now if I did not go on and take all
+that is coming to me. I shall only be taking my right,
+Mr. Wimbourne; remember that. Fun is all very well if
+it is innocent fun; but when it hurts other people it has to
+be paid for."</p>
+
+<p>"The five minutes are up," said James; "but I will
+willingly extend the time if there is any chance of your
+reconsidering. What do you think?"</p>
+
+<p>No answer. James watched her calm face, with its
+pleasing and well-chiseled features, enlivened now by only
+the merest suggestion of a smile that was not really there,
+but still seemed latent, ready for instant use if called upon.
+About the mouth hung a shade of impatience, of obstinacy;
+anything else? No, assuredly no, search as he would. She
+was extraordinary!</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, dear," he said with a gentle sigh, "you will go in
+for all the unpleasantness, I'm afraid.... Miss Mowbray,
+you have no right to sue my brother for breach of promise.
+You have been acting under false pretenses to him from the
+first. You were married to a man called Edward Jennings,
+in the city of Minneapolis, on the 3rd of last September."</p>
+
+<p>"You have proofs, no doubt?" The tone was sharp
+and defiant, the smile scornful and satirical, but she did
+blench&mdash;no doubt of it. James' heart leaped within him.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes&mdash;lots, right here in my breast pocket. Tiresome
+things, but lawyers love them. If you will release my right
+hand for a moment&mdash;" He chose to smile ingratiatingly
+at her, and it gave him a little thrill of revenge to observe
+how obviously forced her answering smile was. She was
+not proof against her own weapons. But his triumph faded
+almost immediately, and pity took its place. Poor thing,
+what a ridiculous game she had been playing! How could
+it possibly succeed? Could she not have known that some
+one who knew of her marriage would be sure to turn up at
+the wrong moment and spoil the whole affair? She looked
+so small, so defenseless, so crumpled as she sat there, waiting
+for him to produce his proofs; surely she was never<span class="pagenum">[137]</span>
+made for this sort of a career! Then her smiles of a little
+while ago came back to him, and he reflected that perhaps
+she was, after all.</p>
+
+<p>"First, here is a little history of your career. You were
+born in Minneapolis, June 16, 188-. At the age of sixteen
+you went to New York City, where you entered the
+theatrical profession. For some years you were on the
+vaudeville stage, playing occasionally in New York, but
+mostly on the road. Your stage name was Rosa Montagu.
+You left the profession about three years ago, and have
+been engaged in this place as manicure for a little less than
+two years. You resumed the name of Myrtle Mowbray,
+which as far as I can make out is your own, on leaving the
+stage, but you were married, last September, under your
+stage name. Here is a copy of your marriage lines, sworn
+to by the Minneapolis License Bureau. Here is a photograph
+of you as Rosa Montagu...."
+"Suppose you let me finish manicuring your hands, Mr.
+Wimbourne." James replaced the papers in his pocket and
+his hand on the glass-topped table, and professional duties
+were resumed. They continued in silence for some time;
+neither party really had much to say now. It occurred
+to James that even now she might be trying to take him in
+by her indifference, to "bluff" him; but a careful study
+of her face dispelled the idea. He admired her nerve now
+no less than before.</p>
+
+<p>"Are you satisfied, Miss Mowbray?" he asked at length.</p>
+
+<p>"No. I'm beaten, though." James liked the reply immensely;
+liked, also, the manner in which it was given&mdash;hardly
+betraying anything more than good-humored disgust.</p>
+
+<p>"When can I see you again to-day or to-morrow?" he
+asked again after a short pause. "There will be papers
+to sign, and that sort of thing."</p>
+
+<p>"Is it possible that Mr. Raynham sent you out without
+a written statement for me to sign in your pocket?" she
+rejoined, looking fearlessly up at him.</p>
+
+<p>"No&mdash;that is&mdash;yes, he did." Of course he had not, but
+James was already planning a little <i>coup</i> of his own not
+included in Mr. Raynham's arrangements.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, could you come back here this evening? Toward
+ten? We close then, on Saturdays."</p>
+
+<p>"Very well."<span class="pagenum">[138]</span></p>
+
+<p>Both were silent for some time. At last, when the manicuring
+was almost completed, James said with a sudden
+burst of friendly curiosity:</p>
+
+<p>"Honestly, Miss Mowbray, why did you do it? Get married
+to him first, I mean."</p>
+
+<p>She looked coldly up at him. "I really don't see why
+I should answer that question, Mr. Wimbourne."</p>
+
+<p>"Of course not. There's not the slightest reason why
+you should answer it, if you don't want to."</p>
+
+<p>She was not proof against his candor or his smile. She
+smiled back, in spite of herself, without rancor or affectation.</p>
+
+<p>"I have an idea that you are quite an unusual young
+man, Mr. Wimbourne. You are, without doubt, the worst
+enemy I have in the world, and yet you give me the impression
+of being a friend. I think I like you better than
+your brother."</p>
+
+<p>James made no reply to this, but only reddened slightly,
+and she went on:</p>
+
+<p>"I married him because I lacked the courage not to. I
+was afraid to burn my bridges behind me. He had been
+wanting me to for a long time, and at the last he became very
+impatient.... It was the only way I could keep him, and
+I dared not let him go. Things had not been going well
+here.... So I went back and married him, on condition
+that it was to be kept an absolute secret. I was determined
+to come out here and try my luck for one more
+year.... Of course I was very sorry that I did it, this
+fall. But I determined to go through with ... the business,
+for there was a big prize at stake."</p>
+
+<p>"And you never knew he had a brother in Minneapolis?"</p>
+
+<p>"No&mdash;he simply told me he had an elder brother in the
+West. I had no suspicion of anything; it seemed perfectly
+safe. How did you find out, anyway, if I may ask?"</p>
+
+<p>"I happened to see you&mdash;perhaps a minute after you
+were married, coming out of the marriage license office,
+with a man. Compromising! You had been pointed out
+to me before, here, so I knew what you looked like. But
+what made you so keen to go through with&mdash;with the business?
+You don't look like that kind, somehow...."</p>
+
+<p>She gave the last finishing touch to his hand and started
+to gather up her belongings before replying. "You don't
+know what it is not to have plenty of money, Mr. Wimbourne,<span class="pagenum">[139]</span>
+or you would not ask that question. You don't
+know what it is to watch other people sailing by in sixty
+horsepower limousines and realize that you would look every
+bit as well there as any of them, and better than most, and
+to realize, above all, that you could make so much more
+out of your wealth than most of them. I am under no delusions
+about myself; I know perfectly well that I'm not a
+manicure type. I have brains, I have good looks, I have
+social possibilities. Only, I happened to be born without
+money or social position, and the handicap is too great.... Well,
+it's all up now. There's no hope for anything
+better now."</p>
+
+<p>The tone in which she spoke these words was so perfectly
+quiet and resigned, so utterly lacking in vulgar desire to
+advertise her woes, that James felt deeply moved. He
+could not think of anything to say to reassure or encourage
+her. Presently he blurted out, desperately:</p>
+
+<p>"You've got a good husband in Edward Jennings, anyway.
+He's a good chap, according to all accounts...."</p>
+
+<p>She smiled, deprecatorily. "He's a nice boy. But he'll
+never make any money."</p>
+
+<p>James made up an excuse to consult Mr. Raynham again,
+and after that walked the snow-covered streets till dinner
+time. His first impulse was to look up Harry, but he discarded
+the idea; he would not see him, Aunt Selina, any
+one, till his task was done, every detail completed. He
+dined alone in an obscure restaurant and with some difficulty
+succeeded in frittering away the time till ten o'clock,
+at which hour he returned to the barber shop on Chapel
+Street.</p>
+
+<p>He proceeded at once to business, taking out two papers
+which he gave to Miss Mowbray to sign. She read and
+signed without comment. When she had finished he said:
+"Would you mind delivering this for me?" and handed her
+an unsealed envelope bearing the simple superscription
+"Mr. Edward Jennings."</p>
+
+<p>Miss Mowbray fingered the envelope indecisively a moment;
+then she opened it and took out the contents.</p>
+
+<p>She rose from her seat and glanced apprehensively at
+James. "I can't&mdash;we&mdash;thank you, but I simply can't accept
+this," she whispered.</p>
+
+<p>"Nobody asked you to do anything, except deliver the
+letter," replied James cheerfully. "I'd like to know what<span class="pagenum">[140]</span>
+business you have opening other people's letters, anyway.
+It isn't nice.&mdash;Wedding present, you know," he went on,
+with a change of voice; "I'm rather hoping to have the
+honor of giving you your first. Please try to make him accept
+it from me, won't you? Good-by!"</p>
+
+<p>He shook her hand quickly and was actually off before
+she had time to offer another word of objection.</p>
+
+<p>He made his way straight across the snowy street to
+Harry's rooms in Vanderbilt Hall. There was no answer
+to his knock, but the door yielded to a turn of the knob&mdash;how
+like Harry to leave it unlocked! The room was dark
+and empty, but he went in and found the embers of a fire
+dying on the hearth. He threw off his hat and overcoat,
+struck a light and looked about for materials with which
+to rebuild the fire.</p>
+
+<p>In a few minutes the logs were blazing merrily before
+him. He turned out the gas, drew up an armchair and
+sat down in front of the fire to wait for Harry.</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[141]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_XIV">CHAPTER XIV</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">UN-ANGLO-SAXON</p>
+
+<p>He came in before long, stamping the snow from his
+boots. In the second or two that passed before he
+spoke, James saw that though he looked haggard and depressed,
+there was no trace of weakness of dissipation about
+his eyes or mouth. Nor did he slink; he blundered in with
+the impetuosity of a schoolboy for whom the world has no
+terrors. For which, though he was shocked to see how
+badly he looked, James was profoundly thankful.</p>
+
+<p>He was aware of Harry's eyes trying to pierce the half-gloom;
+there was a touch of pathos, to James, in his momentary
+bewilderment.</p>
+
+<p>"Hullo, Harry," he said gently.</p>
+
+<p>"James!" The immediate, unconscious look of delight
+that came over Harry's face&mdash;even though it faded to
+something else within the second&mdash;pleased James more than
+anything had pleased him yet. Harry was glad to see him;
+that mattered much more than his almost instant recovery
+of his self-possession, his continuing, in the manner of the
+Harry of two years ago, the Harry of the previous Commencement:
+"Whatever are you doing here now, James?"</p>
+
+<p>"I've got good news for you, Harry," he replied, rising
+and taking hold of the other's hand. "The Mowbray
+woman has withdrawn her suit. It's all right; she's signed
+things, and you have no more to fear from her." He
+dropped Harry's hand and moved off a step, as though to
+give him a chance to take in the news.</p>
+
+<p>There was something rather fine in the simplicity, the
+humility, even of his manner as he did this, that did not
+escape Harry. He was deeply moved; self-possession and
+all it implied fell from him again.</p>
+
+<p>"James, have you done this? What has happened?
+Tell me all about it! You haven't paid her all that money,
+James&mdash;don't tell me you've done that!"</p>
+
+<p>"No, of course I haven't&mdash;there was no need for it. She<span class="pagenum">[142]</span>
+was married out in Minneapolis last September, and I happened
+to get onto the fact&mdash;that's all. She had no business
+to be suing at all."</p>
+
+<p>"And you&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"I came here and told her so, to-day."</p>
+
+<p>James sat down again where he had been sitting, as
+though to close the incident. Harry stood and gasped;
+he tried to speak but could not; his eyes filled with tears.
+Then he dropped at James' feet, clasping his knees in the
+manner of a suppliant of old. He buried his face in James'
+lap and gave a few deep sobs of joy and relief.</p>
+
+<p>The Anglo-Saxon race being what it is, a good deal of
+courage is needed to go on with the relation of what occurred
+next. However, there is no help for it; history is
+history, and we can only tell it as it actually occurred, regardless
+of whether the undemonstrative are outraged or
+not. After Harry had thrown himself at his feet James
+took his brother's head gently between his hands, and then,
+with the greatest simplicity and naturalness in the world,
+bent forward and kissed it.</p>
+
+<p>"Poor old thing," he said softly; "you have been having
+sort of a hard time of it, haven't you?"</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>"I wish you would tell me, James," said Harry somewhat
+later, as they sat gazing into the fire, James in the
+armchair and Harry on the floor, leaning back against
+James' legs, "I wish you would tell me just how you found
+out about her being married, and all about it. It seems
+so incredible&mdash;both that she should have been married and
+that you, of all people, should have been on the spot to discover
+it."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, I just saw her, coming out of the marriage office
+with a man; that was all there was to it. I thought she
+probably wouldn't have been there unless she had just been
+married to him, so I had the register looked up, and there
+she was. She was under the name of Rosa Montagu&mdash;that
+gave us some trouble at first, because of course I didn't
+know that was her stage name. I put a fellow called Laffan,
+a young lawyer, onto the business, and he messed about
+with the register and the detective bureau and communicated
+with Raynham till he wormed it all out. Finally he
+got hold of a photograph of Rosa Montagu and showed it
+to me, and after that it was easy enough&mdash;Of course, it<span class="pagenum">[143]</span>
+was a most God-given chance that I stumbled on her just
+at that compromising moment. She really wasn't as foolish
+as she sounds; she hadn't lived in Minneapolis for years
+and knew almost nobody there except her young man. It
+was a long chance, what with using her stage name and all,
+that any one would ever find her out."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes. But I don't quite see&mdash;You say she was married
+in September?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes&mdash;the third."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, if you knew she was married then, I don't quite
+see why you didn't make use of your knowledge before.
+When I was playing round with her, I mean&mdash;of course I,
+like the brazen idiot I was, didn't write you, but you must
+have heard&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes. Well, it was a very funny thing. I didn't
+remember about having seen her in that place till months
+afterward; not till the night I heard about the breach of
+promise business. You see, it was only the barest, vaguest
+glimpse, there in the City Hall; she didn't even see me and
+I didn't even remember where I had seen her face before,
+then. I scarcely thought about it at all, at the time; I
+was in a great hurry to get to a hearing before some commission
+or other, and the thing went bang out of my mind.
+Then, when I read of the breach of promise, it all came
+back, in one flash! Funny!"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes. It's the kind of humor that appeals to me, I
+can tell you."</p>
+
+<p>"The man, Jennings, curiously enough, happened to be
+in McClellan's for a while, once, in the counting department.
+He left there to become a clerk in some bank. We
+worked up his end too, a little....</p>
+
+<p>"Harry, I wish you'd tell me one thing," went on James,
+after a pause.</p>
+
+<p>"Anything I can, James."</p>
+
+<p>"Why on earth, when you found you were getting in
+deep with that woman, didn't you call on me to do something?
+You couldn't be so far gone as to think that I
+wouldn't&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, couldn't I? You have no idea of what depths of
+idiocy I can descend to, if I want.&mdash;I don't know&mdash;at
+the time, the more I wanted help the less I could talk of
+it to any one, and you least of all. The person that gave
+me the most comfort was Trotty, and he never once mentioned<span class="pagenum">[144]</span>
+the subject to me, except when I introduced it myself!
+Yet even so, all through that time, it was you that I
+really wanted.&mdash;Look here, James, if you don't believe
+me, see what I've been carrying around with me all this
+time, as a sort of talisman!"</p>
+
+<p>He took his wallet from his pocket and after a short
+search produced an old and dirty postal card bearing on
+its face the blurred but still readable legend "All right.
+James." He handed it to his brother.</p>
+
+<p>"Gosh," said James, when he had read it, "do you mean
+to say you've kept that old thing ever since?"</p>
+
+<p>"Ever since the day I got it. There was something about
+it that was comforting and optimistic and&mdash;well, like you;
+and I used to take it out and look at it occasionally when
+I got particularly down in the mouth. And I used to
+persuade myself, after a while, that it all would come out
+right, in the end; that somehow James would make it all
+right&mdash;you see how the prophecy has come true!... And
+the extraordinary part of it is that even while I thought
+that way about you, I simply couldn't break the ice and tell
+you about it all. I don't know why&mdash;I just couldn't!"</p>
+
+<p>"I know," said James; "I know the feeling."</p>
+
+<p>"Isn't it incredible, James, that what seemed perfectly
+natural and reasonable&mdash;inevitable, even&mdash;a few weeks, or
+days, or even an hour ago, should appear so utterly asinine
+now!... Pride, vainglory and hypocrisy&mdash;all of them,
+and a lot more! Sometimes I can't believe it possible for
+one person to assemble in himself all the vices that I
+do."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, you don't, either," said James seriously. "That's
+one thing I want to clear up. Harry, don't you see that
+the blame for all this lies with me just as much as with you&mdash;more
+than with you&mdash;entirely with me?&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"No, I don't," began Harry stoutly, but James continued:</p>
+
+<p>"And that the real reason you didn't call on me was because
+I had steadily shut myself away from you? Oh,
+Harry, I've behaved like the devil during the last three
+years! It's just as you say; a course of action you never
+even question at one time, a little later seems so silly, so
+criminally silly, that you can't believe you seriously thought
+of following it!... I know perfectly well that a lot of
+the things I thought were horribly important a few years
+ago really aren't worth the paper they're printed on.<span class="pagenum">[145]</span>
+The perspective changes so, even with these two years&mdash;less
+than two years&mdash;out of college! Good Lord, if a
+man is really the right sort, if he has a good, warm-hearted
+nature at the bottom of him, thinks good thoughts,
+does nice things, uses to the best of his judgment what gifts
+and talents Providence is pleased to give him, what in
+Heaven's name does it matter whether he manages the crew
+or goes Bones, in the end?... I've been a fool, Harry.
+I've set the greatest value on the most worthless things;
+I've worshiped stone gods; I've let things irritate me
+that no sane man has any business to be irritated by.
+Worst of all, I've let these silly, worthless things come between
+you and me and spoil&mdash;well, one of the best things
+that ever came into my life!... All this estrangement
+business has been mainly my fault. I'm older, and have
+had more experience, and, I always thought, more common
+sense&mdash;though I haven't really&mdash;and I was the one that
+ought to have kept things straight. Harry, I'm sorry
+for it all!"</p>
+
+<p>Harry was more moved than he would have liked to
+show by this confession. He was still enough of an undergraduate
+to be much impressed by his brother's casual
+mention of his senior society&mdash;the first time since he had
+been tapped the name had ever passed James' lips in his
+presence.</p>
+
+<p>"It's a pleasure to hear you talk, James," he said, "but
+I hope you won't misunderstand me when I say that there's
+not one word of truth in all you've said&mdash;the last part of
+it, I mean. It's only convinced me more thoroughly of my
+own fault. Before, there might have been a shadow of
+doubt in my mind about my being entirely to blame. Now
+there is absolutely none.&mdash;Funny, that a person you like
+blaming himself should really be blaming you! It always
+seems that way, somehow...."</p>
+
+<p>"James," he went on, a little later; "it makes you feel
+as if you were getting on, doesn't it?"</p>
+
+<p>"How? In years?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes! I don't know about you, but I feel as old as
+Methusaleh to-night, and a whole lot wiser! And I must
+say I rather enjoy it!"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," said James reflectively, "it does seem a good
+deal that way."</p>
+
+<p>"There are lots of questions you haven't asked me yet,
+James," continued Harry, after another interval.<span class="pagenum">[146]</span></p>
+
+<p>"Are there? Well, tell me what they are and I'll ask
+them, if you're so crazy to answer them."</p>
+
+<p>"The first is, What on earth could you ever have seen
+in That Woman?"</p>
+
+<p>"There was no need to ask that question," replied James,
+laughing; "not after I saw her to-day, at any rate."</p>
+
+<p>"She was so damned refined," sighed Harry. James
+laughed again at the coincidence of Harry's hitting on the
+very words of his own mental description of her. "I was
+most horribly depressed, and she looked so kind and sympathetic,
+and was, too, when I got to telling her my
+woes.... And she never used a particle of rouge, or anything
+of that kind.... Once I kissed her, and after that
+she managed, in that diabolical refined manner of hers, to
+convince me that she wouldn't have any more of that sort
+of thing without marriage. That made me respect her
+all the more, of course, as she knew it would. At one
+time, for a whole week, I should say, I was perfectly willing
+to marry her, whenever she wanted, and I didn't care
+whom I said it to, either.... Do you know, James, she
+would have been in for the devil of a time if I had gone on
+and pressed her to? I wonder what little plans she had
+for making me cease to care for her and back out at the
+right time.... There was no need for that, though; one
+day she called me 'kid,' and things like that before people,
+and I began to see."</p>
+
+<p>"That was part of her little plan, of course," said James.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, well&mdash;I shouldn't wonder if it was! You always
+were a clever child, James!..."</p>
+
+<p>"What are some more of the things I've got to ask?"
+inquired the clever child after a brief silence.</p>
+
+<p>"What? Oh&mdash;yes! Why don't you ask me to cut out
+the lick?" (He meant, abstain from alcoholic beverages.)</p>
+
+<p>"Well, do you want me to?"</p>
+
+<p>"Well, yes, I think I do, rather!"</p>
+
+<p>"Well, will you?"</p>
+
+<p>"Well&mdash;yes!"</p>
+
+<p>Both laughed, and then Harry went on: "It strikes
+me that we are both talking a prodigious lot of nonsense,
+James. We've been making a regular scene, in fact&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"I rather like scenes, myself," interrupted James, just
+for the pleasure of their being how he had expressed exactly
+the opposite opinion to some one else a few hours before.<span class="pagenum">[147]</span></p>
+
+<p>"And no doubt we shall be heartily ashamed when we
+look back on it all in the cold gray light of to-morrow morning.
+One always is."</p>
+
+<p>"I don't know," objected James, serious again, "I don't
+think that I shall be sorry for anything I've said or done."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, as a matter of strict truth, I don't know that I
+shall either. I suppose one needn't necessarily be making
+a fool of oneself just because it's twelve o'clock at night;
+that is&mdash;oh, you know what I mean&mdash;!"</p>
+
+<p>So they sat and talked on far into the night, loath to
+break up the enjoyment of the rediscovery of each other.
+They both seemed to bask in a sort of wonderful clarity and
+peace&mdash;do you know these rare times when life loses its
+complexity and uncertainty and becomes for the moment
+wholly sane and enjoyable and inspiring? When a person
+is actually able to live, if only for a little time, entirely
+in his better self, without being troubled by even a recollection
+of his worser? That was, substantially, the condition
+of those two boys as they sat there, at first talking,
+then thinking, and at last, as drowsiness slowly asserted
+itself over them, simply sitting.</p>
+
+<p>"Well," said James at last; "unless you intend taking
+permanent possession of my legs, I suppose we'd better go
+to bed. Am I sleeping here, somewhere?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," said Harry; "in my bed; I shall sleep on the
+sofa," and he forthwith embarked on a search for extra
+sheets and blankets.</p>
+
+<p>They both slept uninterruptedly till nearly ten, at which
+hour they sallied forth in search of breakfast. During the
+night the snow had changed to rain, which still fell out of
+a leaden sky, turning the earth's white covering to dirty
+gray and clogging the gutters with slush. Everything
+looked sordid, prosaic, ugly, especially Chapel Street, which
+they crossed on their way to the nearest "dog"; especially
+the "dog" itself as they approached it, with its yellow
+electric lights still shining out of its windows. It was an
+unattractive world.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, how does it look this morning?" James asked,
+studying his brother's face.</p>
+
+<p>Harry shuffled along several steps through the slush before
+he answered:</p>
+
+<p>"Just the same, James, and I for one, don't mind saying
+so." Then they looked at each other and smiled
+slightly.</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[148]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_XV">CHAPTER XV</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">CHIEFLY CARDIAC</p>
+
+<p>Life appeared, nevertheless, to have recovered all its
+normal complexity and variety. Things change with
+the return of daylight, even if they do not deteriorate, and
+though the two boys were still, in a manner of speaking,
+happy in each other's proximity, the thoughts of each were
+already busy on matters in which the other had no direct
+share. Harry was already foreseeing unpleasantnesses in
+the way of the restoration of cordial relations with the
+world. Exile has its palliations; he had taken a sort of
+grim pleasure in the state of semi-warfare in which he had
+lived. But that sort of thing was now over; he wanted to
+be right with the whole world&mdash;he even looked forward to
+astonishing people with the thoroughness of his conservatism.
+And he would have to make all the first advances.
+Thoughts of apologies, unreciprocated nods, suppressed
+sneers, incredulous glances and all the rest did not dismay
+him, but they might be said to bother him. At least, they
+were there.</p>
+
+<p>As for James, he had thought so much about Harry during
+the last ten days that it is easy to understand why, the
+affair Harry having been satisfactorily cleared up, his mind
+should be busy with other things. James' control over
+his mind was singularly perfect and methodical; its ease
+of concentration suggested that of an experienced lawyer
+examining the contents of several scraps of papers and
+returning each one again to its proper pigeon-hole, neatly
+docketed. The papers bearing the label of "Harry,"
+neatly tied up in red tape, were again reposing comfortably
+in their pigeon-hole; the bundle that now absorbed his attention
+was marked "Beatrice."</p>
+
+<p>Outside of his work, to which he had conscientiously
+devoted the best of his mental powers, Beatrice had occupied
+the most prominent place in his thoughts for over a
+year and a half. For six days in the week, between the<span class="pagenum">[149]</span>
+hours of nine and five, she had not been conspicuous in his
+mind; but how often, outside that time, had his attention
+wandered from a book, a conversation, a play, and fastened
+itself on the recollection of that softly aquiline profile of
+hers, the poise of her head on her beautifully modeled
+shoulders, her unsmiling yet cordial manner of greeting,
+and which she somehow managed to convey the impression
+of being unaffectedly glad to see him! It would probably
+be too much to say that James had been in love with her
+during that time, but James was not the sort of person who
+would easily be carried off his feet in an affair of the
+heart. Often, as the memory of her face obtruded itself on
+his day-dreams&mdash;or still oftener, his night-dreams&mdash;he had
+calmly put to himself, for open mental debate, the question
+"Am I really in love with her?" and had never been
+able to answer it entirely satisfactorily.</p>
+
+<p>On the whole, in view of the fact that the memory of her
+showed no tendency to fade in proportion to the time he
+was absent from her presence, he had become rather inclined
+to the opinion that the answer must be in the affirmative.
+Yet even now he could not be sure. He might be only cherishing
+an agreeable memory. He had not seen her since
+the previous June, and could not be absolutely certain, he
+knew, till he saw her again. He was anxious to see her!&mdash;Not
+that mere friendship would not account for that, of
+course.</p>
+
+<p>Harry had to attend Sunday Chapel, and it was arranged
+that James should not go with him, but should proceed
+directly to the house. Harry himself would turn up
+at dinner-time&mdash;Aunt Selina, it will be remembered, had
+dinner in the middle of the day on Sundays. Harry was
+naturally anxious to have all news-breaking over before he
+came, and James&mdash;well, on the whole James was entirely
+willing to take the burden of news-breaking on himself.</p>
+
+<p>He found Aunt Selina at home; a slight cold in the
+head and the inclemency of the weather had been sufficient
+to make her forego church for this Sunday. Beatrice had
+proved herself of stauncher religious metal&mdash;"Though I
+am sure she would not have gone, if she had known you
+were in town," as Aunt Selina told James.</p>
+
+<p>Aunt Selina took the good news much as a duchess of
+the old r&eacute;gime might have learned that the Committee of
+Public Safety had decided not to chop off her husband's<span class="pagenum">[150]</span>
+head. It was agreeable news, but it was nothing to make
+one forget oneself. Her manner of saying "This is splendid
+news, James; I am proud of you" indicated a profound belief
+in the sanctity of the Wimbourne destiny and an unshakable
+faith in the ultimate triumph of the Wimbourne
+character rather than unbecoming thankfulness for something
+she ought not to have had to be thankful about.
+James advised her that Harry would talk much more freely
+and relations in general would be much more agreeable if
+she refrained from mention of the subject till he introduced
+it himself. Aunt Selina calmly agreed. She had
+great faith in James' judgment.</p>
+
+<p>After an hour's chat with his aunt James exhibited visible
+signs of restlessness. Half-past twelve; it was time
+Beatrice returned. He rose from his chair and stood watching
+in front of the window. Soon he saw her; she alighted
+from a trolley car and started to walk up the path. There
+was something rather fine, something high-bred and gently
+proud about the way she grasped her umbrella and embarked
+on the long slushy ascent to the house. Her manner
+rather suggested a daughter of the Crusaders; it was as
+though she hated the wind and rain and slush, but disdained
+to give other recognition of their existence than a
+silent contempt.</p>
+
+<p>As he beheld her distant figure turn in at the gate and
+plod unflinchingly up the walk a curious sensation came
+over James. He suddenly found himself wanting to wreak
+an immediate and violent vengeance on the elements that
+dared to make things so unpleasant for her, and that almost
+immediately passed into an intense desire to seize
+upon that small figure and clasp it to him, sheltering her
+from the rain, the wind, the slush, every evil in this world
+that could ever befall her.... In that moment he felt all
+the beauty of man's first love. All the worries of doubt
+and introspection fell from him; he felt the full glow of
+love shining in his heart like a star, giving significance,
+sanctity, even, to those moments of wondering, fearing, hoping,
+doubting that had filled so many months. He was in
+love with her!... He came into the realization of the
+fact in a spirit of humility and prayer, like a worshiper
+entering a temple.</p>
+
+<p>Of course he gave no outward sign of all this. He<span class="pagenum">[151]</span>
+merely said, as soon as he could trust himself to be
+articulate, in a perfectly ordinary tone of voice:</p>
+
+<p>"There's Beatrice, now. She's walking."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," answered his aunt; "I tried to make her stay
+at home, but she would go." Then after a moment she
+gently added, as though in answer to James' unspoken reproach:
+"I would have let her take the carriage, but of
+course I could not ask Thomas to go out in such weather."</p>
+
+<p>James entirely failed to see why not. He would willingly
+have condemned Thomas and the horses to perpetual driving
+through something much more disagreeable than rain
+and slush if it could have saved Beatrice one particle of her
+present discomfort.</p>
+
+<p>But being, in fact as well as in appearance, a daughter of
+Crusaders, and consequently well used to climatic rigors
+in the country from which her ancestors had marched to
+meet the Paynim foe, Beatrice was really not suffering
+nearly as much as James' lover-like anxiety supposed her
+to be. She had thick boots, a mackintosh, an umbrella and
+a thick tweed skirt to protect her from the weather, and
+could have walked miles without so much as wetting her
+feet. If she had got wet, she certainly would have changed
+her garments immediately on reaching home, and even
+if she had not changed then she probably would not have
+caught cold, having a strong constitution. Nevertheless
+James stood at the window and silently worried about her,
+and his first words as he met her at the front door were
+expressive of this mood.</p>
+
+<p>"Beatrice!" he cried eagerly, as he threw the door open,
+"I do hope you're not wet through!"</p>
+
+<p>She had not seen him standing at the window, so his appearance
+at the door was consequently a complete surprise
+to her, and the expression that came over her face as she
+saw him was one of pure pleasure. James' heart leaped
+within him at her unaccustomed smile, and then fell again
+as he saw it change to an expression of ever so slight and
+well-restrained surprise, not at his being there, but at the
+manner and words of his greeting. He realized in a second
+that he had allowed his tongue to betray his heart.</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice paid no immediate attention to the remark, and
+her welcoming words "James, of all people in the world!"
+gave no sign of anything more than a friendly pleasure.<span class="pagenum">[152]</span>
+She was entirely at her ease. James found himself running
+on, quite easily:</p>
+
+<p>"Yes&mdash;just got a day or two off and came on to say
+Howdy-do to you all. Got to start back this afternoon,
+worse luck. How well you're looking!"</p>
+
+<p>By this time they were practically in the library, in the
+restraining presence of Aunt Selina, and Beatrice had no
+more chance to introduce the topic clamoring for discussion
+in the minds of both than the question "You've seen
+Harry?" uttered in an undertone as they went through
+the door, allowed her. Church, the weather and the unexpected
+pleasure of James' arrival were politely discussed
+for a few moments, and then Aunt Selina withdrew to prepare
+for dinner.</p>
+
+<p>"James," Beatrice burst out, "tell me about Harry.
+I know you've come on about that; tell me all about it!
+Has anything been done? Can anything be done?"</p>
+
+<p>"It can," said James, smiling at her impetuosity. "Like-wise,
+it has. In fact, it's all over!"</p>
+
+<p>"What do you mean?... Have you paid her off?"</p>
+
+<p>"No; she withdrew of her own accord."</p>
+
+<p>"James, don't be irritating! Tell me about it. You've
+done something, I know you have!"</p>
+
+<p>"Well&mdash;possibly!" He smiled tantalizingly at her&mdash;so
+like a man!</p>
+
+<p>"What?"</p>
+
+<p>"Well, I'll tell you&mdash;on one condition."</p>
+
+<p>"What's that?"</p>
+
+<p>"That you'll promise not to thank me when you've
+found out!" James considered this rather a masterly
+piece of deceptive strategy, more than making up for his
+indiscretion at the front door.</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice dropped her eyes and drew down the corners of
+her mouth, with an expression half humorous, half contemptuous.
+"Go ahead," said she.</p>
+
+<p>James went ahead and told her the whole affair at some
+length. His position during this narrative was a not unenviable
+one; it is not often that one gets a chance to recount
+to one's lady-love a story in which one is so obviously
+the hero. Nor did he lose anything by being the narrator
+of his own prowess; his omissions spoke louder in his favor
+than the most laudatory comments of a third person could
+have.<span class="pagenum">[153]</span></p>
+
+<p>"So, he is free!" she said at last, when she had cross-questioned
+the whole thing out of him. "He is free
+again!..."</p>
+
+<p>What was there about these words that seemed to blast
+James' feeling of triumph, to chill the very marrow in his
+bones? Was it only the words; was it not rather the
+extraordinary intensity of the pleasure on her face; a pleasure
+which did not fade with her smile, but lived on in the
+dreamy expression of the eyes, gazing sightlessly out of the
+window?... She spoke again in a moment or two, asking
+a question about some detail in the case, and the feeling
+left him again. He answered her question with perfect
+composure. Such hysterical vapors must be incidental
+to love, he supposed. He was not troubled about it at all,
+unless, very vaguely, by the fleeting memory of a similar
+experience, occurring&mdash;oh, a long time ago. Nothing to
+worry about.</p>
+
+<p>He did not say much after he had completed his narrative.
+He was content simply to sit and look at her, drinking
+in her smiles, her comments, her little ejaculations of
+pleasure and answering her stray questions about the great
+affair. The joy of discovery was not yet even tinged with
+the thirst for possession. It was enough to watch her as
+she talked and laughed and moved about; to watch her, the
+living original, and think how much more glorious she was
+than the most vivid of his recollections of her. Oh, how
+wonderful she was!</p>
+
+<p>Presently he was aware of her making remarks laudatory
+of himself, and primed his ears to listen.</p>
+
+<p>"But how clever it was of you, James," she was saying,
+"to work out the whole thing, just from that one little
+glimpse&mdash;and so quickly, too! Of course it was just a
+Heaven-sent chance, your seeing her at that moment, but
+I can see how much more there was to it than that. What a
+frightfully clever person you are, James&mdash;a regular detective!
+You really must give up making motor cars and
+be another Sherlock Holmes!"</p>
+
+<p>All this fell very pleasantly on his ears, though he could
+have wished, if he had taken the time to, that she could
+have employed some other adjective than "clever." But
+there was no time for such minor considerations. Just at
+that moment they heard the rattle of the front door latch,
+and Beatrice, knowing that none but Harry ever entered<span class="pagenum">[154]</span>
+the house without first ringing, jumped from her chair and
+started towards the hall, the words "There he is now!"
+glowing on her lips....</p>
+
+<p>And then the universe crumbled about James' ears. Had
+his father's early readings extended into the minor Elizabethan
+Drama, he might have remembered the words of
+Beaumont&mdash;</p>
+
+<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
+<span class="i0">This earth of mine doth tremble, and I feel<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">A stark affrighted motion in my blood<br /></span>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>and applied them quite aptly to his present state. For a
+moment the earth literally seemed to reel; he staggered
+slightly, unnoticed, and caught hold of the back of a chair.
+Then, while Beatrice went out to meet Harry, he stood
+there and wished he had never been born to live through
+such a moment.</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice was in love with Harry&mdash;that was the long and
+the short of it. There was no mistaking the import of
+the look of utter glorification that came over her face as she
+heard his hand on the doorknob; such an expression on the
+face of a human being could mean but one thing.... He
+wondered, despairingly, if his face had borne such a look
+a little while ago, when he caught sight of Beatrice....</p>
+
+<p>Whether or not Harry was on similar terms with Beatrice
+he could not say. He rather thought that he was, or if
+not, it was only a question of time till he would be. He
+was not a witness of the actual moment of meeting; that
+occurred in the hall, and all he got of it was Harry's initial
+remark: "Well, Beatrice, have you heard the good news?
+James has made a respectable woman of me!" drowned in
+a sort of flutter from Beatrice, in which he could distinguish
+nothing articulate&mdash;nor needed to. The character of the
+remark&mdash;flippant to the verge of good taste!&mdash;might at another
+time have excited his disgust; but now it made as little
+impression on him as it did on Beatrice.</p>
+
+<p>Harry himself might not have made it at another time;
+it was the result of his embarrassment. So, also, was the
+expression which he wore when he came into the room with
+Beatrice a moment later&mdash;a very unusual look, due to a
+very unusual cause. Beatrice had, in fact, all but given
+herself away to him. He followed her into the room embarrassed
+and flustered. It was incomparably the worst of
+the series of strained moments in his intercourse with Beatrice,<span class="pagenum">[155]</span>
+and it gave point and coherency to the others in a
+way he hated to think of.... Once in the library he found
+himself leading conversation, or what passed for conversation
+among the three for the next few moments. The
+others appeared conversationally extinct; Beatrice&mdash;he
+hardly dared look toward her&mdash;trying to recover her composure;
+James preternaturally grave and silent, for some
+unknown reason. The atmosphere seemed surcharged with
+an unexpected and, to him, inappropriate gravity. He felt
+like a schoolboy among grown-ups.</p>
+
+<p>Presently Aunt Selina returned and dinner was announced.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Poor James&mdash;he had won Paradise only to lose it the
+next instant! No one could have guessed anything from
+his behavior&mdash;he was not the sort of person to make an
+exhibition of his emotional crises; but he really lived very
+hard during the meal that followed. His state of mind
+was at first nothing but a ghastly chaos, from which but
+one thing emerged into certainty&mdash;he must not betray himself
+or Beatrice; he must go on exactly as if nothing unusual
+had occurred. It never paid to make a fool of oneself,
+and&mdash;this was the next thought, the next plank that
+floated to him from the wreck of his happiness&mdash;he had
+not, that he knew of, given himself away. That was a
+tremendous thing to be thankful for; what a blessing that
+he had got wind of Beatrice's true feelings before he had
+the chance to blunder into making love to her and so
+precipitate a series of horrors which he could not even
+bear to contemplate! Now, he told himself reassuringly,
+as he tried desperately to contribute his fourth to the none
+too spontaneous conversation, he had only to keep himself
+in check, keep his mouth shut, keep from making of
+himself the most unthinkable ass that ever walked God's
+earth&mdash;and it would all come out right!</p>
+
+<p>By the time the roast beef made its appearance he saw
+there was only one thing to do and without a moment's
+hesitation he embarked on the doing of it. Beatrice sat
+on his right; he raised his eyes to her and passed them over
+each enthralling feature of her, her soft dark hair; her
+eyes, brown almost to black, gentle yet fearless in their
+gaze, and at the same time, quite calmly and unemotionally,
+told himself that she could never be his. She was Harry's.<span class="pagenum">[156]</span>
+These two were intended for each other all along, made for
+each other. Could he not have seen that in the beginning,
+if he had kept his eyes open? Could he not have seen that
+their childish companionship, dating from Harry's English
+days, their being placed again, as though by a divine sort
+of accident, in the same town, and above all their obvious
+fitness for each other, was going to lead to love?</p>
+
+<p>Well&mdash;thus he found himself to his one substantial comfortable
+support&mdash;he had hurt no one but himself. He
+had only to put Beatrice resolutely out of his mind and all
+would be well. She was Harry's; was that not the next
+best thing to her being his?&mdash;better, even? No longer ago
+than last night he had convinced himself that Harry was,
+when all was said and done, a better man than he was.
+Was it not perfectly just that the prize should go to him?</p>
+
+<p>The thought helped him through the meal astonishingly.
+Unselfishness is a great stimulus. Once he saw that he
+could do something definite toward the happiness of those
+he loved best, he seemed, rather to his own surprise, perfectly
+willing and able to do it, at no matter what sacrifice
+to himself. His righteousness supported him not only
+through the meal, but well through that part of the afternoon
+that he spent in the house&mdash;up, indeed, to the very
+moment of parting.</p>
+
+<p>James' plan was to take a five-o'clock train to New York,
+whence he would take a night train to Chicago and arrive
+in Minneapolis early Tuesday morning, having missed only
+three working days at the office. It was still raining at
+four o'clock and a cab was telephoned for. As it was
+plodding up the slushy drive, James, overcoated and hatted,
+stood on the porch ready to get into it. Harry, who was to
+go to the station with him, was "having a word" with Aunt
+Selina&mdash;or, more exactly, being had a word with by her&mdash;in
+the hall. Beatrice, by some fiendish chance, determined
+to do the same by James.</p>
+
+<p>"James," she said, "I want you to know how perfectly
+splendid I think it was of you&mdash;all this about Harry, I
+mean. You may say it was no more than your duty, and
+all that; but it was fine of you, nevertheless. Thank you,
+James, and good-by."</p>
+
+<p>It really was rather awful. It amounted to his being
+rewarded and dismissed like a faithful servant. And her
+tacit, unconscious assumption of her right to thank people<span class="pagenum">[157]</span>
+for favors conferred upon Harry&mdash;that was turning the
+knife in the wound. Of course she could have no idea of
+the pain she was giving, and James shook her hand and
+said good-by trying to give no sign of the pain he felt.
+All the comfortable stability of his logic faded from him
+as she spoke those words. All the way to the station, sitting
+by Harry's side in the smelly cab, he found himself
+crying inwardly, like a child, for what he could not have;
+wondering if, by the exercise of tact and patience, Beatrice
+could possibly be brought to love him; overcome at moments
+by an insane desire to throw himself on Harry's
+neck and beg him to let him have her&mdash;for surely, surely
+Harry could not be as fond of her as he! Oh, was it going
+to be as hard as this right along?...</p>
+
+<p>"James," said Harry suddenly as the two paced the
+dreary platform in silence, waiting for the train to pull in;
+"it's sometimes awfully hard to say what you want without
+talking mawkish rot, but there's something I've simply
+got to say, rot or no rot, or drop dead on the asphalt.&mdash;I'm
+pretty young, of course, and haven't seen much of
+anything of life; but a person doesn't have to live long to
+get the general idea that it's rather a chaotic mess. Well,
+occasionally out of it there emerges a thing that appears
+to bring out all that's best in your nature and gives a certain
+coherence to the other things...."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes?" said James, wondering what was to follow.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, it seems to me that one of those things is&mdash;you
+and me. Since last night, I mean ... James, I don't
+know how you feel about it, but since then I've had a sense
+of nearness to you, such as I've never begun to have with
+any other human being&mdash;such as doesn't occur often in one
+lifetime, I imagine ... I really think very highly of you,
+James!" He broke off here with a smile, half embarrassed
+at his brother's slowness of response, ready to retreat into
+the everyday and the trivial if the response did not come.</p>
+
+<p>But he need not have worried; James was merely choosing
+his words; every nerve in him was thrilling in answer
+to Harry's advance. He returned the smile, but replied,
+in full seriousness: "You've hit it exactly; I should even
+say it couldn't be duplicated in one lifetime.... You're
+unique, Harry!"</p>
+
+<p>"That's it&mdash;unique," said Harry, joining in with his
+mood. "You've mastered the art of uniquity, James."<span class="pagenum">[158]</span></p>
+
+<p>"And what's more," went on the other, "it always has
+been that way&mdash;really. Even during these last few years.
+With me, I mean."</p>
+
+<p>"With me, too. James"&mdash;he stood still and looked his
+brother full in the face&mdash;"do you know, such a relation as
+ours is one of the few positive good things that makes life
+worth while? If we were both struck dead as we stand
+here, life would have been well worth living&mdash;just for
+this!"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, that's true," said James slowly; "that's perfectly
+true."</p>
+
+<p>"And one thing more&mdash;for Heaven's sake, James, don't
+let's either of us mess up this thing in the future, if we can
+help it! It may be broken up by outside causes&mdash;well and
+good; we can't prevent that; but can't we have the sense
+not to let silly, conventional things come between us? Let's
+not be afraid, above all, of plain talk&mdash;at any rate, you
+need never be afraid to say anything to me. I may be narrow
+and obstinate to other people, but I don't think I could
+ever be so to you again. I'd take anything from you,
+James, anything!&mdash;" He smiled at the unintentional
+double meaning of his words, adding, "And there's nothing
+I wouldn't give you, either."</p>
+
+<p>It would not be too much to say that James was literally
+inspired by Harry's words. They seemed to bring out
+every vestige of what was good and noble and unselfish in
+his nature, lifting him high above his everyday, weak,
+commonplace self&mdash;such as he had shown it in the cab, for
+instance&mdash;making life as clear, as sensible, as inspiring as
+it had seemed last night. His "sacrifice" now appeared
+nothing; he scarcely thought of it at all, but its nature,
+when it did appear in the back of his brain, was that of an
+obvious, pleasant, easy duty; a service that was a joy, a
+denial that was a self-gratification.</p>
+
+<p>"All right, I'll remember. And if I telegraph you to
+dye your face pea-green, I shall expect you to do it!" He
+spoke with a lightness of spirit wholly unfeigned. Then
+he continued, somewhat more seriously: "I'll tell you
+what it is; each of us has got to behave so well that it'll be
+the fault of the other if we do fall out. There's a poem
+Father used to read that says something of the kind; something
+about there being none but you&mdash;'there is none, oh,
+none but you&mdash;'"<span class="pagenum">[159]</span></p>
+
+<p>"'That from me estrange your sight,'" finished Harry.
+"I remember&mdash;Campion, I think."</p>
+
+<p>"That's it&mdash;that from me estrange your sight. It's
+funny how those things come back sometimes...." The
+train pulled noisily in at that moment and made further
+discussion impossible, but enough had been said to start
+the same thoughts running in the minds of both and give
+them both the feeling, as they clasped hands in parting,
+that the future had the blessing of the past.</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[160]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_XVI">CHAPTER XVI</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">THE SADDEST TALE</p>
+
+<p>With the beginning of the next term Harry embarked
+on the task of setting himself right with the world.
+He found it on the whole easier than he had expected.
+He had only to make a few formal apologies, as in the
+cases of Shep McGee and Junius LeGrand, and let it become
+generally known that he had definitely given up
+drinking, et cetera, to make the cohorts of the commonplace
+glad to receive him in their ranks once more.</p>
+
+<p>Reinstatement in the social life of New Haven followed
+quite easily&mdash;almost as a matter of course, for he had not
+actively offended any members of what might be described
+as the entertaining classes. The female element, practically
+all of whom knew him, or at least of him, through his family
+connection, had evolved a mythical but interesting conception
+of him as "rather a fast young man"; and that,
+alas! served to endear him to their hearts rather than
+otherwise.</p>
+
+<p>So the last months of his college course passed in a sort
+of sunset haze of enjoyment, marred only by one thing,
+indecision as to his subsequent career. His friends were
+inclined to look rather askance at this; one or two, in a
+tactful way, pointed out to him the danger of "drifting."
+In reality there was small danger of this; although his
+inherited income would make him independent of his own
+efforts for livelihood during the rest of his natural life,
+Harry would never "drift" very far. His brain was too
+active, his ambition too lively, his sense of the seriousness
+of life too deep to allow that. He could never be content
+doing nothing. He wanted, in turn, to do very nearly
+everything; the professions of lawyer, doctor, "business
+man," engineer, clergyman, soldier, sailor&mdash;tinker and
+tailor, even were considered and rejected in turn.</p>
+
+<p>"It's not that I don't want to do all these things," he
+explained to Trotty, who sometimes showed impatience at<span class="pagenum">[161]</span>
+his vagueness; "the trouble is that I can't do any of them.
+I'm not fitted for them&mdash;I'm not worthy of them, if you
+like to put it that way. If I were a conscienceless wretch,
+now, it would be different!"</p>
+
+<p>One Sunday afternoon in June, rather saddened by the
+feeling of his apparent uselessness in the world, he went to
+call on Madge Elliston.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, what are you going to do this summer?" she
+began. "That seems to be the one topic of conversation at
+this time of year."</p>
+
+<p>"This summer? Oh, I'm going to walk, with the rest
+of my class, in the more mountainous portions of Europe.
+At present I am under engagement to walk through the hilly
+parts of England, Scotland and Wales, the Black Forest,
+the Alps, the Tyrol, the Dolomites and some of the cooler
+portions of the Apennines; but the C&eacute;vennes and the Caucasus
+are still open, if you care to engage them.... In
+between times I expect to roister, shamelessly, in some of
+the livelier resorts of the Continent. That's all quite
+simple; what I'm worrying about is what I'm going to do
+next winter."</p>
+
+<p>"Why don't you write, if I may be pardoned for asking
+so obvious a question?" asked Madge.</p>
+
+<p>"One simple but sufficient reason&mdash;I haven't got anything
+to write about," answered Harry, smiling. "That's
+what everybody asks, and the answer is always the same.
+This prevalent belief in my literary ability is flattering, but
+unfortunately it's wholly unfounded."</p>
+
+<p>"I shouldn't say so. I've read most of what you've
+written in college, and it seems to me extremely clever."</p>
+
+<p>"Clever&mdash;that's just it! Nothing more! The awful
+truth is, there's nothing more in me. I have rather a high
+regard for literature, you see, and on that very account I'm
+less willing to inflict myself on it. I wouldn't care, though,
+if there was anything else I appeared to be cut out for. If
+I felt that I could sweep crossings better than other people,
+I assure you I would go into the profession with the
+greatest cheerfulness!"</p>
+
+<p>Madge laughed. "I know very much how you feel&mdash;I've
+been going through much the same thing myself,
+though you might not have guessed it. Only as it happens
+I have received a call for something very like the
+profession you speak of."<span class="pagenum">[162]</span></p>
+
+<p>"Crossing-sweeping?"</p>
+
+<p>"The next thing to it&mdash;teaching in a dame's school in
+town&mdash;Miss Snellgrove's. I think it's rather a pretty idea,
+don't you? Society flower, withered and faint with gaiety,
+seeking refreshment in the cloistral, the academic!&mdash;You
+don't approve?"</p>
+
+<p>"Woman's sphere is the home," said Harry doubtfully.</p>
+
+<p>"Not when the home is a two-by-four box; you couldn't
+call that a sphere, could you? Of course," she went on,
+more seriously, "of course the real, immediate reason why
+I'm doing it is financial. These are times of&mdash;well, stringency.... Not
+but what we could scrape along; but it
+seems rather absurd to be earning nothing when one could
+just as well be earning something, doesn't it? And the
+only alternative is playing about eternally with college
+boys younger than myself."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, I think you're very sensible, if that's the case.
+Not that it is, of course; you'll find plenty of people coming
+back to the graduate and professional schools to console
+you. Also my brother James at week-ends, if that's
+any comfort to you!"</p>
+
+<p>"James? Is he in this part of the country?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, in New York. He's going to be in McClellan's
+branch there next winter&mdash;assistant manager, or something
+of the sort&mdash;something important and successful sounding.
+We are all very much set up over it. And it's so
+near that he can come up for Sunday quite regularly, if
+he wants.&mdash;It does give me quite a solemn and humble
+feeling, though, to think that you have found a profession
+before me."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes; teaching at Miss Snellgrove's is more than a
+profession&mdash;it's a career!&mdash;I refuse to believe, though,"
+she continued with a change of manner, "that you have
+not found your profession already, even though you may
+not care to adopt it yet. For after all, you know, you
+have the creative ability. Every one says that. All that's
+wanting in you, as you say, is having something to write
+about, and nothing but time and development will bring
+that. Meanwhile I think it's very nice and high-minded
+of you not to go ahead and write nothing, with great ease
+and fluency! That's what most people in your position
+do."</p>
+
+<p>"Thank you; that's very encouraging," said Harry.<span class="pagenum">[163]</span>
+He looked thoughtfully at her for a moment and continued:
+"Has it ever occurred to you, Madge, that you are quite a
+remarkable young woman?"</p>
+
+<p>"Heavens yes, hundreds of times!"</p>
+
+<p>"That's a denial, I suppose. However, it's true. Look
+at the way you've just been talking to me!... You have
+what I've come to admire very much during the past few
+months&mdash;perfect balance of viewpoint. You have what
+one might call a sense of ultimacy&mdash;is there such a word?
+It's like a number of children, each playing about in his
+own little backyard, surrounded by a high fence that he
+can't see over, suspecting the existence of a lot of other
+backyards, with children in them wondering what lay beyond
+in just the same way. Then occasionally there is
+born a happy being to whom is given the privilege of looking
+down on the whole lot of them from the church steeple,
+and being able to see each backyard in its exact relation to
+all the other backyards. That's you.... It's a rare gift!"</p>
+
+<p>Madge was at first amused by this elaborate compliment,
+but she ended by being rather touched by it.</p>
+
+<p>"It's very nice of you to say that," she replied after a
+moment, "no matter how little foundation there may be
+for it. It proves one thing, at any rate&mdash;I have no monopoly
+of the quality of ultimacy! You wouldn't be able
+to think I was ultimate, would you, unless you were a wee
+bit ultimate yourself? And that goes to prove what I
+said about your attitude toward your profession."</p>
+
+<p>"I'm afraid you can't make me believe in my own ultimacy,
+no matter how hard you try," said Harry. "In
+fact I pursue the rival study of propinquity&mdash;the art of
+never seeing beyond one's own nose!"</p>
+
+<p>"Well, you must at least let me believe in the ultimacy
+of your finding your profession," insisted Madge. But
+Harry only shook his head.</p>
+
+<p>Commencement arrived at last, and Aunt Cecilia, attended
+by a representative delegation of her progeny,
+flopped down upon Aunt Selina, prepared to do as much
+by Harry as she had by his brother two years earlier.
+Aunt Cecilia belonged to the important class of American
+women who regard a graduation as a family event second
+in importance only to a wedding or a funeral, ranking
+slightly higher than a "coming out." The occasion was
+a particularly joyous one to her because of Harry's being<span class="pagenum">[164]</span>
+able to celebrate it in a full blaze of righteousness and truth,
+and because of the consequent opportunities for motherly
+fluttering.</p>
+
+<p>"Dear Harry," she said, as she kissed, him on his arrival;
+"I am so glad to be here to see you graduate, and so glad
+that&mdash;that everything has gone so splendidly. It is so
+much, much nicer&mdash;that is, it is <i>so</i> nice to think that&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, dear; you mean, isn't it nice that I'm respectable
+again," said Harry, with a flippancy made gentle by the
+sight of her kind blue eyes. "I am respectable now, you
+know, so you needn't be afraid to talk about it. We can
+all be respectable together; you're respectable, and I'm
+respectable, and Ruth is respectable and Lucy is respectable,
+and Aunt Selina is respectable&mdash;we hope; how about
+that, Aunt Selina?&mdash;and altogether we're an eminently
+respectable family. All except Beatrice, that is, who is
+far, far too nobly born, being related, in fact, to a marquis.
+No one in the peerage, Aunt C. dear, likes to be called respectable&mdash;it's
+considered insulting. No one, that is,
+above the rank of baron; the barons are now all reformed
+brewers, who get their peerages by being so respectable
+that people forget all about the brewing, and that is English
+democracy, and isn't it a splendid thing, dear? When
+you marry Ruth to an English peer, you must be sure to
+have him a baron, because none of the others are respectable."</p>
+
+<p>"Harry, what nonsense you do talk!" said his aunt.
+"Before these girls&mdash;!"</p>
+
+<p>"I imagine these girls know Harry by this time," remarked
+Aunt Selina. "If they don't, it's time they did.
+You're a hundred times more innocent than they, Cecilia,
+and always will be."</p>
+
+<p>"Exactly always what I tell Mama," put in Ruth, the
+eldest of Aunt Cecilia's brood. "Besides, what Harry
+said is all quite true, I'm sure. Except about me; I shan't
+marry a foreigner at all, but if I do, I certainly shan't
+marry a brewer. Mama is far too rich for me to take anything
+less than a duke."</p>
+
+<p>This was literally, almost painfully true. A succession
+of deaths in Aunt Cecilia's family, accompanied by a
+scarcity of male heirs, had placed her in possession of almost
+untold wealth&mdash;"more than I bargained for when I
+took you," as Uncle James jocularly put it, for the pleasure<span class="pagenum">[165]</span>
+of seeing her bridle and blush. Aunt C. was one of
+the richest women in the country, but it never changed her
+a particle. Not all her wealth, not all her social prominence,
+not all the refining influences that several generations'
+enjoyment of these brings, could ever make her even
+appear to be anything but the simple, warm-hearted,
+motherly creature she was.</p>
+
+<p>Harry, realizing all this as well as any one, exerted himself
+to make Aunt C. glad she had made the effort to come
+to see him graduate, and he manfully escorted her and the
+girls to the play, the baccalaureate service, his class-day
+exercises, the baseball game and various other entertainments,
+where, as Ruth rather aptly put it, "we can
+sit around and watch somebody else do something." He
+also did his full duty by his cousin, and danced away a
+long and perspiring evening with her at the senior promenade.
+He found Ruth very good company, in spite of her
+active tongue, or rather, perhaps, because of it.</p>
+
+<p>The final Wednesday, pregnant with fate, arrived at
+length, and after an immense deal of watching other people
+receive degrees, some earned and some accorded by the
+pure generosity of the University, Harry became entitled
+to write the magic initials "B.A." after his name. Being
+one of the leaders of his class in point of scholarship, he
+was one of the twenty or so who mounted the platform and
+received the diplomas for the rest. This was too much for
+Aunt Cecilia, who occupied a prominent place in the front
+row of the balcony.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, dear," she sighed, wiping away a furtive tear,
+"there he goes, and no mother to see him do it! No one
+to be proud of him! And the brightest of all the family&mdash;I
+shall never live to see a son of mine do as well, never,
+never!"</p>
+
+<p>"I'm not so sure," said her eldest daughter, comfortingly;
+"the doctrine of chances is in your favor. You
+have four boys&mdash;four chances to Aunt&mdash;what was her
+name?&mdash;Aunt Edith's two. Harry's not so fearfully
+bright, anyway&mdash;only sixteenth out of three hundred."</p>
+
+<p>"My dear, how can you talk so? you ought to be
+ashamed, after his being so nice to you all this week!"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, he's been very sweet, indeed," replied the maiden,
+magnanimously. "Though I don't know, on looking back
+at it, that he's been any nicer to me than I've been to him!"<span class="pagenum">[166]</span></p>
+
+<p>Harry himself was rather impressed by the long ceremony
+in which he found the qualities of dignity and simplicity
+nicely blended. He was impressed particularly by
+the giving of the honorary degrees; it seemed to him a
+very fine thing that these ten or fifteen people, all of them
+leaders in widely different spheres of activity, should make
+so much of receiving a bit of parchment from a university
+which most of them had not even attended, and equally
+fine of the university to do them honor; the whole giving
+proof of the triumph of the academic ideal in an age of
+materialism.</p>
+
+<p>The same thought occurred to him even more vividly at
+the great alumni luncheon that followed; the last and in
+some ways the most impressive of all the Commencement
+ceremonies. The great Renaissance dining hall filled from
+end to end with graduates, upwards of a thousand strong,
+ranging between the hoary-headed veteran and the hour-old
+Bachelor, all of them gathered for the single purpose
+of doing honor to their alma mater, all of them thrilled by
+the same feeling of affection for her&mdash;all this awakened a
+responsive note in the mind of Harry, always ready to
+render honor where honor was due, or to show love when
+he felt it. It was pleasant to sit and eat among one's
+classmates and in the presence of those other, older, more
+exalted beings stretching away to the other end of the hall
+and think that they were all, in a way, on terms of equal
+footing&mdash;all graduates together.</p>
+
+<p>At one end of the hall, on a great raised dais, sat the
+highest officers of the University, in company with the
+guests of honor of the day, the recipients of the honorary
+degrees. After the meal was over, certain of these were
+called upon to speak. Harry thought he had never heard
+such speeches. The men who made them were big men,
+foremost in the country's service and in the work of the
+world; one was a Cabinet minister, another a great explorer,
+another a scientist, another a missionary. The
+ultimate message of each one of them was the high mission
+of Yale, given in no spirit of boastful, flag-waving "almamatriotism,"
+but with strong emphasis on the theme of
+service. One got from them the idea that Yale men, like
+all men of their station and responsibility the world over,
+were born to serve humanity. The mission of Yale in this
+scheme was one of preparation; she acted as a recruiting-<span class="pagenum">[167]</span>station
+and clearing-house, developing the special powers
+of each of her sons, equipping them with knowledge of
+books, other men and themselves, and at last sending them
+into the field where they were calculated to make the best
+use of themselves. One revered and loved Yale, of course,
+for what she had given one; to her every man owed a full
+measure of gratitude and affection for what he had become.
+But one was never to forget where Yale stood in the
+scheme of things; one must always bear in mind that she
+was not an end in herself, but a means&mdash;one of many other
+means&mdash;to an infinitely greater end. Only by considering
+her in her place in the vast order of world-service could
+one do justice to her true power, her true greatness.</p>
+
+<p>The impression ultimately conveyed was not that of a
+smaller Yale but of a larger world. Harry had never considered
+the relation between universe and university in
+this illuminating light. He suddenly realized that his
+idea of his college had been that of a particularly reputable
+and agreeable finishing-school for young men; a treasury
+of social knowledge and the home of sport. He had mistaken
+the side-shows for the main exhibition; he had admired
+and criticized them without regard to the whole of
+which they were but small parts. In a flash he looked
+back and realized the vanity and recklessness of his earlier
+revolt against college institutions and traditions. Who
+was he that he should criticize them? What had he to
+offer as substitute for them except an attitude of idle receptivity
+and irresponsible dalliance? He had recovered
+from that first foolishness, to be sure, and thank Heaven
+for that slight evidence of sanity; but what had he done
+since his recovery except sit back and watch the days slide
+by? Had he ever made the slightest attempt toward serious
+thinking, toward placing himself, his college and the
+world in their proper relations to each other? Had he
+succeeded in learning a single important lesson from the
+many that had been offered to him? Was it possible that
+he had completely wasted these four precious years of
+golden youth?</p>
+
+<p>Suddenly he felt tears of humiliation and self-contempt
+burn behind his eyes. It would be absurd to shed them.
+He shifted his position and lit a cigarette. He inhaled
+the comforting smoke deeply and listened with meticulous
+attention to the speech from which his mind had wandered<span class="pagenum">[168]</span>
+into introspection, trying not to think any more of himself.
+Gradually, however, there penetrated into his inner
+consciousness the comforting thought that he had been
+hysterical, had judged himself too harshly in his anxiety
+to be sufficiently hard on himself. Those years were not
+wholly wasted&mdash;he had learned something in them. He
+was ahead of where he was when he entered college, if
+only a little. The thought of James occurred to him;
+James would be an inspiration in the future as he had
+been a help in the past. No, there was yet hope for him,
+though he must be very careful how he acted in the future.
+He had been a fool, but he hoped now that he had been
+merely a young fool, and that his mistakes could be at
+least partly rectified by age and effort. He would try
+hard, at least; he would be receptive, industrious, thorough,
+tolerant, unbiased and humble&mdash;above all, humble. He
+glanced up at the speaker's table and reflected that the
+men who had the most reason to be proud were in fact the
+humblest.</p>
+
+<p>The last speaker sat down amid a round of applause.
+The men on the floor of the hall stood up to sing before departing.
+Harry, looking at his watch, was surprised at
+the lateness of the hour; he had promised to see Aunt
+Cecilia and her daughters off at the station and must hurry
+away at once if he were to catch them.</p>
+
+<p>He laboriously made his way through the ranks of singing
+graduates toward the door, listening to the familiar
+words of the song as he had never before listened.</p>
+
+<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
+<span class="i0">Mother of men, grown strong in giving<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Honor to them thy lights have led,<br /></span>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>sang the men. Yes, thought Harry, there was plenty of
+honor to give. Would that he might ever be one of those
+to whom such honor was due, but that was not to be thought
+of. It was enough for him to be one of those who were led
+by those lights. Yes, that was the first step, steadfastly to
+follow the light that the grave Mother held above and before
+him; to keep his eyes constantly on it, never looking
+down or behind.</p>
+
+<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
+<span class="i0">Rich in the toil of thousands living,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Proud of the deeds of thousands dead,<br /></span>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>Deeds, deeds! That was what counted; any one could see
+visions and dream dreams; the veriest fool could mean<span class="pagenum">[169]</span>
+well. Oh, might a merciful Heaven help him to convert
+into deeds the lofty ideals that now surged within his
+brain!&mdash;What a ripping song that was, and how well it
+sounded to hear a thousand men singing it together! He
+forgot Aunt Cecilia for a moment, and checked his pace
+near the door to hear the last verse.</p>
+
+<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
+<span class="i0">Spirit of youth, alive, unchanging,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Under whose feet the years are cast,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Heir to an ageless empire, ranging<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Over the future and the past&mdash;<br /></span>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>Half blinded with tears he staggered out into the empty
+vestibule and steadied himself for a second against a pillar.
+He never had realized before how much it all meant to him,
+how he loved what he was leaving. And yet&mdash;"Spirit of
+youth, alive, unchanging"&mdash;he had never quite caught the
+full meaning of those words. They now seemed, in a way,
+to soften the pain of parting, to give him comfort and
+strength with which to face the years. Surely growing
+old would not be so bad if one could think of the spirit of
+youth as still there, alive, unchanging, spreading joy and
+hope through the world!</p>
+
+<p>And then, sweet and sudden as a breeze at sundown came
+the thought to him that here lay his life's work, his own
+little mission in the world: in using his intelligence and
+his power of interpretation, the only gifts he could discover
+himself as possessing, to guide and assist those who
+happened to come a little after him in the long procession
+of human life&mdash;in becoming, in short, a teacher. A sudden
+feeling of calmness and surety took possession of him;
+he was able to consider himself and his place in the world
+with a more complete detachment than he had ever before
+attained. He found himself able, for the moment, to rate
+his powers and limitations exactly as an unprejudiced observer
+might have done. Within him he suddenly, unmistakably
+felt those qualities of priest and prophet which,
+combined with that of the scholar, make up the ideal
+teacher.</p>
+
+<p>"Spirit of youth," he whispered, "to you I dedicate myself,
+such as I am, and my life, such as it may be."</p>
+
+<p>He stood still for a moment and listened as the great
+chorus behind the closed door brought the song to a finish,
+ending on a note both solemn and exalted. For a second<span class="pagenum">[170]</span>
+or two there was silence, and then there burst forth the
+sound of the Yale cheer. The contrast between the last
+notes of the song and the brazen bellow of that cheer, hallowed
+by the memories of a hundred close-fought fields,
+struck Harry as both dramatic and comic, and caused a
+corresponding change in his own mood.</p>
+
+<p>"Spirit of youth, alive, unchanging!" he quoted again,
+laughing. Then he hurried off to say good-by to his aunt.</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[171]</span>
+
+<h2>PART II</h2>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_I2">CHAPTER I</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">CAN LOVE BE CONTROLLED BY ADVICE?</p>
+
+<p>Madge Elliston lived alone with her mother in a
+small house on an unpretentious but socially unimpeachable
+side street, just off one of the main avenues.
+Their means, as Madge has already intimated, were modest&mdash;"modest,"
+as the young lady sprightly put it, "to the
+point of prudishness." Joseph Elliston, her father, had
+been a brilliant and promising young professor when her
+mother married him, with, as people said, a career before
+him. If by career they meant affluence, they were wholly
+right in saying it was all before him. But though the two
+married on his prospects, they could not fairly have been
+said to have made an unwise venture. Nothing but death
+had kept Joseph Elliston from becoming a popular and respected
+teacher, a foremost authority on economics, the
+author of standard works on that subject, and the possessor
+of a comfortable income. But he had died when
+Madge, his only child, was five years old, leaving his small
+and sorrowing family barely enough to live on.</p>
+
+<p>The straitened circumstances in which the sad event
+threw Mrs. Elliston and her daughter were somewhat relieved
+by the generosity of the only sister of the widow,
+Eliza Scharndorst, herself a widow and the possessor of a
+large fortune. She was extremely fond of Madge, who
+always got on beautifully with her "Aunt Tizzy"&mdash;an
+infantile corruption allowed to survive into maturity&mdash;having
+more in common with her, if the truth must be
+known, than with her mother. She was a festive soul,
+much given to entertaining, and she was not long in discovering
+that the assistance of her niece was a distinct
+asset in making her home attractive to guests. It is not
+to be wondered at that Madge's occasional services in the
+way of decorating a dinner table or brightening up an
+otherwise stodgy reception would redound to her material<span class="pagenum">[172]</span>
+benefit as well as to her spiritual welfare. Such good
+things as trips to Bermuda, occasional new frocks and instruction
+under the best music masters, came her way so
+frequently that by the time we next meet her, nearly five
+years after our last sight of her, Madge was a far better
+dowered young woman, socially speaking, than the penniless
+orphaned daughter of a college professor could normally
+hope to be.</p>
+
+<p>For when we next see her Miss Elliston is&mdash;and in no
+mere figurative sense&mdash;holding the center of the stage. A
+real stage in a real theater, under the full blaze of real
+footlights, and if no real audience sits on the other side of
+those footlights, it is no great matter, for a very real
+audience will sit there soon enough. On Friday night, to
+be exact, and this is Tuesday. To be even more exact, it
+is the first formal, dress rehearsal of an amateur performance
+of "The Beggar's Opera" (immortal work!)
+organized primarily for charitable purposes by a number
+of prominent citizens, among them Mrs. Rudolph Scharndorst,
+and secondarily, if we are to give any weight to the
+opinion of those present at the rehearsal, for the purpose
+of giving scope to the talents of Mrs. Rudolph Scharndorst's
+niece.</p>
+
+<p>For Madge is cast for the part of Polly Peachum,
+heroine of the piece. And if there was originally the
+slightest doubt as to the wisdom of such an assignment, it
+has vanished into thin air before now. For Madge is
+lovely&mdash;! It is not merely a matter of voice; there never
+was any doubt but that she had the best voice available for
+the part. What the scattered few in the dark auditorium
+are busy admiring now is the extraordinary charm, grace,
+actual beauty, even, of the girl performing before them.
+The more so because it is all so unattended; no one thought
+that she would give that effect on the stage. Of a type
+usually described as "attractive," slight and rather short,
+with hair sandy rather than golden, and a face distinguished
+only by a nice pair of blue eyes and a particularly
+ingratiating smile, Madge could not fairly be expected to
+turn herself into a vision of commanding beauty and charm
+with the slight external aids of paint and powder and a
+position behind a row of strong lights.</p>
+
+<p>The only unimpressed and indifferent person in the
+theater was the coach. That was quite as it should be, of<span class="pagenum">[173]</span>
+course; coaches must not exhibit bursts of enthusiasm, like
+common people. Yet it is perhaps worth mentioning that
+the coach in question made none of his frequent interruptions
+during the first few moments of Polly's presence on
+the stage, but sat silently biting his pencil and frowning
+in the back row of the theater till after she had finished
+her second song.</p>
+
+<p>"One moment!" he cried, running down the aisle. "I'm
+going to change that song." He exchanged a few whispered
+remarks with the leader of the orchestra, who had charge
+of the musical side of the production. "All right&mdash;never
+mind now&mdash;go on with the act ... No, don't cross there,
+Mrs. Peachum; stay where you are, and Miss Elliston!
+what are the last words of the second line of that song?"</p>
+
+<p>"'Mothers obey.'"</p>
+
+<p>"All right&mdash;let's have 'em. I didn't get them that time.
+Go on, please."</p>
+
+<p>The act continued, and admiration grew apace. When
+at length the act reached its close there was a faint but
+spontaneous outburst of applause from the almost empty
+theater.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, what do you think of Madge?" asked Mrs.
+Scharndorst, waylaying the coach on his progress down the
+aisle.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, she'll do! There's a lot there to improve, though.&mdash;Strike
+for the second act&mdash;drinking scene!" This last
+uttered in a shout as he rushed on down to the stage. Not
+very fulsome praise, to be sure, but Mrs. Scharndorst
+knows her man, and is satisfied. Indeed, she respects him
+the more for not being fulsome.</p>
+
+<p>So do the other members of the cast and chorus; at least,
+if they do respect him, it cannot be for the enthusiasm of
+his approval. His demeanor, as he stands there on a chair
+in the orchestra pit, shouting directions to his minions, is
+not indicative of very profound satisfaction with the progress
+of the rehearsal.</p>
+
+<p>"Thompson! If you're going to use your spot on Polly's
+entrance, for Heaven's sake keep it on her face and
+not on her feet! I didn't see a thing but her shoes then
+... No, you there, that table way down front&mdash;so, and
+oh, Mrs. Smith! is that Tilman's idea of a costume for an
+old woman, middle class?... I thought so ... no, I'm
+afraid not! That train might be quite suitable for a<span class="pagenum">[174]</span>
+duchess, but it won't do for a robber's wife. You see Miss
+Banks about it, will you please?... Mr. Barnaby! I
+want to get you and Miss Elliston to go through the business
+of that Pretty Polly song once again&mdash;you're both as
+stiff as pokers still.... No, just the motions. No, stand
+on both feet and keep your chest out while you're singing
+your part, and when she comes in, 'Fondly, fondly,' you
+half turn round, so&mdash;so that when she falls back on your
+arm she'll have a chance to show more than her chin to the
+audience.... No, I think I'll have you wait till the encore
+before you kiss her&mdash;it looks flat if you do it too often, and
+by the bye, Mr. Barnaby, will you make an appointment
+with Mrs. Adams for to-morrow to get up a dance for that
+prison scene&mdash;'How happy could I be with either'....
+Four o'clock&mdash;all right.... What song?"</p>
+
+<p>This last is in answer to an inquiry from Miss Elliston.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, of course&mdash;'Can love be controlled by advice'....
+Come down here and we'll talk it over. Careful, step in
+the middle of that chair and you'll be all right ...
+there!" And Miss Elliston and the great man sit down
+companionably in the places belonging respectively to the
+oboe and the trombone, just as though they had been
+friends from earliest youth.</p>
+
+<p>If there is one thing we despise, it is transparent roguishness
+on the part of an author. Let us hasten to admit,
+then, that the coach is none other than our friend Harry;
+a Harry not changed a particle, really, from his undergraduate
+days, though a Harry, to be sure, in whom the
+passage of five years has effected certain important developments.
+Such, for instance, as having become able to
+coach an amateur production of a musical show. These
+will be described and accounted for, all in good time. The
+story cannot be everywhere at once.</p>
+
+<p>"About that song ... I know nothing about music, of
+course, but it struck me to-night that that was rather a
+good tune&mdash;one of the best in the show.... It may have
+been the singing, of course."</p>
+
+<p>"Not a bit of it&mdash;it's a ripping tune!&mdash;Let's see what
+the trombone part for it looks like.... There isn't any&mdash;just
+those little thingumbobs. Oh, the accompaniment is
+all on the strings, of course; I forgot."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, what I want to get at is, do you think Gay's
+words are up to it?"<span class="pagenum">[175]</span></p>
+
+<p>"Nowhere near. I'd much rather sing some of yours,
+if that's what you're getting at.... They're not quite
+<i>jeune fille</i>, either; I just discovered that to-day."</p>
+
+<p>"There's a great deal in this show that isn't. We've
+cut most of it, but there's a good bit left, only no one who
+hasn't studied the period can spot it.... You needn't tell
+any one that.&mdash;Well, let's see about some words. 'Can
+love be controlled by advice, will Cupid our mothers obey'&mdash;we'll
+keep that, I think ..."</p>
+
+<p>He produced a scrap of paper from his pocket and scribbled
+rapidly on it. In a minute or two he had evolved the
+following stanzas, retaining the first four lines of Gay's
+original song:</p>
+
+<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
+<span class="i0">Can love be controlled by advice?<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Will Cupid our mothers obey?<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Though my heart were as frozen as ice<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">At his flame 'twould have melted away.<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Now love is enthroned in my heart<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">All your threats and entreaties are in vain;<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">His power defies all your art,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">And chiding but adds to my pain.<br /></span>
+</div><div class="stanza">
+<span class="i0">Ah, mother! if ever in youth<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Your heart by love's anguish was wrung;<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">If ever you thrilled with its truth<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Too sweet to be spoken or sung;<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">If ever you've longed for life's best,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Nor reckoned the issue thereof;<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">If heart ever beat in your breast<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Have pity on me&mdash;for I love!<br /></span>
+</div></div>
+
+<p>"There!" said he, handing it to the prima donna; "see
+what you think of that."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh ... much better! There'll be much more fun in
+singing it."</p>
+
+<p>"It isn't much in the way of poetry," explained Harry,
+"but it gives a certain dramatic interest to the song, which
+is the main thing. You can change anything you want
+in it, of course; I daresay some of those words are quite
+unsingable on the notes of the song."</p>
+
+<p>"No&mdash;I think they'll be all right. Thank you very
+much; it was hard to make anything out of the other
+words. Also, I shall be able to tell Mama that you've cut
+out some of Gay's naughty words and put in some innocent
+ones of your own instead. She's been just a little worried
+lately, I think; she seems to have an idea that 'The Beggar's
+Opera' isn't quite a nice play for a young lady to act in!"<span class="pagenum">[176]</span></p>
+
+<p>"Well, one can hardly blame her...." This sentence
+trailed off into inaudibility as Harry turned to give his attention
+to some one else coming up with a question at the
+moment. Perhaps Miss Elliston did not even hear the beginning
+of the sentence; it is easier to believe that she
+did not, in view of what followed. Certainly every extenuating
+circumstance is needed, on both sides, to help
+account for the fact that so trivial conversation as that
+which just took place should have led directly to unpleasantness
+and indirectly to consequences of a far-reaching
+kind. It is easier to comprehend, also, if one remembers
+that Miss Elliston's thoughts when she was left alone by
+Harry occupying the position of the trombone, remained
+on, or at any rate quite near, the point at which the conversation
+broke off, whereas Harry's had flown far from
+it. So that when, after an interval of a few minutes,
+Harry's voice again became articulate to her in the single
+isolated sentence "given her something to say to her old
+frump of a mother," addressed to the leader of the
+orchestra, she at first misconstrued his meaning, interpreting
+his remark not as he meant it, as referring to her stage
+mother, Mrs. Peachum, but as referring to quieting the
+puritanical scruples of her own mother, Mrs. Elliston.</p>
+
+<p>The whole affair hung on an incredibly slender thread
+of coincidence. If Harry had not unconsciously raised
+his voice somewhat on that one phrase, if he had not happened
+to use the word "frump," which might conceivably
+be twisted into applying to either mother, Miss Elliston
+would never, even for a moment, have been tempted to attribute
+the baser meaning to his words. As it was the
+thought did not remain in her head above five seconds, at
+the outside; she knew Harry better than to believe seriously
+that he would say such a thing. But by another
+unfortunate chance Harry happened to be looking her
+way during those few seconds, and marked her angry flush
+and the instantaneous glance of indignation and contempt
+that she shot toward him. He saw her flush die down and
+her expression soften again, but the natural quickness that
+had made him realize her state of mind was not long in
+giving him an explanation of it.</p>
+
+<p>All might yet have been well had not Harry's sense of
+humor played him false. As usually happened at these
+evening rehearsals he escorted Miss Elliston home, her<span class="pagenum">[177]</span>
+house lying on the way to his. In the course of the walk
+an unhappy impulse made him refer to the little incident,
+which had struck him as merely humorous.</p>
+
+<p>"By the way," said he "your sense of filial duty almost
+led you astray to-night, didn't it?"</p>
+
+<p>"Filial duty?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes&mdash;you thought I was making remarks about your
+mother to-night when I was talking to Cosgrove about Mrs.
+Peachum and that song...."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, that&mdash;!" Any one who knew her might have expected
+Miss Elliston to laugh and continue with something
+like "Yes, I know; wasn't it ridiculous of me?" since she
+really knew perfectly well that Harry was talking about
+Mrs. Peachum. That she did not is due partly to the
+fatigue incident to rehearsing a leading part in an opera
+in addition to teaching school from nine till one every
+day, and partly to the eternally inexplicable depths of
+the feminine nature. She had been very much ashamed
+of herself for having even for a moment done that injustice
+to Harry, and she wished intensely that the affair
+might be buried in the deepest oblivion. Harry's opening
+of the subject, consequently, seemed to her tactless
+and a trifle brutal. She had done penance all the evening
+for her after all very trifling mistake; why should he insist
+upon humiliating her this way?... Obviously she
+was very tired!</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," went on Harry, "don't expect me to believe that
+you were angry on behalf of Mrs. Peachum!"</p>
+
+<p>"No. I suppose I had a right to be angry on behalf of
+my own mother, if I wanted to, though."</p>
+
+<p>"But I wasn't talking about your mother&mdash;you know
+that!"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, weren't you?"</p>
+
+<p>"Well, do you think so?"</p>
+
+<p>"How should I know? I was only eavesdropping, of
+course, I have no right to think anything about it."</p>
+
+<p>"Madge, don't be silly."</p>
+
+<p>"Well?"</p>
+
+<p>"Do you really, honestly think that I am guilty of having
+spoken slightingly of your mother? Just answer me
+that, yes or no."</p>
+
+<p>"As I say, I have no right to any opinion on the subject.
+I only heard something not intended&mdash;"<span class="pagenum">[178]</span></p>
+
+<p>"Oh, the&mdash;" The remainder of this exclamation was
+fortunately lost in the collar of Harry's greatcoat. "You
+had better give me back that song&mdash;I presume you won't
+want to sing it now."</p>
+
+<p>"Why not? Art is above all personal feelings." It
+was mere wilfulness that led her to utter this cynical remark.
+What she really wanted to say was "Of course I
+want to sing it, and I know you meant Mrs. Peachum,"
+but somehow the other answer was given before she knew
+it.</p>
+
+<p>"Madge, you may not know it, but you are positively
+insulting."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Harry&mdash;! Who began being insulting? Not that
+I mind your insulting me...."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh. That's the way it is, is it? I see." They were
+now standing talking at the foot of Madge's front steps.
+Harry continued, very quietly: "Now perhaps you'd better
+give me back that song."</p>
+
+<p>"I don't see the necessity."</p>
+
+<p>"I'll be damned if you shall sing it now!" His voice
+remained low, but passion sounded in it as unmistakably
+as if he had shouted. The remark was, in fact, made in
+an uncontrollable burst of anger, necessitating the severing
+of all diplomatic relations.</p>
+
+<p>"Just as you like, of course." Madge's tone, cold, expressionless,
+hopelessly polite, is equivalent to the granting
+of a demanded passport. "Here it is. Good-night."</p>
+
+<p>"Good-night."</p>
+
+<p>So they parted, in a white heat of anger. But being
+both fairly sensible people, in the main, beside being the
+kind of people whose anger however violently it may burn
+at first, does not last long, they realized before sleep closed
+their eyes that night that the quarrel would not last over
+another day.</p>
+
+<p>Morning brought to Harry, at any rate, a complete return
+of sanity, and before breakfast he sat down and
+wrote the following note:</p>
+
+<blockquote><p>Dear Madge:</p>
+
+<p>I send back the song merely as a token of the abjectness
+of my submission&mdash;I don't suppose you will want to
+sing it now. I can't tell you how sorry I am about my
+behavior last night; I can only ask you to attribute as<span class="pagenum">[179]</span>
+much, of it as possible to the fatigue of business and forgive
+the rest!</p>
+
+<p class="author smcap">Harry.</p>
+</blockquote>
+
+<p>which he enclosed in an envelope with the words of the
+song and sent to Madge by a messenger boy.</p>
+
+<p>Madge received it while she was at breakfast. She went
+out and told the boy to wait for an answer, and went back
+and finished her breakfast before writing a reply. Her
+face was noticeably grave as she ate, and it became even
+graver when at last she sat down at her desk and started
+to put pen to paper. She wrote three pages of note-paper,
+read them, and tore them up. She then wrote a
+page and a half, taking more time over them than over the
+three. This she also tore up. Then she sat inactive at her
+desk for several minutes, and at last, seeing that she was
+due at her school in a few minutes, she took up another
+sheet of paper and wrote: "All right&mdash;my fault entirely.
+M. E.," and sent it off by the boy.</p>
+
+<p>When Harry saw her at the rehearsal that evening she
+greeted him exactly as if nothing had happened. She had
+rather less to say to him than was customary during rehearsals,
+but Harry was so busy and preoccupied he did
+not notice that. He did notice that she sang the original
+words to the disputed song, which, as he told himself, was
+just what he expected.</p>
+
+<p>For the next two days he was fairly buried in responsibility
+and detail and hardly conscious of any feeling
+whatever beyond an intense desire to have the performance
+over. It was not until this desire was partially fulfilled,
+the curtain actually risen on the Friday night and
+the performance well under way, that he was able to sit
+back and draw a free breath. The moment came when,
+having seen that all was well behind the scenes, he dropped
+into the back of the box occupied by Aunt Selina and one
+or two chosen friends to watch the progress of the play
+from the front.</p>
+
+<p>Then, for the first time, he was able to look at it more
+from the point of view of a spectator than that of a creator.
+Now that his work was completed and must stand or fall
+on its own merit, he could watch from a wholly detached
+position. On the whole, he rather enjoyed the sensation.
+It occurred to him, for instance, as quite a new thought,<span class="pagenum">[180]</span>
+that the excellent make-up of the stolid Mr. Dawson in
+the part of Peachum very largely counteracted his vocal
+"dulness"; and that Mrs. Smith as Mrs. Peachum, in
+spite of the innumerable sillinesses and bad tricks that had
+been his despair for weeks, was making an extremely good
+impression upon the audience.</p>
+
+<p>Then Madge made her entrance, and he saw at a glance,
+as he had never seen it before, just how good Madge was.
+She had a certain way of carrying her head, a certain sureness
+in adjusting her movements to her speech, a certain
+judgment in projecting her voice that went straight to
+the spot. Madge was a born actress, that was all there
+was to it; she ought to have made the stage her profession.
+He smiled inwardly as he thought how many people
+would make that remark after this performance. Then
+his amusement gave place to a sudden and strange resentment
+against the very idea of Madge's going on the stage;
+a resentment he made no effort either to understand or
+account for....</p>
+
+<p>The strings in the orchestra quavered a few languorous
+notes and Madge started her song "Can love be controlled
+by advice." Her voice was a singularly sweet one, of no
+great volume and yet possessed of a certain carrying quality.
+The excellence of her instruction, combined with her
+own good taste, had brought it to a state of what, for that
+voice, might be called perfection. She also had the good
+sense never to sing anything too big for her. But though
+her voice might not be suited to Wagner or Strauss it was
+far better suited to certain simpler things than a larger
+voice might have been, and the song she was singing now
+was one of these. Probably no more happy combination
+could be effected between singer and song than that of
+Madge and the slow, plaintive, seventeenth-century melody
+of "Grim king of the ghosts," which Gay had the
+good sense to incorporate into his masterpiece.</p>
+
+<p>To say that the audience was spellbound by her rendering
+of the song would be to stretch a point. It sat, for
+the most part, silently attentive, enjoying it very much
+and thinking that it would give her a good round of applause
+and an encore at the end. Harry, standing in the
+obscurity of the back part of Aunt Selina's box, was of
+very much the same mind. For about half of the song,
+that is. For near the end of the first verse he suddenly<span class="pagenum">[181]</span>
+realized that Madge was singing not Gay's words, but his
+own.</p>
+
+<p>It was absurd, of course, but at that realization the whole
+world seemed suddenly to change. The floor beneath his
+feet became clouds, the theater a corner of paradise, the
+people in it choirs of marvelous ethereal beings, Mrs.
+Peachum (alias Smith) a ministrant seraph, Madge's voice
+the music of the spheres, and Madge herself, from being
+an unusually nice girl of his acquaintance, became....</p>
+
+<p>What nonsense! he told himself; the idea of getting so
+worked up at hearing his own words sung on a stage!&mdash;You
+fool, replied another voice within him, you know perfectly
+well that that's not it at all.&mdash;Don't tell me, replied
+the other Harry, the sensible one; such things don't happen,
+except in books; they don't happen to real people&mdash;ME,
+for instance.&mdash;Why not? obstinately inquired the
+other; why not you, as well as any one else?&mdash;Well, I
+can't stop to argue about it now, the practical Harry answered;
+I've got to go out and see that people are ready
+for their cues.</p>
+
+<p>He went out, and found everything running perfectly
+smoothly. People were standing waiting for their entrances
+minutes ahead of time, the electricians were at their
+posts, the make-up people had finished their work, the
+scene-shifters and property men had put everything in
+readiness for setting the next scene; no one even asked him
+a question. He flitted about for a few moments on imaginary
+errands, asking various people if all was going well;
+but the real question that he kept asking himself all the
+time was Is this IT? Is this IT?</p>
+
+<p>"I don't know!" he said at last, loudly and petulantly,
+and several people turned to see whom he was reproving
+now.</p>
+
+<p>When he got back to the box he found Madge still singing
+the last verse of her song. He wondered how many
+times she had had to repeat it, and hoped Cosgrove was
+living up to his agreement not to give more than one encore
+to each song. In reality this was her first encore; his hectic
+trip behind the scenes had occupied a much shorter time
+than he supposed. Madge was making a most exquisite
+piece of work of her little appeal to maternal sympathy;
+she was actually taking the second verse sitting down, leaning
+forward with her arms on a table in an attitude of conversational<span class="pagenum">[182]</span>
+pleading. He had not told her to do that; it
+was so hard to make effective that he would not have dared
+to suggest it. When she reached the line, "If heart ever
+beat in your breast" she suddenly rose, slightly threw
+back her arms and head, and sang the words on a wholly
+new note of restrained passion, beautifully dramatic and
+suggestive. The house burst into applause, but Harry
+was seized with a fit of unholy mirth at the irony of the
+situation&mdash;Madge, perfectly indifferent, singing those
+words, while he, their author, consumed with an all-devouring
+flame, stood stifling his passion in a dark corner.
+An insane desire seized him to run out to the middle of
+the stage and shout at the top of his voice "Have pity on
+me, for I love!" It would be true then. He supposed,
+however, that people might think it peculiar.</p>
+
+<p>From then on, as long as Madge held the stage, he stood
+rooted to the spot, unable to lift his eyes from her. Presently
+her lover came in, and they started the lovely duet,
+"Pretty Polly, say." At the end of the encore, according
+to Harry's instructions, Barnaby leaned over and kissed
+his Polly on the mouth. A sudden and intense dislike for
+Mr. Barnaby at that moment overcame Harry....</p>
+
+<p>The act ended; the house went wild again; the curtain
+flopped up and down with no apparent intention of ever
+stopping; ushers rushed down the aisles with great beribboned
+bunches of flowers. This gave Harry an idea;
+as soon as the second act was safely under way he rushed
+out to the nearest florist's shop and commandeered all the
+American Beauty roses in the place, to be delivered to
+Miss Elliston with his card at the end of the next act.</p>
+
+<p>As he was going out of the shop he stopped to look at
+some peculiar little pink and white flowers in a vase near
+the door.</p>
+
+<p>"What are those?" he asked.</p>
+
+<p>"Bleeding hearts," said the florist's clerk. "Just up
+from Florida; very hard to get at this time of year."</p>
+
+<p>Harry stood still, thinking. If he sent those&mdash;would
+she Know&mdash;Of course she would, answered the practical
+Harry immediately; she would not only Know but would
+call him a fool for his pains.&mdash;Oh, shut up! retorted the
+other.</p>
+
+<p>"I'll have these then, instead of the roses, please," he
+said aloud. "All of them, and don't forget the card."<span class="pagenum">[183]</span></p>
+
+<p>They did not meet till after the performance was over.
+He caught sight of her making a sort of triumphal progress
+through the back of the stage, on her way to the dressing
+rooms, and deliberately placed himself in her path.
+She was looking rather surprisingly solemn, he noticed.
+Her face lighted up, however, when she saw him. She
+smiled, at least.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, what did <i>you</i> think of it?" she asked.</p>
+
+<p>"I think the performance was very creditable," he answered.
+"To say what I think of you would be compromising."</p>
+
+<p>She laughed and went on without making any reply. He
+could not see her face, but something gave him the impression
+that her smile did not last very long after she had
+turned away from him.</p>
+
+<p>He walked home alone through the crisp March night,
+breathing deeply and trying to reduce his teeming brain to
+a state of order and clarity. The walk from the theater
+home was not sufficient for this; he walked far beyond his
+house and all the way back again before he could think
+clearly enough. At last he raised his eyes to the comfortable
+stars and spoke a few words aloud in a low, calm
+voice.</p>
+
+<p>"I really think," he said, "that this is IT. I really do
+think so ... But I must be very careful," he added, to
+himself; "<i>very</i> careful. I must take no chances&mdash;this
+time. Both on Madge's account and on mine."</p>
+
+<p>"No," he added after a moment; "not on my account.
+On Madge's."</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[184]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_II2">CHAPTER II</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">CONGREVE</p>
+
+<p>Little had happened to mark the greater part of the
+time that had elapsed since Harry's graduation. For
+three years he had studied hard for his doctor's degree,
+and during the fourth year he had been set to teaching
+English literature to freshmen, which task, on the whole,
+he accomplished with marked success. But during the
+fifth year, the year in which we next see him, he was not
+teaching freshmen, though he was still living in New
+Haven, and working, according to his own accounts, like a
+galley slave. The events which led up to this state of
+things form a matter of some moment in his career.</p>
+
+<p>These began with the production, during his fourth year
+out of college, of a play of his by the college dramatic association.
+Or, to be more exact, it really began some
+months before that, when Harry, leaving a theater one
+evening after witnessing a poor play, had remarked to his
+companion of the moment: "I actually believe that I
+could write a better play than that." To which the friend
+made the obvious answer, "Why don't you, then?" "I
+will," replied Harry, and he did.</p>
+
+<p>It was his first venture in that field of composition. In
+all his literary activities he had never before, to borrow
+his own phrase, committed dramaturgy. To the very fact
+that his maiden effort came so late Harry was wont, in
+later years, to attribute a large measure of his success.
+His idea was that if he had begun earlier his first results
+would have been so excruciatingly bad as to discourage
+him from sustained effort in that direction.</p>
+
+<p>However this may be, the play was judged the best of
+those submitted in a competition organized by the dramatic
+association, and was produced by it during the following
+winter with a very fair amount of success. Nobody could
+fairly have called it a remarkable play, but neither could
+any one have been justified in calling it a bad one. Its
+theme was, apart from its setting, singularly characteristic
+of the subsequent style of its author and may be said to<span class="pagenum">[185]</span>
+have struck the tragi-comic note that sounded through all
+his later work. It concerned the experiences of a struggling
+young English author, poor, but of gentle birth, who
+is first seen inveighing against the snobbery, coldness and
+indifference shown toward him by people of wealth and
+position, and later, after coming unexpectedly into a peerage
+and a large fortune, is horrified to find himself forced
+into displaying the very qualities which he had so fiercely
+condemned in others. The machinery of the play was
+somewhat artificial, but the characterization and dramatic
+interest were skilfully worked out. The dialogue was
+everywhere delightful and the contrast afforded between
+the conscientious, introspective sincerity of the young
+author and the gaily unscrupulous casuistry of his wife
+was a forecast, if not actually an early example, of his best
+work.</p>
+
+<p>Harry was never blind to the faults of the play, but he
+remained convinced that it was good in the main, and,
+what was more important, retained his interest in dramatic
+composition. He worked hard during the following spring
+and summer and at length evolved another play, which he
+called "Chances" and believed was a great improvement
+upon his first work. Early in August he sent the play to
+a New York manager to whom he had obtained an introduction
+and after a week or two made an appointment with
+him.</p>
+
+<p>The secret trepidation with which he first entered the
+office of the great, the redoubtable Leo Bachmann was
+largely allayed by the appearance of the manager. He
+was a large flabby man, with scant stringy hair and a not
+unpleasant smile. He sat heavily back in an office chair and
+puffed continually at a much-chewed cigar, the ashes of
+which fell unnoticed and collected in the furrows of his
+waistcoat. He spoke in a soft thick voice, with a strong
+German accent. Harry did not see anything particularly
+terrifying about him.</p>
+
+<p>"Ah, yes, Mr. Vimbourne," said the manager when
+Harry had made himself known. "You have sent me a
+play, yes? Ah, here it is.... Unfortunately I have not
+had time to read it; I am very, very busy just now, but my
+man Jennings has read it and tells me it is very nice.
+Very nice, indeed ..." he puffed in ruminative silence
+for a few seconds. "Could you come back next week, say<span class="pagenum">[186]</span>
+Friday, Mr. Vimbourne? and we will talk it over. I am
+sorry to trouble you, but you see I am so very, very
+busy...."</p>
+
+<p>Harry made another appointment and left, not wholly
+dissatisfied. He returned, ten days afterward, to his second
+interview, which was an almost exact replica of the
+first. He allowed himself to be put off another ten days,
+but when he returned for the third time and was greeted
+by precisely the same soft words he was irritated and
+hardly able to conceal the fact.</p>
+
+<p>"Ah, yes, your play," said the manager, as though he
+had just heard of it for the first time. "Jennings was
+speaking to me of it only the other night. I am sorry to
+say I have not read it yet." He took the manuscript from
+a pile on his desk and turned over the leaves. "I am sorry&mdash;very
+sorry&mdash;I have so little time...."</p>
+
+<p>"I don't believe you, Mr. Bachmann," said Harry.</p>
+
+<p>"Ah?" said the manager, without the slightest apparent
+interest. "Why not, Mr. Vimbourne?"</p>
+
+<p>"Well, you turned straight to the best scene in it just
+now, for one thing.... Beside, you wouldn't keep me
+hanging on this way if you didn't see something in it, and
+if you see anything in it of course you've read it. And I
+don't mind telling you, Mr. Bachmann, that isn't my idea
+of business."</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Bachmann's next remark was so unexpected that
+Harry nearly swooned in his chair. "I read it the day
+after it came," he said softly.</p>
+
+<p>"Then why on earth didn't you say so in the first
+place?" stammered Harry.</p>
+
+<p>The manager made no reply for some moments, but sat
+silently puffing and turning over the pages of Harry's
+manuscript.</p>
+
+<p>"I like to know people," he murmured at last, very
+gently and with apparent irrelevance. Harry, however,
+saw the bearing of the remark and suddenly felt extraordinarily
+small. He had been rather proud of his little
+burst of spirit and independence; he now saw that Leo
+Bachmann had drawn it from him with the ease and certainty
+of touch with which a musician produces a note
+from a flute. He wondered, abjectly, how many other
+self-satisfied young authors had sat where he sat and been
+played upon by that great puffing mass of pulp.<span class="pagenum">[187]</span></p>
+
+<p>Bachmann was the next to speak. "I like your play
+very much, Mr. Vimbourne," he said. "It is very nice&mdash;some
+things in it not so good, but on the whole, it is very
+nice. I think I vill try to produce it, Mr. Vimbourne, but
+not yet&mdash;not till I see how my September plays go. I
+shall keep yours in reserve, and then, later, we may try
+it. About the first of November, when the Fifth Avenue
+crowd comes back to town...." He smiled slightly.
+"They are the people that vill vant to see it. Not Harlem.
+Not Brooklyn. The four hundred. Even so," he
+continued, ruminatively, "even so, I shall not make on
+it."</p>
+
+<p>This seemed to Harry a good opening for a proposition
+he had been longing to make since the very first but had
+never quite dared. "If you want me to put anything up
+on it, Mr. Bachmann, why&mdash;I...."</p>
+
+<p>"No," said Mr. Bachmann gently; "I never do that, I
+produce my own plays, for my own reasons. I vill pay
+you a sum, down. And a small royalty, perhaps&mdash;after
+the hundredth performance."</p>
+
+<p>Harry looked up and smiled, and the manager smiled
+back at him. His smile grew quite broad, almost a laugh,
+in fact. Then he rose from his chair&mdash;the first time
+Harry had seen him out of it&mdash;and clasped Harry's hand
+between his two large plump ones.</p>
+
+<p>"I think we shall get on very well, Mr. Vimbourne,"
+he said. "Very well, indeed. I vill let you know when
+rehearsals begin. And you must write more&mdash;a great deal
+more. But&mdash;vait till after the rehearsals!"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, I think I understand you," said Harry, laughing.
+"I'll wait. And I'll come to the rehearsals, too!"</p>
+
+<p>In October the rehearsals actually started, and Harry
+began to see what he told Mr. Bachmann he thought he
+understood. Day after day he sat in the dark draughty
+theater and watched the people on the stage slash and cut
+and change his carefully constructed dialogue without
+offering a word of remonstrance. At first the pleasure of
+seeing his own work take tangible form, on a real professional
+stage and by the agency of real professional actors
+more than made up for the loss. Then as the rehearsals
+went on, he perceived that there was a very real reason
+for every cut and change, and that the play benefited tremendously
+thereby. He began to see how acting accomplishes<span class="pagenum">[188]</span>
+a great deal of what he had always considered the
+office of dialogue. A dialogue of five speeches, to take a
+concrete example, on the probable reasons why a certain
+person did not arrive when he was expected was made unnecessary
+by one of the characters crossing the stage and
+looking out of a window at just the right moment and
+with just the right facial expression.</p>
+
+<p>Harry made no secret of his conviction that his play improved
+immensely under the care of Bachmann and his
+people. His attitude was that they knew everything about
+play-producing and he knew nothing, and that the extraordinary
+thing was that he had been able to provide
+them with any dramatic material whatever. He joked
+about it with the actors and managers, when occasion
+offered, as callously as if he had been a third person, and
+rather surprised himself by the light-heartedness he displayed.
+Whether this was entirely genuine, whether it
+did not contain elements of a pose, a desire to appear as a
+man of the theatrical world, a fear of falling into all the
+usual errors of youthful playwrights, he did not at first
+ask himself.</p>
+
+<p>One day, about a week before the opening night, he received
+a jolt that made him look upon himself and his
+calling in rather a new light. This came through an unexpected
+agent&mdash;none other, indeed, than a woman of the
+cast, and not the player of the principal female part at that,
+but a lesser light, Bertha Bensel by name, a plain but
+pleasant little person of uncertain age. Harry was lunching
+alone with her and carrying on in what had become his
+customary style when talking of his play.</p>
+
+<p>"You know," he was saying, "I thought at one time I
+had written a play, but I haven't, I've written a moving
+picture show. Everybody is writing movies these days,
+even those that try to write anything else, which just
+shows. I'm going regularly into the movie business, after
+this. Seriously. And I intend to write the real kind of
+movies, the kind that don't bother about the characters at
+all, but just dramatize scenery. I shall call things by
+their proper names, too. Let's see&mdash;a Devonshire parsonage
+is beloved and wooed by a Scotch moor, but turns him
+down for a Louis Onze ch&acirc;teau with a Le N&ocirc;tre garden.
+She discovers, just in time, that his intentions are not honorable,
+and is rescued by a Montana prairie, who happens<span class="pagenum">[189]</span>
+along just at the right moment. The situation is still
+awkward, however, because the parsonage finds that her
+prairie has a wife living, a New York gambling hell, whom
+he hates but who won't release him. So the parsonage
+refuses his disinterested offers and starts life for herself.
+After various adventures with a South Carolina plantation,
+an Indian Ocean trawler, an Argentine pampas and
+the Scala theater at Milan, the poor parsonage ends up
+in a London sweat shop, to which she is at last discovered
+by the Scotch moor, who had been looking for her all these
+years. Embrace. Passed by the national board of censors."</p>
+
+<p>Miss Bensel smiled, but did not seem to see much humor
+in this foolery. That was due, thought Harry, to the
+fatigue of her long morning's work, and he determined
+not to bother her with any more nonsense. The silence
+which he allowed to ensue, however, was broken by an unexpected
+remark from his <i>vis-&agrave;-vis</i>, who said with a dispassionate
+air:</p>
+
+<p>"I think, Mr. Wimbourne, you stand in a great danger."</p>
+
+<p>"Danger?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, that is, I hope you do. If not, I'm very much
+disappointed in you."</p>
+
+<p>"Thank you so much, but just how?"</p>
+
+<p>"You're in danger of getting to take your art as lightly
+as you talk about it. Then you'll be lost, for good. It's a
+real danger. I've seen the thing happen before, to people
+of as much talent as you, or nearly so."</p>
+
+<p>Harry looked at her in blank astonishment, and she
+went on:</p>
+
+<p>"If you go on talking that way about your profession,
+you'll get to think that way and finally <i>be</i> that way. All
+roses and champagne&mdash;nothing worth while. You may go
+on writing plays, but they'll get sillier and sillier, even
+if they get more and more popular. So your life will pass
+away in frivolity and popularity.... That's not your
+place in the world, Mr. Wimbourne. You've got talent&mdash;perhaps
+more. You know that? This play, now. I say
+nothing about the dialogue, because good dialogue is not
+so rare&mdash;though yours is the best I've seen for some time&mdash;but
+how about the rest of it, the story, the ideas? It's
+good stuff&mdash;you know it is."</p>
+
+<p>Harry leaned back in his chair and tapped the table<span class="pagenum">[190]</span>
+meditatively with a spoon. He had the lack of self-consciousness
+that enables a person to take blame exactly in
+the spirit in which it is given, with no alloying mixture
+of embarrassment or resentment.</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," he said after a while, "I suppose you're right
+about it. I have a certain responsibility.... I suppose
+the stuff is good, when all is said and done&mdash;though I
+don't dare to think it can be."</p>
+
+<p>Miss Bensel leaned forward with her elbows on the table
+and allowed her face to relax into a smile, a curious little
+smile that did not part her lips but drew down the corners
+of her mouth.</p>
+
+<p>"That's it&mdash;I thought that probably was it! You're
+so modest you're afraid to take yourself seriously. Well,
+that's a pretty good fault; I think on the whole it's
+better than taking yourself too seriously. But don't do
+it, even so. Take it from me, my dear boy, you can't accomplish
+anything worth while in this world, <i>anything</i>,
+whatever it is, unless you take your work seriously&mdash;at
+bottom."</p>
+
+<p>Harry did a good deal of serious thinking on the subject
+during the rest of the day, and the more he thought
+about it the more convinced he became that Miss Bensel
+was right. He thought of Dickens' famous utterance on
+the subject of being flippant about one's life's work; he
+thought of the example of Congreve. Congreve, there was
+an appropriate warning! Congreve, whose life was a duel
+between the painstaking artist and the polished man-about-town,
+who never would speak other than lightly of his best
+work, whose boast and whose shame it was deliberately to
+stifle the fires of his own genius. Was he, Harry, guilty
+of something like the pose of Congreve? He thought of
+his attitude of exaggerated <i>camaraderie</i> with the actors
+and managers, of his attitude toward his own work; he
+realized that frivolity had become not merely a pose, but
+a habit. Was he not, in such doings, following in the steps
+of Congreve&mdash;the man who insisted that the work that
+made him famous had been written for the sole purpose
+of whiling away the tedium of convalescence after an illness?</p>
+
+<p>As he watched his own play being enacted before his
+eyes that afternoon he realized that his work was, in the
+main, good, and that he had known it all along. He had<span class="pagenum">[191]</span>
+felt it while he was writing it; Bachmann's astonishingly
+prompt (as he had since learned it to be) acceptance of it
+had given conclusive proof of it. If anything further was
+needed, he had it in the enthusiasm with which the actors
+played it and spoke of it. Somehow, by some incredible
+chance, the divine gift had fallen upon him. To belittle
+that gift, to fail to devote his best efforts to making the
+most of it, would be to shirk his life's duty.</p>
+
+<p>The third act, upon which most of the work of the afternoon
+was done, drew to its close. It had been immensely
+shortened by cuts; Harry was not sorry, though he missed
+some of what he had thought the best lines in the play.
+Then the heroine made her final exit, and Harry suddenly
+realized she had done so without her and the hero's having
+delivered two little speeches that ought to have come
+just before; speeches on which he had spent much care and
+labor. Those two lines had, in fact, contained the whole
+gist of the play, or at any rate driven home its thesis in
+a particularly striking way. The point of the play was
+that living was simply a system of chances, and these
+speeches made clear the distinction between the wrong
+kind of chancing, the careless, risking-all kind, whose final
+result was always ruin, and the sober, intelligent, prayerful
+kind, as shown in the lives of those who, after careful
+consideration of all the chances that may affect them,
+do what they decide is best and await the result with the
+calmness of a Mohammedan fatalist.</p>
+
+<p>Harry suddenly became imbued with the profound conviction
+that those two speeches were absolutely necessary
+to the understanding of his play. He hastily read over
+the last half of the act in his typewritten copy, and failed
+to see how any spectator could catch the true meaning of
+the work without them. Well, here was a chance to show
+how seriously he could take his art! The whole affair
+took on a new and strange momentousness; he stood at
+this instant, he told himself, at the very turning-point of
+his artistic career. He would not take the wrong road,
+cost him what it might; he would not be found wanting.</p>
+
+<p>Bachmann was in the theater, sitting in the back row
+of the orchestra, as was his custom. Harry determined
+to go straight to him and ask him to put those lines in
+again. As he walked up the aisle he thought feverishly
+of the tremendous import of this interview. Bachmann<span class="pagenum">[192]</span>
+would refuse at first, he knew that well enough. Bachmann
+would not easily be convinced by the opinion of an
+inexperienced scribbler. But Harry was determined not
+to be beaten; he was prepared to fight, prepared to make
+a scene, if necessary; prepared to sacrifice the production
+of his play, if it came to that. He could see Bachmann's
+slow smile as he reminded him of practical considerations.
+"Your contract?" "Damn the contract," Harry would
+reply. "Ha, ha! I've got the whip hand of you there,
+Mr. Bachmann! I can afford to break all the contracts I
+want!" "And your career?" retorted Bachmann, with
+a sneer, but turning ever so slightly pale. "Ho! my
+career! What the devil do I care for my career! I choose
+to write for all time, not for my own! I...."</p>
+
+<p>"Vell, Mr. Vimbourne," Bachmann, the live, fleshly
+Bachmann, was saying in a startlingly mild and everyday
+tone of voice, "what can I do for you?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh ... I just wanted to speak to you about this last
+scene," said Harry, trying hard to keep his voice steady.
+"They've cut out two lines just before Miss Cleves' exit
+that I think ought to be kept."</p>
+
+<p>"Let's see."</p>
+
+<p>Harry handed him the manuscript and anxiously
+watched him as he glanced rapidly over the pages.
+"They're pretty important lines, really. They explain a
+lot; I'm afraid people won't understand...." He could
+feel his voice weakening and his knees trembling, but his
+determination remained.</p>
+
+<p>"Burchard!" Bachmann bellowed, in the general direction
+of the stage.</p>
+
+<p>"Yes!"</p>
+
+<p>"What about those two speeches before Miss Cleves'
+exit?"</p>
+
+<p>There was a short and rather flurried silence from the
+stage, after which the voice of Burchard again emerged:</p>
+
+<p>"Miss Cleves said she couldn't make her exit on that
+line."</p>
+
+<p>"Where is she? Tell her to come back and try it."</p>
+
+<p>The battle was won without a shot being fired. Harry,
+almost literally knocked flat by the surprise and relief
+of the moment, sank into the nearest seat. Bachmann got
+up and lumbered off toward the stage; Harry leaned his
+head against the back of his chair and gave himself over<span class="pagenum">[193]</span>
+to an outburst of internal mirth, at his own expense.</p>
+
+<p>He raised his eyes again to the stage. Curiously enough,
+the first person his glance fell on was Miss Bensel, with
+her trim little figure and humorously plain face. It
+seemed to him she was smiling out at him, with a mocking
+little smile that drew down the corners of her mouth.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Everybody knows what happened to the play "Chances";
+its history is a page of the American stage. Much has
+been said and written about it; it has been called a landmark,
+a stepping-stone, a first ditch, a guiding light, a
+moral victory, a glorious failure, a promising defeat and
+various similar things so often that people are tired of the
+very name of it. What actually happened to it can be
+told in a few words; it was well received, but not largely
+attended. It was withdrawn near the end of its fourth
+week.</p>
+
+<p>The critics were unanimous in praising it. Its dialogue
+was hailed as the ideal dialogue of contemporary comedy.
+The characterization, the humor of the lines, the universality
+of the theme, its wonderfully logical and convincing
+development all received their due meed of praise. It
+was compared to the comedies of Clyde Fitch, of Oscar
+Wilde, of Sheridan, and of Congreve&mdash;yes, actually Congreve!
+Harry smiled when he read that, and renewed his
+resolution never to let the comparison apply in a personal
+way. But to be seriously compared to Congreve,
+not Congreve the man but Congreve the author&mdash;! The
+thought made him fairly dizzy.</p>
+
+<p>But what took the eye of the critics, the best and
+soberest of them, that is, more than anything else was the
+mixture of the humorous and serious shown in the choice
+of the theme and its development. "To treat the element
+of humor," wrote one critic, "not as a colored glass through
+which to look at all life, as in farce, nor as a refreshing
+contrast to its serious side, as in the 'comic relief' of a
+host of plays from the Elizabethans down to the present
+day, but as part and parcel of the very essence of life
+itself, co-existent with its solemnity, inseparable from its
+difficulty, companion and friend to its unsolvable mystery;
+to put people in such a mood that they can laugh at the
+greatest things in their own lives, neither bitterly nor to
+give themselves Dutch courage, but for the pure, life<span class="pagenum">[194]</span>
+giving, illuminating exaltation of laughing&mdash;this, we take
+it, is the whole essence and mission of comedy. And this&mdash;we
+say it boldly and in no spirit of empty flattery&mdash;is
+the type of comedy shown in Mr. Wimbourne's play."</p>
+
+<p>It is not hard to see how such words should bring joy
+to the heart of Harry and smiles of admiration and respect
+to the faces of his friends, from Leo Bachmann right
+up to Aunt Selina. But they did not bring people to the
+theater. For the first three performances the attendance
+was satisfactory; then it began steadily to fall off and by
+the end of the first week it became merely a question of
+how long it could survive.</p>
+
+<p>Leo Bachmann was, curiously enough, the least affected
+of all the theater crowd by the poor success of the work.
+He viewed the discouraging box office reports with an untroubled
+smile, and cheerfully began rehearsals for a new
+play. "Never you mind, my boy," he told Harry, "I
+knew I should not make money off your play. I told you
+so in the beginning. Never you mind! That is not your
+fault. It's just the way things go. I have only one word
+to say to you, and that is&mdash;write!" Even in his discouragement
+Harry could not help feeling that Mr. Bachmann
+was strangely calm and cheerful.</p>
+
+<p>Within a week from the end of the play's run a curious
+thing happened. A visiting English dramatist and critic,
+a confirmed self-advertiser, but a writer and thinker of
+unquestioned brilliancy, and a wit, withal, of international
+reputation, was greatly struck by the play and wrote an
+unsolicited letter about it which appeared in the pages of
+a leading daily.</p>
+
+<p>"No more striking proof," wrote this self-appointed
+defender of Harry, "could be offered of the consanguinal
+intellectual stupidity of the Anglo-Saxon race than I received
+at a performance of Mr. Harold Wimbourne's play
+'Chances' at the &mdash;&mdash; Theater last night. For the first
+time during my stay in this country as I looked over the
+almost empty stalls and realized that this, incomparably
+the best play running in New York, was also the worst attended,
+I could have fancied myself actually in my own
+country.</p>
+
+<p>"What are the lessons or qualities in Mr. Wimbourne's
+play which the American people cannot stomach? I suppose,
+when all is said and done, he has committed the unpardonable<span class="pagenum">[195]</span>
+offense of giving them a little of their own
+medicine. He has rammed down their throats some few
+corollaries of the Calvinistic doctrines for which the ancestors
+of the very people who stay away from his play
+sailed an uncharted sea, conquered a wilderness, and spilt
+their blood to champion against a usurping power. The
+Pilgrim fathers founded the United States of America in
+order to publish the greatness of God and the littleness
+of man. Their descendants either ignore or condemn one
+of their number because he does not extol the greatness
+of man and the littleness of God. Because Mr. Wimbourne
+ventures to show, in a very mild&mdash;if very artistic and
+compelling way&mdash;how slight a hold man has on the moving
+force of life, God, the universe, a group of atoms&mdash;whatever
+you choose to call the world&mdash;he becomes a pariah.
+He has escaped easily after his first offense, but it will go
+hard with the Anglo-Saxon character if he is not stoned in
+the streets after the next one. America is a great and
+rich country; what does it care about religion or philosophy
+or art or any of that poppycock? Serious and devout
+thinking simply <i>are not done</i>; it has become as great a
+solecism to mention the name of the Deity in society&mdash;except
+as the hero of a humorous story&mdash;as to talk about
+Kant or Hegel. Americans have lost interest in that sort
+of stuff; they do not need it. Why, now that they have
+become physically strong, should they bother about the
+unsubstantial kind of strength known as moral to which
+they were forced to resort when they were physically weak?
+Why, having become mountain lions, should they continue
+to practise what upheld them when they were fieldmice?</p>
+
+<p>"Of course I should not have made such a point in
+favor of a play if it were not, technically and artistically
+speaking, a very good play. The truth when it is badly
+spoken hardly merits more attention than if it were not
+spoken at all. But 'Chances' is as beautifully constructed
+as it was conceived; it is a play that I should be proud to
+have written myself. Its technical perfections have already
+been praised, even by that class of people least calculated
+to appreciate them; I mean the critics. I will,
+therefore, mention but one small example, which I believe,
+in the presence of so many greater beauties, has been overlooked;
+namely, the short dialogue near the end of the
+first act in which Frances, in perhaps half a page of conversation<span class="pagenum">[196]</span>
+with the man to whom she is then engaged, realizes
+that her engagement is empty, that she has no heart
+for the man, that a new way of looking at love has transcended
+her life;&mdash;realizes all this, and betrays it to the
+audience without in the smallest degree giving herself
+away to the man with whom she is talking or saying a word
+in violation of the probability of their conversation. Such
+a feat in dramaturgy is, perhaps, appreciable only to those
+who have tried to write plays themselves. Still, whom
+does that not include?</p>
+
+<p>"But I do not expect Americans to appreciate artistic
+perfection any more than I expect Englishmen to. The
+shame, the disgrace to Americans in not appreciating this
+play lies in the fact that it is fundamentally American;
+American in its characters, in its setting, and above all in
+its motive principles, which are the principles to which
+America owes its very existence."</p>
+
+<p>Such opinions, appearing over a famous signature, could
+not but revive interest and talk about its subject, and the
+play experienced a slight boom during the last few days
+of its existence. Its run, indeed, would have been extended
+but for the fact that Bachmann had made all the
+arrangements for its successor and advertised the date
+of its appearance. Altogether the incident tended to show
+that if the play was a failure it was at least a dynamic
+failure, indicative of future success.</p>
+
+<p>Harry was as little elated by the praise of the foreigner
+as he was cast down by the condemnation of his countrymen.
+His demeanor all along, ever since the day of his
+interview with Miss Bensel, had been characterized by an
+observant calmness. He dissuaded as many of his relations
+and friends as he could from being present at the
+first performance of the play and ignored those who insisted
+on being there. He himself occupied an obscure
+seat in the gallery and listened with the greatest attention
+to the comments of those about him. He thereby began to
+form an idea of what the general public thought of his
+work; knowledge which, as he himself realized, would be
+of inestimable value if he could put it to use in his next
+play.</p>
+
+<p>A letter Harry wrote to his Uncle Giles just after the
+play was taken off expresses his state of mind at this time.
+"'Chances' has gone by the board," he wrote; "that<span class="pagenum">[197]</span>
+splendid American institution, the Tired Business Man,
+would have none of it, and it has ceased to be Drama and
+has become merely Literature. But I have learned a lot
+during its brief existence, and this knowledge I shall,
+please God, make use of if I ever write another play.
+Which is a mere figure of speech, as I have started one
+already.</p>
+
+<p>"I have learned the point of view of the Tired Business
+Man. That was what I wanted to know from the
+very first&mdash;not what the critics thought. They could do
+no more than say it was good, and I knew that already.
+And what the T. B. M. said was substantially, that my
+play was nice enough, but that it had no <i>punch</i>. I don't
+know whether you recognize that expression or not; it is
+one of those vivid American slang words that English
+people are so fascinated by. People thought the play
+wasn't interesting enough, and that is the simple truth
+about it. Therefore it wasn't a good play. For my idea
+is that to be really good a play must hold the stage, at
+least at the time it is written. And if we are ever going to
+build up such a thing as the 'American drama' our critics
+are continually bellowing about, we've got to begin with
+our foundations. We can't create a full-fledged literary
+drama and then go to work and make the people like it;
+we've got to begin with what the people like and build up
+our drama on that. That's the way all the great 'dramas'
+of history have grown up&mdash;the Greek, the French, the
+Spanish and the Elizabethan; and it is interesting to notice
+that the drama that came nearest to being the product
+of a mere literary class, the French, is the weakest of the
+lot and is standing the test of time worst of them all.</p>
+
+<p>"I may never write a more successful play than
+'Chances'; I may never get another play on the stage at
+all. But one thing I am sure of; I shall never offer another
+play to the public without being convinced that it
+is a better stage play than 'Chances.'"</p>
+
+<p>Of course that a mere boy, fresh from college, with no
+practical experience of the stage whatever, should get a
+play produced at all was an unusual and highly gratifying
+thing. Harry became quite a lion that autumn, in a
+small way. He remained in New York till after the play
+was taken off, living with the James Wimbournes, and was
+the guest of honor at one or two of Aunt Cecilia's rather<span class="pagenum">[198]</span>
+dull but eminently important dinners. He became the
+object of the attention of reporters, and also of that section
+of metropolitan <i>literati</i> who live in duplex apartments
+and wear strings of pearls in their hair and can always tell
+Schubert from Schumann. He was especially delighted
+with these, and determined some day to write a play or a
+novel portraying the inner side of their painstaking spirituality.</p>
+
+<p>He saw a good deal of James during those weeks; more
+than he had seen of him since their college days. James
+had been rather sparing of his week-end visits to New
+Haven since moving to New York; Harry noticed that.
+He was sorry, for he now found James a great help and
+stimulus. He discovered that a walk or a motor ride with
+James between the hours of five and seven would obliterate
+the effects of the caviar-est of luncheons and the pinkest
+of teas and give him strength with which to face evenings
+in the company of people who appeared unable even to
+perspire anything less exalted than pure Pierian fluid.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, it's nice to meet some one who doesn't smell of
+Russian cigarettes," he observed one day as he took his
+place in the long, low, slightly wicked-looking machine in
+which James whiled away most of his leisure moments.
+"Do you know, sometimes I actually rush into the nursery
+at Aunt Cecilia's and kiss the youngest and bread-and-butteryest
+child there, just to get the Parnassian
+odors out of my lungs. Next to a rather slobby child,
+though, I prefer the society of an ex-All-American quarter-back."</p>
+
+<p>"Half," said James.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, were you? Well, you don't smell of anything
+&aelig;sthetic-er than the camphor balls you put that coat away
+for the summer in.... James, if you go round another
+corner at eighty miles an hour I shall leap out and telephone
+for a policeman!"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, that's all right. They all know me, anyway.
+They know I don't take risks."</p>
+
+<p>"Hm.... Well, it's all over for me next week, thank
+Heaven. I'm going back to Aunt Selina and Sunday
+night suppers, and I <i>shall</i> be glad!"</p>
+
+<p>"Well, I will say," said James slowly and carefully,
+with the air of one determined to do the most meticulous<span class="pagenum">[199]</span>
+justice, "that you have kept your head through it all
+pretty well."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, it's not hard, when you come right to it," said
+Harry, laughing. "Of course there are moments when I
+wonder if I'm not really greater than Shakespeare. And
+it does seem funny to realize that the rising genius, the
+person people are all talking about, and poor little Me
+are the same. But then I remember what a failure my
+play was, and shrivel into the poor graduate student.... After
+I've written a successful play, though, I won't answer
+for myself. And after I've written 'Hamlet,' as
+I mean to some day, I shall be simply unbearable. You
+won't own me then."</p>
+
+<p>"Watch-chain round your neck?" suggested James.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, worse than that&mdash;diamond bracelets! And corsets&mdash;if
+necessary. I saw a man wearing both the other day,
+I really did."</p>
+
+<p>"A man?"</p>
+
+<p>"Well, an actor. That's the sort of thing they run to
+now-a-days. Long hair and general sloppiness are quite
+out of date&mdash;among the really ultra ones, that is."</p>
+
+<p>"Well," said James, "I give you permission to be as
+ultra as you like, after you've written 'Hamlet.'"</p>
+
+<p>"That helps, of course. I daresay I'm lacking in proper
+seriousness, but it seems to me that if the choice were
+offered me, right now, between being the author of 'Hamlet'
+and being also an ultra, and not writing 'Hamlet'
+and staying as I am, I would choose the latter. I don't
+know what my point of view may be at some future time,
+but that's what it is now, or at least I think it is. And
+after all, nobody can get nearer the truth than saying
+what he thinks his point of view at any given moment is,
+can he, James?"</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[200]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_III2">CHAPTER III</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">NOT TRIASSIC, CERTAINLY, BUT NEARLY AS OLD</p>
+
+<p>To return again to the events attendant on the "Beggar's
+Opera." Harry slept late the morning after
+the performance, and when he awoke it was with a mind
+rested and vacant except for an intangible conviction that
+something pleasant had happened. He yawned and
+stretched delectably, and in a leisurely sort of way set
+about discovering just what it was.</p>
+
+<p>"Let's see, now, what can it be?" he argued pleasantly.
+"Oh, yes, the 'Beggar's Opera.' It's all over, thank
+Heaven, and it went off creditably well. The wigs arrived
+in time and the prison set didn't fall over, and
+nobody lost a cue&mdash;so you could notice it." He lay back
+for a moment to give full rein to the enjoyment of these
+reflections. "There was something else, though." His
+mind languidly returned to the pursuit, as a dog crosses
+a room stretching at every step. "I'm sure there was
+something else...."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes, of course," he said at last; "I remember now.
+Madge Elliston."</p>
+
+<p>If, say, ten seconds sufficed for enjoyment of the recollection
+of the "Beggar's Opera," how long should you
+say would be necessary for the absorption of the truth contained
+in those two words? A lifetime? An honest answer;
+we won't undertake to say it's not the right one.
+Harry, at least, seemed to be of that opinion.</p>
+
+<p>"After all, though, it would be rather absurd to spend
+a whole lifetime in bed," he observed, after devoting
+twenty minutes to the subject. Then he jumped out of
+bed and pulled up the shade.</p>
+
+<p>Vague flittings of poetry and song buzzed through his
+brain. One little phrase in particular kept humming behind
+his ears; a scrap from a song he had heard Madge
+herself sing often enough:&mdash;"What shall I do to show
+how much I love her?" The thing rather annoyed him
+by its insistence. He stood by the open window and inhaled<span class="pagenum">[201]</span>
+a few deep breaths of the quickening March air.
+"What shall I do to show how much I love her!" sang
+the air as it rushed up his nose and became breath and
+out again and became carbon dioxide. "I really don't
+know, I'm sure," he answered, impatiently breaking off
+and starting on some exercises he performed on mornings
+when he felt particularly energetic and there was time.
+Their rhythm was fascinating; he found he could do them
+in two different ways:&mdash;What shall&mdash;I do&mdash;to show&mdash;how
+much&mdash;I love her, or, What shall I&mdash;do to show&mdash;how
+much I&mdash;? "Oh, hang it!" He suddenly lost all interest
+in them. With one impatient, dramatic movement
+he tore off the upper half of his pajamas, ripping off three
+buttons as he did so. With another slightly more complicated
+but even more dramatic, he extricated himself from
+the lower half, breaking the string in the process.</p>
+
+<p>"Ts! ts! More work for somebody!" he said, making
+the sound in the roof of his mouth indicative of reproof.
+He kicked the damaged garments lightly onto the bed and
+sauntered into the adjoining bathroom.</p>
+
+<p>He turned on the water in the bathtub and stood watching
+it a moment as it gushed out in its noisy enthusiasm.
+"WhatshallIdotoshowhowmuchIloveher?" it inquired uncouthly.
+"Oh, do stop bothering me," said Harry, turning
+disgustedly away; "I've got to shave."</p>
+
+<p>He lathered his face and took the razor in his right hand,
+while with his left he delicately lifted the end of his nose,
+so as to make a taut surface of his upper lip. It was a
+trick he had much admired in barbers. "Somehow it's
+not so effective when you do it to yourself," he said regretfully,
+watching the effect in the mirror. It helped his
+shaving, however, and shaving helped his thinking. He
+was able to think quite clearly and seriously, in fact, in
+spite of the roaring of the water nearby.</p>
+
+<p>"I suppose I might keep away from her for a while,"
+he said presently.</p>
+
+<p>That really seemed a good idea; the more he thought of
+it the better he liked it. "I'll go down and stay with
+Trotty," he said as he scraped the last strip of lather off
+his face, remembering how fervently Trotty, recovering
+from a severe illness on the Trotwood estate in North
+Carolina, had begged him to come down and cheer his solitude.
+"And I won't come back until I know," he continued.
+"One must be sure. Absolutely."<span class="pagenum">[202]</span></p>
+
+<p>He plunged into his bath and the stimulus of the cold
+water set his brain working faster. "I'll start this very
+morning. Let's see; I've missed the ten-thirty, but I can
+catch the twelve-three, if I look alive, and get the three-fifty
+from New York.... No, on second thoughts, I'd
+better have lunch and pack comfortably and start this
+afternoon. That'll be better; it never does to be in too
+much of a hurry!"</p>
+
+<p>It never did; he became even more convinced of that
+when he remembered at breakfast the many post-mortem
+arrangements to be made in connection with the "Beggar's
+Opera." However, he spent an active afternoon in completing
+what he could of these and delegating the remainder
+to subordinates, with the calm explanation that
+he was called away on business, and started for southern
+climes the next morning.</p>
+
+<p>As soon as he had telegraphed Trotty and was actually
+on his way he became inclined to fear he had not done
+the right thing. It was so confoundedly quiet down there;
+he would have nothing to do but think about her. He
+should have plunged himself into some all-absorbing activity;
+he should have traveled or taken a nine-till-five
+clerkship or gone to New York for a while. This suspicion
+continued through his journey and even survived,
+though in a mangled form, Trotty's enthusiastic welcome
+of him. But after he had passed a few days among those
+pine-clad solitudes he began to see that he had done the
+wisest possible thing. Trotty was required to be out-of-doors
+practically the whole time, and the two drove endless
+miles in a dogcart through the quickening oaks and
+pines, or lay on fragrant carpets of needles, content with
+mere sensuous enjoyment of the wind and sun, sky and
+landscape.</p>
+
+<p>Somehow these things brought calm and conviction to
+the heart of Harry. They seemed to rest and purge his
+soul from the fatigues of the past months; the anxiety and
+effort of the autumn before, the pangs of composition that
+had marked the winter, the hurry and worry to which
+these had given place during the last few weeks, and to
+give coherence and sanctity to the tremendous discovery of
+that Friday night. He could not tell why it was that the
+sight of a flock of feathery clouds scurrying across a blue
+sky or the sound of warm wind among pine needles should<span class="pagenum">[203]</span>
+work this change in him, but it was so. "You're quite
+right," they seemed to say; "perfectly right. The thing
+has come, and it's not distracting or disturbing or frightening,
+as you feared it might be; it's just simple and great
+and unspeakably sweet. And you were quite right to
+come to us to find out about it; you can learn among us a
+great deal better than in all that hectic scrambling up
+north. So lay aside every thought and worry and ambition
+and open your whole heart and soul to us while we tell you
+how to take this, the greatest thing that ever was, is, or
+shall be!"</p>
+
+<p>Trotty was also a source of comfort to him; Trotty had
+lost nothing of his former singular faculty of always rubbing
+him the right way. Not that either of them made any
+open or covert allusion to Harry's state of mind, for they
+did not, but there was something particularly reassuring,
+something strangely in tune with the great natural forces
+about them in his silent presence. For they would drive
+or read or simply lie about together for hours without
+speaking, after the manner of certain types of people who
+become very intimate with each other.</p>
+
+<p>Whether these silences were to Trotty merely the intimate
+silences of yore or whether they had taken on for
+him also something of the character that colored them for
+Harry is not particularly clear; it is probable that he
+guessed something, but no more. As much might be gathered,
+at least, from the one occasion upon which their conversation
+even touched on anything vital.</p>
+
+<p>This occurred on the eve of Harry's departure. For
+of course he had to leave some time. The birds and trees
+and sky were all very well for a while, but after three
+weeks the thought forced itself into his mind that any
+more time spent among them would smack of laziness if
+not of cowardice.</p>
+
+<p>"Trotty," said he, "I'm going north on the twelve-fifty
+to-morrow."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh," replied Trotty. "Bad news?"</p>
+
+<p>"No."</p>
+
+<p>"In love?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yep."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh." A silence of some length ensued.</p>
+
+<p>"Carson?" asked Trotty at last.</p>
+
+<p>"No, no&mdash;Elliston."<span class="pagenum">[204]</span></p>
+
+<p>"Oh.... Well, here's luck."</p>
+
+<p>"Thanks. I need it."</p>
+
+<p>In this matter-of-fact, almost coarse form was cast the
+most intimate conversation the two ever had together.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Harry determined to "have it out," as he mentally expressed
+it, with Madge as soon as possible, and went to call
+on her the very first evening after his return. As he
+walked in the front door he caught sight of her ahead of
+him crossing the hall with a sheaf of papers under her
+arm, and immediately his heart began thumping in a way
+that fairly shocked him. Her appearance was so wonderfully
+everyday, so utterly at variance with the way his
+silly heart had been going on about her these weeks! He
+felt as if he had been intending to propose to an archangel
+who happened to be also a duchess.</p>
+
+<p>"Hello! This is an unexpected pleasure! I thought
+you were away shooting things." Her manner was
+friendly enough; she was obviously glad, as well as surprised,
+to see him. He murmured something explanatory,
+which apparently satisfied her, for she went on: "I'm
+glad you're back, anyway, because you're just in time to
+help me with my arithmetic papers. Come along in."</p>
+
+<p>He sat down almost in despair, with the idea of merely
+making an evening call and postponing more important
+matters to a time when he should be better inured to the
+effects of her presence. But as he sat and watched her as
+she talked to him and looked over her arithmetic papers
+he felt his courage gradually return. Her physical presence
+was simply irresistible, distant and difficult of approach
+as she seemed.</p>
+
+<p>"Do tell all about North Carolina," said Madge; "it's
+a delightful state, isn't it?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, delightful."</p>
+
+<p>"So I understand. My idea of it is a fashionable place
+where people go to recover from something, but I suppose
+there's more to it than that. The only other thing I know
+about it is geological; a remnant of physical geography,
+ages ago. I seem to remember something about triassic.... What
+is your North Carolina like, fashionable or
+triassic?"</p>
+
+<p>"Not triassic, certainly."<span class="pagenum">[205]</span></p>
+
+<p>"No, I suppose not. It's very nice triassic, though;
+coal, and all sorts of lovely things, as I remember it.
+You must have been fashionable. Asheville, and that sort
+of thing."</p>
+
+<p>"Not at all. I was helping Trotty to recover from something."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, really? What?"</p>
+
+<p>"Pneumonia. Also pleurisy."</p>
+
+<p>"Indeed! I didn't know anything about that; I thought
+you went simply to shoot things. So Jack Trotwood has
+had pleural pneumonia, has he? That's a horrid combination;
+poor Uncle Rudolph Scharndorst died of it. You
+often do if you have it hard enough and are old enough,
+or drink enough...."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, Trotty doesn't," said Harry; "so he didn't."</p>
+
+<p>"My dear man, neither did Uncle Rudolph," rejoined
+Miss Elliston. "That wasn't what I meant; he just had
+it so hard he died of it&mdash;that was all.&mdash;How is he getting
+on?"</p>
+
+<p>"Couldn't say, I'm sure."</p>
+
+<p>"I mean Trotty, of course! Poor Uncle Rudolph!"</p>
+
+<p>"Very well, indeed.&mdash;Madge!" he went on, gathering
+courage for a break, "I didn't come here to-night to talk
+about Uncle Rudolph!"</p>
+
+<p>Miss Elliston raised her eyebrows ever so little and
+went on, with unabated cheerfulness: "We were talking
+about Jack Trotwood, I thought. However, here's this
+arithmetic; you can help me with that. Do you know
+anything about percentage? It's not so hard, when you
+really put your mind to it. Given the principal and interest,
+to find the rate&mdash;that's easy enough. Useful, too;
+if you know how much a person has a year all you have
+to do is to find what it's invested in and look it up on
+the financial page, and you can tell just what their capital
+is! It's quite simple!"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes, perfectly simple."</p>
+
+<p>"Let's see&mdash;Florrie Vicars; did you ever hear of any
+one whose name was really Florrie before?... Florrie
+gets a C&mdash;she generally does. That isn't on a scale of
+A B C, it stands for 'correct.' Did you ever hear of anything
+so delightfully Victorian? That's the way we do
+things at Miss Snellgrove's.... Sadie Jones&mdash;wouldn't<span class="pagenum">[206]</span>
+you know that a girl called Sadie Jones who wrote like
+that&mdash;look at those sevens&mdash;would have frizzy yellow hair
+and sticky-out front teeth?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, indeed, without any doubt."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, as a matter of fact she has straight black hair
+and a pure Grecian profile and is altogether the most beautiful
+creature you ever saw!... Marjorie Hamlin&mdash;she
+never could add two and two straight.... Jennie Fairbanks...."</p>
+
+<p>Harry realized more sharply than before that ordinary
+conversational paths would not lead where he wanted to
+go; he must break through the hedge and he must break
+with courage and determination.</p>
+
+<p>"Madge!" he burst out again, "I didn't come here to
+talk about little girls' arithmetic papers, either! I am
+here to-night to declare a state of&mdash;" He stopped, unable,
+when the moment came, to treat the matter with even
+that amount of lightness. He had been over-confident!</p>
+
+<p>"Of what?" asked Madge, looking up from her arithmetic
+and smiling brightly yet distantly at him. There
+was just a chance that she might shame him back into mere
+conversation, even at this late moment.</p>
+
+<p>"You know, perfectly well!" He sprang from his chair
+and took a step or two toward her. The thing was done
+now. A minute ago they had been occupied in trivial chatter;
+now they were launched on the momentous topic.</p>
+
+<p>"Madge, don't pretend not to understand, at any rate!"
+He was by her side on the sofa now. "I used to think
+that when I was&mdash;when I was in love I should be able to
+joke and laugh about it as I have about every earthly
+thing in life. I thought that if love couldn't be turned
+into a joke it wasn't worth having. But it isn't that way,
+at all!... Oh, Madge, Madge, don't you see how it is
+with me?"</p>
+
+<p>"Dear Harry, indeed I do!" said Madge impulsively,
+feeling a great wave of pity and unhappiness swell in her
+bosom. "Indeed I do!"</p>
+
+<p>"Then don't you think that you could ever ... Madge,
+until you tell me you could possibly&mdash;feel that way&mdash;toward
+me, it's Hell, that's what it is, Hell!"</p>
+
+<p>"Indeed it is, Harry; that's just what it is!"</p>
+
+<p>"Then you think you can't&mdash;love me?"</p>
+
+<p>"No&mdash;God forgive me, I can't!"<span class="pagenum">[207]</span></p>
+
+<p>He sat still for a moment, looking quietly at her from his
+sad brown eyes in a way she thought would break her
+heart. "I was afraid so," he said at last; "I suppose I
+really knew it, all along. It's been my fault."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Harry," she burst out, "if you only knew how
+much I wanted to! If you only knew how terrible it is
+to see you sit there and say that, and not be able to say
+yes! I like you so much, and you are such a dear altogether,
+and you're so wonderful about this&mdash;oh, why, why,
+in Heaven's name, can't I love you?"</p>
+
+<p>"But Madge, surely you must be mistaken! How can
+you talk that way and not have&mdash;the real feeling? Madge,
+you must be in love with me, only you don't know it!"</p>
+
+<p>"That's just what I've said to myself, time after time&mdash;I've
+lain awake whole nights telling myself that. But it
+isn't so, it isn't! I can't deceive myself into thinking so
+and I won't deceive you.... I just&mdash;can't&mdash;love you, because
+I'm not good enough! Oh, it is so terrible!..."
+Her voice suddenly failed; she sank to her knees on the
+floor and buried her head among the cushions of the sofa
+in an uncontrollable fit of weeping.</p>
+
+<p>For a moment Harry was overcome by a desire to seize
+that grief-stricken little figure in his arms and kiss away
+her ridiculous tears. A second thought, however, showed
+the fruitlessness of that; small comfort to his arms if their
+souls could not embrace! Instead he quietly arose from
+his seat and shut the door, which seemed the most sensible
+thing to do under the circumstances. He then walked
+over to the piano and stood leaning on it, head on hands,
+thoughtfully and silently watching the diminishing sobs
+of Madge.</p>
+
+<p>When these at last reached the vanishing point their
+author turned suddenly. Harry continued to stare quietly
+back at her for a second or two and then slowly and
+solemnly winked his right eye. Madge emitted a strange
+sound between a laugh and a sob, turned her face away
+again and plied her handkerchief briskly.</p>
+
+<p>"Here I am, of course," she said presently, "thinking
+of nothing but indulging my own silly feelings, as usual.
+And you, poor Harry, who really are capable of feeling,
+just stand there like Patience on a monument.... Harry,
+why don't you swear at me, kick me? do something to make
+it easier for me?..." She picked herself up, walked<span class="pagenum">[208]</span>
+over toward the piano and laid her hands on its smooth
+black surface in a caressing sort of way. The piano had
+been given to her by her Aunt Tizzy and she loved it very
+much, but she did not think of it at all now. "Harry,"
+she began again, "Harry, dear, I'll tell you what we'll
+do&mdash;I'll marry you, if you like, anyway.... I'll make
+you a lovely wife; I'll do anything in the wide world to
+be a comfort to you, just to show you how much I would
+love to love you if I could...."</p>
+
+<p>Harry, still looking gravely at her, shook his head slowly.
+"It would never do, Madge," he said; "never in the world.
+We must wait until we can start fair. You see that?"</p>
+
+<p>She nodded. "I suppose I do&mdash;from your point of
+view."</p>
+
+<p>"No&mdash;from <i>our</i> point of view."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, yes.... It is just a little bit hard, though, that
+the first offer of marriage I ever made should be turned
+down."</p>
+
+<p>Harry laughed, loudly and suddenly. "That's right!"
+he said; "that's <i>you</i>! Not that self-denunciatory thing
+of a minute ago. Don't ever be self-denunciatory again,
+please. Just remember there's nothing in the world that
+can possibly be your fault, and <i>then</i> you'll be all
+right!... Now then, we can talk. I suppose," he went
+on, with a change of tone, "you like me quite well, just as
+much as ever, and all that; only when it comes to the
+question of whether you could ever be happy for one instant
+without me you are forced to admit that you could.
+Is that it?"</p>
+
+<p>Madge nodded her head. "That's just about it. For a
+long time&mdash;oh, but what's the use in <i>that</i>...?"</p>
+
+<p>"No, go ahead."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, one or two people have been in love with me before&mdash;or
+thought they were, and though that disturbed me
+at times, it never amounted to much. In fact I thought
+the whole thing rather fun, as I remember it&mdash;Heaven
+forgive me for it! But then you came along and after a
+while&mdash;several months ago&mdash;it became borne in on me that
+you were going to&mdash;to act the same way, and I immediately
+realized that it was going to be much, <i>much</i> more serious
+than the others. And I&mdash;well, I had a cobblestone for a
+heart, and knew it. So I tried my best to keep you off the
+scent, in every way I could, knowing what a crash there<span class="pagenum">[209]</span>
+would be if it came to <i>that</i>.... But I never knew what
+I missed till to-night, when you showed me what a magnificent
+creature a person really in love is, and what a
+loathsome, detestable, contemptible creature&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Come, come, remember my instructions," interpolated
+Harry.</p>
+
+<p>"&mdash;a person incapable of love is. And it just knocked
+me flat for the moment."</p>
+
+<p>"I see," said Harry thoughtfully; "I see."</p>
+
+<p>"I suppose," continued Madge, "it would have been
+easier all around if I didn't like you so much. I could
+conceive of marriage without love, if the person was thoroughly
+nice and I was quite sure there was no chance of my
+loving any one else, just because it's nicer to be rich than
+poor, but with you&mdash;no!... And on the other hand, I
+daresay I <i>might</i> have come nearer falling in love with you
+if you hadn't been&mdash;such a notoriously good match ... you
+never realized that, perhaps?... I just couldn't
+bear the thought of giving <i>you</i> anything but the real thing,
+if I gave you anything&mdash;that's what it comes to!"</p>
+
+<p>"Madge, what I don't see is how you can go on talking
+that way and feeling that way and not be in love with me!
+Not much, of course, but just a teeny bit!... Don't you
+really think your conscience is making&mdash;well, making a
+fool of you?"</p>
+
+<p>"No, no, Harry&mdash;please! I can't explain it, but I really
+am quite, <i>quite</i> sure! No one could be gladder than I if
+it were otherwise!"</p>
+
+<p>"One person could, I fancy. Well, the thing to do now
+is to decide what's to be done to make you love me.... For
+that is the next thing, you know," he went on, in
+reply to an inarticulate expression of dissent from Madge.
+"You don't suppose I'm going to leave this house to-night
+and never think of you again, do you? You don't suppose
+I'm ever going to give up loving you and trying to
+make you love me, as long as we two shall live and after?"</p>
+
+<p>"I thought," murmured Madge, apparently to her handkerchief.
+The rest was almost inaudible, but Harry succeeded
+in catching the phrase "some nice girl."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, rot!!" he exclaimed vociferously. Then he sank
+down on the piano bench, rested his elbows on the keyboard
+cover and burst into paroxysms of laughter. The idea of
+his leaving Madge and going out in search of "some nice<span class="pagenum">[210]</span>
+girl"! Madge, still leaning on the edge of the piano,
+watched him with some apprehension, occasionally smothering
+a reluctant smile in her handkerchief.</p>
+
+<p>"Excuse me, Madge," he said at last, wiping his eyes,
+"but that's probably the funniest remark ever made!... A
+large, shapeless person, with yellow hair and a knitted
+shawl ... a sort of German type, who'd take the most
+wonderful care of my socks ... with a large, soft kiss,
+like ... like a hot cross bun!..." He was off again.</p>
+
+<p>"Hush, Harry, don't be absurd! Hush, you'll wake
+Mama! Harry, you're impossible!" Madge herself was
+laughing at the portrait, for all that. It was some minutes
+before either of them could return to the subject in hand.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, you'll love me all right, in time!" That laugh
+had cleared the atmosphere tremendously; it seemed much
+easier to talk freely and sensibly now. "Of course you
+don't think so now, and that's quite as it should be; but
+time makes one look at things differently."</p>
+
+<p>"No, no, you mustn't count on that. If I don't now, I
+can't ever possibly! Really&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"What, not love me? Impossible! Look at me!" He
+became serious and went on: "Madge, granting that you
+don't care a hang for me now, can you look into your inmost
+heart and say you're perfectly sure you never, never
+could get to care for me, some time in the dim future of
+years?"</p>
+
+<p>"I&mdash;don't know," replied Madge inconclusively.</p>
+
+<p>"There you are&mdash;you know perfectly well you can't!
+However, I don't intend to bother you about that now.
+What I want to suggest now is that we had better be apart
+for a while, now that we know how things stand between
+us&mdash;not see anything of each other for a long time. That's
+the best way. That's how I fell in love with you&mdash;how I
+became sure about it, at any rate. That was why I went
+to North Carolina, of course."</p>
+
+<p>Madge thought seriously for a moment or two. What he
+said seemed reasonable. If he did go entirely out of her
+head after a few months' absence, he would be out of it
+for good and all, and there was the end of it. Whereas, in
+the unlikely event of his <i>not</i> going out of her head, but going
+into her heart, she would be much surer of herself than
+if under the continual stimulus and charm of his presence.<span class="pagenum">[211]</span></p>
+
+<p>"Well," she said at length. "But how will you arrange
+it?"</p>
+
+<p>"I shall simply go away&mdash;to-morrow. Abroad. You'll
+be here?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes."</p>
+
+<p>"What do you do this summer?"</p>
+
+<p>"I'm not sure&mdash;that is, I had thought of going to Bar
+Harbor, with the Gilsons&mdash;as governess. They have a
+dear little girl."</p>
+
+<p>Harry made a gesture of impatience. "I suppose that's
+as good as anything. If you'll be happy?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, perfectly. I should enjoy that, actually, more
+than anything else. Mama'll be with Aunt Tizzy. I think
+I'll do it, now. I'd rather be doing something."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, we'll meet here, then, at the end of the summer,
+in September. I suppose we'd better not write. Unless,
+that is, you see light before the time is up. Then you're
+to let me know&mdash;that's part of the bargain. Just wire to
+my bankers the single word, 'Elliston.' I'll know."</p>
+
+<p>"On one condition&mdash;that you do the same if you change
+your mind the other way!"</p>
+
+<p>"Madge, what idiocy!"</p>
+
+<p>"No, no; you must agree. Why shouldn't you be given
+a chance of changing your mind, as well as I?"</p>
+
+<p>"Very well; it's probably the easiest bargain any one
+ever made.... Well, that's all, I think." They both
+paused, wondering what was to come next. The matter
+did seem to be fairly well covered. He made as if to go.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, one thing&mdash;your work!" Madge apparently was
+suffering a slight relapse of self-denunciation. "How absolutely
+like me, I never thought of that!"</p>
+
+<p>"I can work abroad as well as here. I can work anywhere
+better than here&mdash;you must see that."</p>
+
+<p>"I suppose so." She fixed her eyes on the carpet. A
+hundred thousand things were teeming in her brain, clamoring
+to be said, but she turned them all down as "absurd"
+and contented herself at last with: "You sail immediately,
+then?"</p>
+
+<p>"Saturday, I expect. To the Mediterranean. I shall
+leave town to-morrow, though; you won't be bothered by
+me again!"</p>
+
+<p>"You must give yourself plenty of time to pack. Be
+sure&mdash;" she checked herself, apparently embarrassed.<span class="pagenum">[212]</span></p>
+
+<p>"Be sure what?"</p>
+
+<p>"Nothing&mdash;none of my business."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, please! My dying request!"</p>
+
+<p>"Well, I was going to tell you to be sure to take plenty
+of warm things for the voyage. Men are so silly about
+such things!"</p>
+
+<p>As with Madge a minute ago, all sorts of things shouted
+to be done and said in his brain, but he shut the door
+firmly on all of them and replied quietly, "All right, I
+will," and started toward the door.</p>
+
+<p>She could not let it go at that, after all. Before the
+door had swung to behind him she had rushed up and
+caught it.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Harry!" she exclaimed; "if it does&mdash;if it should
+come off, wouldn't it be simply&mdash;Nirvana, and that sort of
+thing?"</p>
+
+<p>"Madge," replied Harry solemnly from the doorstep,
+"it will make Nirvana look like the Black Hole of Calcutta!"</p>
+
+<p>If there rose in her mind one pang of remorse for her
+behavior that evening, one suggestion of a desire to rush
+out on the doorstep and fling herself into his arms and tell
+him what a fool she was, it was reduced to subjection before
+she had closed the door and entirely smothered by the time
+she reached the parlor again.</p>
+
+<p>"No," she told herself quite firmly as she rearranged the
+tumbled sofa cushions, "that would never do&mdash;that was
+part of the Bargain." Just what was part of the bargain
+or exactly what the bargain was she did not bother to
+specify. "No, I must wait," she continued, trying the
+locks of the windows; "I must wait, a long time, a long,
+<i>long</i> time. Till next September, in fact. One always has
+to wait to find out; nothing but time can show. And of
+course one must be <i>sure</i>"&mdash;she turned out the gas&mdash;"first.
+<i>Perfectly</i> sure&mdash;beyond all manner of doubt and question.
+Both on my own account"&mdash;she reached up with considerable
+effort and turned out the hall light&mdash;"and Harry's."</p>
+
+<p>"No," she amended as she felt with her foot for the
+first step of the dark staircase; "not on my account. On
+Harry's."</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[213]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_IV2">CHAPTER IV</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">WILD HORSES AND CHAMPAGNE</p>
+
+<p>James Wimbourne always had the reputation of
+being an exceptionally strong-willed person. None of
+his friends would have been in the least surprised to see
+him come so triumphantly through the first real test that
+life offered him, if they had known anything about it. Not
+one of them did know anything about it; no human being
+ever vaguely surmised that he renounced&mdash;the word is a
+big one but the act was worthy of it&mdash;Beatrice in favor of
+his brother. Beatrice may have suspected it at first, but
+her suspicion, if it existed at all, died an easy and natural
+death. Harry suspected it least of all, which was just
+what James wanted. The one reason why the renunciation
+did not turn out entirely as James intended was one
+over which he had no control, namely, the simple fact that
+Harry was never in love with Beatrice.</p>
+
+<p>But as a matter of fact one must look deeper into James'
+character to discover how it was that, long before the
+completion of the four years that the story has recently
+skipped, James was able to think of Beatrice without
+even a flutter of the heart. Deeply imbedded in his nature
+there lay a motive force to which his will power, as
+other people knew it, was merely the servant. This may
+perhaps be most safely described as James' attitude toward
+Harry. It is not easy to describe it. It does not do to
+lay stress upon the elements of brotherly affection, desire
+to protect, unselfishness and so forth, which made it up;
+those things all appear to smack of priggishness and cant
+and are at variance with the spontaneity of the thing we
+are talking about. One might perhaps refer to it as an
+ineradicable conviction in the soul of James that Harry
+was always to be thought of first.</p>
+
+<p>Very few people are capable of entertaining such a feeling.
+Very few are worthy of it. James had just the sort
+of nature in which it is most likely to occur. The Germans
+have an apt phrase for this type of nature&mdash;<i>sch&ouml;ne <span class="pagenum">[214]</span>Seele</i>.
+James had a <i>sch&ouml;ne Seele</i>. He had his tastes and
+feelings, of course, like any one else, but the good always
+came naturally to him; the bad was abnormal. And this
+was why he found it possible and even&mdash;after a certain
+time&mdash;easy to erase from his brain the image of Beatrice,
+and set up in its place a vision of Harry and Beatrice
+coming into a mutual realization of each other.</p>
+
+<p>Well, it couldn't have been much of a love in the first
+place if it wasn't stronger than brotherly affection, does
+some one suggest? some one, we fancy, who is thoroughly
+familiar with the poems of the late Robert Browning and
+entertains a <i>penchant</i> for the Paolo and Francesca brand
+of love. Well, possibly. We confess to our own moments
+of Paolomania; every healthy person has them. But we
+would call the attention of the aforesaid some one to the
+stern fact that love in the United States of America in
+the twentieth century is of necessity a different thing from
+love in&mdash;Rimini, we were going to say, but Rimini is a
+real place, with a railroad station and hotel omnibusses,
+so let us change it to Paolo-and-Francescadom. Also that
+he may have fostered his cult of Paoloism rather at the expense
+of his study of the <i>sch&ouml;ne Seele</i>. And we would
+also suggest, meeting him on his own ground, that there is
+no evidence of Paolo ever having got along very well with
+Giovanni. For if he had, of course, that whole beautiful
+story might have been spoilt.</p>
+
+<p>Then, of course, James' remoteness from Beatrice made
+it easier for him. Love is primarily a matter of geography,
+anyway. With the result that finally, when the month of
+June arrived and with it the offer of the New York position,
+the danger implied in New York's proximity to New
+Haven and Beatrice was not enough to deter James from
+closing with it. He accepted the offer, as we know, and
+took up his duties in New York in September.</p>
+
+<p>He took Stodger McClintock with him. Stodger by this
+time simply belonged to James, as far as the Emancipation
+Proclamation and other legal technicalities permit of one
+person belonging to another. He had already obtained
+for him a job as office boy in McClellan's and now proposed
+to take him east and educate him, with the eventual idea
+of turning him into a chauffeur. Stodger seemed delighted
+with the prospect.</p>
+
+<p>"Only," he objected, "please, I'll have to ask me grand-mudder!"<span class="pagenum">[215]</span></p>
+
+<p>"Oh, of course," said James gravely. "You couldn't
+go without her consent. I'll have a talk with her myself, if
+you like."</p>
+
+<p>Stodger seemed to think that would not be necessary.
+It ended by James taking a small apartment and installing
+Stodger as chore boy under the command of an eagle-eyed
+Swedish woman, where he could divide his time between
+cleaning shoes and attending high school.</p>
+
+<p>October arrived; it was ten months since James had
+seen Beatrice and he decided it was now time to see her
+again, to make the sight of her and Harry together chase
+the last shreds of regret from his mind. So he wrote to
+Aunt Selina announcing that he would spend his next
+free Saturday night in New Haven.</p>
+
+<p>It happened that Aunt Selina had fixed upon that night
+to have some people to dinner. When she learned that
+James would be one of the number that idea vanished in
+smoke and from its ashes, phoenix-like, arose the conception
+of making it a real occasion; not dinner, nor people-to-dinner,
+but frankly, out-and-out, A Dinner, like that.
+She arranged to have eighteen, and sent out invitations
+accordingly.</p>
+
+<p>James did not see Beatrice until nearly dinner-time on the
+Saturday night. He came downstairs at five minutes or so
+before the hour and discovered Harry standing before the
+drawing-room fireplace with Aunt Selina placidly sitting on
+a sofa and Beatrice flying about giving a finishing touch
+here and there. There was no strain or uneasiness about
+the meeting; his "Hello, Beatrice," received by her almost
+on the wing as she passed on some slight preprandial mission,
+was a model of cordial familiarity. And if she had
+not been too preoccupied to let the meeting be in the least
+awkward, Harry, gaily chattering from the chimney-piece,
+would have been enough to prevent it anyway.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, here we all are," Harry was saying, "and nobody
+here to entertain. Of course if we had all happened
+to be a minute or two late there would have been a crowd
+of people waiting for us. We won't complain, though; being
+too early is the one great social sin. Yes, Aunt Selina
+dear, I know people didn't think so in the Hayes administration ... Beatrice,
+do stop pecking at those roses; they
+look very well indeed. You make me feel as if my hair
+wasn't properly brushed, or my shirt-front spotted. This<span class="pagenum">[216]</span>
+suspense is telling on me; why doesn't somebody come?"</p>
+
+<p>Somebody did come almost immediately. Aunt Selina
+arose and stood in state in front of the fireplace to receive,
+and she made James stand with her, as though as a reward
+for returning to the eastern half of the country. He
+looked extremely well standing there. There was not one
+of the guests that came up and shook his hand that did not
+mentally congratulate the house of Wimbourne upon its
+present head.</p>
+
+<p>In some ways, indeed, one might say that those few minutes
+formed the very apex of James' life, the point toward
+which his whole past appeared to rise and his future to
+descend from. There are such moments in men's careers;
+moments to which one can point and say, Would that chance
+and my own nature had permitted me to stay there for
+the rest of my natural days! Surely there can be no
+harm in a soul remaining static if the level at which it remains
+is sufficiently high. Here was James, for example,
+not merely rich, good-looking, clever rather than otherwise,
+beloved of his fellow men, but with a very palpable balance
+on the side of good in his character. Why could not fate
+leave him stranded on that high point for the rest of his
+life, radiating goodness and happiness to every one who
+came near him? <i>Sch&ouml;ne Seelen</i> are rare enough in this
+world anyway; what a pity it is that they should not always
+be allowed to shine to the greatest possible advantage!
+What a pity it is that so many of them are overwhelmed
+with shadows too deep for their struggling rays to pierce;
+shadows so thick that the poor little flames are accounted
+lucky if they can manage to burn on invisibly in the darkness,
+illuminating nothing but their own frail substance,
+content merely to live! The thought, indeed, would be
+intolerable were it not for certain other considerations;
+as for example, that the purest flames burn clearest in the
+darkness, or that a candle at midnight is worth more than
+an arc-light at noonday.</p>
+
+<p>Having successfully survived the first meeting, James
+found himself performing the duties of the evening with
+astonishing ease. He devoted himself chiefly to his right-hand
+neighbor, who for some reason was always referred to
+as "little" Mrs. Farnsworth. He was not conscious of the
+slightest feeling of strain in his conversation; he got on
+so well and so easily that he perhaps failed to realize that<span class="pagenum">[217]</span>
+his was a real effort, made with the undoubted though unconscious
+purpose of keeping his mind off other things.
+If he had not succeeded so well, it might have been better.
+Certainly he would have been spared the let-down that he
+subsequently realized was inevitable. It came about halfway
+through dinner, in a general conversation which
+started with an account by James of Stodger's grandmother.</p>
+
+<p>He had made rather a good thing of this. "Of course
+I never force his hand," he was explaining; "I never ask
+him out and out what her name is and where she lives; I
+try to give the impression of believing in her as profoundly
+as himself. But it's most amusing to see how cleverly he
+dodges the questions I do ask. When we were about to
+come east, for instance, I asked him how his grandmother
+dared to trust him so far away without seeing me or
+knowing anything about me. He replied that she was satisfied
+with the description he gave her of me. 'But Stodger,'
+I said, 'doesn't she want to see with her own eyes?'
+'She's my <i>grand</i>mother, not my mother,' he answered,
+which really covered the matter pretty well."</p>
+
+<p>"But he's never shown you either her or a letter from
+her?" asked Mrs. Farnsworth.</p>
+
+<p>"Of course not&mdash;how could he? Oh, I must say I admire
+him for it! You see, I found him living practically
+in the gutter, sleeping Heaven knows where and eating
+Heaven knows what; but through it all he hung onto this
+grandmother business as his one last tie with the world
+of respectability and good clothes and enough to eat. I
+think I never saw a person get so much out of a mere
+idea."</p>
+
+<p>"It shows imagination, certainly," murmured Mrs.
+Farnsworth appreciatively, but her remark was drowned
+in the question of her right-hand neighbor, who had been
+listening to James' narrative and joined in with:</p>
+
+<p>"Have you ever succeeded in getting any idea of what
+the old lady is like? I should think the boy's mental picture
+of a grandmother might form a key to his whole character."</p>
+
+<p>"No," replied James; "I've never asked him anything
+very definite. I must find out something more about her
+some time."</p>
+
+<p>"What would the ideal grandmother be like, I wonder?"
+queried Mrs. Farnsworth. "Yours or mine, for example?<span class="pagenum">[218]</span>
+Mine would be a dear old soul with a white cap and curls,
+whom I should always go to visit over Thanksgiving and
+eat too much pumpkin pie."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, I think that comes pretty near my ideal, too," said
+James; "provided she didn't want to kiss me too often and
+had no other bad habits."</p>
+
+<p>"How idyllic!" said Mrs. Farnsworth's other neighbor.
+"Arcadians, both of you. I confess to something much
+more sophisticated; something living in town, say, with a
+box at the opera. Mrs. Harriman, it's your turn."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, leave me out!" answered Mrs. Harriman, a woman
+who still, at forty, gave the impression of being too young
+for her husband. "You see, I have a grandmother still
+living."</p>
+
+<p>"So have I," irrepressibly retorted her neighbor, whose
+name was Nesmith; "two of them, in fact, and neither is
+anything like my ideal! You can feel quite at your ease."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, if I had to choose, I think I would have one more
+like yours, Mr. Nesmith; only very old and dignified, something
+of the dowager type, who would tell delightful stories
+of Paris under Louis Philippe and Rome under the Popes,
+and possibly write some rather indiscreet memoirs. Something
+definitely connecting my own time with hers, you
+know."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, I say, no fair!" interrupted James in unthoughtful
+high spirits. "No fair stealing somebody else's grandmother!
+You've described Miss Carson's grandmother,
+Mrs. Harriman, unless I'm greatly mistaken. Beatrice,
+isn't Mrs. Harriman's ideal grandmother suspiciously like
+old Lady Moville?"</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice, who was sitting two places down the table from
+Mrs. Harriman, had heard the description; the grandmother
+conversation had, in fact, absorbed the attention
+of very nearly half the table.</p>
+
+<p>"Very like, I admit; but Mrs. Harriman is quite welcome
+to her.... She is not exactly my ideal of a grandmother...!" She
+turned directly toward James and
+made the last remark straight at him with a sort of deprecating
+smile of comprehension. It was as though she said:
+"I say that to <i>you</i> because I know you'll understand!"
+It did not amount to much; it was one of the fleeting signs
+of mutual comprehension that friends will frequently exchange
+in the presence of acquaintances. But unfortunately<span class="pagenum">[219]</span>
+the remark and the way it was given were extremely ill-timed
+as far as James was concerned. The effect they
+caused in him may perhaps be best likened to one of those
+sudden fits of faintness that overcome people convalescing
+from a long illness; the sort of thing where you are all
+right one minute and gasping and calling for brandy the
+next, and the stronger you feel beforehand the harder the
+faintness seizes you when it comes. If James had been on
+the watch for such occurrences, the incident would not have
+had half the effect on him that it did. As it was, however,
+Beatrice's little speech and glance stirred into momentary
+activity much of the feeling that he had been striving all
+these months to keep down.</p>
+
+<p>It was not really much; it did not actually undo the
+work of those ten months. James was really convalescent.
+But the suddenness of the thing overcame him for the moment
+and gave him a feeling approaching that of actual
+physical faintness. He saw a glass of champagne standing
+at his side and involuntarily reached toward it.</p>
+
+<p>No one noticed him much. Mrs. Farnsworth was chattering
+easily with Mr. Nesmith; conversation had resumed
+its normal course. Possibly the knowledge that James had
+touched on a rather doubtful topic, Beatrice's father's
+family, gave conversation a slight added impetus; certainly
+if anybody noticed James' embarrassment they assumed
+that his slight indiscretion amply accounted for it.
+At any rate, when his embarrassment led him so far as not
+only to reach for his left-hand neighbor's glass of champagne
+instead of his own but to tip it over in the process,
+the said left-hand neighbor, who happened to be Madge
+Elliston, attributed his action to that reason and acted accordingly.</p>
+
+<p>With a tact that would have seemed overdone if it had
+not been so prompt and sufficient, she immediately assumed
+that it had been she who had knocked the glass over.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, I am so sorry!" she exclaimed. "I <i>am</i> such an
+awkward idiot; I hope it didn't go all over you, James?... No,
+my dress is all right; apparently nothing but the
+tablecloth has suffered," and so forth, and so forth, to an
+accompaniment of gentle swabbings and shifting of table
+utensils.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Madge?" said James vaguely. "That's all right&mdash;I
+mean, it's my fault, entirely...." He joined in the<span class="pagenum">[220]</span>
+rescue work with grateful fervor, and in a moment a servant
+came up and did something efficient with a napkin.
+Madge chattered on.</p>
+
+<p>"I never do get through a party without doing something
+silly! I'm glad it's nothing worse than this; I generally
+count that dinner as lost when I don't drop a hairpin into
+my food. I used to be quite embarrassed about it, but
+I've got so now that I eat shamelessly on, right down to
+the hairpin. I wonder if your aunt saw? No&mdash;or rather,
+she did, and is far too polite to show it. She just won't
+ask me again, that's all!"</p>
+
+<p>"She will if I have any influence with her," said James;
+"and I don't mind saying, between you and me and the
+gatepost, that I have a good deal! Only you must sing to
+us after dinner. You will, won't you?"</p>
+
+<p>"My dear James, I don't suppose wild horses&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, come now, you must!"</p>
+
+<p>"I was going to say, wild horses couldn't stop me from
+singing, if I'm asked! Did you ever know me to refrain
+from singing, loudly and clearly, whenever I received the
+slightest encouragement?"</p>
+
+<p>"I can't say&mdash;I haven't been here enough. I'm pretty
+sure, though, that there are no wild horses here to-night."</p>
+
+<p>"I'm not so sure...." She took a rapid glance around
+the table. "Yes, there are at least two wild horses right
+here in this room. See if you can guess who they are."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, this is getting beyond me!"</p>
+
+<p>"Guess!" said Madge, inexorably.</p>
+
+<p>"Well ... Professor Dodd?"</p>
+
+<p>"Right. Now the other."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh&mdash;old George Harriman."</p>
+
+<p>"No. You're on the wrong track; it isn't the unmusical
+people that keep me from singing; it's those who make me
+feel silly and <i>de trop</i>, somehow, when I'm doing it."</p>
+
+<p>"I can't guess," said James after a pause.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, it's Beatrice Carson!"</p>
+
+<p>"No, not Beatrice! Why, she's very fond of music!"</p>
+
+<p>"It's not that, as I tried to explain. She is such a wonderful,
+Olympian sort of person, so beautiful, so well-bred,
+so good, and tremendously wise and capable&mdash;you've heard
+about the work she's doing here in the Working Girls'
+League?"</p>
+
+<p>"Something, yes."<span class="pagenum">[221]</span></p>
+
+<p>"Well, it's perfectly extraordinary; they say she's been
+able to reach people no one else has ever been able to do
+anything with. Altogether, the thought of her listening
+to me makes me feel like a first-class fool when I stand up
+and warble, and even more so when I think of the time
+and money I waste on learning to do a little bit better
+something that isn't worth doing at all!"</p>
+
+<p>"But you teach school," objected James. "That's sound
+constructive work."</p>
+
+<p>"That," replied Miss Elliston, "is not for eleemosynary
+reasons."</p>
+
+<p>"But you do it very well."</p>
+
+<p>"No, you're mistaken there, and beside, I hate teaching
+school; I simply <i>loathe</i> it! Whereas ... let me tell you
+a secret. This singing business, this getting up in a drawing-room
+and opening my mouth and compelling people's
+attention, even for a moment&mdash;seeing people gradually
+stop talking and thinking about something else and wishing
+I'd stop, and at last just listening, listening with all their
+ears and minds to me, plain, stupid, vapid little ME&mdash;well, I
+just love it! It's meat and drink to me. Whenever I receive
+an invitation to dinner I want to write back, Yes, if
+you'll let me sing afterward!"</p>
+
+<p>"Really," said James thoughtfully, "that's the way it
+is with you, is it?"</p>
+
+<p>"I'm afraid so! You won't give me away though, will
+you, James?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, no danger! And I'll promise you another thing&mdash;wild
+horses shan't have a chance when I'm around! Not
+one chance! Ever!"</p>
+
+<p>He was flattered by her confidence, of course, as well as
+grateful for her tact. She had not only dragged him out
+of the water where he was floundering on to the dry land,
+but had gone so far as to haul him up an agreeable eminence
+before leaving him.</p>
+
+<p>Conversation shifted again at that point and James
+turned again to Mrs. Farnsworth. He got on very well
+with her from his eminence; so well that they remained
+conversationally united for the rest of dinner. In the
+course of their talk he thought of another thing that made
+him even happier; something he had not had a chance to
+realize before. Madge thought his momentary embarrassment
+had been due to having broached the doubtful topic<span class="pagenum">[222]</span>
+of the Carson family. She had no inkling of his feeling
+for Beatrice; the freedom of her references to Beatrice was
+proof positive of that. And if she did not suspect, probably
+no one else did! His secret was as safe as it had ever been.</p>
+
+<p>The full joy of this realization began to spread itself
+through him about the time when fingerbowls came into use
+and Aunt Selina was gathering eyes preparatory to starting
+an exodus. Just as they all rose he chanced to catch
+Madge's eye and, unable to withhold some expression of his
+relief, smiled and said softly: "Thank you, Madge!"</p>
+
+<p>"What?" she asked, not understanding.</p>
+
+<p>"Champagne," said James.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, nonsense!" As she started to walk doorward she
+turned her face directly toward his and gave him a deprecatory
+little smile of understanding, exactly like the one
+Beatrice had thrown him a short time ago.</p>
+
+<p>The coincidence at first rather took him aback. He was
+conscious, as the men rearranged themselves for coffee and
+cigars, of a feeling of loss, almost of desecration; the sort
+of feeling one might experience on seeing somebody else
+wear one's mother's wedding gown. Nobody but Beatrice
+had any real business to smile like that&mdash;to him, at least.
+Then it occurred to him that that was all nonsense; either
+it was all on or all off between him and Beatrice. After
+all, Madge's smile was just about as good to look at
+as Beatrice's, if one made allowance against the latter's
+unusual beauty. Madge was not unattractive in her way,
+either....</p>
+
+<p>Madge sang, of course. James enjoyed her singing very
+much, the more so for what she had told him at dinner.
+During her performance an inspiration came to him which
+he presently made an opportunity to impart to her.</p>
+
+<p>"Look here," he asked; "have you ever sung for Beatrice's
+working girls?"</p>
+
+<p>"No," answered she in some surprise. "Why?"</p>
+
+<p>"Why not?"</p>
+
+<p>"I've never been asked, for one thing!"</p>
+
+<p>"Would you, if you were? I'd like to suggest it to
+Beatrice, at any rate."</p>
+
+<p>"That's all very well for me, but what about the poor
+working girls?"</p>
+
+<p>"I should say that any working girl that didn't want to<span class="pagenum">[223]</span>
+hear you sing didn't deserve to be helped. I may suggest
+it to her, then?"</p>
+
+<p>"Certainly, if you like. I don't really imagine that
+she'll have any use for it, though."</p>
+
+<p>"We'll see." He dismissed the subject with a smile. It
+pleased him to be quite brief and businesslike. As the
+party broke up and the guests dispersed he was busy, in a
+half-conscious sort of way, constructing a vision of him and
+his whole future life on this scheme; irretrievably blighted
+in his own career he would devote himself to doing helpful
+little services for people he liked, without thought of other
+reward than the satisfaction of performing them.</p>
+
+<p>Sustained by this vision he embarked quite fearlessly
+and efficiently on a <i>t&ecirc;te-&agrave;-t&ecirc;te</i> with Beatrice before going
+to bed that night. He made the suggestion to her that he
+had told Madge he would make, and was pleased to find that
+Beatrice welcomed it warmly.</p>
+
+<p>Once in bed, with the light turned out and absolute quiet
+reigning throughout the house, of course disturbing things
+did force their way into his brain. It was bound to be that
+way, of course; had it not been that way for the past ten
+months? Fears, pains, doubts, memories, regrets&mdash;all
+passed in their accustomed procession before his mind's
+eye, gradually growing dimmer and fewer as drowsiness
+came on and at last dwindling to occasional mental pictures,
+as of a characteristic gesture, a look, a smile. A
+humorous little smile, for instance, suggestive of mutual
+understanding....</p>
+
+<p>Jove, that was a funny thing! He sat up in bed, shaking
+off his sleepiness and subjecting his mental vision to
+the test of conscious reason. That was Madge's smile that
+he had just seen, not Beatrice's; it was all there, the different
+position, the eyes, the hair and everything; all complete
+and unmistakable. Well, it was strange what a heavy
+dinner could do to a man&mdash;that, and a glass of champagne!</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[224]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_V2">CHAPTER V</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">A SCH&Ouml;NE SEELE ON PISGAH</p>
+
+<p>More than four years have elapsed before we see
+James Wimbourne again.</p>
+
+<p>Time has dealt easily with him, as far as appearances are
+concerned. No periods of searching care have imprinted
+their lines upon his face; no rending sorrow has dimmed
+the sweetness of its expression. No one could even be
+tempted to say that he had begun to grow stout. And if
+his face is a trifle thinner and more firmly molded than of
+old, if he has a more settled manner of sinking back in to
+a club chair, if he takes rather more time to get through
+the evening newspaper, or if, after the manner of many
+ex-athletes, he is inclined to become fidgety and bilious unless
+he has exactly the proper amount of physical exercise&mdash;well,
+who ever reaches his late twenties without showing
+similar preliminary symptoms of age; not so much the first
+stages of the process of ageing as indications of what the
+process will be like when it begins in earnest?</p>
+
+<p>The process in which we now find James engaged is
+mental rather than senescent, but you would hardly guess
+it to look at him. He is sitting on a rock on the top of a
+hill at sunset, smoking a cigarette and patently enjoying
+it. One leg is thrown easily over the other, his body is
+bent slightly forward; one hand rests on the rock by his
+side and the other, when not employed in propelling the
+cigarette to and from his mouth, lies quietly on his lap.
+He is very quiet; James is not the sort of person to make
+many unnecessary motions; he picks out a comfortable position
+and usually remains in it until it is time to do something
+else. He would do this even if he were not gazing
+at an absorbingly lovely view over the roofs of Bar Harbor,
+Frenchman's Bay and the tumbled hills of the Maine
+Coast, and even if the mental process were not such an absorbing
+one as a review of his relation with Madge Elliston,&mdash;a
+sort of indexing of the steps by which it had developed<span class="pagenum">[225]</span>
+from the vaguest of acquaintanceships into its
+present state.</p>
+
+<p>It had really begun, he reflected, on the evening of that
+dinner. Before that Madge had been merely one of the
+group of chattery young women that he had danced with
+and was polite to and secretly rather afraid of; one of the
+genus d&eacute;butante. After that she merged from her genus
+and, almost without going through the intermediate stages
+of species and variety, became an individual.</p>
+
+<p>At first he had deliberately fostered and encouraged the
+thought of Madge, for obvious reasons. It was clearly
+profitable to do anything that would help weed out the
+thought of Beatrice. It would be fruitless even to try to
+enumerate the stages by which from that point on Beatrice
+faded from his heart and that of Madge took her place;
+to a far larger place, as he now realized, than Beatrice
+had ever occupied there.</p>
+
+<p>It appeared to him now, as he looked back on the whole
+process, that Beatrice herself was responsible for a large
+part of it, Beatrice and her Working Girls' League. That
+had all grown quite logically out of that first evening and
+his inspiration about having Madge sing to the working
+girls. Beatrice adopted the suggestion, and the result was
+so successful that on the Saturday a month or two afterward,
+when James made his next visit to New Haven, Madge
+was engaged to sing to them for a second time. He accompanied
+Beatrice to that meeting and from that evening
+dated his acquaintance with the Working Girls' League
+and social work in general.</p>
+
+<p>Madge sang for the most part old English songs, things
+the girls could understand, and they followed them all
+with the most unaffected interest and pleasure. James was
+surprised to see several of them actually wipe tears from
+their eyes when she sang the plaintive ditty "A young
+country maid up to London had strayed," and during one
+intermission he was conscious of certain inarticulate sounds
+coming from the audience, of which the only intelligible
+part was the word "husband" uttered in beseeching accents
+again and again.</p>
+
+<p>"They want her to sing 'Oh, for a husband,'" explained
+Beatrice to James. "She sang that the last time and they
+all went crazy about it." Madge complied with a really
+very spirited rendering of the old song, and the girls applauded<span class="pagenum">[226]</span>
+with an enthusiasm that rather touched James.
+There was something appealing to him in the unaffected
+way in which these poor shop and factory drudges, physically
+half-starved and mentally wholly starved, responded
+to the slightest efforts to give them pleasure. He felt
+himself suddenly warming toward the movement.</p>
+
+<p>"Tell me something about this place," he found a chance
+to say to Madge later on, when the gathering had broken
+up, and even before she replied he reflected that he had
+had ample opportunity to ask Beatrice that.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, <i>I'm</i> not the person to ask&mdash;I've only just come
+into it.... It was started simply as a working girls' club,
+I believe; a place more especially for the homeless ones to
+come to after work hours and meet each other and spend a
+little time in cheerful surroundings before going back to
+their hall bedrooms.... Now it's become more than that;
+they have entertainments and dances and classes of various
+kinds, and we're trying to raise money enough to build
+them a lodging house."</p>
+
+<p>"You've become one of them then, have you?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes, I'm one of those that have been drawn in. The
+thing has flourished amazingly lately, both among the
+helpers and the helped. The purpose of the League is entirely
+secular&mdash;I suppose that's what made it go so well.
+The churches don't seem&mdash;they don't get a chance at many
+people, do they?... This is aimed to help the very lowest
+class of workers; all unmarried wage-earners are eligible,
+regardless of age or race or religion.... Poor things, they
+are so glad to have their bodies and minds cared for and
+their souls left alone! The souls follow easily enough, we
+find, just as Shaw says&mdash;you've read 'Major Barbara'?"</p>
+
+<p>"I don't think I have," replied James.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, that shows what the League is trying to do better
+than I can.... It's had its results, too. The thing
+has been running about a year, and already the number
+of arrests for certain kinds of offenses has fallen off over
+fifty per cent. Keeping them off the streets alone is enough
+to make us feel proud and satisfied...."</p>
+
+<p>"I should think so," said James, blushing hotly. He
+had never heard a young woman make such a remark before,
+and was at a loss how to take it. But there was something
+at once fearless and modest in the way Madge made
+it that not only put him at his ease but set him thinking.<span class="pagenum">[227]</span>
+"Good Lord, why can't we live in a world where every
+one talks like that?" he suddenly asked himself.</p>
+
+<p>Madge went on to give him a fuller account of the purposes
+and methods of the League, outlining some of its
+difficulties and indicating, as far as she knew it, the path
+of its future development. She paid him the compliment
+of asking him several questions, and he was displeased to
+find that he had either to bluff answers for them or confess
+ignorance.</p>
+
+<p>"I wish I could do something of this sort," he said presently,
+in a musing sort of way.</p>
+
+<p>"Why don't you? There's plenty of chance in New
+York, I should say."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, New York, yes. I hadn't thought of that. I
+don't know what use I could be, though."</p>
+
+<p>"No difficulty about that, I should think. What about
+athletics? You'd work among boys, I presume?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, I suppose so." Somehow the prospect did not attract
+him particularly. Then he thought of Stodger; of
+what Stodger's evenings would have been but for him.
+What did he do to illuminate Stodger's evenings under actual
+conditions, now that he come to think of it?</p>
+
+<p>"You'll find there are plenty of things you can do for
+them. Practically every one who knows anything at all
+can conduct an evening class. Even I&mdash;I have a class in
+hat trimming! One of the few subjects I can truthfully
+say I have practical knowledge in."</p>
+
+<p>Thus the germ of the desire for social service was sowed
+in him. It thrived pretty steadily during the winter that
+followed. He got himself introduced to the proper people
+and almost before he knew it he found himself volunteering
+in gymnasium work and pledged to give occasional
+evening talks on athletic subjects. The organization in
+which he worked was, he found to his satisfaction, like
+Madge's&mdash;Madge's, you observe, not Beatrice's&mdash;Working
+Girls' League, designed to help the very lowest classes
+of wage-earners. It had its clubrooms on the lower East
+Side and set itself up as a rival attraction to the saloon-haunting
+gangs of that interesting neighborhood, and since
+it dealt with the roughest section of the population it did
+not hesitate to employ means that other organizations would
+have hesitated to sanction. Beer and tobacco were sold
+on the place; billiards and card games were freely encouraged,<span class="pagenum">[228]</span>
+though there was a rule against playing anything
+for money; but the chief interest of the place was athletic.
+Herein lay a problem, for it was found that in the hands
+of the descendants of Nihilists and pillars of the Mano
+Negra such respectable sports as boxing and wrestling were
+prone to degenerate into bloody duels.</p>
+
+<p>It was in this matter that James first made himself felt.
+Happening into the building at an unaccustomed hour one
+afternoon, he became aware of strange noises issuing from
+an upper floor, and dashing up to the gymnasium discovered
+two brawny young Italians apparently trying to
+brain each other with Indian clubs. In a storm of righteous
+and unaffected wrath he rushed into the fray, separated
+the combatants and treated them to such a torrent
+of obloquy as they had never heard even among their
+own associates. Too astonished and fascinated to reply,
+they allowed themselves to be hustled from the room by
+James and literally kicked down the stairs and out of the
+building without so much as getting into their clothes,
+running several blocks in their gymnasium costumes.
+They aroused no particular attention, for at that time even
+the East Side was becoming accustomed to the sight of
+scantily clad youths using the streets as a cinder track, but
+it was more than an hour before, timid and peaceful,
+the offenders ventured to slip back into the clubhouse and
+their trousers.</p>
+
+<p>From that day on James practically ran the Delancy
+Street Club. It never became a very large or famous
+organization, partly for the reason that it was purposely
+kept rather small, but it did much good in its own quiet
+way. It soon became the chief extra-business interest in
+James' life; it effectually drove the last vestiges of what
+he learned to refer to mentally as "that foolishness" from
+his head; his nights became full of sleep and empty of
+visions. And by the spring of the next year he found
+himself slipping into an intermittent but perfectly easy
+friendship with Madge Elliston, founded, naturally enough,
+on their common interest in social matters. He fell into
+the habit of running up to New Haven for week-ends, and
+into the habit of seeing Madge on those Saturday evenings.
+He liked talking to her about social problems; he soon
+caught up with her in the matter of knowledge and experience,
+and it was from a comfortingly similar viewpoint<span class="pagenum">[229]</span>
+that they were able to discuss such matters as methods of
+handling evening classes, the moral effects of workmen's
+compensation and the great and growing problem of dance
+halls and all that it involves. They both found much to
+help and instruct them in each other's views; the mere dissimilarities
+of the state laws under which they worked
+furnished ample material for discussion, and their friendship
+was always tightened by the fact that they were, so
+to speak, marching abreast, running up against successive
+phases of their work at about the same time.</p>
+
+<p>It need cause no surprise that such a relation should have
+remained practically static for a period of three years or
+more. Each of them had much to think of beside social
+work. James had eight or nine hours' work per day and
+all the absorbing interests of metropolitan life to keep him
+from spending overmuch time over it. And Madge, as we
+know, was already an extremely busy young woman. For
+a long time their common interest hardly amounted to
+more than an absorbing topic of conversation during their
+meetings. The stages by which it became the agent of
+something greater were quite imperceptible.</p>
+
+<p>There was just one exterior fact that served as a landmark
+in the progress of his feeling. Some months before&mdash;shortly
+after Harry had so unexpectedly gone abroad&mdash;Madge
+had started a series of Saturday night dances for
+her working girls&mdash;that was at the time when the dance
+craze was spreading among all classes of society&mdash;and she
+asked James to help her give some exhibitions of new
+dances, to get the thing well launched. James rather hesitated
+in accepting this invitation.</p>
+
+<p>"I'll do it, of course, if you really want me to," he said;
+"but I don't see why you want to drag me all the way up
+here for that. Why don't you ask somebody in town?"</p>
+
+<p>"That's just the point," replied Madge; "I shall want
+you to give a little individual instruction to the girls, if
+you will, and I think it would be just as well if the person
+who did that had no chance of meeting the girls about town,
+in other capacities...! Beside, you happen to dance
+rather better than any one I know up here."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, nonsense!" said James. "I'll come," he added in
+the next breath.</p>
+
+<p>It was from just about the time of those dances, James
+thought, that the personal element in his relation to Madge<span class="pagenum">[230]</span>
+began to overbalance the intellectual. He had had his moments
+of being rather attracted by her, of course&mdash;the
+episode of Aunt Selina's dinner was a fair example&mdash;but
+such moments had been mere sparks, soulless little heralds
+of the flame that now began to burn brightly and warmly.
+Hitherto he had primarily been interested in her; now he
+began definitely to like her. And then, before long, something
+more.</p>
+
+<p>It is interesting to compare the processes by which the
+two brothers fell in love with the same woman. Harry's
+experience might be likened to a blinding but illuminating
+flash of lightning; James' to the gentle but permeating
+effect of sunrise. Both were held at first by the purely
+intellectual side of Madge's character, but by different
+aspects of it. Harry was primarily attracted to her by
+her active wit; this had at first repelled James, made him
+somewhat afraid of her, until he discovered the more solid
+qualities of her mind. Both at last fell in love with her as
+a person, not as a member of the female sex nor as a thinking
+machine. Both passions were founded upon solid rock;
+neither could be uprooted without violent and far-reaching
+results.</p>
+
+<p>How beautifully it had all worked out in the end, James
+reflected; how wisely the progress of things was ordained!
+How fortunate it was that his first futile passion for Beatrice
+had not been allowed to develop and bear ill-conceived
+fruit! Now that he almost went so far as to despise himself
+for that passion as unworthy both of himself and of
+her. What had he fallen in love with there? A lip, a
+cheek, a pair of eyes, a noble poise of a head, a thing to win
+and kiss and at last squeeze in his arms&mdash;nothing more!
+He had set her up as the image of a false, fleshly ideal, an
+empty Victorian husk of an ideal, a sentimental, boyish,
+calfish vision of womanhood. How paltry that image
+looked when compared to that newer one combining the
+attributes of friend, comrade, fellow-worker, kin of his
+mind and spirit! His first image had done injustice to its
+material counterpart, to be sure; Beatrice had turned out
+to be far different from the alluring but empty creature
+he had pictured her. She was a being with a will, ideas,
+powers, purposes of her own. Well, all the better&mdash;for
+Harry! How admirably suited she was to Harry! What
+a pair they would make, with their two keen minds, their<span class="pagenum">[231]</span>
+active ambitions, their fine, dynamic personalities! The
+thought furnished almost as pleasing a mental picture as
+that of his union with a small blue-eyed person at this
+very moment covered by the sloping gray roof he had already
+taken pains to pick out from the ranks of its fellows....</p>
+
+<p>The contemplation of material things brought a slight
+diminution of pleasure. When one came down to solid
+facts, things were not going quite so well as could be desired.
+Harry was at this moment kiting unconcernedly
+about the continent of Europe and his match with Beatrice
+seemed, as far as James could make out, as much in the air
+as ever. Also, his own actual relation with Madge was
+not entirely satisfactory. That was due chiefly to sordid
+facts, no doubt; he could not expect to have the freedom
+of meeting and speech he naturally desired with a governess
+in a friend's house. Still, in the two or three conversations
+he had been able to arrange with her during the past
+three weeks he had been conscious of an unfamiliar spirit
+of elusiveness. Once, he remembered, she had gone so far
+as to bring the subject of conversation round to impersonal
+things with something little short of rudeness, just as he
+was getting started on something that particularly interested
+him, too....</p>
+
+<p>Plenty of time for that, though; it would never do to
+hurry things. He arose from his rock and stretched himself,
+lifting his arms high above his head in the cool evening
+air with a sense of strength and ease. There was
+nothing to worry about; things were fundamentally all
+right; ends would meet and issues right themselves, all in
+due time.</p>
+
+<p>It was time, or very nearly time, for Aunt Selina's evening
+meal, so he started off at a brisk pace down the hill,
+whistling softly and cheerfully to himself. He thought
+of Aunt Selina, how pleased she would be with it all, when
+she knew. Good old soul! He remembered how pointedly
+she had asked him to spend his month's vacation with her
+when she told him she had taken a house at Bar Harbor
+for the summer; could it be that she suspected anything?
+Perhaps she had, perhaps not; it had all worked in very
+conveniently with Madge being at Gilsons', at any rate.
+Let her and every one else suspect what they wished; it
+did not matter much. Nothing did matter much, when<span class="pagenum">[232]</span>
+you came to that, except that small person in white linen
+and lawn who had flouted him when he had last seen her
+and whom he would show what was what, he promised himself,
+on the next favorable opportunity....</p>
+
+<p>"Thank God for Madge," he breathed softly to himself
+as he walked on and the peace of the evening descended
+more deeply around him; "oh, thank God for Madge!"</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[233]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_VI2">CHAPTER VI</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">A LONG CHAPTER. BUT THEN, LOVE IS LONG</p>
+
+<p>Aunt Selina was almost the only person with whom
+Harry spoke during the interval between his last interview
+with Madge and his departure for foreign parts.
+He was living in the old house now, so he could not very
+well avoid seeing her. At the last moment, with his overcoat
+on and his hat in his hand, he sought out his aunt,
+and found her in a small room on the ground floor known
+as the morning-room, going over her accounts.</p>
+
+<p>"Good-by, Aunt Selina," he said. "I'm going to sail
+for Europe on the first steamer I can get, so I shan't see
+you for some time."</p>
+
+<p>Aunt Selina calmly took off her glasses, laid them beside
+her pen on the desk and paused before replying.</p>
+
+<p>"Good-by, my dear," she said at length; "I'm sure I
+hope you'll enjoy yourself. Brown Shipley, I suppose?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," said Harry. He was a little disconcerted; Aunt
+Selina played the game almost too well. Then as he stood
+unconsequently before her, he was seized by a sudden desire
+to confide in her. "Do you know why I'm going, Aunt
+Selina?" he asked.</p>
+
+<p>"No, my dear."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, why do you <i>think</i>?"</p>
+
+<p>"I prefer not to guess, if that is what you mean. You
+may tell me, if you wish."</p>
+
+<p>"Madge Elliston," mumbled Harry.</p>
+
+<p>Aunt Selina stared immovably at her bank book for a
+moment; then she got up and faced her nephew.</p>
+
+<p>"There is a streak of horse sense in the Wimbourne blood
+that has been the saving of all of us," she said. "I'm
+glad to see it come out in you. Good-by, my dear." She
+kissed him on the cheek.</p>
+
+<p>"How do&mdash;how would you like it?" he asked, still hesitating,
+uncertain as to her meaning.</p>
+
+<p>"Nothing better. I wish you the best of luck. And I
+think you're doing the wisest possible thing."<span class="pagenum">[234]</span></p>
+
+<p>"I'm glad you do." He looked at her gratefully. "Did
+you suspect anything?"</p>
+
+<p>"Not a thing."</p>
+
+<p>"Then I don't believe any one does.... Good-by, Aunt
+Selina."</p>
+
+<p>"You've done me a great honor. Good-by, dear."</p>
+
+<p>They kissed again and he went out, feeling greatly
+strengthened and encouraged. As he drove down to the
+station he determined to go to a hotel in New York and
+keep out of the way of the James Wimbournes and all other
+possible confidants. The interview with Aunt Selina had
+been so perfect that he could not bear the thought of risking
+anti-climaxes to it. Suddenly he remembered that
+certain Cunard and White Star boats sailed to the Mediterranean
+from Boston. He could go directly there and wait
+for a steamer in perfect security.</p>
+
+<p>So he took the next train to Boston and that very afternoon
+engaged passage to Gibraltar on a steamer sailing
+two days later. The interval he spent chiefly in laying up
+a great store of books on Spain and Portugal, which countries
+he planned to visit <i>in extenso</i>.</p>
+
+<p>The dull, wet voyage he found enchanting when brightened
+up by the glowing pages of Lope de Vega, Calderon,
+"Don Quixote," "The Lusiads," "The Bible in Spain,"
+and Lea's "History of the Inquisition," a galaxy further
+enhanced by the businesslike promises of guide books and
+numerous works on Hispanic architecture and painting.
+He landed at Gibraltar with something almost approaching
+regret at the thought that land traveling would allow him
+less time for reading.</p>
+
+<p>In leisurely fashion he strolled through southern Spain
+and Portugal, presently reaching Santiago de Compostela.
+It had been his intention, when this part of the trip was
+finished, to go to Biarritz and from there work on through
+the towns of southern France, but a traveling Englishman
+told him that he ought on no account to miss seeing the
+cathedral of Gerona. So he changed his plans and proceeded
+eastward. When he reached Gerona he called himself
+a fool for having so nearly missed it, but after a week
+or ten days among the huge dark churches of Catalonia he
+suddenly sickened of sight-seeing and that very night
+caught a through express from Barcelona to Paris.</p>
+
+<p>Harry had never known Paris well enough to care for it<span class="pagenum">[235]</span>
+particularly, but just now there was something rather attractive
+to him in its late June gaiety. He arrived there
+just at the time of the Grand Prix, and as he strolled,
+lonely and unnoticed, through the brilliant Longchamps
+crowd he felt his heart unaccountably warming to these
+well-groomed children of the world. He had been outside
+the realm of social intercourse so long that he felt a sudden
+desire for converse with smart, cheerful, people of their
+type.</p>
+
+<p>His desire was not difficult of fulfilment, as nothing but
+seven hours' traveling lay between him and a welcoming
+Belgrave Square. The next day he crossed the Channel
+and took his uncle and aunt completely by surprise. They
+were delighted to see him and were unaffectedly disappointed
+at having to leave him almost immediately for a
+dinner in Downing Street.</p>
+
+<p>"But we're going to see a lot of you while you're here,
+dear boy," said Aunt Miriam, "if we have to break every
+engagement on our list. It isn't every day that I have a
+nephew turn into a successful playwright! What about a
+dinner, now? Giles, have you anything on for a week
+from Monday?"</p>
+
+<p>"The truth is," observed Sir Giles to his nephew,
+"you've become a lion, and a lion is a lion even if he is
+in the family. Poor Harry, I feel for you!"</p>
+
+<p>"That'll do, G. It's good for the boy."</p>
+
+<p>"There's small danger of my being a lion in London,
+anyway," said Harry.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, I don't know," ruminated Uncle Giles: "adoration
+of success is the great British vice, you know."</p>
+
+<p>"Monday the fourth, then, Giles," said his wife.</p>
+
+<p>"Hooray, the national holiday!" retorted the irrepressible
+baronet. "I say, we'll have the room decorated with
+American flags and set off fireworks in the square afterward.
+We might make a real day of it, if you like, and go
+to tea at the American Embassy!"</p>
+
+<p>"No, I don't think we'll do that," answered Aunt
+Miriam, closing her lips rather firmly.</p>
+
+<p>Harry had a short talk alone with his aunt that night
+after she came back from the evening's business.</p>
+
+<p>"Come in and help me take off my tiara," she said, leading
+the way into her bedroom. "I rather want to talk to
+you. Do you know, dear boy, I fancy something's come<span class="pagenum">[236]</span>
+over you lately, you're changed, somehow. Is it only your
+success? What brought you over here, in the first place?"</p>
+
+<p>"Spanish churches," answered Harry promptly. He
+had at one time half decided to confide in Aunt Miriam, but
+he definitely gave up the idea now. She was too sympathetic,
+by half. "Do you know Barcelona and Batalha?
+There's nothing like them."</p>
+
+<p>"No, I've never been to Spain. They say there are
+fleas, and the beds are not reliable. I also understand that
+other arrangements are somewhat primitive."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, not always," replied Harry, smiling. "Still, I
+don't think I do quite see you in Spain, Aunt Miriam."
+Then he kissed her good night quite affectionately. He
+could be very fond of her, from a short distance.</p>
+
+<p>As he strolled down Bond Street next morning Harry
+sighted an old school acquaintance; a man whom he had
+known as plain Tommy Erskine, but whom a succession
+of timely deaths, as he now vaguely remembered, had
+brought into the direct line of an earldom. Harry wondered
+if he would remember him; they had not met since
+their Harrow days. The other's somewhat glassy stare relaxed
+quickly enough, however, when he saw who it was.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, Harry! Jolly old Harry!" he said in a tone of
+easy cordiality, as though he had not seen Harry perhaps
+for a week. "I say, turn around and toddle down to Truefitt's
+again with me, will you? Fellah puts stinking stuff
+on my hair three times a week; never do to miss a time,
+wot? Well, jolly old Harry; wherever have you been all
+these yahs? Didn't go up to Oxford, did you?"</p>
+
+<p>"No," said Harry, "I went home, to America, and I've
+stayed there ever since. I'm a thorough Yankee again
+now; you won't know me. But Tommy, what's all this
+rot about you being a viscount or something?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, bilge! Such a bilgy name, too&mdash;Clairloch&mdash;like a
+fellah with phlegm in his throat, wot? Never call me that,
+though; call me Tommy, and I'll call you Wiggers, just
+like jolly old times, wot?"</p>
+
+<p>Harry felt himself warming to this over-mannered, over-dressed,
+over-exercised dandy who was such a simple and
+affectionate creature beneath his immaculate cutaway, and
+rather hoped he might see something of him during his
+stay in London.</p>
+
+<p>"Do you ever ride these days, Tommy?" he asked presently.<span class="pagenum">[237]</span>
+"That is, would you ride with me some day, if I
+can scratch up an animal?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, rather. Every morning, before brekker. Only
+I'll mount you. Lots of bosses, all eating their silly heads
+off. Oh, rot!" he went on, as Harry demurred; "rot,
+Wiggers, of course I shall mount you. No trouble 't all.
+Pleasure. You come to England, I mount you. I go to
+America, you mount me. Turn about, you know."</p>
+
+<p>"I'm afraid not, as we haven't got any saddle horses at
+present," answered Harry. "You can drive with Aunt
+Selina in the victoria, though, if you like," he added, smiling
+at the thought.</p>
+
+<p>"Wot? Wot's that? Delighted, I'm shaw," said
+Tommy, vaguely scenting an invitation. "Oh, I say, Wiggers,
+speaking of aunts, wotever became of that jolly cousin
+of yaws? Carson gell&mdash;oldest&mdash;sister married Ned Twombly&mdash;you
+know." (For Jane had fulfilled her mission in
+life by marrying the heir to a thoroughly satisfactory peerage.)</p>
+
+<p>"She's not my cousin," said Harry, "but she's still living
+in America, keeping house for my aunt&mdash;the one I
+mentioned just now&mdash;and doing lots of other things. Settlement
+work, and such. She and my aunt are thick as
+thieves."</p>
+
+<p>"I say, how rum. Fancy, gell like that&mdash;good looks,
+and all that&mdash;trotting off to do slum work in a foreign
+country. Wot's the matter with London? Lots of slums
+here. Can't und'stand it, 't all. Never could und'stand
+it. Rum."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, no one ever understands Beatrice," said Harry.
+"Her friends have given up trying. Well, Tommy, I
+think I won't go into Truefitt's with you. See you to-morrow
+morning?"</p>
+
+<p>"Righto&mdash;Achilles statue&mdash;seven-thirty sharp."</p>
+
+<p>"Righto," answered Harry, and laughed to think how
+well he said it.</p>
+
+<p>That was the beginning of a long month of gaiety for
+Harry, a month of theaters and operas, of morning rides
+in the Row, of endless chains of introductions, of showering
+invitations, of balls, dinners, parties of all kinds, of
+lazy week-ends in the Surrey hills or beside the Thames, of
+sitting, on one occasion at least, enthroned at Aunt Miriam's
+right hand and gazing down a long table of people<span class="pagenum">[238]</span>
+who were not only all asked there to meet him but had actually
+jumped at the invitation; of tasting, in short, the
+first fruits of success among the most congenial possible
+surroundings.</p>
+
+<p>And as his relish outlasted the season he saw no reason
+for not accepting an invitation to a yachting party over
+Cowes week and another to one of Tommy's ancestral seats
+in Rosshire over the twelfth; the more so as Uncle Giles and
+Aunt Miriam decamped for Marienbad early in August.
+So he became in turn one of the white-flanneled army of
+pleasure-seekers of the south and one of the brown-tweeded
+cohorts of the north. His month in Tommydom ran into
+five, into six, into seven weeks almost before he knew it; it
+threatened shortly to become two months. And then, instantaneously,
+the revulsion seized him, even as it had
+seized him in June at Manresa.</p>
+
+<p>It happened one morning when the whole party were in
+the butts. Harry was ordinarily a tolerable shot, but to-day
+he shot execrably. After he had missed every bird
+in the first drive he cursed softly and broke his shooting-stick;
+after he had missed every bird in the second he
+silently handed his gun to his loader and walked down to
+his host, who had the next butt to his.</p>
+
+<p>"Good-by, Tommy," he said, holding out his hand.
+"I'm going."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, don't do that," said Tommy. "Birds flying rotten
+high to-day."</p>
+
+<p>"It's not that. I'm going home."</p>
+
+<p>"Righto. See you at tea time, then."</p>
+
+<p>"No, you won't see me again. I'm going to catch the
+three-eighteen for Glasgow, if I can make it. Sail from
+Liverpool Saturday."</p>
+
+<p>Tommy's face, like his mind, became a blank, but he
+lived up to the traditions of his race and class. "Well, so
+long, old thing," he said, shaking Harry's hand. "Call
+on me if I can ever be any use. You'll find the motor
+down at the crossroads, and do look alive and get off before
+the next drive, there's a dear, or birds won't fly within a
+mile of the first butt."</p>
+
+<p>Harry reached Liverpool next day and succeeded in
+getting a berth on a steamer sailing the day after. He
+landed in New York late one afternoon and took a night<span class="pagenum">[239]</span>
+train for Bar Harbor, arriving there next morning. He
+telegraphed ahead the hour of his arrival, and James and
+Beatrice met him at the dock. They both seemed glad to
+see him, and he supposed he was glad to see them, but he
+found it strangely difficult to carry on conversation with
+them as they all drove up to the house together.</p>
+
+<p>Aunt Selina kissed Harry affectionately and wholly refrained,
+he could not help noticing, from anything like
+knowing smiles or sly little asides. Aunt Selina could always
+be depended on.</p>
+
+<p>The Gilsons were New Haven people whom Harry had
+always known, though never very well. He rather liked
+Mrs. Gilson, who was a plump, chirpy, festive little person,
+but as he drove over the two miles that lay between her
+house and Aunt Selina's he prayed with all his might that
+both she and her husband might be from home that afternoon.
+Half his prayer was granted, but not the most important
+half. Mr. Gilson was away, but Mrs. Gilson, not
+content with being merely in, came bounding to the door to
+meet him and was whirling him down a broad green lawn
+to the tennis court before he knew which end he was standing
+on.</p>
+
+<p>"I do so want you to meet my cousin Dorothy Fitzgerald,"
+she said. "Such a sweet girl, and it's so hard to
+get hold of men in Bar Harbor&mdash;you've no idea! She
+plays such a good game of tennis. I'm so glad to see
+you've got tennis shoes on&mdash;we were just trying to get up
+a four when you came. And how was your trip&mdash;do tell
+me all about it! Spain? Oh, I've always longed so to go
+to Spain! Young Mrs. Dimmock is here too&mdash;you know
+her? And a Mr. McLean&mdash;I'll introduce you. Portugal,
+too? Oh, how delightful; I do so want to hear all about
+Portugal. We've just got a new tennis net&mdash;I do hope it
+will work properly...."</p>
+
+<p>She buzzed pleasantly along by his side, neither asking
+nor requiring attention. Harry's glance wandered back
+to the house; he caught a glimpse of two little figures bent
+over a table on a verandah; Madge and that confounded
+child, of course.</p>
+
+<p>"Where is your little girl?" he asked.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Lily&mdash;she's having her French lesson, I suppose.
+We find it works better that way, to leave the morning free<span class="pagenum">[240]</span>
+for golf and bathing and use this first stupid part of the
+afternoon for lessons. She's doing so well, too, with dear
+Madge Elliston...."</p>
+
+<p>"I want to see Lily before I go," said Harry firmly; "I
+don't think I have ever made her acquaintance. Madge
+Elliston, too," he added, trying to make this seem like a
+polite afterthought.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes, indeed; I'll tell them both to come down to the
+court after the lesson," replied his hostess.</p>
+
+<p>By this time they were at the tennis court and introductions
+flew fast. Tennis ensued immediately and continued,
+quietly but absorbingly, through set after set till the afternoon
+was well-nigh gone. Presently they stopped playing
+and sat about sipping soft drinks, it seemed, for hours,
+and still Madge did not show up. At length he found himself
+being dragged into a single with Miss Fitzgerald. He
+played violently and nobly for a time, but when at last
+Madge with her small charge joined the group at the side
+of the court it was more than flesh or blood could stand.
+He left Miss Fitzgerald to serve into the backstop and
+walked across the court to where Madge stood.</p>
+
+<p>"How do you do?" he said, holding out his perspiring
+hand.</p>
+
+<p>"How do you do?" she answered, politely shaking it. It
+was the flattest meeting imaginable; nothing could have
+been more unlike the vision he had formed of it.</p>
+
+<p>Lily was introduced and he stood making commonplace
+remarks to both of them until he became aware that he had
+been rude to Miss Fitzgerald. He went off to make his
+apologies to her, and found her willing to receive them and
+also to discontinue their game. But if he hoped that general
+conversation would give him a chance for a private
+word with Madge he was bound to be disappointed. Mrs.
+Gilson had other plans.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Mr. Wimbourne, we're all going off on a picnic
+and we do so want you to join us! You will, won't you?
+Mrs. Dimmock knows such a sweet place on the Somesville
+road, and we're going to start right away. I'm not at all
+sure there's enough to eat, but that doesn't matter on a
+picnic, does it? Especially an evening picnic, when no
+one can see just how little there is! I do think it's so nice
+to get up things just on the spur of the moment like this,
+don't you? So much nicer than planning it all out ahead<span class="pagenum">[241]</span>
+and then having it rain. Let's see, two, four, six&mdash;we
+shall all be able to pile in somehow...."</p>
+
+<p>"But I'm afraid I shall have to change," objected
+Harry. "I don't quite see how I can manage."</p>
+
+<p>"We shall see the moon rise over McFarland," observed
+young Mrs. Dimmock in a rapt manner, as though that
+immediately solved the problem.</p>
+
+<p>Harry was at first determined not to go on any account;
+then he gathered that Madge was to be included in the expedition,
+and straightway became amenable. A picnic, an
+evening picnic, would surely give him the best possible opportunity....</p>
+
+<p>The plan as at last perfected was that Harry should be
+driven home where he would change and pick up James and
+Beatrice, if possible, and with them drive out in the Wimbournes'
+buckboard to the hallowed spot on the Somesville
+road in plenty of time to see the moon rise over McFarland.
+This was substantially what occurred, except that Beatrice
+elected to remain at home with Aunt Selina. James and
+Harry took the buckboard and drove alone to the meeting
+place. They found the others already there and busy preparing
+supper. A fire crackled pleasantly; the smell of
+frying bacon was in the air. Harry, refreshed by a bath
+and the prospect of presently taking Madge off into some
+shadowy thicket, was in higher spirits than he had been
+all day. He bustled and chattered about with Mrs. Gilson
+and Mrs. Dimmock and joined heartily with them in lamenting
+that the clouds were going to cheat them of the
+much-advertised moonrise. He engaged in spirited toasting
+races with Miss Fitzgerald and sardine-opening contests
+with members of the strong-wristed sex. He vied
+with Mrs. Gilson herself in imparting a festive air to the
+occasion.</p>
+
+<p>Then suddenly he realized that Madge was not there.
+He had been vaguely aware of something lacking even
+before he overheard something about "headache" and
+"poor little Lily," from which it became clear to him that
+Madge's professional duties had again dealt him a felling
+blow. He made some excuse about gathering firewood and
+darted off in a bee-line to the place where the horses were
+tethered.</p>
+
+<p>He caught sight of James on the way and dragged him
+out of the others' hearing.<span class="pagenum">[242]</span></p>
+
+<p>"James!" he whispered hoarsely, "you'll have to get
+home as you can. I'm going to take the buckboard&mdash;now&mdash;right
+off! Something very pressing&mdash;tell you about it
+later. Say I've got a stomach ache or something."</p>
+
+<p>He jumped into the buckboard and started off at a fast
+clip. The night air rushing by him fanned his fevered
+senses and before the village was reached he was calm and
+deliberate. He drove straight to the Gilsons' house, tied
+his horse at the hitching-post, rang the front doorbell and
+asked for Miss Elliston.</p>
+
+<p>He allowed her to come all the way down the stairs before
+he said anything. Half curious, half amused she
+watched him as he stood waiting for her.</p>
+
+<p>"Nothing the matter with that kid?" he inquired at
+last.</p>
+
+<p>She shook her head.</p>
+
+<p>"Come with me then."</p>
+
+<p>Without a word he turned and walked off through a
+French window which he held open for her. As she
+passed him she glanced at his set face and gave a slight
+choking sound. He supposed he was rather amusing. No
+matter, though; let her laugh if she wanted. He led her
+across the lawn to the tennis court where they had met
+this afternoon and beyond it, until at last they reached a
+small boathouse with a dock beside it. To this was moored
+a canoe. He had seen that canoe this afternoon and it had
+recurred to him on his drive. He stooped and unfastened
+the painter and then held out his hand.</p>
+
+<p>"Get in there," he commanded.</p>
+
+<p>She hesitated. "It's not safe, really&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Get in," he repeated almost roughly.</p>
+
+<p>She settled herself in the bow and he took his place at
+the other end. With a few vigorous strokes of the paddle
+he sent the canoe skimming out over the dark, mysterious
+water. The night was close and heavy and gave the impression
+of being warm; it was in fact as warm as a Bar
+Harbor night at the end of August can respectably be.
+The sky was thickly overcast, but the moon which had so
+shamelessly failed to keep the evening's engagements shed
+a dim radiance through the clouds, as though generously
+lending them credit for having shut in a little daylight
+after the normal time for its departure. Not a breeze
+stirred; the surface of the water was still, though not with<span class="pagenum">[243]</span>
+the glassy stillness of an inland lake. Low, oily swells
+moved shudderingly about; when they reached the shore
+they broke, not with the splashy cheerfulness of fair
+weather ripples, but gurgling and sighing among the rocks,
+obviously yearning for the days when they would have a
+chance to show what they really could do in the breaking
+business. The whole effect was at once infinitely calm and
+infinitely suggestive.</p>
+
+<p>Neither of the occupants of the canoe spoke. Harry
+paddled firmly along and Madge watched him with a sort
+of fascination. At length her eyes became accustomed to
+the light and she was able to distinguish the grim, unchanging
+expression of his features and his eyes gazing
+neither at her nor away from her but simply through her.
+His face, together with the deathly calm of the night,
+worked a strange influence over her; it became more and
+more acute; she felt she must either scream or die of laughing....</p>
+
+<p>"Well, Harry?"</p>
+
+<p>"Well, Madge?"</p>
+
+<p>His answer seemed less barren as she thought it over;
+there had been just enough emphasis on the last word to
+put the next step up to her. The moment had come. She
+drew a deep breath.</p>
+
+<p>"The answer," she said, "is in the affirmative."</p>
+
+<p>The next thing Madge was aware of was Harry paddling
+with all his might for the shore.</p>
+
+<p>"What are you doing?" she asked.</p>
+
+<p>"Going to get out of this confounded thing," he replied.</p>
+
+<p>When they reached the dock he got out, helped her out
+and tied the canoe with great care. Then he gathered her
+to him and kissed her several times with great firmness and
+precision.</p>
+
+<p>"You really are quite a nice young woman," he remarked;
+"even if you did propose to me."</p>
+
+<p>"Harold Wimbourne! I never!"</p>
+
+<p>"You said, 'Well, Harry.' I should like to know what
+that is if it isn't a proposal."</p>
+
+<p>They turned and started up the steps toward the house.
+Madge seemed to require a good deal of helping up those
+steps. When they reached the top she swung toward him
+with a laugh.</p>
+
+<p>"What is it now?" he asked.<span class="pagenum">[244]</span></p>
+
+<p>"Nothing ... only that it should have happened in a
+canoe. You, of all people!"</p>
+
+<p>They walked slowly across the tennis court and sat down
+in one of the chairs scattered along its western side. Here
+they remained for a long time in conversation typical of
+people in their position, punctuated by long and interesting
+silences.</p>
+
+<p>"Suppose you tell me all about it," suggested Harry.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, now that it's all done with, I suppose I was
+merely trying to be on the safe side, all along. I know, at
+least, that I had rather a miserable time after you left.
+All the spring. Then I came up here and it seemed to
+get worse, somehow. It was early in June, and everything
+was very strange and desolate and cold, and I cried
+through the entire first night, without stopping a moment!"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," said Harry thoughtfully, "I should think you
+might have gathered from that that all was not quite as
+it should be."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes. Well, next morning I decided I couldn't let that
+sort of thing go on. So I took hold of myself and determined
+never to discuss the subject with myself, at all.
+And I really succeeded pretty well, considering. Whenever
+the idea of you occurred to me in spite of myself, I
+immediately went and did something else very hard. I've
+been a perfect angel in the house ever since then, and I
+don't mind saying it was rather brave of me!"</p>
+
+<p>"You really knew then, months ago? Beyond all doubt
+or question?"</p>
+
+<p>"I shouldn't wonder."</p>
+
+<p>"Then why in the world didn't you telegraph me?"</p>
+
+<p>"As if I would!" exclaimed Miss Elliston with an indignant
+sniff.</p>
+
+<p>"That was the arrangement, you know."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, good gracious, hear the man! What a coarse, masculine
+mind you have, my ownest! You call yourself an
+interpreter of human character, but what do you really
+know of the maiden of bashful twenty-six? Nothing!"</p>
+
+<p>"Well, well, my dear," said Harry easily, "have it your
+own way. I daresay it all turned out much better so. I
+was able to do up the Spanish churches thoroughly, and I
+had a lovely time in England. Just fancy, of all the
+hundreds of people I met there I can't think of a single<span class="pagenum">[245]</span>
+one, from beginning to end, who said I had a coarse masculine
+mind."</p>
+
+<p>"Brute," murmured Miss Elliston, apparently to
+Harry's back collar button.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>"I suppose," she observed, jumping up a little later,
+"that you were really right in the beginning. That first
+evening, you know."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, I'm quite sure of it. How?"</p>
+
+<p>"When you said I couldn't talk that way to you without
+being in love with you. I expect I really was, though the
+time hadn't come for admitting it, even to myself. In
+fact, I was so passionately in love with you that I couldn't
+bear to talk about it or even think about it, for fear of
+some mistake. If I kept it all to myself, you see, no harm
+could ever have been done."</p>
+
+<p>"How sane," murmured Harry. "How incontrovertibly
+logical."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes. You see," explained Miss Elliston primly, "no
+girl&mdash;no really nice girl, that is, can ever bring herself
+to face the question of whether she is in love with a man
+until he has declared himself."</p>
+
+<p>"Consequently, it's every girl's&mdash;every nice girl's&mdash;business
+to bring him to the point as soon as possible.
+Any one could see that."</p>
+
+<p>"And for that very reason she must keep him off the
+business just as long as she can. When you realize that,
+you see exactly why I acted as I did that night and why I
+worked like a Trojan to keep you from proposing. I
+failed, of course, at last&mdash;I hadn't had much experience.
+I've improved since...." She wriggled uncomfortably.
+"You acted rather beautifully that night, I will say for
+you. You made it almost easy."</p>
+
+<p>"Hm. You seemed perfectly sure that night, though,
+that you were very far from being in love with me. You
+even offered to marry me, as I remember it, as an act of
+pure friendship. I don't see quite why you couldn't respectably
+admit that you were in love with me then, since
+in spite of your best efforts I had broken through to the
+point. How about that?"</p>
+
+<p>"It was all too sudden, silly. I couldn't bring myself
+round to that point of view in a minute. I had to have
+time. Oh, my dear young man," she continued, resuming<span class="pagenum">[246]</span>
+her primmest manner, "how little, how singularly little
+do you know of that beautiful mystery, a woman's heart."</p>
+
+<p>"A woman's what?"</p>
+
+<p>"Heart."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes, to be sure. As I understand it, the only mystery
+is whether it exists or not."</p>
+
+<p>"How can you say that?" cried Madge with sudden
+passion, grasping at him almost roughly.</p>
+
+<p>"I didn't," replied Harry.</p>
+
+<p>"No, dear, excuse me, of course you didn't. Only I
+have to make a fool of myself every now and then...."</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>"But, oh, my dearest," she whispered presently with
+another change of mood, "if you knew what a time I've
+been through, really, since you've been gone! If you
+knew how I've lain awake at night fearing that it
+wouldn't turn out all right, that something would happen,
+that I'd lose you after all! I've scanned the lists of arrivals
+and departures in the papers; I've listened till I
+thought my ears would crack when other people talked
+about you. The very sound of your name was enough to
+make me weep with delight, like that frump of a girl in
+the poem, when you gave her a smile.... You see, I
+haven't been brave <i>all</i> the time. There were moments.... Do
+you know that backbone feeling?"</p>
+
+<p>"I think so," said Harry. "You mean the one that
+starts very suddenly at the back of your neck and shoots
+all the way down?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, and at the same time you feel as if your stomach
+and lungs had changed places, though that's not so important.
+I don't see why people talk about loving with
+their hearts; the real feeling is always in the spine. Well,
+no amount of bravery could keep that from taking me by
+surprise sometimes, and even when I was brave it would often
+leave me with a suspicion that I had been very silly and
+weak to trust to luck to bring everything to a happy ending.
+But I never could bring myself to send word to you.
+I was determined to give you every chance of changing your
+mind; I knew you would come back at last, if you cared
+enough.... And if anything had happened, or if you had
+decided not to come back&mdash;well, I always had something
+to fall back on. The memory of that one evening, and the
+thought that I had been given the chance of loving you<span class="pagenum">[247]</span>
+and had lived up to my love to the best of my ability...."</p>
+
+<p>"That doesn't seem very much now, does it?" suggested
+Harry.</p>
+
+<p>"No. Oh, to think how it's come out&mdash;beyond all my
+wildest dreams!... I never thought it would be quite
+as nice as this, did you?"</p>
+
+<p>"Never. The truth has really done itself proud, for
+once."</p>
+
+<p>"The truth&mdash;fancy, this is the truth! This!... Oh,
+nonsense, it can't be! We aren't <i>really</i> here, you know.
+This is simply an unusually vivid subconscious affair&mdash;you
+know&mdash;the kind that generally follows one of the backbone
+attacks. It will pass off presently. It will, you
+know, even if it is what we call reality.... For the life
+of me, I don't really know whether it is or not!&mdash;Harry,
+did it ever occur to you that people are always marveling
+that dreams are so like life without ever considering the
+converse&mdash;that life is really very much like a dream?"</p>
+
+<p>"A few have&mdash;a very few. A great play has been written
+round that very thing&mdash;<i>La Vida Es Sue&ntilde;o</i>&mdash;life is a
+dream. We'll read it together sometime.&mdash;Heavens, I
+never realized what it really meant till now! Do you
+know what this seems like to me? It seems like the kind
+of scene I have always wanted to write but never quite
+dared&mdash;simply letting myself go, without bothering about
+action or probability or motivation but just laying it on
+with a trowel, as thick as I could. All that, transmuted
+into terms of reality&mdash;or what we call reality! Heavens,
+it makes me dizzy!"</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>"See here, Harold Wimbourne," said Madge, suddenly
+jumping up again; "it seems to me you've been talking a
+great deal about love and very little about marriage.
+What I want to know is, when are you going to marry
+me?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, the tiresome woman! Well, when should you
+say?"</p>
+
+<p>"To-morrow morning, preferably. If that won't do,
+about next Tuesday. No, of course I've got heaps of
+things to do first. How about the middle of October?"</p>
+
+<p>"I was just thinking," said Harry seriously. "You
+see, my dear, I'm at present working on a play. Technically
+speaking. Only, owing to the vaporous scruples<span class="pagenum">[248]</span>
+of a certain young person I haven't been able to put in
+any work on it for several months. Bachmann has been
+very decent. He has practically promised to put it on in
+January, if it's any good at all. That means having it
+ready before Christmas, and I shall have to work like the
+very devil to do that. I work so confoundedly slowly, you
+see. Then there'll be all the bother of rehearsals, lasting
+up to the first night, which I suppose would be about the
+end of January. I should like to have up till then clear,
+but I should think by about the middle of February&mdash;say
+the fifteenth...."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, indeed," replied Miss Elliston, "you should say
+about the fifteenth, should you? I'm sorry, very sorry
+indeed, but as it happens I have another engagement for
+the fifteenth&mdash;several of them. Possibly I could arrange
+something for next June, though, or a year from next
+January; possibly not. Better let the matter drop, perhaps;
+sorry to have disturbed&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"When will you marry me?" interrupted Harry, doing
+something that entirely destroyed the dignity of
+Miss Elliston's pose. "Next week&mdash;to-morrow&mdash;to-night?
+I daresay we could wake up a parson...."</p>
+
+<p>"Sorry, dear, but I've arranged to be married on the
+fifteenth of February, and no other date will do. You're
+hurting my left shoulder-blade cruelly, but I suppose it's
+all right. That's better.... Oh, Harry, I do want you
+to work like the very devil on this play! Don't think
+about marriage, or me, or anything that will hinder you.
+Because, dearest, I have a feeling that it's going to be
+rather a good one. A perfect rip-snorter, to descend to
+the vulgar parlance."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," said Harry, "I have a feeling that it is, too."</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>The sound of carriage wheels crunching along the gravel
+drive floated down and brought them back with a start to
+the consideration of actualities. They both sat silently
+wondering for a moment.</p>
+
+<p>"What about Mrs. Gilson?" suggested Madge.</p>
+
+<p>"Might as well," replied Harry.</p>
+
+<p>"All right. You'll have to do it, though."</p>
+
+<p>"Very well, then. Come along."</p>
+
+<p>They rose and stood for a moment among the scattered
+chairs, both thinking of their absurd meeting on that spot<span class="pagenum">[249]</span>
+this very afternoon, and then turned and started slowly
+up toward the house. When they had nearly reached the
+verandah steps Harry stopped and turned toward Madge.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, the whole world is changed for us two, isn't it?"</p>
+
+<p>"It is."</p>
+
+<p>"Nothing will ever be quite the same again, but always
+better, somehow. Even indifferent things. And nothing
+can ever spoil this one evening?"</p>
+
+<p>"Nothing?"</p>
+
+<p>"Not all the powers of heaven or earth or hell? We
+have a sort of blanket insurance against the whole universe?"</p>
+
+<p>"Exactly," said Madge. "We're future-proof."</p>
+
+<p>"That's it, future-proof. I'll wait here on the porch.
+No Fitzgerald, mind."</p>
+
+<p>He did not have to wait long. Madge found Mrs. Gilson
+in the hall, as it happened, with Miss Fitzgerald receding
+bedward up the stairs and far too tired to pay any
+attention to Madge's gentle "Mr. Wimbourne is here and
+would like to see you, Mrs. Gilson." So the good lady
+was led out into the dark porch and as she stood blinking
+in the shaft of light falling out through the doorway
+Harry appeared in the blackness and began speaking.</p>
+
+<p>"I do hope you'll excuse my being so rude and leaving
+your party, Mrs. Gilson. There was a real reason for it.
+You see Madge and I"&mdash;taking her hand&mdash;"have come to
+an understanding. We're engaged."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Gilson stood blinking harder than ever for one
+bewildered moment, and then the floodgates of speech were
+opened.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, my <i>dear</i>, how <i>wonderful</i>! Madge, my dearest
+Madge, let me kiss you! Whoever could have <i>dreamed</i>&mdash;Harry&mdash;you
+don't mind my calling you Harry, do you?&mdash;you
+must let me kiss you too! It's all so wonderful,
+and so unexpected, and I can't help thinking that if your
+dear mother&mdash;oh, Madge, you double-dyed creature, how
+long has this been going on and I never knew a thing?
+We all thought&mdash;your brother was so tactful and gave us
+to understand that you had acute indigestion or something,
+left over from the voyage, and we all quite understood,
+though I did think there might be something afoot
+when I saw your buckboard at the door. And I haven't
+heard a thing about Spain and Portugal, not a <i>thing</i>,<span class="pagenum">[250]</span>
+though goodness knows there's no time to think of that
+now and you must let me give a dinner for you both at
+the earliest possible moment. When is it to be announced?
+I do hope before Labor Day because there's never a man
+to be had on the island after that...."</p>
+
+<p>And so on. At last Harry made the lateness of the hour
+an excuse for breaking away and went round to the front
+door to get his buckboard. Madge had to go with him,
+though she had no particular interest in the buckboard.</p>
+
+<p>"She's a good woman," said Harry as he fumbled with
+the halter. "Though&mdash;whoa there, you silly beast; you're
+liable to choke to death if you do that."</p>
+
+<p>"The rein's caught over the shaft," explained Madge.
+"It makes her uncomfortable. Though what, dear?"</p>
+
+<p>"That's the trace, and it's him, anyway. Oh, nothing.
+Only I never was so awfully keen on slobbering."</p>
+
+<p>"She's a dear, really. If you knew what an angel she's
+been to me all summer! What makes her look round in
+that wild-eyed way?"</p>
+
+<p>From Harry's answer, "He's tired, that's all," we may
+assume that this question referred to the horse, though her
+next remark went on without intermission: "I don't
+want you to go away to-night thinking&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"I like slobbering," asserted Harry. "Always did.... Now
+if that's all, dear, perhaps I'd better make
+tracks." The last ceremonies of parting had been performed
+and he was in the buckboard.</p>
+
+<p>"Just a moment, while I kiss your horse's nose. It
+doesn't do to neglect these little formalities.... I'm glad
+you like slobbering, dear, because your horse has done it
+all over my shoulder ... no, don't get out. It had to
+go in the wash anyway. He's a sweet horse; what is his
+name?"</p>
+
+<p>"Dick, I think. Oh, no&mdash;Kruger. Yes, he's that old."</p>
+
+<p>"Because, dear," went on Madge, with her hand on the
+front wheel; "there's one thing one mustn't forget.
+There was&mdash;Mr. Gilson, you know."</p>
+
+<p>"Good Lord," said Harry, struck by the thought.</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, and what's more, there still is!"</p>
+
+<p>"A true model for us?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes. After all, we have no monopoly, you know."</p>
+
+<p>"Good Lord, think of it! Millions of others!"<span class="pagenum">[251]</span></p>
+
+<p>"It gives one a certain faith in the human race, doesn't
+it?"</p>
+
+<p>"For Heaven's sake, Madge, don't be ultimate any
+more to-night! You make me dizzy&mdash;how do you suppose
+I'm going to drive between those white stones? Do you
+want me to be in love with the whole world?" And
+Madge's reply "Yes, dear, just that," was drowned in the
+clatter of his wheels.</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[252]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_VII2">CHAPTER VII</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">A VERY SHORT CHAPTER, IN ONE SENSE</p>
+
+<p>The next day it rained. Harry shut himself up in his
+room and wrote violently all the morning, less in the
+hope of accomplishing valuable work than in the desire to
+keep his mind off the one absorbing topic. It proved to be
+of little use. At lunch time he threw all that he had written
+into the fireplace and resolved to tell the immediate
+members of his family.</p>
+
+<p>It worked out very well. After lunch he arranged with
+James to take a walk in the rain. Beatrice, it appeared,
+would be occupied at a bridge party all the afternoon.
+There remained Aunt Selina&mdash;the easiest, by all odds.
+Just before starting out with James he walked into the
+living room, rustling in his raincoat, and found her alone
+by the fire.</p>
+
+<p>"It's all right, Aunt Selina." He felt himself grinning
+like a monkey, but couldn't seem to stop himself.</p>
+
+<p>But Aunt Selina herself could do nothing but laugh.
+Presently she rose from her seat and embraced her
+nephew.</p>
+
+<p>"That top button has come off," she said. "I'm afraid
+you'll get your neck wet." Then they looked at each
+other and laughed again. There was really nothing more
+to be said.</p>
+
+<p>James' feet sounded on the stairs above.</p>
+
+<p>"I shan't be home for dinner," said Harry, starting
+toward the door. "And you might tell Beatrice," he
+added.</p>
+
+<p>He walked with James for three hours or more. It may
+have been the calming influence of exercise or it may have
+been the comforting effect that James' society generally
+had on him; at any rate, when the time came he found himself
+able to say what he had to without any of the embarrassment
+he had expected.</p>
+
+<p>He chose the moment when they had all but reached the
+crossroad that would take him off to the Gilsons'.<span class="pagenum">[253]</span></p>
+
+<p>"James," he said, breaking a long silence, "I've got
+something rather important to tell you. I'm engaged."</p>
+
+<p>"To whom?"</p>
+
+<p>"Madge Elliston."</p>
+
+<p>"When?"</p>
+
+<p>"Last night. That was it." They now stood facing
+each other, at the crossroads. James did not speak for a
+moment, and Harry scanned his face through the dusk.
+Its expression was one of bewilderment, Harry thought.
+Strange, that James should be more embarrassed than he!
+But that was the way it went.</p>
+
+<p>"Harry! See here, Harry&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, James!"</p>
+
+<p>"I ..." He stopped and then slowly raised his hand.
+"I congratulate you."</p>
+
+<p>"Thanks, awfully. It does sort of take one's breath
+away, doesn't it?... I'm going there now. Why don't
+you come too? No? Well, I may be rather late, so leave
+the door on the latch. I'll walk home." And he walked
+off down the crossroad.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>James knew, perfectly well, the moment Harry said he
+had something to tell him. His subsequent questions were
+prompted more by a desire to make the situation between
+them legally clear, as it were, than by real need of information.
+His first dominant impulse was to explain the
+situation to Harry and show him, frankly and convincingly,
+the utter impossibility of his engagement. The
+very words formed themselves in his mind:&mdash;"See here,
+Harry, you can't possibly marry Madge Elliston, because
+I'm in love with her myself&mdash;have been for years, before
+you ever thought of her!" He drew a long breath and
+actually started in on his speech. But the words would
+not come. As he looked at his brother standing happy and
+ignorant before him he realized in an instant that, come
+what might, he would never be able to utter those words.</p>
+
+<p>There was nothing left to do but mumble his congratulations.
+As he lifted his hand to that of his brother the
+thought occurred to him that he might easily raise it
+higher and put Harry out of his way, once and for all.
+He knew that he could, with his bare hands, do him to
+death on the spot; knee on chest, fingers on throat&mdash;he
+knew the place. That was perhaps preferable to the<span class="pagenum">[254]</span>
+other; kinder, certainly, but equally impossible. It was
+not even a temptation.</p>
+
+<p>As he walked off he reflected that he had just come
+through one of the great crises of his whole life, and yet
+how commonplace, how utterly flat had been its outward
+guise! He had always vaguely wondered how people
+acted at such times; now the chance had come to him and
+he had shown less feeling than he would have at missing
+a trolley car. In him, at this present moment, were surging
+some of the most terrific passions that ever swayed
+human beings&mdash;love, jealousy, disappointment, hate of the
+order of things&mdash;and he could not find a physical vent for
+one of them! Not only that, but he never would be able
+to; he saw that clearly enough; people of his time and class
+and type never could. This was what civilization had
+brought men to! What was the use? What was the
+meaning of all civilization, all progress, all human development?
+Here he was, as perfect a physical specimen
+as his age produced, unable to do more than grit his teeth
+in the face of the most intolerable emotions known to
+mankind, under pain of suffering a debasement even more
+intolerable. Some people did give way to their passions,
+but that was only because they were less able to think
+clearly than he. They always regretted it in the end;
+they always suffered more that way; his knowledge of the
+world had taught him nothing if it had not taught him
+that.</p>
+
+<p>Just in order to prove to himself how ineffectual physical
+expression of his mental state was he tore a rail off
+the top of a nearby fence&mdash;he had wandered far out into
+the country again&mdash;and, raising it above his shoulders,
+brought it down with all his strength upon a rock. The
+rail happened to be a strong one and did not break, and the
+force of the blow made his hands smart. He took a certain
+fierce joy in the pain and repeated the blow two or
+three times, but long before his body tired with the exertion
+his soul sickened of the business. He threw the rail
+lightly over the fence and wandered hopelessly on into
+the hills.</p>
+
+<p>After the first shock of surprise and disappointment had
+passed his feelings boiled down to a slow scorching hate of
+destiny. The thought of God occurred to him, among
+other things, and he laughed. Why did people ever take<span class="pagenum">[255]</span>
+it into their heads to deny the existence of God? Of
+course there was a God; nothing but a divine will could
+possibly have arranged that he should be thwarted in an
+honest love&mdash;not merely once, mind you, but twice&mdash;by
+the one person in the world whom he could not oppose.
+Such things were beyond the realm of chance or reason.
+During one part of his wanderings he laughed aloud, several
+separate times, at the monumental humor of it all.
+A man such as he was, in the full pride of his youth and
+strength, strong in body, strong in mind, strong in will
+and character, twitched hither and yon by the lightest
+whimsical breath of an all-powerful divinity&mdash;it was
+supremely funny, in its coarse, horrible way.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes, it's a good joke, God," he said aloud once
+or twice; "it's a damned good joke."</p>
+
+<p>It is significant that he thought very little of Madge
+now. He experienced none of the sudden sharp twinges
+of memory that he had known on a former occasion. At
+that time, as he now realized, only one side of his nature
+had been stirred, and that a rather silly, unimportant side.
+Now his whole being, or at least all that was best and
+strongest in his being, was affected. He had loved Beatrice
+only with his eyes and his imagination. He loved Madge
+with the full strength of his heart and soul and mind.
+And heart, soul and mind being cheated of their right,
+united in an alliance of hate and revenge against the fate
+that had cheated them.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>He did not return to the house for dinner, and Aunt
+Selina supposed he had gone with Harry to the Gilsons'.
+He walked most of the night and when at last he reached
+home he found the door locked. Harry, of course, not
+finding him downstairs, had thought he had gone to bed
+and had locked everything. So he lay down in a cot hammock
+to await the coming of a hopeless day.</p>
+
+<p>He got some sleep; he did not see that dawn, after all.
+Awakened shortly after seven by a housemaid opening
+doors and windows, he slipped unobserved up to his room,
+undressed and took a cold bath. He supposed nothing
+would ever keep him from taking a cold bath before breakfast;
+nothing, that is, except lack of cold water. Strange,
+that cold water could effect what love, jealousy and company
+could not. He glanced out of the window. The<span class="pagenum">[256]</span>
+weather had changed during the night and the day was
+clear and windy and snapping, a true forerunner of autumn.
+The sun and wind between them were whipping
+the sea into all sorts of shades of blue and purple, rimming
+it with a line of white along the blue coast of Maine over
+to the left. There was cold water enough for any one,
+enough to drown all the wretched souls ever born into a
+world of pain. How strange it was to think of how many
+unwilling souls that sea drowned every year, and yet had
+not taken him, who was so eminently willing! He could
+not deliberately seek death for himself, but he would be
+delighted to die by accident. No such luck, though; the
+fate, God, destiny, whatever you chose to call it, that had
+brought him twice into the same corner of terrestrial hell
+would see to that....</p>
+
+<p>As he was rubbing himself dry his eye fell on his reflection
+in a full-length mirror and almost involuntarily
+stopped there. He still had the pure Greek build of his
+college days, he noticed; the legs, the loins, the chest, the
+arms, the shoulders all showed the perfect combination of
+strength and freedom. He had not even the faults of
+over-development; his neck was not thick like a prize-fighter's
+nor did his calves bulge like those of many great
+athletes. And his head matched the rest of him, within
+and without. And all this perfection was brought to
+naught by the vagrant whim of a cynical power! A new
+wave of hate and rebellion, stronger than any he had yet
+felt, swept over him. Moved by a sudden impulse he
+threw aside his towel and advanced a step or two toward
+the mirror, raising his hands after the manner of a libation-pourer
+of old.</p>
+
+<p>"I swear to you," he muttered between clenched teeth
+to the reflection that faced him; "I swear to you that
+nothing in me shall ever rest until I have got even with
+the Thing, god, devil or blind chance, that has brought
+me to this pass. It may come early or it may come late,
+but somehow, some day! I swear it."</p>
+
+<p>There was something eminently satisfying in the juxtaposition
+of his nakedness of body to the stark intensity of
+his passion and the elemental fervor of his agnosticism.
+For James was now a thorough agnostic; turned into one
+overnight from a "good" Episcopalian&mdash;he had been confirmed
+way back in his school days&mdash;he realized his position<span class="pagenum">[257]</span>
+and fairly reveled in the hopelessness and magnificence
+and bravery of it all. For it takes considerable
+bravery to become an agnostic, especially when you have
+a simple religious nature. James was in a state where
+the thought of being eternally damned gave him nothing
+but a savage joy. It was all very wicked, of course, but
+strong natures have a way of turning wicked when it becomes
+impossible for them to be good. There are some
+things that not even a <i>sch&ouml;ne Seele</i> can put up with.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Having thus taken pact with himself he experienced a
+sense of relief and became almost cheerful. He had breakfast
+alone with Harry&mdash;both ladies customarily preferring
+to take that intimate meal in their own rooms&mdash;and talked
+with him quite normally about various matters, chiefly
+golf. He became almost garrulous in explaining his
+theories concerning the proper use of the niblick. Harry
+was going to play golf that morning with Madge. He
+looked extremely fresh and attractive in his suit of tweed
+knickers; James did not blame Madge in the least for falling
+in love with his brother rather than him. Nor was he
+in the least inclined to find fault with Harry for falling
+in love with Madge. Only ... but what was the use in
+going over all that again?</p>
+
+<p>He walked briskly down to the town after breakfast and
+engaged a berth on the New York express for that night.
+Living in immediate propinquity to the happy lovers
+would of course be intolerable. Then he walked back to
+the house. It was rather a long walk; the house stood on
+a height at some distance back of the town. A feeling of
+lassitude overcame him before he reached home; the exertions
+of last night were beginning to tell on him. Oh, the
+horror of last night! The memory of it was almost more
+oppressive than the dreadful thing itself.</p>
+
+<p>He supposed he ought to go up and begin to pack, but he
+did not feel like it. Instead he wandered out on the verandah
+to lie in the sun and watch the sea for a while.
+He came at last to a hexagonal tower-like extension of the
+verandah built over an abutment of rock falling sharply
+away on all sides except that toward the house. There
+was a drop of perhaps twenty-five feet from the broad
+railing of this extension to the ground below. Harry, who
+knew the house from his early days, had dubbed its peak-roofed<span class="pagenum">[258]</span>
+excrescence the chamber up a tower to the east that
+Elaine guarded the sacred shield of Lancelot in; it was
+sometimes more briefly referred to as Elaine. It was a
+pleasant place to sit, but very windy on a day like this,
+and James was rather surprised to discover Beatrice
+sitting in one angle of the railing gazing silently out over
+the sea.</p>
+
+<p>"Hullo," he said, listlessly sinking into a chair.
+"You've heard, I suppose?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, I've heard."</p>
+
+<p>"Fine, isn't it?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, splendid."</p>
+
+<p>"I'm going to New York to-night," said James after
+a moment.</p>
+
+<p>"I'm going home next month," said Beatrice.</p>
+
+<p>Neither spoke for a while and then it began to dawn on
+them both that those two carelessly spoken sentences had
+much more to them than their face-value. They both had
+the uneasy sensation of being forced into a "situation."</p>
+
+<p>"What for?" asked James at last.</p>
+
+<p>"For good."</p>
+
+<p>"But why?" he persisted, knowing perfectly well why,
+at bottom.</p>
+
+<p>"You ought not to have to ask that," she replied.
+"You, of all people.&mdash;Why are you going away to-night?"
+she added, turning toward him with sudden passion.</p>
+
+<p>James' first impulse was to make a sharp reply, his
+second was to get up and walk away, and then his glance
+fell upon her face.... Oh, was there no end to mortal
+misery?</p>
+
+<p>"I'm sorry, Beatrice," he said wretchedly; "I'm sorry&mdash;I
+didn't mean to hurt you."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, it's all right," she answered in his own tone of
+voice. Then for a long time neither of them moved nor
+spoke.</p>
+
+<p>The situation was on them now in full force, and it was
+a sufficiently terrific one, for actual life; one which under
+other circumstances they would both have made every effort
+to break up. Yet neither of them thought of
+struggling against it now&mdash;there was so much else to struggle
+against. Great misfortunes inoculate people to small
+embarrassments; no one in the throes of angina pectoris
+has much time to bother about a cold in the head. Then,<span class="pagenum">[259]</span>
+as their silence wore on, they began to be conscious of a
+certain sense of companionship.</p>
+
+<p>"I suppose it's pretty bad?" ventured James at last,
+on a note of tentative understanding.</p>
+
+<p>"I suppose it is...."</p>
+
+<p>An idea occurred to James. "At least you're better
+off than I am, though. You can try to do something about
+it. You see how my hands are tied. You can fight
+against it, if you want. That's something."</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice gazed immovably out over the sea. "You can't
+fight against destiny," she said at last.</p>
+
+<p>James pricked up his ears; his whole being became suddenly
+alert. Couldn't one? Had he not dedicated his
+whole future to that very thing? "I'm not so sure of
+that," he answered slowly. "Have you ever tried?"</p>
+
+<p>"I've tried for seven years."</p>
+
+<p>Well, that was something. He became curious; seven
+years' experience in the art of destiny-fighting would
+surely contain knowledge that would be valuable to a
+novice like himself. And in the manner of getting this
+he became almost diabolically clever. Guessing that all
+direct inquiries in the matter would merely flatten themselves
+against the stone wall of her reticence he determined
+to approach her through the avenue of her pride.</p>
+
+<p>"I find it hard to believe that," he remarked; "I
+haven't seen the slightest indication of such a thing."</p>
+
+<p>"No, of course not. How should you? I haven't advertised
+it, like a prize fight!"</p>
+
+<p>"I don't mean that; I mean that I haven't ever discovered
+anything in your character to make me believe
+you were&mdash;that sort of person. That sort of thing takes
+more than strength of character and intellect; it takes passion,
+capacity for feeling. And I shouldn't have said
+there was much of that in you. You have always seemed
+to me&mdash;well, rather aloof from such things. Cold, almost&mdash;I
+don't mean in the sense of being ill-natured, but...."</p>
+
+<p>James was perfectly right; it is a curious trait of human
+character, that sensitiveness on the point of capacity for
+feeling. People who will sincerely disclaim any pretensions
+to strength of mind, body or character will flare into
+indignant protest when their strength of heart is assailed.
+It was so with Beatrice now.</p>
+
+<p>"Cold?" she interrupted with a slight laugh. "Me<span class="pagenum">[260]</span>&mdash;cold?...
+Yes, I suppose I might seem so. I daresay I
+appear to be a perfect human icicle...." She laughed
+again, and then turned directly toward James. "See here,
+James, it's more than likely that we shall never see each
+other again after to-day, isn't it?"</p>
+
+<p>"I suppose not, if you intend to go&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"The first moment I can. Consequently it doesn't matter
+particularly what I say to you now or what you think
+of me afterward. I should just like to give you an idea
+of what these years have been to me. It may amuse you
+to know that the pursuit of your brother has been the one
+guiding passion of my life since I was eighteen. I was in
+love with him before he left England and I've wanted him
+from that time on&mdash;wanted him with all the strength of
+my soul and body! Wanted him every living moment of
+the day and night!... Can you conceive of what that
+means for a woman? A woman, who can't speak, can't
+act, can't make the slightest advance, can't give the least
+glimmering of her feeling?&mdash;not only because the world
+doesn't approve but because her game's all up if the man
+gets a suspicion that she's after him.... I suppose I knew
+it was hopeless from the start, though I couldn't bring
+myself to admit it. At any rate, as soon as the chance
+came I made up my mind to come over here and just sit
+around in his way and wait&mdash;the only thing a woman can
+do under the circumstances...."</p>
+
+<p>"I never&mdash;I didn't realize quite all that," stammered
+James. "Though I knew&mdash;I guessed about the other.... You
+mean you deliberately came to America&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"With that sole purpose."</p>
+
+<p>"And you&mdash;you...." He fairly gasped.</p>
+
+<p>"I wormed my way into a place in your family with
+that one end in view, if that's what you mean. And I've
+remained here with that one end in view ever since."</p>
+
+<p>"And all your work&mdash;the League&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"I had to do something, in the meanwhile&mdash;No, that's
+not true either; that was another means to the same end.
+Intended to be." She smiled with the same quiet intensity
+of bitterness that had struck James before.</p>
+
+<p>"But what about you and Aunt Selina? I always
+thought&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>The smile faded. "Aunt Selina might lie dead at my
+feet, for all I should care," she answered with another<span class="pagenum">[261]</span>
+sudden burst of passion. "Oh, no, not quite that. I suppose
+I like her as well as I can <i>like</i> any one. But that's
+the way it is, comparatively."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes. I know that feeling," said James meditatively.</p>
+
+<p>"So you see how it is with me. I'm glad, in a way, that
+it's all up now. Any end&mdash;even the worst&mdash;is better than
+waiting&mdash;that hopeless, desperate waiting. Yet I never
+could bring myself to give up till I heard&mdash;what I heard
+yesterday. I've expected it, really, for some time; I've
+watched, I've seen. Oh, that horrible watching&mdash;waiting&mdash;listening!
+That's all over, at least...."</p>
+
+<p>She had sunk into a chair near the edge of the verandah
+and sat with her elbows on the broad rail, gazing with
+sightless eyes over the variegated expanse of the sea. The
+midday sun fell full upon her unprotected face and even
+James at that moment could not help thinking how few
+complexions could bear that fierce light as hers did. She
+was, indeed, perhaps more beautiful at that moment than
+he had ever seen her before. Her expression of quiet
+hopeless grief was admirably suited to the high-bred cast
+of her features; she would have made a beautiful model
+for a Zenobia or a classisized type of <i>piet&agrave;</i>. Beauty is
+never more willing to come to us than when we want it
+least.</p>
+
+<p>It had its effect on James, though he did not realize it.
+He came over and sat down on the rail, where he could look
+directly down at her.</p>
+
+<p>"Beatrice," he said, "I don't mind saying I think it
+was rather magnificent of you."</p>
+
+<p>She looked up at him a moment and then out to sea
+again. "Well, I must say I don't. I'm not proud of it.
+If I had been man enough to go my own way and not let
+it interfere with my life in the very least, that might have
+been magnificent. But this.... It was simply weak. I
+always knew there was no hope, you know."</p>
+
+<p>"No, that's not the way to look at it. You devoted your
+whole life to that single purpose.... After all, you did
+as much as it was possible to do, you know. You went
+about it in the very best way&mdash;you were right when you
+said the worst thing you could do was to let him see."</p>
+
+<p>"I'm not so sure. No, I don't know about that. Sometimes
+I think that if I had been brave enough simply to
+go to him and say, 'I love you; here I am, take me; I'll<span class="pagenum">[262]</span>
+devote my life to making a good wife for you,' it would
+have been much better. But I wasn't brave enough for
+that."</p>
+
+<p>"No," insisted James; "that wasn't why you didn't do
+it. You knew Harry. It might have worked with some
+men, but not with him. Can't you see him screwing himself
+to be polite and saying, 'Thank you very much, Beatrice,
+but I don't think I could make you a good enough
+husband, so I'm afraid it won't do'?... No, you picked
+out the best way to get at him and made that your one purpose
+in life, and I admire you for it. It wasn't your fault
+it didn't succeed; it was just&mdash;just the damned, relentless
+way of things...."</p>
+
+<p>"What are you going to do now?" he asked after a
+pause. "After you get home, I mean?"</p>
+
+<p>"I don't know. Work, I suppose, at something."</p>
+
+<p>"What&mdash;slums?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, I suppose so.&mdash;No, I'd rather do something harder,
+like stenography&mdash;something with a lot of dull, grinding
+routine. That's the best way."</p>
+
+<p>"A stenographer!"</p>
+
+<p>"Or a matron in a home.&mdash;Why not? I must do
+something. I won't live with Mama, that's flat."</p>
+
+<p>"You think you must go home, do you?"</p>
+
+<p>"You wouldn't expect me to stay here and&mdash;?"</p>
+
+<p>"No, but couldn't you find something to do here as well
+as there?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, but why? I suppose I want to go home, things
+being as they are. If I've got to live somewhere, I'd
+rather live among my own people. I didn't come here
+because I liked America best...."</p>
+
+<p>"But are you sure you don't like America best now?
+You can't have lived here all these years without letting
+the place have its effect on you, however little you may
+have thought about it. Why, your very speech shows it!
+And what about your friends&mdash;haven't you got as many
+on this side as the other? You've practically admitted
+it.... And do you realize what construction is sure to
+be put on your leaving just now...?"</p>
+
+<p>"What are you driving at?" She looked quickly up at
+him, curious in spite of herself to discover the trend of
+his arguments, in themselves scarcely worth answering.
+He did not reply for a moment, but stared gravely back<span class="pagenum">[263]</span>
+at her, and when he spoke again it was from a different
+angle.</p>
+
+<p>"Beatrice, why have you been telling me all these
+things...?"</p>
+
+<p>He knew what he was going to do now, what he was
+striving toward with the whole strength of his newly-forged
+determination. And if at the back of his brain
+there struggled a crowd of lost images&mdash;ghosts of ideals
+which at this time yesterday had been the unquestioned rulers
+of his life&mdash;stretching out their tenuous arms to him,
+giving their last faint calls for help before taking their
+last backward plunge into oblivion, he only went on the
+faster so as to drown their voices in his own.</p>
+
+<p>"Beatrice, why did you think of confiding in me? Why
+did you pick out this particular time? You never have
+before; you're not the sort of person that makes confidences.
+It wasn't because you were going away; that was
+no real reason at all.... Beatrice, don't you see? Don't
+you see the bond that lies between us two? Don't you
+see what's going to happen to us both?"</p>
+
+<p>"No&mdash;I don't know what you're talking about. James,
+don't be absurd!" She rose to her feet as if to break
+away, but she stood looking at his face, fascinated and possibly
+a little frightened by the onward rush of his words.
+James rose too and stood over her.</p>
+
+<p>"Beatrice, we've both had a damned dirty trick played
+on us, the same trick at the same time. Are you going to
+take it lying down&mdash;spread yourself out to receive another
+blow, or are you going to stand up and make a fight&mdash;assert
+your independence&mdash;prove the existence of your own
+soul? I'm not, whatever happens! I'm going to make
+a fight, and I want you to make it with me. Beatrice,
+marry me! Now&mdash;to-day&mdash;this instant! Don't you see
+that's the only thing to do?..."</p>
+
+<p>"No! James, stop! You don't know what you're saying!"
+She broke away from him, asserting her strength
+for the moment against even his impetuous onrush.
+"James, you're mad, stark mad! Haven't you lived long
+enough to know that you always regret words spoken like
+that? Try to act like a sensible human being, if you can't
+be one!"</p>
+
+<p>That was all very well, but why did she weaken it by
+adding "I won't listen to any more such talk," which<span class="pagenum">[264]</span>
+admitted the possibility that there might be more such
+talk very soon? And if she was determined not to listen,
+why did she not simply walk away and into the house?
+James did not put these questions to himself in this form,
+but the substance of their meaning worked its way through
+his excitement and lent him courage for an attack from
+a new quarter. He dropped his impetuosity and became
+very quiet and keen.</p>
+
+<p>"You ask me to act like a sensible person; very well, I
+will. Let's look at things from a practical point of view.
+There's no love's young dream stuff about this thing, at
+all. We've lost that; it's been cut out of both our lives,
+forever. All there is left for us to do is to pick up the
+pieces and try to make something of ourselves, as we are.
+How can we possibly do that better than by marrying?
+Don't you see the value of a comradeship founded on the
+sympathy there must be between us?"</p>
+
+<p>He stopped for a moment and stood calmly watching
+her. No need now to use violence against those despairing
+voices in the background of his thoughts; they had been
+hushed by the strength of a determination no longer hot
+with the joy of self-discovery but taking on already something
+of the chill irrevocability of age. He watched Beatrice
+almost with amusement; he knew so well what futile
+struggles were going on within her. He had no more
+doubt of the outcome now than he had of his own determination.</p>
+
+<p>"It all sounds very well, James," she answered at last,
+"but it won't do. I couldn't do it. Marriage...."</p>
+
+<p>"Well?"</p>
+
+<p>"Marriage is an ideal, you know, as well as&mdash;as a contract.
+I can't&mdash;I won't have one without the other."</p>
+
+<p>"You are very particular. People as unpopular with
+chance as we are can't afford to be particular."</p>
+
+<p>"It would be false to&mdash;to&mdash;oh, I don't know how to put
+it! To the best in life."</p>
+
+<p>"Has the best in life been true to you?"</p>
+
+<p>"You are so bitter!"</p>
+
+<p>"Hasn't one the right to be, sometimes? God&mdash;fate&mdash;what
+you call ideals&mdash;have their responsibilities, even to
+us. What claim have all those things got on us now?"</p>
+
+<p>"I choose to follow them still!"</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum">[265]</span></p><p>"Then you are weak&mdash;simply weak!&mdash;You act as if
+I were proposing something actually wicked. It's not
+wicked at all; it's simply a practical benefit. Marriage
+without love might be wicked if there were any chance left
+of combining it with love; but now&mdash;! It's simply picking
+up pieces, making the best of things&mdash;straight commonsense...."</p>
+
+<p>She might still have had her way against him, as long
+as he continued to base his appeal on commonsense. But
+he changed his tactics again, this time as a matter of impulse.
+He had been slowly walking toward her in the
+course of his argument and now stood close by her, talking
+straight down into her eyes, till suddenly her mere physical
+nearness put an end to speech and thought alike.
+Something of her old physical attraction for him, which
+had been much stronger than in the case of Madge, returned
+to him with a force for the moment irresistible.
+There was something about her wide eyes, her parted lips,
+her bosom slightly heaving with the effort of argument....
+He put his hand on her shoulder and slowly yet irresistibly
+drew her to him. He bent his head till their
+lips touched.</p>
+
+<p>So they stood for neither knew how long. Seconds flew
+by like years, or was it years like seconds? Sense of time
+was as completely lost as in sleep; indeed, their condition
+was very much like that of sleep. They had both become
+suddenly, acutely tired of life and had found at least temporary
+rest and refreshment. Neither of them was bothered
+by worries over the inevitable awakening; neither of
+them even thought of it, yet.</p>
+
+<p>As for Beatrice, she was for the moment bowled over by
+the discovery that some one cared for her enough to clasp
+her to his bosom and kiss her. What had she wanted all
+these years, except to be loved? A wave of mingled self-pity
+and self-contempt swept over her. She felt suddenly
+weak; her knees trembled; what did that matter, though,
+when James was there to hold her up? She needed
+strength above all things, and James was strong above all
+things. Tears smarted in her eyes and streamed unheeded
+down her cheeks.</p>
+
+<p>"I was so lonely," she whispered at last, raising her
+welling eyes to him. "I have been alone so long ... so
+long...."</p>
+
+<p>"James," she began again after a while, "life is so horrible,
+isn't it?"<span class="pagenum">[266]</span></p>
+
+<p>"It is. Ghastly."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, it <i>is</i> good to find some one else who thinks so!"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, I know."</p>
+
+<p>"Anything is good&mdash;<i>anything</i>&mdash;that makes it easier to
+forget, isn't it?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes. And we're going to try to forget together."</p>
+
+<p>Presently the moment came when they had to break
+apart, and they did it a little awkwardly, not caring to
+look at each other very closely. They sat down on the
+rail, side by side but not touching, and for some time remained
+silently busy regaining old levels and making new
+adjustments. There was considerable to adjust, certainly.
+At last James looked at his watch and announced that it
+was nearly lunch time.</p>
+
+<p>"When shall we get married?" he inquired, brusk
+and businesslike. It may have been only his tone that
+Beatrice involuntarily shuddered at. She told herself it
+was, and then reviled herself for shuddering. It was better
+to be prosaic and practical.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, as soon as possible.... Now&mdash;any time you say."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, but when? When shall we tell people?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, not just yet...." she objected, almost automatically.</p>
+
+<p>"Why not? Why not right now&mdash;before the other?"</p>
+
+<p>"You think...?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes&mdash;every moment counts." He meant that the
+sooner the thing came out the better were their chances of
+concealment, and she understood him. Yes, that was the
+way to look at things, she reflected; might as well do it
+well, if it was to be done at all. She warmed up to his
+point of view so quickly that when his next question came
+she was able to go him one better.</p>
+
+<p>"And the other&mdash;the wedding? In about a fortnight,
+should you say?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, no, not for a month, at least. At the very least.
+It must be in England, you see."</p>
+
+<p>"In England?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, that's the way it would be...." If we were
+really in love with each other, of course she meant. He
+looked at her with new admiration.</p>
+
+<p>They made a few more arrangements. Their talk was
+pervaded now with a sense of efficiency and despatch. If
+they could not call reasons by their real names they could<span class="pagenum">[267]</span>
+call steamships and railroads by theirs, and did. In a
+few minutes they had everything planned out.</p>
+
+<p>A maid appeared and announced lunch. They nodded
+her away and sat silent for a moment longer. It seemed
+as if something more ought to be said; the interview was
+too momentous to be allowed to end with an announcement
+of a meal. The sun beat down on them from the zenith
+with the full unsubtle light of noonday, prosaically
+enough, but the wind, blowing as hard as ever, whistled
+unceasingly around their exposed tower and provided a
+sort of counter-dose of eerieness and suggestiveness; it
+gave them the sense of being rather magnificently aloof
+from the rest of the world. The sun showed them plainly
+enough that they were on a summer-cottage verandah, but
+the wind somehow managed to suggest that they were
+really in a much more romantic place. Probably this dual
+atmosphere had its effect on them; it would need something
+of the sort, at any rate, to make James stand up and
+say aloud, in broad daylight:</p>
+
+<p>"Beatrice, don't you feel a sort of inspiration in fighting
+against something you can't see?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, James," she answered slowly; "I believe I do&mdash;now."</p>
+
+<p>"Something we can neither see nor understand, but
+know is wrong and can only protest against with the whole
+strength of our souls? Blindly, unflinchingly?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes."</p>
+
+<p>"Inevitably?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes."</p>
+
+<p>"Even if uselessly?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes." Her eyes met his squarely enough; there was
+no sign of flinching in them.</p>
+
+<p>"I'm glad you understand. For that's going to be our
+life, you know."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, James; that shall be our life." They got up and
+took each other's hands for a moment, as though to seal
+their compact, looking each other steadfastly in the eyes
+meanwhile. They did not kiss again.</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[268]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_VIII2">CHAPTER VIII</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">ONE THING AND ANOTHER</p>
+
+<p>Seldom have we longed for anything so much as for
+the pen of a Fielding or a Thackeray to come to our aid
+at the present moment and, by means of just such a delightful
+detached essay as occurs from time to time in "Tom
+Jones" or "The Virginians," impart a feeling of the intermission
+that at this point appears in our story. There is
+nothing like a digression on human frailty or the condition
+of footmen in the reign of King George the Second to
+lift the mind of a reader off any particular moment of a
+story and, by throwing a few useful hints into the discourse,
+prepare him ever so gently to be set down at last
+at the exact point where he is to take it up again. That
+is making an art of skipping, indeed. We admire it intensely,
+but realize how impossible it is in this case. Not
+only is such a thing frankly outside our power, but the
+prejudice of the times is set against it, so our only course
+is to confess our weakness and plod along as best we may.</p>
+
+<p>Why on earth every human being who ever knew him
+should not have known of his engagement as soon as it occurred&mdash;or
+long before, for that matter&mdash;Harry could
+never discover. That they did not, in most cases, was due
+partly to reasons which could have been best explained by
+James and partly to the fact that the person who is most
+careless of concealment in such matters is very often the
+one who is least suspected. And then so many men had
+been after Madge! So that when the great news burst
+upon the world at the dinner that Mrs. Gilson could not
+decently be prevented from giving, the surprise, in the
+words of ninety-nine per cent. of their well-meaning
+friends, was as great as the pleasure.</p>
+
+<p>That occurred about a week after James' sudden departure
+from Bar Harbor, a phenomenon amply accounted
+for by business. Trouble in the Balkans&mdash;there always
+was trouble in the Balkans&mdash;had resulted, it appeared, in<span class="pagenum">[269]</span>
+Orders; and Orders demanded James' presence at his post.
+This from Beatrice, with impregnable casualness. Beatrice
+was really rather magnificent, these days. When she
+received her invitation to Mrs. Gilson's dinner she vowed
+that nothing should take her there, but the next moment
+she knew she would go; that nothing should keep her from
+going. Obviously the first guiding principle of destiny-fighting
+was to go on exactly as if nothing had happened.</p>
+
+<p>About a week after the dinner Harry received a note
+from his brother in New York saying that he was engaged
+to Beatrice; that the wedding was to take place in London
+in October and that he hoped Harry would go over with
+him and act as his best man. "I refrained from mentioning
+it before," added James, "because I did not want to
+take the wind out of your sails. We are also enabled by
+waiting to reap the benefit of your experience; I refer to
+the Gilsons. We are taking no risks; it will appear in the
+papers on Wednesday the sixteenth, with Beatrice in Bar
+Harbor and me in New York. Beatrice sails the following
+Saturday."</p>
+
+<p>That was all very well, if a little hard. James and
+Beatrice were both undemonstrative, businesslike souls;
+the arrangement was quite characteristic.</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice in due time sailed for home, and James followed
+her some three weeks afterward. Harry went with
+him, returning immediately after the wedding by the fastest
+ship he could get; he was out of the country just
+eighteen days, all told. The voyage over was an uneventful
+one; the ship was nearly empty and Harry worked
+hard at his new play. He had rather looked forward to
+enjoying this last week of unmarried companionship with
+his brother, but somehow they did not seem to have more
+than usual to say to each other when they were together.
+Rather less, in fact.</p>
+
+<p>"You're looking low, seems to me," said Harry after
+they had paced the wet deck in silence for nearly half of
+a certain evening.</p>
+
+<p>"I've been rather low, lately."</p>
+
+<p>"What&mdash;too much work?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, I don't know. It's nothing."</p>
+
+<p>"Not seasick, are you?"</p>
+
+<p>"I hope not." Both gave a slight snort expressive of
+amusement. This was occasioned by the fact that Aunt<span class="pagenum">[270]</span>
+Cecilia had offered James the use of her yacht&mdash;or rather
+the largest and most sumptuous of her yachts&mdash;for his wedding
+trip, and he and Beatrice were going to cruise for two
+months in the Mediterranean. As for the time&mdash;well, he
+was simply taking it, defying McClellan's to fire him if
+they dared.</p>
+
+<p>"It's funny, isn't it, our getting engaged at the same
+time," Harry went on after a moment. It was the first
+reference he had made to the coincidence.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes," said James, "it's one of the funniest things
+I can remember."</p>
+
+<p>"And the funniest part of it is that neither of us seems
+to have suspected about the other. At least I didn't."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, neither did I; not a thing."</p>
+
+<p>"And practically nobody else did either, apparently."</p>
+
+<p>"No. It might have been just the other way round,
+for all anybody knew&mdash;you and Beatrice, and Madge and
+me."</p>
+
+<p>Harry could not but take away from that conversation
+and from the whole voyage a vague feeling of disappointment.
+Since he heard of James' engagement he had entertained
+an elusive conviction that love coming into their
+lives at so nearly the same time should somehow make a
+difference for the better between them. When he tried to
+put this idea into words, however, he found his mind
+mechanically running to such phrases as "deeper sympathy"
+and "fuller understanding," all of which he dismissed
+as sentimental cant. It was easy to reassure himself
+on all grounds of reason and commonsense; James
+and he were in no need of fuller understandings. And
+yet, especially after the above conversation, he could not
+but be struck by a certain inapproachability in his brother
+which for some reason he could not construe as natural undemonstrativeness.</p>
+
+<p>The wedding took place in an atmosphere of unconstrained
+formality. Harry was not able to get a boat until
+two days after it, and he could not resist the temptation
+of writing Madge all about it that very night, though
+he knew the letter could hardly reach her before he did:&mdash;</p>
+
+<p>"It was quite a small wedding, chiefly because, as far
+as I can make out, there are only some thirty-odd dukes in
+the kingdom. It occurred at the odd hour of 2:30, but
+that didn't seem to prevent any one from enjoying the<span class="pagenum">[271]</span>
+food, and more especially the drink, that was handed around
+afterward at Lady Archie's. Lord Moville, Beatrice's
+uncle, was there and seemed greatly taken with James.
+After he had got outside about a quart of champagne he
+amused himself by feeling James' biceps and thumping
+him on the chest and saying that with a fortnight's training
+he'd back him for anything he wanted against the
+Somerset Cockerel, or some one of the sort, most of which
+left James rather cold, though he bore it smiling. His
+youngest daughter (Lord M.'s), a child of about eighteen,
+apparently the only living person who has any control
+over him, was quite frank about it. 'Fido's drunk again,'
+she announced pleasantly to all who might hear. 'Oh, so's
+Ned,' said Jane Twombly, Beatrice's sister; 'there's no use
+trying to help it at weddings, I find!' Just then Lady
+Archie came running up in despair. 'Oh, Sibyl,' she said,
+'do try to do something with your father. He's been
+threatening to take off his coat because he says the room's
+too hot, and now he wants old Lady Mulford to kiss him!'
+And off darts Sibyl into the dining-room where her father
+and Ned Twombly stand arm in arm waving glasses of
+champagne and shouting 'John Peel' at the top of their
+lungs. 'Fido!' she shouted, running straight up to him,
+'put down that glass directly and come home! Instantly!
+Do you hear? You're disgracing us! The next time I
+take you out to a wedding you'll know it!' 'Oh, Sib,'
+pleaded the noble Marquis, 'don't be too hard on us! Only
+drinkin' bride's health&mdash;must drink bride's health&mdash;not
+good manners not to. Sib shall drink with us; here's a
+glass, Sib&mdash;for his view, view HALLO! would awaken the
+dead&mdash;' 'Fido, do you know what you're doing? You're
+ruining your season's hunting! Gout-stool and Seidlitz
+powders all the winter for you, if you don't go easy!' But
+still Fido refused to obey till at last the dauntless child
+went up and whispered something in his ear, after which
+he calmed down and presently followed her out of the
+house, gently as a lamb. 'She threatened to tell her mother
+about the woman in Wimbledon,' explained Jane to me.
+'Of course every one knows all there is to know about her,
+including Aunt Susan, but he hasn't found that out yet, and
+it gives Sib rather a strangle-hold on him. Good idea, isn't
+it? Marjorie&mdash;Ned's sister, you know&mdash;has promised to
+work the same trick for me with Ned, when the time comes.'<span class="pagenum">[272]</span>
+I hope I am not more straight-laced than my neighbors, but
+do you know, the whole atmosphere struck me as just a
+teeny-weeny bit decadent...."</p>
+
+<p>After he reached home Harry saw that it would be quite
+useless, what with Madge and other diverting influences,
+to try to finish his play in New Haven, so he repaired to
+the solitudes of the Berkshires for the remainder of the
+autumn. He occupied two rooms in an almost empty inn
+in Stockbridge, working and living for two months on a
+strict r&eacute;gime. It was his habit to work from nine till half-past
+one. He spent most of the afternoon in exercise and
+the evening in more writing; not the calm, well-balanced
+writing of the morning, but in feverish and untrammeled
+scribbling. Each morning he had to write over all that he
+had done the night before, but he found it well worth
+while, discovering that reason and inspiration kept separate
+office hours.</p>
+
+<p>Meanwhile Madge, though freed from the trammels of
+Miss Snellgrove, was very busy at home with her trousseau
+and other matters. She was supremely happy these days;
+happy even in Harry's absence, because she could feel
+that he was doing better work than he could with her near,
+and that provided just the element of self-sacrifice that
+every woman&mdash;every woman that is worth anything&mdash;yearns
+to infuse into her love. She had ample opportunity
+of trying her hand at writing love letters, but, to
+tell the truth, she was never very good at it. Neither was
+Harry, for that matter; possibly because he was now putting
+every ounce of creative power in him into something the
+result of which justified the effort much better.... But
+suppose we allow some of the letters to speak for themselves.</p>
+
+<blockquote><p>Dear Inamorato: (wrote Madge one day in November)
+I'm not at all sure that that word exists; it looks so
+odd in the masculine and just shows how the male sex more
+or less spoils everything it touches. However! I've been
+hemming towels all day and am ready to drop, but after I
+finish with them there will be only the pillow cases to attend
+to before I am done. By the bye, what do you
+suppose arrived to-day? <i>Four</i> (heavily underscored)
+most <i>exquisite</i> (same business) linen sheets, beautifully
+hemstitched and marked and from who ("Good<span class="pagenum">[273]</span>
+Heavens, and the woman taught school!" exclaimed Harry)
+do you think? Miss Snellgrove! Wasn't it sweet of
+her? That makes ten in all. Everybody has been lovely
+and we shall do very well for linen, but clothes are much
+more difficult. In them, you see, I have to please not only
+myself but Mama and Aunt Tizzy as well. I went shopping
+with both of them yesterday, and they were possessed
+to make me order an evening gown of black satin with
+yellow trimmings which was something like a gown Aunt
+Tizzy had fascinated people in during the early eighties.
+It wasn't such a bad idea, but unfortunately it would have
+made me resemble a rather undersized wasp. We compromised
+at last on a blue silk that's going to have a Watteau
+pleat and will fall in nice little straight folds and make
+me look about seven feet high. Aunt Tizzy is too perfectly
+dear and keeps telling me not to scrimp, but her idea
+of not scrimping is to spend simply <i>millions</i> and always go
+ahead and get the very best in the <i>extravagantest</i> way, and
+my conscience rebels. I hope to pick up some things at
+the January sales in New York; if you are there seeing
+about your play at that time we can be together, can't we?
+I still have to get a suit and an afternoon gown and various
+other things the nature of which I do not care to specify!</p>
+
+<p>I run over and look in on Aunt Selina every time I get
+a chance. She is <i>so</i> dear and uncomplaining about being
+left alone and keeps saying that having me in the house
+will be as good as having Beatrice, which is absurd, though
+sweet. Heavens, how I tremble when I think of trying to
+fill her shoes!</p>
+
+<p>I must stop now, dearest, so good-night. Ever your
+own,</p>
+
+<p class="author smcap">Madge</p>
+
+<div class="inset12">
+<p>O O O O O O</p>
+</div>
+
+<p>Those O's stand for osculations. Do you know how
+hard it is to kiss in a small space? Like tying a bow-knot
+with too short a piece of ribbon.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>For Heaven's sake, my good woman (wrote Harry in
+reply), don't write me another letter like that! How do
+you think I feel when, fairly thirsting for fire and inspiration
+and that sort of thing, I tear open an envelope from
+you and find it contains an unusually chatty Woman's<span class="pagenum">[274]</span>
+Column? How do you suppose poor old D. Alghieri would
+have written his Paradiso if Beatrice had held forth on
+the subject of linen sheets, and do you or do you not suppose
+it would have improved Petrarch's sonnets if Laura
+had treated him to a disquisition on the ins and outs of the
+prices of evening gowns?</p>
+
+<p>Remember your responsibility! If you continue to
+deny me inspiration my play will fail and you will live in
+disgrace and misery in the basement of a Harlem tenement
+in an eternal smell of cabbages and a well-justified fear
+of cockroaches, with one cracked looking-glass to see your
+face in and dinner served up in a pudding basin!</p>
+
+<p>The c. of my b. (that was his somewhat flippant abbreviation
+of child of my brain) is coming along well
+enough, considering. The woman is shaping quite well.
+What was the name you suggested for her the last time I
+saw you? If it was Hermione, I'm afraid it won't do, because
+every one in the theater, from Bachmann down to
+the call-boy, will call it Hermy-one, and I shall have to
+correct them all, which will be a bad start. I call her
+Mamie for the present, because I know I can't keep it.
+What would be the worst possible name, do you think?
+Hannah? Florrie? Mae? Keren-happuch and Glwadwys
+also have their points.</p>
+
+<p>Please forgive me for being (a) short-tempered; (b)
+tedious. I was going to tear up what I have written, only
+I decided it would not be quite fair, as you have a right
+to know just how dreadful I can be, in case you want to
+change your mind about February.&mdash;What a discreetly
+euphemistic phrase!&mdash;It has grown fearfully cold here,
+and we had the first skating of the winter to-day. I got
+hold of some skates and went out and, fired by the example
+of two or three people here who skate rather well, I swore
+I would do a 3-turn or die in the attempt. The latter
+alternative occurred. I am writing this on the mantelpiece.</p>
+
+<p>Farewell. Write early and write often, and write
+Altman catalogues if you must, but not if you are interested
+in the uplift of drahmah. Give my best to Grandmama,
+and consider yourself embraced.</p>
+
+<p class="author smcap">Io El Rey.</p>
+</blockquote>
+
+<p>Madge's reply to this missive was telegraphic in form and<span class="pagenum">[275]</span>
+brief in substance. It read simply "Sorry. Laura." "I
+would have signed it Beatrice," she explained in her next
+letter, "only I was afraid you might think it was from your
+sister-in-law Beatrice, and there's nothing for <i>her</i> to be
+sorry about."</p>
+
+<p>Another letter of Harry's, written a few weeks later,
+shows him in a different mood:</p>
+
+<blockquote><p>Querida de mis ojos&mdash;You don't know Spanish but you
+ought to gather what that means without great effort&mdash;I
+have weighty news for you. I dashed down to New York
+on the spur of the moment day before yesterday and showed
+the first draught of my completed MS to Leo. My dear,
+he said IT WOULD DO! You don't know what that
+means, of course; no one could. You all think I have simply
+to write and say 'Here, play this,' and it is played. You
+know nothing of how it hurts to put ideas on paper, nothing
+of the dead weight of responsibility, the loneliness, the
+self-distrust, the hate of one's own work that the creative
+brain has to struggle against. Consequently, my dearest,
+you will just have to take it on trust from me that an interview
+such as I had yesterday with Bachmann is nothing
+less than a rebirth. He even advised me not to try to
+change or improve it much, saying that what changes were
+needed could best be put in at rehearsals, and I think he's
+dead right. So I shall do no more than put the third act
+in shape before I hand the thing over to him and dash home
+for the holidays. Atmosphere of Yule logs, holly berry
+and mistletoe!</p>
+
+<p>I really am absurdly happy. You see, it isn't merely
+success, or a premonition of success (for the first night is
+still to come); it's in a way a justification of my whole life.
+If this thing is as good as I think it is, it will amount to a
+sort of written permit from headquarters to love you, to go
+on thinking as I do think about certain things and to regard
+myself&mdash;well, it's hard to put into words, but as a
+dynamic force, rather than as a lucky fool that stumbled
+across one rather good thing. Not that I shouldn't do all
+three anyway, to be sure!&mdash;And every kind friend will
+say he knew I would 'make good'; that there never was
+any doubt my 'coming into my own,' and all the rest. Oh,
+Lord, if people only knew! But thank Heaven they don't!</p>
+
+<p>I am becoming obscure and rhapsodic. I seem to 'see'<span class="pagenum">[276]</span>
+things to-night, like Tilburina in the play. I see strange
+and distorted conceptions of myself, for one thing; endless
+and bewildering publicity. Oh, what a comfort it is to
+think that no matter what I may be to other people, to you
+I shall always be simply the same stupid, bungling, untidy</p>
+
+<p class="author smcap">Harry!</p>
+
+<p>I love you with an intensity that beggars the power of
+human expression.</p>
+
+<p>I did a bracket this afternoon.</p></blockquote>
+
+<p>Madge never received a letter from him that pleased her
+more. She was fully alive to its chaotic immaturity, and
+she smiled at the way he unconsciously appeared to shove
+his love for her into second place. But there was that about
+it that convinced her of his greatness as nothing had yet
+done. It seemed to her that when he spoke of the loneliness
+of genius and in his prophetic touch at the end about
+the different ways in which people would regard him he
+spoke with the true voice of a seer. It all made her feel
+very humble and solemn. To think that Harry, her Harry,
+that tall thin thing with the pink cheeks and dark brown
+hair and the restless black eyes, should be one of the great
+men of his day, perhaps one of the great ones of all time!
+Keats&mdash;Harry was already older than Keats when he died,
+but she thought he had much the same temperament; Congreve&mdash;she
+knew how he loved Congreve; Marlowe&mdash;she had
+often compared his golden idealism to that of Marlowe;
+Shakespeare...? No, no&mdash;of course not! She knew perfectly
+well he was no Shakespeare.... Still, why not, in
+time?... And anyway, Marlowe, Congreve, Keats&mdash;Wimbourne!</p>
+
+<p>So she dreamed on, till the future, which hitherto she had
+seen as merely smiling toward her, seemed to rise and with
+solemn face beckon her to a new height, a place hard to
+reach and difficult to hold, but one whose very base seemed
+more exalted than anything she had yet known....</p>
+
+<p>Now Madge was, on the whole, a very fairly modern type
+of young woman. Her outlook on the world was based on
+Darwin, and she held firmly to such eugenic principles as
+seemed to flow directly from the doctrine of evolution.
+She had long since declared war to the death on disease,
+filth and vice, to which she added a lesser foe generally
+known as "suppression of facts," and she had done a certain<span class="pagenum">[277]</span>
+amount of real work in helping those less fortunate
+than herself to the acquisition of health, cleanliness, virtue
+and "knowledge." She thought that women would
+get the vote some day, though they weren't ready for it
+yet, and hadn't joined the Antis because there was no use
+in being a drag on the wheels of progress, even if you
+didn't feel like helping. She believed in the "social regeneration"
+of woman. It was quite clear to her that in the
+early years of the twentieth century women were beginning&mdash;and
+only just beginning&mdash;to take their place beside
+men in the active work of saving the race; "why, you had
+only to look at Jane Addams and Florence Nightingale to
+see&mdash;" et cetera.</p>
+
+<p>And yet, and yet....</p>
+
+<p>It was at least as fine a thing to become Mrs. Harold
+Wimbourne and devote a lifetime to ministering to one of
+the great creative geniuses of the time as to be a heavy gun
+on her own account, was what she meant, of course. But
+that wasn't quite enough. Suppose, for the sake of argument,
+that Harry were not one of the great creative geniuses
+of the age; suppose there were no question of Congreve,
+Keats, Wimbourne and so forth; suppose being his wife
+meant being plain Mrs. Harold Wimbourne and nothing
+more&mdash;what then?</p>
+
+<p>"Well, I suppose I'd still rather be plain Mrs. H. W., if
+you will have it!" she retorted petulantly to her relentless
+self. But she soon became glad she had brought herself to
+the point of admitting it, for, the issue definitely settled,
+her mind became unaccountably peaceful....</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>New Year's was scarcely over when rehearsals began,
+and Harry was in for another period of lounging in
+shrouded orchestra chairs and watching other people air
+their ideas, or lack of ideas, on the child of his brain. His
+lounging was now, however, quite freely punctuated by interruptions
+and not infrequently by scramblings over the
+footlights to illustrate a fine point. This rather bored the
+actors; Harry had become almost uncomfortably acute in
+matter of stage technique. But they had to admit that
+his suggestions were never foolish or unnecessary.</p>
+
+<p>In due time came the first night. It is no part of our
+purpose to describe "Pastures New" or its success in this
+place. If&mdash;which is improbable&mdash;you have to refresh your<span class="pagenum">[278]</span>
+mind on it, you have only to ask one of your journalistic
+friends&mdash;don't pretend that you haven't at least one friend
+on a newspaper&mdash;to show you the files of his sheet. There
+you will see it all, in what scholars call primary sources:&mdash;"New
+Yorkers Roar With Delight at Feminist Satire,"
+and all the rest of it, like as not on the front page. Harry
+hated its being called a satire; that was such a cheap and
+easy way of getting out of it. For when all was over,
+when people had cried with laughing at its whimsical humor,
+poked each other with delight at its satirical touches&mdash;oh
+yes, there were plenty of them&mdash;quoted its really brilliant
+dialogue, sat enthralled by its swift and compelling action&mdash;for
+Harry had made good his promise that this play
+should have "punch"&mdash;when they had done all these things
+to their heart's content, still not a person saw the play who
+did not come away from it more fully convinced than ever
+he had been of&mdash;well, of what you had only to look at Jane
+Addams and Florence Nightingale to see. For there were
+really great moments in the play; moments when no one
+even thought of laughing, though one was almost always
+made to laugh the moment after. That was Harry's way,
+that was his power, to "hit 'em hard and then make 'em
+laugh just as they begin to feel smarty in the eyes," as
+Burchard the stage manager not unaptly put it.</p>
+
+<p>"Pastures New" ran for six months in New York alone,
+and no one laughed harder or less rancorously at it than the
+"feminists" themselves&mdash;or all of them that were worth
+anything.</p>
+
+<p>Of course both Harry and Madge were tired to death by
+the time the wedding became imminent, and the final
+preparations were made in what might be called broad impressionistic
+strokes.</p>
+
+<p>Madge had at first intended to have a small informal reception
+in her own house, but Aunt Tizzy had been so disappointed
+that she had at last consented to let it be at her
+aunt's and attain the dimensions of a perfect tomasha&mdash;the
+phrase is her own&mdash;if it wanted to. Why not? Aunt
+Tizzy's house could hold it.</p>
+
+<p>"Besides, my dear," argued Harry, "it's only once in a
+lifetime, after all. If you marry again as a widow you'll
+only have a silly little wedding, without a veil and no
+bridesmaids, and if we're divorced you won't have any<span class="pagenum">[279]</span>
+wedding at all, worth mentioning. Much better do it up
+brown when you have the chance."</p>
+
+<p>"What about music?" asked Harry as the two stood in
+final consultation with the organist on the night of the
+rehearsal. "I've always wondered why people had such
+perfectly rotten music at weddings, but I begin to see now.
+Still, if we <i>could</i> have something other than Lohengrin
+and Mendelssohn I think I could face marriage with a
+little better heart. What about it, dear?"</p>
+
+<p>Madge groaned. "Oh, anything! The Star-Spangled
+Banner, if you want!"</p>
+
+<p>"I think I can arrange it," said the organist smiling, and
+he played the march from "Tannh&auml;user" and the march
+from "Athalie," which he always played when people
+asked for something unusual, and the effect was considered
+very pleasing and original. Altogether it was the prettiest
+wedding any one had seen in years, according to the testimony
+of those who attended the reception&mdash;which did become
+a perfect tomasha. But as tomasha-goers are notoriously
+biased their testimony probably wasn't legal and no
+respectable judge would have accepted it as evidence. The
+only legal thing about the whole affair was the ceremony,
+which was fully as much so as if it had been before a magistrate,
+which Madge swore it should be if she ever had to go
+through it again and regretted bitterly it hadn't been this
+time.... Well, perhaps, when she looked about her and
+saw how unaffectedly happy her mother and Aunt Tizzy
+and the bridesmaids and all the other good people were,
+she didn't regret it quite so much.</p>
+
+<p>"Though it is rather absurd, getting married to please
+other people, isn't it?" she remarked as they drove off at
+last, leaving the tomasha-goers to carouse as long as Aunt
+Tizzy could make them.</p>
+
+<p>"I think I'd do almost anything to please Aunt Tizzy,"
+said Harry. "Now that it's all over, that is. Get married
+again, even.... After all," he added suddenly, shamelessly
+going back on all his professions of the last few days;
+"after all, you know, it <i>was</i> rather a good wedding!"</p>
+
+<p>Which shows that he was just as biased as any one, at
+bottom!</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[280]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_IX2">CHAPTER IX</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">LABYRINTHS</p>
+
+<p>How many people should you say could be packed into
+a three-hundred foot barkantine-rigged steam yacht,
+capable of fourteen knots under steam alone, for a night
+in late June, presumably hot, anchored in a noisy estuary
+off Long Island Sound without making them all wish they
+had never been born? We ourselves should hate to have
+to answer the question offhand. So did Aunt Cecilia, whom
+it concerned more closely than any one else, and she did not
+have to answer it offhand at all, having all the available
+statistics within reach. In fact, she had spent the best
+part of one hot New York June morning over it already,
+sitting in her darkened front drawing-room because it was
+the coolest room in the house, amid ghost-like furniture
+whose drab slip-covers concealed nothing less than real
+Louis Quinze. On her lap&mdash;or what Uncle James said if
+she didn't look out wouldn't be her lap very long&mdash;she
+held a magazine and over the magazine an expensive piece
+of letter-paper, on one leaf of which was a list of names
+and on the other a plan drawn in wobbly and unarchitectural
+lines&mdash;obviously a memory sketch of the sleeping accommodations
+of the <i>Halcyone</i>. Near what even in the
+sketch was undoubtedly the largest and most comfortable
+of the <i>Halcyone's</i> cabins she had written in firm unmistakable
+letters the word "Me," and opposite two other
+rooms she had inscribed in only slightly less bold characters
+the initials "H. and M." and "J. and B." So far so good;
+why not go on thus as long as the list or the cabins held and
+consider the problem solved? It wasn't as simple as that,
+it seemed. Some of the people hadn't been asked, or might
+be asked only if there was room enough, and the boys might
+bring in people at the last moment; it was very confusing.
+And not even the extent of the sleeping accommodations
+was as constant as might have been desired. It was
+ridiculous, of course, but even after all these years she
+could not be quite sure whether there were two little single<span class="pagenum">[281]</span>
+rooms down by the galley skylight or only one. She was
+practically sure there were two, but suppose she were mistaken?
+And then, if it came to that, the boys and almost
+as many friends as they cared to bring might sleep on the
+smoking-room sofas....</p>
+
+<p>"No ... no, I'm not sure how wise that would be,"
+she mused, certain things she had seen and been told of
+boat-race celebrations straying into her mind. "The
+smoking-room cushions have only just been covered...."</p>
+
+<p>A ring at the doorbell. She glanced up at a pierglass
+(also Louis Quinze) opposite her and strained her eyes at
+its mosquito-netting covered surface. Her hair was far
+from what she could have wished; she hoped it would be
+no one she would have to see. Oh, Beatrice.</p>
+
+<p>"Howdy do, dear," said Aunt Cecilia, relieved. "I
+was just thinking of you. I'm trying to plan out about
+the boat-race; it's less than a week off now."</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice sank languidly down on the other end of Aunt
+Cecilia's sofa. She was much hotter and more fatigued
+than Aunt Cecilia, but no one would have guessed it to look
+at her. Her clothes lay coolly and caressingly on her; not
+a hair seemed out of place.</p>
+
+<p>"You see," went on the other, "it's rather difficult to
+arrange, on account of there being so many unmarried people&mdash;just
+the Lyles and the MacGraths and George Grainger
+for us older ones and the rest all Muffins' and Jack's
+friends. I think we shall work out all right, though, with
+two rooms at the Griswold and the smoking-room to overflow
+into. I'm tired of bothering about it. Tell me about
+yourself."</p>
+
+<p>"Nothing much," answered Beatrice. "I much prefer
+hearing about you. By the way&mdash;about the races. I just
+dropped in to tell you about Tommy Clairloch. He's coming.
+You did tell me to ask him, didn't you?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes ... oh, yes, of course. I had forgotten about
+Lord Clairloch for the moment. I thought he was going
+west the middle of the month."</p>
+
+<p>"He was, but he didn't. Tommy's rather a fool."
+Tommy, it may be mentioned, was in the process of improving
+himself by making a trip around the world, going westward.
+He had left home in April and so far Upper Montclair
+was his farthest point west. As Beatrice said, Tommy
+was rather a fool.<span class="pagenum">[282]</span></p>
+
+<p>"Oh, not a bit ... only.... By the bye, dear, do you
+happen to remember whether there are one or two rooms
+down that little hall by the galley?"</p>
+
+<p>"Two, as I remember it. But don't bother about Tommy.
+Really, Aunt Cecilia, don't. He needn't come at all&mdash;I'll
+tell him he can't."</p>
+
+<p>"Of course he must come.... That's it&mdash;I'll put him in
+the other little single room and tell the boys that they and
+any one else they ask from now on must go to the Griswold
+or sleep in the smoking-room. I'm glad to have it
+settled."</p>
+
+<p>Aunt Cecilia beamed as one does when a difficult problem
+is solved. It occurred to her that Beatrice might beam
+back at her just a tiny bit, if only in mock sympathy.
+Especially as it was her guest.... But Beatrice remained
+just as casual as before, sitting easily but immovably in her
+corner of the sofa with her parasol lying lightly in her slim
+gloved hands. Aunt Cecilia noticed those hands rather
+especially; it seemed scarcely human to keep one's gloves
+on in the house on a day like this! Characteristically, she
+gave her thought outlet in words.</p>
+
+<p>"Do take off your gloves and things, dear, and make
+yourself comfortable! Such a day! New York in June is
+frightful&mdash;eighty-eight yesterday, and Heaven knows what
+it will be to-day. You'll stay to lunch, won't you?"</p>
+
+<p>"Thanks, perhaps I will," replied Beatrice listlessly.</p>
+
+<p>"I never have stayed in town so late in June," ran on
+Aunt Cecilia, "but I thought I wouldn't open the Tarrytown
+house this spring&mdash;it's only for six weeks and it is
+so much extra trouble.... I shall take the yacht and the
+boys directly on up to Bar Harbor afterward; we should
+love to have you come with us, if you feel like leaving
+James&mdash;you're looking so fagged. You must both come
+and pay us a long visit later on, though I suppose with
+Harry and Madge in the Berkshires you'll be running up
+there quite often for week-ends...."</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice stirred a little. "Thanks, Aunt Cecilia, but
+I don't mind the heat especially. If James can bear it, I
+can, I suppose. I expect to stay here most of the summer."</p>
+
+<p>She was perfectly courteous, and yet it suddenly occurred
+to Aunt Cecilia that perhaps she wouldn't be quite so free
+in showering invitations on Beatrice and James for a while.
+There was that about her, as she sat there.... Languid,<span class="pagenum">[283]</span>
+that was the word; there had been a certain languor, not
+due to hot weather, in Beatrice's reception of most of her
+favors, now that she came to think of it. There had been
+that wedding trip in the <i>Halcyone</i>, to begin with. Both
+she and James had shown a due amount of gratitude, but
+neither, when you came right down to it, had given any particular
+evidence of having enjoyed it. Everything was as
+it should be, no doubt, but&mdash;one didn't lend yachts without
+expecting to have them enjoyed!</p>
+
+<p>"That trip cost me over five thousand dollars," she had
+remarked to her husband shortly after the return of the
+bridal pair. "Of course I don't grudge it, but five thousand
+dollars is a good deal of money, and I'd rather have
+subscribed it to the Organized Charities than feel I was
+spending it to give those two something they didn't want!"</p>
+
+<p>Aunt Cecilia gazed anxiously at Beatrice for a moment,
+memories of this sort floating vaguely through her mind.
+She scented trouble, somewhere. The next minute she
+thought she had diagnosed it.</p>
+
+<p>"You're bored, dear, that's the long and the short of it,
+and I think I know what's the matter. I'm not sure that I
+didn't feel a little that way myself, at the very first. But
+I soon got over it. My dear, there's nothing in the world
+like a baby to drive away boredom...."</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice tapped with the end of her parasol on what in
+winter would have been a pink and gray texture from
+Aubusson's storied looms but was now simply a parquet
+flooring. But she did not blush, not in the slightest degree.</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," she answered, a trifle wearily, "I daresay you're
+right. Sometimes I think I would like to have a baby. It
+doesn't seem to come, though.... After all, it's rather
+early to bother, isn't it?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, I don't want you to <i>bother</i>&mdash;! Only&mdash;" She was
+just a little taken aback. This barren agreement, this lack
+of natural shyness, of blushes! It was unprecedented in
+her experience.</p>
+
+<p>"Only what, Aunt Cecilia?"</p>
+
+<p>"Only&mdash;it's a sure cure for being bored. But Beatrice,
+there must be others, while you're waiting. What about
+your studies, your work? You haven't done much of that
+since you came home from abroad, have you? It's too late
+to begin anything this summer, of course, but next autumn<span class="pagenum">[284]</span>
+I should think you'd like to take it up again, especially as
+you don't care so much for society, and I'm sure I don't
+blame you for that...." She beamed momentarily on her
+niece, who this time smiled back ever so slightly in return.
+"After all, it's nice to be of some use in the world, isn't it?"</p>
+
+<p>Why not have left it there, on that secure impregnable
+pinnacle? Why weaken her position by giving voice to that
+silly unprovoked fancy that had hung about the back of
+her mind since the beginning of the interview, or very near
+it? We can't explain, unless the sudden suspicion that
+Beatrice had smiled less with than at her, and the sight
+of her sitting there so beautiful and aloof, so well-bredly
+acquiescent and so emotionally intangible, exercised an
+ignoble influence over her. There is a sort of silent acquiescence
+that is very irritating.... And after all, was
+the impulse so ignoble? A word of warning of the most
+affectionate kind, prompted by the keenest sympathy&mdash;surely
+it was wholly Beatrice's fault if anything went
+wrong!</p>
+
+<p>"More than that, my dear, there's a certain danger in
+being too idle&mdash;a danger I'm sure you're as free from as
+any one could be, but you know what the psalm says!"
+(Or was it original with Isaac Watts? However!) "Of
+course marriage isn't so easy, especially in the first year,
+and especially if there are no children&mdash;what with the husband
+away at work all day and tired to death and like as
+not cross as a bear when he comes home in the evening&mdash;I
+know!&mdash;a young wife can't be blamed for feeling a little
+out of sorts sometimes. And then along comes another
+man...."</p>
+
+<p>Here Beatrice, to use a sporting expression, froze. From
+that moment it ceased to be question of two women talking
+together and became a matter of Aunt Cecilia apostrophizing
+a statue; a modern conception, say, of Artemis. Marble
+itself could not be more unresponsive than Beatrice when
+people tried to "get at her." It was not rudeness, it was
+not coldness, it was not even primarily self-consciousness;
+it was the natural inability to speak of matters deeply concerning
+oneself which people of Aunt Cecilia's temperament
+can never fully understand.</p>
+
+<p>"Of course other men have things to offer that husbands
+have not, especially if they are free in the daytime and are
+nice and good-natured and sympathetic, and often a young<span class="pagenum">[285]</span>
+wife may be deceived into valuing these things more than
+the love of her husband. They are all at their best on the
+surface, while her husband's best is all below it. And that,
+I think, is the way most married unhappinesses begin; not
+in unfaithfulness or in jealousy or in loss of love, but
+merely in idleness. I've seen it happen so often, dear,
+that you must be able to understand why I never like to see
+a young wife with too little to do...."</p>
+
+<p>For Aunt Cecilia was personal, you see, to a degree.
+Did she imagine she was making things any easier, Beatrice
+asked herself with a little burst of humorous contempt, by
+her generalities and her third persons and her "young
+wives"? If she had been perfectly frank, if she had come
+out and said, "Beatrice, if you don't look out you'll be
+falling in love with Tommy Clairloch," there was a possibility
+that Beatrice could have answered her, even confided
+in her; at least put things on a conversational footing. But
+as for talking about her own case in this degrading disguise,
+dramatizing herself as a "young wife"&mdash;!</p>
+
+<p>She remained silent long enough to make it obvious that
+her silence was her real reply. Then she said "Yes, indeed,
+perfectly," and Aunt Cecilia rather tardily became aware
+of her niece's metamorphosis into the modern Artemis.
+She made a flurried attempt to give her own remarks,
+retrospectively, something of the Artemis quality; to place
+a pedestal, as it were, on which to take her own stand as a
+modern conception of Pallas Athene.</p>
+
+<p>"I hope, my dear, you don't think I mean anything...."</p>
+
+<p>"Not at all," said Beatrice kindly but firmly. "And
+now if you don't mind, Aunt Cecilia, I think I'll go up and
+get ready for luncheon."</p>
+
+<p>But Aunt Cecilia was afraid she had gone too far.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>A week later came the gathering of the clans at New
+London for the Yale-Harvard boat-race. Aunt Cecilia had
+not been to a race in years. Races, you see, were not in a
+class with graduations; they were optional, works of
+supererogation. But this year, in addition to one of the
+largest yachts extant and money that fairly groaned to be
+put into circulation, she had two boys in college, and altogether
+it seemed worth while "making an effort." And the
+effort once made there was a certain pleasure in doing the
+thing really well, in taking one's place as one of the great<span class="pagenum">[286]</span>
+Yale families of the country. So on the afternoon before
+the race the <i>Halcyone</i> was anchored in a conspicuous place
+in the harbor, where she loomed large and majestic among
+the smaller craft, and a tremendous blue flag with a white
+Y on it was hoisted between two of the masts. People from
+the shore looked for her name with field glasses and pointed
+her out to each other as "the Wimbourne yacht" with a
+note of awe in their voices.</p>
+
+<p>"It's like being on the <i>Victory</i> at Trafalgar, as far as
+conspicuousness goes," said Harry on his arrival. "Or
+rather," he added magnificently, "like being on Cleopatra's
+galley at Actium."</p>
+
+<p>"Absit omen," remarked Uncle James, and the others
+laughed, but his wife paid no attention to him. She was
+not above a little thrill of pride and pleasure herself.</p>
+
+<p>Muffins and Jack and their friends were much in evidence;
+the party was primarily for the "young people."
+They kept mostly to themselves, dancing and singing and
+making personal remarks together, always detaching themselves
+with a polite attentive quirk of the head when an
+older person addressed them. Nice children, all of them.
+Muffins and Jack were of the right sort, emphatically, and
+their friends were obviously&mdash;not too obviously, but just
+obviously enough&mdash;chosen with nice discriminating taste.
+Jack especially gave one the impression of having a fine
+appreciation of people and things; that of Muffins was
+based on rather broad athletic lines. Muffins played football.
+Ruth, the brains of the family, was not present; we
+forget whether she was running a summer camp for cash
+girls or exploring the headwaters of the Yukon; it was
+something modern and expensive. Ruth was not extensively
+missed by her brothers.</p>
+
+<p>They all dined hilariously together on the yacht and repaired
+to the Griswold afterward to dance and revel through
+the evening. All, that is, except Beatrice and James; they
+did not arrive till well on in the evening, James having been
+unable to leave town till his day's work was over. The
+launch with Uncle James in it went to the station to meet
+them and brought them directly back to the yacht to get
+settled and tidied up; they could go on over to the Griswold
+for a bit, if they weren't too tired.</p>
+
+<p>"How about it?" inquired James as he stood peering at
+his watch in the dim light on deck.<span class="pagenum">[287]</span></p>
+
+<p>"Oh, just as you like," said Beatrice.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, I don't care. Say something."</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice was rather tired.... Well, perhaps it was better
+that way; they would have another chance to see all
+they wanted to-morrow night. This from Uncle James,
+who thought he would drop over there and relieve Aunt
+Cecilia, who had been chaperoning since dinner.</p>
+
+<p>His head disappeared over the ship's side. James walked
+silently off to unpack. Beatrice sank into a wicker armchair
+and dropped her head on her hands....</p>
+
+<p>It seemed as if scarcely a moment had passed when she
+became aware of the launch again coming up alongside and
+voices floating up from it&mdash;Aunt Cecilia and Lord Clairloch.
+Salutations ensued, avuncular and friendly. Aunt
+Cecilia was tired, but very cheerful. She buzzed off presently
+to see about something and Lord Clairloch dropped
+down by Beatrice.</p>
+
+<p>Tommy was very cheerful also, apparently much impressed
+by what he had seen at the Griswold. "I say, a
+jolly bean-feast, that! Never saw such dancin' or drinkin'
+in my life, and I've lived a bit! They keep 'em apart,
+too&mdash;that's the best of it; no trouble about takin' a gell,
+provided she don't go to the bar, which ain't likely....
+Jove, we've got nothing like it in England! Rippin' looking
+lot of gells, rippin' fellahs, rippin' good songs, too.
+All seem to enjoy 'emselves so much!&mdash;I say, these
+Yankees can teach us a thing or two about havin' a good
+time&mdash;wot?"</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice listened with a growing sense of amusement.
+Tommy always refreshed her when he was in a mood like
+this; he kept his youth so wonderfully, in spite of all his
+super-sophistication; he was such a boy still. Tommy never
+seemed to mind being hot or tired; Tommy was always
+ready for anything; Tommy was not the sort that came
+home at six o'clock and sank into the evening paper without
+a word&mdash;She stopped that line of thought and asked a
+question.</p>
+
+<p>"Why did you leave it all, Tommy, if it amused you so?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, had enough of it&mdash;been there since dinner. Beside,
+I heard you'd come. Thought I'd buzz over and see
+how you were gettin' on. Have a horrid journey?"</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice nodded.</p>
+
+<p>"Hot?"<span class="pagenum">[288]</span></p>
+
+<p>"No, not especially." They were silent a moment.
+Tommy opened his mouth to ask a question and shut it
+again. And then, walking like a ghost across their silence,
+appeared the figure of James, stalking aimlessly down the
+deck. He nodded briefly to Tommy and walked off again.</p>
+
+<p>The effect, in view of the turn of their conversation, of
+Tommy's unasked question, was almost that of a spectral
+apparition. The half-light of the deck, James' silence and
+the noiseless tread of his rubber-soled shoes had in themselves
+an uncanny quality. Presently Tommy whistled
+softly, as though to break the spell.</p>
+
+<p>"Whew! I say, is he often like that?"</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice laughed. Tommy <i>was</i> refreshing! "Lately,
+yes. Do you know," she added, "he only spoke twice on
+the way up here&mdash;once to ask me if I was ready to have
+dinner, and once what I wanted for dinner?" Her tone
+was one of suppressed amusement, caught from Tommy;
+but before her remark was fairly finished something rather
+like a note of alarm rang through her. Why had she said
+that? It wasn't so frightfully amusing, come to think of
+it. Her pleasure, she saw in a flash, came not from the remark
+itself but from her anticipation of seeing Tommy respond
+to it....</p>
+
+<p>That was rather serious, wasn't it? Just how serious,
+she wondered? Joy in seeing another man respond to a
+disparaging remark about her husband&mdash;that was what it
+came to! For the first time in her life she had the sensation
+of reveling in a stolen joy. For of course Tommy did
+respond, beautifully&mdash;too beautifully. "Oh, I say!
+Really, now! That <i>is</i> a trifle strong, wot?" and so on.
+He was doing exactly what she had meant him to, and there
+was a separate pleasure in that&mdash;a zest of power!</p>
+
+<p>Heavens!</p>
+
+<p>For the first time she began to feel a trifle nervous about
+Tommy. Was Aunt Cecilia right? Had all her careful
+euphemisms about young wives some basis of justification
+as applied to her own case? She and Tommy.... Well,
+she and Tommy?... Half an hour ago she could have
+placed them perfectly; now her sight was a trifle blurred.
+There was not time to think it all out now, anyway; another
+boatload of people from the shore was even now
+crowding up the gangway; to-morrow she would go into
+the matter thoroughly with herself and put things, whatever<span class="pagenum">[289]</span>
+they might be, on a definite business footing. To-night,
+even, if she did not sleep....</p>
+
+<p>Everybody was back, it appeared, and things shortly became
+festive. There were drinks and sandwiches and entertaining
+reminiscences of the evening from the young people,
+lasting till bedtime. Thought was out of the question.</p>
+
+<p>Once undressed and in bed, to be sure, there was better
+opportunity. She slipped comfortably down between the
+sheets; what a blessing that the night was not too hot, after
+all! Aunt Cecilia had said ... what was it that Aunt
+Cecilia had said? Something about a young wife&mdash;a young
+wife ought to have something to do. Of course. These
+were linen sheets, by the way, and the very finest linen, at
+that. Aunt Cecilia did know how to do things.... What
+was it? Something more, she fancied, about valuing something
+more than something else. Tommy Clairloch was
+the first thing, she was sure of that. Aunt Cecilia had not
+said it, but she had meant it.... She was going to sleep,
+after all; what a blessing!... What was that other thing?
+It was hard to think when one was so comfortable. Oh,
+yes, she had it now&mdash;the love of a husband!</p>
+
+<p>Whose husband? The young wife's, to be sure. And
+who was the young wife? She herself, obviously. But&mdash;the
+thought flared up like a strong lamp through the thickening
+fog of her brain&mdash;<i>her</i> husband did not love her! She
+and James were not like ordinary young wives and husbands....
+How silly of her not to have seen that before!
+That changed everything, of course. Aunt Cecilia was on
+a wrong track altogether; her&mdash;what was the word?&mdash;her
+premises were false. That threw out her whole argument&mdash;everything&mdash;including
+that about Tommy.</p>
+
+<p>Gradually the sudden illumination of that thought faded
+in the evergrowing shadow of sleep. Now only vague wisps
+of ideas floated through her mind; even those were but
+pale reflections of that one truth; Aunt Cecilia was mistaken....
+Aunt Cecilia was wrong.... It was all right
+about Tommy.... Tommy was all right.... Aunt Cecilia
+... was wrong....</p>
+
+<p>Psychologists tell us that ideas make most impression on
+the mind when they are introduced into it during that indefinite
+period between sleeping and waking; they then
+become incorporated directly with our subconscious selves
+without having to pass through the usual tortuous channels<span class="pagenum">[290]</span>
+of consciousness and reason. And the sub-consciousness,
+as every one knows, is a most intimate and important place;
+once an idea is firmly grounded there it has become substantially
+a part of our being, so far as we can tell from
+our incomplete knowledge of our own ideal existence. We
+are not sure that a single introduction of this sort can give
+an idea a good social standing in the realm of sub-consciousness;
+probably not. But it can help; it can give it at least
+a nodding acquaintance there. Certain it is, at any rate,
+that when Beatrice awoke next morning it was with a
+mind at least somewhat more willing than previously to
+take for granted, as part of the natural order of things,
+the fact of the inherent wrongness of Aunt Cecilia and its
+corollary, the innate rightness of Tommy. (Possibly this
+corollary would not have appeared so inevitable if the matter
+had all been threshed out in reason; they are rather lax
+about logic and such things in sub-consciousness, making a
+good introduction the one criterion of acceptance.) With
+the net material result that Beatrice was less inclined than
+ever to be nervous about Aunt Cecilia and also less inclined
+than ever to be nervous about Tommy.</p>
+
+<p>The day began in an atmosphere of not unpleasant indolence.
+Breakfast was late and was followed by the best
+cigarette of the day on deck&mdash;Beatrice's smoking was the
+secret admiration and envy of all the female half of the
+younger section. A cool breeze ruffled the harbor and
+gathered in a flock of clouds from the Sound that left only
+just enough sunlight to bring out the brilliant colors of
+the little flags all the yachts had strung up between their
+mastheads and down again to bowsprit and stern. It was
+rather pleasant to sit and watch these and other things; the
+continual small traffic of the harbor, the occasional arrivals
+of more slim white yachts.</p>
+
+<p>Presently Harry and Madge and Beatrice and Tommy
+and one or two others made a short excursion to the shore,
+for no other apparent reason than to join the procession
+of smartly dressed people that for one day in the year
+convert the quiet town of New London into one of the gayest-looking
+places on earth. Tommy was much in evidence
+here, fairly crowing with delight over each new thing that
+pleased him. It was all Harry could do to keep him from
+swathing himself in blue; Tommy had become an enthusiastic
+Yalensian. He had spent a week-end with Harry<span class="pagenum">[291]</span>
+in New Haven during the spring; he had driven with Aunt
+Selina in the victoria, he had been shown the university
+and had met a number of pretty gells and rippin' fellahs;
+what business was it of Wiggers if he wanted to wave a
+blue flag? Wiggers ought to feel jolly complimented, instead
+of makin' a row!</p>
+
+<p>"You'd say just the same about Harvard, if you went
+there&mdash;the people are just as nice," said Harry. "Besides,
+Harvard will probably win. You may buy us each a blue
+feather, if you like, and call it square at that."</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice smiled, but she thought Harry a little hard.</p>
+
+<p>"Never mind, Tommy," said she; "you can sit by me
+at the race this afternoon and we'll both scream our lungs
+out, if we want."</p>
+
+<p>That was substantially what happened. Luncheon on
+the yacht&mdash;an enormous "standing" affair, with lots of
+extra people&mdash;was followed by a general exodus to the
+observation trains. Tommy had never seen an observation
+train before and was full of curiosity. They didn't have
+them at Henley. It was all jolly different from Henley,
+wasn't it, though? As they walked through the railroad
+yards to their car he was inclined to think it wasn't as
+good fun as Henley. One missed the punts, and all that.
+Once seated in the car, however, with an unobstructed view
+of the river, it was a little better, and by the time the
+crews had rowed up to the starting-point he had almost
+come round to the American point of view. It might not
+be so jolly as Henley, quite, but Jove! one could see!</p>
+
+<p>Tommy sat on Beatrice's left; on her right was Mr. MacGrath
+and beyond him again was Aunt Cecilia. The
+others were scattered through the train in similar mixed
+groups. Beatrice thought it a good idea to split up that
+way.... She began to have an idea she was going to enjoy
+this race.</p>
+
+<p>So she did, too, more than she had enjoyed anything in&mdash;oh,
+months! She couldn't remember much about it afterward,
+though she did remember who won, which is more
+than we do. She had a recollection, to begin with, of
+Tommy joining in lustily in every Yale cheer and of Mr.
+MacGrath trying not to thump Aunt Cecilia on the back
+at an important moment and thumping herself instead.
+He apologized very nicely. Presently Tommy committed
+the same offense against her and neglected to apologize<span class="pagenum">[292]</span>
+entirely, but she didn't mind in the least. (That was the
+sort of race it was.) Perhaps there lurked in the back
+of her brain a certain sense of joy in the omission....
+She herself became infected with Tommy-mania before
+long.</p>
+
+<p>And the spectacle was an exhilarating one, under any
+circumstances. The noble sweep of the river, the keen
+blue of the water and sky, the green of the hills, the brilliant
+double row of yachts and the general atmosphere of
+hilarity were enough to make one glad to be alive. And
+then the excitement of the race itself, the sense of participation
+the motion of the train gave one, the almost painful
+fascination of watching those two little sets of automatons,
+the involuntary, electric response from the crowd when one
+or the other of them pulled a little into the lead, the thrill
+of bursting out from behind some temporary obstruction
+and seeing them down there, quite near now, entering the
+last half-mile with one's own crew just a little, ever so
+little, ahead! From which moment it seemed both a second
+and an age to the finish, that terrific, heart-raising
+finish, with its riot of waving colors and its pandemonium
+of toots from the water and cries from the land....</p>
+
+<p>On the whole, we suppose Yale must have won that
+race. For after all, it isn't quite so pleasant when the
+other crew wins, no matter how close the race was and no
+matter how good a loser one happens to be. Tommy was
+as good a loser as you could easily find, but not even he
+could have been as cheerful as all that on the ride back if
+his crew had lost. Indeed, cheerful was rather a weak
+word with which to describe Tommy by this time. Beatrice,
+doing her best to calm him down, became aware, from
+glances shot at him from various&mdash;mostly feminine&mdash;directions,
+that some people would have characterized his condition
+by a much sharper and shorter word. Involuntarily,
+almost against her will, Beatrice indignantly repelled their
+accusation. What nonsense! They didn't know Tommy;
+he was naturally like this. Though there had been champagne
+at lunch, of course....</p>
+
+<p>Rather an interesting experience, that ride back to town.
+The enforced inactivity gave one a chance to think, in the
+intervals of tugging at Tommy's coat tails. Why should
+she be enjoying herself so ridiculously? Whole-souled
+enjoyment was not a thing she had been accustomed to<span class="pagenum">[293]</span>
+during the last few years, at any rate since.... Yes, she
+had enjoyed herself more this afternoon than at any time
+since she had been married; but what of it? She attached
+no blame to James; it was not James' fault; nothing was
+anybody's fault. She was taking a little, a very little fun
+where she found it, that was all.</p>
+
+<p>The train pulled up in the yards and thought was discontinued.
+It was resumed a few minutes later, however,
+as they sat in the launch, waiting for the rest of their party
+to join them. She happened to be sitting just opposite to
+Aunt Cecilia, on whom her eyes idly rested. Aunt Cecilia!
+What about Aunt Cecilia? She was wrong, of course!
+She did not understand; she was wrong! Tommy was all
+right....</p>
+
+<p>So sub-consciousness got in its little work, till conscious
+reason sallied forth and routed it. Oh, why, Beatrice asked
+herself, with a mental motion as of throwing off an entangling
+substance, why all this nonsensical worrying about
+a danger that did not exist? What danger was there of
+her&mdash;making a fool of herself over Tommy when.... She
+did not follow that thought out; it was better to leave those
+"when" clauses hanging in the air, when possible.</p>
+
+<p>But Tommy! Poor, good-natured, simple, ineffective
+Tommy!</p>
+
+<p>She resolved to think no longer, but to give herself entirely
+over to what slight pleasure the moment had to offer
+She dressed and dined in good spirits, with a sense of anticipation
+almost childlike in its innocence.</p>
+
+<p>After dinner there was a general exodus to the Griswold.
+From the moment she stepped on to the hotel dock,
+surrounded by its crowd of cheerfully bobbing launches,
+she became infected with the prevailing spirit of gaiety.
+Tommy was right; Americans did know how to enjoy
+themselves!</p>
+
+<p>They made their way up the lawn toward the big brilliant
+hotel. They reached the door of the ballroom and
+stopped a moment. In this interval Beatrice became aware
+of James at her elbow.</p>
+
+<p>"You'd better dance with me first," he said.</p>
+
+<p>They danced two or three times around the room in
+complete silence. Beatrice did not in the least mind dancing
+with James, indeed she rather enjoyed it, he danced
+so well. But why address her in that sepulchral tone; why<span class="pagenum">[294]</span>
+make his invitation sound like a threat; why not at least
+put up a pretense of making duty a pleasure? She was
+conscious of a slight rise of irritation; if James was going
+to be a skeleton at this feast.... She was relieved when
+he handed her over to one of the other men.</p>
+
+<p>But James had no intention of being a skeleton. He
+went back to bed before any of the others, alleging a
+headache. Beatrice learned this indirectly, through
+Harry, and felt rather disappointed. She would have
+preferred to have him remain and enjoy himself; she did
+not bother to explain why. But he was apparently determined
+that nothing should make him enjoy himself.
+James was rather irritating, sometimes. She said as much,
+to Harry, who assented, frowning slightly. She saw a
+chance to get in some of the small work of destiny-fighting.</p>
+
+<p>"He's not been at all natural lately," she said; "I've
+been quite worried about him. I wish you'd watch him
+and tell me what to do about it. I feel rather to blame
+for it, naturally."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, I wouldn't worry," said Harry. "Working in
+the city in summer is hard on any one, of course."</p>
+
+<p>"I'm afraid it's more than that, and I want your help.
+You understand James better than I do, I think."</p>
+
+<p>"No, you're wrong there. I don't understand James at
+all. No one really understands any one else, as a matter
+of fact. We think we do, but we don't. The very simplest
+nature is a regular Cretan labyrinth."</p>
+
+<p>"But a wife ought to be the Theseus of her husband's
+labyrinth, that's the point."</p>
+
+<p>"Perhaps you're right. Here's hoping you don't find
+a minotaur in the middle!"</p>
+
+<p>She didn't worry much about it, however. Tommy cut
+in soon afterward, and they didn't talk about James or
+labyrinths either. Tommy had not danced with her before
+that evening. She was going to say something about that,
+but decided not to. It was too jolly dancing to talk, really.
+Tommy danced very well&mdash;quite as well as James. They
+danced the contemporary American dances for some time
+and then they broke into an old-fashioned whirling English
+waltz; the dance they had both been brought up on. It
+brought memories to the minds of both; they felt old times
+and places creeping back on them.<span class="pagenum">[295]</span></p>
+
+<p>"Do you remember the last time we did this?" asked
+Tommy presently.</p>
+
+<p>"At the Dimchurches', the winter before I came here."</p>
+
+<p>"Didn't last long, though. You were the prettiest gell
+there."</p>
+
+<p>"I suppose I was.&mdash;And you were just Tommy Erskine
+then, and awfully ineligible!"</p>
+
+<p>What an absurd remark to make! If she was going to
+let her tongue run away with her like that, she had better
+keep her mouth shut.</p>
+
+<p>They danced on in silence for some time, rested in the
+cool of a verandah and then danced again. The room was
+already beginning to empty somewhat, making dancing
+more of a pleasure than ever. They danced on till they
+were tired and then sat out again.</p>
+
+<p>"We might take a stroll about," suggested Tommy presently.</p>
+
+<p>They walked down the steps and out on the lawn.
+Presently they came near the windows of the bar, which
+was on the ground floor of the hotel, and stopped to look
+in for a moment. It was a lively scene. The room&mdash;a
+great white bare place&mdash;was filled with men laughing and
+shouting and slapping each other on the shoulder and bellowing
+college songs, all in a thick blue haze of tobacco
+smoke. They were also drinking, and Beatrice noticed
+that when they had drained their glasses they invariably
+threw them carelessly on the floor, adding a new sound
+to the din and fairly paving the room with broken glass.
+Many of them were mildly intoxicated, but none were actually
+drunk; the whole sounded the note of celebration
+in the ballroom strengthened and masculinized. It had
+its effect on Beatrice; it was a pleasure to think that one
+lived in a world where people could enjoy themselves
+thoroughly and uproariously and without becoming bestial
+about it.</p>
+
+<p>"It's really very jolly, isn't it?" she said at last.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, rippin'," assented Tommy.</p>
+
+<p>"Perhaps you'd rather go in there now?"</p>
+
+<p>"No, no. Don't know the fellahs&mdash;I should feel out
+of it. Wiggers was right.&mdash;Besides, I'd rather stay with
+you."</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice wondered if she had intended to make Tommy
+say that.<span class="pagenum">[296]</span></p>
+
+<p>They wandered off through the hotel grounds and saw
+other couples doing the same. Doing rather more, in fact.
+After some search they found an empty bench and sat
+down.</p>
+
+<p>Tommy's education had been in many ways a narrow
+one, but it had equipped him perfectly for making use of
+such situations as the present. He turned about on the
+bench, leaning one arm on its back and facing Beatrice's
+profile squarely.</p>
+
+<p>"Jove!" he said reminiscently. "Haven't done that
+since Oxford."</p>
+
+<p>"What?"</p>
+
+<p>"That." He waved his head in the direction of the well
+populated shadows.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh," answered Beatrice carelessly. The profound
+lack of interest in her tone had its effect.</p>
+
+<p>"I did it to you once, by Jove! Remember?"</p>
+
+<p>"No. You never did, Tommy; you know that perfectly
+well."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, I will now, then!"</p>
+
+<p>He did.</p>
+
+<p>The next moment he rather wished he had not, Beatrice's
+slow smile of contemptuous tolerance made him feel like
+such a child.</p>
+
+<p>"Tommy, it's only you, of course, so it really doesn't
+matter, but if you try to do that again I shall punish you."</p>
+
+<p>Her power over him was as comforting to her as it was
+disconcerting to him. For a moment; after that she felt
+a pang of irritation. The idea of a married woman being
+kissed by a man not her husband was in itself rather revolting,
+and the thought that she was that married woman
+stung. As if that was not enough, the thought came to
+her that she could have stopped Tommy at any moment and
+had not. Had she not, in fact, secretly&mdash;even to herself&mdash;intended
+that he should do that very thing when they first
+sat down? She had used her power for contemptible ends.
+The thought that after all it was only poor ineffectual
+Tommy only increased her sense of degradation. All her
+pleasure had fled.</p>
+
+<p>"Come along, Tommy," she said, rising; "it's time to
+go home."</p>
+
+<p>It was indeed late&mdash;long after twelve. The launch, as
+she remembered it, was to make its last trip back to the<span class="pagenum">[297]</span>
+yacht at half-past; they would be just in time. Tommy
+walked the length of the dock two or three times calling
+"Halcyone! Halcyone!" but there was no response from
+the already dwindling throng of launches. They sat down
+to wait, both moody and silent.</p>
+
+<p>From the very first Beatrice suspected that they had
+been left. It was the natural sequence of the preceding
+episode; that was the way things happened. Her sense of
+disillusionment and irritation increased. The dancing
+had stopped, but the drinking continued; people were wandering
+or lying about the lawn in disgusting states of intoxication.
+What had been a joyous bacchanal had degenerated
+into a horrid saturnalia. Once, as they walked
+down to see if the launch had arrived, a man stumbled by
+them with a lewd remark. Beatrice remained on the
+verandah and made Tommy go down alone after that. His
+mournful "Halcyone!" floated up like the cry of a soul
+from Acheron.</p>
+
+<p>By one o'clock or so it became obvious to everybody that
+they had been forgotten, and Beatrice instructed Tommy to
+hire any boat he could get to take them to the yacht. He
+had a long interview with the chief nautical employee of
+the hotel, who promised to see what he could do. That appeared
+to be singularly little. At last, with altered views
+of the American way of running things, Beatrice went
+down herself and talked to him. He would do what he
+could, but.... It was two o'clock; the dock was deserted.</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice knew he would do nothing and bethought herself
+of the two rooms in the hotel that Aunt Cecilia had
+engaged. Her impression was that they were not being
+used to-night; their party was smaller than it had been
+the night before. She went to the hotel office and asked
+if there were some rooms engaged for Mrs. James Wimbourne
+and if they were already occupied. After some
+research it appeared that there were and they weren't.
+Well, Beatrice and Tommy would take them. The night
+clerk was interested. He understood the situation perfectly
+and refrained from commenting upon their lack of
+baggage.</p>
+
+<p>So Beatrice was shown into one room and Tommy into
+the other, the two parting with a brief good night in the
+corridor.</p>
+
+<p>The first thing Beatrice noticed about the room was that<span class="pagenum">[298]</span>
+there was a communicating door between it and Tommy's
+room. She saw that there was a bolt on her side, however,
+and made sure that it was shut.</p>
+
+<p>Then she rang for a chambermaid and asked for a nightgown
+and toothbrush.</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[299]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_X2">CHAPTER X</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">MR. AND MRS. ALFRED LAMMLE</p>
+
+<p>It was generally looked upon as rather a good joke.
+Aunt Cecilia, of course, was prolific of apologies; the
+launch had made so many trips, and every one thought
+Beatrice and Lord Clairloch had gone at another time;
+there had been no general gathering afterward, they had
+all gone to bed as soon as they reached the yacht, and
+James, as Beatrice knew, had gone to bed early with a
+headache; how clever it was of Beatrice to have thought of
+those two rooms and wasn't it lucky they had been engaged,
+after all, and so forth. But most of the others were
+inclined to be facetious. Breakfast, thanks to their efforts,
+was quite a merry meal.</p>
+
+<p>For the two most nearly concerned the situation was
+almost devoid of embarrassment. They arrived at the
+yacht shortly after eight in a launch they had ordered the
+night before at the hotel, and repaired to their respective
+rooms without even being seen in their evening clothes.
+By the time breakfast was over Beatrice had quite recovered
+from her irritation at Tommy and had even almost
+ceased to blame herself for the events of the previous night.</p>
+
+<p>The party broke up after lunch, the yacht proceeding to
+Bar Harbor and the guests going their various ways.
+Beatrice and James went directly back to New York.
+James was very silent in the train, as silent as he had been
+on the way up, but Beatrice was less inclined to find fault
+with him for that than before. As she looked at him
+quietly reading in the chair opposite her it even occurred
+to her that his silence was preferable to Tommy's companionable
+chirpings, even at their best. And with
+Tommy at his worst, as he had been last night, there was
+no comparison. Oh, yes, she was thoroughly tired of
+Tommy!</p>
+
+<p>Dinner in their apartment passed off almost as quietly
+as the journey, yet quite pleasantly, in Beatrice's opinion.
+The night was cool, and a refreshing breeze blew in from<span class="pagenum">[300]</span>
+the harbor. After the maid had left the room and they
+sat over their coffee and cigarettes, James spoke.</p>
+
+<p>"About last night," he began, and stopped.</p>
+
+<p>"Yes?" said Beatrice encouragingly.</p>
+
+<p>"I thought at first I wouldn't mention it, and then I
+decided it would be rather cowardly not to ... I want to
+say that&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"That what?"</p>
+
+<p>"That I have no objections."</p>
+
+<p>"To what?" Her bewilderment was not feigned.</p>
+
+<p>"To last night! I don't want you to think I'm jealous,
+or unsympathetic, or anything like that.... You are at
+liberty to do what you please&mdash;to get pleasure where you
+can find it. I understand."</p>
+
+<p>"You don't understand at all!" Her manner was still
+one of bewilderment, though possibly other feelings were
+beginning to enter.</p>
+
+<p>"I understand, and shall understand in the future. I
+shan't mention the matter again. Only one thing more&mdash;whenever
+our&mdash;our bargain interferes too much, you can
+end it. I shan't offer any opposition."</p>
+
+<p>She sat frozen in her chair, making no sign that she had
+understood, so he explained in an almost gentle tone of
+voice: "I mean you can divorce me, you know."</p>
+
+<p>"Divorce!"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, very well, just as you like. Of course our marriage
+ceases to be such from now on...."</p>
+
+<p>So unprepared, so at peace with herself and the world
+had she been that it was only now that she fully comprehended
+his meaning. James was accusing her, making the
+great accusation ... James thought that she.... Of
+course, not being the kind of a woman who dissolves in
+tears at that accusation, her first dominant emotion was
+one of anger; an anger sharper than any she had ever felt;
+an anger she would have thought to be impossible to her,
+after all these months of lassitude, all these years of chastening.
+She rose from her chair and made a step toward
+the door; her impulse being to walk out of the room, out
+of the house, out of James' life, without a word. Not a
+word of self-defense; some charges are too vile to merit
+reply!</p>
+
+<p>Then commonsense flared up, conquering anger and
+pride. No, she must not give way to her pride; she must<span class="pagenum">[301]</span>
+act like a sensible being. After all, James was her husband,
+he had some right to accuse if he thought proper;
+the falseness of his accusation did not take away his right
+of explanation; he should be made to see.</p>
+
+<p>Slowly she turned and went back to her place. She sat
+down squarely facing James with both hands on the table
+in front of her, and prepared to talk like a lawyer presenting
+a case. James was watching her quietly, interested,
+perhaps ever so slightly amused, but not in the least moved.</p>
+
+<p>"James, as I understand it, you think that I&mdash;that
+Tommy and I...."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes?"</p>
+
+<p>"Well, you've made a great mistake, that's all. You've
+condemned me without a hearing. You've assumed that
+I was guilty&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, for heaven's sake, let's not talk about being guilty
+or innocent or wronging each other or being faithful to
+each other! Those things have no meaning for us. I'm
+not blaming you&mdash;I've tried to explain that to the best of
+my ability!"</p>
+
+<p>"Very well, then, let us say you have made a mistake in
+facts."</p>
+
+<p>"What do you mean by that?"</p>
+
+<p>"I mean&mdash;what should I mean? That Tommy and I
+are not lovers."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, what then?"</p>
+
+<p>"What then&mdash;?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, what of it? I never said you were, did I? Suppose
+you're not, then; if you're glad, I'm glad, if you're
+sorry, I'm sorry. It doesn't alter our position."</p>
+
+<p>"James, you don't understand!"</p>
+
+<p>"What?"</p>
+
+<p>"When you spoke before you thought that I was&mdash;that I
+had sinned.&mdash;I do consider it a sin; perhaps you'll allow
+me to call it so if it pleases me."</p>
+
+<p>"Certainly." He smiled.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, you were wrong. I haven't."</p>
+
+<p>"All right; I was wrong. You haven't."</p>
+
+<p>"Very well, then!"</p>
+
+<p>"Very well WHAT?"</p>
+
+<p>"James!"</p>
+
+<p>"I'm sorry.&mdash;But what are you driving at? I wasn't
+accusing you, you know; I was simply telling you you were<span class="pagenum">[302]</span>
+free, which you knew before, and offering you more freedom
+if you wanted it. Why this outburst of virtue?"</p>
+
+<p>"James, you are rather brutal!"</p>
+
+<p>"I'm sorry if I seem so; I don't mean to be." He shifted
+his position slightly and went on quite gently with another
+smile: "Beatrice, if you have successfully met a temptation&mdash;or
+what you look upon as a temptation&mdash;I'm sure
+I'm very glad. After all, we are friends, and what pleases
+my friend pleases me, other things being equal. But does
+that pleasing fact in itself alter things between us when,
+from my own selfish point of view, I don't care in the least
+whether you overcame the temptation or not? And does
+it, I ask you, alter facts? Does it make you any less fond
+of Tommy than you are; does it make you as fond of me
+as you are of him?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, James! You understand so little&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Whatever I may understand or not understand I know
+that you spent all of last evening and practically all yesterday
+and a great part of the evening before with Tommy,
+and that you gave no particular evidence of being bored
+... Beatrice, you were happy with him, happy as a child,
+the happiest person in the whole crowd, and you showed
+it, too! Do you mean to say that you've ever, at any time
+in your life, been as happy in my society as all that! No!
+Deny it if you can!"</p>
+
+<p>"James, you are jealous!" The discovery came to her
+like an inspiration, sending a thrill through her. She did
+not stop to analyze it now, but when she came to think it
+over later she realized that there was something in that
+thrill quite distinct from the satisfaction of finding a good
+reply to James' really rather searching (though of course
+quite unfounded) charges.</p>
+
+<p>"There's a good deal of the cave-man left in you, James,
+argue as you may. Do you think any one but a jealous
+man could talk as you are talking now? 'Deny it if you
+can'&mdash;what do you care whether I deny it or not, according
+to what you just said? Oh, James, how are you living
+up to your part of the bargain?"</p>
+
+<p>Her tone was free from rancor or spite, and her words
+had their effect. James was not beyond appreciating the
+justice in what she said. He left his chair and raised his
+hand to his forehead with a gesture of bewilderment.<span class="pagenum">[303]</span></p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Lord, I suppose you're right," he muttered, and
+began pacing the room.</p>
+
+<p>So they remained in silence for some time, she sitting
+quietly in her chair as before and he walking aimlessly up
+and down, desperately trying to adjust himself to this new
+fact. It is strange how people will give themselves away
+when they begin talking; he had been so sure of himself in
+his thoughts; he had gone over such matters so satisfactorily
+in his own head! Beatrice understood his plight and
+respected it; it was not for her, after these last few days,
+to minimize the trials of self-discovery....</p>
+
+<p>The maid popped in at the pantry door and popped out
+again.</p>
+
+<p>"All right, Mary, you can take the things," said Beatrice,
+and led the way into the living room.</p>
+
+<p>There was no air of finality in this move, but the slight
+domestic incident at least had the effect of putting a check
+on introspection and restoring things to a more normal
+footing. Once in the living room&mdash;it was a large high
+room, built as a studio and reaching up two stories&mdash;they
+were both much more at ease; they began to feel capable
+of resuming negotiations, when the time arrived, like two
+normal sensible beings. James threw himself on a couch;
+Beatrice moved about the room, opening a window here,
+turning up a light there, arranging a vase of flowers somewhere
+else. At last, deeming the time ripe, she stopped
+in one of her noiseless trips and spoke down at her husband.</p>
+
+<p>"James, do you realize that you alone, of all the people
+on the yacht, had the remotest suspicion? You remember
+how they all joked about it?"</p>
+
+<p>Oh, the danger of putting things into words! Beatrice's
+voice was as gentle as she could make it; there was even a
+note of casual amusement in it, but in some intangible way,
+merely by reopening the subject vocally, Beatrice laid
+herself open to attack. James' lip curled; he could no
+more keep it from doing so than keep his hair from curling.</p>
+
+<p>"You must remember, however, that they were not fully
+acquainted with the circumstances...."</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice turned away in despair, not angry at James, but
+realizing the inevitability of his reply as well as he himself.
+She sat down in an armchair and leaned her head against<span class="pagenum">[304]</span>
+the back of it; she wished it might not be necessary ever
+to rise from that chair again. The blind hopelessness of
+their situation lay heavy on them both.</p>
+
+<p>James spoke next.</p>
+
+<p>"Beatrice, will you tell me what it's all about? Why
+are we squabbling this way? How can we find out&mdash;what
+on earth are we going to do about it all?"</p>
+
+<p>"I've no more idea than you, James."</p>
+
+<p>"Every time we get talking we always fall back on our
+bargain, as if that was the one reliable thing in the whole
+universe. Always our bargain, our bargain! Beatrice,
+what in Heaven's name is our bargain?"</p>
+
+<p>"Marriage, I take it."</p>
+
+<p>"You know it's more than that&mdash;less than that&mdash;not
+that, anyway! At first it was all quite clear to me; we
+were two people whose lives had been broken and we were
+going to try to mend them as best we might. And as it
+seemed we could do that better together than alone we determined
+to marry. Our marriage was to be a perfectly
+loose, free arrangement, and we were to stick to its terms
+only as long as we could profit by doing so. We were to
+part without ill feeling and with perfect understanding.
+And now, at the first shred of evidence&mdash;no, not even evidence,
+suspicion&mdash;that you want to break away we start
+quarreling like a pair of cats, and I become a monster of
+jealousy, like any comic husband in a play...."</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice's heart sank again at those words; there was no
+mistaking the bitterness in them. That heightened a fear
+she had felt when James had answered her about the people
+on the yacht; James was still smarting with the discovery
+of his jealousy, and the trouble was that the smart was so
+sharp that he might not forgive her for having made him
+feel it. She felt the taste of her little triumph turn to
+ashes in her mouth.</p>
+
+<p>"No, James, no!" she interrupted hurriedly. "You
+weren't, really. That was all nonsense&mdash;we both saw
+that...."</p>
+
+<p>"No, it's true&mdash;I was jealous. Jealous! and for what?
+And what's more, I still am. I can't help it. When I
+think of Tommy, and the boat-race, and all that. Oh, Lord,
+the idiocy of it!"</p>
+
+<p>"I don't particularly mind your being jealous, James,
+if that's any comfort to you."<span class="pagenum">[305]</span></p>
+
+<p>"No! Why on earth should you? You're living up
+to your part of the bargain, and I'm not&mdash;that's what it
+comes to. Oh, it's all my fault, every bit of it&mdash;no doubt
+of that!"</p>
+
+<p>His words gave Beatrice a new sensation, not so much a
+sinking as a steeling of the heart. His self-accusation was
+all very well, but if it also involved trampling on her&mdash;!
+And she did begin to feel trampled upon; much more so
+now than when he had directly accused her.... That was
+odd! Was it possible that she would rather be vilified
+than ignored, even by James?</p>
+
+<p>Meanwhile James was ranting on&mdash;it had not occurred
+to her that it was ranting before, but it did now:&mdash;"There's
+something about the mere institution of marriage,
+I suppose, that makes me feel this way; the old idea of
+possession or something.... You were right about the
+cave-man! It's something stronger than me&mdash;I can't help
+it; but if it's going on like this every time you&mdash;every time
+you speak to another man, it'll make a delightful thing out
+of our married life, won't it? This free and easy bargain
+of ours, this sensible arrangement! Why, it's a thousand
+times harder than an ordinary marriage, just because I
+have nothing to hold you with!...</p>
+
+<p>"Beatrice, we're caught in something. Trapped!
+Don't you feel it? Something you can't see, can't understand,
+only feel gradually pressing in on you, paralyzing
+you, smothering you! There's no use blaming each other
+for it; we're both wound up in it equally; it's something
+far stronger than either of us. A pair of blind mice in a
+trap!..."</p>
+
+<p>He flung himself across the room to an open window and
+stood there, resting his elbows on the sill and gazing out
+over the twinkling lights of the city. Beatrice sat immovable
+in her chair, but her bosom was heaving with the memory
+of certain things he had said. Another revulsion of
+feeling mastered her; she no longer thought of him as
+ranting; she felt his words too strongly for that. A pair
+of blind mice in a trap&mdash;yes, yes, she felt all that, but that
+was not what had stirred her so. What was that he had
+said about having nothing to hold her with?...</p>
+
+<p>She watched him as he stood there trying to cool his tortured
+mind in the evening air. He was tremendously
+worked up; she wondered if he could stand this sort of<span class="pagenum">[306]</span>
+thing physically; she remembered how ill he had been
+looking lately.... She watched him with a new anxiety,
+half expecting to see him topple over backward at any
+moment, overcome by the strain. Then she could help
+him; her mind conjured up a vision of herself running
+into the dining room for some whisky and back to him
+with the glass in her hand; "Here, drink this," and her
+hand under his head.... It was wicked of her to wish
+anything of the kind, of course; but if she could only be
+of some use to him! If he would but think of turning to
+her for help in getting out of his trap! He would not
+find his fellow-mouse cold or unsympathetic.</p>
+
+<p>She could not overcome her desire to find out if any such
+idea was in his mind. She went over to him and touched
+him gently on the shoulder.</p>
+
+<p>"James&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"No, not now, please; I want to think."</p>
+
+<p>And his shoulder remained a piece of tweed under her
+hand; he did not even bother to shake her off.</p>
+
+<p>She sat down again to wait.</p>
+
+<p>When at last he left the window it was to sit down by a
+lamp and take up a book. That was not a bad sign, in
+itself, as long as he made his reading an interlude and not
+an ending. But as she sat watching him it became more
+and more evident that he regarded their interview as
+closed. And so they sat stolidly for some time, James determined
+that nothing should lead him into another humiliating
+exhibition of feeling and Beatrice determined that
+whatever happened she would make him stop ignoring her.
+And though she was at first merely hurt by his indifference
+she presently began to feel her determination strengthened
+by something else, something which, starting as hardly
+more than natural feminine pique shortly grew into irritation,
+then into anger of a slow-burning type and lastly, as
+her eyes tired of seeing him sit there so unaffectedly absorbed
+in his reading, into something for the moment approaching
+active dislike. We all know what hell hath
+no fury like, and Beatrice, as she fed her mind on the
+thought of how often he had insulted and repelled and
+above all ignored her that evening, began to consider herself
+very much in the light of a woman scorned.</p>
+
+<p>"Is that all, James?" she ventured at length.<span class="pagenum">[307]</span></p>
+
+<p>He put down his book and looked up with the manner of
+one making a great effort to be reasonable.</p>
+
+<p>"What do you want, Beatrice?"</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice would have given a good deal to be able to say
+that what she really wanted was that he should take her to
+him as he had that day at Bar Harbor and never once
+since, but as she could not she made a substitute answer.</p>
+
+<p>"We can't leave things as they are, can we?"</p>
+
+<p>"Why not? Haven't we said too much already?"</p>
+
+<p>"Too much for peace, but not enough for satisfaction.
+We can't leave things hanging in the air this way."</p>
+
+<p>"Very well, then, if you insist. How shall we begin?"</p>
+
+<p>"Well, suppose we begin with our bargain&mdash;see what its
+terms are and whether we can live up to them and whether
+it's for our benefit to do so."</p>
+
+<p>"All right. What do you consider the terms of our
+bargain to be?"</p>
+
+<p>They were both talking in the measured tones of people
+determined to keep control over themselves at all costs.
+They looked at each other warily, as though guarding
+against being maneuvered into a betrayal of temper or
+feeling.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, in the first place, I assume that we want to
+present a good front to the world. Bold and united. We
+want to prevent people from knowing...."</p>
+
+<p>"Certainly."</p>
+
+<p>"And if we give the impression of being happy together
+we've gone a good way toward that end."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, that's logical."</p>
+
+<p>"Well&mdash;?"</p>
+
+<p>"What?"</p>
+
+<p>"It's your turn now, isn't it?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, no; you've begun so well you'd better go on."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, I've only got one more idea on the subject, and
+that is just tentative&mdash;a sort of suggestion." She sat
+down on the sofa by him and strove to make her manner a
+little more intimate without becoming mawkish or intrusive.
+"It has occurred to me that we haven't given that
+impression very much in the past, and I think the reason
+for that may be that we&mdash;well, that we don't work together
+enough. Does it ever occur to you, James, that we don't
+understand each other very well? Not nearly as much as<span class="pagenum">[308]</span>
+we might, I sometimes think, without&mdash;without having to
+pretend anything. We know each other so slightly!
+Sometimes it gives me the oddest feeling, to think I am
+married to you, who are stranger to me than almost any
+of my friends...."</p>
+
+<p>She feared the phrasing of that thought was a little unfortunate,
+and broke off suddenly with: "But perhaps
+I'm boring you?"</p>
+
+<p>"No, no&mdash;I'm very much interested. How do you think
+we ought to go about it?"</p>
+
+<p>"It's difficult to say, of course. How do you think? I
+should suggest, for one thing, that we should be less shy
+with each other&mdash;less afraid of each other. Especially
+about things that concern us. Even if it is hard to talk
+about such things, I think we ought to. We should be
+more frank with each other, James."</p>
+
+<p>"As we have been this evening, for example?"</p>
+
+<p>The cynical note rang in his voice, the note she most
+dreaded.</p>
+
+<p>"No, I didn't mean that, necessarily. I don't mind
+saying, though, that I think even our talking to-night has
+been a good thing. It has cleared the air, you know. See
+where we are now!"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, and it's cleared you too. But what about me?"</p>
+
+<p>"I don't understand."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, you've come out of it all right! You've behaved
+yourself, vindicated yourself, done nothing you didn't expect
+to, nothing you have reason to be ashamed of afterward.
+I have! I haven't been able to open my mouth
+without making a fool of myself in one way or another...."</p>
+
+<p>"Only because you're overtired, James...."</p>
+
+<p>"I've said things I never thought myself capable of
+saying, and I've found I thought things that no decent
+man should think. It was an interesting experience."</p>
+
+<p>"James, my dear, don't be so bitter! I'm not blaming
+you. I can forget all that!"</p>
+
+<p>She laid her hand on his knee and the action, together
+with the quality of her voice, had a visible effect on him.
+He paused a moment and looked at her curiously. When
+he spoke again it was without bitterness.</p>
+
+<p>"That's awfully decent of you, Beatrice, but the trouble
+is I can't forget. Those things stay in the memory, and<span class="pagenum">[309]</span>
+they're not desirable companions. And as talking, the
+kind of frank talking you suggest, seems to bring them
+out in spite of me, I think perhaps we'd better not have
+much of that kind of talk. It seems to me that the less
+we talk the better we shall get on."</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice was silent a moment in her turn. She had not
+brought him quite to where she wanted him, but she had
+brought him nearer than he had been before. She resolved
+to let things stay as they were.</p>
+
+<p>"Very well, James," she said, leaning back by his side;
+"we won't talk if you don't want to. About those things,
+that is. There are plenty of other things we can talk
+about. And let's go to places more together and do things
+more together. I see no reason why we shouldn't get on
+very well together. After all, I do enjoy being with you,
+when you're in a good mood, more than with any one else
+I know&mdash;that I could be with&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Then why&mdash;Oh, Lord!" He stopped himself and
+sank forward in despair with his head on his hands.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, go on and say it."</p>
+
+<p>"No, no."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes. It's better that way."</p>
+
+<p>"I was going to say, why did you appear to enjoy yourself
+with Tommy so much more than&mdash;Oh, it's no use,
+Beatrice! I can't help it&mdash;it's beyond me!"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, James!"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, that's just it! It's the devil in me!"</p>
+
+<p>"When that was all over, James!"</p>
+
+<p>"All over! Then there was something!... Oh, good
+<i>Lord</i>! We can't go through it all over again!"</p>
+
+<p>"James, I meant that you were all over feeling that&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, yes, I know you did, and I thought you meant the
+other and said that, and of course I had no right to because
+of what we are, and so forth, over and over again! Round
+and round and round, like a mouse in a trap! Caught
+again!..."</p>
+
+<p>He got up and walked across the room once or twice,
+steadying himself with one last great effort. In a moment
+he stopped dead in front of her.</p>
+
+<p>"See here, Beatrice!"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes?"</p>
+
+<p>"It can't happen again, do you see? It's got to stop
+right here and now! I can't stand it&mdash;call it weak of me<span class="pagenum">[310]</span>
+if you like, but I can't. It'll drive me stark mad. We
+are not going to talk about these things again, do you see?"</p>
+
+<p>"What sort of things?"</p>
+
+<p>"Anything! Anything that can possibly bring these
+things into my head and make a human fiend of me. And
+you're not to tempt me to talk of them, either. Do you
+promise?"</p>
+
+<p>"I promise anything that's reasonable&mdash;anything that
+will help you. But do you intend to let this&mdash;this weakness
+end everything&mdash;spoil our whole life?"</p>
+
+<p>"Spoil! What on earth is there to spoil? We've got on
+well enough up to now, haven't we? Well, we'll go back
+to where we were, where we were this morning! And
+we'll stay there, please God, as long as we two shall live!
+You're free, absolutely free, from now on! I shan't question
+anything you may care to do from this moment, I
+promise you!"</p>
+
+<p>She remained silent a moment, awed in spite of herself
+by the fervency of his words. She was cruelly disappointed
+in him. She had made so many attempts, she had
+humbled herself so often, she had suffered his rebuffs so
+many times and she had brought him at one time in spite
+of himself so near to a happier state of things that his one-minded
+insistence on his own humiliation seemed to her
+indescribably petty and selfish. His jealousy, his vile,
+rudimentary dog-in-the-manger jealousy; that was what he
+couldn't get over; that was what he could not forgive her
+for! What a small thing that was to resent, in view of
+what she herself had so steadfastly refrained from resenting!...
+However, since he wished it, there was nothing
+more to be done. She could be as cold and unemotional
+as he, if it came to the test.</p>
+
+<p>"Then you definitely give up every effort toward a better
+understanding?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes!"</p>
+
+<p>"And you prefer, once for all, to be strangers rather
+than friends?"</p>
+
+<p>"Strangers don't squabble!"</p>
+
+<p>"Very well, then, James," she said with a quiet smile,
+"strangers let it be. I daresay it's better so, after all. I
+shouldn't wonder if you found me quite as good and thorough
+a stranger, from now on, as you could desire. It
+was foolish of me to talk to you as I did."<span class="pagenum">[311]</span></p>
+
+<p>"No, no&mdash;don't get blaming yourself. It's such a cheap
+form of satisfaction."</p>
+
+<p>She stood looking at him a moment with coldly glittering
+eyes.</p>
+
+<p>"It's quite true," she repeated; "I was a fool. I was
+a fool to imagine that you and I could have anything in
+common. Ever. Well, nothing can very well put us
+farther apart than we are now. There's a certain comfort
+in that, perhaps."</p>
+
+<p>"There is."</p>
+
+<p>"At last we agree. Husbands and wives should always
+agree. Good-night, James."</p>
+
+<p>"Good-night,"</p>
+
+<p>He watched her as she glided from the room, so slim and
+beautiful and disdainful. Perhaps a shadow of regret for
+her passed across his mind, a thought of what a woman,
+what a wife, even, she might have been under other circumstances;
+but it did not go far into him. Things were
+as they were; he had long since given up bothering about
+them, trying only to think and feel as little as possible.
+He took up his book again and read far into the night.</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[312]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_XI2">CHAPTER XI</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">HESITANCIES AND TEARS</p>
+
+<p>Thomas Mackintosh Drummond Erskine,
+by courtesy known as Viscount Clairloch, was not a
+remarkably complicated person. His life was governed by
+a few broad and well-tried principles which he found, as
+many had found before him, covered practically all the
+contingencies he was called upon to deal with. One
+wanted things, and if possible, one got them. That was the
+first and great commandment of nature, and the second was
+akin to it; one did nothing contrary to a thing generally
+known as decency. This was a little more complicated,
+for though decency was a natural thing&mdash;one always
+wanted to be decent, other things being equal&mdash;it had a
+rather difficult technique which had to be mastered by a
+long slow process. If any one had asked Tommy how this
+technique was best obtained he would undoubtedly have
+answered, by a course of six years at either Eton, Harrow
+or Winchester, followed by three years at one of half a
+dozen colleges he could name at Oxford or Cambridge.</p>
+
+<p>Occasionally, of course&mdash;though not often&mdash;the paths of
+desire and decency diverged, and this divergence was
+sometimes provocative of unpleasantness. Treated sensibly,
+however, the problem could always be brought to an
+easy and simple solution. Tommy found that in such a
+case it was always possible to do one of two things; persuade
+oneself either that the desire was compatible with
+decency or that it did not exist at all. Either of those
+simple feats of dialectic accomplished, everything worked
+out quite beautifully. It is a splendid thing to have been
+educated at Harrow and Christchurch.</p>
+
+<p>Ever since he arrived in America it had been evident to
+Tommy that he wanted Beatrice. He did not want her
+with quite the absorbing intensity that would make him one
+of the great lovers of history&mdash;Harrow and Christchurch
+decreed that one should go fairly easy on wanting a married<span class="pagenum">[313]</span>
+woman&mdash;but still he wanted her, for him, very much
+indeed. Up to the night of the boat-race everything had
+gone swimmingly. Then, indeed, he had received a setback;
+a setback which came very near making him abandon
+further pursuit and proceed forthwith to those portions
+of America which lie to the west of Upper Montclair. If
+Aunt Cecilia had not casually invited him to accompany
+the yacht on its trip round Cape Cod he might have started
+the very next morning. But he went to Bar Harbor, and
+before he left there it had become plain to him that he
+could probably have what he had so long desired.</p>
+
+<p>Everything had favored him. Aunt Cecilia had made
+it pleasant for him for a while, and when the time came
+when Aunt Cecilia might be expected to become tired of
+making it pleasant for him others came forward who were
+more than willing to do as much. Tommy was a desirable
+as well as an agreeable guest; he looked well in the papers.
+With the result that he was still playing about Bar Harbor
+at the end of July, at which time Beatrice, looking quite
+lovely and wan and heat-fagged, came, unattended by her
+husband, to be the chief ornament of Aunt Cecilia's spacious
+halls.</p>
+
+<p>And how Beatrice had changed since he last saw her!
+She was as little the cold-eyed, contemptuous Artemis of
+that night in New London as she was the fresh-cheeked
+d&eacute;butante of his early knowledge; and she was infinitely
+more attractive, he thought, than either of them. She had
+a new way of looking up at him when he came to greet
+her; she was willing to pass long hours in his sole company;
+she depended on him for amusement, she relied on
+him in various little ways; and more important, she soon
+succeeded in making him forget his fear of her. For the
+first time in his knowledge of her he had the feeling of
+being fully as strong as she, fully as self-controlled, as
+firm-willed. This was in reality but another symptom of
+her power over him, but he never recognized it as such.</p>
+
+<p>Appetite, as we know, increases with eating, and every
+sign of favor that came his way fanned the almost extinguished
+flame of Tommy's desire into renewed warmth
+and vigor. Before many weeks it had grown into something
+warmer and more vigorous than anything he had
+ever experienced, till at last his gentle bosom became the
+battlefield of the dreaded Armageddon between desire and<span class="pagenum">[314]</span>
+decency. It wasn't really dreaded, in his case, because
+he was not the sort of person who is capable of living very
+far ahead of the present moment, and perhaps, in view of
+the strength of both the contending forces, the term Armageddon
+may be an exaggeration; but it was the most serious
+internal conflict that the good-natured viscount (by courtesy)
+ever knew.</p>
+
+<p>But the struggle, though painful, was short-lived. After
+going to bed for five evenings in succession fearing that
+care would drive sleep from his pillow that night, and
+sleeping soundly from midnight till eight-thirty, the illuminating
+thought came to him that, owing to the truly
+Heaven-made laws of the country in which he then was,
+the conflict practically did not exist. In America people
+divorced; no foolish stigma was attached to the process, as
+at home; it was easy, it was respectable, it was done! He
+blessed his stars; what a marvelous stroke of luck that
+Beatrice had married an American and not an Englishman!
+He thought of the years of carking secrecy through
+which such things are dragged in England, and contrasted
+it with the neat despatch of the Yankee system. A few
+weeks of legal formalities, tiresome, of course, but trivial
+in view of the object, and then&mdash;a triumphant return to
+native shores, closing in a long vista of years with Beatrice
+at his side as Lady Clairloch and eventually as Lady
+Strathalmond! Sweet ultimate union of desire and decency!
+He gave thanks to Heaven in his fervent, simple-souled
+way.</p>
+
+<p>Nothing remained save to persuade Beatrice to take the
+crucial step. Well, there would be little trouble about
+that, judging by the way things were going....</p>
+
+<p>As for Beatrice, she was at first much too exhausted, both
+physically and mentally, to think much about Tommy one
+way or the other. That last month in New York had been
+a horribly enervating one, both meteorologically and domestically
+speaking. Scarcely had she been able to bring
+herself to face the impossibility of winning her husband's
+affection when the hot weather came on, the crushing heat
+of July, that burned every ounce of a desire to live out of
+one and made the whole world as great a desert as one's
+own home.... It was James who had suggested her going
+to Aunt Cecilia's&mdash;"because he didn't want me to die on
+his hands," Beatrice idly reflected, as she lay at last in a<span class="pagenum">[315]</span>
+hammock on the broad verandah, luxuriating in the sea
+breeze that made a light wrap necessary.</p>
+
+<p>Then Tommy came back to the Wimbournes' to stay,
+and a regular daily routine was begun. Beatrice remained
+in her room all the morning, while Tommy played golf.
+They met at lunch and strolled or drove or watched people
+play tennis together in the afternoon. After dinner Beatrice
+generally ensconced herself with rugs on the verandah
+while Tommy buzzed about fetching footstools or cushions
+or talked to her or simply sat by her side. After a while
+she found that Tommy was quite good company, if you
+didn't take him seriously. Tommy&mdash;she supposed this
+was the real foundation of her liking for him&mdash;was her
+countryman. He knew things, he understood things, he
+looked at things as she had been brought up to look at
+them. Tommy, to take a small instance, never stifled a
+smile when she used such words as caliber or schedule, pronouncing
+them in the English way&mdash;the proper way, when
+all was said and done, for was not England the home and
+source of the English language?</p>
+
+<p>A few days later, as returning health quickened her perceptions,
+she realized that another thing that made Tommy
+agreeable was the fact that he strove honestly to please
+her. A pleasant change, at least!... She was well
+enough to be bitter again, it seemed. Not only was Tommy
+attentive in such matters as rugs and cushions, but he made
+definite efforts to fit his speech and his moods to her. He
+found that she liked to talk about England and he was at
+some pains to read up information about current events
+there, a thing he had not bothered much about since his
+departure from home. She had only to ask a leading
+question about a friend at home and he would gossip for a
+whole evening about their mutual acquaintance.</p>
+
+<p>Presently she began to discover&mdash;or fancy she discovered&mdash;hitherto
+unsounded depths&mdash;or what were, comparatively
+speaking, depths&mdash;in Tommy's character.</p>
+
+<p>"I say, how jolly the stars are to-night," he observed
+as he took his place by her one evening. "Never see the
+stars, somehow, but I think of tigers. Ever since I went
+to India. Went off on a tiger hunt, you know, out in the
+wilds somewhere, and we had to sleep out on a sort of
+grassy place with a fire in the middle of us, you know, to
+keep the beasties off. Well, I'd never seen a tiger, outside<span class="pagenum">[316]</span>
+of the zoo, and I had 'em on the brain. I had a dream
+about meeting one, and it got so bad that I woke up at last
+with a shout, thinkin' a tiger was standin' just over me
+with his two dev'lish old eyes staring down into mine!
+Then I saw it was only two bright stars, rather close together.
+But I never can see stars now without thinkin'
+of tiger's eyes, though I met a tiger quite close on soon
+after that and his eyes weren't like that, at all....</p>
+
+<p>"Rather sad, isn't it?" he added after a moment.</p>
+
+<p>"Sad? Why?"</p>
+
+<p>"Well, other people have something better than an old
+beast's blinkers to compare stars to. Women's eyes, you
+know, and all that."</p>
+
+<p>There was something in the way he said this that made
+Beatrice reply "Oh, rot, Tommy!" even as she laughed.
+But his mood entertained her.</p>
+
+<p>"Tommy," she went on, "I believe you'd try, even so,
+to say something about my eyes and stars if I let you!
+Though anything less like stars couldn't well be imagined....
+Honestly now, Tommy, do my eyes look more like stars
+or tiger's eyes?"</p>
+
+<p>"Well," answered Tommy with laborious truthfulness,
+"I suppose they really <i>look</i> more like tiger's eyes. But
+they make me <i>think</i> of stars," he added, with a perfect
+burst of romance and poetry.</p>
+
+<p>"And stars make you think of tiger's eyes! Oh, my
+poor Tommy!"</p>
+
+<p>"Well, they're dev'lish good-lookin'&mdash;you ought to feel
+jolly complimented!" He wanted to go on and say something
+about her acting like a tiger, but did not feel quite
+up to it, at such short notice. But they laughed companionably
+together.</p>
+
+<p>Yes, Tommy really amused her. There was much to like
+in the simplicity and kindliness of his nature; Harry had
+not been proof against it. And there was no harm in him.
+Beatrice could imagine no more innocuous pleasure than
+talking with Tommy, even if the conversation ran to eyes&mdash;her
+eyes. She was not bothered this time by any nervous
+reflections on what fields of amusement were suited to the
+innocent ramblings of a young wife. And if she was inclined
+to emphasize the pleasant part of her intercourse
+and minimize its danger&mdash;if indeed there was any&mdash;the
+reason was not far to seek. Even if things went to the<span class="pagenum">[317]</span>
+last resort, what of it? What had she to lose&mdash;now?</p>
+
+<p>Nothing. Not one earthly thing. She was free to glean
+where she could.</p>
+
+<p>James would be glad&mdash;as glad as any one.</p>
+
+<p>Though of course it had not come to that yet....</p>
+
+<p>It was at about this time, however, that Tommy determined
+it should come to that. Just that. And though he
+was not one to rush matters, he decided that the sooner it
+came the better. He learned that James was to come up
+for a fortnight at the end of August&mdash;James' vacation had
+for some reason dwindled to that length of time&mdash;and he
+desired, in some obscure way, to have it decided before
+James was actually in the house. But the way had to be
+paved for the great suggestion and Tommy was not perceptibly
+quicker at paving than at other intellectual pursuits.</p>
+
+<p>One evening, however, he resolved to be a man of action
+and at least give an indication of the state of his own heart.
+With almost devilish craft he decided beforehand on the
+exact way he would bring the conversation round to the
+desired point.</p>
+
+<p>"I say, Beatrice," he began when they were settled in
+their customary place.</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, Tommy?"</p>
+
+<p>"How long do you suppose your aunt wants me kickin'
+my heels about here?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, as long as you want, I suppose. She hasn't told
+me she was tired of you."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, but ..."</p>
+
+<p>"But what?"</p>
+
+<p>"I've been here a goodish while, you know. First the
+boat-race, then the cruise up here, then most of July and
+now most of August.... Stiffish, wot?... Don't want
+to wear out my welcome, you know...."</p>
+
+<p>Oh, but it was hard! Why on earth couldn't she do the
+obvious thing and say, "Why do you want to leave,
+Tommy?" or something like that? She seemed determined
+not to give him the least help, so he plunged desperately
+on.</p>
+
+<p>"Not that I <i>want</i> to go, you know. Jolly pleasant here,
+and all that&mdash;rippin' golf, rippin' people, rippin' time
+altogether...."</p>
+
+<p>He felt himself perspiring profusely.<span class="pagenum">[318]</span></p>
+
+<p>"Beatrice, do you know <i>why</i> I don't want to go?" he
+burst forth.</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice remained silent, lightly tapping the stone balustrade
+with her foot. When she spoke it was with perfect
+self-possession.</p>
+
+<p>"You're not going to be tiresome again, are you,
+Tommy?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes!" said Tommy fervently.</p>
+
+<p>Again she paused. "Are you really fond of me,
+Tommy?" she asked unexpectedly.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Lord, yes!"</p>
+
+<p>"How fond?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh ... frightf'ly!... What do you mean, how
+fond? You know! Do you want me to throw myself into
+the sea?... I would," he added in a low voice.</p>
+
+<p>"I didn't mean how much, exactly, but in what way?
+What do you mean by it all?"</p>
+
+<p>"What's the use of asking me? You know!"</p>
+
+<p>"No, I don't think I do.... Are you fond enough of
+me to desire everything for my good?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes!"</p>
+
+<p>"Even at the sacrifice of yourself?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes!"</p>
+
+<p>"Well, don't you think it's for my ultimate good as a
+married woman that you shouldn't try to make love to
+me?"</p>
+
+<p>"What the&mdash;Beatrice, don't torment me!"</p>
+
+<p>"I don't want to, but you must see how impossible it is,
+Tommy. You can't go on talking this way to me."</p>
+
+<p>"Why not?"</p>
+
+<p>"Why, because I'm <i>married</i>, obviously! Such things
+are&mdash;well, they simply aren't done!"</p>
+
+<p>Tommy waited a moment. "Do you mean to say, Beatrice...."</p>
+
+<p>"What?"</p>
+
+<p>"Can you truthfully tell me that you&mdash;that you aren't
+fond of me too? Just a little?"</p>
+
+<p>"Certainly!"</p>
+
+<p>"Rot! Utter, senseless rot! You know it isn't so!&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Hush, Tommy! People will hear."</p>
+
+<p>"Let 'em hear, then. Beatrice!" he went on more
+quietly; "there's no use trying to take me in by that
+'never knew' rot. Of course you knew, of course you<span class="pagenum">[319]</span>
+cared. Why've you sat talking with me here, night after
+night, why've you been so uncommon jolly nice&mdash;nicer 'n
+you ever were before? Why did you ever let me get to
+this point?&mdash;Don't pretend you couldn't help it,
+either!" He paused a moment. "Why did you let me
+kiss you that night?"</p>
+
+<p>That shaft hit. She lost her head a little, and fell back
+on an old feminine ruse.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Tommy, you've no right to bring that up against
+me!" she said, with a little flurried break in her voice.</p>
+
+<p>Tommy's obvious answer was a quiet "Why not?" but
+he was not the kind who can give the proper answer at such
+moments. He was much more affected by Beatrice's evident
+perturbation than Beatrice was by his home truth,
+and was much slower in recovering.</p>
+
+<p>"I'm sorry, Beatrice," he went on again after a short
+silence, "but I&mdash;well, dash it all, I <i>care</i>, you know!"</p>
+
+<p>"You mustn't, Tommy."</p>
+
+<p>"But what if I jolly well can't help myself? After all,
+you know, you must give a fellah a chance. Of course, I
+want you to be happy, and I'd do anything I could to make
+you so, but&mdash;well, there it is! I'm <i>fond</i> of you, Beatrice!"</p>
+
+<p>She could smile quite calmly at him now, and did so.
+"Very well, Tommy, you're fond of me. Suppose we
+leave it there for the present.&mdash;And now I think I shall
+go in. It's getting chilly out here."</p>
+
+<p>Evidently it had not quite come to <i>that</i> with her.</p>
+
+<p>Nor did it, for all Tommy could do, before James' arrival
+a few days later. Aunt Selina came with him; she had
+elected to spend the summer at her Vermont house, and
+found it, as she explained to her hostess, "too warm. The
+interior, you know." With which she closed her lips and
+gave the impression of charitably refraining from, richly
+deserved censure of the interior's shortcomings. Aunt
+Cecilia nodded with the most perfect understanding, and
+said she supposed it must have been warm in New York
+also.</p>
+
+<p>James allowed that it had.</p>
+
+<p>Aunt Selina said she had read in the paper that August
+was likely to be as hot as July there.</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice, just in order to be on the safe side, said that
+she felt like Rather a Brute.</p>
+
+<p>Tommy, with a vague idea of vindicating her, remarked<span class="pagenum">[320]</span>
+that some days had been jolly warm in Bar Harbor, too.</p>
+
+<p>Aunt Cecilia, politely reproachful, said that he had no
+idea what an American summer could be, and that anyway,
+the nights had been cool.</p>
+
+<p>Tommy said oh yes, rather.</p>
+
+<p>Inwardly he was chafing. He felt his case lamentably
+weakened by the presence of James. He had not bargained
+for an abduction from under the husband's very
+nose. The thought of what he would have to go through
+now made him feel quite uncomfortable and even a little,
+just a little, suspicious that the case of decency had not been
+decisively settled. Still, there was nothing to do but stay
+and go through with it.</p>
+
+<p>But James, if he had but known it, was in reality his
+most powerful ally. Continued residence in sweltering
+New York had not tended to soften James, either in his
+attitude to the world in general or in his feeling toward
+his wife in particular. He now adopted a policy of outward
+affection. "When others were present he lost no opportunity
+of elaborately fetching and carrying for Beatrice,
+of making plans for her benefit, of rejoicing in her
+returning health. As she evinced a fondness for the evening
+air he made it a rule to sit with her on the verandah
+every night after dinner. Tommy could not very well oust
+him from this pleasant duty, and writhed beneath his calm
+exterior every time he watched them go out together."</p>
+
+<p>He need not have worried, however. The contrast of
+James' warmth in public to his wholly genuine coldness in
+private, together with the change from Tommy's sympathetic
+chatter to James' deathly silence on these evening
+sojourns had a much more potent effect on Beatrice than
+anything Tommy could have accomplished actively.
+James literally seemed to freeze the blood in Beatrice's
+veins. She became subject to fits of shivering, she required
+twice as many wraps as before; she began going to
+bed much earlier than previously. Ten o'clock now invariably
+found her in her room.</p>
+
+<p>One evening James was suddenly called upon to go out
+to dinner with Aunt Cecilia and fill an empty place at a
+friend's table, and Tommy took his place on the verandah.
+Tommy knew that this would be his best chance, possibly
+his last. The stars burned brightly in a clear warm sky,
+but there was no talk of tiger's eyes now. There was no<span class="pagenum">[321]</span>
+talk at all for a long time; the pleasure of sheer propinquity
+was too great. Beatrice fairly luxuriated. She
+wondered why Tommy's silence affected her so differently
+from that of James....</p>
+
+<p>"Beatrice," began Tommy, but she switched him off.</p>
+
+<p>"No, please don't try to talk now, Tommy, there's a
+dear."</p>
+
+<p>They were silent again. The night stretched hugely before
+and above them; it was very still. A little night-breeze
+arose and touched their cheeks, but its message was
+only peace. Land and sea alike slept; not a sound reached
+them save the occasional clatter of distant wheels. Only
+the sky was awake, with its hundreds of winking eyes. Oh,
+these stars! Beatrice knew them so well. Antares, glowing
+like a dying coal, sank and fell below the hills, leaving
+the bright clusters of Sagittarius in dominion over the
+southern heavens. Fomalhaut rose in the southeast, shining
+with a dull chaotic luster, now green, now red. Fomalhaut,
+she remembered, was the southernmost of all the
+great stars visible in northern lands; its reign was the
+shortest of them all. And yet who could tell what might
+happen before that star finally fell from sight in the
+autumn?...</p>
+
+<p>"Beatrice!" at length began Tommy again, and this
+time she could not stop him. "Beatrice, we can't go on
+like this. We can't do it, I say, we can't! Don't you feel
+it?... That husband of yours.... Oh, Beatrice, I <i>can't</i>
+stand by and watch it any longer!"</p>
+
+<p>He caught hold of her hand and clasped it between his.
+It remained limp there, press it as he would.... Then he
+saw that she was crying.</p>
+
+<p>He flung himself on his knees beside her, covering her
+hand with kisses. There was no conflict in him now, only
+a raging thirst for consummation. Harrow and Christchurch
+were thrown to the winds.</p>
+
+<p>"Beatrice," he whispered, "come away with me out of
+this damned place&mdash;away from the whole damned lot of
+them&mdash;frozen, church-going rotters! Let <i>me</i> take care of
+you! I understand, Beatrice, I know how it is! Only
+come with me! Leave it all to me&mdash;no trouble, no worry,
+everything all right! <i>He'll</i> be glad enough to free you&mdash;trust
+him! Oh, dear Beatrice...."</p>
+
+<p>He bent close over her, uttering all sort of impassioned<span class="pagenum">[322]</span>
+foolishnesses. He kissed her, too, not once, but again and
+again, and with things he scarcely knew for kisses, so unlike
+were they to the lightly given and taken pledges of
+other days.</p>
+
+<p>And Beatrice was limp in his arms, as little able to stop
+him as to stop her tears.</p>
+
+<p>"Beatrice, we must go on <i>always</i> like this! We <i>can't</i>
+go back now, we can't let things go on as they were! Come
+away with me, Beatrice, to-night, now...."</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice thought how, only a year ago, not far from this
+very place, some one had used almost those very words to
+her, and the thought made her weep afresh. But her tears
+were not all tears of misery.</p>
+
+<p>At last she dried her eyes and pushed him gently away.</p>
+
+<p>"No, no more, Tommy&mdash;dear Tommy, you must stop.
+Really, Tommy! I don't know how I could let you go on
+this way&mdash;I seem to be so weak and silly these days....
+I must take hold of myself...."</p>
+
+<p>"But, Beatrice&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"No, Tommy&mdash;not any more now. I know, I know, dear,
+but it can't go on any more. Now," she added with a momentary
+relapse of weakness. Then she pulled herself together
+again. "You must be perfectly quiet and good,
+now, Tommy, if you stay here. I've got to have a chance
+to get over this before we go in. It's very important&mdash;there's
+a lot at stake. Just sit there and don't speak a
+word. You can help me that way."</p>
+
+<p>They sat quietly together for some time. At last Beatrice
+rose.</p>
+
+<p>"I think I'll go," she said. "I shall be all right now."</p>
+
+<p>"But we can't leave it like this!" protested Tommy.
+"Beatrice, you can't go up there now...."</p>
+
+<p>"Can't I? I'm going, though."</p>
+
+<p>"No, you've got to give me an answer, Beatrice!"</p>
+
+<p>She turned to him for a moment before walking off. "I
+can't tell you anything now, Tommy. I don't know. Do
+you see? I honestly don't know. You'll have to wait."</p>
+
+<p>The hall seemed rather dark as they came into it; the
+others must have gone to bed. They locked doors and
+turned out lights and walked upstairs in the dark. They
+parted at the top with a whispered good-night, almost conspiratorial
+in effect,<span class="pagenum">[323]</span>
+Beatrice found James still dressed and sitting under a
+droplight, reading. He put down his book as she entered
+and looked at his watch, which lay on the table by him.</p>
+
+<p>"After half-past twelve," he said. "Quite a pleasant
+evening."</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice made no observation.</p>
+
+<p>"The air has done you good," he went on. "We shall
+soon see the roses in your cheeks again."</p>
+
+<p>"If you have anything to say, James, perhaps you'd better
+go ahead and say it."</p>
+
+<p>"I? Oh, dear no! Any words of mine would be quite
+superfluous. The situation is complete as it is."</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice merely waited. She knew she would not wait in
+vain, nor did she.</p>
+
+<p>"Only, after this perhaps you'll save yourself the
+trouble of making up elaborate denials. You and your
+Tommy!..."</p>
+
+<p>He got up and started walking up and down the room
+with slow, measured steps. To Beatrice, still sitting quietly
+on the edge of her bed, the fall of his feet on the carpeted
+floor sounded like the inexorable tick of fate for once made
+audible to human ears. The greatest things hung in the
+balance at this moment; his next words would decide both
+their destinies for the rest of their mortal life. She thought
+she knew what they would be, but if there were to sound in
+them the faintest echo of a regret for older and better
+times she was ready, even at this last moment, to throw her
+whole being into an effort to help restore them. Tommy's
+passionate whisper still echoed in her ears, Tommy's kisses
+were scarcely cold upon her cheeks, but Tommy was not in
+her heart.</p>
+
+<p>At last James spoke. At the first sound of his voice
+Beatrice knew.</p>
+
+<p>"I shall receive a telegram calling me back to town to-morrow,
+in time for me to catch the evening train...."</p>
+
+<p>She was so occupied with the ultimate meaning of his
+words that their immediate meaning escaped her. She
+raised her eyes in question.</p>
+
+<p>"You're going away to-morrow? Why?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes. I prefer not to remain here and watch it going
+on under my very eyes. It's a silly prejudice, no doubt,
+but you must pardon it...."<span class="pagenum">[324]</span></p>
+
+<p>He continued his pacing, keeping his eyes fixed on the
+floor in front of him. Occasionally he uttered a few sentences
+in the same cold, lifeless tone.</p>
+
+<p>"It's all over now, at any rate. I had hoped we might
+be able to tide these things over through these first years,
+till we got old enough to stop caring about them, but I was
+wrong. You can't govern things like that.... I always
+had a theory that any two sensible people could get along
+together in marriage, even though they didn't care much
+about each other, if they made up their minds to take a
+reasonable point of view; but I was wrong there too. Marriage
+is a bigger thing than I thought. I was wrong all
+around....</p>
+
+<p>"Just a year&mdash;not even that. I should have said it could
+go longer than that, even at the worst....</p>
+
+<p>"It's all in the blood, I suppose&mdash;rotten, decadent blood,
+in both of you. I don't blame you, especially. Your
+father's daughter&mdash;I might have known. I suppose I
+oughtn't to blame your father much more&mdash;it's the curse
+of your whole civilization. Only it's hard to confine one's
+anger to civilizations in such cases....</p>
+
+<p>"The strange part about you is that you gave no sign of
+it whatever beforehand. I had no suspicion, at all. I
+don't think any one could have told....</p>
+
+<p>"There's just one thing I should like to suggest. I don't
+know whether it will be comprehensible to you, but I have
+a certain respect for my family name and a sort of desire
+to spare the members of the family as much as possible.
+So that, although you're perfectly free to act exactly as
+you wish, I should appreciate it if you&mdash;if you could suspend
+operations as long as you remain under my uncle's
+roof. Though it's just as you like, of course.</p>
+
+<p>"I shall be in New York. You can let me know your
+plans there when you are ready. I suppose you'll want to
+sue, in which case it can't be done in New York state; you'll
+have to establish a residence somewhere else. Or if you
+prefer to have me sue, all right. That would save time, of
+course.... Let me know what you decide.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, we might as well go to bed, I suppose. It will
+be the last time...."</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice watched him as he took off his coat and waistcoat
+and threw them over a chair and then attacked his<span class="pagenum">[325]</span>
+collar and tie. Then she arose from where she sat and
+addressed him.</p>
+
+<p>"I don't suppose there's any use in my saying anything.
+We might get quarreling again, and naturally you wouldn't
+believe me, anyway. I agree with you that it's impossible
+for us to live together any longer. But I can't forbear
+from telling you, James, that you've done me a great wrong.
+You've said things ... oh, you've said things so wrong
+to-night that it seems as if God himself&mdash;if there is a God&mdash;would
+speak from heaven and show you how wrong you
+are! But there's no use in mere human beings saying anything
+at a time like this....</p>
+
+<p>"You've been a very wicked man to-night, James. May
+God forgive you for it."</p>
+
+<p>She turned away with an air of finality and started to
+prepare for bed. She hung up her evening wrap in the
+closet and walked over to her bureau. She took off what
+jewelry she wore and put it carefully away, and then she
+seemed to hesitate. She stood looking at her reflection in
+the mirror a moment, but found no inspiration there. She
+walked inconclusively across the room and then back.
+Finally she stopped near James, with her back toward him.</p>
+
+<p>"It seems an absurd thing to ask," she said, "but would
+you mind? As you say, it's the last time...."</p>
+
+<p>"Certainly," said James.</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[326]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_XII2">CHAPTER XII</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">A ROD OF IRON</p>
+
+<p>It is all very well to be suddenly called back to town by
+telegram on important business, but suppose the business
+is wholly fictitious&mdash;what are you going to do with
+yourself when you get there? Especially if you have your
+own reasons for not wanting Business to know that you have
+returned before the appointed time, and consequently are
+shy about appearing in clubs and places where it would be
+likely to get wind of your presence? And if, moreover,
+your apartment has been closed and all the servants sent
+off on a holiday?</p>
+
+<p>That is a fair example of the mean way sordid detail has
+of encroaching on the big things of life and destroying what
+little pleasure we might take in their dramatic value.
+When he arrived in New York James had the chastened,
+exalted feeling of one who has just passed a great and
+disagreeable crisis and got through with it, on the whole,
+very tolerably well. What he wanted most was to return
+to the routine of his old life and, so far as was possible,
+drown the nightmare recollection in a flood of work. Instead
+of which he found idleness and domestic inconvenience
+staring him in the face. He also saw that he was
+going to be lonely. He walked through the dark and
+empty rooms of his apartment and reflected what a difference
+even the mute presence of a servant would make.
+He longed whole-heartedly for Stodger&mdash;for Stodger since
+we last saw him has been promoted into manhood by nature
+and into full-fledged chauffeurhood&mdash;with the official
+appellation of McClintock, if you please&mdash;by James. With
+Stodger, who still retained jurisdiction over his suits and
+shoes, James was accustomed, when they were alone together,
+to throw off his role of employer and embark on
+technical heart-to-heart talks on differential gears and multiple-disc
+clutches and kindred intimate subjects. But
+Stodger was tasting the joys of leave of absence on full
+pay, James knew not where.<span class="pagenum">[327]</span></p>
+
+<p>He sought at first to beguile the hours with reading. He
+selected a number of works he had always meant to read
+but never quite got around to: a novel or two of Dickens,
+one of Thackeray, one of Meredith, "The Origin of Species,"
+Carlyle's "French Revolution," "The Principles of Political
+Economy" and "Tristram Shandy." Steadily his eyes
+sickened of print; by the time he came to Mill his brain
+refused to absorb and visions of the very things he wished
+most to be free from hovered obstinately over the pages.
+"Tristram Shandy" was even more unbearable; he conceived
+an insane dislike for those interminable, ineffectual
+old people and their terrestrial-minded creator. At last
+he flung the book into the fireplace and strode despairingly
+out into the streets.</p>
+
+<p>Oh, Beatrice&mdash;would she never send him word, put things
+definitely in motion, in no matter what direction? Oh,
+this confounded brain of his; would it never stop trying to
+re-picture old scenes, revive dead feelings, animate unborn
+regrets? What had he done but what he should have done,
+what he could not help doing, what it had been written
+that he should do since the first moment when thoughts
+above those of a beast were put into man's brain? Oh,
+the curse of a brain that would not live up to its own laws,
+but continually kept flashing those visions of outworn
+things across his eyes&mdash;not his two innocent physical eyes,
+which saw nothing but what was put before them, but that
+redoubtable, inescapable, ungovernable inward sight which,
+as he remembered some poet had said, was "the bliss of solitude."
+The bliss of solitude&mdash;how like a driveling ass of
+a poet!...</p>
+
+<p>The next day he gave up and went back to his office as
+usual, saying that he had returned from his vacation a
+few days ahead of time in order to transact some business
+that had come up unexpectedly. Just what the business
+was he did not explain; he was now the head of McClellan's
+New York branch and did not have to explain things.</p>
+
+<p>So the hours between nine and five ceased to be an intolerable
+burden, and the hours from five till bedtime could
+be whiled away at the club in discussing the baseball returns.
+He could always find some one who was willing
+to talk about professional baseball. He remembered how he
+had once similarly talked golf with Harry....</p>
+
+<p>That left only the night hours to be accounted for, and<span class="pagenum">[328]</span>
+sleep accounted for most of them, of course. Sometimes.
+At other times sleep refused to come and nothing stood
+between him and the inmost thoughts of his brain, or worse,
+the thoughts that he did not think, never would think, as
+long as a brain and a will remained to him.... Such times
+he would always end by turning on the light and reading.
+They gave him a feeling like that of which he had spoken
+to Beatrice about being caught in a trap, deepened and intensified;
+a feeling to be avoided at any price.</p>
+
+<p>At last he heard, not indeed from Beatrice, but from Aunt
+Selina. "Beatrice arrives New York noon Thursday; for
+Heaven's sake do something," she telegraphed. James
+knew what that meant, and thanked Aunt Selina from the
+bottom of his heart. No scandal&mdash;nothing that would reflect
+on the family name! So Beatrice had determined not
+to accede to his last request; she was bent on rushing madly
+into her Tommy's arms, perhaps at the very station itself?
+Oh, no, nothing of <i>that</i> sort, if you please; he would be at
+the station himself to see to it.</p>
+
+<p>It was extraordinary how much getting back to work had
+benefited him. He was no longer subject to the dreadful
+fits of depression that had made his idleness a torment.
+Only keep going, only have something to occupy hands and
+mind during every waking hour, and all would yet be well.
+Beatrice and all that she implied had only to be kept out
+of his mind to be rendered innocuous; all that was needed
+to keep her out was a little will power, and he had plenty
+of that. As for the sleeping hours&mdash;well, he had come to
+have rather a dread of the night time. No doubt some
+simple medical remedy, however, would put that all right&mdash;sulphonal,
+or something of the sort. He would consult
+a doctor. No unprescribed drugs for him&mdash;no careless
+overdose, or anything of that sort, no indeed! The time
+had yet to come when James Wimbourne could not keep
+pace with the strong ones of the earth and walk with head
+erect under all the burdens that a malicious fate might heap
+upon him.</p>
+
+<p>In such a vein as this ran his thoughts as he walked from
+his apartment to the station that Thursday morning. It
+was a cool day in early September; a fresh easterly breeze
+blew in from the Sound bringing with it the first hint of
+autumn and seeming to infuse fresh blood into his veins.
+As he walked down Madison Avenue even the familiar<span class="pagenum">[329]</span>
+sounds of the city, the clanging of the trolley cars, the
+tooting of motor horns, the rumbling of drays, even the
+clatter of steam drills or rivet machines seemed like outward
+manifestations of the life he felt surging anew within
+him. Was it not indeed something very like a new life
+that was to begin for him to-day, this very morning? Not
+the kind of new life of which the poets babbled, no youthful
+dream, but something far solider and nobler, a mature reconstruction,
+a courageous gathering together, or rather regathering&mdash;that
+made it all the finer&mdash;of the fragments of
+an outworn existence. That was what human life was, a
+succession of repatchings and rebuildings. He who rebuilt
+with the greatest promptness and courage and ingenuity
+was the best liver.</p>
+
+<p>Viewed in this broad and health-bringing light the last
+months of his life appeared less of a failure than he had
+been wont to think. He became able to look back on this
+year of destiny-fighting as, if not actually successful, better
+than successful, since it led on to better things and gave
+him a chance to show his mettle, his power of reconstruction.
+He had made a mistake, no doubt; but he was willing to
+recognize it as such and do his best to rectify it. Beatrice
+and he were not cut out for team-mates in the business of
+destiny-fighting; it had become evident that they could both
+get on better alone. Well, at last they had come to the
+point of parting; to the point, he hoped, of being able to
+part like fellow-soldiers whose company is disbanded, in
+friendship and good humor, without recrimination or any
+of that detestable God-forgive-you business....</p>
+
+<p>He wished the newsboys would not shout so loud; their
+shrill uncanny shrieks interrupted his line of thought, in
+spite of himself. It didn't matter if they were calling extras;
+he never bought extras. Or was it only a regular edition?
+They might be announcing the trump of doom for
+all one could understand.</p>
+
+<p>It was too bad that Beatrice had not arrived at anything
+like his own state of sanity and calmness. This business
+of eloping&mdash;oh, it was so ludicrous, so amateurish! That
+was not the way to live. He hoped he might be able to
+make her see this. It would be easier, of course, if Tommy
+were not at the station; one could not tell what arrangements
+a woman in her condition might make. But he did
+not fear Tommy; there would be no scene. A few firm<span class="pagenum">[330]</span>
+words from him and they would see things in their proper
+light. He pictured himself and Beatrice repairing sanely
+and amicably to a lawyer's office together;&mdash;"Please tell
+us the quickest and easiest way to be divorced...."</p>
+
+<p>As he approached Forty-second Street the traffic grew
+heavier and noisier. He could not think properly now;
+watching for a chance to traverse the frequent cross streets
+took most of his attention. And those newsboys&mdash;! Why
+on earth should those newspaper fellows send out papers
+marked "Late Afternoon Edition" at half-past eleven in
+the morning? Oh, it was an extra, was it? A fire on the
+East Side, no doubt, two people injured&mdash;he knew the sort
+of thing. If those newspaper fellows would have the sense
+only to get out an extra when something <i>really</i> important
+had happened somebody might occasionally buy them.</p>
+
+<p>Seeing that he had plenty of time he walked slowly
+round to the Forty-second Street entrance instead of going
+in the side way. He observed the great piles of building
+and rebuilding that were going on in the neighborhood,
+and compared the reconstruction of the quarter to his own
+case. He wondered why they delayed in making the Park
+Avenue connecting bridge&mdash;such an integral part of the
+scheme. If <i>he</i> had shilly-shallied like that, a nice mess he
+would have made of his life! He gazed up at the great
+new front of the station and bumped into a stentorian newsboy.
+Everywhere those confounded newsboys&mdash;!</p>
+
+<p>He was actually in the station before he had any suspicion.
+There was about the usual number of people in the
+great waiting-room, but there seemed to be more hurrying
+than usual. He saw one or two people dart across the
+space, and observed that they did not disappear into the
+train gates.... Had he or had he not caught the word
+"wreck" on one of those flaunting headlines in the street?
+He turned off suddenly to a news stand and bought a paper.</p>
+
+<p>There it all was, in black and white&mdash;or rather red and
+white. Red letters, five inches high.</p>
+
+<p>Train 64, the Maine Special, had run through an open
+switch and turned turtle somewhere near Stamford. Fifteen
+reported killed, others injured. No names given.</p>
+
+<p>The Maine Special. Beatrice's train.</p>
+
+<p>He knew that he must devote all his efforts at this juncture
+to keep himself from thinking. Until he knew, that<span class="pagenum">[331]</span>
+was. He did not even allow himself to name the thoughts
+he was afraid of giving birth to. Anxiety, hope, fear,
+premonition, horror, satisfaction, pity&mdash;he must put them
+all away from him. There was no telling what future horrors
+he might be led into if he gave way ever so little to any
+one of them. The one thing to do now was to <i>find out</i>.</p>
+
+<p>This was not so easy. He went first to the bulletin board
+where the arrivals of trains were announced, and found a
+small and anxious-eyed crowd gazing at the few uninforming
+statements marked in white chalk. There was nothing
+to be learned from them. He spoke to an official, who was
+equally reticent, and spoke vaguely of a relief train.</p>
+
+<p>"Do you mean to say there's no way of finding out the
+names of those killed before the relief train comes in?" he
+asked.</p>
+
+<p>"We can't tell you what we don't know!" replied the
+man, already too inured to such questions to show feeling
+of any sort. He then directed James to the office of the
+railroad press agent, on the eighth floor.</p>
+
+<p>James started to ask another question, but was interrupted
+by a young woman who hurried up to the official.
+She held a little girl of seven or eight by the hand, and the
+eyes of both were streaming with tears. The sight struck
+James as odd in that cold, impersonal, schedule-run place,
+and he swerved as he walked off to look at them. He
+turned again abruptly and went his way, stifling an involuntary
+rise of a feeling which might have been very like
+envy, if he had allowed himself to think about it....</p>
+
+<p>And no one else had even noticed the two.</p>
+
+<p>He found no one in the press office except a few newspaper
+reporters who sat about on tables with their hats
+balanced on the backs of their heads. They eyed him suspiciously
+but said nothing. An inner door opened and a
+young man in his shirtsleeves, a stenographer, entered the
+room bearing a number of typewritten flimsies. The reporters
+pounced upon these and rushed away in search of
+telephones.</p>
+
+<p>James asked the young man if he could see Mr. Barker,
+the agent.</p>
+
+<p>The young man said Mr. Barker was busy, and asked
+James what paper he represented.</p>
+
+<p>James said none.<span class="pagenum">[332]</span></p>
+
+<p>On what business, then, did James want to see Mr.
+Barker?</p>
+
+<p>To learn the fate of some one on the Maine Special.</p>
+
+<p>A friend?</p>
+
+<p>A wife.</p>
+
+<p>The stenographer dropped his lower jaw, but said nothing.
+He immediately opened the inner door and led James
+up to an older man who sat dictating to a young woman at
+a typewriter. He was plump and clean-shaven and very
+neat about the collar and tie; James did not realize that this
+was the agent until the younger man told him so.</p>
+
+<p>"My dear sir," replied Mr. Barker to James' question,
+"I know absolutely no more about it than you do. If I
+did, I'd tell you. The boys have been hammering away at
+me for the past hour, and I've given 'em every word that's
+come in. These two names are all I've got so far." He
+handed James a flimsy.</p>
+
+<p>James' eye fell upon the names of two men, both described
+as traveling salesmen. He went back to the outer
+office and sat down to think. It was, of course, extremely
+improbable that Beatrice had been killed. There had been,
+say, two hundred people on the train, of whom fifteen were
+known to have died&mdash;something like seven and a half per
+cent. Two of these were accounted for; that left thirteen.
+He wondered how long it would be before those thirteen
+names came in.</p>
+
+<p>The room began to fill up again; the reporters returned
+and new recruits constantly swelled their number. From
+their talk James gathered why there was such a dearth of
+detailed news. The wreck occurring during the waking
+hours of the day had been learned, as far as the mere fact
+of its occurrence was concerned, and published within half
+an hour after it had happened. It naturally took longer
+than this to do even the first work of clearing the wreckage
+and the compiling of the lists of dead and injured would
+require even more time. With the results that interested
+friends and relations, learning of the wreck but none of its
+particulars, were rushing pell-mell to headquarters to get
+the first news. One young man described in vivid terms
+certain things he had just witnessed down in the concourse.</p>
+
+<p>"Best sob stuff in months," was his one comment.</p>
+
+<p>Just then one of their number, a slightly older man and<span class="pagenum">[333]</span>
+evidently a leader among them, emerged from the inner
+office.</p>
+
+<p>"What about it, Wilkins?" they greeted him in chorus.
+"Slip it, Wilkins, slip it over! Give us the dope! Any
+more stiffs yet? Come on, out with it&mdash;no beats on this
+story, you know...."</p>
+
+<p>Harpies!</p>
+
+<p>The outer door opened and two women burst into the
+room. The first of them, a tall, stout, good-featured Jewess,
+clothed in deep mourning, was wildly gasping and beating
+her hands on her breast.</p>
+
+<p>"Can any of you tell me about a young man called Lindenbaum?"
+she asked between her sobs. "Lindenbaum&mdash;a
+young man&mdash;on Car fifty-six he was! Has anything been
+heard of him&mdash;anything?"</p>
+
+<p>The reporters promptly told her that nothing had. She
+sank into a chair, covered her face with her hands and
+burst into an uncontrollable fit of weeping. The younger
+woman, evidently her daughter, stood by trying to comfort
+her. At length the other raised her veil and wearily wiped
+her eyes. James studied her face; her sunken eyes no less
+than her black clothes gave evidence of an older sorrow.
+Moved by a sudden impulse he went over and spoke to her,
+telling her that her son was in all probability safe and basing
+his assurance on the calm mathematical grounds of his
+own reasoning. The woman did not understand much of
+what he said, but the quiet tones of his voice seemed to
+comfort her. She rose and started to go.</p>
+
+<p>"Thank you," she said to James, "you're a nice boy.&mdash;Oh,
+I do hope God will spare him to me&mdash;only nineteen,
+he is, and the only man I have left, all I have left...."</p>
+
+<p>Sob stuff!</p>
+
+<p>Scarcely had the door closed behind her when a business
+man of about forty-five, prosperous, well-dressed and unemotional-looking,
+came in and asked if the name of his
+daughter was on the list of the dead. Some one said it was
+not.</p>
+
+<p>"Thank God," said the man in a weak voice. He raised
+his hand to his forehead, closed his eyes and fell over backward
+in a dead faint. When he came to he had to be told
+that the names of only three of the dead were as yet known.</p>
+
+<p>These were the first of a long series of scenes such as<span class="pagenum">[334]</span>
+James would not have thought possible off the stage. He
+had never seen people mastered by an overwhelming anxiety
+before; it was interesting to learn that they acted in
+such cases much as they were generally supposed to. Anxiety,
+he reflected, was perhaps the most intolerable emotion
+known to man. Yet as he sat there calmly waiting for the
+arrival of the relief train he could have wished that he
+might have tasted the full horror of it.... No, that was
+mere hysteria, of course. But there was something holy
+about such a feeling; it was like a sort of cleansing, a purifying
+by fire.... Was it that his soul was not worthy of
+such a purifying? Oh, hysterics again!</p>
+
+<p>But the purifying of others went on before his eyes as
+he sat trying not to think or feel and reading the bulletins
+as they came out from the inner office. Grotesquely unimportant,
+those bulletins, or so they must seem to those concerned
+for the fate of friends!</p>
+
+<p>"General Traffic Manager Albert S. Holden learned by
+telegram of the accident to Train 64 near Stamford this
+morning and immediately hurried to Stamford by special
+train. Mr. Holden will conduct an investigation into the
+causes of the accident in conjunction with Coroner Francis
+X. Willis of Stamford."</p>
+
+<p>"One young woman among the injured was identified
+as Miss Fannie Schmidt of Brooklyn. She was taken to
+the Stamford hospital suffering from contusions."</p>
+
+<p>"Patrick F. McGuire, the engineer of Train 64 which ran
+through an open switch near Stamford this morning, has
+been in the employ of the Company for many years. He
+was severely cut about the face and head. He has been
+engineer of the Maine Special since the 23rd of last May,
+prior to which he had worked as engineer on Train 102.
+He began his service in the Company in 1898 as fireman on
+the Naugatuck Division...."</p>
+
+<p>"Vice-President Henry T. Blomberg gave out in New
+Haven this morning the following statement concerning
+the accident at Stamford...."</p>
+
+<p>"Whew!" exclaimed a reporter, issuing suddenly from
+a telephone booth near James, "this is <i>some</i> story, believe
+me!" He took off his hat and wiped his forehead. He
+was a young man and looked somewhat more like a human
+being than the others.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, you'd call this harrowing, would you?" said James.<span class="pagenum">[335]</span></p>
+
+<p>"Well," said the other apologetically, "I've only been
+on the job a few months and this human interest stuff
+sort of gets me. This is the first big one of the kind I've
+been on. I guess there's enough human interest here to-day
+for any one, though!"</p>
+
+<p>"There doesn't seem to be enough to inconvenience you,"
+observed James. "Not you, so much, but&mdash;" with a wave
+toward the reporters' table&mdash;"those&mdash;the others."</p>
+
+<p>The young man laughed slightly. "Oh, you can stand
+pretty near anything after you've been on the job for a
+while! You see, when you're on the news end of a thing
+like this you don't have time to get worked up. When
+you're hot foot after every bit of stuff you can get, and
+have to hustle to the telephone to send it in the same minute,
+so's not to get beaten on it, you don't bother about
+whether people have hysterics or not. You simply can't&mdash;you
+haven't got time! That's why these fellows all
+seem so calm&mdash;it's <i>business</i> to them, you see. They're not
+really hard-hearted, or anything like that. Gosh, it's lucky
+for me, though, that I'm here on business, if I have to be
+here at all!"</p>
+
+<p>"You mean you're glad you don't know any one on the
+train?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Lord yes, that&mdash;but I'm glad I have something to
+keep me busy, as long as I'm here. If I were just standing
+round, watching, say&mdash;gosh, I wouldn't answer for what
+I'd do! I'd probably have hysterics myself, just from seeing
+the others!"</p>
+
+<p>This gave James something more to think about.</p>
+
+<p>He saw now that he had misjudged the reporters; even
+these harpies gave him something to envy. If one was going
+to feel indifferent at a time like this it would be well
+to feel at least an honest professional indifference....
+But that was not all. Had not this young man admitted
+that the mere sight of such suffering would have stirred
+him to the depths if he did not have his business to think
+of, and that without being personally concerned in the accident?
+While he himself, with every reason to suffer
+every anxiety in this crucial moment, was quite the calmest
+person in the room, able to lecture a hysterical mother on
+the doctrine of chances! Was he dead to all human feeling?</p>
+
+<p>There was a moment of calm in the room, which was<span class="pagenum">[336]</span>
+broken by the entrance of a tall blonde young man&mdash;a college
+undergraduate, to all appearances.</p>
+
+<p>"Can any of you tell me if Car 1058 was on the Maine
+Special?" he asked the reporters.</p>
+
+<p>No one had heard of Car 1058. Research among the
+bulletins failed to reveal any mention of it.</p>
+
+<p>"What's the name of the person you're interested in?"
+asked some one. "We might be able to tell you something."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, it wasn't any <i>person</i>," the young man explained;
+"it was my dog I was looking for. I've found he was
+shipped on Car 1058. A water spaniel, he was. I don't
+suppose you've heard anything?"</p>
+
+<p>A moment of silence followed this announcement, and
+then one of the reporters began to laugh. There was nothing
+funny about it, of course, except the contrast. They
+all knew it was by the merest accident that Fannie
+Schmidt's contusions had been flashed over the wires rather
+than the fate of the water spaniel.</p>
+
+<p>The youth flushed to the roots of his yellow hair.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes, it's very funny, of course," he said, and stalked
+out of the room. But there shone another light in his eyes
+than the gleam of anger.</p>
+
+<p>"Say, there's copy in that," observed one reporter, and
+straightway they were all busy writing.</p>
+
+<p>James had smiled with the others, but his merriment was
+short-lived. This indeed was the finishing stroke. That
+young fellow actually was more concerned about his
+dog....</p>
+
+<p>The relief train was due to arrive at 1:30, and shortly
+before that hour there was a general adjournment to the
+concourse. A crowd had already gathered before the gate
+through which the survivors would presently file. James
+looked at the waiting people and shuddered slightly. He
+preferred not to wait there.</p>
+
+<p>Passing by a news stand he bought the latest extra. It
+was curious to see the contents of those press agent flimsies
+transcribed on the flaring columns as the livest news obtainable.
+Well, all that would be changed shortly.... His
+own name caught his eye; a paragraph was devoted to
+telling how he had waited in the station, and why. "Mr.
+Wimbourne was entirely calm and self-contained," the item
+ended. Calm and self-contained. And those people took
+it for a virtue!...<span class="pagenum">[337]</span></p>
+
+<p>The gates were opened to allow the friends of passengers
+on the ill-fated train to pass through to the platform. The
+reporters were unusually silent as James walked by. James
+knew what their silence meant, and writhed under it.</p>
+
+<p>The platform was dark and chilly. Like a tomb, almost....
+The idea was suggestive, but his heart was stone against
+it. The thought of seeing Beatrice walking up the platform
+in a moment was enough to check any possible indulgence
+of feeling. That was the way such things always
+had been rewarded, with him. He could not remember having
+entertained one such emotional impulse in the past that
+had not led him into fresh misery.</p>
+
+<p>He had waited nearly two hours and there was absolutely
+no indication as to whether Beatrice had suffered or not.
+He had telephoned several times to his flat, to which the
+servants had lately returned, and to his office and had
+learned that no word had been received at either place.
+That meant nothing. Five names of people killed had been
+received when he left the press office, and hers was not
+among them. But the number of dead was said to be
+larger than was at first expected; it would probably reach
+into the twenties. Part of one Pullman, it appeared, had
+been entirely destroyed by fire, and several people were
+believed to have perished in it. There was no telling, of
+course, till the train came in. The chances were still overwhelmingly
+in favor of Beatrice's safety, of course....</p>
+
+<p>One torment had been spared him: Tommy had not
+turned up. There would be no scene; he would not have
+to look on while his wife and her lover, maddened by the
+pangs of separation and suspense, rushed into each other's
+arms.... Ah, no; he would not deceive himself. His
+relief at Tommy's absence was really due to the fact that
+he had been spared the sight of some one genuinely and
+whole-heartedly anxious about Beatrice's fate.</p>
+
+<p>The train crawled noiselessly into the station. James
+posted himself near the inner end of the platform, so as
+to be sure not to miss her. Soon groups began to file by
+of people laughing and crying and embracing each other,
+as unconscious to appearances as children. How many
+happy reunions, how many quarrels and misunderstandings
+mended forever by an hour or two of intense suffering!...
+No, that was a foolish thought, of course.</p>
+
+<p>Presently he saw her, or rather a hat which he recognized<span class="pagenum">[338]</span>
+as hers, moving up the platform. He braced himself
+and walked forward with lowered eyes, trying to think of
+something felicitous to say. He dared not look up till
+she was quite near. At last he raised a hand toward her,
+opened his mouth to speak, and found himself staring into
+the face of a perfectly strange woman.</p>
+
+<p>The mischance unnerved him. He lost control of himself
+and darted aimlessly to and fro through the crowd
+for a few moments, like a rabbit. Then he rushed back
+to the gate and stood there watching till the last passenger
+had left the platform and white shrouded things on wheels
+began to appear.</p>
+
+<p>He saw a uniformed official and addressed him, asking
+where he could find a complete list of the dead and injured.
+The man silently handed him a paper. James ran his eyes
+feverishly down the list of names. There it was&mdash;Wim&mdash;no,
+no, Wilson. Her name was not there. He raised his
+eyes questioningly to the official.</p>
+
+<p>"No, that list is not complete," said the man.</p>
+
+<p>He led James away to one or two other uniformed officials,
+and then to a man who was not in uniform. At
+length it was arranged; James was to take the first train
+for Stamford. Some one gave him a pass.</p>
+
+<p>But before he went he telegraphed to Bar Harbor. It
+was necessary to have conclusive proof that Beatrice was
+on the train. As he recrossed the concourse, now converted
+into a happy hunting ground for the reporters, he
+caught sight of Mrs. Lindenbaum, the anxious mother. She
+was alone, but the expression on her face left no doubt as
+to how the day had turned out for her. He stopped and
+spoke to her:</p>
+
+<p>"Your son is all right, is he?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes!" She turned toward him a face fairly transfigured
+with joy. "He wasn't hurt at all&mdash;just scratched a
+little by broken glass. He and my daughter have just gone
+to telephone to some people.... What do you think&mdash;he
+was the first one in his car to break open a window and let
+the smoke out! He reached up with his umbrella and
+smashed it open&mdash;that was how he got out. And he dragged
+out three people who were unconscious...." She stopped
+and laughed. "You must excuse me&mdash;I'm foolish!"</p>
+
+<p>"Not at all," replied James. "I'm so glad&mdash;" He<span class="pagenum">[339]</span>
+started to move on, but the woman stopped him, suddenly
+remembering.</p>
+
+<p>"But what about&mdash;I do hope&mdash;" she began.</p>
+
+<p>"No," said James quietly. "I'm sorry to say my news
+is bad." He had little doubt now as to the verdict, but
+bad&mdash;! Was it? Oh, was it?</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>It was early evening before he returned. His expedition
+had been painful in the extreme, but wholly without
+definite results. There had been one or two charred fragments
+of clothing that might or might not have been....
+It was too horrible to think much about.</p>
+
+<p>He knew for certain no more than when he started out,
+but conviction was only increased, for all that. What was
+there left to imagine but what that heap of cinders suggested?
+There was just one other chance, one bare possibility;
+Beatrice might not have left Bar Harbor, at any
+rate not on that train. The answer to his telegram would
+settle that.</p>
+
+<p>He found the yellow envelope awaiting him on the hall
+table. He lifted it slowly and paused a moment before
+opening it, wondering if he could trust himself to hope or
+feel anything in this final instant of uncertainty. Anything!
+Any human feeling to break this shell of indifference....</p>
+
+<p>No use. Something in his brain refused to work.</p>
+
+<p>He tore open the envelope. "Beatrice left last night on
+the seven o'clock ferry; nothing more known. Please wire
+latest news," he read.</p>
+
+<p>Well, that settled it, at any rate. He knew what the
+facts were; now he had only to bring himself face to face
+with them. Yet still he found himself dodging the issue,
+letting his thoughts wander into obscure by-paths. His
+brain was strangely lethargic, his heart more so, if possible,
+than in the station this morning. It was not that he
+felt bitter or cruel; he explained the situation to the maid,
+as she served him his dinner, with great tact and consideration,
+and afterward arranged certain matters of detail with
+all his usual care and foresight. It was only when he
+looked into himself that he met darkness.</p>
+
+<p>Uncle James, who was in town on business, dropped in
+during the evening. James told him the results of his<span class="pagenum">[340]</span>
+labors and watched the first hopefulness of his uncle's face
+freeze gradually into conviction.</p>
+
+<p>"I see, I see," said Uncle James at last. "There's nothing
+more to be done, then? Any use I can be, in any
+way&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Thank you," replied James gravely, "there's nothing
+more to be done."</p>
+
+<p>Uncle James rose to go and then hesitated. "Well, there
+it is," he said; "it's just got to be faced, I suppose. A
+major sorrow&mdash;the great blow of a lifetime. Not many of
+us are called upon to bear such great things, James. I
+never have been, and never shall, now. We feel less
+sharply as we grow older.... It's a great sorrow, a great
+trial&mdash;but I can't help feeling, somehow, that it's also a
+great chance.... But I'm only harrowing you&mdash;I'm
+sorry." He turned and went out without another word.</p>
+
+<p>Presently James wandered into the bedroom that had
+once been hers. He turned on all the lights as if in the
+hope that illuminating the places she had been familiar
+with would bring the memory of her more sharply to his
+mind. Yes, it all seemed very natural; he would not say
+but what it made death less terrible. The fact that her
+chair was in its accustomed place before her dressing table
+did somehow make it easier to remember the events of that
+afternoon. He sat down before the dressing table. There
+was little on it to bring an intimate recollection of her to
+his mind; most of her small possessions she had naturally
+taken away with her to Bar Harbor. He opened a drawer
+and discovered nothing but a small box of hairpins.</p>
+
+<p>He took them out and handled them gently for a moment.
+Hairpins! Even so, they brought her back more
+vividly than anything had yet done&mdash;the soft dark hair
+sweeping back from the forehead, the lovely arch of her
+nose, and all the rest of it.... He supposed she ought to
+seem aloof and unapproachable, now that she was dead, but
+it was not so at all. He remembered her only as feminine
+and appealing. She certainly had been very beautiful.
+And of all that beauty there remained only&mdash;hairpins.
+The fact of human mortality pressed suddenly down on
+him. Some time, a few days or a few decades hence, he
+would cease to exist, even as Beatrice, and nothing would
+remain of him but&mdash;Not hairpins, indeed, but hardly anything
+more substantial. A society pin, a little gold football,<span class="pagenum">[341]</span>
+a few papers bearing his signatures in McClellan's
+files....</p>
+
+<p>Poor Beatrice!</p>
+
+<p>A feeling touched his heart at last; one of pity. Poor
+Beatrice! Fate had treated her harshly, far beneath her
+deserts. She had sinned.... Had she? It was not for
+him to settle that; she had been human, even as he. She
+had been frail; leave it at that. The strongest of us are
+weak at times. Only most of us are given a chance to regain
+our strength, pull ourselves together after a fall, make
+something out of ourselves at last. This opportunity had
+been denied Beatrice. Surely it was hard that she should
+be cut off thus in the depth of her frailty, at the lowest
+ebb of all that was good in her. The weakest deserved better
+than that.</p>
+
+<p>So he sat meditating on the tragedy of her life as he
+might, in an idle mood, have brooded over the story of a
+lovely and unhappy queen of long ago, some appealing,
+wistful figure of the past with whom he had nothing in
+common but mortality. The sense of his own detachment
+from the story of his wife's life struck him at last and
+roused him to fresh pity. He went into his dressing room
+and fetched the photograph of her that he had thought it
+advisable to keep on his bureau. He stood it up on her
+dressing table and sat down again to study it. Poor Beatrice!
+It was pathetic that she, so young, so beautiful, so
+lonely, should be unmourned, since his feeling could not
+properly be described as mourning....</p>
+
+<p>"Poor Beatrice," he murmured, "is pity all I can feel
+for you?"</p>
+
+<p>A bell sounded somewhere, the front door bell. He
+scarcely noticed it.</p>
+
+<p>No, there was one person to mourn her, of course&mdash;Tommy.
+The thought of him sent a sudden shudder
+through him. Tommy! He wondered if he could bring
+himself to be decent to Tommy in case he should turn up....
+Just like him, the nauseous little brute!</p>
+
+<p>No, that thought was unworthy of him. What particular
+grudge had he against Tommy? Hitherto he had not even
+taken the trouble to despise Tommy, and surely there was
+no point in beginning now. No, he must be decent to
+Tommy, if the occasion should arise.</p>
+
+<p>But that Tommy should be chief mourner! Poor Beatrice!...<span class="pagenum">[342]</span></p>
+
+<p>Presently he roused himself with a slight start. He did
+not wish to grudge his wife what slight homage he could
+pay her, but he felt that he had perhaps gone far enough.
+One felt what one could; harping over things was merely
+morbid. He rose and quietly left the room.</p>
+
+<p>The lights in the hall seemed dim and low. A gentle
+glow shone through the living room door. That was odd;
+he thought he remembered turning out the light in the
+room before he left it. Then he became aware of a sentence
+or two being spoken in a low voice in that room, and
+the next moment one of the servants walked out of the door
+and into the hall.</p>
+
+<p>He brushed past her, wondering who could have arrived
+at this time of night. At the door he stopped, strained his
+eyes to pierce the half-gloom and became aware of a figure
+standing before him, a silent, black-robed figure, full of a
+strange portent....</p>
+
+<p>Aunt Selina.</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[343]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_XIII2">CHAPTER XIII</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">RED FLAME</p>
+
+<p>"James, is it true&mdash;what she just told me?" Her
+voice was full of anxiety and horror, but in some
+curious way she still managed to be the self-possessed Aunt
+Selina of old. Even in that moment James found time to
+admire her.</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, Aunt Selina, I'm afraid it's true."</p>
+
+<p>"Is there no hope, no chance&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"None, that I can see."</p>
+
+<p>"Then ... oh!" She gave way at that, seeming to
+crumple where she stood. James helped her to a sofa and
+silently went into the dining room and mixed some whisky
+and water. Aunt Selina stared when he offered it to her,
+and then took it without a word. How like Aunt Selina
+again! A fool would have raised objections. James almost
+smiled.</p>
+
+<p>"How do you happen to be here, Aunt Selina?" he asked
+after a few moments, less in the desire of knowing than in
+the hope of diverting her. "You didn't come from Bar
+Harbor to-day?"</p>
+
+<p>"From Boston."</p>
+
+<p>"Boston?"</p>
+
+<p>"I took the boat to Boston last night. I learned of the
+accident there. I supposed she was safe&mdash;the papers said
+nothing."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, I know. But&mdash;but how did you happen to leave
+Bar Harbor at all?"</p>
+
+<p>"I was going to meet her here."</p>
+
+<p>"Her?"</p>
+
+<p>"Beatrice."</p>
+
+<p>"I don't understand."</p>
+
+<p>"No, and oh, my poor boy, I've got to make you!" She
+said this quietly, almost prayerfully, with the air of a
+person laboring under a weighty mission. James had no
+reply to offer and walked off feeling curiously uncomfortable.
+There was a long silence.<span class="pagenum">[344]</span></p>
+
+<p>"Come over here and sit down, James; I want to talk to
+you," said Aunt Selina at last. She spoke in her natural
+tone of voice; there was no more of the priestess about her.
+There was that about her, however, that made him obey.</p>
+
+<p>"James, I've got to tell you a few things about Beatrice.
+Some things I don't believe you know. Do you mind?"</p>
+
+<p>"No," said James slowly, "I don't know that I do."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, in the first place, I suppose you thought she was
+in love with that Englishman?"</p>
+
+<p>James nodded.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, she wasn't&mdash;not one particle. Whatever else
+may or may not be true, that is. She despised him."</p>
+
+<p>James froze, paused as though deciding whether or not
+to discuss the matter and then said gently: "I have my
+own ideas about that, Aunt Selina."</p>
+
+<p>She nodded briefly, almost briskly. It was the most effective
+reply she could have made. The more businesslike
+the words the greater the impression on James, always,
+in any matter. Aunt Selina understood perfectly. She
+let her effect sink in and waited calmly for him to demand
+proof. This he did at last, going to the very heart of the
+subject.</p>
+
+<p>"Then perhaps, Aunt Selina, you can account for certain
+things...."</p>
+
+<p>"No, I shall only tell you what I know. You must do
+your own accounting." She paused a moment and then
+went on: "You've heard nothing since you left Bar Harbor,
+I suppose?"</p>
+
+<p>"Nothing."</p>
+
+<p>"Beatrice was quite ill for a time after you left. For
+days she lay in bed unable to move, but there seemed to be
+nothing specific the matter with her. We called in the
+doctor and he said the same old thing&mdash;rest and fresh air.
+He knew considerably less what was the matter with her
+than any one else in the house, which is saying a good deal.</p>
+
+<p>"Lord Clairloch left the day after you did. Beatrice
+saw him once, that evening, and sent him away. The next
+day he went, saying vaguely that he had to go back to
+New York.</p>
+
+<p>"James, of course I knew. I couldn't live in the house
+with the two people I cared most for in the world and not
+see things, not <i>feel</i> things. The only wonder is that nobody
+else guessed. It seemed incredible to me, who was<span class="pagenum">[345]</span>
+so keenly alive to the whole business. Time and time again
+when Cecilia opened her mouth to speak to me I thought
+she was going to talk about that, and then she would speak
+about some unimportant subject, and I blessed her for her
+denseness. And how I thanked Heaven that that sharp-nosed
+little minx Ruth wasn't there! She'd have smelt the
+whole thing out in no time.</p>
+
+<p>"Gradually Beatrice mended. Her color came back and
+she seemed stronger. At last one evening&mdash;only Tuesday it
+was; think of it!&mdash;she came down to dinner with a peculiar
+sort of glitter in her eyes. She told us that she felt able
+to travel and was going to New York the next day. She
+had engaged her accommodations and everything. Of
+course I knew what that meant....</p>
+
+<p>"Knowledge can be a terrible thing, James. For days it
+had preyed on me, and now when the moment for action
+came I was almost too weak to respond. Oh, how I was
+tempted to sit back and say nothing and let things take their
+course!... But I simply couldn't fall back in the end, I
+simply couldn't. After bedtime that evening I went to
+the door of her room and knocked.</p>
+
+<p>"I found her in the midst of packing. I told her I had
+something to say to her and would wait till she was ready.
+She said she was listening.</p>
+
+<p>"'Beatrice,' said I, 'I've always tried to mind my own
+business above all things, but I'm going to break my rule
+now. I'm fond of you, Beatrice; if I offend you remember
+that. I simply can't watch you throw your life away without
+raising a finger to stop you.'</p>
+
+<p>"She didn't flare up, she didn't even ask me how I
+knew; she only gave a sort of groan and said: 'Oh, but
+Aunt Selina, I haven't any life to throw away! It's all
+been burned and frozen out of me; there's nothing left but
+a shell, and that won't last long! Can't you let me pass
+the little that remains in peace? That's all I ask for&mdash;I
+gave up happiness long ago. It won't last long! It can
+hurt no one!'</p>
+
+<p>"'You have an immortal soul,' said I; 'you can hurt
+that.'</p>
+
+<p>"She sat looking at the floor for a while and then said
+imploringly: 'Don't ask me to go back to James, Aunt
+Selina, for that's the one thing I can't do.' 'I shan't ask
+you to do anything,' I told her, but I knew perfectly well<span class="pagenum">[346]</span>
+that I was prepared to go down on my knees before her,
+when the time came....</p>
+
+<p>"But it hadn't come yet&mdash;there was a great deal to be
+done first. What I did was to tell her something about my
+own life, in the hope that it might throw a new light on her
+situation. I told her things that I've never told to a human
+being and never expected to tell another....</p>
+
+<p>"James, I think I ought to tell you the whole thing, as I
+told it to her. It may help you to understand ... certain
+things you must understand. Do you mind?"</p>
+
+<p>She paused, less for the purpose of obtaining his consent
+than in order to gain a perfect control over her voice and
+manner. Taking James' silence as acquiescence she folded
+her hands in her lap and went on in a low quiet voice:</p>
+
+<p>"I haven't had much of a life, according to most ways
+of thinking. All I ever knew of life, as I suppose you know
+it, was concentrated into a few months. Not that I didn't
+have a good time during my girlhood and youth. My
+mother died when I was a baby, but my stepmother took
+as good care of me as if I had been her own child, and I
+loved her almost like my own mother. I've often thought,
+though, that if my mother had lived things might have
+turned out differently. Stepmothers are never quite the
+same thing.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, I grew up and flew about with the college boys in
+the usual way. I never cared a rap for any of them, beyond
+the bedtime raptures that girls go through. I was
+able to manage them all pretty easily; I see now that I
+was too attractive to them. I had a great deal of what in
+those days was referred to as 'animation,' which is another
+way of saying that I was an active, strong-willed, selfish little
+savage. I was willing to play with the college men, but I
+always said that when I fell in love it would be with a <i>real</i>
+man. I laughed when I said it, but I meant it.</p>
+
+<p>"Presently there came a change. Father died, and when
+I came out of mourning the college men I knew best had
+graduated and the others seemed too young and silly for
+me even to play with. It was at about this time, when I
+was adjusting myself to new conditions and casting about
+for something to occupy my mind that I came to know
+Milton Leffert."</p>
+
+<p>James stirred slightly. Aunt Selina smiled.</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, you've heard of him, of course. It gives one a<span class="pagenum">[347]</span>
+curious feeling, doesn't it, to learn that dead people, or
+people who are as good as dead, have had their lives? I
+know, I know ... I think you'd have liked Milton Leffert.
+He was very quiet and not at all striking in appearance,
+but he was strong and there was no nonsense about him.
+He was more than ten years older than I. I had known
+him only slightly before that time. Then after Father's
+death he began coming to see me a good deal and we fell
+into the habit of walking and driving together. I always
+liked him. I loved talking with him; he was the first man
+I ever talked much with on serious subjects. He stimulated
+me, and I enjoyed being with him. Only, it never occurred
+to me that he could be the Real Man.</p>
+
+<p>"You've often heard of women refusing men because
+of their poverty. Well, the chief thing that prejudiced me
+against Milton Leffert was his wealth. He happened to
+possess a large fortune made and left to him by his father,
+and he didn't do much except take care of it, together with
+that of his sister Jane. He was president of the one concern
+his father had not sold out before he died, but that
+was the sort of thing that ran itself; he didn't spend an
+hour a day at it. That wasn't much of a career, according
+to the way I thought at that time, and when he first began
+asking me to marry him I laughed outright.</p>
+
+<p>"'You can't know me very well, Milton,' I said, 'if you
+suppose I could be content with a ready-made man. I
+like you very much, but you're not the husband for me.'</p>
+
+<p>"'What do you mean by a ready-made man?' he asked,
+looking at me out of his quiet gray eyes.</p>
+
+<p>"'I should say it was sufficiently obvious,' I said.
+'There's nothing the matter with you, and I hate to hurt
+you, but&mdash;well, you're not dynamic.'</p>
+
+<p>"I stopped to see how he would take that. He was silent
+for a while, then at last he said: 'I don't think that's a
+very good reason for refusing a man.'</p>
+
+<p>"I laughed; the grave way he said it was so characteristic
+of him. 'Oh, Milton,' I said, 'I really think that's the
+only reason in the world to make me refuse a man. I
+don't much believe I shall ever marry, but if I do it will
+be to a man that I can help win his fight in the world;
+somebody with whom I can march side by side through
+life, whom I alone can help and encourage and inspire!
+He's got to be the kind that will start at the bottom and<span class="pagenum">[348]</span>
+work his way up to the top, and who couldn't do it without
+me! That's not you, Milton. You have no fight to
+make&mdash;your father made it for you. You start in at the
+top, the wrong end. Of course there are still higher summits
+you could aim for, but you never will, Milton. You're
+not that kind; you'll hold on to what you have, and no
+more. I'm not blaming you; you were made that way.
+And there must be a great many people like you in the
+world. And I <i>like</i> you none the less. Only I can't marry
+you.'</p>
+
+<p>"'But I don't see what difference all this would make,'
+he said, 'if you only loved me.'</p>
+
+<p>"'My dear man,' said I, 'don't you see that it's only
+that sort of a man who could make me love him? If you
+had it in you, I suppose I should love you. You don't suppose
+I could love you without that, do you? I'm afraid
+you don't understand me very well, Milton!'</p>
+
+<p>"'I'm learning all the time,' he answered, and that was
+the nearest thing to a witty or humorous remark that I ever
+heard him make.</p>
+
+<p>"'Then again,' I went on, 'our ages are too far apart.
+Even if you were the sort I mean, we shouldn't be starting
+even. The fight would be half won when I came in, and
+that would never do. I shouldn't feel as if I were part of
+your life. A marriage like that wouldn't be a marriage,
+it would be a sweet little middle-aged idyll!'</p>
+
+<p>"He flushed at that. 'A man can't change his age,
+Selina; you have no right to taunt me with that.'</p>
+
+<p>"'I didn't mean to taunt you&mdash;I only wanted to explain,'
+said I. 'And the last thing in the world I want to
+do is to hurt you.'</p>
+
+<p>"'But that's the only thing a man can't change,' he
+went on after a moment, paying no attention to my apology.
+After another pause he added: 'I shan't give you up,
+mind,' and when we talked again it was of other things.</p>
+
+<p>"I went on seeing him as before, though not quite so
+often. Then presently I went away on some long visits
+and did not see him for several months. When I came
+back I noticed that his manner was more animated than
+before, and that somehow he looked younger. I remember
+being quite pleased.&mdash;He was thirty-four at the time, and
+I not quite twenty-three.</p>
+
+<p>"It was perfectly evident, even to me, that he was working<span class="pagenum">[349]</span>
+to win me. I saw it, but I did not pay any attention
+to it; when I thought about it at all it was with a sort of
+amusement. One day he came to me apparently very much
+pleased about something.</p>
+
+<p>"'Congratulate me, Selina,' he said; 'I've just got my
+appointment.'</p>
+
+<p>"'Appointment?' said I. I truthfully had no idea what
+he was talking about.</p>
+
+<p>"'Yes,' he went on, 'I begin work on the board next
+week.'</p>
+
+<p>"'What board?'</p>
+
+<p>"'Why, the tax board&mdash;the city tax board. Surely you
+knew?'</p>
+
+<p>"Then I laughed&mdash;I remember it so distinctly. 'Good
+gracious, Milton,' I said, 'I thought it must be the Cabinet
+of the United States, at the very least!' Then I saw his
+face, and knew that I had hurt him.</p>
+
+<p>"'It's splendid, of course,' I added. 'I do congratulate
+you, indeed, most heartily. Only&mdash;only Milton, you were
+so serious!'</p>
+
+<p>"I laughed again. He stared at me and after a moment
+laughed himself, a little. I suppose that laugh was
+the greatest effort he had made yet. I know I liked him
+better at that moment than ever before. If he had let it
+go at that who knows what might have happened?</p>
+
+<p>"But he changed again after a few seconds; he scowled
+and became more serious than ever. 'No!' he said angrily,
+'why should I laugh with you over the most serious thing
+in my life? Why should you want to make me? First you
+blame me for not making anything of myself, and now,
+when I am trying my best to do it, you laugh at me
+for being serious! Of course I'm serious about my work&mdash;I
+shan't pretend to be anything else.'</p>
+
+<p>"Of course that was all wrong, too. Every one admires
+a man who can laugh a little about his work. But I felt a
+sort of hopelessness in trying to explain it to him; I was
+afraid he would never really understand. So instead I
+drew him out on the new work he had taken up and tried
+to make him talk about the plans he had in mind, of which
+the tax board was only the first step. He seemed rather
+shy about talking of the future.</p>
+
+<p>"'It's a case for actions, not words,' he said. 'I don't
+want to give you the impression that I'm only a talker.<span class="pagenum">[350]</span>
+You'll see, in time, what you've made of me,' and he
+smiled at me in a way that rather went to my heart.</p>
+
+<p>"'Milton,' I said, 'I'm more than glad if I can be of
+help to you, in any way, but I should be deceiving you if I
+let you think there's any hope&mdash;any more hope, even, than
+there was.'</p>
+
+<p>"But that was the kind of talk he understood best.
+'Selina,' he said, 'don't you bother about caring for me.
+The time hasn't come for that yet. I'm not even ready
+for it myself&mdash;there's a lot to be done first. The time will
+come, at last; I'm sure of it. A woman can't have such
+a power over a man as you have over me without coming to
+have some feeling for him in the end, if it's only pride in
+her own handiwork. But even if it never should come, do
+you think I could regret what I've done, what I'm going
+to do? You've made a man of me, Selina. That stands,
+no matter what happens!'</p>
+
+<p>"Of course that sort of thing can't help but make an
+impression on a woman, and it had its effect on me. It
+made me a little nervous; it was like raising a Frankenstein.
+I began to wonder if I should come to be swallowed
+up in this new life I had unwillingly created. Once or
+twice I caught myself wondering how it would feel to be
+the wife of Milton Leffert....</p>
+
+<p>"But about that time my stepmother began talking to
+me about it and trying to persuade me to marry him, and
+that had the effect of making me like the thought less.
+Somehow she made it seem almost like a duty, and if there
+was one thing I couldn't abide it was the idea of marrying
+from a sense of duty. Then other things came into my
+life and for a time I ceased to think of him almost entirely.</p>
+
+<p>"We went abroad for several months, my stepmother
+and the two boys and I. Hilary had been seriously ill, and
+we thought the change would do him good. And as he had
+a good deal of study to make up&mdash;he was fourteen at the
+time&mdash;my stepmother engaged a young man to go with us
+and tutor him and be a companion to the boys generally.</p>
+
+<p>"You might almost guess the rest. I saw my stepmother
+wince when he met us at the steamer&mdash;we had engaged him
+by letter and had no idea what he looked like. I suppose
+it had never occurred to her before that there might be
+danger in placing me in daily companionship with a man<span class="pagenum">[351]</span>
+of about my own age. It certainly occurred to her then.</p>
+
+<p>"James, I know I can't make it sound plausible to you,
+but even now I don't wonder I fell in love with him. I
+don't suppose a more attractive man was ever born. He
+was thin and brown and had a pure aquiline profile&mdash;but
+it's no use describing him. Think of the most attractive
+person you ever knew and make him ten times more so and
+perhaps you'll get some idea.</p>
+
+<p>"He was quite poor&mdash;that also took my fancy. He was
+trying to earn money enough to put himself through law
+school. Those who knew him said he was a brilliant student
+and that a great career lay before him, and I believed it.
+He certainly was as bright and keen as they make 'em, and
+very witty and amusing. Occasionally Harry reminds me
+of him, and that makes me worry about Harry.... Of
+course I was tremendously taken with his mental qualities,
+and I had all sorts of romantic notions about helping him
+to make a great place for himself in the world, and all the
+rest of it. But as a matter of fact what drew me to him
+chiefly was simple animal attraction. It wasn't wrong and
+it wasn't unnatural, but&mdash;well, it was unfortunate.</p>
+
+<p>"Even my stepmother felt it. I don't know how long it
+was before she knew what was going on, but she never made
+any effort to stop it. Like a sensible woman she kept her
+mouth shut and determined to let things take their course.
+But she never talked to me any more about Milton Leffert,
+and as a matter of fact I know she would have been perfectly
+willing that I should marry Adrian. Yes, that was
+his first name. I shan't tell you his last, because he's still
+alive.</p>
+
+<p>"I remember telling myself when I first saw him that
+such an absurdly handsome person could not have much to
+him, but he appeared better and better as time went on.
+He was thoughtful and tactful and knew how to efface himself.
+He was splendid with the boys; Hilary in particular
+took a tremendous fancy to him and would do anything he
+said. He was the greatest influence in Hilary's life up to
+that time, and I really think the best. He was an extraordinary
+person. By the end of the first month I suspected
+he was the Real Man. By the end of the second I
+was convinced of it, and by the end of the third I would
+willingly have placed my head under his foot any time
+he gave the word. By the end of the sixth month I<span class="pagenum">[352]</span>
+wouldn't have touched him with my foot&mdash;I'm sure of it.
+But there never was any sixth month.</p>
+
+<p>"In the month of June we were on the Lake of Como.
+There happened to be a full moon. Como in the moonlight
+is not the safest place in the world for young people, under
+any circumstances. In our case it was sure to lead to
+something.</p>
+
+<p>"We had strolled up to a terrace high above the lake
+and stood for a long time leaning over the balustrade drinking
+in the beauty of the scene. For a long time we said
+nothing, and apparently the same thought struck us both&mdash;that
+it was all too beautiful to be true. At any rate after
+a time Adrian sighed and said: 'Oh, this damnable moonlight!'</p>
+
+<p>"'Why?'I asked.</p>
+
+<p>"'Because it makes everything seem so unreal&mdash;the lake,
+the mountains, the nightingales, everything. It's like a
+poem by Lamartine. But I don't mind that&mdash;I like Lamartine.
+The trouble is it makes you seem unreal too. Oh, I
+know that you're where you are and are flesh and blood
+and that if I pinched you you'd probably scream and all
+that&mdash;'</p>
+
+<p>"'No, I shouldn't,' said I. 'I wouldn't be real if I did.'</p>
+
+<p>"He sighed. 'That shows it,' he said; 'that proves exactly
+what I say. You're not really living this; your soul
+isn't really here. I'm not really in your life. I'm just a
+pretty little episode, a stage property, a part of the lake
+and the moonlight, a part of every summer vacation!'</p>
+
+<p>"'If you're not really in my life,' said I, 'doesn't it
+occur to you that it's because of your unreality, not mine?'</p>
+
+<p>"'You admit that I'm not real to you, then?'</p>
+
+<p>"'No,' said I, 'but it would be your own fault if you
+weren't.'</p>
+
+<p>"'What about that man in New Haven, is he real?' he
+asked suddenly. I only flushed, and he went on: 'That's
+it&mdash;he's the real man in your life. You're willing to play
+about with me in the summertime, but when the winter
+comes you'll go straight back and marry him. I'm all
+right for the moonlight, but you want him in the cold gray
+light of the dawn! He's the Old and New Testaments to
+you, and I'm only&mdash;a poem by Lamartine! And with me&mdash;oh,
+Lord!' He buried his face in his hands.</p>
+
+<p>"I don't know whether it was pure accident or whether<span class="pagenum">[353]</span>
+he somehow guessed part of the truth. At any rate it
+roused me. I was very sure that what he said was not
+true, or at least I was very anxious that it should not be
+true, which often comes to the same thing. I argued with
+him for some time, and when words failed there were other
+things. But he did not seem entirely convinced.</p>
+
+<p>"After a while, as we sat there, Hilary appeared with a
+telegram that had just arrived for me. I saw that it was
+a cable message and thought it was probably from Milton
+Leffert, as he had said that he might possibly come abroad
+on business during the summer and would look me up if he
+did. And somehow the thought of Milton Leffert at that
+moment filled me with the most intense disgust....</p>
+
+<p>"'Now,' I said when Hilary had gone, 'I'm tired of
+arguing; here may be a chance to prove myself by actions.
+Open this telegram, and tell me if it's from Milton Leffert!'</p>
+
+<p>"He looked at me in a dazed sort of way. 'Open it!'
+I repeated, stamping my foot. I was drunk with love and
+moonlight and I imagine I must have acted like a fury. I
+know I felt like one.</p>
+
+<p>"He opened the telegram and read it, gravely and
+silently.</p>
+
+<p>"'Is it or is it not from Milton Leffert?'</p>
+
+<p>"'Yes. He&mdash;'</p>
+
+<p>"'That's all I want to know&mdash;don't say another word!
+Do you hear? Never tell me another word about that
+telegram as long as you live! And now destroy it&mdash;here&mdash;before
+my eyes! I'm going to put Milton Leffert out of
+my life forever, here and now! Go on, destroy it!'</p>
+
+<p>"Adrian hesitated. He seemed almost frightened.
+'But&mdash;' he began.</p>
+
+<p>"'Adrian!' I turned toward him with the moonlight
+beating full down on me. I was not so bad-looking in
+those days; I daresay I was not bad-looking at all as I
+stood there in the moonlight. At least I know that woman
+never used her beauty more consciously than I did in that
+moment.</p>
+
+<p>"'Adrian, look at me! Do you love me?'</p>
+
+<p>"He allowed that he did.</p>
+
+<p>"'Then do what I say. Destroy that telegram and never
+mention it or that man's name to me again!'</p>
+
+<p>"A change came over him. He hesitated no longer; he
+became forceful and determined.<span class="pagenum">[354]</span></p>
+
+<p>"'Very well,' he cried, 'if you're not mine now you will
+be! Here's good-by to Milton Leffert!'</p>
+
+<p>"He took some matches from his pocket and lit the end
+of the paper. When it was burning brightly he dropped
+it over the edge of the terrace and it floated out into the
+space beneath. We stood together and watched it as it
+fell, burning red in the moonlight....</p>
+
+<p>"Then for some weeks we were happy. Adrian seemed
+particularly so; he had had his gloomy moods before that
+but now they passed away entirely. And if there was a
+cloud of suspicion that I had done wrong in my own mind
+I was so happy in seeing Adrian's joy that I paid no attention
+to it.</p>
+
+<p>"Only one thing struck me as odd; he would not let me
+tell my stepmother. He gave a number of reasons for it;
+it would make his position with us uncomfortable; he could
+not be a tutor and a lover at the same time; he was writing
+to his relatives and wanted to wait till they knew; we must
+wait till we were absolutely sure of ourselves, and so forth.
+One of these reasons might have convinced me, but his giving
+so many of them made me suspect, even as I obeyed
+him, that none of them was the real one. I wondered what
+it could be. I found out, soon enough.</p>
+
+<p>"We left Italy and worked slowly northward. Several
+weeks after the scene on the terrace we reached Paris.
+There we met a number of our American friends, some of
+whom had just arrived from home. One day my stepmother
+and I were sitting talking with one of these&mdash;Elizabeth
+Haldane it was&mdash;and in the course of the conversation
+she happened to say: 'Very sad, isn't it, about poor Milton
+Leffert?'</p>
+
+<p>"'What is sad?' asked my stepmother.</p>
+
+<p>"'Why, haven't you heard?' said Elizabeth. 'He died
+a short time before we left. Brain fever or something of
+the sort&mdash;from overwork, they said. He was planning to
+run for the State Legislature this fall.' I saw her glancing
+round; she couldn't keep her eyes off me. But I sat still as
+a stone....</p>
+
+<p>"As soon as I could I took Adrian off alone.</p>
+
+<p>"'Adrian,' I said, 'the time has come when you've got
+to tell me what was in that telegram.'</p>
+
+<p>"'Never,' said he, smiling. 'I promised, you know,'</p>
+
+<p>"'I release you from your promise.'<span class="pagenum">[355]</span></p>
+
+<p>"'Even so, I can't tell you.'</p>
+
+<p>"'Adrian,' said I, looking him full in the face, 'Milton
+Leffert is dead.'</p>
+
+<p>"'I'm sorry to hear it,' said he.</p>
+
+<p>"I blazed up at that. 'Stop lying to me,' I cried, 'and
+tell me what was in that telegram!'</p>
+
+<p>"He confessed at last that it was from Jane Leffert saying
+that her brother was dangerously ill and asking me to
+come to him if possible or at least send some message. I
+knew well enough what it must have been, but I wanted to
+wring it from his lips....</p>
+
+<p>"'Well, have you nothing to say to me?' he asked.</p>
+
+<p>"I didn't answer for some time&mdash;I couldn't. To tell the
+truth I hadn't been thinking of him. At last I turned on
+him. 'You contemptible creature,' I managed to say.</p>
+
+<p>"'Why?' he whined. 'You've no right to call me names.
+You made me do it. If you're sorry now it's your own
+fault.'</p>
+
+<p>"'I was to blame,' I answered. 'Heaven forbid that I
+should try to excuse my own fault. But do you think that
+lets you out? Suppose the positions had been reversed;
+suppose you had been ill and Milton with me. Do you imagine
+he would have let me remain in ignorance while you
+lay dying and in need of me, no matter what I told him
+to do or not to do? Are you so weak and mean that you
+can't conceive of any one being strong and good?'</p>
+
+<p>"'It was because I loved you so much that I did it,' he
+said.</p>
+
+<p>"'Oh, Adrian,' I told him, 'if you really loved me, why
+did you let me do a thing you knew I'd live to regret? If
+you really loved me, what had you to fear but that?'</p>
+
+<p>"'You might have saved his life,' he answered.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, James, the anguish of hearing those words from
+his lips! The man I did not love telling me I might have
+saved the life of the man I did! For now that it was too
+late I knew well enough who it was that I loved. In one
+flash I saw the two men as they were, one strong, quiet, unselfish,
+the other selfish, cowardly, mean-spirited. Now I
+saw why he had not wanted me to tell my stepmother of
+our engagement. He wanted to cover up his own part in
+the affair in case anything unpleasant happened when I
+heard of Milton's death.</p>
+
+<p>"I told my stepmother everything as soon as I could and<span class="pagenum">[356]</span>
+she behaved splendidly. She sent Adrian away and I
+never saw him again. And as I announced my intention
+of going home on the next steamer she decided it was best
+to give up the rest of her trip and take the boys along
+back with me. So we all went, that same week.</p>
+
+<p>"People wondered, when we arrived so long ahead of
+time, and came pretty near to guessing the whole truth.
+But I didn't care. The one thing I wanted in the world
+was to see Milton's sister, his one surviving relative.</p>
+
+<p>"'Jane Leffert,' I wrote her, 'if you can bear to look
+on the woman who killed your brother, let her come and tell
+you she's sorry.' She was a good woman and understood.
+The next day I went to her house. She took me upstairs
+and showed me his room, the bed where he had died. I
+never said a word all the time. Then, as she was really
+a very remarkable woman, she handed me an old brooch
+of her mother's containing a miniature of him painted when
+he was four years old, and told me it was mine to keep.
+Then for the first time I broke down and cried....</p>
+
+<p>"If it hadn't been for Jane Leffert I think I should have
+gone mad. She never tried to hide the truth from me. She
+admitted, when I asked her, that Milton had, to all intents
+and purposes, worked himself to death for me, and that
+the doctor had said the one hope for him lay in his seeing
+me or hearing I was coming to him. But never a word
+of blame or reproach did she give me, never a hint of a
+feeling of it. She knew how easy it is to make mistakes in
+life, she knew how hard it is to atone for them. She it was
+who gave me the blessed thought that it was worth while
+to go on living as part of my atonement, and that if I put
+into my life the things I had learned from him I might even,
+to a certain extent, make Milton live on in me.</p>
+
+<p>"So instead of taking poison or becoming a Carmelite
+nun I went on living at home as before, stimulated and inspired
+by that idea. It was hard at first, but somehow the
+harder things were the greater the satisfaction I took in life.
+By the time I had lightened the remaining years of my
+stepmother's life and nursed Jane Leffert through her last
+illness I became content with my lot and, in a way, happy.
+I never asked for happiness nor wanted it again on earth,
+but it came, at last. There is something purifying about
+loving a dead person very much. The chief danger is in
+its making one morbid, but as I was always a thoroughly<span class="pagenum">[357]</span>
+practical person with a strong natural taste for life it did
+me nothing but good. But I don't prescribe it for any one
+who can get anything better....</p>
+
+<p>"One thing in particular helped me to keep my mind on
+earth and remind me of the far-reaching effects of wrong-doing.
+I have said that Hilary, your father, was extremely
+fond of Adrian. Well, somehow he got the idea into his
+head that I had thrown him over because of his poverty,
+and he never forgave me for it. Till his dying day he believed
+that I really loved Adrian most but was afraid to
+marry him. Over and over again I told him the truth,
+taking a sort of fierce pleasure in being able to tell any one
+that I had never loved any one but Milton Leffert.</p>
+
+<p>"'Then why did you let Adrian make love to you?'
+Hilary would answer, 'and why did you make him burn
+that telegram? I know, I heard you as I walked down
+the path.' Nothing I could say ever made him understand.
+And the hardest part of it was that I couldn't exactly blame
+him for not being convinced.</p>
+
+<p>"Taking him at that impressionable time of life the
+thing had a tremendous effect on him. The idea grew into
+him that no human feeling could stand the test of hard
+facts; that that was the way love worked out in real life.
+From that time on his mind steadily developed and his soul
+steadily dwindled. He became practical, brilliant, worldly
+wise, heartless. We grew gradually more and more estranged;
+you seldom heard him mention my name, I suppose?
+That's why you never heard before what I've been
+telling you, or at least the whole truth of it.... And so,
+as he consciously modeled certain of his mannerisms after
+those of Adrian he unconsciously grew more and more like
+him in character; and I had the satisfaction of watching
+the change and realizing that it was due, in part at least,
+to me. And the thought of how I unwillingly hurt him
+has made me all the more anxious to make reparation by
+being of service to his two boys. Perhaps you can imagine
+some of the things I've feared for them...."</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Here Aunt Selina broke off, choked by a sudden gust of
+emotion. James said nothing, but sat staring straight in
+front of him. Presently his aunt, steadying her voice to its
+accustomed pitch, went on:</p>
+
+<p>"Well, James, I told this to Beatrice, much as I've told<span class="pagenum">[358]</span>
+it to you, though not at so great length, and I could see it
+made an impression on her. She came over and sat down
+by me and took my hand without speaking.</p>
+
+<p>"'You lived through all that?' she said at last, 'and
+you never told any one?'</p>
+
+<p>"'Why should I have told?' I answered. 'There was no
+one to tell. I've only told you because I thought it might
+have some bearing on your own case.'</p>
+
+<p>"She caught her breath, gave a sort of little sigh. And
+that sigh said, as plainly as words, 'Dear me, I was so interested
+in your story I almost forgot I must get ready to
+go to New York to-morrow.' It was a setback; I saw I had
+overestimated the effect I had made. But I set my teeth
+and went on, determined not to give her up yet.</p>
+
+<p>"'Beatrice,' I said, 'I haven't told you all this for the
+pleasure of telling it nor to amuse you. I've told it to you
+because I wanted to show you how such a course of action as
+you're about to take works out in real life. There is a
+strange madness that comes over women sometimes, especially
+over strong women; a sort of obsession that makes
+them think they are too good for the men they love. I
+know it, I've felt it&mdash;I've suffered under it, if ever woman
+did! It may seem irresistible while it lasts, but oh, the
+remorse that comes afterward! Beatrice, how many times
+do you suppose I've lived over each snubbing speech I
+made to Milton Leffert? How often do you suppose my
+laugh at him when he told me about the tax board has rung
+through my ears? Those are the memories that stab the
+soul, Beatrice; don't let there be any such in your life!'</p>
+
+<p>"She didn't answer, but sat staring at the floor.</p>
+
+<p>"'Beatrice,' I went on, 'there's no mortal suffering like
+discovering you've done wrong when it's too late. It's
+the curse of strong-willed people. It all seems so simple
+to us at first; it's so easy for us to force our wills on other
+people, to rule others and be free ourselves. Then something
+happens, the true vision comes, and it's too late!
+Beatrice, I've caught you in time&mdash;it's not too late for you
+yet. Do you know where you stand now, Beatrice? You're
+at the point where I was when I told Adrian to burn that
+telegram!'</p>
+
+<p>"Still she said nothing, and the sight of her sitting there
+so beautiful and cold drove me almost wild. 'Oh, Beatrice,'
+I burst out, losing the last bit of my self-control, 'don't tell<span class="pagenum">[359]</span>
+me I've got to live through it all again with you! Don't
+go and repeat my mistake before my very eyes, with my example
+before yours! It was hard enough to live through
+it once myself, but what will it be when I sit helplessly
+by and watch the people I love best go through it all! I
+can't bear it, I can't, I can't! It takes all the meaning out
+of my own life!...'</p>
+
+<p>"She was moved by my display of feeling, but not by
+my words. She said nothing for a time, but took my hand
+again and began stroking it gently, as if to quiet me. I
+said nothing more&mdash;I couldn't speak. At last she said, in
+a calm, gentle tone of voice, as if she were explaining
+something to a child:&mdash;</p>
+
+<p>"'Aunt Selina, I don't think you quite understand about
+my marriage with James. It isn't like other marriages,
+exactly.'</p>
+
+<p>"'It seems to me enough that it is a marriage,' I answered.
+'Though I haven't spoken of that side of it, of
+course.'</p>
+
+<p>"'Oh, you won't understand!' she said.</p>
+
+<p>"'Beatrice,' said I, 'I couldn't understand if you kept
+telling me about it till to-morrow morning. No one ever
+will understand you, except your Creator&mdash;you might as
+well make up your mind to it. I don't doubt you've had
+many wrong things done to you. The point is, you're about
+to do one. Don't do it.'</p>
+
+<p>"Always back to the same old point, and nothing gained!
+I had the feeling of having fired my last shot and missed.
+I shut my eyes and leaned my head back and tried to think
+of some new way of putting it to her, but as a matter of
+fact I knew I had said all I had to say. And then, just as
+I was giving her up for lost, I heard her speaking again.</p>
+
+<p>"'Aunt Selina,' she said, 'you have made me think of
+one thing.'</p>
+
+<p>"'What's that, my dear?' I asked.</p>
+
+<p>"'Well, I don't doubt but what I have done wrong things
+already, without suspecting it. Oh, yes, I've been too sure
+of myself!'</p>
+
+<p>"'It's possible, my dear,' said I, 'but you haven't done
+anything that you can't still make up for, if you want.'</p>
+
+<p>"'I think I know what you mean,' she said slowly; 'you
+mean I could go and tell him so. Tell him I had done
+wrong and was sorry&mdash;for I did sin, not in deed, but still in<span class="pagenum">[360]</span>
+thought.... I never told him that, of course....' Then
+she shivered. 'Oh, but Aunt Selina, I can't do it, I can't!
+If you only knew how I've tried already, how I've
+humiliated myself!'</p>
+
+<p>"'That never did any one any harm,' I told her.</p>
+
+<p>"'And then,' she went on, 'even if I did do it, he'd never
+take me back&mdash;not on any terms! He'd only cast me away
+again&mdash;that's what would happen, you know! What would
+there be for me then but&mdash;Tommy?'</p>
+
+<p>"Well, I knew I'd won a great point in making her even
+consider it.</p>
+
+<p>"'Several things,' I answered, taking no pains to conceal
+my delight. 'In the first place, it's by no means certain
+that he will refuse you. But if he does&mdash;well, you'll
+never lack a home or a friend while I'm alive, my dear!
+And don't you go and pretend that I'm not more to you
+than that brainless, chinless, sniveling, driveling little fool
+of an Englishman, for I won't believe it!'</p>
+
+<p>"She laughed at that and for a moment we both laughed
+together. Then it suddenly occurred to me that I couldn't
+do better than leave it at that, let that laugh end our talk.</p>
+
+<p>"'Good night, my dear,' I said, kissing her. 'The time
+has come now when you've got to make up your mind for
+yourself. I've done all I can for you.' And with that I
+left her.</p>
+
+<p>"But, oh, James, it wasn't as simple as all that! It was
+all very well to tell her that and go to bed, but if you knew
+what agonies of doubt and suspense I went through during
+the night, fearing, hoping, wondering, praying! Those
+things are so much more complicated in real life than they
+are when you read them or see them acted. What should
+have happened was that I should have one grand scene with
+her and make her promise at the end to do as I wanted.
+And I did my best, I went as far as it was in me to go,
+and knew no more of the result than before I began! And
+we parted laughing&mdash;laughing, from that talk!</p>
+
+<p>"But almost the worst part of it was next morning when
+we met downstairs after breakfast, with the family about.
+I could scarcely say good morning to her, and I never dared
+catch her eye. And all the time that one great subject was
+burning in our minds. And we couldn't talk of it again,
+either; we couldn't have if we'd been alone together in a
+desert! You can't go on having scenes with people.<span class="pagenum">[361]</span></p>
+
+<p>"At last, after lunch, I was alone on the verandah with
+her, and managed to screw myself up to asking her whether
+she was going to New York or not.</p>
+
+<p>"'Yes, I'm going,' she answered.</p>
+
+<p>"'What do you mean by that?' I asked.</p>
+
+<p>"'Oh, I don't know what I mean!' she said desperately.
+I knew she was as badly off as I was, or worse, and after
+that I simply couldn't say another word to her.</p>
+
+<p>"But I saw her alone once again, just before she started.
+She kissed me good-by and smiled and whispered: 'Don't
+worry, Aunt Selina&mdash;it's all right,' and then the others
+came. Just that&mdash;nothing more!</p>
+
+<p>"I didn't know what to think&mdash;what I dared to think.
+One moment I rushed and telegraphed you, because I was
+afraid she was going to the Englishman, after all. The
+next minute I was hurrying to catch the night boat to
+Boston, because I thought she was going to you and that
+I might have to deal with you. I wanted to be with her
+in any case. Oh, I was so mad with the uncertainty and
+suspense I didn't know what I did or what I thought! But
+the impression I took away finally from her last words
+to me were that she was going to you.... But I never
+knew, James, <i>I never knew</i>! And now I never shall!..."</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[362]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_XIV2">CHAPTER XIV</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">A POTTER'S VESSEL</p>
+
+<p>By a great effort Aunt Selina had kept a firm control
+over herself throughout her narrative, but now, the
+immediate need of composure being removed, she gave way
+completely to her natural grief. James, whose attitude
+toward her had been somewhat as toward a divine visitation,
+an emissary of Nemesis, suddenly found he had to
+deal with an old woman suffering under an overwhelming
+sorrow. This put an end for the present to the possibility
+of expanding on the Nemesis suggestion. He fetched her
+some more whisky, reflecting that it must be not unpleasant
+to have reached the age where grief wore itself out
+even partially in physical symptoms, to which physical
+alleviations could be applied. For the first time he found
+himself considering Aunt Selina as an old woman.</p>
+
+<p>He could not help remarking, however, that even in
+age and even in grief Aunt Selina was rather magnificent.
+There was about her tears a Sophoclean, almost a Niobesque
+quality. It struck him that she must have been extremely
+good-looking in her youth.</p>
+
+<p>Of course Aunt Selina, even in that extremity, knew
+enough to refrain from pointing a moral already sufficiently
+obvious. She said little after finishing her account, and
+that little was expressive only of her immediate sense of
+loss.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, James," she moaned, "I had always thought my
+life went out in a little puff of red flame forty years ago
+and more, but it seemed to me that if I could use my experience
+to mend her life I should be well repaid for everything.
+And now...."</p>
+
+<p>They sat silent for the most part, both laboring under
+the terrific hopelessness of the situation, which certainty
+and uncertainty, together with the impossibility of action,
+combined to make intolerable. For a while each found a
+certain comfort in the other's mute presence, but at last
+even that wore off.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, my dear, you don't want to be bothered by a<span class="pagenum">[363]</span>
+hysterical old woman at this time," said Aunt Selina finally,
+and James obediently telephoned, for a taxi. Nemesis must
+be met, sooner or later....</p>
+
+<p>Only once, as they sat side by side in the dark cab, did
+Aunt Selina give utterance to the one idea that animated
+her thoughts of the future.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, I've lost my own life and I've lost her, and now
+you're the only thing I have left. Oh, James, for Heaven's
+sake don't let me lose you!"</p>
+
+<p>"No, Aunt Selina, no," he replied, laying his hand on
+hers and speaking with a promptness and a fervor that
+surprised himself.</p>
+
+<p>"One thing," she began just before they drew up at the
+hotel.</p>
+
+<p>"Yes?"</p>
+
+<p>"One thing I've learned in all these years is that there's
+nothing so bad that it isn't better to face it than dodge it.
+Nothing!"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," said James. "Thank you, Aunt Selina."</p>
+
+<p>He walked back to his apartment with a feeling as of
+straightening his shoulders. His aunt's words rang in his
+brain. There was need of courage, he saw that. Well, he
+had never lacked that and would not be found wanting in it
+now. Not even&mdash;the thought flashed on him as he opened
+his front door&mdash;not even if the kind of courage that was
+now needed implied humiliation. He entered his home
+with the consciousness of having made a good start.</p>
+
+<p>He walked straight into the bedroom.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, I've done you an injustice," he said aloud. "I
+misjudged you. I'm sorry."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, you didn't give her credit for being capable of
+loving YOU, did you?" rang a mocking voice in his brain.
+A palpable hit for Nemesis.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, you know what I <i>mean</i>," he answered petulantly.
+He thought it was unworthy of her to quibble thus, particularly
+when he was voluntarily assuming that Beatrice
+had started from Bar Harbor&mdash;well, with the right idea.
+He had a right to doubt there, which he was willing to
+waive.</p>
+
+<p>"I'm sorry," he repeated, "truly sorry. Isn't that
+enough?" His eyes fell on the photograph of Beatrice
+which still stood on the dressing table. He turned quickly
+away again.<span class="pagenum">[364]</span></p>
+
+<p>"Not by a long shot," said Nemesis, or words to that
+effect.</p>
+
+<p>No, somehow it wasn't. He realized it himself; even
+feeling that didn't give him the sense of repletion and
+calm that he sought. He paced the room for some time
+in silent anxiety.</p>
+
+<p>"I really don't know what to do," he admitted at last.
+"Suppose"&mdash;he was appealing to Beatrice now&mdash;"suppose
+you tell me what."</p>
+
+<p>He glanced involuntarily at the photograph. Its unchanging
+half-smile informed him that all help must now
+come from himself. A sudden access of rage at that photograph
+seized him.</p>
+
+<p>"Don't you laugh at me, when I'm trying my best!" he
+cried.</p>
+
+<p>The picture smiled on. In a burst of fury James picked
+up the frame and hurled it with all his strength into the
+mirror. There was a crash and a shower of broken glass,
+amid which the picture bounded lazily back and fell to the
+floor, face downward.</p>
+
+<p>James stood and stared at it, and as he stared a curious
+revulsion came over him. He stooped slowly down, unaccountably
+hoping with all his soul that the photograph
+was not hurt. He scarcely dared to turn it over....</p>
+
+<p>The glass was smashed to atoms, but the picture itself was
+unhurt. No, there was a cut across the face.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, I've hurt her, I've hurt Beatrice!" he whispered.</p>
+
+<p>Nemesis said something that made him sink into a chair
+and gaze before him with horror. Cinders, ashes, black
+coals, some of them still glowing&mdash;oh, the mere sight of
+them then had been unbearable! And now, in view of
+what he had learned.... He could not face the thought.</p>
+
+<p>Yet it was true: if it had not been for him Beatrice would
+still be alive. Whether she took that train intending to
+go to him or to Tommy it did not matter; she would not
+have taken it at all if he had behaved as he should.</p>
+
+<p>He turned his attention back to the picture, gently and
+carefully smoothing out the cut, as though in the hope
+that reparation to her effigy would make it easier to face
+the thought of having compassed her destruction.</p>
+
+<p>Somehow it did no such thing....</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Of course what Nemesis wanted was a confession that he<span class="pagenum">[365]</span>
+loved the woman whose death he was morally responsible
+for. James realized that himself, almost from the first,
+but it was not in his nature to admit easily that such an
+unreasonable change of feeling was possible to him. Long
+hours of struggle followed, hours of endless pacing, of
+fruitless internal argument, of blind resistance to the one
+hope, as he in the bottom of his soul knew it was, of his
+salvation. Resistance, brave, exhilarating, hopeless, futile,
+ignoble resistance to whatever happened to him contrary
+to the dictates of his own will&mdash;it was as inevitable to him
+as feeling itself.</p>
+
+<p>From time to time he thought of Tommy, and this, if
+he did but know it, was the best symptom he could have
+shown. For though at first he thought of him with little
+more than his usual contempt, envy soon began to creep in,
+then frank jealousy and at last a blind hatred that made
+him clench his hands and wish, as he had seldom wished
+anything, that Tommy's throat was between them. In fact
+he ended by hating Tommy quite as though he were his
+equal. He never stopped to consider that this change was
+no less revolutionary than the one he was fighting.</p>
+
+<p>The hopeless hours dragged on. A sense of physical
+fatigue grew on him; every muscle in him ached. His
+brain also staggered under the long strain; it hammered
+and rang. Certain scraps of sentences he had heard during
+the day buzzed through it with a curious insistence, taking
+advantage of his weakened state to torment him. A great
+chance, a great chance&mdash;Uncle James' parting words to
+him. Sorrow was a great chance&mdash;for some. For Aunt
+Selina, yes; for Beatrice, yes; or Uncle James, frozen and
+unresponsive as he appeared, yes. But not for him. Oh,
+no, he must admit it, he was not even worthy to suffer
+greatly. He was not really suffering now, he supposed;
+he was merely very tired. Otherwise those words, a great
+chance, a great chance, would not keep pounding through
+his head like the sound of loud wheels....</p>
+
+<p>Railroad wheels.</p>
+
+<p>Then what was it that Aunt Selina had said about finding
+out something too late? Oh, yes, people found out
+they loved other people when it was too late. Especially
+strong people. He was strong.... Could it be that <i>he</i>
+was going to discover something too late&mdash;<i>that</i>? It was too
+late for something already, but surely not for that! Just<span class="pagenum">[366]</span>
+think&mdash;Aunt Selina had found out too late, and Beatrice
+had found out too late, and now....</p>
+
+<p>Yes, if it was horrible it must be true. It was he who
+was too late. He understood about Aunt Selina, all she
+must have felt. And Beatrice too; he saw now how strong
+and noble and warm-hearted she had been, and how she
+must have suffered. Especially that. And now he had
+found out it was too late to tell her so!</p>
+
+<p>"We can't tell you what we don't know," the man in
+the station had said that morning. Words spoken mechanically
+and without thought, but containing the very essence
+of human tragedy. While there was yet time he had
+had no knowledge, not the slightest glimmering....</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Beatrice!" he groaned, "if I had only been able
+to hope! Just a little hope, even at that last minute on
+the platform! That would be something to be thankful
+for!"</p>
+
+<p>And then in the anguish of his remorse all his fatigue
+and uncertainty suddenly fell from him. Nothing remained
+but the thought of her, strong, generous, brave,
+humble, all that he had professed to admire&mdash;dead! And
+he, false, mean, cowardly, cold-hearted, alive. And the
+idea of never being able to tell her that at last he understood
+became so intolerable, so cruel, so contrary to all that
+was good in life, so blindly unthinkable, that....</p>
+
+<p>Well, in a word, it simply ceased to be. Such a life as
+had been hers could not fade into nothingness, such a heart
+as hers could not fail to understand, be she dead or alive.</p>
+
+<p>"God," he whispered, clutching with all his strength at
+the hope the word now contained, "God, make her understand!
+I recant, I repent, I believe&mdash;anything! Forgive
+me if you can or punish me as you will, only let her live,
+let her know...."</p>
+
+<p>Then, as the crowning torment, came hope. After all,
+he knew nothing; he only supposed. Nothing was certain;
+only probable. Something might have happened; he dared
+not think what or how, but it was possible, conceivable, at
+least, that Beatrice was not on that train when it was
+wrecked. Beatrice might still be alive!... The anguish
+of the fall back into probability was sharper than anything
+he had yet known, but every time he found himself struggling
+painfully up again toward that small spark of light.</p>
+
+<p>He fell on his knees beside the bed&mdash;her bed&mdash;and tried<span class="pagenum">[367]</span>
+to pray. Nothing came to his lips but the words he had so
+long disdained to say, uttered now with a fierce sweet jubilation:</p>
+
+<p>"Beatrice, I love you. I never did before, but I do now&mdash;at
+least I think I do! I never knew, I never understood,
+but I do now! Beatrice, I do love you, I do, I do! Beatrice...."</p>
+
+<p>But apparently they satisfied the power that has charge
+of such matters, for even as he stammered the words that
+saved him a blessed drowsiness stole over him and before
+long he slept as he knelt. It was morning when he awoke.</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[368]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_XV2">CHAPTER XV</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">THE TIDE TURNS</p>
+
+<p>A gray morning, wet and close, whose very atmosphere
+was death to hope. James did hope, nevertheless,
+with all the refreshed energy of his being. Hope came as
+soon as he started to wake up, before he began to feel the
+cramps in his limbs, before he had time to rub his eyes and
+wonder what had happened.</p>
+
+<p>A hot bath, and then breakfast. Physical alleviations;
+he was humiliated to realize they did make a difference,
+even to him. He shuddered at the thought of how he had
+patronizingly envied Aunt Selina for being helped by them
+last night, much as he shuddered at the remembrance of
+having once dared to pity Beatrice....</p>
+
+<p>But the present was also with him, and the present was
+even harder to face than the past. Hope sprang eternal,
+but so did certainty. One might have thought that they
+would have neutralized each other's effects and left a blank,
+but as a matter of fact they only doubled each other's torments.
+The moment breakfast was over James started off
+for the station to set one or the other at rest.</p>
+
+<p>He went straight to the press room, which was only just
+open; he had to wait for the agent to arrive. When he
+came he was able to tell James nothing new, but he conducted
+him to a departmental manager. He was no more
+satisfactory, but he undertook to make every possible inquiry.
+Leaving James in an outer office he called various
+people to him, got into telephonic communication with
+others and ended by calling up Stamford and then Boston.
+But James could guess the result from his face the moment
+he reentered the room.</p>
+
+<p>"Nothing?" he asked.</p>
+
+<p>"Nothing. But don't give up yet."</p>
+
+<p>James walked slowly down the corridor toward the
+elevator. It was a long corridor, dark and empty; James
+could not see the end of it when he started. The sound of
+his feet echoed hollowly along the dim walls. Altogether<span class="pagenum">[369]</span>
+it was rather an eerie place, not at all suggestive of a
+modern office building. Much more, it seemed to James as
+he walked on, like life.... A blind alley, the end of which
+was in shadow, where one must walk alone and in almost
+total darkness. A place where one's footsteps echo with
+painful exactness&mdash;one must walk carefully lest the sound
+of their irregularity should ring evilly in one's ears and
+pierce unharmoniously into those mysterious chambers
+alongside, perhaps even into other corridors, other people's
+corridors....</p>
+
+<p>He roused himself from his reverie with a jerk, but his
+mood remained on him, translated into a larger meaning.
+He was alive; no matter what had happened to Beatrice, he
+was still alive, with a living person's duties and responsibilities&mdash;and
+chances. Beatrice, even though cut off in
+the bloom of her youth, had succeeded in making a person
+of herself, justifying her existence, supplying a guiding
+light to some of those who walked in greater darkness than
+herself. He had not as yet done that. Well, he must.
+He would. Beatrice's gift to him should not be wasted.
+In a flash he felt his strength and his manhood return to
+him. He looked into the future with a humble yet unflinching
+gaze; hope and certainty had lost their terrors
+for him. If Beatrice had died, he would thank God that
+it had been given him to know her and do his best to translate
+her spirit into earthly terms. If by any impossible
+chance she still lived&mdash;well, he could do nothing to make
+himself worthy of such happiness, but he would do his best.</p>
+
+<p>He walked out of the elevator into the concourse, the
+huge unchanging concourse where so much had happened
+yesterday. It was comparatively empty at this moment,
+only a few figures waiting patiently before train gates.
+One of these caught his eye; it took on a bafflingly familiar
+appearance. He moved curiously nearer to it....</p>
+
+<p>Tommy!</p>
+
+<p>At last, at last, at last he was going to feel that throat
+between his fingers, get a chance to exterminate that&mdash;that&mdash;He
+sprang forward like a wildcat.</p>
+
+<p>He stopped before he had taken two steps, with a feeling
+of impotence, hopelessness. Who was he, who under
+the sun was he to teach Tommy anything? Tommy&mdash;why,
+Tommy had loved Beatrice, not after it was too late,
+but before! Beatrice had preferred Tommy to him.<span class="pagenum">[370]</span>
+Tommy was a better man than he was; he took a morbid
+joy in thinking how much better.</p>
+
+<p>It was conceivable that Tommy might know something.
+Perhaps he had even come to this very spot to meet Beatrice....
+Well, he would not blame her or offer objections,
+if it were so. He would accept such a judgment gladly, as
+a small price for knowing she was alive. He hurried across
+the concourse.</p>
+
+<p>"Tommy, can you tell me anything about Beatrice?"
+James' voice was so matter-of-fact, so strikingly unfitted
+to a Situation, that Tommy was rather irritated. He
+flushed.</p>
+
+<p>"No, of course not. Why should I?"</p>
+
+<p>"I only thought&mdash;seeing you here&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"No." The tone was abrupt to the point of rudeness,
+wholly un-Tommylike. There was an odd moment of
+silence, which Tommy ended by breaking out: "Why the
+devil do you have to come here and crow over me? Why
+can't you let me clear out in peace?"</p>
+
+<p>James was so penitent for having hurt Tommy that he
+did not at first notice the implication in his words.</p>
+
+<p>"I'm sorry&mdash;I meant nothing! I've been out of my
+head with anxiety.... I only thought she might have gone
+somewhere else to meet you&mdash;it was my last hope...."</p>
+
+<p>"<i>What?</i>" Tommy cocked his eyebrows incredulously,
+with a sort of fierceness. "Hope of what?"</p>
+
+<p>"Why, that Beatrice was still alive."</p>
+
+<p>"Still alive? What on earth&mdash;! What makes you think
+she isn't?"</p>
+
+<p>"Do you mean to say&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>Again the two stared at each other in a strained silence.
+Then Tommy produced a crumpled yellow envelope from
+his pocket and handed it to James.</p>
+
+<p>"I got this yesterday morning&mdash;that's all I know. I
+haven't been able to destroy the damned thing...."</p>
+
+<p>James took it and opened it. A telegram:&mdash;</p>
+
+<blockquote><p>It's all off, Tommy. Please go away and forgive me if
+you can. Beatrice.</p></blockquote>
+
+<p>He looked at the date at the top. Boston, 8:37 <span class="smcap">A. M.</span>
+Boston! The Maine Special did not go into Boston; Beatrice
+had left it before&mdash;before....<span class="pagenum">[371]</span></p>
+
+<p>"Tommy," he said faintly, "Tommy, I&mdash;" His head
+swam; he felt himself reeling.</p>
+
+<p>"All right, old top, all right; easy does it." He felt
+Tommy's arm about him and heard Tommy's voice in his
+ears, the voice of the good-hearted Tommy of old. Suddenly
+the idea of a disappointed lover calling his fainting
+though successful rival old top and telling him that easy
+did it struck him as wildly and irresistibly humorous. He
+laughed, and the sound of his laugh acted like a stimulant.
+He bit his lip hard.</p>
+
+<p>"All right now&mdash;I'll go up and get into a taxi. You
+see," he began explanatorily to Tommy as he walked beside
+him, "I thought&mdash;I thought&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"I see," supplied Tommy companionably, "you thought
+she was in the accident, of course. Beastly thing, that accident;
+no wonder it knocked you up. Knocked me up a
+bit myself when I heard of it, although I knew she couldn't
+be in it. Easy up the steps&mdash;righto! Everything turned
+out all right in the end, though, didn't it? Pretty hefty
+steps, wot? Pretty hefty place altogether&mdash;nothing like
+it in London...."</p>
+
+<p>A cab puffed up beside them. James turned with his
+hand on the door. An unaccountable wave of affection,
+respect, even, for Tommy surged through him. "Tommy,
+you're going away now, I take it?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes&mdash;Chicago." (He pronounced it <i>Shickago</i>. That
+was nothing; when he arrived in the country he had pronounced
+it with the ch sound. In a few more weeks he
+would get it correctly; you couldn't expect too much at a
+time from Tommy.)</p>
+
+<p>"Well, Tommy, see here&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes?"</p>
+
+<p>"It may sound silly to you, but&mdash;come and see us some
+time!"</p>
+
+<p>"Righto. Not now, though&mdash;got to see the country&mdash;train
+leaves in two minutes. See America first, wot?
+Good-by!" and he was off.</p>
+
+<p>James sank back into the cab, admiring the other's tact.
+A thoughtless, brutal proposal; of course he ought never
+to have made it. It was not in him, though, to deny Tommy
+any sign of the overwhelming love for the whole world that
+filled him.</p>
+
+<p>When he reached his apartment his physical strength<span class="pagenum">[372]</span>
+was restored, but mentally he seemed paralyzed. There
+was much to be done, but he had no idea how to go about it.
+A bright thought struck him; he called up Aunt Selina.
+He laughed foolishly into the transmitter; Heaven knows
+how he made her understand at last. The two babbled
+incoherently at one another for a moment and abruptly
+rang off, without saying good-by.... Another bright idea&mdash;Uncle
+James. He was more definite, but James had little
+idea of what he said. He caught something about a Comparatively
+Simple Matter.... Uncle J. undertook to do
+everything, whatever it was. A satisfactory person.</p>
+
+<p>After that James sat down in an armchair and for a
+long time remained there, reduced to an inarticulate pulp
+of joy.</p>
+
+<p>An hour or two later Beatrice's telegram arrived. It
+was dated from an obscure place in the White Mountains.
+"Quite safe and well; only just heard of the accident," it
+read. Just ten words. But quite enough! To think of
+her telegraphing <i>him</i>!...</p>
+
+<p>Immediately he became strong and efficient again. He
+rushed back to the station, dashed off a telegram and caught
+up a time table. Confound the trains&mdash;nothing till eight-fifteen!</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>When she left Bar Harbor, Beatrice had no very clear
+idea of what she was going to do. Of one thing she was
+fairly sure; she was not going to Tommy. Where Aunt
+Cecilia's tentative suggestions concerning the dangers besetting
+a young wife had failed, Aunt Selina's uncompromising
+realism had gone straight to the point. Her eyes
+were opened; she saw what pitfalls infatuation and pique
+and obstinacy might lead her into. She was willing to
+admit that the thing she had planned to do would be
+equivalent to throwing away her last hold on life&mdash;all she
+read into the word life. No, she would not go to Tommy.
+Not directly, anyway....</p>
+
+<p>Ah, there was the rub. Suppose her imagined scene of
+confession and appeal turned into one of mutual recrimination
+and resentment&mdash;the old sort. What was more
+likely, in view of her past experience? Were things so
+radically changed now that either she or James would be
+able to understand the other better than before? With
+the best intentions in the world she could not help rubbing<span class="pagenum">[373]</span>
+him the wrong way, and she feared the anger and hopelessness
+that it was his power to inspire in her. With
+Tommy at hand, in the same town, could she trust herself
+to resist the temptation of throwing herself into his ready
+arms? It was all very well for Aunt Selina to say that
+she was worth more to Beatrice than Tommy; Beatrice was
+quite convinced of it, in the calm light of reason. But in
+the hour of failure, with her pride and her woman's desire
+for protection and love worked up to white heat, would she
+still be convinced of it? Could she dare entrust her whole
+chance of future happiness to the strength of her reason in
+the moment of its greatest trial?</p>
+
+<p>Thoughts like these mingled with the rattle of the train
+in a sleepless night. In the morning one thing emerged
+into clarity; she must wait till Tommy was out of the way.
+If her determination to try to regain James was worth anything,
+she must give it every possible chance for success.
+Her hopes for a happy issue out of her dreadful labyrinth
+were not so good that she could afford to take one unnecessary
+risk.</p>
+
+<p>Well, if she wasn't going to New York she would have to
+get off the train, obviously. So she alighted outside Boston
+early in the morning, took a local into town and telegraphed
+Tommy. Then, as she wandered aimlessly through
+the station her eye fell on a framed time-table in which
+occurred the name of a small White Mountain resort of
+which she had lately heard; a place described to her as remote
+and quiet and possessed of one fairly good hotel. She
+noticed that a train was due to leave for there in an hour's
+time. In a moment her decision was made; she would go
+up there and wait for Tommy to get safely out of the way,
+carefully plan out her course of action and&mdash;she scarcely
+dared express the thought, even mentally&mdash;give herself a
+little time to enjoy her newly-awakened love before putting
+it to the final test.</p>
+
+<p>She arrived in the evening, took a room in the hotel
+and went to bed almost immediately, sleeping soundly for
+the first time in weeks. About the middle of the next
+morning the Boston papers arrived. Until then she had
+no notion that the train she had traveled by had been
+wrecked.</p>
+
+<p>She telegraphed immediately to Aunt Cecilia and then,
+after some thought, to James. It seemed the thing to do,<span class="pagenum">[374]</span>
+everything being considered. She wondered if he knew
+she was safe, how he would take the news, if he had been
+much disturbed by uncertainty. She was inclined to fear
+that her escape had not done her cause any particular
+good....</p>
+
+<p>His reply arrived surprisingly soon: "Stay where you
+are, am coming." She was touched. Apparently the turn
+of events had had a favorable effect on him; if he cared
+enough now to come up and see her the opportunity for
+putting her plea to him must be fairly propitious. There
+was a fair chance that if she acted wisely all would turn
+out well. But oh, she must be careful!</p>
+
+<p>She knew he must arrive by the morning train and arose
+betimes so as to be on hand. She was in some doubt about
+breakfast, whether to get it early or wait for him. Either
+way might be better or worse; it all depended on the outcome
+of their meeting. She ended by deciding to wait;
+she would let him breakfast alone if&mdash;if. Small interest
+she would have in breakfast in that event.</p>
+
+<p>She was downstairs long before the train was due to
+arrive. The weather had cleared during the night and the
+morning was sunny and cool, a true autumn day. She
+tried waiting on the verandah, but the wind was so sharp
+that she soon returned to the warm lobby. She could
+watch the road equally well from the front windows; there
+was a long open ascent from the station. At last she saw
+the hotel wagon appear round a curve. There was only
+one passenger in it. He, of course. She could recognize
+the set of his head and shoulders even at that distance.
+She hoped he had a warm enough overcoat.</p>
+
+<p>The wagon reached the steepest part of the incline, and
+he was out, walking briskly along beside it. Before it,
+very soon; he went so much faster. How like James, and
+how unnecessary! He the only passenger, and what were
+horses made for, anyway? Still perhaps it was better, if
+he were not warmly dressed....</p>
+
+<p>The ascent grew steeper before him and his pace visibly
+decreased. But the wagon merely crawled, far behind
+him! He was a furious walker. That hill was enough to
+phase any one....</p>
+
+<p>Presently the sight of him plodding painfully up toward
+her while she waited calmly at the top grew perfectly intolerable.
+She could bear it no longer; hatless and coatless<span class="pagenum">[375]</span>
+she rushed out of the hotel and down the road toward him.
+After a while he raised his face and their eyes met. Nearer
+and nearer they came, gazing fixedly into each other's eyes
+and discovering new things there, new lives, new
+worlds....</p>
+
+<p>They did not even kiss. She, looking beyond him, saw
+the driver of the station wagon peering up at them, and
+he caught sight over her shoulder of the staring windows
+of the hotel. They stopped with some embarrassment and
+immediately began walking up together.</p>
+
+<p>"It's nice to see you, James; did you have a good journey?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, very, thanks. You comfortable here?"</p>
+
+<p>On they walked, in silence. Gradually their embarrassment
+left them and gave place to a sort of awe. Something
+was going to happen, something great and wonderful;
+they no longer doubted it nor felt any fear. But&mdash;all
+in good time!</p>
+
+<p>It must be coming soon, though, to judge by the way it
+kept pressing down on them. Good time? Heavens, there
+never was any time but the present moment, never would
+be any....</p>
+
+<p>"Beatrice," said James, staring hard at the ground in
+front of him, "I know now how wicked I've been. Do you
+think you can ever forgive me?"</p>
+
+<p>"Why, James," said Beatrice gently, "dear James,
+there's nothing to forgive."</p>
+
+<p>Then he looked up and saw there were tears on her
+cheeks....</p>
+
+<p>Yes, right there in the open road!</p>
+
+<hr class="chapter" />
+
+<span class="pagenum">[376]</span>
+
+<h2 id="CHAPTER_XVI2">CHAPTER XVI</h2>
+
+<p class="h3">REINSTATEMENT OF A SCH&Ouml;NE SEELE</p>
+
+<p>The sunlight of a golden October afternoon poured
+down on a little brick terrace running along one side
+of the farmhouse in the Berkshires Harry had bought and
+reformed into a summer house. It was not the principal
+open-air extension of the place; the official verandah was
+on the other side, commanding a wide view to the east and
+south. This was just a little private terrace, designed especially
+for use on afternoons like the present, when for
+the moment autumn went back on all its promises and in a
+moment of carelessness poured over a dying landscape the
+breath of May. The only view to be had from it was up
+a grassy slope to the west, on the summit of which, according
+to all standards except those of the New England
+farmer of one hundred years ago, the house ought to have
+been built. Not that either Madge or Harry cared particularly.
+They were fond of pointing out that Tom Ball,
+or West Stockbridge Mountain, or whatever it was, shut
+out the view to the west anyway, and that they were lucky
+enough to find a farmhouse with any view from it at all.</p>
+
+<p>On the terrace sat James and Beatrice, who were spending
+a week-end with their relatives. Madge was with them.
+Presumably there was current in her mind a polite fiction
+that she was entertaining her guests, but she did not take
+her duties of hostess-ship too seriously. It was not even
+necessary to keep up a conversation; they all got along far
+too well together for that. They simply sat and enjoyed
+the fleeting sunshine, making pleasant and unnecessary
+remarks whenever they felt moved to do so. Probably they
+also thought, from time to time. Of the general extraordinariness
+of things, and so forth. If they all spent a little
+time in admiring the adroitness with which the hands of
+fate had shuffled them, with the absent member of the pack,
+into their present satisfactory positions, we should not be
+at all surprised. But of course none of them made any
+allusion to it.</p>
+
+<p>Harry suddenly burst through the glass door leading<span class="pagenum">[377]</span>
+from the house and flopped into a chair. His appearance
+was informal. The others turned toward him with curious
+nostrils.</p>
+
+<p>"I know, I know," he sighed. "The only thing is for
+us all to smoke. You too, Beatrice. Because if you don't
+you'll smell me, and if you smell me I'll have to go up and
+wash, and if I go up and wash now I shall miss this last
+hour of sunshine and that will make you all very, very
+unhappy."</p>
+
+<p>"I am smoking," said Beatrice calmly, "because I want
+to, and for no other reason."</p>
+
+<p>"And I," observed Madge, "because Harry doesn't want
+me to."</p>
+
+<p>"If you want to know what I've been doing since
+lunch," said Harry, disregarding the insult, "I don't mind
+telling you that I've mended a wire fence, covered the asparagus
+bed, conducted several successful bonfires and
+filled all the grease-cups on the Ford. I have also
+turned&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," said James, "we've guessed that."</p>
+
+<p>"And now only a few trifles such as feeding fowls and
+swine&mdash;or as Madge prefers to put it, chickabiddies and
+piggywigs&mdash;stand between me and a well-deserved repose.
+Heavens! I don't see how farmers can keep such late
+hours. Harker, I believe, frequently stays up till nearly
+nine. I feel as if it ought to be midnight now; nothing
+but the thought of the piggywigs keeps me out of bed."</p>
+
+<p>"Can't Harker feed the piggywigs?" inquired Beatrice.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes," said Madge, "just as he can do all the other
+things Harry does a great deal better than he. But it
+keeps him busy and happy, so we let him go on."</p>
+
+<p>"Just as if you didn't cry every night to feed your old
+pigs!" retorted her husband.</p>
+
+<p>Madge laughed. "Yes, I am rather a fool about the poor
+things, even if they aren't so attractive as they were in
+June. You should have seen them, so pink and tiny and
+sweet, standing up on their hind legs and wiggling their
+noses at you! No one could help wanting to feed them,
+they were so helpless and confident of receiving a shower
+of manna from above. I know just how the Almighty felt
+when he fed the Israelites."</p>
+
+<p>"Better manna than manners," murmured Harry, and
+for a while there was a profound silence.<span class="pagenum">[378]</span></p>
+
+<p>"What about a stroll before tea?" presently suggested
+the happy farmer.</p>
+
+<p>"I should like to," said James. "We'll have to make
+it short, though."</p>
+
+<p>"Very well. What about the others&mdash;the fair swine-herd?"</p>
+
+<p>"I think not," answered the person referred to, smiling
+up at him. "I took quite a long walk before lunch, you
+know."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes," said Harry, blushing for no apparent reason.
+"Beatrice?"</p>
+
+<p>Beatrice preferred to stay with Madge.</p>
+
+<p>"You see," said Harry when the two had gone a little
+way; "you see, the fact is, Madge&mdash;hm. Madge&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"You mean," said James, smiling, "there is hope of a
+new generation of our illustrious house?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes! I only learned this morning. If it's a boy
+we're going to call it James, and if it's a girl we're going
+to call it Jaqueline."</p>
+
+<p>"I wonder," mused James, "how many times you have
+named it since you first heard."</p>
+
+<p>"There have been several suggestions," admitted Harry,
+laughing. "I really think it will end by that, though."</p>
+
+<p>"Jaqueline&mdash;quite a pretty name. Much prettier than
+James&mdash;I rather hope it will be a girl."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, I do too," said Harry. And both knew that they
+would not have troubled to express that wish if they had
+not really hoped the direct opposite....</p>
+
+<p>They walked slowly up the hill and presently turned
+and stopped to admire the view that the foolish prudence
+of a dead farmer had prevented them from enjoying from
+the house. It was a very lovely view, with its tumbled
+stretches of hills and fields and occasional sheets of blue
+water bathed in the mellow light of the sun that hung low
+over the dark mountain wall to the west. Possibly it was
+its sheer beauty, or the impression it gave of distance from
+human strife and sordidness, or perhaps the subject last
+mentioned imparted to their thoughts and impulse away
+from the trivial and familiar; at any rate when Harry next
+spoke his words fell neither on James' ears nor his own
+with the sound of fatuity that they might have held at another
+time.</p>
+
+<p>"James," he said, "we're getting on, aren't we? I<span class="pagenum">[379]</span>
+don't mean in years, though that's a most extraordinary
+feeling in itself, but in&mdash;in life, in the business of living.
+If you ask me what I mean by that high-sounding phrase
+I can only say it's something like coming out of every
+experience a little better qualified to meet whatever new
+experience lies in store for you. Of course we've heard
+about life being a game and all that facile rot ever since
+we were old enough to speak, but it's quite different when
+you come to <i>feel</i> it. It's a sensation all by itself, isn't it?"</p>
+
+<p>James drew a deep breath. "Yes, it is quite by itself,"
+he agreed. "And I'm glad to be able to say that at last
+I have some idea of what the actual feeling is like. It was
+atrophied long enough in me, Heaven knows! It's still
+very slight, very timid and tentative; just a sort of glimmering
+at times&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"That's all it ever is," said Harry. "Just an occasional
+glimmering. The true feeling, that is. If it's anything
+more, it isn't really that at all, but just a sort of stuckupness,
+an idea that I am equal to the worst life can do
+to Me! I know people that seem to have that attitude&mdash;insufferable!
+Only life is pretty apt to punish them by
+giving them a great deal more than they bargained for."</p>
+
+<p>James was silent a moment, as with a sort of confessional
+silence. But he knew Harry would not understand its
+confessional quality, so he said quietly: "That's exactly
+what happened to me, of course."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, rot! Did you think I meant you?"</p>
+
+<p>"No, but it's true, for all that. Thank Heaven I have
+been permitted to live through it!... The truth is, I suppose,
+I was too successful early in life. In school, in college
+and afterward it was always the same&mdash;I found myself
+able to do certain things with an ease that surprised
+and delighted people&mdash;no one more than myself. For they
+weren't things that mattered especially, you see; they were
+showy, spectacular things that appealed to the public eye,
+like playing football. I was a good physical specimen, not
+through any effort or merit of my own, but simply through
+a natural gift, and a very poor and hollow gift it is, as
+I've found out. I don't think people quite realize the problem
+that a man of the athletic type has to face if he's going
+to make anything out of himself but an athlete. From
+early boyhood he's conscious of physical superiority; he
+knows perfectly well that in the last resort he can knock the<span class="pagenum">[380]</span>
+other fellow down and stamp on him, and that gives him a
+certain feeling of repose and self-sufficiency that's very
+pernicious. It usually passes for strength of character,
+but it's nothing in the world but faith in bone and muscle.
+And people do worship physical strength so! It's small
+wonder a man gets his head turned.... Good Lord, the
+ideas I used to have about myself! Why, in college, if
+any one had made me say what, in the bottom of my heart,
+I thought was the greatest possible thing for a man of my
+years to be, I should have said being a great football player
+in a great university. That is, I wouldn't have said it, because
+that would have been like bragging, and it isn't done
+to brag: but that would have been my secret thought.</p>
+
+<p>"And then, if the man has any brains or any capacity
+for feeling, he runs up against some of the big forces of
+life, and he finds his physical strength no more use to him
+than a broken reed. It's quite a shock! I've been more
+severely tried than most people are, I imagine, but Heaven
+knows I needed it! Everything had gone my way before
+that; I literally never knew what it was to have to put up
+a fight against something I recognized as stronger than I
+and likely to beat me in the end. Well, I'm grateful
+enough for it now. Thank Heaven for it! Thank Heaven
+for letting me fight and find out my weakness and come
+through it somehow, instead of remaining a mere mountain
+of beef all my days!"</p>
+
+<p>Both stood silent for a moment after James had ended
+this confession, less because they felt embarrassment in the
+presence of the feeling that lay behind it than because for
+a short time the past lay on them too heavily for words.
+After a few seconds they moved as though by a common
+impulse and walked slowly along the grassy crest of the
+ridge, and Harry began again.</p>
+
+<p>"What you say sounds very well coming from you,
+James, but I have reason to believe that very little, if any
+of it, is true. It was my privilege to know you during the
+years you speak of, and I seem to remember you as something
+more than a mountain of beef. Don't be absurd,
+James!"</p>
+
+<p>He paused a moment and then went on more seriously:
+"No, James; if there was ever any danger of any of us
+suffering from cock-sureness it's I, at this moment. Do
+you realize how ridiculously happy I've been for the last<span class="pagenum">[381]</span>
+year or so? This success of mine&mdash;oh, I've worked, but
+it's been absurdly easy, for all that&mdash;and Madge, and
+everything&mdash;it seems sometimes as if there was something
+strange and sinister about it. It simply can't be good for
+any one to be so happy! It worries me."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, as long as it does, you needn't," said James.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, I see! That makes it quite simple, of course!"</p>
+
+<p>"What I mean," elucidated James, "is that, if you feel
+that way about it, it's probable that you really deserve
+what happiness you have. After all, you know, you have
+paid for some. You have had your times; I don't mind
+admitting that there have been moments when you weren't
+quite the archangel which of course you are at present!"</p>
+
+<p>Harry laughed. "The prophet Jeremiah once said something
+about its being good for a man that he should bear
+the yoke in his youth. If that is equivalent to saying that
+the earlier a man has his bad times the better, it may be
+that I got off more easily by having them in college than
+if they'd held off till later. One does learn certain things
+easier if one learns them early. But that doesn't mean
+that your youth has passed without your feeling the yoke,
+or that your youth has passed yet. You're still in the
+Jeremiah class! One would hardly say that at thirty&mdash;you're
+not much over thirty, are you?"</p>
+
+<p>"A few weeks under, I believe."</p>
+
+<p>"I'm sorry!&mdash;Well, at thirty there are surely years of
+youth ahead of you, which you, having borne your yoke,
+may look forward to without fear and with every prospect
+of enjoying to the fullest extent. Whereas I&mdash;well, there's
+even more time for me to bear yokes in, if necessary. I
+don't much believe that Jeremiah has done with me yet,
+somehow!"</p>
+
+<p>"You're not afraid of the future, though, are you?"
+asked James after a pause.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, no&mdash;that would never do. I feel about it as....
+One can't say these things without sounding cocksure and
+insufferable!"</p>
+
+<p>"You mean you'll do your best under the circumstances?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, or make a good try at it! And then.... Of
+course I can't be as happy as I am without having a good
+deal at stake; I've given hostages to fortune&mdash;that's Francis
+Bacon, not me. And if fortune should look upon those<span class="pagenum">[382]</span>
+hostages with a covetous eye&mdash;if anything, for instance,
+should happen to Madge in what's coming, why, there are
+still plenty of things that the worst fortune can't spoil!...
+Well, you know."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," said James; "I know."</p>
+
+<p>"In fact, there are certain things in the past so dear
+to me that perhaps, if it came to the point, it would be almost
+a joy to pay heavily for them. But that's only the
+way I feel about it now, of course. It's easy enough to
+be brave when there's no danger."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," said James, "but I think you're right in the
+main. After all, the past is one's own&mdash;inalienably, forever!
+While the future is any man's....</p>
+
+<p>"Of course you know," he went on after a pause, "that
+my past would have been nothing at all to me without you.
+It sounds funny, but it's true."</p>
+
+<p>"Funny is the word," said Harry.</p>
+
+<p>"But perfectly true. I should never have come through&mdash;all
+this business if it hadn't been for you."</p>
+
+<p>"Look here, James, you're not going to thank me for
+saving your soul, are you? That would be a little forced!"</p>
+
+<p>"My dear man, I'm not thanking you, I'm telling you!
+You were the one good thing I held on to; I was false and
+wicked in about every way I could be, but I did always
+try, in a sort of blind and blundering way, to be true to
+you. You've been&mdash;unconsciously if you will have it so&mdash;the
+best influence of my life, and I thought it might be
+well to tell you, that's all."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, I won't pretend I'm not glad to hear it," said
+Harry soberly. "It is rather remarkable when you come
+to think of it," he went on after a moment, "how our lives
+have been bound up together. It's rather unusual with
+brothers, I imagine. Generally they see a good deal too
+much of each other during their early years and when they
+grow up they settle down into an acquaintanceship of a
+more or less cordial nature. But with us it's been different.
+Being apart during those early years, I suppose,
+made it necessary for us to rediscover each other when we
+grew up...."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," said James, "and the process of rediscovering
+had some rather lively passages in it, if I remember right."</p>
+
+<p>"It did! But it was a good thing; it gave us a new
+interest in each other. One reason why people are commonly<span class="pagenum">[383]</span>
+so much more enthusiastic about their friends than
+about their relations is because their relations are an accident,
+but their friends are a credit to them. It just
+shows what a selfish thing human nature is, I suppose."</p>
+
+<p>"I see; a new way of being a credit to ourselves. Well,
+most of it's on my side, I imagine."</p>
+
+<p>Harry turned gravely toward his brother. "It seems
+to me, James, you suffer under a tendency to overestimate
+my virtues. You mustn't, you know; it's extremely
+bad for me. I should say, if questioned closely, that that
+was your one fault&mdash;if one expects a kindred tendency to
+shield me from things I ought not to be shielded from."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, rot, man!"</p>
+
+<p>"You needn't talk&mdash;you do. I've felt it, all along,
+though you've done your job so well that for the most
+part I never knew what you'd saved me from."</p>
+
+<p>"Well.... I might go so far as to say that when I've
+put you before myself I generally find I'm all right, and
+when I put myself first I generally find I'm all wrong.
+But as I've been all wrong most of the time, it doesn't
+signify much!"</p>
+
+<p>"Hm. You put it so that I can't insist very hard. It's
+there, though, for all that. Funny thing. I don't believe
+it's a bit usual between friends, really, especially between
+brothers. Whatever started you on it? It must have been
+more or less conscious."</p>
+
+<p>For a moment James thought of telling him. They had
+lived so long since then; it would be amusing for them to
+trace together the effects of that one little guiding idea.
+But he thought of the years ahead, and they seemed to call
+out to him with warning voices, voices full of a tale of tasks
+unfinished and the need of a vigilance sharper than before.
+So he only laughed a little and said:</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, it's you that are exaggerating now! You mustn't
+get ideas about it; it's no more than you'd do for me, or
+any one for any one else he cares about. But little as it
+is, don't grudge it to me, for though it may not have done
+you much good, it's been the saving of me...."</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>So they walked and talked as the sun sank low and the
+night fell gently from a cloudless sky. To Madge and
+Beatrice, seeing them silhouetted against that final blaze
+of glory in the west, they seemed almost as one figure.</p>
+
+</div>
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+<pre>
+
+
+
+
+
+End of Project Gutenberg's The Whirligig of Time, by Wayland Wells Williams
+
+*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE WHIRLIGIG OF TIME ***
+
+***** This file should be named 37906-h.htm or 37906-h.zip *****
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+ http://www.gutenberg.org/3/7/9/0/37906/
+
+Produced by Roger Frank, Matthew Wheaton and the Online
+Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
+will be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
+one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
+(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
+permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
+set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
+copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
+protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
+Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
+charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
+do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
+rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
+such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
+research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
+practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
+subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
+redistribution.
+
+
+
+*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
+http://gutenberg.org/license).
+
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
+all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
+If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
+terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
+entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
+
+1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
+and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
+or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
+collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
+individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
+located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
+copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
+works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
+are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
+Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
+freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
+this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
+the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
+keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
+a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
+the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
+before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
+creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
+Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
+the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
+States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
+access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
+whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
+phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
+copied or distributed:
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
+from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
+posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
+and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
+or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
+with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
+work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
+through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
+Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
+1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
+terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
+to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
+permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
+word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
+distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
+"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
+posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
+you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
+copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
+request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
+form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
+that
+
+- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
+ owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
+ has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
+ Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
+ must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
+ prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
+ returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
+ sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
+ address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
+ the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or
+ destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
+ and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
+ Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
+ money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
+ of receipt of the work.
+
+- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
+forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
+both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
+Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
+Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
+collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
+"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
+property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
+computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
+your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
+of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
+your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
+the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
+refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
+providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
+receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
+is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
+opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
+WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
+If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
+law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
+interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
+the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
+provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
+with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
+promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
+harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
+that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
+or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
+work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
+Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
+
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
+including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
+because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
+people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need, are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
+To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
+and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
+
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
+Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
+http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
+permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
+
+The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
+Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
+throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
+809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
+business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
+information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
+page at http://pglaf.org
+
+For additional contact information:
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
+SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
+particular state visit http://pglaf.org
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
+To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
+
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
+with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
+Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
+
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
+
+ http://www.gutenberg.org
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
+
+
+</pre>
+
+</body>
+</html>
diff --git a/37906-h/images/illus-emb.jpg b/37906-h/images/illus-emb.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..90ff1f7
--- /dev/null
+++ b/37906-h/images/illus-emb.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/37906-h/images/illus-fpc.jpg b/37906-h/images/illus-fpc.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..245fb89
--- /dev/null
+++ b/37906-h/images/illus-fpc.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/37906.txt b/37906.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..baa425e
--- /dev/null
+++ b/37906.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,16445 @@
+Project Gutenberg's The Whirligig of Time, by Wayland Wells Williams
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Title: The Whirligig of Time
+
+Author: Wayland Wells Williams
+
+Illustrator: J. Henry
+
+Release Date: November 2, 2011 [EBook #37906]
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: ASCII
+
+*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE WHIRLIGIG OF TIME ***
+
+
+
+
+Produced by Roger Frank, Matthew Wheaton and the Online
+Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+THE WHIRLIGIG OF TIME [Illustration: "'JAMES DID IT! JAMES HAS MADE A
+TOUCHDOWN'"]
+
+
+
+
+ THE WHIRLIGIG OF TIME
+
+ BY
+
+ WAYLAND WELLS WILLIAMS
+
+
+ _WITH A FRONTISPIECE BY J. HENRY_
+
+ "_And thus the whirligig of Time brings in his
+ revenges._"--Twelfth Night.
+
+
+ NEW YORK
+
+ FREDERICK A. STOKES COMPANY
+
+ PUBLISHERS
+
+
+_Copyright, 1916, by_
+FREDERICK A. STOKES COMPANY
+
+_All rights reserved, including that of translation
+into foreign languages._
+
+
+
+
+ CONTENTS
+
+
+ PART I
+
+ CHAPTER
+
+ I UNWRITTEN PAPERS
+ II AUNTS
+ III NOT COLONIAL; GEORGIAN
+ IV PUPPY DOGS, AND A PSYCHOLOGICAL FACT
+ V BABES IN THE WOOD
+ VI ARCADIA AND YANKEEDOM
+ VII OMNE IGNOTUM
+ VIII LIVY AND VICTOR HUGO
+ IX A LONG CHEER FOR WIMBOURNE
+ X RUMBLINGS
+ XI AUNT SELINA'S BEAUX YEUX
+ XII AN ACT OF GOD
+ XIII SARDOU
+ XIV UN-ANGLO-SAXON
+ XV CHIEFLY CARDIAC
+ XVI THE SADDEST TALE
+
+ PART II
+
+ I CAN LOVE BE CONTROLLED BY ADVICE?
+ II CONGREVE
+ III NOT TRIASSIC, CERTAINLY, BUT NEARLY AS OLD
+ IV WILD HORSES AND CHAMPAGNE
+ V A SCHOeNE SEELE ON PISGAH
+ VI A LONG CHAPTER. BUT THEN, LOVE IS LONG
+ VII A VERY SHORT CHAPTER, IN ONE SENSE
+ VIII ONE THING AND ANOTHER
+ IX LABYRINTHS
+ X MR. AND MRS. ALFRED LAMMLE
+ XI HESITANCIES AND TEARS
+ XII A ROD OF IRON
+ XIII RED FLAME
+ XIV A POTTER'S VESSEL
+ XV THE TIDE TURNS
+ XVI REINSTATEMENT OF A SCHOeNE SEELE
+
+
+
+
+THE WHIRLIGIG OF TIME
+
+
+
+
+PART I
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER I
+
+UNWRITTEN PAPERS
+
+
+Two o'clock struck by the tall clock on the stairs, and young Harry
+Wimbourne, lying wide awake in his darkened bedroom, reflected that he
+had never heard that clock strike two before, except in the afternoon.
+To his ears the two strokes had a curious and unfamiliar sound; he
+waited expectantly for more to follow, but none did, and the tones of
+the second stroke died slowly away in a rather uncanny fashion through
+the silent house. For the house was silent now; the strange and
+terrifying series of sounds, issuing from the direction of his mother's
+room, that had first awakened him, had ceased some time ago. There had
+been much scurrying to and fro, much opening and shutting of doors,
+mingled not infrequently with the sound of voices; voices subdued and
+yet strained, talking so low and so hurriedly that no complete sentences
+could be caught, though Harry was occasionally able to distinguish the
+tones of his father, or the nurse, or the doctor. Once he detected the
+phrase "hot water"; and even that seemed to give a slight tinge of
+familiarity and sanity to the other noises. But then had come those
+other sounds that froze the very blood in his veins, and made him lie
+stiff and stark in his bed, perspiring in every pore, in an agony of
+ignorance and terror. It was all so inexplicable; his mother--! A
+strange voice would not have affected him so.
+
+But all that had stopped after a while, and everything had quieted down
+to the stillness that had prevailed for an hour or more when the clock
+struck two. The stillness was in its way even more wearing than the
+noises had been, for it gave one the impression that more was to
+follow. "Wait, wait, wait," it seemed to Harry to say; "the worst is
+not nearly over yet; more will happen before the night is out; Wait,
+wait!" and the slow tick of the clock on the stairs, faintly heard
+through the closed door, took up the burden "Wait! Wait!" And Harry
+waited. The passage of time seemed to him both cruelly slow and cruelly
+fast; each minute dragged along like an hour, and yet when the hour
+struck it seemed to him to have passed off in the space of a minute.
+
+Sleep was impossible. For the fiftieth time he turned over in his bed,
+trying to find a position that would prove so comfortable as to ensure
+drowsiness; yet as he did so he felt convinced that he could not sleep
+until something definite, something final, even if unpleasant, should
+end the suspense of the silence. He looked across the short space of
+darkness that separated his bed from that of his elder brother James,
+and envied him his power of sleeping through anything. But a short
+sudden change in the dim outline of the other bed told him that his
+brother was not asleep. Harry felt the other's gaze trying to pierce the
+darkness, even as his own. He half turned, with a sharp and nervous
+motion, to show that he was awake, and for some minutes both boys lay
+silently gazing toward each other, each wondering how much the other had
+heard.
+
+At length James broke the silence. "It's come," he said.
+
+"Yes, it has," answered Harry. "How long have you been awake?" he added,
+feeling he must ascertain how much James knew before committing himself
+any further.
+
+"Oh, hours," said James.
+
+"Since before--"
+
+"Yes."
+
+So James had heard all, thought Harry. It was just like him to be awake
+all that time and never give a sign. It scarcely occurred to him that
+James might be as shy as himself in reference to the events of the
+night.
+
+It must not for a moment be supposed that either of these boys was
+ignorant of the nature of what was taking place in their mother's room.
+Harry was ten at the time, and James was within hinting distance of his
+twelfth birthday. So that when their father, a few days before, had
+solemnly informed them that they might expect the arrival of a little
+brother or sister before long, and that they must be most careful not
+to disturb their mother in any way, etc., etc., no childish superstition
+picturing the newcomer flying through the window or floating down a
+stream on a cabbage leaf or, more prosaically, being introduced in the
+doctor's black bag, ever entered their heads. When the trained nurse
+appeared, a day or two later, they did not need to be told why she was
+there. They accepted the situation, tried to make as little noise as
+possible, and struck up a great friendship with Miss Garver, who at
+first had ample leisure to regale them with tales of her hospital
+experiences; among which, she was sorry to observe, accounts of advanced
+cases of delirium tremens were easily the favorites.
+
+For a long time the two boys lay awake without exchanging any more
+conversation worth mentioning. They heard the clock strike three, and
+after that they may have slept. At any rate, the first thing they were
+aware of was the door of their room being opened by a softly rustling
+figure which they at once recognized as that of the trained nurse. She
+crossed the room and methodically lit the gas; then she turned and stood
+at the foot of Harry's bed, resting her hands lightly on the footboard.
+Both the boys noticed immediately how white her face was and how grave
+its expression.
+
+"Are you both awake, boys?" she asked.
+
+They both said they were, and Miss Garver, after pausing a moment, as if
+to choose her words, said:
+
+"Then get up and put on something, and come into your mother's room with
+me."
+
+Without a word they rose and stumbled into their dressing gowns and
+slippers. When they were ready Miss Garver led the way to the door, and
+there turned toward them, with her hand on the knob.
+
+"Your mother is very ill, boys. We are afraid--this may be the last time
+you will see her."
+
+Dazed and silent they followed her into the hall.
+
+The bedroom into which they then went was a large room at the front of
+the house, high of ceiling, generous of window space, and furnished for
+the most part with old mahogany furniture. It was a beautiful old room
+when the sun was pouring in through the great windows, and it was quite
+as beautiful, in a solemn sort of way, now, when it was dimly
+illuminated by one low-burning gas jet and one or two shaded candles. A
+low fire was burning in the grate, and its dying flames fitfully shone
+on soft-colored chintz coverings and glowing mahogany surfaces, giving
+to the room an air of drowsy and delicious peace. And in the middle of
+it all, on a great mahogany four-poster bed, curtained, after the
+fashion of a hundred years ago, Edith Wimbourne lay dying. She, poor
+lady, white and unconscious on her great bed, cared as little for the
+setting of the scene in which she was playing the chief part as dying
+people generally do; but we, who look on the scene with detached and
+appreciative eyes, may perhaps venture the opinion that, if a choice of
+deaths be vouchsafed us, we would as lief as not die in a four-poster
+bed, surrounded by those we love best, and with a flickering fire
+casting changing and fantastic shadows on the familiar walls and
+ceiling.
+
+Beside the dying lady on the bed, there were three other people in the
+bedroom when Miss Garver led Harry and James into it. The doctor, whom
+they both knew and liked well, sat at the head of the bed. In a large
+armchair near the fire sat the boys' father, and somewhere in the
+background hovered another trained nurse, sprung out of nowhere. The
+presence of these figures seemed, in some intangible way, to make death
+an actual fact, instead of a mere possibility; if they had not been
+there, the boys might merely have been going to pay their mother a visit
+when she was ill. Now they both realized, with horribly sinking hearts,
+that they were going to see her for the last time.
+
+The doctor looked up inquiringly as Miss Garver brought the two boys
+into the room and led them over toward the bed. The father did not even
+turn his head as they came in. They stood by the bedside and gazed in
+silence at the pale sleeping face on the pillow. A faint odor of
+chloroform hung about the bed. The doctor stood up and leaned over to
+listen to the action of the dying woman's heart. After he had finished
+he drew back a little from the bedside.
+
+"You may kiss her, if you like," he said softly.
+
+The boys leaned down in turn and silently touched the calm lips. It was
+almost more than Harry could stand.
+
+"Oh, must this be the last time?" he heard himself shrieking. But no one
+paid any attention to him, and he suddenly realized that he had not
+spoken the words aloud. He looked at James' face, calm though drawn, and
+the sight reassured him. He wondered if James was suffering as much as
+himself, and thought he probably was. He wondered if his face showed as
+little as James'.
+
+The doctor and Miss Garver were whispering together.
+
+"Shall I take them away now?" she asked.
+
+"Not yet," was the answer; "there is just a chance that--"
+
+He did not finish, but Miss Garver must have understood, for she nodded
+and quietly drew the boys away. They walked off toward the fireplace,
+and their father, without moving his head, stretched out a hand in their
+direction. Silently they sat down by him, one on each arm of his chair,
+and he slipped an arm about the waist of each.
+
+So they started on the last period of waiting for what they all knew
+must come; what they prayed might come soon and at the same time longed
+to postpone as long as possible. The doctor had resumed his seat at the
+bedside, and now kept his fingers almost constantly on the patient's
+wrist. The two nurses sat down a little way off, to be ready in
+case--The emergency was not formulated. These three people were all
+present for professional reasons, so we may assume that most of their
+meditations were of a professional nature. But even so, they felt
+beneath their professional calm the mingled sadness and sweetness and
+solemnity that accompanies the sight of death, be it never so familiar.
+And we may easily guess the feelings of the two boys as they awaited the
+departure of the person they loved most on earth; nothing but the
+feeling of suspense kept them from giving away completely. The person in
+the room whom the scene might have been expected to affect most was, in
+point of fact, the one who felt it least, and that was the shortly to be
+bereaved husband, Hilary Wimbourne.
+
+"Poor Edith," he mused, "poor Edith. What a wife she has been to me, to
+be sure! I was fond of her, too. Not as fond as I might have been, of
+course ... Still, when I think that I shall never again see her face
+behind the coffee things at the breakfast table it gives me a pang, a
+distinct pang ... By the bye, I don't suppose she remembered, before all
+this came on, to send that Sheffield urn to be replated ... But it's
+all so beautiful--the fire, the draped bed, the waiting figures, the
+whole atmosphere! Just what she would have chosen to die in; all peace
+and naturalness. Everything seems to say 'Good-by, Edith;
+congratulations, Edith; well out of it all,' only much more beautifully.
+There is a dirge--how does it go?--
+
+ Oh, no more, no more; too late
+ Sighs are spent; the burning tapers
+ Of a life as chaste as fate,
+ Pure as are unwritten papers,
+ Are burnt out--
+
+"That comes somewhere near it; 'a life as chaste as fate'--not a bad
+description of Edith ... 'Pure as are unwritten papers'--who but an
+Elizabethan would have dared to cast that line just like that? Let's
+see; Ford, was it, or Shirley?... If only some one were singing that
+now, behind the scenes, out by the bathroom door, say, everything would
+be quite perfect. 'Unwritten papers'--ah, well, people have no business
+to be as pure as Edith was--and live. But what is to become of my home
+without her? What will become of the boys? Good Heavens, what am I going
+to do with the boys? Good little souls--how quiet they are! It all hits
+them a great deal harder than it does me, I know. It won't be so bad
+when they're old enough to go off to school, but till then ... I must
+ask Cecilia's advice; she'll have some ideas, and by the way, I wonder
+if Cecilia thought to see about that Sheraton sideboard for me?"
+
+And so on, and so on. Hilary Wimbourne's meditations never went very far
+without rounding up at a Sheraton sideboard or an old Sheffield urn or a
+nice bit of Chienlung or a new idea for a pleached alley. Let us not
+judge him. He was that sort of person.
+
+These reflections, and the complete outward silence in which they took
+place, were at last interrupted by a slight stirring of the sick woman
+on the bed. For the last time in her mortal life--and for very nearly
+the first, for the matter of that--Edith Wimbourne was to assume the
+center of her family stage. Her husband and sons heard her sigh and stir
+slightly as she lay, and then the doctor and Miss Garver appeared to be
+busy over her for a few moments. Probably they made shift to force a
+stimulant between her teeth, for in a moment or two she opened her eyes
+to the extent of seeing what was about her. Almost the first sight that
+greeted them was that of her two sons sitting on the arms of their
+father's chair, and as she saw them she smiled faintly.
+
+The nurse glanced inquiringly toward the doctor, who nodded, and she
+went over and touched Harry lightly on the shoulder.
+
+"Come over and speak to your mother," she whispered, and Harry walked to
+her side. Very gently he took the hand that lay motionless on the bed
+and held it in his. He could not have uttered a word for the life of
+him.
+
+Either the reviving action of the stimulant or the feeling of the warm
+blood pulsing through his young hand, or perhaps both, lent a little
+strength to the dying woman. She smiled again, and ever so slight a
+flush appeared on her wasted cheeks. "Harry, dear Harry," she whispered
+gently, and the boy leaned down to catch the words. "I am going to leave
+you, dear, and I am sorry. I know I should be very proud of you, if I
+could live ... Be a good boy, Harry, and don't forget your mother."
+
+She closed her eyes again, exhausted with the effort of speaking. Dazed
+and motionless Harry remained where he stood until the nurse led him
+gently away to make room for James.
+
+James stood for some moments as his brother had done, with his hand
+clasped in that of his mother. Presently she opened her eyes once more,
+and gazed gravely for a moment or two at the face of her first-born, as
+though gathering her little remaining strength for what she had to say
+to him.
+
+"Listen, dear," she said at last, and James bent down. "I'm going to
+die, James. Try not to be too sorry about it. It is all for the best ...
+Dearest, there is something I want you to do for me; you know how I have
+always trusted you, and depended on you--well, perhaps you don't know,
+but I have ... James, I want you to look out for Harry. He needs it now,
+and he will need it a great deal more later. You will see what I mean,
+as you grow up. He is not made like you; he will need some one to look
+after him. Can you promise me that you will do this?"
+
+"Yes," whispered James.
+
+His mother sighed gently, as though with relief. "Now kiss me, dear,"
+she said, and then, almost inaudibly, "It is good to leave some one I
+can trust." Then she closed her eyes, for the last time.
+
+James never repeated those words of his mother to any human being, as
+long as he lived, not even to Harry. It would be too much to say that
+they were never absent from his thoughts, for in truth he thought but
+seldom of them, after the first few days. But in some compelling though
+intangible way he realized, as he stood there by his mother's death-bed,
+that he had accepted a trust from which nothing but death would release
+him.
+
+The doctor returned to the side of the dying woman. Swiftly and quietly
+Miss Garver placed a hand on the shoulder of each of the two boys and
+led them from the room. Edith Wimbourne slept, and her sleep slowly
+passed into death.
+
+The man in the chair never moved.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER II
+
+AUNTS
+
+
+Till Miss Garver had seen Harry and James tucked away in their beds
+again and had put out the light and left their room, both the boys
+maintained the same outward composure that they had shown throughout the
+experiences of the night. But once left alone in the quiet of their
+darkened bedroom, no further ordeal ahead of them to inspire
+restraint--for they knew perfectly well by this time that their mother
+must be dead--they gave way entirely to their natural grief and spent
+what they both remembered afterward as the wretchedest night of their
+lives.
+
+It was scarcely better when Miss Garver woke them in the morning, though
+sleep had so completely erased all recollection of the night before that
+Harry, lazily sitting up and rubbing his eyes, asked what time it was in
+the most natural voice in the world.
+
+"About ten o'clock," was the reply.
+
+"Ten o'clock! Why, we're an hour late for school already."
+
+"You are not going to school to-day," answered Miss Garver, gently, and
+she hated to say it, knowing that the remark would immediately set them
+remembering. When she turned toward them again she saw that it had,
+indeed.
+
+"Listen," she told them, as gently as she could, "I want you both to get
+dressed now as quickly as possible and then go down and eat your
+breakfast. After that I am going to take you both down town. There is a
+good deal to be done. So hurry up."
+
+"Why are you going to take us down town?" asked James.
+
+"To get some clothes."
+
+"But I don't understand," he began again, and then he did. He started
+dressing, mechanically, and had half completed his toilet before he
+noticed his brother, who was kneeling despairingly by his bed, with his
+face buried in the pillow.
+
+"Come on, Harry," he said gently; "I'm nearly ready."
+
+"No," moaned Harry.
+
+"Yes. It's got to be done, you know."
+
+"Oh, go away and leave me alone."
+
+James bent his head down close to that of his brother. "You feel better
+when you're doing something," he said softly.
+
+Harry, at length persuaded, arose and began to dress, and before long he
+began to feel that James was right. Doing something did not remove the
+pain, or even ease it, but it made you notice it less. It was even
+better during breakfast. Both the boys ate steadily and fairly
+copiously, though their enjoyment, if there was any, of what was
+customarily their pleasantest meal, was wholly subconscious. There was
+honey on the table, and Harry, without realizing what he was doing,
+helped himself to it for a second time. He mechanically pushed the pot
+back toward James, who also partook. Almost simultaneously their teeth
+closed on honey and muffin, and at the same time their eyes met. For two
+or three seconds they gazed shamefacedly at each other, and then stopped
+eating. Harry left the table and stood in front of the window, looking
+out over the wide lawn.
+
+"Oh, Mother, Mother," he cried within himself; "to think I should be
+eating honey and muffin, now, so soon, and enjoying it! Oh, forgive me,
+forgive me!"
+
+When the first shock of self-contempt had passed off, the boys wandered
+into the library, in search of their father. They discovered him, seated
+at his desk as they had expected, but it was with a sharp shock of
+surprise that they perceived that he was interviewing the cook. Both
+were more or less disgusted at the discovery, but they felt
+nevertheless, in a vague but reassuring way, that this partly justified
+the honey episode.
+
+The interview closed almost as soon as they entered, and their father
+called them over to him.
+
+"You have both been very good," he said, taking a hand of each of them;
+"this has all been very hard for you, I know." He paused, and then,
+seeing signs of tears on their faces, he went on somewhat hurriedly:
+"You must go down town with Miss Garver now; she has very kindly offered
+to get you what you will need for the funeral. Aunt Cecilia will take
+you to New York after that, I expect, and will fit you out more fully.
+The funeral will be to-morrow at three o'clock, and you will be on hand
+for that. I don't know whether any one told you; the baby died--the one
+that was born last night. It was a little girl; she only lived a few
+minutes. She will be buried with your mother. There will be a lot of
+people coming up to-day and to-morrow for the funeral; Uncle James and
+Aunt Cecilia and various others, and as there is a good deal to arrange
+you must try to be a help and not a hindrance, and make yourselves
+useful if you can. Now run along with Miss Garver and--oh, one more
+thing. I should advise you not to ask to see your mother again. You can,
+of course, if you want to, but I rather think you will not be sorry if
+you don't. You see, you probably have a good many years in which you
+will have to live on her memory, and I think it will be better if your
+last recollection of her is as she was when she was alive, not when she
+was dead ... and if you want to drive down to the station after lunch to
+meet Uncle James and Aunt Cecilia on the two-fifty, you can. You'd
+better do that; it's a good thing to give yourself plenty of occupation.
+That's all--good-by."
+
+Then they went off in search of black clothes, and somewhat to their
+surprise they noticed that Miss Garver had returned to her companionable
+self of the preceding days; it was almost as if their mother had not
+died, except that she was gravely cheerful now, instead of cheerfully
+cheerful, as before.
+
+Before long the boys noticed that almost every one they had to do with
+adopted the attitude taken by Miss Garver. Lunch, to be sure, was a
+rather terrible meal, for then they were alone with their father, and
+he, though he refrained from further allusion to the loss that hung over
+them all, was silent and preoccupied. But Uncle James and Aunt Cecilia,
+when met at the station by their nephews, spoke and acted much as usual,
+and neither of them noticed that Aunt Cecilia's gentle eyes filled with
+tears as she kissed them. They had always loved Aunt Cecilia best of all
+their aunts, though she was not their real aunt, being the wife of their
+father's younger brother. Of their Uncle James the boys were both a
+little afraid, and never felt they understood him. He was much like
+their father, both in behavior and appearance--though he was
+clean-shaven and their father wore a beard and mustache--but he was much
+more unapproachable. He had an uncomfortable way of suddenly joining in
+a conversation with an apparently irrelevant remark, at which everybody
+would generally remain silent for a moment and then laugh, while he sat
+with grave and unchanged countenance. The boys had once spoken to their
+father of their uncle's apparent lack of sympathy; Harry had complained
+that Uncle James never seemed to "have any feelings." "Well," replied
+their father, "he is a better lawyer than I am," and the boys never saw
+any sense in that reply till they remembered it years afterward, and
+even then they never could decide whether it was meant as an explanation
+or a corollary.
+
+Later in the afternoon Aunt Selina arrived. There was always something
+magnificent and aloof about Aunt Selina; she had the air of having been
+transplanted out of a glorious past into a frivolous and inferior
+present, and being far too well-bred to comment on its inferiority,
+however keenly she was aware of it. She was the half-sister of Hilary
+Wimbourne, and much older than he, being the child of a first marriage
+of his father. Harry and James were on the front steps to greet her as
+she drove up in state. Her very manner of stepping out of the carriage
+and ascending the steps where she gravely bent and kissed each of her
+nephews with the same greeting--"How do you do, my dear James," "How do
+you do, my dear Harry,"--was not so much a tribute to the gravity of
+this particular occasion as a typical instance of Aunt Selina's way of
+doing things. Though only of average height, she generally gave the
+impression of being tall by the erect way in which she habitually
+carried her head, and by the straightness and spareness of her whole
+figure. Her skirts always nobly swept the floor beside and behind her,
+in a day when other women's skirts hung limply about their ankles. Both
+Harry and James looked upon her with an awe which was only slightly
+modified by affection.
+
+But both boys' views of Aunt Selina underwent expansion within the next
+twenty-four hours, and they were to learn the interesting lesson that a
+warm and impulsive heart may be hidden within a forbidding exterior.
+Aunt Selina entered the home of the Wimbournes with her customary quiet
+ceremony, and gravely greeted such of her relatives as were present,
+after which every one else in the room instinctively "stood around,"
+waiting for her to make the first move. Kind and gentle Aunt Cecilia,
+who was a daughter of one of New York's oldest and proudest and richest
+families, was no one in particular while Aunt Selina was in the room.
+Miss Wimbourne immediately proceeded to her bedroom, to repair the
+ravages of travel, and when she came down again she found the
+drawing-room deserted except for James, who was standing in front of a
+window and gazing out into the twilight. She went over and stood by him,
+also looking over the darkening lawn.
+
+"I am very glad to get this chance to see you, James," she said
+presently, in her subdued, measured tones, "even though the occasion for
+my being here is such a sad one. It is not often I get a chance to see
+any of my nephews and nieces."
+
+James mumbled an inarticulate monosyllable or two in reply, without
+turning his head. Aunt Selina had interrupted what was a bad half-hour
+for James. She turned and looked at him, and the look of dumb suffering
+on his face struck into the very roots of her heart. She stooped
+suddenly and put her arms about him, kissing his cheek with a warmth
+that was entirely new to James.
+
+"I know how it feels," she whispered; "I've been through it all, not
+once, but again and again, and I know just how bad it is. Dear boy, how
+I wish I could bear it for you."
+
+She sat down on a little settee that stood in front of the window, still
+holding one of James' hands in hers, and the boy, after the first shock
+of astonishment had passed, sank down on his knees in front of her and
+buried his head in her lap. So he remained for some minutes, sobbing
+almost contentedly; it was sweet to find consolation in this unexpected
+quarter.
+
+Presently he raised his miserable eyes to hers. "It's Harry,
+too--partly--" he said, and could go no further.
+
+"Yes, I know that too," said his aunt. "You mean that you have to bear
+up on Harry's account--"
+
+"Yes!"
+
+"Because you are older and stronger than he, and you know he would
+suffer more if you let him see how much you suffer. So you go about with
+the pain burning your very heart out, because all the time something in
+his face makes it impossible for you to breathe a word more of it than
+you can help. And so every one gets the idea you are more hard-hearted
+than he," she went on passionately, letting her voice sink to a whisper,
+"and are not capable of as much feeling as he. But you don't care what
+people think; you don't know or care about anything except oh! if you
+only might go somewhere and shriek it all out to somebody, anybody! And
+after a lifetime of that sort of thing self-repression becomes second
+nature to you, so that you can't say a thing you think or feel, and you
+become the sort of living mummy that I am, with your soul dead and
+embalmed years ago, while your body, your worthless, useless body, goes
+on living and living. You have begun it early, my poor James!"
+
+She stopped, quite as much astounded at her own outburst as James. The
+boy no longer cried, for astonishment had driven away his tears, but
+stared thoughtfully out of the window. He had not caught the full
+meaning of all that his aunt had said, but he knew that he was receiving
+a most important confidence from the most unexpected possible quarter,
+which was exactly in tune with his own mood. The good lady herself was
+for a few moments literally too bewildered to utter a word.
+
+"Good Heavens!" ran her astonished thoughts, "do you know what you have
+done, Selina Wimbourne? You have made more of a fool of yourself in the
+last five minutes than you have done in all the years since you were a
+girl! God grant it may do him no harm."
+
+To James she said aloud, as soon as she could control her voice:
+
+"I am a foolish and indiscreet old woman, James--"
+
+"No, you're not," interrupts the boy with sudden spirit.
+
+"Well, I've said a great deal more than I ought, at any rate. I don't
+want you to get any false impression from what I have told you. I want
+to explain to you that all the suffering I have undergone from--in the
+way I have told you--has not hurt me, but has rather benefited me. You
+see, there are two kinds of human suffering. One is forced upon you from
+the outside. You can't prevent that kind, you just have to go through
+with it. It never is as bad as you think it is going to be, I find. The
+other kind you make for yourself, by doing the wrong thing when you know
+you ought to be doing the right thing. That is the really bad kind of
+suffering, and you can always prevent it by doing the thing you know is
+right."
+
+"You mean," said James thoughtfully, "that it would have been even worse
+for you if you had squealed, when you knew--when you knew you ought not
+to!"
+
+"Exactly. It's simply a question of the lesser of two evils. Doing the
+pleasant but wrong thing hurts more in the end than doing the
+disagreeable but right thing."
+
+"I see. But suppose you can't tell which is the right thing and which
+the wrong one?"
+
+"Ah, there you've put your finger on a real difficulty. You just have to
+think it all over and decide as best you can, and then, if it turns out
+wrong, you're not so much to blame. Then, your suffering is of the kind
+that you can't help. No one can do any better than what he thinks is
+right at the time.... Now get up, dear, I hear people coming."
+
+"Well, thank you, Aunt Selina. What you have told me helps, an awful
+lot. Really!"
+
+"I am glad, my dear," replied Miss Wimbourne, and when people entered
+the room a second or two later no one suspected the sudden bond of
+sympathy that had sprung up between the specimens of crabbed age and
+youth they found there.
+
+"Cecilia, what's going to become of those two boys?" inquired Miss
+Wimbourne later in the evening, finding herself for the moment alone
+with her sister-in-law.
+
+"I've been asking myself that question pretty steadily for the last
+twelve hours," answered Mrs. James. "I wish _I_ could take them," she
+added, impulsively.
+
+"Hardly, I suppose." If any of the remarks made in this conversation
+seem abrupt or inconsequent, it must be remembered that these two ladies
+understood each other pretty thoroughly without having to polish off or
+even finish their sentences, or even to make them consecutive.
+
+"Unfortunately," went on Mrs. James, after a brief pause, "the whole
+thing depends entirely upon Hilary."
+
+"The very last person--"
+
+"Exactly. Yet what can one do?"
+
+"It seems quite clear to me," said Aunt Selina, choosing her words
+carefully and slowly, "that Hilary will inevitably choose the one course
+which is most to be avoided. Hilary will want them to go on living here
+alone with him; preserve the _status quo_ as far as possible. What do
+you think?"
+
+"I am almost sure of it. But...."
+
+"But if any of us have the slightest feeling for those boys ... Until
+they are both safely away at school, at any rate, and he won't send them
+away for a year or two yet, at any rate."
+
+"Harry not for three, I should say.... That is, _I_ shouldn't."
+
+Silence for a moment, then Aunt Selina:
+
+"Well, can you think of any one that could be got to come here?"
+
+Mrs. James fluttered for a moment, as though preparing for a delicate
+and difficult advance.
+
+"I wonder," she said, "that is, the thought struck me to-day--if you--if
+_you_ could ever--"
+
+"Hilary and I," observed Aunt Selina in calm, clear impersonal tones
+that once for all disposed of the suggestion; "Hilary and I Do Not Get
+On. That way, I mean. At a distance--"
+
+The sentence was completed by a gesture that somehow managed to convey
+an impression of understanding and amity at a distance. Mrs. James'
+subdued "Oh!" of comprehension, or rather of resignation, bid fair for a
+while to close the interview. But presently Aunt Selina, with the air of
+one accepting a sword offered with hilt toward her, asked, or rather
+observed, as though it was not a question at all, but a statement:
+
+"What do you think of Agatha Fraile?"
+
+"Well," replied Mrs. James with something of a burnt-child air; "I like
+her. Though I hardly know her, of course. I should say she would be
+willing, too. Though of course one can't tell.... They are not well off,
+I believe.... She is very good, no doubt...."
+
+"Hm," said Aunt Selina serenely, aware that there was a conversational
+ditch to be taken, and determined to make her interlocutrix give her a
+lead. This Aunt Cecilia bravely did with:
+
+"You mean--how much does she know about--?"
+
+"About Hilary, yes."
+
+"I rather think, myself, she must have found out through Edith.... I
+don't see how she could have failed to know. Do you?"
+
+"I can't say, I'm sure. Edith had rather curious ideas, though she was
+one of the best women that ever lived. However, that is not the main
+point for consideration now. What I want to know is, can you think of
+anything better?"
+
+"N-no," replied Mrs. James slowly. "I even think it would be the best
+possible arrangement, if--Oh dear, to think it should come to
+this--those poor boys!"
+
+"Yes, I know," said Aunt Selina, briskly. "Now, that being decided, some
+one has got to put it to Hilary. Hilary will do nothing alone. She comes
+to-morrow morning, does she not? I think it should be settled, one way
+or the other, before she goes. Now who is to approach Hilary?"
+
+"I don't know," faltered Mrs. James, rather bewildered by the other's
+swiftness of reasoning.
+
+"Well, I do. James is the only human being I know who has, or ever had,
+any influence on Hilary. Now one of us has got to talk to James, and I
+rather think, Cecilia, that I could do it more successfully than you.
+For the first time, that is.... Of course, afterward, you...."
+
+"Yes, of course," murmurs Mrs. James.
+
+"Very well, then; I will see James the first thing in the morning. I
+don't say it will come to anything, but there is a great deal to be gone
+through before she is even approached. We must do _something_. Living
+here alone, with their father...."
+
+"Out of the question, of course." The conversation having, as it were,
+completed one lap of its course and arrived again at its starting point,
+might have perambulated gently along till bedtime, had it not been
+abruptly interrupted by the entrance of James, junior, come to say
+good-night.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+A few days after the funeral, after they had gone to bed of an evening,
+Harry through the darkness apostrophized his brother thus:
+
+"I tell you, James, Aunt Selina is all right; did you know it?"
+
+"Oh," was the reply, "she gave you five dollars, too, did she?"
+
+"Yes, but that's not what I mean. She's given me five dollars plenty of
+times before this."
+
+"Well, what do you mean, then?"
+
+"Well, she found me in the garden one morning.... Tuesday, I guess--"
+Tuesday had been the day of the funeral--"and I had been crying a good
+deal, and I suppose she knew it. At any rate, she took me by the hand
+and talked to me for a while...."
+
+"What did she say to you?" This question was not prompted by vulgar
+curiosity; James knew that his brother wished to be pumped.
+
+"Oh, she didn't _say_ much. She was just awfully nice, that's all....
+She told me--well, she said, for one thing, that I cried too much. Only
+she didn't say it like that. She said that going about and crying wasn't
+much of a way of showing you were sorry. She said that if--well, if you
+really _missed_ a person, the least you could do was not to go about
+making a pest of yourself, even if you couldn't really do anything to
+help."
+
+"Oh."
+
+"She said that the last thing that would please Mama herself was to
+think that all she had taught me came to no more than ... well, than
+crying. Then she said.... I don't think I'll tell you that, though."
+
+"Well, don't, if you don't want to."
+
+"She told me that, in a way, she realized I must feel it--about
+Mama--more than any one else, because I had been more with her lately
+than any one else--more dependent on her, she said, ..."
+
+"Yes, I see."
+
+"And that while it was harder on me, it put a greater responsibility on
+me, because, you see--oh, I can't explain it all! But she was about
+right, I guess."
+
+"She told me something of the same kind ... not exactly like that, I
+mean, but--well, the same sort of thing. It helped, too. It's funny, to
+think of her understanding better than any one else--Aunt Selina!"
+
+"Yes, isn't it? Well, you really never can tell about people." With
+which mature reflection Harry turned over and went to sleep. But his
+brother lay awake for some time thinking over what he had just heard,
+and as he thought, his respect for his aunt grew. Not only could she
+sound the depths of his own woe and give him comfort for it, but she
+could light on the one thing that would be likely to help Harry in his
+own peculiar need, and show it to him with ready and fearless tact. And
+what she had told Harry was practically the very opposite of what she
+had told him.
+
+"I wish I could be like Aunt Selina," he thought.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER III
+
+NOT COLONIAL; GEORGIAN
+
+
+Harry and James lived in the city of New Haven in a big house surrounded
+by spacious grounds. The house itself was an old and stately one; the
+local papers, when they had occasion to mention it, usually referred to
+it as the Wimbourne "mansion." The boys' dislike of this word dated from
+an early age, when their father informed them that it was a loathsome
+expression, which people who "really knew" never used under any
+circumstances. He himself, if he had had occasion to describe it, would
+have spoken of it as a "place."
+
+The house was built in the first decade of the nineteenth century. It
+was put up by Hilary Wimbourne's great-grandfather James, first of the
+name, the founder of the family fortunes. He came to New Haven as a
+penniless apprentice to a carriage-maker after the conclusion of the
+Revolutionary wars left him without other occupation, and within ten
+years after his arrival he became one of the two or three most prominent
+lawyers in the place. His understanding of his early trade he turned to
+good account by investing a large portion of his earnings as a lawyer in
+the carriage factory in which he originally served, and which with the
+benefit of his money and business acumen, became the most profitable of
+its kind in the town. He bought a farm in what were then the extreme
+outskirts of the city and built the spacious, foursquare,
+comfortable-looking house in which the Wimbournes with whom we have to
+deal still lived, nearly one hundred years later.
+
+The house stood in a commanding position above an up-town avenue. It was
+painted white with green trimmings, and had a front portico of tall
+Doric columns reaching up to the top of the house. People habitually
+referred to its style of architecture as "Colonial." "Post-Colonial," or
+"late American Georgian" would have come much nearer the mark, but these
+distinctions are as naught to the great and glorious body of New
+England's inhabitants, to whom everything with pillars is and always
+will be "Colonial." The house was in truth a fine example of its style,
+and had been surprisingly little spoiled by the generations of
+Wimbournes that had lived and died in it, but the unity of its general
+effect was marred by the addition of two wings reaching out from its
+sides, erected by Hilary Wimbourne's father in the fifties and showing
+all the peculiarities of that glorious but architecturally weak period.
+Friends of the family often expressed sympathy and sorrow at the
+anachronism the house was thus made to offer, but Hilary soon became
+somewhat impatient of these. In fact, he never listened to an expression
+of regret on the subject without breathing a silent prayer of
+thanksgiving that the wings had been built when they were, and not ten
+or twenty or thirty years later, when architectural indiscretion ran to
+extremes only vaguely hinted at in the forties and fifties.
+
+"Besides," he would explain to those who showed interest in the matter,
+"those wings are not always going to look as badly as they do now. Our
+eyes will always look on them as unpleasantly different from the old
+house, but the eyes of a hundred years hence will see in them nothing
+more than a quaint and agreeable variety. After all, the two styles are
+but two different aspects of neo-classicism, one a little more remote
+from its original model than the other. History has proved what I say;
+think how the sensitive must have shuddered in the fifteenth century
+when they saw a lot of Perpendicular Gothic slammed down by the side of
+pure Early English! It must have looked like the very devil to them."
+Only very few people heard this theory carried back to its logical
+conclusion, however. Hilary would see and recognize the drowning
+expression that came over their faces, and as soon as he knew that he
+was beyond their depth he stopped, for he made it a rule never to talk
+above people's heads. Consequently he seldom got beyond the
+"neo-classicism" point.
+
+As far as the interior was concerned, the atmosphere of the old days had
+been almost perfectly preserved. Every wall-paper, every decoration had,
+by some lucky succession of chances, been as nearly as possible
+duplicated when it became necessary to replace or restore, and the hand
+of the seventies and eighties left almost no trace of its equally
+ruthless destructive and constructive powers. So that at the time of
+which we write the house was furnished almost completely in the style of
+the late Georgian period, for what his ancestors omitted to leave him
+the faultless taste of Hilary supplied.
+
+The house faced westward and toward the principal street of the
+neighborhood; the ground fell gently away from it on all sides, but most
+steeply toward the west. Carriage drives led up to the house from the
+two corners formed by the main thoroughfare and the two intersecting
+streets which bounded the property. A tar footpath followed the curve of
+each driveway, so that between the street and the front door of the
+house there stretched an unbroken expanse of green lawn. In their early
+youth Harry and James both wondered why no footpath ran directly up the
+middle of the front lawn, as was the case with most of the other front
+lawns of their acquaintance, and they considered it monstrously
+inconvenient that they were obliged to "go way round by the corners"
+when they wished to reach the house from without. At length, however,
+the brilliant thought occurred to them that as they always approached
+the house either from the north or the south, and never from the
+unbroken block to the west, they could not well have used a central walk
+if they had had it.
+
+Such was the setting in which the early lives of these two boys took
+place, and, taking one thing with another, their lot could probably not
+have been bettered. The first ten years of their lives had the divine
+monotony of perfect happiness and harmony, in which no more momentous
+events than the measles, a change of school, or summer trips to the
+coast of Maine or, more rarely, to Europe, ever occurred. They were
+brought up, from their earliest years, under the direct but never too
+obtrusive eye of their mother, and as we have already heard Aunt Selina
+describe her as "one of the best women that ever lived," we should be
+guilty of something akin to painting the rose if we ventured on any
+further encomiums of her character on our own account. Their relation
+with their father was hardly less ideal, though they saw much less of
+him and were, at bottom, less deeply attached to him than to their
+mother. Hilary was fond of his boys, and was capable of entering into
+their youthful moods with a sort of intimate aloofness that the boys
+found very winning. Not infrequently he would suddenly swoop down on
+them in their happy but humdrum occupations and carry them off to a
+baseball game or perhaps to New York for the day to spend a few hours of
+bliss in the Aquarium or the Zoo, in less time than it frequently took
+their mother to decide what overcoats they should wear to school. This
+dashing _insouciance_ secretly captivated their mother as much as it did
+them, and though by this time she had given up showing the delight it
+caused her, she was never more pleased than when Hilary would so take
+them off.
+
+Hilary also read to them occasionally, and his reading was another
+source of secret admiration to their mother. He never read them anything
+but what his wife would have described, and rightly, too, as "far beyond
+them"; such things as Spenser, Shakespeare, Sheridan, or Milton, even;
+and he always read with such a mock-serious air as Sir Henry Irving used
+in the scene where Charles I recites poetry to his children. His wife on
+such occasions, though perfectly content with her role of Henrietta
+Maria, would reflect that if _she_ tried to read such things to them
+they would be fidgeting and walking about the room and longing for her
+to stop, instead of sitting spellbound, as they did when he read, on the
+arms of his chair and breathlessly following each word of the text.
+
+With another parent and with other children such reading would have
+proved utterly sterile, but from it the boys managed to absorb a good
+deal of pleasure and the germs of literary appreciation as well, and the
+words of many a great passage in many a great author became dear to them
+long before they were able to grasp their full meaning. Results of their
+literary sessions would crop out in the family intercourse in sundry
+curious ways. One instance may serve to illustrate this. The family were
+sitting about together one day after lunch; Edith Wimbourne had a pile
+of household mending before her.
+
+"I declare," she said, "these tablecloths have simply rotted away from
+lying in that dark closet; they would have lasted much better if they
+had been used a little."
+
+"She let concealment," said Hilary from behind a magazine, "like a worm
+i' the bud, feed--what did concealment feed on, James?"
+
+"Feed on her damask--"
+
+"Tablecloth!" shouts Harry, brilliantly but indiscreetly.
+
+"Oh, shut up," retorts his brother, peevishly, as who would not, at
+having the words snatched from his mouth? "You needn't be so smart, I
+was going to say that anyway."
+
+"The heck you were!"
+
+"Yes, I was."
+
+"You were not! You were going to say 'cheek'; I saw you start to say
+it."
+
+"Oh, shut up! Can't any one be bright but you?"
+
+"That's all right; you were going to say it. Wasn't he, Father?" asks
+Harry, with the air of one appealing to the supreme authority.
+
+"What?" Hilary had long since returned to his magazine.
+
+"Say 'cheek.' Wasn't he going to?"
+
+"Who?"
+
+"James, of course."
+
+"I trust not. It seems to me that it is one of the slang words your
+mother has requested you not to use."
+
+"Wha--what is?"
+
+"Cheek." Not much of a joke, certainly, but Hilary, looking with
+impenetrable gravity over his glasses at his son, when he really knows
+perfectly well what Harry is talking about, is funny. At any rate Harry
+stops to laugh, and the quarrel is a failure. Edith could have stopped
+the quarrel by simply enjoining peace, but she could not have done it
+without resort to parental authority.
+
+One day James, ordinarily phlegmatic and self-controlled, ran through
+the house in a great state of dishevelment and distress in search of his
+mother, holding aloft a bloody finger and weeping hot tears of woe.
+
+"Where's Mama?" he inquired breathlessly, ending up in the library and
+finding his father alone there.
+
+"Out, I think. What's the matter?"
+
+"Oh, nothing.... A kid licked me.... I wanted something for this
+finger."
+
+"Well, go upstairs and get that large brown bottle on my wash-stand, and
+we'll see what we can do about it." Hilary, taking a page out of his own
+boyhood, guessed that no mere cut finger could have reduced James to
+such an abject pass. He suspected that his son, who, unlike Harry, was
+almost morbidly sensitive to appearances and almost never gave way to
+demonstrations of grief, had augmented the disgrace of being thrashed by
+allowing himself to be reduced to a state of tears in the presence of
+his fellows. Some such occurrence only could account for this
+precipitate rout. One or two further inquiries confirmed this
+conjecture, and he then prepared to apply, if possible, a balm to his
+son's mental wound as well as the physical one.
+
+"There," said he, giving a final pull to an unprofessional-looking
+bandage, composed of an entirely un-antiseptic handkerchief, "that will
+stay till your mother comes in. Now go and get me that green book on the
+third shelf and I'll read to you for a while, if you want."
+
+The green book happened to be no less notable a work than "Paradise
+Lost," and Hilary, turning to the last pages of the twelfth book, read
+of the expulsion of our sinning forbears from Eden. He read Milton
+rather well, almost as well, in fact, as he secretly thought he did, and
+James, though incapable at first of listening attentively or
+understanding much of anything, was gradually soothed by the solemn
+music of the lines; by the time his father reached the closing passage
+he was listening with wide open ears.
+
+ They, looking back, all the eastern side beheld
+ Of Paradise, so late their happy seat,
+ Waved over by that flaming brand; the gate
+ With dreadful faces thronged and fiery arms.
+ Some natural tears they dropped, but wiped them soon;
+ The world was all before them, where to choose
+ Their place of rest, and Providence their guide.
+ They, hand in hand, with wandering steps and slow,
+ Through Eden took their solitary way.
+
+Hilary kept the book open on his knee for a moment after he had
+finished, and he noticed with interest that James leaned forward with
+aroused attention to read over the passage again. "Some natural
+tears--wiped them soon--the world was all before them--" the words sank
+in on James' mind as his father knew they would, and suggested the
+thought that the world need not be irrevocably lost through one
+indiscretion.
+
+Let no one gain from these somewhat extended accounts of Hilary's
+dealings with his sons an impression to the effect that the boys found a
+more sympathetic friend in their father than in their mother. As a
+matter of fact, the exact contrary was true. Like all perfect art,
+Hilary's successful passages with them bore no trace of the means by
+which they were brought about, and consequently they did not feel that
+their father's attitude toward them was inspired by anything like the
+warm and undisguised affection which pervaded their mother's. Nor,
+indeed, was it.
+
+James, even in these early days, showed signs of having inherited a fair
+share of his father's inborn tact in his dealings with his brother. The
+fraternal relation is always an interesting one to observe, because of
+its extreme elasticity, combining, as it does, apparently unlimited
+possibilities for love, hate and indifference. Who ever saw two pairs of
+brothers that seemed to regard each other with exactly the same
+feelings? Harry and James certainly did not hate each other, but on the
+other hand they did not love each other with that passionate devotion
+that is supposed to characterize the ideal brothers of fancy. Nor could
+they truthfully be called wholly indifferent to each other; their
+mutual attitude lay somewhere between indifference and the
+Castor-and-Pollux-like devotion that the older and less attractive of
+their relatives constantly tried to instil in their youthful bosoms.
+They were never bored by each other. James always felt for Harry's
+superior quickness in all intellectual matters an admiration which he
+would have died sooner than give full expression to, and Harry, though
+he frequently scouted his brother's opinions in all matters, had a
+profound respect for James' clearness and maturity of judgment. But
+what, more than anything else, kept them on good terms with each other
+and always, at the last moment, prevented serious ructions, was a way
+that James had at times of viewing their relation in a detached and
+impersonal light, and acting accordingly. On such occasions he appeared
+to be two people; first, the James that was Harry's brother and
+contemporary, less than two years older than he and subject to the same
+desires and weakness, and, secondly, the James who stood as judge over
+their differences and distributed justice to them both with a fair and
+impartial hand.
+
+For instance, there was the episode of the neckties. A distant relative,
+a cousin of their mother's, who does not really come into the story at
+all, took occasion of expressing her approval of their existence by
+sending them two neckties, one purple and one green, with the direction
+that they should decide between them which was to have which. James, by
+the right of primogeniture that prevails among most families of
+children, was given the first choice, and picked out the purple one.
+Harry quietly took the other, but though there was no open
+dissatisfaction expressed, it soon became evident to James that his
+brother was tremendously disappointed. During the rest of the day, as he
+went about his business and pleasure, vague but disturbing recollections
+flitted through James' mind of Harry's being particularly anxious to
+possess a purple tie, of having been half promised one, indeed, by the
+very relative from whom these blessings came; circumstances which, from
+the wording of the letter which accompanied the gift, obviously
+constituted no legal claim on the tie, but were nevertheless enough to
+appeal to James' sense of moral, or "ultimate" justice.
+
+The next morning James, according to custom, approaching the completion
+of his dressing some time before Harry, remarked in a casual tone:
+
+"Oh, you can have that purple tie, if you want. I'd just as lief take
+the green one."
+
+Harry, who had taken the attitude of being willing to suffer to the
+point of death before making a complaint in the matter, would not allow
+this. In the brief conversational intervals that the spirited wielding
+of a sponge, and subsequently of a towel, allowed, he disclaimed any
+predilection for ties of any particular color, or of any particular kind
+of tie, or for any particular color in general. Clothes were a matter of
+complete indifference for him; he had never been able to understand why
+people spent their time in raving inanely over this or that particular
+manner of robing themselves. As for colors, he could scarcely bother to
+tell one from the other; the prism presented to him a field in which it
+was impossible to make any choice. If, however, in his weaker moments,
+he had ever felt a passing fancy for one color over and above another,
+that color was undoubtedly green. And so on, and so forth. James made no
+further observation on the subject, but when he reached the necktie
+stage in his dressing, he quietly put on the green tie, and Harry, like
+the Roman senators of old, subsequently flashed in the purple.
+
+James preferred the purple tie, but he let Harry have it because Harry
+felt more keenly on the subject than he. "If"--so ran the substance of
+his reasoning--"if I give way in this matter, about which I do not
+particularly care, one way or the other, there will be a better chance
+of my getting what I want some other time, when the issue is a really
+vital one. By sacrificing a penny now, I gain a pound in the future."
+Such clearness of sight was beyond James' years, and, but for the real
+sense of justice that accompanied it might have made him an opportunist.
+James would never in the last resort, have used his reasoning powers to
+cheat Harry, who, though his brother, was, when all was said and done,
+his best friend.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IV
+
+PUPPY DOGS, AND A PSYCHOLOGICAL FACT
+
+
+The story of the life of any person begins with the moment of his birth
+and ends with the last breath that leaves his body. The complete account
+of the inward and outward experiences that go to make up any one
+individual life would, if properly told, be the most fascinating story
+in the world, for there never lived a person who did not carry about
+within himself the materials for a great and complete novel. Such
+stories have never yet been written, and probably never will be, partly
+because they would be too long and partly because the thing would be so
+confoundedly hard to do. So as to make it interesting, that is. We have
+chosen to begin this account of the lives, or rather, a section of the
+lives, of Harry and James at the death of their mother because that was
+their first great outward experience. It influenced their inward lives
+even more fundamentally. It lifted their thoughts, their whole outlook
+on life, from what, for want of a better expression, might be called the
+level of youthful development and sent them branching and soaring into
+new and strange regions.
+
+One of the most important outward changes that Edith Wimbourne's death
+caused in the life of her household was the substitution, as far as such
+a thing could be, of her younger sister, Agatha Fraile, in her place.
+Such was, in a word, the ultimate fruit of the conversation between Aunt
+Selina and Aunt Cecilia that occurred a chapter or two ago. James
+Wimbourne was approached and convinced, and in his turn approached and
+convinced his brother Hilary, who, in his turn, came back to his
+half-sister Selina and persuaded her to approach and convince that lady
+in question on his behalf. Aunt Selina was perfectly willing to do this,
+though she had not counted on it.
+
+"Miss Fraile," she said, on the first occasion for speech that
+presented itself; "my brother Hilary has asked me to put a proposition
+to you on his behalf. What would you say to coming here and living with
+him as his housekeeper and having an eye on those two boys, until--well,
+say till it is time for them to go off to a boarding-school?"
+
+This direct manner of approach was perhaps the one best calculated to
+win Miss Fraile, who after a very little parley, assented to the
+proposition. She was a very young and fragile-looking woman, having but
+lately passed her thirtieth birthday, but she was in reality quite as
+able to take care of herself as the next person, if not, indeed, a great
+deal more so. She was the very antithesis, as the boys presently
+discovered, of Aunt Selina, being all smiles and cordiality on the
+outside and about as hard as tempered steel when you got a little below
+the surface, in spite of her smiles, and in spite, moreover, of her
+really unusual and perfectly sincere piety.
+
+"I think," went on Aunt Selina rather magnificently, after the main
+point had been gained, "that in the matter of the stipend there will be
+no difficulty at all. You will find my brother entirely liberal in such
+matters." Here she named a sum, Miss Fraile instantly decided that it
+would not do, and proceeded after her own fashion to the work of raising
+her opponent's bid.
+
+"How very good of him," she murmured, letting her eyes fall to the
+carpet. "All of our family have unfortunately been obliged to devote so
+much thought and attention to money matters since our dear father's
+death left us so badly off. Let me see.... I suppose my duties here
+would take up very nearly all my time, would they not?"
+
+"I do not know.... I daresay...."
+
+"Exactly; one has to look so far ahead in all these matters, does one
+not? I mean, that looking after this great house and those two dear boys
+and Hilary himself would not leave me much time for anything like music
+lessons, would it? Perhaps you did not know that I gave music lessons at
+home?... Money is such a bother--! I suppose I should scarcely have time
+to practise here myself, with one thing and another--household affairs
+do pile up so, do they not?--without thinking of lessons or anything of
+that sort; yet I daresay I should somehow be able to ... to make it up,
+that is, if--"
+
+"How much more would you need?" asked Aunt Selina bluntly.
+
+Miss Fraile named a sum half as large again as the one previously
+mentioned, but Aunt Selina, stifling a gasp, clinched the matter there.
+
+After the funeral Miss Fraile returned to her home in semi-rural
+Pennsylvania "to collect my traps" as she brightly put it, and a week
+or so later came back to New Haven and settled down in her new position.
+The boys on the whole liked their Aunt Agatha, though even their
+exuberant boyish natures occasionally found her cheerfulness a little
+oppressive, and she certainly did very well for them and for their
+father. She ordered the meals, saw to the housework, arranged the
+flowers, dusted the bric-a-brac with her own hands, did most of the
+mending and presided at the head of the table at meals, fairly radiating
+peace and cheer.
+
+Hilary was a little appalled, to be sure, when she would burst on him on
+his returning to the house of an evening with a pair of warmed slippers
+in her hand and a musical little peal of laughter on her lips, but he
+did not have to see much of her, and besides, he so thoroughly approved
+of her.
+
+"It is like living with Mary and Martha rolled into one," he told his
+brother a month or two after her arrival; "with a little of Job and the
+archangel Gabriel thrown in, flavored with a spice of St. Elizabeth of
+Hungary--that bread woman, you know--and just a dash of St. Francis of
+Assisi. She has covered the lawn knee-deep with bread crumbs for the
+sparrows, and when she is not busy with her church work, which she
+almost always is, she goes about kissing strange children on the head
+and asking them if they say their prayers regularly. They all seem to
+like her, too; that's the funny part of it. The boys are entirely happy
+with her, and she is splendid for them. In short, I am entertaining an
+angel, though not unawares--oh, no, certainly not unawares."
+
+The two boys were thrown on each other's society much more constantly
+than formerly, especially as, during the first weeks, at any rate, they
+had small heart for the games of their schoolmates. James especially,
+during these days of retirement, observed his brother with a
+newly-awakened interest, and in the light, of course, of his mother's
+last words to him. He had always thought of Harry as more irresponsible
+and light-headed than himself, but it had never occurred to him that he
+could give him any help against his impulsiveness beyond the customary
+fraternal criticism and banter. Now he began to see that his position of
+elder brother, combined with his superior balance and poise of
+character, gave him a considerable influence over Harry, and he began to
+feel at times an actual sense of responsibility very different from the
+attitude of tolerant and half-amused superiority with which he had
+previously regarded Harry's vagaries. At such times he would drop his
+ridicule or blame, whichever it happened to be, and would become silent
+and embarrassed, feeling that he should be helping Harry instead of
+merely laying stress on his shortcomings, and yet not having the first
+idea of how to go to work about it.
+
+One day they were returning to the house after a walk through a somewhat
+slummy and hoodlum-infested neighborhood and came upon a group of boys
+tormenting a small, dirty, yellow mongrel puppy after the humorous
+manner of their kind. They were not actually cruel to the dog, but they
+were certainly not giving it a good time, and Harry's tender heart was
+stirred to its core. Without a word or a second thought he rushed into
+the middle of the gang, extracted the puppy and ran off with it to a
+place of safety. The thing was done in the modern rather than in the
+romantic style; he did not strike out at boys twice as big as
+himself--there were none there, in the first place, and in any case he
+had no desire for a fight--nor did he indulge in a lengthy tirade
+against cruelty to animals; he simply grabbed the dog and ran. The
+"micks" followed him at first, but he could run faster than they and
+none of them cared much about a puppy, one way or the other.
+
+James, meanwhile, had run off a different way, and when presently he
+came upon his brother again he was walking leisurely along clasping the
+puppy in a close embrace.
+
+"You certainly are a young fool," said James, half amused and half
+irritated; "what did you want to get mixed up in a street row like that
+for? Darned lucky you didn't get your head smashed."
+
+Harry thought it needless to reply to this, as the facts spoke for
+themselves, and merely walked on, hugging and kissing his prize.
+
+Then suddenly the situation dawned on James in its new light, and he
+walked on, silent as Harry himself and far more perplexed. Harry's
+fundamental motive was a good one, no doubt, but he realized what
+disproportionate trouble the reckless following up of Harry's good
+motives might bring him into. This time he had luckily escaped scot
+free, but the next time he would very likely get mixed up in a street
+fight, and would be lucky if he were able to walk home. And all about so
+little--the dog was not really suffering; being a slum dog it had
+probably thrived on teasing and mistreatment since before its eyes were
+open. And the worst part of the situation was that he was so helpless in
+making Harry see the thing in its true light.
+
+At any rate, he reflected, his first attitude was of no avail. Calling
+Harry a fool, he knew, would not convince him of his foolishness; it
+would more likely have the effect of making him think he was more right
+than ever. As he walked silently on, beside his brother, Harry's
+shortcomings seemed to dwindle and his own to increase.
+
+"Let's have a look at the beast," he said presently in an altered tone,
+stopping and taking the puppy from Harry's arms. "He's not such a bad
+puppy, after all. Wonder how old he is." He sat down on a nearby
+curbstone and balancing the puppy on his knee apostrophized him further:
+"Well, it was poor pupsy-wupsy; did the naughty boys throw stones at it?
+That was a dirty shame, it was!"
+
+James put the puppy down in the gutter and encouraged playfulness. For a
+few minutes the two boys watched its somewhat reluctant antics; then
+James asked:
+
+"What are you going to do with it, anyway?"
+
+"Take it home, I suppose."
+
+"What'll you do with it there? Keep him in the house?"
+
+"No. That is, I suppose Father wouldn't hear of it."
+
+"I suppose not A puppy...! There are three dogs in the house anyway."
+
+"What about the stable, then?"
+
+"I don't know. There's Thomas." Thomas was the coachman, who made no
+secret of his dislike for dogs "under the horses' hoofs."
+
+"Yes," said Harry, "and Spark, too. Spark would try to bite him, I'm
+afraid."
+
+"What are you going to do with him, then?"
+
+"I don't know; what shall we?"
+
+"It's for you to say--he's your dog."
+
+"Do you think," said Harry, lowering his voice and gazing furtively
+around, "do you think it would be all right just to leave him here?"
+
+James laughed, inwardly. Then a bright idea struck him. Grasping the
+puppy in one hand he walked across the street to a small and dirty front
+yard in which a small and dirty child of four or five was sitting
+playing.
+
+"Hullo, kid," said James breezily, "do you want a puppy dog? Here you
+are, then. He's a very valuable dog, so be careful of him. Mind you
+don't pull his tail now, or he'll bite."
+
+James walked off well pleased with the turn of events, which left Harry
+relieved and satisfied and the dog honorably disposed of. As for Harry,
+he was profoundly grateful. He would have liked to give some expression
+to his gratitude, but the words would not come, and he walked on for
+some time without speaking. But he was determined to give some sign of
+what he felt.
+
+"Thank you, James," he said at length in a low voice, and blushed to the
+roots of his hair.
+
+"What? Oh, that's all right." James' surprise was no affectation; the
+matter had really passed from his mind. But he gave to Harry's words the
+full meaning that the speaker placed in them. They made him feel
+suddenly ashamed of himself; what had Harry done that was wrong? What
+had he done but what was right and praiseworthy, when you came to look
+at it? Should he not be ashamed himself of not having run in and rescued
+the dog before Harry?
+
+And yet, most of the things that Harry did worked out wrong, somehow,
+even when they were prompted by the best of motives.
+
+"Poor Harry," thought James, "he's always getting into scrapes, and yet
+I suppose, if everything were known, people would see that he was twice
+as good as I am, at bottom. I would never have thought of saving that
+dog; Harry thinks out such funny things to do.... I can generally do the
+right thing, if it's put directly up to me, but Harry goes out and
+searches for the right thing to do; I guess that's what it amounts to.
+Only, I wish he didn't have to search in such strange places."
+
+As James settled down into his position of mentor to his brother he
+found out a curious thing; he was fonder of Harry than formerly. The old
+sense of unconscious, taking-it-for-granted companionship gradually
+became infused with positive affection which, for the reason that it
+found little if any outward expression in the daily round of work and
+play, escaped the notice of everybody except James himself.
+
+"Do you think that doing something for a person would ever make you
+fonder of that person?" he once asked of his father when they were alone
+together. "I mean--I should think, that is, that it would work out the
+other way, so that the person you did the thing for would be fonder of
+you."
+
+"It's a well known psychological fact," replied his father; "I've often
+noticed it. If you merely stop a person in the street and ask him the
+way, or what time it is, you can see his expression change from one of
+indifference, or even dislike, to interest and cordiality. And if you
+ever feel that a man, an acquaintance, doesn't like you, ask him to do
+you some slight service, and he'll admire you intensely from that moment
+on. And conversely, if you want to make a man your enemy, the best way
+of going about it is to do something for him.--Why, what made you think
+of it?"
+
+"Thomas," replied James promptly, being prepared for the question. "He
+was cross as two sticks the other day when we wanted to build forts in
+the haymow, but after I asked him to help me put the chain on my
+bicycle," etc., etc. But James was disturbed by his father's development
+of the theory. What if his "helping out" Harry should have the effect of
+making him hate him, James, the very effect of all others he desired to
+avoid? He resolved to keep his new-found feeling to himself, and give
+his brother's resentment no foothold; but he could not entirely live it
+down, for all that. Unconsciously he found fault less with him,
+unconsciously he would take his part in squabbles with the servants or
+with his father; and as he noticed no change in Harry's conduct toward
+him he congratulated himself on his powers of concealment.
+
+But he need have had no worries on the score of Harry's resenting his
+protection. To Harry, James had always appeared to partake somewhat of
+the nature of a divinity; if not Apollo or Jupiter, out and out, he was
+at least Hercules, say, or Theseus. And though, in the very nature of
+things in general and the fraternal relation in particular, he was
+obliged outwardly to deny James' superiority in everything and more
+especially the right to boss younger brothers, he was acutely, almost
+pathetically, sensitive to James' demeanor toward him and was entirely
+ready to respond to any increase in good feeling, if James would lead
+the way.
+
+James, with all his insight and quickness of perception, failed to count
+upon the fact that Harry would be as slow in making a parade of his
+feelings as he himself, and was a little surprised that Harry made so
+slight a demonstration of sorrow when, about a year after their mother's
+death, James was sent off to school. Harry, indeed, sought to cover his
+secret conviction that he would really miss his brother very much by
+repeated harpings upon the blessings that James' presence had ever kept
+from him, and now, the obstacle being removed, would shower copiously on
+his deserving, but hitherto officially unrecognized, head. Now he would
+get the first go at all dishes at table, now he would always sit on the
+box beside Thomas and drive, now people would see whether he could not
+be on time for breakfast without his brother's assistance, and so forth.
+James smiled tolerantly at all such talk; he knew that it did not amount
+to much, though even he failed to realize quite how little.
+
+When the fatal morning came the brothers parted with complete cordiality
+and every outward expression of mutual contempt.
+
+"Be very careful about putting on your clothes in the morning, kid,"
+said James as the train that was to take him off rolled into the
+station. "You put on your undershirt first, remember, then your shirt
+and coat. Don't go putting your undershirt over your coat; people might
+laugh."
+
+"All right, you dear thoughtful boy, I'll try to remember, but I shall
+be pretty busy hoping that those other kids'll lick the tar out of you,
+for the first time in your innocent life. You're a good boy at heart,
+James; all you need is to have the nonsense knocked out of you!"
+
+James' first letter to his brother from school, written some ten days
+after his departure, is still extant, and may be quoted in full as a
+document in the story.
+
+ St. Barnabas' School.
+ October 5.
+
+ Dear Harry:
+
+ I meant to have written you before, but I have been so busy
+ that there was no time. This certainly is a fine place, and I
+ like it a lot already. There are 21 new boys this term, which
+ is fewer than usual, but they say we are an unusually good
+ crowd. We say so, at any rate! There was a big rough-house in
+ our corridor Saturday night. A lot of the old boys came down
+ and turned the new fellows after lights were out, and also made
+ them run the gauntlet down the hall, standing at the sides and
+ swatting them with belts and things as they went by. That was
+ much worse than the turning, which did not amount to much. I
+ got turned five times, and Brush, the fellow that rooms with
+ me, six times. That was not much. There was one chap that got
+ turned 22 times that one night. That was Hawley. They call him
+ 'Stink' Hawley already, because he is so dirty looking. They
+ say he has not washed his face since he came. Gosh, I wonder
+ what you will be called when you get here!
+
+"What a filthy lie!" shrieked Harry when he reached this, making up in
+vehemence what he lacked in coherence. His alleged aversion to the
+wash-basin was a standing joke in the family, and any reference to it
+invariably brought a rise.
+
+"Gracious, dear," murmured Aunt Agatha, and smiled.
+
+"Let's hear," said his father, suspending judgment. (The scene took
+place at the breakfast table.) Harry read the letter aloud up to the
+point in question, and was relieved to observe an exculpatory smile on
+his father's lips when he stopped.
+
+"I admit there is an implication in that last remark," said Hilary,
+"that might prove irritating. However, that's no excuse for making a
+menagerie of yourself. What else does James say?" Harry read on:
+
+ There always is a big rough-house the first two or three
+ Saturday nights every year, and after that they keep pretty
+ quiet. They say the masters let them do what they like, almost,
+ those first nights, because they behave better afterwards and
+ it keeps the new boys from being too fresh. That's what I'll be
+ doing to you, you see, next year!
+
+ I have been playing football every day, and am trying for the
+ fourth team. Do you remember Roswell Banks, that boy we saw up
+ at Northeast? He is going to make the first team this year,
+ probably. They say he tackles better than any one else here.
+ Kid Leffingwell also plays a peach of a game, but he won't make
+ the first this year. He is too light, but he has got lots of
+ nerve.
+
+ I must stop now, so good-night.
+
+ Your affectionate brother,
+ JAMES.
+
+The present writer has no quarrel with any one who is unable to detect
+in this letter symptoms of any particularly keen brotherly affection. It
+is his private opinion, however, that such exist there. He thinks,
+_imprimis_, that James, strange as it may appear, laid himself out to be
+more agreeable in that letter than he would if he had written it, say, a
+year previously. It is longer and fuller than James' letters usually
+were. And--though this may be drawing the point too fine--he thinks that
+the exclamation point after "that's what I'll be doing to you next year"
+would not have been put in under the old regime. An exclamation point
+does so much toward toning down and softening a disagreeable remark! And
+for the manner of signature, of course James might have signed himself
+like that to Harry at any time of his life. Yet the writer, even at the
+risk of being called super-sensitive, will not ignore the fact that most
+of James' letters to his brother previous to this date are signed, more
+casually, "Yours affect'ly," or "Ever yours," or simply
+"Good-by,--James," and though he realizes that at best the point is not
+an all-important one, he feels he can do no better than give the reader
+all the information he has at his command, be it never so trifling, and
+let him draw conclusions for himself.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER V
+
+BABES IN THE WOOD
+
+
+One Saturday morning about a year after James went away to school Harry
+bounded downstairs for breakfast to find his father just leaving the
+dining room.
+
+"Hello, Father," he said, jumping up and kissing him as usual. "You
+don't stay in the office this afternoon, do you, Father? Why don't you
+take Bugs and me to the game? Or you can take us for a ride in the car,
+if you like; we'll meet you downtown for lunch, so as to save time."
+(Bugs was for the moment Harry's _fidus Achates_; a sort of vice-James.)
+
+"You will not, I fear," returned Hilary briefly. "I'm going out of town
+for the day."
+
+"What, not in the car?"
+
+"In the car."
+
+"_All_ day?"
+
+"All day. Leaving now, as soon as ever the car comes round, and not
+getting back till late--perhaps not to-night."
+
+"Dash," remarked Harry. "I wish you'd go by train; Graves told me he'd
+give me a lesson in running the machine the next free Saturday."
+
+"Sorry. Next week, perhaps."
+
+"Where are you going, anyway, Father?"
+
+"My business."
+
+"Going to take Graves?"
+
+"No."
+
+"What, all alone? You'll be lonely. Why don't you take Aunt Agatha?"
+
+"No, I shan't be lonely and I'm not going to take Aunt Agatha. I'll tell
+you what I am going to do, however; I'm going to send you away to
+school, and that next term. You have a pretty glib tongue in your head,
+Harry my boy, and I think perhaps young gentlemen of your own age will
+be even better able to appreciate it than I am."
+
+But Harry was far too elated by the news to pay much heed to the rebuke.
+He became inarticulate with delight, and his father went calmly on with
+his preparations for departure.
+
+"Yes, I'll have a talk with Hodgman about the exams.... There's the car,
+at last--I must run. Where did I put those water rights, anyway? Oh....
+Yes, I think you'll probably have to do extra work in algebra this
+term.... Take care of yourself; we'll have a spree next week if I can
+arrange it," and so forth, enough to cover sorting a morning's mail,
+progress into the front hall, donning a hat and overcoat--no, the dark
+one, and where are the gray gloves, dash it?--and a triumphal exit in a
+motor car. Harry watched the retreating vehicle with mingled regret and
+admiration. Hilary made a striking and debonair picture as he whirled
+along in his scarlet chariot--they ran a great deal to bright red paint
+in those early days, if you'll remember--and people would run to catch a
+glimpse of him as he dashed by and talk about it at length at the next
+meal. But it occurred to Harry that he would complete the picture very
+nicely, sitting there at his father's side. He wished fervently that he
+could ever make his father remember that Saturday was Saturday.
+
+This parting conversation was redeemed from the oblivion of trivial
+things and inscribed indelibly on Harry's memory by the fact that it was
+the last he ever had with his father.
+
+The day passed like any other day and at its close the household went to
+bed as usual, boding no ill. Toward midnight the telephone rang and Aunt
+Agatha arose and answered it. The voice at the other end introduced
+itself as Police Headquarters and inquired, as an afterthought, if this
+was Mr. Wimbourne's house. Yet, it was. Headquarters then expressed a
+desire to know if any of the family was there and, without waiting for a
+reply, asked with perceptible animation if this was one of the girls
+speaking? Aunt Agatha answered, in a tone which in another person would
+have been called frigid, that this was Miss Fraile.
+
+Headquarters appeared duly impressed; at least he seemed to have
+difficulty in finding words in which to continue. Aunt Agatha's crisp
+inquiry of what was it, please? at last moved him to admit there had
+been an accident. Yes, to Mr. Wimbourne. The automobile did it; ran into
+a telegraph pole down near Port Chester. Pretty bad smash-up; couldn't
+say just how bad.... Was Mr. Wimbourne badly hurt? Well, yes, pretty
+badly; the machine--Was Mr. Wimbourne killed? Well, yes, he was, if you
+put it that way. His body would arrive sometime next morning....
+
+This was the sort of occasion on which Aunt Agatha shone as a perfect
+model of efficiency. She spent an hour or more telegraphing and
+telephoning, prayed extensively, returned to her bed and slept soundly
+till seven. Then she arose and gave directions to the servants. It was
+breakfast time before she remembered that she had yet to tell Harry.
+
+Then, as he appeared so cheerfully and ignorantly at the breakfast
+table, Aunt Agatha's heart failed her. Her presence of mind also left
+her; she blurted out a few words to the effect that his father had had a
+bad accident, wished she had let him eat his breakfast in ignorance,
+hoped despairingly that he would guess the truth from her perturbation.
+But even this was denied her; he asked a great many questions and
+refused to eat till she made him, but gave no sign of suspecting
+anything beyond what she told him.
+
+She saw that the suspense of waiting for his father's return would tell
+on him more than the worst certainty, but still she could not bring
+herself to break the truth to him. When at last she nerved herself to do
+it, it was too late.
+
+"Come here and sit down by me, Harry," she said gently, but Harry, who
+was standing at one of the front windows, listlessly replied:
+
+"Wait, there's something coming up the street."
+
+"Just a minute, dear, I want to talk to you," said Aunt Agatha, going
+over and trying to push him gently away from the window. But Harry's
+attention was caught and he refused to move.
+
+"I thought it might be Father. Do you think it's Father, Aunt Agatha? It
+moves so slowly I can't see.... Yes, it's turning in at the gate. What
+sort of a thing is it, anyway?..."
+
+The next moment his own eyes answered the question, and with a little
+cry he toppled backward into her arms.
+
+James' reception of the news was characteristically different. His
+behavior was generally referred to by the family as "wonderful." He
+certainly was very calm throughout. He was informed of his father's
+death on the Sunday morning by the headmaster of his school, to whom
+Aunt Agatha had telegraphed the night before.
+
+"I suppose I'd better go home," was his first comment.
+
+"I suppose you had," replied the schoolmaster, and he was rather at a
+loss for what to say next. He had certainly expected more of a
+demonstration than this. "Somebody had better go with you. Whom would
+you like to have go?"
+
+James hesitated and blushed. "Do you suppose Marston would come?" he
+said at last, in a low voice. Marston, a long-legged sixth former, was
+James' idol at present; to ask him to do something for one was like
+calling the very gods down from Olympus.
+
+"I am sure he would," said the headmaster, who understood, perfectly. "I
+will send for him now and ask him."
+
+So Marston accompanied James on his dreary homeward journey, though his
+presence was not in the least necessary, and James sat covertly gazing
+at him in mute adoration all the way. His thoughts were actually less on
+his father's death during this journey than on the wonderful, incredible
+fact that anything like a mere family death could throw him into
+intimate intercourse with Marston for a whole day.
+
+But of course he gave no sign of this, and Marston, like a real god,
+seemed entirely unconscious of the immensity of the blessing he was
+conferring. He spent the night at the Wimbournes', behaving himself in
+his really rather trying position with the greatest ease and seemliness,
+and even submitted with a becoming grace to the kiss which Aunt Cecilia
+impulsively placed on his brow when she bade him farewell next morning.
+
+"You're a dear good boy," she said softly, as she did it; "thank you,
+again and again, for what you've done."
+
+James, who was a witness to this episode, nearly sank through the floor
+with shame. That a relative of his should kiss--actually, _kiss_
+Marston--! He felt like throwing himself on the ground and imploring
+Marston's pardon, dedicating himself to his service for life as an
+expiation.
+
+Yet Marston only blushed and laughed a little and said he had done
+nothing, and bade good-by to James with unimpaired cordiality.
+
+Aunt Cecilia had been the first of the relatives to arrive on the spot
+after Hilary's death, and she remained commander-in-chief of the relief
+forces throughout. But her command was not a complete or unquestioned
+one. Among the relatives that assembled at the Wimbourne house on that
+Sunday and Monday for Hilary's funeral was one with whom the story has
+hitherto had no dealings, but who was a very important force in the
+family, for all that. This was Lady Fletcher, Hilary's younger sister,
+by all odds the handsomest and most naturally gifted of her generation.
+She was the wife of an English army officer, Sir Giles Fletcher, who,
+having won his major-generalship and a K.C.B. by distinguished service
+with Kitchener in the Soudan, and being physically incapacitated by that
+campaign for further service in the tropics, was now, with the able
+assistance of his wife, devoting his declining years to politics. Lady
+Fletcher, by the discreet exercise of her social qualities, had
+succeeded in making herself in the five years since her husband had
+entered Parliament, one of the most important political hostesses in
+London. At the time of Hilary's death she was paying one of her flying
+autumn visits to the country of her birth, in which her headquarters was
+always her brother James' house in New York.
+
+She and James had gone up to New Haven on the Sunday afternoon in a
+leisurely fashion several hours in the wake of Aunt Cecilia, who had
+rushed off, without so much as packing a bag, the moment she received
+Miss Fraile's telegram that morning. Miriam--that was her Christian
+name--always felt that she and her brother James understood one another
+better than any other members of the family, and it was her private
+opinion that they between them possessed more of the rare gift of common
+sense than all the other Wimbournes put together, with their wives and
+husbands thrown in. During the short two-hour journey from New York to
+New Haven neither she nor her brother appeared so overcome by sorrow
+over their recent loss that they were not able to discuss the newly
+created situation pretty satisfactorily, or, to "be practical" as Lady
+Fletcher was fond of putting it.
+
+"You aren't going to smoke, James?" she asked, as her brother, shortly
+after the train had started, exhibited preparatory signs of a
+restlessness which she knew would culminate in an apologetic exit to the
+smoking car. "Please don't; I can't, on the train, and the thought of
+your doing it would make me miserable." She stopped for a moment,
+reflecting that there was perhaps that in the air which ought to make
+her miserable anyway; then went on, with a significantly lowered voice.
+"Beside, I want to talk to you; we may not get another chance...."
+
+"Well?" said James at length.
+
+"Don't be irritating, James; you know what I mean, perfectly. Can't you
+turn your chair around a little nearer? I don't want to shout.... Tell
+me, first, who are to be the guardians? Now don't say you don't know,
+because you do."
+
+"I do, as a matter of fact. You and I, jointly. That's the one thing I
+do know, for sure."
+
+"I felt sure it would be that, somehow.... Why me, I wonder? and if me
+at all, why you? However, it might have been worse, of course."
+
+"Yes, I think he was right, on the whole." So perfect was the unspoken
+understanding between these two that, if a third person had interrupted
+at this moment and asked, point blank, what they were talking about,
+both would have replied, without a moment's hesitation, "Selina," though
+her name had not passed their lips.
+
+"Well, what's to be done?" Lady Fletcher exhibited, to James' trained
+eye, preliminary symptoms of a "practical" seizure.
+
+"Can't tell anything for certain, till we see the will. I shall see
+Raynham in the morning."
+
+"Yes, but haven't you any idea ..."
+
+"Oh, none! You were not a witness, were you?... if that's any comfort to
+you."
+
+"Thanks, I have no expectations." This was uttered in Lady Fletcher's
+best snubbing tone, impossible to describe. "Please be practical, James.
+What is going to become of those two boys?"
+
+"Well, there are several possibilities. First, there's their aunt...."
+
+"Oh, the Fraile woman? I've never met her. Isn't she ... well, a
+trifle...."
+
+"Oh, quite. She's a leading candidate for the position of first American
+saint. But there'd be no point in keeping on with her, with James away
+at school and Harry ready to go."
+
+"Oh, really? I didn't realize."
+
+"No," continued James, raising his eyes to his sister's and smiling
+slightly, "what it will come to will be that I shall have six children
+instead of four. Or rather, seven instead of five."
+
+"Oh, really?" This in a changed tone from the lady.
+
+"Yes, hasn't she told you? April."
+
+"No." The practical mood seemed to have undergone a setback; there was
+something new in that monosyllable, irritation, a twinge of pain,
+perhaps. An outside observer might have thought this was due to Miriam's
+having been left out of her sister-in-law's confidence, but James knew
+better. He felt sorry for his sister; he knew that her childlessness was
+the one blight on her career.
+
+"I don't see why you should do it, James." This after a long interval of
+silent thought on the part of Miriam, and passive observation of the
+rushing autumn landscape on the part of James. "I don't see why, when
+I'm equally responsible. It isn't a question of money, so much--I
+suppose that will be left all right?"
+
+"Oh, undoubtedly. Though I don't know just how."
+
+"It's more than that; it's the responsibility, the bother. There's no
+use in saying that one more, or two more, don't matter, for they do; and
+there's no use in saying that they would both be away at school, for,
+though that would make a difference, of course, you never can tell what
+is going to turn up. No matter what did happen, it would always fall on
+you--and Cecilia."
+
+"That's all very true, perhaps, but--"
+
+"And remember this; it's not as if you didn't have four--five already,
+and I none."
+
+"What _are_ you driving at, Miriam?"
+
+"Don't you see? I want to take one, or both of them, myself."
+
+"Whee-ew." This was not, strictly speaking, an observation, but rather a
+sort of vocalized whistle, the larynx helping out the lips. "You do rush
+things so, Miriam! Aside from the consideration of whether it would be
+advisable or not, do you realize what opposition there'd be?"
+
+"Why? What, I mean, that could not be properly overcome? You are one
+guardian, I the other; I take one boy, you the other. What is there
+strange about such a course? Or I could take both together."
+
+"I should be against James leaving the country, myself. He is safely
+started in his school; doing well there; striking his _milieu_. Why
+disturb him?"
+
+"Well, Harry, then. What sort of a child is he, James? I haven't seen
+either of them for three years, but as I remember it, I liked James
+best. Rather the manly type, isn't he? Not but what the other seemed a
+nice enough child...."
+
+"Harry? Oh, he'll have the brains of his generation, without doubt. Yes,
+I'm not surprised at your liking James best. There are plenty of people
+who find Harry the more attractive, however. He's got winning ways.
+But--are you serious about this, Miriam?"
+
+"Serious? Certainly!"
+
+"Well, what's the point? Do we want to make an Englishman out of the
+boy? And do you want to separate them? Wouldn't that smack a little
+of--well, of Babes in the Wood? Cruel uncles and things, you know?"
+
+"I don't think so. We wouldn't want to do that, of course. It wouldn't
+be for always, anyway. But even if he went to an English public school,
+which I should prefer to an American one, particularly for that type ...
+they would always have vacations. You are here, and I am there, and we
+would keep running across pretty frequently. Besides," here Lady
+Fletcher again changed her tone, and generally gave the impression of
+preparing to start another maneuver; "besides, there's another element
+in it--Giles. He's devoted to children. He would come as near being a
+father to the boy, if he liked him, as any one could. And--do you
+realize what that might mean for him--for Harry?" Miriam stopped,
+significantly, and looked her brother straight in the eye for a moment.
+"The Rumbold property is very large, and Giles will certainly come into
+it before long...."
+
+"I see," said James, slowly nodding his head; "I see. Though I wouldn't
+sacrifice anything definite to that chance. Beside, what about the
+Carson family?"
+
+"Oh, yes, I'm not saying there's any certainty; it's just one of the
+things to be counted on.... Leaving Harry out of consideration for the
+moment, it would be a wonderful thing for Giles. I can't think of
+anything Giles would rather have; it would be like giving him a son. And
+if you knew how wild English people of a certain class and type are
+about children--! Giles has never got on well with the Carson children,
+for some reason."
+
+"That's all very fine, Miriam, but we mustn't leave Harry out of
+consideration, since it's him we're the guardians of, and not Giles--at
+least, I am.... I'm inclined to think there is something in what you
+say, though I should be definitely against making an Englishman of
+him--you understand that?" Lady Fletcher nodded, and her brother
+continued: "It would certainly have an admirably broadening influence,
+if all went right. And I'm not sure but what you're right about English
+public schools. Even for American boys. But--" here he smiled
+quizzically at his sister--"did you ever hear of a person called Selina
+Wimbourne?"
+
+Lady Fletcher laughed. "You've hit it this time, I fancy! Honestly,
+James--" the practical mood was now in complete abeyance--"though I've
+knocked around a good deal with swells and terrifying people and all
+that, I have never been so cowed by the mere presence of any individual
+as I have been by my sister Selina. Did it ever occur to you, James,
+that Selina runs this family--well, as the engineer runs this train?"
+
+"Something very like it--yes."
+
+"At any rate, I have a premonition in the present instance that as
+Selina jumps the tree will fall ... fancy Selina jumping out of a tree!
+It will have to be most carefully put to her--if it is put."
+
+"If it is put--exactly. We must see how things lie before doing
+anything.--What, already?" This to a negro porter, who was exhibiting
+willingness to be of service. "We must look alive--the next stop's New
+Haven. Mind you don't say anything too soon, now; easy does it."
+
+"Yes, of course.--No, Bridgeport, isn't it?--What, don't we, any
+more?... But you are on my side, in the main, aren't you?"
+
+"Conditionally, yes--that is, if all parties seem agreeable. The one
+thing I won't stand for is--well, Babes in the Wood business."
+
+"James, what do you think of my taking Harry off to England with me?"
+said Aunt Miriam to her elder nephew a day or two later.
+
+"I think it would be fine," was his reply, and then after a pause: "For
+how long, though?"
+
+This was going nearer to the heart of the matter than the lady cared to
+penetrate, so she merely answered:
+
+"Oh, one can't tell; a few months; perhaps more, if he wants to stay."
+Seeing that he swallowed this without apparent effort, she went on:
+"What should you say to his going to school in England, when he is able,
+for a time?"
+
+James' expression underwent no change, but he only answered stiffly, "I
+think he had better come to St. Barnabas, when he is able," and his aunt
+let the matter drop there.
+
+It was in Aunt Cecilia, and not Aunt Selina, that Lady Fletcher found
+the most formidable opposition. Miss Wimbourne, indeed, quite took to
+the idea when her half-sister, very carefully and with not a little
+concealed trepidation, suggested it to her. She took it, as Miriam more
+vividly put it to her brother, "like milk."
+
+"That is not a bad plan, Miriam, not a bad plan at all," she said in the
+quiet voice that could be so firm when it wanted. "I can see why there
+are good reasons why neither of the boys should live in New Haven. For
+the present, you know. James will be at school, and will spend his
+vacations with James' family, and Harry will be with you until he is
+ready to do the same. I do not see but what it is a very good
+arrangement. I am perfectly willing to do my part in taking care of
+them, but I am not nearly so useful in that way as either you or James."
+
+But not so with Mrs. James. Her husband first spoke to her of the scheme
+before breakfast on the Monday morning, and she took immediate and
+articulate exception to it. The plan was forced, dangerous, artificial,
+cruel, unnecessary, short-sighted; in fact, it wouldn't do at all. There
+was no telling what Miriam would do with him, once he was over there,
+and no telling when she would let him come back to what had been, what
+ought to be, and what, if she (Mrs. James) had any say in the matter,
+was going to be his Home. It would make her extremely unhappy to think
+of that child spending his vacations--or his whole time for that
+matter--with any one but his uncle and natural guardian ("Miriam is his
+guardian, too," James attempted to say, but no attention was paid to
+him), his aunt and his young cousins. As for all that business about
+Giles Fletcher, it was Perfect Nonsense. Before she would give an
+instant's consideration to such--to such an absurdity, she (Mrs. James)
+would give the boy every scrap of money she had, or was ever going to
+have, outright, and would end the matter then and there. (This would
+have been a really appalling threat, if it was meant seriously, for
+Cecilia was due to inherit millions.) As for sending him to an English
+public school, she thought it would be the cruelest, most unfeeling,
+most ridiculous thing possible, seeing Harry was what he was. If it had
+been James, now--!
+
+But the gods fought on Miriam's side. Cecilia went into the library
+during the latter part of the morning and discovered young James alone
+there. She found him uncommunicative and solemn, which, in the nature of
+things, was only to be expected; and he took her completely by surprise
+by asking after a few moments, in the most ordinary tone:
+
+"Who is Marcelline Lefebre, Aunt Cecilia?"
+
+Mrs. James stifled a gasp, and waited before replying till she was sure
+of her voice.
+
+"Why? How did you ever hear of her?" she said.
+
+"Oh, in this. There's a lot more about it to-day. She was badly hurt,
+wasn't she?"
+
+Mrs. James looked up and saw the newspaper lying open on the desk in
+front of which James was sitting.
+
+"Oh, yes.... An actress, I think."
+
+"Yes," said James, "it says that here." The words and tone clearly
+implied that James expected her to tell him something he did not know
+already, but she parried.
+
+"Had you ever heard of her before?"
+
+"No, never. That's just the funny part of it. Why should we never have
+heard of a person Father knew well enough to take out to ride? Did you
+ever know her?"
+
+"No; merely heard of her. Oh, it's not to be wondered at; he had lots of
+acquaintances, of course." This was definite enough to indicate that she
+had told him all she intended to, and both were silent for a while. But
+presently a new thought occurred to her and she began again:
+
+"Tell me, James, does Harry know anything about Mme. Lefebre?"
+
+"Not that I know of; not unless he heard of her ... before."
+
+"Well, I think it would be a good plan if you didn't mention her name to
+him, or talk about her in his presence."
+
+"All right. Why, though--particularly?"
+
+"Never mind about that. At least," she caught herself up, realizing,
+perhaps, that this was treating him too much _en enfant_; "at least, I
+think it would be just as well for him not to know anything about her.
+It might worry him. Particularly in his present state. There is no
+reason why he should see the papers, or hear anything."
+
+"I see," said James, quietly, staring out of the window. He saw far too
+well, poor boy, was Aunt Cecilia's thought.
+
+But the conversation started her off on a new line of thought in regard
+to Harry. Harry was so different from James; if he once smelled a rat he
+would go nosing about till he found him, even if he undermined the
+foundations of his own happiness in so doing. And Harry was the kind
+that smelled rats.... Inevitably her thoughts wandered around to Lady
+Fletcher's scheme, and beheld it in a new light. There was a certain
+amount of common sense in the plan, so viewed; there would certainly be
+fewer rats in London than anywhere in this country. And after all, what
+was the danger in his going to England? Miriam would not eat him,
+neither would Giles; Miriam must really be fond of him if she wanted to
+take him--Miriam would hardly do anything against her own inclination,
+she reflected, a little bitterly.
+
+She presented her changed front to her husband that evening, and the
+upshot of it all was that Harry was to go to England. The whole family
+adjourned to New York after the funeral, and steamship plans and
+sailings were in the air. James went with them; it was decided that he
+was not to return to school till Harry sailed with his aunt.
+
+Harry himself took most kindly to the scheme; seemed, indeed, to prefer
+it to St. Barnabas. He flaunted his superior fortune in the face of his
+brother, making comparisons between the British Isles and St. Barnabas,
+greatly to the detriment of the latter.
+
+"Oh, yes, I'll write to you," he said airily during one of these
+conversations; "that is, if I can find a minute to do it in. Of course I
+shall be pretty busy, with pantomimes, and theaters, and parties,
+and--and the Zoo, and all that."
+
+"Fudge," said James calmly; "you'll be homesick as a cat before you've
+been there a week."
+
+"Then when I get tired of that I may go to school--if I feel like it.
+Aunt Miriam says she knows of one that would just do. Not Eton or Rugby,
+or anything like that; a school for younger boys. This one is in a
+beautiful big house, Aunt Miriam says, with lots of grounds and things
+about. Park, you know, like Windsor. And deer in it. And the house was
+built in the reign of Charles the First."
+
+"Bet you don't even know when that was. What's the use in having that
+kind of place for a school, anyway?"
+
+"St. Barnabas," replied Harry with hauteur, "was built in the reign of
+Queen Victoria."
+
+"Queen nothing! Gosh, if you talk rot like this now, what'll you be when
+you've been over there a while?"
+
+"Then I may go to Eton, or one of those places, later." This was merely
+to bring a rise; Harry had no idea of completing his education anywhere
+but at St. Barnabas'.
+
+"Yes, a fine time you'd have there! A fine time you'd have with those
+kids. Lords, Dukes, and things. Gosh, wouldn't you be sick of them, and
+oh, but they'd be sick of you!"
+
+"Oh, I don't know," said Harry; "good fellows, lords. Some of them, that
+is. I might be made one myself, in time, who knows?"
+
+"Yes, you might, mightn't you?" James was laughing now. "Nothing more
+likely, I should think. Lord Harry, Earl Harry!"
+
+Harry replied in kind, and hostilities ensued.
+
+This was all more or less as it should be, and the mutual attitude was
+maintained up to the actual moment of sailing--after it, indeed, for
+when Harry last saw his brother he was standing on the very end of the
+dock and shouting "Give my love to the earls!" and similar pleasantries
+to the small head that protruded itself out of the great black moving
+wall above him; above him now, and now not so much above, but some
+distance off, and presently not a great black wall at all, but the side
+of a perfectly articulate ship, way out in the river.
+
+Uncle James and his wife, also their eldest child, Ruth, a girl of nine
+or thereabouts, all came down to the dock with James to see the
+travelers off, and as they arrived hours and hours, as Miriam put it,
+before there was any question of sailing, there was a good deal of
+standing about in saloons and on decks and talking about nothing in
+particular, pending the moment when gongs would be rung and people begin
+to talk jocularly about getting left and having to climb down with the
+pilot. They all went down to see the staterooms, which adjoined each
+other and were pronounced satisfactory. Aunt Cecilia said she was glad
+Harry could have his window open at night without a draught blowing on
+him, and Aunt Miriam remarked that it was nice to have the ship all to
+one's self, practically, which was so different from Coming Over, and
+Uncle James added that when he crossed on the _Persia_ in '69 as a mere
+kid, there were only fifteen people in the first cabin and none of them
+ever appeared in the dining room after the first day except himself and
+the captain. After this, conversation rather lagged and there was a
+general adjournment to the deck. A few passengers, accompanied by their
+stay-at-home friends and relations, wandered about the halls and
+stairways, saying that autumn voyages were not always so bad and that
+you never could tell about the ocean, at any season; which amounted to
+admitting that they probably would be seasick, though they hoped not.
+Our friends, the Wimbournes, had little to say on even this
+all-absorbing topic, for Harry, who had crossed once before, had proved
+himself a qualmless sailor, and Aunt Miriam had crossed so often that
+she had got all over that sort of thing, years ago.
+
+Uncle James was presently despatched to see what mischief those boys
+were getting that child into, and the two ladies wandered into the main
+lounge and sat down.
+
+"Anything more different than the appearance of a steamship saloon while
+the ship is in dock from what it looks like when she is careering round
+at sea can hardly be imagined," murmured Lady Fletcher, pleasantly, with
+no intention of being comprehended or replied to. Mrs. James' polite and
+conscientious rejoinder of "What was that, Miriam?"--she had not, of
+course, been listening--piqued the other lady ever so slightly. It was
+not real annoyance, merely the rather tired feeling that comes over one
+when a companion sounds a note out of one's own mood.
+
+"Oh, nothing; merely what a difference it makes, being out on the open
+sea."
+
+"Yes, doesn't it?... Harry will--"
+
+"Harry will what?"
+
+"Nothing." Mrs. James blushed a little. She was going to say, "Harry
+will have to be looked out for, or he will go climbing over places where
+he shouldn't and fall overboard," or something to that effect, but she
+decided not to, fearing that her sister-in-law would think her fussy.
+Lady Fletcher accepted the omission, and went on to talk of the next
+thing that came into her mind, which was Business. There were some
+Lackawanna shares, it appeared, part of Harry's property, the dividends
+on which James was going to pay regularly to the London banker for
+defraying Harry's expenses, and James might have forgotten to do
+something, or else not to do something, in connection with these. Lady
+Fletcher wandered on to American railroad stock, making several remarks
+which, in the absence of brothers, with their satirical smiles, remained
+unchallenged. Poor Aunt Cecilia, who could neither keep on nor off her
+sister-in-law's line of thought, unluckily broke in on the Union Pacific
+with the malapropos remark:
+
+"Miriam, Harry has got to be made to wear woolen stockings in the
+winter, no matter what he says ..."
+
+Lady Fletcher was amused. "I declare, Cecilia," she said, "you think I
+am no more capable of taking care of that boy than of ruling a state!"
+
+But Mrs. James did not smile in reply; the remark came too near to
+describing her actual state of mind.
+
+"Well, Miriam, with four children of one's own, one may be expected to
+learn a thing or two; it isn't all as easy as it seems. Beside, I am
+fond of the boy; I suppose I may be excused for that ..."
+
+"I can certainly excuse it; I am fond of him myself." Lady Fletcher was
+trying to conceal her irritation. Perhaps the suavity of her tone was a
+little overdone; at any rate, it only served to make Mrs. James' face a
+little rosier and her voice a little harder as she replied:
+
+"I suppose you think, Miriam, that because I have four children of my
+own to fuss over, I might be expected to let the others alone, and I
+daresay you're right; but all that I know is, my heart isn't made that
+way. I have noticed you during these last weeks, and I am sure that you
+have felt as I say. But if you think that because I have four of my own
+to love, and therefore have less to give to those two motherless boys,
+you are mistaken. The more you have to love, the more you love each one
+of them, separately--not the less, as you might know if you had children
+of your own ..."
+
+She stopped, unable to say any more. Her words were much more cruel than
+she intended them to be; that is, they fell much more cruelly than she
+meant them to on Lady Fletcher's ears. She had no idea, of course, of
+the deep though vain yearning for offspring of her own that filled her
+sister-in-law's bosom; Miriam could not possibly have expressed this,
+the deepest and most tragic thing in her life, to Cecilia. She was made
+that way. The more poignantly she felt what she had missed, the more
+determinedly she concealed every trace of her feeling from the outside
+world.
+
+So it was now. Every ounce of feeling in her flared for a moment into
+hate; the hate of the childless woman for the mother. The flame fell
+after a second or two, of course, and she was able to reply, unsmilingly
+and coldly:
+
+"I think that Harry will be as well treated by me as you could wish,
+Cecilia."
+
+Mother love, nothing else, was responsible for all the hardness and
+bitterness in her tone. But Mrs. James knew nothing of this; she only
+felt the hardness and bitterness and judged the speaker accordingly.
+
+That was all. The quarrel, if such it could be called, died down as
+quickly as it had flared up, for it was impossible for these two
+well-bred ladies to fall out and fight like fishwives. Lady Fletcher's
+last remark made further discussion of the subject, or any other
+subject, for the time being, impossible, and after a minute the two rose
+by tacit consent and went out to find the others.
+
+By the time they found them they were both as calm and self-possessed as
+usual. When, after a little more standing around, the gongs were rung
+and the time for farewell actually arrived, Lady Fletcher kissed her
+nephew and niece with neither more nor less than her usual cordiality,
+and Mrs. James was exactly as affectionate in her farewells to Harry as
+might have been expected. The two ladies also embraced each other with
+no sign of ill-feeling. Lady Fletcher's good-humor was unabated in
+quantity, if just a little strained in quality.
+
+"Now comes the most amusing part of sailing," she said, "which is,
+watching other people cry. Don't tell me people don't love to cry better
+than anything else in the world; if not, why do they come down here? You
+might think that every one of them was being torn away from his home and
+country for life!"
+
+"The time when I always want to cry most," contributed Uncle James, "is
+on landing. Everything is so disagreeable then, after the ease and
+comfort of the voyage."
+
+That was the general tone of the parting. Even Aunt Cecilia smiled
+appreciatively and gave no sign of underlying emotion. But as she
+watched the great steamer glide slowly out of her slip her thoughts ran
+in such channels as these:
+
+"Miriam is a brilliant woman; she has made a great lady of herself, and
+is going to be a still greater one. She has money, position, wit, beauty
+and youth. The greatest people come gladly to her house; small people
+scheme and plot to get invitations there. Yet what is it all worth, when
+the greatest blessing of all, the blessing of children, is denied her?
+And the terrible part of it is, she is so utterly unconscious of what
+she has missed; her whole heart is eaten up with those worldly and
+unsatisfactory things. Poor Miriam, I pity her as it is, but how I could
+pity her if it were all a little different!"
+
+And the thoughts of Lady Fletcher, as she stood on the deck and watched
+the shores slip away from her, were somewhat as follows:
+
+"I always thought Cecilia was one of the best of women, until this hour.
+I don't mind her being a great heiress, I don't mind her never being
+able to forget that she was a Van Lorn, I don't mind her subconscious
+attitude of having married beneath her when she married James--whose
+ancestors were governing colonies when hers were keeping a grocery store
+on lower Manhattan Island--! But when it comes to her boasting about
+having children, and flaunting them in my face because I haven't got
+any, I think I am about justified in saying that she shows a mean and
+ignoble nature. I have seen all I want to of Cecilia, for some time to
+come!"
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VI
+
+ARCADIA AND YANKEEDOM
+
+
+We have given a more or less detailed account of the misunderstanding
+just described because of the fact that the mental relation it
+inaugurated was responsible, more than any one other thing, for the
+separation of Harry and James Wimbourne for a period of nearly seven
+years.
+
+No one, not even Lady Fletcher herself, had any idea that this would
+come to pass at the time Harry left the country. One thing led on to
+another; Harry was put in a preparatory school for two or three terms
+soon after his arrival in England; he was so happy there and the climate
+and the school life agreed with him so well that it seemed the most
+natural thing, a year or so later, to send him up to Harrow with some of
+his youthful contemporaries, with whom he had formed some close
+friendships. This was done, be it understood, in accordance with Harry's
+own wish. There was an atmosphere, a quality, a historical feeling about
+the English schools that after a short time exerted a strong influence
+on Harry's adolescent imagination, and made St. Barnabas seem flat and
+unprofitable in comparison. It would not have been so with many boys,
+but it was with Harry.
+
+Of course James was a strong magnet in the other direction, but not
+quite strong enough to pull him against all the forces contending on the
+English side. There was a distinct heart-interest there; within a year
+after Harry's arrival in the country, the majority of his friends were
+English boys. How many vice-Jameses were needed to offset the pull of
+one James we don't know, but we do know that there were enough. James at
+first objected strenuously to the change in plans, but Harry countered
+the objection with the proposal that James should leave St. Barnabas and
+go up to Harrow with his brother. This was considered on the American
+side as such an inexplicable attitude that further argument was
+abandoned and the matter of Harry's schooling given up as a bad job.
+
+The one valid objection to Harrow was that if Harry was to become an
+American citizen, the place to educate him was in America. Sir Giles saw
+this, and gave the objection its full value.
+
+"If I were to consult my own inclination alone," he said to Harry when
+they were talking the matter over, "I should undoubtedly want to make an
+Englishman out of you. I think you would make a pretty good Englishman,
+Harry. You could go to Oxford, and then make your career here.
+Parliament, you know, or the diplomatic. But there seems to be some
+feeling against such a course. They want you to be an American. They
+seem to think that your having been born and bred an American makes some
+difference. Fancy!"
+
+"Fancy!" echoed Harry, as capable as any one of falling in
+with the spirit of what Lady Fletcher called Sir Giles'
+"arising-out-of-that-reply" manner.
+
+"And I won't say they are wholly wrong. The question is, can we make a
+good American of you over here in England? By the time you have gone
+through Harrow, won't you be an Englishman of the most confirmed type?
+Won't you disappoint everybody and slip from there into Oxford, as it
+were, automatically?"
+
+"I am of the opinion," replied Harry judicially, "that the honorable
+member's fears on that score are ungrounded. You see, Uncle G.," he went
+on, dropping his parliamentary manner, "I shall go back to America to go
+to college, anyway. I couldn't possibly go anywhere except to Yale.
+We've gone to Yale, you see, for three generations already."
+
+"I thought, when you came over here, that you couldn't possibly go to
+school anywhere except at St. Barnabas. It seems to me I remember
+something of that kind."
+
+"This is quite different," said Harry firmly, "quite different. I was
+brought up in Yale, practically. I'm sure I could never be happy
+anywhere but there. Besides, I don't want to become an Englishman.
+That's all rot."
+
+"Well," said his uncle, "if that's the case, we'll risk it. And--" he
+unconsciously quoted his wife on a former occasion--"there are always
+the vacations."
+
+But that is just where the honorable member proved himself mistaken. The
+vacations weren't there, after all. And that was where the mutual
+misunderstanding between the two ladies came in.
+
+We don't mean to say that this was wholly responsible for the
+uninterrupted separation. Other things came into it; coincidence, mere
+fortuitous circumstances. Plans were made, on both sides of the
+Atlantic, but they were always interrupted, for some reason or another.
+James and Cecilia would write cheerfully about coming over next summer
+and bringing young James and one or two of their own children with them.
+That would be from about October to January. Then, along in the winter,
+it would appear that their plans for the summer were not settled, after
+all. Ruth was not well enough to travel this year, or James could not
+leave his work and Cecilia could not leave him. Or, on the other hand,
+Aunt Miriam would talk breezily at times of taking Giles over and
+showing him the country--Giles had never been to America except to marry
+his wife--and taking Harry too, of course; or she would casually
+suggest running over with him for a fortnight at Christmas. But Harry's
+summer vacation was so short, only eight weeks, and there were Visits to
+be made in September; the kind of visits that implied enormous shooting
+parties and full particulars in the _Morning Post_. And when Christmas
+drew near either Giles or Miriam would develop a bad bronchial cough and
+have to be packed off to Sicily. It is odd how things like that will
+crop up when two women are fully determined to have nothing to do with
+each other.
+
+And the boys themselves, could they not go over alone and stay with
+their relations, at least as soon as they were old enough to make the
+voyage unaccompanied? James wanted to do something of that kind very
+much at times; wanted to far more than Harry, who thought that he would
+have enough of America later on and was meanwhile anxious to get as much
+out of the continent of Europe as possible. One reason why James never
+did anything of the sort was that he was afraid; actually a little
+afraid to go over, unsupported, and find out what they had made of
+Harry. James' thoughts were apt to run in fixed channels; after he had
+been a year or two at St. Barnabas, the idea that there was another
+school in the country, fit for Harry to attend, or in any other country,
+never entered his head. Harry's decision in favor of Harrow, and
+particularly Harry's lighthearted suggestion that he should come over
+and go to Harrow with him, filled his soul with consternation. He,
+James, leave St. Barnabas for Harrow!...
+
+And to the receptive mind the mere fact that Aunt Cecilia was at this
+time his closest friend and confidante will explain much. She never made
+derogatory remarks to him about his Aunt Miriam, nor did she reveal to
+him, any more than to any one else, the antagonism of feeling that
+existed between them; but in some subtle, unfelt way she imparted her
+own attitude to him, which was, in a word, Keep Away. She herself would
+have said, if any one asked her point blank, that she had Given Harry
+Up. She never approved of his staying over to be educated; she would
+have had him back, away from Miriam and Europe (Aunt Cecilia wasted no
+love on that Continent) inside two months, if she could have had her own
+way. But her opinion was worth nothing; she was not the boy's guardian!
+
+There was a time, two or three years after his arrival in England, when
+Harry was consumed by a desire to see his brother again, if only for a
+few weeks. He told his Uncle Giles about it--he soon fell into the habit
+of confiding in him sooner than in his aunt--and Uncle Giles sympathized
+readily with his wish, and promised to run over to America with him the
+next summer. But when, a few days before the date of their sailing,
+Harry came home from school, his uncle met him in the library with a
+grave face and told him that he had been called upon to stand for his
+party in a by-election early in September, and could not possibly leave
+the country before that. Afterward there would be no time.
+
+"It is quite a compliment to me," explained Sir Giles; "they want me to
+go in for them at West Bolton because it is a doubtful and important
+borough, and they think I can win it over to the Conservatives if any
+one can. Whereas Blackmoor is sure, no matter who runs. It pleases me in
+a way, of course, but I hate it for breaking up our trip."
+
+"Oh, dear, I did want to see James," said Harry, leaning his elbows on
+the mantelpiece, and burying his face in his hands to hide his tears of
+disappointment.
+
+"Poor boy, it is hard on you," said Sir Giles, and impulsively drew
+Harry to him and clasped him against his broad bosom. "Do you remember
+the man in the play, that always voted at his party's call and never
+thought of thinking for himself at all? That's me, and it makes me feel
+foolish at times, I can tell you. But if you want so much to see James,
+why can't he be brought over here?"
+
+"I don't know," said Harry, "I wish he would come, but I'm sure he
+won't. I don't know what's the matter, but I'm certain that if I am to
+see him, it will have to be I that makes the journey. I've felt that for
+some time."
+
+"Well, what about your going over alone? I could see you off at
+Liverpool, and they would meet you at New York."
+
+But that would not do, either. Harry had counted so much on having his
+uncle with him and showing him all the interesting things in America
+that his uncle's defalcation took all the zest out of the trip for him.
+So he remained in England and helped Sir Giles win the by-election,
+which interested him very much.
+
+Lady Fletcher was right when she prophesied that Sir Giles would become
+fond of Harry. He was just such a boy as Sir Giles would have given his
+Parliamentary career, his K. C. B., and his whole fortune to have for
+his own son. The two got on famously together. Sir Giles liked to have
+Harry with him during all his vacations, and visits during summer
+holidays--visits, that is, on which Harry could not be included--were
+almost completely given up, as far as Sir Giles was concerned. They
+spent blissful days with each other on the golf links, or fishing in a
+Scotch stream, or exploring the filthiest and most fascinating corners
+of some Continental town, while Aunt Miriam, gently satirical, though
+secretly delighted, went her own smart and fashionable way, joining them
+at intervals.
+
+No one was prouder or more pleased than Harry when--a year or two after
+he came into the Rumbold property, curiously enough--Sir Giles was given
+a G. C. B. and a baronetcy by his grateful party; or when, in the
+Conservative landslide that followed the Boer War, he rose to real live
+ministerial rank, and had to go through a second election by his borough
+and became a "Right Honorable." The fly in the ointment was that he saw
+less of his uncle than formerly. The Fletchers moved from their smart
+but restricted quarters in Mayfair to an enormous place in Belgrave
+Square, "so as to be near the House," as Aunt Miriam plausibly but
+rather unconvincingly put it, and Sir Giles seemed to be always either
+at the House or the Colonial office--have we said that he became
+Secretary for the Colonies? However, Harry was treated as though he were
+a son of the house, and was given _carte blanche_ in the matter of
+asking school friends to stay with him when he came home. This
+permission also applied to Rumbold Abbey, the estate in Herefordshire
+that formed the chief part of the aforementioned property. There was no
+abbey, but there was a late Stuart house of huge proportions; also parks
+and woods and streams that offered unlimited opportunities for the
+destruction of innocent fauna, of which Harry and a number of his
+contemporary Harrovians soon learned to take advantage.
+
+On the whole, Harry led an extremely joyous and entertaining life during
+the days of his exile. At school he fared no less well than at home; he
+was never a leader among his fellows, but he was good enough at sports
+to win their respect and attractive enough in his personality to make
+many friends. The natural flexibility of his temperament enabled him to
+fit in fairly easily with the hard-and-fast ways of English school life.
+He accepted all its conventions and convictions, and never realized, as
+long as he remained in England, that they were in any way different from
+those of the schools of his own country. He soon got to dress and to
+talk like an Englishman, though he never went to extremes in what he
+loved to irritate his schoolfellows by calling the "English accent."
+While not exactly handsome, he became, as he reached man's estate,
+extremely agreeable to look upon. He had a clear pink complexion and
+dark hair, always a striking and pleasing combination, and he was tall
+and slim and moved with the stiff gracefulness that is the special
+characteristic of the British male aristocracy. In general, people liked
+him, and he liked other people.
+
+His vacations, as has been said, were usually spent with Sir Giles
+either in the British Isles or on the Continent, but there was one
+Easter holiday--the second he spent in England--when he was, to quote a
+phrase of Aunt Miriam's, thrown on the parish. The Fletchers were booked
+to spend the holiday in a Mediterranean cruise on the yacht of a
+nautical duke, who was so nautical and so much of a duke that to be
+asked to cruise with him was not merely an Engagement; it was an
+Experience. In any case, there could be no question of taking Harry, and
+Lady Fletcher was in perplexity about what to do with him till Sir Giles
+suggested, "Why don't we send him to Mildred?" So to Mildred Harry went,
+and spent an important, if not a wildly exciting, month.
+
+Mildred was Sir Giles' only sister, Lady Archibald Carson. She lived in
+a little house in the Surrey hills, and though the land that went with
+it was restricted, it was fertile and its mistress went in as heavily as
+her means would allow for herbaceous borders and rock gardens and
+Japanese effects. Her two children, both girls, lived there with her.
+Her husband, Lord Archibald, was also, in a sense, living with her, but
+the verdant domesticity of the Surrey hills had no charm for him and he
+spent practically all of his time in London and other busy haunts of
+men, or even more busy haunts of women. He was a younger son of a long
+line of marquises who for their combination of breeding and profligacy
+probably had no match in the British peerage. Within five years of his
+marriage he had with the greatest casualness in the world run through
+his own patrimony and all he could lay his hands on of his wife's.
+Having bullied and wheedled all that he could out of her he now
+consistently let her alone and depended for his income on what he could
+bully and wheedle out of his brother, the eleventh marquis, who was
+known as a greater rake than Lord Archibald merely because he had
+greater facilities for rakishness at his command.
+
+Lady Archibald was a tall, light-haired, pale-eyed woman with a tired
+face and a gentle manner. She had no interests in life beyond her
+children and her garden, but she had a kind heart and welcomed Harry
+cordially on his arrival at the little house in Surrey. He had seen her
+once before at the Fletchers' in London, but he had never seen her
+children. It was, therefore, with a rather keen sense of curiosity that
+he walked through the house into the garden, where he was told that
+Beatrice and Jane were to be found. He saw them across the croquet lawn
+immediately, and he underwent a mild shock of disappointment on seeing,
+as he could, at a glance, that they were just as long of limb, just as
+straight of hair and just as angular in build as most English girls of
+their age.
+
+The elder girl rose from her seat and sauntered slowly across the lawn,
+followed by her sister. She stared coolly at Harry as she walked toward
+him, but said nothing, even when she was quite near. He met her gaze
+with perfect self-possession, and suddenly realized that she was waiting
+to see if he would make the first move. He instantly determined not to
+do so, it being her place, after all, to speak first; so he stood still
+and stared calmly back at her for a few seconds, till finally the girl,
+with a sudden fleeting smile, held out her hand and greeted him.
+
+"You're Harry Wimbourne, aren't you?" she said, cordially enough. "This
+is my sister Jane. We are very glad to see you; we've heard such a lot
+about you. Come over here and tell us about America."
+
+In that meeting, in her rather rude little aggression and Harry's
+reception of it, was started a friendship. She deliberately tested Harry
+and found that he came up to the mark. He did not fidget, he did not
+blush, he did not stammer; he simply returned her stare, waiting for her
+to find her manners. Nothing he could have done would have pleased her
+better; she decided she would like him, then and there.
+
+Harry on his side found her conversation, even in the first hour of
+their acquaintance, stimulating and agreeable, and like nothing that he
+had experienced before in any young girl of thirteen, English or
+American.
+
+"You needn't be afraid that we shall ask foolish questions about
+America," Beatrice went on. "We know the Indians don't run wild in the
+streets of New York, and all that sort of thing. We even know what part
+of the country New Haven is in; we looked it up on the map. It's quite
+near New York, isn't it?"
+
+"Yes," said Harry, "you're quite right; it is. But how do you pronounce
+the name of the state it is in? Can you tell me that?"
+
+"Connecticut," replied the girl, readily enough; but she sounded the
+second _c_, after the manner of most English people. Harry explained her
+mistake to her, and she took the correction smiling, quite without pique
+or resentment.
+
+"Now go on and tell us something about the country. Something really
+important, you know; something we don't know already."
+
+"Well," said Harry, "there seems to be more room there; that's about the
+most important difference. Except in the largest cities, and there there
+seems to be less, and that's why they make the buildings so high. And
+nearly all the houses, except in the middle of the towns, are made of
+wood."
+
+He went on at some length, the two girls listening attentively.
+
+At last Beatrice interrupted with the question:
+
+"Which do you think you like best, on the whole, England or America?"
+
+"Oh, America of course; but only because it's my own country. I can
+imagine liking England best, if one happened to be born here. Some
+things are nicer here, and some are nicer there."
+
+"What do you like best in England?"
+
+"Well, the old things. Cathedrals and castles. Also afternoon tea, which
+we don't bother about much over there. And the gardens."
+
+"And what do you like best about America?"
+
+"Trolley cars, and soda water fountains, and such things. And the
+climate. And the way people act. There's so much less--less formality
+over there; less bothering about little things, you know."
+
+"Yes, yes, I know exactly. Silly little things, that don't matter one
+way or the other. I know I should like that about America."
+
+"I think you would like America, anyway," said Harry, looking judicially
+at his interlocutrix. "You seem to be a free and easy sort of person."
+
+"Well, I wouldn't like trolley cars," interrupted Jane with firmness,
+"They go too fast. I don't like to go fast. It musses my hair, and the
+dust gets into my eyes."
+
+"Shut up, silly," said her sister; "you've never ridden in one."
+
+"No, but I know what it is to go fast, and I don't like it. I don't
+think I should care much for America."
+
+"Well," said Harry, laughing, "we won't make you go there. Or if you do
+go there, we won't make you ride on the trolley cars. You can ride in
+hacks all the time; they go slow enough for any one."
+
+Beatrice's first impression of Harry underwent no disillusionment as the
+days went on. She seemed to find in him a companion after her own heart.
+He had plenty of ideas of his own, and he was entirely willing to act on
+hers; he never affected to despise them as a girl's notions, nor did he
+ever object to her sharing in his amusements because of her misfortune
+of sex. They climbed trees and crawled through the underbrush on their
+stomachs together with as much zest and _abandon_ as if there were no
+such things as frocks and stockings in the world. Harry had never known
+this kind of companionship with a girl before, and was delighted with
+her.
+
+"Oh, dash, there goes my garter," she exclaimed one day as they were
+walking through a country lane together. She had got rather to make a
+point of such matters, to over-emphasize their possible embarrassment,
+simply in order to see how beautifully he acted.
+
+"Well, tie it up or something," said he, sauntering on a few steps.
+
+Beatrice did what was necessary and ran on and caught up with him.
+
+"I never could see why a garter shouldn't be as freely talked about as
+any other article of clothing," said she. "All that sort of modesty is
+such rot; people have legs, and legs have to have stockings to cover
+them, and stockings have to have garters to keep them up. And women have
+legs, just as much as men; there's not a doubt of that. Perhaps that's
+news to you, though?"
+
+"No, I knew that."
+
+"You really, honestly aren't shocked at what I'm saying?" asked the
+girl, scanning his face intently.
+
+"Not in the least; why should I be? You're not telling me anything
+shocking."
+
+Beatrice drew a long breath of pure enjoyment.
+
+"It _is_ a comfort to meet a person like you once in a while," she said.
+"Tell me, are women such fools about their legs in America as they are
+here?"
+
+"Yes, quite," said Harry fervently; "if not actually worse. That's one
+thing that we don't seem to have learned any better about. It always
+makes me tired."
+
+The two saw each other, infrequently but fairly regularly, throughout
+Harry's stay in England. They never corresponded, both admitting that
+they were bad letter writers, but when they met they were always able to
+pick up their friendship exactly where they had left it.
+
+When Sir Giles came into the Rumbold property there was naturally a
+corresponding change in the circumstances of Lady Archibald and her
+daughters. Every penny of the property, which came to Sir Giles through
+the death of a maternal uncle, was entailed and inalienable from his
+possession; but he was able to alleviate her condition by giving her a
+large yearly allowance out of his income; and it was pointed out that
+such an arrangement would have the advantage of keeping the money safe
+from her husband. Lady Archibald took a small house in South Street and
+spent the winter and spring months there, and in the due course of time
+Beatrice was brought out into society.
+
+Her undoubted beauty, which was of the dark and haughty type, and her
+excellent dancing were enough to make her a social success. This was a
+tremendous comfort to her mother, who was never obliged to worry about
+her at dances or scheme for invitations at desirable houses, and could
+confine her maternal anxiety to merely hoping that Beatrice would make a
+better match than she herself had. But Beatrice hated the whole
+proceeding, heartily and unaffectedly.
+
+"The dancing men all bore me," she once said to Harry; "and I bore all
+the others. Almost all men are dull; at any rate, they appear at their
+dullest and worst in society, and the few interesting ones don't want to
+be bored by a chit like me, and I can't say that I blame them. As for
+the women--when they get into London society they cease to be women at
+all; they become fiends incarnate."
+
+"I hope that success is not embittering your youthful heart," said
+Harry, smiling.
+
+"Not success, but just being in what they are pleased to call society;
+that will make me bitter if I have much more of it. I don't know why it
+is; people are nice naturally--most of them, that is. Of course some
+people are born brutes, like--well, like my father; but most of them are
+nice at bottom. But somehow London makes beasts of them all. If I am
+ever Prime Minister--"
+
+"Which, after all, is improbable."
+
+"Well, if I am, the first thing I shall do will be simply to abolish
+London. We shall have just the same population, but it will be all
+rural. We shall all live in Arcadian simplicity, and while we may not be
+perfect, at least we shan't all be the scheming, selfish, merciless
+brutes that London makes of us."
+
+"And pending the passage of that bill you want to live in Arcadian
+simplicity alone. I see. I quite like the idea myself. I should love to
+found Arcadia with you somewhere in rural England, when I have time.
+Where shall we have it? I should say Devonshire, shouldn't you? Clotted
+cream, you know, and country lanes. It will be like Marie Antoinette's
+hamlet at Versailles, only not nearly so silly. We will pay other people
+to milk the cows and make the butter, and do all the dirty work, and
+just sit around ourselves and be perfectly charming. No one will be
+admitted without passing a rigid examination in character, and that will
+be the only necessary qualification. Arcadia, Limited, we'll call it; it
+sounds like a Gilbert and Sullivan opera, doesn't it?"
+
+"Whom shall we have in it? Uncle Giles--he could pass all right,
+couldn't he?"
+
+"Oh, Heavens, yes, _Magna cum_. And Aunt Miriam--perhaps. She would need
+some cramming before she went up. What about your mother?"
+
+"I'm afraid Mama could never get in," answered Beatrice, smiling rather
+sadly. "I've talked to her before about such things and she never
+answers, but just looks at me with that sad tolerant smile of hers that
+seems to say 'Arcadian simplicity is all very well, but you'll find the
+best way to get it is through a husband with ten thousand a year or so.'
+And the dreadful part of it is that she's right, to a certain extent."
+
+Although in matter of years Beatrice was a few weeks Harry's junior, she
+was at this time twice as old as he, for all practical purposes. She was
+an honored guest at Lady Fletcher's big dinners--almost the only ones
+that did not bore her to death--into which Harry would be smuggled at
+the last minute to fill up a vacant place, or else calmly omitted from
+altogether. Nevertheless, he was her greatest comfort all through her
+first season; nothing but his jovial optimism, which saw the worst but
+found it no more than amusing, kept the iron from entering into her
+soul. Such an occasional conversation as the above-quoted would put
+sanity into her world and fortify her for days against the commonplaces
+of dancing men and the jealous looks of less attractive maidens. And how
+she would pine for him during the intervals! How she would long for the
+arrival of the next vacation or mid-term exeat that would bring him up
+to town! There was a freshness, a wholesomeness about his way of looking
+at things that was soothing to her as a breath of country air.
+
+It is not surprising, then, that Beatrice began to dread the nearing
+date of Harry's departure for America and college more than any one
+else, even Sir Giles himself, to whom Harry had become by this time
+almost as dear as a son. Poor Uncle Giles, though he wanted Harry to
+stay in the country more than any other earthly thing, made it a point
+of honor never to dissuade the boy from his original project of
+returning to his own country when he was ready to go to college and
+becoming an American again. Beatrice, however, was bound by no such
+restriction and complained bitterly of his desertion.
+
+"What is the point of your going back to some silly American college?"
+she would ask. "It isn't as if you didn't have the best universities in
+the world right here, under your very nose. Why aren't Oxford and
+Cambridge good enough for you, I should like to know? They were good
+enough for Milton and Thackeray and Isaac Newton and a few other more or
+less prominent people."
+
+"Very true," replied Harry with perfect good-humor. "The only thing is,
+those people didn't happen to be Yankees. I am, you know. It's been a
+habit in our family for two hundred years or more, and it doesn't do to
+break up old family traditions. Must be a Yankee, whatever happens."
+
+"But that doesn't mean that you have to go to a Yankee college,
+necessarily," argued Beatrice. "You won't learn nearly as much there as
+you would at Oxford. You are as far along in your studies now as the
+second year men at Yale; I heard Uncle Giles say so himself."
+
+"Yes, I know, that's very true. I can't argue about it; you've got all
+the arguments on your side. I just know that there's only one possible
+place on earth where I can go to college, and that is Yale. Better not
+talk about it any more, if it makes you peevish."
+
+"Well, we won't. I'll tell you one thing, though; we have got to start a
+correspondence. You can spare a few ideas from your Yankees, I hope. I
+shall simply die on the wooden pavements if I can't at least hear from
+you occasionally."
+
+"Certainly; I should like nothing better. I'll even go so far as to be
+the first to write, if you like, and that's a perfectly tremendous
+concession, as I'm the worst letter writer that ever lived."
+
+So there the matter was left. Harry left Harrow for good at Easter, and
+spent one last golden month in London, seeing Beatrice almost every day
+and being an unalloyed joy and comfort to his uncle and aunt. In May he
+took a short trip through Spain with Sir Giles; it was a country
+neither of them had visited before, and they had planned a trip there
+for years. Uncle Giles worked double time for a fortnight in order to be
+able to leave with a clear conscience, but he found the reward well
+worth the labor.
+
+They parted at Madrid, the plan being for Harry to sail for New York
+from Gibraltar, arriving in time to take his final examinations in New
+Haven in June.
+
+There were tears in Sir Giles' kind blue eyes as he bade Harry good-by,
+and Harry saw them and knew why they were there. Suddenly he felt his
+own fill.
+
+"I don't want to go very much, Uncle Giles," he said in a low voice.
+"Now that it comes to the point, I don't like it much. You've all been
+so wonderful to me.... It's not a question of what I want to do, though.
+It's just what's got to be done."
+
+"Yes," said his uncle; "I know. You're quite right about it. It's the
+only thing to do. But perhaps you won't mind my saying I'm glad, in a
+way, that you find it hard?"
+
+"Thank you; that helps, too. There's more that comes into it, though;
+more than what we have talked over together so often.... I mean--"
+
+"James?"
+
+"Yes," said Harry, "that's it."
+
+They clasped hands again and went their separate ways; Sir Giles to the
+train that was to take him north to Paris and home, and Harry to the
+train that was to take him south to Gibraltar and home.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VII
+
+OMNE IGNOTUM
+
+
+"Bless us, how the boy has grown!" cried Aunt Cecilia, and kissed him
+all over again.
+
+"You'll find your aunt very much changed, I expect," said Uncle James,
+clasping his hand and smiling, quite in his old style.
+
+"Not a particle, thank Heaven," said Harry, understanding perfectly;
+"nor you either. Nor the U. S. Customs service, either. Can't I just
+make them a present of all my luggage and run along? Except that I have
+some Toledo work and stuff for you and Aunt C."
+
+"Hush, don't say that out loud; they'll charge you extra duty for it,"
+replied Uncle James.
+
+"Oh, was there e'er a Yankee breast which did not feel the moral beauty
+of making worldly interest subordinate to sense of duty?" misquoted
+Harry. "Bother the duty. Tell me how you all are. How are Ruth and
+Oswald and Lucy and Jack and Timothy and the baby? All about eight feet
+high, I suppose? And James, where is he?"
+
+"James is in New Haven," said Aunt Cecilia; "he has an examination early
+to-morrow morning and could not get away till after that. He'll be here
+to-morrow in time for lunch."
+
+It was all very easy and cordial. Harry was in high spirits over
+returning to his native land, and was genuinely pleased that both his
+uncle and aunt should take the trouble to come down to the dock to meet
+his steamer. They, on their side, were most agreeably impressed by him;
+agreeably disappointed with him, we almost said. It was a relief, as
+well as a pleasure, to find him, so unchanged and unaffected at heart,
+though he looked and talked like an Englishman. Mrs. James sat on a
+packing case and watched him with unadulterated pleasure as he tended to
+the examination of his luggage. The art of his Bond Street tailor served
+to accentuate rather than hide the slim, sinewy, businesslike beauty of
+his limbs, brought into play as he bent down to lift a trunk tray or tug
+at a strap. Though all that was nothing, of course, to the joy of the
+discovery that he was unspoiled in character.
+
+"It's turned out all right," she thought and smiled to herself. "I don't
+know whether it's chiefly to his credit or theirs, but it has come out
+all right, anyway. I wish the boat had not arrived in the evening, so
+that I could have brought the children to see him, the first thing.
+They'll have plenty of time, though; and how they'll love him! And how
+pleased James will be!"
+
+She meant young James, who was now putting the finishing touches on his
+sophomore year at Yale. James was never very far from her mind when her
+thoughts ran to her own children--which was most of the time. She always
+thought of him now more as her own eldest child than as her husband's
+nephew.
+
+And Harry's thoughts, beneath all his chatter to his uncle and aunt and
+his transactions with the Customs officials, were also on James. All the
+way across the Atlantic, on the long dull voyage from Gibraltar--there
+are not many passengers traveling westward in June--they continually ran
+on that one subject--James, James, James. What would he be like now?
+would he be the old James, or changed, somehow--strangely,
+disappointingly, unacceptably? Harry hoped not; hoped it with his whole
+heart, in which there was nothing but humility and affection when he
+thought of what his brother had been to him in the old days. He was so
+little able to speak what he felt about James that he was embarrassed
+and over-silent about him. That was why he was so debonair with the
+Customs officials; that was why he asked after each of his young cousins
+by name before he mentioned his brother.
+
+"Every single article of clothing I own was bought abroad," he was
+telling the Customs inspector; "so you can just go ahead and do your
+worst--That suit cost eight guineas--yes, I know it's too much; I told
+them so at the time, but they wouldn't listen.... No, that thing with
+the feathers is not a woman's hat; it's a Tyrolean hat, that the men
+climb mountains in. I'm going to give it to my Uncle James--that man
+there sitting on the woman's trunk that she wants to get into--to wear
+to his office, which is on the thirty-fifth floor.... Yes, I have worn
+it myself, but don't tell him.... That gold cigarette case is for my
+brother, who smokes when he's not playing football, and it cost six
+pound fifteen, which is dirt cheap, I say. I'd keep it myself, except
+that it's so cheap that I can't afford not to give it away...."
+
+And James, what was he feeling, if he was feeling anything, in regard to
+his brother at this time, and why have we said nothing about him during
+these seven years? The truth is, his life had been chiefly distinguished
+by the blessed uneventfulness that comes of outward happiness and a good
+understanding with the world. If you can draw a mental picture for
+yourself of a boy of perfect physique and untarnished mind, gradually
+attaining the physical and mental development of manhood in comradeship
+with a hundred or more others in a like position, dedicating the use of
+each gift as it came to him not to his own aggrandizement but to the
+glory of God and the service of other men, recognizing his superiority
+in certain fields with the same humility with which he beheld his
+inferiority in others, equally willing to give help where he was strong
+and take help where he was weak, and possessed by the fundamental
+conviction that other people were just as good as he if not a little bit
+better, you may get some idea of James during the years of his brother's
+absence. He was not brilliant, he was not handsome, but there was a
+splendid normality about him, both in appearance and in character, that
+inspired confidence and affection among his teachers, his relatives, and
+friends of his own age.
+
+"He has a good mind and body, and there is no nonsense about him," was
+the substance of the opinion of the first-named group. "He is a good boy
+and a nice boy, and I'm glad he is one of the family," said the second.
+"He is captain of the football team," said the third group, and to one
+who knows anything about American boarding schools this last will tell
+everything.
+
+If any one is inclined to blame James for his allowing the Atlantic
+Ocean to separate him and brother so completely for those seven years it
+may interest him to know that James was quite of the same opinion. As he
+sat in the train that took him from New Haven to New York on the morning
+after Harry's landing, he wondered how the long separation could have
+come about. On the whole, after a careful review of the business, he was
+inclined to blame himself; not over-severely, but definitely,
+nevertheless. He had been timid, indifferent and, above all, lazy.
+Looking back over his attitude of the last seven years, he was inclined
+to be scornful and a little amused. What had he to fear about Harry?
+Weren't Uncle Giles and Aunt Miriam good people, who could be trusted to
+bring him up right? What was there to fear, even, in his becoming an
+Englishman? And anyway, even if he had feared the worst, ought he not to
+have taken the trouble to go over and see with his own eyes? It had
+probably turned out all right, for Harry had returned at last with every
+intention of living in America for the rest of his life; but if he had
+been spoiled or altered for the worse in any way, he, James, must take
+his share of the blame for it. There could be no doubt of that.
+
+The root of the matter was, we suspect, that James had been somewhat
+lacking in initiative. Thoroughly normal people customarily are; it is
+at once their strength and their weakness. A splendid normality, such as
+we have described James as enjoying, is a serviceable thing in life, but
+it is apt to degenerate, if not sufficiently stimulated by misfortune
+and opposition, into commonplaceness and sterile conservatism. But let
+us do James justice; he at least saw his fault and blamed himself for
+it.
+
+He was devoured with curiosity to see what Harry was like; almost as
+much so as Harry in regard to him. James had plenty of friends, but only
+one brother, when all was said and done. As the train rushed nearer the
+consummation of his curiosity, he felt the old feeling of timidity and
+suspicion sweep over him; but that, as he shook it off, only increased
+his curiosity; gave it edge. _Omne ignotum pro magnifico est_; every one
+knows that, even if he never heard of Virgil, and it is especially true
+of such natures as James'. Each little wave of fear and suspicion that
+swept over him made him a little more restless and unhappy, though he
+smiled at himself for feeling so. It was a relief when the train pulled
+into the Grand Central Station and he could grip his bag and start on
+the short walk to the house of his uncle, which was situated in the
+refined and expensive confines of Murray Hill.
+
+Any one who knows anything about the world will be able to guess pretty
+closely the nature of the brothers' meeting. Harry was sitting in the
+front room upstairs when his cousin Ruth, who was at the window,
+announced: "Here he comes, Harry." In a perfect frenzy of pleasure,
+embarrassment, affection and curiosity, the boy made a dash for the
+stairs and greeted his brother at the front door with the demonstrative
+words:
+
+"Hello, James!"
+
+To which James, who for the last few minutes had been obliged to
+restrain himself from throwing his bag into the gutter and breaking into
+a run, replied:
+
+"Well, Harry, how's the boy?"
+
+Then they walked upstairs together and began talking rather fast about
+the voyage, examinations, Aunt Miriam, Spain, the Yale baseball
+team,--anything but what was in their hearts.
+
+"Well, you came back without being made an earl, after all, it seems,"
+said James a little later at lunch.
+
+"No, but I came back a sub-freshman, which is the next best thing.
+There's no telling what I might have been if I'd stayed, though.
+Everybody was so frightfully keen on my staying over there and going to
+Oxford, especially Beatrice--Beatrice Carson, you know; I've written you
+about her? She would have made me an earl in a minute, if she could, to
+make me stay. None of it did any good, though. I would be a Yankee."
+
+"How do you think you'll like being a Yankee again?" asked James. "You
+certainly don't look much like one at present."
+
+"No? That'll come, I dare say. My heart's in the right place. Though
+that doesn't prevent the Americans from seeming strange, at first. Did
+you notice that woman in the chemist's shop this morning, Aunt C.? She
+was chewing gum all the time she waited on you, and she never said
+'Thank you' or 'Ma'am' once."
+
+"They all are that way," said Aunt Cecilia with a gentle sigh. "I don't
+expect anything else."
+
+"Oh, the bloated aristocrat!" said James. "It is an earl, after all.
+Only don't blame the poor girl for not calling you 'My lord.' She
+couldn't be expected to know; they don't have many of them over here."
+
+"I don't mean that she was rude," said Harry; "she didn't give that
+impression, somehow. It was just the way she did things; a sort of
+casualness. The Americans are a funny people!"
+
+"Oh, Lord!" groaned James; "hear the prominent foreigner talk. What do
+you think of America, my lord? How do you like New York? What do you
+think of our climate? To think that that's the thing I used to spank
+when he was naughty!"
+
+"That's all very well," retorted Harry, with warmth; "wait till you get
+out of this blessed country for a while yourself, and see how other
+people act, and then perhaps you'll see that there are differences. You
+may even be able to see that they are not all in our favor. And as for
+smacking--spanking, if you feel inclined to renew that quaint old custom
+now, I'm ready for you. Any time you want!"
+
+"Oh, very well," growled James; "after lunch."
+
+"Yes, and in Central Park, please," observed Uncle James; "not in the
+house; I can't afford it. You are right, though, Harry, about the
+Americans being a funny people. If you enter the legal profession, or if
+you go into public life, you'll be more and more struck by the fact as
+time goes on. But there's one thing to remember; it doesn't do to tell
+them so. They can't bear to hear it. We have proof of that immediately
+before us; you announce your opinion here, _coram familia_, as it were,
+and what is the result? Contempt and loathing on the part of the great
+American public, represented by James, and a duel to follow--in Central
+Park, remember; in Central Park."
+
+"I wonder if that milk of magnesia has come yet," murmured Aunt Cecilia,
+who had not gone beyond the beginning of the conversation; and further
+hostilities--friendly ones, even--were forgotten in the general laugh
+that followed.
+
+Of course James, who conformed to the American type of college boy as
+closely as any one could and retain his individuality, was greatly
+struck during the first few days by his brother's Anglicisms, which
+showed themselves at that time rather in his appearance and speech than
+in his point of view. For example, James was indulging one day in a
+lengthy plaint against the hardness of one of his instructors, as the
+result of which he would probably, to use his own expression, "drop an
+hour"; that is, lose an hour's work for the year and be put back
+one-sixtieth of his work for his degree. Harry listened attentively
+enough to the narrative, but his sole comment when James finished was
+the single word "Tiresome." The word was ill chosen for James' peace of
+mind. If such expressions were the result of English training he could
+not but think the less of English training.
+
+The summer passed off pleasantly enough, the boys living with their
+uncle and aunt at Bar Harbor. Harry saw much less of James than he had
+expected, for he was away much of the time, visiting classmates and
+school friends whom Harry did not know. He was obliged, too, to return
+to Yale soon after the first of September for football practise. Harry
+spent most of his time playing fairly happily about with his young
+cousins and other people of his own age. The most interesting feature of
+the summer to him was a visit to Aunt Selina at her summer place in
+Vermont. This was the ancestral, ante-Revolution farm of the Wimbournes,
+much rebuilt and enlarged and presented to Miss Wimbourne for her life
+on the death of her late father. Here Aunt Selina was wont to gather
+during the summer months a heterogeneous crowd of friends, and it was a
+source of wonder and admiration to the other members of the family that
+she was able to attract such a large number of what she referred to as
+"amusing people." With these Harry was quite at ease, his English
+training having accustomed him to associating with older and cleverer
+people than himself, and it gave Aunt Selina quite a thrill of pleasure
+to see a boy of eighteen partaking in the staid amusements of his elders
+and meeting them on their own ground, and to think that the boy was her
+own nephew. She became at length so much taken with him that a bright
+idea occurred to her.
+
+"Harry," said she one day; "what do you think of my going to live in New
+Haven?"
+
+"I think it's a fine idea," said Harry. "But where?"
+
+"Why, in the old house, of course. That is, if you and James, or your
+guardians, are willing to rent it to me. It has stood empty ever since
+you left it, and I presume there is no immediate prospect of your
+occupying it yourselves for some time."
+
+"As half owner of the establishment," said Harry courteously, "I offer
+you the full use of it for as long a time as you wish, free of charge."
+
+"That's sweet of you, but it's not business. I should insist on paying
+rent."
+
+"Well, Aunt Selina, you're used to having your own way, so I presume
+you will. But what makes you want to come and live in New Haven, all of
+a sudden? I thought you could never bear the place."
+
+"I had a great many friends there in the old days, and should like to
+see something of them again. Besides, it will be nice to be in the same
+town with you and James."
+
+Like most people, she put the real reason last. If Harry failed to
+realize from its position that it was the real reason, he learned it
+unmistakably enough from what followed. The conversation wandered to a
+discussion of changes in the town since Aunt Selina had lived there. She
+supposed that everybody had dinner at night there now, though she
+remembered the time when it was impossible to reconcile servants to the
+custom. She herself would have it late, except on Sundays. Sunday never
+did seem like Sunday to her without dinner in the middle of the day and
+supper in the evening.
+
+"Well," said Harry, "I hope you'll ask James and me to a Sunday dinner
+occasionally."
+
+"Good gracious, yes! Every Sunday, and supper too. That will be a
+regular custom; and I want you both to feel at liberty to come up for a
+meal at any time. Any time, without even telephoning beforehand. And
+bring your friends; there will always be enough to eat. How stupid of me
+to forget that. Of course I want you, as often as you'll come."
+
+"We accept," said Harry, "unconditionally. We shall be glad enough to
+have a decent meal once in a while, after the food we shall get in
+college. James says he even gets tired of the training table, which is a
+great admission, for he loves everything connected with football. Even
+when we were kids, I remember, he used to love to drink barley water
+with his meals; nasty stuff--they used to make me drink it in England."
+
+Harry rattled on purposely about the first thing that came into his
+head, for he noticed his aunt seemed slightly embarrassed. She was going
+to New Haven to take care of James and himself, and naturally she did
+not care to divulge the real reason to him. Well, she was a dear old
+thing, certainly; he remembered how she had acted on his mother's death.
+He was suddenly sorry that he had seen nothing of her for the last seven
+years, and sorry that he had written her so irregularly during his
+absence. It was pleasant to think that he would have a chance to make up
+for it in the future.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VIII
+
+LIVY AND VICTOR HUGO
+
+
+On a certain Wednesday evening late in September Harry stood on a
+certain street-corner in the city of New Haven. Surging about him were a
+thousand or so youths of his own age or a little older, most of them
+engaged in making noises expressive of the pleasures of reunion. It was
+a merry and turbulent scene. Tall, important-looking seniors, wearing
+white sweaters with large blue Y's on their chests, moved through the
+crowd with a worried air, apparently trying to organize something that
+had no idea whatever of being organized. They were ineffectual, but oh,
+so splendid! Harry, who had almost no friends of his own there to talk
+to, watched them with undisguised admiration. He reflected that James
+would be one of their number a year hence, and wondered if by any chance
+he himself would be one three years from now.
+
+Just as he dismissed the probability as negligible, a sort of order
+became felt among those who stood immediately about him. Men stopped
+talking and appeared to be listening to something which Harry could not
+hear. Then they all began shouting a strange, unmeaning succession of
+syllables in concert; Harry recognized this as a cheer and lustily
+joined in with it. At the end came a number; repeated three times; a
+number which no one present had ever before heard bellowed forth from
+three or four hundred brazen young throats; a number that had a strange
+and unfamiliar sound, even to those who shouted it, and caused the
+upperclassmen to break into a derisive jeer.
+
+A new class had officially started its career, and Harry was part of it.
+No one flushed more hotly than he at the jeer of the upperclassmen; no
+one jeered back with greater spirit when the sophomores cheered for
+their own class. No one took part more joyfully in the long and varied
+program of events that filled out the rest of the evening. The parade
+through the streets of the town was to him a joyous bacchanal, and the
+wrestling matches on the Campus a splendid orgy. After these were over
+even more enjoyable things happened, for James, with two or three
+fellow-juniors--magnificent, Olympian beings!--took him in tow and
+escorted him safe and unmolested through the turbulent region of York
+Street, where freshmen, who had nothing save honor to fight for, were
+pressed into organized hostility against sophomores, who didn't even
+have that.
+
+"Well, what did you think of it all?" asked James later.
+
+"Oh, ripping," said Harry, "I never thought it would be anything like
+this. We never really saw anything of the real life of the college when
+we lived in town here, did we?"
+
+"Not much. It all seems pretty strange to you now, I suppose, but you'll
+soon get onto the ropes and feel at home. What sort of a schedule did
+you get?"
+
+"Oh, fairly rotten. They all seem to be eight-thirties. Here, you can
+see," producing a paper.
+
+"That's not so bad," pronounced James, approvingly. "Nothing on
+Wednesday or Saturday afternoons, so that you can get to ball games and
+things, and nothing any afternoon till five, so that you'll have plenty
+of time for track work."
+
+"Oh, yes, track work; I'd forgotten that."
+
+"Well, you don't want to forget it; you want to go right out and hire a
+locker and get to work, to-morrow, if possible. If track's the best
+thing for you to go out for, that is, and I guess it is, all right.
+You're too light for football, and you don't know anything about
+baseball, and you haven't got a crew build."
+
+"What is a crew build?" asked Harry.
+
+"Well, if you put it that way, I don't know that I can tell you. It's a
+mysterious thing; I've been trying to find out myself for several years.
+I don't see why I haven't got a fairly good crew build myself, but they
+always tell me I haven't, when I suggest going out for it. However, you
+haven't got one, that's easy. So you'll just have to stick to track."
+
+"Yes," said Harry soberly, "I suppose I shall."
+
+Harry was what is commonly known as a good mixer, and made acquaintances
+among his classmates rapidly enough to suit even the nice taste of
+James. In general, however, they remained acquaintances and never became
+friends. It was not that they were not nice, most of them; "ripping
+fellows, all of them," Harry described them to his brother. They were,
+in fact, too nice; those who lived near him were all of the best
+preparatory school type, the kind that invariably leads the class during
+freshman year. Harry found them conventional, quite as much so as the
+English type, though in a different way. Intercourse with them failed to
+give him stimulus; he found himself always more or less talking down to
+them, and intellectual stimulus was what Harry needed above all things
+among his friends.
+
+There were exceptions, however. The most brilliant was that of Jack
+Trotwood, probably the last man with whom Harry might have been expected
+to strike up a friendship. Harry first saw him in a Latin class, one of
+the first of the term. Trotwood sat in the same row as Harry, two or
+three seats away from him--the acquaintance was not even of the type
+that alphabetical propinquity is responsible for. On the day in question
+he dropped a fountain pen, and spent some moments in burrowing
+ineffectually under seats in search of it. The fugitive chattel at
+length turned up directly under Harry's chair, and as he leaned over to
+restore it to its owner he noticed something about his face that
+appealed to him at once. He never could tell what it was; the flush that
+bending over had brought to it, the embarrassment, the dismay at having
+made a fuss in public, the smile, containing just the right mixture of
+cordiality and formality, yet undeniably sweet withal, with which he
+thanked him; perhaps it was any or all of these things. At any rate
+after class, on his way back toward York Street, Harry found himself
+hurrying to catch up with Trotwood, who was walking a few paces ahead of
+him. Trotwood turned as he came up, and smiled again.
+
+"That was sort of a stinking lesson, wasn't it?" he asked.
+
+"Yes," said Harry, "wasn't it, though?"
+
+"I should say! Boned for two hours on it last night before I could make
+anything out of it. Gee, but this Livy's dull, isn't he?"
+
+"Yes, awfully dull. Do you use a trot?"
+
+"No, I haven't yet, but I'm going to, after last night. I can't put so
+much time on one lesson. Do you?"
+
+"Well, yes. That is, I shall. Do you like Latin?"
+
+"Lord, no, not when it's like this stuff. I only took it because it
+comes easier to me than most other things. Do you like it?"
+
+"Not much. Not much good at it, either.... Well, I live here--"
+
+"Oh, do you? so do I. Where are you?"
+
+"Fourth floor, back. Come up, some time."
+
+"Thanks, I will. So long."
+
+"So long."
+
+So started a friendship, one of the sincerest and firmest that either
+ever enjoyed. And yet, as Harry pointed out afterward, it was founded on
+insincerity and falsehood. Harry's whole part in this first conversation
+was no more than a tissue of lies. He was extremely fond of Latin, and
+was so good at it that his entire preparation for his recitations
+consisted in looking up a few unfamiliar words beforehand; he could
+always fit the sentences together when he was called upon to construe.
+It had never occurred to him to use a translation. He was rather fond of
+Livy, whose flowing and complicated style appealed to him. He gave a
+false answer to every question merely for the pleasure of agreeing with
+Trotwood, whom he liked already without knowing why.
+
+The two got into the habit of doing their Latin lesson together
+regularly, three times a week. Trotwood did not buy a trot, after all;
+he found Harry quite as good.
+
+"My, but you're a shark," he said in undisguised admiration one evening,
+as Harry brought order and clarity into a difficult passage. "You
+certainly didn't learn to do that in this country. You're English,
+anyway, aren't you?"
+
+"Lord, no; Yankee. Born in New Haven. I have lived over there for some
+years, though."
+
+"Go to school there?"
+
+"Yes; Harrow."
+
+"Gosh." Trotwood stared at him for a few moments in dazed silence. He
+stood on the brink of a world that he knew no more of than Balboa did of
+the Pacific. "What sort of a place is it?"
+
+"Oh, wonderful."
+
+"You played cricket, I suppose, and--and those things?"
+
+"Rugby football, yes," said Harry, smiling.
+
+"And you liked it, didn't you?"
+
+"Oh, rather! Only--"
+
+"Only what?"
+
+"Oh, nothing. I did like it. It's a wonderful place."
+
+"Only it's different from what you're doing now?" said Trotwood, with a
+burst of insight. "Is that what you mean?"
+
+"Yes."
+
+"I see; I see," said Trotwood, and then he kept still. There was
+something so comforting, so sympathetic and understanding about his
+silence that Harry was inspired to confide in him.
+
+"The truth is, I'm beginning to doubt whether I ought to have gone to an
+English school. I'm not sure but what it would have been better for me
+to go to school and college in the same country, whatever it was. You
+see, after spending five or six years in learning to value certain
+things, it's rather a wrench to come here and find the values all
+distorted."
+
+"I see," said Trotwood again. He wasn't sure that he did see at all, but
+he felt that unquestioning sympathy was his cue.
+
+"It's not merely the different kinds of games," went on Harry; "it's not
+that they make so much more of athletics, or rather of the public side
+of athletics, than they do over there, though that comes into it a lot.
+It's what people do and think about and talk about and--and are, in
+short. Last year, I remember, the men I went with, the sixth formers,
+used to read the papers a lot and follow the debates in Parliament and
+talk about such things a lot, even among themselves. Some of them used
+to write Greek and Latin verse just for fun--wonderfully good, too, some
+of it. And here--well, how many men in our class, how many men in the
+whole college do you suppose could write ten lines of Greek or Latin
+verse without making a mess of it?"
+
+"Not too many, I'm afraid."
+
+"Then there's debating. We used to have pretty good house debates
+ourselves at school. I used to look forward to them, I remember, from
+month to month, as one of the most interesting things that happened. But
+of course they were nothing to a thing like the Oxford Union. You've
+heard of that, I suppose? Lord, I wish some of these people here could
+see one of those meetings! It would be an eye-opener."
+
+"But we have debating here," said Trotwood, doubtfully.
+
+"Yes, but what kind of debating? A few grinds getting up and talking
+about the Interstate Commerce Commission, or some rotten, technical, dry
+subject, because they think it will give them good practise in public
+speaking. Everybody hates it like poison, and they're right, too, for
+it's all dull, dead; started on the wrong idea. The best men in the
+class won't go out for it. I wouldn't myself, now that I know what it's
+like; but I thought of doing it in the summer, and spoke to my brother
+about it. He didn't say anything against it, because he didn't dare;
+people are always writing to the _News_ and saying what a fine thing
+debating is. But he let me see pretty clearly that he didn't think much
+of debating and didn't want me to go out for it, because it didn't get
+you anywhere in college; _simply wasn't done_. He'd rather see me take a
+third place in one track meet and never do another thing in college than
+to be the captain of the debating team."
+
+"Did he tell you that?"
+
+"Lord, no; he wouldn't dare. No one would; technically, debating is
+supposed to be a fine thing. But it doesn't get you anywhere near a
+senior society, so there's an end to it.... But perhaps I'd better not
+get started on that."
+
+"No, I should think not! Heavens, a junior fraternity is about the
+height of my ambition!"
+
+Harry smiled at his friend and went on: "You see it's this way, Trotty;
+you are a sensible person, and look at them in the right way. You play
+about with your mandolin clubs and various other little things because
+you like them, like a good dutiful boy. When the time comes, you'll be
+very glad to take a senior society, if it's offered you. If it isn't,
+you won't care."
+
+"But I will, though. I don't believe I have much chance, but I know I
+shall be disappointed if I don't make one, just the same."
+
+"For about twenty-four hours, yes. Don't interrupt me, Trotty; this
+isn't flattery, it's argument. You are a sensible person, as I have
+said; and don't let such considerations worry you. There are lots of
+other sensible persons in the class, too. Josh Traill, for one, and
+Manxome, and John Fisher and Shep McGee; they're all sensible people,
+and don't worry or think much about senior societies, though I suppose
+they all have a good chance to make one eventually, if any one has. But
+that isn't true of all the class. There is a large and important
+section of it that now, in the first term of freshman year, is thinking
+and talking nothing except about who will go to a junior fraternity next
+year, or a senior society two years hence. It's the one subject of
+conversation that seriously competes with professional baseball and
+college football, which is all you hear otherwise."
+
+"Oh, no, Harry, you're hard on us. There's automobiles. And guns. And
+theaters. But why should you mind if a lot of geesers do talk about
+societies?"
+
+"Well, it makes me sick, that's all. And when I say sick, I use the word
+in its British, or most vivid sense. It makes me sick, after England and
+after Harrow, to see a lot of what ought to be the best fellows in the
+class spending their waking hours in wondering about such rubbishy
+things.--Do you happen to be aware of an ornament of our class called
+Junius Neville LeGrand?"
+
+"Golden locks and blue eyes? Yes, I know him. Acts rather well, they
+say."
+
+"Yes; he's the kind I mean. At any rate, I seem to be in his good graces
+just at present. All sweetness and light; can't be too particular about
+telling me how good I am at French, and that sort of thing. In fact, he
+went so far to-day as to suggest that we might go over the French lesson
+together, and he's coming here presently to do it."
+
+"But what's the matter with poor Junius? I thought he was as decent as
+such a painfully good-looking person could be."
+
+"I'm not denying he's attractive. But if you'll stay for the French
+lesson I think I can show you what I'm talking about."
+
+"But I don't take French."
+
+"No, dear boy; you won't have to know French to see what I'm going to
+show you. Your role will consist of lying on the window-seat and being
+occupied with day before yesterday's _News_. Now listen; I have an idea
+that the beautiful Junius has recently made the discovery that I am the
+brother of James Wimbourne, of the junior class, pillar of the Yale
+football team and more than likely to go Bones, or anything he wants,
+next May. Hence this access of cordiality to poor little me, the obscure
+Freshman. I'm going to find out that, first."
+
+"But there's no need of finding out that," said Trotwood naively. "I
+told him so myself, the other day."
+
+"A week ago Tuesday, to be exact," said Harry reflectively. "I remember
+he slobbered all over me at the French class Wednesday, though he didn't
+have anything to say to me on Monday. Wasn't that about it?"
+
+"Yes," admitted Trotwood.
+
+"Well, it proves what I was saying, but I'm sorry you did it, for it
+spoils my little game with the beautiful Junius. The French lesson will
+be a dull one, I fear. I rather think I shall have to end by being rude
+to Junius, to keep him from making an infernal little pest of himself."
+
+But the French lesson was not as dull as Harry feared, for the
+ingratiating Junius played into Harry's hands and incidentally proved
+himself not so good an actor off the stage as on. His behavior for the
+first ten or fifteen minutes was all that could be desired; he sat in
+Harry's Morris chair and waved a cigarette and put his host and Trotwood
+at their ease with the grace and charm of a George IV. At length he and
+Harry settled down to their "Notre Dame de Paris," and for a while all
+went well. Then of a sudden Junius became strangely silent and
+preoccupied.
+
+"'Then they made him sit down on--' oh, Lord, what's a _brancard
+bariole_?" said Harry. "You look up _brancard_, Junius, and I'll look up
+the other.... Oh, yes; speckled. No; motley--that's probably nearer; it
+depends on what _brancard_ means. What does it mean, anyway? Come on,
+Junius, do you mean to say you haven't found it yet? What's the matter?"
+
+"I was looking up _asseoir_," said Junius, who had been staring straight
+in front of him.
+
+"Sit, of course; you knew that. I translated that, anyway. I'll look up
+_brancard_." Harry's glance, as he turned again to his dictionary, fell
+upon a letter lying on his desk, waiting to be mailed. It was addressed
+in Harry's own legible hand to
+
+ Lieut.-Gen. Sir Giles Fletcher, M. P. etc.,
+ 204 Belgrave Square,
+ London, S. W.,
+ England.
+
+It immediately occurred to him that this was the probable cause of his
+classmate's preoccupation, and the joy of the chase burned anew in his
+breast.
+
+"What _are_ you staring at, Junius?" he asked a minute later, with, well
+simulated unconsciousness.
+
+"Nothing," replied Junius, returning to his book and blushing. That was
+bad already, as Harry pointed out later; it would have been so easy, for
+a person who really knew, to pass it off with some such remark as "I was
+overcome by the address on that letter. My, but what swells you do
+correspond with," etc. But the unfortunate Junius could not even be
+consistent to the role of affected ignorance that he had assumed.
+
+"I see you know Sir Giles Fletcher," he said after a while. "I saw that
+envelope on the table; I couldn't help seeing the address. Is he a
+friend of yours?"
+
+"Yes," said Harry; "my uncle."
+
+"Oh. Well, I heard a good deal about him last summer from some relations
+of his ... connections, anyway; the Marquis of Moville ... and his
+family. We had a shooting-lodge in Scotland, and he had a moor near
+ours. He came over and shot with us once, and said ours was the best
+moor in Perthshire. His brother came too; Lord Archibald Carson. He's
+the one that's connected with your uncle, isn't he?"
+
+"Yes. Married his sister."
+
+"The Marquis is rather a decent fellow," continued Junius languidly. "Do
+you know him?"
+
+"No," said Harry calmly; "no decent person does. Nor Lord Archibald,
+either. They're the worst pair of rounders in England. My uncle doesn't
+even speak to them in the street."
+
+"Oh." Junius' face was a study, but Harry was sitting so that he could
+not see it, and had to be contented with Trotwood's subsequent account
+of it. There was silence for a few moments, during which Harry waited
+with perfect certainty for Junius' next remark.
+
+"Well, of course we didn't know them _well_, at all. They just came and
+shot with us once. That's nothing, in Scotland."
+
+Victor Hugo was resumed after this and the translation finished without
+further incident. The beautiful Junius, however, needed no urging to
+"stick around" afterward, and sat for an hour or more smoking cigarettes
+and chatting pleasantly about his acquaintance, carefully culled from
+the New York social register and the British peerage.
+
+"Well, Trotty," said Harry after the incubus had departed, dropping a
+perfect shower of invitations to New York, Newport, Palm Beach, the
+Adirondacks and the Scottish moors; "what about it? Is the beautiful
+Junius, friend of dukes and scion of Crusaders, an obnoxious, unhealthy
+little vermin, or isn't he?"
+
+"I suppose he is. My, but he was fun, though! But he's going to make the
+Dramatic Association after Christmas, for all that."
+
+"Oh, yes. He'll make whatever he sets out to make, straight through.
+Nobody here will ever see through him. He doesn't often give himself
+away as he did to-night, of course. He talks up to each person on what
+he thinks they'll like; to Josh Traill, for instance, he'll talk about
+football, and to an aesthetic type, like Morton Miniver, on Japanese
+prints and Maeterlinck's plays; and to you on the Glee and Mandolin
+Clubs.... He has already, hasn't he? Don't attempt to deny it; your
+blush betrays you! That's the way his type gets on here; talk to the
+right people, and don't talk to any one else, and in addition do a
+little acting or whatever you can, and it'll go hard if you don't make a
+senior society before you're through.... He's clever, too; he'll make
+it, all right. You see, he only gave himself away to me because he
+talked on a subject where breeding counts, as well as knowledge.... It
+was rash of him to try the duke and duchess stuff; he'd much better have
+stuck to track, or something safe."
+
+"See here, Harry," said Trotwood, rising to go, "I grant you that Junius
+has given himself away and that he's a repulsive little beast, and all
+the rest of it, but don't you think that you are taking the incident
+just a little too seriously? It's an obnoxious type, all right, but it's
+a common one. There are bound to be a few Juniuses in every bunch of
+three or four hundred fellows wherever you take them; Oxford, or
+anywhere else. Why bother about them? Let them blather on; they won't
+hurt you, as long as you know them for what they are. And if Junius, or
+one of his kind, gets too aggressive and unpleasant, all you have to do
+is reach out your foot and stamp on him. But don't let him worry you!"
+
+"How wise, how uplifting, how Browningesque!" breathed Harry in
+satirical admiration. Trotty winced slightly and made for the door.
+"Don't be a fool," Harry added, running after his retreating friend and
+grabbing him. "You're dead right about all that, of course, as you
+always are when you take the trouble to use your bean. There's just one
+thing, though, when all is said and done, that irritates me. Junius at
+Yale ends by making his senior society, in spite of all. Junius at
+Oxford doesn't! Do you know why? Because there aren't any senior
+societies there!"
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IX
+
+A LONG CHEER FOR WIMBOURNE
+
+
+Harry did eventually bestir himself to the extent of hiring a locker in
+the track house and going out and "exercising," as he called it, three
+or four afternoons a week. He enjoyed it, but he obviously did not take
+it very seriously. He was neither good enough nor enthusiastic enough to
+attract the attention of the coach and captain, and it was something of
+a surprise to all concerned when he took a first place in the low
+hurdles in the fall meet and became entitled to wear his class numerals.
+
+"Fine work," said the captain, a small and insignificant-looking senior,
+who could pole vault to incredible heights without apparent effort.
+"Macgrath tells me you haven't come within two seconds of your time
+to-day in practise."
+
+"No," said Harry; "I've been working more at the jumps."
+
+"Well, you'd better stick to the hurdles from now on. We're weakest
+there. You practise and train regularly this year and next year you'll
+probably be the best man on the hurdles we have. Except Popham, of
+course. But we never can depend on Popham for a meet; he's always on
+pro, or something."
+
+That evening after dinner Harry strolled into Trotwood's room.
+
+"Say, you're the hell of a fine hurdler, you are," growled the latter,
+from the depths of a Morris chair. Harry was somewhat taken aback till
+his friend suddenly clutched at his hand and began swinging it up and
+down like a pump handle. Then he realized that objurgation was merely
+Trotwood's gentle method of expressing pleasure and affection. Delight
+shone in his face; not delight in his triumph but in the thought that it
+meant something to Trotwood and that he understood Trotwood's peculiar
+way of showing it.
+
+"That's all right, Trotty dear," he said. "Never mind about giving me
+back my hand; I shall have no further use for it."
+
+"I suppose you think you're quite a man now, don't you?" continued
+Trotwood in the same vein. "Just because you won a damned race against
+people that can't run anyway."
+
+"Sweet as the evening dew upon the fields of Enna fall thy words, O
+sage," said Harry. "You're really quite a wonderful person at bottom,
+aren't you, Trotty? How did you know that the last thing I'd want was to
+be slathered over with congratulations by you? Good Lord, you ought to
+have heard Junius LeGrand on the subject!"
+
+"Never mind about LeGrand. Speaking seriously, it's a great thing for
+you, Harry. I don't suppose you realize that, bar that unspeakable
+rounder Popham, you're the coming man in the hurdles from now on? Why,
+you've got your Y absolutely cinched for next year, with him going on
+the way he does!"
+
+"So it seems," said Harry dryly. "I seem to have heard the name of
+Popham before. Suppose we talk about something else.... Look, Trotty;
+will you room with me next year?"
+
+"Yes," answered Trotwood, blushing deeply, and continued, after a pause:
+"I've wanted to arrange that for some time, but I thought you'd better
+be the one to mention the subject first."
+
+"Why?"
+
+"Oh, I don't know; I thought if I asked you, you'd accept out of plain
+good nature, for fear of throwing me down, and I didn't want that."
+
+"Well, as it happened, I was determined to let the first advances come
+from you, for very much the same reason. Until just now, when I was so
+afraid you'd room with some one else that I couldn't wait another
+minute. I've lost all sense of maidenliness, you see."
+
+"Maidenliness be hanged. You don't have to be maidenly when you've won
+your numerals at track."
+
+That was on a Saturday. James had been out of town with the football
+team and did not return till late that evening. The next day he and
+Harry walked out to their old home together for their regular Sunday
+dinner with Aunt Selina. On the way they discussed at length the fine
+points of the game of the day before, in which James had played right
+half with great distinction. Presently he inquired:
+
+"By the way, how about the fall meet yesterday? How did you come out?"
+
+"Oh, fairly well. I only entered in the low hurdles, but I came out all
+right."
+
+"All right?"
+
+"Yes--first."
+
+"What? Do you mean to say that you got first place in the hurdles?"
+
+"Substantially that, yes."
+
+"Good Lord. I hadn't heard a thing. Went straight to bed when I got home
+last night and only got up this morning in time for Chapel. Why, it's
+the best ever, Harry! You get your numerals. You must be about the first
+man in your class to do that. What was your time?"
+
+"Pretty rotten. Twenty-five two."
+
+"Not so bad. Gee, but that's fine for you, child!"
+
+"I'm glad you're pleased, James."
+
+"It isn't merely the getting of your numerals in the fall meet, either.
+It means that you'll be one of the main gazabes in the track world from
+now on, if you work. There's no one here that can make better time than
+you in the hurdles, bar Popham, who makes such a fool of himself they
+can't use him, mostly."
+
+"Oh, damn," said Harry softly and slowly.
+
+"What's the matter? Forgotten something?"
+
+"No. I can't forget something, that's the trouble."
+
+"Well, what _is_ biting you?"
+
+"Only that if I hear the name of Popham much more, I believe I shall go
+mad on the spot."
+
+"Oh, don't take it so hard as that. Most likely you'll be able to beat
+him out anyway, if you make progress, and he's likely to drink himself
+out of college anyway before--"
+
+"Shut up, James, for Heaven's sake!" There was real anger in Harry's
+tone, and James turned and looked at him with surprise. "You're as bad
+as every one else--worse! Don't _you_ know me better than to suppose
+that all my chances of happiness in college, in this world, in the next,
+depend on Popham's drinking himself to death? Do you think it's pleasant
+for me to know that every one considers my--my success, I suppose you'd
+call it, dependent on whether that rounder stays off probation or not?
+You make me sick, James."
+
+James remained silent a moment. "No offense meant," he said gently. "I'm
+sure I'm sorry if--"
+
+"Oh, rot!" Harry disclaimed offense by slipping his hand through his
+brother's arm. "Only you don't seem to _see_, James. That's what bothers
+me."
+
+"Well, no; I'm afraid I don't. It will be a great thing for you if you
+get your Y next year. Do you think it's low of me to wish that Popham,
+who is no good anyway, should get out of your way?"
+
+"No; the wish is kindly meant, of course.... But this idea that my whole
+worldly happiness is tied up with Popham takes the pleasure out of it
+all, somehow. I don't give a continental whether I get my Y or not,
+now."
+
+"Oh, come on. Don't be morbid."
+
+"No. I've a good mind not to go out for track any more."
+
+James made no answer to this, and the two walked on in silence till they
+had reached the house. As they walked up the front steps James said:
+
+"You must tell Aunt Selina all about this. She'll be awfully glad to
+hear about it."
+
+"Including Popham," said Harry in a low voice. James made no reply to
+this, for it scarcely called for a reply, but his lips were ever so
+slightly compressed as he walked through the front door.
+
+During the idle months that followed Harry used his spare time for
+efforts in another and wholly different direction--a literary one. He
+became what is known in the parlance of the college as a "_Lit._
+heeler"; that is, he contributed regularly to the _Yale Literary
+Magazine_. For the most part his contributions were accepted, and in the
+course of a few months his literary reputation in his class equaled his
+athletic fame. His verses, written chiefly in the Calverly vein, were
+equally sought for by both the _Lit._ and the _Record_, the humorous
+publication, and his prose, which generally took the form of short
+stories with a great deal of very pithy, rapid-fire dialogue in them,
+was looked upon favorably even by the reverend dons whose duty it was to
+review the undergraduates' monthly offerings to the muses.
+
+"Has a cinder track been laid to the top of Parnassus?" wrote one who
+rather prided himself on his quaint and whimsical fancy. "Do poets
+hurdle and sprint where once they painfully climbed? Do the joyous Nine
+now stand at the top holding a measuring tape and wet sponges, instead
+of laurel wreaths, as of old? Assuredly we shall have to answer in the
+affirmative after reading the story 'Quest and Question' which appeared
+in the last issue of the _Lit._, for not only is the writer of this, the
+best and brightest offering of the month, a mere freshman, but a
+freshman who, it seems, has distinguished himself so far for physical
+rather than mental agility. The 'question' about Mr. Wimbourne appears,
+indeed, to be whether the fleetness of his metrical feet can equal that
+of his material ones," etc.
+
+All this amused Harry, who, it is to be feared, sometimes laughed at
+rather than with his reviewers; and it gave him something to think about
+outside of his studies and his classmates, both of which palled upon him
+heavily at times. But he was irritated from time to time by the way in
+which even literary recreation was looked upon, by the undergraduate
+body. A casual and kindly remark of a classmate, "Hullo, I see you're
+ahead in the _Lit._ competition," would often throw him into a state of
+restless depression from which only the soothing presence of Trotwood
+could reclaim him.
+
+"Isn't it awful, Trotty," he once complained; "Euterpe (she's the lyric
+muse, you know), has deserted me. I haven't been able to write a line
+for a month. Of course the loss to the world of letters is almost
+irreparable, but that's not the worst of it. You see, if I can't write,
+I shan't do well in the _Lit._ competition, and if I don't do well I
+shan't make the chairmanship, and if I don't make the chairmanship in
+the competition, I shan't make a senior society, and wouldn't that be
+terrible, Trotty?"
+
+"Cheer up, old cow; you probably won't make one anyway," suggested
+Trotty reassuringly, and Harry laughed.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+The football game with Harvard was played in New Haven that year, and
+Harry took Aunt Selina to it. Aunt Selina had never seen James play, and
+was anxious to go on that account, though she had not been to a game for
+many years, and even the last one she had seen was baseball.
+
+"You must explain the fine points of the game to me, my dear," she told
+him as they drove grandly out to the field in her victoria. "You see, I
+have not been to a game since the seventies, and I daresay the rules
+have changed somewhat since then. I used to take a great interest in it,
+but I've forgotten all about it, now."
+
+They were obliged to abandon the victoria at some distance from the
+stands, rather to Aunt Selina's consternation, for she had secretly
+supposed that they would watch the play from the carriage, as of old.
+She was consequently somewhat bewildered when, after fifteen or twenty
+minutes of such shoving and shouldering as she had never experienced,
+she found herself in a vast amphitheater which forty thousand people
+were trying to convert into pandemonium, with very fair success. As they
+wormed their way along the sidelines toward their seats, a deafening
+roar suddenly burst from the stands on the other side of the field,
+which caused Aunt Selina to clutch her nephew's arm in affright.
+
+"Harry, what _is_ it?" she asked. "_What_ are they making that frightful
+noise about?"
+
+"That's the Harvard cheer," replied Harry calmly. "You'll hear the Yale
+people answering with theirs in just a minute."
+
+The Yale people did answer, but it would be too much to say that Aunt
+Selina heard. She was vaguely conscious of going up some steps and being
+propelled past a line of people to what Harry told her were their seats,
+though she could see nothing but a narrow bit of board. Nevertheless she
+sat down, and tried to accustom her ears and eyes to chaos; just such a
+chaos, she thought, as Satan fell into, only larger and noisier.
+
+"Here we are," Harry was saying cheerfully, "just in time, too. The
+teams will be coming on in a minute or two. What splendid seats James
+has got us, bang on the forty yard line. Why, we're practically in the
+cheering section! Do you know the Yale cheer, Aunt Selina? You must
+cheer too, you know; it's expected of you.... Here comes the Yale
+team...."
+
+Aunt Selina lost the rest, as chaos broke forth with redoubled vigor.
+She saw a group of blue-sweatered figures run diagonally across the
+field, and thought the game had begun.
+
+"Which is James?" she asked feverishly, feeling chaos work its way into
+her own bosom. "Do you think he'll win, Harry? Oh, I do hope he'll
+win!"
+
+When the team lined up for its short preliminary practise Harry pointed
+James out to her in his place at right halfback.
+
+"I see," she said, gazing intently through her field glasses, "he's one
+of those three little ones at the back. Does that mean that he'll be the
+one to kick the ball? I'd rather he kicked it than be in the middle of
+all that tearing about. Poor boy, how pale he looks!"
+
+"He won't look pale long," said Harry grimly.
+
+Aunt Selina by this time felt every drop of sporting blood in her course
+through her veins. "Which is the pitcher, Harry?" she inquired
+knowingly, and was not in the least abashed when her nephew informed her
+that there was no pitcher in football.
+
+"Well, well," said she indulgently, "isn't there really? Things do
+change so; I can't pretend to keep up with them. I remember there used
+to be a pitcher in my time, and Loring Ainsworth used to be it."
+
+Just then the teams set to in deadly earnest, and conversation died. In
+bewildered silence Aunt Selina watched the twenty-two players as they
+ran madly and inexplicably up and down the field, pursued by the
+fiendish yells of the spectators, and wondered if in truth, she were
+dead and this--well, purgatory.
+
+She made no attempt to understand anything that was going on down on the
+field, or even to watch it. She turned her attention to Harry; he seemed
+to be the most familiar and explicable object in sight, though she
+wondered why he should leap to his feet from time to time shouting such
+nonsense as "Block it, you ass!" or "Nail him, Sammy, nail him!" or
+"First down! Yay-y-y!" Presently she became aware of a growing intensity
+in the excitement. The players seemed to be moving gradually down toward
+one end of the field, and short periods of breathless silence in the
+audience punctuated the shouts. She heard cries of "Touchdown!
+Touchdown!" emanate from all directions, but they meant nothing to her.
+The players moved further and further away, till they were all huddled
+into one little corner of the field. Every time they tumbled over
+together in that awful human scrap-heap she shut her eyes, and did not
+open them again till she was sure it was all right. Finally, after one
+of those painful moments, there was a relapse of chaos, fifty times more
+severe than any of the previous attacks. Women, as well as men,
+shrieked like maniacs, and threw things into the air. Trumpets bellowed
+and rattles rattled; somewhere in the background was a sound of a brass
+band, of an organized cheer. Hats and straw mats flew through the air in
+swarms.
+
+"What is it?" shrieked Aunt Selina. "Who won? Who won?"
+
+"It's a touchdown!" Harry shouted in her ear. "For Yale! It counts
+five!" (It did, then.) "And James did it! James has made a touchdown!"
+And in a moment Aunt Selina had the unusual pleasure of hearing her own
+name shouted in concert by ten or fifteen thousand people at the top of
+their voices.
+
+"--rah rah rah Wimbourne! Wimbourne! Wimbourne!" shouted the crowd, at
+the end of the long Yale cheer, and they went on shouting it, nine
+times; then another long cheer, and nine more Wimbournes, and so on.
+
+It was a great moment. Is it to be wondered that Aunt Selina, who did
+not know a touchdown from a nose-guard, shrieked with the others and
+wept like a baby? Is it strange that Harry, to whom the event meant more
+than to any other person among the forty thousand, should have forgotten
+himself in the expression of his natural joy; should have forgotten
+where and what and who he was, everything but the one absorbing fact
+that James had made a touchdown? We think not, and we have reason to
+believe that every man jack out of the forty thousand would have agreed
+with us. One did, we know. She thought it was the most natural thing in
+the world, though it did set her coughing and disarranged her hat and
+veil beyond all hope of recovery without the assistance of a mirror, not
+to mention a comb and hairbrush. And Harry needn't apologize any more,
+for she wouldn't hear of it; and the way she had behaved herself, in the
+first excruciating moment, was a Perfect Disgrace. So they were quits on
+that matter, and might she introduce Mr. Carruthers? Mr. Wimbourne. Was
+Harry surprised that she knew who he was? Well, she would explain, and
+also tell him who she was herself, if she could ever get the hair out of
+her mouth and eyes.
+
+For it must be explained that Harry, in his transports of exultation,
+had behaved in a very unseemly manner toward his next-door neighbor on
+the right hand. Aunt Selina, who sat on his left, had sunk, exhausted
+with joy and excitement, to her seat as soon as she was told that James
+had made a touchdown, and Harry, whose feelings were of a nature that
+demanded immediate physical expression, had unconsciously relieved them
+on the person of his other neighbor, who still remained standing; never
+noticing who or what she was, even that she happened to be a young and
+attractive woman. Harry never could remember what he had done in those
+hectic seconds that immediately preceded his awareness of her existence;
+according to her own subsequent account he had slapped her violently
+several times on the back, put his arm around her, shaken her by the
+scruff of her neck and shouted inarticulate and impossible things in her
+ear.
+
+The interval of hair-recovery was tactfully designed to give Harry a
+moment's grace in which to recall, if possible, his neighbor's identity;
+she was perfectly able to tell who she was with the hair in her mouth
+and eyes, proof of which was that she had been talking in that condition
+for the past few minutes. Harry was grateful for the intermission.
+
+"Why of course I know you!" he exclaimed, as soon as the dying away of
+the last nine Wimbournes made conversation feasible. "It was stupid of
+me not to remember before. Do you remember; dancing school?.... It must
+have been ten years ago, though; and you _have_ changed!"
+
+"Yes, I suppose I have changed--thank Heaven!" The exclamation given
+with a smile through a now unimpeachably neat veil, seemed in some
+subtle, curious way to vindicate Harry, to emphasize his innocence in
+failing to recognize her. "I know what I looked like then, all long
+black legs and stringy yellow hair--"
+
+"Not stringy," said Harry, recognizing his cue; "silky. I remember the
+long black--the stockings, too. And lots of white fluffy stuff in
+between; lace, and all that.... And we used to dance a good deal
+together, because we were the two youngest there, and you were so nice
+about it, too, when you wanted to dance with the older boys. But how did
+you know me? Haven't I changed, too?"
+
+"Oh, yes; but not so much. Boys don't. Beside, I knew your aunt by
+sight...."
+
+"I'm sorry, I forgot," said Harry. "Aunt Selina, do you know Miss
+Elliston? And Mr. Carruthers, my aunt."
+
+"Madge Elliston," corrected the girl, smiling, "you know my mother, I
+think, Miss Wimbourne."
+
+"Indeed I do, my dear; I am delighted to meet her daughter," said Aunt
+Selina, who had had time to recover her customary _grande dame_ air, "I
+knew her when she was Margaret Seymour; we used to be great friends."
+
+And so forth, through the brief but blessed respite that follows a
+touchdown. There is no need to quote the conversation in full, for it
+degenerated immediately into the polite and commonplace. If we could
+give you a picture of Madge Elliston during it, if we could do justice
+to the sweetness and deference of her manner toward Aunt Selina, her
+occasional smile, and the easy way she managed to bring both Harry and
+Mr. Carruthers into the conversation, that would be a different thing.
+
+The next kick-off brought it to an end, and all parties concerned turned
+their attention once more to the field. Harry attempted to explain some
+of the rudiments of the game to Aunt Selina, who confessed that her
+recollections of the rules of the seventies were not of material
+assistance to her enjoyment. And so passed the first half.
+
+"Do you know, I believe I know exactly what you're thinking of?" was the
+next thing Harry heard from his right. It was between the halves; Miss
+Elliston was in an intermission of Mr. Carruthers, and Harry was
+listening in silence to "Fair Harvard," which was being rendered across
+the field.
+
+"Do you?" he replied. "Well, I'll tell you if you're right."
+
+"You were thinking of 'Forty Years On.'"
+
+The smile died from Harry's face, and he paused a moment before
+replying, almost gruffly:
+
+"Yes, I was, as a matter of fact. How did you guess it?"
+
+"Oh, I know all about you, you see." She stopped, and her silence seemed
+to Harry to mean "I'm sorry if I've hurt you; but I wish you'd go on and
+talk to me, and not be absurd." So he threw off his pique and went on:
+
+"I don't know how you know about my going to Harrow, nor how you know
+anything about 'Forty Years On,' and I don't care much; but I put it to
+you, as man to man, isn't it a song that's worth thinking about?"
+
+"It is! There never was such a song."
+
+"Not even 'Fair Harvard'?"
+
+"No."
+
+"Not even 'Bright College Years,' to which you will shortly be treated?"
+
+"Not even that." They exchanged smiles, and Harry continued, with
+pleasure in his voice:
+
+"Well, it is a relief to hear some one say that, in a place where 'For
+God, for country, and for Yale' is considered the greatest line in the
+whole range of English poetry. But of course I'm a heretic."
+
+"You like being a heretic?" The question took him by surprise; it was
+out of keeping, both in substance and in the way it was asked, with Miss
+Elliston's behavior up to this point. He gathered his wits and replied:
+
+"Oh, yes; who doesn't? Is there any satisfaction like that of knowing
+that every one else is wrong and you alone are right?"
+
+"I suppose not! That's the main danger of heresy, don't you think?
+Subjective, not objective. Being burned at the stake doesn't matter,
+much; it's good for one rather than otherwise. But thinking differently
+from other people merely for the pleasure of being different, and above
+them--there's danger in that, isn't there?"
+
+"Then there is no such thing as honest heresy?"
+
+"That was not what I said." This remark, spoken gently and with a
+quizzical little smile, had none of the sharpness that cold type seems
+to give it. Adopting something of her manner, Harry pursued:
+
+"But I am not an honest heretic?"
+
+"I didn't say that, either." Again the smile, which seemed to be
+directed as much toward herself as toward him, softened the words. "And
+aren't you rather trespassing on female methods of argument?"
+
+"I don't understand."
+
+"Applying abstract remarks to one's own case; that's what women are
+conventionally supposed to do. But don't let's get metaphysical. What I
+want to say is that, though I think 'Forty Years On' is incomparably
+finer, as a song, than 'Bright College Years,' I wouldn't have it
+changed if I could. The 'For God, for country, and for Yale' part, I
+mean; and 'the earth is green or white with snow,'--a woefully
+under-appreciated line.... There is something priceless, to me, in the
+thought of a great crowd of men, young and old, getting up and bellowing
+things like that together, never doubting but that it's the greatest
+poetry ever written. That's worth a great deal more, to me, than good
+poetry.... They're all such dears, too; the absurdity never hurts them a
+bit!"
+
+"By George," said Harry slowly, "you're right. I never thought of that
+before. It is rather a priceless thought."
+
+"Yes, isn't it? It's the full seriousness of it that makes it so good.
+'For God, for country, and for Yale'--it's no anti-climax to them; it's
+the way they really feel. It's absurd, it's ridiculous. But I love it,
+for some reason."
+
+"That's it. You make me see it all differently.... You mean, I suppose,
+that if we could start from the beginning with a clean slate, we would
+choose 'Forty Years On,' or something like it, every time. But now that
+we've got the other, and they sing it like that, it seems just as good,
+in its way ... so that we wouldn't like to change it...."
+
+He wanted to add something like "What an extraordinary young person you
+must be, to talk of such things to me, a stranger, under such
+conventional circumstances," but a simultaneous recurrence of Mr.
+Carruthers and the game prevented him. It is doubtful if he would have
+dared, anyway.
+
+He spoke no more to her that day, except to say good-by and ask if he
+might call. Nor did he think much more of her. We would not give a false
+impression on this point; he was really much more interested in the game
+than in Miss Elliston, and after the second half was fairly started
+scarcely gave her another thought. But in the moment that intervened
+between the end of their conversation and the absorbing scurry of the
+kick-off it did occur to him that Madge Elliston had grown up into an
+unusual girl, a girl whom he would like to know better. Their short
+conversation had been as different from the ordinary run of football
+game civilities between young men and maidens as champagne from water.
+Harry liked girls well enough, and got on well with them, but in general
+they bored him. He had never met one, except Beatrice Carson, with whom
+he was able to conduct anything approaching an intellectual
+give-and-take, and even Beatrice was no more than an able follower in
+his lead. Madge Elliston was a bird of a very different feather; she had
+undeniably led him during every moment of their conversation. It was a
+new sensation; he wondered if it would always be like that, in future
+conversations.
+
+But football was uppermost in his mind for the remainder of that day, at
+least. He was proud and pleased beyond all expression about James, and
+longed to grasp his hand in congratulation. But he had to go all the way
+home with Aunt Selina after the game was over, and when at last he
+reached Berkeley Oval he met James hurrying away somewhere and could
+give him only the briefest and vaguest expressions of pleasure. On
+returning to York Street he learned that the team was to have a banquet
+that evening, in the course of which they would elect their captain for
+the next year. It occurred to him that it would be nice if James were
+elected, and it gave him pleasure to hear Trotwood and others say that
+his chance was as good as any one's.
+
+He stayed up to hear the result of the election, which when it came was
+disappointing. James had missed the honor, less, apparently, because he
+was not good enough, than because some one else was considered even
+better. Harry was sorry, though he lost no sleep over it. When he saw
+James next morning, he spoke first of what was uppermost in his heart.
+
+"James," he said impulsively, seizing his brother's hand and hanging on
+to it as he spoke; "I want to say a whole lot more about yesterday. I
+don't mind saying you're the greatest thing that ever came down the
+pike, and I'm proud to own you!" and more in the same vein, which James
+received with smiling protests and remarks of a self-depreciatory
+nature. But when Harry ended up "And I'm sorry as heck about the
+captaincy," his manner changed.
+
+"Oh, that's all right," he said. His face became grave, his whole
+attitude seemed to add: "And we won't talk any more about that, please;
+it's a sore subject."
+
+Harry's easy flow of talk stopped short, and a new feeling filled his
+mind. "Good Heavens, James cares, actually cares about the confounded
+thing," he thought, and dropped his brother's hand.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER X
+
+RUMBLINGS
+
+
+"Please, sir, could you give me any dope for the _News_ about your
+coming back to coach the football team?" asked a timid voice from the
+doorway.
+
+"No, heeler, no; I've already said I wouldn't give anything about that
+till I made up my mind, and I haven't yet." Thus James, more petulantly
+than was his wont, from his chair below the green-shaded lamp. The
+heeler, obviously a freshman, blinked disappointedly through the
+half-gloom for a few seconds and then moved to go.
+
+"Wait a bit," said James, his good-humor restored; "I'm sorry, heeler.
+But when I tell you that you're the thirteenth person that has come in
+at that door since seven o'clock, and that I've got a hundred pages of
+economics to read for to-morrow, perhaps you'll understand why I'm a
+little snappy about being interrupted."
+
+"That's all right," murmured the heeler vaguely. He was used to being
+snapped at by prominent seniors, but he was not used to being apologized
+to by them, and was not sure how he liked it.
+
+"I tell you what I'll do, though," went on James. "I'll give you a
+locker notice that ought to have been put in long ago. Here." He reached
+for the heeler's notebook and wrote in it: "All senior members of the
+football squad are requested to remove their clothes from their lockers
+as the space will be wanted for spring practice." "There, that'll put
+you fifty words to the good, anyway," he said brightly, and the heeler
+went his way in peace.
+
+James had conducted himself most creditably during his college course,
+and in the course of a few months would graduate if not exactly in a
+blaze of glory, at least in a very comfortable radiance. His standard of
+values had been a simple but satisfactory one; first, Football; second,
+Curriculum; third, Other Things. Any number of the steadier and worthier
+portion of the college world make this their creed, and find it works
+out extremely well. In the case of James, at least, such a standard
+gave a sane and well-balanced view of life. He took football with the
+most deathly seriousness, it is true, but only in its season, and its
+season, owing to the rigors of the New England climate, lasts hardly
+more than two months out of the twelve. During that time James
+practically hibernated when not actually on the football field, lived
+mainly on boiled rice and barley water, indulged in no amusements or
+vices, went about thoughtful and preoccupied, scarcely spoke even to his
+most intimate friends, studied only just enough to keep his stand above
+the danger mark and slept, as Harry rather vividly put it, "anywhere
+from thirty to forty hours out of the twenty-four." Out of the football
+season he was cheerful, cordial, loved the society of his fellows,
+smoked, drank in moderation, went to the theater, played cards, ate
+every kind of food he could lay his hands on and studied with a very
+faithful and intelligent interest. His classmates admired him during the
+football season, and loved him the rest of the year. Generally speaking,
+he conformed closely to his type; but his type was one of the best the
+college evolved.
+
+After the _News_ heeler left him on the evening in question he read
+economics uninterruptedly for about half an hour; then he took a
+cigarette from his case and lit it. The case was the gold one that Harry
+had brought him from Europe. He thought of Harry as he lay back in his
+chair after lighting the cigarette, and it is not too much to say that
+the thought of him impaired the pleasure of the first few puffs. Harry
+was, indeed, the chief, the only cloud on the horizon. It was too bad;
+he had begun so well. No one could have desired a more brilliant
+freshman year for him, what with his track work and his literary success
+and the excellent stand he maintained in his studies. And yet now, at
+about the middle of his sophomore year, he seemed to be going in any
+direction but that of fulfilling the promise of his first year. James
+could see for himself, and he had heard things.... Perhaps, after all,
+though, it was merely that he had begun too well; that his promise was
+fulfilled before it was fairly given. Many men graduated from college
+high in the esteem of their classmates without having distinguished
+themselves as much as Harry had in one year. Perhaps he was really going
+on exactly as well as before, only people were just beginning to find
+out that he was only an American boy of nineteen, not Apollo and Hermes
+rolled into one. That was what James hoped; but it occurred to him that
+if such had been the case the idea would have come to him as a
+certainty, not as a hope.
+
+Harry himself sauntered into the room before the cigarette was smoked
+out. Well, his outward appearance had not suffered, at any rate, was
+James' first thought. The slimness of his figure was unimpaired; his
+features retained their clear-cut lines of youth and innocence; his
+complexion shone with the glow of health, nothing else.
+
+"Give me a cigarette, and hurry up about it, too," were his first words.
+"I've just been under a severe mental strain.... It will probably be the
+last one for many moons, too, if I start in training to-morrow, like a
+good little boy."
+
+"Oh, of course; you've been to the call for track candidates," replied
+his brother, handing over the desired commodities. "Well, was it a good
+meeting?"
+
+"Inspiring. Don't you see what a glow of enthusiasm I'm in? First
+Dimmock got up and opened his mouth. 'Fellows,' he said, 'I'm darned
+glad to see you all here to-night, but I wish there were more of you. I
+see fewer men out than usual, and we need more than ever this year, and
+I'll tell you why. We want to do better in the intercollegiates. We
+think we are strong enough for the dual meets, but we want to make a
+better show in the intercollegiates. But we've got plenty of good
+material here, and with that we ought to get together and work hard and
+show lots of the old Yale spirit, for we'll need it all in the
+intercollegiates.'
+
+"Well, Dimmock is a good soul, if he has got a face like a boiled cod,
+and we cheered and clapped and patted him on the back. Then Macgrath
+took the floor. He said he thought we were going to have a good year,
+for there was plenty of material in sight, though he was sorry to see so
+few there to-night. He hoped we weren't forgetting what the Yale spirit
+was, because we particularly wanted to do well in the intercollegiates.
+He spoke of the new cinder track and the lengthening of the two-twenty
+yard straight-away, and ended with a hope that we would all get together
+and do Yale credit in the intercollegiates.
+
+"Then McCullen, who as perhaps you know, is manager, got up. As he is a
+particular friend of yours I won't try to give an exact account of what
+he said. His main points, however, were the fewness of the candidates
+present, the probable wealth of good material in hand, the new cinder
+track and the desirability of doing well in the intercollegiates.
+Lastly, a man called Hodgman, or Hodgson, or something, who was captain
+back in the eighties somewhere, was introduced. He spoke first of the
+new cinder track and straight-away, from which he lightly and gracefully
+went on to congratulating the team on having so much good material this
+year--though he saw fewer there to-night than he had expected. He closed
+with a touching peroration in which he intimated that the track team had
+in general come off well in regard to Harvard and Princeton, and what
+was wanted now was a little better showing against the other
+universities in the intercollegiates.... Oh, it was a glorious meeting!"
+
+James fully appreciated the humor of this narrative, as the sympathetic
+twinkle in his eye betrayed, but he merely observed after Harry had
+finished:
+
+"Well, that's true; they ought to do better in the intercollegiates.
+There's a good deal of feeling about it among the graduates, too, I
+believe."
+
+"Oh, it's _true_ enough." Harry, who felt the heat of the room, opened
+the window and lay down at full length on the window-seat, directly in
+the draught. "I'd take the word of those four noble, strapping,
+true-hearted men for it any day in the year. Only--only--oh, heck! Why
+should I have to sit up and listen to those boobs spend an hour in
+telling me that one thing? And what the devil do I care about it anyway,
+if it's the truest thing that ever happened?"
+
+"Well, I care about it, though I'm no good at track and not a member of
+the team," commented James.
+
+"Perhaps if you were on it you wouldn't care quite so much.--Well, I'll
+train and I'll practise regularly, not because I want Yale to win the
+intercollegiates, but because I think it's good for me. It is good for
+the figure, and I'd rather have my muscles hard than soft."
+
+"Well, it comes to the same thing, if you keep to it, and don't go
+gassing to the track people about your reasons."
+
+"I shall go gassing to every human being I've a mind to.--And I'll tell
+you one thing there's going to be trouble about, if they try to use
+coercion, or the Yale spirit gag. That's about the Easter vacation;
+there's some talk of making the track people stay here and train. I have
+other plans for Easter."
+
+"What are they?--For Heaven's sake, shut that window! What a fool you
+are, lying in a draught like that, with the track season beginning."
+
+"James, you are every bit as bad as any of them, at heart," said Harry,
+shutting the window. "You wouldn't give a continental if I caught
+pneumonia and died in frightful agony, except for its cutting the
+university of a possible place in the intercollegiates.--Why, I'm going
+down to the Trotwoods' place in North Carolina. Trotty's going to have a
+large and brilliant house-party. Beatrice is going; he met her in New
+York not long ago and took a great shine to her." For Beatrice, in the
+company of Aunt Miriam, was paying a visit to the country of her dreams.
+
+"What?" said James, pricking up his ears. "Beatrice going? Why hasn't
+Trotty asked me?"
+
+"Didn't dare, I suppose," said Harry indifferently. "I'll make him,
+though, if you like. That's the way the King's visits are arranged; he
+says he'd like to visit some distinguished subject, and a third party
+tells the distinguished subject, who asks the King, who accepts. It's
+complicated, but it gets there in the end."
+
+James did not seem particularly interested in points of etiquette in
+royal households.
+
+"What do you make out of this business of the Carsons?" he asked.
+
+"What business?"
+
+"Hadn't you heard? Aunt C. told me about it when I was there last
+Sunday. Beatrice's mother has made up her mind to sue for a divorce, and
+Beatrice has quarreled with her about it."
+
+"Good Lord! No, I hadn't heard a thing. I knew what the father was, of
+course.... Has anything in particular happened?"
+
+"Apparently, yes. Aunt C. can tell you more exactly than I. Beatrice has
+confided the whole thing to her--they're thick as thieves already; she
+gets on better with her than with Aunt Miriam, even. It seems that the
+husband, Lord Archibald, is on to the fact that his wife has had a good
+deal of money to spend lately; Uncle Giles having given her a lot since
+he got that--"
+
+"Yes, I know. Go on."
+
+"Well, that's about the whole thing. He's been bullying her, making her
+give it up to him ... and one thing and another, till she got desperate,
+and decided to try for a complete divorce. There's plenty of ground,
+even for English law ... but Beatrice's idea is that there's no need. Of
+course, it will mean a lot of scandal. She says that if she had been
+there to deal with him there would have been no talk about it, and that,
+at worst, a separation would have been all that was necessary."
+
+"Poor Lady Archie! She has had a tough time; I shall be glad to see her
+well out of it. A divorce--! Well, she has more sense than I gave her
+credit for."
+
+"It seems to me that Beatrice is quite right," said James, a trifle
+stiffly. "I should have thought that a divorce was the thing most to be
+avoided. It's not like an American divorce.... I understand her point
+very well."
+
+Harry did not reply to this; he simply growled--made a curious sound in
+the bottom of his throat. It amounted to a polite way of saying
+"Nonsense!" Apparently James accepted the implied rebuke, for he said no
+more on the subject. His brother also was silent for some time and gazed
+thoughtfully out on the lights of the Campus. "I've got troubles of my
+own, James," he said presently. "Have you heard anything about last
+night yet?"
+
+"Last night? No; what?"
+
+"Well, you've heard of Junius LeGrand, in our class?"
+
+"The actress? Yes."
+
+"Well, he's become rather a power in the class; not only he is making
+straight for the Dramat. presidency, but he's more or less the center of
+a certain clique; the social register, monogrammed cigarettes,
+champagne-every-night and abroad-every-summer type; the worst of it,
+that is. Well, I had a dreadful scene with him last night. I got a
+thrill and called him names, and he didn't like it."
+
+"What happened?"
+
+"There was a whole bunch of us sitting round at Mory's, and I was
+talking partly in French, as I usually do when--when mildly excited, and
+referred to him as a 'petite ordure.' Of course that isn't a pretty
+thing to call a person, even in French, and I probably shouldn't have
+said it if I hadn't been drinking. I meant it all, though, and was
+willing to stand by it, so when he got mad I called him other and worse
+things, in English. He wasn't tight, but he was pretty furious by that
+time, and there'd have been a free fight if people hadn't held us
+apart."
+
+"That's pretty poor, Harry," said James gravely, after a moment's
+consideration. "I don't mean your hating LeGrand--though you needn't
+have actually come to quarreling with him. But your being tight and he
+not puts you in the wrong right off.--What's all this about your
+drinking, anyway?"
+
+"I don't, so you could notice it.... That was the first time I ever got
+carried beyond myself, except about once--or twice. I'm not fond of the
+stuff; I only drink when I want to be cheered up."
+
+"That's bad, too; it's much worse to drink when you're in bad spirits
+than when you're in good," said James, with a wisdom beyond his
+experience.
+
+"After I've drunk, the good spirits are in me," retorted Harry, with
+rather savage humor.
+
+"It's no joking matter. Harry, will you cut it out entirely, if I ask
+you to?"
+
+"You'll have to do some tall asking, I'm afraid.--I don't like you much
+when you preach, James. I came here for sympathy, not sermons."
+
+"You won't get me to sympathize with your making a beast of yourself."
+
+"James, you know perfectly well you were tight as a tick at the football
+banquet in Boston last fall."
+
+"I'm no paragon, I admit."
+
+"You say that as if you thought you were, and expected me to say so. No,
+you're right--you're not. There!"
+
+James' humor suddenly changed. His grave face relaxed into a smile, he
+rose from his chair and wandered to the end of the room and back to the
+window-seat.
+
+"All right, we'll leave it at that; I'm not." He stood for a moment
+hands in pockets, smiling down at his brother. "It's nice to find one
+point we can agree on, anyway.... I won't bother you. After all, I
+suppose there's not much danger."
+
+"No ... I don't think I should ever really get to like the stuff." But
+Harry did not smile and fall in with his brother's mood; he had too much
+on his mind still. "I haven't told you the most disagreeable part of
+it," he went on. "Something happened to-day that made me sorry I had
+made a fool of myself. Shep McGee came to me to-day and said that he'd
+heard about our little _coup de theatre_, and that he was sorry, but
+being one of Junius' particular friends he couldn't be friendly with me
+any more unless I apologized. I was sorry, because I've always liked
+Shep and got on very well with him."
+
+"What did you say?"
+
+"Oh, of course I was pretty peeved, and I messed it up still further. I
+told him I was glad he'd spoken, because henceforth my acquaintance
+would not be recruited conspicuously from Junius' special friends. I
+said that, strange as it might seem, I felt myself able to hand him,
+Shep, over to Junius' complete possession without a tear. I added that I
+thought he would find it safer in the future to choose his friends
+exclusively from the cause of Christ, and suggested that he might try to
+convert Junius to the same august organization...."
+
+Some explanation may be necessary to show why this remark outraged
+James' feelings to the extent it did. The organization to which Harry
+referred was Dwight Hall, the college home of the Y. M. C. A., Bible
+study classes, city and foreign mission work, in all of which branches
+of religious and semi-religious activity many of the worthiest
+undergraduates interest themselves. James particularly admired the
+organization and those who worked in it; he would have gone in for some
+department of its work himself had he possessed the qualities of a
+religious leader. Most of his best friends were Dwight Hall workers; the
+senior society to which he belonged was notorious for taking many of
+them into its fold yearly--so much so, indeed, that it has become a
+popular myth that an underground passage exists between Dwight Hall and
+the society hall.
+
+Consequently, Harry's contemptuous epithet, together with the tone in
+which he uttered it was quite enough to shock and pain James very much.
+But what put him out even more was the thought that Harry had said this
+to Shep McGee. The latter was one of the most respected men in Harry's
+class, and James had happened to take a particular fancy to him. He
+rather wondered at McGee's making a friend of such a person as LeGrand,
+but he did not stop to think about that now.
+
+"Harry," said he in a sharp, dry voice, "I think that's the rottenest
+remark I ever heard you or any one else make--if you used that
+expression to McGee."
+
+"I did."
+
+"I never thought you were capable of saying such a rotten thing, and I
+don't mind your knowing what I think of it. Are you going to apologize
+to McGee?"
+
+"No."
+
+"Well, I shall. If I can't apologize on your behalf, at least I can
+apologize for being your brother! What the devil do you mean by saying
+such a thing, in cold blood, to such a man? If you don't believe in the
+work yourself, can't you let other people believe in it? What do you
+believe in, anyway? Do you call yourself a Christian? Do you call
+yourself a gentleman? Do you flatter yourself that McGee isn't a hundred
+times a better man than you are?"
+
+"Rumblings from the underground passage." This remark, given with a
+cold, hard little smile, in which there was no geniality, no humor, even
+of a mistaken nature, amounted to a direct insult. Any reference made to
+a Yale man about his senior society by an outsider, be it a brother or
+any one else, is looked upon as a breach of etiquette--was at that time,
+at any rate. Harry's remark was worse than that; it was a rather
+cowardly thrust, for he was insulting a thing that James, by reason of
+the secrecy to which he was bound, could not defend.
+
+James did not reply; he simply grabbed up a hat and flung himself out of
+the room. Harry listened to his footsteps retreating down the stairs
+with a sinking heart; all his anger, all his resentment ebbed with them,
+and by the time they had died away there was nothing left but hopeless,
+repentant wretchedness. In the last twenty-four hours he had made a
+public disgrace of himself, he had fallen out with one of his best
+friends, and he had wounded the feelings of the last person on earth he
+wanted to hurt. And all because of his asinine convictions, because he
+thought his ideals were a little higher than other men's, his honesty a
+little more impeccable than theirs.
+
+He got up and left the room, cursing himself for a fool, cursing the
+fate that had brought him to this pass, cursing Dwight Hall, the senior
+societies, the university that harbored them, the school, the country
+that had put ideas into his head. But chiefest of all he cursed Junius
+LeGrand....
+
+But that did not do any good.
+
+The next morning he wrote and posted a note of apology to James:--
+
+ Dear James--I am sorry about last night--really, I am. I will
+ try not to make such an ass of myself again.
+
+ HARRY.
+
+The same evening he received an answer, also through the mail. It was
+simply a post-card bearing the words:
+
+ All right. JAMES.
+
+Its curt, businesslike goodwill and the promptness of its arrival
+comforted him somewhat. He wisely determined to keep away from his
+brother for the present and let time exert what healing effect it could.
+When they did meet again, after some ten days' interval, no reference
+was made to the episode. James was cordial, very cordial. Far, far too
+cordial....
+
+"Trotty," said Harry mournfully that evening; "I don't think you'd
+better room with me again next year. You can't afford to, Trotty. I'm a
+pariah, an outcast. Half the decent people in the class don't speak to
+me any more. You simply can't afford to know me. It'll ruin your
+chances."
+
+"I wish you'd shut up," said Trotwood. "I'm trying to study."
+
+"I mean it, Trotty. Don't pretend you don't hear, or understand. I'm
+giving you warning."
+
+"Rot," said Trotty, beginning to blush. "Damned, infernal rot."
+
+Harry sighed. "You're a good soul, Trotty. But it's true. You'll be
+known as the only man in the class that speaks to me, if you keep it
+up."
+
+"Will you shut up, you infernal idiot?"
+
+"No. I tell you, I'm going straight to the devil."
+
+Trotty rose from his chair and went to where Harry stood. He gently
+pushed him back to the wall, and pinning him to it looked him straight
+in the eyes. Harry was surprised to see that his face was set and
+serious.
+
+"Now," said Trotwood, "I'm going to talk about this business this once,
+and if you ever mention the subject again I'll break your damned head
+open. I'm going to room with you next year. I'm going to room with you
+the year after that, if you'll have me. If we ever split up, it'll have
+to be because you're tired of me--not afraid I'm tired of you, but
+actually tired of me. You're not going to the devil. If you do, I don't
+give a damn. What does friendship mean, anyway? Answer me that, damn
+you!--damn you!--damn you--" His voice failed, but his eyes still spoke.
+
+"All right, Trotty, we won't say any more about it, if you feel like
+that." Harry smiled as he spoke the words, but he felt more like
+crying.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XI
+
+AUNT SELINA'S BEAUX YEUX
+
+
+As Harry had anticipated, an issue arose between himself and the powers
+in the track world concerning the Easter vacation. The edict went forth
+that members of the 'varsity squad were to remain in New Haven, in
+strict training, through the holidays, and it was assumed that he was to
+be of their number. None of the powers asked him what he was going to
+do, and he did not think it worth while to inform them of his plans.
+
+One day, about a week before the vacation began, he did mention the
+subject casually to Judy Dimmock, the captain, as they walked in from
+practice together. Dimmock's consternation, as Harry said afterward, was
+pitiful to see.
+
+"But do you think you can get Macgrath's permission?" he asked,
+stupefied.
+
+"Why in the world should I bother about asking Macgrath's permission?"
+answered Harry. "Of course he wouldn't give it to me."
+
+"Do you mean to say that you're going without it?"
+
+"Of course I'm going without it."
+
+Dimmock was bewildered rather than irritated, though Harry's course of
+action defied his authority quite as much as the coach's. "You'll have
+to be dropped from the squad, then, I'm afraid."
+
+"So I supposed."
+
+"Harry, do you mean to say this work means no more to you than that?"
+stammered Dimmock, all his convictions seething in his brain. "Haven't
+you got any more respect for your college and traditions than that?
+Don't you see what good discipline it is to buckle down to work and keep
+at it, whether you like it or not?"
+
+Harry waited a moment before replying, wondering how he could silence
+Dimmock without angering him.
+
+"That would all sound very well, if it were the dean and not the track
+captain that said it," he ventured.
+
+"I'm afraid I don't understand you, Harry." There was such a complete
+absence of anger in the other's tone that Harry felt a momentary
+outburst of sympathy for this honest, good-tempered creature.
+
+"I'm sorry, Judy," he said. "The fact is, you take track deadly
+seriously, and I don't. That's all there is to it. So we're bound to
+disagree."
+
+So Harry went to the North Carolina mountains and shot quail and rode
+horseback and played bridge and carried on generally with James and
+Beatrice and Trotty and eight or ten others of his age. When he returned
+to New Haven he went out to the track field and jumped and ran about as
+before, but nobody paid any attention to him. Nor was he asked to rejoin
+the training table.
+
+"It'll do him good to let his heels cool for a while," observed Dimmock
+to Macgrath.
+
+"That's all very well, but you'd better not let them cool too long, if
+you want to get a place in the hurdles with Harvard," granted the coach.
+
+"I was afraid all along we'd have to take him on again," said the other.
+"He gets better and better on the track all the time, and queerer and
+queerer every other way. I don't trust him."
+
+"He's a second Popham," said Macgrath.
+
+About a week before the Harvard meet Dimmock approached the second
+Popham and with very commendable absence of anything like false pride
+asked him if he would please put himself under Macgrath's orders for the
+next few days and run in the meet. Harry graciously consented. He
+hurdled abominably badly for a week, showing neither form nor speed;
+then he hurdled against Harvard and beat their best men by a safe
+margin. He won a first place, and his Y.
+
+But that did not make him any more popular in the track world.
+
+Later in the spring Beatrice came on for a visit, anxious to see the
+university that Harry had preferred to Oxford. She and Lady Fletcher
+stayed with Aunt Selina; presently Aunt Miriam went on and left Beatrice
+alone there. She and Aunt Selina struck up one of those unaccountable
+intimacies that occasionally arise between people of widely different
+ages.
+
+"I do like your relations," she once told Harry; "I like your country
+and your university and your friends well enough, but I like your people
+even better. I like your Uncle James, though I'm scared to death of him,
+and Aunt Cecilia of course is a dear; but I like Aunt Selina best. I
+never saw such a person! I didn't know you had her type in America. She
+makes Aunt Miriam look like a vulgar, blatant little upstart!"
+
+"I know," said Harry, laughing. "Did you tell Aunt Miriam that?"
+
+"Something to that effect, yes. She laughed, and said that she had
+always felt that way in her presence, too.--There's more about Aunt
+Selina than that, though; there's something wonderfully human about her,
+at bottom. I have an idea she could get nearer to me, if she wanted to,
+than almost any one else, just because her true self is so rare and
+remote."
+
+Both Harry and James saw a good deal of Beatrice during her visit. Harry
+was supposed to be in training again, and it was his interesting custom
+to dine discreetly at the training table at six o'clock and then dash
+out to his aunt's and eat another and much more sumptuous meal at seven.
+James was scandalized when he heard of this proceeding, but he carefully
+refrained from saying anything to Harry about it; he merely smiled
+non-committally when Harry, with a desire of drawing him out, rather
+flauntingly referred to it.
+
+"A few weeks ago he would have cursed me out," he thought; "lectured me
+up and down about it. Now he won't say anything because he's afraid it
+would bring on another scrap." The thought made him feel lonely and
+miserable.
+
+James was greatly taken with Beatrice; that was quite clear from the
+first. He was attracted by her beauty, and still more by her apparent
+indifference to it. He found her more frank and sensible than American
+girls, whose debutante conventionalities and mannerisms bored and
+irritated him. He could not conceive of Beatrice "guying" or "kidding
+him along" on slight acquaintance, as most of his American friends did,
+or of Beatrice openly dazzling him with her beauty, or using her
+prerogative of sex by making him "stand around" before other people.
+
+One evening after dinner Beatrice, accompanied by both the brothers, was
+walking down one drive and up the other, as the family were in the
+habit of doing on warm spring evenings.
+
+"Are you both prepared to hear something funny?" she asked.
+
+"Fire away," they answered, and she continued:
+
+"Well, I'm probably going to come back here next winter and live with
+Aunt Selina!"
+
+Harry gave a long whistle.
+
+"This from you! Are you actually going to turn Yankee, too?"
+
+"I'm going to give the Yankees a chance, at any rate! You see, there are
+reasons why life for me wouldn't be particularly pleasant at home next
+year.... I'm going back with Aunt Miriam after Commencement, as we had
+planned, to try to patch it up with Mama, and then, if all parties are
+agreeable, as I'm pretty sure they will be, I shall come back in the
+autumn. The idea is for me to keep house for Aunt Selina and be her
+companion generally. I shall receive a stipend for my valuable services,
+so that I shall have the comfortable feeling of earning something. Aunt
+Miriam thinks it's a fine plan. What do you think about it?"
+
+"I think it's simply top-hole, to use the expression of your native
+land. But won't you find New Haven a trifle dull, after London, and all
+that?"
+
+"I rather think I shall, but in a different way. I shall be quite busy,
+and I thought I'd go to some lectures and things in the university and
+learn something.--Why don't you say something, James?"
+
+"I think it's a wonderful idea." James had been thinking so hard he had
+forgotten to speak. Did he perhaps regret his lately-made decision not
+to come back and coach the football team, but to take advantage of a
+business opening in the Middle West? At any rate, he was startled to
+observe what a leap his heart gave when Beatrice said she was coming
+back. Was it possible, he asked himself, that he was really going to
+care for this girl, with her dark brown eyes and her aloof,
+aristocratic, unchallenging ways?...
+
+But he was undeniably glad she was coming back, and found occasion to
+tell her so more fully another time, when they were alone.
+
+"I'm particularly glad," he added, "on Harry's account. He needs some
+one to keep an eye on him; do you think you can do it?"
+
+"I've done that for some years," said Beatrice, smiling. "I've been more
+of a brother to him than you have, really. Why on earth did you never
+come over and see him all that time, James?"
+
+"Heaven knows.... I was lazy; I got in a rut. I wish I had, now."
+
+"Why, nothing's going wrong, I hope?"
+
+"Oh, damnably!--I beg your pardon. When he first came back he did
+certain things that used to get on my nerves, and I, like a fool, let it
+go on that way, thinking that he was all wrong and I was all right. It's
+only lately that I've come to see better ... and now, when he
+particularly needs some steadying influence, I can't give it to him. You
+see, he gets on other people's nerves, too; he and his ideas--"
+
+"Ideas?"
+
+"Yes; fool notions he got about the way things are done in England--"
+
+"Isn't that a trifle hard?"
+
+"Oh, the ideas may be all right, but not the way he applies them.... At
+any rate, they, or something else, are playing the deuce with his
+college course. He's getting in Dutch, all around--"
+
+"In Dutch," murmured Beatrice. "Oh, I do like that!" But James did not
+notice the interruption.
+
+"And while I see all this going on I have to stand aside and let it go
+on, because when I say anything it doesn't do any good, but only
+irritates him and makes him worse."
+
+"I see. Well, I'm always willing to do what I can for Harry, but I'm
+afraid I haven't any real influence over him, either."
+
+"Oh, yes, you have. He has the greatest respect for you."
+
+"Not nearly as much as you think." Her usually calm expression was
+clouded; she seemed disturbed about something. Why did James feel a
+momentary sinking of the heart when he noticed the seriousness of her
+face and manner? It was nothing, though; gone again in a second.
+Beatrice continued, in a more optimistic tone:
+
+"But I honestly don't think, James, that there's much to worry about. I
+don't mean that he mayn't get into scrapes, but I don't think that
+there's anything seriously wrong.... I have always had the greatest
+faith in him--not only in his intellect, but in his character. So has
+Uncle G.; he expects great things of him, says he has just that
+combination of intellect and balance that results in statues in public
+places."
+
+"The genius in the family is all confined to him; I'm glad you realize
+that!" James could not help being a little rasped by her harping on the
+good qualities of his brother, nor could he help showing it a little. He
+immediately felt rather ashamed of himself, however, for Beatrice
+replied, in a gently startled tone:
+
+"Why, James, how bitter! You don't expect me to fling bouquets at your
+very face, surely! I throw them at you when I'm talking to Harry!"
+
+"You must throw a good lot of them, then, for you see him alone often
+enough," was the somewhat gruff reply. Beatrice must have considered it
+rather a foolish remark, for she paid no attention to it.
+
+Harry's attitude toward her decision, as expressed in his next
+_tete-a-tete_ with her, was rather different from that of his brother.
+
+"Beatrice," said he, "of course I'm pleased as Punch about your coming
+here next year, both on my own account and on Aunt Selina's, and all
+that sort of thing; but I hope you won't think it rude of me if I ask
+why on earth you're doing it. Of course, I know there are family
+unpleasantnesses, and that you aren't particularly interested in London
+balls, but that doesn't explain to me why, when you really do occupy an
+enviable position over there, get asked everywhere worth going, in
+season and out, and all that, you should choose to be the paid companion
+of an old woman in a small New England town. And I don't believe it's
+Aunt Selina's _beaux yeux_!"
+
+"No!" said Beatrice, laughing; "I don't believe it's quite all that,
+either!"
+
+"What will people think about it over there?" went on Harry. "What'll
+your mother say?"
+
+"I'm afraid Mama will be perfectly delighted, even if she doesn't say
+so," replied Beatrice, serious again. "The truth is, Harry, poor Mama
+and I don't gee very well, somehow.... Jane is a great comfort to her--a
+perfect daughter--she came out this year, you know."
+
+"Is she as much of a social success as you?" asked Harry with that
+frankness that was characteristic of their relation.
+
+"Much more so--in a way. She uses her gifts to much more effect."
+
+"She's not nearly as good-looking as you," persisted Harry.
+
+It was a remark thoroughly in keeping with the spirit of their
+comradeship, the kind of remark, expressive of a plain truth, nothing
+more, that they prided themselves on making and taking between
+themselves without the least affectation or self-consciousness. Yet
+Beatrice simply could not keep pleasure from sounding in her voice as
+she replied:
+
+"Well, no; I suppose not. It's the only thing in which I have the better
+of her, though. I'm very--"
+
+She began her reply in the old spirit, but could not keep it up. She had
+started to say, "I'm very glad you think that," then stopped herself,
+then wished she had gone on. It would have been perfectly consistent
+with their old "man-to-man" attitude, if she could have said it in the
+right way!
+
+Harry noticed her halting, and looked up at her quickly. He saw that she
+was blushing. "Good Heavens!" he thought; "I hope Beatrice doesn't think
+I'm paying her compliments!" The incident was slight, but it brought a
+new and disturbing element into their relation. Indeed, in that one
+little moment they ceased to remain boy and girl in their attitude
+toward one another, and became man and woman. They met often enough on
+the old terms of frankness and intimacy, but sex interest and suspicion
+always lurked in the background, ready to burst out and break up things
+at any moment.
+
+The spring wore on; Commencement arrived; James was graduated. Aunt
+Miriam, the James Wimbournes and numerous youthful James Wimbournes came
+to stay with Aunt Selina and see him graduate. Beatrice was also there
+and Harry was of course on hand. He took little part in the graduation
+festivities and amused himself chiefly by showing his two eldest male
+cousins, Oswald and Jack, the sights of the university and incidentally
+making them look forward with a healthy dread to the day when as
+freshmen first they would come to Yale.
+
+"This is the swimming-pool," he would tell them; "it doesn't look very
+big now, does it? Perhaps not! But it _seems_ pretty big, I can tell
+you, when the sophomores dump you in there, in the pitch dark, and tell
+you it's half a mile to shore and you've got to swim! And you have to
+scramble out as best you can. _They_ won't help you!"
+
+"They don't do that to _every_ freshman, though, do they?" hopefully
+inquired Oswald, a nice, plump, yellow-haired, wide-eyed youth of
+fourteen or so, the image of his mother.
+
+"Yes, Muffins, indeed they do, every one, whether they can swim or not,"
+replied Harry seriously. (Oswald was called Muffins because he was
+considered by his playmates to look like one. This reason usually did
+not satisfy older people, but after all, they did not know him as well
+as those of his own age, and had no kick coming, at all.)
+
+"I say, Harry, it's awfully decent of you to tell us all these things
+beforehand, so that we shall be warned when the time comes!" This from
+Jack, who was twelve and dark and looked like his father.
+
+"Harold Wimbourne, what on earth have you been telling those children
+about Yale College?" was Aunt Cecilia's indignant comment on his powers
+of fiction. "Neither of them slept a wink last night, for thinking about
+what the sophomores would do to them; and Jack asked me quite seriously
+if he thought his father would mind much if he went to Harvard instead,
+because he didn't think he could ever swim well enough to live through
+his freshman year! You ought to be ashamed of yourself!"
+
+Harry laughed unfeelingly, and refused to abate one jot of the horrors
+of hazing. He even wished it were all true, that these innocent and
+happy boys might have to go through with it all, that some one would
+ever be miserable in college beside himself. He scarcely spoke to James
+during the last few days, though James remained cordial and cheery
+enough toward him. But he was unnaturally cordial and forbearing, and
+that drove Harry into despair, especially as there was copious reason
+why James, under normal conditions, should be neither cordial nor
+forbearing. Harry had, a fortnight or so before Commencement, just after
+training was broken up, taken part in one of those engagements with the
+forces of law and order with which undergraduates are wont to relieve
+the monotony of their humdrum existence. First there had been strong
+drink, and plenty of it, after which came a period of vague but
+delightful irresponsibility, culminating in much broken glass, a clash
+with policemen and two or three arrests.
+
+Harry had escaped this latter ignominy, but as his name enjoyed equal
+publicity with those of the more unfortunate revelers, it did him little
+good. Nothing could possibly be less to the liking of such a person as
+James, as Harry realized perfectly at the time. He participated in the
+affair neither because he liked strong drink nor because he disliked
+policemen, but chiefly with a sort of desperate desire to force James'
+hand, to make his brother take him severely to task and end their mutual
+coolness in one rousing scene of recrimination and forgiveness.
+
+But no such thing happened; James did not make the slightest reference
+to the business! Harry also remained silent on the subject, at first
+because of his amazement, then out of obstinacy, and finally because he
+was genuinely hurt. If James preferred that they should be strangers to
+each other, strangers they should be. Meanwhile James remained silent,
+of course, not because he did not take enough interest in his brother,
+but because he took too much. He refrained from mentioning the row
+because he was afraid that a discussion of it would merely bring on
+another quarrel, which he wished of all things to avoid.
+
+So the two brothers bade good-by to each other for the summer in
+misunderstanding and mistrust, though their outward behavior was cordial
+and brotherly enough. James, who was starting almost immediately for the
+West, smiled as he shook the hand of his brother, who was going abroad
+for the holidays and said, "Well, so long; look out for yourself and
+don't take any wooden money." Harry, also smiling, replied in the same
+vein; but the smile died on his lips and the words turned to gall in his
+mouth as he thought what a bitter travesty this was of former partings,
+when their gaiety was either natural or intended to hide the sorrow of
+parting, and not, as now, wholly forced and affected to conceal the
+relief that each could not but feel in being far from the other.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XII
+
+AN ACT OF GOD
+
+
+It was five o'clock in the afternoon and five degrees above zero. It was
+also very windy, which made it seem colder to everybody except the
+thermometer; and as the thermometer alone exhibited signs of being able
+to stand a temperature of twenty or thirty or even forty degrees colder
+without suffering disagreeable consequences, that seemed rather unfair.
+For the wind, which was blowing not in hysterical gusts but in the calm,
+relentless, all-day-and-all-night, forty-to sixty-mile gale that you
+only get west of the Great Lakes, _did_ make it colder; there was no
+doubt about that. Else why did every one keep out of it as much as
+possible; walk on the protected side of the street, seek shelter in
+doorways while waiting for trolley cars, and so forth? Of course the
+wind made you colder; so much colder that when you were sheltered from
+it, if only for a moment, you felt comparatively warm, though it was
+still five degrees above zero. Unless, that is, you happened to be
+standing over one of those grated openings in the sidewalk that belched
+forth their welcome though inexplicable gusts of warm air into the outer
+world; if you could get a place over one of those--gee, but you were the
+lucky guy!
+
+That was the way you phrased it, at any rate, if you happened to be
+twelve years old and a newsboy with an income of--well, say thirty
+dollars a year, if that sounds sufficiently insufficient to provide
+anything approaching decent clothes, decent food and a decent place to
+live. If not, make it as little as you like. The point is that the
+annual income of a certain ten-year-old newsboy, by name of Stodger
+McClintock, was preeminently, magnificently insufficient to provide any
+of those commodities. As a consequence of which, Stodger was cold. As
+another consequence of which Stodger, the gay, the debonair, the
+unemotional, the anything but tearfully inclined, was very nearly in
+tears. People do actually suffer from the cold occasionally, even in
+this effete and over-protected age, and Stodger was suffering. The
+volcanic opening was all very well, but he could not stay there long.
+And the prospects for the night were bad, and bad even for supper....
+
+There were tears in James' eyes also as he hurried along from work, but
+they were entirely due to the wind. As soon as he perceived Stodger,
+however, who dashed out at him with the customary "Here's yer paper,
+mister!" at an unexpected place in the side street instead of at the
+corner as per custom, he realized that his (Stodger's) tears were not
+entirely due to the wind.
+
+"Well, Stodger! What are you doing down here?" he cried cheerfully.
+
+"Trine t' git woim." Stodger's diction at best was imperfect and it was
+now further impeded by a certain nasal fluency, the joint result of the
+cold and contemplation of domestic imperfections. But James understood,
+perfectly well.
+
+"Well, Stodger, it is cold, I'll have to grant you that!" he rejoined,
+and instituted fumbling operations into the pocket where he kept his
+loose silver. "Give me a _Star_ and a _Sun_ and a _Mercury_, too, will
+you? This is no time for economy; the announcement of the all-American
+football team is out to-night. Give me one of every paper you have!"
+
+Pecuniary transaction ensued, parallel with conversation.
+
+"And how do _you_ like this weather, Stodger?"
+
+"Me? Oh, _I_ don't mind."
+
+"Don't you? Well, I do, I'm afraid. This is just a little too cold for
+my pleasure. But then I'm not a husk, like you."
+
+"Well--" there was concession in Stodger's voice--"it's loike this. Some
+guys minds it, 'n' then they don't like t' unbutton their coats 'n' fork
+out a penny fer a paper. 'N' that makes bum bizniss. See?" Print is
+miserably inadequate to give an idea of Stodger's consonants.
+
+"I see. Stodger, did you ever hear of an act of God?"
+
+"Huh?"
+
+"Well, never mind. A cold snap like this is an act of God. Some natural
+cataclysm, something that can't be prevented or even foreseen. Well,
+sir, opposed as I am to indiscriminate giving, I'm going to break a rule
+this time. All bets are off when an act of God comes along. Here's half
+a dollar. Can you get something to eat and keep yourself warm over night
+with that?"
+
+"Sure I kin." Stodger grinned broadly for a second or two; then his face
+clouded. "Aw, naw. Not off you. I couldn't take that off you." He meant
+that only fools gave away money, and he did not want to put James in
+that category.
+
+"Why not?" James' smile, his unruffled good-humor, had their effect.
+Surely a god that smiled and looked like that could not be quite a fool,
+even if he gave away money. "Now stop your guff; take the cash and cut
+along. So long!... That was my trolley, dash it; you and your confounded
+scruples have made me miss my car, Stodger!... Well, let's take a look
+at the all-American football team. Stoddard of Harvard, Brown of the
+Army, Steele of Michigan...." He ran his eye down the list till
+interrupted by a sharp exclamation from his friend.
+
+"Gee, but he's a bum choice!"
+
+"Who?"
+
+"Steele."
+
+"Steele? Oh, I'm not so sure. He's death on running back punts...."
+
+"Aw, he _is_ not! I tell yer, he couldn't hang onto a punt if 'twas
+handed to him on flypaper by a dago in a dress suit, let alone run with
+it! My ole gran'mudder c'n run better'n him, any day!" Domestic troubles
+being for the nonce in abeyance Stodger was in a mood to let his tongue
+run free on a favorite topic.
+
+"Well, we'll have to put your grandmother in at all-America left half
+next year." Stodger knew as well as anybody when he was being laughed
+at, and held his peace. "I didn't know you were such a football fan,
+Stodger."
+
+"Aw, yes. I'm some fan." This without enthusiasm, in the bored tone in
+which one agrees to the statement of a self-evident fact.
+
+"Well, I wonder. Stodger, do you think you could recognize any
+all-America player if you saw him on the street, in ordinary togs?"
+
+"Sure I could."
+
+"How many years back?"
+
+"T'ree years ... oh, more; four, five years, mebbe!"
+
+"Well, I'm afraid you lose, Stodger!"
+
+"Aw, gwawn! Try me an' see!"
+
+"You've lost already, I tell you. You've been talking to an all-America
+player for the last ten minutes and never knew it!"
+
+"Aw, wotcha trine t' hand me! Run along 'n' tell it to the cop on the
+corner! Tell it to me gran'mudder, if you like; _she_'ll believe yer!
+You can't slip one like that on _me_, I tell yer!" Stodger's contempt
+was magnificent, but he rather marred the effect of it by adding
+suspiciously "Wotcheer?" which amounted to a confession that he might be
+wrong, after all.
+
+"Two years ago. Take a good look now, Stodger; see if you can't
+recognize me." James turned so that the sunset glow fell more strongly
+on his face. Stodger looked with all his eyes, but remained unconvinced.
+
+"Line, er back?" he inquired.
+
+"Back."
+
+"I gotcha now! Wimboine! Wimboine! Right half! Yale!" But experience had
+taught him that such dreams usually fade, and he went on, disappointed:
+"Aw, naw. Can't slip _that_ on me. You're not that Wimboine. You look a
+little bit like him, but you're not _that_ Wimboine. Brudder, p'raps.
+_You're_ no football player."
+
+"Why not?"
+
+"Too thin. _You_ c'd never tear through the line th' way _that_ feller
+did."
+
+"Oh, rot; we'll end this, here and now." James fumbled at length beneath
+his fur coat and produced the end of a watch-chain on which dangled a
+little gold football with his name, that of his college and the date of
+his achievement on it. Stodger, convinced, simply stared. It was as
+though Jupiter had stepped right down from Olympus. James, with a smile
+at his consternation, resumed his paper for the last minute or two
+before his car arrived.
+
+"Say, mister! Mister Wimboine! You got my tail twisted that time, all
+right! I'm a goat, I'm a simp, I'm a boob! You got my number! Call me
+wotch like!"
+
+"All right, Stodger, I will." James spoke and smiled through his
+reading. He had almost ceased to think of Stodger, who was more
+entertaining when incredulous, and was reading merely to kill time till
+his car arrived. Stodger's tongue was still wagging:--
+
+"Say, dey was a guy useter live down Chicago called Schmidt--Slugger
+Schmidt, that was a cracker jack--middle-weight--ever hear of him? I
+knew him, oncet ... he had a little practise bout wid Riley th' other
+night--you know, Hurrican Riley?--and laid him out in t'ree roun's....
+Say, mister, there goes yer car! That's the Poik Street car went!"
+
+"What? Oh, did it? Never mind; I'm going to walk." James was off; off
+almost before the words were out of his mouth, and Stodger, struck by
+the sudden curtness of his tone was afraid he had outraged the feelings
+of the god. Mister Wimboine had clearly been deeply displeased about
+something, and Stodger was sure it must have been something more than
+the all-America football team.
+
+Of course Stodger was not really responsible for James' displeasure and
+his sudden determination to walk the three miles that lay between him
+and his club and dinner, any more than was the composition of the
+all-America football team. It was something much more serious; something
+that made bodily exercise imperative lest cerebration around and around
+one little particular point should make him dizzy. For it was a very
+small thing that cerebration was busy on, even if it did represent a
+great deal to James; only a tiny paragraph at the bottom of the first
+page of one of the evening papers. The single headline had first caught
+his eye:--"Rates Heartache at $40,000," and then with unbelieving eyes
+he read on: "New Haven, Conn., Dec. 8. Myrtle Mowbray, a manicure living
+in this city, has filed a suit of breach of promise of marriage for
+$40,000 in the Superior Court here against Harold Wimbourne, a student
+in Yale University. Mr. Wimbourne is a member of an old and prominent
+New Haven family. He is a senior in the academic department."
+
+A sort of mental and emotional nausea overcame James as the meaning of
+those lines sank into his brain. The vulgar, degrading cynicism of the
+headline! Breach of promise, scandal, newspaper publicity--that was the
+sort of thing that happened to other people, not to one's self. Such
+things simply did not occur in families one knew, much less in families
+by the name of Wimbourne. James had always thought of that name as
+apart, aloof from such things, exempt from all undesirable publicity.
+His family pride was none the less strong for being so unconscious, so
+dormant; now that it was outraged it flamed forth in a scorching blaze.
+
+So loathing gave way to anger, and anger lasted a full mile and a half.
+It would have lasted longer if it had been concentrated on one person or
+thing, instead of directed against several persons, several things,
+several sets of circumstances, the order of things in general. For James
+was not angry at Harry alone; even he realized that before the mile and
+a half were up. He was angry at him at first, but that soon passed off
+somewhat; his anger seemed even to be seeking other objects,
+unconsciously--the Mowbray woman, Uncle James, himself, Yale University,
+the whole nature of man.
+
+But cerebration had a chance to get in a good deal of its fell work
+during those three miles. As he swung open the front door of the club
+and passed into the main lobby, with its teeming confusion of electric
+lights and bellboys, he was conscious of nothing but a quiet, deep,
+corroding disgust that seemed to be as old as all time. It seemed as if
+he had known of this disgrace for years; had almost had time to outlive
+it, in fact. His first impulse was to go into the bar and annex himself
+to one of the cheerful groups that would be congregating there at this
+hour, and turn his mind to something else. But almost immediately he
+remembered that practically every one there would also have read the
+evening paper, and he shuddered at the thought of their pitying glances.
+
+Automatically following his daily custom he cheeked his coat and hat at
+the cloak room and collected his mail from his post-box. Then he went
+straight to the one room in the club where he thought he was likely to
+be alone; a small reading-room usually popular in the afternoon but
+deserted by early evening. He found it empty, as he had expected. With a
+sigh of relief he turned out all the electric lights and threw himself
+on a couch in front of the open wood fire--a graceful though unnecessary
+compliment on the part of the club management to meteorological
+conditions.
+
+But unluckily his glance fell on the unopened letters he still held in
+his hand, and immediately his trouble was on him again. One of them he
+recognized as coming from his Uncle James and the other, bearing the
+post-mark of New Haven, was from Beatrice. With a slight groan of
+combined resignation and disgust he tore open his uncle's letter and
+read it by the flickering light of the fire.
+
+ Dear James:
+
+ Your young brother has made more of a mess of it than we hoped
+ would be the case. The Mowbray woman has brought suit for
+ $40,000, and is likely to get it, or a good part of it,
+ according to Raynham, whom I saw about the business yesterday.
+ She has letters and a spoken promise in the presence of
+ witnesses. We have nothing except the knowledge that Harry was
+ drunk when he wrote the letters and drunk when he spoke the
+ words, which is not much comfort. Still, Raynham thinks she can
+ be made to settle out of court, especially if we take our time.
+ We have got to show her first that the world will not come to
+ an end because a Wimbourne has been mixed up with a
+ woman--which it won't. It will be a matter, Raynham thinks, of
+ $15,000 at least; probably more.
+
+ What is going to become of the boy? Have you any influence
+ over him? If not, who has? It is about time somebody exerted
+ some on him, other than bad. He has much to fight against.
+ "Your aunt sends her love. Your affect. uncle,
+
+ JAMES WIMBOURNE.
+
+In spite of his fatigue and his disgust, James smiled as he finished the
+letter. It was so characteristic of Uncle James; the most conventional
+sentences, the ones that seemed to mean least, really meant the most.
+"Your aunt sends her love"; only a person who knew Uncle James could
+appreciate the consciously suppressed humor of that phrase. As if Aunt
+Cecilia were not in such a vortex of conflicting emotions over the
+affair that such a conventional message would not be as far from her as
+Bagdad! "He has much to fight against"; Harry had much to fight against;
+Uncle James knew what, and he knew that James also knew. Connotative
+meanings like these more than atoned for the unflinching frankness of
+certain other phrases.
+
+On the whole, James felt better for having read the letter, and opened
+Beatrice's with a lighter heart.
+
+ Dear James; (he read)
+
+ Jack Trotwood has just been here and told me that that
+ unspeakable woman is actually going to sue Harry for breach of
+ promise. I tried to get him to tell more, but he said that
+ that was all he had been able to get out of Harry. It's too
+ awful! You can imagine what a time I've been through, seeing
+ him at least once a week and not being able to say a word about
+ the whole business. I've had to depend on Jack Trotwood for all
+ my information, and naturally he hasn't wanted to say much. Do
+ you mean to say Harry hasn't written you all this term? I
+ cannot understand it at all.
+
+ Aunt Selina seems quite cut up about it, and wishes you were
+ here. 'Tell James to come,' she said when I told her I would
+ write you. I must confess, though, that I don't see what good
+ you could do--now. Of course, terrible as this suit is, it does
+ relieve things in one way, at least. Once we're quite sure it's
+ merely money she's after, it doesn't seem quite so bad. I even
+ think it is better now than it was early in the autumn, when we
+ thought he was actually fond of her.
+
+ There is no other news to give you; as you can imagine, we
+ have not been thinking of much else. Poor Harry, how sorry I am
+ for him! How much I wish I could help him, and how little I can
+ do!
+
+ As ever yours,
+
+ BEATRICE.
+
+This letter was less comforting than the other. Beatrice's words seemed
+to James to carry a veiled reproach with them; to implicate him much
+more closely in Harry's disgrace than he had as yet thought of
+implicating himself. "I don't see what good you could do--now;" "better
+now than it was in the early autumn--" such sentences could not but have
+their sting for the sensitive mind, and James was sensitive when Harry
+was concerned, and even more so when Beatrice was.
+
+Had he been negligent in regard to Harry? Oh, yes, he was perfectly
+willing to admit that he had, now that he came to think it over, though
+he would rather have had anybody other than Beatrice point out the fact
+to him--and that, doubtless, was because a comment from Beatrice would
+have twice the force of the same comment uttered by any one else. He had
+never really put himself out for Harry in any way, since the days when
+England seemed too far for him to venture to discover what the years
+were making of him. In the critical period of his senior and Harry's
+sophomore year he had shown himself entirely incapable of giving the
+friendship and sympathy and guidance that were needed. Jack Trotwood,
+and not he himself, had been Harry's best friend, in every sense of the
+phrase, for three years and more. And after graduation, he had come to
+Minneapolis.
+
+Then this degrading affair with the manicure. James had heard of that
+first through Beatrice, for Harry's letters, which had arrived at
+regular, though rather long, intervals, had ceased abruptly in
+September, at the beginning of the college year. That had been almost a
+relief to James. Harry's letters had been calculated to widen rather
+than bridge the gulf between them. They had been amusing and always
+cleverly written. A letter written on the previous Tap Day, dated
+conspicuously "Thursday, May 18, 7 P.M." (two hours after Harry had
+failed to receive an election to any senior society) had been a perfect
+masterpiece of omission. It ran pleasantly along on the weather, the
+outward appearance of the university, sundry little incidents
+of no importance or interest, the economic condition of the
+country--everything except Tap Day, himself, anything that would
+interest James. This letter had irritated James beyond all expression,
+yet at the same time he admired it for what it was worth, and hated
+himself for admiring it.
+
+And so, as he was obliged to learn from other sources of Harry's missing
+a senior society, so he was dependent on others for all his information
+_in re_ Myrtle Mowbray. In October Beatrice had written him that Harry
+had been seen much in the society of the woman, who conducted her
+business in connection with a barber shop situated conveniently for the
+patronage of the student body. Jack Trotwood had also written, somewhat
+timidly, to the same effect, evidently much perplexed about where his
+truest duty to Harry lay. Apparently there had been motor parties to
+neighboring country inns, more or less conspicuous carryings-on in
+restaurants about town, and so forth. Such tidings became more and more
+acute for a month, and then ceased. There was reason for hoping that the
+nonsense was all over. Then the thunderbolt of to-day.
+
+James had not really been much worried, before to-day. He had caught a
+glimpse of "the Mowbray woman," as he always thought of her, one day in
+the previous June, while in New Haven for Commencement. He had been
+strolling along Chapel Street with a group of classmates, and one of
+them called his attention to a female form emerging from a shop door,
+giving in a discreet undertone a brief explanation of her celebrity,
+ending with a vivid word of commendation--"Some fluff." James looked,
+and saw a pretty face. It had been but a fraction of a second, and the
+face was turned away from him; but it was enough to leave quite a
+lasting impression on his mind--an impression that had not been without
+its effect on his reception of the news of Harry's infatuation. A pretty
+face! Well, when all was said and done, Harry had not been the first man
+of his acquaintance to become enamored of a pretty face--and get over
+it. He did not approve of the alleged infatuation; the thought of it
+gave him considerable uneasiness. But, helped out by the impression, his
+optimistic temperament had battled with the uneasiness and in the end
+overcome it; prevented it, certainly, from growing into anything like
+anxiety, anything that would necessitate drastic and disturbing
+measures, such as pulling up stakes, for instance, and hurrying New
+Haven-ward.... Oh, how loathsomely lazy and indifferent he had been, now
+that he looked back on it all!
+
+A pretty face! The memory of it was still sharply out-lined on the back
+of James' brain and drove introspection and self-recrimination into
+momentary abeyance. A clear, slightly olive complexion, rising to a
+faint pink on the cheeks--artificial? Not as he remembered it; there was
+no suggestion of the chorus-girl--sharply-drawn eyebrows and dark hair.
+Above, a hat of some sort; below, a suit, preferably of dark blue serge.
+The impression had been recurrent in James' mind during these past
+months; not soon after it was received, in the summer; since then. There
+was something irritating and tantalizing about this circumstance; it was
+as though the impression had been strengthened by a second view. Where
+had he seen that face again, if at all? Yes, he had seen it, somewhere;
+he was almost certain of it. He was absolutely certain of it; he could
+remember everything--except the time and place. Which after all were
+important adjuncts to definite recollection--! No, he would not laugh
+himself out of it; he was sure. He would remember all about it some time
+when he least expected it.
+
+He left it at that, and listlessly lay at full length watching the fire
+and allowing his thoughts to wander from the all-absorbing topic and its
+octopus-like ramifications. The fire was fascinating to watch; he loved
+open fires and wished they would have one in this room every evening. It
+would be almost like a home to come back to, after work. It was
+particularly pleasant to watch, like this, in an otherwise dark room, as
+it cast its intermittent flare on the walls and furniture. It brought
+out the rich warm tones in the brown leather of the chairs and the oak
+of the wainscot, and picked out small particles of gilt here and there
+in the ceiling decoration, and set them twinkling back in a cheerful,
+drowsy way. From the dim outside world beyond the open door came
+occasional sounds of club life; the distant clatter of crockery, the
+swish of a passing elevator, a voice finding fault with a club servant.
+James listened to them at first, in a half-amused, idle sort of way;
+then gradually they faded from his consciousness and he was aware of
+nothing but the fire and its flickering yellow light.
+
+He watched the fire intently, absorbedly, with the lazy concentration
+with which a tired brain often fastens itself on some physical object,
+as though to crowd out other thoughts clamoring for admittance. The fire
+was beginning to burn low now, with flames that never rose more than a
+few inches above the logs. Every few moments a small quantity of
+half-burnt wood dropped off and fell to the glowing bed of coals
+beneath, and the flames broke out afresh in the place it fell from.
+James watched this process with a growing sense of expectancy; he seemed
+to be always waiting, waiting for the next fall; yet when the next fall
+came he was still waiting.... Was it only the fall of the coals that he
+was waiting for? It must be something else, something that had nothing
+to do with the fire at all; something much more important; something
+that he longed not to have come, yet, and at the same time wished were
+over.... He seemed now not to be lying at full length, but sitting on
+the broad arm of a chair. The fire-light's glow fell no longer on
+leather and oak, but on old flowered chintz and mahogany.... Now he was
+sitting no longer; he was bending over--bending low over something
+white; turning his ear so as to catch certain words that some one was
+uttering in a whisper; words that were indelibly burnt on his brain;
+words that were as inseparable from his being as life....
+
+Then in an instant the room, the fire, everything vanished; and in their
+place, filling his whole consciousness--that face! He knew it perfectly
+now, exactly when, where, all about it; no room for mistake or doubt any
+more! He started upright on the couch; his whole world seemed suddenly
+illumined by a blinding flash of light. In another instant he was aware
+that somebody had turned on the electric light, and of a face staring
+quizzically into his. He heard a voice.
+
+"Hello, you all alone in here, Wimbourne? You must be fond of the
+dark!--What are you looking so all-fired pleased about, I wonder?"
+
+"Oh--Laffan! How are you?... Nothing much; I just thought of something,
+that's all."
+
+"Congratulations on your thoughts. I'm looking for some one to dine
+with; I suppose you've eaten? It's late--"
+
+"Whew--nearly eight! No, I've not eaten; shall we go up together?"
+
+They started to leave the room, but James stopped abruptly in the
+doorway, suddenly practical, master of himself, of the whole situation.
+
+"I say, Laffan, you're a lawyer, aren't you?"
+
+"I attempt to be."
+
+"Well, I want to consult you, professionally, if you'll let me. Consider
+me a client! Now, what I want to know is this; suppose a--"
+
+"Oh, rot, man--not on an empty stomach! Come along upstairs; you can
+tell me all about it while you eat!"
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIII
+
+SARDOU
+
+
+About a week later James went to the head of his firm, the classmate's
+father who had offered him his position, and asked for a few days' leave
+of absence.
+
+"Why didn't you go to Smith?" said his employer, naming the head of the
+department in which James was working.
+
+"I didn't think he'd let me off without your leave, sir."
+
+"Hm.... You must go, must you?"
+
+"I'm afraid I must. Indeed, I'm bound to say, sir, that I shall go,
+leave or no leave."
+
+"Hm. Well, you can go; but if you take more than half a week it'll have
+to come off your annual vacation."
+
+"Thank you, sir, I shan't need more than that," said James and the
+interview was closed. No word was spoken of the reason for James'
+departure. Jonathan McClellan, founder and owner of the McClellan
+Automobile Company, knew a thing or two beside how to run an automobile
+business. He also read the papers.
+
+That was on a Thursday. In the course of the evening James conducted an
+interview with his friend Laffan and at midnight or thereabouts he took
+train for Chicago. He proceeded next day to New York, and thence, on
+Saturday, to New Haven, arriving there early in the afternoon.
+
+He went straight from the station to the law offices of Messrs. Raynham
+and Rummidge and remained there upwards of half an hour. Every sign of
+satisfaction was visible on his face as he emerged, but Raynham, who
+escorted him to the outer door, seemed not nearly so well pleased.
+
+"I wish you'd change your mind, even now, and leave it to us," he said,
+just loud enough for the stenographer in the outer office not to hear.
+
+"Plain enough sailing, now," replied James, smiling encouragingly. "I
+don't think you need to worry."
+
+"Well, if you get into trouble, don't lose your head or your temper, or
+try to bluff. Just say you'll leave the rest to your lawyers, and get
+out!"
+
+James proceeded up Chapel Street in excellent spirits. A light snow was
+falling, melting on the pavements but covering the grassy expanse of the
+Green with a soft white blanket, and bringing each gaunt black branch of
+the elm trees into strong relief. James walked on the Green side of the
+street, so as to avoid the greetings of possible acquaintances, and kept
+his eyes on the broad square. He noticed that some elm trees had been
+clipped and others felled since he had last been in town; he was sorry
+to see them go and wished the authorities could find some way of
+preserving them better....
+
+He walked unhesitatingly into the shop and, disregarding the obsequious
+gestures of the line of barbers, went straight to the very end, where he
+knew he would find her, with her glass-topped table and her instruments
+and her disgusting little basin.... She was there, but a broad black
+back obtruded itself in front of her.
+
+"One moment," she said, looking up and smiling.
+
+James retreated a few steps to a row of chairs placed there for the use
+of the expectant. He sat down, and cursed himself for a fool. What
+business had he here? Why hadn't he left it all to Raynham, like a
+sensible person? He knew he would mess it all now, in spite of
+everything; he remembered stories of commanders who had been ousted out
+of impregnable positions by the mere confident attitude of their
+opponents. It was her appearance, her manner, her faultless smile, that
+unnerved him. It was, as he mentally phrased it to himself, because she
+looked "so damned refined." Never had he dreamed it would be as bad as
+this.
+
+The black back shuffled inchoately out of his vision; his moment had
+come. He walked forward.
+
+"You are Miss Mowbray, are you not?" he asked, speaking slowly and
+steadying his voice with difficulty.
+
+"Yes?"
+
+"My name is Wimbourne. I think you know my brother.... I would like to
+talk to you, if I might. When will you be at liberty?"
+
+"Why shouldn't we talk right here?" she said cheerfully. "If you'll sit
+down there.... You had better let me tend to your nails--they need it."
+
+"Very well." James sat down. He felt his courage returning; her
+self-possession stimulated him. Not one shadow of a change of expression
+had passed over her face when he told her he was Harry's brother; her
+manner remained the perfection of professional cordiality. Well, if she
+could show nerve, he could, too.
+
+She filled her bowl with warm water and arranged her instruments with
+perfect composure. When she was ready James surrendered his right hand.
+
+"Miss Mowbray," he began at length, "as I understand the matter, you are
+suing my brother for breach of promise. Is that right?"
+
+"It is."
+
+"Well, I'm sorry. It's a bad business. Bad for you as well as for him,
+because you can't possibly win. Now, Miss Mowbray, I will be frank with
+you. You are not going to get that forty thousand dollars--your suit
+will not even get into court. I know that, but I don't want to have to
+go into the reasons why. I don't want scenes, I hate them; I want to
+make this interview as easy and as short as possible, so I will open it
+with an offer. I will give you five hundred dollars if you will agree to
+withdraw your suit and clear out of town, within a week. Do you accept?"
+
+"I do not." Her smile was more than cordial now, there was pity in it.
+"Why do you suppose I took the trouble to sue for forty thousand
+dollars, if I would be content with five hundred, Mr. Wimbourne?"
+
+"Oh, must we go into arguments? Why can't you simply take my word for it
+that your suit is impossible, and close with me? Five hundred
+dollars--think what it means! It would pay all your costs and leave you
+enough to start in with somewhere else."
+
+"The sum is just eighty times too small."
+
+"You won't, then? Think it over a little! I'll leave the offer open for
+five minutes; you needn't answer definitely till then."
+
+James was thoroughly sure of himself and at ease now; he smiled to
+himself with a certain grim pleasure at his little touch of melodrama,
+reminiscent of--what? Sardou? A common trick, of course, but never
+without its effect. He ceased thinking about it, and watched the clock.
+Presently he was aware that his companion, always busy with her scraping
+and cleaning and rubbing, was speaking in a low, calm voice.
+
+"No, Mr. Wimbourne, I am not quite the fool you take me for, I'm afraid.
+You may not know it, but your brother has treated me very badly. He
+deserves to be punished. A man cannot make a fool of a woman, as he has
+of me, and get off scot free. There is such a thing as law and justice
+for those that are abused, and I have been abused. I should be very
+silly now if I did not go on and take all that is coming to me. I shall
+only be taking my right, Mr. Wimbourne; remember that. Fun is all very
+well if it is innocent fun; but when it hurts other people it has to be
+paid for."
+
+"The five minutes are up," said James; "but I will willingly extend the
+time if there is any chance of your reconsidering. What do you think?"
+
+No answer. James watched her calm face, with its pleasing and
+well-chiseled features, enlivened now by only the merest suggestion of a
+smile that was not really there, but still seemed latent, ready for
+instant use if called upon. About the mouth hung a shade of impatience,
+of obstinacy; anything else? No, assuredly no, search as he would. She
+was extraordinary!
+
+"Oh, dear," he said with a gentle sigh, "you will go in for all the
+unpleasantness, I'm afraid.... Miss Mowbray, you have no right to sue my
+brother for breach of promise. You have been acting under false
+pretenses to him from the first. You were married to a man called Edward
+Jennings, in the city of Minneapolis, on the 3rd of last September."
+
+"You have proofs, no doubt?" The tone was sharp and defiant, the smile
+scornful and satirical, but she did blench--no doubt of it. James' heart
+leaped within him.
+
+"Oh, yes--lots, right here in my breast pocket. Tiresome things, but
+lawyers love them. If you will release my right hand for a moment--" He
+chose to smile ingratiatingly at her, and it gave him a little thrill of
+revenge to observe how obviously forced her answering smile was. She was
+not proof against her own weapons. But his triumph faded almost
+immediately, and pity took its place. Poor thing, what a ridiculous game
+she had been playing! How could it possibly succeed? Could she not have
+known that some one who knew of her marriage would be sure to turn up at
+the wrong moment and spoil the whole affair? She looked so small, so
+defenseless, so crumpled as she sat there, waiting for him to produce
+his proofs; surely she was never made for this sort of a career! Then
+her smiles of a little while ago came back to him, and he reflected that
+perhaps she was, after all.
+
+"First, here is a little history of your career. You were born in
+Minneapolis, June 16, 188-. At the age of sixteen you went to New York
+City, where you entered the theatrical profession. For some years you
+were on the vaudeville stage, playing occasionally in New York, but
+mostly on the road. Your stage name was Rosa Montagu. You left the
+profession about three years ago, and have been engaged in this place as
+manicure for a little less than two years. You resumed the name of
+Myrtle Mowbray, which as far as I can make out is your own, on leaving
+the stage, but you were married, last September, under your stage name.
+Here is a copy of your marriage lines, sworn to by the Minneapolis
+License Bureau. Here is a photograph of you as Rosa Montagu...."
+"Suppose you let me finish manicuring your hands, Mr. Wimbourne." James
+replaced the papers in his pocket and his hand on the glass-topped
+table, and professional duties were resumed. They continued in silence
+for some time; neither party really had much to say now. It occurred to
+James that even now she might be trying to take him in by her
+indifference, to "bluff" him; but a careful study of her face dispelled
+the idea. He admired her nerve now no less than before.
+
+"Are you satisfied, Miss Mowbray?" he asked at length.
+
+"No. I'm beaten, though." James liked the reply immensely; liked, also,
+the manner in which it was given--hardly betraying anything more than
+good-humored disgust.
+
+"When can I see you again to-day or to-morrow?" he asked again after a
+short pause. "There will be papers to sign, and that sort of thing."
+
+"Is it possible that Mr. Raynham sent you out without a written
+statement for me to sign in your pocket?" she rejoined, looking
+fearlessly up at him.
+
+"No--that is--yes, he did." Of course he had not, but James was already
+planning a little _coup_ of his own not included in Mr. Raynham's
+arrangements.
+
+"Well, could you come back here this evening? Toward ten? We close then,
+on Saturdays."
+
+"Very well."
+
+Both were silent for some time. At last, when the manicuring was almost
+completed, James said with a sudden burst of friendly curiosity:
+
+"Honestly, Miss Mowbray, why did you do it? Get married to him first, I
+mean."
+
+She looked coldly up at him. "I really don't see why I should answer
+that question, Mr. Wimbourne."
+
+"Of course not. There's not the slightest reason why you should answer
+it, if you don't want to."
+
+She was not proof against his candor or his smile. She smiled back, in
+spite of herself, without rancor or affectation.
+
+"I have an idea that you are quite an unusual young man, Mr. Wimbourne.
+You are, without doubt, the worst enemy I have in the world, and yet you
+give me the impression of being a friend. I think I like you better than
+your brother."
+
+James made no reply to this, but only reddened slightly, and she went
+on:
+
+"I married him because I lacked the courage not to. I was afraid to burn
+my bridges behind me. He had been wanting me to for a long time, and at
+the last he became very impatient.... It was the only way I could keep
+him, and I dared not let him go. Things had not been going well here....
+So I went back and married him, on condition that it was to be kept an
+absolute secret. I was determined to come out here and try my luck for
+one more year.... Of course I was very sorry that I did it, this fall.
+But I determined to go through with ... the business, for there was a
+big prize at stake."
+
+"And you never knew he had a brother in Minneapolis?"
+
+"No--he simply told me he had an elder brother in the West. I had no
+suspicion of anything; it seemed perfectly safe. How did you find out,
+anyway, if I may ask?"
+
+"I happened to see you--perhaps a minute after you were married, coming
+out of the marriage license office, with a man. Compromising! You had
+been pointed out to me before, here, so I knew what you looked like. But
+what made you so keen to go through with--with the business? You don't
+look like that kind, somehow...."
+
+She gave the last finishing touch to his hand and started to gather up
+her belongings before replying. "You don't know what it is not to have
+plenty of money, Mr. Wimbourne, or you would not ask that question. You
+don't know what it is to watch other people sailing by in sixty
+horsepower limousines and realize that you would look every bit as well
+there as any of them, and better than most, and to realize, above all,
+that you could make so much more out of your wealth than most of them. I
+am under no delusions about myself; I know perfectly well that I'm not a
+manicure type. I have brains, I have good looks, I have social
+possibilities. Only, I happened to be born without money or social
+position, and the handicap is too great.... Well, it's all up now.
+There's no hope for anything better now."
+
+The tone in which she spoke these words was so perfectly quiet and
+resigned, so utterly lacking in vulgar desire to advertise her woes,
+that James felt deeply moved. He could not think of anything to say to
+reassure or encourage her. Presently he blurted out, desperately:
+
+"You've got a good husband in Edward Jennings, anyway. He's a good chap,
+according to all accounts...."
+
+She smiled, deprecatorily. "He's a nice boy. But he'll never make any
+money."
+
+James made up an excuse to consult Mr. Raynham again, and after that
+walked the snow-covered streets till dinner time. His first impulse was
+to look up Harry, but he discarded the idea; he would not see him, Aunt
+Selina, any one, till his task was done, every detail completed. He
+dined alone in an obscure restaurant and with some difficulty succeeded
+in frittering away the time till ten o'clock, at which hour he returned
+to the barber shop on Chapel Street.
+
+He proceeded at once to business, taking out two papers which he gave to
+Miss Mowbray to sign. She read and signed without comment. When she had
+finished he said: "Would you mind delivering this for me?" and handed
+her an unsealed envelope bearing the simple superscription "Mr. Edward
+Jennings."
+
+Miss Mowbray fingered the envelope indecisively a moment; then she
+opened it and took out the contents.
+
+She rose from her seat and glanced apprehensively at James. "I
+can't--we--thank you, but I simply can't accept this," she whispered.
+
+"Nobody asked you to do anything, except deliver the letter," replied
+James cheerfully. "I'd like to know what business you have opening
+other people's letters, anyway. It isn't nice.--Wedding present, you
+know," he went on, with a change of voice; "I'm rather hoping to have
+the honor of giving you your first. Please try to make him accept it
+from me, won't you? Good-by!"
+
+He shook her hand quickly and was actually off before she had time to
+offer another word of objection.
+
+He made his way straight across the snowy street to Harry's rooms in
+Vanderbilt Hall. There was no answer to his knock, but the door yielded
+to a turn of the knob--how like Harry to leave it unlocked! The room was
+dark and empty, but he went in and found the embers of a fire dying on
+the hearth. He threw off his hat and overcoat, struck a light and looked
+about for materials with which to rebuild the fire.
+
+In a few minutes the logs were blazing merrily before him. He turned out
+the gas, drew up an armchair and sat down in front of the fire to wait
+for Harry.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIV
+
+UN-ANGLO-SAXON
+
+
+He came in before long, stamping the snow from his boots. In the second
+or two that passed before he spoke, James saw that though he looked
+haggard and depressed, there was no trace of weakness of dissipation
+about his eyes or mouth. Nor did he slink; he blundered in with the
+impetuosity of a schoolboy for whom the world has no terrors. For which,
+though he was shocked to see how badly he looked, James was profoundly
+thankful.
+
+He was aware of Harry's eyes trying to pierce the half-gloom; there was
+a touch of pathos, to James, in his momentary bewilderment.
+
+"Hullo, Harry," he said gently.
+
+"James!" The immediate, unconscious look of delight that came over
+Harry's face--even though it faded to something else within the
+second--pleased James more than anything had pleased him yet. Harry was
+glad to see him; that mattered much more than his almost instant
+recovery of his self-possession, his continuing, in the manner of the
+Harry of two years ago, the Harry of the previous Commencement:
+"Whatever are you doing here now, James?"
+
+"I've got good news for you, Harry," he replied, rising and taking hold
+of the other's hand. "The Mowbray woman has withdrawn her suit. It's all
+right; she's signed things, and you have no more to fear from her." He
+dropped Harry's hand and moved off a step, as though to give him a
+chance to take in the news.
+
+There was something rather fine in the simplicity, the humility, even of
+his manner as he did this, that did not escape Harry. He was deeply
+moved; self-possession and all it implied fell from him again.
+
+"James, have you done this? What has happened? Tell me all about it! You
+haven't paid her all that money, James--don't tell me you've done that!"
+
+"No, of course I haven't--there was no need for it. She was married out
+in Minneapolis last September, and I happened to get onto the
+fact--that's all. She had no business to be suing at all."
+
+"And you--"
+
+"I came here and told her so, to-day."
+
+James sat down again where he had been sitting, as though to close the
+incident. Harry stood and gasped; he tried to speak but could not; his
+eyes filled with tears. Then he dropped at James' feet, clasping his
+knees in the manner of a suppliant of old. He buried his face in James'
+lap and gave a few deep sobs of joy and relief.
+
+The Anglo-Saxon race being what it is, a good deal of courage is needed
+to go on with the relation of what occurred next. However, there is no
+help for it; history is history, and we can only tell it as it actually
+occurred, regardless of whether the undemonstrative are outraged or not.
+After Harry had thrown himself at his feet James took his brother's head
+gently between his hands, and then, with the greatest simplicity and
+naturalness in the world, bent forward and kissed it.
+
+"Poor old thing," he said softly; "you have been having sort of a hard
+time of it, haven't you?"
+
+ * * * * *
+
+"I wish you would tell me, James," said Harry somewhat later, as they
+sat gazing into the fire, James in the armchair and Harry on the floor,
+leaning back against James' legs, "I wish you would tell me just how you
+found out about her being married, and all about it. It seems so
+incredible--both that she should have been married and that you, of all
+people, should have been on the spot to discover it."
+
+"Well, I just saw her, coming out of the marriage office with a man;
+that was all there was to it. I thought she probably wouldn't have been
+there unless she had just been married to him, so I had the register
+looked up, and there she was. She was under the name of Rosa
+Montagu--that gave us some trouble at first, because of course I didn't
+know that was her stage name. I put a fellow called Laffan, a young
+lawyer, onto the business, and he messed about with the register and the
+detective bureau and communicated with Raynham till he wormed it all
+out. Finally he got hold of a photograph of Rosa Montagu and showed it
+to me, and after that it was easy enough--Of course, it was a most
+God-given chance that I stumbled on her just at that compromising
+moment. She really wasn't as foolish as she sounds; she hadn't lived in
+Minneapolis for years and knew almost nobody there except her young man.
+It was a long chance, what with using her stage name and all, that any
+one would ever find her out."
+
+"Yes. But I don't quite see--You say she was married in September?"
+
+"Yes--the third."
+
+"Well, if you knew she was married then, I don't quite see why you
+didn't make use of your knowledge before. When I was playing round with
+her, I mean--of course I, like the brazen idiot I was, didn't write you,
+but you must have heard--"
+
+"Oh, yes. Well, it was a very funny thing. I didn't remember about
+having seen her in that place till months afterward; not till the night
+I heard about the breach of promise business. You see, it was only the
+barest, vaguest glimpse, there in the City Hall; she didn't even see me
+and I didn't even remember where I had seen her face before, then. I
+scarcely thought about it at all, at the time; I was in a great hurry to
+get to a hearing before some commission or other, and the thing went
+bang out of my mind. Then, when I read of the breach of promise, it all
+came back, in one flash! Funny!"
+
+"Yes. It's the kind of humor that appeals to me, I can tell you."
+
+"The man, Jennings, curiously enough, happened to be in McClellan's for
+a while, once, in the counting department. He left there to become a
+clerk in some bank. We worked up his end too, a little....
+
+"Harry, I wish you'd tell me one thing," went on James, after a pause.
+
+"Anything I can, James."
+
+"Why on earth, when you found you were getting in deep with that woman,
+didn't you call on me to do something? You couldn't be so far gone as to
+think that I wouldn't--"
+
+"Oh, couldn't I? You have no idea of what depths of idiocy I can descend
+to, if I want.--I don't know--at the time, the more I wanted help the
+less I could talk of it to any one, and you least of all. The person
+that gave me the most comfort was Trotty, and he never once mentioned
+the subject to me, except when I introduced it myself! Yet even so, all
+through that time, it was you that I really wanted.--Look here, James,
+if you don't believe me, see what I've been carrying around with me all
+this time, as a sort of talisman!"
+
+He took his wallet from his pocket and after a short search produced an
+old and dirty postal card bearing on its face the blurred but still
+readable legend "All right. James." He handed it to his brother.
+
+"Gosh," said James, when he had read it, "do you mean to say you've kept
+that old thing ever since?"
+
+"Ever since the day I got it. There was something about it that was
+comforting and optimistic and--well, like you; and I used to take it out
+and look at it occasionally when I got particularly down in the mouth.
+And I used to persuade myself, after a while, that it all would come out
+right, in the end; that somehow James would make it all right--you see
+how the prophecy has come true!... And the extraordinary part of it is
+that even while I thought that way about you, I simply couldn't break
+the ice and tell you about it all. I don't know why--I just couldn't!"
+
+"I know," said James; "I know the feeling."
+
+"Isn't it incredible, James, that what seemed perfectly natural and
+reasonable--inevitable, even--a few weeks, or days, or even an hour ago,
+should appear so utterly asinine now!... Pride, vainglory and
+hypocrisy--all of them, and a lot more! Sometimes I can't believe it
+possible for one person to assemble in himself all the vices that I do."
+
+"Well, you don't, either," said James seriously. "That's one thing I
+want to clear up. Harry, don't you see that the blame for all this lies
+with me just as much as with you--more than with you--entirely with
+me?--"
+
+"No, I don't," began Harry stoutly, but James continued:
+
+"And that the real reason you didn't call on me was because I had
+steadily shut myself away from you? Oh, Harry, I've behaved like the
+devil during the last three years! It's just as you say; a course of
+action you never even question at one time, a little later seems so
+silly, so criminally silly, that you can't believe you seriously thought
+of following it!... I know perfectly well that a lot of the things I
+thought were horribly important a few years ago really aren't worth the
+paper they're printed on. The perspective changes so, even with these
+two years--less than two years--out of college! Good Lord, if a man is
+really the right sort, if he has a good, warm-hearted nature at the
+bottom of him, thinks good thoughts, does nice things, uses to the best
+of his judgment what gifts and talents Providence is pleased to give
+him, what in Heaven's name does it matter whether he manages the crew or
+goes Bones, in the end?... I've been a fool, Harry. I've set the
+greatest value on the most worthless things; I've worshiped stone gods;
+I've let things irritate me that no sane man has any business to be
+irritated by. Worst of all, I've let these silly, worthless things come
+between you and me and spoil--well, one of the best things that ever
+came into my life!... All this estrangement business has been mainly my
+fault. I'm older, and have had more experience, and, I always thought,
+more common sense--though I haven't really--and I was the one that ought
+to have kept things straight. Harry, I'm sorry for it all!"
+
+Harry was more moved than he would have liked to show by this
+confession. He was still enough of an undergraduate to be much impressed
+by his brother's casual mention of his senior society--the first time
+since he had been tapped the name had ever passed James' lips in his
+presence.
+
+"It's a pleasure to hear you talk, James," he said, "but I hope you
+won't misunderstand me when I say that there's not one word of truth in
+all you've said--the last part of it, I mean. It's only convinced me
+more thoroughly of my own fault. Before, there might have been a shadow
+of doubt in my mind about my being entirely to blame. Now there is
+absolutely none.--Funny, that a person you like blaming himself should
+really be blaming you! It always seems that way, somehow...."
+
+"James," he went on, a little later; "it makes you feel as if you were
+getting on, doesn't it?"
+
+"How? In years?"
+
+"Yes! I don't know about you, but I feel as old as Methusaleh to-night,
+and a whole lot wiser! And I must say I rather enjoy it!"
+
+"Yes," said James reflectively, "it does seem a good deal that way."
+
+"There are lots of questions you haven't asked me yet, James," continued
+Harry, after another interval.
+
+"Are there? Well, tell me what they are and I'll ask them, if you're so
+crazy to answer them."
+
+"The first is, What on earth could you ever have seen in That Woman?"
+
+"There was no need to ask that question," replied James, laughing; "not
+after I saw her to-day, at any rate."
+
+"She was so damned refined," sighed Harry. James laughed again at the
+coincidence of Harry's hitting on the very words of his own mental
+description of her. "I was most horribly depressed, and she looked so
+kind and sympathetic, and was, too, when I got to telling her my
+woes.... And she never used a particle of rouge, or anything of that
+kind.... Once I kissed her, and after that she managed, in that
+diabolical refined manner of hers, to convince me that she wouldn't have
+any more of that sort of thing without marriage. That made me respect
+her all the more, of course, as she knew it would. At one time, for a
+whole week, I should say, I was perfectly willing to marry her, whenever
+she wanted, and I didn't care whom I said it to, either.... Do you know,
+James, she would have been in for the devil of a time if I had gone on
+and pressed her to? I wonder what little plans she had for making me
+cease to care for her and back out at the right time.... There was no
+need for that, though; one day she called me 'kid,' and things like that
+before people, and I began to see."
+
+"That was part of her little plan, of course," said James.
+
+"Well, well--I shouldn't wonder if it was! You always were a clever
+child, James!..."
+
+"What are some more of the things I've got to ask?" inquired the clever
+child after a brief silence.
+
+"What? Oh--yes! Why don't you ask me to cut out the lick?" (He meant,
+abstain from alcoholic beverages.)
+
+"Well, do you want me to?"
+
+"Well, yes, I think I do, rather!"
+
+"Well, will you?"
+
+"Well--yes!"
+
+Both laughed, and then Harry went on: "It strikes me that we are both
+talking a prodigious lot of nonsense, James. We've been making a regular
+scene, in fact--"
+
+"I rather like scenes, myself," interrupted James, just for the pleasure
+of their being how he had expressed exactly the opposite opinion to some
+one else a few hours before.
+
+"And no doubt we shall be heartily ashamed when we look back on it all
+in the cold gray light of to-morrow morning. One always is."
+
+"I don't know," objected James, serious again, "I don't think that I
+shall be sorry for anything I've said or done."
+
+"Well, as a matter of strict truth, I don't know that I shall either. I
+suppose one needn't necessarily be making a fool of oneself just because
+it's twelve o'clock at night; that is--oh, you know what I mean--!"
+
+So they sat and talked on far into the night, loath to break up the
+enjoyment of the rediscovery of each other. They both seemed to bask in
+a sort of wonderful clarity and peace--do you know these rare times when
+life loses its complexity and uncertainty and becomes for the moment
+wholly sane and enjoyable and inspiring? When a person is actually able
+to live, if only for a little time, entirely in his better self, without
+being troubled by even a recollection of his worser? That was,
+substantially, the condition of those two boys as they sat there, at
+first talking, then thinking, and at last, as drowsiness slowly asserted
+itself over them, simply sitting.
+
+"Well," said James at last; "unless you intend taking permanent
+possession of my legs, I suppose we'd better go to bed. Am I sleeping
+here, somewhere?"
+
+"Yes," said Harry; "in my bed; I shall sleep on the sofa," and he
+forthwith embarked on a search for extra sheets and blankets.
+
+They both slept uninterruptedly till nearly ten, at which hour they
+sallied forth in search of breakfast. During the night the snow had
+changed to rain, which still fell out of a leaden sky, turning the
+earth's white covering to dirty gray and clogging the gutters with
+slush. Everything looked sordid, prosaic, ugly, especially Chapel
+Street, which they crossed on their way to the nearest "dog"; especially
+the "dog" itself as they approached it, with its yellow electric lights
+still shining out of its windows. It was an unattractive world.
+
+"Well, how does it look this morning?" James asked, studying his
+brother's face.
+
+Harry shuffled along several steps through the slush before he answered:
+
+"Just the same, James, and I for one, don't mind saying so." Then they
+looked at each other and smiled slightly.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XV
+
+CHIEFLY CARDIAC
+
+
+Life appeared, nevertheless, to have recovered all its normal complexity
+and variety. Things change with the return of daylight, even if they do
+not deteriorate, and though the two boys were still, in a manner of
+speaking, happy in each other's proximity, the thoughts of each were
+already busy on matters in which the other had no direct share. Harry
+was already foreseeing unpleasantnesses in the way of the restoration of
+cordial relations with the world. Exile has its palliations; he had
+taken a sort of grim pleasure in the state of semi-warfare in which he
+had lived. But that sort of thing was now over; he wanted to be right
+with the whole world--he even looked forward to astonishing people with
+the thoroughness of his conservatism. And he would have to make all the
+first advances. Thoughts of apologies, unreciprocated nods, suppressed
+sneers, incredulous glances and all the rest did not dismay him, but
+they might be said to bother him. At least, they were there.
+
+As for James, he had thought so much about Harry during the last ten
+days that it is easy to understand why, the affair Harry having been
+satisfactorily cleared up, his mind should be busy with other things.
+James' control over his mind was singularly perfect and methodical; its
+ease of concentration suggested that of an experienced lawyer examining
+the contents of several scraps of papers and returning each one again to
+its proper pigeon-hole, neatly docketed. The papers bearing the label of
+"Harry," neatly tied up in red tape, were again reposing comfortably in
+their pigeon-hole; the bundle that now absorbed his attention was marked
+"Beatrice."
+
+Outside of his work, to which he had conscientiously devoted the best of
+his mental powers, Beatrice had occupied the most prominent place in his
+thoughts for over a year and a half. For six days in the week, between
+the hours of nine and five, she had not been conspicuous in his mind;
+but how often, outside that time, had his attention wandered from a
+book, a conversation, a play, and fastened itself on the recollection of
+that softly aquiline profile of hers, the poise of her head on her
+beautifully modeled shoulders, her unsmiling yet cordial manner of
+greeting, and which she somehow managed to convey the impression of
+being unaffectedly glad to see him! It would probably be too much to say
+that James had been in love with her during that time, but James was not
+the sort of person who would easily be carried off his feet in an affair
+of the heart. Often, as the memory of her face obtruded itself on his
+day-dreams--or still oftener, his night-dreams--he had calmly put to
+himself, for open mental debate, the question "Am I really in love with
+her?" and had never been able to answer it entirely satisfactorily.
+
+On the whole, in view of the fact that the memory of her showed no
+tendency to fade in proportion to the time he was absent from her
+presence, he had become rather inclined to the opinion that the answer
+must be in the affirmative. Yet even now he could not be sure. He might
+be only cherishing an agreeable memory. He had not seen her since the
+previous June, and could not be absolutely certain, he knew, till he saw
+her again. He was anxious to see her!--Not that mere friendship would
+not account for that, of course.
+
+Harry had to attend Sunday Chapel, and it was arranged that James should
+not go with him, but should proceed directly to the house. Harry himself
+would turn up at dinner-time--Aunt Selina, it will be remembered, had
+dinner in the middle of the day on Sundays. Harry was naturally anxious
+to have all news-breaking over before he came, and James--well, on the
+whole James was entirely willing to take the burden of news-breaking on
+himself.
+
+He found Aunt Selina at home; a slight cold in the head and the
+inclemency of the weather had been sufficient to make her forego church
+for this Sunday. Beatrice had proved herself of stauncher religious
+metal--"Though I am sure she would not have gone, if she had known you
+were in town," as Aunt Selina told James.
+
+Aunt Selina took the good news much as a duchess of the old regime might
+have learned that the Committee of Public Safety had decided not to chop
+off her husband's head. It was agreeable news, but it was nothing to
+make one forget oneself. Her manner of saying "This is splendid news,
+James; I am proud of you" indicated a profound belief in the sanctity of
+the Wimbourne destiny and an unshakable faith in the ultimate triumph of
+the Wimbourne character rather than unbecoming thankfulness for
+something she ought not to have had to be thankful about. James advised
+her that Harry would talk much more freely and relations in general
+would be much more agreeable if she refrained from mention of the
+subject till he introduced it himself. Aunt Selina calmly agreed. She
+had great faith in James' judgment.
+
+After an hour's chat with his aunt James exhibited visible signs of
+restlessness. Half-past twelve; it was time Beatrice returned. He rose
+from his chair and stood watching in front of the window. Soon he saw
+her; she alighted from a trolley car and started to walk up the path.
+There was something rather fine, something high-bred and gently proud
+about the way she grasped her umbrella and embarked on the long slushy
+ascent to the house. Her manner rather suggested a daughter of the
+Crusaders; it was as though she hated the wind and rain and slush, but
+disdained to give other recognition of their existence than a silent
+contempt.
+
+As he beheld her distant figure turn in at the gate and plod
+unflinchingly up the walk a curious sensation came over James. He
+suddenly found himself wanting to wreak an immediate and violent
+vengeance on the elements that dared to make things so unpleasant for
+her, and that almost immediately passed into an intense desire to seize
+upon that small figure and clasp it to him, sheltering her from the
+rain, the wind, the slush, every evil in this world that could ever
+befall her.... In that moment he felt all the beauty of man's first
+love. All the worries of doubt and introspection fell from him; he felt
+the full glow of love shining in his heart like a star, giving
+significance, sanctity, even, to those moments of wondering, fearing,
+hoping, doubting that had filled so many months. He was in love with
+her!... He came into the realization of the fact in a spirit of humility
+and prayer, like a worshiper entering a temple.
+
+Of course he gave no outward sign of all this. He merely said, as soon
+as he could trust himself to be articulate, in a perfectly ordinary tone
+of voice:
+
+"There's Beatrice, now. She's walking."
+
+"Yes," answered his aunt; "I tried to make her stay at home, but she
+would go." Then after a moment she gently added, as though in answer to
+James' unspoken reproach: "I would have let her take the carriage, but
+of course I could not ask Thomas to go out in such weather."
+
+James entirely failed to see why not. He would willingly have condemned
+Thomas and the horses to perpetual driving through something much more
+disagreeable than rain and slush if it could have saved Beatrice one
+particle of her present discomfort.
+
+But being, in fact as well as in appearance, a daughter of Crusaders,
+and consequently well used to climatic rigors in the country from which
+her ancestors had marched to meet the Paynim foe, Beatrice was really
+not suffering nearly as much as James' lover-like anxiety supposed her
+to be. She had thick boots, a mackintosh, an umbrella and a thick tweed
+skirt to protect her from the weather, and could have walked miles
+without so much as wetting her feet. If she had got wet, she certainly
+would have changed her garments immediately on reaching home, and even
+if she had not changed then she probably would not have caught cold,
+having a strong constitution. Nevertheless James stood at the window and
+silently worried about her, and his first words as he met her at the
+front door were expressive of this mood.
+
+"Beatrice!" he cried eagerly, as he threw the door open, "I do hope
+you're not wet through!"
+
+She had not seen him standing at the window, so his appearance at the
+door was consequently a complete surprise to her, and the expression
+that came over her face as she saw him was one of pure pleasure. James'
+heart leaped within him at her unaccustomed smile, and then fell again
+as he saw it change to an expression of ever so slight and
+well-restrained surprise, not at his being there, but at the manner and
+words of his greeting. He realized in a second that he had allowed his
+tongue to betray his heart.
+
+Beatrice paid no immediate attention to the remark, and her welcoming
+words "James, of all people in the world!" gave no sign of anything more
+than a friendly pleasure. She was entirely at her ease. James found
+himself running on, quite easily:
+
+"Yes--just got a day or two off and came on to say Howdy-do to you all.
+Got to start back this afternoon, worse luck. How well you're looking!"
+
+By this time they were practically in the library, in the restraining
+presence of Aunt Selina, and Beatrice had no more chance to introduce
+the topic clamoring for discussion in the minds of both than the
+question "You've seen Harry?" uttered in an undertone as they went
+through the door, allowed her. Church, the weather and the unexpected
+pleasure of James' arrival were politely discussed for a few moments,
+and then Aunt Selina withdrew to prepare for dinner.
+
+"James," Beatrice burst out, "tell me about Harry. I know you've come on
+about that; tell me all about it! Has anything been done? Can anything
+be done?"
+
+"It can," said James, smiling at her impetuosity. "Like-wise, it has. In
+fact, it's all over!"
+
+"What do you mean?... Have you paid her off?"
+
+"No; she withdrew of her own accord."
+
+"James, don't be irritating! Tell me about it. You've done something, I
+know you have!"
+
+"Well--possibly!" He smiled tantalizingly at her--so like a man!
+
+"What?"
+
+"Well, I'll tell you--on one condition."
+
+"What's that?"
+
+"That you'll promise not to thank me when you've found out!" James
+considered this rather a masterly piece of deceptive strategy, more than
+making up for his indiscretion at the front door.
+
+Beatrice dropped her eyes and drew down the corners of her mouth, with
+an expression half humorous, half contemptuous. "Go ahead," said she.
+
+James went ahead and told her the whole affair at some length. His
+position during this narrative was a not unenviable one; it is not often
+that one gets a chance to recount to one's lady-love a story in which
+one is so obviously the hero. Nor did he lose anything by being the
+narrator of his own prowess; his omissions spoke louder in his favor
+than the most laudatory comments of a third person could have.
+
+"So, he is free!" she said at last, when she had cross-questioned the
+whole thing out of him. "He is free again!..."
+
+What was there about these words that seemed to blast James' feeling of
+triumph, to chill the very marrow in his bones? Was it only the words;
+was it not rather the extraordinary intensity of the pleasure on her
+face; a pleasure which did not fade with her smile, but lived on in the
+dreamy expression of the eyes, gazing sightlessly out of the window?...
+She spoke again in a moment or two, asking a question about some detail
+in the case, and the feeling left him again. He answered her question
+with perfect composure. Such hysterical vapors must be incidental to
+love, he supposed. He was not troubled about it at all, unless, very
+vaguely, by the fleeting memory of a similar experience, occurring--oh,
+a long time ago. Nothing to worry about.
+
+He did not say much after he had completed his narrative. He was content
+simply to sit and look at her, drinking in her smiles, her comments, her
+little ejaculations of pleasure and answering her stray questions about
+the great affair. The joy of discovery was not yet even tinged with the
+thirst for possession. It was enough to watch her as she talked and
+laughed and moved about; to watch her, the living original, and think
+how much more glorious she was than the most vivid of his recollections
+of her. Oh, how wonderful she was!
+
+Presently he was aware of her making remarks laudatory of himself, and
+primed his ears to listen.
+
+"But how clever it was of you, James," she was saying, "to work out the
+whole thing, just from that one little glimpse--and so quickly, too! Of
+course it was just a Heaven-sent chance, your seeing her at that moment,
+but I can see how much more there was to it than that. What a
+frightfully clever person you are, James--a regular detective! You
+really must give up making motor cars and be another Sherlock Holmes!"
+
+All this fell very pleasantly on his ears, though he could have wished,
+if he had taken the time to, that she could have employed some other
+adjective than "clever." But there was no time for such minor
+considerations. Just at that moment they heard the rattle of the front
+door latch, and Beatrice, knowing that none but Harry ever entered the
+house without first ringing, jumped from her chair and started towards
+the hall, the words "There he is now!" glowing on her lips....
+
+And then the universe crumbled about James' ears. Had his father's early
+readings extended into the minor Elizabethan Drama, he might have
+remembered the words of Beaumont--
+
+ This earth of mine doth tremble, and I feel
+ A stark affrighted motion in my blood
+
+and applied them quite aptly to his present state. For a moment the
+earth literally seemed to reel; he staggered slightly, unnoticed, and
+caught hold of the back of a chair. Then, while Beatrice went out to
+meet Harry, he stood there and wished he had never been born to live
+through such a moment.
+
+Beatrice was in love with Harry--that was the long and the short of it.
+There was no mistaking the import of the look of utter glorification
+that came over her face as she heard his hand on the doorknob; such an
+expression on the face of a human being could mean but one thing.... He
+wondered, despairingly, if his face had borne such a look a little while
+ago, when he caught sight of Beatrice....
+
+Whether or not Harry was on similar terms with Beatrice he could not
+say. He rather thought that he was, or if not, it was only a question of
+time till he would be. He was not a witness of the actual moment of
+meeting; that occurred in the hall, and all he got of it was Harry's
+initial remark: "Well, Beatrice, have you heard the good news? James has
+made a respectable woman of me!" drowned in a sort of flutter from
+Beatrice, in which he could distinguish nothing articulate--nor needed
+to. The character of the remark--flippant to the verge of good
+taste!--might at another time have excited his disgust; but now it made
+as little impression on him as it did on Beatrice.
+
+Harry himself might not have made it at another time; it was the result
+of his embarrassment. So, also, was the expression which he wore when he
+came into the room with Beatrice a moment later--a very unusual look,
+due to a very unusual cause. Beatrice had, in fact, all but given
+herself away to him. He followed her into the room embarrassed and
+flustered. It was incomparably the worst of the series of strained
+moments in his intercourse with Beatrice, and it gave point and
+coherency to the others in a way he hated to think of.... Once in the
+library he found himself leading conversation, or what passed for
+conversation among the three for the next few moments. The others
+appeared conversationally extinct; Beatrice--he hardly dared look toward
+her--trying to recover her composure; James preternaturally grave and
+silent, for some unknown reason. The atmosphere seemed surcharged with
+an unexpected and, to him, inappropriate gravity. He felt like a
+schoolboy among grown-ups.
+
+Presently Aunt Selina returned and dinner was announced.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Poor James--he had won Paradise only to lose it the next instant! No one
+could have guessed anything from his behavior--he was not the sort of
+person to make an exhibition of his emotional crises; but he really
+lived very hard during the meal that followed. His state of mind was at
+first nothing but a ghastly chaos, from which but one thing emerged into
+certainty--he must not betray himself or Beatrice; he must go on exactly
+as if nothing unusual had occurred. It never paid to make a fool of
+oneself, and--this was the next thought, the next plank that floated to
+him from the wreck of his happiness--he had not, that he knew of, given
+himself away. That was a tremendous thing to be thankful for; what a
+blessing that he had got wind of Beatrice's true feelings before he had
+the chance to blunder into making love to her and so precipitate a
+series of horrors which he could not even bear to contemplate! Now, he
+told himself reassuringly, as he tried desperately to contribute his
+fourth to the none too spontaneous conversation, he had only to keep
+himself in check, keep his mouth shut, keep from making of himself the
+most unthinkable ass that ever walked God's earth--and it would all come
+out right!
+
+By the time the roast beef made its appearance he saw there was only one
+thing to do and without a moment's hesitation he embarked on the doing
+of it. Beatrice sat on his right; he raised his eyes to her and passed
+them over each enthralling feature of her, her soft dark hair; her eyes,
+brown almost to black, gentle yet fearless in their gaze, and at the
+same time, quite calmly and unemotionally, told himself that she could
+never be his. She was Harry's. These two were intended for each other
+all along, made for each other. Could he not have seen that in the
+beginning, if he had kept his eyes open? Could he not have seen that
+their childish companionship, dating from Harry's English days, their
+being placed again, as though by a divine sort of accident, in the same
+town, and above all their obvious fitness for each other, was going to
+lead to love?
+
+Well--thus he found himself to his one substantial comfortable
+support--he had hurt no one but himself. He had only to put Beatrice
+resolutely out of his mind and all would be well. She was Harry's; was
+that not the next best thing to her being his?--better, even? No longer
+ago than last night he had convinced himself that Harry was, when all
+was said and done, a better man than he was. Was it not perfectly just
+that the prize should go to him?
+
+The thought helped him through the meal astonishingly. Unselfishness is
+a great stimulus. Once he saw that he could do something definite toward
+the happiness of those he loved best, he seemed, rather to his own
+surprise, perfectly willing and able to do it, at no matter what
+sacrifice to himself. His righteousness supported him not only through
+the meal, but well through that part of the afternoon that he spent in
+the house--up, indeed, to the very moment of parting.
+
+James' plan was to take a five-o'clock train to New York, whence he
+would take a night train to Chicago and arrive in Minneapolis early
+Tuesday morning, having missed only three working days at the office. It
+was still raining at four o'clock and a cab was telephoned for. As it
+was plodding up the slushy drive, James, overcoated and hatted, stood on
+the porch ready to get into it. Harry, who was to go to the station with
+him, was "having a word" with Aunt Selina--or, more exactly, being had a
+word with by her--in the hall. Beatrice, by some fiendish chance,
+determined to do the same by James.
+
+"James," she said, "I want you to know how perfectly splendid I think it
+was of you--all this about Harry, I mean. You may say it was no more
+than your duty, and all that; but it was fine of you, nevertheless.
+Thank you, James, and good-by."
+
+It really was rather awful. It amounted to his being rewarded and
+dismissed like a faithful servant. And her tacit, unconscious assumption
+of her right to thank people for favors conferred upon Harry--that was
+turning the knife in the wound. Of course she could have no idea of the
+pain she was giving, and James shook her hand and said good-by trying to
+give no sign of the pain he felt. All the comfortable stability of his
+logic faded from him as she spoke those words. All the way to the
+station, sitting by Harry's side in the smelly cab, he found himself
+crying inwardly, like a child, for what he could not have; wondering if,
+by the exercise of tact and patience, Beatrice could possibly be brought
+to love him; overcome at moments by an insane desire to throw himself on
+Harry's neck and beg him to let him have her--for surely, surely Harry
+could not be as fond of her as he! Oh, was it going to be as hard as
+this right along?...
+
+"James," said Harry suddenly as the two paced the dreary platform in
+silence, waiting for the train to pull in; "it's sometimes awfully hard
+to say what you want without talking mawkish rot, but there's something
+I've simply got to say, rot or no rot, or drop dead on the asphalt.--I'm
+pretty young, of course, and haven't seen much of anything of life; but
+a person doesn't have to live long to get the general idea that it's
+rather a chaotic mess. Well, occasionally out of it there emerges a
+thing that appears to bring out all that's best in your nature and gives
+a certain coherence to the other things...."
+
+"Yes?" said James, wondering what was to follow.
+
+"Well, it seems to me that one of those things is--you and me. Since
+last night, I mean ... James, I don't know how you feel about it, but
+since then I've had a sense of nearness to you, such as I've never begun
+to have with any other human being--such as doesn't occur often in one
+lifetime, I imagine ... I really think very highly of you, James!" He
+broke off here with a smile, half embarrassed at his brother's slowness
+of response, ready to retreat into the everyday and the trivial if the
+response did not come.
+
+But he need not have worried; James was merely choosing his words; every
+nerve in him was thrilling in answer to Harry's advance. He returned the
+smile, but replied, in full seriousness: "You've hit it exactly; I
+should even say it couldn't be duplicated in one lifetime.... You're
+unique, Harry!"
+
+"That's it--unique," said Harry, joining in with his mood. "You've
+mastered the art of uniquity, James."
+
+"And what's more," went on the other, "it always has been that
+way--really. Even during these last few years. With me, I mean."
+
+"With me, too. James"--he stood still and looked his brother full in the
+face--"do you know, such a relation as ours is one of the few positive
+good things that makes life worth while? If we were both struck dead as
+we stand here, life would have been well worth living--just for this!"
+
+"Yes, that's true," said James slowly; "that's perfectly true."
+
+"And one thing more--for Heaven's sake, James, don't let's either of us
+mess up this thing in the future, if we can help it! It may be broken up
+by outside causes--well and good; we can't prevent that; but can't we
+have the sense not to let silly, conventional things come between us?
+Let's not be afraid, above all, of plain talk--at any rate, you need
+never be afraid to say anything to me. I may be narrow and obstinate to
+other people, but I don't think I could ever be so to you again. I'd
+take anything from you, James, anything!--" He smiled at the
+unintentional double meaning of his words, adding, "And there's nothing
+I wouldn't give you, either."
+
+It would not be too much to say that James was literally inspired by
+Harry's words. They seemed to bring out every vestige of what was good
+and noble and unselfish in his nature, lifting him high above his
+everyday, weak, commonplace self--such as he had shown it in the cab,
+for instance--making life as clear, as sensible, as inspiring as it had
+seemed last night. His "sacrifice" now appeared nothing; he scarcely
+thought of it at all, but its nature, when it did appear in the back of
+his brain, was that of an obvious, pleasant, easy duty; a service that
+was a joy, a denial that was a self-gratification.
+
+"All right, I'll remember. And if I telegraph you to dye your face
+pea-green, I shall expect you to do it!" He spoke with a lightness of
+spirit wholly unfeigned. Then he continued, somewhat more seriously:
+"I'll tell you what it is; each of us has got to behave so well that
+it'll be the fault of the other if we do fall out. There's a poem Father
+used to read that says something of the kind; something about there
+being none but you--'there is none, oh, none but you--'"
+
+"'That from me estrange your sight,'" finished Harry. "I
+remember--Campion, I think."
+
+"That's it--that from me estrange your sight. It's funny how those
+things come back sometimes...." The train pulled noisily in at that
+moment and made further discussion impossible, but enough had been said
+to start the same thoughts running in the minds of both and give them
+both the feeling, as they clasped hands in parting, that the future had
+the blessing of the past.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVI
+
+THE SADDEST TALE
+
+
+With the beginning of the next term Harry embarked on the task of
+setting himself right with the world. He found it on the whole easier
+than he had expected. He had only to make a few formal apologies, as in
+the cases of Shep McGee and Junius LeGrand, and let it become generally
+known that he had definitely given up drinking, et cetera, to make the
+cohorts of the commonplace glad to receive him in their ranks once more.
+
+Reinstatement in the social life of New Haven followed quite
+easily--almost as a matter of course, for he had not actively offended
+any members of what might be described as the entertaining classes. The
+female element, practically all of whom knew him, or at least of him,
+through his family connection, had evolved a mythical but interesting
+conception of him as "rather a fast young man"; and that, alas! served
+to endear him to their hearts rather than otherwise.
+
+So the last months of his college course passed in a sort of sunset haze
+of enjoyment, marred only by one thing, indecision as to his subsequent
+career. His friends were inclined to look rather askance at this; one or
+two, in a tactful way, pointed out to him the danger of "drifting." In
+reality there was small danger of this; although his inherited income
+would make him independent of his own efforts for livelihood during the
+rest of his natural life, Harry would never "drift" very far. His brain
+was too active, his ambition too lively, his sense of the seriousness of
+life too deep to allow that. He could never be content doing nothing. He
+wanted, in turn, to do very nearly everything; the professions of
+lawyer, doctor, "business man," engineer, clergyman, soldier,
+sailor--tinker and tailor, even were considered and rejected in turn.
+
+"It's not that I don't want to do all these things," he explained to
+Trotty, who sometimes showed impatience at his vagueness; "the trouble
+is that I can't do any of them. I'm not fitted for them--I'm not worthy
+of them, if you like to put it that way. If I were a conscienceless
+wretch, now, it would be different!"
+
+One Sunday afternoon in June, rather saddened by the feeling of his
+apparent uselessness in the world, he went to call on Madge Elliston.
+
+"Well, what are you going to do this summer?" she began. "That seems to
+be the one topic of conversation at this time of year."
+
+"This summer? Oh, I'm going to walk, with the rest of my class, in the
+more mountainous portions of Europe. At present I am under engagement to
+walk through the hilly parts of England, Scotland and Wales, the Black
+Forest, the Alps, the Tyrol, the Dolomites and some of the cooler
+portions of the Apennines; but the Cevennes and the Caucasus are still
+open, if you care to engage them.... In between times I expect to
+roister, shamelessly, in some of the livelier resorts of the Continent.
+That's all quite simple; what I'm worrying about is what I'm going to do
+next winter."
+
+"Why don't you write, if I may be pardoned for asking so obvious a
+question?" asked Madge.
+
+"One simple but sufficient reason--I haven't got anything to write
+about," answered Harry, smiling. "That's what everybody asks, and the
+answer is always the same. This prevalent belief in my literary ability
+is flattering, but unfortunately it's wholly unfounded."
+
+"I shouldn't say so. I've read most of what you've written in college,
+and it seems to me extremely clever."
+
+"Clever--that's just it! Nothing more! The awful truth is, there's
+nothing more in me. I have rather a high regard for literature, you see,
+and on that very account I'm less willing to inflict myself on it. I
+wouldn't care, though, if there was anything else I appeared to be cut
+out for. If I felt that I could sweep crossings better than other
+people, I assure you I would go into the profession with the greatest
+cheerfulness!"
+
+Madge laughed. "I know very much how you feel--I've been going through
+much the same thing myself, though you might not have guessed it. Only
+as it happens I have received a call for something very like the
+profession you speak of."
+
+"Crossing-sweeping?"
+
+"The next thing to it--teaching in a dame's school in town--Miss
+Snellgrove's. I think it's rather a pretty idea, don't you? Society
+flower, withered and faint with gaiety, seeking refreshment in the
+cloistral, the academic!--You don't approve?"
+
+"Woman's sphere is the home," said Harry doubtfully.
+
+"Not when the home is a two-by-four box; you couldn't call that a
+sphere, could you? Of course," she went on, more seriously, "of course
+the real, immediate reason why I'm doing it is financial. These are
+times of--well, stringency.... Not but what we could scrape along; but
+it seems rather absurd to be earning nothing when one could just as well
+be earning something, doesn't it? And the only alternative is playing
+about eternally with college boys younger than myself."
+
+"Yes, I think you're very sensible, if that's the case. Not that it is,
+of course; you'll find plenty of people coming back to the graduate and
+professional schools to console you. Also my brother James at week-ends,
+if that's any comfort to you!"
+
+"James? Is he in this part of the country?"
+
+"Yes, in New York. He's going to be in McClellan's branch there next
+winter--assistant manager, or something of the sort--something important
+and successful sounding. We are all very much set up over it. And it's
+so near that he can come up for Sunday quite regularly, if he wants.--It
+does give me quite a solemn and humble feeling, though, to think that
+you have found a profession before me."
+
+"Oh, yes; teaching at Miss Snellgrove's is more than a profession--it's
+a career!--I refuse to believe, though," she continued with a change of
+manner, "that you have not found your profession already, even though
+you may not care to adopt it yet. For after all, you know, you have the
+creative ability. Every one says that. All that's wanting in you, as you
+say, is having something to write about, and nothing but time and
+development will bring that. Meanwhile I think it's very nice and
+high-minded of you not to go ahead and write nothing, with great ease
+and fluency! That's what most people in your position do."
+
+"Thank you; that's very encouraging," said Harry. He looked
+thoughtfully at her for a moment and continued: "Has it ever occurred to
+you, Madge, that you are quite a remarkable young woman?"
+
+"Heavens yes, hundreds of times!"
+
+"That's a denial, I suppose. However, it's true. Look at the way you've
+just been talking to me!... You have what I've come to admire very much
+during the past few months--perfect balance of viewpoint. You have what
+one might call a sense of ultimacy--is there such a word? It's like a
+number of children, each playing about in his own little backyard,
+surrounded by a high fence that he can't see over, suspecting the
+existence of a lot of other backyards, with children in them wondering
+what lay beyond in just the same way. Then occasionally there is born a
+happy being to whom is given the privilege of looking down on the whole
+lot of them from the church steeple, and being able to see each backyard
+in its exact relation to all the other backyards. That's you.... It's a
+rare gift!"
+
+Madge was at first amused by this elaborate compliment, but she ended by
+being rather touched by it.
+
+"It's very nice of you to say that," she replied after a moment, "no
+matter how little foundation there may be for it. It proves one thing,
+at any rate--I have no monopoly of the quality of ultimacy! You wouldn't
+be able to think I was ultimate, would you, unless you were a wee bit
+ultimate yourself? And that goes to prove what I said about your
+attitude toward your profession."
+
+"I'm afraid you can't make me believe in my own ultimacy, no matter how
+hard you try," said Harry. "In fact I pursue the rival study of
+propinquity--the art of never seeing beyond one's own nose!"
+
+"Well, you must at least let me believe in the ultimacy of your finding
+your profession," insisted Madge. But Harry only shook his head.
+
+Commencement arrived at last, and Aunt Cecilia, attended by a
+representative delegation of her progeny, flopped down upon Aunt Selina,
+prepared to do as much by Harry as she had by his brother two years
+earlier. Aunt Cecilia belonged to the important class of American women
+who regard a graduation as a family event second in importance only to a
+wedding or a funeral, ranking slightly higher than a "coming out." The
+occasion was a particularly joyous one to her because of Harry's being
+able to celebrate it in a full blaze of righteousness and truth, and
+because of the consequent opportunities for motherly fluttering.
+
+"Dear Harry," she said, as she kissed, him on his arrival; "I am so glad
+to be here to see you graduate, and so glad that--that everything has
+gone so splendidly. It is so much, much nicer--that is, it is _so_ nice
+to think that--"
+
+"Yes, dear; you mean, isn't it nice that I'm respectable again," said
+Harry, with a flippancy made gentle by the sight of her kind blue eyes.
+"I am respectable now, you know, so you needn't be afraid to talk about
+it. We can all be respectable together; you're respectable, and I'm
+respectable, and Ruth is respectable and Lucy is respectable, and Aunt
+Selina is respectable--we hope; how about that, Aunt Selina?--and
+altogether we're an eminently respectable family. All except Beatrice,
+that is, who is far, far too nobly born, being related, in fact, to a
+marquis. No one in the peerage, Aunt C. dear, likes to be called
+respectable--it's considered insulting. No one, that is, above the rank
+of baron; the barons are now all reformed brewers, who get their
+peerages by being so respectable that people forget all about the
+brewing, and that is English democracy, and isn't it a splendid thing,
+dear? When you marry Ruth to an English peer, you must be sure to have
+him a baron, because none of the others are respectable."
+
+"Harry, what nonsense you do talk!" said his aunt. "Before these
+girls--!"
+
+"I imagine these girls know Harry by this time," remarked Aunt Selina.
+"If they don't, it's time they did. You're a hundred times more innocent
+than they, Cecilia, and always will be."
+
+"Exactly always what I tell Mama," put in Ruth, the eldest of Aunt
+Cecilia's brood. "Besides, what Harry said is all quite true, I'm sure.
+Except about me; I shan't marry a foreigner at all, but if I do, I
+certainly shan't marry a brewer. Mama is far too rich for me to take
+anything less than a duke."
+
+This was literally, almost painfully true. A succession of deaths in
+Aunt Cecilia's family, accompanied by a scarcity of male heirs, had
+placed her in possession of almost untold wealth--"more than I bargained
+for when I took you," as Uncle James jocularly put it, for the pleasure
+of seeing her bridle and blush. Aunt C. was one of the richest women in
+the country, but it never changed her a particle. Not all her wealth,
+not all her social prominence, not all the refining influences that
+several generations' enjoyment of these brings, could ever make her even
+appear to be anything but the simple, warm-hearted, motherly creature
+she was.
+
+Harry, realizing all this as well as any one, exerted himself to make
+Aunt C. glad she had made the effort to come to see him graduate, and he
+manfully escorted her and the girls to the play, the baccalaureate
+service, his class-day exercises, the baseball game and various other
+entertainments, where, as Ruth rather aptly put it, "we can sit around
+and watch somebody else do something." He also did his full duty by his
+cousin, and danced away a long and perspiring evening with her at the
+senior promenade. He found Ruth very good company, in spite of her
+active tongue, or rather, perhaps, because of it.
+
+The final Wednesday, pregnant with fate, arrived at length, and after an
+immense deal of watching other people receive degrees, some earned and
+some accorded by the pure generosity of the University, Harry became
+entitled to write the magic initials "B.A." after his name. Being one of
+the leaders of his class in point of scholarship, he was one of the
+twenty or so who mounted the platform and received the diplomas for the
+rest. This was too much for Aunt Cecilia, who occupied a prominent place
+in the front row of the balcony.
+
+"Oh, dear," she sighed, wiping away a furtive tear, "there he goes, and
+no mother to see him do it! No one to be proud of him! And the brightest
+of all the family--I shall never live to see a son of mine do as well,
+never, never!"
+
+"I'm not so sure," said her eldest daughter, comfortingly; "the doctrine
+of chances is in your favor. You have four boys--four chances to
+Aunt--what was her name?--Aunt Edith's two. Harry's not so fearfully
+bright, anyway--only sixteenth out of three hundred."
+
+"My dear, how can you talk so? you ought to be ashamed, after his being
+so nice to you all this week!"
+
+"Yes, he's been very sweet, indeed," replied the maiden, magnanimously.
+"Though I don't know, on looking back at it, that he's been any nicer to
+me than I've been to him!"
+
+Harry himself was rather impressed by the long ceremony in which he
+found the qualities of dignity and simplicity nicely blended. He was
+impressed particularly by the giving of the honorary degrees; it seemed
+to him a very fine thing that these ten or fifteen people, all of them
+leaders in widely different spheres of activity, should make so much of
+receiving a bit of parchment from a university which most of them had
+not even attended, and equally fine of the university to do them honor;
+the whole giving proof of the triumph of the academic ideal in an age of
+materialism.
+
+The same thought occurred to him even more vividly at the great alumni
+luncheon that followed; the last and in some ways the most impressive of
+all the Commencement ceremonies. The great Renaissance dining hall
+filled from end to end with graduates, upwards of a thousand strong,
+ranging between the hoary-headed veteran and the hour-old Bachelor, all
+of them gathered for the single purpose of doing honor to their alma
+mater, all of them thrilled by the same feeling of affection for
+her--all this awakened a responsive note in the mind of Harry, always
+ready to render honor where honor was due, or to show love when he felt
+it. It was pleasant to sit and eat among one's classmates and in the
+presence of those other, older, more exalted beings stretching away to
+the other end of the hall and think that they were all, in a way, on
+terms of equal footing--all graduates together.
+
+At one end of the hall, on a great raised dais, sat the highest officers
+of the University, in company with the guests of honor of the day, the
+recipients of the honorary degrees. After the meal was over, certain of
+these were called upon to speak. Harry thought he had never heard such
+speeches. The men who made them were big men, foremost in the country's
+service and in the work of the world; one was a Cabinet minister,
+another a great explorer, another a scientist, another a missionary. The
+ultimate message of each one of them was the high mission of Yale, given
+in no spirit of boastful, flag-waving "almamatriotism," but with strong
+emphasis on the theme of service. One got from them the idea that Yale
+men, like all men of their station and responsibility the world over,
+were born to serve humanity. The mission of Yale in this scheme was one
+of preparation; she acted as a recruiting-station and clearing-house,
+developing the special powers of each of her sons, equipping them with
+knowledge of books, other men and themselves, and at last sending them
+into the field where they were calculated to make the best use of
+themselves. One revered and loved Yale, of course, for what she had
+given one; to her every man owed a full measure of gratitude and
+affection for what he had become. But one was never to forget where Yale
+stood in the scheme of things; one must always bear in mind that she was
+not an end in herself, but a means--one of many other means--to an
+infinitely greater end. Only by considering her in her place in the vast
+order of world-service could one do justice to her true power, her true
+greatness.
+
+The impression ultimately conveyed was not that of a smaller Yale but of
+a larger world. Harry had never considered the relation between universe
+and university in this illuminating light. He suddenly realized that his
+idea of his college had been that of a particularly reputable and
+agreeable finishing-school for young men; a treasury of social knowledge
+and the home of sport. He had mistaken the side-shows for the main
+exhibition; he had admired and criticized them without regard to the
+whole of which they were but small parts. In a flash he looked back and
+realized the vanity and recklessness of his earlier revolt against
+college institutions and traditions. Who was he that he should criticize
+them? What had he to offer as substitute for them except an attitude of
+idle receptivity and irresponsible dalliance? He had recovered from that
+first foolishness, to be sure, and thank Heaven for that slight evidence
+of sanity; but what had he done since his recovery except sit back and
+watch the days slide by? Had he ever made the slightest attempt toward
+serious thinking, toward placing himself, his college and the world in
+their proper relations to each other? Had he succeeded in learning a
+single important lesson from the many that had been offered to him? Was
+it possible that he had completely wasted these four precious years of
+golden youth?
+
+Suddenly he felt tears of humiliation and self-contempt burn behind his
+eyes. It would be absurd to shed them. He shifted his position and lit a
+cigarette. He inhaled the comforting smoke deeply and listened with
+meticulous attention to the speech from which his mind had wandered
+into introspection, trying not to think any more of himself. Gradually,
+however, there penetrated into his inner consciousness the comforting
+thought that he had been hysterical, had judged himself too harshly in
+his anxiety to be sufficiently hard on himself. Those years were not
+wholly wasted--he had learned something in them. He was ahead of where
+he was when he entered college, if only a little. The thought of James
+occurred to him; James would be an inspiration in the future as he had
+been a help in the past. No, there was yet hope for him, though he must
+be very careful how he acted in the future. He had been a fool, but he
+hoped now that he had been merely a young fool, and that his mistakes
+could be at least partly rectified by age and effort. He would try hard,
+at least; he would be receptive, industrious, thorough, tolerant,
+unbiased and humble--above all, humble. He glanced up at the speaker's
+table and reflected that the men who had the most reason to be proud
+were in fact the humblest.
+
+The last speaker sat down amid a round of applause. The men on the floor
+of the hall stood up to sing before departing. Harry, looking at his
+watch, was surprised at the lateness of the hour; he had promised to see
+Aunt Cecilia and her daughters off at the station and must hurry away at
+once if he were to catch them.
+
+He laboriously made his way through the ranks of singing graduates
+toward the door, listening to the familiar words of the song as he had
+never before listened.
+
+ Mother of men, grown strong in giving
+ Honor to them thy lights have led,
+
+sang the men. Yes, thought Harry, there was plenty of honor to give.
+Would that he might ever be one of those to whom such honor was due, but
+that was not to be thought of. It was enough for him to be one of those
+who were led by those lights. Yes, that was the first step, steadfastly
+to follow the light that the grave Mother held above and before him; to
+keep his eyes constantly on it, never looking down or behind.
+
+ Rich in the toil of thousands living,
+ Proud of the deeds of thousands dead,
+
+Deeds, deeds! That was what counted; any one could see visions and dream
+dreams; the veriest fool could mean well. Oh, might a merciful Heaven
+help him to convert into deeds the lofty ideals that now surged within
+his brain!--What a ripping song that was, and how well it sounded to
+hear a thousand men singing it together! He forgot Aunt Cecilia for a
+moment, and checked his pace near the door to hear the last verse.
+
+ Spirit of youth, alive, unchanging,
+ Under whose feet the years are cast,
+ Heir to an ageless empire, ranging
+ Over the future and the past--
+
+Half blinded with tears he staggered out into the empty vestibule and
+steadied himself for a second against a pillar. He never had realized
+before how much it all meant to him, how he loved what he was leaving.
+And yet--"Spirit of youth, alive, unchanging"--he had never quite caught
+the full meaning of those words. They now seemed, in a way, to soften
+the pain of parting, to give him comfort and strength with which to face
+the years. Surely growing old would not be so bad if one could think of
+the spirit of youth as still there, alive, unchanging, spreading joy and
+hope through the world!
+
+And then, sweet and sudden as a breeze at sundown came the thought to
+him that here lay his life's work, his own little mission in the world:
+in using his intelligence and his power of interpretation, the only
+gifts he could discover himself as possessing, to guide and assist those
+who happened to come a little after him in the long procession of human
+life--in becoming, in short, a teacher. A sudden feeling of calmness and
+surety took possession of him; he was able to consider himself and his
+place in the world with a more complete detachment than he had ever
+before attained. He found himself able, for the moment, to rate his
+powers and limitations exactly as an unprejudiced observer might have
+done. Within him he suddenly, unmistakably felt those qualities of
+priest and prophet which, combined with that of the scholar, make up the
+ideal teacher.
+
+"Spirit of youth," he whispered, "to you I dedicate myself, such as I
+am, and my life, such as it may be."
+
+He stood still for a moment and listened as the great chorus behind the
+closed door brought the song to a finish, ending on a note both solemn
+and exalted. For a second or two there was silence, and then there
+burst forth the sound of the Yale cheer. The contrast between the last
+notes of the song and the brazen bellow of that cheer, hallowed by the
+memories of a hundred close-fought fields, struck Harry as both dramatic
+and comic, and caused a corresponding change in his own mood.
+
+"Spirit of youth, alive, unchanging!" he quoted again, laughing. Then he
+hurried off to say good-by to his aunt.
+
+
+
+
+PART II
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER I
+
+CAN LOVE BE CONTROLLED BY ADVICE?
+
+
+Madge Elliston lived alone with her mother in a small house on an
+unpretentious but socially unimpeachable side street, just off one of
+the main avenues. Their means, as Madge has already intimated, were
+modest--"modest," as the young lady sprightly put it, "to the point of
+prudishness." Joseph Elliston, her father, had been a brilliant and
+promising young professor when her mother married him, with, as people
+said, a career before him. If by career they meant affluence, they were
+wholly right in saying it was all before him. But though the two married
+on his prospects, they could not fairly have been said to have made an
+unwise venture. Nothing but death had kept Joseph Elliston from becoming
+a popular and respected teacher, a foremost authority on economics, the
+author of standard works on that subject, and the possessor of a
+comfortable income. But he had died when Madge, his only child, was five
+years old, leaving his small and sorrowing family barely enough to live
+on.
+
+The straitened circumstances in which the sad event threw Mrs. Elliston
+and her daughter were somewhat relieved by the generosity of the only
+sister of the widow, Eliza Scharndorst, herself a widow and the
+possessor of a large fortune. She was extremely fond of Madge, who
+always got on beautifully with her "Aunt Tizzy"--an infantile corruption
+allowed to survive into maturity--having more in common with her, if the
+truth must be known, than with her mother. She was a festive soul, much
+given to entertaining, and she was not long in discovering that the
+assistance of her niece was a distinct asset in making her home
+attractive to guests. It is not to be wondered at that Madge's
+occasional services in the way of decorating a dinner table or
+brightening up an otherwise stodgy reception would redound to her
+material benefit as well as to her spiritual welfare. Such good things
+as trips to Bermuda, occasional new frocks and instruction under the
+best music masters, came her way so frequently that by the time we next
+meet her, nearly five years after our last sight of her, Madge was a far
+better dowered young woman, socially speaking, than the penniless
+orphaned daughter of a college professor could normally hope to be.
+
+For when we next see her Miss Elliston is--and in no mere figurative
+sense--holding the center of the stage. A real stage in a real theater,
+under the full blaze of real footlights, and if no real audience sits on
+the other side of those footlights, it is no great matter, for a very
+real audience will sit there soon enough. On Friday night, to be exact,
+and this is Tuesday. To be even more exact, it is the first formal,
+dress rehearsal of an amateur performance of "The Beggar's Opera"
+(immortal work!) organized primarily for charitable purposes by a number
+of prominent citizens, among them Mrs. Rudolph Scharndorst, and
+secondarily, if we are to give any weight to the opinion of those
+present at the rehearsal, for the purpose of giving scope to the talents
+of Mrs. Rudolph Scharndorst's niece.
+
+For Madge is cast for the part of Polly Peachum, heroine of the piece.
+And if there was originally the slightest doubt as to the wisdom of such
+an assignment, it has vanished into thin air before now. For Madge is
+lovely--! It is not merely a matter of voice; there never was any doubt
+but that she had the best voice available for the part. What the
+scattered few in the dark auditorium are busy admiring now is the
+extraordinary charm, grace, actual beauty, even, of the girl performing
+before them. The more so because it is all so unattended; no one thought
+that she would give that effect on the stage. Of a type usually
+described as "attractive," slight and rather short, with hair sandy
+rather than golden, and a face distinguished only by a nice pair of blue
+eyes and a particularly ingratiating smile, Madge could not fairly be
+expected to turn herself into a vision of commanding beauty and charm
+with the slight external aids of paint and powder and a position behind
+a row of strong lights.
+
+The only unimpressed and indifferent person in the theater was the
+coach. That was quite as it should be, of course; coaches must not
+exhibit bursts of enthusiasm, like common people. Yet it is perhaps
+worth mentioning that the coach in question made none of his frequent
+interruptions during the first few moments of Polly's presence on the
+stage, but sat silently biting his pencil and frowning in the back row
+of the theater till after she had finished her second song.
+
+"One moment!" he cried, running down the aisle. "I'm going to change
+that song." He exchanged a few whispered remarks with the leader of the
+orchestra, who had charge of the musical side of the production. "All
+right--never mind now--go on with the act ... No, don't cross there,
+Mrs. Peachum; stay where you are, and Miss Elliston! what are the last
+words of the second line of that song?"
+
+"'Mothers obey.'"
+
+"All right--let's have 'em. I didn't get them that time. Go on, please."
+
+The act continued, and admiration grew apace. When at length the act
+reached its close there was a faint but spontaneous outburst of applause
+from the almost empty theater.
+
+"Well, what do you think of Madge?" asked Mrs. Scharndorst, waylaying
+the coach on his progress down the aisle.
+
+"Oh, she'll do! There's a lot there to improve, though.--Strike for the
+second act--drinking scene!" This last uttered in a shout as he rushed
+on down to the stage. Not very fulsome praise, to be sure, but Mrs.
+Scharndorst knows her man, and is satisfied. Indeed, she respects him
+the more for not being fulsome.
+
+So do the other members of the cast and chorus; at least, if they do
+respect him, it cannot be for the enthusiasm of his approval. His
+demeanor, as he stands there on a chair in the orchestra pit, shouting
+directions to his minions, is not indicative of very profound
+satisfaction with the progress of the rehearsal.
+
+"Thompson! If you're going to use your spot on Polly's entrance, for
+Heaven's sake keep it on her face and not on her feet! I didn't see a
+thing but her shoes then ... No, you there, that table way down
+front--so, and oh, Mrs. Smith! is that Tilman's idea of a costume for an
+old woman, middle class?... I thought so ... no, I'm afraid not! That
+train might be quite suitable for a duchess, but it won't do for a
+robber's wife. You see Miss Banks about it, will you please?... Mr.
+Barnaby! I want to get you and Miss Elliston to go through the business
+of that Pretty Polly song once again--you're both as stiff as pokers
+still.... No, just the motions. No, stand on both feet and keep your
+chest out while you're singing your part, and when she comes in,
+'Fondly, fondly,' you half turn round, so--so that when she falls back
+on your arm she'll have a chance to show more than her chin to the
+audience.... No, I think I'll have you wait till the encore before you
+kiss her--it looks flat if you do it too often, and by the bye, Mr.
+Barnaby, will you make an appointment with Mrs. Adams for to-morrow to
+get up a dance for that prison scene--'How happy could I be with
+either'.... Four o'clock--all right.... What song?"
+
+This last is in answer to an inquiry from Miss Elliston.
+
+"Oh, of course--'Can love be controlled by advice'.... Come down here
+and we'll talk it over. Careful, step in the middle of that chair and
+you'll be all right ... there!" And Miss Elliston and the great man sit
+down companionably in the places belonging respectively to the oboe and
+the trombone, just as though they had been friends from earliest youth.
+
+If there is one thing we despise, it is transparent roguishness on the
+part of an author. Let us hasten to admit, then, that the coach is none
+other than our friend Harry; a Harry not changed a particle, really,
+from his undergraduate days, though a Harry, to be sure, in whom the
+passage of five years has effected certain important developments. Such,
+for instance, as having become able to coach an amateur production of a
+musical show. These will be described and accounted for, all in good
+time. The story cannot be everywhere at once.
+
+"About that song ... I know nothing about music, of course, but it
+struck me to-night that that was rather a good tune--one of the best in
+the show.... It may have been the singing, of course."
+
+"Not a bit of it--it's a ripping tune!--Let's see what the trombone part
+for it looks like.... There isn't any--just those little thingumbobs.
+Oh, the accompaniment is all on the strings, of course; I forgot."
+
+"Well, what I want to get at is, do you think Gay's words are up to
+it?"
+
+"Nowhere near. I'd much rather sing some of yours, if that's what you're
+getting at.... They're not quite _jeune fille_, either; I just
+discovered that to-day."
+
+"There's a great deal in this show that isn't. We've cut most of it, but
+there's a good bit left, only no one who hasn't studied the period can
+spot it.... You needn't tell any one that.--Well, let's see about some
+words. 'Can love be controlled by advice, will Cupid our mothers
+obey'--we'll keep that, I think ..."
+
+He produced a scrap of paper from his pocket and scribbled rapidly on
+it. In a minute or two he had evolved the following stanzas, retaining
+the first four lines of Gay's original song:
+
+ Can love be controlled by advice?
+ Will Cupid our mothers obey?
+ Though my heart were as frozen as ice
+ At his flame 'twould have melted away.
+ Now love is enthroned in my heart
+ All your threats and entreaties are in vain;
+ His power defies all your art,
+ And chiding but adds to my pain.
+
+ Ah, mother! if ever in youth
+ Your heart by love's anguish was wrung;
+ If ever you thrilled with its truth
+ Too sweet to be spoken or sung;
+ If ever you've longed for life's best,
+ Nor reckoned the issue thereof;
+ If heart ever beat in your breast
+ Have pity on me--for I love!
+
+"There!" said he, handing it to the prima donna; "see what you think of
+that."
+
+"Oh ... much better! There'll be much more fun in singing it."
+
+"It isn't much in the way of poetry," explained Harry, "but it gives a
+certain dramatic interest to the song, which is the main thing. You can
+change anything you want in it, of course; I daresay some of those words
+are quite unsingable on the notes of the song."
+
+"No--I think they'll be all right. Thank you very much; it was hard to
+make anything out of the other words. Also, I shall be able to tell Mama
+that you've cut out some of Gay's naughty words and put in some innocent
+ones of your own instead. She's been just a little worried lately, I
+think; she seems to have an idea that 'The Beggar's Opera' isn't quite a
+nice play for a young lady to act in!"
+
+"Well, one can hardly blame her...." This sentence trailed off into
+inaudibility as Harry turned to give his attention to some one else
+coming up with a question at the moment. Perhaps Miss Elliston did not
+even hear the beginning of the sentence; it is easier to believe that
+she did not, in view of what followed. Certainly every extenuating
+circumstance is needed, on both sides, to help account for the fact that
+so trivial conversation as that which just took place should have led
+directly to unpleasantness and indirectly to consequences of a
+far-reaching kind. It is easier to comprehend, also, if one remembers
+that Miss Elliston's thoughts when she was left alone by Harry occupying
+the position of the trombone, remained on, or at any rate quite near,
+the point at which the conversation broke off, whereas Harry's had flown
+far from it. So that when, after an interval of a few minutes, Harry's
+voice again became articulate to her in the single isolated sentence
+"given her something to say to her old frump of a mother," addressed to
+the leader of the orchestra, she at first misconstrued his meaning,
+interpreting his remark not as he meant it, as referring to her stage
+mother, Mrs. Peachum, but as referring to quieting the puritanical
+scruples of her own mother, Mrs. Elliston.
+
+The whole affair hung on an incredibly slender thread of coincidence. If
+Harry had not unconsciously raised his voice somewhat on that one
+phrase, if he had not happened to use the word "frump," which might
+conceivably be twisted into applying to either mother, Miss Elliston
+would never, even for a moment, have been tempted to attribute the baser
+meaning to his words. As it was the thought did not remain in her head
+above five seconds, at the outside; she knew Harry better than to
+believe seriously that he would say such a thing. But by another
+unfortunate chance Harry happened to be looking her way during those few
+seconds, and marked her angry flush and the instantaneous glance of
+indignation and contempt that she shot toward him. He saw her flush die
+down and her expression soften again, but the natural quickness that had
+made him realize her state of mind was not long in giving him an
+explanation of it.
+
+All might yet have been well had not Harry's sense of humor played him
+false. As usually happened at these evening rehearsals he escorted Miss
+Elliston home, her house lying on the way to his. In the course of the
+walk an unhappy impulse made him refer to the little incident, which had
+struck him as merely humorous.
+
+"By the way," said he "your sense of filial duty almost led you astray
+to-night, didn't it?"
+
+"Filial duty?"
+
+"Yes--you thought I was making remarks about your mother to-night when I
+was talking to Cosgrove about Mrs. Peachum and that song...."
+
+"Oh, that--!" Any one who knew her might have expected Miss Elliston to
+laugh and continue with something like "Yes, I know; wasn't it
+ridiculous of me?" since she really knew perfectly well that Harry was
+talking about Mrs. Peachum. That she did not is due partly to the
+fatigue incident to rehearsing a leading part in an opera in addition to
+teaching school from nine till one every day, and partly to the
+eternally inexplicable depths of the feminine nature. She had been very
+much ashamed of herself for having even for a moment done that injustice
+to Harry, and she wished intensely that the affair might be buried in
+the deepest oblivion. Harry's opening of the subject, consequently,
+seemed to her tactless and a trifle brutal. She had done penance all the
+evening for her after all very trifling mistake; why should he insist
+upon humiliating her this way?... Obviously she was very tired!
+
+"Yes," went on Harry, "don't expect me to believe that you were angry on
+behalf of Mrs. Peachum!"
+
+"No. I suppose I had a right to be angry on behalf of my own mother, if
+I wanted to, though."
+
+"But I wasn't talking about your mother--you know that!"
+
+"Oh, weren't you?"
+
+"Well, do you think so?"
+
+"How should I know? I was only eavesdropping, of course, I have no right
+to think anything about it."
+
+"Madge, don't be silly."
+
+"Well?"
+
+"Do you really, honestly think that I am guilty of having spoken
+slightingly of your mother? Just answer me that, yes or no."
+
+"As I say, I have no right to any opinion on the subject. I only heard
+something not intended--"
+
+"Oh, the--" The remainder of this exclamation was fortunately lost in
+the collar of Harry's greatcoat. "You had better give me back that
+song--I presume you won't want to sing it now."
+
+"Why not? Art is above all personal feelings." It was mere wilfulness
+that led her to utter this cynical remark. What she really wanted to say
+was "Of course I want to sing it, and I know you meant Mrs. Peachum,"
+but somehow the other answer was given before she knew it.
+
+"Madge, you may not know it, but you are positively insulting."
+
+"Oh, Harry--! Who began being insulting? Not that I mind your insulting
+me...."
+
+"Oh. That's the way it is, is it? I see." They were now standing talking
+at the foot of Madge's front steps. Harry continued, very quietly: "Now
+perhaps you'd better give me back that song."
+
+"I don't see the necessity."
+
+"I'll be damned if you shall sing it now!" His voice remained low, but
+passion sounded in it as unmistakably as if he had shouted. The remark
+was, in fact, made in an uncontrollable burst of anger, necessitating
+the severing of all diplomatic relations.
+
+"Just as you like, of course." Madge's tone, cold, expressionless,
+hopelessly polite, is equivalent to the granting of a demanded passport.
+"Here it is. Good-night."
+
+"Good-night."
+
+So they parted, in a white heat of anger. But being both fairly sensible
+people, in the main, beside being the kind of people whose anger however
+violently it may burn at first, does not last long, they realized before
+sleep closed their eyes that night that the quarrel would not last over
+another day.
+
+Morning brought to Harry, at any rate, a complete return of sanity, and
+before breakfast he sat down and wrote the following note:
+
+ Dear Madge:
+
+ I send back the song merely as a token of the abjectness of my
+ submission--I don't suppose you will want to sing it now. I
+ can't tell you how sorry I am about my behavior last night; I
+ can only ask you to attribute as much, of it as possible to
+ the fatigue of business and forgive the rest!
+
+ HARRY.
+
+which he enclosed in an envelope with the words of the song and sent to
+Madge by a messenger boy.
+
+Madge received it while she was at breakfast. She went out and told the
+boy to wait for an answer, and went back and finished her breakfast
+before writing a reply. Her face was noticeably grave as she ate, and it
+became even graver when at last she sat down at her desk and started to
+put pen to paper. She wrote three pages of note-paper, read them, and
+tore them up. She then wrote a page and a half, taking more time over
+them than over the three. This she also tore up. Then she sat inactive
+at her desk for several minutes, and at last, seeing that she was due at
+her school in a few minutes, she took up another sheet of paper and
+wrote: "All right--my fault entirely. M. E.," and sent it off by the
+boy.
+
+When Harry saw her at the rehearsal that evening she greeted him exactly
+as if nothing had happened. She had rather less to say to him than was
+customary during rehearsals, but Harry was so busy and preoccupied he
+did not notice that. He did notice that she sang the original words to
+the disputed song, which, as he told himself, was just what he expected.
+
+For the next two days he was fairly buried in responsibility and detail
+and hardly conscious of any feeling whatever beyond an intense desire to
+have the performance over. It was not until this desire was partially
+fulfilled, the curtain actually risen on the Friday night and the
+performance well under way, that he was able to sit back and draw a free
+breath. The moment came when, having seen that all was well behind the
+scenes, he dropped into the back of the box occupied by Aunt Selina and
+one or two chosen friends to watch the progress of the play from the
+front.
+
+Then, for the first time, he was able to look at it more from the point
+of view of a spectator than that of a creator. Now that his work was
+completed and must stand or fall on its own merit, he could watch from a
+wholly detached position. On the whole, he rather enjoyed the sensation.
+It occurred to him, for instance, as quite a new thought, that the
+excellent make-up of the stolid Mr. Dawson in the part of Peachum very
+largely counteracted his vocal "dulness"; and that Mrs. Smith as Mrs.
+Peachum, in spite of the innumerable sillinesses and bad tricks that had
+been his despair for weeks, was making an extremely good impression upon
+the audience.
+
+Then Madge made her entrance, and he saw at a glance, as he had never
+seen it before, just how good Madge was. She had a certain way of
+carrying her head, a certain sureness in adjusting her movements to her
+speech, a certain judgment in projecting her voice that went straight to
+the spot. Madge was a born actress, that was all there was to it; she
+ought to have made the stage her profession. He smiled inwardly as he
+thought how many people would make that remark after this performance.
+Then his amusement gave place to a sudden and strange resentment against
+the very idea of Madge's going on the stage; a resentment he made no
+effort either to understand or account for....
+
+The strings in the orchestra quavered a few languorous notes and Madge
+started her song "Can love be controlled by advice." Her voice was a
+singularly sweet one, of no great volume and yet possessed of a certain
+carrying quality. The excellence of her instruction, combined with her
+own good taste, had brought it to a state of what, for that voice, might
+be called perfection. She also had the good sense never to sing anything
+too big for her. But though her voice might not be suited to Wagner or
+Strauss it was far better suited to certain simpler things than a larger
+voice might have been, and the song she was singing now was one of
+these. Probably no more happy combination could be effected between
+singer and song than that of Madge and the slow, plaintive,
+seventeenth-century melody of "Grim king of the ghosts," which Gay had
+the good sense to incorporate into his masterpiece.
+
+To say that the audience was spellbound by her rendering of the song
+would be to stretch a point. It sat, for the most part, silently
+attentive, enjoying it very much and thinking that it would give her a
+good round of applause and an encore at the end. Harry, standing in the
+obscurity of the back part of Aunt Selina's box, was of very much the
+same mind. For about half of the song, that is. For near the end of the
+first verse he suddenly realized that Madge was singing not Gay's
+words, but his own.
+
+It was absurd, of course, but at that realization the whole world seemed
+suddenly to change. The floor beneath his feet became clouds, the
+theater a corner of paradise, the people in it choirs of marvelous
+ethereal beings, Mrs. Peachum (alias Smith) a ministrant seraph, Madge's
+voice the music of the spheres, and Madge herself, from being an
+unusually nice girl of his acquaintance, became....
+
+What nonsense! he told himself; the idea of getting so worked up at
+hearing his own words sung on a stage!--You fool, replied another voice
+within him, you know perfectly well that that's not it at all.--Don't
+tell me, replied the other Harry, the sensible one; such things don't
+happen, except in books; they don't happen to real people--ME, for
+instance.--Why not? obstinately inquired the other; why not you, as well
+as any one else?--Well, I can't stop to argue about it now, the
+practical Harry answered; I've got to go out and see that people are
+ready for their cues.
+
+He went out, and found everything running perfectly smoothly. People
+were standing waiting for their entrances minutes ahead of time, the
+electricians were at their posts, the make-up people had finished their
+work, the scene-shifters and property men had put everything in
+readiness for setting the next scene; no one even asked him a question.
+He flitted about for a few moments on imaginary errands, asking various
+people if all was going well; but the real question that he kept asking
+himself all the time was Is this IT? Is this IT?
+
+"I don't know!" he said at last, loudly and petulantly, and several
+people turned to see whom he was reproving now.
+
+When he got back to the box he found Madge still singing the last verse
+of her song. He wondered how many times she had had to repeat it, and
+hoped Cosgrove was living up to his agreement not to give more than one
+encore to each song. In reality this was her first encore; his hectic
+trip behind the scenes had occupied a much shorter time than he
+supposed. Madge was making a most exquisite piece of work of her little
+appeal to maternal sympathy; she was actually taking the second verse
+sitting down, leaning forward with her arms on a table in an attitude of
+conversational pleading. He had not told her to do that; it was so hard
+to make effective that he would not have dared to suggest it. When she
+reached the line, "If heart ever beat in your breast" she suddenly rose,
+slightly threw back her arms and head, and sang the words on a wholly
+new note of restrained passion, beautifully dramatic and suggestive. The
+house burst into applause, but Harry was seized with a fit of unholy
+mirth at the irony of the situation--Madge, perfectly indifferent,
+singing those words, while he, their author, consumed with an
+all-devouring flame, stood stifling his passion in a dark corner. An
+insane desire seized him to run out to the middle of the stage and shout
+at the top of his voice "Have pity on me, for I love!" It would be true
+then. He supposed, however, that people might think it peculiar.
+
+From then on, as long as Madge held the stage, he stood rooted to the
+spot, unable to lift his eyes from her. Presently her lover came in, and
+they started the lovely duet, "Pretty Polly, say." At the end of the
+encore, according to Harry's instructions, Barnaby leaned over and
+kissed his Polly on the mouth. A sudden and intense dislike for Mr.
+Barnaby at that moment overcame Harry....
+
+The act ended; the house went wild again; the curtain flopped up and
+down with no apparent intention of ever stopping; ushers rushed down the
+aisles with great beribboned bunches of flowers. This gave Harry an
+idea; as soon as the second act was safely under way he rushed out to
+the nearest florist's shop and commandeered all the American Beauty
+roses in the place, to be delivered to Miss Elliston with his card at
+the end of the next act.
+
+As he was going out of the shop he stopped to look at some peculiar
+little pink and white flowers in a vase near the door.
+
+"What are those?" he asked.
+
+"Bleeding hearts," said the florist's clerk. "Just up from Florida; very
+hard to get at this time of year."
+
+Harry stood still, thinking. If he sent those--would she Know--Of course
+she would, answered the practical Harry immediately; she would not only
+Know but would call him a fool for his pains.--Oh, shut up! retorted the
+other.
+
+"I'll have these then, instead of the roses, please," he said aloud.
+"All of them, and don't forget the card."
+
+They did not meet till after the performance was over. He caught sight
+of her making a sort of triumphal progress through the back of the
+stage, on her way to the dressing rooms, and deliberately placed himself
+in her path. She was looking rather surprisingly solemn, he noticed. Her
+face lighted up, however, when she saw him. She smiled, at least.
+
+"Well, what did _you_ think of it?" she asked.
+
+"I think the performance was very creditable," he answered. "To say what
+I think of you would be compromising."
+
+She laughed and went on without making any reply. He could not see her
+face, but something gave him the impression that her smile did not last
+very long after she had turned away from him.
+
+He walked home alone through the crisp March night, breathing deeply and
+trying to reduce his teeming brain to a state of order and clarity. The
+walk from the theater home was not sufficient for this; he walked far
+beyond his house and all the way back again before he could think
+clearly enough. At last he raised his eyes to the comfortable stars and
+spoke a few words aloud in a low, calm voice.
+
+"I really think," he said, "that this is IT. I really do think so ...
+But I must be very careful," he added, to himself; "_very_ careful. I
+must take no chances--this time. Both on Madge's account and on mine."
+
+"No," he added after a moment; "not on my account. On Madge's."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER II
+
+CONGREVE
+
+
+Little had happened to mark the greater part of the time that had
+elapsed since Harry's graduation. For three years he had studied hard
+for his doctor's degree, and during the fourth year he had been set to
+teaching English literature to freshmen, which task, on the whole, he
+accomplished with marked success. But during the fifth year, the year in
+which we next see him, he was not teaching freshmen, though he was still
+living in New Haven, and working, according to his own accounts, like a
+galley slave. The events which led up to this state of things form a
+matter of some moment in his career.
+
+These began with the production, during his fourth year out of college,
+of a play of his by the college dramatic association. Or, to be more
+exact, it really began some months before that, when Harry, leaving a
+theater one evening after witnessing a poor play, had remarked to his
+companion of the moment: "I actually believe that I could write a better
+play than that." To which the friend made the obvious answer, "Why don't
+you, then?" "I will," replied Harry, and he did.
+
+It was his first venture in that field of composition. In all his
+literary activities he had never before, to borrow his own phrase,
+committed dramaturgy. To the very fact that his maiden effort came so
+late Harry was wont, in later years, to attribute a large measure of his
+success. His idea was that if he had begun earlier his first results
+would have been so excruciatingly bad as to discourage him from
+sustained effort in that direction.
+
+However this may be, the play was judged the best of those submitted in
+a competition organized by the dramatic association, and was produced by
+it during the following winter with a very fair amount of success.
+Nobody could fairly have called it a remarkable play, but neither could
+any one have been justified in calling it a bad one. Its theme was,
+apart from its setting, singularly characteristic of the subsequent
+style of its author and may be said to have struck the tragi-comic note
+that sounded through all his later work. It concerned the experiences of
+a struggling young English author, poor, but of gentle birth, who is
+first seen inveighing against the snobbery, coldness and indifference
+shown toward him by people of wealth and position, and later, after
+coming unexpectedly into a peerage and a large fortune, is horrified to
+find himself forced into displaying the very qualities which he had so
+fiercely condemned in others. The machinery of the play was somewhat
+artificial, but the characterization and dramatic interest were
+skilfully worked out. The dialogue was everywhere delightful and the
+contrast afforded between the conscientious, introspective sincerity of
+the young author and the gaily unscrupulous casuistry of his wife was a
+forecast, if not actually an early example, of his best work.
+
+Harry was never blind to the faults of the play, but he remained
+convinced that it was good in the main, and, what was more important,
+retained his interest in dramatic composition. He worked hard during the
+following spring and summer and at length evolved another play, which he
+called "Chances" and believed was a great improvement upon his first
+work. Early in August he sent the play to a New York manager to whom he
+had obtained an introduction and after a week or two made an appointment
+with him.
+
+The secret trepidation with which he first entered the office of the
+great, the redoubtable Leo Bachmann was largely allayed by the
+appearance of the manager. He was a large flabby man, with scant stringy
+hair and a not unpleasant smile. He sat heavily back in an office chair
+and puffed continually at a much-chewed cigar, the ashes of which fell
+unnoticed and collected in the furrows of his waistcoat. He spoke in a
+soft thick voice, with a strong German accent. Harry did not see
+anything particularly terrifying about him.
+
+"Ah, yes, Mr. Vimbourne," said the manager when Harry had made himself
+known. "You have sent me a play, yes? Ah, here it is.... Unfortunately I
+have not had time to read it; I am very, very busy just now, but my man
+Jennings has read it and tells me it is very nice. Very nice, indeed
+..." he puffed in ruminative silence for a few seconds. "Could you come
+back next week, say Friday, Mr. Vimbourne? and we will talk it over. I
+am sorry to trouble you, but you see I am so very, very busy...."
+
+Harry made another appointment and left, not wholly dissatisfied. He
+returned, ten days afterward, to his second interview, which was an
+almost exact replica of the first. He allowed himself to be put off
+another ten days, but when he returned for the third time and was
+greeted by precisely the same soft words he was irritated and hardly
+able to conceal the fact.
+
+"Ah, yes, your play," said the manager, as though he had just heard of
+it for the first time. "Jennings was speaking to me of it only the other
+night. I am sorry to say I have not read it yet." He took the manuscript
+from a pile on his desk and turned over the leaves. "I am sorry--very
+sorry--I have so little time...."
+
+"I don't believe you, Mr. Bachmann," said Harry.
+
+"Ah?" said the manager, without the slightest apparent interest. "Why
+not, Mr. Vimbourne?"
+
+"Well, you turned straight to the best scene in it just now, for one
+thing.... Beside, you wouldn't keep me hanging on this way if you didn't
+see something in it, and if you see anything in it of course you've read
+it. And I don't mind telling you, Mr. Bachmann, that isn't my idea of
+business."
+
+Mr. Bachmann's next remark was so unexpected that Harry nearly swooned
+in his chair. "I read it the day after it came," he said softly.
+
+"Then why on earth didn't you say so in the first place?" stammered
+Harry.
+
+The manager made no reply for some moments, but sat silently puffing and
+turning over the pages of Harry's manuscript.
+
+"I like to know people," he murmured at last, very gently and with
+apparent irrelevance. Harry, however, saw the bearing of the remark and
+suddenly felt extraordinarily small. He had been rather proud of his
+little burst of spirit and independence; he now saw that Leo Bachmann
+had drawn it from him with the ease and certainty of touch with which a
+musician produces a note from a flute. He wondered, abjectly, how many
+other self-satisfied young authors had sat where he sat and been played
+upon by that great puffing mass of pulp.
+
+Bachmann was the next to speak. "I like your play very much, Mr.
+Vimbourne," he said. "It is very nice--some things in it not so good,
+but on the whole, it is very nice. I think I vill try to produce it, Mr.
+Vimbourne, but not yet--not till I see how my September plays go. I
+shall keep yours in reserve, and then, later, we may try it. About the
+first of November, when the Fifth Avenue crowd comes back to town...."
+He smiled slightly. "They are the people that vill vant to see it. Not
+Harlem. Not Brooklyn. The four hundred. Even so," he continued,
+ruminatively, "even so, I shall not make on it."
+
+This seemed to Harry a good opening for a proposition he had been
+longing to make since the very first but had never quite dared. "If you
+want me to put anything up on it, Mr. Bachmann, why--I...."
+
+"No," said Mr. Bachmann gently; "I never do that, I produce my own
+plays, for my own reasons. I vill pay you a sum, down. And a small
+royalty, perhaps--after the hundredth performance."
+
+Harry looked up and smiled, and the manager smiled back at him. His
+smile grew quite broad, almost a laugh, in fact. Then he rose from his
+chair--the first time Harry had seen him out of it--and clasped Harry's
+hand between his two large plump ones.
+
+"I think we shall get on very well, Mr. Vimbourne," he said. "Very well,
+indeed. I vill let you know when rehearsals begin. And you must write
+more--a great deal more. But--vait till after the rehearsals!"
+
+"Yes, I think I understand you," said Harry, laughing. "I'll wait. And
+I'll come to the rehearsals, too!"
+
+In October the rehearsals actually started, and Harry began to see what
+he told Mr. Bachmann he thought he understood. Day after day he sat in
+the dark draughty theater and watched the people on the stage slash and
+cut and change his carefully constructed dialogue without offering a
+word of remonstrance. At first the pleasure of seeing his own work take
+tangible form, on a real professional stage and by the agency of real
+professional actors more than made up for the loss. Then as the
+rehearsals went on, he perceived that there was a very real reason for
+every cut and change, and that the play benefited tremendously thereby.
+He began to see how acting accomplishes a great deal of what he had
+always considered the office of dialogue. A dialogue of five speeches,
+to take a concrete example, on the probable reasons why a certain person
+did not arrive when he was expected was made unnecessary by one of the
+characters crossing the stage and looking out of a window at just the
+right moment and with just the right facial expression.
+
+Harry made no secret of his conviction that his play improved immensely
+under the care of Bachmann and his people. His attitude was that they
+knew everything about play-producing and he knew nothing, and that the
+extraordinary thing was that he had been able to provide them with any
+dramatic material whatever. He joked about it with the actors and
+managers, when occasion offered, as callously as if he had been a third
+person, and rather surprised himself by the light-heartedness he
+displayed. Whether this was entirely genuine, whether it did not contain
+elements of a pose, a desire to appear as a man of the theatrical world,
+a fear of falling into all the usual errors of youthful playwrights, he
+did not at first ask himself.
+
+One day, about a week before the opening night, he received a jolt that
+made him look upon himself and his calling in rather a new light. This
+came through an unexpected agent--none other, indeed, than a woman of
+the cast, and not the player of the principal female part at that, but a
+lesser light, Bertha Bensel by name, a plain but pleasant little person
+of uncertain age. Harry was lunching alone with her and carrying on in
+what had become his customary style when talking of his play.
+
+"You know," he was saying, "I thought at one time I had written a play,
+but I haven't, I've written a moving picture show. Everybody is writing
+movies these days, even those that try to write anything else, which
+just shows. I'm going regularly into the movie business, after this.
+Seriously. And I intend to write the real kind of movies, the kind that
+don't bother about the characters at all, but just dramatize scenery. I
+shall call things by their proper names, too. Let's see--a Devonshire
+parsonage is beloved and wooed by a Scotch moor, but turns him down for
+a Louis Onze chateau with a Le Notre garden. She discovers, just in
+time, that his intentions are not honorable, and is rescued by a Montana
+prairie, who happens along just at the right moment. The situation is
+still awkward, however, because the parsonage finds that her prairie has
+a wife living, a New York gambling hell, whom he hates but who won't
+release him. So the parsonage refuses his disinterested offers and
+starts life for herself. After various adventures with a South Carolina
+plantation, an Indian Ocean trawler, an Argentine pampas and the Scala
+theater at Milan, the poor parsonage ends up in a London sweat shop, to
+which she is at last discovered by the Scotch moor, who had been looking
+for her all these years. Embrace. Passed by the national board of
+censors."
+
+Miss Bensel smiled, but did not seem to see much humor in this foolery.
+That was due, thought Harry, to the fatigue of her long morning's work,
+and he determined not to bother her with any more nonsense. The silence
+which he allowed to ensue, however, was broken by an unexpected remark
+from his _vis-a-vis_, who said with a dispassionate air:
+
+"I think, Mr. Wimbourne, you stand in a great danger."
+
+"Danger?"
+
+"Yes, that is, I hope you do. If not, I'm very much disappointed in
+you."
+
+"Thank you so much, but just how?"
+
+"You're in danger of getting to take your art as lightly as you talk
+about it. Then you'll be lost, for good. It's a real danger. I've seen
+the thing happen before, to people of as much talent as you, or nearly
+so."
+
+Harry looked at her in blank astonishment, and she went on:
+
+"If you go on talking that way about your profession, you'll get to
+think that way and finally _be_ that way. All roses and
+champagne--nothing worth while. You may go on writing plays, but they'll
+get sillier and sillier, even if they get more and more popular. So your
+life will pass away in frivolity and popularity.... That's not your
+place in the world, Mr. Wimbourne. You've got talent--perhaps more. You
+know that? This play, now. I say nothing about the dialogue, because
+good dialogue is not so rare--though yours is the best I've seen for
+some time--but how about the rest of it, the story, the ideas? It's good
+stuff--you know it is."
+
+Harry leaned back in his chair and tapped the table meditatively with a
+spoon. He had the lack of self-consciousness that enables a person to
+take blame exactly in the spirit in which it is given, with no alloying
+mixture of embarrassment or resentment.
+
+"Yes," he said after a while, "I suppose you're right about it. I have a
+certain responsibility.... I suppose the stuff is good, when all is said
+and done--though I don't dare to think it can be."
+
+Miss Bensel leaned forward with her elbows on the table and allowed her
+face to relax into a smile, a curious little smile that did not part her
+lips but drew down the corners of her mouth.
+
+"That's it--I thought that probably was it! You're so modest you're
+afraid to take yourself seriously. Well, that's a pretty good fault; I
+think on the whole it's better than taking yourself too seriously. But
+don't do it, even so. Take it from me, my dear boy, you can't accomplish
+anything worth while in this world, _anything_, whatever it is, unless
+you take your work seriously--at bottom."
+
+Harry did a good deal of serious thinking on the subject during the rest
+of the day, and the more he thought about it the more convinced he
+became that Miss Bensel was right. He thought of Dickens' famous
+utterance on the subject of being flippant about one's life's work; he
+thought of the example of Congreve. Congreve, there was an appropriate
+warning! Congreve, whose life was a duel between the painstaking artist
+and the polished man-about-town, who never would speak other than
+lightly of his best work, whose boast and whose shame it was
+deliberately to stifle the fires of his own genius. Was he, Harry,
+guilty of something like the pose of Congreve? He thought of his
+attitude of exaggerated _camaraderie_ with the actors and managers, of
+his attitude toward his own work; he realized that frivolity had become
+not merely a pose, but a habit. Was he not, in such doings, following in
+the steps of Congreve--the man who insisted that the work that made him
+famous had been written for the sole purpose of whiling away the tedium
+of convalescence after an illness?
+
+As he watched his own play being enacted before his eyes that afternoon
+he realized that his work was, in the main, good, and that he had known
+it all along. He had felt it while he was writing it; Bachmann's
+astonishingly prompt (as he had since learned it to be) acceptance of it
+had given conclusive proof of it. If anything further was needed, he had
+it in the enthusiasm with which the actors played it and spoke of it.
+Somehow, by some incredible chance, the divine gift had fallen upon him.
+To belittle that gift, to fail to devote his best efforts to making the
+most of it, would be to shirk his life's duty.
+
+The third act, upon which most of the work of the afternoon was done,
+drew to its close. It had been immensely shortened by cuts; Harry was
+not sorry, though he missed some of what he had thought the best lines
+in the play. Then the heroine made her final exit, and Harry suddenly
+realized she had done so without her and the hero's having delivered two
+little speeches that ought to have come just before; speeches on which
+he had spent much care and labor. Those two lines had, in fact,
+contained the whole gist of the play, or at any rate driven home its
+thesis in a particularly striking way. The point of the play was that
+living was simply a system of chances, and these speeches made clear the
+distinction between the wrong kind of chancing, the careless,
+risking-all kind, whose final result was always ruin, and the sober,
+intelligent, prayerful kind, as shown in the lives of those who, after
+careful consideration of all the chances that may affect them, do what
+they decide is best and await the result with the calmness of a
+Mohammedan fatalist.
+
+Harry suddenly became imbued with the profound conviction that those two
+speeches were absolutely necessary to the understanding of his play. He
+hastily read over the last half of the act in his typewritten copy, and
+failed to see how any spectator could catch the true meaning of the work
+without them. Well, here was a chance to show how seriously he could
+take his art! The whole affair took on a new and strange momentousness;
+he stood at this instant, he told himself, at the very turning-point of
+his artistic career. He would not take the wrong road, cost him what it
+might; he would not be found wanting.
+
+Bachmann was in the theater, sitting in the back row of the orchestra,
+as was his custom. Harry determined to go straight to him and ask him to
+put those lines in again. As he walked up the aisle he thought
+feverishly of the tremendous import of this interview. Bachmann would
+refuse at first, he knew that well enough. Bachmann would not easily be
+convinced by the opinion of an inexperienced scribbler. But Harry was
+determined not to be beaten; he was prepared to fight, prepared to make
+a scene, if necessary; prepared to sacrifice the production of his play,
+if it came to that. He could see Bachmann's slow smile as he reminded
+him of practical considerations. "Your contract?" "Damn the contract,"
+Harry would reply. "Ha, ha! I've got the whip hand of you there, Mr.
+Bachmann! I can afford to break all the contracts I want!" "And your
+career?" retorted Bachmann, with a sneer, but turning ever so slightly
+pale. "Ho! my career! What the devil do I care for my career! I choose
+to write for all time, not for my own! I...."
+
+"Vell, Mr. Vimbourne," Bachmann, the live, fleshly Bachmann, was saying
+in a startlingly mild and everyday tone of voice, "what can I do for
+you?"
+
+"Oh ... I just wanted to speak to you about this last scene," said
+Harry, trying hard to keep his voice steady. "They've cut out two lines
+just before Miss Cleves' exit that I think ought to be kept."
+
+"Let's see."
+
+Harry handed him the manuscript and anxiously watched him as he glanced
+rapidly over the pages. "They're pretty important lines, really. They
+explain a lot; I'm afraid people won't understand...." He could feel his
+voice weakening and his knees trembling, but his determination remained.
+
+"Burchard!" Bachmann bellowed, in the general direction of the stage.
+
+"Yes!"
+
+"What about those two speeches before Miss Cleves' exit?"
+
+There was a short and rather flurried silence from the stage, after
+which the voice of Burchard again emerged:
+
+"Miss Cleves said she couldn't make her exit on that line."
+
+"Where is she? Tell her to come back and try it."
+
+The battle was won without a shot being fired. Harry, almost literally
+knocked flat by the surprise and relief of the moment, sank into the
+nearest seat. Bachmann got up and lumbered off toward the stage; Harry
+leaned his head against the back of his chair and gave himself over to
+an outburst of internal mirth, at his own expense.
+
+He raised his eyes again to the stage. Curiously enough, the first
+person his glance fell on was Miss Bensel, with her trim little figure
+and humorously plain face. It seemed to him she was smiling out at him,
+with a mocking little smile that drew down the corners of her mouth.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Everybody knows what happened to the play "Chances"; its history is a
+page of the American stage. Much has been said and written about it; it
+has been called a landmark, a stepping-stone, a first ditch, a guiding
+light, a moral victory, a glorious failure, a promising defeat and
+various similar things so often that people are tired of the very name
+of it. What actually happened to it can be told in a few words; it was
+well received, but not largely attended. It was withdrawn near the end
+of its fourth week.
+
+The critics were unanimous in praising it. Its dialogue was hailed as
+the ideal dialogue of contemporary comedy. The characterization, the
+humor of the lines, the universality of the theme, its wonderfully
+logical and convincing development all received their due meed of
+praise. It was compared to the comedies of Clyde Fitch, of Oscar Wilde,
+of Sheridan, and of Congreve--yes, actually Congreve! Harry smiled when
+he read that, and renewed his resolution never to let the comparison
+apply in a personal way. But to be seriously compared to Congreve, not
+Congreve the man but Congreve the author--! The thought made him fairly
+dizzy.
+
+But what took the eye of the critics, the best and soberest of them,
+that is, more than anything else was the mixture of the humorous and
+serious shown in the choice of the theme and its development. "To treat
+the element of humor," wrote one critic, "not as a colored glass through
+which to look at all life, as in farce, nor as a refreshing contrast to
+its serious side, as in the 'comic relief' of a host of plays from the
+Elizabethans down to the present day, but as part and parcel of the very
+essence of life itself, co-existent with its solemnity, inseparable from
+its difficulty, companion and friend to its unsolvable mystery; to put
+people in such a mood that they can laugh at the greatest things in
+their own lives, neither bitterly nor to give themselves Dutch courage,
+but for the pure, life giving, illuminating exaltation of
+laughing--this, we take it, is the whole essence and mission of comedy.
+And this--we say it boldly and in no spirit of empty flattery--is the
+type of comedy shown in Mr. Wimbourne's play."
+
+It is not hard to see how such words should bring joy to the heart of
+Harry and smiles of admiration and respect to the faces of his friends,
+from Leo Bachmann right up to Aunt Selina. But they did not bring people
+to the theater. For the first three performances the attendance was
+satisfactory; then it began steadily to fall off and by the end of the
+first week it became merely a question of how long it could survive.
+
+Leo Bachmann was, curiously enough, the least affected of all the
+theater crowd by the poor success of the work. He viewed the
+discouraging box office reports with an untroubled smile, and cheerfully
+began rehearsals for a new play. "Never you mind, my boy," he told
+Harry, "I knew I should not make money off your play. I told you so in
+the beginning. Never you mind! That is not your fault. It's just the way
+things go. I have only one word to say to you, and that is--write!" Even
+in his discouragement Harry could not help feeling that Mr. Bachmann was
+strangely calm and cheerful.
+
+Within a week from the end of the play's run a curious thing happened. A
+visiting English dramatist and critic, a confirmed self-advertiser, but
+a writer and thinker of unquestioned brilliancy, and a wit, withal, of
+international reputation, was greatly struck by the play and wrote an
+unsolicited letter about it which appeared in the pages of a leading
+daily.
+
+"No more striking proof," wrote this self-appointed defender of Harry,
+"could be offered of the consanguinal intellectual stupidity of the
+Anglo-Saxon race than I received at a performance of Mr. Harold
+Wimbourne's play 'Chances' at the ---- Theater last night. For the first
+time during my stay in this country as I looked over the almost empty
+stalls and realized that this, incomparably the best play running in New
+York, was also the worst attended, I could have fancied myself actually
+in my own country.
+
+"What are the lessons or qualities in Mr. Wimbourne's play which the
+American people cannot stomach? I suppose, when all is said and done, he
+has committed the unpardonable offense of giving them a little of their
+own medicine. He has rammed down their throats some few corollaries of
+the Calvinistic doctrines for which the ancestors of the very people who
+stay away from his play sailed an uncharted sea, conquered a wilderness,
+and spilt their blood to champion against a usurping power. The Pilgrim
+fathers founded the United States of America in order to publish the
+greatness of God and the littleness of man. Their descendants either
+ignore or condemn one of their number because he does not extol the
+greatness of man and the littleness of God. Because Mr. Wimbourne
+ventures to show, in a very mild--if very artistic and compelling
+way--how slight a hold man has on the moving force of life, God, the
+universe, a group of atoms--whatever you choose to call the world--he
+becomes a pariah. He has escaped easily after his first offense, but it
+will go hard with the Anglo-Saxon character if he is not stoned in the
+streets after the next one. America is a great and rich country; what
+does it care about religion or philosophy or art or any of that
+poppycock? Serious and devout thinking simply _are not done_; it has
+become as great a solecism to mention the name of the Deity in
+society--except as the hero of a humorous story--as to talk about Kant
+or Hegel. Americans have lost interest in that sort of stuff; they do
+not need it. Why, now that they have become physically strong, should
+they bother about the unsubstantial kind of strength known as moral to
+which they were forced to resort when they were physically weak? Why,
+having become mountain lions, should they continue to practise what
+upheld them when they were fieldmice?
+
+"Of course I should not have made such a point in favor of a play if it
+were not, technically and artistically speaking, a very good play. The
+truth when it is badly spoken hardly merits more attention than if it
+were not spoken at all. But 'Chances' is as beautifully constructed as
+it was conceived; it is a play that I should be proud to have written
+myself. Its technical perfections have already been praised, even by
+that class of people least calculated to appreciate them; I mean the
+critics. I will, therefore, mention but one small example, which I
+believe, in the presence of so many greater beauties, has been
+overlooked; namely, the short dialogue near the end of the first act in
+which Frances, in perhaps half a page of conversation with the man to
+whom she is then engaged, realizes that her engagement is empty, that
+she has no heart for the man, that a new way of looking at love has
+transcended her life;--realizes all this, and betrays it to the audience
+without in the smallest degree giving herself away to the man with whom
+she is talking or saying a word in violation of the probability of their
+conversation. Such a feat in dramaturgy is, perhaps, appreciable only to
+those who have tried to write plays themselves. Still, whom does that
+not include?
+
+"But I do not expect Americans to appreciate artistic perfection any
+more than I expect Englishmen to. The shame, the disgrace to Americans
+in not appreciating this play lies in the fact that it is fundamentally
+American; American in its characters, in its setting, and above all in
+its motive principles, which are the principles to which America owes
+its very existence."
+
+Such opinions, appearing over a famous signature, could not but revive
+interest and talk about its subject, and the play experienced a slight
+boom during the last few days of its existence. Its run, indeed, would
+have been extended but for the fact that Bachmann had made all the
+arrangements for its successor and advertised the date of its
+appearance. Altogether the incident tended to show that if the play was
+a failure it was at least a dynamic failure, indicative of future
+success.
+
+Harry was as little elated by the praise of the foreigner as he was cast
+down by the condemnation of his countrymen. His demeanor all along, ever
+since the day of his interview with Miss Bensel, had been characterized
+by an observant calmness. He dissuaded as many of his relations and
+friends as he could from being present at the first performance of the
+play and ignored those who insisted on being there. He himself occupied
+an obscure seat in the gallery and listened with the greatest attention
+to the comments of those about him. He thereby began to form an idea of
+what the general public thought of his work; knowledge which, as he
+himself realized, would be of inestimable value if he could put it to
+use in his next play.
+
+A letter Harry wrote to his Uncle Giles just after the play was taken
+off expresses his state of mind at this time. "'Chances' has gone by the
+board," he wrote; "that splendid American institution, the Tired
+Business Man, would have none of it, and it has ceased to be Drama and
+has become merely Literature. But I have learned a lot during its brief
+existence, and this knowledge I shall, please God, make use of if I ever
+write another play. Which is a mere figure of speech, as I have started
+one already.
+
+"I have learned the point of view of the Tired Business Man. That was
+what I wanted to know from the very first--not what the critics thought.
+They could do no more than say it was good, and I knew that already. And
+what the T. B. M. said was substantially, that my play was nice enough,
+but that it had no _punch_. I don't know whether you recognize that
+expression or not; it is one of those vivid American slang words that
+English people are so fascinated by. People thought the play wasn't
+interesting enough, and that is the simple truth about it. Therefore it
+wasn't a good play. For my idea is that to be really good a play must
+hold the stage, at least at the time it is written. And if we are ever
+going to build up such a thing as the 'American drama' our critics are
+continually bellowing about, we've got to begin with our foundations. We
+can't create a full-fledged literary drama and then go to work and make
+the people like it; we've got to begin with what the people like and
+build up our drama on that. That's the way all the great 'dramas' of
+history have grown up--the Greek, the French, the Spanish and the
+Elizabethan; and it is interesting to notice that the drama that came
+nearest to being the product of a mere literary class, the French, is
+the weakest of the lot and is standing the test of time worst of them
+all.
+
+"I may never write a more successful play than 'Chances'; I may never
+get another play on the stage at all. But one thing I am sure of; I
+shall never offer another play to the public without being convinced
+that it is a better stage play than 'Chances.'"
+
+Of course that a mere boy, fresh from college, with no practical
+experience of the stage whatever, should get a play produced at all was
+an unusual and highly gratifying thing. Harry became quite a lion that
+autumn, in a small way. He remained in New York till after the play was
+taken off, living with the James Wimbournes, and was the guest of honor
+at one or two of Aunt Cecilia's rather dull but eminently important
+dinners. He became the object of the attention of reporters, and also of
+that section of metropolitan _literati_ who live in duplex apartments
+and wear strings of pearls in their hair and can always tell Schubert
+from Schumann. He was especially delighted with these, and determined
+some day to write a play or a novel portraying the inner side of their
+painstaking spirituality.
+
+He saw a good deal of James during those weeks; more than he had seen of
+him since their college days. James had been rather sparing of his
+week-end visits to New Haven since moving to New York; Harry noticed
+that. He was sorry, for he now found James a great help and stimulus. He
+discovered that a walk or a motor ride with James between the hours of
+five and seven would obliterate the effects of the caviar-est of
+luncheons and the pinkest of teas and give him strength with which to
+face evenings in the company of people who appeared unable even to
+perspire anything less exalted than pure Pierian fluid.
+
+"Well, it's nice to meet some one who doesn't smell of Russian
+cigarettes," he observed one day as he took his place in the long, low,
+slightly wicked-looking machine in which James whiled away most of his
+leisure moments. "Do you know, sometimes I actually rush into the
+nursery at Aunt Cecilia's and kiss the youngest and bread-and-butteryest
+child there, just to get the Parnassian odors out of my lungs. Next to a
+rather slobby child, though, I prefer the society of an ex-All-American
+quarter-back."
+
+"Half," said James.
+
+"Oh, were you? Well, you don't smell of anything aesthetic-er than the
+camphor balls you put that coat away for the summer in.... James, if you
+go round another corner at eighty miles an hour I shall leap out and
+telephone for a policeman!"
+
+"Oh, that's all right. They all know me, anyway. They know I don't take
+risks."
+
+"Hm.... Well, it's all over for me next week, thank Heaven. I'm going
+back to Aunt Selina and Sunday night suppers, and I _shall_ be glad!"
+
+"Well, I will say," said James slowly and carefully, with the air of one
+determined to do the most meticulous justice, "that you have kept your
+head through it all pretty well."
+
+"Oh, it's not hard, when you come right to it," said Harry, laughing.
+"Of course there are moments when I wonder if I'm not really greater
+than Shakespeare. And it does seem funny to realize that the rising
+genius, the person people are all talking about, and poor little Me are
+the same. But then I remember what a failure my play was, and shrivel
+into the poor graduate student.... After I've written a successful play,
+though, I won't answer for myself. And after I've written 'Hamlet,' as I
+mean to some day, I shall be simply unbearable. You won't own me then."
+
+"Watch-chain round your neck?" suggested James.
+
+"Oh, worse than that--diamond bracelets! And corsets--if necessary. I
+saw a man wearing both the other day, I really did."
+
+"A man?"
+
+"Well, an actor. That's the sort of thing they run to now-a-days. Long
+hair and general sloppiness are quite out of date--among the really
+ultra ones, that is."
+
+"Well," said James, "I give you permission to be as ultra as you like,
+after you've written 'Hamlet.'"
+
+"That helps, of course. I daresay I'm lacking in proper seriousness, but
+it seems to me that if the choice were offered me, right now, between
+being the author of 'Hamlet' and being also an ultra, and not writing
+'Hamlet' and staying as I am, I would choose the latter. I don't know
+what my point of view may be at some future time, but that's what it is
+now, or at least I think it is. And after all, nobody can get nearer the
+truth than saying what he thinks his point of view at any given moment
+is, can he, James?"
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER III
+
+NOT TRIASSIC, CERTAINLY, BUT NEARLY AS OLD
+
+
+To return again to the events attendant on the "Beggar's Opera." Harry
+slept late the morning after the performance, and when he awoke it was
+with a mind rested and vacant except for an intangible conviction that
+something pleasant had happened. He yawned and stretched delectably, and
+in a leisurely sort of way set about discovering just what it was.
+
+"Let's see, now, what can it be?" he argued pleasantly. "Oh, yes, the
+'Beggar's Opera.' It's all over, thank Heaven, and it went off
+creditably well. The wigs arrived in time and the prison set didn't fall
+over, and nobody lost a cue--so you could notice it." He lay back for a
+moment to give full rein to the enjoyment of these reflections. "There
+was something else, though." His mind languidly returned to the pursuit,
+as a dog crosses a room stretching at every step. "I'm sure there was
+something else...."
+
+"Oh, yes, of course," he said at last; "I remember now. Madge Elliston."
+
+If, say, ten seconds sufficed for enjoyment of the recollection of the
+"Beggar's Opera," how long should you say would be necessary for the
+absorption of the truth contained in those two words? A lifetime? An
+honest answer; we won't undertake to say it's not the right one. Harry,
+at least, seemed to be of that opinion.
+
+"After all, though, it would be rather absurd to spend a whole lifetime
+in bed," he observed, after devoting twenty minutes to the subject. Then
+he jumped out of bed and pulled up the shade.
+
+Vague flittings of poetry and song buzzed through his brain. One little
+phrase in particular kept humming behind his ears; a scrap from a song
+he had heard Madge herself sing often enough:--"What shall I do to show
+how much I love her?" The thing rather annoyed him by its insistence. He
+stood by the open window and inhaled a few deep breaths of the
+quickening March air. "What shall I do to show how much I love her!"
+sang the air as it rushed up his nose and became breath and out again
+and became carbon dioxide. "I really don't know, I'm sure," he answered,
+impatiently breaking off and starting on some exercises he performed on
+mornings when he felt particularly energetic and there was time. Their
+rhythm was fascinating; he found he could do them in two different
+ways:--What shall--I do--to show--how much--I love her, or, What shall
+I--do to show--how much I--? "Oh, hang it!" He suddenly lost all
+interest in them. With one impatient, dramatic movement he tore off the
+upper half of his pajamas, ripping off three buttons as he did so. With
+another slightly more complicated but even more dramatic, he extricated
+himself from the lower half, breaking the string in the process.
+
+"Ts! ts! More work for somebody!" he said, making the sound in the roof
+of his mouth indicative of reproof. He kicked the damaged garments
+lightly onto the bed and sauntered into the adjoining bathroom.
+
+He turned on the water in the bathtub and stood watching
+it a moment as it gushed out in its noisy enthusiasm.
+"WhatshallIdotoshowhowmuchIloveher?" it inquired uncouthly. "Oh, do stop
+bothering me," said Harry, turning disgustedly away; "I've got to
+shave."
+
+He lathered his face and took the razor in his right hand, while with
+his left he delicately lifted the end of his nose, so as to make a taut
+surface of his upper lip. It was a trick he had much admired in barbers.
+"Somehow it's not so effective when you do it to yourself," he said
+regretfully, watching the effect in the mirror. It helped his shaving,
+however, and shaving helped his thinking. He was able to think quite
+clearly and seriously, in fact, in spite of the roaring of the water
+nearby.
+
+"I suppose I might keep away from her for a while," he said presently.
+
+That really seemed a good idea; the more he thought of it the better he
+liked it. "I'll go down and stay with Trotty," he said as he scraped the
+last strip of lather off his face, remembering how fervently Trotty,
+recovering from a severe illness on the Trotwood estate in North
+Carolina, had begged him to come down and cheer his solitude. "And I
+won't come back until I know," he continued. "One must be sure.
+Absolutely."
+
+He plunged into his bath and the stimulus of the cold water set his
+brain working faster. "I'll start this very morning. Let's see; I've
+missed the ten-thirty, but I can catch the twelve-three, if I look
+alive, and get the three-fifty from New York.... No, on second thoughts,
+I'd better have lunch and pack comfortably and start this afternoon.
+That'll be better; it never does to be in too much of a hurry!"
+
+It never did; he became even more convinced of that when he remembered
+at breakfast the many post-mortem arrangements to be made in connection
+with the "Beggar's Opera." However, he spent an active afternoon in
+completing what he could of these and delegating the remainder to
+subordinates, with the calm explanation that he was called away on
+business, and started for southern climes the next morning.
+
+As soon as he had telegraphed Trotty and was actually on his way he
+became inclined to fear he had not done the right thing. It was so
+confoundedly quiet down there; he would have nothing to do but think
+about her. He should have plunged himself into some all-absorbing
+activity; he should have traveled or taken a nine-till-five clerkship or
+gone to New York for a while. This suspicion continued through his
+journey and even survived, though in a mangled form, Trotty's
+enthusiastic welcome of him. But after he had passed a few days among
+those pine-clad solitudes he began to see that he had done the wisest
+possible thing. Trotty was required to be out-of-doors practically the
+whole time, and the two drove endless miles in a dogcart through the
+quickening oaks and pines, or lay on fragrant carpets of needles,
+content with mere sensuous enjoyment of the wind and sun, sky and
+landscape.
+
+Somehow these things brought calm and conviction to the heart of Harry.
+They seemed to rest and purge his soul from the fatigues of the past
+months; the anxiety and effort of the autumn before, the pangs of
+composition that had marked the winter, the hurry and worry to which
+these had given place during the last few weeks, and to give coherence
+and sanctity to the tremendous discovery of that Friday night. He could
+not tell why it was that the sight of a flock of feathery clouds
+scurrying across a blue sky or the sound of warm wind among pine needles
+should work this change in him, but it was so. "You're quite right,"
+they seemed to say; "perfectly right. The thing has come, and it's not
+distracting or disturbing or frightening, as you feared it might be;
+it's just simple and great and unspeakably sweet. And you were quite
+right to come to us to find out about it; you can learn among us a great
+deal better than in all that hectic scrambling up north. So lay aside
+every thought and worry and ambition and open your whole heart and soul
+to us while we tell you how to take this, the greatest thing that ever
+was, is, or shall be!"
+
+Trotty was also a source of comfort to him; Trotty had lost nothing of
+his former singular faculty of always rubbing him the right way. Not
+that either of them made any open or covert allusion to Harry's state of
+mind, for they did not, but there was something particularly reassuring,
+something strangely in tune with the great natural forces about them in
+his silent presence. For they would drive or read or simply lie about
+together for hours without speaking, after the manner of certain types
+of people who become very intimate with each other.
+
+Whether these silences were to Trotty merely the intimate silences of
+yore or whether they had taken on for him also something of the
+character that colored them for Harry is not particularly clear; it is
+probable that he guessed something, but no more. As much might be
+gathered, at least, from the one occasion upon which their conversation
+even touched on anything vital.
+
+This occurred on the eve of Harry's departure. For of course he had to
+leave some time. The birds and trees and sky were all very well for a
+while, but after three weeks the thought forced itself into his mind
+that any more time spent among them would smack of laziness if not of
+cowardice.
+
+"Trotty," said he, "I'm going north on the twelve-fifty to-morrow."
+
+"Oh," replied Trotty. "Bad news?"
+
+"No."
+
+"In love?"
+
+"Yep."
+
+"Oh." A silence of some length ensued.
+
+"Carson?" asked Trotty at last.
+
+"No, no--Elliston."
+
+"Oh.... Well, here's luck."
+
+"Thanks. I need it."
+
+In this matter-of-fact, almost coarse form was cast the most intimate
+conversation the two ever had together.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Harry determined to "have it out," as he mentally expressed it, with
+Madge as soon as possible, and went to call on her the very first
+evening after his return. As he walked in the front door he caught sight
+of her ahead of him crossing the hall with a sheaf of papers under her
+arm, and immediately his heart began thumping in a way that fairly
+shocked him. Her appearance was so wonderfully everyday, so utterly at
+variance with the way his silly heart had been going on about her these
+weeks! He felt as if he had been intending to propose to an archangel
+who happened to be also a duchess.
+
+"Hello! This is an unexpected pleasure! I thought you were away shooting
+things." Her manner was friendly enough; she was obviously glad, as well
+as surprised, to see him. He murmured something explanatory, which
+apparently satisfied her, for she went on: "I'm glad you're back,
+anyway, because you're just in time to help me with my arithmetic
+papers. Come along in."
+
+He sat down almost in despair, with the idea of merely making an evening
+call and postponing more important matters to a time when he should be
+better inured to the effects of her presence. But as he sat and watched
+her as she talked to him and looked over her arithmetic papers he felt
+his courage gradually return. Her physical presence was simply
+irresistible, distant and difficult of approach as she seemed.
+
+"Do tell all about North Carolina," said Madge; "it's a delightful
+state, isn't it?"
+
+"Oh, delightful."
+
+"So I understand. My idea of it is a fashionable place where people go
+to recover from something, but I suppose there's more to it than that.
+The only other thing I know about it is geological; a remnant of
+physical geography, ages ago. I seem to remember something about
+triassic.... What is your North Carolina like, fashionable or triassic?"
+
+"Not triassic, certainly."
+
+"No, I suppose not. It's very nice triassic, though; coal, and all sorts
+of lovely things, as I remember it. You must have been fashionable.
+Asheville, and that sort of thing."
+
+"Not at all. I was helping Trotty to recover from something."
+
+"Oh, really? What?"
+
+"Pneumonia. Also pleurisy."
+
+"Indeed! I didn't know anything about that; I thought you went simply to
+shoot things. So Jack Trotwood has had pleural pneumonia, has he? That's
+a horrid combination; poor Uncle Rudolph Scharndorst died of it. You
+often do if you have it hard enough and are old enough, or drink
+enough...."
+
+"Well, Trotty doesn't," said Harry; "so he didn't."
+
+"My dear man, neither did Uncle Rudolph," rejoined Miss Elliston. "That
+wasn't what I meant; he just had it so hard he died of it--that was
+all.--How is he getting on?"
+
+"Couldn't say, I'm sure."
+
+"I mean Trotty, of course! Poor Uncle Rudolph!"
+
+"Very well, indeed.--Madge!" he went on, gathering courage for a break,
+"I didn't come here to-night to talk about Uncle Rudolph!"
+
+Miss Elliston raised her eyebrows ever so little and went on, with
+unabated cheerfulness: "We were talking about Jack Trotwood, I thought.
+However, here's this arithmetic; you can help me with that. Do you know
+anything about percentage? It's not so hard, when you really put your
+mind to it. Given the principal and interest, to find the rate--that's
+easy enough. Useful, too; if you know how much a person has a year all
+you have to do is to find what it's invested in and look it up on the
+financial page, and you can tell just what their capital is! It's quite
+simple!"
+
+"Oh, yes, perfectly simple."
+
+"Let's see--Florrie Vicars; did you ever hear of any one whose name was
+really Florrie before?... Florrie gets a C--she generally does. That
+isn't on a scale of A B C, it stands for 'correct.' Did you ever hear of
+anything so delightfully Victorian? That's the way we do things at Miss
+Snellgrove's.... Sadie Jones--wouldn't you know that a girl called
+Sadie Jones who wrote like that--look at those sevens--would have frizzy
+yellow hair and sticky-out front teeth?"
+
+"Yes, indeed, without any doubt."
+
+"Well, as a matter of fact she has straight black hair and a pure
+Grecian profile and is altogether the most beautiful creature you ever
+saw!... Marjorie Hamlin--she never could add two and two straight....
+Jennie Fairbanks...."
+
+Harry realized more sharply than before that ordinary conversational
+paths would not lead where he wanted to go; he must break through the
+hedge and he must break with courage and determination.
+
+"Madge!" he burst out again, "I didn't come here to talk about little
+girls' arithmetic papers, either! I am here to-night to declare a state
+of--" He stopped, unable, when the moment came, to treat the matter with
+even that amount of lightness. He had been over-confident!
+
+"Of what?" asked Madge, looking up from her arithmetic and smiling
+brightly yet distantly at him. There was just a chance that she might
+shame him back into mere conversation, even at this late moment.
+
+"You know, perfectly well!" He sprang from his chair and took a step or
+two toward her. The thing was done now. A minute ago they had been
+occupied in trivial chatter; now they were launched on the momentous
+topic.
+
+"Madge, don't pretend not to understand, at any rate!" He was by her
+side on the sofa now. "I used to think that when I was--when I was in
+love I should be able to joke and laugh about it as I have about every
+earthly thing in life. I thought that if love couldn't be turned into a
+joke it wasn't worth having. But it isn't that way, at all!... Oh,
+Madge, Madge, don't you see how it is with me?"
+
+"Dear Harry, indeed I do!" said Madge impulsively, feeling a great wave
+of pity and unhappiness swell in her bosom. "Indeed I do!"
+
+"Then don't you think that you could ever ... Madge, until you tell me
+you could possibly--feel that way--toward me, it's Hell, that's what it
+is, Hell!"
+
+"Indeed it is, Harry; that's just what it is!"
+
+"Then you think you can't--love me?"
+
+"No--God forgive me, I can't!"
+
+He sat still for a moment, looking quietly at her from his sad brown
+eyes in a way she thought would break her heart. "I was afraid so," he
+said at last; "I suppose I really knew it, all along. It's been my
+fault."
+
+"Oh, Harry," she burst out, "if you only knew how much I wanted to! If
+you only knew how terrible it is to see you sit there and say that, and
+not be able to say yes! I like you so much, and you are such a dear
+altogether, and you're so wonderful about this--oh, why, why, in
+Heaven's name, can't I love you?"
+
+"But Madge, surely you must be mistaken! How can you talk that way and
+not have--the real feeling? Madge, you must be in love with me, only you
+don't know it!"
+
+"That's just what I've said to myself, time after time--I've lain awake
+whole nights telling myself that. But it isn't so, it isn't! I can't
+deceive myself into thinking so and I won't deceive you.... I
+just--can't--love you, because I'm not good enough! Oh, it is so
+terrible!..." Her voice suddenly failed; she sank to her knees on the
+floor and buried her head among the cushions of the sofa in an
+uncontrollable fit of weeping.
+
+For a moment Harry was overcome by a desire to seize that grief-stricken
+little figure in his arms and kiss away her ridiculous tears. A second
+thought, however, showed the fruitlessness of that; small comfort to his
+arms if their souls could not embrace! Instead he quietly arose from his
+seat and shut the door, which seemed the most sensible thing to do under
+the circumstances. He then walked over to the piano and stood leaning on
+it, head on hands, thoughtfully and silently watching the diminishing
+sobs of Madge.
+
+When these at last reached the vanishing point their author turned
+suddenly. Harry continued to stare quietly back at her for a second or
+two and then slowly and solemnly winked his right eye. Madge emitted a
+strange sound between a laugh and a sob, turned her face away again and
+plied her handkerchief briskly.
+
+"Here I am, of course," she said presently, "thinking of nothing but
+indulging my own silly feelings, as usual. And you, poor Harry, who
+really are capable of feeling, just stand there like Patience on a
+monument.... Harry, why don't you swear at me, kick me? do something to
+make it easier for me?..." She picked herself up, walked over toward
+the piano and laid her hands on its smooth black surface in a caressing
+sort of way. The piano had been given to her by her Aunt Tizzy and she
+loved it very much, but she did not think of it at all now. "Harry," she
+began again, "Harry, dear, I'll tell you what we'll do--I'll marry you,
+if you like, anyway.... I'll make you a lovely wife; I'll do anything in
+the wide world to be a comfort to you, just to show you how much I would
+love to love you if I could...."
+
+Harry, still looking gravely at her, shook his head slowly. "It would
+never do, Madge," he said; "never in the world. We must wait until we
+can start fair. You see that?"
+
+She nodded. "I suppose I do--from your point of view."
+
+"No--from _our_ point of view."
+
+"Well, yes.... It is just a little bit hard, though, that the first
+offer of marriage I ever made should be turned down."
+
+Harry laughed, loudly and suddenly. "That's right!" he said; "that's
+_you_! Not that self-denunciatory thing of a minute ago. Don't ever be
+self-denunciatory again, please. Just remember there's nothing in the
+world that can possibly be your fault, and _then_ you'll be all
+right!... Now then, we can talk. I suppose," he went on, with a change
+of tone, "you like me quite well, just as much as ever, and all that;
+only when it comes to the question of whether you could ever be happy
+for one instant without me you are forced to admit that you could. Is
+that it?"
+
+Madge nodded her head. "That's just about it. For a long time--oh, but
+what's the use in _that_...?"
+
+"No, go ahead."
+
+"Well, one or two people have been in love with me before--or thought
+they were, and though that disturbed me at times, it never amounted to
+much. In fact I thought the whole thing rather fun, as I remember
+it--Heaven forgive me for it! But then you came along and after a
+while--several months ago--it became borne in on me that you were going
+to--to act the same way, and I immediately realized that it was going to
+be much, _much_ more serious than the others. And I--well, I had a
+cobblestone for a heart, and knew it. So I tried my best to keep you off
+the scent, in every way I could, knowing what a crash there would be if
+it came to _that_.... But I never knew what I missed till to-night, when
+you showed me what a magnificent creature a person really in love is,
+and what a loathsome, detestable, contemptible creature--"
+
+"Come, come, remember my instructions," interpolated Harry.
+
+"--a person incapable of love is. And it just knocked me flat for the
+moment."
+
+"I see," said Harry thoughtfully; "I see."
+
+"I suppose," continued Madge, "it would have been easier all around if I
+didn't like you so much. I could conceive of marriage without love, if
+the person was thoroughly nice and I was quite sure there was no chance
+of my loving any one else, just because it's nicer to be rich than poor,
+but with you--no!... And on the other hand, I daresay I _might_ have
+come nearer falling in love with you if you hadn't been--such a
+notoriously good match ... you never realized that, perhaps?... I just
+couldn't bear the thought of giving _you_ anything but the real thing,
+if I gave you anything--that's what it comes to!"
+
+"Madge, what I don't see is how you can go on talking that way and
+feeling that way and not be in love with me! Not much, of course, but
+just a teeny bit!... Don't you really think your conscience is
+making--well, making a fool of you?"
+
+"No, no, Harry--please! I can't explain it, but I really am quite,
+_quite_ sure! No one could be gladder than I if it were otherwise!"
+
+"One person could, I fancy. Well, the thing to do now is to decide
+what's to be done to make you love me.... For that is the next thing,
+you know," he went on, in reply to an inarticulate expression of dissent
+from Madge. "You don't suppose I'm going to leave this house to-night
+and never think of you again, do you? You don't suppose I'm ever going
+to give up loving you and trying to make you love me, as long as we two
+shall live and after?"
+
+"I thought," murmured Madge, apparently to her handkerchief. The rest
+was almost inaudible, but Harry succeeded in catching the phrase "some
+nice girl."
+
+"Oh, rot!!" he exclaimed vociferously. Then he sank down on the piano
+bench, rested his elbows on the keyboard cover and burst into paroxysms
+of laughter. The idea of his leaving Madge and going out in search of
+"some nice girl"! Madge, still leaning on the edge of the piano,
+watched him with some apprehension, occasionally smothering a reluctant
+smile in her handkerchief.
+
+"Excuse me, Madge," he said at last, wiping his eyes, "but that's
+probably the funniest remark ever made!... A large, shapeless person,
+with yellow hair and a knitted shawl ... a sort of German type, who'd
+take the most wonderful care of my socks ... with a large, soft kiss,
+like ... like a hot cross bun!..." He was off again.
+
+"Hush, Harry, don't be absurd! Hush, you'll wake Mama! Harry, you're
+impossible!" Madge herself was laughing at the portrait, for all that.
+It was some minutes before either of them could return to the subject in
+hand.
+
+"Oh, you'll love me all right, in time!" That laugh had cleared the
+atmosphere tremendously; it seemed much easier to talk freely and
+sensibly now. "Of course you don't think so now, and that's quite as it
+should be; but time makes one look at things differently."
+
+"No, no, you mustn't count on that. If I don't now, I can't ever
+possibly! Really--"
+
+"What, not love me? Impossible! Look at me!" He became serious and went
+on: "Madge, granting that you don't care a hang for me now, can you look
+into your inmost heart and say you're perfectly sure you never, never
+could get to care for me, some time in the dim future of years?"
+
+"I--don't know," replied Madge inconclusively.
+
+"There you are--you know perfectly well you can't! However, I don't
+intend to bother you about that now. What I want to suggest now is that
+we had better be apart for a while, now that we know how things stand
+between us--not see anything of each other for a long time. That's the
+best way. That's how I fell in love with you--how I became sure about
+it, at any rate. That was why I went to North Carolina, of course."
+
+Madge thought seriously for a moment or two. What he said seemed
+reasonable. If he did go entirely out of her head after a few months'
+absence, he would be out of it for good and all, and there was the end
+of it. Whereas, in the unlikely event of his _not_ going out of her
+head, but going into her heart, she would be much surer of herself than
+if under the continual stimulus and charm of his presence.
+
+"Well," she said at length. "But how will you arrange it?"
+
+"I shall simply go away--to-morrow. Abroad. You'll be here?"
+
+"Yes."
+
+"What do you do this summer?"
+
+"I'm not sure--that is, I had thought of going to Bar Harbor, with the
+Gilsons--as governess. They have a dear little girl."
+
+Harry made a gesture of impatience. "I suppose that's as good as
+anything. If you'll be happy?"
+
+"Oh, perfectly. I should enjoy that, actually, more than anything else.
+Mama'll be with Aunt Tizzy. I think I'll do it, now. I'd rather be doing
+something."
+
+"Well, we'll meet here, then, at the end of the summer, in September. I
+suppose we'd better not write. Unless, that is, you see light before the
+time is up. Then you're to let me know--that's part of the bargain. Just
+wire to my bankers the single word, 'Elliston.' I'll know."
+
+"On one condition--that you do the same if you change your mind the
+other way!"
+
+"Madge, what idiocy!"
+
+"No, no; you must agree. Why shouldn't you be given a chance of changing
+your mind, as well as I?"
+
+"Very well; it's probably the easiest bargain any one ever made....
+Well, that's all, I think." They both paused, wondering what was to come
+next. The matter did seem to be fairly well covered. He made as if to
+go.
+
+"Oh, one thing--your work!" Madge apparently was suffering a slight
+relapse of self-denunciation. "How absolutely like me, I never thought
+of that!"
+
+"I can work abroad as well as here. I can work anywhere better than
+here--you must see that."
+
+"I suppose so." She fixed her eyes on the carpet. A hundred thousand
+things were teeming in her brain, clamoring to be said, but she turned
+them all down as "absurd" and contented herself at last with: "You sail
+immediately, then?"
+
+"Saturday, I expect. To the Mediterranean. I shall leave town to-morrow,
+though; you won't be bothered by me again!"
+
+"You must give yourself plenty of time to pack. Be sure--" she checked
+herself, apparently embarrassed.
+
+"Be sure what?"
+
+"Nothing--none of my business."
+
+"Yes, please! My dying request!"
+
+"Well, I was going to tell you to be sure to take plenty of warm things
+for the voyage. Men are so silly about such things!"
+
+As with Madge a minute ago, all sorts of things shouted to be done and
+said in his brain, but he shut the door firmly on all of them and
+replied quietly, "All right, I will," and started toward the door.
+
+She could not let it go at that, after all. Before the door had swung to
+behind him she had rushed up and caught it.
+
+"Oh, Harry!" she exclaimed; "if it does--if it should come off, wouldn't
+it be simply--Nirvana, and that sort of thing?"
+
+"Madge," replied Harry solemnly from the doorstep, "it will make Nirvana
+look like the Black Hole of Calcutta!"
+
+If there rose in her mind one pang of remorse for her behavior that
+evening, one suggestion of a desire to rush out on the doorstep and
+fling herself into his arms and tell him what a fool she was, it was
+reduced to subjection before she had closed the door and entirely
+smothered by the time she reached the parlor again.
+
+"No," she told herself quite firmly as she rearranged the tumbled sofa
+cushions, "that would never do--that was part of the Bargain." Just what
+was part of the bargain or exactly what the bargain was she did not
+bother to specify. "No, I must wait," she continued, trying the locks of
+the windows; "I must wait, a long time, a long, _long_ time. Till next
+September, in fact. One always has to wait to find out; nothing but time
+can show. And of course one must be _sure_"--she turned out the
+gas--"first. _Perfectly_ sure--beyond all manner of doubt and question.
+Both on my own account"--she reached up with considerable effort and
+turned out the hall light--"and Harry's."
+
+"No," she amended as she felt with her foot for the first step of the
+dark staircase; "not on my account. On Harry's."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IV
+
+WILD HORSES AND CHAMPAGNE
+
+
+James Wimbourne always had the reputation of being an exceptionally
+strong-willed person. None of his friends would have been in the least
+surprised to see him come so triumphantly through the first real test
+that life offered him, if they had known anything about it. Not one of
+them did know anything about it; no human being ever vaguely surmised
+that he renounced--the word is a big one but the act was worthy of
+it--Beatrice in favor of his brother. Beatrice may have suspected it at
+first, but her suspicion, if it existed at all, died an easy and natural
+death. Harry suspected it least of all, which was just what James
+wanted. The one reason why the renunciation did not turn out entirely as
+James intended was one over which he had no control, namely, the simple
+fact that Harry was never in love with Beatrice.
+
+But as a matter of fact one must look deeper into James' character to
+discover how it was that, long before the completion of the four years
+that the story has recently skipped, James was able to think of Beatrice
+without even a flutter of the heart. Deeply imbedded in his nature there
+lay a motive force to which his will power, as other people knew it, was
+merely the servant. This may perhaps be most safely described as James'
+attitude toward Harry. It is not easy to describe it. It does not do to
+lay stress upon the elements of brotherly affection, desire to protect,
+unselfishness and so forth, which made it up; those things all appear to
+smack of priggishness and cant and are at variance with the spontaneity
+of the thing we are talking about. One might perhaps refer to it as an
+ineradicable conviction in the soul of James that Harry was always to be
+thought of first.
+
+Very few people are capable of entertaining such a feeling. Very few are
+worthy of it. James had just the sort of nature in which it is most
+likely to occur. The Germans have an apt phrase for this type of
+nature--_schoene Seele_. James had a _schoene Seele_. He had his tastes
+and feelings, of course, like any one else, but the good always came
+naturally to him; the bad was abnormal. And this was why he found it
+possible and even--after a certain time--easy to erase from his brain
+the image of Beatrice, and set up in its place a vision of Harry and
+Beatrice coming into a mutual realization of each other.
+
+Well, it couldn't have been much of a love in the first place if it
+wasn't stronger than brotherly affection, does some one suggest? some
+one, we fancy, who is thoroughly familiar with the poems of the late
+Robert Browning and entertains a _penchant_ for the Paolo and Francesca
+brand of love. Well, possibly. We confess to our own moments of
+Paolomania; every healthy person has them. But we would call the
+attention of the aforesaid some one to the stern fact that love in the
+United States of America in the twentieth century is of necessity a
+different thing from love in--Rimini, we were going to say, but Rimini
+is a real place, with a railroad station and hotel omnibusses, so let us
+change it to Paolo-and-Francescadom. Also that he may have fostered his
+cult of Paoloism rather at the expense of his study of the _schoene
+Seele_. And we would also suggest, meeting him on his own ground, that
+there is no evidence of Paolo ever having got along very well with
+Giovanni. For if he had, of course, that whole beautiful story might
+have been spoilt.
+
+Then, of course, James' remoteness from Beatrice made it easier for him.
+Love is primarily a matter of geography, anyway. With the result that
+finally, when the month of June arrived and with it the offer of the New
+York position, the danger implied in New York's proximity to New Haven
+and Beatrice was not enough to deter James from closing with it. He
+accepted the offer, as we know, and took up his duties in New York in
+September.
+
+He took Stodger McClintock with him. Stodger by this time simply
+belonged to James, as far as the Emancipation Proclamation and other
+legal technicalities permit of one person belonging to another. He had
+already obtained for him a job as office boy in McClellan's and now
+proposed to take him east and educate him, with the eventual idea of
+turning him into a chauffeur. Stodger seemed delighted with the
+prospect.
+
+"Only," he objected, "please, I'll have to ask me grand-mudder!"
+
+"Oh, of course," said James gravely. "You couldn't go without her
+consent. I'll have a talk with her myself, if you like."
+
+Stodger seemed to think that would not be necessary. It ended by James
+taking a small apartment and installing Stodger as chore boy under the
+command of an eagle-eyed Swedish woman, where he could divide his time
+between cleaning shoes and attending high school.
+
+October arrived; it was ten months since James had seen Beatrice and he
+decided it was now time to see her again, to make the sight of her and
+Harry together chase the last shreds of regret from his mind. So he
+wrote to Aunt Selina announcing that he would spend his next free
+Saturday night in New Haven.
+
+It happened that Aunt Selina had fixed upon that night to have some
+people to dinner. When she learned that James would be one of the number
+that idea vanished in smoke and from its ashes, phoenix-like, arose the
+conception of making it a real occasion; not dinner, nor
+people-to-dinner, but frankly, out-and-out, A Dinner, like that. She
+arranged to have eighteen, and sent out invitations accordingly.
+
+James did not see Beatrice until nearly dinner-time on the Saturday
+night. He came downstairs at five minutes or so before the hour and
+discovered Harry standing before the drawing-room fireplace with Aunt
+Selina placidly sitting on a sofa and Beatrice flying about giving a
+finishing touch here and there. There was no strain or uneasiness about
+the meeting; his "Hello, Beatrice," received by her almost on the wing
+as she passed on some slight preprandial mission, was a model of cordial
+familiarity. And if she had not been too preoccupied to let the meeting
+be in the least awkward, Harry, gaily chattering from the chimney-piece,
+would have been enough to prevent it anyway.
+
+"Well, here we all are," Harry was saying, "and nobody here to
+entertain. Of course if we had all happened to be a minute or two late
+there would have been a crowd of people waiting for us. We won't
+complain, though; being too early is the one great social sin. Yes, Aunt
+Selina dear, I know people didn't think so in the Hayes administration
+... Beatrice, do stop pecking at those roses; they look very well
+indeed. You make me feel as if my hair wasn't properly brushed, or my
+shirt-front spotted. This suspense is telling on me; why doesn't
+somebody come?"
+
+Somebody did come almost immediately. Aunt Selina arose and stood in
+state in front of the fireplace to receive, and she made James stand
+with her, as though as a reward for returning to the eastern half of the
+country. He looked extremely well standing there. There was not one of
+the guests that came up and shook his hand that did not mentally
+congratulate the house of Wimbourne upon its present head.
+
+In some ways, indeed, one might say that those few minutes formed the
+very apex of James' life, the point toward which his whole past appeared
+to rise and his future to descend from. There are such moments in men's
+careers; moments to which one can point and say, Would that chance and
+my own nature had permitted me to stay there for the rest of my natural
+days! Surely there can be no harm in a soul remaining static if the
+level at which it remains is sufficiently high. Here was James, for
+example, not merely rich, good-looking, clever rather than otherwise,
+beloved of his fellow men, but with a very palpable balance on the side
+of good in his character. Why could not fate leave him stranded on that
+high point for the rest of his life, radiating goodness and happiness to
+every one who came near him? _Schoene Seelen_ are rare enough in this
+world anyway; what a pity it is that they should not always be allowed
+to shine to the greatest possible advantage! What a pity it is that so
+many of them are overwhelmed with shadows too deep for their struggling
+rays to pierce; shadows so thick that the poor little flames are
+accounted lucky if they can manage to burn on invisibly in the darkness,
+illuminating nothing but their own frail substance, content merely to
+live! The thought, indeed, would be intolerable were it not for certain
+other considerations; as for example, that the purest flames burn
+clearest in the darkness, or that a candle at midnight is worth more
+than an arc-light at noonday.
+
+Having successfully survived the first meeting, James found himself
+performing the duties of the evening with astonishing ease. He devoted
+himself chiefly to his right-hand neighbor, who for some reason was
+always referred to as "little" Mrs. Farnsworth. He was not conscious of
+the slightest feeling of strain in his conversation; he got on so well
+and so easily that he perhaps failed to realize that his was a real
+effort, made with the undoubted though unconscious purpose of keeping
+his mind off other things. If he had not succeeded so well, it might
+have been better. Certainly he would have been spared the let-down that
+he subsequently realized was inevitable. It came about halfway through
+dinner, in a general conversation which started with an account by James
+of Stodger's grandmother.
+
+He had made rather a good thing of this. "Of course I never force his
+hand," he was explaining; "I never ask him out and out what her name is
+and where she lives; I try to give the impression of believing in her as
+profoundly as himself. But it's most amusing to see how cleverly he
+dodges the questions I do ask. When we were about to come east, for
+instance, I asked him how his grandmother dared to trust him so far away
+without seeing me or knowing anything about me. He replied that she was
+satisfied with the description he gave her of me. 'But Stodger,' I said,
+'doesn't she want to see with her own eyes?' 'She's my _grand_mother,
+not my mother,' he answered, which really covered the matter pretty
+well."
+
+"But he's never shown you either her or a letter from her?" asked Mrs.
+Farnsworth.
+
+"Of course not--how could he? Oh, I must say I admire him for it! You
+see, I found him living practically in the gutter, sleeping Heaven knows
+where and eating Heaven knows what; but through it all he hung onto this
+grandmother business as his one last tie with the world of
+respectability and good clothes and enough to eat. I think I never saw a
+person get so much out of a mere idea."
+
+"It shows imagination, certainly," murmured Mrs. Farnsworth
+appreciatively, but her remark was drowned in the question of her
+right-hand neighbor, who had been listening to James' narrative and
+joined in with:
+
+"Have you ever succeeded in getting any idea of what the old lady is
+like? I should think the boy's mental picture of a grandmother might
+form a key to his whole character."
+
+"No," replied James; "I've never asked him anything very definite. I
+must find out something more about her some time."
+
+"What would the ideal grandmother be like, I wonder?" queried Mrs.
+Farnsworth. "Yours or mine, for example? Mine would be a dear old soul
+with a white cap and curls, whom I should always go to visit over
+Thanksgiving and eat too much pumpkin pie."
+
+"Yes, I think that comes pretty near my ideal, too," said James;
+"provided she didn't want to kiss me too often and had no other bad
+habits."
+
+"How idyllic!" said Mrs. Farnsworth's other neighbor. "Arcadians, both
+of you. I confess to something much more sophisticated; something living
+in town, say, with a box at the opera. Mrs. Harriman, it's your turn."
+
+"Oh, leave me out!" answered Mrs. Harriman, a woman who still, at forty,
+gave the impression of being too young for her husband. "You see, I have
+a grandmother still living."
+
+"So have I," irrepressibly retorted her neighbor, whose name was
+Nesmith; "two of them, in fact, and neither is anything like my ideal!
+You can feel quite at your ease."
+
+"Well, if I had to choose, I think I would have one more like yours, Mr.
+Nesmith; only very old and dignified, something of the dowager type, who
+would tell delightful stories of Paris under Louis Philippe and Rome
+under the Popes, and possibly write some rather indiscreet memoirs.
+Something definitely connecting my own time with hers, you know."
+
+"Oh, I say, no fair!" interrupted James in unthoughtful high spirits.
+"No fair stealing somebody else's grandmother! You've described Miss
+Carson's grandmother, Mrs. Harriman, unless I'm greatly mistaken.
+Beatrice, isn't Mrs. Harriman's ideal grandmother suspiciously like old
+Lady Moville?"
+
+Beatrice, who was sitting two places down the table from Mrs. Harriman,
+had heard the description; the grandmother conversation had, in fact,
+absorbed the attention of very nearly half the table.
+
+"Very like, I admit; but Mrs. Harriman is quite welcome to her.... She
+is not exactly my ideal of a grandmother...!" She turned directly toward
+James and made the last remark straight at him with a sort of
+deprecating smile of comprehension. It was as though she said: "I say
+that to _you_ because I know you'll understand!" It did not amount to
+much; it was one of the fleeting signs of mutual comprehension that
+friends will frequently exchange in the presence of acquaintances. But
+unfortunately the remark and the way it was given were extremely
+ill-timed as far as James was concerned. The effect they caused in him
+may perhaps be best likened to one of those sudden fits of faintness
+that overcome people convalescing from a long illness; the sort of thing
+where you are all right one minute and gasping and calling for brandy
+the next, and the stronger you feel beforehand the harder the faintness
+seizes you when it comes. If James had been on the watch for such
+occurrences, the incident would not have had half the effect on him that
+it did. As it was, however, Beatrice's little speech and glance stirred
+into momentary activity much of the feeling that he had been striving
+all these months to keep down.
+
+It was not really much; it did not actually undo the work of those ten
+months. James was really convalescent. But the suddenness of the thing
+overcame him for the moment and gave him a feeling approaching that of
+actual physical faintness. He saw a glass of champagne standing at his
+side and involuntarily reached toward it.
+
+No one noticed him much. Mrs. Farnsworth was chattering easily with Mr.
+Nesmith; conversation had resumed its normal course. Possibly the
+knowledge that James had touched on a rather doubtful topic, Beatrice's
+father's family, gave conversation a slight added impetus; certainly if
+anybody noticed James' embarrassment they assumed that his slight
+indiscretion amply accounted for it. At any rate, when his embarrassment
+led him so far as not only to reach for his left-hand neighbor's glass
+of champagne instead of his own but to tip it over in the process, the
+said left-hand neighbor, who happened to be Madge Elliston, attributed
+his action to that reason and acted accordingly.
+
+With a tact that would have seemed overdone if it had not been so prompt
+and sufficient, she immediately assumed that it had been she who had
+knocked the glass over.
+
+"Oh, I am so sorry!" she exclaimed. "I _am_ such an awkward idiot; I
+hope it didn't go all over you, James?... No, my dress is all right;
+apparently nothing but the tablecloth has suffered," and so forth, and
+so forth, to an accompaniment of gentle swabbings and shifting of table
+utensils.
+
+"Oh, Madge?" said James vaguely. "That's all right--I mean, it's my
+fault, entirely...." He joined in the rescue work with grateful fervor,
+and in a moment a servant came up and did something efficient with a
+napkin. Madge chattered on.
+
+"I never do get through a party without doing something silly! I'm glad
+it's nothing worse than this; I generally count that dinner as lost when
+I don't drop a hairpin into my food. I used to be quite embarrassed
+about it, but I've got so now that I eat shamelessly on, right down to
+the hairpin. I wonder if your aunt saw? No--or rather, she did, and is
+far too polite to show it. She just won't ask me again, that's all!"
+
+"She will if I have any influence with her," said James; "and I don't
+mind saying, between you and me and the gatepost, that I have a good
+deal! Only you must sing to us after dinner. You will, won't you?"
+
+"My dear James, I don't suppose wild horses--"
+
+"Oh, come now, you must!"
+
+"I was going to say, wild horses couldn't stop me from singing, if I'm
+asked! Did you ever know me to refrain from singing, loudly and clearly,
+whenever I received the slightest encouragement?"
+
+"I can't say--I haven't been here enough. I'm pretty sure, though, that
+there are no wild horses here to-night."
+
+"I'm not so sure...." She took a rapid glance around the table. "Yes,
+there are at least two wild horses right here in this room. See if you
+can guess who they are."
+
+"Oh, this is getting beyond me!"
+
+"Guess!" said Madge, inexorably.
+
+"Well ... Professor Dodd?"
+
+"Right. Now the other."
+
+"Oh--old George Harriman."
+
+"No. You're on the wrong track; it isn't the unmusical people that keep
+me from singing; it's those who make me feel silly and _de trop_,
+somehow, when I'm doing it."
+
+"I can't guess," said James after a pause.
+
+"Well, it's Beatrice Carson!"
+
+"No, not Beatrice! Why, she's very fond of music!"
+
+"It's not that, as I tried to explain. She is such a wonderful, Olympian
+sort of person, so beautiful, so well-bred, so good, and tremendously
+wise and capable--you've heard about the work she's doing here in the
+Working Girls' League?"
+
+"Something, yes."
+
+"Well, it's perfectly extraordinary; they say she's been able to reach
+people no one else has ever been able to do anything with. Altogether,
+the thought of her listening to me makes me feel like a first-class fool
+when I stand up and warble, and even more so when I think of the time
+and money I waste on learning to do a little bit better something that
+isn't worth doing at all!"
+
+"But you teach school," objected James. "That's sound constructive
+work."
+
+"That," replied Miss Elliston, "is not for eleemosynary reasons."
+
+"But you do it very well."
+
+"No, you're mistaken there, and beside, I hate teaching school; I simply
+_loathe_ it! Whereas ... let me tell you a secret. This singing
+business, this getting up in a drawing-room and opening my mouth and
+compelling people's attention, even for a moment--seeing people
+gradually stop talking and thinking about something else and wishing I'd
+stop, and at last just listening, listening with all their ears and
+minds to me, plain, stupid, vapid little ME--well, I just love it! It's
+meat and drink to me. Whenever I receive an invitation to dinner I want
+to write back, Yes, if you'll let me sing afterward!"
+
+"Really," said James thoughtfully, "that's the way it is with you, is
+it?"
+
+"I'm afraid so! You won't give me away though, will you, James?"
+
+"Oh, no danger! And I'll promise you another thing--wild horses shan't
+have a chance when I'm around! Not one chance! Ever!"
+
+He was flattered by her confidence, of course, as well as grateful for
+her tact. She had not only dragged him out of the water where he was
+floundering on to the dry land, but had gone so far as to haul him up an
+agreeable eminence before leaving him.
+
+Conversation shifted again at that point and James turned again to Mrs.
+Farnsworth. He got on very well with her from his eminence; so well that
+they remained conversationally united for the rest of dinner. In the
+course of their talk he thought of another thing that made him even
+happier; something he had not had a chance to realize before. Madge
+thought his momentary embarrassment had been due to having broached the
+doubtful topic of the Carson family. She had no inkling of his feeling
+for Beatrice; the freedom of her references to Beatrice was proof
+positive of that. And if she did not suspect, probably no one else did!
+His secret was as safe as it had ever been.
+
+The full joy of this realization began to spread itself through him
+about the time when fingerbowls came into use and Aunt Selina was
+gathering eyes preparatory to starting an exodus. Just as they all rose
+he chanced to catch Madge's eye and, unable to withhold some expression
+of his relief, smiled and said softly: "Thank you, Madge!"
+
+"What?" she asked, not understanding.
+
+"Champagne," said James.
+
+"Oh, nonsense!" As she started to walk doorward she turned her face
+directly toward his and gave him a deprecatory little smile of
+understanding, exactly like the one Beatrice had thrown him a short time
+ago.
+
+The coincidence at first rather took him aback. He was conscious, as the
+men rearranged themselves for coffee and cigars, of a feeling of loss,
+almost of desecration; the sort of feeling one might experience on
+seeing somebody else wear one's mother's wedding gown. Nobody but
+Beatrice had any real business to smile like that--to him, at least.
+Then it occurred to him that that was all nonsense; either it was all on
+or all off between him and Beatrice. After all, Madge's smile was just
+about as good to look at as Beatrice's, if one made allowance against
+the latter's unusual beauty. Madge was not unattractive in her way,
+either....
+
+Madge sang, of course. James enjoyed her singing very much, the more so
+for what she had told him at dinner. During her performance an
+inspiration came to him which he presently made an opportunity to impart
+to her.
+
+"Look here," he asked; "have you ever sung for Beatrice's working
+girls?"
+
+"No," answered she in some surprise. "Why?"
+
+"Why not?"
+
+"I've never been asked, for one thing!"
+
+"Would you, if you were? I'd like to suggest it to Beatrice, at any
+rate."
+
+"That's all very well for me, but what about the poor working girls?"
+
+"I should say that any working girl that didn't want to hear you sing
+didn't deserve to be helped. I may suggest it to her, then?"
+
+"Certainly, if you like. I don't really imagine that she'll have any use
+for it, though."
+
+"We'll see." He dismissed the subject with a smile. It pleased him to be
+quite brief and businesslike. As the party broke up and the guests
+dispersed he was busy, in a half-conscious sort of way, constructing a
+vision of him and his whole future life on this scheme; irretrievably
+blighted in his own career he would devote himself to doing helpful
+little services for people he liked, without thought of other reward
+than the satisfaction of performing them.
+
+Sustained by this vision he embarked quite fearlessly and efficiently on
+a _tete-a-tete_ with Beatrice before going to bed that night. He made
+the suggestion to her that he had told Madge he would make, and was
+pleased to find that Beatrice welcomed it warmly.
+
+Once in bed, with the light turned out and absolute quiet reigning
+throughout the house, of course disturbing things did force their way
+into his brain. It was bound to be that way, of course; had it not been
+that way for the past ten months? Fears, pains, doubts, memories,
+regrets--all passed in their accustomed procession before his mind's
+eye, gradually growing dimmer and fewer as drowsiness came on and at
+last dwindling to occasional mental pictures, as of a characteristic
+gesture, a look, a smile. A humorous little smile, for instance,
+suggestive of mutual understanding....
+
+Jove, that was a funny thing! He sat up in bed, shaking off his
+sleepiness and subjecting his mental vision to the test of conscious
+reason. That was Madge's smile that he had just seen, not Beatrice's; it
+was all there, the different position, the eyes, the hair and
+everything; all complete and unmistakable. Well, it was strange what a
+heavy dinner could do to a man--that, and a glass of champagne!
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER V
+
+A SCHOeNE SEELE ON PISGAH
+
+
+More than four years have elapsed before we see James Wimbourne again.
+
+Time has dealt easily with him, as far as appearances are concerned. No
+periods of searching care have imprinted their lines upon his face; no
+rending sorrow has dimmed the sweetness of its expression. No one could
+even be tempted to say that he had begun to grow stout. And if his face
+is a trifle thinner and more firmly molded than of old, if he has a more
+settled manner of sinking back in to a club chair, if he takes rather
+more time to get through the evening newspaper, or if, after the manner
+of many ex-athletes, he is inclined to become fidgety and bilious unless
+he has exactly the proper amount of physical exercise--well, who ever
+reaches his late twenties without showing similar preliminary symptoms
+of age; not so much the first stages of the process of ageing as
+indications of what the process will be like when it begins in earnest?
+
+The process in which we now find James engaged is mental rather than
+senescent, but you would hardly guess it to look at him. He is sitting
+on a rock on the top of a hill at sunset, smoking a cigarette and
+patently enjoying it. One leg is thrown easily over the other, his body
+is bent slightly forward; one hand rests on the rock by his side and the
+other, when not employed in propelling the cigarette to and from his
+mouth, lies quietly on his lap. He is very quiet; James is not the sort
+of person to make many unnecessary motions; he picks out a comfortable
+position and usually remains in it until it is time to do something
+else. He would do this even if he were not gazing at an absorbingly
+lovely view over the roofs of Bar Harbor, Frenchman's Bay and the
+tumbled hills of the Maine Coast, and even if the mental process were
+not such an absorbing one as a review of his relation with Madge
+Elliston,--a sort of indexing of the steps by which it had developed
+from the vaguest of acquaintanceships into its present state.
+
+It had really begun, he reflected, on the evening of that dinner. Before
+that Madge had been merely one of the group of chattery young women that
+he had danced with and was polite to and secretly rather afraid of; one
+of the genus debutante. After that she merged from her genus and, almost
+without going through the intermediate stages of species and variety,
+became an individual.
+
+At first he had deliberately fostered and encouraged the thought of
+Madge, for obvious reasons. It was clearly profitable to do anything
+that would help weed out the thought of Beatrice. It would be fruitless
+even to try to enumerate the stages by which from that point on Beatrice
+faded from his heart and that of Madge took her place; to a far larger
+place, as he now realized, than Beatrice had ever occupied there.
+
+It appeared to him now, as he looked back on the whole process, that
+Beatrice herself was responsible for a large part of it, Beatrice and
+her Working Girls' League. That had all grown quite logically out of
+that first evening and his inspiration about having Madge sing to the
+working girls. Beatrice adopted the suggestion, and the result was so
+successful that on the Saturday a month or two afterward, when James
+made his next visit to New Haven, Madge was engaged to sing to them for
+a second time. He accompanied Beatrice to that meeting and from that
+evening dated his acquaintance with the Working Girls' League and social
+work in general.
+
+Madge sang for the most part old English songs, things the girls could
+understand, and they followed them all with the most unaffected interest
+and pleasure. James was surprised to see several of them actually wipe
+tears from their eyes when she sang the plaintive ditty "A young country
+maid up to London had strayed," and during one intermission he was
+conscious of certain inarticulate sounds coming from the audience, of
+which the only intelligible part was the word "husband" uttered in
+beseeching accents again and again.
+
+"They want her to sing 'Oh, for a husband,'" explained Beatrice to
+James. "She sang that the last time and they all went crazy about it."
+Madge complied with a really very spirited rendering of the old song,
+and the girls applauded with an enthusiasm that rather touched James.
+There was something appealing to him in the unaffected way in which
+these poor shop and factory drudges, physically half-starved and
+mentally wholly starved, responded to the slightest efforts to give them
+pleasure. He felt himself suddenly warming toward the movement.
+
+"Tell me something about this place," he found a chance to say to Madge
+later on, when the gathering had broken up, and even before she replied
+he reflected that he had had ample opportunity to ask Beatrice that.
+
+"Oh, _I'm_ not the person to ask--I've only just come into it.... It was
+started simply as a working girls' club, I believe; a place more
+especially for the homeless ones to come to after work hours and meet
+each other and spend a little time in cheerful surroundings before going
+back to their hall bedrooms.... Now it's become more than that; they
+have entertainments and dances and classes of various kinds, and we're
+trying to raise money enough to build them a lodging house."
+
+"You've become one of them then, have you?"
+
+"Oh, yes, I'm one of those that have been drawn in. The thing has
+flourished amazingly lately, both among the helpers and the helped. The
+purpose of the League is entirely secular--I suppose that's what made it
+go so well. The churches don't seem--they don't get a chance at many
+people, do they?... This is aimed to help the very lowest class of
+workers; all unmarried wage-earners are eligible, regardless of age or
+race or religion.... Poor things, they are so glad to have their bodies
+and minds cared for and their souls left alone! The souls follow easily
+enough, we find, just as Shaw says--you've read 'Major Barbara'?"
+
+"I don't think I have," replied James.
+
+"Well, that shows what the League is trying to do better than I can....
+It's had its results, too. The thing has been running about a year, and
+already the number of arrests for certain kinds of offenses has fallen
+off over fifty per cent. Keeping them off the streets alone is enough to
+make us feel proud and satisfied...."
+
+"I should think so," said James, blushing hotly. He had never heard a
+young woman make such a remark before, and was at a loss how to take it.
+But there was something at once fearless and modest in the way Madge
+made it that not only put him at his ease but set him thinking. "Good
+Lord, why can't we live in a world where every one talks like that?" he
+suddenly asked himself.
+
+Madge went on to give him a fuller account of the purposes and methods
+of the League, outlining some of its difficulties and indicating, as far
+as she knew it, the path of its future development. She paid him the
+compliment of asking him several questions, and he was displeased to
+find that he had either to bluff answers for them or confess ignorance.
+
+"I wish I could do something of this sort," he said presently, in a
+musing sort of way.
+
+"Why don't you? There's plenty of chance in New York, I should say."
+
+"Oh, New York, yes. I hadn't thought of that. I don't know what use I
+could be, though."
+
+"No difficulty about that, I should think. What about athletics? You'd
+work among boys, I presume?"
+
+"Yes, I suppose so." Somehow the prospect did not attract him
+particularly. Then he thought of Stodger; of what Stodger's evenings
+would have been but for him. What did he do to illuminate Stodger's
+evenings under actual conditions, now that he come to think of it?
+
+"You'll find there are plenty of things you can do for them. Practically
+every one who knows anything at all can conduct an evening class. Even
+I--I have a class in hat trimming! One of the few subjects I can
+truthfully say I have practical knowledge in."
+
+Thus the germ of the desire for social service was sowed in him. It
+thrived pretty steadily during the winter that followed. He got himself
+introduced to the proper people and almost before he knew it he found
+himself volunteering in gymnasium work and pledged to give occasional
+evening talks on athletic subjects. The organization in which he worked
+was, he found to his satisfaction, like Madge's--Madge's, you observe,
+not Beatrice's--Working Girls' League, designed to help the very lowest
+classes of wage-earners. It had its clubrooms on the lower East Side and
+set itself up as a rival attraction to the saloon-haunting gangs of that
+interesting neighborhood, and since it dealt with the roughest section
+of the population it did not hesitate to employ means that other
+organizations would have hesitated to sanction. Beer and tobacco were
+sold on the place; billiards and card games were freely encouraged,
+though there was a rule against playing anything for money; but the
+chief interest of the place was athletic. Herein lay a problem, for it
+was found that in the hands of the descendants of Nihilists and pillars
+of the Mano Negra such respectable sports as boxing and wrestling were
+prone to degenerate into bloody duels.
+
+It was in this matter that James first made himself felt. Happening into
+the building at an unaccustomed hour one afternoon, he became aware of
+strange noises issuing from an upper floor, and dashing up to the
+gymnasium discovered two brawny young Italians apparently trying to
+brain each other with Indian clubs. In a storm of righteous and
+unaffected wrath he rushed into the fray, separated the combatants and
+treated them to such a torrent of obloquy as they had never heard even
+among their own associates. Too astonished and fascinated to reply, they
+allowed themselves to be hustled from the room by James and literally
+kicked down the stairs and out of the building without so much as
+getting into their clothes, running several blocks in their gymnasium
+costumes. They aroused no particular attention, for at that time even
+the East Side was becoming accustomed to the sight of scantily clad
+youths using the streets as a cinder track, but it was more than an hour
+before, timid and peaceful, the offenders ventured to slip back into the
+clubhouse and their trousers.
+
+From that day on James practically ran the Delancy Street Club. It never
+became a very large or famous organization, partly for the reason that
+it was purposely kept rather small, but it did much good in its own
+quiet way. It soon became the chief extra-business interest in James'
+life; it effectually drove the last vestiges of what he learned to refer
+to mentally as "that foolishness" from his head; his nights became full
+of sleep and empty of visions. And by the spring of the next year he
+found himself slipping into an intermittent but perfectly easy
+friendship with Madge Elliston, founded, naturally enough, on their
+common interest in social matters. He fell into the habit of running up
+to New Haven for week-ends, and into the habit of seeing Madge on those
+Saturday evenings. He liked talking to her about social problems; he
+soon caught up with her in the matter of knowledge and experience, and
+it was from a comfortingly similar viewpoint that they were able to
+discuss such matters as methods of handling evening classes, the moral
+effects of workmen's compensation and the great and growing problem of
+dance halls and all that it involves. They both found much to help and
+instruct them in each other's views; the mere dissimilarities of the
+state laws under which they worked furnished ample material for
+discussion, and their friendship was always tightened by the fact that
+they were, so to speak, marching abreast, running up against successive
+phases of their work at about the same time.
+
+It need cause no surprise that such a relation should have remained
+practically static for a period of three years or more. Each of them had
+much to think of beside social work. James had eight or nine hours' work
+per day and all the absorbing interests of metropolitan life to keep him
+from spending overmuch time over it. And Madge, as we know, was already
+an extremely busy young woman. For a long time their common interest
+hardly amounted to more than an absorbing topic of conversation during
+their meetings. The stages by which it became the agent of something
+greater were quite imperceptible.
+
+There was just one exterior fact that served as a landmark in the
+progress of his feeling. Some months before--shortly after Harry had so
+unexpectedly gone abroad--Madge had started a series of Saturday night
+dances for her working girls--that was at the time when the dance craze
+was spreading among all classes of society--and she asked James to help
+her give some exhibitions of new dances, to get the thing well launched.
+James rather hesitated in accepting this invitation.
+
+"I'll do it, of course, if you really want me to," he said; "but I don't
+see why you want to drag me all the way up here for that. Why don't you
+ask somebody in town?"
+
+"That's just the point," replied Madge; "I shall want you to give a
+little individual instruction to the girls, if you will, and I think it
+would be just as well if the person who did that had no chance of
+meeting the girls about town, in other capacities...! Beside, you happen
+to dance rather better than any one I know up here."
+
+"Oh, nonsense!" said James. "I'll come," he added in the next breath.
+
+It was from just about the time of those dances, James thought, that the
+personal element in his relation to Madge began to overbalance the
+intellectual. He had had his moments of being rather attracted by her,
+of course--the episode of Aunt Selina's dinner was a fair example--but
+such moments had been mere sparks, soulless little heralds of the flame
+that now began to burn brightly and warmly. Hitherto he had primarily
+been interested in her; now he began definitely to like her. And then,
+before long, something more.
+
+It is interesting to compare the processes by which the two brothers
+fell in love with the same woman. Harry's experience might be likened to
+a blinding but illuminating flash of lightning; James' to the gentle but
+permeating effect of sunrise. Both were held at first by the purely
+intellectual side of Madge's character, but by different aspects of it.
+Harry was primarily attracted to her by her active wit; this had at
+first repelled James, made him somewhat afraid of her, until he
+discovered the more solid qualities of her mind. Both at last fell in
+love with her as a person, not as a member of the female sex nor as a
+thinking machine. Both passions were founded upon solid rock; neither
+could be uprooted without violent and far-reaching results.
+
+How beautifully it had all worked out in the end, James reflected; how
+wisely the progress of things was ordained! How fortunate it was that
+his first futile passion for Beatrice had not been allowed to develop
+and bear ill-conceived fruit! Now that he almost went so far as to
+despise himself for that passion as unworthy both of himself and of her.
+What had he fallen in love with there? A lip, a cheek, a pair of eyes, a
+noble poise of a head, a thing to win and kiss and at last squeeze in
+his arms--nothing more! He had set her up as the image of a false,
+fleshly ideal, an empty Victorian husk of an ideal, a sentimental,
+boyish, calfish vision of womanhood. How paltry that image looked when
+compared to that newer one combining the attributes of friend, comrade,
+fellow-worker, kin of his mind and spirit! His first image had done
+injustice to its material counterpart, to be sure; Beatrice had turned
+out to be far different from the alluring but empty creature he had
+pictured her. She was a being with a will, ideas, powers, purposes of
+her own. Well, all the better--for Harry! How admirably suited she was
+to Harry! What a pair they would make, with their two keen minds, their
+active ambitions, their fine, dynamic personalities! The thought
+furnished almost as pleasing a mental picture as that of his union with
+a small blue-eyed person at this very moment covered by the sloping gray
+roof he had already taken pains to pick out from the ranks of its
+fellows....
+
+The contemplation of material things brought a slight diminution of
+pleasure. When one came down to solid facts, things were not going quite
+so well as could be desired. Harry was at this moment kiting
+unconcernedly about the continent of Europe and his match with Beatrice
+seemed, as far as James could make out, as much in the air as ever.
+Also, his own actual relation with Madge was not entirely satisfactory.
+That was due chiefly to sordid facts, no doubt; he could not expect to
+have the freedom of meeting and speech he naturally desired with a
+governess in a friend's house. Still, in the two or three conversations
+he had been able to arrange with her during the past three weeks he had
+been conscious of an unfamiliar spirit of elusiveness. Once, he
+remembered, she had gone so far as to bring the subject of conversation
+round to impersonal things with something little short of rudeness, just
+as he was getting started on something that particularly interested him,
+too....
+
+Plenty of time for that, though; it would never do to hurry things. He
+arose from his rock and stretched himself, lifting his arms high above
+his head in the cool evening air with a sense of strength and ease.
+There was nothing to worry about; things were fundamentally all right;
+ends would meet and issues right themselves, all in due time.
+
+It was time, or very nearly time, for Aunt Selina's evening meal, so he
+started off at a brisk pace down the hill, whistling softly and
+cheerfully to himself. He thought of Aunt Selina, how pleased she would
+be with it all, when she knew. Good old soul! He remembered how
+pointedly she had asked him to spend his month's vacation with her when
+she told him she had taken a house at Bar Harbor for the summer; could
+it be that she suspected anything? Perhaps she had, perhaps not; it had
+all worked in very conveniently with Madge being at Gilsons', at any
+rate. Let her and every one else suspect what they wished; it did not
+matter much. Nothing did matter much, when you came to that, except
+that small person in white linen and lawn who had flouted him when he
+had last seen her and whom he would show what was what, he promised
+himself, on the next favorable opportunity....
+
+"Thank God for Madge," he breathed softly to himself as he walked on and
+the peace of the evening descended more deeply around him; "oh, thank
+God for Madge!"
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VI
+
+A LONG CHAPTER. BUT THEN, LOVE IS LONG
+
+
+Aunt Selina was almost the only person with whom Harry spoke during the
+interval between his last interview with Madge and his departure for
+foreign parts. He was living in the old house now, so he could not very
+well avoid seeing her. At the last moment, with his overcoat on and his
+hat in his hand, he sought out his aunt, and found her in a small room
+on the ground floor known as the morning-room, going over her accounts.
+
+"Good-by, Aunt Selina," he said. "I'm going to sail for Europe on the
+first steamer I can get, so I shan't see you for some time."
+
+Aunt Selina calmly took off her glasses, laid them beside her pen on the
+desk and paused before replying.
+
+"Good-by, my dear," she said at length; "I'm sure I hope you'll enjoy
+yourself. Brown Shipley, I suppose?"
+
+"Yes," said Harry. He was a little disconcerted; Aunt Selina played the
+game almost too well. Then as he stood unconsequently before her, he was
+seized by a sudden desire to confide in her. "Do you know why I'm going,
+Aunt Selina?" he asked.
+
+"No, my dear."
+
+"Well, why do you _think_?"
+
+"I prefer not to guess, if that is what you mean. You may tell me, if
+you wish."
+
+"Madge Elliston," mumbled Harry.
+
+Aunt Selina stared immovably at her bank book for a moment; then she got
+up and faced her nephew.
+
+"There is a streak of horse sense in the Wimbourne blood that has been
+the saving of all of us," she said. "I'm glad to see it come out in you.
+Good-by, my dear." She kissed him on the cheek.
+
+"How do--how would you like it?" he asked, still hesitating, uncertain
+as to her meaning.
+
+"Nothing better. I wish you the best of luck. And I think you're doing
+the wisest possible thing."
+
+"I'm glad you do." He looked at her gratefully. "Did you suspect
+anything?"
+
+"Not a thing."
+
+"Then I don't believe any one does.... Good-by, Aunt Selina."
+
+"You've done me a great honor. Good-by, dear."
+
+They kissed again and he went out, feeling greatly strengthened and
+encouraged. As he drove down to the station he determined to go to a
+hotel in New York and keep out of the way of the James Wimbournes and
+all other possible confidants. The interview with Aunt Selina had been
+so perfect that he could not bear the thought of risking anti-climaxes
+to it. Suddenly he remembered that certain Cunard and White Star boats
+sailed to the Mediterranean from Boston. He could go directly there and
+wait for a steamer in perfect security.
+
+So he took the next train to Boston and that very afternoon engaged
+passage to Gibraltar on a steamer sailing two days later. The interval
+he spent chiefly in laying up a great store of books on Spain and
+Portugal, which countries he planned to visit _in extenso_.
+
+The dull, wet voyage he found enchanting when brightened up by the
+glowing pages of Lope de Vega, Calderon, "Don Quixote," "The Lusiads,"
+"The Bible in Spain," and Lea's "History of the Inquisition," a galaxy
+further enhanced by the businesslike promises of guide books and
+numerous works on Hispanic architecture and painting. He landed at
+Gibraltar with something almost approaching regret at the thought that
+land traveling would allow him less time for reading.
+
+In leisurely fashion he strolled through southern Spain and Portugal,
+presently reaching Santiago de Compostela. It had been his intention,
+when this part of the trip was finished, to go to Biarritz and from
+there work on through the towns of southern France, but a traveling
+Englishman told him that he ought on no account to miss seeing the
+cathedral of Gerona. So he changed his plans and proceeded eastward.
+When he reached Gerona he called himself a fool for having so nearly
+missed it, but after a week or ten days among the huge dark churches of
+Catalonia he suddenly sickened of sight-seeing and that very night
+caught a through express from Barcelona to Paris.
+
+Harry had never known Paris well enough to care for it particularly,
+but just now there was something rather attractive to him in its late
+June gaiety. He arrived there just at the time of the Grand Prix, and as
+he strolled, lonely and unnoticed, through the brilliant Longchamps
+crowd he felt his heart unaccountably warming to these well-groomed
+children of the world. He had been outside the realm of social
+intercourse so long that he felt a sudden desire for converse with
+smart, cheerful, people of their type.
+
+His desire was not difficult of fulfilment, as nothing but seven hours'
+traveling lay between him and a welcoming Belgrave Square. The next day
+he crossed the Channel and took his uncle and aunt completely by
+surprise. They were delighted to see him and were unaffectedly
+disappointed at having to leave him almost immediately for a dinner in
+Downing Street.
+
+"But we're going to see a lot of you while you're here, dear boy," said
+Aunt Miriam, "if we have to break every engagement on our list. It isn't
+every day that I have a nephew turn into a successful playwright! What
+about a dinner, now? Giles, have you anything on for a week from
+Monday?"
+
+"The truth is," observed Sir Giles to his nephew, "you've become a lion,
+and a lion is a lion even if he is in the family. Poor Harry, I feel for
+you!"
+
+"That'll do, G. It's good for the boy."
+
+"There's small danger of my being a lion in London, anyway," said Harry.
+
+"Oh, I don't know," ruminated Uncle Giles: "adoration of success is the
+great British vice, you know."
+
+"Monday the fourth, then, Giles," said his wife.
+
+"Hooray, the national holiday!" retorted the irrepressible baronet. "I
+say, we'll have the room decorated with American flags and set off
+fireworks in the square afterward. We might make a real day of it, if
+you like, and go to tea at the American Embassy!"
+
+"No, I don't think we'll do that," answered Aunt Miriam, closing her
+lips rather firmly.
+
+Harry had a short talk alone with his aunt that night after she came
+back from the evening's business.
+
+"Come in and help me take off my tiara," she said, leading the way into
+her bedroom. "I rather want to talk to you. Do you know, dear boy, I
+fancy something's come over you lately, you're changed, somehow. Is it
+only your success? What brought you over here, in the first place?"
+
+"Spanish churches," answered Harry promptly. He had at one time half
+decided to confide in Aunt Miriam, but he definitely gave up the idea
+now. She was too sympathetic, by half. "Do you know Barcelona and
+Batalha? There's nothing like them."
+
+"No, I've never been to Spain. They say there are fleas, and the beds
+are not reliable. I also understand that other arrangements are somewhat
+primitive."
+
+"Oh, not always," replied Harry, smiling. "Still, I don't think I do
+quite see you in Spain, Aunt Miriam." Then he kissed her good night
+quite affectionately. He could be very fond of her, from a short
+distance.
+
+As he strolled down Bond Street next morning Harry sighted an old school
+acquaintance; a man whom he had known as plain Tommy Erskine, but whom a
+succession of timely deaths, as he now vaguely remembered, had brought
+into the direct line of an earldom. Harry wondered if he would remember
+him; they had not met since their Harrow days. The other's somewhat
+glassy stare relaxed quickly enough, however, when he saw who it was.
+
+"Well, Harry! Jolly old Harry!" he said in a tone of easy cordiality, as
+though he had not seen Harry perhaps for a week. "I say, turn around and
+toddle down to Truefitt's again with me, will you? Fellah puts stinking
+stuff on my hair three times a week; never do to miss a time, wot? Well,
+jolly old Harry; wherever have you been all these yahs? Didn't go up to
+Oxford, did you?"
+
+"No," said Harry, "I went home, to America, and I've stayed there ever
+since. I'm a thorough Yankee again now; you won't know me. But Tommy,
+what's all this rot about you being a viscount or something?"
+
+"Oh, bilge! Such a bilgy name, too--Clairloch--like a fellah with phlegm
+in his throat, wot? Never call me that, though; call me Tommy, and I'll
+call you Wiggers, just like jolly old times, wot?"
+
+Harry felt himself warming to this over-mannered, over-dressed,
+over-exercised dandy who was such a simple and affectionate creature
+beneath his immaculate cutaway, and rather hoped he might see something
+of him during his stay in London.
+
+"Do you ever ride these days, Tommy?" he asked presently. "That is,
+would you ride with me some day, if I can scratch up an animal?"
+
+"Oh, rather. Every morning, before brekker. Only I'll mount you. Lots of
+bosses, all eating their silly heads off. Oh, rot!" he went on, as Harry
+demurred; "rot, Wiggers, of course I shall mount you. No trouble 't all.
+Pleasure. You come to England, I mount you. I go to America, you mount
+me. Turn about, you know."
+
+"I'm afraid not, as we haven't got any saddle horses at present,"
+answered Harry. "You can drive with Aunt Selina in the victoria, though,
+if you like," he added, smiling at the thought.
+
+"Wot? Wot's that? Delighted, I'm shaw," said Tommy, vaguely scenting an
+invitation. "Oh, I say, Wiggers, speaking of aunts, wotever became of
+that jolly cousin of yaws? Carson gell--oldest--sister married Ned
+Twombly--you know." (For Jane had fulfilled her mission in life by
+marrying the heir to a thoroughly satisfactory peerage.)
+
+"She's not my cousin," said Harry, "but she's still living in America,
+keeping house for my aunt--the one I mentioned just now--and doing lots
+of other things. Settlement work, and such. She and my aunt are thick as
+thieves."
+
+"I say, how rum. Fancy, gell like that--good looks, and all
+that--trotting off to do slum work in a foreign country. Wot's the
+matter with London? Lots of slums here. Can't und'stand it, 't all.
+Never could und'stand it. Rum."
+
+"Oh, no one ever understands Beatrice," said Harry. "Her friends have
+given up trying. Well, Tommy, I think I won't go into Truefitt's with
+you. See you to-morrow morning?"
+
+"Righto--Achilles statue--seven-thirty sharp."
+
+"Righto," answered Harry, and laughed to think how well he said it.
+
+That was the beginning of a long month of gaiety for Harry, a month of
+theaters and operas, of morning rides in the Row, of endless chains of
+introductions, of showering invitations, of balls, dinners, parties of
+all kinds, of lazy week-ends in the Surrey hills or beside the Thames,
+of sitting, on one occasion at least, enthroned at Aunt Miriam's right
+hand and gazing down a long table of people who were not only all asked
+there to meet him but had actually jumped at the invitation; of tasting,
+in short, the first fruits of success among the most congenial possible
+surroundings.
+
+And as his relish outlasted the season he saw no reason for not
+accepting an invitation to a yachting party over Cowes week and another
+to one of Tommy's ancestral seats in Rosshire over the twelfth; the more
+so as Uncle Giles and Aunt Miriam decamped for Marienbad early in
+August. So he became in turn one of the white-flanneled army of
+pleasure-seekers of the south and one of the brown-tweeded cohorts of
+the north. His month in Tommydom ran into five, into six, into seven
+weeks almost before he knew it; it threatened shortly to become two
+months. And then, instantaneously, the revulsion seized him, even as it
+had seized him in June at Manresa.
+
+It happened one morning when the whole party were in the butts. Harry
+was ordinarily a tolerable shot, but to-day he shot execrably. After he
+had missed every bird in the first drive he cursed softly and broke his
+shooting-stick; after he had missed every bird in the second he silently
+handed his gun to his loader and walked down to his host, who had the
+next butt to his.
+
+"Good-by, Tommy," he said, holding out his hand. "I'm going."
+
+"Oh, don't do that," said Tommy. "Birds flying rotten high to-day."
+
+"It's not that. I'm going home."
+
+"Righto. See you at tea time, then."
+
+"No, you won't see me again. I'm going to catch the three-eighteen for
+Glasgow, if I can make it. Sail from Liverpool Saturday."
+
+Tommy's face, like his mind, became a blank, but he lived up to the
+traditions of his race and class. "Well, so long, old thing," he said,
+shaking Harry's hand. "Call on me if I can ever be any use. You'll find
+the motor down at the crossroads, and do look alive and get off before
+the next drive, there's a dear, or birds won't fly within a mile of the
+first butt."
+
+Harry reached Liverpool next day and succeeded in getting a berth on a
+steamer sailing the day after. He landed in New York late one afternoon
+and took a night train for Bar Harbor, arriving there next morning. He
+telegraphed ahead the hour of his arrival, and James and Beatrice met
+him at the dock. They both seemed glad to see him, and he supposed he
+was glad to see them, but he found it strangely difficult to carry on
+conversation with them as they all drove up to the house together.
+
+Aunt Selina kissed Harry affectionately and wholly refrained, he could
+not help noticing, from anything like knowing smiles or sly little
+asides. Aunt Selina could always be depended on.
+
+The Gilsons were New Haven people whom Harry had always known, though
+never very well. He rather liked Mrs. Gilson, who was a plump, chirpy,
+festive little person, but as he drove over the two miles that lay
+between her house and Aunt Selina's he prayed with all his might that
+both she and her husband might be from home that afternoon. Half his
+prayer was granted, but not the most important half. Mr. Gilson was
+away, but Mrs. Gilson, not content with being merely in, came bounding
+to the door to meet him and was whirling him down a broad green lawn to
+the tennis court before he knew which end he was standing on.
+
+"I do so want you to meet my cousin Dorothy Fitzgerald," she said. "Such
+a sweet girl, and it's so hard to get hold of men in Bar Harbor--you've
+no idea! She plays such a good game of tennis. I'm so glad to see you've
+got tennis shoes on--we were just trying to get up a four when you came.
+And how was your trip--do tell me all about it! Spain? Oh, I've always
+longed so to go to Spain! Young Mrs. Dimmock is here too--you know her?
+And a Mr. McLean--I'll introduce you. Portugal, too? Oh, how delightful;
+I do so want to hear all about Portugal. We've just got a new tennis
+net--I do hope it will work properly...."
+
+She buzzed pleasantly along by his side, neither asking nor requiring
+attention. Harry's glance wandered back to the house; he caught a
+glimpse of two little figures bent over a table on a verandah; Madge and
+that confounded child, of course.
+
+"Where is your little girl?" he asked.
+
+"Oh, Lily--she's having her French lesson, I suppose. We find it works
+better that way, to leave the morning free for golf and bathing and use
+this first stupid part of the afternoon for lessons. She's doing so
+well, too, with dear Madge Elliston...."
+
+"I want to see Lily before I go," said Harry firmly; "I don't think I
+have ever made her acquaintance. Madge Elliston, too," he added, trying
+to make this seem like a polite afterthought.
+
+"Oh, yes, indeed; I'll tell them both to come down to the court after
+the lesson," replied his hostess.
+
+By this time they were at the tennis court and introductions flew fast.
+Tennis ensued immediately and continued, quietly but absorbingly,
+through set after set till the afternoon was well-nigh gone. Presently
+they stopped playing and sat about sipping soft drinks, it seemed, for
+hours, and still Madge did not show up. At length he found himself being
+dragged into a single with Miss Fitzgerald. He played violently and
+nobly for a time, but when at last Madge with her small charge joined
+the group at the side of the court it was more than flesh or blood could
+stand. He left Miss Fitzgerald to serve into the backstop and walked
+across the court to where Madge stood.
+
+"How do you do?" he said, holding out his perspiring hand.
+
+"How do you do?" she answered, politely shaking it. It was the flattest
+meeting imaginable; nothing could have been more unlike the vision he
+had formed of it.
+
+Lily was introduced and he stood making commonplace remarks to both of
+them until he became aware that he had been rude to Miss Fitzgerald. He
+went off to make his apologies to her, and found her willing to receive
+them and also to discontinue their game. But if he hoped that general
+conversation would give him a chance for a private word with Madge he
+was bound to be disappointed. Mrs. Gilson had other plans.
+
+"Oh, Mr. Wimbourne, we're all going off on a picnic and we do so want
+you to join us! You will, won't you? Mrs. Dimmock knows such a sweet
+place on the Somesville road, and we're going to start right away. I'm
+not at all sure there's enough to eat, but that doesn't matter on a
+picnic, does it? Especially an evening picnic, when no one can see just
+how little there is! I do think it's so nice to get up things just on
+the spur of the moment like this, don't you? So much nicer than planning
+it all out ahead and then having it rain. Let's see, two, four, six--we
+shall all be able to pile in somehow...."
+
+"But I'm afraid I shall have to change," objected Harry. "I don't quite
+see how I can manage."
+
+"We shall see the moon rise over McFarland," observed young Mrs. Dimmock
+in a rapt manner, as though that immediately solved the problem.
+
+Harry was at first determined not to go on any account; then he gathered
+that Madge was to be included in the expedition, and straightway became
+amenable. A picnic, an evening picnic, would surely give him the best
+possible opportunity....
+
+The plan as at last perfected was that Harry should be driven home where
+he would change and pick up James and Beatrice, if possible, and with
+them drive out in the Wimbournes' buckboard to the hallowed spot on the
+Somesville road in plenty of time to see the moon rise over McFarland.
+This was substantially what occurred, except that Beatrice elected to
+remain at home with Aunt Selina. James and Harry took the buckboard and
+drove alone to the meeting place. They found the others already there
+and busy preparing supper. A fire crackled pleasantly; the smell of
+frying bacon was in the air. Harry, refreshed by a bath and the prospect
+of presently taking Madge off into some shadowy thicket, was in higher
+spirits than he had been all day. He bustled and chattered about with
+Mrs. Gilson and Mrs. Dimmock and joined heartily with them in lamenting
+that the clouds were going to cheat them of the much-advertised
+moonrise. He engaged in spirited toasting races with Miss Fitzgerald and
+sardine-opening contests with members of the strong-wristed sex. He vied
+with Mrs. Gilson herself in imparting a festive air to the occasion.
+
+Then suddenly he realized that Madge was not there. He had been vaguely
+aware of something lacking even before he overheard something about
+"headache" and "poor little Lily," from which it became clear to him
+that Madge's professional duties had again dealt him a felling blow. He
+made some excuse about gathering firewood and darted off in a bee-line
+to the place where the horses were tethered.
+
+He caught sight of James on the way and dragged him out of the others'
+hearing.
+
+"James!" he whispered hoarsely, "you'll have to get home as you can. I'm
+going to take the buckboard--now--right off! Something very
+pressing--tell you about it later. Say I've got a stomach ache or
+something."
+
+He jumped into the buckboard and started off at a fast clip. The night
+air rushing by him fanned his fevered senses and before the village was
+reached he was calm and deliberate. He drove straight to the Gilsons'
+house, tied his horse at the hitching-post, rang the front doorbell and
+asked for Miss Elliston.
+
+He allowed her to come all the way down the stairs before he said
+anything. Half curious, half amused she watched him as he stood waiting
+for her.
+
+"Nothing the matter with that kid?" he inquired at last.
+
+She shook her head.
+
+"Come with me then."
+
+Without a word he turned and walked off through a French window which he
+held open for her. As she passed him she glanced at his set face and
+gave a slight choking sound. He supposed he was rather amusing. No
+matter, though; let her laugh if she wanted. He led her across the lawn
+to the tennis court where they had met this afternoon and beyond it,
+until at last they reached a small boathouse with a dock beside it. To
+this was moored a canoe. He had seen that canoe this afternoon and it
+had recurred to him on his drive. He stooped and unfastened the painter
+and then held out his hand.
+
+"Get in there," he commanded.
+
+She hesitated. "It's not safe, really--"
+
+"Get in," he repeated almost roughly.
+
+She settled herself in the bow and he took his place at the other end.
+With a few vigorous strokes of the paddle he sent the canoe skimming out
+over the dark, mysterious water. The night was close and heavy and gave
+the impression of being warm; it was in fact as warm as a Bar Harbor
+night at the end of August can respectably be. The sky was thickly
+overcast, but the moon which had so shamelessly failed to keep the
+evening's engagements shed a dim radiance through the clouds, as though
+generously lending them credit for having shut in a little daylight
+after the normal time for its departure. Not a breeze stirred; the
+surface of the water was still, though not with the glassy stillness of
+an inland lake. Low, oily swells moved shudderingly about; when they
+reached the shore they broke, not with the splashy cheerfulness of fair
+weather ripples, but gurgling and sighing among the rocks, obviously
+yearning for the days when they would have a chance to show what they
+really could do in the breaking business. The whole effect was at once
+infinitely calm and infinitely suggestive.
+
+Neither of the occupants of the canoe spoke. Harry paddled firmly along
+and Madge watched him with a sort of fascination. At length her eyes
+became accustomed to the light and she was able to distinguish the grim,
+unchanging expression of his features and his eyes gazing neither at her
+nor away from her but simply through her. His face, together with the
+deathly calm of the night, worked a strange influence over her; it
+became more and more acute; she felt she must either scream or die of
+laughing....
+
+"Well, Harry?"
+
+"Well, Madge?"
+
+His answer seemed less barren as she thought it over; there had been
+just enough emphasis on the last word to put the next step up to her.
+The moment had come. She drew a deep breath.
+
+"The answer," she said, "is in the affirmative."
+
+The next thing Madge was aware of was Harry paddling with all his might
+for the shore.
+
+"What are you doing?" she asked.
+
+"Going to get out of this confounded thing," he replied.
+
+When they reached the dock he got out, helped her out and tied the canoe
+with great care. Then he gathered her to him and kissed her several
+times with great firmness and precision.
+
+"You really are quite a nice young woman," he remarked; "even if you did
+propose to me."
+
+"Harold Wimbourne! I never!"
+
+"You said, 'Well, Harry.' I should like to know what that is if it isn't
+a proposal."
+
+They turned and started up the steps toward the house. Madge seemed to
+require a good deal of helping up those steps. When they reached the top
+she swung toward him with a laugh.
+
+"What is it now?" he asked.
+
+"Nothing ... only that it should have happened in a canoe. You, of all
+people!"
+
+They walked slowly across the tennis court and sat down in one of the
+chairs scattered along its western side. Here they remained for a long
+time in conversation typical of people in their position, punctuated by
+long and interesting silences.
+
+"Suppose you tell me all about it," suggested Harry.
+
+"Well, now that it's all done with, I suppose I was merely trying to be
+on the safe side, all along. I know, at least, that I had rather a
+miserable time after you left. All the spring. Then I came up here and
+it seemed to get worse, somehow. It was early in June, and everything
+was very strange and desolate and cold, and I cried through the entire
+first night, without stopping a moment!"
+
+"Yes," said Harry thoughtfully, "I should think you might have gathered
+from that that all was not quite as it should be."
+
+"Yes. Well, next morning I decided I couldn't let that sort of thing go
+on. So I took hold of myself and determined never to discuss the subject
+with myself, at all. And I really succeeded pretty well, considering.
+Whenever the idea of you occurred to me in spite of myself, I
+immediately went and did something else very hard. I've been a perfect
+angel in the house ever since then, and I don't mind saying it was
+rather brave of me!"
+
+"You really knew then, months ago? Beyond all doubt or question?"
+
+"I shouldn't wonder."
+
+"Then why in the world didn't you telegraph me?"
+
+"As if I would!" exclaimed Miss Elliston with an indignant sniff.
+
+"That was the arrangement, you know."
+
+"Oh, good gracious, hear the man! What a coarse, masculine mind you
+have, my ownest! You call yourself an interpreter of human character,
+but what do you really know of the maiden of bashful twenty-six?
+Nothing!"
+
+"Well, well, my dear," said Harry easily, "have it your own way. I
+daresay it all turned out much better so. I was able to do up the
+Spanish churches thoroughly, and I had a lovely time in England. Just
+fancy, of all the hundreds of people I met there I can't think of a
+single one, from beginning to end, who said I had a coarse masculine
+mind."
+
+"Brute," murmured Miss Elliston, apparently to Harry's back collar
+button.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+"I suppose," she observed, jumping up a little later, "that you were
+really right in the beginning. That first evening, you know."
+
+"Oh, I'm quite sure of it. How?"
+
+"When you said I couldn't talk that way to you without being in love
+with you. I expect I really was, though the time hadn't come for
+admitting it, even to myself. In fact, I was so passionately in love
+with you that I couldn't bear to talk about it or even think about it,
+for fear of some mistake. If I kept it all to myself, you see, no harm
+could ever have been done."
+
+"How sane," murmured Harry. "How incontrovertibly logical."
+
+"Yes. You see," explained Miss Elliston primly, "no girl--no really nice
+girl, that is, can ever bring herself to face the question of whether
+she is in love with a man until he has declared himself."
+
+"Consequently, it's every girl's--every nice girl's--business to bring
+him to the point as soon as possible. Any one could see that."
+
+"And for that very reason she must keep him off the business just as
+long as she can. When you realize that, you see exactly why I acted as I
+did that night and why I worked like a Trojan to keep you from
+proposing. I failed, of course, at last--I hadn't had much experience.
+I've improved since...." She wriggled uncomfortably. "You acted rather
+beautifully that night, I will say for you. You made it almost easy."
+
+"Hm. You seemed perfectly sure that night, though, that you were very
+far from being in love with me. You even offered to marry me, as I
+remember it, as an act of pure friendship. I don't see quite why you
+couldn't respectably admit that you were in love with me then, since in
+spite of your best efforts I had broken through to the point. How about
+that?"
+
+"It was all too sudden, silly. I couldn't bring myself round to that
+point of view in a minute. I had to have time. Oh, my dear young man,"
+she continued, resuming her primmest manner, "how little, how
+singularly little do you know of that beautiful mystery, a woman's
+heart."
+
+"A woman's what?"
+
+"Heart."
+
+"Oh, yes, to be sure. As I understand it, the only mystery is whether it
+exists or not."
+
+"How can you say that?" cried Madge with sudden passion, grasping at him
+almost roughly.
+
+"I didn't," replied Harry.
+
+"No, dear, excuse me, of course you didn't. Only I have to make a fool
+of myself every now and then...."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+"But, oh, my dearest," she whispered presently with another change of
+mood, "if you knew what a time I've been through, really, since you've
+been gone! If you knew how I've lain awake at night fearing that it
+wouldn't turn out all right, that something would happen, that I'd lose
+you after all! I've scanned the lists of arrivals and departures in the
+papers; I've listened till I thought my ears would crack when other
+people talked about you. The very sound of your name was enough to make
+me weep with delight, like that frump of a girl in the poem, when you
+gave her a smile.... You see, I haven't been brave _all_ the time. There
+were moments.... Do you know that backbone feeling?"
+
+"I think so," said Harry. "You mean the one that starts very suddenly at
+the back of your neck and shoots all the way down?"
+
+"Yes, and at the same time you feel as if your stomach and lungs had
+changed places, though that's not so important. I don't see why people
+talk about loving with their hearts; the real feeling is always in the
+spine. Well, no amount of bravery could keep that from taking me by
+surprise sometimes, and even when I was brave it would often leave me
+with a suspicion that I had been very silly and weak to trust to luck to
+bring everything to a happy ending. But I never could bring myself to
+send word to you. I was determined to give you every chance of changing
+your mind; I knew you would come back at last, if you cared enough....
+And if anything had happened, or if you had decided not to come
+back--well, I always had something to fall back on. The memory of that
+one evening, and the thought that I had been given the chance of loving
+you and had lived up to my love to the best of my ability...."
+
+"That doesn't seem very much now, does it?" suggested Harry.
+
+"No. Oh, to think how it's come out--beyond all my wildest dreams!... I
+never thought it would be quite as nice as this, did you?"
+
+"Never. The truth has really done itself proud, for once."
+
+"The truth--fancy, this is the truth! This!... Oh, nonsense, it can't
+be! We aren't _really_ here, you know. This is simply an unusually vivid
+subconscious affair--you know--the kind that generally follows one of
+the backbone attacks. It will pass off presently. It will, you know,
+even if it is what we call reality.... For the life of me, I don't
+really know whether it is or not!--Harry, did it ever occur to you that
+people are always marveling that dreams are so like life without ever
+considering the converse--that life is really very much like a dream?"
+
+"A few have--a very few. A great play has been written round that very
+thing--_La Vida Es Sueno_--life is a dream. We'll read it together
+sometime.--Heavens, I never realized what it really meant till now! Do
+you know what this seems like to me? It seems like the kind of scene I
+have always wanted to write but never quite dared--simply letting myself
+go, without bothering about action or probability or motivation but just
+laying it on with a trowel, as thick as I could. All that, transmuted
+into terms of reality--or what we call reality! Heavens, it makes me
+dizzy!"
+
+ * * * * *
+
+"See here, Harold Wimbourne," said Madge, suddenly jumping up again; "it
+seems to me you've been talking a great deal about love and very little
+about marriage. What I want to know is, when are you going to marry me?"
+
+"Oh, the tiresome woman! Well, when should you say?"
+
+"To-morrow morning, preferably. If that won't do, about next Tuesday.
+No, of course I've got heaps of things to do first. How about the middle
+of October?"
+
+"I was just thinking," said Harry seriously. "You see, my dear, I'm at
+present working on a play. Technically speaking. Only, owing to the
+vaporous scruples of a certain young person I haven't been able to put
+in any work on it for several months. Bachmann has been very decent. He
+has practically promised to put it on in January, if it's any good at
+all. That means having it ready before Christmas, and I shall have to
+work like the very devil to do that. I work so confoundedly slowly, you
+see. Then there'll be all the bother of rehearsals, lasting up to the
+first night, which I suppose would be about the end of January. I should
+like to have up till then clear, but I should think by about the middle
+of February--say the fifteenth...."
+
+"Oh, indeed," replied Miss Elliston, "you should say about the
+fifteenth, should you? I'm sorry, very sorry indeed, but as it happens I
+have another engagement for the fifteenth--several of them. Possibly I
+could arrange something for next June, though, or a year from next
+January; possibly not. Better let the matter drop, perhaps; sorry to
+have disturbed--"
+
+"When will you marry me?" interrupted Harry, doing something that
+entirely destroyed the dignity of Miss Elliston's pose. "Next
+week--to-morrow--to-night? I daresay we could wake up a parson...."
+
+"Sorry, dear, but I've arranged to be married on the fifteenth of
+February, and no other date will do. You're hurting my left
+shoulder-blade cruelly, but I suppose it's all right. That's better....
+Oh, Harry, I do want you to work like the very devil on this play! Don't
+think about marriage, or me, or anything that will hinder you. Because,
+dearest, I have a feeling that it's going to be rather a good one. A
+perfect rip-snorter, to descend to the vulgar parlance."
+
+"Yes," said Harry, "I have a feeling that it is, too."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+The sound of carriage wheels crunching along the gravel drive floated
+down and brought them back with a start to the consideration of
+actualities. They both sat silently wondering for a moment.
+
+"What about Mrs. Gilson?" suggested Madge.
+
+"Might as well," replied Harry.
+
+"All right. You'll have to do it, though."
+
+"Very well, then. Come along."
+
+They rose and stood for a moment among the scattered chairs, both
+thinking of their absurd meeting on that spot this very afternoon, and
+then turned and started slowly up toward the house. When they had nearly
+reached the verandah steps Harry stopped and turned toward Madge.
+
+"Well, the whole world is changed for us two, isn't it?"
+
+"It is."
+
+"Nothing will ever be quite the same again, but always better, somehow.
+Even indifferent things. And nothing can ever spoil this one evening?"
+
+"Nothing?"
+
+"Not all the powers of heaven or earth or hell? We have a sort of
+blanket insurance against the whole universe?"
+
+"Exactly," said Madge. "We're future-proof."
+
+"That's it, future-proof. I'll wait here on the porch. No Fitzgerald,
+mind."
+
+He did not have to wait long. Madge found Mrs. Gilson in the hall, as it
+happened, with Miss Fitzgerald receding bedward up the stairs and far
+too tired to pay any attention to Madge's gentle "Mr. Wimbourne is here
+and would like to see you, Mrs. Gilson." So the good lady was led out
+into the dark porch and as she stood blinking in the shaft of light
+falling out through the doorway Harry appeared in the blackness and
+began speaking.
+
+"I do hope you'll excuse my being so rude and leaving your party, Mrs.
+Gilson. There was a real reason for it. You see Madge and I"--taking her
+hand--"have come to an understanding. We're engaged."
+
+Mrs. Gilson stood blinking harder than ever for one bewildered moment,
+and then the floodgates of speech were opened.
+
+"Oh, my _dear_, how _wonderful_! Madge, my dearest Madge, let me kiss
+you! Whoever could have _dreamed_--Harry--you don't mind my calling you
+Harry, do you?--you must let me kiss you too! It's all so wonderful, and
+so unexpected, and I can't help thinking that if your dear mother--oh,
+Madge, you double-dyed creature, how long has this been going on and I
+never knew a thing? We all thought--your brother was so tactful and gave
+us to understand that you had acute indigestion or something, left over
+from the voyage, and we all quite understood, though I did think there
+might be something afoot when I saw your buckboard at the door. And I
+haven't heard a thing about Spain and Portugal, not a _thing_, though
+goodness knows there's no time to think of that now and you must let me
+give a dinner for you both at the earliest possible moment. When is it
+to be announced? I do hope before Labor Day because there's never a man
+to be had on the island after that...."
+
+And so on. At last Harry made the lateness of the hour an excuse for
+breaking away and went round to the front door to get his buckboard.
+Madge had to go with him, though she had no particular interest in the
+buckboard.
+
+"She's a good woman," said Harry as he fumbled with the halter.
+"Though--whoa there, you silly beast; you're liable to choke to death if
+you do that."
+
+"The rein's caught over the shaft," explained Madge. "It makes her
+uncomfortable. Though what, dear?"
+
+"That's the trace, and it's him, anyway. Oh, nothing. Only I never was
+so awfully keen on slobbering."
+
+"She's a dear, really. If you knew what an angel she's been to me all
+summer! What makes her look round in that wild-eyed way?"
+
+From Harry's answer, "He's tired, that's all," we may assume that this
+question referred to the horse, though her next remark went on without
+intermission: "I don't want you to go away to-night thinking--"
+
+"I like slobbering," asserted Harry. "Always did.... Now if that's all,
+dear, perhaps I'd better make tracks." The last ceremonies of parting
+had been performed and he was in the buckboard.
+
+"Just a moment, while I kiss your horse's nose. It doesn't do to neglect
+these little formalities.... I'm glad you like slobbering, dear, because
+your horse has done it all over my shoulder ... no, don't get out. It
+had to go in the wash anyway. He's a sweet horse; what is his name?"
+
+"Dick, I think. Oh, no--Kruger. Yes, he's that old."
+
+"Because, dear," went on Madge, with her hand on the front wheel;
+"there's one thing one mustn't forget. There was--Mr. Gilson, you know."
+
+"Good Lord," said Harry, struck by the thought.
+
+"Yes, and what's more, there still is!"
+
+"A true model for us?"
+
+"Yes. After all, we have no monopoly, you know."
+
+"Good Lord, think of it! Millions of others!"
+
+"It gives one a certain faith in the human race, doesn't it?"
+
+"For Heaven's sake, Madge, don't be ultimate any more to-night! You make
+me dizzy--how do you suppose I'm going to drive between those white
+stones? Do you want me to be in love with the whole world?" And Madge's
+reply "Yes, dear, just that," was drowned in the clatter of his wheels.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VII
+
+A VERY SHORT CHAPTER, IN ONE SENSE
+
+
+The next day it rained. Harry shut himself up in his room and wrote
+violently all the morning, less in the hope of accomplishing valuable
+work than in the desire to keep his mind off the one absorbing topic. It
+proved to be of little use. At lunch time he threw all that he had
+written into the fireplace and resolved to tell the immediate members of
+his family.
+
+It worked out very well. After lunch he arranged with James to take a
+walk in the rain. Beatrice, it appeared, would be occupied at a bridge
+party all the afternoon. There remained Aunt Selina--the easiest, by all
+odds. Just before starting out with James he walked into the living
+room, rustling in his raincoat, and found her alone by the fire.
+
+"It's all right, Aunt Selina." He felt himself grinning like a monkey,
+but couldn't seem to stop himself.
+
+But Aunt Selina herself could do nothing but laugh. Presently she rose
+from her seat and embraced her nephew.
+
+"That top button has come off," she said. "I'm afraid you'll get your
+neck wet." Then they looked at each other and laughed again. There was
+really nothing more to be said.
+
+James' feet sounded on the stairs above.
+
+"I shan't be home for dinner," said Harry, starting toward the door.
+"And you might tell Beatrice," he added.
+
+He walked with James for three hours or more. It may have been the
+calming influence of exercise or it may have been the comforting effect
+that James' society generally had on him; at any rate, when the time
+came he found himself able to say what he had to without any of the
+embarrassment he had expected.
+
+He chose the moment when they had all but reached the crossroad that
+would take him off to the Gilsons'.
+
+"James," he said, breaking a long silence, "I've got something rather
+important to tell you. I'm engaged."
+
+"To whom?"
+
+"Madge Elliston."
+
+"When?"
+
+"Last night. That was it." They now stood facing each other, at the
+crossroads. James did not speak for a moment, and Harry scanned his face
+through the dusk. Its expression was one of bewilderment, Harry thought.
+Strange, that James should be more embarrassed than he! But that was the
+way it went.
+
+"Harry! See here, Harry--"
+
+"Yes, James!"
+
+"I ..." He stopped and then slowly raised his hand. "I congratulate
+you."
+
+"Thanks, awfully. It does sort of take one's breath away, doesn't it?...
+I'm going there now. Why don't you come too? No? Well, I may be rather
+late, so leave the door on the latch. I'll walk home." And he walked off
+down the crossroad.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+James knew, perfectly well, the moment Harry said he had something to
+tell him. His subsequent questions were prompted more by a desire to
+make the situation between them legally clear, as it were, than by real
+need of information. His first dominant impulse was to explain the
+situation to Harry and show him, frankly and convincingly, the utter
+impossibility of his engagement. The very words formed themselves in his
+mind:--"See here, Harry, you can't possibly marry Madge Elliston,
+because I'm in love with her myself--have been for years, before you
+ever thought of her!" He drew a long breath and actually started in on
+his speech. But the words would not come. As he looked at his brother
+standing happy and ignorant before him he realized in an instant that,
+come what might, he would never be able to utter those words.
+
+There was nothing left to do but mumble his congratulations. As he
+lifted his hand to that of his brother the thought occurred to him that
+he might easily raise it higher and put Harry out of his way, once and
+for all. He knew that he could, with his bare hands, do him to death on
+the spot; knee on chest, fingers on throat--he knew the place. That was
+perhaps preferable to the other; kinder, certainly, but equally
+impossible. It was not even a temptation.
+
+As he walked off he reflected that he had just come through one of the
+great crises of his whole life, and yet how commonplace, how utterly
+flat had been its outward guise! He had always vaguely wondered how
+people acted at such times; now the chance had come to him and he had
+shown less feeling than he would have at missing a trolley car. In him,
+at this present moment, were surging some of the most terrific passions
+that ever swayed human beings--love, jealousy, disappointment, hate of
+the order of things--and he could not find a physical vent for one of
+them! Not only that, but he never would be able to; he saw that clearly
+enough; people of his time and class and type never could. This was what
+civilization had brought men to! What was the use? What was the meaning
+of all civilization, all progress, all human development? Here he was,
+as perfect a physical specimen as his age produced, unable to do more
+than grit his teeth in the face of the most intolerable emotions known
+to mankind, under pain of suffering a debasement even more intolerable.
+Some people did give way to their passions, but that was only because
+they were less able to think clearly than he. They always regretted it
+in the end; they always suffered more that way; his knowledge of the
+world had taught him nothing if it had not taught him that.
+
+Just in order to prove to himself how ineffectual physical expression of
+his mental state was he tore a rail off the top of a nearby fence--he
+had wandered far out into the country again--and, raising it above his
+shoulders, brought it down with all his strength upon a rock. The rail
+happened to be a strong one and did not break, and the force of the blow
+made his hands smart. He took a certain fierce joy in the pain and
+repeated the blow two or three times, but long before his body tired
+with the exertion his soul sickened of the business. He threw the rail
+lightly over the fence and wandered hopelessly on into the hills.
+
+After the first shock of surprise and disappointment had passed his
+feelings boiled down to a slow scorching hate of destiny. The thought of
+God occurred to him, among other things, and he laughed. Why did people
+ever take it into their heads to deny the existence of God? Of course
+there was a God; nothing but a divine will could possibly have arranged
+that he should be thwarted in an honest love--not merely once, mind you,
+but twice--by the one person in the world whom he could not oppose. Such
+things were beyond the realm of chance or reason. During one part of his
+wanderings he laughed aloud, several separate times, at the monumental
+humor of it all. A man such as he was, in the full pride of his youth
+and strength, strong in body, strong in mind, strong in will and
+character, twitched hither and yon by the lightest whimsical breath of
+an all-powerful divinity--it was supremely funny, in its coarse,
+horrible way.
+
+"Oh, yes, it's a good joke, God," he said aloud once or twice; "it's a
+damned good joke."
+
+It is significant that he thought very little of Madge now. He
+experienced none of the sudden sharp twinges of memory that he had known
+on a former occasion. At that time, as he now realized, only one side of
+his nature had been stirred, and that a rather silly, unimportant side.
+Now his whole being, or at least all that was best and strongest in his
+being, was affected. He had loved Beatrice only with his eyes and his
+imagination. He loved Madge with the full strength of his heart and soul
+and mind. And heart, soul and mind being cheated of their right, united
+in an alliance of hate and revenge against the fate that had cheated
+them.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+He did not return to the house for dinner, and Aunt Selina supposed he
+had gone with Harry to the Gilsons'. He walked most of the night and
+when at last he reached home he found the door locked. Harry, of course,
+not finding him downstairs, had thought he had gone to bed and had
+locked everything. So he lay down in a cot hammock to await the coming
+of a hopeless day.
+
+He got some sleep; he did not see that dawn, after all. Awakened shortly
+after seven by a housemaid opening doors and windows, he slipped
+unobserved up to his room, undressed and took a cold bath. He supposed
+nothing would ever keep him from taking a cold bath before breakfast;
+nothing, that is, except lack of cold water. Strange, that cold water
+could effect what love, jealousy and company could not. He glanced out
+of the window. The weather had changed during the night and the day was
+clear and windy and snapping, a true forerunner of autumn. The sun and
+wind between them were whipping the sea into all sorts of shades of blue
+and purple, rimming it with a line of white along the blue coast of
+Maine over to the left. There was cold water enough for any one, enough
+to drown all the wretched souls ever born into a world of pain. How
+strange it was to think of how many unwilling souls that sea drowned
+every year, and yet had not taken him, who was so eminently willing! He
+could not deliberately seek death for himself, but he would be delighted
+to die by accident. No such luck, though; the fate, God, destiny,
+whatever you chose to call it, that had brought him twice into the same
+corner of terrestrial hell would see to that....
+
+As he was rubbing himself dry his eye fell on his reflection in a
+full-length mirror and almost involuntarily stopped there. He still had
+the pure Greek build of his college days, he noticed; the legs, the
+loins, the chest, the arms, the shoulders all showed the perfect
+combination of strength and freedom. He had not even the faults of
+over-development; his neck was not thick like a prize-fighter's nor did
+his calves bulge like those of many great athletes. And his head matched
+the rest of him, within and without. And all this perfection was brought
+to naught by the vagrant whim of a cynical power! A new wave of hate and
+rebellion, stronger than any he had yet felt, swept over him. Moved by a
+sudden impulse he threw aside his towel and advanced a step or two
+toward the mirror, raising his hands after the manner of a
+libation-pourer of old.
+
+"I swear to you," he muttered between clenched teeth to the reflection
+that faced him; "I swear to you that nothing in me shall ever rest until
+I have got even with the Thing, god, devil or blind chance, that has
+brought me to this pass. It may come early or it may come late, but
+somehow, some day! I swear it."
+
+There was something eminently satisfying in the juxtaposition of his
+nakedness of body to the stark intensity of his passion and the
+elemental fervor of his agnosticism. For James was now a thorough
+agnostic; turned into one overnight from a "good" Episcopalian--he had
+been confirmed way back in his school days--he realized his position
+and fairly reveled in the hopelessness and magnificence and bravery of
+it all. For it takes considerable bravery to become an agnostic,
+especially when you have a simple religious nature. James was in a state
+where the thought of being eternally damned gave him nothing but a
+savage joy. It was all very wicked, of course, but strong natures have a
+way of turning wicked when it becomes impossible for them to be good.
+There are some things that not even a _schoene Seele_ can put up with.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Having thus taken pact with himself he experienced a sense of relief and
+became almost cheerful. He had breakfast alone with Harry--both ladies
+customarily preferring to take that intimate meal in their own
+rooms--and talked with him quite normally about various matters, chiefly
+golf. He became almost garrulous in explaining his theories concerning
+the proper use of the niblick. Harry was going to play golf that morning
+with Madge. He looked extremely fresh and attractive in his suit of
+tweed knickers; James did not blame Madge in the least for falling in
+love with his brother rather than him. Nor was he in the least inclined
+to find fault with Harry for falling in love with Madge. Only ... but
+what was the use in going over all that again?
+
+He walked briskly down to the town after breakfast and engaged a berth
+on the New York express for that night. Living in immediate propinquity
+to the happy lovers would of course be intolerable. Then he walked back
+to the house. It was rather a long walk; the house stood on a height at
+some distance back of the town. A feeling of lassitude overcame him
+before he reached home; the exertions of last night were beginning to
+tell on him. Oh, the horror of last night! The memory of it was almost
+more oppressive than the dreadful thing itself.
+
+He supposed he ought to go up and begin to pack, but he did not feel
+like it. Instead he wandered out on the verandah to lie in the sun and
+watch the sea for a while. He came at last to a hexagonal tower-like
+extension of the verandah built over an abutment of rock falling sharply
+away on all sides except that toward the house. There was a drop of
+perhaps twenty-five feet from the broad railing of this extension to the
+ground below. Harry, who knew the house from his early days, had dubbed
+its peak-roofed excrescence the chamber up a tower to the east that
+Elaine guarded the sacred shield of Lancelot in; it was sometimes more
+briefly referred to as Elaine. It was a pleasant place to sit, but very
+windy on a day like this, and James was rather surprised to discover
+Beatrice sitting in one angle of the railing gazing silently out over
+the sea.
+
+"Hullo," he said, listlessly sinking into a chair. "You've heard, I
+suppose?"
+
+"Yes, I've heard."
+
+"Fine, isn't it?"
+
+"Oh, splendid."
+
+"I'm going to New York to-night," said James after a moment.
+
+"I'm going home next month," said Beatrice.
+
+Neither spoke for a while and then it began to dawn on them both that
+those two carelessly spoken sentences had much more to them than their
+face-value. They both had the uneasy sensation of being forced into a
+"situation."
+
+"What for?" asked James at last.
+
+"For good."
+
+"But why?" he persisted, knowing perfectly well why, at bottom.
+
+"You ought not to have to ask that," she replied. "You, of all
+people.--Why are you going away to-night?" she added, turning toward him
+with sudden passion.
+
+James' first impulse was to make a sharp reply, his second was to get up
+and walk away, and then his glance fell upon her face.... Oh, was there
+no end to mortal misery?
+
+"I'm sorry, Beatrice," he said wretchedly; "I'm sorry--I didn't mean to
+hurt you."
+
+"Oh, it's all right," she answered in his own tone of voice. Then for a
+long time neither of them moved nor spoke.
+
+The situation was on them now in full force, and it was a sufficiently
+terrific one, for actual life; one which under other circumstances they
+would both have made every effort to break up. Yet neither of them
+thought of struggling against it now--there was so much else to struggle
+against. Great misfortunes inoculate people to small embarrassments; no
+one in the throes of angina pectoris has much time to bother about a
+cold in the head. Then, as their silence wore on, they began to be
+conscious of a certain sense of companionship.
+
+"I suppose it's pretty bad?" ventured James at last, on a note of
+tentative understanding.
+
+"I suppose it is...."
+
+An idea occurred to James. "At least you're better off than I am,
+though. You can try to do something about it. You see how my hands are
+tied. You can fight against it, if you want. That's something."
+
+Beatrice gazed immovably out over the sea. "You can't fight against
+destiny," she said at last.
+
+James pricked up his ears; his whole being became suddenly alert.
+Couldn't one? Had he not dedicated his whole future to that very thing?
+"I'm not so sure of that," he answered slowly. "Have you ever tried?"
+
+"I've tried for seven years."
+
+Well, that was something. He became curious; seven years' experience in
+the art of destiny-fighting would surely contain knowledge that would be
+valuable to a novice like himself. And in the manner of getting this he
+became almost diabolically clever. Guessing that all direct inquiries in
+the matter would merely flatten themselves against the stone wall of her
+reticence he determined to approach her through the avenue of her pride.
+
+"I find it hard to believe that," he remarked; "I haven't seen the
+slightest indication of such a thing."
+
+"No, of course not. How should you? I haven't advertised it, like a
+prize fight!"
+
+"I don't mean that; I mean that I haven't ever discovered anything in
+your character to make me believe you were--that sort of person. That
+sort of thing takes more than strength of character and intellect; it
+takes passion, capacity for feeling. And I shouldn't have said there was
+much of that in you. You have always seemed to me--well, rather aloof
+from such things. Cold, almost--I don't mean in the sense of being
+ill-natured, but...."
+
+James was perfectly right; it is a curious trait of human character,
+that sensitiveness on the point of capacity for feeling. People who will
+sincerely disclaim any pretensions to strength of mind, body or
+character will flare into indignant protest when their strength of heart
+is assailed. It was so with Beatrice now.
+
+"Cold?" she interrupted with a slight laugh. "Me--cold?... Yes, I
+suppose I might seem so. I daresay I appear to be a perfect human
+icicle...." She laughed again, and then turned directly toward James.
+"See here, James, it's more than likely that we shall never see each
+other again after to-day, isn't it?"
+
+"I suppose not, if you intend to go--"
+
+"The first moment I can. Consequently it doesn't matter particularly
+what I say to you now or what you think of me afterward. I should just
+like to give you an idea of what these years have been to me. It may
+amuse you to know that the pursuit of your brother has been the one
+guiding passion of my life since I was eighteen. I was in love with him
+before he left England and I've wanted him from that time on--wanted him
+with all the strength of my soul and body! Wanted him every living
+moment of the day and night!... Can you conceive of what that means for
+a woman? A woman, who can't speak, can't act, can't make the slightest
+advance, can't give the least glimmering of her feeling?--not only
+because the world doesn't approve but because her game's all up if the
+man gets a suspicion that she's after him.... I suppose I knew it was
+hopeless from the start, though I couldn't bring myself to admit it. At
+any rate, as soon as the chance came I made up my mind to come over here
+and just sit around in his way and wait--the only thing a woman can do
+under the circumstances...."
+
+"I never--I didn't realize quite all that," stammered James. "Though I
+knew--I guessed about the other.... You mean you deliberately came to
+America--"
+
+"With that sole purpose."
+
+"And you--you...." He fairly gasped.
+
+"I wormed my way into a place in your family with that one end in view,
+if that's what you mean. And I've remained here with that one end in
+view ever since."
+
+"And all your work--the League--"
+
+"I had to do something, in the meanwhile--No, that's not true either;
+that was another means to the same end. Intended to be." She smiled with
+the same quiet intensity of bitterness that had struck James before.
+
+"But what about you and Aunt Selina? I always thought--"
+
+The smile faded. "Aunt Selina might lie dead at my feet, for all I
+should care," she answered with another sudden burst of passion. "Oh,
+no, not quite that. I suppose I like her as well as I can _like_ any
+one. But that's the way it is, comparatively."
+
+"Yes. I know that feeling," said James meditatively.
+
+"So you see how it is with me. I'm glad, in a way, that it's all up now.
+Any end--even the worst--is better than waiting--that hopeless,
+desperate waiting. Yet I never could bring myself to give up till I
+heard--what I heard yesterday. I've expected it, really, for some time;
+I've watched, I've seen. Oh, that horrible watching--waiting--listening!
+That's all over, at least...."
+
+She had sunk into a chair near the edge of the verandah and sat with her
+elbows on the broad rail, gazing with sightless eyes over the variegated
+expanse of the sea. The midday sun fell full upon her unprotected face
+and even James at that moment could not help thinking how few
+complexions could bear that fierce light as hers did. She was, indeed,
+perhaps more beautiful at that moment than he had ever seen her before.
+Her expression of quiet hopeless grief was admirably suited to the
+high-bred cast of her features; she would have made a beautiful model
+for a Zenobia or a classisized type of _pieta_. Beauty is never more
+willing to come to us than when we want it least.
+
+It had its effect on James, though he did not realize it. He came over
+and sat down on the rail, where he could look directly down at her.
+
+"Beatrice," he said, "I don't mind saying I think it was rather
+magnificent of you."
+
+She looked up at him a moment and then out to sea again. "Well, I must
+say I don't. I'm not proud of it. If I had been man enough to go my own
+way and not let it interfere with my life in the very least, that might
+have been magnificent. But this.... It was simply weak. I always knew
+there was no hope, you know."
+
+"No, that's not the way to look at it. You devoted your whole life to
+that single purpose.... After all, you did as much as it was possible to
+do, you know. You went about it in the very best way--you were right
+when you said the worst thing you could do was to let him see."
+
+"I'm not so sure. No, I don't know about that. Sometimes I think that if
+I had been brave enough simply to go to him and say, 'I love you; here I
+am, take me; I'll devote my life to making a good wife for you,' it
+would have been much better. But I wasn't brave enough for that."
+
+"No," insisted James; "that wasn't why you didn't do it. You knew Harry.
+It might have worked with some men, but not with him. Can't you see him
+screwing himself to be polite and saying, 'Thank you very much,
+Beatrice, but I don't think I could make you a good enough husband, so
+I'm afraid it won't do'?... No, you picked out the best way to get at
+him and made that your one purpose in life, and I admire you for it. It
+wasn't your fault it didn't succeed; it was just--just the damned,
+relentless way of things...."
+
+"What are you going to do now?" he asked after a pause. "After you get
+home, I mean?"
+
+"I don't know. Work, I suppose, at something."
+
+"What--slums?"
+
+"Oh, I suppose so.--No, I'd rather do something harder, like
+stenography--something with a lot of dull, grinding routine. That's the
+best way."
+
+"A stenographer!"
+
+"Or a matron in a home.--Why not? I must do something. I won't live with
+Mama, that's flat."
+
+"You think you must go home, do you?"
+
+"You wouldn't expect me to stay here and--?"
+
+"No, but couldn't you find something to do here as well as there?"
+
+"Yes, but why? I suppose I want to go home, things being as they are. If
+I've got to live somewhere, I'd rather live among my own people. I
+didn't come here because I liked America best...."
+
+"But are you sure you don't like America best now? You can't have lived
+here all these years without letting the place have its effect on you,
+however little you may have thought about it. Why, your very speech
+shows it! And what about your friends--haven't you got as many on this
+side as the other? You've practically admitted it.... And do you realize
+what construction is sure to be put on your leaving just now...?"
+
+"What are you driving at?" She looked quickly up at him, curious in
+spite of herself to discover the trend of his arguments, in themselves
+scarcely worth answering. He did not reply for a moment, but stared
+gravely back at her, and when he spoke again it was from a different
+angle.
+
+"Beatrice, why have you been telling me all these things...?"
+
+He knew what he was going to do now, what he was striving toward with
+the whole strength of his newly-forged determination. And if at the back
+of his brain there struggled a crowd of lost images--ghosts of ideals
+which at this time yesterday had been the unquestioned rulers of his
+life--stretching out their tenuous arms to him, giving their last faint
+calls for help before taking their last backward plunge into oblivion,
+he only went on the faster so as to drown their voices in his own.
+
+"Beatrice, why did you think of confiding in me? Why did you pick out
+this particular time? You never have before; you're not the sort of
+person that makes confidences. It wasn't because you were going away;
+that was no real reason at all.... Beatrice, don't you see? Don't you
+see the bond that lies between us two? Don't you see what's going to
+happen to us both?"
+
+"No--I don't know what you're talking about. James, don't be absurd!"
+She rose to her feet as if to break away, but she stood looking at his
+face, fascinated and possibly a little frightened by the onward rush of
+his words. James rose too and stood over her.
+
+"Beatrice, we've both had a damned dirty trick played on us, the same
+trick at the same time. Are you going to take it lying down--spread
+yourself out to receive another blow, or are you going to stand up and
+make a fight--assert your independence--prove the existence of your own
+soul? I'm not, whatever happens! I'm going to make a fight, and I want
+you to make it with me. Beatrice, marry me! Now--to-day--this instant!
+Don't you see that's the only thing to do?..."
+
+"No! James, stop! You don't know what you're saying!" She broke away
+from him, asserting her strength for the moment against even his
+impetuous onrush. "James, you're mad, stark mad! Haven't you lived long
+enough to know that you always regret words spoken like that? Try to act
+like a sensible human being, if you can't be one!"
+
+That was all very well, but why did she weaken it by adding "I won't
+listen to any more such talk," which admitted the possibility that
+there might be more such talk very soon? And if she was determined not
+to listen, why did she not simply walk away and into the house? James
+did not put these questions to himself in this form, but the substance
+of their meaning worked its way through his excitement and lent him
+courage for an attack from a new quarter. He dropped his impetuosity and
+became very quiet and keen.
+
+"You ask me to act like a sensible person; very well, I will. Let's look
+at things from a practical point of view. There's no love's young dream
+stuff about this thing, at all. We've lost that; it's been cut out of
+both our lives, forever. All there is left for us to do is to pick up
+the pieces and try to make something of ourselves, as we are. How can we
+possibly do that better than by marrying? Don't you see the value of a
+comradeship founded on the sympathy there must be between us?"
+
+He stopped for a moment and stood calmly watching her. No need now to
+use violence against those despairing voices in the background of his
+thoughts; they had been hushed by the strength of a determination no
+longer hot with the joy of self-discovery but taking on already
+something of the chill irrevocability of age. He watched Beatrice almost
+with amusement; he knew so well what futile struggles were going on
+within her. He had no more doubt of the outcome now than he had of his
+own determination.
+
+"It all sounds very well, James," she answered at last, "but it won't
+do. I couldn't do it. Marriage...."
+
+"Well?"
+
+"Marriage is an ideal, you know, as well as--as a contract. I can't--I
+won't have one without the other."
+
+"You are very particular. People as unpopular with chance as we are
+can't afford to be particular."
+
+"It would be false to--to--oh, I don't know how to put it! To the best
+in life."
+
+"Has the best in life been true to you?"
+
+"You are so bitter!"
+
+"Hasn't one the right to be, sometimes? God--fate--what you call
+ideals--have their responsibilities, even to us. What claim have all
+those things got on us now?"
+
+"I choose to follow them still!"
+
+"Then you are weak--simply weak!--You act as if I were proposing
+something actually wicked. It's not wicked at all; it's simply a
+practical benefit. Marriage without love might be wicked if there were
+any chance left of combining it with love; but now--! It's simply
+picking up pieces, making the best of things--straight commonsense...."
+
+She might still have had her way against him, as long as he continued to
+base his appeal on commonsense. But he changed his tactics again, this
+time as a matter of impulse. He had been slowly walking toward her in
+the course of his argument and now stood close by her, talking straight
+down into her eyes, till suddenly her mere physical nearness put an end
+to speech and thought alike. Something of her old physical attraction
+for him, which had been much stronger than in the case of Madge,
+returned to him with a force for the moment irresistible. There was
+something about her wide eyes, her parted lips, her bosom slightly
+heaving with the effort of argument.... He put his hand on her shoulder
+and slowly yet irresistibly drew her to him. He bent his head till their
+lips touched.
+
+So they stood for neither knew how long. Seconds flew by like years, or
+was it years like seconds? Sense of time was as completely lost as in
+sleep; indeed, their condition was very much like that of sleep. They
+had both become suddenly, acutely tired of life and had found at least
+temporary rest and refreshment. Neither of them was bothered by worries
+over the inevitable awakening; neither of them even thought of it, yet.
+
+As for Beatrice, she was for the moment bowled over by the discovery
+that some one cared for her enough to clasp her to his bosom and kiss
+her. What had she wanted all these years, except to be loved? A wave of
+mingled self-pity and self-contempt swept over her. She felt suddenly
+weak; her knees trembled; what did that matter, though, when James was
+there to hold her up? She needed strength above all things, and James
+was strong above all things. Tears smarted in her eyes and streamed
+unheeded down her cheeks.
+
+"I was so lonely," she whispered at last, raising her welling eyes to
+him. "I have been alone so long ... so long...."
+
+"James," she began again after a while, "life is so horrible, isn't
+it?"
+
+"It is. Ghastly."
+
+"Oh, it _is_ good to find some one else who thinks so!"
+
+"Yes, I know."
+
+"Anything is good--_anything_--that makes it easier to forget, isn't
+it?"
+
+"Yes. And we're going to try to forget together."
+
+Presently the moment came when they had to break apart, and they did it
+a little awkwardly, not caring to look at each other very closely. They
+sat down on the rail, side by side but not touching, and for some time
+remained silently busy regaining old levels and making new adjustments.
+There was considerable to adjust, certainly. At last James looked at his
+watch and announced that it was nearly lunch time.
+
+"When shall we get married?" he inquired, brusk and businesslike. It may
+have been only his tone that Beatrice involuntarily shuddered at. She
+told herself it was, and then reviled herself for shuddering. It was
+better to be prosaic and practical.
+
+"Oh, as soon as possible.... Now--any time you say."
+
+"Yes, but when? When shall we tell people?"
+
+"Oh, not just yet...." she objected, almost automatically.
+
+"Why not? Why not right now--before the other?"
+
+"You think...?"
+
+"Yes--every moment counts." He meant that the sooner the thing came out
+the better were their chances of concealment, and she understood him.
+Yes, that was the way to look at things, she reflected; might as well do
+it well, if it was to be done at all. She warmed up to his point of view
+so quickly that when his next question came she was able to go him one
+better.
+
+"And the other--the wedding? In about a fortnight, should you say?"
+
+"Oh, no, not for a month, at least. At the very least. It must be in
+England, you see."
+
+"In England?"
+
+"Yes, that's the way it would be...." If we were really in love with
+each other, of course she meant. He looked at her with new admiration.
+
+They made a few more arrangements. Their talk was pervaded now with a
+sense of efficiency and despatch. If they could not call reasons by
+their real names they could call steamships and railroads by theirs,
+and did. In a few minutes they had everything planned out.
+
+A maid appeared and announced lunch. They nodded her away and sat silent
+for a moment longer. It seemed as if something more ought to be said;
+the interview was too momentous to be allowed to end with an
+announcement of a meal. The sun beat down on them from the zenith with
+the full unsubtle light of noonday, prosaically enough, but the wind,
+blowing as hard as ever, whistled unceasingly around their exposed tower
+and provided a sort of counter-dose of eerieness and suggestiveness; it
+gave them the sense of being rather magnificently aloof from the rest of
+the world. The sun showed them plainly enough that they were on a
+summer-cottage verandah, but the wind somehow managed to suggest that
+they were really in a much more romantic place. Probably this dual
+atmosphere had its effect on them; it would need something of the sort,
+at any rate, to make James stand up and say aloud, in broad daylight:
+
+"Beatrice, don't you feel a sort of inspiration in fighting against
+something you can't see?"
+
+"Yes, James," she answered slowly; "I believe I do--now."
+
+"Something we can neither see nor understand, but know is wrong and can
+only protest against with the whole strength of our souls? Blindly,
+unflinchingly?"
+
+"Yes."
+
+"Inevitably?"
+
+"Yes."
+
+"Even if uselessly?"
+
+"Yes." Her eyes met his squarely enough; there was no sign of flinching
+in them.
+
+"I'm glad you understand. For that's going to be our life, you know."
+
+"Yes, James; that shall be our life." They got up and took each other's
+hands for a moment, as though to seal their compact, looking each other
+steadfastly in the eyes meanwhile. They did not kiss again.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VIII
+
+ONE THING AND ANOTHER
+
+
+Seldom have we longed for anything so much as for the pen of a Fielding
+or a Thackeray to come to our aid at the present moment and, by means of
+just such a delightful detached essay as occurs from time to time in
+"Tom Jones" or "The Virginians," impart a feeling of the intermission
+that at this point appears in our story. There is nothing like a
+digression on human frailty or the condition of footmen in the reign of
+King George the Second to lift the mind of a reader off any particular
+moment of a story and, by throwing a few useful hints into the
+discourse, prepare him ever so gently to be set down at last at the
+exact point where he is to take it up again. That is making an art of
+skipping, indeed. We admire it intensely, but realize how impossible it
+is in this case. Not only is such a thing frankly outside our power, but
+the prejudice of the times is set against it, so our only course is to
+confess our weakness and plod along as best we may.
+
+Why on earth every human being who ever knew him should not have known
+of his engagement as soon as it occurred--or long before, for that
+matter--Harry could never discover. That they did not, in most cases,
+was due partly to reasons which could have been best explained by James
+and partly to the fact that the person who is most careless of
+concealment in such matters is very often the one who is least
+suspected. And then so many men had been after Madge! So that when the
+great news burst upon the world at the dinner that Mrs. Gilson could not
+decently be prevented from giving, the surprise, in the words of
+ninety-nine per cent. of their well-meaning friends, was as great as the
+pleasure.
+
+That occurred about a week after James' sudden departure from Bar
+Harbor, a phenomenon amply accounted for by business. Trouble in the
+Balkans--there always was trouble in the Balkans--had resulted, it
+appeared, in Orders; and Orders demanded James' presence at his post.
+This from Beatrice, with impregnable casualness. Beatrice was really
+rather magnificent, these days. When she received her invitation to Mrs.
+Gilson's dinner she vowed that nothing should take her there, but the
+next moment she knew she would go; that nothing should keep her from
+going. Obviously the first guiding principle of destiny-fighting was to
+go on exactly as if nothing had happened.
+
+About a week after the dinner Harry received a note from his brother in
+New York saying that he was engaged to Beatrice; that the wedding was to
+take place in London in October and that he hoped Harry would go over
+with him and act as his best man. "I refrained from mentioning it
+before," added James, "because I did not want to take the wind out of
+your sails. We are also enabled by waiting to reap the benefit of your
+experience; I refer to the Gilsons. We are taking no risks; it will
+appear in the papers on Wednesday the sixteenth, with Beatrice in Bar
+Harbor and me in New York. Beatrice sails the following Saturday."
+
+That was all very well, if a little hard. James and Beatrice were both
+undemonstrative, businesslike souls; the arrangement was quite
+characteristic.
+
+Beatrice in due time sailed for home, and James followed her some three
+weeks afterward. Harry went with him, returning immediately after the
+wedding by the fastest ship he could get; he was out of the country just
+eighteen days, all told. The voyage over was an uneventful one; the ship
+was nearly empty and Harry worked hard at his new play. He had rather
+looked forward to enjoying this last week of unmarried companionship
+with his brother, but somehow they did not seem to have more than usual
+to say to each other when they were together. Rather less, in fact.
+
+"You're looking low, seems to me," said Harry after they had paced the
+wet deck in silence for nearly half of a certain evening.
+
+"I've been rather low, lately."
+
+"What--too much work?"
+
+"Oh, I don't know. It's nothing."
+
+"Not seasick, are you?"
+
+"I hope not." Both gave a slight snort expressive of amusement. This was
+occasioned by the fact that Aunt Cecilia had offered James the use of
+her yacht--or rather the largest and most sumptuous of her yachts--for
+his wedding trip, and he and Beatrice were going to cruise for two
+months in the Mediterranean. As for the time--well, he was simply taking
+it, defying McClellan's to fire him if they dared.
+
+"It's funny, isn't it, our getting engaged at the same time," Harry went
+on after a moment. It was the first reference he had made to the
+coincidence.
+
+"Oh, yes," said James, "it's one of the funniest things I can remember."
+
+"And the funniest part of it is that neither of us seems to have
+suspected about the other. At least I didn't."
+
+"Oh, neither did I; not a thing."
+
+"And practically nobody else did either, apparently."
+
+"No. It might have been just the other way round, for all anybody
+knew--you and Beatrice, and Madge and me."
+
+Harry could not but take away from that conversation and from the whole
+voyage a vague feeling of disappointment. Since he heard of James'
+engagement he had entertained an elusive conviction that love coming
+into their lives at so nearly the same time should somehow make a
+difference for the better between them. When he tried to put this idea
+into words, however, he found his mind mechanically running to such
+phrases as "deeper sympathy" and "fuller understanding," all of which he
+dismissed as sentimental cant. It was easy to reassure himself on all
+grounds of reason and commonsense; James and he were in no need of
+fuller understandings. And yet, especially after the above conversation,
+he could not but be struck by a certain inapproachability in his
+brother which for some reason he could not construe as natural
+undemonstrativeness.
+
+The wedding took place in an atmosphere of unconstrained formality.
+Harry was not able to get a boat until two days after it, and he could
+not resist the temptation of writing Madge all about it that very night,
+though he knew the letter could hardly reach her before he did:--
+
+"It was quite a small wedding, chiefly because, as far as I can make
+out, there are only some thirty-odd dukes in the kingdom. It occurred at
+the odd hour of 2:30, but that didn't seem to prevent any one from
+enjoying the food, and more especially the drink, that was handed
+around afterward at Lady Archie's. Lord Moville, Beatrice's uncle, was
+there and seemed greatly taken with James. After he had got outside
+about a quart of champagne he amused himself by feeling James' biceps
+and thumping him on the chest and saying that with a fortnight's
+training he'd back him for anything he wanted against the Somerset
+Cockerel, or some one of the sort, most of which left James rather cold,
+though he bore it smiling. His youngest daughter (Lord M.'s), a child of
+about eighteen, apparently the only living person who has any control
+over him, was quite frank about it. 'Fido's drunk again,' she announced
+pleasantly to all who might hear. 'Oh, so's Ned,' said Jane Twombly,
+Beatrice's sister; 'there's no use trying to help it at weddings, I
+find!' Just then Lady Archie came running up in despair. 'Oh, Sibyl,'
+she said, 'do try to do something with your father. He's been
+threatening to take off his coat because he says the room's too hot, and
+now he wants old Lady Mulford to kiss him!' And off darts Sibyl into the
+dining-room where her father and Ned Twombly stand arm in arm waving
+glasses of champagne and shouting 'John Peel' at the top of their lungs.
+'Fido!' she shouted, running straight up to him, 'put down that glass
+directly and come home! Instantly! Do you hear? You're disgracing us!
+The next time I take you out to a wedding you'll know it!' 'Oh, Sib,'
+pleaded the noble Marquis, 'don't be too hard on us! Only drinkin'
+bride's health--must drink bride's health--not good manners not to. Sib
+shall drink with us; here's a glass, Sib--for his view, view HALLO!
+would awaken the dead--' 'Fido, do you know what you're doing? You're
+ruining your season's hunting! Gout-stool and Seidlitz powders all the
+winter for you, if you don't go easy!' But still Fido refused to obey
+till at last the dauntless child went up and whispered something in his
+ear, after which he calmed down and presently followed her out of the
+house, gently as a lamb. 'She threatened to tell her mother about the
+woman in Wimbledon,' explained Jane to me. 'Of course every one knows
+all there is to know about her, including Aunt Susan, but he hasn't
+found that out yet, and it gives Sib rather a strangle-hold on him. Good
+idea, isn't it? Marjorie--Ned's sister, you know--has promised to work
+the same trick for me with Ned, when the time comes.' I hope I am not
+more straight-laced than my neighbors, but do you know, the whole
+atmosphere struck me as just a teeny-weeny bit decadent...."
+
+After he reached home Harry saw that it would be quite useless, what
+with Madge and other diverting influences, to try to finish his play in
+New Haven, so he repaired to the solitudes of the Berkshires for the
+remainder of the autumn. He occupied two rooms in an almost empty inn in
+Stockbridge, working and living for two months on a strict regime. It
+was his habit to work from nine till half-past one. He spent most of the
+afternoon in exercise and the evening in more writing; not the calm,
+well-balanced writing of the morning, but in feverish and untrammeled
+scribbling. Each morning he had to write over all that he had done the
+night before, but he found it well worth while, discovering that reason
+and inspiration kept separate office hours.
+
+Meanwhile Madge, though freed from the trammels of Miss Snellgrove, was
+very busy at home with her trousseau and other matters. She was
+supremely happy these days; happy even in Harry's absence, because she
+could feel that he was doing better work than he could with her near,
+and that provided just the element of self-sacrifice that every
+woman--every woman that is worth anything--yearns to infuse into her
+love. She had ample opportunity of trying her hand at writing love
+letters, but, to tell the truth, she was never very good at it. Neither
+was Harry, for that matter; possibly because he was now putting every
+ounce of creative power in him into something the result of which
+justified the effort much better.... But suppose we allow some of the
+letters to speak for themselves.
+
+ Dear Inamorato: (wrote Madge one day in November) "I'm not at
+ all sure that that word exists; it looks so odd in the
+ masculine and just shows how the male sex more or less spoils
+ everything it touches. However! I've been hemming towels all
+ day and am ready to drop, but after I finish with them there
+ will be only the pillow cases to attend to before I am done. By
+ the bye, what do you suppose arrived to-day? _Four_ (heavily
+ underscored) most _exquisite_ (same business) linen sheets,
+ beautifully hemstitched and marked and from who ("Good
+ Heavens, and the woman taught school!" exclaimed Harry) do you
+ think? Miss Snellgrove! Wasn't it sweet of her? That makes ten
+ in all. Everybody has been lovely and we shall do very well for
+ linen, but clothes are much more difficult. In them, you see, I
+ have to please not only myself but Mama and Aunt Tizzy as well.
+ I went shopping with both of them yesterday, and they were
+ possessed to make me order an evening gown of black satin with
+ yellow trimmings which was something like a gown Aunt Tizzy had
+ fascinated people in during the early eighties. It wasn't such
+ a bad idea, but unfortunately it would have made me resemble a
+ rather undersized wasp. We compromised at last on a blue silk
+ that's going to have a Watteau pleat and will fall in nice
+ little straight folds and make me look about seven feet high.
+ Aunt Tizzy is too perfectly dear and keeps telling me not to
+ scrimp, but her idea of not scrimping is to spend simply
+ _millions_ and always go ahead and get the very best in the
+ _extravagantest_ way, and my conscience rebels. I hope to pick
+ up some things at the January sales in New York; if you are
+ there seeing about your play at that time we can be together,
+ can't we? I still have to get a suit and an afternoon gown and
+ various other things the nature of which I do not care to
+ specify!
+
+ I run over and look in on Aunt Selina every time I get a
+ chance. She is _so_ dear and uncomplaining about being left
+ alone and keeps saying that having me in the house will be as
+ good as having Beatrice, which is absurd, though sweet.
+ Heavens, how I tremble when I think of trying to fill her
+ shoes!
+
+ I must stop now, dearest, so good-night. Ever your own,
+
+ MADGE.
+
+ O O O O O O
+
+ Those O's stand for osculations. Do you know how hard it is to
+ kiss in a small space? Like tying a bow-knot with too short a
+ piece of ribbon."
+
+ For Heaven's sake, my good woman (wrote Harry in reply),
+ don't write me another letter like that! How do you think I
+ feel when, fairly thirsting for fire and inspiration and that
+ sort of thing, I tear open an envelope from you and find it
+ contains an unusually chatty Woman's Column? How do you
+ suppose poor old D. Alghieri would have written his Paradiso if
+ Beatrice had held forth on the subject of linen sheets, and do
+ you or do you not suppose it would have improved Petrarch's
+ sonnets if Laura had treated him to a disquisition on the ins
+ and outs of the prices of evening gowns?
+
+ Remember your responsibility! If you continue to deny me
+ inspiration my play will fail and you will live in disgrace and
+ misery in the basement of a Harlem tenement in an eternal smell
+ of cabbages and a well-justified fear of cockroaches, with one
+ cracked looking-glass to see your face in and dinner served up
+ in a pudding basin!
+
+ The c. of my b. (that was his somewhat flippant abbreviation
+ of child of my brain) "is coming along well enough,
+ considering. The woman is shaping quite well. What was the name
+ you suggested for her the last time I saw you? If it was
+ Hermione, I'm afraid it won't do, because every one in the
+ theater, from Bachmann down to the call-boy, will call it
+ Hermy-one, and I shall have to correct them all, which will be
+ a bad start. I call her Mamie for the present, because I know I
+ can't keep it. What would be the worst possible name, do you
+ think? Hannah? Florrie? Mae? Keren-happuch and Glwadwys also
+ have their points.
+
+ Please forgive me for being (a) short-tempered; (b) tedious. I
+ was going to tear up what I have written, only I decided it
+ would not be quite fair, as you have a right to know just how
+ dreadful I can be, in case you want to change your mind about
+ February.--What a discreetly euphemistic phrase!--It has grown
+ fearfully cold here, and we had the first skating of the winter
+ to-day. I got hold of some skates and went out and, fired by
+ the example of two or three people here who skate rather well,
+ I swore I would do a 3-turn or die in the attempt. The latter
+ alternative occurred. I am writing this on the mantelpiece.
+
+ Farewell. Write early and write often, and write Altman
+ catalogues if you must, but not if you are interested in the
+ uplift of drahmah. Give my best to Grandmama, and consider
+ yourself embraced.
+
+ IO EL REY.
+
+Madge's reply to this missive was telegraphic in form and brief in
+substance. It read simply "Sorry. Laura." "I would have signed it
+Beatrice," she explained in her next letter, "only I was afraid you
+might think it was from your sister-in-law Beatrice, and there's nothing
+for _her_ to be sorry about."
+
+Another letter of Harry's, written a few weeks later, shows him in a
+different mood:
+
+ Querida de mis ojos--You don't know Spanish but you ought to
+ gather what that means without great effort--I have weighty
+ news for you. I dashed down to New York on the spur of the
+ moment day before yesterday and showed the first draught of my
+ completed MS to Leo. My dear, he said IT WOULD DO! You don't
+ know what that means, of course; no one could. You all think I
+ have simply to write and say 'Here, play this,' and it is
+ played. You know nothing of how it hurts to put ideas on paper,
+ nothing of the dead weight of responsibility, the loneliness,
+ the self-distrust, the hate of one's own work that the creative
+ brain has to struggle against. Consequently, my dearest, you
+ will just have to take it on trust from me that an interview
+ such as I had yesterday with Bachmann is nothing less than a
+ rebirth. He even advised me not to try to change or improve it
+ much, saying that what changes were needed could best be put in
+ at rehearsals, and I think he's dead right. So I shall do no
+ more than put the third act in shape before I hand the thing
+ over to him and dash home for the holidays. Atmosphere of Yule
+ logs, holly berry and mistletoe!
+
+ I really am absurdly happy. You see, it isn't merely success,
+ or a premonition of success (for the first night is still to
+ come); it's in a way a justification of my whole life. If this
+ thing is as good as I think it is, it will amount to a sort of
+ written permit from headquarters to love you, to go on thinking
+ as I do think about certain things and to regard myself--well,
+ it's hard to put into words, but as a dynamic force, rather
+ than as a lucky fool that stumbled across one rather good
+ thing. Not that I shouldn't do all three anyway, to be
+ sure!--And every kind friend will say he knew I would 'make
+ good'; that there never was any doubt my 'coming into my own,'
+ and all the rest. Oh, Lord, if people only knew! But thank
+ Heaven they don't!
+
+ I am becoming obscure and rhapsodic. I seem to 'see' things
+ to-night, like Tilburina in the play. I see strange and
+ distorted conceptions of myself, for one thing; endless and
+ bewildering publicity. Oh, what a comfort it is to think that
+ no matter what I may be to other people, to you I shall always
+ be simply the same stupid, bungling, untidy
+
+ HARRY!
+
+ I love you with an intensity that beggars the power of human
+ expression.
+
+ I did a bracket this afternoon.
+
+Madge never received a letter from him that pleased her more. She was
+fully alive to its chaotic immaturity, and she smiled at the way he
+unconsciously appeared to shove his love for her into second place. But
+there was that about it that convinced her of his greatness as nothing
+had yet done. It seemed to her that when he spoke of the loneliness of
+genius and in his prophetic touch at the end about the different ways in
+which people would regard him he spoke with the true voice of a seer. It
+all made her feel very humble and solemn. To think that Harry, her
+Harry, that tall thin thing with the pink cheeks and dark brown hair and
+the restless black eyes, should be one of the great men of his day,
+perhaps one of the great ones of all time! Keats--Harry was already
+older than Keats when he died, but she thought he had much the same
+temperament; Congreve--she knew how he loved Congreve; Marlowe--she had
+often compared his golden idealism to that of Marlowe; Shakespeare...?
+No, no--of course not! She knew perfectly well he was no Shakespeare....
+Still, why not, in time?... And anyway, Marlowe, Congreve,
+Keats--Wimbourne!
+
+So she dreamed on, till the future, which hitherto she had seen as
+merely smiling toward her, seemed to rise and with solemn face beckon
+her to a new height, a place hard to reach and difficult to hold, but
+one whose very base seemed more exalted than anything she had yet
+known....
+
+Now Madge was, on the whole, a very fairly modern type of young woman.
+Her outlook on the world was based on Darwin, and she held firmly to
+such eugenic principles as seemed to flow directly from the doctrine of
+evolution. She had long since declared war to the death on disease,
+filth and vice, to which she added a lesser foe generally known as
+"suppression of facts," and she had done a certain amount of real work
+in helping those less fortunate than herself to the acquisition of
+health, cleanliness, virtue and "knowledge." She thought that women
+would get the vote some day, though they weren't ready for it yet, and
+hadn't joined the Antis because there was no use in being a drag on the
+wheels of progress, even if you didn't feel like helping. She believed
+in the "social regeneration" of woman. It was quite clear to her that in
+the early years of the twentieth century women were beginning--and only
+just beginning--to take their place beside men in the active work of
+saving the race; "why, you had only to look at Jane Addams and Florence
+Nightingale to see--" et cetera.
+
+And yet, and yet....
+
+It was at least as fine a thing to become Mrs. Harold Wimbourne and
+devote a lifetime to ministering to one of the great creative geniuses
+of the time as to be a heavy gun on her own account, was what she meant,
+of course. But that wasn't quite enough. Suppose, for the sake of
+argument, that Harry were not one of the great creative geniuses of the
+age; suppose there were no question of Congreve, Keats, Wimbourne and so
+forth; suppose being his wife meant being plain Mrs. Harold Wimbourne
+and nothing more--what then?
+
+"Well, I suppose I'd still rather be plain Mrs. H. W., if you will have
+it!" she retorted petulantly to her relentless self. But she soon became
+glad she had brought herself to the point of admitting it, for, the
+issue definitely settled, her mind became unaccountably peaceful....
+
+ * * * * *
+
+New Year's was scarcely over when rehearsals began, and Harry was in for
+another period of lounging in shrouded orchestra chairs and watching
+other people air their ideas, or lack of ideas, on the child of his
+brain. His lounging was now, however, quite freely punctuated by
+interruptions and not infrequently by scramblings over the footlights to
+illustrate a fine point. This rather bored the actors; Harry had become
+almost uncomfortably acute in matter of stage technique. But they had to
+admit that his suggestions were never foolish or unnecessary.
+
+In due time came the first night. It is no part of our purpose to
+describe "Pastures New" or its success in this place. If--which is
+improbable--you have to refresh your mind on it, you have only to ask
+one of your journalistic friends--don't pretend that you haven't at
+least one friend on a newspaper--to show you the files of his sheet.
+There you will see it all, in what scholars call primary sources:--"New
+Yorkers Roar With Delight at Feminist Satire," and all the rest of it,
+like as not on the front page. Harry hated its being called a satire;
+that was such a cheap and easy way of getting out of it. For when all
+was over, when people had cried with laughing at its whimsical humor,
+poked each other with delight at its satirical touches--oh yes, there
+were plenty of them--quoted its really brilliant dialogue, sat
+enthralled by its swift and compelling action--for Harry had made good
+his promise that this play should have "punch"--when they had done all
+these things to their heart's content, still not a person saw the play
+who did not come away from it more fully convinced than ever he had been
+of--well, of what you had only to look at Jane Addams and Florence
+Nightingale to see. For there were really great moments in the play;
+moments when no one even thought of laughing, though one was almost
+always made to laugh the moment after. That was Harry's way, that was
+his power, to "hit 'em hard and then make 'em laugh just as they begin
+to feel smarty in the eyes," as Burchard the stage manager not unaptly
+put it.
+
+"Pastures New" ran for six months in New York alone, and no one laughed
+harder or less rancorously at it than the "feminists" themselves--or all
+of them that were worth anything.
+
+Of course both Harry and Madge were tired to death by the time the
+wedding became imminent, and the final preparations were made in what
+might be called broad impressionistic strokes.
+
+Madge had at first intended to have a small informal reception in her
+own house, but Aunt Tizzy had been so disappointed that she had at last
+consented to let it be at her aunt's and attain the dimensions of a
+perfect tomasha--the phrase is her own--if it wanted to. Why not? Aunt
+Tizzy's house could hold it.
+
+"Besides, my dear," argued Harry, "it's only once in a lifetime, after
+all. If you marry again as a widow you'll only have a silly little
+wedding, without a veil and no bridesmaids, and if we're divorced you
+won't have any wedding at all, worth mentioning. Much better do it up
+brown when you have the chance."
+
+"What about music?" asked Harry as the two stood in final consultation
+with the organist on the night of the rehearsal. "I've always wondered
+why people had such perfectly rotten music at weddings, but I begin to
+see now. Still, if we _could_ have something other than Lohengrin and
+Mendelssohn I think I could face marriage with a little better heart.
+What about it, dear?"
+
+Madge groaned. "Oh, anything! The Star-Spangled Banner, if you want!"
+
+"I think I can arrange it," said the organist smiling, and he played the
+march from "Tannhaeuser" and the march from "Athalie," which he always
+played when people asked for something unusual, and the effect was
+considered very pleasing and original. Altogether it was the prettiest
+wedding any one had seen in years, according to the testimony of those
+who attended the reception--which did become a perfect tomasha. But as
+tomasha-goers are notoriously biased their testimony probably wasn't
+legal and no respectable judge would have accepted it as evidence. The
+only legal thing about the whole affair was the ceremony, which was
+fully as much so as if it had been before a magistrate, which Madge
+swore it should be if she ever had to go through it again and regretted
+bitterly it hadn't been this time.... Well, perhaps, when she looked
+about her and saw how unaffectedly happy her mother and Aunt Tizzy and
+the bridesmaids and all the other good people were, she didn't regret it
+quite so much.
+
+"Though it is rather absurd, getting married to please other people,
+isn't it?" she remarked as they drove off at last, leaving the
+tomasha-goers to carouse as long as Aunt Tizzy could make them.
+
+"I think I'd do almost anything to please Aunt Tizzy," said Harry. "Now
+that it's all over, that is. Get married again, even.... After all," he
+added suddenly, shamelessly going back on all his professions of the
+last few days; "after all, you know, it _was_ rather a good wedding!"
+
+Which shows that he was just as biased as any one, at bottom!
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IX
+
+LABYRINTHS
+
+
+How many people should you say could be packed into a three-hundred foot
+barkantine-rigged steam yacht, capable of fourteen knots under steam
+alone, for a night in late June, presumably hot, anchored in a noisy
+estuary off Long Island Sound without making them all wish they had
+never been born? We ourselves should hate to have to answer the question
+offhand. So did Aunt Cecilia, whom it concerned more closely than any
+one else, and she did not have to answer it offhand at all, having all
+the available statistics within reach. In fact, she had spent the best
+part of one hot New York June morning over it already, sitting in her
+darkened front drawing-room because it was the coolest room in the
+house, amid ghost-like furniture whose drab slip-covers concealed
+nothing less than real Louis Quinze. On her lap--or what Uncle James
+said if she didn't look out wouldn't be her lap very long--she held a
+magazine and over the magazine an expensive piece of letter-paper, on
+one leaf of which was a list of names and on the other a plan drawn in
+wobbly and unarchitectural lines--obviously a memory sketch of the
+sleeping accommodations of the _Halcyone_. Near what even in the sketch
+was undoubtedly the largest and most comfortable of the _Halcyone's_
+cabins she had written in firm unmistakable letters the word "Me," and
+opposite two other rooms she had inscribed in only slightly less bold
+characters the initials "H. and M." and "J. and B." So far so good; why
+not go on thus as long as the list or the cabins held and consider the
+problem solved? It wasn't as simple as that, it seemed. Some of the
+people hadn't been asked, or might be asked only if there was room
+enough, and the boys might bring in people at the last moment; it was
+very confusing. And not even the extent of the sleeping accommodations
+was as constant as might have been desired. It was ridiculous, of
+course, but even after all these years she could not be quite sure
+whether there were two little single rooms down by the galley skylight
+or only one. She was practically sure there were two, but suppose she
+were mistaken? And then, if it came to that, the boys and almost as many
+friends as they cared to bring might sleep on the smoking-room sofas....
+
+"No ... no, I'm not sure how wise that would be," she mused, certain
+things she had seen and been told of boat-race celebrations straying
+into her mind. "The smoking-room cushions have only just been
+covered...."
+
+A ring at the doorbell. She glanced up at a pierglass (also Louis
+Quinze) opposite her and strained her eyes at its mosquito-netting
+covered surface. Her hair was far from what she could have wished; she
+hoped it would be no one she would have to see. Oh, Beatrice.
+
+"Howdy do, dear," said Aunt Cecilia, relieved. "I was just thinking of
+you. I'm trying to plan out about the boat-race; it's less than a week
+off now."
+
+Beatrice sank languidly down on the other end of Aunt Cecilia's sofa.
+She was much hotter and more fatigued than Aunt Cecilia, but no one
+would have guessed it to look at her. Her clothes lay coolly and
+caressingly on her; not a hair seemed out of place.
+
+"You see," went on the other, "it's rather difficult to arrange, on
+account of there being so many unmarried people--just the Lyles and the
+MacGraths and George Grainger for us older ones and the rest all
+Muffins' and Jack's friends. I think we shall work out all right,
+though, with two rooms at the Griswold and the smoking-room to overflow
+into. I'm tired of bothering about it. Tell me about yourself."
+
+"Nothing much," answered Beatrice. "I much prefer hearing about you. By
+the way--about the races. I just dropped in to tell you about Tommy
+Clairloch. He's coming. You did tell me to ask him, didn't you?"
+
+"Yes ... oh, yes, of course. I had forgotten about Lord Clairloch for
+the moment. I thought he was going west the middle of the month."
+
+"He was, but he didn't. Tommy's rather a fool." Tommy, it may be
+mentioned, was in the process of improving himself by making a trip
+around the world, going westward. He had left home in April and so far
+Upper Montclair was his farthest point west. As Beatrice said, Tommy was
+rather a fool.
+
+"Oh, not a bit ... only.... By the bye, dear, do you happen to remember
+whether there are one or two rooms down that little hall by the galley?"
+
+"Two, as I remember it. But don't bother about Tommy. Really, Aunt
+Cecilia, don't. He needn't come at all--I'll tell him he can't."
+
+"Of course he must come.... That's it--I'll put him in the other little
+single room and tell the boys that they and any one else they ask from
+now on must go to the Griswold or sleep in the smoking-room. I'm glad to
+have it settled."
+
+Aunt Cecilia beamed as one does when a difficult problem is solved. It
+occurred to her that Beatrice might beam back at her just a tiny bit, if
+only in mock sympathy. Especially as it was her guest.... But Beatrice
+remained just as casual as before, sitting easily but immovably in her
+corner of the sofa with her parasol lying lightly in her slim gloved
+hands. Aunt Cecilia noticed those hands rather especially; it seemed
+scarcely human to keep one's gloves on in the house on a day like this!
+Characteristically, she gave her thought outlet in words.
+
+"Do take off your gloves and things, dear, and make yourself
+comfortable! Such a day! New York in June is frightful--eighty-eight
+yesterday, and Heaven knows what it will be to-day. You'll stay to
+lunch, won't you?"
+
+"Thanks, perhaps I will," replied Beatrice listlessly.
+
+"I never have stayed in town so late in June," ran on Aunt Cecilia, "but
+I thought I wouldn't open the Tarrytown house this spring--it's only for
+six weeks and it is so much extra trouble.... I shall take the yacht and
+the boys directly on up to Bar Harbor afterward; we should love to have
+you come with us, if you feel like leaving James--you're looking so
+fagged. You must both come and pay us a long visit later on, though I
+suppose with Harry and Madge in the Berkshires you'll be running up
+there quite often for week-ends...."
+
+Beatrice stirred a little. "Thanks, Aunt Cecilia, but I don't mind the
+heat especially. If James can bear it, I can, I suppose. I expect to
+stay here most of the summer."
+
+She was perfectly courteous, and yet it suddenly occurred to Aunt
+Cecilia that perhaps she wouldn't be quite so free in showering
+invitations on Beatrice and James for a while. There was that about her,
+as she sat there.... Languid, that was the word; there had been a
+certain languor, not due to hot weather, in Beatrice's reception of most
+of her favors, now that she came to think of it. There had been that
+wedding trip in the _Halcyone_, to begin with. Both she and James had
+shown a due amount of gratitude, but neither, when you came right down
+to it, had given any particular evidence of having enjoyed it.
+Everything was as it should be, no doubt, but--one didn't lend yachts
+without expecting to have them enjoyed!
+
+"That trip cost me over five thousand dollars," she had remarked to her
+husband shortly after the return of the bridal pair. "Of course I don't
+grudge it, but five thousand dollars is a good deal of money, and I'd
+rather have subscribed it to the Organized Charities than feel I was
+spending it to give those two something they didn't want!"
+
+Aunt Cecilia gazed anxiously at Beatrice for a moment, memories of this
+sort floating vaguely through her mind. She scented trouble, somewhere.
+The next minute she thought she had diagnosed it.
+
+"You're bored, dear, that's the long and the short of it, and I think I
+know what's the matter. I'm not sure that I didn't feel a little that
+way myself, at the very first. But I soon got over it. My dear, there's
+nothing in the world like a baby to drive away boredom...."
+
+Beatrice tapped with the end of her parasol on what in winter would have
+been a pink and gray texture from Aubusson's storied looms but was now
+simply a parquet flooring. But she did not blush, not in the slightest
+degree.
+
+"Yes," she answered, a trifle wearily, "I daresay you're right.
+Sometimes I think I would like to have a baby. It doesn't seem to come,
+though.... After all, it's rather early to bother, isn't it?"
+
+"Oh, I don't want you to _bother_--! Only--" She was just a little taken
+aback. This barren agreement, this lack of natural shyness, of blushes!
+It was unprecedented in her experience.
+
+"Only what, Aunt Cecilia?"
+
+"Only--it's a sure cure for being bored. But Beatrice, there must be
+others, while you're waiting. What about your studies, your work? You
+haven't done much of that since you came home from abroad, have you?
+It's too late to begin anything this summer, of course, but next autumn
+I should think you'd like to take it up again, especially as you don't
+care so much for society, and I'm sure I don't blame you for that...."
+She beamed momentarily on her niece, who this time smiled back ever so
+slightly in return. "After all, it's nice to be of some use in the
+world, isn't it?"
+
+Why not have left it there, on that secure impregnable pinnacle? Why
+weaken her position by giving voice to that silly unprovoked fancy that
+had hung about the back of her mind since the beginning of the
+interview, or very near it? We can't explain, unless the sudden
+suspicion that Beatrice had smiled less with than at her, and the sight
+of her sitting there so beautiful and aloof, so well-bredly acquiescent
+and so emotionally intangible, exercised an ignoble influence over her.
+There is a sort of silent acquiescence that is very irritating.... And
+after all, was the impulse so ignoble? A word of warning of the most
+affectionate kind, prompted by the keenest sympathy--surely it was
+wholly Beatrice's fault if anything went wrong!
+
+"More than that, my dear, there's a certain danger in being too idle--a
+danger I'm sure you're as free from as any one could be, but you know
+what the psalm says!" (Or was it original with Isaac Watts? However!)
+"Of course marriage isn't so easy, especially in the first year, and
+especially if there are no children--what with the husband away at work
+all day and tired to death and like as not cross as a bear when he comes
+home in the evening--I know!--a young wife can't be blamed for feeling a
+little out of sorts sometimes. And then along comes another man...."
+
+Here Beatrice, to use a sporting expression, froze. From that moment it
+ceased to be question of two women talking together and became a matter
+of Aunt Cecilia apostrophizing a statue; a modern conception, say, of
+Artemis. Marble itself could not be more unresponsive than Beatrice when
+people tried to "get at her." It was not rudeness, it was not coldness,
+it was not even primarily self-consciousness; it was the natural
+inability to speak of matters deeply concerning oneself which people of
+Aunt Cecilia's temperament can never fully understand.
+
+"Of course other men have things to offer that husbands have not,
+especially if they are free in the daytime and are nice and good-natured
+and sympathetic, and often a young wife may be deceived into valuing
+these things more than the love of her husband. They are all at their
+best on the surface, while her husband's best is all below it. And that,
+I think, is the way most married unhappinesses begin; not in
+unfaithfulness or in jealousy or in loss of love, but merely in
+idleness. I've seen it happen so often, dear, that you must be able to
+understand why I never like to see a young wife with too little to
+do...."
+
+For Aunt Cecilia was personal, you see, to a degree. Did she imagine she
+was making things any easier, Beatrice asked herself with a little burst
+of humorous contempt, by her generalities and her third persons and her
+"young wives"? If she had been perfectly frank, if she had come out and
+said, "Beatrice, if you don't look out you'll be falling in love with
+Tommy Clairloch," there was a possibility that Beatrice could have
+answered her, even confided in her; at least put things on a
+conversational footing. But as for talking about her own case in this
+degrading disguise, dramatizing herself as a "young wife"--!
+
+She remained silent long enough to make it obvious that her silence was
+her real reply. Then she said "Yes, indeed, perfectly," and Aunt Cecilia
+rather tardily became aware of her niece's metamorphosis into the modern
+Artemis. She made a flurried attempt to give her own remarks,
+retrospectively, something of the Artemis quality; to place a pedestal,
+as it were, on which to take her own stand as a modern conception of
+Pallas Athene.
+
+"I hope, my dear, you don't think I mean anything...."
+
+"Not at all," said Beatrice kindly but firmly. "And now if you don't
+mind, Aunt Cecilia, I think I'll go up and get ready for luncheon."
+
+But Aunt Cecilia was afraid she had gone too far.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+A week later came the gathering of the clans at New London for the
+Yale-Harvard boat-race. Aunt Cecilia had not been to a race in years.
+Races, you see, were not in a class with graduations; they were
+optional, works of supererogation. But this year, in addition to one of
+the largest yachts extant and money that fairly groaned to be put into
+circulation, she had two boys in college, and altogether it seemed worth
+while "making an effort." And the effort once made there was a certain
+pleasure in doing the thing really well, in taking one's place as one of
+the great Yale families of the country. So on the afternoon before the
+race the _Halcyone_ was anchored in a conspicuous place in the harbor,
+where she loomed large and majestic among the smaller craft, and a
+tremendous blue flag with a white Y on it was hoisted between two of the
+masts. People from the shore looked for her name with field glasses and
+pointed her out to each other as "the Wimbourne yacht" with a note of
+awe in their voices.
+
+"It's like being on the _Victory_ at Trafalgar, as far as
+conspicuousness goes," said Harry on his arrival. "Or rather," he added
+magnificently, "like being on Cleopatra's galley at Actium."
+
+"Absit omen," remarked Uncle James, and the others laughed, but his wife
+paid no attention to him. She was not above a little thrill of pride and
+pleasure herself.
+
+Muffins and Jack and their friends were much in evidence; the party was
+primarily for the "young people." They kept mostly to themselves,
+dancing and singing and making personal remarks together, always
+detaching themselves with a polite attentive quirk of the head when an
+older person addressed them. Nice children, all of them. Muffins and
+Jack were of the right sort, emphatically, and their friends were
+obviously--not too obviously, but just obviously enough--chosen with
+nice discriminating taste. Jack especially gave one the impression of
+having a fine appreciation of people and things; that of Muffins was
+based on rather broad athletic lines. Muffins played football. Ruth, the
+brains of the family, was not present; we forget whether she was running
+a summer camp for cash girls or exploring the headwaters of the Yukon;
+it was something modern and expensive. Ruth was not extensively missed
+by her brothers.
+
+They all dined hilariously together on the yacht and repaired to the
+Griswold afterward to dance and revel through the evening. All, that is,
+except Beatrice and James; they did not arrive till well on in the
+evening, James having been unable to leave town till his day's work was
+over. The launch with Uncle James in it went to the station to meet them
+and brought them directly back to the yacht to get settled and tidied
+up; they could go on over to the Griswold for a bit, if they weren't too
+tired.
+
+"How about it?" inquired James as he stood peering at his watch in the
+dim light on deck.
+
+"Oh, just as you like," said Beatrice.
+
+"Well, I don't care. Say something."
+
+Beatrice was rather tired.... Well, perhaps it was better that way; they
+would have another chance to see all they wanted to-morrow night. This
+from Uncle James, who thought he would drop over there and relieve Aunt
+Cecilia, who had been chaperoning since dinner.
+
+His head disappeared over the ship's side. James walked silently off to
+unpack. Beatrice sank into a wicker armchair and dropped her head on her
+hands....
+
+It seemed as if scarcely a moment had passed when she became aware of
+the launch again coming up alongside and voices floating up from
+it--Aunt Cecilia and Lord Clairloch. Salutations ensued, avuncular and
+friendly. Aunt Cecilia was tired, but very cheerful. She buzzed off
+presently to see about something and Lord Clairloch dropped down by
+Beatrice.
+
+Tommy was very cheerful also, apparently much impressed by what he had
+seen at the Griswold. "I say, a jolly bean-feast, that! Never saw such
+dancin' or drinkin' in my life, and I've lived a bit! They keep 'em
+apart, too--that's the best of it; no trouble about takin' a gell,
+provided she don't go to the bar, which ain't likely.... Jove, we've got
+nothing like it in England! Rippin' looking lot of gells, rippin'
+fellahs, rippin' good songs, too. All seem to enjoy 'emselves so
+much!--I say, these Yankees can teach us a thing or two about havin' a
+good time--wot?"
+
+Beatrice listened with a growing sense of amusement. Tommy always
+refreshed her when he was in a mood like this; he kept his youth so
+wonderfully, in spite of all his super-sophistication; he was such a boy
+still. Tommy never seemed to mind being hot or tired; Tommy was always
+ready for anything; Tommy was not the sort that came home at six o'clock
+and sank into the evening paper without a word--She stopped that line of
+thought and asked a question.
+
+"Why did you leave it all, Tommy, if it amused you so?"
+
+"Oh, had enough of it--been there since dinner. Beside, I heard you'd
+come. Thought I'd buzz over and see how you were gettin' on. Have a
+horrid journey?"
+
+Beatrice nodded.
+
+"Hot?"
+
+"No, not especially." They were silent a moment. Tommy opened his mouth
+to ask a question and shut it again. And then, walking like a ghost
+across their silence, appeared the figure of James, stalking aimlessly
+down the deck. He nodded briefly to Tommy and walked off again.
+
+The effect, in view of the turn of their conversation, of Tommy's
+unasked question, was almost that of a spectral apparition. The
+half-light of the deck, James' silence and the noiseless tread of his
+rubber-soled shoes had in themselves an uncanny quality. Presently Tommy
+whistled softly, as though to break the spell.
+
+"Whew! I say, is he often like that?"
+
+Beatrice laughed. Tommy _was_ refreshing! "Lately, yes. Do you know,"
+she added, "he only spoke twice on the way up here--once to ask me if I
+was ready to have dinner, and once what I wanted for dinner?" Her tone
+was one of suppressed amusement, caught from Tommy; but before her
+remark was fairly finished something rather like a note of alarm rang
+through her. Why had she said that? It wasn't so frightfully amusing,
+come to think of it. Her pleasure, she saw in a flash, came not from the
+remark itself but from her anticipation of seeing Tommy respond to
+it....
+
+That was rather serious, wasn't it? Just how serious, she wondered? Joy
+in seeing another man respond to a disparaging remark about her
+husband--that was what it came to! For the first time in her life she
+had the sensation of reveling in a stolen joy. For of course Tommy did
+respond, beautifully--too beautifully. "Oh, I say! Really, now! That
+_is_ a trifle strong, wot?" and so on. He was doing exactly what she had
+meant him to, and there was a separate pleasure in that--a zest of
+power!
+
+Heavens!
+
+For the first time she began to feel a trifle nervous about Tommy. Was
+Aunt Cecilia right? Had all her careful euphemisms about young wives
+some basis of justification as applied to her own case? She and
+Tommy.... Well, she and Tommy?... Half an hour ago she could have placed
+them perfectly; now her sight was a trifle blurred. There was not time
+to think it all out now, anyway; another boatload of people from the
+shore was even now crowding up the gangway; to-morrow she would go into
+the matter thoroughly with herself and put things, whatever they might
+be, on a definite business footing. To-night, even, if she did not
+sleep....
+
+Everybody was back, it appeared, and things shortly became festive.
+There were drinks and sandwiches and entertaining reminiscences of the
+evening from the young people, lasting till bedtime. Thought was out of
+the question.
+
+Once undressed and in bed, to be sure, there was better opportunity. She
+slipped comfortably down between the sheets; what a blessing that the
+night was not too hot, after all! Aunt Cecilia had said ... what was it
+that Aunt Cecilia had said? Something about a young wife--a young wife
+ought to have something to do. Of course. These were linen sheets, by
+the way, and the very finest linen, at that. Aunt Cecilia did know how
+to do things.... What was it? Something more, she fancied, about valuing
+something more than something else. Tommy Clairloch was the first thing,
+she was sure of that. Aunt Cecilia had not said it, but she had meant
+it.... She was going to sleep, after all; what a blessing!... What was
+that other thing? It was hard to think when one was so comfortable. Oh,
+yes, she had it now--the love of a husband!
+
+Whose husband? The young wife's, to be sure. And who was the young wife?
+She herself, obviously. But--the thought flared up like a strong lamp
+through the thickening fog of her brain--_her_ husband did not love her!
+She and James were not like ordinary young wives and husbands.... How
+silly of her not to have seen that before! That changed everything, of
+course. Aunt Cecilia was on a wrong track altogether; her--what was the
+word?--her premises were false. That threw out her whole
+argument--everything--including that about Tommy.
+
+Gradually the sudden illumination of that thought faded in the
+evergrowing shadow of sleep. Now only vague wisps of ideas floated
+through her mind; even those were but pale reflections of that one
+truth; Aunt Cecilia was mistaken.... Aunt Cecilia was wrong.... It was
+all right about Tommy.... Tommy was all right.... Aunt Cecilia ... was
+wrong....
+
+Psychologists tell us that ideas make most impression on the mind when
+they are introduced into it during that indefinite period between
+sleeping and waking; they then become incorporated directly with our
+subconscious selves without having to pass through the usual tortuous
+channels of consciousness and reason. And the sub-consciousness, as
+every one knows, is a most intimate and important place; once an idea is
+firmly grounded there it has become substantially a part of our being,
+so far as we can tell from our incomplete knowledge of our own ideal
+existence. We are not sure that a single introduction of this sort can
+give an idea a good social standing in the realm of sub-consciousness;
+probably not. But it can help; it can give it at least a nodding
+acquaintance there. Certain it is, at any rate, that when Beatrice awoke
+next morning it was with a mind at least somewhat more willing than
+previously to take for granted, as part of the natural order of things,
+the fact of the inherent wrongness of Aunt Cecilia and its corollary,
+the innate rightness of Tommy. (Possibly this corollary would not have
+appeared so inevitable if the matter had all been threshed out in
+reason; they are rather lax about logic and such things in
+sub-consciousness, making a good introduction the one criterion of
+acceptance.) With the net material result that Beatrice was less
+inclined than ever to be nervous about Aunt Cecilia and also less
+inclined than ever to be nervous about Tommy.
+
+The day began in an atmosphere of not unpleasant indolence. Breakfast
+was late and was followed by the best cigarette of the day on
+deck--Beatrice's smoking was the secret admiration and envy of all the
+female half of the younger section. A cool breeze ruffled the harbor and
+gathered in a flock of clouds from the Sound that left only just enough
+sunlight to bring out the brilliant colors of the little flags all the
+yachts had strung up between their mastheads and down again to bowsprit
+and stern. It was rather pleasant to sit and watch these and other
+things; the continual small traffic of the harbor, the occasional
+arrivals of more slim white yachts.
+
+Presently Harry and Madge and Beatrice and Tommy and one or two others
+made a short excursion to the shore, for no other apparent reason than
+to join the procession of smartly dressed people that for one day in the
+year convert the quiet town of New London into one of the gayest-looking
+places on earth. Tommy was much in evidence here, fairly crowing with
+delight over each new thing that pleased him. It was all Harry could do
+to keep him from swathing himself in blue; Tommy had become an
+enthusiastic Yalensian. He had spent a week-end with Harry in New Haven
+during the spring; he had driven with Aunt Selina in the victoria, he
+had been shown the university and had met a number of pretty gells and
+rippin' fellahs; what business was it of Wiggers if he wanted to wave a
+blue flag? Wiggers ought to feel jolly complimented, instead of makin' a
+row!
+
+"You'd say just the same about Harvard, if you went there--the people
+are just as nice," said Harry. "Besides, Harvard will probably win. You
+may buy us each a blue feather, if you like, and call it square at
+that."
+
+Beatrice smiled, but she thought Harry a little hard.
+
+"Never mind, Tommy," said she; "you can sit by me at the race this
+afternoon and we'll both scream our lungs out, if we want."
+
+That was substantially what happened. Luncheon on the yacht--an enormous
+"standing" affair, with lots of extra people--was followed by a general
+exodus to the observation trains. Tommy had never seen an observation
+train before and was full of curiosity. They didn't have them at Henley.
+It was all jolly different from Henley, wasn't it, though? As they
+walked through the railroad yards to their car he was inclined to think
+it wasn't as good fun as Henley. One missed the punts, and all that.
+Once seated in the car, however, with an unobstructed view of the river,
+it was a little better, and by the time the crews had rowed up to the
+starting-point he had almost come round to the American point of view.
+It might not be so jolly as Henley, quite, but Jove! one could see!
+
+Tommy sat on Beatrice's left; on her right was Mr. MacGrath and beyond
+him again was Aunt Cecilia. The others were scattered through the train
+in similar mixed groups. Beatrice thought it a good idea to split up
+that way.... She began to have an idea she was going to enjoy this race.
+
+So she did, too, more than she had enjoyed anything in--oh, months! She
+couldn't remember much about it afterward, though she did remember who
+won, which is more than we do. She had a recollection, to begin with, of
+Tommy joining in lustily in every Yale cheer and of Mr. MacGrath trying
+not to thump Aunt Cecilia on the back at an important moment and
+thumping herself instead. He apologized very nicely. Presently Tommy
+committed the same offense against her and neglected to apologize
+entirely, but she didn't mind in the least. (That was the sort of race
+it was.) Perhaps there lurked in the back of her brain a certain sense
+of joy in the omission.... She herself became infected with Tommy-mania
+before long.
+
+And the spectacle was an exhilarating one, under any circumstances. The
+noble sweep of the river, the keen blue of the water and sky, the green
+of the hills, the brilliant double row of yachts and the general
+atmosphere of hilarity were enough to make one glad to be alive. And
+then the excitement of the race itself, the sense of participation the
+motion of the train gave one, the almost painful fascination of watching
+those two little sets of automatons, the involuntary, electric response
+from the crowd when one or the other of them pulled a little into the
+lead, the thrill of bursting out from behind some temporary obstruction
+and seeing them down there, quite near now, entering the last half-mile
+with one's own crew just a little, ever so little, ahead! From which
+moment it seemed both a second and an age to the finish, that terrific,
+heart-raising finish, with its riot of waving colors and its pandemonium
+of toots from the water and cries from the land....
+
+On the whole, we suppose Yale must have won that race. For after all, it
+isn't quite so pleasant when the other crew wins, no matter how close
+the race was and no matter how good a loser one happens to be. Tommy was
+as good a loser as you could easily find, but not even he could have
+been as cheerful as all that on the ride back if his crew had lost.
+Indeed, cheerful was rather a weak word with which to describe Tommy by
+this time. Beatrice, doing her best to calm him down, became aware, from
+glances shot at him from various--mostly feminine--directions, that some
+people would have characterized his condition by a much sharper and
+shorter word. Involuntarily, almost against her will, Beatrice
+indignantly repelled their accusation. What nonsense! They didn't know
+Tommy; he was naturally like this. Though there had been champagne at
+lunch, of course....
+
+Rather an interesting experience, that ride back to town. The enforced
+inactivity gave one a chance to think, in the intervals of tugging at
+Tommy's coat tails. Why should she be enjoying herself so ridiculously?
+Whole-souled enjoyment was not a thing she had been accustomed to
+during the last few years, at any rate since.... Yes, she had enjoyed
+herself more this afternoon than at any time since she had been married;
+but what of it? She attached no blame to James; it was not James' fault;
+nothing was anybody's fault. She was taking a little, a very little fun
+where she found it, that was all.
+
+The train pulled up in the yards and thought was discontinued. It was
+resumed a few minutes later, however, as they sat in the launch, waiting
+for the rest of their party to join them. She happened to be sitting
+just opposite to Aunt Cecilia, on whom her eyes idly rested. Aunt
+Cecilia! What about Aunt Cecilia? She was wrong, of course! She did not
+understand; she was wrong! Tommy was all right....
+
+So sub-consciousness got in its little work, till conscious reason
+sallied forth and routed it. Oh, why, Beatrice asked herself, with a
+mental motion as of throwing off an entangling substance, why all this
+nonsensical worrying about a danger that did not exist? What danger was
+there of her--making a fool of herself over Tommy when.... She did not
+follow that thought out; it was better to leave those "when" clauses
+hanging in the air, when possible.
+
+But Tommy! Poor, good-natured, simple, ineffective Tommy!
+
+She resolved to think no longer, but to give herself entirely over to
+what slight pleasure the moment had to offer She dressed and dined in
+good spirits, with a sense of anticipation almost childlike in its
+innocence.
+
+After dinner there was a general exodus to the Griswold. From the moment
+she stepped on to the hotel dock, surrounded by its crowd of cheerfully
+bobbing launches, she became infected with the prevailing spirit of
+gaiety. Tommy was right; Americans did know how to enjoy themselves!
+
+They made their way up the lawn toward the big brilliant hotel. They
+reached the door of the ballroom and stopped a moment. In this interval
+Beatrice became aware of James at her elbow.
+
+"You'd better dance with me first," he said.
+
+They danced two or three times around the room in complete silence.
+Beatrice did not in the least mind dancing with James, indeed she rather
+enjoyed it, he danced so well. But why address her in that sepulchral
+tone; why make his invitation sound like a threat; why not at least put
+up a pretense of making duty a pleasure? She was conscious of a slight
+rise of irritation; if James was going to be a skeleton at this
+feast.... She was relieved when he handed her over to one of the other
+men.
+
+But James had no intention of being a skeleton. He went back to bed
+before any of the others, alleging a headache. Beatrice learned this
+indirectly, through Harry, and felt rather disappointed. She would have
+preferred to have him remain and enjoy himself; she did not bother to
+explain why. But he was apparently determined that nothing should make
+him enjoy himself. James was rather irritating, sometimes. She said as
+much, to Harry, who assented, frowning slightly. She saw a chance to get
+in some of the small work of destiny-fighting.
+
+"He's not been at all natural lately," she said; "I've been quite
+worried about him. I wish you'd watch him and tell me what to do about
+it. I feel rather to blame for it, naturally."
+
+"Oh, I wouldn't worry," said Harry. "Working in the city in summer is
+hard on any one, of course."
+
+"I'm afraid it's more than that, and I want your help. You understand
+James better than I do, I think."
+
+"No, you're wrong there. I don't understand James at all. No one really
+understands any one else, as a matter of fact. We think we do, but we
+don't. The very simplest nature is a regular Cretan labyrinth."
+
+"But a wife ought to be the Theseus of her husband's labyrinth, that's
+the point."
+
+"Perhaps you're right. Here's hoping you don't find a minotaur in the
+middle!"
+
+She didn't worry much about it, however. Tommy cut in soon afterward,
+and they didn't talk about James or labyrinths either. Tommy had not
+danced with her before that evening. She was going to say something
+about that, but decided not to. It was too jolly dancing to talk,
+really. Tommy danced very well--quite as well as James. They danced the
+contemporary American dances for some time and then they broke into an
+old-fashioned whirling English waltz; the dance they had both been
+brought up on. It brought memories to the minds of both; they felt old
+times and places creeping back on them.
+
+"Do you remember the last time we did this?" asked Tommy presently.
+
+"At the Dimchurches', the winter before I came here."
+
+"Didn't last long, though. You were the prettiest gell there."
+
+"I suppose I was.--And you were just Tommy Erskine then, and awfully
+ineligible!"
+
+What an absurd remark to make! If she was going to let her tongue run
+away with her like that, she had better keep her mouth shut.
+
+They danced on in silence for some time, rested in the cool of a
+verandah and then danced again. The room was already beginning to empty
+somewhat, making dancing more of a pleasure than ever. They danced on
+till they were tired and then sat out again.
+
+"We might take a stroll about," suggested Tommy presently.
+
+They walked down the steps and out on the lawn. Presently they came near
+the windows of the bar, which was on the ground floor of the hotel, and
+stopped to look in for a moment. It was a lively scene. The room--a
+great white bare place--was filled with men laughing and shouting and
+slapping each other on the shoulder and bellowing college songs, all in
+a thick blue haze of tobacco smoke. They were also drinking, and
+Beatrice noticed that when they had drained their glasses they
+invariably threw them carelessly on the floor, adding a new sound to the
+din and fairly paving the room with broken glass. Many of them were
+mildly intoxicated, but none were actually drunk; the whole sounded the
+note of celebration in the ballroom strengthened and masculinized. It
+had its effect on Beatrice; it was a pleasure to think that one lived in
+a world where people could enjoy themselves thoroughly and uproariously
+and without becoming bestial about it.
+
+"It's really very jolly, isn't it?" she said at last.
+
+"Oh, rippin'," assented Tommy.
+
+"Perhaps you'd rather go in there now?"
+
+"No, no. Don't know the fellahs--I should feel out of it. Wiggers was
+right.--Besides, I'd rather stay with you."
+
+Beatrice wondered if she had intended to make Tommy say that.
+
+They wandered off through the hotel grounds and saw other couples doing
+the same. Doing rather more, in fact. After some search they found an
+empty bench and sat down.
+
+Tommy's education had been in many ways a narrow one, but it had
+equipped him perfectly for making use of such situations as the present.
+He turned about on the bench, leaning one arm on its back and facing
+Beatrice's profile squarely.
+
+"Jove!" he said reminiscently. "Haven't done that since Oxford."
+
+"What?"
+
+"That." He waved his head in the direction of the well populated
+shadows.
+
+"Oh," answered Beatrice carelessly. The profound lack of interest in her
+tone had its effect.
+
+"I did it to you once, by Jove! Remember?"
+
+"No. You never did, Tommy; you know that perfectly well."
+
+"Well, I will now, then!"
+
+He did.
+
+The next moment he rather wished he had not, Beatrice's slow smile of
+contemptuous tolerance made him feel like such a child.
+
+"Tommy, it's only you, of course, so it really doesn't matter, but if
+you try to do that again I shall punish you."
+
+Her power over him was as comforting to her as it was disconcerting to
+him. For a moment; after that she felt a pang of irritation. The idea of
+a married woman being kissed by a man not her husband was in itself
+rather revolting, and the thought that she was that married woman stung.
+As if that was not enough, the thought came to her that she could have
+stopped Tommy at any moment and had not. Had she not, in fact,
+secretly--even to herself--intended that he should do that very thing
+when they first sat down? She had used her power for contemptible ends.
+The thought that after all it was only poor ineffectual Tommy only
+increased her sense of degradation. All her pleasure had fled.
+
+"Come along, Tommy," she said, rising; "it's time to go home."
+
+It was indeed late--long after twelve. The launch, as she remembered it,
+was to make its last trip back to the yacht at half-past; they would be
+just in time. Tommy walked the length of the dock two or three times
+calling "Halcyone! Halcyone!" but there was no response from the already
+dwindling throng of launches. They sat down to wait, both moody and
+silent.
+
+From the very first Beatrice suspected that they had been left. It was
+the natural sequence of the preceding episode; that was the way things
+happened. Her sense of disillusionment and irritation increased. The
+dancing had stopped, but the drinking continued; people were wandering
+or lying about the lawn in disgusting states of intoxication. What had
+been a joyous bacchanal had degenerated into a horrid saturnalia. Once,
+as they walked down to see if the launch had arrived, a man stumbled by
+them with a lewd remark. Beatrice remained on the verandah and made
+Tommy go down alone after that. His mournful "Halcyone!" floated up like
+the cry of a soul from Acheron.
+
+By one o'clock or so it became obvious to everybody that they had been
+forgotten, and Beatrice instructed Tommy to hire any boat he could get
+to take them to the yacht. He had a long interview with the chief
+nautical employee of the hotel, who promised to see what he could do.
+That appeared to be singularly little. At last, with altered views of
+the American way of running things, Beatrice went down herself and
+talked to him. He would do what he could, but.... It was two o'clock;
+the dock was deserted.
+
+Beatrice knew he would do nothing and bethought herself of the two rooms
+in the hotel that Aunt Cecilia had engaged. Her impression was that they
+were not being used to-night; their party was smaller than it had been
+the night before. She went to the hotel office and asked if there were
+some rooms engaged for Mrs. James Wimbourne and if they were already
+occupied. After some research it appeared that there were and they
+weren't. Well, Beatrice and Tommy would take them. The night clerk was
+interested. He understood the situation perfectly and refrained from
+commenting upon their lack of baggage.
+
+So Beatrice was shown into one room and Tommy into the other, the two
+parting with a brief good night in the corridor.
+
+The first thing Beatrice noticed about the room was that there was a
+communicating door between it and Tommy's room. She saw that there was a
+bolt on her side, however, and made sure that it was shut.
+
+Then she rang for a chambermaid and asked for a nightgown and
+toothbrush.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER X
+
+MR. AND MRS. ALFRED LAMMLE
+
+
+It was generally looked upon as rather a good joke. Aunt Cecilia, of
+course, was prolific of apologies; the launch had made so many trips,
+and every one thought Beatrice and Lord Clairloch had gone at another
+time; there had been no general gathering afterward, they had all gone
+to bed as soon as they reached the yacht, and James, as Beatrice knew,
+had gone to bed early with a headache; how clever it was of Beatrice to
+have thought of those two rooms and wasn't it lucky they had been
+engaged, after all, and so forth. But most of the others were inclined
+to be facetious. Breakfast, thanks to their efforts, was quite a merry
+meal.
+
+For the two most nearly concerned the situation was almost devoid of
+embarrassment. They arrived at the yacht shortly after eight in a launch
+they had ordered the night before at the hotel, and repaired to their
+respective rooms without even being seen in their evening clothes. By
+the time breakfast was over Beatrice had quite recovered from her
+irritation at Tommy and had even almost ceased to blame herself for the
+events of the previous night.
+
+The party broke up after lunch, the yacht proceeding to Bar Harbor and
+the guests going their various ways. Beatrice and James went directly
+back to New York. James was very silent in the train, as silent as he
+had been on the way up, but Beatrice was less inclined to find fault
+with him for that than before. As she looked at him quietly reading in
+the chair opposite her it even occurred to her that his silence was
+preferable to Tommy's companionable chirpings, even at their best. And
+with Tommy at his worst, as he had been last night, there was no
+comparison. Oh, yes, she was thoroughly tired of Tommy!
+
+Dinner in their apartment passed off almost as quietly as the journey,
+yet quite pleasantly, in Beatrice's opinion. The night was cool, and a
+refreshing breeze blew in from the harbor. After the maid had left the
+room and they sat over their coffee and cigarettes, James spoke.
+
+"About last night," he began, and stopped.
+
+"Yes?" said Beatrice encouragingly.
+
+"I thought at first I wouldn't mention it, and then I decided it would
+be rather cowardly not to ... I want to say that--"
+
+"That what?"
+
+"That I have no objections."
+
+"To what?" Her bewilderment was not feigned.
+
+"To last night! I don't want you to think I'm jealous, or unsympathetic,
+or anything like that.... You are at liberty to do what you please--to
+get pleasure where you can find it. I understand."
+
+"You don't understand at all!" Her manner was still one of bewilderment,
+though possibly other feelings were beginning to enter.
+
+"I understand, and shall understand in the future. I shan't mention the
+matter again. Only one thing more--whenever our--our bargain interferes
+too much, you can end it. I shan't offer any opposition."
+
+She sat frozen in her chair, making no sign that she had understood, so
+he explained in an almost gentle tone of voice: "I mean you can divorce
+me, you know."
+
+"Divorce!"
+
+"Oh, very well, just as you like. Of course our marriage ceases to be
+such from now on...."
+
+So unprepared, so at peace with herself and the world had she been that
+it was only now that she fully comprehended his meaning. James was
+accusing her, making the great accusation ... James thought that she....
+Of course, not being the kind of a woman who dissolves in tears at that
+accusation, her first dominant emotion was one of anger; an anger
+sharper than any she had ever felt; an anger she would have thought to
+be impossible to her, after all these months of lassitude, all these
+years of chastening. She rose from her chair and made a step toward the
+door; her impulse being to walk out of the room, out of the house, out
+of James' life, without a word. Not a word of self-defense; some charges
+are too vile to merit reply!
+
+Then commonsense flared up, conquering anger and pride. No, she must not
+give way to her pride; she must act like a sensible being. After all,
+James was her husband, he had some right to accuse if he thought proper;
+the falseness of his accusation did not take away his right of
+explanation; he should be made to see.
+
+Slowly she turned and went back to her place. She sat down squarely
+facing James with both hands on the table in front of her, and prepared
+to talk like a lawyer presenting a case. James was watching her quietly,
+interested, perhaps ever so slightly amused, but not in the least moved.
+
+"James, as I understand it, you think that I--that Tommy and I...."
+
+"Yes?"
+
+"Well, you've made a great mistake, that's all. You've condemned me
+without a hearing. You've assumed that I was guilty--"
+
+"Oh, for heaven's sake, let's not talk about being guilty or innocent or
+wronging each other or being faithful to each other! Those things have
+no meaning for us. I'm not blaming you--I've tried to explain that to
+the best of my ability!"
+
+"Very well, then, let us say you have made a mistake in facts."
+
+"What do you mean by that?"
+
+"I mean--what should I mean? That Tommy and I are not lovers."
+
+"Well, what then?"
+
+"What then--?"
+
+"Yes, what of it? I never said you were, did I? Suppose you're not,
+then; if you're glad, I'm glad, if you're sorry, I'm sorry. It doesn't
+alter our position."
+
+"James, you don't understand!"
+
+"What?"
+
+"When you spoke before you thought that I was--that I had sinned.--I do
+consider it a sin; perhaps you'll allow me to call it so if it pleases
+me."
+
+"Certainly." He smiled.
+
+"Well, you were wrong. I haven't."
+
+"All right; I was wrong. You haven't."
+
+"Very well, then!"
+
+"Very well WHAT?"
+
+"James!"
+
+"I'm sorry.--But what are you driving at? I wasn't accusing you, you
+know; I was simply telling you you were free, which you knew before,
+and offering you more freedom if you wanted it. Why this outburst of
+virtue?"
+
+"James, you are rather brutal!"
+
+"I'm sorry if I seem so; I don't mean to be." He shifted his position
+slightly and went on quite gently with another smile: "Beatrice, if you
+have successfully met a temptation--or what you look upon as a
+temptation--I'm sure I'm very glad. After all, we are friends, and what
+pleases my friend pleases me, other things being equal. But does that
+pleasing fact in itself alter things between us when, from my own
+selfish point of view, I don't care in the least whether you overcame
+the temptation or not? And does it, I ask you, alter facts? Does it make
+you any less fond of Tommy than you are; does it make you as fond of me
+as you are of him?"
+
+"Oh, James! You understand so little--"
+
+"Whatever I may understand or not understand I know that you spent all
+of last evening and practically all yesterday and a great part of the
+evening before with Tommy, and that you gave no particular evidence of
+being bored ... Beatrice, you were happy with him, happy as a child, the
+happiest person in the whole crowd, and you showed it, too! Do you mean
+to say that you've ever, at any time in your life, been as happy in my
+society as all that! No! Deny it if you can!"
+
+"James, you are jealous!" The discovery came to her like an inspiration,
+sending a thrill through her. She did not stop to analyze it now, but
+when she came to think it over later she realized that there was
+something in that thrill quite distinct from the satisfaction of finding
+a good reply to James' really rather searching (though of course quite
+unfounded) charges.
+
+"There's a good deal of the cave-man left in you, James, argue as you
+may. Do you think any one but a jealous man could talk as you are
+talking now? 'Deny it if you can'--what do you care whether I deny it or
+not, according to what you just said? Oh, James, how are you living up
+to your part of the bargain?"
+
+Her tone was free from rancor or spite, and her words had their effect.
+James was not beyond appreciating the justice in what she said. He left
+his chair and raised his hand to his forehead with a gesture of
+bewilderment.
+
+"Oh, Lord, I suppose you're right," he muttered, and began pacing the
+room.
+
+So they remained in silence for some time, she sitting quietly in her
+chair as before and he walking aimlessly up and down, desperately trying
+to adjust himself to this new fact. It is strange how people will give
+themselves away when they begin talking; he had been so sure of himself
+in his thoughts; he had gone over such matters so satisfactorily in his
+own head! Beatrice understood his plight and respected it; it was not
+for her, after these last few days, to minimize the trials of
+self-discovery....
+
+The maid popped in at the pantry door and popped out again.
+
+"All right, Mary, you can take the things," said Beatrice, and led the
+way into the living room.
+
+There was no air of finality in this move, but the slight domestic
+incident at least had the effect of putting a check on introspection and
+restoring things to a more normal footing. Once in the living room--it
+was a large high room, built as a studio and reaching up two
+stories--they were both much more at ease; they began to feel capable of
+resuming negotiations, when the time arrived, like two normal sensible
+beings. James threw himself on a couch; Beatrice moved about the room,
+opening a window here, turning up a light there, arranging a vase of
+flowers somewhere else. At last, deeming the time ripe, she stopped in
+one of her noiseless trips and spoke down at her husband.
+
+"James, do you realize that you alone, of all the people on the yacht,
+had the remotest suspicion? You remember how they all joked about it?"
+
+Oh, the danger of putting things into words! Beatrice's voice was as
+gentle as she could make it; there was even a note of casual amusement
+in it, but in some intangible way, merely by reopening the subject
+vocally, Beatrice laid herself open to attack. James' lip curled; he
+could no more keep it from doing so than keep his hair from curling.
+
+"You must remember, however, that they were not fully acquainted with
+the circumstances...."
+
+Beatrice turned away in despair, not angry at James, but realizing the
+inevitability of his reply as well as he himself. She sat down in an
+armchair and leaned her head against the back of it; she wished it
+might not be necessary ever to rise from that chair again. The blind
+hopelessness of their situation lay heavy on them both.
+
+James spoke next.
+
+"Beatrice, will you tell me what it's all about? Why are we squabbling
+this way? How can we find out--what on earth are we going to do about it
+all?"
+
+"I've no more idea than you, James."
+
+"Every time we get talking we always fall back on our bargain, as if
+that was the one reliable thing in the whole universe. Always our
+bargain, our bargain! Beatrice, what in Heaven's name is our bargain?"
+
+"Marriage, I take it."
+
+"You know it's more than that--less than that--not that, anyway! At
+first it was all quite clear to me; we were two people whose lives had
+been broken and we were going to try to mend them as best we might. And
+as it seemed we could do that better together than alone we determined
+to marry. Our marriage was to be a perfectly loose, free arrangement,
+and we were to stick to its terms only as long as we could profit by
+doing so. We were to part without ill feeling and with perfect
+understanding. And now, at the first shred of evidence--no, not even
+evidence, suspicion--that you want to break away we start quarreling
+like a pair of cats, and I become a monster of jealousy, like any comic
+husband in a play...."
+
+Beatrice's heart sank again at those words; there was no mistaking the
+bitterness in them. That heightened a fear she had felt when James had
+answered her about the people on the yacht; James was still smarting
+with the discovery of his jealousy, and the trouble was that the smart
+was so sharp that he might not forgive her for having made him feel it.
+She felt the taste of her little triumph turn to ashes in her mouth.
+
+"No, James, no!" she interrupted hurriedly. "You weren't, really. That
+was all nonsense--we both saw that...."
+
+"No, it's true--I was jealous. Jealous! and for what? And what's more, I
+still am. I can't help it. When I think of Tommy, and the boat-race, and
+all that. Oh, Lord, the idiocy of it!"
+
+"I don't particularly mind your being jealous, James, if that's any
+comfort to you."
+
+"No! Why on earth should you? You're living up to your part of the
+bargain, and I'm not--that's what it comes to. Oh, it's all my fault,
+every bit of it--no doubt of that!"
+
+His words gave Beatrice a new sensation, not so much a sinking as a
+steeling of the heart. His self-accusation was all very well, but if it
+also involved trampling on her--! And she did begin to feel trampled
+upon; much more so now than when he had directly accused her.... That
+was odd! Was it possible that she would rather be vilified than ignored,
+even by James?
+
+Meanwhile James was ranting on--it had not occurred to her that it was
+ranting before, but it did now:--"There's something about the mere
+institution of marriage, I suppose, that makes me feel this way; the old
+idea of possession or something.... You were right about the cave-man!
+It's something stronger than me--I can't help it; but if it's going on
+like this every time you--every time you speak to another man, it'll
+make a delightful thing out of our married life, won't it? This free and
+easy bargain of ours, this sensible arrangement! Why, it's a thousand
+times harder than an ordinary marriage, just because I have nothing to
+hold you with!...
+
+"Beatrice, we're caught in something. Trapped! Don't you feel it?
+Something you can't see, can't understand, only feel gradually pressing
+in on you, paralyzing you, smothering you! There's no use blaming each
+other for it; we're both wound up in it equally; it's something far
+stronger than either of us. A pair of blind mice in a trap!..."
+
+He flung himself across the room to an open window and stood there,
+resting his elbows on the sill and gazing out over the twinkling lights
+of the city. Beatrice sat immovable in her chair, but her bosom was
+heaving with the memory of certain things he had said. Another revulsion
+of feeling mastered her; she no longer thought of him as ranting; she
+felt his words too strongly for that. A pair of blind mice in a
+trap--yes, yes, she felt all that, but that was not what had stirred her
+so. What was that he had said about having nothing to hold her with?...
+
+She watched him as he stood there trying to cool his tortured mind in
+the evening air. He was tremendously worked up; she wondered if he could
+stand this sort of thing physically; she remembered how ill he had been
+looking lately.... She watched him with a new anxiety, half expecting to
+see him topple over backward at any moment, overcome by the strain. Then
+she could help him; her mind conjured up a vision of herself running
+into the dining room for some whisky and back to him with the glass in
+her hand; "Here, drink this," and her hand under his head.... It was
+wicked of her to wish anything of the kind, of course; but if she could
+only be of some use to him! If he would but think of turning to her for
+help in getting out of his trap! He would not find his fellow-mouse cold
+or unsympathetic.
+
+She could not overcome her desire to find out if any such idea was in
+his mind. She went over to him and touched him gently on the shoulder.
+
+"James--"
+
+"No, not now, please; I want to think."
+
+And his shoulder remained a piece of tweed under her hand; he did not
+even bother to shake her off.
+
+She sat down again to wait.
+
+When at last he left the window it was to sit down by a lamp and take up
+a book. That was not a bad sign, in itself, as long as he made his
+reading an interlude and not an ending. But as she sat watching him it
+became more and more evident that he regarded their interview as closed.
+And so they sat stolidly for some time, James determined that nothing
+should lead him into another humiliating exhibition of feeling and
+Beatrice determined that whatever happened she would make him stop
+ignoring her. And though she was at first merely hurt by his
+indifference she presently began to feel her determination strengthened
+by something else, something which, starting as hardly more than natural
+feminine pique shortly grew into irritation, then into anger of a
+slow-burning type and lastly, as her eyes tired of seeing him sit there
+so unaffectedly absorbed in his reading, into something for the moment
+approaching active dislike. We all know what hell hath no fury like, and
+Beatrice, as she fed her mind on the thought of how often he had
+insulted and repelled and above all ignored her that evening, began to
+consider herself very much in the light of a woman scorned.
+
+"Is that all, James?" she ventured at length.
+
+He put down his book and looked up with the manner of one making a great
+effort to be reasonable.
+
+"What do you want, Beatrice?"
+
+Beatrice would have given a good deal to be able to say that what she
+really wanted was that he should take her to him as he had that day at
+Bar Harbor and never once since, but as she could not she made a
+substitute answer.
+
+"We can't leave things as they are, can we?"
+
+"Why not? Haven't we said too much already?"
+
+"Too much for peace, but not enough for satisfaction. We can't leave
+things hanging in the air this way."
+
+"Very well, then, if you insist. How shall we begin?"
+
+"Well, suppose we begin with our bargain--see what its terms are and
+whether we can live up to them and whether it's for our benefit to do
+so."
+
+"All right. What do you consider the terms of our bargain to be?"
+
+They were both talking in the measured tones of people determined to
+keep control over themselves at all costs. They looked at each other
+warily, as though guarding against being maneuvered into a betrayal of
+temper or feeling.
+
+"Well, in the first place, I assume that we want to present a good front
+to the world. Bold and united. We want to prevent people from
+knowing...."
+
+"Certainly."
+
+"And if we give the impression of being happy together we've gone a good
+way toward that end."
+
+"Yes, that's logical."
+
+"Well--?"
+
+"What?"
+
+"It's your turn now, isn't it?"
+
+"Oh, no; you've begun so well you'd better go on."
+
+"Well, I've only got one more idea on the subject, and that is just
+tentative--a sort of suggestion." She sat down on the sofa by him and
+strove to make her manner a little more intimate without becoming
+mawkish or intrusive. "It has occurred to me that we haven't given that
+impression very much in the past, and I think the reason for that may be
+that we--well, that we don't work together enough. Does it ever occur to
+you, James, that we don't understand each other very well? Not nearly as
+much as we might, I sometimes think, without--without having to pretend
+anything. We know each other so slightly! Sometimes it gives me the
+oddest feeling, to think I am married to you, who are stranger to me
+than almost any of my friends...."
+
+She feared the phrasing of that thought was a little unfortunate, and
+broke off suddenly with: "But perhaps I'm boring you?"
+
+"No, no--I'm very much interested. How do you think we ought to go about
+it?"
+
+"It's difficult to say, of course. How do you think? I should suggest,
+for one thing, that we should be less shy with each other--less afraid
+of each other. Especially about things that concern us. Even if it is
+hard to talk about such things, I think we ought to. We should be more
+frank with each other, James."
+
+"As we have been this evening, for example?"
+
+The cynical note rang in his voice, the note she most dreaded.
+
+"No, I didn't mean that, necessarily. I don't mind saying, though, that
+I think even our talking to-night has been a good thing. It has cleared
+the air, you know. See where we are now!"
+
+"Yes, and it's cleared you too. But what about me?"
+
+"I don't understand."
+
+"Oh, you've come out of it all right! You've behaved yourself,
+vindicated yourself, done nothing you didn't expect to, nothing you have
+reason to be ashamed of afterward. I have! I haven't been able to open
+my mouth without making a fool of myself in one way or another...."
+
+"Only because you're overtired, James...."
+
+"I've said things I never thought myself capable of saying, and I've
+found I thought things that no decent man should think. It was an
+interesting experience."
+
+"James, my dear, don't be so bitter! I'm not blaming you. I can forget
+all that!"
+
+She laid her hand on his knee and the action, together with the quality
+of her voice, had a visible effect on him. He paused a moment and looked
+at her curiously. When he spoke again it was without bitterness.
+
+"That's awfully decent of you, Beatrice, but the trouble is I can't
+forget. Those things stay in the memory, and they're not desirable
+companions. And as talking, the kind of frank talking you suggest, seems
+to bring them out in spite of me, I think perhaps we'd better not have
+much of that kind of talk. It seems to me that the less we talk the
+better we shall get on."
+
+Beatrice was silent a moment in her turn. She had not brought him quite
+to where she wanted him, but she had brought him nearer than he had been
+before. She resolved to let things stay as they were.
+
+"Very well, James," she said, leaning back by his side; "we won't talk
+if you don't want to. About those things, that is. There are plenty of
+other things we can talk about. And let's go to places more together and
+do things more together. I see no reason why we shouldn't get on very
+well together. After all, I do enjoy being with you, when you're in a
+good mood, more than with any one else I know--that I could be with--"
+
+"Then why--Oh, Lord!" He stopped himself and sank forward in despair
+with his head on his hands.
+
+"Well, go on and say it."
+
+"No, no."
+
+"Yes. It's better that way."
+
+"I was going to say, why did you appear to enjoy yourself with Tommy so
+much more than--Oh, it's no use, Beatrice! I can't help it--it's beyond
+me!"
+
+"Oh, James!"
+
+"Yes, that's just it! It's the devil in me!"
+
+"When that was all over, James!"
+
+"All over! Then there was something!... Oh, good _Lord_! We can't go
+through it all over again!"
+
+"James, I meant that you were all over feeling that--"
+
+"Yes, yes, I know you did, and I thought you meant the other and said
+that, and of course I had no right to because of what we are, and so
+forth, over and over again! Round and round and round, like a mouse in a
+trap! Caught again!..."
+
+He got up and walked across the room once or twice, steadying himself
+with one last great effort. In a moment he stopped dead in front of her.
+
+"See here, Beatrice!"
+
+"Yes?"
+
+"It can't happen again, do you see? It's got to stop right here and now!
+I can't stand it--call it weak of me if you like, but I can't. It'll
+drive me stark mad. We are not going to talk about these things again,
+do you see?"
+
+"What sort of things?"
+
+"Anything! Anything that can possibly bring these things into my head
+and make a human fiend of me. And you're not to tempt me to talk of
+them, either. Do you promise?"
+
+"I promise anything that's reasonable--anything that will help you. But
+do you intend to let this--this weakness end everything--spoil our whole
+life?"
+
+"Spoil! What on earth is there to spoil? We've got on well enough up to
+now, haven't we? Well, we'll go back to where we were, where we were
+this morning! And we'll stay there, please God, as long as we two shall
+live! You're free, absolutely free, from now on! I shan't question
+anything you may care to do from this moment, I promise you!"
+
+She remained silent a moment, awed in spite of herself by the fervency
+of his words. She was cruelly disappointed in him. She had made so many
+attempts, she had humbled herself so often, she had suffered his rebuffs
+so many times and she had brought him at one time in spite of himself so
+near to a happier state of things that his one-minded insistence on his
+own humiliation seemed to her indescribably petty and selfish. His
+jealousy, his vile, rudimentary dog-in-the-manger jealousy; that was
+what he couldn't get over; that was what he could not forgive her for!
+What a small thing that was to resent, in view of what she herself had
+so steadfastly refrained from resenting!... However, since he wished it,
+there was nothing more to be done. She could be as cold and unemotional
+as he, if it came to the test.
+
+"Then you definitely give up every effort toward a better
+understanding?"
+
+"Yes!"
+
+"And you prefer, once for all, to be strangers rather than friends?"
+
+"Strangers don't squabble!"
+
+"Very well, then, James," she said with a quiet smile, "strangers let it
+be. I daresay it's better so, after all. I shouldn't wonder if you found
+me quite as good and thorough a stranger, from now on, as you could
+desire. It was foolish of me to talk to you as I did."
+
+"No, no--don't get blaming yourself. It's such a cheap form of
+satisfaction."
+
+She stood looking at him a moment with coldly glittering eyes.
+
+"It's quite true," she repeated; "I was a fool. I was a fool to imagine
+that you and I could have anything in common. Ever. Well, nothing can
+very well put us farther apart than we are now. There's a certain
+comfort in that, perhaps."
+
+"There is."
+
+"At last we agree. Husbands and wives should always agree. Good-night,
+James."
+
+"Good-night,"
+
+He watched her as she glided from the room, so slim and beautiful and
+disdainful. Perhaps a shadow of regret for her passed across his mind, a
+thought of what a woman, what a wife, even, she might have been under
+other circumstances; but it did not go far into him. Things were as they
+were; he had long since given up bothering about them, trying only to
+think and feel as little as possible. He took up his book again and read
+far into the night.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XI
+
+HESITANCIES AND TEARS
+
+
+Thomas Mackintosh Drummond Erskine, by courtesy known as Viscount
+Clairloch, was not a remarkably complicated person. His life was
+governed by a few broad and well-tried principles which he found, as
+many had found before him, covered practically all the contingencies he
+was called upon to deal with. One wanted things, and if possible, one
+got them. That was the first and great commandment of nature, and the
+second was akin to it; one did nothing contrary to a thing generally
+known as decency. This was a little more complicated, for though decency
+was a natural thing--one always wanted to be decent, other things being
+equal--it had a rather difficult technique which had to be mastered by a
+long slow process. If any one had asked Tommy how this technique was
+best obtained he would undoubtedly have answered, by a course of six
+years at either Eton, Harrow or Winchester, followed by three years at
+one of half a dozen colleges he could name at Oxford or Cambridge.
+
+Occasionally, of course--though not often--the paths of desire and
+decency diverged, and this divergence was sometimes provocative of
+unpleasantness. Treated sensibly, however, the problem could always be
+brought to an easy and simple solution. Tommy found that in such a case
+it was always possible to do one of two things; persuade oneself either
+that the desire was compatible with decency or that it did not exist at
+all. Either of those simple feats of dialectic accomplished, everything
+worked out quite beautifully. It is a splendid thing to have been
+educated at Harrow and Christchurch.
+
+Ever since he arrived in America it had been evident to Tommy that he
+wanted Beatrice. He did not want her with quite the absorbing intensity
+that would make him one of the great lovers of history--Harrow and
+Christchurch decreed that one should go fairly easy on wanting a
+married woman--but still he wanted her, for him, very much indeed. Up
+to the night of the boat-race everything had gone swimmingly. Then,
+indeed, he had received a setback; a setback which came very near making
+him abandon further pursuit and proceed forthwith to those portions of
+America which lie to the west of Upper Montclair. If Aunt Cecilia had
+not casually invited him to accompany the yacht on its trip round Cape
+Cod he might have started the very next morning. But he went to Bar
+Harbor, and before he left there it had become plain to him that he
+could probably have what he had so long desired.
+
+Everything had favored him. Aunt Cecilia had made it pleasant for him
+for a while, and when the time came when Aunt Cecilia might be expected
+to become tired of making it pleasant for him others came forward who
+were more than willing to do as much. Tommy was a desirable as well as
+an agreeable guest; he looked well in the papers. With the result that
+he was still playing about Bar Harbor at the end of July, at which time
+Beatrice, looking quite lovely and wan and heat-fagged, came, unattended
+by her husband, to be the chief ornament of Aunt Cecilia's spacious
+halls.
+
+And how Beatrice had changed since he last saw her! She was as little
+the cold-eyed, contemptuous Artemis of that night in New London as she
+was the fresh-cheeked debutante of his early knowledge; and she was
+infinitely more attractive, he thought, than either of them. She had a
+new way of looking up at him when he came to greet her; she was willing
+to pass long hours in his sole company; she depended on him for
+amusement, she relied on him in various little ways; and more important,
+she soon succeeded in making him forget his fear of her. For the first
+time in his knowledge of her he had the feeling of being fully as strong
+as she, fully as self-controlled, as firm-willed. This was in reality
+but another symptom of her power over him, but he never recognized it as
+such.
+
+Appetite, as we know, increases with eating, and every sign of favor
+that came his way fanned the almost extinguished flame of Tommy's desire
+into renewed warmth and vigor. Before many weeks it had grown into
+something warmer and more vigorous than anything he had ever
+experienced, till at last his gentle bosom became the battlefield of the
+dreaded Armageddon between desire and decency. It wasn't really
+dreaded, in his case, because he was not the sort of person who is
+capable of living very far ahead of the present moment, and perhaps, in
+view of the strength of both the contending forces, the term Armageddon
+may be an exaggeration; but it was the most serious internal conflict
+that the good-natured viscount (by courtesy) ever knew.
+
+But the struggle, though painful, was short-lived. After going to bed
+for five evenings in succession fearing that care would drive sleep from
+his pillow that night, and sleeping soundly from midnight till
+eight-thirty, the illuminating thought came to him that, owing to the
+truly Heaven-made laws of the country in which he then was, the conflict
+practically did not exist. In America people divorced; no foolish stigma
+was attached to the process, as at home; it was easy, it was
+respectable, it was done! He blessed his stars; what a marvelous stroke
+of luck that Beatrice had married an American and not an Englishman! He
+thought of the years of carking secrecy through which such things are
+dragged in England, and contrasted it with the neat despatch of the
+Yankee system. A few weeks of legal formalities, tiresome, of course,
+but trivial in view of the object, and then--a triumphant return to
+native shores, closing in a long vista of years with Beatrice at his
+side as Lady Clairloch and eventually as Lady Strathalmond! Sweet
+ultimate union of desire and decency! He gave thanks to Heaven in his
+fervent, simple-souled way.
+
+Nothing remained save to persuade Beatrice to take the crucial step.
+Well, there would be little trouble about that, judging by the way
+things were going....
+
+As for Beatrice, she was at first much too exhausted, both physically
+and mentally, to think much about Tommy one way or the other. That last
+month in New York had been a horribly enervating one, both
+meteorologically and domestically speaking. Scarcely had she been able
+to bring herself to face the impossibility of winning her husband's
+affection when the hot weather came on, the crushing heat of July, that
+burned every ounce of a desire to live out of one and made the whole
+world as great a desert as one's own home.... It was James who had
+suggested her going to Aunt Cecilia's--"because he didn't want me to die
+on his hands," Beatrice idly reflected, as she lay at last in a hammock
+on the broad verandah, luxuriating in the sea breeze that made a light
+wrap necessary.
+
+Then Tommy came back to the Wimbournes' to stay, and a regular daily
+routine was begun. Beatrice remained in her room all the morning, while
+Tommy played golf. They met at lunch and strolled or drove or watched
+people play tennis together in the afternoon. After dinner Beatrice
+generally ensconced herself with rugs on the verandah while Tommy buzzed
+about fetching footstools or cushions or talked to her or simply sat by
+her side. After a while she found that Tommy was quite good company, if
+you didn't take him seriously. Tommy--she supposed this was the real
+foundation of her liking for him--was her countryman. He knew things, he
+understood things, he looked at things as she had been brought up to
+look at them. Tommy, to take a small instance, never stifled a smile
+when she used such words as caliber or schedule, pronouncing them in the
+English way--the proper way, when all was said and done, for was not
+England the home and source of the English language?
+
+A few days later, as returning health quickened her perceptions, she
+realized that another thing that made Tommy agreeable was the fact that
+he strove honestly to please her. A pleasant change, at least!... She
+was well enough to be bitter again, it seemed. Not only was Tommy
+attentive in such matters as rugs and cushions, but he made definite
+efforts to fit his speech and his moods to her. He found that she liked
+to talk about England and he was at some pains to read up information
+about current events there, a thing he had not bothered much about since
+his departure from home. She had only to ask a leading question about a
+friend at home and he would gossip for a whole evening about their
+mutual acquaintance.
+
+Presently she began to discover--or fancy she discovered--hitherto
+unsounded depths--or what were, comparatively speaking, depths--in
+Tommy's character.
+
+"I say, how jolly the stars are to-night," he observed as he took his
+place by her one evening. "Never see the stars, somehow, but I think of
+tigers. Ever since I went to India. Went off on a tiger hunt, you know,
+out in the wilds somewhere, and we had to sleep out on a sort of grassy
+place with a fire in the middle of us, you know, to keep the beasties
+off. Well, I'd never seen a tiger, outside of the zoo, and I had 'em on
+the brain. I had a dream about meeting one, and it got so bad that I
+woke up at last with a shout, thinkin' a tiger was standin' just over me
+with his two dev'lish old eyes staring down into mine! Then I saw it was
+only two bright stars, rather close together. But I never can see stars
+now without thinkin' of tiger's eyes, though I met a tiger quite close
+on soon after that and his eyes weren't like that, at all....
+
+"Rather sad, isn't it?" he added after a moment.
+
+"Sad? Why?"
+
+"Well, other people have something better than an old beast's blinkers
+to compare stars to. Women's eyes, you know, and all that."
+
+There was something in the way he said this that made Beatrice reply
+"Oh, rot, Tommy!" even as she laughed. But his mood entertained her.
+
+"Tommy," she went on, "I believe you'd try, even so, to say something
+about my eyes and stars if I let you! Though anything less like stars
+couldn't well be imagined.... Honestly now, Tommy, do my eyes look more
+like stars or tiger's eyes?"
+
+"Well," answered Tommy with laborious truthfulness, "I suppose they
+really _look_ more like tiger's eyes. But they make me _think_ of
+stars," he added, with a perfect burst of romance and poetry.
+
+"And stars make you think of tiger's eyes! Oh, my poor Tommy!"
+
+"Well, they're dev'lish good-lookin'--you ought to feel jolly
+complimented!" He wanted to go on and say something about her acting
+like a tiger, but did not feel quite up to it, at such short notice. But
+they laughed companionably together.
+
+Yes, Tommy really amused her. There was much to like in the simplicity
+and kindliness of his nature; Harry had not been proof against it. And
+there was no harm in him. Beatrice could imagine no more innocuous
+pleasure than talking with Tommy, even if the conversation ran to
+eyes--her eyes. She was not bothered this time by any nervous
+reflections on what fields of amusement were suited to the innocent
+ramblings of a young wife. And if she was inclined to emphasize the
+pleasant part of her intercourse and minimize its danger--if indeed
+there was any--the reason was not far to seek. Even if things went to
+the last resort, what of it? What had she to lose--now?
+
+Nothing. Not one earthly thing. She was free to glean where she could.
+
+James would be glad--as glad as any one.
+
+Though of course it had not come to that yet....
+
+It was at about this time, however, that Tommy determined it should come
+to that. Just that. And though he was not one to rush matters, he
+decided that the sooner it came the better. He learned that James was to
+come up for a fortnight at the end of August--James' vacation had for
+some reason dwindled to that length of time--and he desired, in some
+obscure way, to have it decided before James was actually in the house.
+But the way had to be paved for the great suggestion and Tommy was not
+perceptibly quicker at paving than at other intellectual pursuits.
+
+One evening, however, he resolved to be a man of action and at least
+give an indication of the state of his own heart. With almost devilish
+craft he decided beforehand on the exact way he would bring the
+conversation round to the desired point.
+
+"I say, Beatrice," he began when they were settled in their customary
+place.
+
+"Yes, Tommy?"
+
+"How long do you suppose your aunt wants me kickin' my heels about
+here?"
+
+"Oh, as long as you want, I suppose. She hasn't told me she was tired of
+you."
+
+"Yes, but ..."
+
+"But what?"
+
+"I've been here a goodish while, you know. First the boat-race, then the
+cruise up here, then most of July and now most of August.... Stiffish,
+wot?... Don't want to wear out my welcome, you know...."
+
+Oh, but it was hard! Why on earth couldn't she do the obvious thing and
+say, "Why do you want to leave, Tommy?" or something like that? She
+seemed determined not to give him the least help, so he plunged
+desperately on.
+
+"Not that I _want_ to go, you know. Jolly pleasant here, and all
+that--rippin' golf, rippin' people, rippin' time altogether...."
+
+He felt himself perspiring profusely.
+
+"Beatrice, do you know _why_ I don't want to go?" he burst forth.
+
+Beatrice remained silent, lightly tapping the stone balustrade with her
+foot. When she spoke it was with perfect self-possession.
+
+"You're not going to be tiresome again, are you, Tommy?"
+
+"Yes!" said Tommy fervently.
+
+Again she paused. "Are you really fond of me, Tommy?" she asked
+unexpectedly.
+
+"Oh, Lord, yes!"
+
+"How fond?"
+
+"Oh ... frightf'ly!... What do you mean, how fond? You know! Do you want
+me to throw myself into the sea?... I would," he added in a low voice.
+
+"I didn't mean how much, exactly, but in what way? What do you mean by
+it all?"
+
+"What's the use of asking me? You know!"
+
+"No, I don't think I do.... Are you fond enough of me to desire
+everything for my good?"
+
+"Yes!"
+
+"Even at the sacrifice of yourself?"
+
+"Yes!"
+
+"Well, don't you think it's for my ultimate good as a married woman that
+you shouldn't try to make love to me?"
+
+"What the--Beatrice, don't torment me!"
+
+"I don't want to, but you must see how impossible it is, Tommy. You
+can't go on talking this way to me."
+
+"Why not?"
+
+"Why, because I'm _married_, obviously! Such things are--well, they
+simply aren't done!"
+
+Tommy waited a moment. "Do you mean to say, Beatrice...."
+
+"What?"
+
+"Can you truthfully tell me that you--that you aren't fond of me too?
+Just a little?"
+
+"Certainly!"
+
+"Rot! Utter, senseless rot! You know it isn't so!--"
+
+"Hush, Tommy! People will hear."
+
+"Let 'em hear, then. Beatrice!" he went on more quietly; "there's no use
+trying to take me in by that 'never knew' rot. Of course you knew, of
+course you cared. Why've you sat talking with me here, night after
+night, why've you been so uncommon jolly nice--nicer 'n you ever were
+before? Why did you ever let me get to this point?--Don't pretend you
+couldn't help it, either!" He paused a moment. "Why did you let me kiss
+you that night?"
+
+That shaft hit. She lost her head a little, and fell back on an old
+feminine ruse.
+
+"Oh, Tommy, you've no right to bring that up against me!" she said, with
+a little flurried break in her voice.
+
+Tommy's obvious answer was a quiet "Why not?" but he was not the kind
+who can give the proper answer at such moments. He was much more
+affected by Beatrice's evident perturbation than Beatrice was by his
+home truth, and was much slower in recovering.
+
+"I'm sorry, Beatrice," he went on again after a short silence, "but
+I--well, dash it all, I _care_, you know!"
+
+"You mustn't, Tommy."
+
+"But what if I jolly well can't help myself? After all, you know, you
+must give a fellah a chance. Of course, I want you to be happy, and I'd
+do anything I could to make you so, but--well, there it is! I'm _fond_
+of you, Beatrice!"
+
+She could smile quite calmly at him now, and did so. "Very well, Tommy,
+you're fond of me. Suppose we leave it there for the present.--And now I
+think I shall go in. It's getting chilly out here."
+
+Evidently it had not quite come to _that_ with her.
+
+Nor did it, for all Tommy could do, before James' arrival a few days
+later. Aunt Selina came with him; she had elected to spend the summer at
+her Vermont house, and found it, as she explained to her hostess, "too
+warm. The interior, you know." With which she closed her lips and gave
+the impression of charitably refraining from, richly deserved censure of
+the interior's shortcomings. Aunt Cecilia nodded with the most perfect
+understanding, and said she supposed it must have been warm in New York
+also.
+
+James allowed that it had.
+
+Aunt Selina said she had read in the paper that August was likely to be
+as hot as July there.
+
+Beatrice, just in order to be on the safe side, said that she felt like
+Rather a Brute.
+
+Tommy, with a vague idea of vindicating her, remarked that some days
+had been jolly warm in Bar Harbor, too.
+
+Aunt Cecilia, politely reproachful, said that he had no idea what an
+American summer could be, and that anyway, the nights had been cool.
+
+Tommy said oh yes, rather.
+
+Inwardly he was chafing. He felt his case lamentably weakened by the
+presence of James. He had not bargained for an abduction from under the
+husband's very nose. The thought of what he would have to go through now
+made him feel quite uncomfortable and even a little, just a little,
+suspicious that the case of decency had not been decisively settled.
+Still, there was nothing to do but stay and go through with it.
+
+But James, if he had but known it, was in reality his most powerful
+ally. Continued residence in sweltering New York had not tended to
+soften James, either in his attitude to the world in general or in his
+feeling toward his wife in particular. He now adopted a policy of
+outward affection. "When others were present he lost no opportunity of
+elaborately fetching and carrying for Beatrice, of making plans for her
+benefit, of rejoicing in her returning health. As she evinced a fondness
+for the evening air he made it a rule to sit with her on the verandah
+every night after dinner. Tommy could not very well oust him from this
+pleasant duty, and writhed beneath his calm exterior every time he
+watched them go out together."
+
+He need not have worried, however. The contrast of James' warmth in
+public to his wholly genuine coldness in private, together with the
+change from Tommy's sympathetic chatter to James' deathly silence on
+these evening sojourns had a much more potent effect on Beatrice than
+anything Tommy could have accomplished actively. James literally seemed
+to freeze the blood in Beatrice's veins. She became subject to fits of
+shivering, she required twice as many wraps as before; she began going
+to bed much earlier than previously. Ten o'clock now invariably found
+her in her room.
+
+One evening James was suddenly called upon to go out to dinner with Aunt
+Cecilia and fill an empty place at a friend's table, and Tommy took his
+place on the verandah. Tommy knew that this would be his best chance,
+possibly his last. The stars burned brightly in a clear warm sky, but
+there was no talk of tiger's eyes now. There was no talk at all for a
+long time; the pleasure of sheer propinquity was too great. Beatrice
+fairly luxuriated. She wondered why Tommy's silence affected her so
+differently from that of James....
+
+"Beatrice," began Tommy, but she switched him off.
+
+"No, please don't try to talk now, Tommy, there's a dear."
+
+They were silent again. The night stretched hugely before and above
+them; it was very still. A little night-breeze arose and touched their
+cheeks, but its message was only peace. Land and sea alike slept; not a
+sound reached them save the occasional clatter of distant wheels. Only
+the sky was awake, with its hundreds of winking eyes. Oh, these stars!
+Beatrice knew them so well. Antares, glowing like a dying coal, sank and
+fell below the hills, leaving the bright clusters of Sagittarius in
+dominion over the southern heavens. Fomalhaut rose in the southeast,
+shining with a dull chaotic luster, now green, now red. Fomalhaut, she
+remembered, was the southernmost of all the great stars visible in
+northern lands; its reign was the shortest of them all. And yet who
+could tell what might happen before that star finally fell from sight in
+the autumn?...
+
+"Beatrice!" at length began Tommy again, and this time she could not
+stop him. "Beatrice, we can't go on like this. We can't do it, I say, we
+can't! Don't you feel it?... That husband of yours.... Oh, Beatrice, I
+_can't_ stand by and watch it any longer!"
+
+He caught hold of her hand and clasped it between his. It remained limp
+there, press it as he would.... Then he saw that she was crying.
+
+He flung himself on his knees beside her, covering her hand with kisses.
+There was no conflict in him now, only a raging thirst for consummation.
+Harrow and Christchurch were thrown to the winds.
+
+"Beatrice," he whispered, "come away with me out of this damned
+place--away from the whole damned lot of them--frozen, church-going
+rotters! Let _me_ take care of you! I understand, Beatrice, I know how
+it is! Only come with me! Leave it all to me--no trouble, no worry,
+everything all right! _He'll_ be glad enough to free you--trust him! Oh,
+dear Beatrice...."
+
+He bent close over her, uttering all sort of impassioned foolishnesses.
+He kissed her, too, not once, but again and again, and with things he
+scarcely knew for kisses, so unlike were they to the lightly given and
+taken pledges of other days.
+
+And Beatrice was limp in his arms, as little able to stop him as to stop
+her tears.
+
+"Beatrice, we must go on _always_ like this! We _can't_ go back now, we
+can't let things go on as they were! Come away with me, Beatrice,
+to-night, now...."
+
+Beatrice thought how, only a year ago, not far from this very place,
+some one had used almost those very words to her, and the thought made
+her weep afresh. But her tears were not all tears of misery.
+
+At last she dried her eyes and pushed him gently away.
+
+"No, no more, Tommy--dear Tommy, you must stop. Really, Tommy! I don't
+know how I could let you go on this way--I seem to be so weak and silly
+these days.... I must take hold of myself...."
+
+"But, Beatrice--"
+
+"No, Tommy--not any more now. I know, I know, dear, but it can't go on
+any more. Now," she added with a momentary relapse of weakness. Then she
+pulled herself together again. "You must be perfectly quiet and good,
+now, Tommy, if you stay here. I've got to have a chance to get over this
+before we go in. It's very important--there's a lot at stake. Just sit
+there and don't speak a word. You can help me that way."
+
+They sat quietly together for some time. At last Beatrice rose.
+
+"I think I'll go," she said. "I shall be all right now."
+
+"But we can't leave it like this!" protested Tommy. "Beatrice, you can't
+go up there now...."
+
+"Can't I? I'm going, though."
+
+"No, you've got to give me an answer, Beatrice!"
+
+She turned to him for a moment before walking off. "I can't tell you
+anything now, Tommy. I don't know. Do you see? I honestly don't know.
+You'll have to wait."
+
+The hall seemed rather dark as they came into it; the others must have
+gone to bed. They locked doors and turned out lights and walked upstairs
+in the dark. They parted at the top with a whispered good-night, almost
+conspiratorial in effect, Beatrice found James still dressed and
+sitting under a droplight, reading. He put down his book as she entered
+and looked at his watch, which lay on the table by him.
+
+"After half-past twelve," he said. "Quite a pleasant evening."
+
+Beatrice made no observation.
+
+"The air has done you good," he went on. "We shall soon see the roses in
+your cheeks again."
+
+"If you have anything to say, James, perhaps you'd better go ahead and
+say it."
+
+"I? Oh, dear no! Any words of mine would be quite superfluous. The
+situation is complete as it is."
+
+Beatrice merely waited. She knew she would not wait in vain, nor did
+she.
+
+"Only, after this perhaps you'll save yourself the trouble of making up
+elaborate denials. You and your Tommy!..."
+
+He got up and started walking up and down the room with slow, measured
+steps. To Beatrice, still sitting quietly on the edge of her bed, the
+fall of his feet on the carpeted floor sounded like the inexorable tick
+of fate for once made audible to human ears. The greatest things hung in
+the balance at this moment; his next words would decide both their
+destinies for the rest of their mortal life. She thought she knew what
+they would be, but if there were to sound in them the faintest echo of a
+regret for older and better times she was ready, even at this last
+moment, to throw her whole being into an effort to help restore them.
+Tommy's passionate whisper still echoed in her ears, Tommy's kisses were
+scarcely cold upon her cheeks, but Tommy was not in her heart.
+
+At last James spoke. At the first sound of his voice Beatrice knew.
+
+"I shall receive a telegram calling me back to town to-morrow, in time
+for me to catch the evening train...."
+
+She was so occupied with the ultimate meaning of his words that their
+immediate meaning escaped her. She raised her eyes in question.
+
+"You're going away to-morrow? Why?"
+
+"Yes. I prefer not to remain here and watch it going on under my very
+eyes. It's a silly prejudice, no doubt, but you must pardon it...."
+
+He continued his pacing, keeping his eyes fixed on the floor in front of
+him. Occasionally he uttered a few sentences in the same cold, lifeless
+tone.
+
+"It's all over now, at any rate. I had hoped we might be able to tide
+these things over through these first years, till we got old enough to
+stop caring about them, but I was wrong. You can't govern things like
+that.... I always had a theory that any two sensible people could get
+along together in marriage, even though they didn't care much about each
+other, if they made up their minds to take a reasonable point of view;
+but I was wrong there too. Marriage is a bigger thing than I thought. I
+was wrong all around....
+
+"Just a year--not even that. I should have said it could go longer than
+that, even at the worst....
+
+"It's all in the blood, I suppose--rotten, decadent blood, in both of
+you. I don't blame you, especially. Your father's daughter--I might have
+known. I suppose I oughtn't to blame your father much more--it's the
+curse of your whole civilization. Only it's hard to confine one's anger
+to civilizations in such cases....
+
+"The strange part about you is that you gave no sign of it whatever
+beforehand. I had no suspicion, at all. I don't think any one could have
+told....
+
+"There's just one thing I should like to suggest. I don't know whether
+it will be comprehensible to you, but I have a certain respect for my
+family name and a sort of desire to spare the members of the family as
+much as possible. So that, although you're perfectly free to act exactly
+as you wish, I should appreciate it if you--if you could suspend
+operations as long as you remain under my uncle's roof. Though it's just
+as you like, of course.
+
+"I shall be in New York. You can let me know your plans there when you
+are ready. I suppose you'll want to sue, in which case it can't be done
+in New York state; you'll have to establish a residence somewhere else.
+Or if you prefer to have me sue, all right. That would save time, of
+course.... Let me know what you decide.
+
+"Well, we might as well go to bed, I suppose. It will be the last
+time...."
+
+Beatrice watched him as he took off his coat and waistcoat and threw
+them over a chair and then attacked his collar and tie. Then she arose
+from where she sat and addressed him.
+
+"I don't suppose there's any use in my saying anything. We might get
+quarreling again, and naturally you wouldn't believe me, anyway. I agree
+with you that it's impossible for us to live together any longer. But I
+can't forbear from telling you, James, that you've done me a great
+wrong. You've said things ... oh, you've said things so wrong to-night
+that it seems as if God himself--if there is a God--would speak from
+heaven and show you how wrong you are! But there's no use in mere human
+beings saying anything at a time like this....
+
+"You've been a very wicked man to-night, James. May God forgive you for
+it."
+
+She turned away with an air of finality and started to prepare for bed.
+She hung up her evening wrap in the closet and walked over to her
+bureau. She took off what jewelry she wore and put it carefully away,
+and then she seemed to hesitate. She stood looking at her reflection in
+the mirror a moment, but found no inspiration there. She walked
+inconclusively across the room and then back. Finally she stopped near
+James, with her back toward him.
+
+"It seems an absurd thing to ask," she said, "but would you mind? As you
+say, it's the last time...."
+
+"Certainly," said James.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XII
+
+A ROD OF IRON
+
+
+It is all very well to be suddenly called back to town by telegram on
+important business, but suppose the business is wholly fictitious--what
+are you going to do with yourself when you get there? Especially if you
+have your own reasons for not wanting Business to know that you have
+returned before the appointed time, and consequently are shy about
+appearing in clubs and places where it would be likely to get wind of
+your presence? And if, moreover, your apartment has been closed and all
+the servants sent off on a holiday?
+
+That is a fair example of the mean way sordid detail has of encroaching
+on the big things of life and destroying what little pleasure we might
+take in their dramatic value. When he arrived in New York James had the
+chastened, exalted feeling of one who has just passed a great and
+disagreeable crisis and got through with it, on the whole, very
+tolerably well. What he wanted most was to return to the routine of his
+old life and, so far as was possible, drown the nightmare recollection
+in a flood of work. Instead of which he found idleness and domestic
+inconvenience staring him in the face. He also saw that he was going to
+be lonely. He walked through the dark and empty rooms of his apartment
+and reflected what a difference even the mute presence of a servant
+would make. He longed whole-heartedly for Stodger--for Stodger since we
+last saw him has been promoted into manhood by nature and into
+full-fledged chauffeurhood--with the official appellation of McClintock,
+if you please--by James. With Stodger, who still retained jurisdiction
+over his suits and shoes, James was accustomed, when they were alone
+together, to throw off his role of employer and embark on technical
+heart-to-heart talks on differential gears and multiple-disc clutches
+and kindred intimate subjects. But Stodger was tasting the joys of leave
+of absence on full pay, James knew not where.
+
+He sought at first to beguile the hours with reading. He selected a
+number of works he had always meant to read but never quite got around
+to: a novel or two of Dickens, one of Thackeray, one of Meredith, "The
+Origin of Species," Carlyle's "French Revolution," "The Principles of
+Political Economy" and "Tristram Shandy." Steadily his eyes sickened of
+print; by the time he came to Mill his brain refused to absorb and
+visions of the very things he wished most to be free from hovered
+obstinately over the pages. "Tristram Shandy" was even more unbearable;
+he conceived an insane dislike for those interminable, ineffectual old
+people and their terrestrial-minded creator. At last he flung the book
+into the fireplace and strode despairingly out into the streets.
+
+Oh, Beatrice--would she never send him word, put things definitely in
+motion, in no matter what direction? Oh, this confounded brain of his;
+would it never stop trying to re-picture old scenes, revive dead
+feelings, animate unborn regrets? What had he done but what he should
+have done, what he could not help doing, what it had been written that
+he should do since the first moment when thoughts above those of a beast
+were put into man's brain? Oh, the curse of a brain that would not live
+up to its own laws, but continually kept flashing those visions of
+outworn things across his eyes--not his two innocent physical eyes,
+which saw nothing but what was put before them, but that redoubtable,
+inescapable, ungovernable inward sight which, as he remembered some poet
+had said, was "the bliss of solitude." The bliss of solitude--how like a
+driveling ass of a poet!...
+
+The next day he gave up and went back to his office as usual, saying
+that he had returned from his vacation a few days ahead of time in order
+to transact some business that had come up unexpectedly. Just what the
+business was he did not explain; he was now the head of McClellan's New
+York branch and did not have to explain things.
+
+So the hours between nine and five ceased to be an intolerable burden,
+and the hours from five till bedtime could be whiled away at the club in
+discussing the baseball returns. He could always find some one who was
+willing to talk about professional baseball. He remembered how he had
+once similarly talked golf with Harry....
+
+That left only the night hours to be accounted for, and sleep accounted
+for most of them, of course. Sometimes. At other times sleep refused to
+come and nothing stood between him and the inmost thoughts of his brain,
+or worse, the thoughts that he did not think, never would think, as long
+as a brain and a will remained to him.... Such times he would always end
+by turning on the light and reading. They gave him a feeling like that
+of which he had spoken to Beatrice about being caught in a trap,
+deepened and intensified; a feeling to be avoided at any price.
+
+At last he heard, not indeed from Beatrice, but from Aunt Selina.
+"Beatrice arrives New York noon Thursday; for Heaven's sake do
+something," she telegraphed. James knew what that meant, and thanked
+Aunt Selina from the bottom of his heart. No scandal--nothing that would
+reflect on the family name! So Beatrice had determined not to accede to
+his last request; she was bent on rushing madly into her Tommy's arms,
+perhaps at the very station itself? Oh, no, nothing of _that_ sort, if
+you please; he would be at the station himself to see to it.
+
+It was extraordinary how much getting back to work had benefited him. He
+was no longer subject to the dreadful fits of depression that had made
+his idleness a torment. Only keep going, only have something to occupy
+hands and mind during every waking hour, and all would yet be well.
+Beatrice and all that she implied had only to be kept out of his mind to
+be rendered innocuous; all that was needed to keep her out was a little
+will power, and he had plenty of that. As for the sleeping hours--well,
+he had come to have rather a dread of the night time. No doubt some
+simple medical remedy, however, would put that all right--sulphonal, or
+something of the sort. He would consult a doctor. No unprescribed drugs
+for him--no careless overdose, or anything of that sort, no indeed! The
+time had yet to come when James Wimbourne could not keep pace with the
+strong ones of the earth and walk with head erect under all the burdens
+that a malicious fate might heap upon him.
+
+In such a vein as this ran his thoughts as he walked from his apartment
+to the station that Thursday morning. It was a cool day in early
+September; a fresh easterly breeze blew in from the Sound bringing with
+it the first hint of autumn and seeming to infuse fresh blood into his
+veins. As he walked down Madison Avenue even the familiar sounds of the
+city, the clanging of the trolley cars, the tooting of motor horns, the
+rumbling of drays, even the clatter of steam drills or rivet machines
+seemed like outward manifestations of the life he felt surging anew
+within him. Was it not indeed something very like a new life that was to
+begin for him to-day, this very morning? Not the kind of new life of
+which the poets babbled, no youthful dream, but something far solider
+and nobler, a mature reconstruction, a courageous gathering together, or
+rather regathering--that made it all the finer--of the fragments of an
+outworn existence. That was what human life was, a succession of
+repatchings and rebuildings. He who rebuilt with the greatest promptness
+and courage and ingenuity was the best liver.
+
+Viewed in this broad and health-bringing light the last months of his
+life appeared less of a failure than he had been wont to think. He
+became able to look back on this year of destiny-fighting as, if not
+actually successful, better than successful, since it led on to better
+things and gave him a chance to show his mettle, his power of
+reconstruction. He had made a mistake, no doubt; but he was willing to
+recognize it as such and do his best to rectify it. Beatrice and he were
+not cut out for team-mates in the business of destiny-fighting; it had
+become evident that they could both get on better alone. Well, at last
+they had come to the point of parting; to the point, he hoped, of being
+able to part like fellow-soldiers whose company is disbanded, in
+friendship and good humor, without recrimination or any of that
+detestable God-forgive-you business....
+
+He wished the newsboys would not shout so loud; their shrill uncanny
+shrieks interrupted his line of thought, in spite of himself. It didn't
+matter if they were calling extras; he never bought extras. Or was it
+only a regular edition? They might be announcing the trump of doom for
+all one could understand.
+
+It was too bad that Beatrice had not arrived at anything like his own
+state of sanity and calmness. This business of eloping--oh, it was so
+ludicrous, so amateurish! That was not the way to live. He hoped he
+might be able to make her see this. It would be easier, of course, if
+Tommy were not at the station; one could not tell what arrangements a
+woman in her condition might make. But he did not fear Tommy; there
+would be no scene. A few firm words from him and they would see things
+in their proper light. He pictured himself and Beatrice repairing sanely
+and amicably to a lawyer's office together;--"Please tell us the
+quickest and easiest way to be divorced...."
+
+As he approached Forty-second Street the traffic grew heavier and
+noisier. He could not think properly now; watching for a chance to
+traverse the frequent cross streets took most of his attention. And
+those newsboys--! Why on earth should those newspaper fellows send out
+papers marked "Late Afternoon Edition" at half-past eleven in the
+morning? Oh, it was an extra, was it? A fire on the East Side, no doubt,
+two people injured--he knew the sort of thing. If those newspaper
+fellows would have the sense only to get out an extra when something
+_really_ important had happened somebody might occasionally buy them.
+
+Seeing that he had plenty of time he walked slowly round to the
+Forty-second Street entrance instead of going in the side way. He
+observed the great piles of building and rebuilding that were going on
+in the neighborhood, and compared the reconstruction of the quarter to
+his own case. He wondered why they delayed in making the Park Avenue
+connecting bridge--such an integral part of the scheme. If _he_ had
+shilly-shallied like that, a nice mess he would have made of his life!
+He gazed up at the great new front of the station and bumped into a
+stentorian newsboy. Everywhere those confounded newsboys--!
+
+He was actually in the station before he had any suspicion. There was
+about the usual number of people in the great waiting-room, but there
+seemed to be more hurrying than usual. He saw one or two people dart
+across the space, and observed that they did not disappear into the
+train gates.... Had he or had he not caught the word "wreck" on one of
+those flaunting headlines in the street? He turned off suddenly to a
+news stand and bought a paper.
+
+There it all was, in black and white--or rather red and white. Red
+letters, five inches high.
+
+Train 64, the Maine Special, had run through an open switch and turned
+turtle somewhere near Stamford. Fifteen reported killed, others injured.
+No names given.
+
+The Maine Special. Beatrice's train.
+
+He knew that he must devote all his efforts at this juncture to keep
+himself from thinking. Until he knew, that was. He did not even allow
+himself to name the thoughts he was afraid of giving birth to. Anxiety,
+hope, fear, premonition, horror, satisfaction, pity--he must put them
+all away from him. There was no telling what future horrors he might be
+led into if he gave way ever so little to any one of them. The one thing
+to do now was to _find out_.
+
+This was not so easy. He went first to the bulletin board where the
+arrivals of trains were announced, and found a small and anxious-eyed
+crowd gazing at the few uninforming statements marked in white chalk.
+There was nothing to be learned from them. He spoke to an official, who
+was equally reticent, and spoke vaguely of a relief train.
+
+"Do you mean to say there's no way of finding out the names of those
+killed before the relief train comes in?" he asked.
+
+"We can't tell you what we don't know!" replied the man, already too
+inured to such questions to show feeling of any sort. He then directed
+James to the office of the railroad press agent, on the eighth floor.
+
+James started to ask another question, but was interrupted by a young
+woman who hurried up to the official. She held a little girl of seven or
+eight by the hand, and the eyes of both were streaming with tears. The
+sight struck James as odd in that cold, impersonal, schedule-run place,
+and he swerved as he walked off to look at them. He turned again
+abruptly and went his way, stifling an involuntary rise of a feeling
+which might have been very like envy, if he had allowed himself to think
+about it....
+
+And no one else had even noticed the two.
+
+He found no one in the press office except a few newspaper reporters who
+sat about on tables with their hats balanced on the backs of their
+heads. They eyed him suspiciously but said nothing. An inner door opened
+and a young man in his shirtsleeves, a stenographer, entered the room
+bearing a number of typewritten flimsies. The reporters pounced upon
+these and rushed away in search of telephones.
+
+James asked the young man if he could see Mr. Barker, the agent.
+
+The young man said Mr. Barker was busy, and asked James what paper he
+represented.
+
+James said none.
+
+On what business, then, did James want to see Mr. Barker?
+
+To learn the fate of some one on the Maine Special.
+
+A friend?
+
+A wife.
+
+The stenographer dropped his lower jaw, but said nothing. He immediately
+opened the inner door and led James up to an older man who sat dictating
+to a young woman at a typewriter. He was plump and clean-shaven and very
+neat about the collar and tie; James did not realize that this was the
+agent until the younger man told him so.
+
+"My dear sir," replied Mr. Barker to James' question, "I know absolutely
+no more about it than you do. If I did, I'd tell you. The boys have been
+hammering away at me for the past hour, and I've given 'em every word
+that's come in. These two names are all I've got so far." He handed
+James a flimsy.
+
+James' eye fell upon the names of two men, both described as traveling
+salesmen. He went back to the outer office and sat down to think. It
+was, of course, extremely improbable that Beatrice had been killed.
+There had been, say, two hundred people on the train, of whom fifteen
+were known to have died--something like seven and a half per cent. Two
+of these were accounted for; that left thirteen. He wondered how long it
+would be before those thirteen names came in.
+
+The room began to fill up again; the reporters returned and new recruits
+constantly swelled their number. From their talk James gathered why
+there was such a dearth of detailed news. The wreck occurring during the
+waking hours of the day had been learned, as far as the mere fact of its
+occurrence was concerned, and published within half an hour after it had
+happened. It naturally took longer than this to do even the first work
+of clearing the wreckage and the compiling of the lists of dead and
+injured would require even more time. With the results that interested
+friends and relations, learning of the wreck but none of its
+particulars, were rushing pell-mell to headquarters to get the first
+news. One young man described in vivid terms certain things he had just
+witnessed down in the concourse.
+
+"Best sob stuff in months," was his one comment.
+
+Just then one of their number, a slightly older man and evidently a
+leader among them, emerged from the inner office.
+
+"What about it, Wilkins?" they greeted him in chorus. "Slip it, Wilkins,
+slip it over! Give us the dope! Any more stiffs yet? Come on, out with
+it--no beats on this story, you know...."
+
+Harpies!
+
+The outer door opened and two women burst into the room. The first of
+them, a tall, stout, good-featured Jewess, clothed in deep mourning, was
+wildly gasping and beating her hands on her breast.
+
+"Can any of you tell me about a young man called Lindenbaum?" she asked
+between her sobs. "Lindenbaum--a young man--on Car fifty-six he was! Has
+anything been heard of him--anything?"
+
+The reporters promptly told her that nothing had. She sank into a chair,
+covered her face with her hands and burst into an uncontrollable fit of
+weeping. The younger woman, evidently her daughter, stood by trying to
+comfort her. At length the other raised her veil and wearily wiped her
+eyes. James studied her face; her sunken eyes no less than her black
+clothes gave evidence of an older sorrow. Moved by a sudden impulse he
+went over and spoke to her, telling her that her son was in all
+probability safe and basing his assurance on the calm mathematical
+grounds of his own reasoning. The woman did not understand much of what
+he said, but the quiet tones of his voice seemed to comfort her. She
+rose and started to go.
+
+"Thank you," she said to James, "you're a nice boy.--Oh, I do hope God
+will spare him to me--only nineteen, he is, and the only man I have
+left, all I have left...."
+
+Sob stuff!
+
+Scarcely had the door closed behind her when a business man of about
+forty-five, prosperous, well-dressed and unemotional-looking, came in
+and asked if the name of his daughter was on the list of the dead. Some
+one said it was not.
+
+"Thank God," said the man in a weak voice. He raised his hand to his
+forehead, closed his eyes and fell over backward in a dead faint. When
+he came to he had to be told that the names of only three of the dead
+were as yet known.
+
+These were the first of a long series of scenes such as James would not
+have thought possible off the stage. He had never seen people mastered
+by an overwhelming anxiety before; it was interesting to learn that they
+acted in such cases much as they were generally supposed to. Anxiety, he
+reflected, was perhaps the most intolerable emotion known to man. Yet as
+he sat there calmly waiting for the arrival of the relief train he could
+have wished that he might have tasted the full horror of it.... No, that
+was mere hysteria, of course. But there was something holy about such a
+feeling; it was like a sort of cleansing, a purifying by fire.... Was it
+that his soul was not worthy of such a purifying? Oh, hysterics again!
+
+But the purifying of others went on before his eyes as he sat trying not
+to think or feel and reading the bulletins as they came out from the
+inner office. Grotesquely unimportant, those bulletins, or so they must
+seem to those concerned for the fate of friends!
+
+"General Traffic Manager Albert S. Holden learned by telegram of the
+accident to Train 64 near Stamford this morning and immediately hurried
+to Stamford by special train. Mr. Holden will conduct an investigation
+into the causes of the accident in conjunction with Coroner Francis X.
+Willis of Stamford."
+
+"One young woman among the injured was identified as Miss Fannie Schmidt
+of Brooklyn. She was taken to the Stamford hospital suffering from
+contusions."
+
+"Patrick F. McGuire, the engineer of Train 64 which ran through an open
+switch near Stamford this morning, has been in the employ of the Company
+for many years. He was severely cut about the face and head. He has been
+engineer of the Maine Special since the 23rd of last May, prior to which
+he had worked as engineer on Train 102. He began his service in the
+Company in 1898 as fireman on the Naugatuck Division...."
+
+"Vice-President Henry T. Blomberg gave out in New Haven this morning the
+following statement concerning the accident at Stamford...."
+
+"Whew!" exclaimed a reporter, issuing suddenly from a telephone booth
+near James, "this is _some_ story, believe me!" He took off his hat and
+wiped his forehead. He was a young man and looked somewhat more like a
+human being than the others.
+
+"Oh, you'd call this harrowing, would you?" said James.
+
+"Well," said the other apologetically, "I've only been on the job a few
+months and this human interest stuff sort of gets me. This is the first
+big one of the kind I've been on. I guess there's enough human interest
+here to-day for any one, though!"
+
+"There doesn't seem to be enough to inconvenience you," observed James.
+"Not you, so much, but--" with a wave toward the reporters'
+table--"those--the others."
+
+The young man laughed slightly. "Oh, you can stand pretty near anything
+after you've been on the job for a while! You see, when you're on the
+news end of a thing like this you don't have time to get worked up. When
+you're hot foot after every bit of stuff you can get, and have to hustle
+to the telephone to send it in the same minute, so's not to get beaten
+on it, you don't bother about whether people have hysterics or not. You
+simply can't--you haven't got time! That's why these fellows all seem so
+calm--it's _business_ to them, you see. They're not really hard-hearted,
+or anything like that. Gosh, it's lucky for me, though, that I'm here on
+business, if I have to be here at all!"
+
+"You mean you're glad you don't know any one on the train?"
+
+"Oh, Lord yes, that--but I'm glad I have something to keep me busy, as
+long as I'm here. If I were just standing round, watching, say--gosh, I
+wouldn't answer for what I'd do! I'd probably have hysterics myself,
+just from seeing the others!"
+
+This gave James something more to think about.
+
+He saw now that he had misjudged the reporters; even these harpies gave
+him something to envy. If one was going to feel indifferent at a time
+like this it would be well to feel at least an honest professional
+indifference.... But that was not all. Had not this young man admitted
+that the mere sight of such suffering would have stirred him to the
+depths if he did not have his business to think of, and that without
+being personally concerned in the accident? While he himself, with every
+reason to suffer every anxiety in this crucial moment, was quite the
+calmest person in the room, able to lecture a hysterical mother on the
+doctrine of chances! Was he dead to all human feeling?
+
+There was a moment of calm in the room, which was broken by the
+entrance of a tall blonde young man--a college undergraduate, to all
+appearances.
+
+"Can any of you tell me if Car 1058 was on the Maine Special?" he asked
+the reporters.
+
+No one had heard of Car 1058. Research among the bulletins failed to
+reveal any mention of it.
+
+"What's the name of the person you're interested in?" asked some one.
+"We might be able to tell you something."
+
+"Oh, it wasn't any _person_," the young man explained; "it was my dog I
+was looking for. I've found he was shipped on Car 1058. A water spaniel,
+he was. I don't suppose you've heard anything?"
+
+A moment of silence followed this announcement, and then one of the
+reporters began to laugh. There was nothing funny about it, of course,
+except the contrast. They all knew it was by the merest accident that
+Fannie Schmidt's contusions had been flashed over the wires rather than
+the fate of the water spaniel.
+
+The youth flushed to the roots of his yellow hair.
+
+"Oh, yes, it's very funny, of course," he said, and stalked out of the
+room. But there shone another light in his eyes than the gleam of anger.
+
+"Say, there's copy in that," observed one reporter, and straightway they
+were all busy writing.
+
+James had smiled with the others, but his merriment was short-lived.
+This indeed was the finishing stroke. That young fellow actually was
+more concerned about his dog....
+
+The relief train was due to arrive at 1:30, and shortly before that hour
+there was a general adjournment to the concourse. A crowd had already
+gathered before the gate through which the survivors would presently
+file. James looked at the waiting people and shuddered slightly. He
+preferred not to wait there.
+
+Passing by a news stand he bought the latest extra. It was curious to
+see the contents of those press agent flimsies transcribed on the
+flaring columns as the livest news obtainable. Well, all that would be
+changed shortly.... His own name caught his eye; a paragraph was devoted
+to telling how he had waited in the station, and why. "Mr. Wimbourne was
+entirely calm and self-contained," the item ended. Calm and
+self-contained. And those people took it for a virtue!...
+
+The gates were opened to allow the friends of passengers on the
+ill-fated train to pass through to the platform. The reporters were
+unusually silent as James walked by. James knew what their silence
+meant, and writhed under it.
+
+The platform was dark and chilly. Like a tomb, almost.... The idea was
+suggestive, but his heart was stone against it. The thought of seeing
+Beatrice walking up the platform in a moment was enough to check any
+possible indulgence of feeling. That was the way such things always had
+been rewarded, with him. He could not remember having entertained one
+such emotional impulse in the past that had not led him into fresh
+misery.
+
+He had waited nearly two hours and there was absolutely no indication as
+to whether Beatrice had suffered or not. He had telephoned several times
+to his flat, to which the servants had lately returned, and to his
+office and had learned that no word had been received at either place.
+That meant nothing. Five names of people killed had been received when
+he left the press office, and hers was not among them. But the number of
+dead was said to be larger than was at first expected; it would probably
+reach into the twenties. Part of one Pullman, it appeared, had been
+entirely destroyed by fire, and several people were believed to have
+perished in it. There was no telling, of course, till the train came in.
+The chances were still overwhelmingly in favor of Beatrice's safety, of
+course....
+
+One torment had been spared him: Tommy had not turned up. There would be
+no scene; he would not have to look on while his wife and her lover,
+maddened by the pangs of separation and suspense, rushed into each
+other's arms.... Ah, no; he would not deceive himself. His relief at
+Tommy's absence was really due to the fact that he had been spared the
+sight of some one genuinely and whole-heartedly anxious about Beatrice's
+fate.
+
+The train crawled noiselessly into the station. James posted himself
+near the inner end of the platform, so as to be sure not to miss her.
+Soon groups began to file by of people laughing and crying and embracing
+each other, as unconscious to appearances as children. How many happy
+reunions, how many quarrels and misunderstandings mended forever by an
+hour or two of intense suffering!... No, that was a foolish thought, of
+course.
+
+Presently he saw her, or rather a hat which he recognized as hers,
+moving up the platform. He braced himself and walked forward with
+lowered eyes, trying to think of something felicitous to say. He dared
+not look up till she was quite near. At last he raised a hand toward
+her, opened his mouth to speak, and found himself staring into the face
+of a perfectly strange woman.
+
+The mischance unnerved him. He lost control of himself and darted
+aimlessly to and fro through the crowd for a few moments, like a rabbit.
+Then he rushed back to the gate and stood there watching till the last
+passenger had left the platform and white shrouded things on wheels
+began to appear.
+
+He saw a uniformed official and addressed him, asking where he could
+find a complete list of the dead and injured. The man silently handed
+him a paper. James ran his eyes feverishly down the list of names. There
+it was--Wim--no, no, Wilson. Her name was not there. He raised his eyes
+questioningly to the official.
+
+"No, that list is not complete," said the man.
+
+He led James away to one or two other uniformed officials, and then to a
+man who was not in uniform. At length it was arranged; James was to take
+the first train for Stamford. Some one gave him a pass.
+
+But before he went he telegraphed to Bar Harbor. It was necessary to
+have conclusive proof that Beatrice was on the train. As he recrossed
+the concourse, now converted into a happy hunting ground for the
+reporters, he caught sight of Mrs. Lindenbaum, the anxious mother. She
+was alone, but the expression on her face left no doubt as to how the
+day had turned out for her. He stopped and spoke to her:
+
+"Your son is all right, is he?"
+
+"Yes!" She turned toward him a face fairly transfigured with joy. "He
+wasn't hurt at all--just scratched a little by broken glass. He and my
+daughter have just gone to telephone to some people.... What do you
+think--he was the first one in his car to break open a window and let
+the smoke out! He reached up with his umbrella and smashed it open--that
+was how he got out. And he dragged out three people who were
+unconscious...." She stopped and laughed. "You must excuse me--I'm
+foolish!"
+
+"Not at all," replied James. "I'm so glad--" He started to move on, but
+the woman stopped him, suddenly remembering.
+
+"But what about--I do hope--" she began.
+
+"No," said James quietly. "I'm sorry to say my news is bad." He had
+little doubt now as to the verdict, but bad--! Was it? Oh, was it?
+
+ * * * * *
+
+It was early evening before he returned. His expedition had been painful
+in the extreme, but wholly without definite results. There had been one
+or two charred fragments of clothing that might or might not have
+been.... It was too horrible to think much about.
+
+He knew for certain no more than when he started out, but conviction was
+only increased, for all that. What was there left to imagine but what
+that heap of cinders suggested? There was just one other chance, one
+bare possibility; Beatrice might not have left Bar Harbor, at any rate
+not on that train. The answer to his telegram would settle that.
+
+He found the yellow envelope awaiting him on the hall table. He lifted
+it slowly and paused a moment before opening it, wondering if he could
+trust himself to hope or feel anything in this final instant of
+uncertainty. Anything! Any human feeling to break this shell of
+indifference....
+
+No use. Something in his brain refused to work.
+
+He tore open the envelope. "Beatrice left last night on the seven
+o'clock ferry; nothing more known. Please wire latest news," he read.
+
+Well, that settled it, at any rate. He knew what the facts were; now he
+had only to bring himself face to face with them. Yet still he found
+himself dodging the issue, letting his thoughts wander into obscure
+by-paths. His brain was strangely lethargic, his heart more so, if
+possible, than in the station this morning. It was not that he felt
+bitter or cruel; he explained the situation to the maid, as she served
+him his dinner, with great tact and consideration, and afterward
+arranged certain matters of detail with all his usual care and
+foresight. It was only when he looked into himself that he met darkness.
+
+Uncle James, who was in town on business, dropped in during the evening.
+James told him the results of his labors and watched the first
+hopefulness of his uncle's face freeze gradually into conviction.
+
+"I see, I see," said Uncle James at last. "There's nothing more to be
+done, then? Any use I can be, in any way--"
+
+"Thank you," replied James gravely, "there's nothing more to be done."
+
+Uncle James rose to go and then hesitated. "Well, there it is," he said;
+"it's just got to be faced, I suppose. A major sorrow--the great blow of
+a lifetime. Not many of us are called upon to bear such great things,
+James. I never have been, and never shall, now. We feel less sharply as
+we grow older.... It's a great sorrow, a great trial--but I can't help
+feeling, somehow, that it's also a great chance.... But I'm only
+harrowing you--I'm sorry." He turned and went out without another word.
+
+Presently James wandered into the bedroom that had once been hers. He
+turned on all the lights as if in the hope that illuminating the places
+she had been familiar with would bring the memory of her more sharply to
+his mind. Yes, it all seemed very natural; he would not say but what it
+made death less terrible. The fact that her chair was in its accustomed
+place before her dressing table did somehow make it easier to remember
+the events of that afternoon. He sat down before the dressing table.
+There was little on it to bring an intimate recollection of her to his
+mind; most of her small possessions she had naturally taken away with
+her to Bar Harbor. He opened a drawer and discovered nothing but a small
+box of hairpins.
+
+He took them out and handled them gently for a moment. Hairpins! Even
+so, they brought her back more vividly than anything had yet done--the
+soft dark hair sweeping back from the forehead, the lovely arch of her
+nose, and all the rest of it.... He supposed she ought to seem aloof and
+unapproachable, now that she was dead, but it was not so at all. He
+remembered her only as feminine and appealing. She certainly had been
+very beautiful. And of all that beauty there remained only--hairpins.
+The fact of human mortality pressed suddenly down on him. Some time, a
+few days or a few decades hence, he would cease to exist, even as
+Beatrice, and nothing would remain of him but--Not hairpins, indeed, but
+hardly anything more substantial. A society pin, a little gold
+football, a few papers bearing his signatures in McClellan's files....
+
+Poor Beatrice!
+
+A feeling touched his heart at last; one of pity. Poor Beatrice! Fate
+had treated her harshly, far beneath her deserts. She had sinned.... Had
+she? It was not for him to settle that; she had been human, even as he.
+She had been frail; leave it at that. The strongest of us are weak at
+times. Only most of us are given a chance to regain our strength, pull
+ourselves together after a fall, make something out of ourselves at
+last. This opportunity had been denied Beatrice. Surely it was hard that
+she should be cut off thus in the depth of her frailty, at the lowest
+ebb of all that was good in her. The weakest deserved better than that.
+
+So he sat meditating on the tragedy of her life as he might, in an idle
+mood, have brooded over the story of a lovely and unhappy queen of long
+ago, some appealing, wistful figure of the past with whom he had nothing
+in common but mortality. The sense of his own detachment from the story
+of his wife's life struck him at last and roused him to fresh pity. He
+went into his dressing room and fetched the photograph of her that he
+had thought it advisable to keep on his bureau. He stood it up on her
+dressing table and sat down again to study it. Poor Beatrice! It was
+pathetic that she, so young, so beautiful, so lonely, should be
+unmourned, since his feeling could not properly be described as
+mourning....
+
+"Poor Beatrice," he murmured, "is pity all I can feel for you?"
+
+A bell sounded somewhere, the front door bell. He scarcely noticed it.
+
+No, there was one person to mourn her, of course--Tommy. The thought of
+him sent a sudden shudder through him. Tommy! He wondered if he could
+bring himself to be decent to Tommy in case he should turn up.... Just
+like him, the nauseous little brute!
+
+No, that thought was unworthy of him. What particular grudge had he
+against Tommy? Hitherto he had not even taken the trouble to despise
+Tommy, and surely there was no point in beginning now. No, he must be
+decent to Tommy, if the occasion should arise.
+
+But that Tommy should be chief mourner! Poor Beatrice!...
+
+Presently he roused himself with a slight start. He did not wish to
+grudge his wife what slight homage he could pay her, but he felt that he
+had perhaps gone far enough. One felt what one could; harping over
+things was merely morbid. He rose and quietly left the room.
+
+The lights in the hall seemed dim and low. A gentle glow shone through
+the living room door. That was odd; he thought he remembered turning out
+the light in the room before he left it. Then he became aware of a
+sentence or two being spoken in a low voice in that room, and the next
+moment one of the servants walked out of the door and into the hall.
+
+He brushed past her, wondering who could have arrived at this time of
+night. At the door he stopped, strained his eyes to pierce the
+half-gloom and became aware of a figure standing before him, a silent,
+black-robed figure, full of a strange portent....
+
+Aunt Selina.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIII
+
+RED FLAME
+
+
+"James, is it true--what she just told me?" Her voice was full of
+anxiety and horror, but in some curious way she still managed to be the
+self-possessed Aunt Selina of old. Even in that moment James found time
+to admire her.
+
+"Yes, Aunt Selina, I'm afraid it's true."
+
+"Is there no hope, no chance--"
+
+"None, that I can see."
+
+"Then ... oh!" She gave way at that, seeming to crumple where she stood.
+James helped her to a sofa and silently went into the dining room and
+mixed some whisky and water. Aunt Selina stared when he offered it to
+her, and then took it without a word. How like Aunt Selina again! A fool
+would have raised objections. James almost smiled.
+
+"How do you happen to be here, Aunt Selina?" he asked after a few
+moments, less in the desire of knowing than in the hope of diverting
+her. "You didn't come from Bar Harbor to-day?"
+
+"From Boston."
+
+"Boston?"
+
+"I took the boat to Boston last night. I learned of the accident there.
+I supposed she was safe--the papers said nothing."
+
+"Yes, I know. But--but how did you happen to leave Bar Harbor at all?"
+
+"I was going to meet her here."
+
+"Her?"
+
+"Beatrice."
+
+"I don't understand."
+
+"No, and oh, my poor boy, I've got to make you!" She said this quietly,
+almost prayerfully, with the air of a person laboring under a weighty
+mission. James had no reply to offer and walked off feeling curiously
+uncomfortable. There was a long silence.
+
+"Come over here and sit down, James; I want to talk to you," said Aunt
+Selina at last. She spoke in her natural tone of voice; there was no
+more of the priestess about her. There was that about her, however, that
+made him obey.
+
+"James, I've got to tell you a few things about Beatrice. Some things I
+don't believe you know. Do you mind?"
+
+"No," said James slowly, "I don't know that I do."
+
+"Well, in the first place, I suppose you thought she was in love with
+that Englishman?"
+
+James nodded.
+
+"Well, she wasn't--not one particle. Whatever else may or may not be
+true, that is. She despised him."
+
+James froze, paused as though deciding whether or not to discuss the
+matter and then said gently: "I have my own ideas about that, Aunt
+Selina."
+
+She nodded briefly, almost briskly. It was the most effective reply she
+could have made. The more businesslike the words the greater the
+impression on James, always, in any matter. Aunt Selina understood
+perfectly. She let her effect sink in and waited calmly for him to
+demand proof. This he did at last, going to the very heart of the
+subject.
+
+"Then perhaps, Aunt Selina, you can account for certain things...."
+
+"No, I shall only tell you what I know. You must do your own
+accounting." She paused a moment and then went on: "You've heard nothing
+since you left Bar Harbor, I suppose?"
+
+"Nothing."
+
+"Beatrice was quite ill for a time after you left. For days she lay in
+bed unable to move, but there seemed to be nothing specific the matter
+with her. We called in the doctor and he said the same old thing--rest
+and fresh air. He knew considerably less what was the matter with her
+than any one else in the house, which is saying a good deal.
+
+"Lord Clairloch left the day after you did. Beatrice saw him once, that
+evening, and sent him away. The next day he went, saying vaguely that he
+had to go back to New York.
+
+"James, of course I knew. I couldn't live in the house with the two
+people I cared most for in the world and not see things, not _feel_
+things. The only wonder is that nobody else guessed. It seemed
+incredible to me, who was so keenly alive to the whole business. Time
+and time again when Cecilia opened her mouth to speak to me I thought
+she was going to talk about that, and then she would speak about some
+unimportant subject, and I blessed her for her denseness. And how I
+thanked Heaven that that sharp-nosed little minx Ruth wasn't there!
+She'd have smelt the whole thing out in no time.
+
+"Gradually Beatrice mended. Her color came back and she seemed stronger.
+At last one evening--only Tuesday it was; think of it!--she came down to
+dinner with a peculiar sort of glitter in her eyes. She told us that she
+felt able to travel and was going to New York the next day. She had
+engaged her accommodations and everything. Of course I knew what that
+meant....
+
+"Knowledge can be a terrible thing, James. For days it had preyed on me,
+and now when the moment for action came I was almost too weak to
+respond. Oh, how I was tempted to sit back and say nothing and let
+things take their course!... But I simply couldn't fall back in the end,
+I simply couldn't. After bedtime that evening I went to the door of her
+room and knocked.
+
+"I found her in the midst of packing. I told her I had something to say
+to her and would wait till she was ready. She said she was listening.
+
+"'Beatrice,' said I, 'I've always tried to mind my own business above
+all things, but I'm going to break my rule now. I'm fond of you,
+Beatrice; if I offend you remember that. I simply can't watch you throw
+your life away without raising a finger to stop you.'
+
+"She didn't flare up, she didn't even ask me how I knew; she only gave a
+sort of groan and said: 'Oh, but Aunt Selina, I haven't any life to
+throw away! It's all been burned and frozen out of me; there's nothing
+left but a shell, and that won't last long! Can't you let me pass the
+little that remains in peace? That's all I ask for--I gave up happiness
+long ago. It won't last long! It can hurt no one!'
+
+"'You have an immortal soul,' said I; 'you can hurt that.'
+
+"She sat looking at the floor for a while and then said imploringly:
+'Don't ask me to go back to James, Aunt Selina, for that's the one thing
+I can't do.' 'I shan't ask you to do anything,' I told her, but I knew
+perfectly well that I was prepared to go down on my knees before her,
+when the time came....
+
+"But it hadn't come yet--there was a great deal to be done first. What I
+did was to tell her something about my own life, in the hope that it
+might throw a new light on her situation. I told her things that I've
+never told to a human being and never expected to tell another....
+
+"James, I think I ought to tell you the whole thing, as I told it to
+her. It may help you to understand ... certain things you must
+understand. Do you mind?"
+
+She paused, less for the purpose of obtaining his consent than in order
+to gain a perfect control over her voice and manner. Taking James'
+silence as acquiescence she folded her hands in her lap and went on in a
+low quiet voice:
+
+"I haven't had much of a life, according to most ways of thinking. All I
+ever knew of life, as I suppose you know it, was concentrated into a few
+months. Not that I didn't have a good time during my girlhood and youth.
+My mother died when I was a baby, but my stepmother took as good care of
+me as if I had been her own child, and I loved her almost like my own
+mother. I've often thought, though, that if my mother had lived things
+might have turned out differently. Stepmothers are never quite the same
+thing.
+
+"Well, I grew up and flew about with the college boys in the usual way.
+I never cared a rap for any of them, beyond the bedtime raptures that
+girls go through. I was able to manage them all pretty easily; I see now
+that I was too attractive to them. I had a great deal of what in those
+days was referred to as 'animation,' which is another way of saying that
+I was an active, strong-willed, selfish little savage. I was willing to
+play with the college men, but I always said that when I fell in love it
+would be with a _real_ man. I laughed when I said it, but I meant it.
+
+"Presently there came a change. Father died, and when I came out of
+mourning the college men I knew best had graduated and the others seemed
+too young and silly for me even to play with. It was at about this time,
+when I was adjusting myself to new conditions and casting about for
+something to occupy my mind that I came to know Milton Leffert."
+
+James stirred slightly. Aunt Selina smiled.
+
+"Yes, you've heard of him, of course. It gives one a curious feeling,
+doesn't it, to learn that dead people, or people who are as good as
+dead, have had their lives? I know, I know ... I think you'd have liked
+Milton Leffert. He was very quiet and not at all striking in appearance,
+but he was strong and there was no nonsense about him. He was more than
+ten years older than I. I had known him only slightly before that time.
+Then after Father's death he began coming to see me a good deal and we
+fell into the habit of walking and driving together. I always liked him.
+I loved talking with him; he was the first man I ever talked much with
+on serious subjects. He stimulated me, and I enjoyed being with him.
+Only, it never occurred to me that he could be the Real Man.
+
+"You've often heard of women refusing men because of their poverty.
+Well, the chief thing that prejudiced me against Milton Leffert was his
+wealth. He happened to possess a large fortune made and left to him by
+his father, and he didn't do much except take care of it, together with
+that of his sister Jane. He was president of the one concern his father
+had not sold out before he died, but that was the sort of thing that ran
+itself; he didn't spend an hour a day at it. That wasn't much of a
+career, according to the way I thought at that time, and when he first
+began asking me to marry him I laughed outright.
+
+"'You can't know me very well, Milton,' I said, 'if you suppose I could
+be content with a ready-made man. I like you very much, but you're not
+the husband for me.'
+
+"'What do you mean by a ready-made man?' he asked, looking at me out of
+his quiet gray eyes.
+
+"'I should say it was sufficiently obvious,' I said. 'There's nothing
+the matter with you, and I hate to hurt you, but--well, you're not
+dynamic.'
+
+"I stopped to see how he would take that. He was silent for a while,
+then at last he said: 'I don't think that's a very good reason for
+refusing a man.'
+
+"I laughed; the grave way he said it was so characteristic of him. 'Oh,
+Milton,' I said, 'I really think that's the only reason in the world to
+make me refuse a man. I don't much believe I shall ever marry, but if I
+do it will be to a man that I can help win his fight in the world;
+somebody with whom I can march side by side through life, whom I alone
+can help and encourage and inspire! He's got to be the kind that will
+start at the bottom and work his way up to the top, and who couldn't do
+it without me! That's not you, Milton. You have no fight to make--your
+father made it for you. You start in at the top, the wrong end. Of
+course there are still higher summits you could aim for, but you never
+will, Milton. You're not that kind; you'll hold on to what you have, and
+no more. I'm not blaming you; you were made that way. And there must be
+a great many people like you in the world. And I _like_ you none the
+less. Only I can't marry you.'
+
+"'But I don't see what difference all this would make,' he said, 'if you
+only loved me.'
+
+"'My dear man,' said I, 'don't you see that it's only that sort of a man
+who could make me love him? If you had it in you, I suppose I should
+love you. You don't suppose I could love you without that, do you? I'm
+afraid you don't understand me very well, Milton!'
+
+"'I'm learning all the time,' he answered, and that was the nearest
+thing to a witty or humorous remark that I ever heard him make.
+
+"'Then again,' I went on, 'our ages are too far apart. Even if you were
+the sort I mean, we shouldn't be starting even. The fight would be half
+won when I came in, and that would never do. I shouldn't feel as if I
+were part of your life. A marriage like that wouldn't be a marriage, it
+would be a sweet little middle-aged idyll!'
+
+"He flushed at that. 'A man can't change his age, Selina; you have no
+right to taunt me with that.'
+
+"'I didn't mean to taunt you--I only wanted to explain,' said I. 'And
+the last thing in the world I want to do is to hurt you.'
+
+"'But that's the only thing a man can't change,' he went on after a
+moment, paying no attention to my apology. After another pause he added:
+'I shan't give you up, mind,' and when we talked again it was of other
+things.
+
+"I went on seeing him as before, though not quite so often. Then
+presently I went away on some long visits and did not see him for
+several months. When I came back I noticed that his manner was more
+animated than before, and that somehow he looked younger. I remember
+being quite pleased.--He was thirty-four at the time, and I not quite
+twenty-three.
+
+"It was perfectly evident, even to me, that he was working to win me. I
+saw it, but I did not pay any attention to it; when I thought about it
+at all it was with a sort of amusement. One day he came to me apparently
+very much pleased about something.
+
+"'Congratulate me, Selina,' he said; 'I've just got my appointment.'
+
+"'Appointment?' said I. I truthfully had no idea what he was talking
+about.
+
+"'Yes,' he went on, 'I begin work on the board next week.'
+
+"'What board?'
+
+"'Why, the tax board--the city tax board. Surely you knew?'
+
+"Then I laughed--I remember it so distinctly. 'Good gracious, Milton,' I
+said, 'I thought it must be the Cabinet of the United States, at the
+very least!' Then I saw his face, and knew that I had hurt him.
+
+"'It's splendid, of course,' I added. 'I do congratulate you, indeed,
+most heartily. Only--only Milton, you were so serious!'
+
+"I laughed again. He stared at me and after a moment laughed himself, a
+little. I suppose that laugh was the greatest effort he had made yet. I
+know I liked him better at that moment than ever before. If he had let
+it go at that who knows what might have happened?
+
+"But he changed again after a few seconds; he scowled and became more
+serious than ever. 'No!' he said angrily, 'why should I laugh with you
+over the most serious thing in my life? Why should you want to make me?
+First you blame me for not making anything of myself, and now, when I am
+trying my best to do it, you laugh at me for being serious! Of course
+I'm serious about my work--I shan't pretend to be anything else.'
+
+"Of course that was all wrong, too. Every one admires a man who can
+laugh a little about his work. But I felt a sort of hopelessness in
+trying to explain it to him; I was afraid he would never really
+understand. So instead I drew him out on the new work he had taken up
+and tried to make him talk about the plans he had in mind, of which the
+tax board was only the first step. He seemed rather shy about talking of
+the future.
+
+"'It's a case for actions, not words,' he said. 'I don't want to give
+you the impression that I'm only a talker. You'll see, in time, what
+you've made of me,' and he smiled at me in a way that rather went to my
+heart.
+
+"'Milton,' I said, 'I'm more than glad if I can be of help to you, in
+any way, but I should be deceiving you if I let you think there's any
+hope--any more hope, even, than there was.'
+
+"But that was the kind of talk he understood best. 'Selina,' he said,
+'don't you bother about caring for me. The time hasn't come for that
+yet. I'm not even ready for it myself--there's a lot to be done first.
+The time will come, at last; I'm sure of it. A woman can't have such a
+power over a man as you have over me without coming to have some feeling
+for him in the end, if it's only pride in her own handiwork. But even if
+it never should come, do you think I could regret what I've done, what
+I'm going to do? You've made a man of me, Selina. That stands, no matter
+what happens!'
+
+"Of course that sort of thing can't help but make an impression on a
+woman, and it had its effect on me. It made me a little nervous; it was
+like raising a Frankenstein. I began to wonder if I should come to be
+swallowed up in this new life I had unwillingly created. Once or twice I
+caught myself wondering how it would feel to be the wife of Milton
+Leffert....
+
+"But about that time my stepmother began talking to me about it and
+trying to persuade me to marry him, and that had the effect of making me
+like the thought less. Somehow she made it seem almost like a duty, and
+if there was one thing I couldn't abide it was the idea of marrying from
+a sense of duty. Then other things came into my life and for a time I
+ceased to think of him almost entirely.
+
+"We went abroad for several months, my stepmother and the two boys and
+I. Hilary had been seriously ill, and we thought the change would do him
+good. And as he had a good deal of study to make up--he was fourteen at
+the time--my stepmother engaged a young man to go with us and tutor him
+and be a companion to the boys generally.
+
+"You might almost guess the rest. I saw my stepmother wince when he met
+us at the steamer--we had engaged him by letter and had no idea what he
+looked like. I suppose it had never occurred to her before that there
+might be danger in placing me in daily companionship with a man of
+about my own age. It certainly occurred to her then.
+
+"James, I know I can't make it sound plausible to you, but even now I
+don't wonder I fell in love with him. I don't suppose a more attractive
+man was ever born. He was thin and brown and had a pure aquiline
+profile--but it's no use describing him. Think of the most attractive
+person you ever knew and make him ten times more so and perhaps you'll
+get some idea.
+
+"He was quite poor--that also took my fancy. He was trying to earn money
+enough to put himself through law school. Those who knew him said he was
+a brilliant student and that a great career lay before him, and I
+believed it. He certainly was as bright and keen as they make 'em, and
+very witty and amusing. Occasionally Harry reminds me of him, and that
+makes me worry about Harry.... Of course I was tremendously taken with
+his mental qualities, and I had all sorts of romantic notions about
+helping him to make a great place for himself in the world, and all the
+rest of it. But as a matter of fact what drew me to him chiefly was
+simple animal attraction. It wasn't wrong and it wasn't unnatural,
+but--well, it was unfortunate.
+
+"Even my stepmother felt it. I don't know how long it was before she
+knew what was going on, but she never made any effort to stop it. Like a
+sensible woman she kept her mouth shut and determined to let things take
+their course. But she never talked to me any more about Milton Leffert,
+and as a matter of fact I know she would have been perfectly willing
+that I should marry Adrian. Yes, that was his first name. I shan't tell
+you his last, because he's still alive.
+
+"I remember telling myself when I first saw him that such an absurdly
+handsome person could not have much to him, but he appeared better and
+better as time went on. He was thoughtful and tactful and knew how to
+efface himself. He was splendid with the boys; Hilary in particular took
+a tremendous fancy to him and would do anything he said. He was the
+greatest influence in Hilary's life up to that time, and I really think
+the best. He was an extraordinary person. By the end of the first month
+I suspected he was the Real Man. By the end of the second I was
+convinced of it, and by the end of the third I would willingly have
+placed my head under his foot any time he gave the word. By the end of
+the sixth month I wouldn't have touched him with my foot--I'm sure of
+it. But there never was any sixth month.
+
+"In the month of June we were on the Lake of Como. There happened to be
+a full moon. Como in the moonlight is not the safest place in the world
+for young people, under any circumstances. In our case it was sure to
+lead to something.
+
+"We had strolled up to a terrace high above the lake and stood for a
+long time leaning over the balustrade drinking in the beauty of the
+scene. For a long time we said nothing, and apparently the same thought
+struck us both--that it was all too beautiful to be true. At any rate
+after a time Adrian sighed and said: 'Oh, this damnable moonlight!'
+
+"'Why?'I asked.
+
+"'Because it makes everything seem so unreal--the lake, the mountains,
+the nightingales, everything. It's like a poem by Lamartine. But I don't
+mind that--I like Lamartine. The trouble is it makes you seem unreal
+too. Oh, I know that you're where you are and are flesh and blood and
+that if I pinched you you'd probably scream and all that--'
+
+"'No, I shouldn't,' said I. 'I wouldn't be real if I did.'
+
+"He sighed. 'That shows it,' he said; 'that proves exactly what I say.
+You're not really living this; your soul isn't really here. I'm not
+really in your life. I'm just a pretty little episode, a stage property,
+a part of the lake and the moonlight, a part of every summer vacation!'
+
+"'If you're not really in my life,' said I, 'doesn't it occur to you
+that it's because of your unreality, not mine?'
+
+"'You admit that I'm not real to you, then?'
+
+"'No,' said I, 'but it would be your own fault if you weren't.'
+
+"'What about that man in New Haven, is he real?' he asked suddenly. I
+only flushed, and he went on: 'That's it--he's the real man in your
+life. You're willing to play about with me in the summertime, but when
+the winter comes you'll go straight back and marry him. I'm all right
+for the moonlight, but you want him in the cold gray light of the dawn!
+He's the Old and New Testaments to you, and I'm only--a poem by
+Lamartine! And with me--oh, Lord!' He buried his face in his hands.
+
+"I don't know whether it was pure accident or whether he somehow
+guessed part of the truth. At any rate it roused me. I was very sure
+that what he said was not true, or at least I was very anxious that it
+should not be true, which often comes to the same thing. I argued with
+him for some time, and when words failed there were other things. But he
+did not seem entirely convinced.
+
+"After a while, as we sat there, Hilary appeared with a telegram that
+had just arrived for me. I saw that it was a cable message and thought
+it was probably from Milton Leffert, as he had said that he might
+possibly come abroad on business during the summer and would look me up
+if he did. And somehow the thought of Milton Leffert at that moment
+filled me with the most intense disgust....
+
+"'Now,' I said when Hilary had gone, 'I'm tired of arguing; here may be
+a chance to prove myself by actions. Open this telegram, and tell me if
+it's from Milton Leffert!'
+
+"He looked at me in a dazed sort of way. 'Open it!' I repeated, stamping
+my foot. I was drunk with love and moonlight and I imagine I must have
+acted like a fury. I know I felt like one.
+
+"He opened the telegram and read it, gravely and silently.
+
+"'Is it or is it not from Milton Leffert?'
+
+"'Yes. He--'
+
+"'That's all I want to know--don't say another word! Do you hear? Never
+tell me another word about that telegram as long as you live! And now
+destroy it--here--before my eyes! I'm going to put Milton Leffert out of
+my life forever, here and now! Go on, destroy it!'
+
+"Adrian hesitated. He seemed almost frightened. 'But--' he began.
+
+"'Adrian!' I turned toward him with the moonlight beating full down on
+me. I was not so bad-looking in those days; I daresay I was not
+bad-looking at all as I stood there in the moonlight. At least I know
+that woman never used her beauty more consciously than I did in that
+moment.
+
+"'Adrian, look at me! Do you love me?'
+
+"He allowed that he did.
+
+"'Then do what I say. Destroy that telegram and never mention it or that
+man's name to me again!'
+
+"A change came over him. He hesitated no longer; he became forceful and
+determined.
+
+"'Very well,' he cried, 'if you're not mine now you will be! Here's
+good-by to Milton Leffert!'
+
+"He took some matches from his pocket and lit the end of the paper. When
+it was burning brightly he dropped it over the edge of the terrace and
+it floated out into the space beneath. We stood together and watched it
+as it fell, burning red in the moonlight....
+
+"Then for some weeks we were happy. Adrian seemed particularly so; he
+had had his gloomy moods before that but now they passed away entirely.
+And if there was a cloud of suspicion that I had done wrong in my own
+mind I was so happy in seeing Adrian's joy that I paid no attention to
+it.
+
+"Only one thing struck me as odd; he would not let me tell my
+stepmother. He gave a number of reasons for it; it would make his
+position with us uncomfortable; he could not be a tutor and a lover at
+the same time; he was writing to his relatives and wanted to wait till
+they knew; we must wait till we were absolutely sure of ourselves, and
+so forth. One of these reasons might have convinced me, but his giving
+so many of them made me suspect, even as I obeyed him, that none of them
+was the real one. I wondered what it could be. I found out, soon enough.
+
+"We left Italy and worked slowly northward. Several weeks after the
+scene on the terrace we reached Paris. There we met a number of our
+American friends, some of whom had just arrived from home. One day my
+stepmother and I were sitting talking with one of these--Elizabeth
+Haldane it was--and in the course of the conversation she happened to
+say: 'Very sad, isn't it, about poor Milton Leffert?'
+
+"'What is sad?' asked my stepmother.
+
+"'Why, haven't you heard?' said Elizabeth. 'He died a short time before
+we left. Brain fever or something of the sort--from overwork, they said.
+He was planning to run for the State Legislature this fall.' I saw her
+glancing round; she couldn't keep her eyes off me. But I sat still as a
+stone....
+
+"As soon as I could I took Adrian off alone.
+
+"'Adrian,' I said, 'the time has come when you've got to tell me what
+was in that telegram.'
+
+"'Never,' said he, smiling. 'I promised, you know,'
+
+"'I release you from your promise.'
+
+"'Even so, I can't tell you.'
+
+"'Adrian,' said I, looking him full in the face, 'Milton Leffert is
+dead.'
+
+"'I'm sorry to hear it,' said he.
+
+"I blazed up at that. 'Stop lying to me,' I cried, 'and tell me what was
+in that telegram!'
+
+"He confessed at last that it was from Jane Leffert saying that her
+brother was dangerously ill and asking me to come to him if possible or
+at least send some message. I knew well enough what it must have been,
+but I wanted to wring it from his lips....
+
+"'Well, have you nothing to say to me?' he asked.
+
+"I didn't answer for some time--I couldn't. To tell the truth I hadn't
+been thinking of him. At last I turned on him. 'You contemptible
+creature,' I managed to say.
+
+"'Why?' he whined. 'You've no right to call me names. You made me do it.
+If you're sorry now it's your own fault.'
+
+"'I was to blame,' I answered. 'Heaven forbid that I should try to
+excuse my own fault. But do you think that lets you out? Suppose the
+positions had been reversed; suppose you had been ill and Milton with
+me. Do you imagine he would have let me remain in ignorance while you
+lay dying and in need of me, no matter what I told him to do or not to
+do? Are you so weak and mean that you can't conceive of any one being
+strong and good?'
+
+"'It was because I loved you so much that I did it,' he said.
+
+"'Oh, Adrian,' I told him, 'if you really loved me, why did you let me
+do a thing you knew I'd live to regret? If you really loved me, what had
+you to fear but that?'
+
+"'You might have saved his life,' he answered.
+
+"Oh, James, the anguish of hearing those words from his lips! The man I
+did not love telling me I might have saved the life of the man I did!
+For now that it was too late I knew well enough who it was that I loved.
+In one flash I saw the two men as they were, one strong, quiet,
+unselfish, the other selfish, cowardly, mean-spirited. Now I saw why he
+had not wanted me to tell my stepmother of our engagement. He wanted to
+cover up his own part in the affair in case anything unpleasant happened
+when I heard of Milton's death.
+
+"I told my stepmother everything as soon as I could and she behaved
+splendidly. She sent Adrian away and I never saw him again. And as I
+announced my intention of going home on the next steamer she decided it
+was best to give up the rest of her trip and take the boys along back
+with me. So we all went, that same week.
+
+"People wondered, when we arrived so long ahead of time, and came pretty
+near to guessing the whole truth. But I didn't care. The one thing I
+wanted in the world was to see Milton's sister, his one surviving
+relative.
+
+"'Jane Leffert,' I wrote her, 'if you can bear to look on the woman who
+killed your brother, let her come and tell you she's sorry.' She was a
+good woman and understood. The next day I went to her house. She took me
+upstairs and showed me his room, the bed where he had died. I never said
+a word all the time. Then, as she was really a very remarkable woman,
+she handed me an old brooch of her mother's containing a miniature of
+him painted when he was four years old, and told me it was mine to keep.
+Then for the first time I broke down and cried....
+
+"If it hadn't been for Jane Leffert I think I should have gone mad. She
+never tried to hide the truth from me. She admitted, when I asked her,
+that Milton had, to all intents and purposes, worked himself to death
+for me, and that the doctor had said the one hope for him lay in his
+seeing me or hearing I was coming to him. But never a word of blame or
+reproach did she give me, never a hint of a feeling of it. She knew how
+easy it is to make mistakes in life, she knew how hard it is to atone
+for them. She it was who gave me the blessed thought that it was worth
+while to go on living as part of my atonement, and that if I put into my
+life the things I had learned from him I might even, to a certain
+extent, make Milton live on in me.
+
+"So instead of taking poison or becoming a Carmelite nun I went on
+living at home as before, stimulated and inspired by that idea. It was
+hard at first, but somehow the harder things were the greater the
+satisfaction I took in life. By the time I had lightened the remaining
+years of my stepmother's life and nursed Jane Leffert through her last
+illness I became content with my lot and, in a way, happy. I never asked
+for happiness nor wanted it again on earth, but it came, at last. There
+is something purifying about loving a dead person very much. The chief
+danger is in its making one morbid, but as I was always a thoroughly
+practical person with a strong natural taste for life it did me nothing
+but good. But I don't prescribe it for any one who can get anything
+better....
+
+"One thing in particular helped me to keep my mind on earth and remind
+me of the far-reaching effects of wrong-doing. I have said that Hilary,
+your father, was extremely fond of Adrian. Well, somehow he got the idea
+into his head that I had thrown him over because of his poverty, and he
+never forgave me for it. Till his dying day he believed that I really
+loved Adrian most but was afraid to marry him. Over and over again I
+told him the truth, taking a sort of fierce pleasure in being able to
+tell any one that I had never loved any one but Milton Leffert.
+
+"'Then why did you let Adrian make love to you?' Hilary would answer,
+'and why did you make him burn that telegram? I know, I heard you as I
+walked down the path.' Nothing I could say ever made him understand. And
+the hardest part of it was that I couldn't exactly blame him for not
+being convinced.
+
+"Taking him at that impressionable time of life the thing had a
+tremendous effect on him. The idea grew into him that no human feeling
+could stand the test of hard facts; that that was the way love worked
+out in real life. From that time on his mind steadily developed and his
+soul steadily dwindled. He became practical, brilliant, worldly wise,
+heartless. We grew gradually more and more estranged; you seldom heard
+him mention my name, I suppose? That's why you never heard before what
+I've been telling you, or at least the whole truth of it.... And so, as
+he consciously modeled certain of his mannerisms after those of Adrian
+he unconsciously grew more and more like him in character; and I had the
+satisfaction of watching the change and realizing that it was due, in
+part at least, to me. And the thought of how I unwillingly hurt him has
+made me all the more anxious to make reparation by being of service to
+his two boys. Perhaps you can imagine some of the things I've feared for
+them...."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Here Aunt Selina broke off, choked by a sudden gust of emotion. James
+said nothing, but sat staring straight in front of him. Presently his
+aunt, steadying her voice to its accustomed pitch, went on:
+
+"Well, James, I told this to Beatrice, much as I've told it to you,
+though not at so great length, and I could see it made an impression on
+her. She came over and sat down by me and took my hand without speaking.
+
+"'You lived through all that?' she said at last, 'and you never told any
+one?'
+
+"'Why should I have told?' I answered. 'There was no one to tell. I've
+only told you because I thought it might have some bearing on your own
+case.'
+
+"She caught her breath, gave a sort of little sigh. And that sigh said,
+as plainly as words, 'Dear me, I was so interested in your story I
+almost forgot I must get ready to go to New York to-morrow.' It was a
+setback; I saw I had overestimated the effect I had made. But I set my
+teeth and went on, determined not to give her up yet.
+
+"'Beatrice,' I said, 'I haven't told you all this for the pleasure of
+telling it nor to amuse you. I've told it to you because I wanted to
+show you how such a course of action as you're about to take works out
+in real life. There is a strange madness that comes over women
+sometimes, especially over strong women; a sort of obsession that makes
+them think they are too good for the men they love. I know it, I've felt
+it--I've suffered under it, if ever woman did! It may seem irresistible
+while it lasts, but oh, the remorse that comes afterward! Beatrice, how
+many times do you suppose I've lived over each snubbing speech I made to
+Milton Leffert? How often do you suppose my laugh at him when he told me
+about the tax board has rung through my ears? Those are the memories
+that stab the soul, Beatrice; don't let there be any such in your life!'
+
+"She didn't answer, but sat staring at the floor.
+
+"'Beatrice,' I went on, 'there's no mortal suffering like discovering
+you've done wrong when it's too late. It's the curse of strong-willed
+people. It all seems so simple to us at first; it's so easy for us to
+force our wills on other people, to rule others and be free ourselves.
+Then something happens, the true vision comes, and it's too late!
+Beatrice, I've caught you in time--it's not too late for you yet. Do you
+know where you stand now, Beatrice? You're at the point where I was when
+I told Adrian to burn that telegram!'
+
+"Still she said nothing, and the sight of her sitting there so beautiful
+and cold drove me almost wild. 'Oh, Beatrice,' I burst out, losing the
+last bit of my self-control, 'don't tell me I've got to live through it
+all again with you! Don't go and repeat my mistake before my very eyes,
+with my example before yours! It was hard enough to live through it once
+myself, but what will it be when I sit helplessly by and watch the
+people I love best go through it all! I can't bear it, I can't, I can't!
+It takes all the meaning out of my own life!...'
+
+"She was moved by my display of feeling, but not by my words. She said
+nothing for a time, but took my hand again and began stroking it gently,
+as if to quiet me. I said nothing more--I couldn't speak. At last she
+said, in a calm, gentle tone of voice, as if she were explaining
+something to a child:--
+
+"'Aunt Selina, I don't think you quite understand about my marriage with
+James. It isn't like other marriages, exactly.'
+
+"'It seems to me enough that it is a marriage,' I answered. 'Though I
+haven't spoken of that side of it, of course.'
+
+"'Oh, you won't understand!' she said.
+
+"'Beatrice,' said I, 'I couldn't understand if you kept telling me about
+it till to-morrow morning. No one ever will understand you, except your
+Creator--you might as well make up your mind to it. I don't doubt you've
+had many wrong things done to you. The point is, you're about to do one.
+Don't do it.'
+
+"Always back to the same old point, and nothing gained! I had the
+feeling of having fired my last shot and missed. I shut my eyes and
+leaned my head back and tried to think of some new way of putting it to
+her, but as a matter of fact I knew I had said all I had to say. And
+then, just as I was giving her up for lost, I heard her speaking again.
+
+"'Aunt Selina,' she said, 'you have made me think of one thing.'
+
+"'What's that, my dear?' I asked.
+
+"'Well, I don't doubt but what I have done wrong things already, without
+suspecting it. Oh, yes, I've been too sure of myself!'
+
+"'It's possible, my dear,' said I, 'but you haven't done anything that
+you can't still make up for, if you want.'
+
+"'I think I know what you mean,' she said slowly; 'you mean I could go
+and tell him so. Tell him I had done wrong and was sorry--for I did sin,
+not in deed, but still in thought.... I never told him that, of
+course....' Then she shivered. 'Oh, but Aunt Selina, I can't do it, I
+can't! If you only knew how I've tried already, how I've humiliated
+myself!'
+
+"'That never did any one any harm,' I told her.
+
+"'And then,' she went on, 'even if I did do it, he'd never take me
+back--not on any terms! He'd only cast me away again--that's what would
+happen, you know! What would there be for me then but--Tommy?'
+
+"Well, I knew I'd won a great point in making her even consider it.
+
+"'Several things,' I answered, taking no pains to conceal my delight.
+'In the first place, it's by no means certain that he will refuse you.
+But if he does--well, you'll never lack a home or a friend while I'm
+alive, my dear! And don't you go and pretend that I'm not more to you
+than that brainless, chinless, sniveling, driveling little fool of an
+Englishman, for I won't believe it!'
+
+"She laughed at that and for a moment we both laughed together. Then it
+suddenly occurred to me that I couldn't do better than leave it at that,
+let that laugh end our talk.
+
+"'Good night, my dear,' I said, kissing her. 'The time has come now when
+you've got to make up your mind for yourself. I've done all I can for
+you.' And with that I left her.
+
+"But, oh, James, it wasn't as simple as all that! It was all very well
+to tell her that and go to bed, but if you knew what agonies of doubt
+and suspense I went through during the night, fearing, hoping,
+wondering, praying! Those things are so much more complicated in real
+life than they are when you read them or see them acted. What should
+have happened was that I should have one grand scene with her and make
+her promise at the end to do as I wanted. And I did my best, I went as
+far as it was in me to go, and knew no more of the result than before I
+began! And we parted laughing--laughing, from that talk!
+
+"But almost the worst part of it was next morning when we met downstairs
+after breakfast, with the family about. I could scarcely say good
+morning to her, and I never dared catch her eye. And all the time that
+one great subject was burning in our minds. And we couldn't talk of it
+again, either; we couldn't have if we'd been alone together in a desert!
+You can't go on having scenes with people.
+
+"At last, after lunch, I was alone on the verandah with her, and managed
+to screw myself up to asking her whether she was going to New York or
+not.
+
+"'Yes, I'm going,' she answered.
+
+"'What do you mean by that?' I asked.
+
+"'Oh, I don't know what I mean!' she said desperately. I knew she was as
+badly off as I was, or worse, and after that I simply couldn't say
+another word to her.
+
+"But I saw her alone once again, just before she started. She kissed me
+good-by and smiled and whispered: 'Don't worry, Aunt Selina--it's all
+right,' and then the others came. Just that--nothing more!
+
+"I didn't know what to think--what I dared to think. One moment I rushed
+and telegraphed you, because I was afraid she was going to the
+Englishman, after all. The next minute I was hurrying to catch the night
+boat to Boston, because I thought she was going to you and that I might
+have to deal with you. I wanted to be with her in any case. Oh, I was so
+mad with the uncertainty and suspense I didn't know what I did or what I
+thought! But the impression I took away finally from her last words to
+me were that she was going to you.... But I never knew, James, _I never
+knew_! And now I never shall!..."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIV
+
+A POTTER'S VESSEL
+
+
+By a great effort Aunt Selina had kept a firm control over herself
+throughout her narrative, but now, the immediate need of composure being
+removed, she gave way completely to her natural grief. James, whose
+attitude toward her had been somewhat as toward a divine visitation, an
+emissary of Nemesis, suddenly found he had to deal with an old woman
+suffering under an overwhelming sorrow. This put an end for the present
+to the possibility of expanding on the Nemesis suggestion. He fetched
+her some more whisky, reflecting that it must be not unpleasant to have
+reached the age where grief wore itself out even partially in physical
+symptoms, to which physical alleviations could be applied. For the first
+time he found himself considering Aunt Selina as an old woman.
+
+He could not help remarking, however, that even in age and even in grief
+Aunt Selina was rather magnificent. There was about her tears a
+Sophoclean, almost a Niobesque quality. It struck him that she must have
+been extremely good-looking in her youth.
+
+Of course Aunt Selina, even in that extremity, knew enough to refrain
+from pointing a moral already sufficiently obvious. She said little
+after finishing her account, and that little was expressive only of her
+immediate sense of loss.
+
+"Oh, James," she moaned, "I had always thought my life went out in a
+little puff of red flame forty years ago and more, but it seemed to me
+that if I could use my experience to mend her life I should be well
+repaid for everything. And now...."
+
+They sat silent for the most part, both laboring under the terrific
+hopelessness of the situation, which certainty and uncertainty, together
+with the impossibility of action, combined to make intolerable. For a
+while each found a certain comfort in the other's mute presence, but at
+last even that wore off.
+
+"Well, my dear, you don't want to be bothered by a hysterical old woman
+at this time," said Aunt Selina finally, and James obediently
+telephoned, for a taxi. Nemesis must be met, sooner or later....
+
+Only once, as they sat side by side in the dark cab, did Aunt Selina
+give utterance to the one idea that animated her thoughts of the future.
+
+"Well, I've lost my own life and I've lost her, and now you're the only
+thing I have left. Oh, James, for Heaven's sake don't let me lose you!"
+
+"No, Aunt Selina, no," he replied, laying his hand on hers and speaking
+with a promptness and a fervor that surprised himself.
+
+"One thing," she began just before they drew up at the hotel.
+
+"Yes?"
+
+"One thing I've learned in all these years is that there's nothing so
+bad that it isn't better to face it than dodge it. Nothing!"
+
+"Yes," said James. "Thank you, Aunt Selina."
+
+He walked back to his apartment with a feeling as of straightening his
+shoulders. His aunt's words rang in his brain. There was need of
+courage, he saw that. Well, he had never lacked that and would not be
+found wanting in it now. Not even--the thought flashed on him as he
+opened his front door--not even if the kind of courage that was now
+needed implied humiliation. He entered his home with the consciousness
+of having made a good start.
+
+He walked straight into the bedroom.
+
+"Well, I've done you an injustice," he said aloud. "I misjudged you. I'm
+sorry."
+
+"Oh, you didn't give her credit for being capable of loving YOU, did
+you?" rang a mocking voice in his brain. A palpable hit for Nemesis.
+
+"Oh, you know what I _mean_," he answered petulantly. He thought it was
+unworthy of her to quibble thus, particularly when he was voluntarily
+assuming that Beatrice had started from Bar Harbor--well, with the right
+idea. He had a right to doubt there, which he was willing to waive.
+
+"I'm sorry," he repeated, "truly sorry. Isn't that enough?" His eyes
+fell on the photograph of Beatrice which still stood on the dressing
+table. He turned quickly away again.
+
+"Not by a long shot," said Nemesis, or words to that effect.
+
+No, somehow it wasn't. He realized it himself; even feeling that didn't
+give him the sense of repletion and calm that he sought. He paced the
+room for some time in silent anxiety.
+
+"I really don't know what to do," he admitted at last. "Suppose"--he was
+appealing to Beatrice now--"suppose you tell me what."
+
+He glanced involuntarily at the photograph. Its unchanging half-smile
+informed him that all help must now come from himself. A sudden access
+of rage at that photograph seized him.
+
+"Don't you laugh at me, when I'm trying my best!" he cried.
+
+The picture smiled on. In a burst of fury James picked up the frame and
+hurled it with all his strength into the mirror. There was a crash and a
+shower of broken glass, amid which the picture bounded lazily back and
+fell to the floor, face downward.
+
+James stood and stared at it, and as he stared a curious revulsion came
+over him. He stooped slowly down, unaccountably hoping with all his soul
+that the photograph was not hurt. He scarcely dared to turn it over....
+
+The glass was smashed to atoms, but the picture itself was unhurt. No,
+there was a cut across the face.
+
+"Oh, I've hurt her, I've hurt Beatrice!" he whispered.
+
+Nemesis said something that made him sink into a chair and gaze before
+him with horror. Cinders, ashes, black coals, some of them still
+glowing--oh, the mere sight of them then had been unbearable! And now,
+in view of what he had learned.... He could not face the thought.
+
+Yet it was true: if it had not been for him Beatrice would still be
+alive. Whether she took that train intending to go to him or to Tommy it
+did not matter; she would not have taken it at all if he had behaved as
+he should.
+
+He turned his attention back to the picture, gently and carefully
+smoothing out the cut, as though in the hope that reparation to her
+effigy would make it easier to face the thought of having compassed her
+destruction.
+
+Somehow it did no such thing....
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Of course what Nemesis wanted was a confession that he loved the woman
+whose death he was morally responsible for. James realized that himself,
+almost from the first, but it was not in his nature to admit easily that
+such an unreasonable change of feeling was possible to him. Long hours
+of struggle followed, hours of endless pacing, of fruitless internal
+argument, of blind resistance to the one hope, as he in the bottom of
+his soul knew it was, of his salvation. Resistance, brave, exhilarating,
+hopeless, futile, ignoble resistance to whatever happened to him
+contrary to the dictates of his own will--it was as inevitable to him as
+feeling itself.
+
+From time to time he thought of Tommy, and this, if he did but know it,
+was the best symptom he could have shown. For though at first he thought
+of him with little more than his usual contempt, envy soon began to
+creep in, then frank jealousy and at last a blind hatred that made him
+clench his hands and wish, as he had seldom wished anything, that
+Tommy's throat was between them. In fact he ended by hating Tommy quite
+as though he were his equal. He never stopped to consider that this
+change was no less revolutionary than the one he was fighting.
+
+The hopeless hours dragged on. A sense of physical fatigue grew on him;
+every muscle in him ached. His brain also staggered under the long
+strain; it hammered and rang. Certain scraps of sentences he had heard
+during the day buzzed through it with a curious insistence, taking
+advantage of his weakened state to torment him. A great chance, a great
+chance--Uncle James' parting words to him. Sorrow was a great
+chance--for some. For Aunt Selina, yes; for Beatrice, yes; or Uncle
+James, frozen and unresponsive as he appeared, yes. But not for him. Oh,
+no, he must admit it, he was not even worthy to suffer greatly. He was
+not really suffering now, he supposed; he was merely very tired.
+Otherwise those words, a great chance, a great chance, would not keep
+pounding through his head like the sound of loud wheels....
+
+Railroad wheels.
+
+Then what was it that Aunt Selina had said about finding out something
+too late? Oh, yes, people found out they loved other people when it was
+too late. Especially strong people. He was strong.... Could it be that
+_he_ was going to discover something too late--_that_? It was too late
+for something already, but surely not for that! Just think--Aunt Selina
+had found out too late, and Beatrice had found out too late, and now....
+
+Yes, if it was horrible it must be true. It was he who was too late. He
+understood about Aunt Selina, all she must have felt. And Beatrice too;
+he saw now how strong and noble and warm-hearted she had been, and how
+she must have suffered. Especially that. And now he had found out it was
+too late to tell her so!
+
+"We can't tell you what we don't know," the man in the station had said
+that morning. Words spoken mechanically and without thought, but
+containing the very essence of human tragedy. While there was yet time
+he had had no knowledge, not the slightest glimmering....
+
+"Oh, Beatrice!" he groaned, "if I had only been able to hope! Just a
+little hope, even at that last minute on the platform! That would be
+something to be thankful for!"
+
+And then in the anguish of his remorse all his fatigue and uncertainty
+suddenly fell from him. Nothing remained but the thought of her, strong,
+generous, brave, humble, all that he had professed to admire--dead! And
+he, false, mean, cowardly, cold-hearted, alive. And the idea of never
+being able to tell her that at last he understood became so intolerable,
+so cruel, so contrary to all that was good in life, so blindly
+unthinkable, that....
+
+Well, in a word, it simply ceased to be. Such a life as had been hers
+could not fade into nothingness, such a heart as hers could not fail to
+understand, be she dead or alive.
+
+"God," he whispered, clutching with all his strength at the hope the
+word now contained, "God, make her understand! I recant, I repent, I
+believe--anything! Forgive me if you can or punish me as you will, only
+let her live, let her know...."
+
+Then, as the crowning torment, came hope. After all, he knew nothing; he
+only supposed. Nothing was certain; only probable. Something might have
+happened; he dared not think what or how, but it was possible,
+conceivable, at least, that Beatrice was not on that train when it was
+wrecked. Beatrice might still be alive!... The anguish of the fall back
+into probability was sharper than anything he had yet known, but every
+time he found himself struggling painfully up again toward that small
+spark of light.
+
+He fell on his knees beside the bed--her bed--and tried to pray.
+Nothing came to his lips but the words he had so long disdained to say,
+uttered now with a fierce sweet jubilation:
+
+"Beatrice, I love you. I never did before, but I do now--at least I
+think I do! I never knew, I never understood, but I do now! Beatrice, I
+do love you, I do, I do! Beatrice...."
+
+But apparently they satisfied the power that has charge of such matters,
+for even as he stammered the words that saved him a blessed drowsiness
+stole over him and before long he slept as he knelt. It was morning when
+he awoke.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XV
+
+THE TIDE TURNS
+
+
+A gray morning, wet and close, whose very atmosphere was death to hope.
+James did hope, nevertheless, with all the refreshed energy of his
+being. Hope came as soon as he started to wake up, before he began to
+feel the cramps in his limbs, before he had time to rub his eyes and
+wonder what had happened.
+
+A hot bath, and then breakfast. Physical alleviations; he was humiliated
+to realize they did make a difference, even to him. He shuddered at the
+thought of how he had patronizingly envied Aunt Selina for being helped
+by them last night, much as he shuddered at the remembrance of having
+once dared to pity Beatrice....
+
+But the present was also with him, and the present was even harder to
+face than the past. Hope sprang eternal, but so did certainty. One might
+have thought that they would have neutralized each other's effects and
+left a blank, but as a matter of fact they only doubled each other's
+torments. The moment breakfast was over James started off for the
+station to set one or the other at rest.
+
+He went straight to the press room, which was only just open; he had to
+wait for the agent to arrive. When he came he was able to tell James
+nothing new, but he conducted him to a departmental manager. He was no
+more satisfactory, but he undertook to make every possible inquiry.
+Leaving James in an outer office he called various people to him, got
+into telephonic communication with others and ended by calling up
+Stamford and then Boston. But James could guess the result from his face
+the moment he reentered the room.
+
+"Nothing?" he asked.
+
+"Nothing. But don't give up yet."
+
+James walked slowly down the corridor toward the elevator. It was a long
+corridor, dark and empty; James could not see the end of it when he
+started. The sound of his feet echoed hollowly along the dim walls.
+Altogether it was rather an eerie place, not at all suggestive of a
+modern office building. Much more, it seemed to James as he walked on,
+like life.... A blind alley, the end of which was in shadow, where one
+must walk alone and in almost total darkness. A place where one's
+footsteps echo with painful exactness--one must walk carefully lest the
+sound of their irregularity should ring evilly in one's ears and pierce
+unharmoniously into those mysterious chambers alongside, perhaps even
+into other corridors, other people's corridors....
+
+He roused himself from his reverie with a jerk, but his mood remained on
+him, translated into a larger meaning. He was alive; no matter what had
+happened to Beatrice, he was still alive, with a living person's duties
+and responsibilities--and chances. Beatrice, even though cut off in the
+bloom of her youth, had succeeded in making a person of herself,
+justifying her existence, supplying a guiding light to some of those who
+walked in greater darkness than herself. He had not as yet done that.
+Well, he must. He would. Beatrice's gift to him should not be wasted. In
+a flash he felt his strength and his manhood return to him. He looked
+into the future with a humble yet unflinching gaze; hope and certainty
+had lost their terrors for him. If Beatrice had died, he would thank God
+that it had been given him to know her and do his best to translate her
+spirit into earthly terms. If by any impossible chance she still
+lived--well, he could do nothing to make himself worthy of such
+happiness, but he would do his best.
+
+He walked out of the elevator into the concourse, the huge unchanging
+concourse where so much had happened yesterday. It was comparatively
+empty at this moment, only a few figures waiting patiently before train
+gates. One of these caught his eye; it took on a bafflingly familiar
+appearance. He moved curiously nearer to it....
+
+Tommy!
+
+At last, at last, at last he was going to feel that throat between his
+fingers, get a chance to exterminate that--that--He sprang forward like
+a wildcat.
+
+He stopped before he had taken two steps, with a feeling of impotence,
+hopelessness. Who was he, who under the sun was he to teach Tommy
+anything? Tommy--why, Tommy had loved Beatrice, not after it was too
+late, but before! Beatrice had preferred Tommy to him. Tommy was a
+better man than he was; he took a morbid joy in thinking how much
+better.
+
+It was conceivable that Tommy might know something. Perhaps he had even
+come to this very spot to meet Beatrice.... Well, he would not blame her
+or offer objections, if it were so. He would accept such a judgment
+gladly, as a small price for knowing she was alive. He hurried across
+the concourse.
+
+"Tommy, can you tell me anything about Beatrice?" James' voice was so
+matter-of-fact, so strikingly unfitted to a Situation, that Tommy was
+rather irritated. He flushed.
+
+"No, of course not. Why should I?"
+
+"I only thought--seeing you here--"
+
+"No." The tone was abrupt to the point of rudeness, wholly un-Tommylike.
+There was an odd moment of silence, which Tommy ended by breaking out:
+"Why the devil do you have to come here and crow over me? Why can't you
+let me clear out in peace?"
+
+James was so penitent for having hurt Tommy that he did not at first
+notice the implication in his words.
+
+"I'm sorry--I meant nothing! I've been out of my head with anxiety.... I
+only thought she might have gone somewhere else to meet you--it was my
+last hope...."
+
+"_What?_" Tommy cocked his eyebrows incredulously, with a sort of
+fierceness. "Hope of what?"
+
+"Why, that Beatrice was still alive."
+
+"Still alive? What on earth--! What makes you think she isn't?"
+
+"Do you mean to say--"
+
+Again the two stared at each other in a strained silence. Then Tommy
+produced a crumpled yellow envelope from his pocket and handed it to
+James.
+
+"I got this yesterday morning--that's all I know. I haven't been able to
+destroy the damned thing...."
+
+James took it and opened it. A telegram:--
+
+ It's all off, Tommy. Please go away and forgive me if you can.
+ Beatrice.
+
+He looked at the date at the top. Boston, 8:37 A. M. Boston! The Maine
+Special did not go into Boston; Beatrice had left it before--before....
+
+"Tommy," he said faintly, "Tommy, I--" His head swam; he felt himself
+reeling.
+
+"All right, old top, all right; easy does it." He felt Tommy's arm about
+him and heard Tommy's voice in his ears, the voice of the good-hearted
+Tommy of old. Suddenly the idea of a disappointed lover calling his
+fainting though successful rival old top and telling him that easy did
+it struck him as wildly and irresistibly humorous. He laughed, and the
+sound of his laugh acted like a stimulant. He bit his lip hard.
+
+"All right now--I'll go up and get into a taxi. You see," he began
+explanatorily to Tommy as he walked beside him, "I thought--I thought--"
+
+"I see," supplied Tommy companionably, "you thought she was in the
+accident, of course. Beastly thing, that accident; no wonder it knocked
+you up. Knocked me up a bit myself when I heard of it, although I knew
+she couldn't be in it. Easy up the steps--righto! Everything turned out
+all right in the end, though, didn't it? Pretty hefty steps, wot? Pretty
+hefty place altogether--nothing like it in London...."
+
+A cab puffed up beside them. James turned with his hand on the door. An
+unaccountable wave of affection, respect, even, for Tommy surged through
+him. "Tommy, you're going away now, I take it?"
+
+"Yes--Chicago." (He pronounced it _Shickago_. That was nothing; when he
+arrived in the country he had pronounced it with the ch sound. In a few
+more weeks he would get it correctly; you couldn't expect too much at a
+time from Tommy.)
+
+"Well, Tommy, see here--"
+
+"Yes?"
+
+"It may sound silly to you, but--come and see us some time!"
+
+"Righto. Not now, though--got to see the country--train leaves in two
+minutes. See America first, wot? Good-by!" and he was off.
+
+James sank back into the cab, admiring the other's tact. A thoughtless,
+brutal proposal; of course he ought never to have made it. It was not in
+him, though, to deny Tommy any sign of the overwhelming love for the
+whole world that filled him.
+
+When he reached his apartment his physical strength was restored, but
+mentally he seemed paralyzed. There was much to be done, but he had no
+idea how to go about it. A bright thought struck him; he called up Aunt
+Selina. He laughed foolishly into the transmitter; Heaven knows how he
+made her understand at last. The two babbled incoherently at one another
+for a moment and abruptly rang off, without saying good-by.... Another
+bright idea--Uncle James. He was more definite, but James had little
+idea of what he said. He caught something about a Comparatively Simple
+Matter.... Uncle J. undertook to do everything, whatever it was. A
+satisfactory person.
+
+After that James sat down in an armchair and for a long time remained
+there, reduced to an inarticulate pulp of joy.
+
+An hour or two later Beatrice's telegram arrived. It was dated from an
+obscure place in the White Mountains. "Quite safe and well; only just
+heard of the accident," it read. Just ten words. But quite enough! To
+think of her telegraphing _him_!...
+
+Immediately he became strong and efficient again. He rushed back to the
+station, dashed off a telegram and caught up a time table. Confound the
+trains--nothing till eight-fifteen!
+
+ * * * * *
+
+When she left Bar Harbor, Beatrice had no very clear idea of what she
+was going to do. Of one thing she was fairly sure; she was not going to
+Tommy. Where Aunt Cecilia's tentative suggestions concerning the dangers
+besetting a young wife had failed, Aunt Selina's uncompromising realism
+had gone straight to the point. Her eyes were opened; she saw what
+pitfalls infatuation and pique and obstinacy might lead her into. She
+was willing to admit that the thing she had planned to do would be
+equivalent to throwing away her last hold on life--all she read into the
+word life. No, she would not go to Tommy. Not directly, anyway....
+
+Ah, there was the rub. Suppose her imagined scene of confession and
+appeal turned into one of mutual recrimination and resentment--the old
+sort. What was more likely, in view of her past experience? Were things
+so radically changed now that either she or James would be able to
+understand the other better than before? With the best intentions in the
+world she could not help rubbing him the wrong way, and she feared the
+anger and hopelessness that it was his power to inspire in her. With
+Tommy at hand, in the same town, could she trust herself to resist the
+temptation of throwing herself into his ready arms? It was all very well
+for Aunt Selina to say that she was worth more to Beatrice than Tommy;
+Beatrice was quite convinced of it, in the calm light of reason. But in
+the hour of failure, with her pride and her woman's desire for
+protection and love worked up to white heat, would she still be
+convinced of it? Could she dare entrust her whole chance of future
+happiness to the strength of her reason in the moment of its greatest
+trial?
+
+Thoughts like these mingled with the rattle of the train in a sleepless
+night. In the morning one thing emerged into clarity; she must wait till
+Tommy was out of the way. If her determination to try to regain James
+was worth anything, she must give it every possible chance for success.
+Her hopes for a happy issue out of her dreadful labyrinth were not so
+good that she could afford to take one unnecessary risk.
+
+Well, if she wasn't going to New York she would have to get off the
+train, obviously. So she alighted outside Boston early in the morning,
+took a local into town and telegraphed Tommy. Then, as she wandered
+aimlessly through the station her eye fell on a framed time-table in
+which occurred the name of a small White Mountain resort of which she
+had lately heard; a place described to her as remote and quiet and
+possessed of one fairly good hotel. She noticed that a train was due to
+leave for there in an hour's time. In a moment her decision was made;
+she would go up there and wait for Tommy to get safely out of the way,
+carefully plan out her course of action and--she scarcely dared express
+the thought, even mentally--give herself a little time to enjoy her
+newly-awakened love before putting it to the final test.
+
+She arrived in the evening, took a room in the hotel and went to bed
+almost immediately, sleeping soundly for the first time in weeks. About
+the middle of the next morning the Boston papers arrived. Until then she
+had no notion that the train she had traveled by had been wrecked.
+
+She telegraphed immediately to Aunt Cecilia and then, after some
+thought, to James. It seemed the thing to do, everything being
+considered. She wondered if he knew she was safe, how he would take the
+news, if he had been much disturbed by uncertainty. She was inclined to
+fear that her escape had not done her cause any particular good....
+
+His reply arrived surprisingly soon: "Stay where you are, am coming."
+She was touched. Apparently the turn of events had had a favorable
+effect on him; if he cared enough now to come up and see her the
+opportunity for putting her plea to him must be fairly propitious. There
+was a fair chance that if she acted wisely all would turn out well. But
+oh, she must be careful!
+
+She knew he must arrive by the morning train and arose betimes so as to
+be on hand. She was in some doubt about breakfast, whether to get it
+early or wait for him. Either way might be better or worse; it all
+depended on the outcome of their meeting. She ended by deciding to wait;
+she would let him breakfast alone if--if. Small interest she would have
+in breakfast in that event.
+
+She was downstairs long before the train was due to arrive. The weather
+had cleared during the night and the morning was sunny and cool, a true
+autumn day. She tried waiting on the verandah, but the wind was so sharp
+that she soon returned to the warm lobby. She could watch the road
+equally well from the front windows; there was a long open ascent from
+the station. At last she saw the hotel wagon appear round a curve. There
+was only one passenger in it. He, of course. She could recognize the set
+of his head and shoulders even at that distance. She hoped he had a warm
+enough overcoat.
+
+The wagon reached the steepest part of the incline, and he was out,
+walking briskly along beside it. Before it, very soon; he went so much
+faster. How like James, and how unnecessary! He the only passenger, and
+what were horses made for, anyway? Still perhaps it was better, if he
+were not warmly dressed....
+
+The ascent grew steeper before him and his pace visibly decreased. But
+the wagon merely crawled, far behind him! He was a furious walker. That
+hill was enough to phase any one....
+
+Presently the sight of him plodding painfully up toward her while she
+waited calmly at the top grew perfectly intolerable. She could bear it
+no longer; hatless and coatless she rushed out of the hotel and down
+the road toward him. After a while he raised his face and their eyes
+met. Nearer and nearer they came, gazing fixedly into each other's eyes
+and discovering new things there, new lives, new worlds....
+
+They did not even kiss. She, looking beyond him, saw the driver of the
+station wagon peering up at them, and he caught sight over her shoulder
+of the staring windows of the hotel. They stopped with some
+embarrassment and immediately began walking up together.
+
+"It's nice to see you, James; did you have a good journey?"
+
+"Yes, very, thanks. You comfortable here?"
+
+On they walked, in silence. Gradually their embarrassment left them and
+gave place to a sort of awe. Something was going to happen, something
+great and wonderful; they no longer doubted it nor felt any fear.
+But--all in good time!
+
+It must be coming soon, though, to judge by the way it kept pressing
+down on them. Good time? Heavens, there never was any time but the
+present moment, never would be any....
+
+"Beatrice," said James, staring hard at the ground in front of him, "I
+know now how wicked I've been. Do you think you can ever forgive me?"
+
+"Why, James," said Beatrice gently, "dear James, there's nothing to
+forgive."
+
+Then he looked up and saw there were tears on her cheeks....
+
+Yes, right there in the open road!
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVI
+
+REINSTATEMENT OF A SCHOeNE SEELE
+
+
+The sunlight of a golden October afternoon poured down on a little brick
+terrace running along one side of the farmhouse in the Berkshires Harry
+had bought and reformed into a summer house. It was not the principal
+open-air extension of the place; the official verandah was on the other
+side, commanding a wide view to the east and south. This was just a
+little private terrace, designed especially for use on afternoons like
+the present, when for the moment autumn went back on all its promises
+and in a moment of carelessness poured over a dying landscape the breath
+of May. The only view to be had from it was up a grassy slope to the
+west, on the summit of which, according to all standards except those of
+the New England farmer of one hundred years ago, the house ought to have
+been built. Not that either Madge or Harry cared particularly. They were
+fond of pointing out that Tom Ball, or West Stockbridge Mountain, or
+whatever it was, shut out the view to the west anyway, and that they
+were lucky enough to find a farmhouse with any view from it at all.
+
+On the terrace sat James and Beatrice, who were spending a week-end with
+their relatives. Madge was with them. Presumably there was current in
+her mind a polite fiction that she was entertaining her guests, but she
+did not take her duties of hostess-ship too seriously. It was not even
+necessary to keep up a conversation; they all got along far too well
+together for that. They simply sat and enjoyed the fleeting sunshine,
+making pleasant and unnecessary remarks whenever they felt moved to do
+so. Probably they also thought, from time to time. Of the general
+extraordinariness of things, and so forth. If they all spent a little
+time in admiring the adroitness with which the hands of fate had
+shuffled them, with the absent member of the pack, into their present
+satisfactory positions, we should not be at all surprised. But of course
+none of them made any allusion to it.
+
+Harry suddenly burst through the glass door leading from the house and
+flopped into a chair. His appearance was informal. The others turned
+toward him with curious nostrils.
+
+"I know, I know," he sighed. "The only thing is for us all to smoke. You
+too, Beatrice. Because if you don't you'll smell me, and if you smell me
+I'll have to go up and wash, and if I go up and wash now I shall miss
+this last hour of sunshine and that will make you all very, very
+unhappy."
+
+"I am smoking," said Beatrice calmly, "because I want to, and for no
+other reason."
+
+"And I," observed Madge, "because Harry doesn't want me to."
+
+"If you want to know what I've been doing since lunch," said Harry,
+disregarding the insult, "I don't mind telling you that I've mended a
+wire fence, covered the asparagus bed, conducted several successful
+bonfires and filled all the grease-cups on the Ford. I have also
+turned--"
+
+"Yes," said James, "we've guessed that."
+
+"And now only a few trifles such as feeding fowls and swine--or as Madge
+prefers to put it, chickabiddies and piggywigs--stand between me and a
+well-deserved repose. Heavens! I don't see how farmers can keep such
+late hours. Harker, I believe, frequently stays up till nearly nine. I
+feel as if it ought to be midnight now; nothing but the thought of the
+piggywigs keeps me out of bed."
+
+"Can't Harker feed the piggywigs?" inquired Beatrice.
+
+"Oh, yes," said Madge, "just as he can do all the other things Harry
+does a great deal better than he. But it keeps him busy and happy, so we
+let him go on."
+
+"Just as if you didn't cry every night to feed your old pigs!" retorted
+her husband.
+
+Madge laughed. "Yes, I am rather a fool about the poor things, even if
+they aren't so attractive as they were in June. You should have seen
+them, so pink and tiny and sweet, standing up on their hind legs and
+wiggling their noses at you! No one could help wanting to feed them,
+they were so helpless and confident of receiving a shower of manna from
+above. I know just how the Almighty felt when he fed the Israelites."
+
+"Better manna than manners," murmured Harry, and for a while there was a
+profound silence.
+
+"What about a stroll before tea?" presently suggested the happy farmer.
+
+"I should like to," said James. "We'll have to make it short, though."
+
+"Very well. What about the others--the fair swine-herd?"
+
+"I think not," answered the person referred to, smiling up at him. "I
+took quite a long walk before lunch, you know."
+
+"Oh, yes," said Harry, blushing for no apparent reason. "Beatrice?"
+
+Beatrice preferred to stay with Madge.
+
+"You see," said Harry when the two had gone a little way; "you see, the
+fact is, Madge--hm. Madge--"
+
+"You mean," said James, smiling, "there is hope of a new generation of
+our illustrious house?"
+
+"Yes! I only learned this morning. If it's a boy we're going to call it
+James, and if it's a girl we're going to call it Jaqueline."
+
+"I wonder," mused James, "how many times you have named it since you
+first heard."
+
+"There have been several suggestions," admitted Harry, laughing. "I
+really think it will end by that, though."
+
+"Jaqueline--quite a pretty name. Much prettier than James--I rather hope
+it will be a girl."
+
+"Yes, I do too," said Harry. And both knew that they would not have
+troubled to express that wish if they had not really hoped the direct
+opposite....
+
+They walked slowly up the hill and presently turned and stopped to
+admire the view that the foolish prudence of a dead farmer had prevented
+them from enjoying from the house. It was a very lovely view, with its
+tumbled stretches of hills and fields and occasional sheets of blue
+water bathed in the mellow light of the sun that hung low over the dark
+mountain wall to the west. Possibly it was its sheer beauty, or the
+impression it gave of distance from human strife and sordidness, or
+perhaps the subject last mentioned imparted to their thoughts and
+impulse away from the trivial and familiar; at any rate when Harry next
+spoke his words fell neither on James' ears nor his own with the sound
+of fatuity that they might have held at another time.
+
+"James," he said, "we're getting on, aren't we? I don't mean in years,
+though that's a most extraordinary feeling in itself, but in--in life,
+in the business of living. If you ask me what I mean by that
+high-sounding phrase I can only say it's something like coming out of
+every experience a little better qualified to meet whatever new
+experience lies in store for you. Of course we've heard about life being
+a game and all that facile rot ever since we were old enough to speak,
+but it's quite different when you come to _feel_ it. It's a sensation
+all by itself, isn't it?"
+
+James drew a deep breath. "Yes, it is quite by itself," he agreed. "And
+I'm glad to be able to say that at last I have some idea of what the
+actual feeling is like. It was atrophied long enough in me, Heaven
+knows! It's still very slight, very timid and tentative; just a sort of
+glimmering at times--"
+
+"That's all it ever is," said Harry. "Just an occasional glimmering. The
+true feeling, that is. If it's anything more, it isn't really that at
+all, but just a sort of stuckupness, an idea that I am equal to the
+worst life can do to Me! I know people that seem to have that
+attitude--insufferable! Only life is pretty apt to punish them by giving
+them a great deal more than they bargained for."
+
+James was silent a moment, as with a sort of confessional silence. But
+he knew Harry would not understand its confessional quality, so he said
+quietly: "That's exactly what happened to me, of course."
+
+"Oh, rot! Did you think I meant you?"
+
+"No, but it's true, for all that. Thank Heaven I have been permitted to
+live through it!... The truth is, I suppose, I was too successful early
+in life. In school, in college and afterward it was always the same--I
+found myself able to do certain things with an ease that surprised and
+delighted people--no one more than myself. For they weren't things that
+mattered especially, you see; they were showy, spectacular things that
+appealed to the public eye, like playing football. I was a good physical
+specimen, not through any effort or merit of my own, but simply through
+a natural gift, and a very poor and hollow gift it is, as I've found
+out. I don't think people quite realize the problem that a man of the
+athletic type has to face if he's going to make anything out of himself
+but an athlete. From early boyhood he's conscious of physical
+superiority; he knows perfectly well that in the last resort he can
+knock the other fellow down and stamp on him, and that gives him a
+certain feeling of repose and self-sufficiency that's very pernicious.
+It usually passes for strength of character, but it's nothing in the
+world but faith in bone and muscle. And people do worship physical
+strength so! It's small wonder a man gets his head turned.... Good Lord,
+the ideas I used to have about myself! Why, in college, if any one had
+made me say what, in the bottom of my heart, I thought was the greatest
+possible thing for a man of my years to be, I should have said being a
+great football player in a great university. That is, I wouldn't have
+said it, because that would have been like bragging, and it isn't done
+to brag: but that would have been my secret thought.
+
+"And then, if the man has any brains or any capacity for feeling, he
+runs up against some of the big forces of life, and he finds his
+physical strength no more use to him than a broken reed. It's quite a
+shock! I've been more severely tried than most people are, I imagine,
+but Heaven knows I needed it! Everything had gone my way before that; I
+literally never knew what it was to have to put up a fight against
+something I recognized as stronger than I and likely to beat me in the
+end. Well, I'm grateful enough for it now. Thank Heaven for it! Thank
+Heaven for letting me fight and find out my weakness and come through it
+somehow, instead of remaining a mere mountain of beef all my days!"
+
+Both stood silent for a moment after James had ended this confession,
+less because they felt embarrassment in the presence of the feeling that
+lay behind it than because for a short time the past lay on them too
+heavily for words. After a few seconds they moved as though by a common
+impulse and walked slowly along the grassy crest of the ridge, and Harry
+began again.
+
+"What you say sounds very well coming from you, James, but I have reason
+to believe that very little, if any of it, is true. It was my privilege
+to know you during the years you speak of, and I seem to remember you as
+something more than a mountain of beef. Don't be absurd, James!"
+
+He paused a moment and then went on more seriously: "No, James; if there
+was ever any danger of any of us suffering from cock-sureness it's I, at
+this moment. Do you realize how ridiculously happy I've been for the
+last year or so? This success of mine--oh, I've worked, but it's been
+absurdly easy, for all that--and Madge, and everything--it seems
+sometimes as if there was something strange and sinister about it. It
+simply can't be good for any one to be so happy! It worries me."
+
+"Well, as long as it does, you needn't," said James.
+
+"Oh, I see! That makes it quite simple, of course!"
+
+"What I mean," elucidated James, "is that, if you feel that way about
+it, it's probable that you really deserve what happiness you have. After
+all, you know, you have paid for some. You have had your times; I don't
+mind admitting that there have been moments when you weren't quite the
+archangel which of course you are at present!"
+
+Harry laughed. "The prophet Jeremiah once said something about its being
+good for a man that he should bear the yoke in his youth. If that is
+equivalent to saying that the earlier a man has his bad times the
+better, it may be that I got off more easily by having them in college
+than if they'd held off till later. One does learn certain things easier
+if one learns them early. But that doesn't mean that your youth has
+passed without your feeling the yoke, or that your youth has passed yet.
+You're still in the Jeremiah class! One would hardly say that at
+thirty--you're not much over thirty, are you?"
+
+"A few weeks under, I believe."
+
+"I'm sorry!--Well, at thirty there are surely years of youth ahead of
+you, which you, having borne your yoke, may look forward to without fear
+and with every prospect of enjoying to the fullest extent. Whereas
+I--well, there's even more time for me to bear yokes in, if necessary. I
+don't much believe that Jeremiah has done with me yet, somehow!"
+
+"You're not afraid of the future, though, are you?" asked James after a
+pause.
+
+"Oh, no--that would never do. I feel about it as.... One can't say these
+things without sounding cocksure and insufferable!"
+
+"You mean you'll do your best under the circumstances?"
+
+"Yes, or make a good try at it! And then.... Of course I can't be as
+happy as I am without having a good deal at stake; I've given hostages
+to fortune--that's Francis Bacon, not me. And if fortune should look
+upon those hostages with a covetous eye--if anything, for instance,
+should happen to Madge in what's coming, why, there are still plenty of
+things that the worst fortune can't spoil!... Well, you know."
+
+"Yes," said James; "I know."
+
+"In fact, there are certain things in the past so dear to me that
+perhaps, if it came to the point, it would be almost a joy to pay
+heavily for them. But that's only the way I feel about it now, of
+course. It's easy enough to be brave when there's no danger."
+
+"Yes," said James, "but I think you're right in the main. After all, the
+past is one's own--inalienably, forever! While the future is any
+man's....
+
+"Of course you know," he went on after a pause, "that my past would have
+been nothing at all to me without you. It sounds funny, but it's true."
+
+"Funny is the word," said Harry.
+
+"But perfectly true. I should never have come through--all this business
+if it hadn't been for you."
+
+"Look here, James, you're not going to thank me for saving your soul,
+are you? That would be a little forced!"
+
+"My dear man, I'm not thanking you, I'm telling you! You were the one
+good thing I held on to; I was false and wicked in about every way I
+could be, but I did always try, in a sort of blind and blundering way,
+to be true to you. You've been--unconsciously if you will have it
+so--the best influence of my life, and I thought it might be well to
+tell you, that's all."
+
+"Well, I won't pretend I'm not glad to hear it," said Harry soberly. "It
+is rather remarkable when you come to think of it," he went on after a
+moment, "how our lives have been bound up together. It's rather unusual
+with brothers, I imagine. Generally they see a good deal too much of
+each other during their early years and when they grow up they settle
+down into an acquaintanceship of a more or less cordial nature. But with
+us it's been different. Being apart during those early years, I suppose,
+made it necessary for us to rediscover each other when we grew up...."
+
+"Yes," said James, "and the process of rediscovering had some rather
+lively passages in it, if I remember right."
+
+"It did! But it was a good thing; it gave us a new interest in each
+other. One reason why people are commonly so much more enthusiastic
+about their friends than about their relations is because their
+relations are an accident, but their friends are a credit to them. It
+just shows what a selfish thing human nature is, I suppose."
+
+"I see; a new way of being a credit to ourselves. Well, most of it's on
+my side, I imagine."
+
+Harry turned gravely toward his brother. "It seems to me, James, you
+suffer under a tendency to overestimate my virtues. You mustn't, you
+know; it's extremely bad for me. I should say, if questioned closely,
+that that was your one fault--if one expects a kindred tendency to
+shield me from things I ought not to be shielded from."
+
+"Oh, rot, man!"
+
+"You needn't talk--you do. I've felt it, all along, though you've done
+your job so well that for the most part I never knew what you'd saved me
+from."
+
+"Well.... I might go so far as to say that when I've put you before
+myself I generally find I'm all right, and when I put myself first I
+generally find I'm all wrong. But as I've been all wrong most of the
+time, it doesn't signify much!"
+
+"Hm. You put it so that I can't insist very hard. It's there, though,
+for all that. Funny thing. I don't believe it's a bit usual between
+friends, really, especially between brothers. Whatever started you on
+it? It must have been more or less conscious."
+
+For a moment James thought of telling him. They had lived so long since
+then; it would be amusing for them to trace together the effects of that
+one little guiding idea. But he thought of the years ahead, and they
+seemed to call out to him with warning voices, voices full of a tale of
+tasks unfinished and the need of a vigilance sharper than before. So he
+only laughed a little and said:
+
+"Oh, it's you that are exaggerating now! You mustn't get ideas about it;
+it's no more than you'd do for me, or any one for any one else he cares
+about. But little as it is, don't grudge it to me, for though it may not
+have done you much good, it's been the saving of me...."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+So they walked and talked as the sun sank low and the night fell gently
+from a cloudless sky. To Madge and Beatrice, seeing them silhouetted
+against that final blaze of glory in the west, they seemed almost as one
+figure.
+
+
+
+
+
+End of Project Gutenberg's The Whirligig of Time, by Wayland Wells Williams
+
+*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE WHIRLIGIG OF TIME ***
+
+***** This file should be named 37906.txt or 37906.zip *****
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+ http://www.gutenberg.org/3/7/9/0/37906/
+
+Produced by Roger Frank, Matthew Wheaton and the Online
+Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
+will be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
+one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
+(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
+permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
+set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
+copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
+protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
+Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
+charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
+do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
+rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
+such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
+research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
+practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
+subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
+redistribution.
+
+
+
+*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
+http://gutenberg.org/license).
+
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
+all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
+If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
+terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
+entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
+
+1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
+and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
+or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
+collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
+individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
+located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
+copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
+works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
+are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
+Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
+freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
+this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
+the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
+keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
+a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
+the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
+before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
+creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
+Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
+the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
+States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
+access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
+whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
+phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
+copied or distributed:
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
+from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
+posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
+and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
+or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
+with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
+work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
+through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
+Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
+1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
+terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
+to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
+permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
+word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
+distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
+"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
+posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
+you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
+copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
+request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
+form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
+that
+
+- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
+ owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
+ has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
+ Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
+ must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
+ prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
+ returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
+ sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
+ address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
+ the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or
+ destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
+ and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
+ Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
+ money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
+ of receipt of the work.
+
+- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
+forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
+both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
+Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
+Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
+collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
+"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
+property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
+computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
+your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
+of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
+your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
+the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
+refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
+providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
+receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
+is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
+opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
+WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
+If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
+law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
+interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
+the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
+provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
+with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
+promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
+harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
+that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
+or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
+work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
+Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
+
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
+including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
+because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
+people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need, are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
+To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
+and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
+
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
+Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
+http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
+permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
+
+The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
+Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
+throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
+809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
+business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
+information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
+page at http://pglaf.org
+
+For additional contact information:
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
+SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
+particular state visit http://pglaf.org
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
+To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
+
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
+with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
+Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
+
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
+
+ http://www.gutenberg.org
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/37906.zip b/37906.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..8f01135
--- /dev/null
+++ b/37906.zip
Binary files differ
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..5a0b286
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #37906 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/37906)